The Centurygook OF CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS A HANDBOOK OF READY REFERENCE EMBRACING HISTORY, BIOGRAPHY, GOVERNMENT, LAW, LANGUAGE, LITERATURE, INVENTION, SCIENCE, DOMESTIC ECONOMY, INDUSTRY, FINANCE, ART, RELIGION, EDUCATION, HYGIENE, AND USEFUL MISCELLANY. COLLATED AND EDITED BY HENRY W. RUOFF, M.A., D.C.L., Sometime Professor in Pennsylvania State College ; Author of " The Origin of the Family," " Home and State," etc. AUTHENTIC, COMPREHENSIVE, UP-TO-DATE. The King-Richardson. Company, . SPRINGFIELD, MASS. CHICAGO, INDIANAPOLIS. SAN Jost. TORONTO, Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1900, BY THE KING-RICHARDSON COMPANY, In the office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington. Entered according to Act of Parliament of Canada, in the year 1000, BY THE KING-RICHARDSON COMPANY, At the Department of Agriculture. Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1902, BY THE KING-RICHARDSON COMPANY, In the office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington. Copyright, 1903, BY THE KING-RICHARDSON COMPANY, Springfield, Mass. ALL RIGHTS RESERVED. PREFACE. THIS volume is designed to meet the popular demand for a book of reliable and authentic information touching our every day pursuits and requirements. It belongs to a class of publications of a cyclopedic character that are not only a very great desideratum but an unquestioned necessity in an age like the present, marked, as it is, by a constantly expanding spirit of invention, progress, innovation, general enlightenment, and humane achievement, the record of which is found in a wide and diverse literature. It has been truly said, "Of the making of books, there is no end"; nor is it desirable that there should be. The thing that is desirable is, that the books we are compelled to own should be the best of their class rich repositories to which we can repair with entire confidence for new knowledge, or the refreshing of that which may have lapsed through some trick of memory. This is especially true, not only as a matter of economy in time and energy, but because of the utter futility of any effort on our part to keep abreast of the knowledge of the times, and the practical issues that concern us, in any other way. When it is remembered that the yearly output of books exceeds 30,000 volumes, and that the reading capacity of the average man is not more than 3,500 in a lifetime, even though he devote the whole of his working hours to the task of reading, the necessity and wisdom of properly and judiciously epitomizing that knowledge which is of most avail in making us into better citizens and more intelligent beings, is only emphasized. The present work is confined exclusively to those departments of knowledge with which we are most practically and vitally concerned. Its mission is to convey useful and general information to all classes of readers, and incidentally to add something to every one's store of general culture. It is the result of a large expenditure of labor, painstaking care, judicious discrimination, and wide research. The material included has been drawn from numerous sources and authorities, and great care exercised in its collation so as to exclude everything of doubtful authenticity. Obviously the grouping of related facts into Books will be found advantageous for quick reference, as well as in giving a comprehensive view of certain fields of knowledge. The topics in the various Books are not meant to follow any specific order, but have been permitted to fall in line in such fashion as seems most likely to sustain their interest for the general reader. This seeming disorder is, however, fully met by a complete index, both direct and indirect, at the end of the volume. The points that have been steadily kept in view are, conciseness,, authenticity, comprehensiveness, range, and utility ; and in these respects it is believed that this volume occupies, a niche peculiarly its OWEU CONTENTS. PAGE PREFACE . . . . . . '. 5 INDEX . . . . . /....' . . . ^ ^ . % ''''-' . 651 BOOK I. GOVERNMENT AND LAW. Government of the United States Porto Rico Cuba Philippines Hawaii Guam Declaration of Independence Mechlenberg Declaration Constitution of the United States Government of the States and Territories Copyright Law Patent Office Procedure Naturalization Laws Passport Regulations Civil Service U. S. Customs Duties War Revenue Taxes British Customs Tariff Labor Legislation Pension Laws Jurisdiction of Justices of the Peace The Law of Finding U.S. Customs Regulations as to Baggage Law? of Suffrage State and Territorial Statistics Federal Bankruptcy Act Law of Trade-Marks Interstate Commerce Law Business Law and Forms Interest Laws and Statutes of Limitation Law of Inns and Innkeepers Law of the Road Landlord and Tenant Exemption Laws Marriage and Divorce Laws Rights of Married Women Government of the British Empire - - Canada Argentine Republic Austria-Hungary Belgium Brazil Chile China France German Empire . Greece Italy Japan Mexico Netherlands Russia Spain Turkey Statistics of the Countries of the World Heads of the Governments of the World Divisions of Africa Trial by Jury Draco's Laws Laws of Subscription Chinese Emigration Laws Postal Laws Indebtedness of Nations Parliamentary Law Prohibitory Laws 10 BOOK II. LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. Literature Languages English Language C apital Letters Punctuation Proof Reading Familiar Allusions Foreign Wordj and Phrases Great Men's Works Authors of Famous Poems Celebrated Characters in Literature Literary Pseudonyms First Newspapers Nibelungen Lied Forty Immortals of the French Academy The World's Best Books Abbreviations in General Use Christian Names Alphabets Early Literature Chinese Literature Greek Literature Hebrew Literature Roman Literature Sanscrit Literature Arabic Literature Persian Literature Italian Literature Spanish Liter- ature Portuguese Literature French Literature German Literature Scandinavian Literature Russian Literature Polish Literature English Literature American Literature Hungarian Literature Yolapiik Lan- guages of the World History of Writing French Academy Troubadours The Iliad The ^Eneid Gesta Romanorum Norse Sagas Miracle Plays . Romance of the Rose Classic and Romantic Literature Goethe's Faust Dante Latin Language Surnames Poet Laureate Renaissance History of the Theater Misuse of Words . . . . .... . . . 120 BOOK III. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. Chronological Eras Divisions of Time Old English Holidays Legal Holidays Standard Time Perpetual Calendar Anniversaries First Day of the Year General Church Councils Origin of Months and Days of the Week Diction- ary of Mythology and Folklore Outlines of Universal History Calendar of American Battles Dictionary of Biography Admission of States into the Union Organization of the Territories Derivations of Names of States and Territories Rulers of France from the Revolution Kings and Queens of England Presidents of the U. S. Vice-Presidents of the U. S. Justices of the U- S. Supreme Court Cabinet Officers Speakers of the U. S. House of CONTENTS. 7 PAH Representatives Famous Naval Battles Decisive Battles of History Indian Mutiny Abyssinian War American Civil War Russo-Turkish War Zulu War Franco-German War Spanish- American War Dictionary of History 196 BOOK IV. SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. The Earth's Surface Telephone Electric Light Geysers Volcanoes Elec- tricity Phonograph Climate Zoology Ethnology Air Chemistry Printing Ocean Cables Circulation of Blood Astronomy Anatomy Acoustics Algebra Assaying Compass Solar System Specific Gravity Earthquakes Electroplating Evolution Etching Railroads Glacial Period Gunpowder Iron Lace-Making Matches Artillery Microscope Mesmerism Magnet Embalming Engraving Ether Fire Ento- mology Geology Geometry Geography Glass Typewriters Interesting Origins Water Gravitation Medicine Physics Shipbuilding Spectacles Stenography Sugar Telescope Weaving Wire Nebular Hypothesis Paper Nails Aurora Borealis Common Names of Chemical Substances Copernican System Thermometry Hypnotism Photogravure Metric System Ptolemaic System Mirage Coin Day and Night Meteors Comets Agricultural Machinery Spinning Wheel Stars Velocity Tel- egraph Steam Engines Steel Stereotyping Weights and Measures Zodiac Violin Type-Setting Machines Vaccination Light Envelopes Photography Pianoforte. ... . . . . . . 3uO BOOK V. HYGIENE, DOMESTIC ECONOMY, DIETETICS. Pure Air Food Diet of Brain- Workers Classification of Food Analysis of Food Digestibility of Food Nutritiousness of Food Chemical Composition of the Human Body Cleanliness Exercise Human Pulse Respiration Baths Corpulency Medicinal Food Spring Fever Breakfast Dinner Supper and Tea Small Points on Table Etiquette Wines and Liquors Effects of Excessive Eating Insufficient Nutrition Diet of Infancy Diet of Childhood and Youth Diet of Middle Life Diet of Advanced Life Gym- nastics and Physical Development Medicines, with Doses Disinfectants Sleeplessness Drugs Choice of Articles of Food Seasonable Food House- keeper's Time -Table Terms used in French Cookery French - English Dishes (translated) Housekeeper's Measures and Weights Beds and Bed- ding Stimulants and Narcotics Coffee Tea Chocolate Cheese Carpets Care of the Eyes Care of the Teeth Care of the Hair Spectacles Anti- dotes for Poisons Cosmetics Earthenware Cancer House Furnishing House Decoration Value of Woods Medical Dictionary. .... 366 BOOK VI. FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. Early Forms of Currency Metallic Coins Coins of Great Britain American Coinage Banks U. S. National Banking System Savings Banks Statistics of Money in the United States Value of Foreign Coins Monetary Statistics Statistics of Savings Banks Product of Gold and Silver in the U. S. World's Production of Gold and Silver Wildcat Banks Clearing House Freedman's Bank Revenue of the U. S. Government Indebtedness of Nations Credit Mobilier Mississippi Scheme Trade Unions Boycotting Gold Exports South Sea Bubble Wealth of Principal Nations trusts Strikes Mining and Milling Terms Foreign Trade of the U. S. South America Trade Wheat Crop of the World Animal, Vegetable, and Mineral Products of the World Railroads Wages and Cost of Living Insurance Public Debt of the U. S. Telegraph Rates Transatlantic Steamers Submarine Cables Production of Coal Wool Tobacco Tea and Coffee Canals Occupations in the United States Dictionary of Business and Law Terms.. , . *44 8 CONTENTS. BOOK VH. RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. PAQB European Cathedrals Translations of the Bible Catacombs Inquisition Apoc- rypha Celibacy in the Roman Catholic Church English Universities Adam and Eve Celebrated Paintings Buddhism Garden of Eden Millennium Confucianism Diet of Worms Benedictines Architecture Alexandrian Library Juggernaut Councils of Nice Islam Mormons Mount Ararat Obelisks Kissing the Book Tower of Pisa French Renaissance Foreign Libraries Church of England Christian Association Education of the Blind Gnosticism Compulsory Education Illiteracy of Various Nations Gardens of Babylon Oneida Commur :ty Hades Pagodas - Oracles Shakers Pantheon at Rome Universities and Colleges of the U. S. Foreign Universities Animal Worship Holy Grail Pyramids Septuagint Taj - Mahal Roman Baths Religious Statistics Sunday School Statistics Religious Denominations in the U. S. Scriptural Measures Theosophy Tower of Babel Shintuism Sunday Public Schools Sanhedrim Scho- lastics Parsees Koran Sinai Vulgate Smithsonian Institution Jesuits Qualification for the Practice of Medicine Practice of Law Unitarians Windsor Castle Roman Catholic Church The Reformation Christianity Leading American Universities Music Salvation Army Military and Naval Academies Royal Academy Sculpture Schools of Art Educational Philanthropies Musical and Art Terms. , ... . . . 496 BOOK VIII. MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. Signers of the Declaration of Independence Center of Population Civil War Statistics Diplomatic Service Rare Coins and their Values Great Financial Panics Giants and Dwarfs Mason and Dixon's Line Alloys World's Fairs Velocities of Bodies Mixing Colors Value of Metals Modes of Execution Great Fires, Floods, and Inundations Waterfalls Wars of the U. S. Sizes of Papers and Books Language of Flowers Weights and Measures Variations in Time Library of Congress Alcoholic Liquors Notable Bridges American Indian Largest Cities of the World Expectation of Life Defective Classes Height of Noted Buildings and Monuments Holidays Executive Civil List World's Seven Wonders Divorces in Different Countries The Brain Weights of Produce Population of the United States Public Lands Language of Gems Indian Folklore Bell Time on Shipboard Highest Mountains Chinese Wall Bartholdi's Statue of Liberty Population of Great Britain Caste among the Hindoos Harbors Bunker Hill Monu- ment Alien Landholders in the U. S. Government Salary List Vegetable Origins Slavery Mardi-Gras Mound-Builders Blue Stockings Latin Union Facts About the Earth The Sacred Number Molly Maguires U. S. Recruiting Requirements Army Pay Table Navy Pay Table Navies of the World Armed Strength of Europe The Stage State Flowers Modern Explosives Longest Rivers in the World Famous Blue Laws Aver- age Rainfall in U. S. Tables of Distances Historic Minor Political Parties Losses in Recent Wars Exports of Various Countries About Ships Tariff Rates of Different Countries Postage Stamps White House Weddings Fabian Policy Royal Incomes Famous Diamonds Oceans, Seas, Bays, and Lakes Single Tax National Nicknames Dying Sayings of Famous People Woman Suffrage Mottoes of the States Gotham Ships of the U. S. Navy Remarkable Caves Number of Pensioners in the U. S. Great Eastern Yellowstone Park The Golden Fleece Strasburg Clock Patents Issued Nihilism Tammany Rainbow Associated Press Distances Between Euro- pean Cities Grocer 's Table Pilgrim Fathers and Mother,* Nautical Vocabulary 578 Book I. Government and I/aw, UNITED STATES OF AMERICA. Constitution and Government. A Congress representing the thirteen original colonies declared their independence of Great Britain July 4, 1776, and thereafter each colony was known as a State. As a result of the war with Great Britain, the latter acknowl- edged the independence of the United States November 30, 1782, and September 3, 1783, a definitive treaty of peace was concluded at Paris. The government of the United States continued under the Congress provided by the Articles of Confederation until March 4, 1789, when a constitution, which had been adopted by representatives of the different States Sep- tember 17, 1787, went into effect. March 4, 1789, then, is the date of the inception of the present constitutional government of the American Union. Ten amendments were added to the original Constitution December 15, 1791 ; the eleventh amendment, January 8, 1798 ; the twelfth amendment, September 25, 1804 ; the thir- teenth amendment, December 18, 1865 ; the fourteenth amendment, July 28, 1868 ; and the fifteenth amendment, March 30, 1870. Amendments proposed by the Congress must be adopted by three fourths of the States, acting through their legislatures. In the table of States hereafter given, the date of the adoption of the original Constitu- tion by each is stated, and also the dates of the admission of States subsequent to that time, there having been thirty-two States admitted since the adoption of the Constitu- tion, the whole number of States now being forty-five. By the Constitution, the government of the nation is intrusted to three separate depart- ments, the Executive, the Legislative, and the Judicial. The executive power is vested in a President, who holds his office during the term -of four years, and is elected, together with a Vice-President chosen for the same term, in the mode prescribed as follows : " Each State shall appoint, in such manner as the Legisla- ture thereof may direct, a number of electors, equal to the whole number of senators and representatives to which the" State may be entitled in the Congress ; but no senator or representative, or person holding an office of trust or profit under the United States, shall be appointed an elector." The practice is that in every State the electors allotted to the State are chosen by direct vote of the citizens on a general ticket, on the system known in France as scrutin de liste. The Constitution enacts that " the Congress may determine the time of choosing the electors, and the day on which they shall give their votes, which day shall be the same throughout the United States " ; and further, that ' ' no person except a natural- born citizen, or a citizen of the United States at the time of the adoption of this Constitu- tion, shall be eligible to the office of President; neither shall any person be eligible to that office who shall not have attained to the age of thirty-five years, and been fourteen years a resident within the United States." Executive. The President is commander- in-chief of the army and navy, and of the militia in the service of the Union. The Vice- President is ex officio President of the Senate ; and, in case of the death or resignation of the President, he becomes the President for the remainder of the term. The elections for President and Vice-President are at present held in all the States on the Tuesday next after the first Monday in November, every four years ; and, on the 4th of March following, the new President-elect assumes office. By a law approved January 19, 1886, in case of removal, death, resignation, or inability of both the President and Vice-President, the Secretary of State, and after him, in the order of the establishment of their departments, other members of the Cabinet, shall act as President until the disability of the President is removed, or a President shall be elected. On the death of a Vice-President the duties of the office fall to the President pro tempo^e of the Senate, who receives the salary of the Vice-President. The party in the majority usually elects a President pro tempore at the beginning of each term of Congress, or reor- ganization of the Senate, who acts as Presi- dent of the Senate whenever the Vice-President is absent. The administrative business of the Govern- ment is conducted by eight chief officers, or heads of Departments, denominated " Secre- taries," who constitute what is popularly known as the "Cabinet," although there is no legal or constitutional provision for that designation. The Secretaries are chosen by the President, and commissioned by him after confirmation by the Senate. Each Secretary presides over his particular department, and acts under the immediate authority of the President. Each Secretary receives an annual salary of $8,000, and holds office during the pleasure of the President. The Departments, GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 11 in the chronological order of their establish- ment, and the duties, are as follows : Secretary of State. The Department of State is charged with all duties appertaining to cor- respondence with public ministers, American consuls, and representatives of foreign powers accredited to the United States, and with negotiations of whatever character relating to the foreign affairs of the nation. The Secre- tary is accorded first rank among the members of the President's Cabinet. He is the custo- dian of treaties made with foreign states, and of the laws of the United States. He grants and issues passports, and exequaturs to foreign consuls in the United States are issued under his supervision. Secretary of the Treasury. The Secretary of the Treasury is charged with the management of the national finances, and prepares plans for the improvement of the revenue and the support of public credit. He controls the plans for public buildings ; the coinage and printing of money; the collection of com- mercial statistics ; the administration of the Coast and Geodetic Survey, Life-Saving, Light- House, Revenue-Cutter, Steamboat-Inspection, and Marine Hospital branches of public ser- vice, and annually submits to Congress esti- mates of probable revenues and disbursements of the Government. Secretary of War. The Secretary of War performs all duties relating to the military service ; he has supervision of the United States Military Academy at West Point, of the national cemeteries, and of all matters re- lating to river and harbor improvements, the prevention of obstruction to navigation, and the establishment of harbor lines. The military bureaus of the War Depart- ment constitute a part of the military estab- lishment, and have officers of the regular army at their head, while the Secretary and his im- mediate assistants are civilians as a rule. Department of Justice. The Attorney-Gen- eral represents the United States in matters involving legal questions, and gives advice and opinion, when so required by the President or by the heads of the Executive Departments, on questions of law arising in the administra- tion of their respective offices ; he exercises a general superintendence and direction over United States attorneys and marshals in all judicial districts in the States and Territories, and provides special counsel for the United States whenever required by any department of the Government. Postmaster- General. The Postmaster-Gen- eral has the direction and management of the general postal business of the Government; he appoints officers and employees of the De- partment, except the four Assistant Post- masters-General, who are appointed by the President, by and with the advice and consent of the Senate ; appoints all postmasters whose compensation does not exceed $1,000 ; makes postal treaties with foreign governments, by and with the advice and consent of the Presi- dent, and directs the management of the do- mestic and foreign mail service. Secretary of the Navy. The Secretary of the Navy has the general superintendence of construction, manning, armament, equipment, and employment of vessels of war. The Sec- retary, Assistant Secretary, and the attaches of what is known as the Secretary's office are civilians, while the heads of all bureaus are navy officers. Secretary of the Interior. The duties of the Secretary of the Interior are varied ; he is charged with the supervision of the public business relating to patents, pensions, public lands, and surveys, Indians, education, rail- roads, the geological survey, the census, In- dian reservations, the Territories, the various public parks, and certain hospitals and elee- mosynary institutions in the District of Colum- bia. Secretary of Agriculture. The Secretary of Agriculture is charged with the supervision of all public business relating to the agricultural industry, and he exercises advisory supervision over the agricultural experiment stations deriv- ing support from the National Treasury ; he also has control of the quarantine stations for imported cattle, and of interstate quarantine when rendered necessary by contagious cattle diseases. Legislative. The whole legislative power is vested by the Constitution in a Congress, consisting of a Senate and House of Represen- tatives. The Senate consists of two members from each State, chosen by the State Legisla- tures for six years. Senators must be not less than thirty years of age ; must have been citizens of the United States for nine years ; and be residents in the States for which they are chosen. Besides its legislative functions, the Senate is intrusted with the power of rati- fying or rejecting all treaties made by the President with foreign powers, a two-thirds majority of senators present being required for ratification. The Senate is also invested with the power of confirming or rejecting all appointments to office made by the President, and its members constitute a High Court of Impeachment. The judgment in the latter case extends only to removal from office and disqualification. The House of Representa- tives has the sole power of impeachment. The House of Representatives is composed LIBRARY OF READY REFERENCE. of members elected every second year by the vote of citizens who, according to the laws of their respective States, are qualified to vote. In general such voters are all male citizens over twenty-one years of age. Neither race nor color affects the right of citizens. The franchise is not absolutely universal ; residence for at least one year in most States (in Rhode Island and Kentucky two years, in Michigan and Maine three months) is necessary, in some States the payment of taxes, in others registration. On the other hand, many of the Western States admit to the franchise unnaturalized persons who have formally de- clared their intention to become citizens. Un- taxed Indians are excluded from the franchise, in most States convicts, in some States duel- ists and fraudulent voters ; in Massachusetts voters are required to be able to read Eng- lish, and in Mississippi and South Carolina there are also educational restrictions. Colo- rado, Idaho, Utah, and Wyoming admit wo- men to the franchise on equal terms with men. The number of members to which each State is entitled is determined by the census taken every ten years. By the Apportionment Act consequent on the census of 1900, the number of representatives is 378, distributed as fol- lows : Alabama Arkansas California Colorado Connecticut Delaware Florida . Georgia . Idaho Illinois . Indiana . Iowa Kansas . Kentucky Louisiana Maine . Maryland Massachuset s Michigan Minnesota Mississippi Missouri Montana Nebraska On the basis of the last census there is one representative to every 201,860 inhabitants. The popular vote for President in 1900 was about 14,000,000, or nearly one in five of the entire population. In 1900 there were in the United States 21 ,329,819 males of voting age 21 years and over, including unnaturalized foreigners. The next apportionment will be based upon the Federal census of 1910, the results of which census will be reported to the Congress assem- bling the first Monday in December of that year, the Congress passing an apportionment act providing the requisite number of repre-. sentatives from each State, and notifying the respective States of this action. Each State will then rearrange its congressional districts for the next election, which will take place in November, 1912, and the apportionment then established in accordance with the next enumeration will hold for ten years. The apportionment at the various censuses has been as follows : CENSUS APPORTION- Whole MENT Nu'ber of Rep- Tinder Year Populat'n Year Ratio resent- atives Constitution 1789 30,000 65 First Census 1790 3,929,214 1793 33,000 105 Second Census 1800 5,308,483 1803 33,000 141 Third Census 1810 7,239,881 1813 35,000 181 Fourth Census 1820 9,633,822 1823 40,000 213 Fifth Census 1830 12,866,020 1833 47,700 240 Sixth Census 1840 17,069,453 1843 70,680 223 Seventh Census 1850 23,191,876 1853 93,423 233 Eighth Census 1860 31,443,321 1863 127,381 243 Ninth Census 1870 38,558,371 1873 131,425 293 Tenth Census 1880 50,155,783 1883 151,911 325 Eleve'th Census 1890 62,622,260 1893 173,901 356 Twelfth Census 1900 76,303,387 | 1903 201,860 378 9 Nevada . 1 7 New Hampshire 2 8 3 New Jersey . New York 10 37 5 North Carolina 10 1 North Dakota 2 3 Ohio 21 11 Oregon . z 1 Pennsylvania 32 25 Rhode Island 2 13 South Carolina 7 11 South Dakota 2 8 Tennessee 10 11 Texas . 16 7 Utah 1 4 Vermont o 6 Virginia 10 14 Washington 3 12 West Virgin] a 5 9 Wisconsin 11 8 Wyoming 1 16 1 Total . ... 378 6 According to the terms of the Constitution^ representatives must not be less than twenty- five years of age, must have been citizens of the United States for seven years, and be resi- dents in the States from which they are chosen. In addition to the representatives from the States, the House admits a "delegate" from each organized Territory, who has the right to speak on any subject and to make motions, but not to vote. The delegates are elected in the same manner as the representatives. Each of the two houses of Congress is made by the Constitution the ' 'judge of the elec- tions, returns, and qualifications of its own members" ; and each of the houses may, with the concurrence of two thirds, expel a member. The Congress of the United States has the power to propose alterations in the Constitu- tion, by the 5th article of the same. The article orders that the Congress, whenever two thirds of both houses shall deem it necessary, shall propose amendments to the Constitution, or, on the application of the Legislatures of two thirds of all the States, shall call a con- vention for proposing the amendments, which in either case shall be valid to all intents and purposes as part of the Constitution when ratified by the Legislatures of three fourths of the several States, or by conventions in three fourths thereof, as the one or other mode of ratification may be proposed by Congress. Slavery was abolished throughout the whole of the United States by the Thirteenth Amend- ment of the Constitution, adopted Dec. 18, 1865. The vast change in the political and social organization of the Republic made by GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 15 this new fundamental law was completed by the fourteenth and fifteenth Amendments of the Constitution, adopted in 1868 and 1870, which gave to the former slaves all the rights and privileges of citizenship. Under an act of Congress approved Jan. 20, 1874, the salary of a senator, representative, or delegate in Congress is $5,000 per annum with traveling expenses calculated at the rate of twenty cents per mile, by the most direct route of usual travel, and similar return, once for each session of Congress. There is also an annual allowance of $125 for stationery, etc., for each member. The salary of the Speaker of the House of Representatives is, under the same Act of Congress, $8,000 per annum. No senator or representative can, during the time for which he is elected, be appointed to any civil office under authority of the United States which shall have been created or the emoluments of which shall have been increased during such time; and no person holding any office under the United States can be a member of either house during his continuance in office. No religious test is required as a quali- fication to any office or public trust under the United States. The period usually termed <'a Congress" in legislative language continues for two years ; as, for example, from noon, March 4, 1899, until March 4, 1901, at which latter time the term of the representatives to the Fifty-sixth Congress expires, and the term of "the new House of Representatives commences ; but a new Congress does not assemble, unless called together by the President in special session, until the first Monday in December following, and the organization of the House, that is, the election of the Speaker and other officers, takes place on the first assembling, whether in special session after the 4th of March of every second year, as stated, or on the first Monday in De- cember after its term begins. While the sessions of the Senate are held contemporane- ously with those of the House, its organization may continue from Congress to Congress. There are usually two sessions of each Con- gress the first or long session, which may hold until adjourned by resolution of the two Houses, and the short session, which is the closing one, and which expires on the 4th of March every j second year, the new Congress beginning its term the same day. Neither house of Congress can adjourn for more than three days at any one time without the joint action of both. In case of a disagree- ment of the two houses as to adjournment, the President has the right to prorogue the Congress. The Vice-President of the United States, as before stated, is President of the Senate, but he has no vote unless there is a tie. The Senate has the sole power to try all impeach- ments, and it acts upon the nominations for appointment by the President ; it also acts upon treaties submitted to it by the adminis- tration. The Senate may be called in extra session for these purposes by the President without the Congress being called together. All bills for raising revenue must originate in the House of Representatives, but the Senate may propose or concur with amendments to such bills, as on all other bills. Judiciary. The judicial system, like the executive and legislative systems, is dual. The Federal Government maintains courts for the trial of civil causes arising out of the admiralty, patent, banking, and other laws of the United States ; of certain causes between citizens of different States ; and of crimes against the United States. These crimes are few in num- ber, and the criminal jurisdiction of United States courts is comparatively insignificant, extending only to piracy, murder on the high seas, offenses against the postal and revenue laws, and the like. Almost all offenses against the person and against property are dealt with by the State courts ; also all civil causes where the parties are residents of the same State, and matters of probate, divorce, and bankruptcy. In the separate States the lowest courts are those held by Justices of the Peace, or, in towns and cities, by Police Judges. In the counties courts of record are held, some by local county officers, others by District or Circuit Judges, who go from county to county. In these courts there are usually the grand and petty jury. The highest court in each State is the Supreme Court, or Court of Final Ap- peal, with a Chief Justice and Associate Judges. These judges are usually elected by the people, but sometimes appointed by the Governor, with or without the Senate or Coun- cil; they usually hold office for terms of years, but sometimes practically for life or during good behavior. Their salaries vary from $2,500 to $7,500. Of the Federal Courts the lowest are those of the districts, of which there are about sixty, each State forming one or more districts. These courts may try any case of crime against the United States not punishable with death. Above these are nine Circuit Courts, each with a Circuit Judge, with or without the local Dis- trict Judge ; but one or two District Judges may by themselves hold a Circuit Court. The Circuit Court Judges appoint commissioners, whose duty it is to arrest, examine, and com- mit persons accused of crime against the 14 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. United States, and to assist the Circuit and District Judges. in taking evidence for the trial of such persons. These duties may, however, be performed by a judge or magistrate of either a State or the Federal Government. Each of the nine Justices of the Supreme Court must hold a Court in one of the nine circuits at least once every two years, and with each may be associated the Circuit or District Judge. The Supreme Court consists of a Chief Justice and eight Associate Judges, ap- pointed by the President with the consent of the Senate. It deals with appeals from in- ferior courts, and has original jurisdiction in cases affecting foreign ministers and consuls, and those in which a State is a party. Other courts with criminal jurisdiction are the Court of the District of Columbia and those of the Territories. There is also at Washington a Court of Claims. States and Territories. The Union comprises thirteen original States, seven States which were admitted without having been organized as Territories dependent on the Union, and twenty-five States which had been Territories. Each State has its own constitu- tion, which must be republican in form, and each constitution derives its authority, not from Congress, but from the population of the State. In the case of the original States the colonial charters were adopted, with more or less modification, as State constitutions ; the other States, before entering the Union, had constitutions already made. Admission of States into the Union is granted by special Acts of Congress, either (1) in the form of "enabling Acts," providing for the drafting and ratification of a State constitution by the people, in which case the Territory becomes a State as soon as the conditions are fulfilled, or (2) accepting a constitution already framed and at once granting admission. Each State is provided with a Legislature of two Houses, a Governor, and other executive officials, and a judicial system. Both Houses of the Legislature are elective, but the Sena- tors (having larger electoral districts) are less numerous than the members of the House of Representatives, while in some States their terms are longer and, in a few, the Senate is only partially renewed at each election. Mem- bers of both Houses are paid at the same rate, which varies from $150 to $1,500 per se'ssion, or from $1 to $8 per day during session. The duties of the two Houses are similar, but in many States money bills must be introduced first in the House of Representatives. The Senate has to sit as a court for the trial of officials impeached by the other House, and, besides, has often the power to CQnftrm. or re- j ject appointments made by the Governor. In most of the States the sessions are biennial, the Governor having power to summon in extraordinary session, but not to dissolve or adjourn. State Legislatures are competent to deal with all matters not reserved for the Federal Government by the Federal Constitu- tion, or falling within restrictions imposed by the State constitutions. Among their powers are the determinations of the qualifications for the right of suffrage, and the control of all elections to public office, including elections of members of Congress and electors of President and Vice-President ; the criminal law, both in its enactment and in its execution, with unim- portant exceptions, and the administration of prisons ; the civil law, including all matters pertaining to the possession and transfer of, and succession to, property ; marriage and divorce, and all other civil relations ; the char- tering and control of all manufacturing, trad- ing, transportation, and other corporations, subject only to the right of Congress to regu- late commerce passing from one State to another; the regulation of labor ; education ; charities ; licensing, including regulation of the liquor traffic ; fisheries and game laws. The revenues of the States are derived chiefly from a direct tax upon property, in some cases both real and personal, in others on land and buildings only. The prohibition upon Con- gress to levy direct taxes save in proportion to population, contained in the National Consti- tution, 'leaves this source of revenue to the States exclusively. The Governor is chosen by direct vote of the people over the whole State. His term of office varies from one year (in 2 States), to four years (in 19 States), and his salary from $1,500 to $10,000. His duty is to see to the faithful administration of the law, and he has com- mand of the military forces of the State. His power of appointment to State offices is usually unimportant. He may recommend measures but does not present bills to the Legislature. In some States he presents estimates. In all the States except Delaware, North Carolina, Ohio, and Rhode Island, the Governor has the power to veto bills, but where this power ex- ists the Legislature, by a two thirds vote, may override the veto. The officers by whom the administration of State affairs is carried on the Secretaries, Treasurers, and Auditors, and in some of the States members of boards or commissions are usually chosen by the people at the general State elections for terms similar to those for which Governors themselves hold office. In some States commissioners are appointed by the Governor, GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 1& Including Hawaii, there are now six Terri- tories, and when the status of Porto Rico is established there will probably be seven Terri- tories. Arizona, New Mexico, and Oklahoma have local Legislatures, the form of which has been prescribed by the Federal Government ; they have powers similar to those of the States, but any of their acts may be modified or an- nulled by Federal statutes. The Governor of each of the Territories, except the Indian Territory, is appointed for four years by the President, to whom annual reports are submitted. These Governors have the power of veto over the acts of Territorial Legislatures. The President appoints the Ter- ritorial Secretaries and other officials, together with Territorial judges. Alaska and the Indian Territory have io power of self-government, the former being governed like a British crown colony, by a Governor who is not assisted by a Legislature. In the Indian Territory the native tribes are under the direct control of the Department of the Interior, but the civilized tribes, with the support of the National Government, maintain local governments of their own, with elective Legislatures and executive officers, whose functions are strictly limited to the persons and personal property of their own citizens ; that is, the Indians. The District of Columbia presents an anom- alous status. It is the seat of the Federal Government. It is coextensive with and is practically the City of Washington, and em- braces an area of 69 square miles. The Dis- trict has no municipal legislative body, and its citizens have no right to vote, either in national or municipal affairs. Under an act of 1878 ite municipal government is administered by three commissioners, appointed by the Presi- dent. They constitute a non-partisan board, one being selected from each of the leading political parties, and the third being assigned to duty as a commissioner from the Engineer Corps of the army. All legislation relative to the District of Columbia is by the Congress. All the legislatures, State and Territorial, have biennial sessions, except Georgia, Mas- sachusetts, New Jersey, New York, Rhode Island, and South Carolina, which have an- nual sessions, beginning in January of each year, with the exception of Georgia, whose Legislature meets in October. Nearly all the present biennial sessions began in January, 1899. The States whose Legislatures meet in January, 1900, are Iowa, Kentucky, Maryland, Mississippi, and Ohio. Alabama's next bien- nial session begins in November, 1900, Lou- isiana's in May, 1900, and Vermont's in October, 1900. HAWAII. Constitution and Government. The Hawaiian or Sandwich Islands, discovered by Captain Coot in 1778, formed during the greater part of the nineteenth century an in- dependent kingdom, whose integrity was recog- nized by Great Britain, France, the United States, and other governments. In 1893, how- ever, the reigning Queen, Liliuokalani, was deposed, and a provisional government formed ; in 1894 a Republic was proclaimed, with a Legislature of two Houses and a President ; and in accordance with a resolution of Congress of July 7, 1898, the islands were on August 12, 1898, formally annexed to the United States. Five commissioners were appointed to recommend such legislation concerning the is- lands as they should deem necessary and proper, and in the beginning of December the report of the Commission with its legislative pro- posals was transmitted to Congress. The principal Bill, providing for the erection of the islands into a Territory, to be styled the Ter- ritory of Hawaii, was enacted by the first session of the Fifty-sixth Congress, and was approved by the President, April 30, 1900. All whites, including Portuguese, all persons of African descent, and all descendants of Hawaiian race, either on the paternal or the maternal side, who were citizens of Hawaii immediately prior to the transfer of the sovereignty to the United States, are declared citizens of the United States. Prior to the trans- fer all Hawaiians of full age who could speak, read, and write either Hawaiian or English, had the right to vote. The number of registered electors on September 3, 1897, was 2,687. Area and Population. The total area of the islands is 6,640 square miles: namely, Hawaii, 4,210 ; Maui, 760 ; Oahu, 600 ; Kauai, 5*90; Molokai, 270; Lanai, 150; Niihau, 97; Kahoolawe, 63 square miles. In 1896 the pop- ulation numbered 109,020 (72,517 males and 36,503 females). Of the total, 31,019 were na- tives, 8,485 half-castes, 21,616 Chinese, 24,407 Japanese, 15,191 Portuguese, 3,086 Americans, 2,250 British, 1,432 Germans, 378 Norwegians, 101 French, 455 Polynesians, and 600 other foreigners. The population comprised 7,570 persons engaged in agriculture, 2,100 in fishing and navigation, 2,265 in the industries, 2,031 in trade and transport, 2,580 in liberal pro- fessions, 34,498 laborers, 4,310 of various occu- pations, and 53,726 without regular occupa- tion. The native population (closely allied to the Maories of New Zealand) is rapidly de- creasing, while the foreign element is increasing. Commerce, Shipping, and Com- munications. The islands are to a great extent mountainous and volcanic, but the soil 16 THE CEXTtJRY BOOK OF FACTS, is highly fertile and productive. Sugar and rice are the staple industries, while coffee, hides, bananas, and wool are also exported. Steamers connect the islands with the American continent, Australasia, and China. In 1897 there were 62 registered vessels be- longing to the islands, of 34,066 tons; of these, 21 of 28, 510 tons were built in England. There are about 100 miles of railway in the islands of Hawaii, Alaui, and Oahu. There are telegraphs in the islands of Maui, Hawaii, between Hawaii and Oahu, and round the lat- ter island ; total length , 250 miles ; nearly every family in Honolulu has its telephone. In 1897 the total number of letters, etc., trans- mitted and received by the Post Office was 5,079,872 ; there were 73 post offices. Postal savings banks, 1897 : depositors, 10,620 ; amount, $953,981. Honolulu is lighted by electricity, and has lines of tramways. The various islands will shortly be connected by telegraphic cable. PORTO RICO. Area, Population, Etc. The island of Porto Rico (added to the United States by Spain in accordance with the Treaty of Paris, signed Dec. 10, 1898, and ratified by the Senate Feb. 6, 1899, and by the Queen Regent of Spain March 17), according to a recent re- port of the British consul (Foreign Office, Annual Series, Xo. 1,917, 1897), has an extent of about 3,668 square miles 35 miles broad and 95 miles long. The population, according to an enumeration made in 1900, was 953,243 Government. An act providing for a civil government for Porto Rico was passed by the Fifty-sixth Congress, and received the assent of the President, April 12, 1900. Under this act a civil government was established, which went into effect May 1, 1900. Geographical Formation. The island is traversed from east to west by a moun- tain range, dividing the island into two unequal portions, by far the longest slope being on the north, so that the rivers on that coast are much the longer. From this chain several branches diverge toward the north coast, giving it a rugged appearance. The most of the population is situated on the low- lands at the sea front of t_e hills. For lack of roads, the interior is accessible only by mule trails or saddle paths, and it is covered with vast forests. Rivers and brooks are numerous, forty-seven very considerable rivers having been enumer- ated. They are short and rapid, especially on the Caribbean slopes, which are steep and abrupt. The mountains intercept the north-_ east trade winds blowing from the Atlantic and wring their moisture from them, so that the rainfall of the north section is very copious. South of the mountains severe droughts occur and agriculture demands irrigation, but such work is uusystematically carried on. The northeast coast is broken and forbid- ding ; that of the south safer. The chief port on the north coast is the capital, San Juan. On the west is the important harbor of Maya- guez. On the south side are Guanica, Ponce, and Guayama. The island of Vieques, which lies off the east coast of Porto Rico, is 21 miles long and 6 miles wide. Climate. The climate is hot, but much alleviated by the prevailing northeast winds. A temperature as high as 117 Fahrenheit has been recorded, but it seldom exceeds 97 Fah- renheit in the shade during the hottest hours. At night it sinks to 68 or 69. The rainj season lasts from August to December, and the rainfall is at times so copious north of the mountains as to inundate cultivated fields and produce swamps. The mean annual average rainfall is 64^ inches. The prevailing diseases are yellow fever, elephantiasis, tetanus, marsh fever, and dysentery. Productions. Porto Rico is unusually fertile, and its dominant industries are agri- culture and lumbering. In elevated regions the vegetation of the temperate zone is not unknown. There are more than 500 varieties of trees found in the forests, and the plains are full of palm, orange, and other trees. The principal crops are sugar, coffee, tobacco, cot- ton, and maize, but bananas, rice, pineapples, and many other fruits are important products. The principal minerals found in Porto Rico are gold, carbonates, and sulphides of copper and magnetic oxide of iron in large quantities. Lignite is found at Utuado and Mcca, and also yellow amber. A large variety of marbles, limestones, and other building stones are de- posited on the island, but these resources are very undeveloped. There are salt works at Guanica and Salinac on the south coast, and at Cape Rojo on the west, and these constitute the principal mineral industry in Porto Rico. Inter-Communication. Railways are in their infancy, and cart roads are deficient. There are 137 miles of railway, with 170 miles under construction, and 470 miles of telegraph lines. These connect the capital with the principal ports south and west. Submarine cables run from San Juan to St. Thomas and Jamaica. Cities. The capital of Porto Rico is San Juan Bautista. founded by Ponce de Leon. It is situated on the small island of Morro, jK>w connected with the mainland by the San GOVERNMENT AND LAW, 17 Antonio Bridge. The district of its name con- tains 27,000 inhabitants. On the western end of the island Ponce de Leon built the Govern- or's palace, inclosed within the Santa Catalina fortifications, where also are the cathedral, town house, and theater. This portion of the city is now called Pueblo Viejo. It is an Episcopal see subordinate to the Archbishop of Santiago de Cuba. The city is strongly fortified for the defense of the entrance to the outer harbor. The interior harbor is land- locked, capacious, and safe, and is being dredged to a uniform depth of twenty-nine feet. The houses are of stone, usually one story high, and have roof gardens, from which fine marine views may be enjoyed. Almost every house has a garden in its patio or court. Besides the capital, San Juan, there are some sixty or seventy towns and villages of considerable size in the island. Of these the most important are Ponce and Arecibo, each with a larger population than San Juan (that of Ponce being about 35,000 or 40,000, while that of San Juan is estimated at 25,000) ; Mayaguez (also larger than the capital) and Aguadilla, on the west coast ; Farjardo and Hu- macao, on the east coast : Guanica and Aroyo, on the south, and Pepino and Cayey, in the interior. Commerce. The foreign trade of Porto Rico in 1896 amounted to $36,624,120, the imports being valued at $18,945,793, and the exports at $17,295,535. The largest trade was done with Spain, being $11,2,59,702, and the next largest with the United States, $6,- 526,029. In the year 1897 the imports from the United States were $1,988,888, and the exports to the United States $2,181,024. The imports from the United States included petro- leum, ironware, dried and salted meats, tex- tiles, and dairy products. Rice was the prin- cipal article of import from the rest of the world. The largest article of export from Porto Rico is coffee, which is over 63 per cent, of the whole. The next largest is sugar, 28 per cent. The other exports in order of amount are to- bacco, honey, molasses, cattle, timber, and hides. PHILIPPINE ISLANDS. These islands, ceded by Spain to the United States by the treaty signed by the Peace Com- missioners, Dec. 10, 1898, and ratified by the Senate, Feb. 6, 1899, and by the Queen Re- gent of Spain March 17, extend almost due north and south from Formosa to Borneo and the Moluccas, embracing an extent of 16 of latitude and 9 of longitude. They are about 2,000 in number ; the two largest are Luzon (area 40>024 square miles) and Mindanao; and the total area, including the Sulu Islands, is about 115,300 square miles. The popula- tion is estimated at about 8,000,000. The capital of the Philippines, Manila, has 154,062 inhabitants (1887); other towns are Laoag, 30,642; Lipa, 43,408; Banang, 35,598; Ba- tangas, 35,587. There are about 25,000 Euro- peans in the islands and about 100,000 Chi- nese, in whose hands are the principal indus- tries. The native inhabitants are mostly of the Malayan race, but there are some tribes of Negritos. The group is divided into three governments : Luzon, the A T isayas, and Min- danao with the Sulu Islands ; but in many of the islands the natives have hitherto been practically independent. Financial and Industrial Condi- tions. Silver is the basis of the currency in the Philippine Islands. There is no gold in general circulation, and has been none for more than twenty years. The Mexican dollar of a date previous to 1877 is current in the islands, and it is practically the only money in general circulation. The Spanish Govern- ment, in the summer of 1897, coined $6,000,- 000 of silver in a local currency, which was sent to the islands. These dollars are lighter in weight than the Mexican dollar, but the scarcity of money in the Philippine Islands caused them to be quickly absorbed. There is a local note-issuing bank, called the Banco Espafiol Filipino, which has in circulation notes based on silver, of which there was out- standing on Sept. 30, 1898, approximately $2,500,000. It is estimated there are in circulation $10,- 000,000 of subsidiary coins, the 10-cent, 20- cent, and 50-cent pieces, which have been re- coined from Mexican dollars by the Spanish Government. The estimate of the Mexican dollars now in circulation, as given by one of the best-informed bankers in the islands, is from $20,000,000 to $25,000,000. This, with the $2,500,000 of notes of the Banco Espafiol Filipino now in circulation, constitutes the currency of the islands. This would make a total of from $40,000,000 to $45,000,000, speaking roughly, for the entire islands, or, approximately, $5 per capita for the total pop- ulation of the islands. It must not be over- looked that these figures are given on a silver basis, and that, therefore, in figuring on our own standard all of these figures must be cut in two. On a gold basis; the currency of the islands is, therefore, from $20,000,000 to $22,- 500,000, or $2.50 per capita, figuring on the total population of the islands. Three banking institutions do the banking business of the Philippine Islands aside from that done by the large commercial houses. II THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. which buy and sell exchange, and to a limited extent carry on the business which legitimate- ly belongs to banking institutions. Of the three banks, the two most important are branch concerns, the third being a local insti- tution controlled by Spaniards and natives. There are about 25,000 Europeans resi- dent in the islands (the total population is nearly 8,000,000), of course, not counting the troops. Some 12,000 are established in the capital, Manila, the center of the colonial gov- ernment. English, Spanish, and German houses are engaged in trade, advancing money to the natives on their crops. Such business methods involve risks and necessitate large capital in the beginning, but the profits are immense. The land is fertile and productive, and lacks only intelligent cultivation. Abaca (manila hemp) is one of the chief sources of wealth of the country. Sugar cane does not give as satisfactory returns, owing largely to the ignorance of planters. The average production is 178,000,000 kilograms (175,- 186.96 tons), while that of Cuba is equal to 720,000,000 kilograms. The sugar goes almost entirely to Japan, England, and the United States. It is of poor quality and very cheap. The cultivation of tobacco is one of the most important industries, although it is capable of much greater development. The native coffee, although not equal to the mocha or bourbon varieties, has a fine aroma. It goes chiefly to Spain. Cocoa trees grow in abundance, and the oil is used for lighting houses and streets. The indigo is famous for its superior qualities. The inhabitants are apathetic to a degree that is noticeable even in these countries, where every one is averse to exertion. The women have long and slender fingers, remarkably fine and sensitive, and well adapted to their work. The hats and cigarette-holders they make and the articles they embroider are models of delicacy. Cot- ton spinning and work in bamboo are among the chief industries. The fiber which gets its common name from the city of Manila is perennial and requires little cultivation ; in fact, it does very well without any. It reaches the proportions of a tree, but its soft stem is cut with a knife, though several inches in diameter, and the decortication of the fiber is rather a matter of time and patience than of skill or hard work. About a million bales are exported annually, nearly all of it going to England or coming to this country, and our importation of the fiber has been increasing. The sugar culture has remained in its prime- val condition because the supply of labor was so great that there was no incentive to econo- mize labor, and there was no United States at hand, as in the case of Cuba, to invest money in plantations and develop the business in ac- cordance with modern ideas. There is no doubt that the culture of the cane can be im- mensely extended, and the methods of produc- tion would be modernized very rapidly if capita] were directed toward the islands and there were a greater degree of confidence in their future. The tobacco is as well known in Europe and Asia as the tobacco of Cuba is in this country ; it is extensively cultivated and its manufacture is the staple business of the capital city. Commerce. In 1891 the Philippines' exports to Spain amounted to $22,479,000 (018,095,595 in United States currency). In 1891 the Philippines' imports from Spain amounted to $17,126,000 ($13,786,430). The total exports from the Philippines in 1802 consisted of 95, 016 tons of hemp; 3,951,- 060 piculs (553,148,400 pounds) of sugar; 21,223 piculs (2,971,220 pounds) of coffee; 61,459 piculs (8,604,260 pounds) of sampan- wood ; 5,570 piculs (779,800 pounds) of indigo ; 254,428 quintals (56,091,197 pounds) of to- bacco leaf; 137,059,000 cigars. The total exports in 1892 were of the value of $33,479,- 000 ($23,803,569). Total value of imports, in 1892, were of the value of $27,000,000 ($19,197,000). The imports into the Philippines from the United States in 1897 were but $94,597, the principal item being mineral oils. The exports to the United States were $4,383,740, the largest items being hemp, $2,701,651, and cane sugar, $1,199,202. Climate. Mr. Hilder, Assistant Secretary of the National Geographical Society, who spent nine months in the islands, says in the Forum that there is considerable variety jn the climate, and that for the tropics it is not excessively hot. On the western side of Luzon the hot season is from March till June, May being the hottest month, when the tempera- ture ranges from 80 to 100. The mean tem- perature for the month is 84, 2 above the summer temperature of New Orleans and P above the hottest month in Washington. From October to March is a cool, dry season. The northern islands are subject to terrific storms, which never pass south of 9 north latitude. Railways and Shipping. In a report published in Special Consular Reports, High- ways of Commerce, Consul Elliott, of Manila, says that there is but one railway in tpe islands from Manila to Dagupin a distance of 123 miles. It is single track and well built, steel rails being used its entire length, th GOVERNMENT LAWc 10 bridges being of stone or iron, and the station buildings substantial. English engines are used, which make 45 miles per hour. The Government assisted in the construction of the road by making valuable concessions of land with right of way its entire length and by guaranteeing 8 per cent, per year upon the stock of the road for a period of ninety-nine years, when it is to become State property. SAMOAN ISLANDS. The island of Tutuila and other small Sa- moan islands came into the possession of the United States, January, 1900. This island has an area of about 54 square miles, with a population of 3,800. Manua and the other islets have a united area of about 25 square miles, with about 2,000 inhabitants. Pago Pago is the only good harbor. GUAM (LADROXES). . The Island of Guam or Guahan, the largest in the Marianne or Ladrone Archipelago, was ceded by Spain to the United States in 1898, and will probably be used as a coaling station for the United States navy. The island is about 32 miles long and 100 miles in circum- ference, and has a population of about 9,000, of whom about 6,000 are in Agana, the capital. The inhabitants are mostly immigrants or the descendants of immigrants from the Philip- pines, the original race of the Marianne Islands having become extinct. The recognized lan- guage is Spanish, but English is also spoken. On the island there are 18 schools, and nine tenths of the islanders can read and write. The island is thickly wooded, well watered, and fertile, and possesses a roadstead. REPUBLIC OF CUBA. Government. Cuba after having been continuously in the possession of Spain from its discovery, was by the peace preliminaries and by the definite treaty signed by the Peace Commissioners at Paris, December 10, 1898, and ratified by the Senate February 6, 1899, and by the Queen Regent of Spain March 17, 1899, relinquished by Spain, and thus has the position of an independent state. The direct armed interposition of the United States in the struggle against Spanish domination, however, brought the island into close association with the United States Government, and Congress affirmed Cuban independence. A convention to frame and adopt a Constitution for Cuba met at Havana November 5, 1900, and con- tinued in session until late in 1901. An elec- toral law was then formulated providing for general elections to be held December 31, 1901, and the election of a President, V 7 ice-President Upon a full report of these elections to the United States Governor-General, the transfer of actual authority from the United States to the new Cuban government was made May 20, 1902. Area and Population. The area of Cuba is about 45,872 square miles. Ten per cent, of the area is cultivated, 7 per cent, is unre- claimed, and 4 per cent, is under forests. There are large tracts of country still unexplored. The population of the island in 1894 was given as 1,631,696, of which 65 per cent, was white, the remainder being negro. The capital, Havana, has 200,000 inhabitants; Matanzas (1892), 27,000 ; Santiago de Cuba, 71,307; Cienfuegos (1892), 27,430; Puerto Principe, 46,641 ; Holguin, 34,767 ; Sancti Spiritu, 32,608; Cardenas (1892), 23,680. Education was made obligatory in 1880. There are 843 public schools in the island, and Havana has a university. Consul Hyatt, of Santiago do Cuba, in a report dated January 8, 1897, and printed in Consular Reports No. 197 (February, 1897), p. 262, says that the area of Cuba is about equal to that of the State of Pennsylvania, the length being 775 miles and the width varying from 30 to 160 miles. The productive soil, mineral wealth , and climatic conditions of the island entitle it to rank among the foremost communities of the world. The soil is a marvel of richness, and fertilizers are seldom used, unless in the case of tobacco, even though the same crops be grown on the same land for a hundred years, as has happened in some of the old sugar cane fields. The moun- tains are of coral formation, while the lowlands of eastern C:ba at least seem to be composed largely of fosJls of sea matter from prehistoric times and are extremely rich in lime and phosphate, which accounts for their apparent inexh austible ness . Although founded and settled more than fifty years before the United States, Cuba has still 13,000,000 acres of primeval forests ; ma- hogany, cedar, logwood, redwood, ebony, lignum-vitae, and caiguaran (which is more durable in the ground than iron or steel ) ar among the woods. If all the land suitable to the growth of sugar cane were devoted to that industry, it is estimated that Cuba might supply the entire Western Hemisphere with sugar. The island has already produced in a single year for ex- port 1,000,000 tons, and its capabilities have only been in the experimental stage. The adaptability of the soil for tobacco culture has long been known. Cuba takes great pride in the quality of her coffee, and until the war the and other federal officers on February 24, 1902. | plantations were flourishing. THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. The land is not suitable to the cultivation of cereals, and probably no flouring mill exists on the island. Finances. The estimated revenue for 1897-98 was 24,755,760 pesos (a peso equals $0.965), of which 11,890,000 was from cus- toms; ordinary expenditure, 26,119,124 pesos, of which 12,602,216 pesos was for the debt, 5,896,741 pesos for the Ministry of War, and 4,036,088 pesos for the Ministry of the Inte- rior. The extraordinary revenue was esti- mated at over 80,000,000 pesos. The debt was in 1896 put at about 70,220,000, of which 10,000,000, was due to the Spanish treasury. The interest on the debt is estimated to im- pose a burden of $9.75 per inhabitant. Minerals. According to Consul Hyatt, Cuba is capable of taking high rank in min- eral wealth. Gold and silver have not been found in paying quantities. Copper was mined at Cobre by the natives before Colum- bus discovered the island, and there is strong proof that native copper was carried across to Florida and used by the Florida Indians hun- dreds of years ago. From 1828 to 1840 an average of from 82,000,000 to $3,000,000 worth of copper ore was shipped annually to the United States from these mines. The iron mines of Cuba, all of which are located near Santiago, overshadow in impor- tance all other industries on the eastern end of the island, constituting the only industry that has made any pretense of withstanding the shock of the present insurrection. The Jura- gua and Daiquiri iron companies (American), with a combined capital of over $5,000,000, now operate mines in this vicinity and employ from 800 to 1400 men, shipping to the United States from 30,000 to 50,000 tons of iron ore per month, the largest portion of which is used at Bethlehem, Steelton, and Pittsburg, Pa., and Sparrows Point, Md. The ore of these mines is among the richest in the world, yield- ing from 62 to 67 per cent, of pure iron, and is very free from sulphur and phosphorus. There are numerous undeveloped mines of equal value in this region. In the Sierra Maestra range, on the southern coast of Cuba, from Santiago west to Manza- nillo, within a distance of about 100 miles, are found numerous deposits of manganese, an ore indispensable in the manufacture of steel. As nearly all the manganese used in the United States comes from the Black Sea regions of Europe and a smaller quantity from the north- ern part of South America, it is but reasonable to suppose 'that the products of these near-by mines will be in great demand when the con- ditions are such that they can be operated in safety. In the district of Santiago de Cuba, at the end of 1891 , the total number of mining titles issued was 296, with an extent of 13,727 hec- tares. Of the mines reported and claimed, 138 were iron, 88 manganese, and 53 copper. Commerce and Industry. Railroads and other highways, improved machinery, and more modern methods of doing business are among the wants of Cuba ; and with the on- ward march of civilization these will doubtless be hers in the near future. Cuba, like other tropical and semi-tropical countries, is not given to manufacturing ; her people would rather sell the products of the soil and mines and buy manufactured goods. The possibili- ties of the island are great, while the probabili- ties remain an unsolved problem. The number of landed estates on the island in 1891 was estimated at 90,960, of the value of 220,000,000 pesos, and rental of 17,000,000 pesos. The live stock consisted of 584,725 horses and mules, 2,485,766 cattle, 78,494 sheep, and 570,194 pigs. The chief produce is sugar and tobacco. The quantity of sugar produced in the year 1894-95 was 1,004,264 tons; 1895-96, 225,221 tons; 1896-97,212,- 051 tons. The insurrection and incendiarism in the island ruined the prospects of sugar cultivation in 1896. The tobacco crop on an average is estimated at 560,000 bales (1 bale = 110 Ibs.), 338,000 bales being exported and the remainder used in cigar and cigarette manufacture in Havana. In 1896 the cigars exported numbered 185,914,000. Tobacco leaf exported in 1895, 30,466,000 Ibs. ; in 1896, 16,823,000 Ibs. The decrease in cigar exports and decrease in leaf exports is due to decree of May 12, 1896, forbidding tobacco- leaf exports except to Spain. Cigarettes ex- ported in 1895, 48,163,846 packets. Nearly all the tobacco and nearly half of the cigars go to the United States. About 80,000 of the inhabitants are ordinarily engaged in the cul- tivation of tobacco. Mahogany and other timbers are exported, as are also honey, wax, and fruits. The chief imports are rice, jerked beef, and flour. The Spanish official returns state the value of the imports from Cuba into Spain for 1896 to be 21,898,215 Spanish pesetas ($4,216,355.49), and the exports from Spain to Cuba 134,481,675 pesetas ($25,951,- 003.27). In 1897 the imports of the United States from Cuba amounted to $405,326,637, and the exports from the United States to Cuba $100,456,712. Railways. According to a report pub- lished in Special Consular Reports, "High- ways of Commerce," there are ten railway companies in Cuba, the most important being the Ferrocarriles Unidos ; upward of 1000 AND LAW. miles of main line belong to these companies, and there are, besides, private branch lines to all the important sugar estates. The Ferro- carriles Unidos has four lines, connecting Ha- vana with Matanzas, Batabano, Union, and Guanajay. The roads pass through the most populous part of the country and connect Ha- vana with other lines. The Western Railway was begun some forty years ago, and in 1891 , when it was acquired by an English company, had reached Puerto de Golpe, 96 miles from Havana and 10 miles from Pinar del Rio, the capital of the province of that name and the center of the tobacco- growing district. The line has been completed to Pinar del Rio, and improvements have been made in the old part, many of the bridges hav- ing been replaced by new steel ones, the rails renewed, modern cars put on, etc. The other companies are : Ferrocarriles Cardenas-Jacaro, the main line of which joins the towns of Cardenas and Santa Clara ; Fer- rocarril de Matanzas, having lines between Matanzas and Murga, and also between Matan- zas and Guareiras ; Ferrocarril de Sagua la Grande, running between Concha and Cruces ; Ferrocarril Cienf uegos-Santa Clara, connecting those towns ; Ferrocarriles Unidos de Caibarien, from Caibarien to Placetas ; Ferrocarril de Puerto Principe-Nuevitas ; Ferrocarril de Guantanamo. The Marianao Railway also belongs to an English company, with headquarters in Lon- don. The original line, belonging to Cubans, was opened in 1863, but liquidated and was transferred to the present owners. The line, only 8 miles in length, runs from Havana to Marianao, with a branch line to a small vil- lage cfn the coast. During 1894, over 750,000 passengers were carried, this being the chief source of revenue. The carriages are of the American type, and are fitted, as well as the locomotives, with the Westinghouse automatic brake ; the rails are of steel, weighing 60 pounds per yard. Ports, Interior Transportation, Etc. In 1895 the port of Havana was visited by 1179 vessels, of 1,681,325 tons; in 1897, 231 vessels, of 309,758 tons, visited Cienfuegos. There are 54 ports in Cuba, of which 15 are open to commerce. There are 19 lighthouses. Cables. There are four cable lines con- nected with Cuba. The International Ocean Telegraph Company has a cable from Havana to Florida ; the Cuban Submarine Company has a cable connecting Havana with Santiago de Cuba and Cienfuegos ; the West India and Panama Company has a cable connecting Ha- vana with Santiago de Cuba, Jamaica, Porto Rico, the Lesser Antilles, and the Isthmus ef Panama ; the Compagnie Franchise de Cables Sous-Marins has a line connecting Havana with Santiago de Cuba, Haiti, Santo Domingo, Venezuela, and Brazil. The only three towns in Cuba having cable connections are Havana, Cienfuegos, and San- tiago de Cuba. Telegraphs, Telephones, Etc. The telegraph and telephone systems in Cuba be- long to the Government, but the latter is farmed out for a limited number of years to a company called the Red Telefonica de la Ha- bana. Nearly all the public and private build- ings in the city and suburbs are connected by telephone. DECLARATION OF INDEPEND- ENCE. In Congress July 4> 1776, The unanimous Declaration of the Thirteen United States of America. When, in the course of human events, it be- comes necessary for one people to dissolve the political bands which have connected them with another, and to assume, among the powers of the earth, the separate and equal station to which the laws of nature and of nature's God entitle them, a decent respect to the opinions of mankind requires that they should declare the causes which impel them to the separation. We hold these truths to be self-evident, that all men are created equal, that they are en- dowed, by their Creator, with certain unalien- able rights, that among these are life, liberty, and the pursuit of happiness. That to secure these rights, governments are instituted among men, deriving their just powers from the con- sent of the governed, that whenever any form of government becomes destructive of these ends, it is the right of the people to alter or to abol- ish it, and to institute new government, laying its foundation on such principles, and organiz- ing its powers in such form as to them shall seem most likely to effect their safety and hap- piness. Prudence, indeed, will dictate, that governments long established should not be changed for light and transient causes ; and accordingly all experience hath shown that mankind are more disposed to suffer where evils are sufferable, than to right themselves by abolishing the forms to which they are ac- customed. But when a long train of abuses and usurpations, pursuing invariably the same object, evinces a design to reduce them under absolute despotism, it is their right, it is their duty, to throw off such government, and to provide new guards for their future security. Such has been the patient sufferance of these colonies ; and such is now the necessity which constrains them to alter their former systems THE CENTURY BOOK OF PACTS. of government. The history of the present King of Great Britain is a history of repeated injuries and usurpations, all having in direct object the establishment of an absolute tyranny over these states. To prove this, let facts be submitted to a candid world. He has refused his assent to laws the most wholesome and necessary for the public good. He has forbidden his governors to pass laws of immediate and pressing importance, unless suspended in their operation till his assent shoxild be obtained ; and when so suspended, he has utterly neglected to attend to them. He has refused to pass ether laws for the accommodation of large districts of people, un- less these people would relinquish the right of representation in the legislature a right ines- timable to them, and formidable to tyrants only. He has called together legislative bodies at places unusual, uncomfortable, and distant from the depository of their public records, for the sole purpose of fatiguing them into com- pliance with his measures. He has dissolved representative houses re- peatedly, for opposing with manly firmness his invasions on the rights of the people. He has refused, for a long time after such dissolutions, to cause others to be elected ; whereby the legislative powers, incapable of annihilation, have returned to the people at large, for their exercise, the state remaining, in the meantime, exposed to all the dangers of invasion from without, and convulsions within. He has endeavored to prevent the population of these states ; for that purpose obstructing the laws for naturalization of foreigners, re- fusing to pass others to encourage their migra- tion hither, and raising conditions of new ap- propriations of lands. He has obstructed the administration of justice, by refusing his assent to laws establish- ing judiciary powers. He has made judges dependent on his will alone for the tenure of their offices, and the amount and payment of their salaries. He has erected a multitude of new offices, and sent hither swarms of officers, to harass our people, and eat out their substance. He has kept among us, in times of peace, standing armies, without the consent of our legislatures. He has affected to render the military in- dependent of, and superior to, the civil power. He has combined with others to subject us to a jurisdiction foreign to our constitution, and unacknowledged by our laws ; giving his assent to their acts of pretended legislation, For quartering large bodies of armed troops among us : For protecting them, by a mock trial, from punishment from any murders which they should commit on the inhabitants of these states : For cutting off our trade with all parts of the world : For imposing taxes on us without our con- sent : For depriving us, in many cases, of the benefits of trial by jury : For transporting us beyond the seas to be tried for pretended offenses : For abolishing the free system of English laws in a neighboring province, establishing therein an arbitrary government, and enlarg- ing its boundaries, so as to render it at once an example and fit instrument for introducing the same absolute rule into these colonies : For taking away our charters, abolishing our most valuable laws, and altering, funda- mentally, the powers of our governments : For suspending our own legislatures and declaring themselves invested with power to legislate for us in all cases whatsoever. He has abdicated government here, by de- claring us out of his protection, and waging war against us. He has plundered our seas, ravaged our coasts, burnt our towns, and destroyed the lives of our people. He is, at this time, transporting large armies of foreign mercenaries, to complete the works of death, desolation and tyranny, already be- gun with circumstances of cruelty and perfidy scarcely paralleled in the most barbarous ages, and totally unworthy the head of a civilized nation. He has constrained our fellow-citizens, taken captive on the high seas, to bear arms against their country, to become the executioners of their friends and brethren, or to fall themselves by their hands. He has excited domestic insurrections among us, and has endeavored to bring on the inhabi- tants of our frontiers the merciless Indian savages, whose known rule of warfare is an undistinguished destruction of all ages, sexes, and conditions. Tn every stage of these oppressions we have petitioned for redress in the most humble terms ; our repeated petitions have been an- swered only by repeated injury. A prince whose character is thus marked by every act which may define a tyrant is unfit to be the ruler of a free people. Nor have we been wanting in attentions to our British brethren. We have warned them, from time to time, of attempts by their legis- lature to extend an unwarrantable jurisdiction over us. We have reminded them of the cir- GOVERNMENT AND LAW. cumstances of out emigration and settlement here. We have appealed to their native justice and magnanimity, and we have conjured them by the ties of our common kindred to disavow these usurpations, which would inevitably in- terrupt our connections and correspondence. They too have been deaf to the voice of justice and of consanguinity. We must, therefore, acquiesce in the necessity which denounces our separation, and hold them, as we hold the rest of mankind, enemies in war, in peace friends. We, therefore, the Representatives of the United States of America, in General Congress assembled, appealing to the Supreme Judge of the world for the rectitude of our intentions, do, in the name, and by authority of the good people of these Colonies, solemnly publish and declare, That these United Colonies are, and of. right ought to be, free and independent States; that they are absolved from all alle- giance to the British crown, and that all politi- cal connection between them and the State of Great Britain, is, and ought to be, totally dis- solved ; and that as free and independent States, they have full power to levy war, conclude peace, contract alliances, establish commerce, and to do all other acts and things which inde- pendent States may of right do. And for the support of this declaration, with a firm re- liance on the protection of Divine Providence, we mutually pledge to each other our lives, our fortunes, and our sacred honor. JOHN HANCOCK. NEW HAMPSHIRE. Josiah Bartlett, William Whipple, Matthew Thornton. MASSACHUSETTS BAY. Samuel Adams, John Adams, RoberUTreat Paine, Elbridge Gerry. RHODE ISLAND. Stephen Hopkins, William Ellery. CONNECTICUT. Roger Sherman, Samuel Huntington, William Williams, Oliver Wclcott. NEW YOBK. William Floyd, Philip Livingston, Francis Lewis, Lewis Morris. NEW JERSEY. Richard Stockton, John Witherspoon, Francis Hopkinson, John Hart, Abraham Clark. PENNSYLVANIA. Robert Morris. Benjamin Rush, Benjamin Franklin, John Morton, George Clyiner, James Smith, George Taylor, James W ilson, George Ross. DELAWARE. Caesar Rodney, George Read, Thomas M'Kean. MARYLAND. Samuel Chase, William Paco, Thomas Stone, Charles Carroll, of Car- rollton. VIRGINIA. George Wythe, Richard Henry Lee, Thomas Jefferson, Benjamin Harrison, Thomas Nelson, Jr., Francis Lightfoot Lee, Carter Braxton. NORTH CAROLINA. William Hooper, Joseph Hewes, John Penn. SOUTH CAROLINA. Edward Rutledge, Thomas Hey ward, Jr., Thomas Lynch, Jr., Arthur Middleton. GEORGIA. Button Gwinnett, Lyman Hall, George Walton. IN CONGRESS, 1 Ordered: JANUARY 18, 1777.) That an authenticated copy of the Declaration ot Independence, with the names of the members of Con- gress subscribing the same, be sent to each of the United States, and that they be desired to have the same put on record. By order of Congress. JOHN HANCOCK, President. Attest, CHAS. THOMSON, Secy. A true copy. JOHN HANCOCK, Presidt. THE MECKLENBURG DECLARA- TION. Some thirteen months previous to the sign- ing of the great Declaration of Independence there was drawn up a document in Mecklen- burg County, N. C., that was almost a model in wording and sentiment of the great charter of American liberty. There are different ac- counts of the matter, but the most reliable is this : At a public meeting of the residents of Mecklenburg County, in the State of North Carolina, held at Charlotte on the 20th day of May, 1775, it was ' ' Resolved, That whenever directly or indi- rectly abetted, or in any way, form, or manner countenanced, the unchartered and dangerous invasion of our rights, as claimed by Great Britain, is an enemy of our country to America and to the inherent and inalienable rights of man. "Resolved, That we, the citizens of Meck- lenburg County, do hereby dissolve the politi- cal bonds which have connected us to the mother-country, and hereby absolve ourselves from all allegiance to the British crown, and abjure all political connection, contract or association with that nation, which has wan- tonly trampled on our rights and liberties and inhumanly shed the blood of American pa- triots at Lexington. " Resolced, The.t we do hereby declare our- selves a free and independent people : are and of right ought to be a sovereign and self-gov- erning association, under the control of no power other than that of our God and the gen- eral government of the Congress. To the maintenance of which independence we sol- emnly pledge to each other our mutual co- operation, our lives, our fortunes, and our sacred honor." Two other resolutions in the same docu- ment, regarding administration of the law and regulating the militia, having no present value, are omitted. CONSTITUTION OF THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA. (Went into operation first Wednesday in March, 1789.) Preamble. We, the people of the United States, in order to form a more perfect union, THE CENTURY BOOK >F FACTS. establish justice, insure domestic tranquillity, provide for the common defense, promote the general welfare, and secure the blessings of liberty to ourselves and our posterity, do ordain and establish this Constitution for the United States of America. ARTICLE I. SECTION I. 1 . All legislative powers here- in granted shall be vested in a Congress of the United States, which shall consist of a Senate and House of Representatives. SECTION II. 1. The House of Represent- atives shall be composed of members chosen every second year by the people of the several States ; and the electors in each State shall have the qualifications requisite for electors of the most numerous branch of the State Legis- lature. X 2. No person shall be a Representative who shall not have attained to .the age of twenty- five years, and been seven years a citizen of the United States, and who shall not, when elect- ed, be an inhabitant of that State in which he shall be chosen. 3. Representatives and direct taxes shall be apportioned among the several States which may be included within this Union, according to their respective numbers, which shall be de- termined by adding to the whole number of free persons, including those bound to service for a term of years, and excluding Indians not taxed, three fifths of all other persons. The actual enumeration shall be made within three years after the first meeting of the Congress of the United States, and within every subse- quent term of ten years, in such manner as they shall by law direct. The number of Rep- resentatives shall not exceed one for every thirty thousand, but each State shall have at least one Representative ; and until such enumeration shall be made, the State of New Hampshire, shall be entitled to choose three ; Massachusetts, eight ; Rhode Island and Provi- dence Plantations, one ; Connecticut, five ; New York, six ; New Jersey, four ; Pennsyl- vania, eight ; Delaware, one ; Maryland, six ; Virginia, ten ; North Carolina, five ; South Carolina, five, and Georgia three. 4. When vacancies happen in the represen- tation from any State, the executive authority thereof shall issue writs of election to fill such vacancies. 5 . The House of Representatives shall choose their speaker and other officers ; and shall .have the sole power of impeachment. SECTION III. 1. The Senate of the United States shall be composed of two Senators from each State, chosen by the Legislature thereof. for six years ; and each Senator shall have one vote. 2. Immediately after they shall be assem- bled in consequence of the first election, they shall be divided as equally as may be into three classes., The seats of the Senators of the first class shall be vacated at the expiration of the second year, of the second class at the expira- tion of the fourth year, and of the third class at the expiration of the sixth year, so that one third may be chosen every second year; and if vacancies happen by resignation, or otherwise, during the recess of the Legislature of any State, the executive thereof may make tempo- rary appointments until the next meeting of the Legislature, which shall then fill such va- cancies. 3. No person shall be a Senator who shall not have attained to the age of thirty years, and been nine years a citizen of the United States, and who shall not, when elected, be ah inhabitant of that State for which he shall be chosen. 4. The Vice-President of the United States shall be President of the Senate, but shall have no vote unless they be equally divided. 5. The Senate shall choose their other offi- cers, and also a President pro tempore, in the absence of the Vice- President, or when he shall exercise the office of President of the United States. 6. The Senate shall have the sole power to try all impeachments. When sitting for that purpose, they shall all be on oath or affirma- tion. When the President of the United States is tried, the chief-justice shall preside : and no person shall be convicted without the concurrence of two thirds of the members present. 7. Judgment in cases of impeachment shall not extend further than to removal from office, and disqualification to hold and enjoy any office of honor, trust, or profit under the United States ; but the party convicted shall nevertheless be liable and subject to indict- ment, trial, judgment, and punishment, ac- cording to law. SECTION IV. 1. The times, places and manner of holding elections for Senators and Representatives shall be prescribed in each State by the Legislature thereof ; but the Con- gress may at any time by law make or alter such regulations, except as to the place of choosing Senators. 2. The Congress shall assemble at least once, in every year ; and such meeting shall be on the first Monday in December, unless they shall by law appoint a different day. SECTION V. 1. Each House shall be the judge of the election, returns, and qualifications of GOVERNMENT AND LAW 25 its own members, and a majority of each shall constitute a quorum to do business ; but a smaller number may adjourn from day to day, and may be authorized to compel the attend- ance of absent members, in such manner and under such penalties as each House may pro- vide. 2. Each House may determine the rule of its proceedings, punish its members for disor- derly behavior, and, with the concurrence of two thirds, expel a member. 3. Each House shall keep a journal of its proceedings, and from time to time publish the same, excepting such parts as may in their judgment require secrecy ; and the yeas and nays of the members of either House on any question shall, at the desire of one fifth of those present, be entered on the journal. 4. Neither House, during the session of Congress, shall, without the consent of the other, adjourn for more than three days, nor to any other place than that in which the two houses shall be sitting. SECTION VI. 1. The Senators and Repre- sentatives shall receive a compensation for their services, to be ascertained by law, and paid out of the treasury of the United States. They shall, in all cases, except treason, felony, and breach of the peace, be privileged from arrest during their attendance at the sessions of their respective houses, and in going to and returning from the same ; and for any speech or debate in either house, they shall not be questioned in any other place. 2. No Senator or Representative shall, during the time for which he was elected, be appointed to any civil office under the authority of the United States which shall have been created, or the emoluments whereof shall have been increased during such time ; and no per- son holding any office under the United States- shall be a member of either House during his continuance in office. SECTION VII. 1. All bills for raising rev- enue shall originate in the House of Repre- sentatives, but the Senate may propose or concur with amendments, as on other bills. 2. Every bill which shall have passed the House of Representatives and the Senate shall, before it become a law, be presented to the President of the United States ; if he approve, he shall sign it, but if not, he shall return it, with his objections, to that House in which it shall ha-ve originated, who shall enter the objections at large on their journal, and proceed to reconsider it. If after such recon- sideration two thirds of that House shall agree to pass the bill, it shall be sent, together with the objections, to the other House, by which it shall likewise be reconsidered ; and if ap- proved by two thirds of that House it shall become a law. But in all such cases the votes of both Houses shall be determined by yeas and nays, and the names of the persons voting for and against*the bill shall be entered on the journal of each House respectively. If any bill shall not be returned by the President within ten days (Sundays excepted) after it shall have been presented to him, the same shall be a law in like manner as if he had signed it, unless the Congress by their adjournment, prevent its return ; in which case it shall not be a law. 3. Every order, resolution, or vote to which the concurrence of the Senate and House of Representatives may be necessary (except on a question of adjournment) shall be presented to the President of the United States ; and before the same shall take effect shall be approved by him, or being disapproved by him, shall be re- passed by two thirds of the Senate and the House of Representatives, according to the rules and limitations prescribed in the case of a bill. SECTION VIII. 1. The Congress shall have power : To lay and collect taxes, duties, imposts, and excises, to pay the debts and provide for the common defense and general welfare of the United States ; but all duties, imposts, and excises shall be uniform throughout the United States. 2. To borrow money on the credit of the United States. 3. To regulate commerce with foreign na- tions, and among the several States, and with the Indian tribes. 4. To establish an uniform rule of natural- ization and uniform laws on the subject of bankruptcies throughout the United States. 5. To coin money, regulate the value there- of, and of foreign coin, and fix the standard of weights and measures. 6. To provide for the punishment of coun- terfeiting the securities and current coin of the United States. 7. To establish post offices and post roads. 8. To promote the progress of science and useful arts by securing for limited times to authors and inventors the exclusive rights to their respective writings and discoveries. 9. To constitute tribunals inferior to the Supreme Court. 10. To define and punish piracies and felo- nies committed on the high seas, and offenses against the law of nations. 1 1 . To declare war, grant letters of marque and reprisal, and make rules concerning cap- tures on land and water. 12. To raise and support armies, but no p- 26 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. propriation of money to that use shall be for a longer term than two years. 13. To provide and maintain a navy. 14. To make rules for the government and regulation of the land and naval forces. 15. To provide for calling forth the militia to execute the laws of the Union, suppress in- surrections, and repel invasions. 16. To provide for organizing, arming, and disciplining the militia, and for governing such part of them as may be employed in the service of the United States, reserving to the States respectively the appointment of the offi- cers, and the authority of training the militia according to the discipline prescribed by Congress. 17. To exercise exclusive legislation in all cases whatsoever over such district (not ex- ceeding ten miles square) as may, by cession of particular States and the acceptance of Congress, become the seat of Government of the United States, and to exercise like authority over all places purchased by the consent of the Legislature of the State in which the same shall be, for the erection of forts, magazines, arsenals, dry docks, and other needful buildings. 18. To make all laws which shall be neces- sary and proper for carrying into execution the foregoing powers, and all other powers vested by this Constitution in the Government of the United States, or in any department or officer thereof. SECTION IX. 1. The migration or impor- tation of such persons as any of the States now existing shall think proper to admit shall not be prohibited by the Congress prior to the year one thousand eight hundred and eight, but a tax or duty may be imposed on such im- portation, not exceeding ten dollars for each person. 2. The privilege of the writ of habeas corpus shall not be suspended, unless when in cases of rebellion or invasion the public safety may re- quire it. 3. No bill of attainder or ex post facto law shall be passed. 4. No capitation or other direct tax shall be laid, unless in proportion to the census or enumeration hereinbefore directed to be taken. 5. No tax or duty shall be laid on articles exported from any State. 6. No preference shall be given by any regu- lation of commerce or revenue to the ports of one State over those of another, nor shall ves- sels bound to or from one State be obliged to enter, clear, or pay duties in another. 7. No money shall be drawn from the Treas- ury but in consequence of appropriations made by law ; and a regular statement and account of the receipts and expenditures of all public money shall be published from time to time. 8. No title of nobility shall be granted by the United States. And no person holding any office of profit or trust under them shall, without the consent of the Congress, accept of any present, emolument, office, or title of any kind whatever from any king, prince, or for- eign state. SECTION X. 1. No State shall enter into any treaty, alliance, or confederation, grant letters of marque and reprisal, coin money, emit bills of credit, make anything but gold and silver coin a tender in payment of debts, pass any bill of attainder, ex post facto law, or law impairing the obligation of contracts, or grant any title of nobility. 2. No State shall, without the consent of the Congress, lay any impost or duties on im- ports or exports, except what may be absolutely necessary for executing its inspection laws, and the net produce of all duties and imposts, laid by any State on imports or exports, shall be for the use of the Treasury of the United States ; and all such laws shall be subject to the revision and control of the Congress. 3. No State shall, without the consent of Congress, lay any duty of tonnage, keep troops or ships of war in time of peace, enter into any agreement or compact with another State, or with a foreign power, or engage in war, un- less actually invaded, or in such imminent danger as will not admit of delay. ARTICLE II. SECTION I. 1. The Executive power shall be vested in a President of the United States of America. He shall hold his office during the term of four years, and, together with the V ice-President, chosen for the same term, be elected as follows : 2. Each State shall appoint, in such manner as the Legislature thereof may direct, a num- ber of electors, equal to the whole number of Senators and Representatives to which the State may be entitled in the Congress ; but no Senator or Representative or person holding an office of trust or profit under the United States shall be appointed an elector. 3. [The electors shall meet in their respec- tive States and vote by ballot for two persons, of whom one at least shall not be an inhabi- tant of the same State with themselves. And they shall make a list of all -the persons voted for, and of the number of votes for each, which list they shall sign and certify and transmit, sealed, to the seat of the government of the United States, directed to the President of the Senate. The President of the Senate shall, in the presence of the Senate and House of Rep- GOVERNMENT AND LAW. resentatives, open all the certificates, and the votes shall then be counted. The person having the greatest number of votes shall be the Presi- dent, if such number be a majority of the whole number of electors appointed, and if there be more than one who have such major- ity, and have an equal number of votes, then the House of Representatives shall immediately choose by ballot one of them for President ; and if no person have a majority, then from the five highest on the list the s~aid House shall in like manner choose the President. But in choosing the President, the vote shall be ';aken by States, the representation from each State having one vote. A quorum, for this purpose, shall consist of a member or members from two thirds of the States, and a majority of all the States shall be necessary to a choice. In every case, after the choice of the Presi- dent, the person having the greatest number of votes of the electors shall be the Vice-Presi- dent. But if there should remain two or more who have equal votes, the Senate shall choose from them by ballot the Vice-President.]* 4. The Congress may determine the time of choosing the electors and the day on which they shall give their votes, which day shall be the same throughout the United States. 5. No person except a natural born citizen, or a citizen of the United States at the time of the adoption of this Constitution, shall be eli- gible to the office of President ; neither shall any person be eligible to that office who shall not have attained to the age of thirty-five years and been fourteen years a resident with- in the United States. 6. In case of the removal of the President from office, or of his death, resignation, or inability to discharge the powers and duties of the said office, the same shall devolve on the Vice-President, and the Congress may by law provide for the case of removal, death, resig- nation, or inability, both of the President and Vice-President, declaring what officer shall then act as President, and such officer shall act accordingly until the disability be removed or a President shall be elected. 7. The President shall, at stated times, re- ceive for his services a compensation, which shall neither be increased nor diminished dur- ing the period for which he shall have been elected, and he shall not receive within that period any other emolument from the United States, or any of them. 8. Before he enter on the execution of his office he shall take the following oath or affir- mation : " I do solemnly swear (or affirm) that I will Tliis clause is superseded by Article XII., Amend- ments. faithfully execute the office of President of the United States, and will, to the best of my ability, preserve, protect, and defend the Con- stitution of the United States." SECTION II. 1. The President shall be Commauder-in-Chief of the Army and Navy of the United States, and of the militia of the several States when called into the actual ser- vice of the United States; he may require the opinion, in writing, of the principal officer in each of the executive departments upon any subject relating to the duties of their respective offices, and he shall have power to grant re- prieves and pardons for offenses against the United States except in cases of impeachment. 2. He shall have power, by and with the advice and consent of the Senate, to make treaties, provided two thirds of the Senators present concur ; and he shall nominate, and by and with the advice and consent of the Senate shall appoint ambassadors, other public min- isters and consuls, judges of the Supreme Court, and all other officers of the United States whose appointments are not herein otherwise provided for, and which shall be established by law ; but the Congress may by law vest the appointment of. such inferior offi- cers as they think proper in the President alone, in the courts of law, or in the heads of departments. 3. The President shall have power to fill up all vacancies that may happen during the re- cess of the Senate by granting commissions, which shall expire at the end of their next ses- sion. SECTION III. He shall from time to time give to the Congress information of the state of the Union, and recommend to their consid- eration such measures as he shall judge neces- sary and expedient ; he may, on extraordinary occasions, convene both Houses, or either of them, and in case of disagreement between them with respect to the time of adjournment, he may adjourn them to such time as he shall think proper ; he shall receive ambassadors and other public ministers ; he shall take care that the laws be faithfully executed, and shall commission all the officers of the United States. SECTIOX IV. The President, Vice-Presi- dent, and all civil officers of the United States shall be removed from office on impeachment for and conviction of treason, bribery, or other high crimes and misdemeanors. ARTICLE III. SECTION I. The judicial power of the United States shall be vested in one Supreme Court, and in such inferior courts as the Congress may from time to time ordain and establish. The judges, both of the Supreme and inferior 28 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. courts, shall hold their offices during good be- havior, and shall at stated times receive for their services a compensation which shall not be diminished during their continuance in office. SECTION II. 1. The judicial power shall extend to all cases in law and equity arising under this Constitution, the laws of the United States, and treaties made, or which shall be made, under their authority ; to all cases af- fecting ambassadors, other public ministers, and consuls ; to all cases of admiralty and maritime jurisdiction ; to controversies to which the United States shall be a party ; to jontroversies between two or more States, be- Dween a State and citizens of another State, between citizens of different States, between citizens of the same State claiming lands under grants of different States, and between a State, or the citizens thereof, and foreign States, citizens, or subjects. 2. In all cases affecting ambassadors, other public ministers, and consuls, and those in which a State shall be party, the Supreme Court shall have original jurisdiction. In all the other cases before mentioned the Supreme Court shall have appellate jurisdiction both as to law and fact, with such exceptions and under such regulations as the Congress shall make. 3. The trial of all crimes, except in cases of impeachment, shall be by jury, and such trial shall be held in the State where the said crimes shall have been committed ; but when not committed within any State the trial shall be at such place or places as the Congress may by law have directed. SECTION III. 1. Treason against the United States shall consist only in levying war against them, or in adhering to their enemies, giving them aid and comfort. Xo person shall be convicted of treason unless on the testimony of two witnesses to the same overt act, or on con- fession in open court. 2. The Congress shall have power to declare the punishment of treason, but no attainder of treason shall work corruption of blood or forfeiture except during the life of the person attained. ARTICLE IV. SECTION I. Full faith and credit shall be given in each State to the public acts, records, and judicial preceedings of every other State. And the Congress may by general laws pre- scribe the manner in which such acts, records and proceedings shall be proved, and the effect thereof. SECTION II. 1. The citizens of each State shall be entitled to all privileges and immuni- ties of citizens in the several States. 2. A person charged in any State with trea- son, felony, or other crime, who shall flee fron? justice, and be found in another State, shall on demand of the Executive authority of the State from which he -fled, be delivered up, to be re- moved to the State having jurisdiction of the crime. 3. Xo person held to service or labor in one State, under the laws thereof, escaping into another shall, in consequence of any law or regulation therein, be discharged from such ser- vice or labor, but shall be delivered up on claim of the party to whom such service or labor may be due. SECTION III. 1. New States may be ad- mitted by the Congress into this Union ; but no new State shall be formed or erected within the jurisdiction of any other State, nor any State be formed by the junction of two or more States, or parts of States, without the consent of the Legislatures of the States con- cerned, as well as of the Congress. 2. The Congress shall have power to dis- pose of and make all needful rules and regula- tions respecting the territory or other property belonging to the United States ; and nothing in this Constitution shall be so construed as to prejudice any claims of the United States, or of any particular State. SECTION IV. The United States shall guar- antee to every State in this Union a republican form of government, and shall protect each of them against invasion, and, on application of the Legislature, or of the Executive (when the Legislature cannot be convened), against do- mestic violence. ARTICLE V. The Congress, whenever two thirds of both Houses shall deem it necessary, shall propose amendments to this Constitution, or, on the application of the Legislatures of two thirds of the several States, shall call a convention for proposing amendments, which, in either case, shall be valid to all intents and purposes, a t ~ part of this Constitution, when ratified by the Legislatures of three fourths of the several States, . or by conventions in three fourths thereof, as the one or the other mode of ratifi- cation may be proposed by the Congress ; pro- vided that no amendment which may be made prior to the year one thousand eight hundred and eight shall in any manner affect the first and fourth clauses in the Ninth Section of the First Article ; and that no State, without its consent, shall be deprived of its equal suffrage in the Senate. ARTICLE VI. 1. All debts contracted and engagements entered into before the adoption of this GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 29 stitution shall be as valid against the United States under this Constitution as under the Confederation. 2. This Constitution and the laws of the United States which shall be made in pursuance thereof and all treaties made, or which shall be made, under the authority of the United States, shall be the supreme law of the land, and the judges in every State shall be bound thereby, anything in the Constitution or laws of any State to the contrary notwithstanding. 3. The Senators and Representatives before mentioned, and the members of the several State Legislatures, and all executive and judi- cial officers, both of the United States and of the several States, shall be bound by oath or af- firmation to support this Constitution ; but no religious test shall ever be required as a quali- fication to any office or public trust under the United States. ARTICLE VII. The ratification of the Conventions of nine States shall be sufficient for the establishment of this Constitution between the States so rati- fying the same. Amendments to the Constitution. ARTICLE I. Congress shall make no law respecting an establishment of religion, or prohibiting the free exercise thereof ; or abridging the free- dom of speech or of the press ; or the right of the people peaceably to assemble, and to peti- tion the Government for a redress of griev- ances. ARTICLE II. A well-regulated militia being necessary to the security of a free State, the right of the people to keep and bear arms shall not be in- fringed. ARTICLE III. No soldier shall, in time of peace, be quar- tered in any house without the consent of the owner, nor in time of war but in a manner to be prescribed by law. ARTICLE IV. The right of the people to be secure in their persons, houses, papers, and effects, against unreasonable searches and seizures, shall not be violated, and no warrants shall issue but upon probable cause, supported by oath or af- firmation, and particularly describing the place to be searched, and the persons or things to be seized. ARTICLE V. No person shall be held to answer for a cap- ital or other infamous crime unless on a pre- sentment or indictment of a grand jury, except in cases arising in the land or naval forces, or in the militia, when in actual service, in time of war or public danger ; nor shall any person be subject for the same offense to be twice put in jeopardy of life or limb ; nor shall be com- pelled in any criminal case to be a witness against himself, nor be deprived of life, liberty, or property, without due process of law ; nor shall private property be taken for public use without just compensation. ARTICLE VI. In all criminal prosecutions, the accused shall enjoy the right to a speedy and public trial, by an impartial jury of the State and dis- trict wherein the crime shall have been com- mitted, which district shall have been previously ascertained by law, and to be informed of the nature and cause of the accusation ; to be con- fronted with the witnesses against him ; to have compulsory process for obtaining witnesses in his favor, and to have the assistance of counsel for his defense. ARTICLE VII. In suits at common law, where the value in controversy shall exceed twenty dollars, the right of trial by jury shall be preserved, and no fact tried by a jury shall be otherwise re- examined in any court of the United States than according to the rules of the common law. ARTICLE VIII. Excessive bail shall not be required, nor ex- cessive fines imposed, nor cruel and unusual punishments inflicted. ARTICLE IX. The enumeration in the Constitution of cer- tain rights shall not be construed to deny or disparage others retained by the people. ARTICLE X. The powers not delegated to the United States by the Constitution, nor prohibited by it to the States, are reserved to the States re- spectively, or to the people. ARTICLE XI. The judicial power of the United States shall not be construed to extend to any suit in law or equity, commenced or prosecuted against one of the United States, by citizens of another State, or by citizens or subjects of any foreign State. ARTICLE XII. The electors shall meet in their respective States, and vote by ballot for President and Vice-President, one of whom at least shall not be an inhabitant of the same State with them- selves ; they shall name in their ballots th 30 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. person voted for as President, and in distinct ballots the person voted for as Vice-President ; and they shall make distinct lists of all persons roted for as President, and of all persons voted for as Vice-President, and of the num- ber of votes for each, which list they shall sign and certify, and transmit, sealed, to the seat of the Government of the United States, di- rected to the President of the Senate ; the President of the Senate shall, in the presence of the Senate and House of Representatives, open all the certificates, and the votes shall then be counted ; the person having the great- est number of votes for President shall be the President, if such number be a majority of the whole number of electors appointed; and if no person have such majority, then from the persons having the highest numbers, not exceeding three, on the list of those voted for as President, the House of Representatives shall choose immediately, by ballot, the Presi- dent. But in choosing the President, the votes shall be taken by States, the representation from each State having one vote ; a quorum for this purpose shall consist of a member or members from two thirds of the States, and a majority of all the States shall be necessary to a choice. And if the House of Representa- tives shall not choose a President, whenever the right of choice shall devolve upon them, before the fourth day of March next following, then the Vice-President shall act as President, as in the case of the death or other constitutional disability of the President. The person hav- ing the greatest number of votes as Vice- President shall be the Vice-President, if such number be a majority of the whole number of electors appointed, and if no person have a majority, then from the two highest numbers on the list the Senate shall choose the Vice- President ; a quorum for the purpose shall consist of two thirds of the whole number of Senators, and a majority of the whole number shall be necessary to a choice. But no person constitutionally ineligible to the office of Presi- dent shall be eligible to that of Vice-President of the United States. ARTICLE XIII. 1 . Neither slavery nor involuntary servitude, except as a punishment for crime whereof the party shall have been duly convicted, shall ex- ist within the United States, or any place sub- ject to their jurisdiction. 2. Congress shall have power to enforce this article by appropriate legislation. ARTICLE XIV. 1. All persons born or naturalized in the United State*, and subject to the jurisdiction thereof, are citizens of the United States and of the State wherein they reside. No State shall make or enforce any law which snail abridge the privileges or immunities of citi- zens of the United States ; nor shall any State deprive any person of life, liberty, or property without due process of law, nor deny to any person within its jurisdiction the equal protec- tion of the laws. 2. Representatives shall be apportioned among the several States according to their respective numbers, counting the whole num- ber of persons in each State, excluding Indians not taxed. But when the right to vote at any election for the choice of electors for President and Vice-President of the United States, Re- presentatives in Congress, the executive and judicial officers of a State, or the members of the Legislature thereof, is denied to any of the male members of such State, being of twenty- one years of age, and citizens of the United States, or in any way abridged, except for par- ticipation in rebellion or other crime, the basis of representation therein shall be reduced in the proportion which the number of such male citi- zens shall bear to the whole number of male citizens twenty-one years of age in such State. 3. No person shall be a Senator or Represen- tative in Congress, or elector of President and Vice-President, or holding any office, civil or military, under the United States, or under any State, who, having previously taken an oath, as a member of Congress, or as an officer of the United States, or as a member of any State Legislature, or as an executive or judicial officer of any State, to support the Constitu- tion of the United States, shall have engaged in insurrection or rebellion against the same, or given aid and comfort to the enemies there- of. But Congress may, by a vote of two thirds of each House, remove such disability. 4. The validity of the public debt of the United States, authorized by law, including debts incurred for payment of pensions and bounties for services in suppressing insurrec- tion and rebellion, shall not be questioned. But neither the United States nor any State shall assume or pay any debt or obligation in- curred in aid of insurrection or rebellion against the United States, or any claim for the loss or emancipation of any slave ; but all such debts, obligations, and claims shall be held illegal and void. 5. The Congress shall have power to enforce by appropriate legislation the provisions of this article. ARTICLE XV. 1. The right of the citizens of the United States to vote shall not be denied or abridged GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 31 by the United States or by any State on ac- count of race, color, or previous condition of servitude. 2. The Congress shall have power to enforce the provision of this article by appropriate legislation. Ratification of the Constitution. The Constitution was ratified by the thir- teen original States in the following order : Delaware, December 7, 1787, unanimously. Pennsylvania, December 12, 1787, vote 46 to 23. New Jersey, December 18, 1787, unani- mously. Georgia, January 2, 1788, unanimously. Connecticut, January 9, 1788, vote 128 to 40. Massachusetts, February 6, 1788, vote 187 to 168. Maryland, April 28, 1788, vote 63 to 12. South Carolina, May 23, 1788, vote 149 to 73. New Hampshire, June 21, 1788, vote 57 to 46. Virginia, June 25, 1788, vote 89 to 79. New York, July 26, 1788, vote 30 to 28. North Carolina, November 21, 1789, vote 193 to 75. Rhode Island, May 29, 1790, vote 34 to 32. Ratification of the Amendments. I. to X. inclusive were declared in force De- cember 15, 1791. XI. was declared in force January 8, 1798. XII., regulating elections, was ratified by all the States except Connecticut, Delaware, Massachusetts, and New Hampshire, which rejected it. It was declared in force Septem- ber 28, 1804. XIII. The emancipation amendment was rat ified by 31 of the 36 States ; rejected by Dela- ware and Kentucky, not acted on by Texas; conditionally ratified by Alabama and Missis- sippi. Proclaimed December 18, 1865. XIV. Reconstruction amendment was rati- fied by 23 Northern States ; rejected by Dela- ware, Kentucky, Maryland, and 10 Southern States, and not acted on by California. The 10 Southern States subsequently ratified under pressure. Proclaimed July 28, 1886. XV. Negro citizenship amendment was not acted on by Tennessee, rejected by California, Delaware, Kentucky, Maryland, New Jersey, and Oregon ; ratified by the remaining 30 States. New York rescinded its ratification January5, 1870. Proclaimed March 30, 1870. COPYRIGHT LAAV OF THE UNITED STATES. 1. A printed, copy of the title (besides the two copies to be deposited after publication) Ib. Alcohol, absolute ............................ $.M.'5 |> gal. Barley, bushel of 48 Ibs ........................ 30c fc bu. Beads, glass (not strung) ................... 35 p. c. ad val. BL-ads, glass (strung) .............................. 45 p. c. Beef, mutton and pork ........................ 2c. $> Ib. Beer, ale, not in bottles ........................ JOc. ty gal. Beer, porter, and ale, in bottles ............. 40 c. " Bindings, cotton .......................... 45 p. c. ad val. Bindings, flax . . . r ........................ 45 Bindings, wool .............. 50c. Blankets .................... 22c. . and 60 p. c. ad val. . and 30 p. c. ad val. ARTICLES. Tariff Rate. Blankets, value 40c to 50c. . 33c. ^ Ib. and 35 p. c. ad val. ! Blankets, wool, value over50c.^lb..33c.^lb.&40p.C. " Bonnets, silk .............................. 60 p. c. ad val. ] Books, charts, maps ...................... 25 Bronze, manufactures of ................. 45 Brushes .................................... 40 .Butter, and substitutes for .................... 6c. i Buttons, sleeve and collar, gilt ............ 50 p. c. ad vaL Canvas for sails ............................ 45 {Caps, fur and leather ...................... 36 Carpets, treble ingrain.. 22c. ^ sq. yd. & 40 'lb. .Carpets, two-ply ........ lie. 40 40 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. ARTICLES. Tariff Rate. Carpets, tapestry Brussels. .28c.psq.yd.& 40 p.c. adval. Carpets, Wilton, Axminster, velvet 60e. & sq. yd. & 40 p. c. ad val. Cattle (over one year old) 2T 1 / 2 P- c. ad val. Cheese, all kinds 6e. & Ib. Cigars and cigarettes 4.50 p Ib. and 25 p. e. ad val. Clocks, n. e. s 40 Clothing, ready-made, cotton, n. e. s 50 Clothing, linen 50 Clothing, silk 60 Clothing, wool 41c. p Ib. and 60 Coal, bituminous 67c. 1? ton. Confectionery, all sugar 50 p. c. ad val. (if more than I5c. p Ib.) Copper, manufactures of 45 p. c. adval. Cotton gloves 50 Cotton handkerchiefs, hemmed 45 Cotton handkerchiefs, hemstitched 55 Cotton hosiery . .50c. to 2 p doz. pairs & 15 Cotton shirts and drawers 60c to $2.25 p doz. pairs and 15 p. c. to 50 p. c. ad val. Cotton plushes.unbleached. .9c.psq.yd.& 25 p.c. ad val. Cotton webbing 45 Cotton curtains , 60 Cutlery, more than $3pdoz.. 20e. ppiece& 40 Cutlery, razors, over $3 p doz $1.75 & doz. and 20 p. c. ad val. Cutlery, table knives 16c. each & 15 p. c. ad val. Cutlery, table knives, over $4 p do/- 45 Diamonds (uncut, free), cut and set 60 Diamonds, cut, but not set 10 Drugs (crude, free ), not crude . . V 4 c. p Ib. & 10 Dye woods, extracts of %c. p Ib. Earthenware, common 25 p. c. ad val. Earthenware, porcelain, plain 55 Earthenware, porcelain, etc., decorated.. CO Eggs 5c. p doz. Engravings 23 p. c. ad val. Extracts, meat 35c. p Ib. Firearms 1.50 to 6 and 35 p. c. ad val. Fish, smoked, dried %c. plb. Flannels 22c. p Ib. and 30 p. c. adval. Flannels, value 41c. to 50c . . 33c. " 35 Flax, manufactures of, n. e. s 45 Flowers, artificial 50 " Fruits, preserved in their own juice Ic p Ib. and 35 p. c. ad val. Fruits, apples 25c. p bu. Fruits, oranges, lemons, n. e. s Ic. plb. Fur, manufactures of 50 p. c. ad val. Furniture, wood 35 Glassware, plain and cut 60 " Glass, polished plate, not over 10x21 8s. p sq. foot. Glass, silvered, not over 16x24 lie. " Glass bottles, ovor 1 pint Ic. plb. Gloves, men's, ladies', children's 75c. p doz. pairs. Glucose 1V.C. p Ib. Glue, value not over 7c. p Ib 2V2C. P Ib. Gold, manufactures of, not jewelry 45 p. c. ad val. Hair of hogs, curled for mattresses 10 Hair, manufactures, n. e. s 35 Hair, human unmanufactured 20 " Hams and bacon 5c.plb. Hay 4 p ton. Hemp cordage -Jc. p Ib. Hides, raw, dried, sailed, pickled 15 p. c. ad val. Honey 2^>c. p gal. Hoops, iron or steel, baling 5-10c. p Ib. Hops 12c. p Ib. Horn, manufactures of GO p. c ad val. Horses, mules 39 p head. India rubber, manufactures of 30 p. c. ad val. India rubber, vulcanized 35 ' Instruments, metal 45 " Iron, manufactures of , n. e. s 45 " Iron screws, V 2 inch or less in length 12c. p Ib. Iron, tinned plates iy 2 c. plb. Ivory, manufactures of, n. e. s H5 p. c. ad val. Jewelry 60 " Knit goods, Avool, value not over 3Jc. p Ib. ..38%c. p Ib. Knit goods, woolen apparel, 30 to 40c. p Ib . . SSV-jC. p Ib. Knit goods, woolen apparel, over 40c. p Ib. . .44c. p Ib. and 60 p. c. to 60 p. c. ad val. Knit goods, silk 60 p. c. ad val. Lard 2c. p Ib. Lead, pigs, bars 2VgC. plb. Lead, type metal l%c. plb. ARTICLES. Tariff Rate. Leather manufactures, n. e. s 35 p. c. ad val. Linen manufactures, n. e. s 45 " Linen, wearing apparel 60 " Macaroni iy a c. p Ib. Malt, barley 45c. p bu., Matches, friction, boxed , 8c. per gross. Matting, cocoa and rattan 6c. p sq. yard. Meerschaum pipes 60 p. c. ad val. Milk, fresh 2c. p gal. Milk, condensed 2c. p Ib. Molasses, n. e. s 40^ to 56, 3c. p gal. Muffs, fur 35 p. c. ad val. Musical instrument 45 " Nails, cut 6-10c. p Ib. Nails, horseshoe 2yiC. " Oilcloth, value over 25c. . . .8 to 20c. p sq. yd. and 15 p. c. to 20 p. c. ad val. Oil, olive 50c. p gal. in bottles, etc. Oil, olive, n. e. s 40c. p gal. Oil, whale and seal, foreign, n. e. s 8c. p gal. Onions 40c. p bu. Opium, liquid preparations 40 p. c. ad val. Opium, crude and unadulterated $1 p Ib. Paintings and marble statuary 20 p. c. ad val. Paper manufactures, n. e. s 35 " Pepper, cayenne, unground 2 1 / 2 c. p Ib. Perfumery, alcoholic 60c. p IX and 45 p. c. ad val. Photograph albums 35 " Photograph slides 45 " Pickles 40 " Pins, metallic 35 " Pipes of clay, common, 43c. p gross 15c. p gross. Poultry, dressed 5e p Ib. Potatoes 25a. p bn. Pulp wood, for paper-makers l-12c. p Ib. Quicksilver 7c. p Ib. Railroad ties, cedar 20 p. c. ad val. Rugs, oriental lOc. p sq. f i. and 40 " Salmon, dried or smoked %c. p Ib. Salmon, prepared or preserved 30 p c ad val. Salt 12c. p 100 Ibs., packages; 8c. p 100 Ibs., bulk. Sauces, n. e. s 40 p. c. ad val. Sausages, other than bologna 1 25 " Sealskin sacques 35 " Silk, spun in skeins 35 " Silk laces, wearing apparel 60 " Skins, tanned and dressed 20 p. c. ad val. Slates, manufactures of , n. e. s 20 " Smokers' articles, ex. clay pipes 60 " Soap, castile lV 4 c. p Ib. Soap, toilet, perfumed 15 p. c. ad val. Spirits, except bay rum .152.25 prf . gal. Straw manufactures, n. e. s 30 p. c. ad val. Sugars, not above 16 Dutch standard 95-lOOc. p Ib. Sugars, above 16 Dutch standard 95-lOOc. " Tin plates iy 2 c. plb. Tobacco, cigar wrappers, not stemmed... . $1.85 " Tobacco, if stemmed $2.50 " Tobacco, all other leaf, stemmed 50c. " Tobacco, unmf d., not stemmed 35c. " Unbrellas, silk or alpaca 50 p.c. ad val. Vegetables, natural, n. e. s 25 " Vegetables, prepared or preserved 40 " Velvets, silk, 75 p. c. or more silk $1.50plb.and 15 p. c. ad val. Watches and parts of 40 p. c. ad val. Wheat, bushel of CO Ib L>5 " Willow for basket-makers 20 " Willow manufactures, n. e. s 40 " Wines, champ., in % pint bottles or l^ss. . $2 p doz. Wines, champ., in bottles, V 2 pt. to 1 pt. .. 4 " Wines, champ., in bottles, 1 pt. to 1 qt 8 " Wines, still, in casks containing more than 14 p c. absolute alcohol 60c. p gal. Woods, cabinet sawed $1 to $2 p Mft. Wool, 1st class lie. plb. Wool, 2d class 12c. " Wool, 3d class, n. e. s. , above 13c. p Ib 7c. " Wool or worsted yarns, value not over 30c. plb 27 1 / 2 c. p Ib and 40 p. c. ad val. Wool or worsted yarns, value 30 to40c. p Ib 38y 2 o. p Ib. and 40 p. c. ad val. Wool or worsted yarns, value over 40c. p Ib SS^c. p Ib. and 40 p. c. ad val. Woolen or worsted clothing 44c. p Ib. and 60 p. c. ad val. Woolen manufactures, n. e. s 33c.plb. GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 41 WAR REVENUE TAXES. Act Approved June 13, 1898. Amended March 2, 19O1. REPEALED BY CONGRESS TO TAKE EFFECT JULY, 1902. TAX ON FERMENTED LIQUORS IN EFFECT FROM DATE OF ACT. Beer, lager beer, ale, porter, and other similar fermented liquor, per barrel of 31 gallons $1.60 ANNUAL SPECIAL TAXES IN, EFFECT JULY 1, 1898. Bankers using a capital (including surplus) not exceeding $25,000 $60 For every additional $1,000 in excess of $25,000 Brokers (except those paying tax as bankers) ...'.'.'..'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'. 50 Pawnbrokers ' '.'.'." 20 Custom-house brokers 10 Proprietors of theaters, museums, and concert halls in cities of more than 25,000 population, as shown by last preceding United States census 100 Proprietors of circuses 100 Proprietors of other public exhibitions or shows for money 10 Proprietors of bowling alleys and billiard rooms, for each alley or table 6 TOBACCO, CIGARS, CIGARETTES, AND SNUFF. Cigars and cigarettes : Cigars weighing more than 3 pounds.per 1 ,000 83.00 per M Cigars weighing not more than 3 pounds per 1,000 18c per Ib. Cigarettes weighing not more than 3 pounds per 1,000, $2.00 or less per M wholesale 18c per Ib. Cigarettes weighing not more than 3 pounds per 1,000, $2.00 or more per M wholesale 36c per Ib. STAMP TAXES IN EFFECT JULY 1, 1808. Bonds, debentures, or certificates of stock and indebtedness on each $100 of face value Scents Certificates of stock, original issues, on each 100 face value or fraction thereof 5 cents Sale or agreement to sell stock in any association, company, or corporation, on each 100 of face value or fraction thereof 2 cents Sale or agreement to sell any products of merchandise, at any exchange, board of trade, or similar place : For each $100 in value or fraction thereof 1 cent Additional taxes on brokers and bucket shops : For each $100 of merchandise 2 cents For each $100 of stocks or bonds cents Bill of exchange (inland), draft or money order other than at sight or on demand : For each $100 or fraction thereof 2 cents Bill of exchange (foreign) or letter of creiiit (including orders by telegraph, or otherwise, for the pay- ment of money issued by express or other companies, or any person), drawn in, but payable out of, the United States : If drawn singly or otherwise than in a set of three or more For each 100 or part thereof 2 cents If drawn in sets of two or more For every bill of each set of ,100 or part thereof 1 cent Bill of lading, manifest, or receipt, and each duplicate thereof, express and freight 1 cent Bonds of indemnity 50 cents Certificates of profit and transfers thereof, on each $ 100 or part of 2 cents Broker's note or memorandum of sale 10 cents Conveyance deed or instrument or writing transferring realty : When value exceeds $2,500 and does not exceed $3,000 25 cents For each additional 500 or fraction thereof 25 cents Custom-house entry of merchandise : Not exceeding $100 in value 25 cents Exceeding $100 and not exceeding 5uO 50 cents Exceeding $500 $1.00 Entry for withdrawal of merchandise from customs bonded warehouse 50 cents Passage tickets to foreign ports costing $350 50 cents Each $50 in addition thereto 50 cents Sparkling or other wines, bottled : Each bottle containing 1 pint or less 1 cent Each bottle containing more than 1 pint 2 cents LEGACY TAXES IN EFFECT FROM DATE OF ACT. 1. Persons entitled to beneficial interest shall be lineal issue or lineal ancestor, brother, or sister of deceased : When the whole amount exceeds $10,000 and does not exceed $25.000 75 cents on each $ 100 When the whole amount exceeds $26,000 and does not exceed $100,000 $1.25 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $100,000 and does not exceed $500,000 $1.50 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $500,000 and does not exceed $1 ,000,000 $1.875 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $1,000,000 , $2.25 on each $100 42 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. 2. Where the person or persons entitled to beneficial interest shall be the descendant of a brother or sister : When the whole amount exceeds 10,000 and does not exceed $25,000 $1.60 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $25,000 and does not exceed 100,000 $2.25 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds 100,000 and does not exceed $500,000 $3 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $500,000 and does not exceed $1,000,000 $3.75 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $1,000,000 $4.50 on each 3100 3. Where the person or persons entitled to any beneficial interest shall be the brother or sister of the father or mother or a descendant of a brother or sister of the father or mother : When the whole amount exceeds $10,000 and does not exceed $25,000 $3 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $25,000 and does not exceed $100,000 $4.50 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $100,000 and does not exceed $500,000 $6 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $500,000 and does not exceed $1,000,000 $7.50 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $1,000,000 $9 on each $100 4. Where the person or persons entitled to beneficial interest shall be the brother or sister of the grandfather or grandmother or a descendant of the brother or sister of the grandfather or grandmother : When the whole amount exceeds $10,000 and does not exceed $25,000 $4 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $25,000 and does not exceed $100,000 $6 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $100,000 and does not exceed $500.000 $8 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $500,000 and does not exceed $1,000,000 $10 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $1,000,000 $12 on each $100 5. Where the person or persons entitled to beneficial interest shall be a person of any other degree of collateral consanguinity, or a stranger in blood, or a body politic or corporation : When the whole amount exceeds $10,000 and does not exceed $25,000 $5 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $25,000 and does not exceed $100,000 $7.50 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds 8100,000 and does not exceed $500,000 $10 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $500,001 and does not exceed $1,000,000 $12.50 on each $100 When the whole amount exceeds $1,000,000 $15 on each $100 MIXED FLOUR TOOK EFFECT 60 DAYS AFTER PASSAGE OF ACT. Person, firm, or corporation making, packing, or repacking $12 per annum On each barrel containing more than 98 pounds and not more than 196 pounds 4 cents per barrel On each % barrel or package containing more than 49 pounds and not more than 98 pounds . . 2 cents per barrel On each 14 barrel or package containing moie than 24V 2 pounds and not more than 49 pounds . 1 cent per barrel On each % barrel or package containing 24V 2 pounds or less V 2 cent per barrel THE BRITISH CUSTOMS TARIFF. Formerly almost every article imported into the United Kingdom, whether manufactured or raw material, s in the tariff. In 1842 the Customs Tariff numbered no fewer than 1,200 articles. Now it contaii The following are the duties on importations : s. d. Beer, mum and spmce, the original specific gravity not exceeding 1215, per barrel of 36 galls 180 " exceeding 1215, per barrel of 36 galls 11210 " and ale, worts of which were before fer- mentation of a specific gravity of 1055, per barrel of 36 galls *. 070 And so in proportion for any difference in gravity. Cards (playing) per doz. packs 039 Chicory, raw or kiln-dried cwt. 13 3 " roasted or ground Ib. 002 " and coffee mixed " 002 Chloral hydrate " 013 Chloroform " 031 Cocoa " 001 " husks and shells cwt. 020 " or chocolate, ground, prepared, or in any way manufactured Ib. 002 Coffee, raw cwt. 14 " kiln-dried, roasted, or ground Ib. 002 Collodion gall. 150 Confectionery, in the manufacture of which spirit has been used Ib. 00% Ether, acetic " 1 10 " butyric gall. 15 8 " sulphuric " 162 Ethyl, iodide of " 13 7 Fruit (dried): Currants cwt. 020 " Figs, prunes, raisins " 7 Naphtha or methylic alcohol (puri.) proof, .gall. 10 10 Now it contains but twenty. s. d. Soap, transparent, in the manufacture of which spirit has been used Ib. 003 Spirits, or strong waters proof gall. 10 10 " Perfumed spirits and cologne water liquid gall. 17 3 " Liqueurs, cordials, or other preparations containing spirit in bottle, if not to be tested for ascertaining the strength, liquid gall. 014 8 Tea 4 Ib. Tobacco, unnianuf ., containing 10 per cent, or more of moisture Ib. 3 containing less than 10 per cent 3 cigars 5 Cavendish or negrohead 4 snuff not more than 13 Ibs. (in 100 Ibs.) moisture Ib. 4 snuff cont. more than 13 Ibs " 3 other manufactured 4 Cavendish or negrohead Imanufac- tured in bond from unmanufactured tobacco Ib. Varnish (cont. spirit), same as spirits. Wine, not exceeding 30 proof spirits gall. " exceeding 30, but not exceeding 42 J gall. " for each additional deg. of strength be- yond 42 ~ gall. 003 Sparkling wine imported in bottle " 2 These duties are in addition to the duty in respect of alcoholic strength. 040 010 026 There are drawbacks for roasted coffee shipped as stores, and for tobacco and snuff manufactured in the United Kingdom. The receipts from customs in the United Kingdom, year ending March 31, 1895, were 20,115,000 or about $98,000,000. The total revenue of the Government from all sources was 101,697,304, so that the receipts from customs were about 20 per cent. The other sources of revenue were: From excise, 2(1,050,000; from stamps, 14,440,000 ; from income and property taxes, 15,600,000 ; from post office, 10,760,000 ; from telegraphs, 2,580,000. The remainder from land tax, house duty, crown lands, and miscellaneous GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 43 THE GOLD STANDARD ACT OF 1900. By this act the dollar consisting of twenty-five and eight tenths grains of gold, nine tenths fine, shall be the standard of value, and all forms of money issued or coined shall be maintained at a parity of value with this gold standard. The United States notes and Treas- ury notes shall be redeemed in gold coin, and a redemption fund of $150,000,000 of gold coin and bullion is set aside for that purpose only. The following is the text of the section carry- ing out this provision : SEC. 2. That United States notes and Treasury notes issued under the act of July 14, 1800, when presented to the Treasury for redemption, shall be redeemed in gold coin of the standard fixed in the first section of this act, and in order to secure the prompt and certain redemption of such notes as herein provided it shall be the duty of the Secretary of the Treasury to set apart in the Treasury a reserve fund of $150,01:0,000 in gold coin and bullion, which fund shall be used for such redemption purposes o'nly, and whenever and as often as any of said notes shall be redeemed from said fund it shall be the duty of the Secretary of the Treasury to use said notes so redeemed to restore and maintain. such reserve fund in the manner following, to wit : First By exchanging the notes so redeemed for any gold coin in the general fund of the Treasury. Second By accepting deposits of gold coin at the Treasury or at any sub-Treasury in exchange for the United States notes so redeemed. Third By procuring gold coin by the use of said notes, in accordance with the provisions of Section 3,700 of the Revised Statutes of the United States. If the Secretary of the Treasury is unable to restore and maintain the gold coin in the reserve fund by the foregoing methods, and the amount of such gold coin and bullion in said fund shall at any time fall below $100,- 000,000, then it shall be his duty to restore the same to the maximum sum of $150,000,000 by borrowing money on the credit of the United States, and for the debt thus incurred to issue and sell coupon or registered bonds of the United States, in such form as he may prescribe, in denominations of $50 or any multiple thereof , bearing interest at the rate of not exceeding 3 per centum per annum, payable quarterly, such bonds to be payable at the pleasure of the United States after one year from the date of their issue, and to'be payable, principal and interest, in gold coin of the present standard.value, and to be exempt from the payment of all taxes or duties of the United States, as well as from taxation in any form by or under state, municipal or local authority ; and the gold coin received from the sale of said bonds shall first be covered into the general fund of the Treasury and then exchanged, in the manner hereinbefore provided, for an equal amount of the notes redeemed and held for exchange, and the Secretary of the Treasury may, in his discretion, use said notes in exchange for gold, or to purchase or redeem any bonds of the United States, or for any other lawful purpose the public interests may require, except that they shall not be used to meet deficiencies in the current revenues. That United States notes when redeemed in accordance with the provisions of this section shall be reissued, but shall be held in the reserve fund until exchanged for gold, as herein provided ; and the gold coin and bullion in the reserve fund, together with the redeemed notes held for use as provided in this section, shall at no time exceed the maximum sum of $150,000,000. The legal tender quality of the silver dollar and other money coined or issued by the United States is not affected by the act. The deposit of gold coin with the Treasurer, and the issue of gold certificates therefor, and the coinage of silver bullion in the Treasury into subsidiary silver coin are provided for. The National Bank law is amended to permit banks to be created with $25,000 capital in places whose population does not exceed 3,000. Provision is made for the refunding of outstanding bonds at a low rate of interest, and under it bonds bearing 3, 4, and 5 per cent, interest have been refunded for bonds bearing 2 per cent. Section 10 provides that Section 5,138 of the Revised Statutes is amended so as to read as follows : " Section 5,138. No association shall be organized with a less capital than $100.000, except that banks with a capital of not less than $50,000 may, with the approval of the Secretary of the Treasury, be organized in any place the population of which does not exceed 6,000 inhabitants, and except that banks with a capital of not less than $25,000 may, with the sanction of the Secretary of the Treasury, be organized in any place the population of which does not exceed 3,000 inhabitants. No association shall be organized in a city the population of which ex- ceeds 50,000 persons with a capital of less than $200,000." Section 12 provides for the issue of circulating notes to banks on deposit of bonds, and for additional deposits when there is a depreciation in the value of bonds. The total amount of notes issued by any National banking association may equal at any time, but shall not exceed, the amoiint at any such time of its capital stock actually paid in. Every National banking association shall pay a tax in January and July of one fourth of 1 per cent, on the average amount of such of its notes in circulation as are based on its deposit of 2 per cent, bonds, and such taxes shall be in lieu of the taxes on its notes in circulation imposed by Section 5,214 of the Revised Statutes. Provision for international bimetallism is made in the final section of the act, which is as follows : SEC. 14. That the provisions of this act are not intended to preclude the accomplishment of international bimetallism whenever conditions shall make i t expedient and practicable to secure the same by concurrent actit of the leading commercial nations of tlje world and at a ratio which shall insure permanence of relative valua between gold and silver. 44 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. LEGISLATION. Anti-Boycotting and Anti-Black- listing Laws. The States having laws prohibiting boycotting in terms are Colorado, Illinois, and Wisconsin, The States having laws prohibiting black- listing in terms are Alabama, Colorado, Con- necticut, Florida, Georgia, Illinois, Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Minnesota, Missouri, Montana, Nevada, North Dakota, Oklahoma, Utah, Virginia, and Wisconsin. The following States have laws which may be fairly construed as prohibiting boycotting: Alabama, Connecticut, Florida, Georgia, Maine, Massachusetts, Michigan, Minnesota, Mississippi, Missouri, New Hampshire, New York, North Dakota, Oklahoma, Oregon, South Dakota, Texas, Utah, Vermont, and Wisconsin. The following States have laws which may be fairly construed as prohibiting blacklisting: Georgia, Michigan, New Hampshire, New York, Oklahoma, Oregon, Rhode Island, and South Dakota. In the following States it is unlawful for any employer to exact an agreement, either written or verbal, from an employee not to join or become a member of any labor organiza- tion, as a condition of employment : Cali- fornia, Colorado, Idaho, Indiana, Massachu- setts, Minnesota, Missouri, New Jersey, New York, Ohio, and Pennsylvania. Eight - Hour Laws. CALIFORNIA. Eight hours of labor constitute a day's work, unless it is otherwise expressly stipulated by the parties to a contract. A stipulation that eij'ht hours of labor constitute a day's work must be made a part of all contracts to which the State or any municipal corporation there- in is a party. But in the case of drivers, conductors, and gripmen of street cars for the carriage of passengers, a day's work consists of twelve hours. Employment of minor children for more than eight hours per day is absolutely prohibited, except in vimcultural or horticultural pursuits, or in domestic or house- hold occupations. COLORADO. Eight hours constitute a day's work for all workingmen employed by the State, or any county, township, school district, municipality, or incorporated town. CONNECTICUT. Eight hours of labor con- stitute a lawful day's work unless otherwise agreed. DISTRICT OF COLUMBIA. Eight hours con- stitute a day's work for all laborers or mechan- ics employed by or on behalf of the District of Columbia. IDAHO. Eight hours' actual work consti- tute a lawful day's work on, a,U State and munic- ipal works. ILLINOIS. Eight hours are a legal day's work in all mechanical employments, except on farms, and when otherwise agreed ; does not apply to service by the day, week, or month, or prevent contracts for longer hours. INDIANA. Eight hours of labor constitute a legal day's work for all classes of mechanics, workingmen, and laborers, excepting those en- gaged in agricultural and domestic labor. Overwork by agreement and for extra compen- sation is permitted. The employment of per- sons under fourteen years of age for more than eight hours per day is absolutely prohibited. KANSAS. Eight hours constitute a day's work for all laborers, mechanics, or other per- sons employed by or on behalf of the State or any county, city, township, or other munic- ipality. NEBRASKA. Eight hours constitute a legal day's work for all classes of mechanics, serv- ants, and laborers, except those engaged in farm or domestic labor. MISSOURI. Eight hours constitute a legal day's work. The law does not prevent an agreement to work for a longer or a shorter time and does not apply to laborers and farm hands in the service of farmers or others en- gaged in agriculture. MONTANA. Eight hours constitute a legal day's Avork for persons engaged to operate or handle any first-motion or direct-acting hoist- ing engine, or any geared or indirect-acting hoisting engine at any mine employing fifteen or more men underground when the duties of fireman are performed by the person so en- gaged ; also for any stationary engineer oper- ating a stationary engine developing fifty or more horse power when such engineer has charge or control of a boiler or boilers in addi- tion to his other duties. The law applies only to such steam plants as are in continuous opera-' tion or are operated twenty or more hours in each twenty-four hours, and does not apply to persons running any engine more than eight hours in each twenty-four for the purpose of relieving another employee in case of sickness or other unforeseen cause. NEW JERSEY. Eight hours constitute a day's labor on any day whereon any general or municipal election shall be held. NEW YOKK. Eight hours constitute a day's work for mechanics, workingmen, and labor- ers, except in farm or domestic labor, but overwork for extra pay is permitted. The law applies to those employed by the State or municipality, or by persons contracting for State work. Onio. Eight hours shall constitute a day's work in all engagements to labor in any me- chanical, manufacturing, or mining business, GOVERNMENT AND LAW. sinless otherwise expressly stipulated in the contract. But in case of conductors, engineers, firemen, or trainmen of railroads, a day's work consists of ten hours. PENNSYLVANIA. Eight hours of labor shall be deemed and held to be a legal day's work in all cases of labor and service by the day where there is no agreement or contract to the contrary. This does not apply to farm or agricultural labor by the year, month, or week, to labor in factories, laundries, and ren- ovating establishments, or to labor on street railways. Eight hours out of the twenty-four shall make and constitute a day's labor in peniten- tiaries and reformatory institutions receiving support from the State, also for all mechanics, workmen, and laborers in the employ of the State, or of any municipal corporation therein, or otherwise engaged on public works ; this shall be deemed to apply to mechanics, work- ingmen, or laborers in the employ of persons contracting with the State or any municipal corporation therein, for the performance of public work. UTAH. Eight hours constitute a day's work upon all public works and in all underground mines or workings, smelters, and all other in- stitutions for the reduction or refining of ores. WISCONSIN. In all engagements to labor in any manufacturing or mechanical business, where there is no express contract to the con- trary, a day's work shall consist of eight hours ; but the law does not apply to contracts for labor by the week, month, or year. In all manufactories, workshops, or other places used for mechanical or manufacturing purposes, the time of labor of children under the age of eighteen, and of women employed therein, shall not exceed eight hours in the day. WYOMING. Eight hours' actual work con- stitute a legal day's work in all mines and public works. UNITED STATES. Eight hours shall consti- tute a day's work for all laborers, workmen, and mechanics who may be employed by or on behalf of the United States. PENSION LAWS. Any person who has been, since the 4th of March, 1861, disabled in the military or naval service of the United States, or in its marine corps, shall, upon making due proof of the fact, be placed on the list of invalid pensioners of the United States. No claim for pension on the part of a State militiaman, or non-en- listed person, on account of disability from wounds received in battle, shall be valid un- less prosecuted to a successful issue prior to July 4, 1874, Bates of Pension Per Month. DISABILITIES. Rate from July 4, 1864. Rate from March 3, 1865. Rate from June 6, 1866. Rate from June 4, 1872. si *l Loss of both hands. . . Total disability in both hands $2500 $2600 20 00 25 00 20 00 1500 20 00 25 00 $31 25 31 25 31 25 31 25 31 25 31 25 24 00 24 00 18 00 24 00 31 25 13 00 $7200 72 00 72 00 72 00 36 00 June 4, '74. 5000 Loss of both feet 20 00 Total disability in both feet . Loss of sight of both eyes 2500 Loss of sight of one eye, the sight of the other having been previ- ously lost Loss of one hand and one foot <><> INI Total disability in one hand and one foot Any disability equiva- lent to the loss of a hand or foot Any disability incapac- itating for the per- formance of any man- ual labor Anydisabilityresulting in a condition requir- ing the regular aid and attendance of an- other person Total deafness * Rate from June, 1880, in case the disability is per- manent and requires the regular aid and attendance of another person. An applicant for increase of pension from $31.25 to 72 per month must furnish the testimony of his physician, or of two credible witnesses, to prove the extent to which he requires the aid and attendance of another person. The same provision of law which entitles to $31.25 per month entitles to $72 per month, provided that in the latter case the disability is permanent. The loss of a leg above the knee, or an arm at or above the elbow, entitles the person so disabled to a pension of $24 per month after June 4, 1874. The rates of $10, $12, $14, and $16 per month will be allowed in cases in which the disability bears the same proportion to that produced by the loss of a hand or foot that those rates bear to the rate of $18 per month. Under the pension law of 1890 the soldier who is wholly incapacitated from earning a living receives the sum of $12 a month, whether the disability was contracted in the service or not ; for a lesser degree of disability, $10, $8, or $6. The first step to be taken by an applicant for a pension is to file a declaration before a court of record, or before some officer thereof having custody of its seal, setting forth the ground upon which he claims a pension. Blank forms of declaration are furnished upon request at Commissioner of Pensions office. The identity of the applicant must be shown by the testimony of two credible witnesses, who must appear with him before the officer THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. by whom the declaration may be taken. A pensioner who may deem himself entitled to an increase of pension should file a declaration on a blank form furnished for the purpose, setting forth the ground upon which he claims such increase. A declaration for increase of pension may be taken before any officer duly authorized to administer oaths. All invalid pensions granted under the gen- eral law will terminate at re-enlistment, or when the disabilities for which they were al- lowed shall have ceased. A widow's pension will end at her re-mar- riage, and not be renewable should she again become a widow. Pensions allowed to dependent mothers and sisters end at re-marriage or when depen- dence ceases. Pensions allowed to dependent fathers end when the dependence ceases. The name of any pensioner shall be stricken from the roll upon his or her failure to claim a pension for three years after the same shall have become due. To entitle a widow or children to pension, the death of the soldier does not need to have been the result of injury receiv.ed or disease contracted under such circumstances as would have entitled him to an invalid pension had he been disabled. A widow is entitled to a pension of $8 per month, no matter whether the death of the soldier was due to army service or not. In addition to this rate, she will be allowed $2 per month for each child of the officer or sol- dier under the age of sixteen years. In the application of widows and children for pensions, they are not required to prove that death of husband resulted from the injury or disease on account of which his pension was granted ; but, if the husband had not estab- lished his claim for an invalid pension, the widow shall prove origin and cause of the fatal disease. Widows will be required to prove their marriage to the person on account of whose service and death the claim is made ; also proof of dates of birth of children by copv of church record. A mother claiming a pension must prove the cause and date of the death of her son ; her relationship ; that he left no widow or minor child or children surviving ; and that, if living, she would be dependent upon him for support. A father claiming pension on account of the death of his son, upon whom he was depend- ent for support, must prove facts similar to those required of a mother. The claim on behalf of minor brothers and sisters should be made by a guardian duly ap- pointed. In administration of the pension laws, no distinction is made between brothers and sis- ters of the half blood and those of the whole blood. Evidence in a claim for pension an not be verified before an officer who is en- gaged in the prosecution of such claim. In claims for increase of pension, a fee of $2 will be allowed. All letters of inquiry relative to claims pending in Pension Office should give the number of the claim. No sum of money due, or to become due, to any pensioner, shall be liable to attachment, levy or seizure, under any legal or equitable process. Agents for paying pensions shall receive two per centum on all disbursements made by them to pensioners. Xo agent, or attorney, or other person, shall demand or receive any other compensation for his services in prosecuting a claim for pension or bounty-land than such as the Commissioner of Pensions shall direct to be paid to him, not exceeding $10. Every officer, or enlisted or hired man, who who has lost a limb, or the use of a limb, in the military or naval service of the United States, is entitled to receive, once every three years, an artificial limb or apparatus, or com- mutation therefor. The period of three years is reckoned from the filing of first application after March 2, 1891. The commutation al- lowed in case of the amputation of a leg is $75 ; in all other cases, $50. Applications for artificial limbs should be transmitted through the proper pension agent to the surgeon-gen- eral of the army. JURISDICTION OF JUSTICES OF THE PEACE. Justices of the Peace generally have juris- diction throughout the county or township in which they are elected, and the limit of the amount is as follows : Mississippi. $150 Missouri. 250 Montana 300 Nebraska 200 Nevada 300 New Hampshire 13J New Jersey 200 New Mexico 100 New York 200 North Carolina. 200 Ohio 100 Oregon 500 Pennsylvania 300 Rhode* Island 300 South Carolina 100 Tennessee 500 Texas 200 Utah 300 Vermont 200 Virginia 100 Washington 300 West Virginia 300 Wisconsin 200 Wyoming 300 Alabama $100 Arizona 300 Arkansas 300 California 300 Colorado 300 Connecticut 100 Dakota, North 200 Dakota, South 100 Delaware 200 District of Columbia.. 100 Florida 100 Georgia 100 Idaho 300 Illinois 200 Indiana . 200 tlowa 100 Kansas 300 Kentucky 50 Louisiana 100 Maine 20 Maryland 100 Massachusetts 300 Michigan 100 Minnesota. 100 By confession, $300. t By consent, $300 GOVERNMENT AND LAW. United States Custom Regulations as to Baggage. The following articles are exempt from duty : Wearing apparel and other personal effects (not merchandise), pro- fessional books, implements, instruments and tools of trade. To ascertain -what articles ought to be ex- empted as the wearing apparel and other personal baggage, and the tools or imple- ments of a mechanical trade only, of persons who arrive in the United States, due entry thereof, as of other merchandise, but separate and distinct from that of any other merchan- dise imported from a foreign port, shall be made with the Collector of the district in which the articles are intended to be landed by the owner thereof or his agent, expressing the per- sons by whom or for whom such entry is made, and particularizing the several packages and their contents, with their marks and numbers ; and the persons who shall make the entry shall take and subscribe an oath before the Col- lector, declaring that the entry subscribed by him, and to which the oath is annexed, con- tains, to the best of his knowledge and belief, a just and true account of the contents of the several packages mentioned in the entry, speci- fying the name of the vessel, of her master, and of the port from which she has arrived ; and that such packages contain no merchandise whatever, other than wearing apparel, personal baggage, or, as the case may be, tools of trade, specifying it ; that they are all the property of a person named who has arrived, or is shortly expected to arrive, in the United States, and are not, directly or indirectly, imported for any other, or intended for sale. Whenever any article subject to duty is found in the baggage of any person arriving in the United States which was not, at the time of making entry for such baggage, men- tioned to the Collector before whom such entry was made, by the person making entry, such article shall be forfeited, and the person in whose baggage it is found shall be liable to a penalty of triple the value of such article. "Professional books, implements, and tools of trade, occupation, or employment," are understood to embrace such books or instru- ments as would naturally belong to a surgeon, physician, engineer, or scientific person re- turning to this country. Jewelry that has been worn or is in use as a personal ornament may be admitted free of duty. Duty must be demanded on all watches but one, brought into the United States by a single passenger. If all the watches are old, the paiaenger may CUOQM the on to be treated as personal effects. If some are old and some new, the new are to be included among those treated as subject to duty. The United States Supreme Court has de- cided that the free list includes (1) wearing apparel owned by the passenger, and in a Condition to be worn at once without further manufacture ; (2) brought with him as a passenger, and intended for the use or wear of himself or his family who accompanied him as passengers, and not for salo or purchased or imported for other persons, or to be given away ; (3) suitable for the season of the year which was immediately approaching at the time of arrival ; (4) not exceeding in quantity, or quality, or value of what the passenger was in the habit of ordinarily providing for him- self and his family at that time, and keeping on hand for his and their reasonable wants, in view of their means and habits in life, even though such articles had not been actually worn. The Law of Finding. The law of finding, though not prescribed by statute, is well defined by precedent. It may be stated thus: The finder has a clear title against the whole world except the owner. The pro- prietor of a hotel or a shop has no right to i demand the property or premises. Such pro- prietor may make regulations in regard to lost property which will bind their employees, but they cannot bind the public. The law of finding was declared by the King's bench, England, ovei 100 years ago, in a case in which the facts were these : A person found a wallet containing a sum of money on a shop floor. He handed the wallet and contents to the shopkeeper to be returned to the owner. After three years, during which the owner did not call for his property, the finder demanded the wallet and the money from the shopkeeper. The latter refused to deliver them up on the ground that they were found on the premises. The former then sued the shopkeeper, and it was held as above set forth, that against all the world but the owner, the title of the finder is perfect. And the finder has been held to stand in the place of the owner, so that he was permitted to prevail in an action against a person who found an article which the plaintiff had origi- nally found, but subsequently lost. The police have no special rights in regard to articles lost, unless those rights are conferred by statute. Receivers of articles found are trus- tees for the owner or finder. They have no power in the absence of special statute to keep an article against the finder, any more than the finder has to retain an article against the owner THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. QUALIFICATIONS FOB VOTING IN EACH STATE OF THE UNION. In all the States except Colorado, Idaho, Utah, and Wyoming the right to vote at general elections is restricted to males of 21 years of age and upward. Women are entitled to vote at school elections in several States. They are entitled by law to fufl suffrage in the States of Colorado, Idaho, Utah, and Wyoming. STATES. Requirements as to Citizenship. Previous Residence Required. Persons Excluded from Suffrage. In State. In County In Town. In Pre- cinct. Alabama* Arizona Ter . . . Arkansas* California* .... Colorado* Connecticut*.. Delaware* Dis. of Colum.. Florida* Citizen of United States or alien who has declared intention. Citizen of United States (a) Citizen of United States or alien who has declared intention. Citizen by nativity, naturalization (90 days prior to election), or treaty of Queretaro. Citizen or alien, male or female, who has declared intention four months prior to election. Citizen of United States who can read English language. Citizen who shall have paid a reg- istration fee of $1, and who is duly registered as a qualified voter. See top of page 50. Citizen of the United States Citizen of the United States who has paid all his taxes since 1877. Citizen of the United States, male or female. Citizen of the United States Citizen or alien who has declared intention and resided one year in United States. Citizen of the United States Citizen of United States or alien who has declared intention. Citizen of the United States Citizen of United States (/) Citizen of the United States Citizen of the United States Citizer who can read and write (b). Citizen or alien who declared in- tention to become a citizen prior to May 8, 1892 (b). Citizen of United States who has been such for 3 months preced- ing election. Citizen of the United States who can read or understand Consti- tution. Citizen of United States or alien who has declared intention not less than 1 year or more than 5 before election. Citizen of the United States (b). . . Citizen of United States or alien who has declared intention 30 days before election. Citizen of the United States Citizen of the United States (b). . . Citizen of the United States Citizen of the United States 1 year. . lyear.. lyear.. 1 year. . 6mos... lyear.. lyear.. 1 year. . 1 year. . 6mos... I year. . 6mos... 6mos... 6mos... lyear.. 2 years. 3mos... 1 year . . lyear.. fimos... 3mos... 90 days. 6mos... 90 days. 90 days. 3mos... 6mos... 6mos... 30 days. 90 days. 60 days. 60 days. 30 days. 6mos... lyear.. 3mos... 6mos... 6mos... 20 days. 30 days. 10 days. 30 days. 30 days. 6mos... 3mos... 30 days. 60 days. '<) 30 days. 60 days. 3mos... 6mos... 20 days. 30 days. 10 days. 30 days. 30 days. 10 days. 30 days. 10 days. 30 days. 30 days. <>: ' 30 days. 60 days. 6mos... 3mos... 6inos... 20 days. 30 days. lyr(c).. 60 days. 30 days. 10 days. 30 days. 6mos... 30 days. Convicted of treason or other felonies, idiots, or insane. Indians and Chinamen. Idiots, insane, convicted of fel- ony, until pardoned, failure to pay poll tax. Chinese, idiots, insane, embez- zlers of public moneys, con- victed of infamous crime.f Convicted of crime, bribery in public office. Convicted of heinous crime, un- less pardoned. Insane persons and paupers, or persons convicted of felony. Idiots, duelists, convicted of fel- ony or any infamous crime. Convicted of felony, unless par- doned, idiots, and insane. Idiots, insane, convicted of fel- ony or treason. Convicted of felony or bribery in elections, unless restored to citizenship, idiots, lunatics. United States soldiers, sailors, and marines, and persons con- victed of infamous crime. Idiots, insane, convicted of in- famous crime. Felons, insane, rebels not re- stored to citizenship (d). Convicted of felony, idiots, and insane. Idiots, insane, convicted of fel- ony or treason, unless par- doned, with express restora- tion of franchise. Paupers and Indians not taxed. Convicted of felony, unless par- doned, lunatics, persons non compos mentis. Paupers and persons under guardianship. Indians with tribal relations, duelists, and accessories. Convicted of treason or felony, unless pardoned, under guard- ianship, insane, Indians un- taxed. Insane, idiots, Indians not tax- ed, felons, persons who have not paid taxes. Persons in poorhouses or asy- lums at public expense, those in prison or who have been convicted of infamous crimes. Convicted of felony, unless par- doned, idiots, insane, United States soldiers, seamen, and marines, Indians. Convicted of felony, unless re- stored to civil rights, persons non compos mentis. Idiots, insane, unpardoned con- victs, Indians, Chinese. Insane or paupers. Idiots, paupers, insane, con- victed of crime, unless par- doned or restored oy law. Convicte-1 of felony, unless par- doned, United States soldier or camp follower, Indians (/< . Georgia* Idaho* Illinois* Indiana* Iowa* Kansas* Kentucky* Louisiana* .... Maine* Maryland* Mass'chusetts* Michigan* Minnesota* Mississippi*... Missouri* 2 years. 1 year. . lyear.. 6mos... 6mos... 6mos... 1 year. . 6mos... lyear.. 60 days. lyear.. 60 days. 30 days. 10 days. 30 days. 6mos... Montana* Nebraska* Nevada*.. .... 40 days. 30 days. 6mos... ) 11 IDS... 3mos... V. Hampshire* Sew Jersey*... N.M. Territory GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 49 STATES. Requirements as to Citizenship. Previous Residence Required. Persons Excluded from Suffrage. In State. In County In Town. In Pre- cinct. New York*.... North Carolina North Dakota* Ohio* Citizen who shall have been a citi- zen for 90 days prior to election. Citizen of the United States Citizen of the United States, alien who has declared intention 1 year and not more than 6 years prior to election, and civilized 1 11(1 i.'lll : (t). Citizen of the United States (i). .. Citizen of the United States or alien who has declared inten- tion. White male citizen of United States or alien who has declared intention (i). Citizen of the United States at least 1 month, and if 22 years old or more must have paid tax within 2 years. Citizen of the United States 1 year. . lyear.. lyear.. 1 year. . 6mos... 6mos... lyear.. 2 yrs < j) 2 years. 6 mos. 1 year. . 4mos... 90 days. r, i a. is... 30 days. 60 days. 30 days. 1 year. . 30 days. 6mos... 30 days 30 days. Convicted and sentenced to a State prison or penitentiary for felony or other infamous crime; persons who have re- ceived or offered to receive, or who have paid or promised to pay, compensation for giving or withholding yotes, or who have laid any bet or wager up- on the result of an election. Convicted of felony or other in- famous crime, idiots, lu.ua tics, and those who deny tUebeine of Almighty God. Under guardianship, jtersoiis -non compos menus, or con- victed of felony and treason, unless restored to civil rights. Idiots, insane, and felons, [ndians having tribal relations. Idiots, insane, convicted of fel- ony punishable by imprison- ment in the penitentiarv. Convicted of perjury and'f raud as election officers, or bribery of voters. Paupers, lunatics (g). Convicted of felony, or bribery in elections, unless pardoned, idiots, insane, paupers. Qnderguardianship,insane,con- victed of treason or felony, un- less pardoned, United States soldiers, seamen, and marines. Convicted of bribery or other infamous offense. Idiots, lunatics, paupers, con- victed of felony .United States soldiers, marines, and seamen. ' 1 lot -. insane, convicted of trea- son or crime against elective franchise, unless pardoned. Those who have not obtained the approbation of the board of civil authority of the town in which they reside. Idiots, lunatics (m\ Idiots, lunatics, convicted of infamous crimes, Indians not taxed. Paupers, idiots, lunatics, con- victed of treason, felony, or bribery at elections. Indians having tribal relations, insane, convicted of treason or felony. Idiots, insane, convicted of in- famous crimes, unable to read State Constitution. 90 days. 20 days. 30 days. Okla. Territ. (i) Oregon* 60 days. 30 days. 6 mos... 4 mos... 10 days. Pennsylvania*. Rhode Island*. South Carolina South Dakota* Tennessee* Texas* 2 mos... 4 mos... 10 days. Citizen of the United States (I), . . Citizen of the United States or alien who has declared inten- tion (i). Citizen of the United States who has paid poll tax of preceding year. Citizen of the United States or alien who has declared intention 6 months prior to election. Citizen of the United States, male or female, who has been a citi- zen 90 days. Citizen of the United States Citizen of the United States Citizen of the United States Citizen of the State Citizen of United States or alien who has declared intention. Citizen of the United States, male or female. lyear.. 1 year . . raos... 4 mos... (*) CO days. 30 days. 30 days. (*) 10 days. Utah* Vermont* Virginia* 1 year. . lyear.. 1 year. . 1 year. . 1 year. . 1 year. . 3mos... 90 days. 60 days. 1 year. . 60 days. 3 mos... 3 mos... SO.days. Washington*.. West Virginia* Wisconsin* Wyoming* 10 days. Australian Ballot law or a modification of it in force. tOr a person unable to read the Constitution in English and to write his name, t Indian must have severed tribal relations. 5 One year's residence in the United States prior to election required, (a) Or citizens of Mexico who shall have elected to become citizens under the treaties of 1848 and 1854. (ft) Women can vote in school elections. (c)Clergymeu are qualified after six months' residence in precinct, (rf) Also those under guardianship, public embezzlers, guilty of bribery, or dishonorably discharged from the United States service, (e) Only actual residence required. (/) If unable to read and write, as provided by the Constitution, then he shall be entitled to register and vote if he shall, at the time he offers to register, be the bonafide owner of property assessed to him in theState at a valuation of not less than f 300 on the assessment roll of the current year in which he offers to register, or on the roll of the preceding year, if the roll Women can vote in school elections, (j) Owners of real estate, one year, (k) Actual residence in the precinct or district required. (I) Who has paid six months before election any poll tax then due, and can read and write any section of the State Constitution, or can show that he owns and lias paid all taxes due the previous year on prbperty in the State assessed at $300 or more, (m) Or convicted of bribery at election, embezzlement of public funds, treason, felony, and petty larceny, duelists and abettors, unless pardoned by Legislature. 50 CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Residents of the District of Columbia never had the right to vote therein for national officers , or on other matters of national concern, after it became the seat of the general government. But from 1802 to June 20, 1874, the citizens of Washington, and from January 1, 1790, to said date, the citizens of Georgetown were entitled to vote on municipal subjects and for certain municipal officers ; the citizens of the portion of the District outside of Washington and Georgetown were entitled to the same privilege from April 20, 1871, to June 20, 1874, but that suffrage was abolished in the District of Columbia and was rescinded June 20, 1874, by the act of Congress of that date. THE STATES ANT> THE UNIOX. THE THIRTEEN ORIGINAL STATES. STATES. Ratified the Constitution. STATES. Ratified the Constitution. 1 Delaware December 7 1787 8 South Carolina May 23 . .1788 ?: Pennsylvania December 12 1787 <> New Hampshire June 21 1788 3 New Jersey December 18 1787 10 Virginia June 26 1788 4 Geersria January 2 .... 1788 11 July 26 . . .1788 5 Connecticut January 9 1788 T> North Carolina .... November 21 1789 6 Massachusetts February 6 1788 13 Rhode Island May 29 1790 7 Maryland April 28 1788 STATES ADMITTED TO THE UNION. STATES. Admitted. STATES. Admitted. 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 Vermont March 4 1791 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32 Wisconsin .... May 29 1848 Kentucky June 1 1792 California September 9 1850 Tennessee June 1 1796 Minnesota May 11 1858 Ohio Louisiana November 29 1802 April 30 . . 1812 Oregon February 14 . . 1859 Januarv 29 1861 Indiana December 11 . . 1816J June 19" 1863 Mississippi December 10 1817^ Nevada . October 31 . 1864 Illinois December 3 1818| Nebraska March 1 1867 Alabama December 14 1819 August 1 1876 Maine March 15 1820 Nrth Dakota November 2 ... 1889 Missouri Arkansas August 10 1821 June 15 ..1836, South Dakota November 2 1889 November 8 1889 Michigan Florida January 26 1837] March 3 1845 Washington Idaho November 11 1889 July 3 .... 1890 Texas December 29 1845j July 11 1890 Iowa December 28 ... ... 1846; Utah . . , Januarv. . . ... 1896 STATE AND TERRITORIAL STATISTICS. STATES AND TERRITORIES. Gross Area in Square Miles.* Extreme Breadth, Miles.t Extreme Length, Miles. Capitals. STATES AND TERRITORIES. Gross Area in Square Miles.* Extreme Ureadth, Miles.t Extreme Length, Miles. Capitals. Alabama 52,250 200 330 . . Montgomery. Montana 146,080 580 315 Helena. Alaska Ter 577,390 800 1,100 Sitka. Nebraska . . 77,510 415 205 . . .Lincoln. Arizona Ter .... 113.020 335 390 Phoenix. Nevada 110,700 315 485 .Carson City. Arkansas 53850 275 240 Little Rock. [New Hamp 9,305 90 185 Concord. California 158.300 375 770 .. . .Sacramento, New Jersey 7,815 70 160 Trenton. Colorado 103,925 390 270 Denver. N. Mexico T 122,580 350 390 Santa Fe". Connecticut. . . . 4,990 90 75 Hartford. New York 49,170 320 310 Albany. Delaware 2,050 35 110 Dover. N. Carolina 52,250 520 200 .... Raleigh. Dist. of Col Florida *TO 68.680 9 400 10 460 . ..Washington. .... Tallahassee . N. Dakota Ohio 70,795 41,060 360 230 210 205 Bismarck. 59,475 250 315 Oklahoma T 39,030 365 210 Guthrie Idaho . 84,800 305 490 liui-ic City. Oregon 96,030 375 290 ' Salem. Illinois 56,650 205 380 Springfield. Pennsylvania . . 45,215 300 180 .... Harrisburg. Indiana 36,350 160 265 . . Indianapolis. Rhode Island . . . 1,250 35 50 . . .Npt. & Prov. Indian Ter Iowa 31,400 56,025 210 300 210 210 Des Moines. S. Carolina South Dakota. . 30,570 77,650 235 380 215 245 Columbia. Pierre. Kansas 82,080 400 200 Topeka. Tennessee 42,050 430 120 . Nashville. Kentucky 40,400 350 175 Frankfort. Texas 760 620 Austin. Louisiana 48,720 280 275 ..Baton Rouge. Utah 84,970 275 345 Salt Lake City. Maine 33,040 205 235 Augusta. Vermont 9,565 90 155 . . .Montpelier. Maryland Massachusetts . 12,210 8,315 200 190 120 110 Annapolis. Boston. Virginia Washington.. . . 42,450 69,180 425 340 205 230 Richmond. . . . Olympia. Michigan 58,915 310 400 Lansing. W Virginia.... 24 780 200 225 Minnesota 83,365 350 400 St. Paul. Wisconsin 56,040. 290 300 Madison. Mississippi 46,810 180 340 Jackson. Wyoming 97,890 365 275 Cheyenne. Missouri 69,415 300 .Jefferson City. Total U. S.... t.(>02.!l!HI ||2,720 111,600 Gross area includes water as well as land surface. These areas are from the U. S. Census Report of 1890. t Breadth is from east to west. Length is from north to south, t The District of Columbia was originally 100 square miles, but 30 miles were receded to Virginia in 1846. Including the Cherokee Strip and No Man's Land. II Breadth from Quoddy Head, in Maine, to Cape Flattery, in Washington; length from the 49th parallel to Brownsville, on the Rio Grande. This is exclusive of Alaska,. GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 51 THE TERRITORIES. TERRITORIES. Organized. TERRITORIES. Organized. New Mexico . . September i) 1850 District of Columbia ( July 16 ..1790 February 24 . 1863 Alaska . ( March 3 July 27 .1791 18G8 Indian* June 30 .1834 Oklaboma May 2 1890 Hawaii June 14 ..1900 * The Indian Territory has as yet no organized territorial government. STATE AND TERRITORIAL GOVERNMENTS, STATES AND TERRITORIES. GOVERNORS. LEGISLATURES. Time of Next State or Territorial Election. Salaries of Members, Annual or Per Diem, while in Session. TERMS o MEMBERS, YBAKS. Salaries. Length Term, Tears. Terms Expire. Next Session Begins. Ann. or Bien. Limit of Session. Sena- tors. Repre- sent- atives. ~2~ 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 4 2 2 1 . 2 2 4 2 2 2 2 2 1 2 I 2 2 2 2 2 2 1 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 Alabama $3.000 3.000 3.600 3.000 6.000 5000 4000 2000 3.500 3,000 5,000 3,000 6,000 5,000 3,000 3,000 6,500 5,000 2,500 4,500 8.000 4,000 5,000 3,500 5,000 5,000 2,500 4,000 2,000 10,000 3,000 10,000 4,000 3,000 8,000 3,000 1,500 10,000 8,OPO 3,000 3,000 3,000 4,000 4,000 '2,000 1,500 5,000 4,000 2,700 5,000 2,500 2 4 4 2 4 2 2 4 4 2 4 2 4 4 2 2 4 4 2 4 1 2 2 4 4 4 2 4 2 3 4 2 4 2 2 4 4 4 4 1 2 2 2 2 1 2 4 1 4 2 4 Dec. 1, 1902 Nov. 4,1902 Bien. 50 days. Aug. 4, 1902 $4 per diem. $4 per diem. $6 " 8 " 7 " $300 ann $300 " $6 per diem. *4 " $400 ann $5 per diem. $1,000 ses'n.. $6 per diem. $550 pr term. $3 per diem. $5 " $5 " $150 ann $5 per diem. $750 ann $3 per diem. 5 $400 ann $5 per diem. $6 " $300 ann $8 per diem. $200 ann $500 " $6 per diem. $1,500 ann. .. $4 per diem. $5 " $600 ann $4 per diem. $3 " $1,500 ami. . . $5 per diem. $5 '< f4 $5 " *4 ." 5 " $4 " f3 " it - $6 " $500 ann $5 per diem. 4 2 4 4 4 2 4 4 2 4 2 4 4 4 4 4 4 2 4 1 2 4 4 4 4 2 4 2 3 2 2 2 4 2 2 4 4 1 4 2 2 4 4 2 4 4 4 4 4 Arizona Dec. 14, i902 Jan. 18, 1903 Jan. , 1903 Jan. 10, 1903 Jan. 4, 1903 Jan. 19, 1905 Jan. 1, 1905 Nov. 1,1902 Jun. 13, 1904 Jan. 5, 1903 Jan. 11, 1905 Jan. 1, 1905 Jan. 1, 1904 Jan. 11, 1903 Dec. 10, 1903 May 1, 1904 Jan. 1, 1903 Jan. 8, 1904 Jan. 7, 1903 Dec. 31, 1902 Jan. 1, 1903 Jan. 1, 1904 Jan. 1, 1905 Jan. 4, 1905 Jan. 3, 1903 Jan. 1, 1903 Jan. 6, 1903 Jan. , 1905 June 6, 1905 Jan. 1, 1903 Jan. 1, 1905 Jan. 1, 1903 Jan. , 1904 Apr. , 1905 Jan. 8, 1903 Jan. 17, 1903 , 1905 Dec. 31, 1902 Jan. 18, 1903 Jan. 1, 1903 Jan. 15, 1903 Jan. 12, 1903 Jan. 7, 1905 Oct. 2, 1902 Jan. 1. 1906 Jan. 14, 1905 Mar. 4, 1905 Jan. 5, 1903 Jan. 2, 1903 Jan. 19, 1903 Jan. 12, 1903 Jan. 2, 1903 Jan. 1, 1903 Jan. 7,1903 Jan. 1,1903 April 2, 1903 Oct. 22, 1902 Feb. 18, 1903 Jan. 5, 1903 Jan. 9, 1903 Jan. 8, 1903 Jan. 13, 1902 Jan. 13, 1903 Jan. 7, 1902 May 12, 1902 Jan. 5,1903 Jan. 1,1903 Jan. 1, 1902 Jan. 7,1903 Jan. 6, 1903 Jan. 7, 1902 Jan. 7, 1903 Jan. 5, 1903 Jan. 6, 1903 Jan. 19, 1903 Jan. 7,1903 Jan. 14, 1902 Jan. 19, 1903 Jan. 1, 1902 Jan. 7, 1903 Jan. 6, 1903 Jan. 1, 1904 Jan. , 1903 Jan. 12, 1903 Jan. 6, 1903 Jan. 1,1902 Jan. 1,1902 Jan. 4, 1902 Jan. 7, 1902 Jan. 5, 1903 Jan. 13,1903 Jan. 5, 1903 Oct. 1,1902 Dec. 4,1903 Jan. 12, 1903 Jan. 4, 1903 Jan. 14, 1903 Jan. 13, 1903 Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Ann . Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Ann. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Ann. Bien. Ann. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Ann . Ann . Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. Bien. 60 days. 60 days. 60 days. 90 days. None. GO days. CO days. 50 days. 60 days. 60 days. None. 60 days. None. 40 days. 60 days. 60 days. None. 90 days. None. None. 90 days. None. 70 days. 60 days. 60 days. 50 days. None. None. 60 days. None. 60 days. 60 days. None. 60 days. 40 days. None. 60 days. 60 days. 40 days. 60 days. 75 days. None. 60 days. None. 90 days. GO days. 45 days. None. 40 days. Nov. 4, i902. Sept. 1,1902. Nov. 6, 1902. Nov. 4, 1902. Nov. 4, 1902. Nov. 4,1902. Arkansas... California . . Colorado . . . Connecticut Delaware ... Florida Oct. 1,1902. Nov. 4, 1902. Nov. 4, 1902. Nov. 4,1902. Hawaii Idaho Illinois Iowa Nov. 4,1902. Nov. 4, 1902. Nov. 3, 1903. Apr. 22, 1902. Sept. 8, 1902. Nov. 5,1903. Nov. 4,1902. Nov. 4, 1902. Nov. 15, 1904. Nov. 3, 1903. Nov. 4,1902. Nov. 3,1902. Nov. 4,1902. Nov. 6, 1902. Nov. 4,1902. Nov. 4, 1902. Nov. 4, 1902. Nov. 4,1902. Nov. 4,1902. Nov. 4,1902. Nov. 4, 1902. Nov. 4,1902. June 2,1902. Nov. 4, 1902. Nov."4,'i902. Nov'."4,'i902. Nov. 4, 1902. Nov. 4,1902. Nov. 8, 1904. Sept. 2, 1902. Nov. 5, 1905. Nov. 8, 1904. Nov. 8, 1904. Nov. 4,1902. Nov. 4, 1932. Kansas .... Kentucky Louisiana Maine Maryland Massachusetts Michigan Minnesota Mississippi.... Missouri ... Montana Nebraska Nevada N. Hampshire. New Jersey New Mexico... New York N. Carolina.... North Dakota. Ohio Oklahoma Oregon Pennsylvania.. Porto Rico Rhode Island.. S. Carolina South Dakota. Tennessee Texas Utah Vermont Virginia Washington... West Virginia Wisconsin Wyoming FEDERAL BANKRUPTCY ACT. The States of the Union have insolvency laws, under -which debtors conforming to the provisions of law can secure a release from debts owed in the State. Only the Federal Government can enact laws under which debtors can be discharged from their debts wherever they are owed. Among the duties of Congress is that of providing a uniform system of bankruptcy. Under this power Con- gress has passed four bankruptcy acts, the first in the year 1800, which law by its own terms was limited to five years, but it was repealed, nevertheless, in 1803. In 1841 the second bankruptcy act was passed, and was repealed in March, 1843. The third bankruptcy act was approved March 2, 1867, and repealed in 1878. The fourth bankruptcy act was ap- proved July 1, 1898, and, in brief, this act constitutes the district courts of the United 52 THE CENTURY BOOK OF PACTS. States in the several States, the Supreme Court of the District of Columbia, the district courts of the several Territories, and the United States courts in the Indian Territory and the district of Alaska courts of bankruptcy. The law defines acts of bankruptcy as follows : Acts of bankruptcy by a person shall consist of his having (1) conveyed, transferred, con- cealed, or removed, or permitted to be con- cealed or removed, any part of his property with intent to hinder, delay, or defraud his creditors, or any of them ; or (2) transferred, while insolvent, any portion of his property to one or more of his creditors with intent to prefer such creditors over his other creditors ; or (3) suffered or permitted, while insolvent, any creditor to obtain a preference through legal proceedings, and not having at least five days before a sale or final disposition of any property affected by such preference vacated or discharged such preference ; or (4) made a general assignment for the benefit of his credi- tors ; or (5) admitted in writing his inability to pay his debts and his willingness to be ad- judged a bankrupt on that ground. The following described persons may be- come bankrupts : Any person who owes debts, except a cor- poration, shall be entitled to the benefits of this act as a voluntary bankrupt. Any natural person, except a wage-earner or a person engaged chiefly in farming or the tillage of the soil, any unincorporated com- pany, and any corporation engaged principally in manufacturing, trading, printing, publish- ing, or mercantile pursuits, owing debts to the amount of one thousand dollars or over, may be adjudged an involuntary bankrupt upon default or an impartial trial, and shall be subject to the provisions and entitled to the benefits of this act. Private bankers, but not national banks or banks incorporated under State or Territorial laws, may be adjudged involuntary bankrupts. The act does not affect the allowance to bankrupts of the exemptions which are pre- scribed by State laws in force at the time of the filing of a petition in the State wherein they have had their domicile for six months or the greater portion thereof immediately preceding the filing of a petition. The law creates two offices referees and trustees. The act went into full force and effect upon its passage, that is, July 1, 1898, but no peti- tion for voluntary bankruptcy could be filed within one month of that date, and no petition for involuntary bankruptcy within four months thereof. Proceedings commenced under State insolvency laws before the passage of the act were not affected by it. THE LAW OF TRADE-MARKS. Any person, firm, or corporation can obtain protection for any lawful trade-mark by com- plying with the following : 1. By causing to be recorded in the Patent Office the name, residence, and place of busi- ness of persons desiring the trade-mark. 2. The class of merchandise and description of the same. 3. A description of the trade-mark itself with facsimiles. 4. The length of time that the said mark has already been used. 5. By payment of the required fee $6.00 for labels and $25 for trade-marks. 6. By complying with such regulations as may be prescribed by the Commissioner of Patents. 7. A lawful trade-mark must consist of some arbitrary word (not the name of a person or place), indicating or not the use or nature of the thing to which it is applied ; of some designated symbol, or of both word and symbol. INTERSTATE COMMERCE LAW. The Interstate Commerce Act is a law passed by Congress in 1887 for the regulation of rates and the management of interstate commerce. It applies to carriers engaged in the transportation of passengers or property wholly by railroad or partly by railroad and partly by water, from one State, Territory, or District of the United States to any other State, Territory, or District, or to or from a foreign country. It provides for the appoint- ment of a board of five commissioners, em- powered to inquire into the management of the carriers and determine the reasonableness of their rates. A carrier whose line is entirely within a State is subject to the act so far as it makes or accepts through rates on interstate commerce. Among other things the act requires that all charges shall be just and reasonable ; that charges for a shorter distance shall not exceed those for a longer distance on the same line in the same direction, when the circumstances and conditions are similar ; that there shall be no unjust discrimination as between persons or classes of traffic or localities, in the charges made, or in the service rendered ; that the rates charged for transportation shall be printed, filed with the Commission, and kept for public inspection at the several stations, and that the carriers shall annually make a complete exhibit of their business to the Commission. The act makes exceptions from its provisions of the carriage of property for the United States or for any State or municipal govern- GOVERNMENT AND LAW. ment, or for charitable purposes, or to or from fairs and expositions, and it allows of the issuing of mileage, excursion, or commutation tickets, and admits of the giving of reduced rates to ministers of religion and free trans- portation to the officers and employees of the carrier, and to the principal officers of other carriers. BUSINESS LAW AND FORMS. Agency. "Whatever business a man may do, he may employ another man to do for him." An agency may exist by Implication, Verbally, or by Writings. By implication when the acts and words lead people in general to believe that the agency exists. Verbally, whenever there is only the verbal agreement between the parties. A verbal agency permits the agent to make a contract even in cases where the contract must be in writing. By writings, as notes, memoranda or formal instruments under seal. The authority conveyed must be equal to the deed to be performed. The instrument of agency must be under seal when the convey- ance requires a seal. When the business to be transacted does not require a seal, the instru- ment of agency need not be under seal. Kinds. General agents ; special agents ; professional agents. A general agent is empowered to transact all the business of a particular kind. He may bind his principal, generally, with innocent parties so long as he keeps within the apparent scope of his authority, even if he exceeds pri- vate instructions. A special agent is one invested with limited powers for the performance of some especial business. He cannot bind his principal when- ever he exceeds his authority. Who deals with a special agent, deals at his peril, when the agent passes the limit of his power. Professional agents, as attorneys, brokers, captains, auctioneers, factors, etc., are usually licensed by competent authority to transact a particular kind of business. They are invested with ample power and the law holds them responsible for the proper performance of their duties. Liabilities of Principal. Private instructions to a general agent do not avoid the principal's liability to innocent parties. A principal is responsible for fraud on the part of the agent, if permitted while transacting his business. A principal is not bound by the acts of a special agent who exceeds his authority. A principal is not generally liable for the willful wrong done by his agent. Forms of Powers of Attorney. Know all men by these presents : That I, A . B., of , have made, constituted, and appointed, and by these presents do make, constitute, and appoint B. C., of , my true and lawful attorney, for me and in my name and stead (state purpose for which issued), giving and granting to my said attor- ney, by these presents, full power and authority to do and perform all and every act and thing necessary to be done in and about the premises, as fully to all intents and purposes as I might or could do if personally present, hereby ratifying and confirming all that my said attorney shall lawfully do or cause to be done by virtue hereof. In witness whereof, I have hereunto set my hand and seal, this day of , A. D. 189 . . A. B. [L. 8.] Sealed and delivered in the presence of B. C. Married women, lunatics, and minors, in general, are disqualified from appointing agents, but a married woman in the State of New York, if over twenty-one years, may ap- point an agent the same as though unmarried. A minor may authorize an agent to perform an act that is to his advantage, but not that is to his prejudice. Deeds. The grantor is the person who makes the conveyance and the grantee is the person who receives the conveyance. A deed, being a contract, has the same essen- tials. In most States married women may convey real estate which they own in their own right. A partner cannot convey real estate belonging to the firm unless empowered by special authority from the partners to do so. Consideration. A sufficient consideration is necessary to a valid deed. (See consideration under contracts.) Subject-matter. The description of the land and its boundaries should be extremely accu- rate. The usual words of the transfer are "give, grant, sell, and convey," though any others conveying the same idea could be used. Land sold without reserving any crops at that time growing on it, conveys the crops or every- thing attached to the land. When a building is sold it conveys everything that belongs to it. The words " heirs and assigns " are necessary in some States to convey an unconditional title. Forms of Deeds. Deed with full cove- nants. (New York Laws of 1890.) This indenture, made the . . day of . . . . , in the year . . . . , between A. B., of .... (give occupation and residence), of the first part, and C. D., of .... (occupation and residence), of the second part. THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Witnesseth : That the said party of the first part, in consideration of .... dollars, lawful money of the United States, paid by the party of the second part, doth hereby grant and re- lease unto the said party of the second part, his heirs and assigns forever (here describe property), together with the appurtenances and all the estate and rights of the party of the first part in and to the said premises. To have and to hold the above granted prem- ises unto the said party of the second part, his heirs and assigns forever. And the said party of the first part, doth covenant with said party of the second part, as follows : First. That the party of the first part is seized of the said premises in fee simple, and has good right to convey the same. Second. That the party of the second part shall quietly enjoy the said premises. Third. That the said premises are free from incumbrance. Fourth. That the party of the first part will execute or procure any further necessary assur- ance of the title to said premises. Fifth. That the party of the first part will forever warrant the title of said premises. In witness whereof, the said party of the first part hath hereunto set his hand and seal the day and year first above written. A. B. In the presence of, [L. s.] B. C. Acknowledgment for the above. STATE OF NEW YORK, ) n f } ss. : County oj ) On this . . day of . . . . , in the year . . . . , before me, the subscriber, personally came A. B. (and C. B., his wife), to me known to be the person (or persons) described in and who executed the within instrument, and (sever- ally) acknowledged that he (or they) executed the same. J. A., (Give official title.) NEW YORK. " Every conveyance unless re- corded is void against a subsequent purchaser in good faith, whose conveyance shall be first duly recorded. To entitle a conveyance to be recorded it must be acknowledged by the party or parties executing the same, or shall be proved by a subscribing witness." " The ac- knowledgment of married women may be made, taken, and certified in the same manner as if they were sole." OHIO. All deeds, mortgages, etc., executed within the State of Ohio must be signed by the grantor and acknowledged before two attesting witnesses, and the said grantor must also ac- knowledge the same before a judge of the court of record of that State or some other competent authority. STATE OF OHIO, } County of . . . . , \ SS * Be it remembered that on this . . day of . . . . , 189. . , before me, the subscriber, a (give official title), in and for the said county, came A. B., and C. B., his wife, the grantors in the foregoing instrument, and acknowledged the signing thereof to be their voluntary act and deed for the uses and purposes therein men- tioned. And the saidC. B., wife of the said A. B., being examined by me separate and apart from her said husband, and the contents of the said instrument being by me made known and explained to her as the statute directs, declared that she did voluntarily sign and acknowledge the same and that she is still satisfied therewith as her act and deed. In testimony whereof I have hereunto set my hand and affixed my official seal, the day [L. s.] and year last above written. (Signature and title.) The following States require no separate ex- amination in acknowledgments by husband and wife : Connecticut, the Dakotas, Illinois, In- diana, Iowa, Kansas, Maryland, Massachusetts, Michigan, Minnesota, Mississippi, Missouri, Nebraska, New Hampshire, New Mexico, New York, Wisconsin, Wyoming, and Washington. The following States require a separate ex- amination : Delaware, District of Columbia, Florida, Idaho, Kentucky, Nevada, New Jersey, North Carolina, Pennsylvania, Ohio, Rhode Island, South Carolina, Tennessee, and Texas. Common Carriers. A common carrier is one who, for a compensation, carries the goods of anyone offering them for transporta- tion as a regular business. Carrier's Obligations. He must take all goods offered, unless of a dangerous kind. He must charge one person no higher rates than another. He must take such care of the goods as a prudent man would of his own. He must carry them by the usual route and make a proper delivery of them. He must place the goods in a proper place and give notice of their arrival. Carrier's Liabilities. In common law they are liable for all losses ' ' except those occa- sioned by the act of God or the acts of the public enemy." He is responsible for losses by theft, robbery, etc. Railroad companies are responsible as car- riers to parties sending goods by express over their lines, irrespective of the said parties.' contract with the express company. A carrier's liability begins as soon as he has accepted the goods. It ends as soon as he has carried them to their destination and has de- posited them there. GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 55 The notices on their rcipts whereby they seek to avoid all responsibility, are " no evi- dence of assent on the part of the owner, " and the liability cannot be avoided that way. He may avoid almost anything by making a special contract. He might avoid liability by notice if he oould prove that the shipper had read his notice or was familiar with its terms, though there is some question about this in New York at least. Carriers of Passengers. They are bound to make use of all ordinary methods for the safety of their passengers. They must employ proper vehicles and competent servants. In general, they are bound to run trains on their advertised time. They are liable to passengers for the misconduct of their servants. If any person is injured through their negligence, they are liable not only for the damage that person has received, but for prospective damage as well. He is an insurer of his pas- sengers' baggage. He is liable for such bag- gage as his passengers carry for their own per- sonal use. He cannot avoid liability by no- tices, as a notice is no evidence of the assent of the owner of the baggage. The carrier may avoid liability to some extent by a special con- tract. They must take each person who tenders the price of transportation and wishes to be carried. They are not obliged to take dis- orderly or persons of doubtful character, or those afflicted with some contagious disease. They are not responsible to their passengers for accidents where all skill and diligence has been employed. Passengers are required to submit to all reasonable rules and regulations, to show their tickets whenever asked, and to surrender their tickets whenever required. Currency. The National Bank Act fixes the capital required to establish a National Bank as follows: Towns of less than 6,000 inhabitants, a capital of not less than $50,000 ; towns of from 6,000 to 50,000, a capital of not less than $100,000 ; in towns of over 50,000, at least $200,000 will be required. Each bank must deposit with the Treasurer at Washington, government bonds to the ex- tent of at least one third its capital, as security for the notes of the bank. The government then issues to the bank ninety per cent, in notes, which, when properly filled and signed, constitute the circulation of the bank. Such banks are required to keep on hand at least twenty- five percent, in legal tender of its circulation and deposits. The notes of such banks are secured to the holders, but depositors run the same risk of loss as with other banks. Checks. A check is an order to a bank to pay the holder a certain sum of money on presentation and without days of grace. A check, as in the case of a promissory note, may or may not be negotiable, according to the way it is drawn. A check given is no payment of a debt unless paid when presented. Payment of a check may be stopped at any time before it is presented if notice is given the bank. Every indorser of a check is liable to each following indorser as in the case of promissory notes, but for no longer time than he would have been held had he been the maker of the check. Certificates of Deposit partake of the nature of certified checks and are used when money is deposited for a short time and no regular bank account opened. When wishing to draw your money in per- son, draw the check payable to "Self" or "Cash." Write the amount of the check both in words and figures, taking care that no blank spaces are left that could be filled to ' ' raise ' ' the amount of the check. Indorsements. The left-hand end of a check is the top. Write the indorsement across the back, a short distance from the top. If your name has been improperly spelled in the body of the check, indorse it exactly as written therein, then below write your name properly. If titles are used in the body of the check, they must appear with the name in the indorse- ment. In drawing a check payable to one not known at the bank you can avoid the necessity of identification by having him indorse it in your presence and you write under it, " Above in- dorsement correct " and sign your name. Checks that are to be deposited are usually indorsed, " For deposit," or "For deposit to the credit of," and such indorsements may be made by clerks, and the checks deposited to the credit of their firm. For further reference see indorsements of promissory notes. Notes. A promissory note is an uncondi- tional promise in writing, to pay a certain per- son a certain sum of money at a certain fu- ture time. The essentials are that it be cer- tainly paid, not out of any particular fund, nor dependent upon any contingency ; that it be for the payment of money only. Five important points of a negotiable prom- issory note are: (1) That the date of pay- mant be specified. (2) That the amount be plainly stated. (3) That it be paid only in THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. lawful money. (4) That the promise be with- out conditions. (5) That it contain the words " order "or " bearer," or other words show- ing the intention to make it negotiable. Indorsement : A note is indorsed when any- thing relating to it is written upon the back. The writer of the name is called the indorser, and the person for whose benefit it is written is the indorsee. There are five kinds of indorsements : (1) In full. (2) In blank. (3) Conditional. (4) Qualified. (5) Restrictive. \ . In full : When the name of the indorsee is mentioned, when none but he can demand payment. If he wishes to transfer it he must add his own indorsement in writing. This is the usual form and shows through what hands it passes. 2. In blank: Indorsement in blank consists of the indorser 's mame alone. It is then pay- able to bearer, and is transferred by simple delivery from hand to hand. The indorser in full or in blank is obligated to any subsequent holder if the maker does not pay it, and the in- dorser is given due notice of such failure. 3. Conditional: When the payment is made conditional upon some uncertain event. 4. Qualified: When the usual form is de- parted from and the indorser restrains, limits, or enlarges his liability as such. An indorsement " without recourse to me " transfers the title and releases the indorser from any liability. The exact words used do not matter if they show the intention to avoid responsibility. When acting for another party the words "agent," "attorney," or their equivalent will release, if added to the indorsement, the said agent from personal responsibility. 5. Restrictive: When the indorsement re- strains the negotiability to some certain person as, " Pay to John Doe only," or " Pay John Doe for my account." Transfer. An indorsement to bearer is trans- ferred by delivery ; or, if indorsed in blank, it can be done in the same way by the indorsee, though drawn payable to order. 1 . Before maturity an innocent purchaser can enforce the collection of a note, even if it be found to have been lost, stolen, or obtained by fraud. Five things are necessary : (1) That he obtained it in good faith. (2) That he was not aware of any defect in the title of the one from whom he obtained it. (3) That it be negotiable. (4) That it was obtained for value. (5) That it was obtained before maturity. Should he be aware of any defect in the title at the time of obtaining it, he takes it subject to any defense that could be legally brought against it at first. 2. After maturity : A note may still be nego tiable, but the purchaser now takes it subject to any defense originally existing. Demand. No demand is necessary to hold the maker. For the purpose of holding those conditionally liable, a demand must be made first on those primarily liable. 1. Notes should be presented for payment by the holder or his authorized agent. . 2. Demand should be made on the maker, or, in his absence, on his authorized agent. 3. To hold indorser, the demand must be made on the very day of maturity, no sooner, no later. 4. If no place of payment is specified in the note, it must be presented at the residence or place of business of the maker, and during regular business hours. A personal demand is not necessary when the place of payment is specified. It is sufficient if the note be sent there in due time. Law of Place When given in one State and payable in another, it will be governed by the laws of the State where payable, in the matter of interest, if the rate is not men- tioned. The "law merchant" is, that the maker is bound by the laws of the place where made ; the indorser by the law where indorsed ; demand, days of grace, etc., by the laws where payable. Payment. Possession is presumptive evi- dence of title on paper drawn or indorsed, pay- able to bearer, and payment may be made to the One presenting it. Before paying, the maker should be careful that any indorsements are genuine, and that the title is properly transferred. Payment by an indorser satisfies only so far as the subsequent indorsers are concerned, for the note is not discharged until paid by the maker. After an indorser has paid a dishonored note, he may put it in circulation again . The holder takes his title from the frst in- dorser if made in blank or is a general in- dorsement, and the maker is protected in making payment to him. Non-payment. If the only parties con- cerned are the original ones, demand need not be made at maturity. The whole object of demand, protest, and notice of non-payment is to hold the indorsers or others conditionally liable. Protest A protest is a formal statement made by a notary public, giving a copy or description of the note, stating that pay- ment has been demanded and refused, giving reason of refusal, if any, and the purpose and object of the protest. The protest must be made by the notary personally, and duly signed and sealed. GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 57 Notice 1. Notice should be given by the holder or some suitable person authorized to act for him. The notary may do this. 2. Notices must be served on all whom the holder wishes to make responsible for the pay- ment. He may notify all prior parties, or only the immediate indorser, as he may wish. Each indorser should protect his own interests by notifying all parties responsible to him. Indorsers are liable, in order of their respective indorsements, to each subsequent indorser. 3. Due diligence must be exercised in giving the notice. It is best to give it the same day, but if the dishonor occurs Saturday or immedi- ately preceding a holiday, it will be in time if given the succeeding secular day. Certain ob- stacles, as war, prevalence of a contagious dis- ease, floods, or act of Providence, will be ac- cepted as legal excuses for want of notice. 4. Any place will do, if given personally. Notice in writing may be left at the place of business or at the house of the person to be notified. When the person resides at a dis- tance he may be notified by a letter properly addressed and mailed to the office where he re- ceive > his letters. 5. The notice may be either verbal or written , and any form that clearly conveys the idea intended will be sufficient. The note should be clearly described. It is well de- scribed when its maker, payee, date, amount, and time and place of payment are named. Personal notice must be given when the holder and person to be notified live in the same place, unless the laws of the State do not require it. In New York and many other States written notice properly addressed and mailed is sufficient Notice of Protest. $587.00. SECOND NATIONAL BANK, TJtica, N. Y., June 23, 1894. Take notice that the promissory note made by C. M. Taylor for $587 and interest, dated October 2, 1893, payable to your order at this bank, payable this day and indorsed by you, is protested for nonpayment, and the holder, J. B. Morrow, looks to you for the payment thereof, payment of the same having this day been demanded and refused. Respectfully yours, H. K. LONG, Notary Public. To J. L. BROWNE. The indorser may waive demand of pay- ment, notice of protest, etc., at the time of the indorsement, or even at any time before maturity. The following is the usual form : " I hereby waive demand, protest, and notice of dishonor." (Signed) Guaranty. Guaranties are of two kinds, guaranty of payment and guaranty of collection. 1. Guaranty of payment absolutely guaran- tees that the note shall be paid at maturity 2. Guaranty of collection holds the guaran- tor after the holder has failed to collect of the maker. The general rule is that the guarantor is not entitled to demand and notice of protest. The following is the usual form. "For value re- ceived I hereby guaranty the payment (or col- lection) of the within note. (Signed) JOHN F. HERRICK. Defenses. 1. Want of consideration, if total, is a perfect defense. If it is only a par- tial failure it will defeat recovery only to that extent. 2. Obtained through fear or compulsion. The threats and duress must be such as would cause a person of ordinary firmness of mind to apprehend danger to himself, reputation, or property. 3. Fraud. Fraud vitiates all contract*. 4. Obtained by finding or theft. This is no defense against a bona fide and innocent purchaser who obtains the note before maturity and gives a valuable consideration for it. 5. Illegal consideration. A note 'illegal on its face gives warning to all. A note showing on its face that it called for more than the legal rate of interest would be subject to such defense. Notes given for " debts of honor " are void between original parties, but if indorsed and negotiated, the first indorser would be holden. Presumptions. 1. The law presumes that the negotiable paper was given for a consider- ation, whether expressed or not. The con- trary must be proven to constitute a defense. 2. The holder is presumed to be the owner. 3. Indorsements and transfers are presumed to be made before the paper became due. 4. The law presumes the holder to have ac- quired the paper in the usual course of busi- ness 5. It is conclusively presumed that the paper means precisely what it says and parol evidence will not be allowed to offset it. A note given by a lunatic, an intoxicated person or a minor, is void. A note given by one who cannot write should be witnessed by an uninterested person. A person receiving a note, knowing it to be defective, has no better title than the person from whom he purchased. A note as a gift, being without considera- tion, is voidable. If the holder of a note extends the time of payment to the maker, his action releases all persons conditionally liable. 58 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. In a note containing < we promise," or "we jointly promise," the liability is a joint one, and all must be sued ; " we or either of us prom- ise," or "we jointly and severally promise," here the liability is both joint and several and either or all the parties may be sued. In a note containing " / promise " and signed by two or more persons, each signer is obli- gated for the whole amount, and either or all may be sued. After becoming of age a minor may ratify a note given during his minority. Forms of Notes. A Note Negotiable Without Indorsement. $250. ST. Louis, June 8, 1899. Thirty days after date I promise to pay J. H. Ames, or bearer, Two Hundred and Fifty Dollars, at the Third National Bank in St. Louis, for value received. CHARLES CAKNS. A Note Negotiable Only by Indorsement. $200. CHICAGO, Nov. 26, 1899. Three months after date I promise to pay John H. Weltering, or order, Two Hundred Dollars, value received. J. T. NORTON. A Note Not Negotiable. $200. ST. Louis, Nov. 17, 1899. Ninety days after date I promise to pay Charles C. Collins Two Hundred Dollars, value received. SAMUEL ATKINSON. A Nqte Bearing Interest. 100. BATON ROUGE, LA., Nov. 26, 1899. Six months after date I promise to pay R. V. Jennings, or order, One Hundred Dollars, with in- terest, for value received. JOHN Q. WATSON. A Note Payable on Demand. $150. PHILADELPHIA, Nov. 30, 1899. On demand I promise to pay Lamonte Whittle- sey, or bearer, One Hundred and Fifty Dollars, value received. JOHN Q. CHAFFINGTON. A Note Payable at Bank. $100. CINCINNATI, Dec. 24, 1899. Thirty days after date I promise to pay Thomas I. Rankin, or order, at the Second National Bank, One Hundred Dollars, value received. FRANK T. MORRISON. Principal and Surety. $793. NEWARK, N. J., Dec. 28, 1899. Sixty days after date I promise to pay Daniel O'C. Patterson, or order, Seven Hundred and Ninety-three Dollars, with interest, value received. JOHN G. WATTERSON, Principal. T. R. GRAHAM, Security. Promissory Note Secured by Mortgage. $1,000 LANSING, MICH., Dec. 1, 1899. One year after date I promise to pay to S. H. Moore One Thousand Dollars at the First National Bank of Lansing, Mich., with interest at the rate of ten per cent, per annum, for value received. This note is secured by a mortgage of even date herewith, on a certain tract or parcel of land sit- uate (describe the premises). (Signed) R. S. MARSH. A Married Woman's Note in Hew York* $400. NEW YORK, Dec. 13, 1899. Three months after date I promise to pay John- son, Dunham & Co., or order, Four Hundred Dol- lars, with interest. And I hereby charge my indi- vidual property and estate with the payment of this note. CLARA C. DICKERSON. A Joint Note. $3,000. DETROIT, MICH., Dec. 12, 1899. One year after date we jointly promise to pay E. C. Langworthy, or order, Three Thousand Dol- lars, value received. JOHN C. JENNINGS. WALTER D. CURTIS. A Joint and Several Note. $3,000. DETROIT, MICH., Dec. 12, 1899. One year after date we jointly and severally promise to pay E. C. Langworthy, or order, Three Thousand Dollars, value received. JOHN C. JENNINGS. WALTER D. CURTIS. A Partnership Note. No. BOSTON, MASS., Nov. 26, 1899. One month after date, without grace, we prom- ise to pay to the order of ourselves Two Hundred and Fifty Dollars, at any bank in Boston. JOHNSON & Co., $250. Due Dec. 26, 1899. 209 Temple Place. A Note Payable by Installments. $3,000. PHILADELPHIA, PA., April 20, 1899. For value received, I promise to pay Smith & Brown, or order, Three Thousand Dollars, in the manner following, viz. : One thousand dollars in one year, one thousand dollars in .two years, and one thousand dollars in three years, with interest on all said sums, payable semi-annually, without defalcation or discount. HUGH FAULKNER, 120 Chestnut St. Sealed Note. $5,000. CLEVELAND, 0., May 8, 1899. For value, received, I promise to pay Smith & Edgar, or order, Five Thousand Dollars, in three years from the date hereof, with interest, payable semi-annually, without defalcation or discount. And in case of default of my payment of the inter- est or principal aforesaid with punctuality, I hereby empower any attorney-at-law, to be appointed by said Smith & Edgar, or their assigns, to appear in any court which said Smith & Edgar, or their assigns, may select, and commence and prosecute a suit against me on said note, to confess judgment for all and every part of the interest or principal on said note, in the payment of which I may be delinquent. Witness my hand and seal, this 8th day of June, A. D. 1899. JOHN DREW. [SEAL.] Attest, GEORGE WHITE. Judgment Note. For value received, I promise to pay to John Doe, or order, Four Hundred Twenty-five and 25-100 dollars ($425.26), three months after date; and I here nominate, constitute, and appoint the said John Doe, or any attorney-at-law of this State, my true and lawful attorney, for me and in my name to appear at any court of record of this State, at any time after the above promissory note becomes due, and to waive all processes aud serv- GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 59 ices thereof, and to confess judgment in favor of the holder herein, for the sum that may be due and owing hereon, with interest and costs and waiving all errors. In Witness Whereof, I have hereunto set my hand and seal at Williamsport, Pa., this first day of June, 1899. [SEAL.] RICHARD ROE. Indorsements. In Blank. In Full. General. L. A. Davis. Pay Pay Chas. Evans Chas. Evans. or order. L. A. Davis. L. A. Davis. Qualified. Conditional. BestrlctlTC. Pay Chas. Evans Pay Chas. Evans or order, Pay Chas. Evans or order, without re- course. unless pay- ment forbid- den before maturity. only. L. A. Davis. L. A. Davis. L. A. Davis. Forms of Guaranty. Guaranty of a Note. For value received, I guarantee the due payment of a promissory note, dated October 8, 1883, whereby John Pax son promises to pay George Andrews Eighty Dollars in three months. ST. Louis, Oct. 10, 1883. PETER FABER. General Guaranty. I hereby guarantee payment to any person who shall accept and retain this instrument as a guar- anty, for all goods which he may from time to time supply to Eugene Parsons, not exceeding at any time the sum of Five Hundred Dollars, this to be a continuing guaranty till specially revoked. Notice to be given me within ten days after its ac- ceptance. DARBY CONGER. ST. Louis, Sept. 8, 1883. Extension of Time. In consideration that George Andrews gives to John Paxson additional time to the extent of one month for payment of the indebtedness due him from said John Paxson guaranteed by me, I here- by continue my guaranty for due payment thereof. January 8, 1884. PETER FABER. Gnarantjr of Fidelity. In consideration of the performance of the agree- ments and covenants specified in the within agree- ment by M. M., with my son, A. A., I do hereby bind myself to said M. M. for the true and faithful observation and performance of all the matters and things by said A. A. agreed and covenanted therein, and that he shall well and truly serve said M. M. Witness my hand this day of , A.D. . P. A. Contracts. A contract is "an agreemenl for a suitable consideration to do or not to do a certain thing." The essentials of a contract are : 1 . The Parties; 2. Consideration; 3. Subject-matter; 4. Asssent ; 5. Time. These are essential and the other elements are those that give to the contract its particular character. 1 . The Parties The parties must be com- petent. A contract with a minor is not bind- ing upon him for anything except necessaries, though he may hold the other party to a strict accounting. What constitute necessa- ries would depend upon the age, the rank, and fortune of the minor. 2. Consideration. No contract is valid with- out a sufficient consideration. Consideration may be divided; as (A) VALUABLE; (B) GOOD ; (C) INSUFFICIENT. (A) VALUABLE CONSIDERATION is usually expressed by money or is convertible into money. (B) A GOOD CONSIDERATION is founded on love, affection or gratitude. It will be accepted as consideration for a contract already per- formed, but is not good for contracts to be performed some time in the future. As a gift already made but not holding for one promised. (C) INSUFFICIENT CONSIDERATION may be classed, as (D) GRATUITOUS ; (E) ILLEGAL ; (F) IMPOSSIBLE ; (G) MORAL. GRATUITOUS A contract based on a promise wholly gratuitous is void for want of consid- eration. Examples : Public subscriptions, charities, etc. ILLEGAL. A contract with an illegal consid- eration is void. A contract to commit, con- ceal, or compound a crime is void. Either party may avoid the contract where the con- sideration is illegal. IMPOSSIBLE. If the consideration is im- possible the contract is void. The law compels no one to perform impossibilities. That the consideration was difficult would not be an excuse. MORAL. A moral obligation, alone, is not a sufficient consideration. A person is not legally obligated to pay for services already rendered a relative, even though he promise to do so after the services are performed. Had the person promised before the service was performed, the case would be different. The position of a parent and minor child would be an exception. 3. Subject-matter. All contracts the sub- ject-matter of which is illegal, immoral, or im- politic are void. Contracts in restraint of trade are void even though given for a valuable consideration. A contract not to carry on a lawful business 60 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. anywhere, whether the time be limited or not, is invalid. An agreement in partial restraint of trade, if confined within reasonable bounds, or to certain persons and given for a sufficient consideration, would be valid. A doctor might sell his practice and agree not to practice within a certain number of miles of the place, If given for a valuable consideration, the contract would be valid. The court would decide the reasonableness of the limitation. Contracts in general restraint of marriage are void, because against public policy. A con- tract not to marry a particular person would be valid. A contract not to marry until of a suitable or reasonable age is valid. The con- dition that a widow shall forfeit certain por- tions of her deceased husband's estate if she marry again may be valid, if she accepted it under those conditions. Fraud vitiates any contract if the innocent party so wishes, otherwise the other party may be held. A contract that operates as a fraud on third parties is void. Examples : Fraudu- lent assignments ; fraudulent sales ; perversion of insolvent laws. ' ' Fraud consists in the employment of any kind of cunning, deception, artifice, or con- cealment to cheat, circumvent, or deceive another in a business matter." If both par- ties are equally guilty, neither has usually any redress at law. If one party is more innocent, the reverse is true. The innocent party may many times hold the other if he chooses, or himself refuse to be bound by the contract. The guilty party cannot avoid the contract on account of his own fraud if the contract is already executed. 4. Assent. There can be no contract valid and binding, unless the parties assent to the same thing and in the same sense. There must be a proposition by one party and an ac- ceptance by the other. If the proposition and acceptance are made by mail, the contract is presumed to be com- pleted as soon as the acceptance is mailed, and even a telegram countermanding it before the letter was received need not necessarily be allowed to avoid it. 5. Time. Time enters into the contract as an essential element and is either expressed or implied. Something to be done between two certain days is not performed if done on either of those days. If the day for performance falls upon Sunday, the performing party has the privilege of performing on the next secular day. Statute of Frauds. By the "Statute of Frauds," which has been adopted by most States, certain contracts must be in writing. The following are those adopted by New York and most other States : " Every contract for the leasing of a longer period than one year, or for the sale of any lands, or any interest in lands, shall be void, unless the contract or some note or memorandum thereof, expressing the consideration, be in writing and be sub- scribed by the party by whom the lease or sale is made. " Annual crops resulting from culti- vation, if the price is less than fifty dollars, do not come within the meaning of the statute ; as corn, wheat, oats, potatoes, etc. In the following cases every agreement shall be void unless such agreement, or some note or memorandum thereof, be in writing and subscribed by the party to be charged there- with : 1. Every agreement that, by its terms, is not to be performed within one year from the making thereof. 2 . Every special promise to answer for the debt, default, or 'miscarriage of another. 3. Every agreement, promise, or undertak- ing, made upon consideration of marriage, ex- cept mutual promises to marry. 4. Every contract for the sale of any chattels, goods, or things in action, for the price of fifty dollars or more shall be void unless, " First, A note or memorandum of. such contract be made in writing and subscribed by the parties to be charged thereby ; or, " Second, Unless the buyer shall accept and receive part of such goods or the evidences, 01 some of them, of such things in action ; or, " Third, Unless the buyer shall, at the time, pay some part of the purchase money." In addition to being written, there must bt a consideration in the contracts, as above, either express or implied. ' ' A party to a contract is not bound iintii he yields a full, free, and intelligent assent of its terms." " An offer made may be retracted any time before its acceptance." A competent party making contract with a minor cannot hold the minor, except as before noted, but the minor can sue and recover for the nonperformance of the other party. Contracts required to be in writing by the "Statute of Frauds," hold only the party signing if but one signs. The other has it at his option. Damages. " Perform your contract or pay damages." The law cannot compel the per- formance of a contract ; it only knows a money remedy for nonperformance. In a contract for personal service which cannot well be filled by another, the sickness of the promising party will excuse nonperformance. A court of equity may compel the perform- ance of certain agreements : as the convey- ance of real estate. GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 61 Construction. The following rules are ob- served in the interpretation of contracts : 1. INTENTION. The first care is to give effect to the intention of the parties so far as the intention was mutual and legal. 2. MEANING OF TERMS. The terms of a contract are to be interpreted according to their usual meaning, if that seems to satisfy the in- tention of the parties. Technical words are interpreted according to their use in the pro- fession, or the trade to which they belong. Interpretation. Certain contracts are ex- pouaded according to the usage or custom of trade when needed to explain the meaning of peculiar terms. The law of place would also enter as a factor ; if the custom of the place where the contract was made differed from other places, that would give a different mean- ing to its terms. The interpretation is made upon the whole contract and not upon its parts. The object of the parties is to be gathered from the whole in- strument, and one clause will be interpreted by another. Wherever one portion cannot be reconciled with the obvious intention of the parties, it will be expunged. " Effect will be given to the whole intention." Forms of Contracts. A General Re- lease. Know all men by these presents: That I, A. B., of in consideration of , and other good and valuable considerations to me in hand paid by A. C., of , have remised, released and forever discharged, and by these presents do, for me, my heirs, execu- tors and administrators, remise, release, and forever discharge said A. C., his heirs, execu- tors, and administrators, of and from all and all manner of actions, suits, debts, dues, sums of money, accounts, reckonings, bonds, bills, specialties, covenants, contracts, controversies, agreements, promises, variances, damages, judgments, executions, claims and demands whatsoever, in law or equity, which against the said A. B. I ever had, now have, or which I, my heirs, my executors and administrators hereafter can, shall, or may have, for, upon or by reason of any matter, cause or thing what- soever (or by reason of ), from the be- ginning of the world to the day of the date of these presents. In witness whereof, I have hereunto set my hand and seal, this day of A.D. 189.. (Signed) A. B. [L. s.] Signed and delivered in the presence of D. E. Memorandum of Sale. It is agreed by and between A, B, and B. E., of, etc., that said A. B., in consideration of two hundred bushels of wheat, sold to him this day by the said B. E., free of all charges or expenses, whatsoever, at , on or before , shall and will pay or cause to be paid to the said B. E., or his assigns, upon such delivery, the sum of dollars. And the said B. E., in consideration of the agreement aforesaid of the said A. B., doth promise and agree, on or before the said . . . . , at his own expense, to send in and deliver to the said A. B., or his assigns, the said two hundred bushels of wheat so sold to him as aforesaid, and the said B. E. shall and will warrant the same to be good, clean, and mer- chantable grain. In witness whereof, the said parties have hereunto set their hands the day and year first above written. A. B. In presence of B. E. C. D. Lease of House. I, of , hereby lease to of , for the term of , to commence on the dwelling house (describe it) with its ap- purtenances, for the yearly rent of , to be paid Said , agrees to pay said , said rents at the times above specified and to surrender the premises at the expiration of the term, in as good condition as reasonable use will allow, fire and unavoidable accidents ex- cepted. In witness whereof, the said parties have hereunto set their hands this of , A. D. 189 . . (Signed) (Signed) .. General Form of Contract. Memorandum of an agreement made this day of , in the year 189 . . , between A. B., of , as first party, and B. C., of , as second party, Witnesseth : That the said first party here- by agrees to, etc., (Here insert first party's obligations.) In consideration of the above being faith- fully kept and performed by the said first party, the said second party, etc. (Here insert second party's obligations. } In witness whereof, we have hereunto set our hands and seals the day and year first above written. A. B. In the presence of B. C. C. D. A seal on an instrument is usually conclu- sive proof that it was given for a consideration, 62 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. but the laws of New York permit evidence to be submitted on rebuttal of this presump- tion. Partnerships. " A partnership is aeon- tract between two or more competent persons for joining together their money, goods, labor and skill, or any or all of them, under an understanding that there shall be a communion of profit between them, and for the purpose of carrying on a legal trade, business, or adven- ture. STORY. Partners : Any person of sound mind and able to conduct ordinary business may enter into a partnership. An infant may be a part- ner, but in general he could incur no liability and might disaffirm the contract at any time. Married women can be partners only in such States as have removed their disabilities. Partners are grouped as follows : Ostensible, those whose names are known and appear as partners ; nominal, those who appear to the world as partners, but who have really no interest in the business. Nominal partners are responsible to all credi- tors who gave the firm credit because of their apparent connection with it. Dormant partners are those who do not ap- pear to the world as partners, but are actually interested in the business. They are liable to creditors of the business. Special partners are those who supply a certain amount of capital, and on complying with certain requirements are not liable for debts of the firm above the amount they invest. Relations of Partners : Mutual respect, con- fidence in the honesty, skill, judgment, and good business instinct of each other must be the basis of each partnership. On this ac- count, if the partnership suffers through the neglect of any partner, he is liable to the others. He is liable in damages to the other partners for any breach of partnership con- tract. No partner has any right to engage in any private business that will in any way operate to the detriment of the partnership. The powers of all partners in ordinary cases are equal and neither can exclude the other from a share in the management of the busi- ness or from the possession of partnership property. A partnership can only exist by voluntary contract, and no third party can be introduced into the firm without unanimous consent. Powers of Partners : The acts of one partner bind all the rest. Each partner has power to : transact any and all necessary business for the partnership. The frauds of one partner bind the firm, though the others have no knowledge of his action The partner should transact all business in the name of the firm, otherwise he alone is liable. He has no power to bind the partnership outside the transaction of the regular business of the firm. The fraud of a partner will not bind the partnership if the third party is aware of the fraud or that the partner is exceeding his authority. Each partner is liable to third parties for partner- ship debts to the extent of his whole private property. Subject-matter: By this is meant the busi- ness in which they have engaged. The es- sence of the contract is, that the partners are Jointly concerned in the profits and losses, or at least the profits of some legitimate business. If the contract does not specify the manner of division, they will be supposed to be divided equally. Articles of Co-partnership. If the business is extensive, or the relations to continue for a great length of time, formal articles should be adopted. Any form that clearly sets forth the nature of the business, the investments of each partner, the division of the profits and losses, the powers and duties of each partner, the commencement and termination of the partnership, will answer the purpose. The partnership commences at once if no other time is specified. The laws of New York pro- hibit the use of fictitious names in the firm name. " & Co." cannot there be used unless it represent an actual partner. If no time is expressed for termination, the partnership is presumed to be "at will " only, and may be dissolved at any time. Dissolution. This may take place by acts of the parties, by judicial decree, .by operation of law. A partnership may be dissolved at any time by mutual consent. If the partnership is for any specified time it may be dissolved by one partner refusing to act with the other, or by his assigning his share to a third party. Such assignment does not constitute the third party a partner without the consent of all the others. A partnership for a certain time expires when that period is passed. The partnership could be dissolved by judicial decree at any time for good and suffi- cient reasons, as unfitness or inability of a partner developed after the commencement of the partnership, or should the business be im- practicable or when founded in error. The law would operate to dissolve the part- nership if one partner became insane, idiotic, or in any way incapable of performing his duties. All right, title and interest of any partner may be sold under execution against him. The bankruptcy of one partner would dissolve GOVERNMENT AND LAW. the partnership unless provided for by special agreement. After dissolution no power remains to create new obligations, and a partner could not renew a partnership note, or even indorse one to pay a prior debt of the firm. Unless provided for, to the contrary, each partner has power to collect accounts and to settle up the affairs of the business. A notice of dissolution to all persons dealing with the firm is necessary when the retiring partner wishes to avoid further liability for debts incurred by the partnership. The re- tiring partner is already liable for all prior debts. To avoid responsibility, notice must be given to each person who has had dealings with the partnership. A notice published in the local paper will do for all subsequent credi- tors. Wills. No particular form of a will is re- quired. Any words that clearly convey the idea of the testator are sufficient. Kinds. Unwritten or nuncupative and written. All wills must be written, except those of soldiers and sailors when in actual service, or in some States they maybe allowed in extreme cases when a necessity. The parties to a will are the testator or person making the will, the donee or person benefited by the will, and the executor or person em- powered to see that the provisions of the will are carried out. Testator. The testator must be competent. In New York, males of 18 years of age and females of 1 6 years of age may dispose of per- sonal property. A married woman cannot make a valid will without the consent of her husband, except in those States where their disabilities have been removed. The testator must possess mind and memory enough to fully understand the nature and consequences of his action. Donee. The donees are the persons bene- fiting by the will. They are called devisees when the gift is of real estate, and legatees when the gift is one of personal property. Any person in general, capable of acquiring property by his own exertion, may be a donee. Corporations cannot take by will unless em- powered to do so by their charters. Executor. Any person capable of making a will may be an executor. He must see that the deceased is buried in a suitable manner ; he must file a bond, offer the will for probate, make the return and in- ventory, collect the property, pay the debts and distribute the remainder according to the terms of the will. He must render an account of all, and file with the probate office. Subject-matter. Little form is necessary for disposing of personal property. A will might be accepted for disposing of personal property when parts relating to real estate would not be valid. By common law the testator must be pos- sessed of real estate he devises at the time the will is made. By the laws of Vermont, Massa- chusetts, New York, Pennsylvania and Vir- ginia, he may devise any that he is possessed of at the time of his death, if that was evi- dently his intention. The laws of Maine, Ohio, Illinois, and Connecticut are similar. Execution. The will must be signed by the testator, or by some person acting for him at his request. When he signs or acknowledges the will he must declare it to be his last will. It is best to have three witnesses, though some of the States require but two. The New England States and some of the Southern States require three ; the Middle and Western States in general require two ; Louisiana re- quires four witnesses. The witnesses must write their names and addresses as witnesses. New York prescribes a fine of fifty dollars for their failure to do so. The testator must sign or acknowledge his signature in the presence of these witnesses. A codicil to be valid must be witnessed with the same formalities as the will. A subsequent will revokes the preceding one. All witnesses should be disinterested parties. The following States have particular pro- visions in their statutes concerning wills : NEW YORK. No person having a husband, wife, child, or parent, shall devise more than one half of his or her estate to any charitable, literary, scientific, or kindred institution. Should a testator marry after making a will disposing of the whole of his estate, and there should be born an issue of such marriage, unless provision shall have been made for such issue, by settlement, orunlessthewillprovid.es for such issue, or shows an intention not to provide for such issue, the will shall be re- voked and no other evidence shall be submitted in rebuttal. A child horn after the making of a will, and not provided for l>y will or settlement, shall succeed to such portion of the estate as would have fallen to it had the parent died intestate. A bequest to a witness renders the will void only so far as the witness and his bequest is concerned. He is a competent witness still. COLORADO. A married man cannot by will deprive his wife of more than one half his estate. A married woman cannot deprive her husband of more than one half her estate without his consent in writing. CONNECTICUT. No bequest can be given to 04 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. a subscribing witness, and a subsequent mar- riage or birth of a child revokes the will unless specially provided for therein. DISTRICT OF COLUMBIA. Bequests to any minister, teacher, or religious sect or denomina- tion, unless made at least one month before the testator's death, are void. IOWA. Disposition of homestead or other privileged property to wife and family is void. KANSAS. A married person cannot, without the consent of the husband or wife, dispose of more than one half of his or her property. MAINE. A posthumous child shares the same as though there was no will, unless other- wise provided for. MASSACHUSETTS. A bequest to a subscrib- ing witness is void, or to the husband or wife of such witness, unless there are three other witnesses. NEW HAMPSHIRE. Bequest to subscribing witness void without there are three other sub- scribing witnesses. NEW JERSEY. Same as Maine. PENNSYLVANIA. Bequest to a charity within one month of testator's death is void. Short Form for a Will. I, James Dick- son, of the city of Chicago, in the county of Cook, and State of Illinois, being of sound mind and memory and understanding, do make my last will and testament in manner and form following : First. I give and bequeath to my daughters Mary and Jane two thousand dollars each after they have attained the age of twenty years. Second. I give and bequeath to my wife Susan all my household furniture, and all the rest of my personal property, after paying from the same the legacies already named, to be hers forever : but if there should not be at my decease sufficient personal property to pay the aforesaid legacies, then so much of my real estate shall be sold as will raise sufficient money to pay the same. Third. I also give, devise, and bequeath to my wife Susan all the rest and residue of my real estate as long as she shall remain un- married, and my widow ; but on her decease or marriage, the remainder thereof I give and devise to my said children and their heirs, respectively, to be divided in equal shares be- tween them. I appoint my wife Susan sole executrix of this my last will and testament. In testimony whereof, I hereunto set my hand and seal, and publish and decree this to be my last will and testament, in the presence of the witnesses named below, this eighth day of March, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and ninety-three. JAMES DICKSON. [L. s.] Signed, sealed, declared and published by the said .James Dickson as and for his last will and testament, in the presence of us, who, at his request and in his presence, and in pres- ence of each other, have subscribed our names as witnesses hereto. JOHN SMITH, residing at Chicago in Cook County. PETER JONES, residing at Chicago in Cook County. Another Form of Will. Know all men by these presents : That I, Joseph Atkinson, of Media, in the county of Chester, and State of Pennsylvania, merchant, considering the un- certainty of this life, and being of sound mind and memory, do make, and declare, and pub- lish, this my last will and testament. First. I give and bequeath unto my beloved wife Mary the use, improvement and income of my dwelling house, warehouses, lands, and their appurtenances, situate in Nelson town- ship, Chester county, State of Pennsylvania, to have and to hold the same to her for and during her natural life. Second. I give and bequeath to my son Robert two thousand dollars, to be paid to him by my executor, hereinafter named, within six months after my decease ; and I also give, devise, and bequeath to my said son Robert the reversion or remainder of my dwelling house, warehouses, lands and their appurtenances, situate in Nelson township, Chester county, State of Pennsylvania, and all profit, income, and advantage that may result there from, from and after the decease of my beloved wife Mary. Third. I give, devise, and bequeath to my beloved wife Mary all the residue of my estate, real, personal, or mixed, of which I shall be seized or possessed, or to which I shall be en- titled at the time of my decease ; to have and to hold the same to her and her executors and administrators and assigns forever. Fourth. I do nominate and appoint my brother James Atkinson to be the executor of this, my last will and testament. In testimony whereof, I have to this, my last will and testament, contained on two sheets of paper, and to each sheet thereof, subscribed my name and set my seal ; and to this, the last sheet thereof, I have here subscribed my name and affixed my seal, this eighteenth day of May, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and ninety-three. JAMES ATKINSON. [L. s.] Signed, sealed, declared and published by the said James Atkinson, as and for his last will and testament, in presence of us, who, at his request and in his presence, and in presence of GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 65 each other, have subscribed our names as witnesses hereto. THOMAS MAY, residing at Media, Pa. JOHX NOLAN, " " " " HENRY MANN, " " " " Codicil to a Will. Whereas, I, Richard Roe, of the city of Pittsburg, in the county of Allegheny and State of Pennsylvania, have made my last will and testament, in writing, bearing date the fourteenth day of February, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and ninety-three, in and by which I have given to the Pennsylvania Institution for Deaf Mutes, in the city of Philadelphia, the sum of one thousand dollars. Now, therefore, I do, by this my writing, which I hereby declare to be a codicil to my said last will and testament, and to be taken as a part thereof, order and declare that my will is that only the sum of five hundred dol- lars shall be paid to the said Pennsylvania In- stitution for Deaf Mutes as the full amount bequeathed to the said institution, and that the residue of the said legacy be given to the person who shall be acting as treasurer at the time of my decease of the Baptist Publication Society, located in the city of Philadelphia, to be expended by the society in such manner as the officers of the said society may deem best I for the interests of said society ; and, lastly, it is my desire that this codicil be annexed to and made a part of my last will and testament as aforesaid, to all intents and purposes. In testimony whereof, etc. (as in form of will). MISCELLANEOUS FORMS. Mortgage of Lands by Husband and Wife. This Indenture, made the day of , in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and , between F. F., of the city of New York, merchant, and J. his wife, of the first part, and L. M., of said city, mer- chant, of the second part, witnesseth : That the said parties of the first part, for and in consid- eration of the sum of , lawful money of the United States, to them in hand paid, the receipt whereof is hereby acknowledged, have granted, bargained, sold, aliened, released, conveyed, and confirmed, and by these pres- ents do grant, bargain, sell, alien, release, convey, and confirm, unto the said party of the second part, and to his assigns forever, all that certain lot, etc. ; together with all and singular the hereditaments and appurtenances thereunto belonging, or in any wise appertain- ing, and the reversion and reversions, remainder and remainders, rents, issues, and profits thereof ; and also all the estate, right, title, interest, dower, possession, claim, and demand whatsoever, of the said parties of the first part, of, in, and to the same, and every part thereof, with the appurtenances : To have and to hold the said hereby granted premises, with the ap- purtenances, unto the said party of the second part, his heirs and assigns, to his and their only proper use, benefit, and behoof forever. Provided always, and these presents are upon this condition, that if the said parties of the first part, their heirs, executors, administra- tors, or assigns, shall pay unto the said party of the second part, his executors, administra- tors, or assigns, the sum of , on or before the day of , which will be in the year , with interest, according to the condition of a bond of the said F. F., to the said L. M., bearing even date herewith, then these presents shall become void, and the estate hereby granted shall cease and utteiiy determine. But if default shall be made in the payment of the said sum of money, or the interest, or of any part thereof, at the time hereinbefore specified for the payment thereof, the said par- ties of the first part, in such case, do hereby authorize and fully empower the said party of the second part, his executors, administrators, and assigns, to sell the said hereby granted premises at public auction, and convey the same to the purchaser, in fee simple, agreeably to the act in such case made and provided, and out of the moneys arising from such sale, to retain the principal and interest which shall then be due on the said bond, together with all costs and charges, and pay the overplus (if any) to the said F. F., party of the first part, his heirs, executors, administrators, or assigns. In witness whereof, the parties to these presents have hereunto set their hands and seals, the day and year first above written. Sealed and delivered in the presence of John Smith. FRANCIS FOREST. [L. s.] JULIA FOREST. [L. s.j Articles of Copartnership. Article? of copartnership made and concluded this day of , in the year one thousand eighc hundred and sixty, by and between A. B., bookseller, of the first part, and C. D., book- seller, of the second part, both of , in the county of . Whereas, it is the intention of the said parties to form a copartnership, for the pur- pose of carrying on the retail business of book- sellers and stationers, for which purpose they have agreed on the following terms and articles of agreement, to the faithful performance of which they mutually bind and engage them- selves each to the other, his executors and ad- ministrators . THE CENTURY BOOK OF PACTS. First. The style of the said copartnership shall be " and company"; and it shall continue for the term of years from the above date, except in case of the death of either of the said parties within the said term. Second. The said A. B. and C. D. are the proprietors of the stock, a schedule of which is contained in their stock book, in the propor- tion of two thirds to the said A. B., and of one third to the said C. D. ; and the said parties shall continue to be owners of their joint stock in the same proportions ; and in case of any addition being made to the same by mutual consent, the said A. B. shall ad- vance two thirds, and the said C. D. one third of the cost thereof. Third. All profits which may accrue to the said partnership shall be divided, and all losses happening to the said firm, whether from bad debts, depreciation of goods, or any other cause or accident, and all expenses of the busi- ness, shall be borne by the said parties in the aforesaid proportions of their interest in the said stock. Fourth. The said J. D. shall devote and give all his time and attention to the business of the said firm as a salesman, and generally to the care and superintendence of the store ; and the said A. B. shall devote so much of his time as may be requisite, in advising, over- seeing, and directing the importation of books and other articles necessary to the said busi- ness. Fifth. All the purchases, sales, transactions, and accounts of the said firm shall be kept in regular books, which shall be always open to the inspection of both parties and their legal representatives respectively. An account of stock shall be taken, and an account between the said parties shall be settled, as often as once in every year, and as much oftauer as either partner may" desire and in writing request. Sixth. Neither of the said parties shall sub- cribe any bond, sign or indorse any note of hand, accept, sign, or indorse any draft or bill of exchange, or assume any other liability, verbal or written, either in his own name or in the name of the firm, for the accommoda- tion of any other person or persons whatso- ever, without the consent in writing of the other party ; nor shall either party lend any of the funds of the copartnership without such consent of the other partner. Seventh. No importation, or large purchase of books or other things, shall be made, nor any transaction out of the usual course of the retail business shall be undertaken by either of the partners, without previous consultation with, and the approbation of, the other partner. Eighth. Neither party shall withdraw from the joint stock, at any time, more than his share of the profits of the business then earned, nor shall either party be entitled to interest on his share of the capital ; but if, at the expiration of the year, a balance of profits be found due to either partner, he shall be at liberty to withdraw the said balance, or to leave it in the business, provided the other partner consent thereto, and in that case he shall be allowed interest on the said bal- ance. Ninth. At the expiration of the aforesaid term, or earlier dissolution of this copartner- ship, if the said parties or fheir legal repre- sentatives cannot agree in the division of the stock then on hand, the whole copartnership effects, except the debts due to the firm, shall be sold at public auction, at which both parties shall be at liberty to bid and purchase like other individuals, and the proceeds shall be divided, after payment of the debts of the firm, in the proportions aforesaid. Tenth. For the purpose of securing the per- formance of the foregoing agreements, it is agreed that either party, in case of any viola- tion of them or either of them by the other, shall have the right to dissolve this copartner- ship forthwith, on his becoming informed of such violation. In witness whereof, we have hereunto set our hands and seals, the day and year first above written. Sealed and delivered^] in presence of I A. B. [L. s." JOHN SMITH, C. D. [L. s." FRANK ROBINSON. Agreement to Continue the Partnership ; to be Indorsed on the Back of the Original Articles. Whereas, the partnership evidenced by the within-written articles has this day expired by the limitations contained therein [or, will ex- pire on the r day of next], it is hereby agreed, that the same shall be continued on the same terms, and with all the provisions and restrictions therein contained, for the further term of years from this date [or from the day of next]. In witness, &c. [as in General Form"]. Assignment of a Lease. Know all men by these presents, that I, the within- named A. B., the lessee, for and in considera- tion of the sum of one thousand dollars, to me in hand paid by C. D., of, &c., at and before the sealing and delivery hereof (the receipt whereof I do hereby acknowledge), have granted, assigned, and set over, and by these presents do grant, assign, and set over, unto the said C. D., his executors, administrators, and assigns the within indenture of lease, and GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 67 all that messuage, &c., thereby demised, with the appurtenances ; and also all my estate, right, title, term of years yet to come, claim, aud demand whatsoever, of, in, to, or out of the same. To have and to hold the said mes- suage, &c., unto the said C. D., his executors, administrators, and assigns, for the residue of the term within mentioned, under the yearly rent and covenants within reserved and con- tained, on my part and behalf to be done, kept, and performed. In testimony whereof, I have hereunto set my hand and seal, this tenth day of May, one thousand eight hundred and sixty. Executed and delivered ) . -n r -. in the presence of { Assignment of a Mortgage. Know all men by these presents, that I, A. B., tht mortgagee within named, for and in conside'-a- tion of the sum of sixteen hundred dollar?, to me paid by C. D., of, &c., at and befo'e the sealing and delivery hereof (the receipt where- of is hereby acknowledged), have granted, bargained, sold, assigned, and set over, and by these presents do grant, bargain, sell, assign, and set over, unto the said C. D., his heirs, executors, administrators, and assigns, the within deed of mortgage, and all my right and title to that messuage, &c., therein mentioned and described, together with the original debt for which the said mortgage was given, and all evidence thereof, and all the rights and ap- purtenances thereunto belonging. To have and to hold all and singular the premises here- by granted and assigned, or mentioned, or in- tended so to be, unto the said C. D., his heirs and assigns, forever ; subject, nevertheless, to the right and equity of redemption of the within named E. F., his heirs and assigns (if iny they have), in the same. In testimony, &c. [as in General Form of Assignment], Assignment of a Patent. Whereas, letters patent, bearing date day of , in the year , were granted and issued by the government of the United States, under the seal thereof, to A. B., of the town of , in the county of , in the State of , for [here state the nature of the invention in gen- eral terms, as in the patent], a more particular and full description whereof is annexed to the said letters patent in & schedule ; by which letters patent the full and exclusive right and fiberty of making and using the said invention, and of vending the same to others to be used, was granted to the said A. B., his heirs, ex- ecutors, and administrators, or assigns, for the term of fourteen, years from the said date : Now, know all men by these presents, that I the said A. B., for and in consideration of the sum of dollars, to me in hand paid (the receipt whereof is hereby acknowledged), have granted, assigned, and set over, and by these presents do grant, assign, and set over, unto C. D., of the town of , in the county of , and State of , his executors, administrators, and assigns, forever, the said letters patent, and all my right, title, and interest in and to the said invention, so granted unto me : To have and to hold the said letters patent and invention, with all benefit, profit, and advantage thereof, unto the said C. D., his executors, administrators, and assigns, in as full, ample, and beneficial a manner, to all intents and purposes, as I, the 3 id A. B., by virtue of the said letters patent, jaay or might have or hold the same, if this assignment had not been made, for and dur- ing all the rest and residue of the said term of fourteen years. In testimony, &c. [as in General Form of Assignment]. Assignment of a Policy of Insu- rance. Know all men by these presents, that I, the within named A. B., for and in consideration of the sum of , to me paid by C. D., of, etc. (the receipt whereof is hereby acknowledged), have granted, sold, assigned, transferred, and set over, and by these presents I do absolutely grant, sell, assign, trans- fer, and set over to him, the said C D., all my right, property, interest, claim, and demand in and to the within policy of insurance, which have already arisen, or which may hereafter arise thereon, with full power to use my name so far as may be necessary to enable him fully to avail himself of the interest herein assigned, or hereby intended to be assigned. The con- veyance herein made, and the powers hereby given, are for myself and my legal representa- tives to said C. D. and his legal representa- tives. In testimony, etc. [as in General Form of Assignment]. Assignment of Demand for Wages or Debt. In consideration of $100 to me in hand paid by M. D., of the city of , the receipt whereof is hereby acknowledged, I, L.C., of the same place, have sold, and by these presents do sell, assign, transfer, and set over, unto the said M. D., a certain debt due from N. E., amounting to the sum of $150, for work, labor, and services, by me performed for the said N. E. (or for goods sold and de- livered to the said N. E.), with full power to sue for, collect, and discharge, or sell and assign the same in my name or otherwise, but at his own cost and charges ; and I do hereby covenant that the said sum of $150 is justly due as aforesaid, and that I have not don* and 68 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. will not do any act to hinder or prevent the collection of the same by the said M. D. Witness my hand, this April 10th, 1863. L. C. Assignment of Account Indorsed Thereon. In consideration of $1, value received, I hereby sell and assign to M. D. the within account which is justly due from the within named N. E., and I hereby authorize the said M. D. to collect the same. Troy, April 10th, 1863. L. C. INTEREST LAWS AND STATUTES OF LIMITATIONS. STATES AND TERRITORIES. INTEREST LAWS. STATUTES OF LIMITATIONS. STATES AND TERRITORIES. INTEREST LAWS. STATUTES OF LIMITATIONS. Legal Rate. Rate Allowed by Contract. Judg- ments, Years. Notes, Years. Open Ac- counts, Years. Legal Rate. Rate Allowed by Contract. ments, Years Years. counts, Years. Alabama.. Perct. 8 6 6 7 8 6 6 6 8 7 7 5 6 6 6 6 5 6 6 6 5 6 6 6 10 Percfc 8 10 Any rate. Any rate. Any rate. 10 10 8 12 7 8 8 10 6 8 Any rate. 6 Any rate. 7 10 10 8 Any rate. 20 10 5 5 lOtt 20 12 20 7 6 20 20 M(d) 5 15 10 20 12 20 6* 10 7 10 10(6) 6 5 4 4t 6 611 3 5 6 5 10 10 10 5 15 5 611 3 6 6 6 6 10 8 3 3 3 2 6 6 3 3 2 4 4 5 6 5 3 5 (a) 3 6 3 6 3 5 3 Per ct.' 7 7 6 6 6 6 6 7 6 7 6 6 6 7 7 6 6 8 6 6 7 6 6 8 Per ct 10 Any rate. 6 6 12 6tt 6 12 8 12 10 6 Any rate. 8 12 Any rate. '10 Anv rate. 6 6 12 6 10 12 6 20 20 20 (i) 10 10 o\h) 10 20 10 10(0 10 8" 8 20 6 10 20 (i) 5(k) 5 6 6 6 6 6 3* 6 15 6 611 6 6 6 6 4 6 6 5* 6 10 6 5 4 4 6 6 4 3 6 6 6 6 6 6 2 9 3 3 6 8 Arkansas Arizona N. Hampshire. . New Jersey New Mexico New York California Colorado Connecticut Delaware North Carolina. North Dakota.. Ohio . D. of Columbia Florida Georgia Idaho.. Illinois. . . .~r.. ... Pennsylvania... Rhode Island... South Carolina. South Dakota . Indiana Iowa Kansas Kentucky Louisiana Texas . . . Maine ! Utah Maryland Massachusetts. . Michigan Minnesota i Virginia Washington West Virginia.. Wisconsin Mississippi Missouri Montana Under seal, 10 years, t If made in State; if outside, 2 years, t No law and no decision regarding judg-' ments. Unless a different rate is expressly stipulated. || Under seal, 20 years. IT Store accounts; other accounts, 3 years, ft New York has by a recent law legalized any rate of interest on call loans of $5,000 or up- ward, on collateral security, Jt Becomes dormant, but may be revived. Six years from last item, (a) Accounts between merchants, 2 years. (l>) In courts not of record, 5 years, (d) Twenty years in Courts of Record ; in Jus- tice's Court, 10 years, (e) Negotiable notes, 6 years ; non-negotiable, 17 years. (/) Ceases to be a lien after that period, (h) On foreign judgments, 1 year, (i) Is a lien on real estate for only 10 years, (j) Any rate, but only 6 per cent, can be collected at law. (k) And indefinitely by having execution issue every 5 years. (I) Ten years foreign, 20 years domestic. Inns and Innkeepers. An Inn is a public house for the lodging and entertain- ment of travelers for compensation, and the person who conducts such house is called an innkeeper. To enable him to obtain his com- pensation the law invests an innkeeper with peculiar privileges, giving him a lien upon the personal property brought into the inn by the guest, and on the other hand holds him to a strict degree of responsibility to the guest if the goods are lost or stolen. The essential character of an inn is, that it is open for all who may desire to visit it ; hence, a mere private boarding house, or lodg- ing house, cannot, in any proper sense, be re- garded as an inn ; nor will a coffeehouse or restaurant -come within the term. A person who entertains travelers occasionally, although he may receive compensation, is not an inn- keeper, nor liable as such, provided he does not hold himself out in that character. An Innkeeper is bound to receive all trav- elers and wayfaring persons who may apply to him, and to provide entertainment for them, if he can accommodate them, unless they are drunk, or disorderly, or afflicted with conta- gious diseases. If a person be disorderly he j may not only refuse to receive him, but even after he has received him may eject him from ; the house. He is further bound to exercise a high degree of care over the person and property of his guests, and is held to a strict responsibility for all loss or damage which may occur through his negligence. This responsibility extends not only to his own acts, and the acts of his servants, but also to the acts of his other guests. The liability of an innkeeper com- mences from the time the goods are brought into the inn or delivered to any of the inn- keeper's servants ; and a delivery into the per- sonal custody of the innkeeper is not necessary GOVERNMENT AND LAW. in order to make him responsible. He is not liable for what are termed the acts of God, or the public enemy ; nor for property destroyed without his negligence by accidental fire ; and, generally, the innkeeper will be exonerated if the negligence of the guest occasion the loss in such a way that the loss would not have hap- pened if the guest had used the ordinary care that a prudent man may be reasonably ex- pected to have taken under the circumstances. The strict liability of an innkeeper has been much modified by statute, particularly in re- gard to money and valuables, and where the innkeeper provides, in the office or some other convenient place in the hotel, an iron safe for the keeping of money, jewels, etc., and notifies his guests of that fact, and the guest neglects to avail himself of the opportunity thus afforded, the innkeeper will not be liable for the losses sustained by the guest by theft or otherwise. A Guest, in the restricted and legal sense, is the only person who is entitled to the privilege of protection, and to entitle him to this he must have the character of a traveler, a mere so- journer or temporary lodger, in distinction from one who engages for a fixed period, and at a certain agreed rate ; but if a party be in fact a wayfarer, and his visit is only transient, it mat- ters not how long he remains, provided he re- tains this character. Thus, regular boarders by the week or month are not guests, nor are they entitled to the privileges of guests, and on the other hand, in the absence of an en- acted statute, the landlord is not, as to them, an innkeeper, and as such entitled to a lien on their effects for his compensation. The Law of the Road. General Princi- ples To prevent collisions, Bad to secure the safety and convenience of travelers meeting and passing each other upon the highway, a code of rules has been adopted which consti- tutes what is called the law of the road. These rules, originally established by custom, have, in many instances, been re-enacted and de- clared by statute, and are of general and uniform observance in all parts of the United States. In general, they apply to private ways, as well as public roads, and, indeed, extend to all places appropriated, either by law or in fact, for the purposes of travel. The fundamental rule, applicable alike to all who use a traveled way, is, that every per- son must exercise reasonable care, adapted to the place and circumstances, to prevent col- lision and avoid accidents, and to this all other rules are subsidiary. No one will be entitled to redress for an injury sustained on the highway, where his own negligence con- tributed to such injury, nor will the fact that a fellow-traveler fails to observe the law in the use of the road absolve another who is in the right from the duty of exercising ordinary care to avoid injury to himself or to prevent injury to the party who is in the wrong. At the same time, a person lawfully using a public highway has a right to assume that a fellow- traveler will observe the law and exercise ordinary care and prudence, and to govern his own conduct in determining his use of the road accordingly. This assumption he may rely on, not to justify carelessness on his own part, but to warrant him in pursuing his business in a convenient manner. Vehicles. It is a primary rule that vehicles meeting on a highway must bear or keep to the right. This, however, applies only to pass- ing vehicles, for a person having before him the entire road free from carriages or other ob- structions, and having no notice of any carriage behind him, is at liberty to travel upon any part of the way as suits his convenience or pleasure, and no blame can be imputed to him. But while a traveler may well occupy any part of the road if no other is using any portion of it, he must, upon all occasions of the meeting of another, reasonably turn to the right ; and in all cases of a crowded condition of a thoroughfare must keep to the right of the center or traveled part of the way. A driver may, indeed, pass on the left side of the road, or across it, for the purpose of stopping at a house, a store, or other object on that side ; but he must not interfere or obstruct another lawfully passing on that side ; and if he does, he acts at his peril, and must answer for the consequences of his violation of duty. In such case he must pass before or wait until the person on that side of the way has passed on. When two drivers are moving in the same direction, the one in advance is entitled to the road, provided he does not obstruct it, and is not bound to turn out for the other if there is room for the latter to pass on either side ; if, however, there is not sufficient room to pass, the foremost traveler should yield an equal share of the road, on request made, if that is practicable. If it is not practicable, then they must defer passing until they reach more favorable grounds. If the leading traveler then refuses to comply with the request to permit the other to pass him, he will be answerable for such refusal. Ordinarily, when a driver attempts to pass another on a public road, he does so at his peril, and will be held responsible for all damages which he causes to the one whom he attempts to pass, and whose right to the proper use of the road is as great as his, unless the latter is guilty ot such reck- lessness, or even gross carelessness, as would bring disaster upon himself. . THE CENTUKY BOOK OF FACTS. The rule requiring persons meeting upon the highway to keep to the right is not im- perative, however, and where a driver cannot safely turn to the right on meeting another vehicle, the law will absolve him from negli- gence in not attempting impossibilities ; but where it is not practicable to pass to the right, either of the travelers should stop a reasonable time until the other passes ; nor will the rule apply in the winter season, when the depth of snow renders it difficult or impossible to ascer- tain where the center of the road is. In such cases the center of the road is the beaten or traveled track, without reference to the worked part of the road. Again, the rule does not apply when one vehicle is passing along one street and another is passing into said street from a cross street. A traveler is bound to keep his harness and carriage in good condition, and is liable for any damage that may result from a failure to do so ; he must not drive at an immoderate rate of speed, and must yield the road to a heavier or loaded vehicle. Equestrians are not governed by the same stringent rules that apply to drivers of vehicles, and usually all that is required of them is to exercise prudent care under the existing cir- cumstances. They need not turn out in any particular direction on meeting another horse- man or a vehicle, but in crowded thorough- fares must keep to the proper side in passing, and must yield the traveled part of the road to a wagon. Pedestrians have a right to use the carriage- way as well as the sidewalk, and drivers must exercise reasonable care to avoid injuring them, but a foot passenger in crossing the street of a city has no prior right of way over a passing vehicle ; both are bound to act with prudence to avoid an accident, and it is as much the duty of the pedestrian to look out for passing vehicles as it is for the driver to. see that he does not run over any one ; nor does the rule requiring vehicles to keep to the right apply to carriages and foot passengers, for, as regards a foot passenger, a carriage may go on either side. Landlord and Tenant. The relation of landlord and tenant exists by virtue of a con- tract for the use or occupation of lands or ten- ements, either for a definite period, for life, or at will. It is usually created by express con- one hand and an occupation of it by permis- sion on the other? In every such case it will be presumed that the occupant intends to com- pensate the owner for such use. While the circumstances, the most obvious acknowledg- ment is the payment of rent. If a tenant under an express contract hold over after the termi- nation of his term, the landlord may consider him as a tenant, and, indeed, is so understood, unless he takes some steps to eject him. If the landlord receives rent from him, or by any other act admits the tenancy, a new leasing begins, and can only be terminated by a proper notice to quit. The rights and obligations of the parties are usually considered as having commenced from the date of the lease, if there be one, and no other time has been designated as the com- mencement of the tenancy, or, if there be no date from the delivery of the papers, and if there be no writings, from the time the tenant entered into possession. The Landlord is bound to protect the posses- sion of his tenant, and to defend him against every one asserting a paramount right. Nor can the landlord do any act himself calculated to disturb the enjoyment of the tenant. He must, unless otherwise agreed, pay all taxes and assessments on the property, and all other charges of his own creation ; and if the tenant, in order to protect himself in the enjoyment of the land, is compelled to make a payment which should have been made by the landlord, he may call upon his landlord to reimburse him, or deduct the amount from the rent. The landlord has no right of possession dur- ing the continuance of the lease, nor indeed any substantial rights in the property further than such as may be necessary to protect his reversionary interests. He may go upon the premises peaceably and during reasonable hours, for the purpose of viewing same and ascertaining whether waste or injury has been committed, and may make such repairs as are necessary to prevent waste ; but he is under no obligation to make any repairs, nor does he guarantee that the premises are reasonably fit for the purposes for which they were taken. Nor can the tenant make any repairs at the expense of the landlord in the absence of a special agreement. The Tenant is entitled to all the rights inci- dent to possession, and to the use of all the privileges appendant to the land, and, on the other hand, is personally liable for any mis- use or obstruction he may erect. He must use the premises in such a manner that no tract, but its existence will be implied by law j substantial injury shall be done them, and whenever there is an ownership of land on the that they may revert to the landlord at the end of the term unimpaired by any negligent or willful conduct on his part. He must keep the premises in fair repair at his own expense, but is not bound to rebuild structures which relation may be inferred from a variety of ] have accidentally become ruinous during his GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 71 occupation ; nor is he answerable for incidental wear and tear, nor accidental fire, or flood. He must furtner punctually pay the rent re- served, or if none have been specifically reserved, then such reasonable compensation as the premises are fairly worth. In the ab- sence of special agreement he must pay only for the time he has had the beneficial enjoy- ment, but if he has agreed to pay for an entire term, as a rule nothing short of an eviction will excuse him from such payment. If he is evicted by a third person, or if the landlord annoys him by the erection of a nuisance, or renders the premises untenantable, or makes his occupation so uncomfortable as to justify his removal, he will be discharged from the payment of rent. The rights and liabilities of the relation are not confined to the immediate parties, but at- tach to all persons to whom the estate is transferred, or who may succeed to the posses- sion of the premises. A landlord may not violate his tenant's rights by a sale of the property, nor can the tenant avoid his responsi- bility by assigning his term. The purchaser of the property becomes, in one case, the land- lord, with all his rights and remedies, while in the other the assignee of the tenant assumes all the responsibilities of the latter, but the original lessee is not thereby discharged from his obligations. The Tenancy may be terminated in a variety of ways. If for a definite time, or conditioned on the happening of a certain event, it expires by its own limitation, and usually, when de- pending upon the express conditions of a lease, no notice to quit is necessary. If from year to year, or at will, a notice is always necessary. This must be in writing, and ex- plicitly require the tenant to surrender up the premises. It must be served upon the tenant and afford the statutory notice in regard to time. A breach of any of the covenants of the lease will forfeit the tenant's rights, and when a tenancy has been terminated, by what- ever cause, the landlord's right to re-enter be- comes absolute. EXEMPTION LAWS. Alabama. A homestead not exceeding: 160 acres of land, or a lot in a city, town or village, with a dwelling house thereon, not exceeding the value of $2,000. Per- sonal property to the value of $1,000. May be selected by the debtor. Waiver of exemption is not valid unless joined in by the wife. Arkansas. For single person, personal property in addition to wearing apparel $200. For head of a family, personal property to the value of $500. For a head of a family outside of any town or city, 160 acres of land not to exceed $2,500 in value or not less than 80 acres without regard to value. In city or town, not exceeding one acre of the value of $2,500, or not less than one fourth of an acre without regard to value. Arizona. The homestead of a married person or head of a family in the country, not exceeding 160 acres. with improvements, not to exceed $2,500. Personal prop- erty of married person, $500 besides wearing apparel and of a person unmarried, $200 and wearing apparel. California. The homestead on which debtor resides to the value of $5,003, if he is the head of a family if not, to the value of $1,000. Personal property exempt includes chairs, tables, desks and books, $200 ; necessary household and kitchen furniture, sewing machines, stoves, beds, etc.; provisions for family for three months, three cows, four hogs, two horses, oxen or mules ; seed, grain, and vegetables for sowing, not above $200 in value ; tools and implements of husbandry of the debtor, not exceeding the value of $1,000 ; the neces- sary instruments of a surgeon, physician, surveyor, or dentist together with their professional library and necessary office furniture; the professional library of attorneys, judges, ministers of the gospel, editors, school teachers and music teachers and their necessary office furniture; miner's cabin, not exceeding $500 of value, with all tools and gear necessary for his business, not exceeding 500. Two horses or mules with harness, and the miner's claim worked by him, and not exceed- ing $1,000 in value, are also exempt. Colorado. A homestead consisting of house and lot in town or city, or a farm of any number of acres, in value not exceeding $2,000, is exempt if occupied by a householder and head of a family, provided it has been entered on record as a homestead and so specified in the title. Personal property, including wearing apparel of the debtor and his family, pictures, schoolbooks, library, etc., and household furniture, not exceeding $100; provisions for six months, tools, implements or stock in trade, $200 ; one cow and calf, ten sheep and necessary food for six months ; working animals up to $200 ; the library and implements of a professional man up to $300. The head of ,'a family may select personal property to the value of $1,000 ; others, to the value of $300. Connecticut. There is no homestead exemption. Personal property is exempt as follows: Libraries not above $500 in value ; a cow worth 150 ; ten sheep, not over $50 in value ; two hogs, and 200 pounds of pork. Implements of trade, the horse, harness and buggy of a practicing physician, and the boat, not exceeding 200 in value, of a person engaged in fishing, and used for that purpose, are also exempt. North and South Dakota. A homestead consisting of not more than 160 acres, with buildings and appurte- nances thereon, and personal property denned by statute, aggregating in value not to exceed $1.500, is exempted to a householder. A firm can claim but one exemption, not a several exemption for each partner. Tools and implements of a mechanic to the value of $200, books and instruments of a professional man to the value of $600, are also exempt from seizure. Delaware. Family pictures, family Bible, and li- brary ; lot in burial ground and pew in church ; family wearing apparel ana tools and implements necessary to carry on business, the whole not exceeding $75 in value, are exempt from attachment. In addition to the above the head of a family may claim $200 of personal prop- erty. In Newcastle county wages of laborers are also exempt. No homestead law. District of Columbia. Family wearing apparel; household furniture to the amount of $300 ; provisions and fuel for three months; tools or instruments neces- sary to carry on any trade, to the value of 200 ; library and implements of a professional man or artist not above $MOO; family pictures and library to the value of $400, and a farmer's team and other utensils to the value of 100, are exempt from attachment or sale on exe- cution, except for servants' or laborers' wages. There is 110 homestead exemption. Florida. A homestead of 160 acres of land, together with improvements, in 'the country, or a residence and one-half acre of ground in a village or city, is exempted to the head of a family. Also personal property to the value of $1,000. No property is exempt from sale for taxes or for obligations contracted for its purchase or for the erection of improvements thereon. The wages of every laborer who is the head of a family are also exempt under anv process of law. Georgia. Each head of a family, or guardian, or trustee of a family of minor children, and every aged or infirm person, or'person having the care and support of dependent females of any age, who is not the head of a family, is entitled to realty or personalty, or both, to the value in the aggregate or 81,600. Said property shall be exempt from levy and sale by virtue of any process whatever, under the laws of this'State, except for taxes, 72 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. purchase-money, of the homestead, labor done thereon, or material furnished therefor, or for the removal of incumbrances. Idaho. A homestead worth $5,000 is exempted to a householder who is head of a family ; either husband or wife may select the homestead. Personal property is also exempted to the value of $800. Exemption does not extend to purchase-money or to mortgages on the property. Illinois. A homestead valued at $1,000 is exempted to every householder who has a family ; such exemption not covering liabilities for purchase-money or improve- ment of the homestead. After the death of a house- holder his family are entitled to the exemption so long as the survivor cccuj ies it, or until the youngest child is twenty-one years of age. There are also exempted to every person wearing apparel, schoolbooks, family pic- tures and family Bible, and $100 worth of other prop- erty selected by the debtor. In addition to this, $300 worth may be selected by the debtor if a head of a fam- ily ; but such selection cannot be made from any money or wages due ; no exemption is allowed when the debt is for the wages of laborer or servant ; 50 of wages is ex- empt to every head of a family if residing with the same. Indiana. There is no homestead exemption ; any res- ident householder has exempted real or personal prop- erty, or both, to the amount of feGOO on any debt founded on contract since May 31, 1879. On debts founded on contracts made previous to that date, exemption is $300. Exemption does not, in any event, affeqt liens for labor, purchase-money or taxes. Iowa. A homestead in country of 40 acres, or in town or city of one-half acre, with improvements and buildings to the aggregate value of $500, is exempted to the head of every family. If less than $500 in value, it may be increased to that amount. It is not exempted from execution for the purchase-money thereof, or for debts contracted prior to its acquirement. Upon the death of either husband or wife the homestead passes to the survivor. Professional men are allowed their libraries, instruments, etc., and a team and wagon; printers retain their presses and type to the value of $1,200. The head of a family may claim wearing ap- parel, tools, a gun, his library and furniture to the ex- tent of $200 in value. The personal earnings of the debtor for ninety days preceding the execution, certain stock, with food for them for six months, a pew in church and a lot in a burying ground are also exempt. Non-residents and unmarried persons, not being heads of families, can only claim their ordinary wearing apparel and trunk necessary to carry the same to the value of 875. Kansas. An independent fortune is exempted in this State. A homesteadof ICO acres of farming land, or of one acre within an incorporated town or city, with buildings and improvements thereon, with no limit to value. The head of every family is allowed personal property as follows: The family library, schoolbooks and family Bible; family pictures and musical instru- ments in use; pew in church and lot in burial ground: all wearing apparel of the familv, beds, bedsteads and bedding, one cooking stove and appendages, and all other cooking utensils, and all other stoves and append- ages necessary for the use of the debtor and his fam- ily ; one sewing machine, spinning wheel and all other implements ofindustry, and all other household furni- ture not herein enumerated, not exceeding $500 in value ; two cows, ten hogs, one yoke of oxen and one horse or mule, or in lieu of one yoke of oxen and one horse or mule, a span of mules or horses; twenty sheep and their wool; food for the support of the stock for one year ; one wagon, two plows, drag and other farm- ing utensils not exceeding in value $300; grain, meat, vegetables, groceries, fuel, etc., for the family for _one year : the tools and implements of any mechanic, miner or other workman, kept for the purpose of carrying on his business, together with stock in trade not exceed- ing $400 in value; library, instruments and office furni- ture of any professional'man. Residents, not the head of a family, have tools, implements and stock in trade up to $400. No personal property is exempt for the wages of any clerk, mechanic, laborer, or servant. A lien on the homestead may be created by husband and wife joining in the mortgage. Kentucky. To bona-fide housekeepers with a family are exempted from execution and attachment for debt : A homestead to the value of $1,000 ; two work beasts, or one work beast and one voke of oxen ; two cows and calves; one wagon or cart; two plows and gear; five head of sheep ; provisions for family and provender for stock for one year ; the tools and stock of a mechanic who is a housekeeper and has a family, not exceeding $200 in value ; libraries or instrument's of professional men, which may vary in value from one to seven hundred dollars ; the' wages of a laboring man to the amount of fifty dollars, except for house rent and necessaries. Louisiana. A homestead of 160 acres of land, with buildings and improvements thereon, is exempted to the head of a family, if owned and occupied as a resi- dence, together with personal property, the whole not to exceed $2,000 ; all wearing apparel, implements, stock, etc., with provisions and supplies necessary for the plantation for one year. If the wife own separate property in her own right to the value of $2,000 there is no exemption. Maine. Homestead $W)0, or any lot purchased from State as a homestead ; $50 furniture ; $150 library ; $300 team; 50 poultry; $100 sewing machine; $10 lumber; cow and heifer, ten sheep and lambs, plow, wagon, mowing machine, a two-ton boat, the flax, raw and manufactured, from one acre of ground, wearing apparel, provisions, fuel, seed, grain, provender for stock, and tools. After the debtor's death his family has the benefit of the exemptions. Maryland. Besides wearing apparel, books, and tools used for earning a living, there is exempt other property to the value of $100. No homestead. .Massachusetts. Homestead, $800 (must be recorded as such) ; furniture, $300 ; sewing machine, $100 : library, 50: tools and implements, $100; stock in trade, $100; boats and outfit, $100; one cow; one hog and six sheep, and wages under $20. Michigan. Forty acres of land, with improvements, in the country, or house and lot worth $1,500 in town; furniture, $250; library, $150 ; two cows, five hogs, ten sheep, team, tools, provisions, and fuel. No exemptions from execution for purchase money. Minnesota. Eighty acres with improvements, in country, or lot with dwelling on it, in town. Household property, $500 ; wagon, plows and farming implements, COO; three cows, ten hogs, twenty sheep, yoke of cattle and a horse, or, instead, a pair'of horses; one year's provisions, fuel, feed for stock and seed grain. A miner's or mechanic's tools and stock in trade to $400 ; the library and instruments of a professional man. Wages under $50 of a laboring man, earned within the last ninety days, and where the debtor is publisher of a newspaper, his complete outfit to value $2,000, and stock $400. Mississippi. To householding head of family, 160 acres of landand improvements in country, or house and lot in town, either to value of $2,000. Tools and farm- ing implements necessary for two male laborers ; library and instruments of professional man to value of $250*; two horses or mules or a yoke of oxen, two cows and calves, five hogs, five sheep; wagon, $100; personal propertv, $250 ; one sewing machine ; provisions and provender ; wages of a laborer, $100. Missouri. To head of family one hundred and sixty acres in the country to the value of $1,500, a lot (thirty rods) in small town" to same value, or lot (eighteen rods') in city having 40,fOO inhabitants, to value of $3,000. Personal property, $300. One month's wages. Montana. Ho'use and a quarter acre lot in town, or a farm of eighty acres, neither to exceed $2,500 in value. Personal property to the value of $1,400. No exemptions are good a gainst a mortgage, a mechanics' lien or a claim for purchase-money. Nebraska. Dwelling and ICO acres of land in country, or two adjoining lots in town, value $2,000. If he has no real property, the debtor may retain personal property to value $500. Clothing, furniture, provisions, animals, tools, and other things as per statute, and sixty days' wages of laborer. Exemptions are not good against mechanics' lien, mortgage, or purchase-money. Nevada. Homestead, $5,000; tools, implements, and other personal property, as per statute; miner's cabin, $500. New Hampshire. Homestead, $500 ; $100 furniture ; $100 tools ; $200 books ; $500 fuel and provisions ; sewing machine, cook stove, bedding and clothing, one hog, six sheep, one yoke of oxen or one horse, and four tons of hay. New Jersey. Homestead $1,500, and $200 household property. New Mexico. Homestead, $100; $10 furniture; $20 tools ; $25 provisions. New York. Homestead, $1,000; f250 furniture, GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 73 tools, team and other personal property; sixty days' wages. North Carolina. A homestead to the value of $1,000, and personal property worth $500. No exemption is good against taxes, purchase-money, or mechanics' Gens. Ohio. Homestead is exempt to the value of fl,000; if appraised to a higher value a partition is made, or an appropriate rental is charged. Clothing and necessary furniture are exempted ; tools and farming implements to value $100 ; $50 worth of provisions and three months' wages ; one horse or yoke of cattle, harness and wagon ; one cow, two hogs, six sheep, and sixty days' provender, or, instead, $G5 in household property. A professional man's books, $100. When resident debtor, being head of a family, has no homestead, he may retain personal property to the value of $500, besides other exempted property. Oklahoma. Exemption to head of a famjly oiitside of city or town not to exceed 1(50 acres : and in a city or town not more than one acre ; in addition thereto, cer- tain personal effects and equipment appertaining to the various vocations. These exemptions do not apply to corporations for profit, to a non-resident, or a debtor who is in the act of removing his family from the terri- tory, or who has absconded, taking with him his family. To a single person : Wearing apparel, tools, appara- tus and books belongi: f to a trade or profession; one horse, saddle and bridle or one yoke of oxen; current wages for personal service. In certain classes of debts all exemptions are invalid. Oregon. Musical instruments, books and pictures, 75; household effects, $300; clothing, $100, and cloth- ing to each member of the family, $50 ; team, tools, in- struments, library or whatever is needed in the trade or profession of debtor, $400 ; ten sheep, two cows, five hogs, three months' provisions and six months' prov- ender. No exemption is good against a claim for pur- chase-money. No homestead. Pennsylvania. Clothing, books, sewing machine and $300 worth of other property. Right may be waived. No homestead. Rhode Island. Furniture and supplies for family, $300; tools, $-200; library, $300; wages, $10; clothing; one cow and one hog ; debts secured by negotiable paper. No homestead. South Carolina. Homestead, $1,000 ; this right can- not be waived. Furniture, wagons, live stock and tools, to value of $500. Homestead exemption cannot hold against an execution for the purchase-money, a lien for improvements or for taxes. Any person not the head of a family may have one third of his annual earnings ex- empted. Tennessee. Only the head of a family can have the benefit of exemptions ; $l,ooo homestead and a variety of personal property designated by statute, prominent items being horses, mules, oxen, cows, calves, wagon, tools, lumber, grain, provisions, beds, bedding, furni- ture, and $30 wages. Texas. Two hundred acres of land with improve- ments in the country, or city property to value at time of being designated as ho'mestead (regardless of the value of after improvements) of $5,000. Furniture, farming implements, tools, books, five cows and calves, two yoke of cattle, two horses and wagon, a carriage or buggy, twenty hogs, twenty sheep, provision, proven- der and many other articles. The exemption of the homestead is not good against taxes, purchase-money or mechanics' lien ; but in this last case the contract must have been signed by both husband and wife. On the death of a husband, the widow and children may have one year's support out of the estate, and if the property be not in such shape as to be exempted by law, enough may be sold to raise an allowance for nomestead to value of $5,000 and other property $500. Any person not the head of fi family may have exempted clothing, books, horse, bridle and saddle. Utah. Homestead, $1,000 ; personal property to head of the family, $700, and to each member $250. Not good against purchase-money, mechanics' lien or a mortgage. Vermont. Homestead, $50f>; growing crop, clothing, furniture, sewing machine, tools, one cow, ten sheep, one hoe, three hives of bees, poultry, one yoke of oxen or two norses, fuel, provisions and provender; also the instruments and library of a professional man, $200. Virginia. The head cf a frmily who is a householder has a homestead exemption to the value of $2,0, which may be in real or personal property, both or either. Also clothing, sewing machine. furniture and animals; books, $100 ; tools, $100. The value of the exemptions outside of the homestead is varied according to the number in family, and ranges from $50 to $500. West Virginia. Homestead, $1,000, where the property has been granted or devised for the purpose, to tne head of a family, or where he has devoted such property to that purpose by having it so recorded. Also personal property to value of $200. Tools to mechanic, $50. "Washington. Homestead (must be actually occu- pied) to the value of $1,000; clothing, books, bedding and household goods, to value of $1,500; one small boat to value of $50; two cows, five hogs, bees, poultry, fuel, and provisions. To a farmer, two horses, or two yoke of oxen, and farming implements to value of $200. To professional man, library worth $500, office furniture and fuel. To lighterma'n, his boats, to value of $250. To drayman, his team. "Wisconsin. Forty acres in the country, or one quarter of a nacre in town, with the dwelling thereon. Clothing, household furniture, $200; books, two cows, ten hogs, ten sheep, one horse and yoke of cattle, or a pair of horses and mules, farming tools, one year's pro- visions and provender. To a mechanic, tools, $200 ; pro- fessional man, his library, $200; a publisher or printer, his outfit for $1,500. To any head of a family, sixty days' earnings. No exemption good against a me- chanic's lien or claim for purchase-money. Wyoming. House and lot in town or one hundred and sixty acres of land in the country, either to value of $1,500. Tools, team and stock in trade of mechanic, miner, or other person, $300. Benefit of exemption can only be claimed by a bona fide resident householder. Ontario. The exemptions from executionare, speak- ing generally : the beds and bedding in ordinary use by the debtor and his family ; necessary wearing apparel and a list of domestic utensils necessarily incident to living, not to exceed in value the sum of $150 ; necessary provender for 30 days not to exceed in value the sum of $40 ; a cow, six sheep, four hogs, and twelve hens, in all not to exceed the value of $75; tools and implements ordinarily used in the debtor's occupation to the value of $100 or the debtor may elect to receive the proceeds of the sale of such tools up to $100. Under the Free Grants and Homestead Act, there is an exemption from liability for any debt incurred be- fore the issue of the patent and for twenty years from date of location, except where the land itself is mort- gaged or pledged or for the payment of taxes. Quebec. The exemptions from execution are : teds, bedding and, bedsteads in ordinary use by debtor and his family ; necessary wearing apparel ; one stove and pipes and a number of smaller articles; all necessary fuel, meat, vegetables, fish, flour not more than sufficient for ordinary consumption of debtor and family for thirty days and not exceeding in value $40; one cow, four sheep, two hogs and food therefor for thirty days ; tools and implements or chattels ordinarily used in debtor's occupation. No real estate. New Brunswick. Wearing apparel ; bedding, kitchen utensils ; tools of trade to the value of $100 are exempted. Nova Scotia. Necessary wearing apparel ; beds, bed- ding and bedsteads of debtor and his family; household utensils not exceeding in value 20; food enough for thirty days' consumption and not ex- ceeding in value $40 ; one cow, two sheep, and hay and food therefor for thirty days; tools or chattels ordi- narily used in the debtor's occupation to the value of $30. No real estate. Prince Edward Island. Necessary wearing apparel and bedding for the debtor and his family ; tools and instruments of his trade or calling ; $16.20 in money and his last cow are exempted from execution out of Su- preme Court. Wearing apparel and bedding of debtor and his family; the tools and implements of his trade; one cook stove and one cow, in all amounting in value to $50, are exempt from process out of county court. Manitoba. Household goods to t'.ie value of f500; tools, agricultural implements and necessaries used by the debtor in his trade, occupation or profession, to the value of $500; homestead to the extent of ICO acres being the residence of the debtor, the buildings and improve- ments thereon ; or the town residence of the debtor to the value of $1.500, provided that no real or personal property shall be exempt from seizure or sale under execution for the purchase price of the same. A debtor cannot waive his exemption from seizure and sale under execution. Northwest Territories. Necessary clothing of 74 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. the defendant and his family ; furniture and household furnishings belonging to defendant and his family to the value of $500 ; also certain personalty exclusive of the foregoing and homestead not exceeding 110 acres; house and buildings occupied by the defendant, also the lot or lots on which same is situate according to the registered plan, to the extent of $1,500; defendant is entitled to his choice from a greater number of articles from the same class. British Columbia. Personal property of debtor to the value of 500 is exempt from execution. No goods or personalty, however, is exempt from seizure in respect to debts contracted in regard to the identical goods. The stock in trade of a merchant is not exempt from seizure although under 600 and they can be sold to satisfy a judgment. Registered homesteads are exempt from execution to the value of $2,500. MARRIAGE AND DIVORCE LAWS. Marriage Licenses. Required in all the States and Territories except New Mexico, New Jersey, New York, North Dakota, Oklahoma, and South Carolina. Marriage, Prohibition of. Marriages between whites and persons of negro descent are pro- hibited and punishable in Alabama, Arizona, Arkansas, California, Colorado, Delaware, Dis- trict of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Idaho, In- diana, Kentucky, Maryland, Mississippi, Mis- souri, Nebraska, Nevada, North Carolina, Oklahoma, Oregon, South Carolina, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Virginia, W. Virginia, Michigan. Marriages between whites and Indians are void in Arizona, Nevada, North Carolina. Or- egon, and South Carolina. Marriages between whites and Chinese are void in Arizona, Nevada, Oregon, and Utah. The marriage of first cousins is forbidden in Arizona, Arkansas, Illinois, Indiana, Kansas, Missouri, Montana, Nevada, New Hampshire, North Dakota, Ohio, Oklahoma, Oregon, South Dakota, Washington, and Wyoming, and in some of them is declared incestuous and void, and marriage with step-relatives is for- bidden in all the States, except California, Colorado, Florida, Georgia, Idaho, Louisiana, Minnesota, Nebraska, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Oregon, Utah, and Wis- consin. Marriage, Age to Contract, Without Consent of Parents. In all the States which have laws on this subject 21 years is the age for males, and for females 21 years in Connecticut, Florida, Illinois, Kentucky, Louisiana, Ohio, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Dakota, Virginia, West Virginia, and Wyoming, and 18 in all the other States having laws, except Maryland, in which it is 1G years. Marriages, Voidable. Marriages are void- able in nearly all the States when contracted under the age of consent to cohabit. Divorce Laws. Alabama. Divorce may be obtained for the follow- ing causes: Impotency, adultery, desertion for two years, habitual drunkenness, imprisonment for two years and continued cruelty. An allowance must be made by the court, out of the husband's estate, for the support of the wife pending suit; also an allowance when the decree i3 made. The custody of minor chil- dren may be given to either parent, in the discretion of the court. Arizona. Divorce may be granted for the violation of the marriage vow ; physical incapacity ; willful deser- tion for six months; habitual drunkenness; conviction for felony ; cruelty ; failure by husband to provide for six months. Arkansas. Divorce may be granted for impotency, bigamy, adultery 1 , conviction of felony, habitual drunk- enness, willful desertion for one year, cruel and barba- rous treatment. Plaintiff must reside in the State one year before bringing suit. Court may allow alimony to the wife. California. Divorces are granted for adultery, ex- treme cruelty, conviction of felony, willful desertion, neglect or habitual intemperance continued for one year. No divorce can be granted by default. Colorado. Divorces may be granted for adultery, impoteney, bigamy, willful desertion for one year, habit- ual drunkenness for two years, extreme cruelty or con- viction for felony or infamous crime. One year's residence in the Sta';e is required before bringing suit, except where the offense was committed in the State or while one or both of the parties resided there. Connecticut. Absolute divorce may be granted by the Superior Court for adultery, fraud, duress or force in obtaining the marriage, willful desertion for three years, seven years' absence without being heard of , habit- ual intemperance, intolerable cruelty, sentence to im- prisonment for life, the commission of any crime punishable by imprisonment in the State penitentiary and any such misconduct s.s permanently destroys the happiness of the petitioner and defeats the purposes Of the marriage relation. Three years' residence in the State is necessary before filing a petition. Either party may marry again after divorce, and the court may change the wife's name and make order for alimony and custody of the children. North and South, Dakota. Divorce may be granted for violation of the marriage vow ; willful desertion ; conviction for felony; cruelty and physical incapacity. Delaware. Divorce may be grante'd by the Superior Court for adultery, impotency at the time of marriage, habitual drunkenness, extreme cruelty, desertion For three years or conviction of crime sufficient to consti- tute a felony. In the case of marriage by fraud or for want of age, the wife being less than sixteen, the hus- band being^ less than eighteen, at the time of marriage, absolute divorce or divorce from bed and board may oe granted, at the discretion of the court. The wife re- ceives ell her real estate and such other allowance and alimony as the court may decree where the husband is proved to be in fault. Willful neglect of the husband to provide the necessities of life also forms sufficient grounds for divorce. District of Columbia. Divorce may be granted for violation of the marriage vow ; physical incapacity ; willful desertion for two years ; habitual drunkenness ; conviction for felony; cruelty; insanity or idiocy at time of marriage. Florida. Applicants for divorce must have resided two years within the State. Absolute divorces may be granted only by the Circuit Courts. Adultery, impo- tency, bigamv, extreme cruelty, habitual intemperance or desertion for one year are sufficient causes. Alimony may be granted to the wife by the courts, and provision for a division of property when a decree is granted. Georgia. Grounds for total divorce are as follows: Marriage within the prohibited degrees of affinity or consanguinity; mental or physical incapacity at the time or marriage, force, menace, duress or fraud in ob- taining it ; adultery, willful desertion by either party for three years; cruel treatment by, or habitual intoxi- cation of either party ; or sentence to the penitentiary for two years or over for any offense involving moral turpitude. No total divorce may be granted except bv the concurrent verdict of two juries, rendered at dif- ferent times of court ; and when a divorce is granted, the jury rendering thefinal verdict determines the rights and disabilities of the parties. Idaho. Divorce may be granted for violation of the marriage vow; willful desertion for one year; habitual drunkenness ; conviction for felony ; cruelty ; failure of husband to provide kor one year ; insanity and confine- ment in an asylum six years. Illinois. Divorce may be granted, where complain- ant has been a resident of the State for one year, for im- poiency, bigamy, adultery, desertion or drunkenness fot GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 75 two years, attempt upon the life of the other by poison or other means snowing malice, extreme cruelty, con- viction of felony or other infamous crime. If no de- fense is interposed, decree may be granted oo testimony of complainant alone ; but examination of witnesses must be had in open court, and the judge is required to be satisfied that all proper means have been taken to notify defendant. When decree is granted, the court may restore the wife's maiden name. During pendency of suit, the court may require the husband to pay such sum as may enable the wife to maintain or defend the suit, and alimony when declared just and equitable. Indiana. Petitioners for divorce must be bona fide residents of the State for two years, and of the county at the time of, and for at least six months prior to, filing the petition ; the oath of two resident freeholders being required to this fact. Decrees may issue by the Superior or Circuit Court for the following causes : Impotency at marriage ; adultery (where connivance or collusion is not proven) ; habitual cruelty or habitual drunkenness by either party ; abandonment for two years ; failure by the husbuna to provide for the family for a period of two years, and conviction of either party of an in- famous crime at any time subsequent to marriage. Iowa. Divorce may be granted by the District or Circuit Court of the county in which plaintiff resides. Plaintiff must declare under oath that lie or she has re- sided in the State for one year next preceding the filing of the petition, unless defendant is resident, and re- ceived personal service of the writ. A decree may issue against the husband for adultery, willful desertion for two years, conviction of felony subsequent to marriage, habitual drunkenness and "continued ill-treatment. The husband may obtain a decree for like causes, and also when the wife at the time of marriage was preg- nant by another. Bigamy or impotency at the time of marriage is also a sufficient cause to annul. Kansas. To obtain a decree of divorce, plaintiff must have resided in the State one year, and must bring suit in the county of residence. Decrees are granted in the Circuit Court on the following grounds: Adultery, impotency fraudulent contract, extreme cruelty, habitual drunkenness, gross neglect, abandonment for one year or conviction of felony. Kentucky. Before a petition can be presented for a. decree of divorce, one year's continuous residence in the State is required. Jury trials are not permitted, and decrees are granted by courts having equitable juris- diction. An absolute divorce may be granted to the party not in fault on the ground ot adultery, impotency, etc., separation for five years, condemnation for felony subsequent to the marriage, force, duress or fraud in obtaining the marriage, or uniting with any religious society which requires a renunciation of the marriage contract. Habitual neglect or maltreatment on the part of the husband, or where the husband is a confirmed drunkard, may give the wife a divorce; and where the wife is proven unchaste, or pregnant by another man at at the time of marriage, the husband is entitled to divorce. The parties are free to marry again, and their personal property if restored. Louisiana. Sentence of either party to imprison- ment in the penitentiary is sufficient ground for divorce. A decree may also be obtained by either party for adultery, habitual intemperance or cruel treatment of such nature as to render living together insupport- able. Maine. The Supreme Judicial Court grants divorce for impotency, adultery, or for three years' willful desertion. Alimony may be allowed and dower if the husband be to blame. Maryland. Absolute, for adultery, three years' abandonment, or ante-nuptial misconduct of wife. Partial, for cruelty, abandonment, and desertion. Ali- mony and restoration of wife's property. Massachusetts. Unfaithfulness, incapacity, three years' desertion, cruelty, drunkenness, neglect to pro- vide, sentence to five years' imprisonment and joining a sect which disavows marriage, are grounds for absolute divorce. Alimony is allowed, and where the husband is at fault the wife's personal property is restored. Michigan. Absolute divorce may be granted for in- capacity at time of marriage, adultery, two years' con- tinuous desertion, drunkenness or three years' sentence to imprisonment. A life sentence dissolves the mar- riage without any proceedings in court. Divorce from bed and board for crueltv and neglect to provide. Separation of property, dower, ana alimony as per statute. Minnesota. Absolute divorce for unfaithfulness, in- capacity, three years' abandonment, one year's drunk- enness, cruel treatment or sentence to State's prison. Limited divorce for abuse, desertion or failure to sup- port. Plaintiff, except where breach of faith occurred in the State, must have been one year a resident. The court uay order alimony and custody of the children, and the wife regains possession of her real estate, un- less decree has been obtained on account of her bad conduct. Mississippi. After one year's residence in the State, divorce may be obtained for impotency, adultery, big- amy, cruelty, two years' abandonment o'r imprisonment in the penitentiary. Alimony is allowed when the wife is the injured party, and the court awards the custody of minor children. Missouri. Grounds : Impotency at timeof marriage, unfaithfulness, bigamy, conviction of crime, drunken- ness, cruelty, and one year's desertion. Petitioner must have been one year a resident of the State. Trial with- out jury. Montana. Divorce may be granted for violation of the marriage vow ; physical incapacity; willful desertion one year ; habitual drunkenness : conviction for felony ; crue'lty. Nebraska. Unless the marriage took place in the State, and the plaintiff has since continuously resided therein, a residence in the county of six months next preceding the application is necessary. Divorce is granted on the grounds of impotency at the time of marriage, adultery, two years' desertion, drunkenness, cruelty, three years' sentence to imprisonment, or fail- ure on the part of husband to support wife. The court may order alimony, and where a decree is granted on account of the husband's bad conduct the wife takes dower. Nevada. Plaintiff must have resided six months in the county. Grounds of divorce are physical incompe- teucy at time of marriage, adultery, one year's deser- tion, drunkenness, cruelty, conviction of crime, and failure on part of husband to support. New Hampshire. Divorces are granted by the Superior Court for physical incompetency, adultery, drunkenness, cruelty, three years' desertion, one year's sentence to prison or adhere'nce to a religious sect that condemns marriage. New Jersey. Absolute for adultery, bigamy, two years' abandonment and intolerable cruelty. Applicant must reside in the State, unless the marriage or the al- leged misconduct occurred here. New Mexico. Divorce may be granted for violation of the marriage vow; habitual drunkenness; cruelty; failure of husband to provide. New Tork.-Oniy for adultery will an absolute divorce be granted. Partial divorce is ordered for cruelty, desertion and neglect. Marriages are annulled for fraud or force, idiocy, lunacy or impotency at the time of marriage, or for bigamy. North Carolina. Only for impotency or adultery can absolute divorce be obtained. Partial divorce is granted for cruelty, desertion, or drunkenness. Ohio. Divorce 'is granted for unfaithfulness, bigamy, incapacity, cruelty, drunkenness, deception, three years' neglect and abandonment, or imprisonment in a peni- tentiary. Alimony may be granted ; and if the decree is obtained on account of the husband's ill conduct, the wife has her separate property and her maiden name restored. Oklahoma. Divorce may be granted for violation of the marriage vow ; physical incapacity ; willful desertion one year; habitual drunkenness: conviction of felony; crue'lty. Oregon. Plaintiff must have been a resident for one year before bringing suit. Grounds are impotency, adultery, two years' drunkenness, three years' abandon- ment, cruelty, conviction of felony. Plaintiff gaining the suit has a right to one third of the real estate be- longing to defendant ; and if a successful plaintiff be the wife, she may have a maintenance awarded her. Pennsylvania. Plaintiff must have been a resident of the State for one year next preceding the applica- tion. Grounds: Deception or force in procuring the marriage, impotency. adultery, bigamy, cruelty andtwo years' abandonment, and two years' sentence to impris- onment. Divorce will not be granted on the ground of adultery if proved to have been condoned. Even after a divorce, defendant is not allowed to marry a co-re- spondent. A wife may obtain partial divorce and ali- mony for ill treatment. Rhode Island. Divorce is granted for impotency, adultery, cruelty, drunkenness, neglect to support, five THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. years' abandonment, conviction of murder or arsoH, presumption of death from long absence, or for defect in marriage rendering it void. Divorce may only be decreed by Supreme Court. Alimony may be ordered, and restoration of wife's separate property. South Carolina. Has no divorce laws. Tennessee. The applicantmust have been a resident of the State for two years next preceding the petition. Grounds : physical incapacity at time of marriage, big- amy, adultery, two years' abandonment, conviction of crime, imprisonment in penitentiary, drunkenness, ante-nuptial immorality of wife, attempt of either party upon the life of the other. Limited divorce may be granted for cruelty, desertion, or failure to provide. Texas. Applicant must be really an inhabitant of the State and a resident of the county for six months previous to filing petition; grounds: adultery, three years' desertion, unendurable cruelty. Utah. Divorce may be granted for violation of the marriage vow; willful desertion one year; habitual drunkenness ; conviction for felony ; cruelty ; failure of husband to provide ; parties cannot live in peace and union. Vermont. Divorce is granted for adultery, cruelty, three years' abandonment, three years' imprisonment in penitentiary or seven years' absence without being heard of. The wife may obtain divorce where the hus- band, being able, fails to support. Virginia. Grounds : Impotency, adultery, sentence to penitentiary, guilt of either of infamous 'crime be- fore marriage, the other being ignorant, notorious immorality of wife before marriage, live years' aban- donment. Partial divorce for cruelty or desertion. Alimony and maintenance of children are decreed, and the care of the children is given to either party at the discretion of the court. "West Virginia. Divorce is granted for mental or physical defect at time of marriage, unfaithfulness, three years' abandonment, sentence to penitentiary, conviction of crime before marriage, or notorious im- morality of either before marriage, the other party being ignorant. Partial divorce may be obtained for cruelty or desertion. Alimony and custody of chil- dren is decreed by the court. Washington. Divorce may be granted for violation of the marriage vow ; nhysical incapacity ; willful deser- tion one year ; conviction for felony ; cruelty ; fraud and fraudulent contract ; indignities as render life burden- some ; insanity lasting ten years. Wisconsin. Unless the parties had been married and since remained in the State, the applicant must have been for one year a resident before filing a peti- tion. Absolute divorce is granted for impotency, adul- tery, one year's abandonment, five years' separation, three years' sentence to penitentiary, cruelty and drunkenness. Partial divorce for desertion, cruelty, drunkenness, or failure to provide. The court may decree alimony, and the wife regain her separate prop- erty. Wyoming. Divorce may be granted for violation of the marriage vow ; physical incapacity ; willful desertion one year; habitual drunkenness; conviction for felony ; cruelty ; failure of husband to provide one year ; indig- nities as render life burdensome ; vagrancy of husband. PROPERTY RIGHTS OF MAR- RIED WOMEX. Alabama. Married women may hold all property, real and personal, acquired before and after marriage, as a separate estate not liable for the husband's debts, and it may be devised or bequeathed as by a single woman. This separate estate is liable for debts contracted by the woman before marriage, and for con- tracts after marriage for articles of comfort and support of family. The wife is entitled to dower of one half of husband''s real estate, if he leave no lineal decendants, one third if there are any, provided she has no separate estate ; if her separate estate is less than the dower in- terest would be, she is entitjed to as much as would make it equal. Women attain their legal majority at twenty-one, but may marry without consent of their parents at eighteen. Arizona. Married women may carry on business and SUB and be sued in their own names. All property acquired before marriage, and all afterwards acquired, by gift, grant, devise or inheritance, is separate estate, liable for her own but not for her husband's debts. She may control it and dispose of it in all respects like a ingle woman. Arkansas. Married women have absolute and un- qualified right in property of every kind and are not liable for debts or contracts of the husband. But a schedule under oath, and verified by some other repu- table person, must be made by the husband and wife, and filed in the recorder's office of the county where the property is, and of the county where they reside. The wife may control her property, may carry on busi- ness on her sole and separate account, may sue and be sued, may make a will and may insure her husband's life for her benefit. The widow is entitled to one third part of the estate, unless legally relinquished by her. California. All property acquired in any "manner before marriage, or afterwards by gift, grant, inheri- tance or devise, is wife's separate property, controlled by her and not liable for debts of the husband. The husband's property similarly acquired is not liable for debts of the wife. All property acquired after marriage by husband or wife, except as above, shall be common property, but under the husband's control. Dower and curtesy are abolished, but the survivor takes half the common property after payment of debts and expenses of administration. A married woman may disposeof her separate estate by will without the consent other hus- band and may insure her husband's life for her benefit. Colorado. Married women are treated in all re- spects, as to their property rights, as if they were single. A wife may carry on trade or business, sue or be sued, contract debts, "transfer real estate, and in all ways bind her separate property, without the husband's joining. She may make a will, but cannot bequeath more than half her property away from her husband without his consent in writing. The husband cannot by will deprive his wife of over one half of his property. D'ower is abolished. The husband is liable for debts of the wife contracted before marriage to the extent of the property he may receive through her, but no fur- ther. Connecticut. Previous to the year 1877, the husband acquired a right to the use of all the real estate of the wife during her life and if he had a child by her and sur- vived her, then during his own life as tenant by curt- esy. By the Act of May 20th, 1877, the rights of married women'are materially enlarged. Any woman married after that date retains her real estate as if unmarried. She may make contracts, convey real estate, and sue or be sued in regard to any property owned by her at the time of marriage, or afterwards acquired. The estate is liable for her debts, and, jointly with her husband, for debts contracted for joint bene'fit of both or house- hold expenses. The separate earnings of a wife are her sole property. Dower exists only in real estate of which the husband is possessed at the time of his de- cease. North and South Dakota. Married women may transact business in all respects the same as if unmar- ried. Neither husband nor wife has any interest in the separate estate of the other. The earnings and ac- cumulations of the wife are her separate property and not liable for the husband's debts nor even for house- hold debts contracted by her as her husband's agent. Her separate property is, however, liable for her own debts, contracted before or after marriage, if such debts are contracted on her own responsibility. Delaware. Married women, married since 1873, re- tain all real and personal property held at marriage, or since acquired from any person other than the husband, as their separate estate, and not subject to the disposal of the husband or liable for his debts. They may re- ceive wages for personal labor, sue or be sued in respect to their own property as if unmarried ; and the rents, issues, and profits of'theiixseparate estate are not con- trolled by the husband. The widow is entitled to one third dower of all the lands and tenements whereof the husband was seized at any time during her marriage, unless she shall have relinquished such right for and during the term of her natural life. She may be an administratrix, and the husband's life maybe insured for her benefit if premium does not exceed $150. District of Columbia. Married women may be- queath, devise, or convey property or interest therein in the same manner as if unmarried. Real or personal property belonging to the wife at marriage or after- wards a'cnuireo is separate estate. She may sue and be sued in all matters pertaining to her property, and the husband is notliablefor any contracts made by her in respect to her personal estate. Florida, Married women retain all real or personal property owned at marriage or acquired thereafter, and are not liable for the husband's debts. In order that it GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 77 Shall be free from his debts, the property must be in- ventoried and recorded within six months after mar- riage or subsequent acquirement of the property. The wife may sell and convey all real estate inherited bv her the same as if she were unmarried; but her husband must join in all sales, transfers, and conveyances of her I property, both real and personal. She i"s entitled to ! dower in a life estate in one third of all the real estate ; of which her husband was seized and possessed at his death or at any time during his life, unless she has re- linquished the same ; also an absolute one third of his ; personalty. Georgia. Married women retain as a separate estate all property in their possession at the time of marriage, [ or afterwards acquired and are not liable for any debts, f defaults, or contracts of the husband. By consent of her husband advertised for four weeks she "may become a free trader, in which event she is liable the same as if unmarried. The wife may not bind her estate by any contract of suretyship, either in behalf of her husband or any other person. The widow takes dower in one third of all the lands of which her husband was seized at his death ; and wife and children, after the husband's death, are entitled to one year's support from his property, all other claims yielding to this. Idaho. All property, both real and personal, owned at marriage or afterwards acquired, by either wife or husband, remains a separate estate. All property ac- quired after marriajs4 Settlement 1832 1,140,405 South Australia 903,690 Settlement 1836 320,431 Queensland 668,497 Settlement 1824 393,718 Western Australia 975,876 Settlement 1828 49,782 Tasmania 26,215 1803 146,667 New Zealand 104,032 Purchase 1845 626,658 Fiji 7,423 Cession from the natives 1874 125402 New Guinea (British) 234,768 Annexation 1884 350,000 CANADA. Constitution and Government. As originally constituted the Dominion of Canada was composed of the Provinces of Canada Upper and Lower Nova Scotia, and New Brunswick. They were united under the pro- visions of an Act of the Imperial Parliament passed in March, 1867, known as " The British North America Act 1867," which came into operation on the 1st July, 1867, by royal proclamation. The Act provides that the Constitution of the Dominion shall be "similar in principle to that of the United Kingdom ' ' ; that the executive authority shall AlTJ) LAW. bd vested in the Sovereign of Great Britain and Ireland, and carried on in her name by a Governor General and Privy Council ; and that the legislative power shall be exercised by a Parliament of two Houses, called the " Sen- ate " and the "House of Commons." Pro- vision was made in the Act for the admis- sion of British Columbia, Prince Edward Is- land, the North- West Territories, and New- foundland into the Dominion ; Newfoundland alone has not availed itself of such provision. In 1869 the extensive region known as the North- West Territories was added to the Do- minion by purchase from the Hudson's Bay Company ; the province of Manitoba was set apart out of a portion of it, and admitted into the confederation on the loth July, 1870. On 20th July, 1871, the province of British Columbia, and on the 1st July, 1873, the pro- vince of Prince Edward Island, respectively entered the confederation. The members of the Senate of the Parlia- ment of the Dominion are nominated for life, by summons of the Governor General under the Great Seal of Canada. By the terms of the Constitution, there are now 81 Senators namely, 24 from the Province of Ontario, 24 from Quebec, 10 from Nova Scotia, 10 from New Brunswick, 4 from Manitoba, 3 from British Columbia, 4 from Prince Edward Is- land, and two from the Territories. Each senator must be 30 years of age, a born or naturalized subject, and reside in, and be pos- sessed of property, real or personal, of the value of 4,000 dollars within, the province for which he is appointed. The House of Com- mons of the Dominion is elected by the peo- ple, for five years, unless sooner dissolved, at the rate at present of one representative for every 22, 688, the arrangement being that the province of Quebec shall always have 65 mem- bers, and the other provinces proportionally according to their populations, at each decen- nial census. On the basis of the census of the Dominion taken in April, 1891, and in ac- cordance with a redistribution bill passed in 1892, the House of Commons consists of 213 members 92 for Ontario, 65 for Quebec, 20 for Nova Scotia, 14 for New Brunswick, 7 for Manitoba, 6 for British Columbia, 5 for Prince Edward Island, and 4 for the North- West Territories. The members of the House of Commons are elected by constituencies, the electors of which are supplied by franchises under the control of the several provincial assemblies, an Act having been passed to that effect in the session of 1898. The qualifications for vot- ing at provincial elections vary in the several province*. Voting is by ballot. The Speaker of the House of Commons has a salary of 4,000 dollars per annum, and each member an allowance of 10 dollars per diem, up to the end of 30 days, and for a session lasting longer than this period the sum of 1,000 dollars, with, in every case, 10 cents per mile for traveling expenses. The sum of 8 dollars per diem is deducted for every day's absence of a member, unless the same is caused by illness. There is the same allow- ance for the members of the Senate of the Dominion. Dominion Executive Officers. Governor General. Premier and President of Privy Council. Minister of Public Works. Minister of Customs. Minister of Militia and Defense. Minister of Agriculture. Minister of Finance. Minister of Justice. Minister of Marine and Fisheries. Minister of the Interior. Minister of Railways and Canals, Minister without Portfolio. Secretary of State. Postmaster- General. Rulers since 1867. Lord Monck, Governor General. 1867-1868. Lord Lisgar, Governor General. 1868-1872. Earl Dufferin, Governor General: 1872- 1878. Marquis of Lome, Governor General. 1878-1883. Marquis of Lansdowne, Governor General, f 883 -1888. Baron Stanley of Preston, Governor Gen- eral. 1888-1893. Earl of Aberdeen, Governor General. 1893- 1898-. Earl of Minto, Governor Genera) 1898. Each of the ministers has a salary, fixed by statute, of 7, 000 dollars, or 1,400/. a year, with the exception of the recognized Prime Mini3ter, who has 8,000 dollars, or 1,600/. and the Min- isters of Customs and Inland Revenue, who have each 5,000 dollars a year. The body ot ministers is officially known as the "Queen's Privy Council of Canada." The Governor General has a salary of 10,000/. per annum. Provincial Government. The seven provinces form- ing the Dominion have each a separate Parliament and administration, with a Lieutenant Governor at the head of the executive. They have full powers to repnlaW their own local affairs and dispose of their revenues, provided only they do not interfere with the action and policy of the central administration. The Lieutenant Governors are appointed by the Governor General. Quebec and Nova Scotia have each two Chambers (a Legislative Council and a Legislative Assembly) and a responsible Ministry. In New Brunswick, Ontario, Manitoba, British Columbia, and Prince Edward Island there is only one Chamber (the Legislative Assembly) and a responsible Ministry. The members of the Legi*- THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. lative Council of Nova Scotia number 21, and Quebec 24. The membership of the Legislative Assemblies are : Prince Edward Island 30, Nova Scotia 38, New Bruns- wick 41, Quebec 73, Ontario 94, Manitoba 40, British Columbia 33, and the North- West Territories 26. The North- West Territories are presided over by a Lieu- tenant Governor and a Legislative Assembly. The Ex- ecutive* Council consists (since October 1, 1897) of the Lieutenant Governor and five members, elected, as such, by the people. Instruction. All the provinces of the Dominion have one or more universities, and several colleges which prepare for nniversitv degrees. There are in all about 16 degree-granting bodies in the Dominion, with about 24 colleges, including denominational, medical, and other special institutions. From special official statistics of these institutions it may be estimated that they are attended by about 13,000 students, and their total annual expenditure is upwards of $700,000, while the estimated value of their endowments, buildings, land, etc., is over 16,000,000. The expenditure for the year on public and high schools, including Government grants, was over $10,- 000,000. The supervision of education is under the control of the Governments of the several provinces, and the systems in use vary somewhat, but are all based on the principle of free education, the funds being sup- plied in nearly all the provinces by Government grants and local taxation. In British Columbia and the North- West Territories the schools are supported wholly by Government. Education is more or less compulsory in all the provinces, but the law is not very strictly enforced. In Ontario, Quebec, and the North-West Territories there are separate schools for Roman Catho- lics ; in the other provinces the schools are unsectarian. Separate schools in Manitoba were abolished by a Pro- vincial Act passed in 1890. Justice. There is a Supreme Court in Ottawa, hav- ing appellate, civil, and criminal jurisdiction in and throughout Canada. There is also an exchequer court, which is also a colonial court of admiralty, with powers as provided in the Imperial " Colonial Courts of Admi- ralty Act, 1890." There is a Superior Court in each prov- ince; county courts, with limited jurisdiction, in most of the provinces ; all the judges in these courts being appointed by the Governor General. Police magistrates and justices of the peace are appointed by the Provincial Governments. Religion. There is no State Church in the whole of British North America. The Church of England is gov- erned by twenty bishops, with about 1,000 clergy ; the Roman Catholic Church by one cardinal, seven arch- bishops, twenty-three bishops, and about 1,500 clergy : and the Presbyterian Church in Canada, with about 1,000 ministers formed in 1875 by the union of two formerly distinct bodies by presbyteries, synods, and an annual assembly as in the Scotch Church, with 2,358 churches and stations. The Methodists have 1.700 and the Baptists about 500 ministers. All these bodies have one or more divinity schools. The number of members of each religious creed in the Dominion was as follows at the census of April 6, 1891 : Congregationalists 28,157 Miscellaneous creeds. .106, 739 No creed stated 89,355 Roman Catholics.. 1,992.017 Presbyterians 755,326 Anglicans 646,059 Methodists 847,765 Baptists 303,839 Lutherans 63,982 Including Pagans. The following shows the, numbers of the leading de- nominations in the several provinces according to the census of 1891 : Total 4,833,239 / . y the State, but according to the Constitution all religions are respected and protected. There is one archbishop and three bishops. For 18G8 the amount of subsidies to the clergy and for building and other pur- poses was 578,888 pesos. Civil marriage is the only form acknowledged by law. Instruction. Education is gratuitous and at the cost of the State, but is not compulsory. It is di- vided into superior or professional, medium or second- ary, and primary or elementary instruction. Profes- sional and secondary instruction is provided in the University and the National Institute of Santiago, and in the lyceums and colleges established in the capitals of provinces, and in some departments. In the Uni- versity the branches included are law, physical and mathematical sciences, medicine, and fine arts. The number of students inscribed for the study of these branches in 1897 was 774 . The number of students a t the National Institute in 1897 was 1,278. There are 2 ly- ceums for girls in Santiago maintained by Government. There are, besides, provincial colleges, normal, agri- cultural, and other special schools. At the seats of the bishops there are seminaries under ecclesiastics where instruction is given similar to that in the Government colleges. There were, in 1897-. 1,321 public primary schools, with 109,058 pupils, and an average attendance of 65,507, and 2,268 teachers. There were also 411 private schools, with an attendance of 18,052. The National Li- brary contains over 86,000 volumes of printed books, and 24,04S manuscripts. Other educational institutions are the Pedagogic Institute, the National Conservatory of Music, the National Observatory, School of Arts and Trades, Institute for Deaf Mutes, and public museums. In 1897 the cost of higher instruction to the State was 2,000,000 pesos ; the cost of maintaining the elementary schools was 1,920,200 pesos : and the total cost of instruc- tion supplied by the State, including buildings, pen- sions, books, etc., in 1897, was 5,633,021 pesos. Justice. There are, in addition to a High Court of Justice in the capital, six Courts of Appeal, Courts of First Instance in the departmental capitals, and subordi- nate courts in the districts. CHINA. The laws of the Chinese Empire are laid down in the Ta-ts'ing-hwei-tien, or " Collected Regulations of the Ts'ing dynasty," which prescribe the government of the State to be based upon the government of the family. The supreme direction of the Empire is vested in the Chun Chi Ch'u, the Privy Coun- cil, or Grand Council. The administration is nnder the supreme direction of the Nei-ko or Cabinet, comprising four members, two of Maiichu and two of Chinese origin, besides two assistants from the JTan-lin, or Great Col- j lege, who have to see that nothing is done I contrary to the civil and religious laws of the 1 Empire, contained in the Ta-ts'ing-hwei-tien and in the sacred books of Confucius. These members are denominated " Ta-hsio-shih," or Ministers of State. Under their orders are the Ch'i-pu, or seven boards of government, each of which is presided over by a Manchu and a j Chinese. These boards are: (!_) the board of civil appointments, which takes cognizance of the conduct and administration of all civil officers ; (2) the board of revenues, regulating all financial affairs ; (3) the board of rites and ceremonies, which enforces the laws and cus- toms to be observed by the people ; (4) the military board ; (5) the board of public works ; (6) the high tribunal of criminal jurisdiction ; and (7) the admiralty board at Tientsin, es- tablished in 1885. Independent of the Government, and theo- retically above the central administration, is the Tu-ch'a-yuen, or board of public censors. It consists of from 40 to 50 members, under two presidents, the one of Manchu and the other of Chinese birth. By the ancient cus- tom of the Empire, all the members of this board are privileged to present any remon- strance to the sovereign.' One censor must be present at the meetings of each of the Gov- ernment boards. The Tsungli Yamen, or Foreign Office, was created by a decree of January 19, 1861, and comprises among its members all those of the Council of State and six other officials of the highest rank. It controls not merely the mat- ters with foreign nations, but also those insti- tutions in which foreigners form part of the working staff, such as the Maritime Customs, and Peking University. The present sovereign, reigning under the style of Kwangsii, is the ninth Emperor of China of the Manchu dynasty of Ts'ing, which overthrew the native dynasty of Ming, in the year 1644. There exists no law of hereditary succession to the throne, but it is left to each sovereign to appoint his successor from among the members of his family of a younger gene- ration than his own. The late Emperor, dying suddenly in the eighteenth year of his age, did not designate a successor, and it was in conse- quence of arrangements directed by the Em- press Dowager, widow of the Emperor Hien- Feng, predecessor and father of T'ung-chi, in concert with Prince Ch'un, that the infant son of the latter was made the nominal occu- pant of the throne. Having become of age the young Emperor nominally assumed gov- ernment in March, 1887. In February, 1889, he undertook the full control, but on Septem- ber 22, 1898, an Imperial edict was. 92 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. announcing that the Emperor had resigned power to the Empress Dowager, who has since retained the direction of affairs. Local Government. Each of the 18 provinces is ruled by a Governor or Governor General, who is re- sponsible to the Emperor lor the entire administration, political, judicial, military, and fiscal. He is assisted by a council and various "other officials, such as the Treasurer, the sub-Commissioner, and the Literary Chancellor. Each province is subdivided into depart- ments ruled by prefects, and each department into dis- tricts, each with a district ruler. Two or more depart- ments are sometimes united into a tau, the ruler of which is called a tautai. Each town and village has also its governing body. and among the various rulers there is regular gradation of rank, each being responsible to his immediate superior. Political office in the gen- eral administration of the Empire is less sought after than the position of viceroy or p">vernor in the provinces, where the opportunities of act^ 'ring wealth, not from official salaries but from gifts, etc., are abun- dant. Religion. Three religions are acknowledged by the Chinese as indigenous and adopted ; viz., Confucianism, Buddhism, and Taoism. The Emperor is considered the sole high priest of the Empire, and can alone, with his immediate representa- tives and ministers, perform the great religious cere- monies. No ecclesiastical hierarchy is maintained at the public expense, nor any priesthood attached to the Confucian religion. The Confucian isthe State religion, if the respect paid to the memory of the great teacher nan be called religion at all. But distinct and totally separate from the stated periodic observances of respect offered to the memory of Confucius as the Holy Man of old, and totally unconnected therewith, there is the dis- tinct worship of Heaven (t'ien), in which the Emperor, as the "sole high priest," worships and sacrifices to " Heaven " every yearat the time of the winter solstice, at the Altar of Heaven in Peking. With the exception of the practice of ancestral worship, which is every- where observed throughout the Empire, and was fully commended by Confucius, Confucianism has little out- ward ceremonial. The study and contemplation and at- tempted performance of the moral precepts of the ancients constitute the duties of a Confucianist. Bud- dhism and Taoism present a very gorgeous and elabo- rate ritual in China, Taoism originally a pure philos- ophy having abjectly copied Buddhist ceremonial on the arrival of Buddhism 1.800 years ago. Large num- bers of the Chinese in Middle and Southern China pro- fess and practice all three religions. The bulk of the people, however, are Buddhists. There are probably about thirty million Mahometans, chiefly in the north- east and so'uthwest. Roman Catholicism has long had a footing in China, and is estimated to have about 1,- 000,000 adherents, with 25 bishoprics besides those of Manchuria, Tibet, Mongolia, and Corea. Other Chris- tian societies have stations in many parts of the coun- try, the number of Protestant r.dherents being estimated at 50,000. Most of the aboriginal hill tribes are still nature worshipers, and ethnically are distinct from the prevailing Mongoloid population. Instruction. Education of a certain type is very general, but still there are vast massesof adult country- men in China who can neither read nor write. There is a special literary class who alone know the literature of their country, to the study of which they devote their lives. There are boarding schools and day schools for boys and young men, the flatter being held in the entrance halls of temples and in the spare chambers of guilds, and in all the important cities there are colleges for training candidates for degrees. Examinations, mainly confined to moral philosophy and literature, are held in the prefectorial cities of each province twice in three years for the lower degree necessary as a passport to the public service, but of the six or seven thousand candidates who come forward, not more than sixty can be admitted to the degree by the Literary Chancellor. For the higher degree, examinations are "held in each provincial capital once in three years, and the success- ful candidates are subjected to a third and fourth ex- amination, those who finally emerge being divided into four classes to wait for appointments to offices of dif- ferent grades. There are, however, other means (e. g. military service) by which such appointments may be obtained. In 1887, for the first time, mathematics were a^nitjtecl wifli thf CWpese, Clashes, ftm.Qng Ifye subjects of examination, and schools for the propagation of Western science and literature are now on the increase. The " Tung Wen Kwan," or College of Foreign Knowl- edge, at Peking, is a Government institution, where the English, French, German, Japanese, and Russian lan- guages, and mathematics, chemistry, physiology, etc., are taught by European, Japanese, and American pro- fessors, while the Chinese education of the pupils is entrusted to Chinese teachers. There are, besides, numerous Catholic and Protestant mission schools and colleges at Shanghai and other ports, where the Eng- lish language and lower branches of Western science are taught. The Chinese Government has of late years established naval and military colleges and torpedo schools in connection with the different arsenals at Tientsin, Nanking, Shanghai, and Foochow, in which foreign instructors are engaged to teach such young Chinese as intend to make their career in the army or navy of their country Western modes of warfare, be- sides Western langua'ges and literature. Ten Chinese newspapers are published at Shanghai, and the success they have achieved has lea to the establishment of others at some of the other treaty ports. FRANCE. Since the overthrow of Napoleon IIT., on Sep- tember 4, 1870, France has been under a Re- publican form of government, confirmed on February 25, and June 16, 1875, by an organic law (Constitution Wallori), which has been partially modified in June, 1879, August, 1884, June, 1885, and July, 1889. It vests the leg- islative power in the Chamber of Deputies and the Senate, and the executive in the President of the Republic and the Ministry. The President is elected for seven years, by a majority of votes, by the Senate and Cham- ber of Deputies united in a National Assembly, or Congress. He promulgates the laws voted by both Chambers, and ensures their execu- tion. He selects a Ministry from the Cham- ber, appoints to all civil and military posts, has the right of individual pardon, and is responsible only in case of high treason. The President concludes treaties with foreign Powers, but cannot declare war without the previous assent of both Chambers. Every act of the President has to be countersigned by a Minister. With the consent of the Senate he can dissolve the Chamber of Deputies. In case of vacancy, the two Chambers united im- mediately elect a new President. The Ministers or Secretaries of State, the number of whom varies, are usually, but not necessarily, members of the Senate or Cham- ber of Deputies. The President of the Coun- cil (Premier) chooses his colleagues in concert with the President of the Republic. Each Minister has the direction of one of the great administrative departments, and each is respon- sible to the Chambers for his acts, while the Ministry as a whole is responsible for the gen- eral policy of the Government. The Ministry is constituted as follows : President of the Council and Minister of the Interior. Minister of Finance. Minister of Foreign Affairs. GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 93 Minister of War. Minister of Marine. Minister of Colonies. Minister of Public Instruction and Worship. Minister of Justice. Minister of Commerce, Industry, and Posts and Telegraphs. Minister of Agriculture. Minister of Public Works. The Chamber of Deputies is elected for four years, by universal suffrage, and each citizen 21 years old, not actually in military service, who can prove a six months' residence in any one town or commune, and not otherwise dis- qualified, has" the right of vote. Deputies must be citizens and not under 25 years of age. The manner of election of Deputies has been modified several times since 1871. The scrutin de lisle, under which each elector votes for as many Deputies as the entire department has to elect, was introduced in 1871. In 1876 it was replaced by the scrutin d'arrondissement, under which each department is divided into a num- ber of arrondissements, each elector voting for one Deputy only ; in 1885, there was a return to the scrutin de lisle, and in 1889 the uni- nominal vote was reintroduced. In 1889 it was enacted that each candidate is bound to make, within the fortnight which precedes the elections, a declaration as to his being a candi- date for a given constituency, and for one con- stituency only all votes which eventually may be given for him in other constituencies being reckoned as void. Multiple elections and elections of persons previously condemned by the law courts are thus rendered impos- sible. The Chamber verifies the powers of its members. In each constituency the votes are cast up and the Deputy proclaimed elected by a commission of Counciloi-s-General ap- pointed by the Prefect of the department. The Chamber is now composed of 584 De- puties ; each arrontlissement elects one Deputy, and if its population is in excess of 100,000, it is divided into two or more constituencies. There were 10,446,178 inscribed electors in 1893, and 7,427,354 voted. The Senate is composed of 300 members, elected for nine years from citizens 40 years old, one third retiring every three years. The election of the Senators is indirect, and is made by an electoral body composed (1) of delegates chosen by the Municipal Council of each commune in proportion to the population ; and (2) of the Senators, Deputies, Councilors- General, and District Councilors of the de- partment. Besides the 225 Departmental Senators elected in this way, there were, ac- cording to the law of 1875, 75 Senators elected for life by the united two Chambers ; but by the Senate Bill of 1884 it was enacted that vacancies arising among the Life Senatorships would be filled by the election of ordinary nine-years Senators, the department which should have the right to the vacant seat to be determined by lot. The Princes of deposed dynasties are precluded from sitting in either House. The Senate and Chamber of Deputies as- semble every year on the second Tuesday in January, unless a previous summons is made by the President of the Republic, and they must remain in session at least five months out of the twelve. The President is bound to convoke them if the demand is made by one half of the number of members composing each Chamber. The President can adjourn the Chambers, but the adjournment cannot exceed the term of a month, nor occur more than twice in the same session. Bills may be presented either in the Cham- ber or Senate by the Government, or on the initiative of private members. In the first case they are remitted to the bureaux for ex- amination ; in the second, they are first sub- mitted to a commission of parliamentary ini- tiative. Financial laws must be first presented to and voted by the Chamber of Deputies. The President and the Ministers may be impeached by the Chamber of high treason, in which case the Senate acts as a High Court of Justice. The same function is vested in the Senate for all other cases of high treason. Senators and Deputies are paid 9,000 francs (360) a year, and the Presidents of the two Chambers receive, in addition, 72,000 francs (2,840) for the expense of entertainment. Members of both Chambers travel free on all railways by means of a small annual pay- ment. The dotation of the President of the Republic is 600,000 francs, with a further al- lowance of 600,000 francs for his expenses. France has, besides, a special institution under the name of Conseil d'Etat, which was introduced by Napoleon I., and has been maintained since. It is presided over by the Minister of Justice or (in his absence) by a vice-president, and is composed of Councilors, Masters of Requests (Mallres de Keyuetes), and Auditors, all appointed by the President of the Republic. Its duty is to give opinion upon such questions, chiefly those connected with administration, as may be submitted to it by the Government. It is judge in the last resort in administrative suits, and it prepares the rules for the public administration. Loral Government. For administrative purposes France is divided into 86 departments, or 87 if the " ter- ritory of Belfort" (a remnant of the department of Haul- Rhin) be considered as a separate department. Since 1881 the three departments of Algeria are also treated. THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. for most purposes, as part of France proper. The de- partment has representatives of all the Ministries, and 8 placed under a Prefect, nominated by Government, and having wide and undefined functions. He is assisted by a Prefectorial Council, an administrative body, whose advice he may take without being bound to follow it. The Prefect is a representative of the Execu- tive, and, as such, supervises the execution of the laws, issues police regulations, supplies information on mat- ters which concern the department, nominates subor- dinate officials, and has under his control all officials of the State. There is a sub-Prefect in every arrondisse- ment, except capitals of departments and the depart- ment of the Seine. The unit of local Government is the commune, the size and population of which vary very much. There are 36,170 communes, and new ones cannot be created otherwise than by law. Most of them (31,610) have less than 1,500 inhabitants, and 18.054 have even less than COO ; while 117 communes only have more than 20,000 in- habitants. The local affairs of the commune are under a Municipal Council, composed of from 10 to 36 mem- bers, elected by universal suffrage, and by the scrutin de liste for 4 vears by Frenchmen after 2i years and 6 months' residence ; but each act of the Council must re- ceive the approval of the Prefect, while many must be submitted to the Council General, or even to "the Presi- dent of the Republic, before becoming lawful. Even the commune's quota of direct taxation is settled by persons (r&partiteurs) chosen by the Prefect from among the lists of candidates drawn up by the Municipal Coun- cil. Each Municipal Council elects a Mayor, who is both the representative of the commune and the agent of the central government. He is the head of the local police and, with his assistants, acts under the orders of the Prefect. In Paris the Municipal Council is composed of 80 mem- bers ; each of the 20 arrondissements into which the city is subdivided has its own Mayor. The place of the Mayor of Paris is taken by the Prefect of the Seine, and, in part, by the Prefect of Police. Lyons has an elected Mayor, but the control of the police is vested in the Pre- fect of the department of the Rhone. The next unit is the canton (2,899 in France), which is composed of an average of 12 communes, although some of the largest communes are, on the contrary, divided into several cantons. It is a seat of a justice of the peace, but is not an administrative unit. The district, or arrondissement (3C2 in France), has an elected conseil d'arrondisement, with as many members as there are cantons, its chief function being to allot among the communes their respective parts in the direct taxes assigned to each arrondissement by the Council General. That body stands under the control of the snb-Prefect. A varying number of arrondissements form a department, which has its conseil g&nbral re- newed by universal suffrage. Keliffion. All religions are equal bv law, and any sect which numbers 100,000 adherents is entitled to a grant ; but at present only the Roman Catholics, Protes- tants, and Jews have State allowances. Instruction. Public education in France is entirely under the supervision of the Government. The highest schools, or " f acultes de 1'Etat," are now often designated by the name of universities. There are 15 "faculte"s des lettres," one in each academy (except Chambei-y) at Paris, Aix, Besancon, Bordeaux, Caen, Clermont, IJijon, Lille, Grenoble, Lyon, Montpellier, Nancy,- Poitiers, Rennes, and Toulouse. At all of these, except Aix, are also " faculty des sciences," besides one 2,500,000 Senegal. . 1637 115,800 2,0011,000 Western Sudan 1880 250,190 4.900.000 Ivorv Coast, etc. 1843 64,420 650,000 Dahomey 1893 14,140 600,000 Congo 1884 496,920 8.950000 Bagirmi 1895 65,650 1,000.000 Obock and Somali Coast Reunion 1864 1649 8,640 970 30,000 171,720 Comoro Isles 1886 620 53,000 Mavotte 1843 143 8,700 Nossi-Be" 1841 113 7800 Ste. Marie 1643 64 7,670 Madagascar . 1896 227,750 3,500,000 Total of Africa :<.:>x.o:;4 30,358,890 IN AMERICA : Guiana 1626 46,850 22,710 Guadeloupe and Depend- encies 1634 688 167,100 Martinique 1G35 380 187,690 St. Pierre and Miquelon 1635 93 6,250 Total of America 48,011 383,750 IN* OCEANIA : New Caledonia and De- pendencies . 1854 7,630 51,000 Marquesas Islands Tahiti and Moorea TubuaV and Raivavae . . . Tuamotu and Gambler Islands 1841 1880 1881 1881 480 455 80 390 4,450 11,800 880 5,250 Wallis Archipelago, etc.. . 1887 100 5,000 Total of Oceania 9,136 78,rf80 Grand Total 3,630,327 52,642 938 GOVERNMENT AND LAW. Justice. The Courts of First Instance in France are those of the Justices of Peace who try civil cases and act also as judges of Police Courts, where all petty offenses are disposed of. In criminal cases the Police Correctional Courts pronounce upon all graver cases of misdemeanour (dMits), including cases involving iiupris- onmentup to 5years. They have no jury, and consistof acting under the public ministry (Prorureiir), may dis- miss the case or send it for trial". The Court of Assizes is assisted by 12 jurors, who decide by simple majority on the fact with respect to crimes involving a severe penalty. The highest courts are the 20 Courtsof Appeal, composed each of one President and 4 Councilors for all criminal cases which have been tried without a jury, and by one Court of Cassation which sits at Paris, and is composed of a first President, 3 Presidents of Sec- tions, and 45 Councilors, for all criminal cases tried bv jury. For civil cases there is, under the Justice of Peace, in each arrondissement, a civil tribunal of first instance, then the Appeal Courts and Courts of Cassation. For commercial cases there are Tribunals of Commerce and Councils of ex\>erts(pr>id'hommeg). All Judges are nominated by the President of the Re- public. They can be removed only by a decision of the Court of Cassation constituted as the Coneeil Superieur of the magistracy. GERMAN EMPIRE. The present German Empire is essentially different from the Holy Roman Empire which came to an end in 1806. But though Austria, the most important factor in the earlier Empire, is not a member of the present, a brief histor- ical summary, including both, is for conven- ience inserted here. The imperial throne, after the extinction of the Carlovingian Hue, was filled by election, though with a tendency towards the hereditary principle of succession. At first the Emperor was chosen by the vote of all the Princes and Peers of the Reich ; but the mode came to be changed in the fourteenth century, when a limited number of Princes, fixed at seven for a time, and afterwards en- larged to eight (nine from 1092 to 1777), assumed the privilege of disposing of the crown, and, their right being acknowledged, were called Electors. With the overthrow of the old Empire by the Emperor Napoleon, in 1806, the Electoral dignity virtually ceased, although the title of Elector was retained sixty years longer by the sovereigns of Hesse-Cassel, the last of them dethroned in 1866 by Prussia. The election of Wilhelm I., King of Prussia, as the German Emperor (1871) was by vote of the Reichstag of the North German Confeder- ation, on the initiative of all the reigning Princes of Germany. The imperial dignity is hereditary in the House of Hohenzollern, and follows the law of primogeniture. The Constitution of the Empire bears date April 16, 1871. By its terms, all the States of Germany " form an eternal union for the pro- tection of the realm and the care of the welfare of the German people. " The supreme direction of the military and political affairs of the Em- pire is vested in the King of Prussia-, who, in this capacity, bears the title of Deutscher Kaiser. According to Art. 11 of the Constitution, "the Emperor represents the Empire internation- ally," and can declare war, if defensive, and make peace, as well as enter into treaties with other nations, and appoint and receive ambas- sadors. But when treaties relate to matters regulated by imperial legislation, and when war is not merely defensive, the Kaiser must have the consent of the Bundesrath, or Federal Council, in which body, together with the Reichstag, or Diet of the realm, are vested the legislative functions of the Empire. The Emperor has no veto on laws passed by these bodies. The Bundesrath represents the indi- vidual States of Germany, and the Reichstag the German nation. The 58 members of the Bundesrath are appointed by the Governments of the individual States for each session, while the members of the Reichstag, 397 in number (about one for every 131,604 inhabitants), are elected by universal suffrage and ballot for the term of five years. By the law of March 19, 1888, which came into force in 1890, the dura- tion of the legislative period is five years. Both the Bundesrath and the Reichstag meet in annual session, convoked by the Em- peror. The Emperor has the right to prorogue and dissolve, after a vote by the Bundesrath. the Reichstag. Without consent of the Reichs- tag the prorogation may not exceed thirty days ; while in case of dissolution new elec- tions must take place within sixty days, and a new session must open within ninety days. All laws for the Empire must receive the votes of an absolute majority of the Bundesrath and the Reichstag. The Bundesrath is presided over by the Reichskanzler, or Chancellor of the Empire, and the President of the Reichs- tag is elected by the deputies. The laws of the Empire, passed by the Bundesrath and the Reichstag, to take effect must be promulgated by the Emperor, and the promulgation, like all other official acts of the Emperor, requires the counter-signature of the Chancellor of the Empire. All the mem- bers of the Bundesrath have the right to be present at the deliberations of the Reichstag. The following are the imperial authorities or Secretaries of State : they do not form a Ministry or Cabinet, but act independently of each other, under the general supervision of the Chancellor. 1. Chancellor of (he Empire. 2. Ministry for Foreign Affairs. 3. Imperial Home Office and "Representative of the Chancellor." 4- Imperial Admiralty. 5. Imperial Ministry ofJuntiee. 6. Imperial Treasury. THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. 7. Imperial Post Office. 8. Imperial Railways. 9. Imperial Exchequer. 10. Imperial Invalid Fund. 11. Imperial Bank. 12. Imperial Debt Commission. Acting under the direction of the Chancellor of the Empire, the Bundesrath represents also a supreme administrative and consultivc board, and as such has twelve standing committees namely, for army and fortifications ; for naval matters ; tariff, excise, and taxes ; trade and commerce ; railways, posts, and telegraphs ; civil and criminal law ; financial accounts ; foreign affairs; for Alsace-Lorraine; for the j Freiburg.! ! Constitution; for the standing orders; and osttingen" for railway tariffs. Each committee consists of representatives of at least four States of the Empire ; but the foreign affairs committee includes only the representatives of Bavaria, Saxony, Wiirtemberg, and two other repre- sentatives to be elected every year. Keligion. The Constitution provides for entire liberty of conscience and for complete social equality among all religious confessions. The relation between Church and State varies in different parts of the Em- pire. The order of the Jesuits is interdicted in all parts of Germany, and all convents and religious orders, except those engaged in nursing the sick and purely contemplative orders, have been suppressed. There are five Roman Catholic archbishops, and twenty bishop- rics. The " Old Catholics " have a bishop at Bonn. The various creeds were distributed as follows at the last religious census, 1895 : nical schools, Polytechnica, normal schools, seminaries, and the universities. There are 21 universities in the German Empire, be- sides the Lyceum Hosianum at Braunsberg (.) teachers and about forty students), which has only faculties of theology (Roman Catholic) and philosophy! The following taule gives the number of teachers for the summer half-year, 1898. and the number of students for the winter haff-year, 1897-98. Students Universities [ T- =~ ~Zz 2 g The- ology Juris- pru- dence Medi- cine Philos- ophy Total Berlin 372 441 1,984 1,360 2,150 5.9.15 Bonn 147 304 409 264 694 1,671 Breslan 1C4 324 443 345 385 1,497 Erlangen ... 08 240 182 434 112 1,068 Freiburg 115 218 249 392 214 1,073 Giessen 72 58 236 224 156 674 Gottingen . . 123 137 336 236 445 1,154 Greif swald . 91 209 167 " 293 87 756 Halle 144 411 346 aa 584 1 616 Heidelberg . 147 54 340 203 487 1,034 Jena 96 35 158 193 241 6-J2 Kiel 102 61 125 263 131 580 KSnigsberg Leipzig 113 208 c- 61 348 211 1,032 235 724 171 1,173 684 3,277 Marburg 100 110 229 249 320 908 Miinchen . . . 180 152 1,145 1,396 1,124 3,817 MUnster 48 315 211 526 Rostock 49 30 'iio ios 196 451 ; Strassburg. 137 82 335 323 320 1,066 Tubingen. . . 98 40J 441 255 121 1,22*5 Wurzburg... 101 146 249 742 288 1,425 Creed Numbers Per Cent, of Pop. Evangelicals ... 1,440,240 69 2 Roman Catholics Other Christians Jews 621,474 7,451 11,887 29.9 036 57 Others 99 004 Instruction. Education is general and compulsory throughout Germany. The laws of Prussia, which pro- vide fortheestablishment of elementary schools( Volks- schuleui), supported from the local rates, in every town and village, and compel all parents to send their chil- dren to these or other schools, have been adopted, with slight modifications, in all the States of the Empire. The school age is from six to fourteen. The system of secondary education is also practically homogeneous. Above the elementary schools rank the middle schools of thetowns, the Burgerschulcn and Hohere Bilrftersch >Uei>., whichntthoirpupilsforbusinesslife. Chiliirenof the working classes may continue their education at th3 F ortbUduiigs- Kch ulen or continuation schools, which ire open in the evening or other convenient time. The Gymnasia are the most fully developed classical acbools, preparing pupils in a nine years' course for the universities and the learned professions. The J'roaym- nasia differ from these only in not having the high- est classes. In the Jtealfrymnasto, Latin, but not Greek ta taught, and what are usually termed " modern sub- jects "nave more time devoted to them. Real proriym.- no.sjo h;ive a similiar course, but have no class corre- sponding to tbe highest class in the preceding. In the Oberreatschulen and Realschvlen Latin is wholly dis- placed in favor of mortem languages. In 1897, 1,048 secondary schools (including 56 private schools), also 181 public Lchrer-Seminare and 32 public Far.hschulen : total 1.261 institutions, possessed the right of granting certificates to pupils, entitling them to serve in the army as one-year volunteers. The teachers in G"rman schools are required to hold a Government certificate, and to have undergone a year's probation. Higher schools for girls are called Hohere Tochterschulen. Be- sides these there are numerous Oewerbeschulen or tech- In four universities, namely, Freiburg, Munchen, Munster, and Wurzburg, the faculties of theology are Roman Catholic ; three are mixed, both Protestant and Roman Catholic Bonn, Breslau, and Tubingen; and the remaining fourteen are Protestant. Justice. In terms of Judicature Acts in 1877 and 1879 a uniform system of law courts was adopted throughout the Empire not later than .January 1, 1879, though with the exception of the Reichsgericht, all courts are directly subject to the Government of the special State in which theyexercis3 jurisdiction, and not to the Imperial Government. The appointment of the judges is also a State and not an Imperial function. The Empire enjoys uniform codes of commercial and criminal law, and the civil code of August 18, 1896, will come into force on January 1, 1900. The lowest courts_ of first instance are the Amtsg&- richte, each with a single judge, competent to try petty civil and criminal cases. There was on January 1, 1897, 1,025 Amtsgerichte in the Empire, or one for every 27,- 144 inhabitants. The Landgrerichte exercise a revising jurisdiction over the Amtsgerichte, and also a more ex- tensive original jurist! iction in both civil and criminal cases, divorce cases, etc. In the criminal chamber five judges sit, and a majority of four votes is required for a conviction. Jury courts (Schuwrfferichte) are also held periodically, in which three judges preside; the jury are twelve in number. There are 172 Landgerichte in the Empire, or one for every 303,053 of the popula- tion. The first courtpf second instance is the Oberlandes- t. In its criminal senate, which also has an original jurisdiction in 82rious cases, the number of the judges i.s seven. There are twenty-eight such courts in the Empire. The total number of judges on the bench in all the courts above mentioned is 7,634. In Bavaria alone there is an Oherste LatulesyericM, with eighteen judges, with a revising jurisdiction over the Bavarian Oberlandesgerichte. The supreme court is the neichsgericht, which sits at Leipzig. 1"he judges, eighty-four in number, are appointed T>y the Emperor on the advice of the Bundesrath. The court exercises an appellate jurisdiction over all inferior courts, and also an original jurisdiction in cases of treason. It has four criminal arid six civil senates. Foreign Dependencies. Germany has declared her protection over various areas or sphres of influ- ence in Africa, in China, and in the Western Pacific. The following is a list of the various foreign regions at present (1899) under the protection or influence of Ger' many, the estimates given being necessarily vague ; GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 97 Date of Acquisi tion. Method of Government. Estimated Area, Sq. Miles. Estimated Popula- tion. IN AFRICA : Togoland 1884 Imperial Commissioner 33 000 2,500 000 Kuinerun 1*84 191 130 3 500 ooo German South- West Africa 1884-90 Imperial Commissioner 32 450 200 000 German East Africa . .. . 1885-90 Imperial Governor 3x4 ]80 4000 000 Total African Possessions 1884-90 930 7 CO 10 200 000 IN ASIA : Kiauchau Bay 1897 Imperial Governor. 120* 60000* IN THE PACIFIC! : Kaiser Wilhelm's Land 1885-86 j i 70003 110 000 Bismarck Archipelago 185 [ New Guinea Company ] 20,000 188 000 Solomon Islands 1886 9 000 89 000 Marshall Islands, etc 1880 150 13 000 Total Pacific Possessions 1884-86 99,270 4tO 000 Total Foreign Dependencies 1884-97 1,030 030 10 600 000 * Exclusive of the Bay with an area of about 200 square miles, and the neutral zone with an area of about 2,500 square miles, and population of 1,200,000. GREECE. Greece, a province of the Turkish Empire since the commencement of the 16th century, gained its independence in the insurrection of 1821-29, and by the Protocol of London, of February 3, 1830, was declared a kingdom, under the protection of Great Britain, France, and Russia. Prince Leopold of Saxe-Coburg having declined the crown of Greece, on the ground that the boundaries proposed were in- sufficient, and especially excluded the island of Crete, it was offered to, and accepted by, Prince Otto of Bavaria, who ascended the throne January 25, 1833, being under the age of eighteen. He was expelled from- the King- dom, after a reign of 29 years, in October, 1862, which event was followed by the election, under the directing guidance of the three pro- tecting Powers, of the present sovereign. The King, according to Art. 49 of the Con- stitution of 1804, attains his majority upon completing his eighteenth year. Before he ascends the throne, he must 'take the oath to the Constitution in the presence of the minis- ters, the sacred synod, the deputies then in the metropolis, and the higher officials of the realm. Within two months at the most the King must convoke the Legislature. If the successor to the throne is either a minor or absent at the time of the King's decease, and no Regent has been appointed, the Legislative Chamber has to assemble of its own accord within ten days after the occurrence of that event. The con- stitutional royal authority in this case has to be exercised by the ministerial council, until the choice of a Regent, or the arrival of the successor to the throne. The present sover- eign is allowed, by special exception, to adhere to the religion in which he was educated, the Protestant Lutheran faith, but his heirs and successors must be members of the Greek Or- thodox Church. The Constitution of Greece, adopted Octo- ber 29, 1864, vests the whole legislative power iu a single chamber, called the Boul6, consist- ing of 207 representatives, elected by manhood suffrage for the term of four years. Repre- sentatives must be at least 30 years of age, and electors 21 . The elections take place by ballot, and each candidate must be put in nomination by the requisition of at least one thirtieth of the voters of an electoral district. At the election of 1881 there were 460,163 voters on the list, being 1 voter in every 4.3 of the pop- ulation ; the number who voted was 306,957, or 66 per cent, of the voters. The Boul6 must meet annually for not less than three, nor more than six, months. No sitting is valid unless at least one half of the members of the Assembly are present, and no bill can pass into law without an absolute majority of members. Every measure, before being adopted, must be discussed and voted, article by article, thrice, and on three separate days. But the Legisla- tive Assembly has no power to alter the Con- stitution itself ; particular provisions may be reviewed after the lapse of ten years, with the exception of " fundamental principles." The Chamber of Deputies, unless specially con- voked at an earlier date, for extraordinary occasions, must meet on November 1 (old style) of every year. The deputies are paid 2,000 old drachma! (equal to 1,800 new dra- chmai, or 72/.) each per session ; for an extra session the allowance varies according to its length from 20/. to 72/. The Ministry is as follows : President of the Council and Minister of Foreign Affairs. Minister of Interior, Worship, and Instruction. THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Minister of Marine. Minister of War. Minister of Finance. Minister of Justice. The Ministers of Finance and Justice are not members of the Cabinet. Religion. The great majority of the inhabitants of the Kingdom are adherents of the Greek Orthodox Church. Before the census of 1889 there were 1,902,800 belonging to the Greek Orthodox Church ; 14,677 other Christians, mainly Roman Catholics; 5,792 Jews; and 24.165 Mohammedans. By the terms of the Constitution of 18G4, the Greek Orthodox Church is declared the reli- gion of the State, but complete toleration and liberty of worship is guaranteed to all other sects. Nominally, the Greek clergy owe allegiance to the Patriarch of Constantinople, though he now exercises no governing authority ; he is elected by the votes of the bishops and optimates subject to the Sultan; his jurisdiction ex- tends over Thrace and other countries, including Bosnia, as well as the greater part of Asia Minor. The real ecclesiastical authority, formerly exercised by him in Greece, was annulled "by the resolutions of a'National Synod, held at Nauplia in 1833, which vested the govern- ment of the Orthodox Church, within the limits of the Kingdom, in a permanent council, called the Holy- Synod, consisting of the Metropolitan of Athens and fourarchbishops and bishops, who must during their year of office reside at the seat of the executive. The Orthodox Church has nine archbishops and eight bishops in Northern Greece; six archbishops and six bishops in the Peloponnesus; one archbishop and five bishops in the islands of the Greek Archipelago; and five archbishops and ten bishops in the Ionian Islands. There are 161 monasteries and nunneries, with 2,620 monks and 485 nnns. Instruction. All children between the ages of five and twelve years must attend school, but the law is not well enforced in country districts. Of the army re- cruits 30 per cent, are illiterate, and 15 per cent, can read only. There are (1892) 2,745 primary schools, 295 secondary schools, and a university. The total number of teachers is 3,680, and of pupils, 139,385, of whom 22, IdO are females. There are 2 agricultural schools in Greece with, together, 51 pupils. In 1895 an industrial and commercial school, with 40 teachers, was opened at Piraeus to give instruc- tion in the industries relating to wine, spirits, beer, soap, perfumes, dairy-keeping, cattleand silkworm rear- ing, and in the duties of commercial clerks. In 1895 the University of Athens had 2,987 students, of whom 967 studied medicine, 1,327 law, 516 philosophy, 51 theology, 124 chemistry. Of the total number 604 were from abroad, chiefly from Turkey. ITALY. The present Constitution of Italy is an ex- pansion of the "Statute fondamentale del Regno," granted on March 4, 1848, by King Charles Albert to his Sardinian subjects. Ac- cording to this charter, the executive power of the State belongs exclusively to the Sovereign, and is exercised by him through responsible ministers ; while the legislative authority rests conjointly in the King and Parliament, the latter consisting of two Chambers an upper one, the Senate, and a lower one, called the "Camerade'Deputati." The Senate is composed of the princes of the royal house who are of age, and of an unlimited number of members, above forty years old, who are nominated by the King for life ; a condition of the nomina- tion being that the person should either fill a high office, or have acquired fame in science, literature, or any other pursuit tending to the benefit of the nation, or, finally, should pay taxes to the annual amount of 3,000 lire, or 1201. In 1897, there were 372 senators. By the electoral law of March 28, 1895, electors for deputies to the Lower House are all citi- zens over twenty-one years of age who can read and write and who possess one or other of the following qualifications : they must have reached a certain standard in elementary edu- cation ; or must pay not less than 19.80 lire in direct (including provincial) taxation ; or, if peasant farmers, must pay annually at least 500 lire of rent, or be managers, with a share in the profits, of farms on which direct (in- cluding provincial) taxes of not less than 80 lire are paid ; or, being occupants of lodgings, shops, etc., in towns, pay an annual rent rang- ing from 150 lire in communes of 2,500 inhab- itants to 400 lire in communes of 150,000 inhabitants. Non-commissioned officers and men in the army have no vote while under arms. Members of academies, professors, per- sons who have served their country under arms for two ye'ars, and numerous other classes are qualified to vote by their position. The num- ber of deputies is 508, or 1 to every 57,000 of the population (census 1881). In 1896 the number of enrolled electors was 2,120,909, exclusive of the electors temporarily disfran- chised on account of military service (39,029 in 1895). At the general election in March, 1897, the number of those who voted was 1,241,486, or 58.5 per cent, of those who had the right to vote. For electoral purposes the whole of . the Kingdom is divided into 508 electoral colleges or districts, and these again into several sections. No deputy can b& returned to Parliament unless he has obtained a number of votes greater than one sixth of the total number of inscribed electors, and than half the votes given. A deputy must be thirty years old, and have the requisites demanded by the electoral law. Incapable of being elected are all salaried Government officials, as well as all persons ordained for the priesthood and filling clerical charges, or receiving pay from the State. Officers in the army and navy, ministers, under-secretaries of State, and vari- ous other classes of functionaries high in office, may be elected, but their number must never be more than forty, not including the minis- ters and the under-secretaries of State. Neither senators nor deputies receive any salary or other indemnity, but are allowed to travel free I throughout Italy by rail or steamer. The duration of Parliament is five years ; | but the King has the power to dissolve the Lower House at any time, being bound only t order new elections, and convoke a new meet- ing within four months. It is incumbent upon GOVERtfMfcttt Atffc LAW. the executive to call the Parliament together annually. Each of the Chambers has the right of introducing new bills, the same as the Gov- ernment ; but all money bills must originate in the House of Deputies. The ministers have the right to attend the debates of both the Upper and the Lower House ; but they have no vote unless they are members. The sittings of both Chambers are public ; and no sitting is valid unless an absolute majority of the mem- bers are present. The executive power is exercised, under the King, by a ministry divided into 11 depart- ments, as follows : 1. President of the Council and Minister of Interior. 2. Minister of Foreign Affairs 3. Minister of the Treasury. 4- Minister of Finance. 5. Minister of Justice and of Ecclesiastical Affairs. 6. Minister of War. 7. Minister of Marine. 8. Minister of Commerce, Industry, and Agri- culture. 9. Minister of Public Instruction. 10. Minister of Public Works. 11. Minister of Posts and Telegraphs. Local Government. The two principal elective local administrative bodies are the communal councils and the provincial councils. According to the law of February 10, 1889, each commune has a communal coun- cil, a municipal council, and a syndic. Both the com- munal councils and the municipal councils vary accord- ing to population, the members of the latter being selected by the former from among themselves. The syndic is the head of the communal administration, and is a Government official ; he is elected by the com- munal council from among its own members, by secret vote, in all the chief communes of provinces and dis- tricts, and in other communes having more than 10,- 000 inhabitants. In other communes the syndic is ap- pointed by the King from among the communal coun- cilors. Each province has a provincial council and a provincial commission, the members varying according to population. The council elects its president and other officials. The provincial commission is elected by the council from its_ own members. It conducts the business of the province -when the latter is not sitting. Both communal and provincial councilors areelected for five years, one fifth being renewed every year. The communal council meets twice and the provincial once a year in ordinary session, though they may be con- vened for extraordinary purposes. All communal elec- tors are eligible to the council except those having an official or pecuniary interest in the commune. Persons not resident in the province, or having no solid interest in it, or who do not pay taxes on movable property, as well as officials in anyway interested in the province, are ineligible to the provincial councils. Electors must be Italian citizens, twenty-one years of age, and able to read and write, be on the Parliamentary electoral list, orpay a direct annual contribution to tlie commune, of any nature, or comply with other conditions of a very simple character. Relisnon. The Roman Catholic Church is, nominally, the ruling State religion of Italy ; but many Acts of the Legislature, passed since the establishment of the Kingdom, and more especially since the suppression of the Supreme Pontiff's temporal government, have su- bordinated the power of the Church and clergy to the authority of the civil government, and secured freedom of worship to the adherents of all recognized religions. However, scarcely any other positive creed as yet exists but Roman Catholicism. At the census of 1881, of the total population about 62,000 wre Protestants and 38 - 000 Jews. Of the Protestants 22,000 belonged to the Waldensian Church f Piedmont, about 10,000 to th other evangelical Italian Churches, and 30,000 to foreitm Protestant bodies. Under the Roman Pontiff, the Catholic episcopal hierarchy in Italy consists of 49 archbishoprics and 220 bishoprics besides the 6 cardinal bishoprics near Rome. Of these prelacies, 76 are immediately subject to I the Apostolic See, 12 being archbishoprics. Thus there are altogether 37 metropolitan sees, the average number of suffragan sees to each metropolitan being about 4. Every archbishop or bishop is appointed by the Pope, on the advice of a council of Cardinals-; but the royal axtguatur is necessary for his installation. The number of parishes in 1881 was 20,465 ; of churches and chape* 55,263; of secular clergy, 76,560. The immense wealth of .he Italian clergy has greatly dwindled since the year 1850, when the Siccardi biu, abolishing external ecclesiastical jurisdiction and cler- ical privileges, passed the Sardinian Chambers. This law was extended, in 1861, over the whole Kingdom, and had the effect of rapidly diminishing the numbers as well as the incomes of the clergy. In 165 there were in Italy 2,382 religious houses.of which 1,506 were for men and 876 for women. The number of religious persons was 28,991, of whom 14,807 were men and 14,184 women. The mendicant orders numbered 8,229 persons, comprised in the above-mentioned total. A law for the entire suppression of all religious houses throughout the Kingdom was adopted by the Italian Parliament in 18C6. This law provided a small pension to all religious persons who had taken regular vows be- fore January 18, 1864. Several monasteries were tem- porarily set aside for such monks, friars, or nuns as might wish to continue their conventual life, the in- mates, when come down to a certain number, to be drafted off to another house, and so again, until all fi- nally died out. All collegiate chapters were likewise dissolved. The lands and goods of these suppressed bodies were appropriated by the State. See and Church of Rome. The "Statute fonda- mentale del Regno " enacts, in its first article, that " the Catholic, Apostolic, and Roman religion is the sole religion of the State." By the Royal decree of October 9, 1870, which declared that " Rome and the Roman Provinces shall coustitute an integral part of the King- dom of Italy," the Pope or Roman Pontiff was acknowl- edged supreme head of the Church, preserving his former rank and dignity as a sovereign prince. Fur- thermore, by a bill that became law May 13, 1871, there was guaranteed to His Holiness and his successors for- ever, besides possession of the Vatican and Lateran palaces and the villa of Castel Gandolfo, a yearly in- come of 3,225,000 lire or 129,000?., which allowance (whose arrears would in 1899 amount to 93,525,000 lire, or 3,741,- OOtV.) still remains unclaimed and unpaid. Supreme Pontiff.^- Leone XIII. (Gioacchino Pecci), born at Carpineto in the diocese of Anagni, March 2, 1810, son of Count Luigi Pecci ; consecrated Archbishop of Damiata, 1843; Apostolic Nuncio to Belgium, 1JM3-46; Bishop" of Perugia, 1846 ; proclaimed Cardinal, Decem- ber 19, 1853 ; elected Supreme Pontiff, as successor of Pio IX., P'ebruary 20, 1878; crowned, March 3 following. He is, therefore, now 88 years old, and has filled the Pontifical throne for 20 years. The election of a Pope ordinarily is by scrutiny. Each Cardinal in conclave writes on a ticket his own name with that of the Cardinal whom he chooses. These tickets, folded and sealed, are laid in a chalice which stands on the altar of the conclave chapel; and each elector approaching the altar repeats a prescribed form of oath. Thereupon the tickets are taken from the chalice by scrutators appointed from the electing body: the tickets are compared with the number of Cardinals present, and wnen it is found that any Cardinal has two thirds of the votes in his favor he is declared elected. Should none have received the need- ful number of votes, another process is gone through, viz., access so called because anv Cardinal may accede to the choice of another by filling up another ticket made for that purpose. The present Pontiff, Leone XIII. , was chosen almost unanimously. He is regarded as the ?6.3d Pope (or thereabouts) from St. Peter. The rise of the Roman Pontificate, a an avowed tem- poral sovereignty, dates from the year 758, when Pepin, King of the Franks, gave to Pope Stefano III. the Ex- archate and Pentapolis (or Romagna), conquered from the Lombards, to wnich Charles the Great added part of Tuscany and Sabiua ; and three centuries later CoontMt 100 THE CENTURY BOOK OP FACTS. Matilda of Tuscany bequeathed to the Holy See her ample territories. Rome, however, with the Roman duchy, came practically under the Pope's civil dominion in the days or Gregorio the Great (590-604). In 1860 the whole Pontifical State comprised an area of about 16.000 square miles, with a population of 3, 125,000 souls: thenceforth, until 1870, about 5,000 square miles and 692,000 souls. The Bishop of Rome, or Pope, by Roman Catholics accounted Vicar of Jesus Christ upon earth, and, in that office, Successor of St. Peter, is the absolute antl irre- sponsible ruler of the Roman Catholic Church, regarded as tlie whole Christian Church here below. His ex cathe- drO, definitions on matters of faith or morals are held to be infallible, and against his judgments there is no appeal. Every baptized person is held to be spiritually subject to him, and his jurisdiction over such to be im- mediate. "The Roman Pontiff has for advisers and coad- jutors the Sacred College of Cardinals consisting, when complete, of seventy members, namely, six cardinal- bishops, fifty cardinal-priests, and fourteen cardinal- deacons, but hardly ever comprising the full number. In January 1809 the Sacred College consisted of six car- dinal-bishops, forty-five cardinal-priests, and five cardi- nal-deacons. The central administration of the Roman Catholic Church is carried on by a number of permanent com- mittees called Sacred Congregations, composed of Car- dinals, with Consultors and Officials. There are now twenty sacred Congregations, viz. : Inquisition or Holy Office! Consistorial, Apostolic Visitation, Bishops and Regulars, Council, Residence of Bishops, State or Regu- ular Discipline, Indulgences ination of Bishops, Fabric of St. Peter's, Lauretana, Ex- traordinary Ecclesiastical Affairs, Studies. Instruction. The State regulates public instruction, and maintains, either entirely or in conjunction with the communes and provinces, public schools of every grade. Every teacher in a public institution maintained by the State, or by any other public body, must have the qualifications required by law ; and in all public insti- tution ? not belonging to the State, the same programme must be followed, and the same rules observed. NJ private person can keep a school without having ob- tained the authorization of the State. Justice. In Italy, justice in penal matters is admin- istered in the first instance by the Pretori, by the penal Tribunals, and by tha Courts of Assize ; on appeal, by the penal Tribunals, and by the Courts of Appeal. Tha highest court is the Court of Cassation, which confines itself to inquiring whether the forms prescribed by law have been observed. The Pretori have jurisdiction concerning all delicts (delitti) punishable bv imprisonment not exceeding three months, or banishment not exceeding one vear, or by fine not exceeding 1,030 lire and all misdemeanors (contravenzioni). The penal Tribunals have jurisdiction mthe first instance in offenses (delitti) (excepting of- fenses for which tho Codeestablishesa minimum of five years) punishable by imprisonment from ten months to ten years, or Ly fine exceeding 1,000 lire. The Courts of Assize, which ia most cases have juries, have jurisdiction inall proceedings concerningseri'ou3oflen8esfdelitti)pun- ishable by imprisonment for life (ergastolo) or by impris- onment Irom ten to twenty-four years, or by minimum imprisonment exceeding five years. They have exclu- sive jurisdiction concerning offenses against the inter- nal and external security of the State, and all press of- fenses. Apj.eiilij allowed to the penal Tribunals from the sentences of the Pretori, and to the Courts of Ap- peal from those of the penal Tribunals. The Court of Cassation has power to annul, for illegality, sentences passed by the inferior Courts, and to decide questions of jurisdiction or competency. Italy is divided, for the administration of justice, into twenty appeal court districts, each of which is sub- divided into tribunal districts, 162 in all, and these again into mandamenti, each with its own magistracy (Pretura), 1,548 in all. JAPAN. The Japanese claim that their empire was founded by the first Emperor Jimmu 600 u. c., and that the dynasty founded by him still reigns. It was revived iu the year 1868, when the now ruling {de jure) sovereign overthrew, after a short war, the power of the Shogun (the de facto sovereign), who had held the ruling power in successive families since the twelfth century ; and in 1871 the feudal sys- tem (Hoken Seiji) was entirely suppressed. The sovereign bears the name of Kotei, or Emperor ; but the appellation by which he is generally known in foreign countries is the ancient title of Mikado, or "The Honorable Gate." By the Imperial House Law of February 11, 1889, the succession to the throne has been definitely fixed upon the male descen- dants. In case of failure of direct descen- dants, the throne devolves upon the nearest Prince and his descendants. The system of government of the Japanese Empire was that of an Absolute Monarchy. A Constitution was, however, promulgated on February 11, 1889. By this Constitution the Emperor is the head of the Empire, combining in himself the rights of sovereignty, and exercising the whole of the executive powers with the advice and assistance of the Cabinet Ministers, who are responsible to him, and are appointed by him- self. There is also a Privy Council, who de- liberate upon important matters of State when they have been consulted by the Emperor. The Emperor can declare war, make peace, and conclude treaties. The Emperor exer- cises the legislative power with the consent of the Imperial Diet. It is the prerogative of the Emperor to give sanction to laws, to con- voke the Imperial Diet, to open, close, and prorogue it, and to dissolve the House of Rep- resentatives. The Imperial Diet consists of two Houses, a House of Peers and a House of Representatives. Every law requires the con- sent of the Imperial Dipt. Both Houses may respectively initiate projects of law, can make representations to the Government as to laws or upon any other subject, and may present addresses to the Emperor. The House of Peers is composed of (1 ) male members of the Imperial family of the age of 20 and upwards ; (2) princes and marquises of the age of 25 and upwards (11 princes and 28 marquises) ; (3) counts, viscounts, and barons of the age of 25 and upwards, and who have been elected by the members of their re- spective orders, never to exceed one fifth of each order (80 counts, 355 viscounts, 29 bar- ons) ; (1) persons above the age of 30 years, who have been nominated members by the Emperor for meritorious services to the State or for erudition ; (5) persons who shall have been elected in each Fu and Ken from among aiid by the 15 male inhabitants thereof, of GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 101 above the age of 30 years, paying therein the highest amount of direct national taxes on land, industry, or trade, and have been nomi- nated by the Emperor. The term of member- ship under (3) and (5) is seven years ; under (1), (2), and (4) for life. The number of members under (4) and (5) not to exceed the number of other members. The entire mem- bership of the House of Peers is to be about 300. The members of the House of Representa- tives number 300, a fixed number being re- turned from each election district. The pro- portion of the number of members to the population is about one member to 128,000. The qualifications of electors are (1) male Japanese subjects of not less than full 25 years of age ; (2) fixed permanent and actual resi- dence in the Fu or Ken for not less than a year ; (3) payment of direct national taxes to the amount of not less than 15 yen for one year in the Fu or Ken, and in case of income tax for three years. The qualifications of persons eligible for election are generally the same as those of electors, except that they must be of not less than 30 years, and need not have fixed resi- dence in the Fu or Ken. The term of mem- bership is four years. Disqualified for members of the House of Representatives are officials of the Imperial Household, judges, auditors, officials connected with the collection of taxes, police officials, officials of electoral districts within their own districts, military and naval officers, and priests or ministers of religion. The President and Vice-President of the House of Peers are nomi- nated by the Emperor from among the mem- bers, and President and Vice- President of the House of Representatives are nominated by the Emperor from among three candidates elected by the House. The Presidents of both Houses receive an annual salary of 4,000 yen ; Vice-Presidents, 2,000 yen; elected and nomi- nated members of the House of Peers and members of the House of Representatives, 800 yen, besides traveling expenses. No one is allowed to decline these annual allowances. The Imperial Diet has control over the finances and the administration of justice. Voting is by secret ballot, and the system is that of scrutin de liste. The Diet must be as- sembled once every year. At the head of local administration in the provinces are the governors, one of them re- siding in each of the 46 districts (3 Fus and 43 Kens) into which Japan is divided. In 187P, city and prefectural assemblies were created, based on the principle of election ; their power is confined to fixing the estimates of the local rates, subject to the confirmation of the governors, and finally of the Minister of the Interior. Eligible to the assembly are all male citizens 25 years of age, resident in the district at least three consecutive years, and paying land tax of more than ten yen annu- ally. The franchise is conferred on all male citizens of 20 years residing in the district, and paying more than five yen land tax. An- nually, or in every other year, governors are summoned to the Department of the Interior to deliberate upon matters of local administra- tion. Each district is subdivided into cities (leu), and counties (12 roubles for primary schools. Justice. Tha organization of justice was totally re- formed by the law of 1864; but the action of that law has not yet been extended to the governments of Olo- nets, Vo'logda, Astrakhan, Lfa, and Orenburg, and has been applied but in a modified form (in 1889) to the Bal- tic Provinces and the government of Arkhangelsk. In theabove-named governments the Justice of Peace has been introduced, but the other tribunals remain in the old state. No juries are allowed in Poland and the Caucasus; the justices of peace are nominated by the Government in the provinces which have no zemstvos. In Poland there are judges of peace in the towns only, their functions in the villages being performed by Gmina courts, elected by the inhabi tants of the Ginina. Siberia has maintained the tribunals of old; in the Steppe Prov- inces there are district judges, while courts of higher instance are represented by the Justice Department of the provincial administration. There were in 1891, 2appeal departments of the Senate, 10 high courts, 85 courts of first instance. There were besides 1,280 inquiry judges, and 1,345 notaries; 2,126 actual, and 3,652 honorary justices of peace. In the un- reformed tribunals there were 604 judges, 129 public prosecutors, and 156 inquiry judges. Bv a law, dated June 21, 1889, the functions of the juries were limited to some extent, especially as regards the crimes committed by the representatives of nobility in their elective functions. By a law of April 6, 1891, reformed courts as well as chiefs of districts have been introduced in the prov- inces of the Kirghize Steppes. In Siberia, the reformed Courts and trialby jury were introduced in 1897, and in Turkestan in 1898. SPAIN. The present Constitution of Spain, drawn up by the Government and laid before a Cortes Constituventes, elected for its ratification, March 27, 1876, was proclaimed June 30, 1876. It consists of 89 articles or clauses. The first of them enacts that Spain shall be a constitutional monarchy, the executive resting in the King, and the power to make laws " in the Cortes with the King." The Cortes are composed of a Senate and Congress, equal in authority. There are three classes of senators first, senators by their own right, or Sena- dores de derecho propio; secondly, 100 life sen- ators nominated by the Crown these two categories not to exceed 180 ; and thirdly, 180 senators, elected by the Corporations of State that is, the communal and prof incial states, the church, the universities, academies, etc. and by the largest payers of contributions. Senators in their own right are the sons, if any, of the King and of the immediate heir to the throne, who have attained their majority : Grandees who are so in their own right and who can prove an annual renla of 60,000 pesetas, or 2,400/. ; captain-generals of the army ; admirals of the navy ; the patriarch of the Jndias and the archbishops ; the presi- dents of the Council of State, of the Supreme Tribunal, of the Tribunal of Cuentas del Reino, and of the Supreme Council of War and of the Navy, after two years of office. The elective senators must be renewed by one half every five years, and by totality every time the Mon- arch dissolves that part of the Cortes. The Congress is formed by deputies " named in the electoral Juntas in the form the law deter- mines," in the proportion of one to every 50,- 000 souls of the population. According to Ihe law of June 26, 1890, the electoral qualifica- tion is held by all male Spaniards, 25 years of age, who enjoy full civil rights, and have beer citizens of a municipality for at least two years. Members of Congress must be 25 years of age ; they are re-eligible indefinitely, the elections being for 5 years. Deputies, to the number of 10, are admitted who, although not elected for any one district, have obtained a cumulative vote of more than 10,000 in several districts. Deputies to the number of 88 are elected by scrutin de liste in 26 large districts, in which minorities may be duly represented. There are in all 431 deputies. The deputies cannot take State office, pensions, and salaries ; but the ministers are exempted from this law. Both Congress and Senate meet every year. The Monarch has the power of convoking them, suspending them, or dissolving them ; but in the latter case a new Cortes must sit within three months. The Monarch appoints the president and vice-presidents of the Senate from members of the Senate only ; the Con- gress elects its own officials. The Monarch and each of the legislative chambers can take the initiative in the laws. The Congress has the right of impeaching the ministers before the Senate. The Constitution of June 30, 1876, further enacts that the Monarch is inviolable, but his ministers are responsible, and that all his de- crees must be countersigned by one of them. The Cortes must approve his marriage before he can contract it, and the King cannot marry anyone excluded by law from the succession to the crown. Should the lines of the legiti- mate descendants of the late Alphonso XII. become extinct, the succession shall be in this order first, to his sisters ; next to his aunt and her legitimate descendants ; and next to those of his uncles, the brothers of Fernaodo VII., "unless they have been excluded." If all the lines become extinct, " the nation will elect its Monarch." The executive is vested, under the Monarch, in a Council of Ministers, as follows, March 4, 1899: President of the Council. Minister of Foreign Affair*. GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 107 Minister of Justice. Minitter of Finance. Minister of the Interior Minister of War. Minister of Marine. Minister of Agriculture and Commerce and of Public Works. The Ministry of the Colonies was abolished February 10, 1899. Local Government. The various provinces and communes of Spain are governed by the provincial and municipal laws. Every commune 'has its own elected Ayuntamiento, consisting of from five- to thirtv-nine Regidores, or Concejales, and presided over by the Al- calde, at whose side stand, in the larger towns, several Tenientes Alcaldes. The entire municipal government, with power of taxation, is vested in the Ayuntamientos. Half the members are elected every two years, and they appoint the Alcalde, the executive functionary, from their own bodv. In the larger towns he may be ap- pointed by the If ing. Members cannot be re-elected un- til after two years. Each province of Spain has its own Parliament, the Diputacion Provincial, the members of which are elected by the constituencies. The Diputa- ciones Provinciales meet in annual session, and are per- manently represented by the Commission Provincial, a committee elected every year. The Constitution of 1876 secures to the Diputaciones Provinciales anS the Ayun- tamientos the government and administration of" the respective provinces and communes. Neither the na- tional executive nor the Cortes have the right to inter- fere in the established municipal and provincial admin- istration, except in the case of the action of the Dipu- taeiones Provinciales and Ayuntamientos going beyond the locally limited sphere to the injury of general and permanent interests. In the Basque provinces self- government has been almost abolished since the last civil war, and they are ruled as the rest of Spain. Not- withstanding the provisions of the Constitution, pres- sure is too frequently brought to bear upon the local elections by the Central Government. Religion. The national Church of Spain is the Ro- man Catholic, and the whole population of the Kingdom adhere to that faith, except (in 1887) 6,654 Protestants, 403 Jews, 9,645 Rationalists, 510 of other religions, and 13,175 of religion not stated. There were in 1884 in Spain 32,435 priests in the 62 dioceses into which the country is divided; 1.684 monks resident in 161 monas- tic houses, and 14.5S2 nuns in 1,027 convents. The num- ber of cathedrals was 65, of religious colleges 30, of churches 18,56i, and of convents, religious houses, sanc- tuaries, and other buildings of a religious character 11,- 202. According to Article 12 of the Constitution of 1876, a restricted liberty of worship is allowed to Protestants, but it has to be entirely in private, all public announce- ments of the same being strictly forbidden. The Con- stitution likewise enacts that " the nation binds itself to maintain the worship and ministers of the Roman Cath- olic religion." Resolutions of former legislative bodies not repealed in the Constitution of 1876, settled that the clergy of the Established Church are to be maintained by the State. On the other hand, by two decrees of the Cortes, passed July 23, 1835, and March 9, 1836, all con- ventual establishments were suppressed, and their property confiscated for the benefit of the nation. These decrees gave rise to a long dispute with the head of the Roman Catholic Church, which ended in the sovereign pontiff conceding the principle of the measure. By a concordat with Rome concluded in August, 1?59, the Spanish government was authorized to sell the whole ecclesiastical property, except churches and parsonages, in return for an equal amount of untransferable public debt certificates bearing interest at the rate of 3 per cent. Instruction. The latest census returns show that a large proportion of the inhabitants are illiterate. In I860 20.0 per cent, of the population could read and write ; 4.6 per cent, could read only; and 75.3 per cent, could neither read nor write. In 1889, out of a popula- tion of 17. 552,346 accounted for, 5,004,460(3,317.855 males, and 1,686.615 females), or 28.5 per cent, could read and write ; 608,005 (221,613 males, and 380,392 females), or 3.4 per cent, could read only ; and 11,945,871 (5,067,098 males, and 6.878,773 females), or C8.1 per cent, could neither read no r write. By a law of 1857 an elaborate system of primary edu- cation was ordained : education was to be compuJsorv, there was to be a primary school for every 600 inhabi- tants, and instruction was to be on a rigidly uniform plan. Compulsion has never been enforced, and, partlv from political causes and partly from the wretched pay or most of the elementary teachers (101. to 201. per annum), education is very inefficient. In 1881, how- ever, several improvements were introduced. Under the Ministerof Public AVorks there is a Director-General of Public Instruction, with a council ; there are ten ed- ucational districts, with the universities as centers, 49 inspectoral districts, and numerous local educational authorities. The public and primary schools are sup- ported mainly by the municipalities, t'he total gum spent in each of the last three years on primary education, in- cluding a small contribution bv Government, being about 1,000,0007. Most of the children are educated free. TURKEY. The present sovereign of Turkey is the thirty- fourth, in male descent, of the house of Oth- man, the founder of the empire, .and the twenty-eighth Sultan since the conquest of Constantinople. By the law of succession obeyed in the reigning family, the crown is inherited according to seniority by the male descendants of Othman, sprung from the Im- perial Harem. The Harem is considered a permanent State institution. All children born in the Harem, whether offspring of free women or of slaves, are legitimate and of equal lineage. The Sultan is succeeded by his eldest son, but only in case there are no uncles or cousins of greater age. The fundamental laws of the empire are based on the precepts of the Koran. The will of the Sultan is absolute, in so far as it is not in opposition to the accepted truths of the Ma- hometan religion as laid down in the sacred book of the Prophet. Next to the Koran, the laws of the " Multeka," a code formed of the supposed sayings and opinions of Mahomet, and the sentences and decisions of his imme- diate successors, are binding upon the Sov- ereign as Avell as his subjects. Another code of laws, the " Cahon nameh," formed by Sultan Solyman the Magnificent, from a collection of " hatti-sheriffs, " or decrees, issued by him and his predecessors, is held in general obedi- ence, but merely as an emanation of human authority. The legislative and executive authority is exercised, under the supreme direction of the Sultan, by two high dignitaries, the " Sadr- azam, ' ' or Grand Vizier, the head of the tempo- ral Government, and the " Sheik-ul-Islam," the head of the Church. Both are appointed by the Sovereign, the latter with the nominal concurrence of the " Ulema," a body compris- ing the clergy and chief functionaries of the law, over which the " Shelk-ul- Islam " presides, although he himself does not exercise priestly functions. Connected with the ' ' Ulema ' ' are the "Mufti," the interpreters of the Koran. The Ulema comprise all the great judges, 108 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. theologians, and jurists, and the great teachers of literature and science, who may be sum- moned by the Mufti. The principal civic functionaries bear the titles of Effendi, Bey, or Pasha. Forms of constitution, after the model of the West European States, were drawn up at various periods by successive Ottoman Gov- ernments, the first of them embodied in the " llati-Hume'youn" of Sultan Abdul-Medjid, proclaimed February 18, 1856, and the most recent in a decree of Sultan Abdul-Hamid II., of ^November, 1876. But the carrying out of these projects of reform appears entirely im- possible in the present condition of the Otto- man Empire. The Grand Vizier, as head of the Govern- ment and representative of the Sovereign, is assisted by the Medjliss-i-Hass, or Privy Coun- cil, which corresponds to the British Cabinet. The Medjliss-i-Hass consists of the following members: 1, The Grand Vizier; 2, The She'ik-ul-Islam ; 3, The Minister of the Inte- rior ; 4, The Minister of War ; 5, The Minis- ter of Evkaf (Worship); 6, The Minister of Public Instruction ; 7, The Minister of Public Works ; 8, President of Council of State ; 9, Minister of Foreign Affairs ; 10, Minister of Finance; 11, Minister of Marine ; 12, Minis- ter of Justice ; 13, Minister of Civil List. The whole of the empire is divided into thirty Vilayets, or governments, and sub- divided into Sanjaks, or provinces, Kazas, or districts, Nahie's, or subdistricts, and Kane's, or communities. A Vali, or governor general, who is held to represent the Sultan, and is assisted by a provincial council, is placed at the head of each Vilayet. The provinces, dis- tricts, etc., are subjected to inferior authori- ties (Mutesarifs, Ca'imakams, Mudirs and Muktars) under the superintendence of the principal governor. The division of the country into Vilayets has been frequently modified of late for political reasons. For similar reasons six of the Sanjaks of the empire are governed by Mutesarifs appointed directly by the Sultan, and are known as Mutessarifats. All subjects, however humble their origin, are eligible to, and may fill, the highest offices in the State. Under the capitulations foreigners residing in Turkey are under the laws of their respect- ive countries, and are amenable for trial ( in cases in wlucn Turkisn subjects are not con- cerned) to a tribunal presided over bj their consul. Foreigners who own real property are amenable to the Ottoman civil courts in questions relative to their landed property. Cases between foreign and Turkish subjects are tried in the Ottoman courts, a dragoman of the foreign consulate being present to see that the trial be according to the law ; the carrying out of the sentence, if against the foreigner, to.be through his consulate. Cases between two foreign subjects of different na- tionalities are tried in the court of the defendant. Religion and Education. Mahometans form the vast majority of the population in Asiatic Turkey, but only one half of the population in European Turkey. Recognized by the Turkish Government are the adher- ents of seven non-Mahometan creeds namely: 1. Latins, Franks, or Catholics, who use the Roman Lit- urgy, consisting of the descendants of the Genoese and Venetian settlers in the empire, and proselytes among Armenians ; Bulgarians, and others; 2, Greeks; S, Armenians; 4, Syrians and United Chaldeans; 6, Maronites, under a Patriarch at Kanobin in Mount Leb- anon; 6, Protestants, consisting of converts chiefly among the Armenians ; 7, Jews. These seven religious denominations are invested with the privilege of pos- sessing their own ecclesiastical rule. The Bishoi s and Patriarchs of the Greeks and Armenians, and the" Chac- ham-Baschi," or high-rabbi of tlie Jews, possess, in con- sequence of those functions, considerable influence. The Mahometan clergy are subordinate to ths SheYk- ul-Islam. Their offices are hereditary, and they can only 1 e removed by Imperial trade 1 . A 'priesthood, how- ever, in the strict sense of a separate class, to_ whom alone the right of officiating in religious services be- longs, cannot be said to exist in Turkey. The Koran and Multeka encourage public education, and, as a consequence, public schools nave been lona: es- tablished in most considerable Turkish towns ; while " medresses," or colleges, with public libraries, are at- tached to the greater number of the principal mosques. But the instruction afforded by these establishments is rather limited. The number of mosques in the Turkish Empire is 2,120, of which 3"9 are in Constantinople. The nnmber of the clergy is 11,COO. Connected with the mosques are 1,780 elementary schools, where education is supplied gratis. The private revenue of the Evkaf (churchy ] re- vious to the war of 1878, was 30.20^,000 piastres (250.0007.) per annum, but they have now been reduced to 20.000.000 piastres (166.000/.). The expenses are reckoned r.t 15 000,- 000 piastres (125,000?.). The stipend of the Sheik-ul-Islam. 7,031 ,520]:iastresi 59,0007.), pndthosecf the NaYbs and Muf- tis, 7.876,646 piastres(66,OOOJ.), are i.aid by the State. The principal revenues of the Evkaf are derived from the sale of landed property which has been bequeathed it, and which is known under the name of A'acouf. Three fourths of the urban property of the empire is sup- posed to belong to the Vacouf. Purchasers of property of this description pay a nominal annual rent to the Evkaf; but should they die without direct heirs the property reverts to the Church. CIVIL LISTS OF EUROPEAN SOV- EREIGNS. Austria-Hungary, Emperor of, $3,875,000. Bavaria, King of, $1,412/ 00. Belgium, King of, 660.000. Denmark, King of, f 227.775; and Crown Prince, $33,330. Greece, King of, $260,000, including 20,000 a year each from Great Britain, France, and Russia. Italv, King of, ?2,8E3.000, of which 180,000 for family. Netherlands, King of, $250,000, also a large revenue from domains, and $62,500 for royal family, courts, and palaces. Norway and Sweden, King of, $575,525. Portugal, King of, $634.440. Prussia, King of, $3,852,770 ; also a vast amount of pri- vate property, castles, forests, and estates, out of which the court expenditure and royal family are laid. Roumania, King of, $237,000. Russia, Czar of , has private estates of more than 1,000,000 square miles of cultivated land and forests, besides gold and other mines in Siberia. The annual income has been estimated at r.bouc $12,000,000. Saxony, King of, $735 000. Servia", King of, $240,000. Spain, King of, $1,400,000. besides $600,000 for family. Wiirteuiberg, King of, 449,050. Barter's Facts. GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 109 HEADS OF THE GOVERNMENTS OF THE WORLD. COUNTRY. Official Head. Title. Born. Acceded. Abyssinia Afghanistan Menelik II Habihulla Khan Emperor 1843 March 12, 1889 . .. lOct 3 1'JOl Annam Argentine Republic Thanh Thai Julio A. Roea. .. King President 1879 Jan. 30, 1889 jOct. 12, 1898 Austria-Hungary Francis .1 osi'nh. Aug. 18, 1830 Dec. 2, 1848 |Aug. 1893 Baluchistan Mir hlahmud Khan Belium Leopold 11 April 9, 1835 Dec. 10, 1865 1864 Nov. 12, 18X5 : Oct. 24, 1899 Bokhara Seid Abdul Ahad General Pando Ameer 'resident Bolivia Brazil Seflor Campos Salles Ferdinand President Prince Feb. Aug. O.t., 1898 26 V 1861 Aug. 11, 1887 18ol Sept. 18, 1901 2, 1872 Jan. 12, 1875 1900 Bulgaria Chile China Jerman Riesco Kuangllsii (Queen, his aunt, rules).. J. M Marroquin President Emperor Colombia Vinfi-Prfisiilfint. . . Congo Free State Leopold (King of the Belgians) Sovereign Rafael Iglesias 1 i'rl 11, 1869 July 2J, 1'JOO 3, 185'2 Feb. 13, 1867 18461 1865 25, 1851 Jan., 18C4 Dec. 11, 1900 24, 1817 Nov. 23, 1890 3<>, 1830 Dec. 1, 1884 13, 1848 Sept. 10, 1889 7, 1841 Aug. 14, 160 1878 June 11, 1894 8, 1875 May 17, 1881 31, 1880 Sept. 5, 1318 1898 Italy . King Japan Mutsuhito Miknrlo . Khiva Soid Mahomed Rahim Kahn Korea Li II V Emiteror Liberia Luxembourg .... ... George, W. G ibson A8 14, 1876 March 6, 1889 21, 1 J 53 Oct. 1, 1868 17, 1886 Mav 17, 181-6 21, 1829 Sept. 18, 1872 Deo. 21, I -00 Servia ... Vlexaiider Siam Khoulalonglcorn King King Spain ' Alphonso XIII Sweden and Norway Oscar 11 King King Preudant .. July l.)00 Turkey .. Abdul Hamid II Sultan .. Sept. Oct. 22, 1842 Ai;g. 31, 1876 27, 1858 Sept. 14, 1H March 1, 1899 United Status of America... Theodore Ro -sevelt President Uruguay Juan Lindolnho Cuestas President Oct., 1899 Zanzibar .... Hanioud bin Mohamed Sultan (Seyyid) . 1856 Aug. 27, 1896 110 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. STATISTICS OF THE COUNTRIES OF THE WORLD. COUNTRIES. Populati'n. Sq. Miles. Capitals. COUNTRIES. Populati'n Sq. Miles. Capitals. China 402,680,000 381,037.874 129211,113 1 76,000.000 85,000,000 8,000,400 900,000 109,029 2,500 63,166,967 38,517,975 lil.44-v2 752 12.800 1,100,000 3,500,001) 52,279.901 31.855,123 5,589.382 3,500,513 2,035,443 1.636. 817 1,603,987 956,170 575,140 6'>2,530 372.580 341,250 313668 247,603 214,697 198,717 180.443 161.129 123,250 112,118 98,371 83,939 73,623 76,485 56,565 03,781 37,204 5.950,000 41,827,700 41.089,940 4,460,870 33,042,238 1,073.500 2,000,000 21,974il61 353,000 200,000 4,218,401 11,335,806 8,644,100 3,602,990 3,756,380 143,000 3,600 6,740 50 3.357,856 204,177 2,923,679 260 000 580.000 45.000 46,697 32,254 13,692 60,000 7,624 462 1,550,000 230,000 211,108 134,467 29,291 5,789 7,531 5,803 5.602 2,965 5,137 158 1,425 2,479 1,387 906 953 760 99 511 472 319 1,131 363 333 115 433 122 131 822,000 201,591 147,669 12,680 778,187 203,714 72,000 50,848 42,420 150,755 Peking London St. Petersburg "Washington Washington Manila San J uan Honolulu Paris Paris Algiers St. Louis Tunis Cayenne Saigon Hanoi Noumea Antananarivo Berlin Berlin Munich Dresden Stuttgart Karlsruhe Strasburg Darmstadt Schwerin Brunswick , Oldenburg Weimar! Dessau Meiningen Gotha Altenbure Detmold Gera Neu Strelitz Rudolstadt Sondershausen Arolsen Greiz Buckeburg V.Mina Tokio The Hague The Hague Batavia Amboyna Sumatra 2,750,000 57,141 33,559,787 4,790.000 16,133.900 1,000,000 3,154,375 9.700,000 29,699,785 34,970,785 4.500.000 660.000 210 000 17,550.216 437.000 127,172 18,000,000 12.570,105 10,519,000 8,000.000 7.653.600 4,708,178 11,073681 5.416,000 847,503 6,785,898 4 784.981 2,000.917 6,500,000 6,030,043 5,700,000 5,376,000 4 042,990 4.600.000 4.000.000 3500 000 2,800.000 2,933 334 2,300.000 2,433.806 2,172,205 2,288,193 72.445 9,780 33,763 2,323.988 2,096.043 2,0-10.000 1,600,000 1,600,000 1,470,000 1,300.000 1,050.000 950,000 800,000 816,000 850000 700,000 476,000 450.000 400,000 350,000 245,380 265.000 133,518 170,744 46,060 1,652.533 63,fO 729.170 398 873 37.860 400.000 110,665 425,765 189,000 56.100 70,000 196,173 203,767 1,957 3,219.000 767,316 85.000 802,000 636.000 34,038 951,785 841,025 7.923 297,321 172.876 124,445 314,000 11,373 280.550 46,314 1,095,013 331.420 279,000 256,860 405,040 15,981 472,000 24.977 14,780 101,403 39,756 46,740 118 566,159 18,757 56,800 41,655 S1.IM.) 46,774 144,000 14,000 29,830 110,193 7,228 7-', 112 22,320 145.000 42,658 51.660 20,596 3.486 19,985 41,484 Paramaribo Constantino'le Tripoli Sofia Cairo Rome Rome Madrid C. Rio Janeiro City of Mexico Seoul Teheran Lisbon Lisbon Stockholm Christiania Fez Brussels Bangkok Bucharest Buenos Ay res Bogota Cabul Santiago Lima Bsrne La Paz Athens Copenhagen Copenhagen Rejkiavik Godthaab Caracas Belgrade Khatmandu Havana Muscat N. Guatemala Quito Monrovia Port au Prince Pretoria San Salvador Montevideo Khiva Asuncion Tegucigalpa Managua San Domingo Cettinje San Jose Bloemfontein British Empire Russian Empire... United States. . Surinam Turkish Empire... European Turkey Asiatic Turkev.". Tripoli . . United States and Colonies Philippines Bulgaria Porto Rico EETVDC Hawaii Italy Sulus, Carolines, Guam Italy and Colo- nies France and Colo- nies Abvssinia. . . . Eri'trea France Colonies Algeria Spanish Africa . . Spanish Islands.. Senegal, etc Tunis Cayenne Cambodia Korea Cochin-China Tonquin Congo State. . New Caledonia.. Tahiti Portugal Portugal and Colonies ; Sahara Madagascar German Empire... Prussia Portu guese Africa :. Portuguese Asia. Sweden and Nor- Bavaria.. Saxonv Wiirte'mberg Baden Sweden Alsace-Lorraine. Hesse Morocco Mecklenburg- Schwerin Siam Roumania Hamburg Argentine Repub- lic Brunswick Oldenburg Saxe- Weimar Anhalt Chile Saxe-Meinicgen . Saxe-Coburg- Gotha Peru ; Switzerland. Bolivia Bremen Saxe-Altenburg . Lippe Denmark Denmark and Colonies Reuss (younger line) . Meckle nburg- Strelitz Greenland Schwa rzburg-Ru- dolstadt Venezuela ... Servia Schwarzburg- Sondershausen Lubeck Nepaul .... Cuba Waldeck Reuss (elder line) Schaumburg- Lippe Ecuador Liberia Hayti German Africa.. Austria-Hungarian Empire Transvaal Salvador Japan Khiva Netherlands Paraguay Netherlands and Colonies Honduras Borneo Dominican Repub- lic Celebes Java Moluccas Costa Rica Orange Free State. New Guinea AUSTRALIAN FEDERATION. COLONIES. Area in Sq. Miles. Population. COLONIES. Area in Sq. Miles. Population. New South Wales .iio.700 1 132.234 Tasmania 26 15 146,667 Victoria >: 4 1 140 405 New Zealand 104 032 626 658 South Australia 903 P9> 30 431 Fiji 7 423 125,402 Queensland Western Australia 688.497 903,690 393.718 49,782 British New Guinea T"*al , 234,768 3,246729 350,000 4,285,297 GOVERNMENT AND LAW. in DIVISION OF AFRICA AMONG THE EUROPEAN POWERS. Area. Population. Area. Population. BRITISH AFRICA : Basutoland, Bechuanaland Protectorate, Cape Colony, Central Africa, GERMAN AFRICA: Togoland, Cameroons, South West Af- rica, East Africa 920,920 10,200,030 East Africa Protectorate, Uganda Protectorate, Zanzi- ITALIAN AFRICA: Eritrea, Somaliland 278,500 850 000 bar Protectorate, Mauritius, Natal, Niger Coast Protect- orate, Territory of the Royal PORTUOUESEAFRICA : Angola, the Congo, (iuinea, East Af- rica and Islandsf 735,304 4,431,970 Niger Company, South Af- rica, West Africa, Zululand and Islands* 2,587,755 41,133,953 SPANISH AFRICA : Rio de Oro, Adrar, Fernando Po and Isl- 243877 136 000 FRENCH AFRICA : Algeria, Sen- egal, French Soudan and the Niger, Gaboon and Guinea TURKISH AFRICA : Tripoli and the Mediterranean Coast, Egypt* 798,738 8,117,265 Coast, Congo Region, Somali Coast, Madagascar and Isl- ands 1,232,454 18,073,890 CONGO INDEPENDENT STATE. (Under the sovereignty of the King of the Belgians 900,000 30,000,000 Total 7,697,548 113,243,070 Egypt and the Egyptian Soudan, although nominally under the suzerainty of Turkey, are really controlled by Great Britain, and it is only a matter of time as to when they will be incorporated into the British Empire. Adding Egypt and the Soudan to the Empire would increase the figures above given to 2,987,755 square miles and 47,951 ,218 population, t Negotiations have been concluded between Great Britain and Germany on the one part and Portugal on the other, by which the latter sails and disposes of all her African possessions to the two former, which divide the purchases between them. Th3 details are not yet made public further than that Great Britain gets Delagoa Bay, thus hemming in the South African Republic from the sea, save through British territory. The remaining territory of Africa unoccupied is a part of the graat Desert of Sahara and the Independent States of Abyssinia and Liberia. Even this territory, except the last, is destined to pass under the power of the Europeans. The tabular figures are from " The Statesman's Year-Book." Egyptian (British)and French territory in the Soudan, according to British claims, touches along the line of the 27th degree of latitude. Prior to the revolt of the Mahdi in J882, Egypt claimed Darfar, Kordofan, Senaar, Taka, the Equatorial Province, and the Bahr-el-Ghazal Province. Though authority over these was lost by the success of the Mahdi, Egypt did not relinquish her claim, and her full authority was resumed by the victories of General Kitchener in 1898'. The French were disposed to dispute these claims and assert a right to territory as far east as the banks of the Nile, thus covering the Bahr-el-Ghazal Province. Hence the appearance of Major Marchand at Fashoda on the Nile, many miles south of Khartoum. But this position the French have now abandoned. INDEBTEDNESS OF NATIONS. COMPILED FROM THE ELEVENTH UNITED STATED CENSUS, 1890. COUNTRIES Debt Less Sinking Fund, 1890. Debt per Capita. COUNTRIES. Debt Less Sinking Fund, 1890. Debt per Capita. Argentine Republic $284,867,069 $70.40 Canada 8237,533,212 $47.51 2,866,339,539 70 84 New South Wales 233,289,245 214.87 380,504.099 63.10 New Zealand 181,898.305 298.01 Bolivia 14,763.367 12 38 Queensland 129,204,750 333.46 Brazil 585,345.927 41. South Australia 102,177.500 321.00 Chile 85,19 > 339 31 96 Tasmania 22,235. ;i45 147.46 63,451,583 16 36 Victoria 179.614,005 161.63 33 004 7'/'2 15 66 Western Australia 6,509,736 1511.23 *4,446 793.398 116 35 Greece 107,306,518 49.06 77 577 719 1 57 Guatemala 10,825. f-36 7.59 3 837 373 2 39 Havti 13,500,000 14 06 71 165 25"' 42 95 Honduras 63,394, "67 146 77 335 503 105 60 03 Italy. . . 2,324.826,3 9 76.06 16 217 400 89 94 Japan 305,727,816 7.83 4 876 174 12 10 Mexico 113,606,675 9.98 59 202 *946 94 85 Netherlands 430,589,858 95.56 7 562 763 7 60 Nicaragua 1,711 206 4.28 3 295 709 43 10 13 973 752 7.13 21 1 095 "5 95 Paraguay 19 633 013 59.56 1 109 384 127 37 03 Peru 382,175 655 14577 143 897 747 41 11 Roumania 180 1 45 800 32 75 955 311 4 63 3 491 01 8 074 30 79 2 550 698 11 39 Servia GO 81 1 330 30 20 Spain 1 251 453 6% 73 85 64 20 807 J3 53 Waldecli 568 200 9 92 Switzerland 10912 925 3 72 107 735 500 52 93 Turkev 821 000 000 37 20 517 278 200 75 88 India 8sl 003 592 3 27 United States 915,962,112 14.63 Cape of Good Hope 110 817 720 77 56 22,517,437 1100 Natal... 22.028.4''4 45.76 Inclusive of floating debt, but exclusive of annuities, whose capitalized value is estimated by good authority to be not less than $2,000,000,000. The national debts of the larger nations in 1896 or 1897 were a.z follows : Austria-Hungary, 1897, $3,225,405,000 : France, 1896, $6.218. 851.34S; German Empire. 18%. $510,006,120; Prussia, 1897, $1,625,000,000 : Great Britain and Ireland, 1897, $3,203,868,395; Italy ; 1897, $1,182.471,300. SuatQ,)<*K. |L415moCO; tyissja, 1896, $3,307,513,500 ; United 112 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. BATES OF POSTAGE. Letters. Prepaid by stamps, 2 cents each ounce or fraction thereof to all parts of the United States and Canada ; forwarded to an- other post office without charge on request of the person addressed ; if not called for, re- turned to the writer free, if indorsed with that request. If the stamp is omitted the letter is forwarded to the Dead-Letter Office and re- turned to the writer. For registering letters the charge is 8 cents additional. Drop let- ters at letter-carrier offices, 2 cents per ounce or fraction thereof ; at other offices, 1 cent per ounce or fraction thereof. On insufficiently prepaid matter mailed in Canada, 3 cents per ounce or fraction thereof. Stamped postal cards, furnished only by government, 1 cent each ; if anything except a printed address slip is pasted on a postal card, or anything but the address written on the face, letter postage is charged. Postage on all newspapers and peri- odicals sent from newspaper offices to any part of the United States, to regular subscribers, must be paid in advance at the office of mailing. Second-Class Matter. Periodicals issued at regular intervals, at least four times a year, and having a regular list of subscribers, with supplement, sample copies, 1 cent a pound ; periodicals^ other than weekly, if delivered by letter carrier, 1 cent each ; if over 2 ounces, 2 cents each. When sent by other than publish- ers, for 4 ounces or less, 1 cent. Third - Class Matter (not exceeding four pounds). Printed matter, books, proof-sheets, corrected or uncorrected, unsealed circulars, inclosed so as to admit of easy inspection without cutting cords or wrappers, 1 cent for each 2 ounces. Fourth-Class Matter. Not exceeding four pounds, embracing merchandise and samples, excluding liquids, poisons, greasy, inflammable or explosive articles, live animals, insects, etc., 1 cent an ounce. Postage to Canada and British North American states, 2 cents per ounce ; must be prepaid ; otherwise, 6 cents. Postage Rates to Foreign Countries. To the countries and colonies which, with the United States, comprise the Universal Postal Union, the rates of postage are as follows : Letters, per 15 grams ( ounce), pre-payment optional, 5 cents ; postal cards, each, 2 cents ; news- papers and other printed matter, per 2 ounces, 1 cent. Commercial papers First 10 ounces or fraction thereof, 5 cents ; every additional 2 ounces, 1 cent. Samples of merchandise First 4 ounces, 2 cents ; every additional 2 ounces, 1 cent. Registration fee on letters or other articles, 10 cents. Ail correspondence other than letters must be prepaid at least partially. Printed matter other than books received in the mails from abroad under the provisions of postal treaties or conventions is free from customs duty. Dutiable books forwarded to the United States from the Postal Union are delivered to addresses at post offices of destination upon payment of the duties levied thereon. Postal Money Orders. Limit of single order Fees : not exceeding $10, 8c. ; $10 to $25, 10c., etc. ; $100, 45c. To Switzerland, Germany, Belgium, Portu- gal, Canada, Newfoundland, Italy, France, Algeria, New South Wales, Victoria, Tasma- nia, New Zealand, Jamaica: Fees, not ex- ceeding $10, 15 cents. To Great Britain, Ire- land, and adjacent islands : Fees, not exceed- ing $10, 25 cents. To British India: Fees, not exceeding $10, 35 cents. THE NATIONAL BANK LAW. In towns of a population of 3,000 or less the minimum capital allowed is $25,000. In towns of between 3,000 and 6,000 people the min- imum capital allowed is $50,000 ; and in cities and towns having a population of 0,000 or more but not exceeding 50,000, the minimum capital must be $100, 000; while in cities of over 50,000 people the bank must have a cap- ital of at least $200,000. There is no limit to the amount of excess capital. Every national bank must purchase and deliver to the Treasurer of the United States registered U. S. bonds to an amount not less than $50,000, except banks with a capital of $150,000, or less, the minimum amount of bonds required is one quarter of the capital. The Government then issues and delivers to the bank circulating notes in denominations of $5, $10, $20, $50, $100, as desired, in total amount equal to the par value of the bonds deposited. A bank may deposit bonds and receive circulating notes to an amount equal to its capital. Each bank is required to make a sworn statement of its condition to the Comptroller of the Currency at Washington at least five times a year, and to publish the same in a news- paper. Two examinations a year are made by capable men employed by the Government as national bank examiners, their visits being always without notice. Requirement is made in the National bank act for the accumulation of a surplus by each bank from its earnings as an additional protec- tion above its capital to the depositors. The depositors are further protected against loss by the liability of each stockholder to the pay- ment of an amount equal to the par value of the stock, held, in event of f allure of the bank, GOVERNMENT LAW. PARLIAMENTARY LAW CON- DENSED. Letters refer to Rules below. Modifying or amending. 8. To amend or to substitute, or to divide the question K To refer to committee. 7. To commit (or recommit) ... D Deferring action. 6. To postpone to a fixed time . . C 4. To lay on the table AEG Suppressing or extending debate. 5. For the previous question .... A E M To limit, or close, debate .... AM To extend limits of debate ... A Suppressing the question. Objection to consideration of question A H M N 9. To postpone indefinitely .... D E 4. To lay upon the table AEG To bring up a question the second time. To reconsider debatable ques- tion D E F I To reconsider undebatable ques- tion A E F I Concerning Orders, Rules, etc. 3. For the orders of the day .... A E II N To make subject a special order. M To amend the rules M To suspend the rules A E F M To take up a question out of its proper order A E To take from the table AEG Questions touching priority of business A Questions of privilege. Asking leave to continue speak- ing after indecorum A Appeal from chair's decision touching indecorum A E H L Appeal from chair's decision generally E II L Question upon reading of papers A E Withdrawal of a motion .... A E Closing a meeting. 2. To adjourn (in committees, to rise), or to take a recess, without limitation A E F 1. To fix time to which to adjourn B Order of Precedence. The motions above numbered 1 to 9 take precedence over all others in the order given, and any one of them, ex- cept to amend or substitute, is in order while a motion of a lower rank is pending. RULE A. Undebatable, but remarks may be tacitly allowed. RULE B. Undebatable if another question is before the assembly. RULE C. Limited debate allowed on pro- priety of postponement only. RULE D. Opens the main question to de- bate. Motions not so marked do not allow of reference to main question. RULE E. Cannot be amended. Motion to adjourn can be amended when there is no other business before the house. RULE F. Cannot be reconsidered. RULE G. An affirmative vote cannot be reconsidered. RULE H. In order when another has the floor. RULE I. A motion to reconsider may be moved and entered when another has the floor, but the business then before the house may not be set aside. This motion can only be en- tertained when made by one who voted orig- nally with the prevailing side. When callc-l up it takes precedence of all others which may come up, excepting only motions relating to adjournment. RULE K. A motion to amend an amend- ment cannot be amended. RULE L. When an appeal from the chair's decision results in a tie vote, the chair is sus- tained. RULE M. Requires a two-thirds vote unless special rules have been enacted. RULE N. Does not require to be seconded. General Rules. No motion is open for discussion until it has been siated by the chair. The maker of a motion cannot modify it or withdraw it after it has been stated by the chair, except by general consent- Only one reconsideration of a question is permitted. A motion to adjourn, to lay on the table, or to take from the table, cannot be renewed un- less some other motion has been made in the interval. On motion to strike out the words, " Shall the words stand part of the motion? " unless a majority sustains the words, they are struck out. On motion for previous question, the form to be observed is, "Shall the main question be now put? " This, if carried, ends debate. On an appeal from the chair's decision, " Shall the decision be sustained as the ruling of the house? " the chair is generally sus- tained. On motion for orders of the day, " Will the house now proceed to the orders of the day? " This, if carried, supersedes intervening mo- tions. When an objection is raised to considering questions, " Shall the question be considered? " objections may be made by any member before debate has commenced, but not subsequently. THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Drao's liaTVS. Draco, an Athenian lawgiver and archon, was the author of the first written code of laws at Athens, which he is supposed to have published in the fourth year of the 39th Olympiad, 621 B. C. He was of distinguished birth, honored for his severe manners and his large experience in public affairs, and the people of Athens, a prey to anarchy, besought him to give them a code of laws. These, however, effected little change in the form of the state, but by being committed to writing put an end to the arbi- trary administration of justice on the part of the archons, and resulted in the establishment of a court of appeals that of the Ephetae. The system which he proposed linked together civil and moral duties. He took the citizen at the moment of his birth, prescribed the manner in which he should be nourished and educated, and followed him with directions through the different epochs of life. His leg- islation had a beneficial and permanent effect upon the political development of Athens. The extraordinary severity of these laws, how- ever, which punished the slightest theft, or even laziness, with death, no less than sacri- lege, murder, and treason, caused them to be often neglected, and made them so hated that Solon was appointed to draw up a new code. Solon, though he softened their severity in some instances, retained that law which pun- ished a murderer with death. Draco, at a later period, went to ^gina, where, after having introduced his laws, he is said to have been stifled in the theater by the garments thrown upon him as a mark of respect by the people. Extremely severe and sanguinary laws are still called Draconic, and in ancient Greece it was commonly said that Draco's laws " were written in blood." Trial by Jury. The form of trial by jury is generally conceded to be derived from the institutions of the Greeks and Romans. There was a custom in the ancient city of Athens whereby a certain number of freemen, selected by lot, heard and decided, under the direction of a presiding judge, every case to be tried at law, each case being heard and determined by a different set of men. A sim- ilar system was adopted in Rome ; and as the Romans always introduced their laws and in- stitutions into all their provinces, it is proba- ble that their mode of judicial procedure was established among the Britains. Another form, called the trial by compurgation, was in use among the Saxons. In this, each party to a suit appeared, with certain of his friends, who swore with him to the truth of his case. As the number of the compurgators was usually six on each side, it is supposed by some that we have here the origin of the number of the modern jury. Witnesses were first brought in to aid the jury during the reign of Edward III., but it was not until the reign of Queen Anne that the law provided that those who had evidence to give could not serve as jurors. In Scotland the jury system was established at a very early date, but was soon after discon- tinued in civil cases. A jury in that country consists of fifteen, and a majority may render a verdict. The jury in civil cases was re- introduced in the time of George III. In Ireland the jury is substantially the same as in England ; but the Repression-of'-Crirne bill, passed in 1882, provided for the trial of cer- tain cases without juries. In France a jury is only allowed in cases of felony, where a ma- jority of the jurors can render a verdict. In Germany, trial by jury in criminal cases was introduced early in the century. It was estab- lished in Prussia in 1819, and again by the Constitution of 1848 ; but in 1851 political offenses were withdrawn from its operation. The system was adopted by Austria in 1850, by Greece in 1834, and by Portugal in 1837. It has also been introduced in recent times into Italy, into Brazil, and finally into Russia, where the first trial by jury was held Augusts, 1886. In each of these last-named countries a verdict can be rendered by the majority. The jury system has existed in Belgium since that country separated from Holland, and in- cludes within its operations political offenses and those of the press. In Switzerland all crimes against the Confederation are tried by jury, and for other crimes each canton has its own machinery. The form of trial by jury was brought from England to America by the colonists, and is protected by mention in the Federal Constitution and in the Constitutions of most of the states. It is also in use in the South American republics. The origin of the institution as found in England is also ascribed by some to the establishment of Norman law there by William the Conqueror, as the Nor- mans had a form of trial by jury much more like that of modern times than any legal usage of the Saxons. Chinese Immigration Law. Ac- cording to the law passed by both houses of Congress and approved by the President in 1882, and amended in May, 1884, Chinese laborers are forbidden to come to the United States under penalty of being returned. The law further declares that any master of any vessel who shall knowingly land any Chinese laborer shall be deemed guilty of a misde- meanor, and for every Chinese brought shall be fined a sum not exceeding $500, and may also be imprisoned for one year Chines* GOVERKMfcNi AND 115 persons who are not laborers desiring to visit this country are obliged to bring with them from the Chinese Government (or any other Government of which they may at the time be subjects) certificates of identification, giving their names in full, description, statement of business, place of residence, etc., the certifi- cates to be also indorsed by the American diplomatic representative in the country where issued, and the forgery or substitution of any name for the correct one in such certificates shall render the perpetrator thereof liable to a fine of $1,000 and an imprisonment of five years. A master of any vessel bringing into a United States port any such Chinese per- sons, not laborers, is required to give a list of them to the Collector of Customs of the port. Any master of a vessel who violates any of these provisions against admitting the Chinese forfeits his vessel to the Government, and any person aiding or abetting a Chinaman not lawfully entitled to visit this country to land here renders himself liable to a fine of $1,000 and one year's imprisonment. Further, any Chinese person found traveling in the United States without a proper certificate shall be re- moved to the country from whence he came at the cost of the United States, any person who may have been instrumental in bringing such Chinese to the United States being liable for all the expenses of his removal ; and all peace officers of the several States and Territories are invested with the powers of a United States marshal for the purpose of carrying the law into effect. The only Chinese persons ex- empted from the action of this law are diplo- matic officers traveling on the business of their Government, their retinue of servants, and Chinamen who arrived within ninety days after the passage of the act. The law also re- quires Chinese already established in the coun- try to take out certificates, if they leave the United States, in order to prove their identity in the event of return. Massachusetts Blue-Laws. In re- gard to the so-called " blue- laws " of Massa- chusetts it is difficult to determine just where the line between fact and fancy is to be drawn. It is claimed that the founders of Connecticut borrowed most of their laws and judicial pro- ceedings from Massachusetts. Many of these laws were enacted previous to 1640, and a number were the orders and sentences of the Massachusetts Court of Assistants and Gen- eral Court. For instance, one order we find is as follows: "It is ordered, that all Rich. Clough's strong water shall presently be seazed upon, for his selling greate quantytie thereof to several men servants, which was the oc- of much disorder, druake-ues. and mis- demeanor." Another record, in March, 1631, is to the effect that " Nich. Knopp is fyned 5 for takeing upon him to cure the scurvey, by a water of noe worth nor value, which he sold j att a very deare rate, to be imprisoned till hee pay his fine or give securitye for it, or else to be whipped ; and shal be lyable to any man's action of whome he hath receved money for the said water." In September, 1634, a num- ber of restrictions regarding the fashions of dress were enacted. One of them was as fol- lows : " The court, takeing into consideration the greate, superflous, and unnecessary ex- penses occasioned by reason of some newe and immodest fashions, as also the ordinary weare- ing of silver, golde, and silke laces, girdles, hat- bands, etc., hath therefore ordered that noe person, either man or woman, shall hereafter make or buy apparell, either woollen, silke or lynnen, with any lace on it, silver, golde, silke, or threed, under the penalty of forfecture of such cloathes." That there was restraint put upon the tongue is shown by the following, under date of September, 1636: "Robert Shorthose, for swearing by the bloud of God, was sentenced to have his tongue put into a cleft stick, and to stand so by the space ot haulfe an houre." And here is one against cakes and buns : "It is ordered, also, that no person shall sell any cakes or buns, either in the markets or victualing houses, or elsewhere, upon paine of 10s. fine ; provided that this order shall not extend to such cakes as shal be made for any buriall, or marriage, or such like spetiall occasion." Prohibitory Laws. The firstactual pro- hibitory law was enacted in Maine in 1 851 . This was the famous Maine Liquor Law, and it is still in force in that State, and in 1884 its specifica- tions were put in the form of a constitutional amendment, and adopted by a large popular majority. Vermont enacted a prohibitory law in 1852, its provisions, however, being much less stringent than those of the Maine law. It was strengthened by the passage in 1869 of a civil-damage act, which provided that damages might be collected from the liquor seller for injuries inflicted by his customers, while in a state of intoxication, upon themselves or others. A mild prohibitory law was also passed by New Hampshire in 1855, which has been strengthened by enactments since adopted. Damages are assessed on the liquor seller for the acts of drunkards in that state also, by an act passed in 1870. In Massachusetts the temperance excitement of 1852 resulted in the passage of a prohibitory law by the legislature, but the courts decided the law was unconstitu tional, and in 1853 it was repealed. In 1856,. the F now Nothing party being in power ID the 116 THE CENTURY BOOK OF PACTS. Assembly, another prohibitory law was passed. This was on trial for several years before the oourts, but at length its constitutionality was affirmed. In 1868 this law was repealed be- cause of great popular dissatisfaction with its manner of working. A milder law was passed in 1869, but, being even more unsatisfactory, was abolished in 1875, and replaced by a license law, which still exists. In Rhode Island, as in Massachusetts, a law passed during the excited state of public feeling in 1852 was declared unconstitutional the follow- ing year. The law was then amended so as not to conflict with the constitution, and the question of its adoption being submitted to the people, it was approved by a small majority. In 1863, however, the law was repealed. In 1874 a simiiar law was passed, only to be abolished in the next year, when a license law prohibiting the sale of liquors to minors and drunkards, and also on Sundays, and providing for the collection of damages from the liquor dealer, was passed. An amendment was offered to the people in 1886, which was not adopted, but in the next year a stringent prohibitory law was passed. Connecticut passed a prohibi- tory law in 1854, but owing to some defect in the law, or to the indifference of the people, it could not be enforced, and became virtually a dead letter. About 1870, therefore, it was superseded by the present license law, which has the local option feature. This has given opportunity to a large number of towns and districts to positively forbid the sale of liquor in their localities, so that nearly half of the State is under practical prohibition. Michi- gan, in 1853, adopted a prohibitory law which was repealed almost immediately. A similar law, however, was adopted in 1855, which continued on the statute books for about twenty years. As it had become inoperative through popular indifference, it was replaced by a license law in 1875. This latter was strengthened in 1883 by the adoption of a damage clause. In 1885 New York passed a prohibitory law, which shared the fate of many similar enactments, being declared unconsti- tutional, and was repealed the following year. In 1801 efforts had been made to secure prohi- bition in the Revised Constitution, but the result was a failure. The extent of New Jer- sey's prohibition is a law passed in 1797, and still in force, forbidding the distribution or sale of liquors at a public auction. Pennsyl- vania once had a prohibitory statute on its books for a few months. It was adopted in 1 855 and repealed in 1 856. This law had been preceded by a "no-license act " which had been enacted by the Legislature in 1846, and had been pronounced unconstitutional by the Su- preme Court. In 1872 a law was passed giving local option to the counties, and sixty-seven of them voted against licensing the traffic. In two years that law was repealed and a license law adopted, which is still in force. The pro- hibition issue was squarely before the people in the spring elections of this year (1889), and was defeated by a large popular majority. Delaware has tried prohibition twice. The first law was passed in 1847, only to be re- pealed in 1848. The second law was made in 1885 ; but it was in a few years displaced by a license law, which is still in existence. Three other States Indiana, Illinois, and Iowa adopted prohibitory laws in 1855. That of Indiana was declared void soon after, and has never been reenacted. The legislative enact- ment of Illinois was submitted to the people and rejected by them. Since then no effort has been made to make the State prohibitory, but a high license law was passed by the Leg- islature of 1882-'83. This law has been de- clared constitutional by the courts, and has been generally successful in its operation. The Iowa law has stood, with some modifications, and, where public opinion has supported it, has been generally executed. In 1882 a pro- hibitory clause was put into the Constitution by popular vote. This amendment has been declared void by the Supreme Court on account of certain technical errors in drawing it up. In 1884 a prohibitory law was passed. Ohio put a "no-license" clause in its constitution in 1851, and the sale of liquors has been vir- tually free throughout the State. Attempts have been made at several times to regulate the traffic by law, but all have failed. Two of the States adopted prohibitory laws while they were still under territorial organization Minnesota in 1 ^52 and Nebraska in 1855. In both cases the law was modified to make it fit public sentiment more nearly, and both States now have high license laws. Kansas adopted a modified prohibitory law in 1866. In 1880 the popular vote added an amendment to the Constitution prohibiting the manufacture and sale of intoxicating liquors in the State "ex- cept for medical, scientific, and mechanical purposes." In Georgia, ninety-five counties have suppressed the sale of liquor through the privilege of local option. Similar laws are made somewhat effective, also, in Texas, Arkansas, and Florida. Other States have laws forbidding the sale of liquor within a cer- tain distance of a school, or to minors, to persons of notoriously intemperate habits, etc. The Law of Subscriptions 1. Sub- scription is the placing of a signature under a written or printed engagement. By such an act a person contracts, in writing, to pay a GOVERNMENT AND LAW. 117 Sum of money for a specific purpose ; as a sub- scription to a charitable institution, a sub- scription for a book, etc. 2. " The law on the subject of these sub- scription papers, " says Parsons, "and of all voluntary promises of contribution, is substan- tially this : No such promises are binding unless something is paid for them, or unless some party for whose benefit they are made (and this party may be one or more of the subscribers), at the request, express or implied, of the promisor, and on the faith of the sub- scription, incurs actual expense or loss, or enters into valid contracts with other parties which will occasion expense or loss. As the objection to these promises, or the doubt about them, comes from the want of consideration, it may be removed by a seal to each name, or by one seal, which is declared in the instn ment to be the seal of each." 3. A person subscribing for a book is bound to take it when delivered by the agent, pro- vided it corresponds with the sample copy shown him when the subscription was given. The agent or publisher may recover at law the price of the book should the subscriber refuse to take it when presented to him. 4. There is no postal law regulating the transactions between publishers and subscrib- ers. The ordinary rules of contract govern all relations between the parties concerned, and the post office has no part except to deliver the article, or return it when ordered to do so. 5. If the publisher of any paper or periodi- cal sends his paper or magazine, the post- master must deliver it, if the person to whom it is sent will take it. If he will not take it, the postmaster must notify the publisher. 6. If a person subscribes for a periodical for a given period, say one year, and the pub- lisher sends it accordingly, the subscriber can- not terminate the contract by stopping his paper at any time during the year. But at the end of the year the subscriber may stop his paper even without paying the subscription due. He is under no legal obligation to take the paper another year. The fact that he has not paid for the expired year's subscription does not bind him to continue taking the paper. He can stop taking it at the end of the year and the publisher can sue for and collect his year's subscription only. 7. If at the end of the year the publisher continues to send his paper and the subscriber to receive it, the sending is the offer of another year's subscription at the same price, and the receiving of the paper is an acceptance. The implied contract from such action is a renewal of the subscription ; and the publisher can eend the paper for the renewed term of one year and collect the subscription price for that year as well as the preceding. 8. If the publisher advertises terms of sub- scription, all parties taking the paper under these conditions will be held according to the conditions. KIGHTS AND OBLIGATIONS OF PARENTS AND CHILDREN. In ancient domestic life the father ruled as absolute monarch over the family. So it is still in oriental countries. Christian civiliza- tion has greatly modified this and laws have been enacted that set forth the relation of par- ent and child, defining the duties and obliga- tions of each. Rights of Parents. 1. As long as a hild is under age he is subject to the control ',*. the parents, who have all reasonable au- thority to enforce obedience. As long as a child is properly treated by the parents no one has a right to interfere nor to take away and retain a child against their wishes. 2. Adopting a Child. When a child is adopted by another family its parents lose their claim upon it and the adopting persons take their place. A child cannot be adopted without the consent of its parents, but if con- sent is once given it cannot be revoked. A child over fourteen must himself consent to the adoption. The Court has in all cases the right to consent to or refuse the adoption. Application must therefore be made at the County Court and the Judge will consider it and pass upon it. 3. Punishment. Parents have a right to punish their minor children providing they are not guilty of cruelty. Brutality is severely punished by law as a crime. The punishment must be reasonable, leaving no bruises nor in- juring the health of the child. 4. Claims upon Earnings. While the child is a minor parents have a right to all his earn- ings. They can claim them of his employer. Parents, however, may free the child and allow him to collect and use his own wages. When this is once made public the parents cannot thereafter collect the child's wages. 5. A Runaway Child. A child has no right to leave home without permission of the parents ; if he does he can be brought back by force. Relations or others who would keep him can be forced by law to give him up un- less it can be shown that the father is brutal in his treatment of the child or is not capable because of drunkenness or other causes to properly care for the child. Obligations of Parents. Obligation to* Support. The law requires that parents shall support their minor children. A child having lift THE CENTURY BOOK OP FACTS. property of hia own does not relieve the par- ents from supporting him. They can, how- ever, by applying to the Court, get permission to use a part or all of the income from the child's property for his support. Beyond this the parents have no claim upon or control over the child's property. Children's Rights and Obligations. 1 . A child can own property over which the parents have no control, except the use of the income of the same for the support of the child, as stated above. 2. Where it is shown that parents are un- able to support themselves the child is under legal obligations to support and care for them, at least do what he can toward such support. 3. If a child commits a premeditated crime he is personally liable ; parents cannot be he 1 " responsible for crimes committed by their miiiOi children. 4. Guardian. A guardian may be ap- pointed over an orphan child, or the child may choose his own guardian, who in a legal sense exercises all the authority of a parent. LAW OF APPRENTICESHIP. An apprentice is a minor, male or female, bound by due form of law to learn some art, trade, or business, and when so bound is un- der obligation to serve the master during the time of the apprenticeship. The Contract should be signed by the ap- prentice and his father, or in case of death or incapacity of the latter, by the mother or legally constituted guardian. It is executed in duplicate, one copy going to the master, the other to the apprentice. The minor cannot be bound for a longer time than until he becomes of age. Without the consent of the parent or guardian, the contract would not be binding upon the minor. Consent of Minor. The minor cannot be bound without his consent, which consent must be stated in the contract. Duties of the Master. It is made the master's duty by the contract to teach the apprentice the trade or business which he himself follows, to provide him with suitable food, clothing, and shelter. He has no right to employ the apprentice in menial labors not connected with the trade or business which he undertook td teach him. If he corrects for misbehavior, the punishment must be moderate and reason- able. Duties of the Apprentice. He is under obliga- tion to serve his master faithfully and well ; to obey all lawful commands ; to guard his master's property and interests, and to faith- fully endeavor to learn the business, and to perform what is required of him in the con- tract. Termination of Apprenticeship. His time of service ends when he becomes of age, or in case his master dies, unless the contract in- cludes the master's executors and administra- tors. If the apprentice runs away, and enters the employment of another, the master is not . Dund to take him back, but is entitled to whatever he may earn, provided he can prove that the new employer was aware of the ex- istence of the apprenticeship. The apprentice cannot be compelled to leave the State, nor can he be assigned to anyone else. BILLS OF LADING. A bill of lading is a document delivered by a master or owner of a vessel, or the officer of | a transportation company, and signed by such parties as an acknowledgment that the goods have been received for transportation. The bill constitutes the contract between the shipper and the carrier. Three copies of the bill are made out, one is kept by the shipper, another by the party transporting the goods, and the third is sent to the person to whom the goods are directed. Bills of Lading are transferable and assign- able, and the assignee may sue for the recovery of the goods. If the goods perish without fault of the master of a ship, the freight must be paid, otherwise the master or owner of a ship i liable for damages. Railroad companies, as common carriers, are subject to the common State laws regula- ting such business ; their bill of lading usually states as to how far they hold themselves re- sponsible for the safe transportation of the goods. WILLIAM SHAKESPEARE. Book II. language and Literature. Language and Literature. LITERATURE, In the general sense of the word, comprises the entire results of knowledge, and mental activity, expressed in writing ; but in a nar- rower sense, it is used to denote the depart- ment of elegant letters, excluding works of abstract science and mere erudition. In this limited view it comprehends languages, par- ! ticularly Greek and Latin, grammar, etymol- ogy, logic, rhetoric, poetry, history, criticism, bibliography, and a description of the attain- ments of the human mind in every sphere of research and invention. The history of liter- ature represents the development and success- ive changes of civilization, so far as these arc exhibited in written works, and embraces the history of the literature of special ages or countries, and of the separate branches of lit- erature, as poetry, rhetoric, philology, and so forth. LANGUAGES. The classification of the different languages of the earth into a few great families is due to the science of comparative philology, and is of recent origin. Till the latter end of the last century the preference as to the antiquity of language was usually given to the Hebrew, but a striking improvement of linguistic study is dated from the discovery of the Sanskrit, the ancient language of the northern parts of Hin- dustan, in the latter part of the last century. A belief in an affinity in languages and a sep- \ aration of them into certain great groups or families then arose. The languages of the world are divided into four great branches ; viz., the ARYAN, or Indo- European, the most important ; the SEMITIC, the TURANIAN, and the DRAVIDIAN. The TURANIAN family, called also the Ta- taric or Altaic, includes the numerous and widely different languages of the Manchoos, the Mongols, the Turks (in Asia and Europe), ths Magyars (in Hungary), the Finns (in Rus- sia), and a multitude of other tribes. The DRAVIDIAN includes the Tamil and the dialects in Ceylon and the islands off Asia, etc. The SEMITIC includes the Hebrew, Syriac, Arctic and Ethiopic, Basque (in the Pyrenees) , etc. The INDO-EUROPEAN, to which extensive family the English language belongs, is divided into six principal branches. I. The Indian branch, represented by the Sanskrit, which has now ceased to be spoken, b\jt is the mother of the H^nq?sta.ni, Bengali, Mahratti, and the other numerous dialects of modern India. II. The Metlo-Persic branch, at the head of which isthe Zend, in which the Zend-Avesta is composed, and the cuneiform inscriptions of Cyrus, Darius, and Xerxes. -Xext follow the Pehlevi, of the Sarsanian dynasty ; the Parsee, in which the national poem of Ferdusi is writ- ten (A. D. 1000), and lastly the modern Per- sian. III. The Celtic branch, divided into. two dialects, the Gaelic and the Cymric ; the former comprising the Irish or Erse, the Scottish Gaelic or Highland-Scotch, and the Manx of the Isle of Man ; and the latter Welsh, the Cornish (now extinct) and the Armorican of Britanny. IV. The Grceco-Latin branch, comprising the two ancient classical languages, and the so-called Romanic languages, derived from the Latin, which are six in number; namely, the French, Italian, Spanish, Portuguese, Walla- chian, and the Roumanish or Romanese spoken in the Grisons in Switzerland. V. The Teutonic branch, which comprises all the different German and Scandinavian dia- lects. VI. The Slavonic branch, divided into three principal classes : 1 . The Lettic, comprising the Lithuanian, the Old Prussian (now extinct), and the Lettish, the language of Kurland and Livonia. 2. The Western Slavonic, compris- ing the Polish; the Bohemian or Tchechian, spoken in Bohemia ; the Slovakian, spoken by the Slovaks in Hungary, and the Wendian, spoken in Lusatia. 3. The Eastern Slavonic, comprising the Old Slavonic, preserved in the translations of the Bible made by Cyrillus in the ninth century, and its derivate dialect, the Bulgarian ; the Russian, Servian, Croatian, and Slovinian. The Teutonic branch of the Indo-European family of languages is divided into two great branches, the German and Scandinavian. The GERMAN is divisible into three principal dialects, the Mceso-Gothic, the Low German, and"the High German, the two latter being so called because the Low German is spoken by the inhabitants of the low or flat country near the shores of t!'C German Ocean, while the High German belongs to the higher country in the interior. 1. The Mozso-GoTmc, the most easterly of all the German dialects, has long ceased to be spoken, but is preserved in th translation of the gospels by Ul LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 121 2. The Low GERMAN comprised the follow- ing dialects : (1) Anglo-Saxon, which was cul- tivated with great success in England, and in which the second most ancient specimens of the Germanic language are preserved. (2) The Old Saxon, so called to distinguish it from the Anglo-Saxon in England, formerly spoken in Westphalia. (3) The Frisian, now confined to a small district in Holland. (4) The Dutch, the present language of Holland. (5) The Flemish, spoken in many parts of Belgium. 3. The HIGH GERMAN comprises the Old High German, from the seventh to the eleventh century; the Middle High German, from the twelfth century to the Reformation, and the New High German, which since Luther's time has been the literary language of Germany. The SCANDINAVIAN branch, of which the most ancient language is the Old Norse, the language of Norway, is represented by the Ice- landic, which was carried into Iceland by the Norse colonists in the ninth century and which continues to be spoken on. that island with little alteration. On the Continent the Old Norse is represented by the Swedish, Danish, and Norwegian, of which the last has now become a mere patois. The following table exhibits the relation- ship of the different Teutonic languages : 1. ^f(f so-Gothic. 2. Low German. (i) Anglo-Saxon. English. (ii)Ol(f Saxon, (iii) Frisian, (iv) Dutch. (v) Flemish. 3. High German. (i) Old High German Teutonic J (ii) Middle High German, (iii) New High German. Old Scandinavian. II. SCANDINAVIAN J (i) Icelandic, (ii) Ferroic. 2. Modern Scandinavian. (i) Danish. (ii> Swedish, (iii) Norwegian. The English Language is the descend- ant and representative of the Anglo-Saxon. It has lost very much of the inflection and very many of the words which belong to the parent language ; and on the other hand it has borrowed words largely, to the extent even of half its vocabulary, from other lan- guages, especially the French and the Latin. Yet all the inflections that remain in it. and most of its formative endings, the pronouns and particles, and in general the words which are in most frequent and familiar use, have come to it from the Anglo-Saxon. All the constituents of the English Language as it now exists are presented in a, een the first who engraved on copper-plates. The following testimony is preserved in the fonily, by Jo. Fred. Faustus, of Ascheffenburg : ' PETER SCHOEFFER, of Gernsheim, perceiv- ing his master Faust's design, and being him- self ardently desirous to improve the art, found out (by the good providence of God) the method of cutting (incidendi) the characters in a matrix, that the letters might easily be singly cast, instead of being cut. He privately cut matrices for the whole alphabet : and when he showed his master the letters cast from these matrices, Faust was so pleased with the con- trivance, that he promised Peter to give him his only daughter Christina in marriage, a promise which he soon after performed. But there were as many difficulties at first with niese 'letters, as there had been before with wooden OIKS, the metal being too soft to sup- port the force of the impression : but this defect was soon remedied, by mixing the metal with substance which sufficiently hardened h.' LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 125 A wrong letter !n a word Is noted by drawing a short perpendicular line through it, and making another short line in the margin, behind which the right letter Is placed. (See No. 1.) In this manner whole words are corrected, by drawing a line across the wrong word and making the right one in the margin opposite. A turned letter Is noted by drawing a line through it. and writing the mark No. 2 in the margin. If letters or words require to be altered from one character to another, a parallel line or lines must be made underneath the word or letter; viz., for capitals, three lines; small capitals, two lines; and italics, one line ; and, in the margin opposite the line where the alteration occurs, caps, small caps, or ital. must be written. (See No. 3.) When letters or words are set double, or are required to be taken out, a line is drawn through the superfluous word or letter, and the mark No. 4 placed opposite in the margin. Where the punctuation requires to be altered, the correct point, marked in the margin, should be en- circled. When a space is omitted between two words or letters which should be separated, a caret must be made where the separation ought to be and the sign No. 6 placed opposite in the margin. No. 7 describes the marner in which the hyphen and ellipsis line are marked. When a letter has been omitted, a caret is put at the place of omission, and the letter marked as No. 8. Where letters that should be joined are separated, or where a line is too widely spaced, the mark No. 9 must be placed under them, and the correction denoted by the marks in the margin. Where a new paragraph is required, a quadrangle is drawn in the margin, and a caret placed at the begin- ning of the sentence. (See No. 10.) No. 11 shows the way in which the apostrophe, inverted commas, the star, and other references, and superior letters and figures, are marked. Where two words are transposed, a line is drawn over one word and below the other, and the mark No. 12 placed in the margin ; but where several words require to be transposed, their right order is signified by a figure placed over each word, and the mark No. 12 in the margin. Where words have been struck out, that have after- ward been approved of, dots should be marked under them, and stet written in the margin. Where a space sticks up between two words, a hori- zontal line is drawn under it, and the mark No. 14 placed opposite, in the margin. Where several words have been left out, they are transcribed at the bottom of the page, and a line drawn from the place of omission to the written words (see No. 15); but if the omitted matter is too extensive to be copied at the foot of the page. Chit, see copy, is written in the margin, and the missing lines are inclosed be- tween brackets, and the word Out is inserted in the margin of the copy. Where letters stand crooked, they are noted by a iine (see No. 16); but where a page hangs, lines are drawn across the entire part affected. When a smaller or larger letter, of a different font, is improperly introduced into the page, it is noted by the mark No. 17, which signifies wrong font. If a paragraph is improperly made, a line is drawn from the broken-off matter to the next paragraph, and JVo If written in the margin. (See No. 18.) Where a word has been left out or is to be added, a caret must be made in the place where it should come in, and the word written in the margin. (See No. 19.) Where a faulty letter appears, it is denoted by making Famous Poems and Their Authors. " Elegy Written in a Country Churchyard " is the master composition of Thomas Gray (I71&-1771). "The Minstrel" is the production of James Beattie 11735-1803). " Rook of Ages" is from the pen of Augustus Mon- tague Toplady (1740-1778). "The Farmer's Boy" was written by Robert Bloom- field(1766-l(<23). " The Burial of Sir John Moore " Is the effort of Charles Wolfe(1791-1823). "Woodman, Spare that Tree" is the work of George P. Morris (1802- 1864). "The Buccaneer" was composed by Richard Henry ana (1780.1879). a cross under it, and placing a similar mark In the mar- gin (see No. 20) ; though some prefer to draw a perpen- dicular line through it, in the case of a wrong letter. Where a word has been accidentally separated by a space, it is marked as in No. 21. Turn letter. Indent line one em quad. Take out ; .expunge The caret shows where the letter or word is omitted. Insert space. Less space. Close up entirely. Remove type, and insert a space in place of what is removed. Take out typa and close up. Bad type. Posh down space. Plane down a letter. No paragraph. Placed under erased words, restores them. Written in margin, restores a canceled word or words that have dots under them. T/ Begin a paragraph. / Letters stand crooked. /"/ Should be a compound word. C err L. Remove to left. 3 ar-Ji Remove to right. I | Elevate a letter, word, or character that is sunk below the proper level. I i Sink or depress a letter, word, or character raised above the proper level. - Three lines, beneath writing, denote cap- itals. - Two lines, beneath writing, denote small capitals. One line, beneath writing, denotes italics. 3C/l> Transpose letters, words, or sentences. JL . dragged along by the multitude, and their fanaticism is so great that crowds of devotees cast themselves under the wheels and are crushed to death, a fate which they believe insures paradise. Julian Era, The. A method of reckoning time from 46 B.C., when Caesar reformed the calendar. Junius, Letters of. Some remarkable political let- ters written during the reign of George III. Their authorship is unknown. Kansas, Bleeding. So called by Horace Greeley during the Free Soil controversy. Kensington Gardens. A London Park near which Queen Victoria was born. Kilkenny Cats, The. Disputing people ; from the old verse : There once were two cats in Kilkenny, Who each thought there was one cat too many, So they howled and they fit, and they scratched and thoy bit, Until instead of two cats there wasn't any. King can do no wrong, The. Meaning that the Ministers and not the King are responsible for mistakes of government. King of Yvetot. The Seigneur of Yvetot was made king 01 his estate by the King of France as a recom- pense for the killing of his father. It was a kingdom of eight square miles. King Cole. A legendary king of Britain, who affected tobacco and spirits. King Cotton. A name given to the great Southern industry before the war. King's Evil. The scrofula. So called from the belief that a king's touch would cure the disease. King Log. A good-for-nothing ruler. The name comes from one of Esop 's fables, wherein Jupiter puts a log to rule over the frogs. King-Maker, The. Richard Nevill, the Earl of Warwick, who set up and deposed kings at his will during the Wars of the Roses, in the fifteenth century. King Stork. A tyrant. The sequel to the Esop fable mentioned above. The frogs grew tired of King Log, whereupon King Stork was Drought in at their request, who devoured the whole community. Kit Kat Club, The. A London club founded in 1688. It had many eminent members. Knickerbocker. A member of any old Dutch family in New York. Derived from Irving's immortal history. Knight of Malta. A chivalric and monastic order founded during the Crusades, also called the Knights Hospitallers of St. John. Know-Nothings. A political party in the United States, whose cardinal principle was opposition to foreign office-holders. l\uli -i-Noiir. A Golconda diamond, the largest in the world, now one of the crown diamonds of England. Value, $625,000. Koran, The. The Mohammedan Bible. Kremlin, The. The Royal Russian residence in Moscow. Labyrinth, The. A celebrated structure built by Minos, King of Crete, which consisted of a maze out of which no one who entered could find the way back. Laconic. Curt. So called from the brief speech in fashion in old Laconia, afterwards called Sparta. Lacrymal Christ!. An Italian wine. Lake School, The. A society of English poets con- sisting of Coleridge, Wordsworth, and Southey. La La nd of Bondage, The. Egypt. nd o' Cakes, The. Scotland. Land of Nod, The. Sleep ; Dreamland. Land of Promise, The. Canaan, the goal of the Jewish wanderings in the wilderness. Lang Syne. Long ago. Langue d'Oc. Provence, a part of France so called from the dialect in use. Langue d'CEil. All of France except Provence. Laocoon, The. A celebrated statue in the Vatican representing Laocoon strangled by serpents. Laodicean. A person lukewarm in religion. Lares and Penates. The household gods. Last Judgment, The. The theme of a number of frescoes of the Renaissance period in Italy. Last Supper, The. Similar to the above. Leonardo da Vinci's best canvas is on this subject. Later an Palace, The. One of the Papal residences at Kerne. Laughing Philosopher, The. Democritus of Ab- dera, who believed that lite was only to be laughed at. Leaning Tower, The. A cele'brated structure at Pisa. Italy, which leans fourteen feet out of the perpen- dicular; 180 feet high. Learned Blacksmith, The. Elihu Burritt. Leonine 'Verses. Verses which rhyme at the middle and the end. Libby Prison. A Confederate jail for prisoners of war at Richmond, Va. Lilliput. The pigmy land in Gulliver's travels. Lingua Franca. A dialect of French, Italian, and Arabic spoken on the Mediterranean Sea. Lion nusl Unicorn. The supporters of the British royal arms. Lion of the North, The. Gustavus of Sweden, the great leader of the Protestant forces during the Thirty Yearr' War. Lion's Share. The bigger portion in a division. So called from one of Esop's fables. Little Corporal, The. Napoleon Bonaparte. Little Giant, The. Stephen A. Douglas. Lloyds. The originators of marine insurance. Lombard Street. The financial street of London. Lono Star State, The. Texas. Long Parliament. The Parliament which sat for thirteen years at the beginning of the civil war in England. It sat from 1040 to 1653. Lorolei. A malignant but beautiful water-sprite of the Rhine. Lotus-Eaters, The. Homer in the Odyssey describes the effect of eating the lotus as making the eater forget his home. Louvre, The. The art palace of Paris. Low Church, The. A part of the Episcopal Church which is opposed to ceremonials. Lusiad, The. The Portuguese epic poem, written by Camoens, describing Vasco da Gama's adventures. Lynch Law. Mob law. The name comes from a Virginia farmer who instituted the first vigilance com- mittee in America. Mab, Queen. The queen of the fairies. So called from an Irish fairy princess named Medh, who flourished in the night of time. Macadamize. Paving with broken stones. So called from the inventor, Sir John MacAdam. Macaronic Verse. A verse made by mixing different languages. Macchiavellism. Political trickery. Madam Tussaud's Exhibition. A famous London wax-works show. Mad Poet, The. Nathaniel Lee, an insane English dramatist. Madman of Macedonia, The. Alexander the Great. Madman of the North, The. Charles III. of Sweden. Madonna. The Blessed Virgin. Maecenas. A noted patron of poets during the reign of Augustus of Rome. Magna C' hart a. The charter making the corner stone of English liberty, extorted from King John Lack-Land. Mahomet's Coffin. The body of Mahomet is said to hang in mid-air over Medina. Maid of Orleans. Joan of Arc. Maid of Saragossa. Augustina Zaragoza, the hero- ine of the siege of Saragossa in 1808-9. Maiden Queen, The. Elizabeth of England. Maine Law. A prohibitory law first adopted in Maine. Malthusian Doctrine, The. The theory that the population of the world is growing faster than the food apply. Mammoth Cave. A cave near the Green River, Kentucky, the largest cave in the world. Man in the Moon. According to the legend the man who first broke the Sabbath. Man of Destiny. Napoleon Bonaparte. LANGUAGE AND LITER ATtJfcE. 131 Man of Iron, The. Bismarck. Man of Straw. An irresponsible person. Mare's Nest. A matter which seems of importance but turns out to be nothing. Marriage a la Mode. The title of six satirical pic- tures by Hogarth. Marseillaise. The French national air, composed by Rouget cle Lisle. Martinet. A strict disciplinarian. So called from a French officer of the seventeenth century. Mason and Dixon's Line. The north boundary of the Slave States, dividing Virginia and Maryland from Pe nnsylvania. Mausoleum. The tomb of Mausolus, built by Queen Artemisia, one of the seven wonders of the world. -M ay fair. The west end of London. Mercator's Projection (or Mercator's Chart) is so called after Gerard Mercator, a Flemish geographer of the sixteenth century, the first to give an unbroken view of the whole surface of the earth. In it all the meridians are straight lines perpendicular to the equa- tor, and all the parallels parallel to the equator, the effect being to greatly exaggerate the polar regions. Merry Andrew. A buffoon, from Andrew Borde, the whimsical physician of Henry VIII. Merry Monarch, The. (Jharles II. of England. Mesmerism takes its name from Mesmer, a German physician. Mezzo Relievo. Carved or cast figures projecting from the tablet a little more than basso relievo, and something less than alto relievo, are called mezzo re- lievo. Middle Ages, The. The period between the destruc- tion of the Roman Empire and the revival of learning in Italy 476 to 1500. Middle States, The. New York, Pennsylvania, New Jersey, and Delaware. Minnesingers. (Love singers.) The German lyric poets of the twelfth and thirteenth centuries. Miserere. The fifty-first psalm. Mississippi Bubble, The. A hollow financial scheme. Missouri Compromise, The. A measure that pro- hibited slavery north of 36 30 7 north latitude. Mistress of the Seas. England. Molly Maguires. A secret society in the United States. Many crimes were attributed to it, especially in Pennsylvania. Monarch, Le Grand. Louis XIV. of France. Monroe Doctrine. The United States is not to meddle in European affairs, nor to allow European Governments to meddle in the affairs of the American Continent. Mont de Piete. A pawnbroker's shop. Montmartre. A Parisian cemetery. Monumental City, The. Baltimore, Md. Morey Letter, The. A forged letter attributing to General Garfield anti-Chinese sentiments, 1880. Morganatic Marriage. A marriage between a man of high rank and a woman of a lower one. She does not take her husband's title. Mother of Presidents. Virginia ; having produced seven Presidents of the United States. Mother Carey's Chickens. Stormy Petrels. Mother Goose. She lived near Boston, and was a nursery rhymer. She sang rhymes to her grandson, Thomas Fleet, who printed them in 1819. Mount Vernon. The home of Washington, in Vir- ginia. Muscular Christianity. An expression of Charles Kingsley. " A sound mind in a sound body." Music of the Spheres. Order, harmony. Plato taught that each planet had a siren whose song har- monized with the motion of our sphere and with that of the others. _ Namhy-Pamhy. Childish. A term used for poor literary productions. Nantes, Edict of. A decree issued at Nantes, France, in 1698, by Henry IV., granting toleration to the Protestant religion. "Revoked by Louis XIV., Octo- ber 22, 1085. Nation of Shop-keepers. The name given to the English by Napoleon. Natural Bridge, The. A natural arch over Cedar Creek near James River in Virginia. It is two hundred feet high. Newgate. A London prison. New World. The Americas. Nihelungenlied. A German epic poem of the thir- teenth, century. Nine "Worthies, The. Joshua, David, Judas Macca- bseus, Hector, Alexander, Julius Caesar, Arthur, Charle- magne, and Godfrey of Bouillon. Noctes Ambrosianae. The title of a work by Pro- fessor Wilson ( Christopher North). Noel. Christmas day. Non-Conformists. Dissenters from the Church of England. Northern Giant, The. Russia. Notre Dame. The Cathedral of Paris. Odyssey. Homer's narrative poem of the adventures of Ulysses on his voyage from Troy to Ithaca. Ogres. Giants who feed on human flesh. Oi Polloi. The multitude. Old Ahe. Abraham Lincoln. Old Bailey. A London criminal court. Old Dominion, The. Virginia. Old Guard, The. A favorite regiment of Napoleon Bonaparte. In the Chicago Convention, 1880, the friends of General Grant received this name. Old Hickory. Gen. Andrew Jackson. Old Prohs. (Old Probabilities.) The United States Signal Service. Old Public Functionary. President James Bu- chanan. Old South, The. A famous church in Boston, Mass. Orangeman. A Protestant Irishman. Member of an organization which cherishes the memory of William Prince of Orange. Orange Peel. Sir Robert Peel. Ordinance of 1787. An act fixing the government of the Northwest Territory of the United States. OrJando Furioso. An Italian poem by Ariosto. Ossian. The son of Fingal, a Scotch bard. Ossian's poems, published in 1760, were the work of James McPherson, a gifted Caledonian. Ostend Manifesto. Issued by the United States Ministers to England, France, and Spain during Pierce's administration, declaring that Cuba must be- long to the United States. Ostracism. The Athenians expelled every public man against whom a sufficient number of votes were cast. The votes were written on oyster shells. Palimpsest. A parchment haying the original writ- ing erased and new writing substituted. Pall Mall. A street in London. Palladium. Something that affords defense, pro- tection, and safety. A statue of Pallas was the palla- dium of Troy. Pantheon. A circular building in Rome erected in the time of Augustus. It is now a church, the Rotunda. Paradise Lost. A poem by John Milton, treating of the fall of man. Paradise Regained. Poem by Milton on the temp- tation and triumph of Jesus. Paris of America, The. Cincinnati. Parthenon. A temple of Minerva in Athens. Partington, Mrs. The American Mrs. Malaprop. The creation of B. P. Shillaber. Pasquinade. A lampoon or satirical writing. Po- litical squibs used to be posted on an old statue that stood in Rome near the house of a sneering old cobbler named Pasquin. Peeler. A policeman. Sir Robert Peel founded the Irish constabulary. Peninsular War. The war between England and France in Spain and Portugal, 1808-1812. People's William. William E. Gladstone. Pere-la-Chaise. A cemetery near Paris. Philippic. An invective. The orations of Demos- thenes against P'lilip of Macedon originated this word. Philistine. A word in use in the German universi- ties for a person below caste. Philosopher's Stone, The. A substance supposed to have the property of turning anything else into gold. Phoenix. A mythical bird, without a mate, renews itself every five hundred years by being consumed in a fire of spices, whence it rises from the ashes and starts fora new flight. Pied Piper of Hamelin, The. Not being paid for having drawn, by the sound of his pipe, the rats and mice out of Hamelin into the river, he piped the chil- dren of the town into Koppelberg hill, whene 130 of them died. Pigeon English. A mixture of English, Chinese, and Portuguese. Plon-Plon. Prince Napoleon J. C. Bonaparte. Plumed Knight, The. J. G. Blame, American statesman. 132 THE CENTURY BOOK OP FACTS. Plymouth Rock. The rock at Plymouth, Mass., where the pilgrims landed in 1620. Poet's Corner. A corner in "Westminster Abbey where poets are burled. The poetical column in a news- paper. Pons A *i noi-ii in. (The bridge of asses.) Fifth prop- osition, first book Euclid's Geometry. Poor Richard. Benjamin Franklin. Porkopolis. Cincinnati. Prater, The. A promenade in Vienna, Austria. Protestant Duke, The. The Duke of Monmouth, natural son of Charles II. of England. Pyramids. A number of remarkable old structures in Egypt. Quaker City, The. Philadelphia, Pa. Quaker Poet, The. John G. Whittier. Quartier Latin. A district of Paris inhabited prin- cipally by students. Queen of the Antilles. The island of Cuba. Ranz des Vaches. The air the Swiss mountaineers play on the Alpine horns when tending their cattle. Railway King, The. George Hudson, an English- man. Rebellion, The Great. The war between Charles I. of England and Parliament. Red tetter Day. A fortunate day. In old calendars a red letter was used to mark the saints' days. Red Tape. Official routine. Reign of Terror. The time during the French Revo- lution between the overthrow of the Girondists, May 31, 1793, and the fall of Robespierre, July 27, 1794. Reynard the Fox. A romance of the fourteenth century. Rialto, The. A bridge over the Grand Canal, Venice. Rights, Declaration of. An instrument securing annual Parliaments, trial by jury, free elections, the right of petition, and denying to the crown the privi- lege of keeping a standing'army or of levying taxes, was drawn up after the revolution of 1^89, and accepted by William and Mary. Roost, To Rule the. To take the leading part. Robert the Devil. The first Duke of Normandy. Robin Goodfellow. Puck, a celebrated fairy. Roland for an Oliver, A. Tit for tat. Roland and Oliver, two peers of Charlemagne. So many romances were related of these knights that whenever one told an improbable story to match one that had been told before, it was called giving a Roland for an Oliver. Rossius, The British. David Garrick. Rough and Ready. Gen. Zachary Taylor. Round Robin. A petition or remonstrance signed by the names in a circle, so as to conceal who signed it first. Round Table, The. King Arthur's knights sat at a round table so that any distinction of rank was avoided. Roundheads. The Puritans, who wore short hair. Royal Martyr, The. Charles I. of England. Royal Society, The. A society for the advancement of natural science, founded at London, 1645. Rozinante. The horse of Don Quixote. Rubicon, To Pass the. To take an irretrievable step. When Caesar crossed the Rubicon he became an enemy of the Republic. Rule Britannia. An English song. Rump Parliament, The. A remnant of the Long Parliament broken up by Cromwell. Rye House Plot. A conspiracy in 1683 to assassinate Charles II. and the Duke of York. Rye House was the name of the conspirators' place of meeting. Sabbath Day's Journey. About one mile. Sack, To Get the. To be discharged. The Sultan, when he wants to be rid of one of his harem, has herput into a sack and thrown into the Bosphorus. Sadducees. A sect of the ancient Jews who denied the resurrection of the dead and the expectation of a future state. Sagas. Scandinavian books containing the Northern legends. Saint Bartholomew, Massacre of. Massacre of the French Huguenots in the reign of Charles IX., on St. Bartholomew's day, 1572. Sailor King, The. William IV. of England. Saint Cloud. A once famous French palace, de- stroyed in the Franco-Prussian war Saint James, The Court of. The English court, 80 called from the Palace of St. James in London, formerly a royal residence. St. Mark's. Cathedral of Venice, Italy. Saint Paul's. The cathedral of London: designed by Sir Christopher Wren. Saint Peter's. At Rome; is the most splendid church building in the world. Saint Sophia. A mosque in Constantinople, Turkey. Saint Stephens. A Gothic cathedral in Vienna, Austria. Salt River. Oblivion. Gone up Salt River is gen- erally taken to mean political defeat. Sambo. Nickname for colored man. Sanctum. One's private office. Sandwich. A piece of meat between two pieces of bread. Sang Azul. Of aristocratic descent. Sanhedrim. The Jewish court of seventy elders. Sans-Culottes. (Without trousers.) The French revolutionists. Sans Souci. Palace of Frederick the Great, at Pots- dam, near Berlin. Santa Croce. A church in Florence, Italy ; the burial place of Michael Angelo, Galileo, Machiavelli, and others. Saturnalia. A festival in honor of Saturn observed annually by the Romans by giving way to the wildest disorders. Unrestrained license for all classes, even to the slaves, ruled the city for three days, December 17, 18, and 19. Schoolmen. The mediaeval theologians. Scotland Yard. The headquarters of the London police. Scourge of God, The. Attila, King of the Huns. Scratch, Old. The Devil. Scylla. (Avoiding Scylla he fell into Charybdis.) In trying to avoid one danger he fell into another. Scylla and Charybdis were the two dangers in the Straits of Messina, Italy. Sea-girt Isle, The. Great Britain. Secessia. The seceding Southern States. Secular Games. Games held by the Romans once in a century. Semiramis of the North. Catherine II., Empress of Russia. September Massacres. The massacre of the French Royalist prisoners in Paris, September 2, 3, and 4, 1792. About 8,000 were killed. Septnagint. A Greek version of the Old Testament prepared by seventy doctors. Seven-hilled City, The. Rome. Seven Wonders of the World. The pyramids of Egypt; the Temple of Diana at Ephesus: the hanging gardens of Babylon; the Colossus at Rhodes; the Mau- soleum at Halicarnassus ; the statue of Zeus by Phidias at Olympus; and the Pharos (or lighthouse) of Alexan- dria in Egypt. Seven Years' War. The war of Frederick the Great against France, Austria, and Russia, 1756 to 1763. Shamrock. The emblem of Ireland. St. Patrick made use of it to prove the doctrine of the Trinity. Shibboleth. A countersign. The password of a secret society. When the Ephraimites, after being routed by Jephthah, tried to pass the Jordan, they were detected by not being able to pronounce properly the word Shibboleth. Sick Man, The. The Ottoman Empire. Sinews of War, The. Money. Single-Speech Hamilton. An English statesman of the eighteenth century, W. G. Hamilton. He never made but one speech, but that one was most eloquent. Six Hundred, Charge of the. At the battle of Balaklava, October 25, 1854, by a mistaken order, the British light cavalry, 670 strong, made a most gallant charge on the Russians. Sleeping Beauty, The. A fairy tale. Smell of the Lamp. A phrase first applied to the orations of Demosthenes, showing their careful and labored preparation. Demosthenes studied in a cave by lamplight. Song of Roland. An old French poem recounting the deaths of Oliver and Roland at Roncesvalles. Sorbonne, The. A university in Paris founded by Robert de Sorbonne in the thirteenth century. Sortes IJiblu-ii-. Fortune telling by consulting the Bible. South Kensington Museum. A collection of works of art and manufactures in London. South Sea Bubble, The. A company formed in 1710 LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 133 In England to pay the national debt and to have in return a monopoly of the South Sea trade. This com- pany lasted about ten years, and its failure was the ruin of thousands. Spanish Main. The southwestern part of the Gulf of Mexico. Sphinx. An emblem of silence and mystery. A monument near Cairo, Egypt ; half woman, half lion. Stabat Mater. A Latin hvmnon the Crucifixion. Stalwart. A member of the Republican party of the United States clinging to the principles and practices of the party. His opposite, a " Half-Breed," is a Re- publican unwilling to be controlled by the party leaders. Star Chamber. A court of criminal jurisdiction in England having extensive powers. It existed from the time of Henry VIII. until that of Charles I. "Stonewall" Jackson. Gen. Thomas J. Jackson, Confederate General. Strasburg Cathedral. At Strasburg ; Gothic ; 468 feet high ; has a wonderful clock. Swedish Nightingale. Jenny Lind (Mme. Gold- schmidt). Tabooed. Prohibited. A Polynesian word meaning consecrated; used for what is but of date or in bad taste. Tain many Hall. A section of the Democratic party in New York City, named from their place of meeting. Tammany King, or the "Tweed Ring," or "the Ring." A set of New York City officials which absorbed large sums of the city money. Exposed in 1871. Tammany, Saint. Patron saint of the Democratic party in New York. He was an Indian chief, whose name was really Timenund. Tapis, On the. On the carpet ; proposed for discus- sion. From the tapis or cloth on a council table. Temple Bar. A stone house in London over which the heads of traitors used to be exposed. Torn down in 1878. Termagant. A shrew. Termagant was, according to the Crusaders, the wife of Mahomet. Terra Firma. Dry land. 'IVrt in m Quid. A third somebody not to be named. Theatre Francais. A theater in Paris. Theleme, Abbey of. A creation of Rabelais in his Garganttia. Its motto was, "Do as you please." Thirty Years' War, The. Between the Catholics and Protestants in Germany, 1618-1648. Thistle. The national "emblem of Scotland. One night when the Danes were attempting to surprise an encampment of the Scotch, one of them trod upon a thistle ; the pain caused him to raise an alarm and the Scotch defeated them. Ever since the thistle has been the insignia of Scotland. Thor. The god of war, son of Odin, the Scandinavian Myth. Threadneedle Street, The Old Lady of. The Bank of England. Three Estates of (bo Realm. The nobility, the clergy, and the commonalty, represented in the two houses of Parliament Thunderer, The. The London Times (newspaper). Tick, On. On credit. Tit for Tat. An equivalent ; this for that Tom Thumb. Charles A, Stratton. Also a fairy tale. Tory. The name of an English political party , oppo- site of Whig. Tour, The Grand. From England, through France, Switzerland, Italy, Germany, and home. Tower, The. The citadel of London. Transfiguration, The. One of Raphael's most fa- mous pictures, now in the Vatican. Trimmer. One who takes a moderate course in politics. Trinity Church. An Episcopal church on Broad- way at the head of Wall street, New York. The richest church in America. Triple Alliance, The. Alliance between Great Brit- ain, Holland, and Sweden against France, 1668. Troubadours. Provincial poets from the elevench to the fourteenth century. Trouveres. Northern French poets 1100 to 1400. Trumpet, To Sound One'a Own. To boast. The entrance of knights into a list was announced by the heralds with a flourish of trumpets. Tuft-Hunter. A toady. At Oxford a nobleman was called a tuft because of the gold tuft on his college cap. Tuileries. A French royal palace burned by the Commune in 1871. Tulip Mania. A European craze of the seventeenth century centering in Holland. Everybody was buying tulip bulbs, which ran up to enormous prices. Many fortunes were sunk in their acquisition. Tune the Old Cow Died of. Words instead of alms. Old song : a man having nothing with which to feed his cow, sings to he r of the grass which is to grow. The expression is also used for a wor^.-out, tiresome tune. Tyburn. Once a London place of execution, now a wealthy and fashionable quarter called Tyburnia. Uffizi. A building in Florence in which is a magnifi- cent art collection. Ultramontanes. In France, the more extreme ad- herents of the Pope. Underground Railroad, The. Organization of the different means used for the escape or runaway slaves, about the middle of the present century. Under the Rose. (Sub rosa.) Confidentially. Unlicked Cub. An ill-bred boy. The bear cub was believed to be licked into shape by its dam. Unter den Linden. A street in Berlin having four rows of lime trees. Unwashed, The Great. The mob. Up the Spout, or, more elegantly, "gone where the woodbine twineth," or " at my uncle's," means in pawn. Upas Tree. An object that does harm and should be avoided. The upas tree is common in Java ; its gum is poisonous, and fable states that the atmosphere about it is as deadly. Upper Ten Thousand. The aristocracy; fashion- able society. Utilitarians. Those who believe that the fitness of anything to promote happiness is the right standard of morality. Utopia. An ideal commonwealth. The imaginary island, scene of Sir Thomas More's romance of Utopia. Valhalla. The palace of immortality, where the heroes slain in battle dwell. (From the Saga legends.) Vampire. An extortioner. A fabulous oat said to suck the blood of persons during sleep. Vatican. The palace of the Popes, Rome. Vatican, Council of the. The (Ecumenical Council, 1869, promulgated Papal infallibility. Vedas, The. Revelations of Brahma in four sacred books. Veni, Vidi, Vici. (I came, I saw, I conquered.) Phrase used by Julius Caesar, announcing his victory at Zela. Venus de Medici. A Greek statue at Florence. Venus of Milo. A Greek statue found in the Island of Melos, 1820 ; it is now in the Louvre. Verbum Sap. A word to the wise. Veronica. A relic at St. Peter's, Rome. Versailles. A palace at Versailles, ten miles from Paris. Vespers, The Sicilian. The massacre of the French in Sicily, March 30, 1282. The sounding of the vesper bell was the signal. Via Dolorosa. The sorrowful way of our Lord from the Mount of Olives to Golgotha. Vinegar Bible, The. Has "vinegar" for " vineyard " in the head line of Luke xx., Oxford, 1617. Virgin Queen, The. Queen Elizabeth of England. Vitus Dance, St. A disease anciently supposed to be under control of St. Vitus. Wabash Avenue. A street in Chicago. Wall of China, The. A wall 1,200 miles long and 20 feet high, built as a protection against the Tartars. Wall Street. The great financial street of New York. Wallack's. A theater in New York. Walton, An Izaak. An angler. Wandering Jew, The. A legendary personage con- demned to wander over the world until the day of judgment. War of 1812. Between Great Britain and the United States, 1812-1815. War of the Hoses. The English civil wars in the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries, between the houses of York and Lancaster. Ward, Artemus. C. F. Browne. Washington Street. A street in Boston, Mass. Wassail. (What hail !) A bowl of spiced ale used on New Year's day is the Wassail bowl. Waters, The Father of. The Mississippi. Ways and Means. An important committee of the House of Representatives ; is charged with the duty of devising ways and means for the supply of the Oorom- meut expenses. 134 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Wedding. The first anniversary of a -wedding is the paper wedding, the gifts being paper articles ; the fifth, wooden ; the tenth, tin; the fifteenth, glass; twenty- fifth, silver; fiftieth, golden; seventy-fifth, diamond. Well of St. Keyne. A well in Cornwall. The first of a married couple to taste its waters will " wear the breeches." Westminster Abbey. A church in London where many of the illustrious dead of England are buried. Wetherell, Elizabeth. Pseudonym of Miss Susan Warner, author of The Wide, Wide World. Whig. The name of a political party now extinct. Whistle. (To pay too dearly for the whistle.) Dr Franklin's story. Cost greater than benefit. White Feather, To Show the. A display of cow- ardice. White li. us.'. The Presidential mansion at Wash- ington. Whiteboys. A secret society in Ireland, 1789. Wild Huntsman, The. A spectral huntsman in the Black Forest. German legend. Windmills, To Fight -with. To oppose imaginary objects. Don Quixote. Windsor Castle. A royal residence near London. Wise Men of the East, The. The three Magi guided by a star to Bethlehem. Witch of Endor, The. The soothsayer who foretold the death of Saul. Witch-Hazel. A forked twig used for finding witches; in use still for finding water. Wooden Horse. A ruse at the siege of Troy. Woolsack, To Sit on the. To be Lord Chancellor of England. Wyoming Massacre. The Valley of Wyoming was ravaged by Indians in 1778. Xanthos. The prophetic horse of Achilles. Xantippe. The scolding wife of Socrates. Yahoo. A ruffian. The Yahoos in Gulliver's Travels are brutes shaped like men. Yankee. A name given to all Americans. In America itself the name is only used for natives of New England. Yarmouth Bloater. A red herring. Yellow Jack. The yellow fever. Young America. The growing generation. Young Chevalier. Charles Edward Stuart, the sec- ond pretender to the throne of Great Britain. (1720-88.) Young Germany. Heinrich Heine and his followers. Ypsemite Valley. In California. Also a picture by Biers tadt. Yule. Christmas. Yule-log. A large log of wood burnt on the hearth at Christmas. Zend-Avesta, The. Persian Scriptures written in the Zend language. Zollverein. An association between German States for the maintenance of uniform tariff rates. THE LORD'S PRAYER. I, at in. Pater noster, qui es r in coelis, sanctificeter nomen tuum. Adveniat Tegnum 'unim. Fiat voluntas tua, sicut in coelo, et in terra. Panem nostrum quotidi- anum da nobis hodie. Et remitte nobis debita nostra, sicut et nos remittimus debitoribus nostris. Et ne r os inducas in tentationem, sed libera nos a malo. Tibi enim est regnum, et potentia, et gloria, in sempiternum. Amen. Italian. Padre nostro, che sei ne' cieli, sia santifi- cato i' tuo nome. II tuo regno venga. La tua volontk sia fatta in terra come in cielo. Dacci oggi il nostro pane cotidiano. E rimettici i nostri debiti, come noi ancora gli rimettiamo a' nostri debitori. E non indurci in tentazione, ma liberaci dal maligno. Percioche tuo e il regno, e la potenza, e la gloria, in sempiterno. Amen. French. Notre Pere qui es aux cieux, ton nom soit sanctifie. Ton regne vienne ; ta volonte^ soit faite sur la terre, comme au ciel. Donne-nous aujourd'hui notre pain quotidien. Pardonne-nous nos p^ch^s, comme aussi nous pardonnons & ceux qui nous ont offenses. Et ne nous abandonne point & la tentation, mais delivre nous du malin. Car a. toi appartient le regne, la puissance, et la gloire, & jamais. Amen. German. Unser Vater in dem Himmel, dein Name werde geheiliget. Dein Reich konune. Dein Wille geschehe auf Erden wie im Himmel. Unser tagliches Brod gieb uns heute. Und vergieb uns unsere Schulden, wie wir unsern Schuldigern vergaben. Und fiihre uns nicht in Versuchung, sondern erlese uns von dem Uebel. Denn dein ist das Reich, und die Knift, und die Herr- lichkeit, in Ewigkeit. Amen. Shelley wrote " Queen Mab " at 18. Mohammed began the Koran at 35. Keats wrotehis " Endymion " at 22. Ajexandre Dumas wrote plays at 22. Disraeli wrote "Vivian Grey" at 21. Heine published his first songs at 23: Seneca wrote " De Beneficiis " after 50. Swift wrote the " Tale of a Tub " at 37. Richardson published "Pamela" at 51. Racine wrote the "Andromache" at 28. Paley wrote the "Horae Paulinae" at 47. Coleridge published "Christabel" at 44. Pliny finished the " German War" at 31. Luther wrote his ninety-five theses at 34. Poe wrote " The Raven " in his 36th year. Confucius began his religious works at 30. Butler wrote " Hudibras" after he was 60. Shakespeare wrote his first play at about 24. Sterne published "Tristram Shan- dy " at 46. Owen Meredith published "Lu- U1" at 29. GREAT MEN'S WORKS. Boileau wrote his first satirical poems at 24. Corneille wrote " Melite," his first drama, at 21. Calvin published his "Psychopan- n3 r chia" at 25. Spenser published the " Faerie Queene" at 3R. It is said that Horace wrote his first odes at 23. Sheridan wrote his " School for Scandal" at 26. Machiavelli completed " -The Prince " at 45. Sir Thomas More finished his " Utopia " at 73. Livy is said to have finished his "Annals" at 50. Goldsmith finished " The Deserted Village "at 42. Josephus published his "Wars of the Jews" at 56. Lamartine's poems appeared when the poet was 30. Perseus is thought to have written his satires at 45. Thackeray was 36 when "Vanity Fair" appeared. Lord Bacon wrote the " Novum Organum" at 41. Tacitus finished the first part of his history at 50. David is said to have written his first psalm at 18. Homer is said to have composed the Iliad after 60. Bryant was 19 when made famous by "Thanatopsis." Solomon is said to have collected the Proverbs at 50. Baxter wrote the "Saint's Ever- lasting Rest " at 34. Dante finished the " Divina Corn- media " at about 51. Von Ranke finished his "History of the Popes " at 39. George Eliot was 39 when "Adam Bede" was printed. Fichte wrote the famous " Wissen- schaftslehre" at 32. Robert Browning wrote "The Ring and the Book" at 67. Samuel Johnson published "Lon- don " when he was 29. The Bucolics of Virgil were writ- ten between 43 and 47. Thomas & Kempis wrote the " Imi- tation of Christ '* at 34. Joseph Addison's first essays ap- peared when he was 29. John Bunyan finished the "Pil- grim's Progress " at 50. "The Robbers," by Schiller, made the author famous at 23. Hannah More wrote " The Search After Happiness" at 28. Martial is said to have written epi- grams before he was 20. Voltaire's first tragedy came out when the author was 22. Adam Smith published " The Wealth of Nations " at 66. LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 13J THE WORLD'S BEST BOOKS. Comprising more than one thousand titles based upon bibliographies of the best author- ities. These books are all available in English or English translation. List of publishers' abbreviations used and their explanation : . Armstrong A. C. Armstrong & Sons, New York. Appleton D. Appleton & Co., New York. Amsterdam The New Amsterdam Book Co., New York. Benziger Benziger Brothers, New York. Coates Henry T. Coates & Co., Philadelphia. Crowell T. Y. Crowell & Co., New York. Caldwell H. 1.1 Caldwell Co., New York. Clarendon Press The Oxford University Press, New York. Cassell Cassell & Co., New York. Century The Century Co., New York. Button E. P. Button & Co., New York. Boubleday Boubleday & McClure Co., New York. Bodd, Mead Bodd, Mead & Co., New York. Bana Estes Bana Estes & Co., Boston. Ginn Ginn & Co., Boston. Harpers Harper & Brothers, New York. Houghton Houghton, Mifflin & Co., Boston. Henry Holt Henry Holt & Co., New York. Lippincott J. B. Lippincott Co., Philadelphia. Little, Brown Little, Brown & Co., Boston. Longmans Longmans, Green & Co., New York. Lee & Shepard Lee & Shepard, Boston. Merriarn G. & C. Merriam, Springfield, Mass. McKay David McKay, Philadelphia. Macm'illan The Macmillan Co., New York. Page L. C. Page & Co., Boston. Putnams G. P. Putnam's Sons, New York. Routledge Geo. Routledge & Sons, New York. Rand-McNally Rand, McNally & Co., Chicago. Scribners Chas. Scrihner's Sons, New York. Stokes Frederick A. Stokes Co., New York. "Williams Williams & Northgate, London. Reference Books and Dictionaries. Encyclopedia Britannica. 24v. Johnson's Encyclopedia. 8v. Little, Brown Appleton Webster's International Bictionary. 2v. Merriam Indexed Atlas of the World. 2v. Rand-McNally The Century Atlas of the World. Century Spiers & Surrenne's French-English Bictionary. Appleton Lewis, Latin Bictionary. Harpers Roget, Thesaurus of English Words and Phrases. Longmans Adler, German-English Bictionary. Appleton Lewis, Harper's Book of Facts. Harpers Peck, Bictionary of Classical Antiquities. 2y. Harpers Liddell & Scott, Greek Lexicon. (Intermediate.) Harpers Haydn, Bictionary of Bates. Putnams Pfyfe, Seven Thousand Words Often Mispronounced. Putnams Soule, Bictionary of Synonyms. Little, Brown Wells, Things not Generally Known. Appleton Brewer, Bictionary of Phrase and Fable. 2v. Cassell Skeat, Etymological Bictionary. Clarendon Press Mulhall, Bictionary of Statistics. Routledge Brande, Bictionary of Science, Literatu-.e, and Art. 3 v. Longmans Addis and Arnold, Catholic Bictionary. Benziger Cheyne, Bictionary of the Bible. 4v. Macmillan Thomas, Bictionary of Biography. Lippincott Johnson, Bictionary of Geography. Longmans Freeman, Historical Geography of Europe. Longmans Kiepert, Ancient Geography. Macmillan Language and Literature. Earle, Introduction to English Grammar. Putnams Sweet, New English Grammar. Macmillan Brooke, History of Early English Literature. Macmillan Trench, On the Studv of Words. Macmillan Hodgson, Errors in the Use of English. Appleton Hill, The Principles of Rhetoric. Harpers Tyler, History of American Literature. 4v. Putnams Mason, Humorous Masterpieces from American Litei"ature. 3 y. Putnams Bain, Higher English Grammar, Henry Holt Lounsbury, History of the English Language. Henry Holt Earle, English Philology. Henry Holt Saintsbury, A History of 19th Century Literature. Macmillan Taine, History of English Literature. 4v. Henry Holt Warren, History of the Novel. Henry Holt Genung, The Practical Elements of Rhetoric. Ginn Mprley, English Writers, llv. Cassell Muller, The Science of Language. 2v. Scribners Jevons, A History of Greek Literature. Scribners Cruttwell, History of Roman Literature. Scribners Scherer, History of German Literature. 2v. Clarendon Press Saintsbury, History of French Literature. Clarendon Press Brunetiere, History of Trench Literature. Crowell Lane, Latin Grammar. Harpers Goodwin, Greek Grammar. Ginn Whitney, German Grammar. Henry Holt Matzke, Primer of French Pronunciation. Henry Holt Bupuy, Great Masters of Russian Literature. Crowell Aston, History of Japanese Literature. Appleton Frazer, A Literary History of India. Scribners Quackenbos, History of Ancient Literature. Harpers Whitney, French Grammar. Henry Holt Thomas, Practical German Grammar. Henry Holt Education. Davidson, Rousseau and Education. Scribners Davidson, Aristotle and Ancient Educational Ideals. Scribners Williams, History of Modern Education. Bardeen Be Garmo. Herbart and the Herbartians. Scribners Hinsdale, Horace Mann and the Common Schools. Scribners Ascham, The Schoolmaster. Lee & Shepard Fitch, Thomas and Matthew Arnold. Scribners West, Alcuin and the Rise of the Christian Schools. Scribners Compayre, Abelard, and the Origin of Universities. Scribners Hughes, Loyola and the Jesuits. Scribners Bowen, Froebel and Education by Self- Activity. Scribners Pinloche, Pestalozzi, and Elementary Education. Scribners Comenius, Tne Great Didactic. Macmillan Davidson, the Education of the Greek People. Appleton Payne, Rousseau's Emile. Appleton Laurie, Survey of pre-Christian Education. Longmans Hill, The True Order of Studies. Putnams Quick, Education Reformers. Appleton Antiquities, Art, and Music. Poynter, Art Handbooks. 9v. Scribners Van Dyke, A History of Painting. Longmans Hamlin, A History of Architecture. Longmans Marquand, A Historv of Sculpture. Longmans Jameson, Sacred and Legendary Art. 2v. Longmans Evans, Animal Symbolism in Ecclesiastical Architecture. Henry Holt Lavignac, Music and Musicians. Henry Holt Taine, Lectures on Art. 2v. Henry Holt Van Dyke, Modern French Masters. Century Ruskiri, Stones ox Venice. 3v. Dana Estes Ruskin, Modern Painters. 5v. Dana Estes Von Lutzow, Art Treasures of Italy. 2v. Dana Estes Fromentin, Old Masters of Belgium and Holland. Houghton Von Reber, History of Ancient Art. Harpers Von Reber, History af Medieval Art. Harpers Didron, Christian iconography. 2v. Macmfllan Chesneau, English School of Painting. Cassell Kugler, The Italian School. 2v. Little, Brown Parry, The Art of Music. Appleton Ferg'usson, History of Architecture. 2v. Bodd, Mead Liibke, Outlines of the History of Art. 2v. Bodd, Mead Vasari, Lives of Painters, Sculptors, and Architects. >. Scribnera 136 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Becker, Charicles. Longmans Becker, Gallus. Longmans De La Sizeranne, English Contemporary Art. Stokes Tolstoi, What is Art ? Crowell History and Biography. Abbott, The Romance of Spanish History. Harpers Abbott, A History of Greece. 4v. Putnams Abbott, Heroes of the Nations. 23v. Putnams Allen, Christian History in its Great Periods. 3v. Little, Brown Allen, Outline of Christian History. Little, Brown Adams and Cunningham. The Swiss Confederation. Macmillan Boulger, History of China. 3v. W. H. Allen Brugsch-Bey, The True Story of the Exodus. Lee & Shepard Beha-ed-Din, Life of Saladin. Amsterdam Boswell, Life of Johnson. 2v. Crowell Brooks, William Ellery Charming. Little, Brown Buckle, History of Civilization. 3v. Longmans Bourinot, The Story of Canada. Putnams Borgeaud, Amendments of Constitutions. Macmillan Boutmy, The English Constitution. Macmillan Bax, German Society at Close of Middle Ages. Macmillan Bonomi, Nineveh and its Palaces. Macmillan Bryce, The Holy Roman Empire. Macmillan Bryce, The American Commonwealth. 2v. Macmillan Burgess, The Middle Period . Scribners Burgess, The Civil War and Reconstruction. 2v. Scribners Besant and Palmer, Jerusalem. Scribners Baird, History of the Huguenots. 2v. Scribners Bourget, Antigone, and Other Portraits. Scribners Curtius, The History of Greece. 5v. Scribners Crawford, Ave Roma Immortalis. Macmillan Channing, The United States of America. Macmillan Church, The Beginning of the Middle Ages. Macmillan Creasy, Fifteen Decisive Battles of the World. Harpers Church, Oliver Cromwell A History. Putnams Creighton, History of the Papacy. 6v. Longmans Creasy, History of the Ottoman Turks. Henry Holt Coppee, Conquest of Spain by the Arab Moors. 2v. Little, Brown Church, Life of St. Anselm. Macmillan Coulanges, The Ancient City. Lee & Shepard Carlyle, The French Revolution. 3v. Coates Craddock, The Story of Old Fort London. Macmillan Clement, The Eternal City, Rome. 2v. Dana Estes Carlyle, History of Frederick the JI. 6v. Harpers De Coubertin, Evolution of France. Crowell Dobson, Four French Women. Dodd, Mead Duruy, History of France. 2v. Crowell Davis, Egyptian Book of the Dead. Putnams Duruy, History of the Middle Ages. Henry Holt Duruy, History of Modern Times. Henry Holt Dicey, Studies in Constitutional Law. Macmillan Davis, The Confederate Government. 2v. Appleton Eckstein, Woinan Under Monasticism. Macmillan Emerton, Introduction to the Middle Ages. Ginn Emerton, Medieval Europe. Ginn Eusebius, Ecclesiastical History. Lippincott Froude, Caesar. Scribners Froude, History of England. 12 v. Scribners Fisher, Outlines of Universal History. A merican Book Co. Fiske-Irving, Washington and his Country. Ginn Freeman, The Norman Conquest. Gv. Clarendon Press Fiske, The Discovery of America. 2v. Houghton, Miffiin Fiske, The American Revolution. 2v. Houghton, Mifflin Fiske, The Critical Period of American History. Houghton, Mifflin Fisher, History of the Reformation. Scribners Fyffe, History of Modern Europe. 3v. Cassell Freeman, General Sketch of History. Henry Holt Franklin, Autobiography of. Putnams Frazer, The Story of British Rule in India. Putnams Fowler, The City State of Greeks and Romans. Macmillan Freeman, Comparative Politics. Macmillan Freeman, History of Government in Greece and Italy. Macmiilan Freeman, William the Conqueror. Macmillan Fisher, the Colonial Era. Scribners Fisher, The Reformation. Scribners Fisher, The Beginnings of Christianity. Scribners Froude, The Spanish Story of the Armada. Scribners Froissart, Chronicles. Macmillan Gibbon, History of Rome. TV. Macmillan Guizot, History of Civilization. 2v. Appleton Grote, History of Greece. 12v. Harpers Green, History of the English People. 4v. Harpers Gindely, History of the Thirty Years' War. 2v. Putnams Griesinger, The Jesuits. 2v. Allen Gardiner, History of the Great Civil War. 4v. Longmans Gardiner, The Puritan Revolution. Longmans Geiger. History of Persia. Clarendon Press Gardiner, The Thirty Years' War. Longmans Gower, Last Days of Marie Antoinette. Little, Brown Griffis, The Mikado's Empire. Harpers Hale, Lights of Two Centuries. American Book Co. Hume, History of England. 6v. Harpers Hallam and May, Constitutional History of England. 4v. Armstrong Hildreth. The History < f the United States. 6v. Harpers Heilprin, A Chronological Table of Universal History. Appleton Hodgkin, Charles the Great. Macmillan Hodgkin, Italy and Her Invaders. 6v. Clarendon Press Hodgkin, The" Dynasty of Theodosius. Clarendon Press Holden, The Mogul Emperors of Hindustan. Scribners Hallam, History of Medieval Europe. 2v. Armstrong Higginson, Tales of the Enchanted Isles. Macmillan Irving, Columbus, His Life and Voyages. Putnams Irving, History of Mahomet. Little, Brown Johnston, American Orations. Putnams Johnson, Chief Lives of the Poets. Henry Holt James, Life of Richard Coeur de Lion. 2y. Macmillan Jenks, History of the Australasian Colonies. Macmillan Josephus, Histories and Miscellanies. 4v. Armstrong Keary, The Dawn of History. Scribners Keary, Norway and the Norwegians. Scribners Keary, Primitive Belief among the Indo-Europeans. Scnuueis Kpssuth, Memories of My Exile. Appleton Kinglake, The Invasion of Crimea. 6v. Harpers Kingsford, History of Canada. 3v. Amsterdam Kitchen, History of France. 3v. Clarendon Press Keary, The Vikings of Western Christendom. Putnams Lodge, Life of Washington. Houghton, Mifflin Leland, The Gypsies. Houghton, Mifflin Lcroy-Beaulieu, The Empire Tsars and Russians. 3v. Putnams Lecky, History of European Morals, 2v. Appleton Lathrop, Spanish Vistas. Harpers Lebon, The Story of Modern France. Putnams Lancelotts, Queens of England and their Times. 2v. Appleton Lyall, Warren Hastings. Macmillan Lightfoot, Historical Essays. Macmillan Lang, Helen of Troy. Scribners Lenormont, The Beginnings of History. Scribners Lodge, The Story of the Revolution. 2v. Scribners Lanfrey, History of Napoleon. 4v. Macmillan Mommsen, The History of Rome, 5v. Scribners Michelet, The Life of Luther. Macmillan Machiavelli, History of Florence. Macmillan Mahaffy, Social Life in Greece. Macmillan Moeller, History of the Christian Church. 2v. Macmillan Montesquieu, Spirit of Laws. 2v. Macmillan Morley, Life of Walpole. Macmillan McMa'ster, History of the People of the United States. 6v. Appleton Montesquieu, The Grandeur and Decadence of Rome. Appleton Mueller, Political History of Recent Times. Harpers Macaulay, History of England. 6v. Harpers McCarthv, A History of Our Own Times. 3v. Harpers Motley, History of the United Netherlands. 4v. Harpers Motley, The Rise of the Dutch Republic. 3v. Harpers Miller, The Story of the Balkan States. Putnams Merivale, History of the Romans Under the Empire. 8v. Longmans Muir, Life of Mohammed. Scribners Mackenzie. The Nineteenth Century. Scribners Midland, History of the Crusades. 3v. Routledge Menzel, History of Germany. 3v. Macmillan Milman. The History of Latin Christianity. 4v. Armstrong Maitland, The Dark Ages. Benziger Napier, History of the Peninsular War. 3v. Routledg* Nadaillac, Prehistoric America. Putnam* LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 137 Xewman, The Arians of the 4th Century. Longmans Nicolini, History of the Jesuits. Macmillan Parton, Princes, Authors, and Statesmen of Our Time. Crowell Prescott, Ferdinand and Isabella. 3v. McKay Prescott, The Reign of Charles the V. 3v. Dana Estes Prescott, The Reign of Philip the II. 3v. Dana Estes Parkman, LaSalle and the Discovery of the Great West. Little, Brown Parkman, The Old Regime in Canada. Little, Brown Parkman, Montcalm and Wolfe. 2v. Little, Brown Prescott, The Conquest of Mexico. 3v. McKay Prescott, The Conquest of Peru. 2v. McKay Probyn, Land Tenures in Various Countries. Cassell Putnam, Tabular Views of Universal History. Putnams Parkman, The Jesuits in North America. Little, Brown Powell, Nullification and Secession in the U. 8. Putnams Plutarch, Lives (Dryden). 3v. Coates Renan, History of the People of Israel. 5v. Little, Brown Ranke, History of the Popes. 3r. Macmillan Rawlinson, Ancient Monarchies. 5v. Dodd, Mead Ranke, Universal History. Amsterdam Rustor, The War for the Rhine Frontier. 3v. Blackwood Rambaud, History of Russia. 2v. Dana Estes Rawlinson, History of Phoenicia. Longmans Ratzel, The History of Mankind. 3v. Macmillan Roscoe, Life of Lorenzo de Medici. Macmillan Rawlinson, Herodotus(Ed. by Grant.) 2v. Scribners Rawlinson, The Origin of Nations. Scribners Rawlinson, Egypt and Babylon. Scribners Sabatier, Life "of St. Francis of Assisi. Scribners Stephens, History of the French Revolution. 3v. Scribners Symonds, Short History of the Renaissance. Scribners Symonds, Sketches and Studies in Italy and Greece. 3v. Scribners Stockton, Buccaneers and Pirates of our Coasts. Macmillan Suetonius, Lives of the Caesars. Macmillan Southey, Life of Nelson. Cassell Schlegel, Lectures on the Philosophy of History. Macmillan Stevens, Sources of the Constitution of the U. S. Macmillan Southey, Life of Wesley. Macmillan Smith, Cases from Roman Law. Macmillan Schiller, The Revolt of the Netherlands. Harpers Sismondi, A History of theltalian Republics. Harpers Stepniak, Russian Peasantry. Harpers Sainte-Beuve, Portraits of Celebrated Women, Little, Brown Seebohm, English Village Community. Longmans Seeley, The Expansion of England. Macmillan Seeley, Life and Times of Stem. 3v. Macmillan Samuelson, History of Bulgaria. Amsterdam Stephens, History of Portugal. Putnams Sloane, Life of Napoleon. 4v. Century Co. Schoolcraf t, Narrative of Exploration. Lippincott Schoolcraft, the Myth of Hiawatha. Lippincott Spence, Cloister Life in the Days of Coeur de Lion. Lippincott Sybel, Founding of the German Empire, by William I. 7v. Crowell Traill, History of Social Life in England. 6v. Putnams Taine, The French Revolution. 3v. Henry Holt Taine, The Ancient Regime. Henry Holt Thiers, French Revolution. 4v. Appleton Tacitus, The Annals and History. 2v. Macmillan Thierry, History of the Norman Conquest. 2v. Macmillan Thucydides, Athenian History (tr. Jowett). 2v. Scribners Voltaire, Age of Louis the XIV. Scribners Voltaire, History of Charles the XII. Houghton, Miftiin Vambery, History of Hungary. Scribners Wheeler, History of India. 4v. Amsterdam Winsor, Narrative and Critical History of America. 8v. Houghton Warner, Life of Capt. John Smith. Henry Holt Wellhausen, Sketch of the History of Israel and judah. Macmillan ienophon, Historical Works (tr. Watson). 3v. Macmillan Religion, Theology and Mythology. Arnold, Literature and Dogma. Arnold, Gpd aud the Bible. Scribners Scribners Addis and Arnold, Catholic Dictionary. Benziger Alger, The Doctrine of a Future Life. Little, Brown Athanasius, Against the Heathen. Scribners Allen, Christian Institutions. Scribners Brooks, Influence of Jesus. Dutton Beecher, Evolution and Religion. Fords, Howard Bulfinch, The Age of Fable. Lee and Shepard Bulfinch, The Age of Chivalry. Lee and Shepard Bulfinch, Legends of Charlemagne. Lee and Shepard Bushnell, Vicarious Sacrifice. Scribners Brooks, Essays and Addresses. Dutton Butler, Analogy of Religion. Harpers Brinton, Religions of Primitive Peoples. Putnams Bushnell, Nature and the Supernatural. Scribners Briggs, Introduction to the Study of Scripture. Scribners Briggs, The Bible, the Church, and the Reason. Scribners Bruce, Apologetics. Scribners Brooke, Theology of the English Poets. Amsterdam Collyer, Things New and Old. Dutton Charming, Complete Works. 4v. Williams & Northgate Curtin, Creation Myths of Primitive America. Little, Brown Conway, The Sacred Anthology. Henry Holt Chadw'ick, The Faith of Reason. Little, Brown Chatterji, The Bhagavad-Gita. Houghton, Mifflin Cuckson, Faith and Fellowship. Houghton, Mifflin Cone, Gospel Criticisms and Historical Christianity. Putnams Cone, The Gospel and Its Earliest Interpretations. Putnams Clodd, The Childhood of Religions. Appleton Calvin, Institutes of Christian Religion. 2v. Scribners Cone, Life of St. Paul. Macmillan Caird, Evolution of Religion. 2v. Macmillan Cooke, Religion and Chemistry. Scribners Cruttwell, Literary History of Early Christianity. 2v. S'cribners Dorner, System of Christian Ethics. Scribners Dorner, System of Christian Doctrine. 4v. Scribners Drummond, Philo Judaeus. 2v. Williams & Northgate D'Alviella, Origin and Growth of the Conception of God. Scribners Drummond, Via, Veritas, Vita. Scribners Davids, Origin and Growth of Religion. Scribners Driver, Literature of the Old Testament. Scribners Elmendors, Elements of Moral Theology. (Aquinas.) Pott Feuerbach, Essence of Christianity. Amsterdam Figuier, The To-morrow of Death. Little, Brown Figuier, Joys Beyond the Threshold. Little, Brown Frothingham, The Religion of Humanity. Putnams Fenelon, Spiritual Letters to Men and Women. 2v. Longmans Freemantle, The World as the Subject of Redemption. Longmans Fouard, St. Peter and the First Years of Christianity. . Longmans Farrar, Critical History of Free Thought. Appleton Farrar, Life and Teachings of Christ. Doubleday & McClure Fraser, Lyric Poetry from the Bible. 2v. Macmillan Fiske, The Myths of Israel. Macmillan Flint, Theism. Scribners Guyau, The Non-Religion of the Future. Henry Holt Gratry, Guide to the Knowledge of God. Little, Brown Gordon, the Witness to Immortality. Houghton, Mifflin Gould, The Meaning and the Method of Life. Putnams Gore, Roman Catholic Claims. Longmans Goulburn, Thoughts on Personal Religion. Appleton Goulburn, Pursuit of Holiness. Appleton Gladstone, The Impregnable Rock of Scripture. Scribners Hatch, Greek Influence Upon the Christian Church. Scribnere Harris, Self Revelation of God. Scribners Harnack, History of Dogma. 3v. Little, Brown Hedge, Ways of the Spirit. Little, Brown Hatch, Organization of the Early Christian Churches. Longmans Hoole, The Apostolic Fathers. Longmans Hessev, Sunday. Its Origin and History. Cassell Hopkins, the Law of Love. Scribners Julian, Dictionary of Hvmnology. Scribners King, Christianity and Humanity. Houghton, Mifflin Kempis, Of the Imitation of Christ. Longmans Knight, Aspects of Theism. Macmillan Kuenen, National and Universal Religion. Scribners Liddon, The Divinity of Jesus Christ. Rivington 138 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Le Gallienne, The Religion of a Literary Man. Putnams Lang, Modern Mythology. Longmans Lnckoek, The History of Marriage. Longmans Lang, The Making of Religion. Longmans Legge, The Religions of China. Scnbners Manning, Sermons on Ecclesiastical Subjects. Benziger Manning, Sin and Its Consequences. Benziger Mansel, Limits of Religious Thought. Scribners McCosh, Method of Divine Government. Macmillan Muller, The Christian Doctrine of Sin. Scribners Moxom, From Jerusalem to Nicaea. Little, Brown Moxom, The Religion of Hope. Little, Brown Mulford, The Republic of God. Hougbton, Mifflin Mill, Nature, The Utility of Religion, and Theism. Longmans Maurice, The Conscience. Macmillan Mills, God in His World. Harpers McGiffert, The Apostolic Age. Scribners Murray, Manual of Mythology. Scribners Macka'il, The Eversjey Bible. 8v. Macmillan Maurice, The Religions of the World. Macmillan Muller, Origin and Growth of Religion. Scribners Monteliore, Origin and Growth of Religion. Scribners Noble Lectures (Harvard Universitv). Houghton, Mifflin Newman, A Grammar of Assent. Longmans Newman, The Development of Christian Doctrine. Longmans Neander, Life of Jesus in its Historical Connection. Macmillan Oort and Hooykaas, The Bible for Learners. 3v. Little, Brown Picard, Christianity or Agnosticism. Benziger Parker, West Roxbury Sermons. Little, Brown Proctor, History of the Book of Common Praver. Macmillan Paley, Evidences of Christianity. Scribners Pflei'derer, Development of Theology. Macmillan Philo. Works. 4v. Macmillan Prideaux, Old and New Testament Connected. Harpers Paine, The Age of Reason. Putnams Percival, The Decrees and Canons of the Seven Councils. Scribners Pfleiderer, Influences of Paul on Christianity. Scribners Rickabv, Aquinas Ethicus. 2v. Benziger Reuss, History of the New Testament Scripture. 2v. Houghton Reville, The Devil, His Origin, Greatness and Decadence. Williams Renan, The Apostles. Little, Brown Kenan. Anti-Christ. Little, Brown Renan, Life of Jesus. Little, Brown Ramsay, Regeneration. Putnams Royce, The Conception of God. Macmillan Ryle, The Canon of the Old Testament. Macmillan Robertson, The Human Race and Other Sermons. Harpers Ramsay, St. Paul, the Traveler and the Roman Citizen. Putnams Renouf , Origin and Growth of Religion. Scribners Renan, Hibbert Lectures, 1880. Scribners Reville, Religions of Mexico and Peru. Scribners Steenstra, The Being of God as Unity and Trinity. Houghton Schaff, Creeds of Christendom. 3v. Harpers Shedd, The Confessions of St. Augustine. Draper Sanday, Inspiration. Longmans Soderina, Socialism and Catholicism. Longmans Smith, The Old Testament in the Jewish Church. Appleton Smith, The Prophets of Israel. Harpers Schaff, Revised Greek-English New Testament. Harpers Stevens, Theology of the New Testament. Scribners St. Augustine, Works, vols. 1 and 2. Scribners Schurman, Belief in God. Scribners Smith, The Bible and Islam. Scribners Smyth, Dorner on the Future State. Scribners Sctileiermaeher, On Religion. Scribners Schonenhauer, Religion : a Dialogue. Scribners Smith, Kinship and Marriage in Early Arabia. Macmillan Sayce, Origin and Growth of Religion. Scribners Smyth, Christian Ethics. Scribners Toy, Judaism and Christianity. Little, Brown Tvler, Bases of Religious Belief. Putnams van Dyke, The Reality of Religion. Scribners Van Dvke, The Gospel for an Age of Doubt. Macmillan Wilhehnand Scannell, Manual of Catholic Theology. 2v. Benziger Wiseman, Doctrines of the Catholic Church. Benziger Weizsacker, The Apostolic Age. 2v. Putnams Wescott, History of the Canon of the New Testament. Macmillan Wace, Christianity and Agnosticism. Appleton Fiction and Description. Auerbach, On the Heights. Caldwell Auerbach, The Villa on the Rhine. 2v. Henry Holt Anderson, The Improvisatore. Houghton, Mifflin Blackmore, Lorna Doone. Crowell Barrie, The Little Minister. Coates Bulwer-Lytton, Last Days of Pompeii. Caldwell Bulwer-Lytton, Last of the Barons. Caldwell Bulwer-Lytton, Rienza. Caldwell Bulwer-Lytton, Eugene Aram. Caldwell Bulwer-Lytton, My Novel. Dana Estes Bunyan, Pilgrim's Progress. Century Boccaccio, The Decameron. 4y. Lippincott Balzac, Pere Goriot. Little, Brown Balzac, Caesar Birotteau. Little, Brown Balzac, Cousin Bette. Little, Brown Barham, Ingoldsby Legends. 2v. Coates Bellamy, Looking Backward. Houghton, Mifflin Bjornson, Novels ( Anderson). 3v. Houghton, Mifflin Bazin, The Italians of To-day. Henry Holt Bremer, The Home ; or Life in Sweden. Putnams Beaconsfield, Endymion. Longmans Beaconsfield, Lothair. Longmans Beaconsfleld, Vivian Grey. Longmans Beaconsfleld, Coningsby. Longmans Balzac, Eugenie Grandt. Macmillan Balzac, A Gondreville Mystery. 3Iacmillan Balzac, Ursule Mirouet. Macmillan Balzac, The Country Doctor. Macmillan Balzac, The Quest of the Absolute. Macmillan Beckf ord, Vathek : An Eastern Romance. Scribners Bronte, Jane Eyre. Crowell Bourdillon, Aucassin and Nicolette. Macmillan Burnaby, Khiva. Cassell Cooper, Deerslayer. Rand, McNally Cooper, Last of the Mohicans. Rand, McNally Cooper, Pathfinder. Rand, McNally Cooper, Pioneers. Rand, McNally Cooper, The Prairie. Rand, McNally Cooper, The Spy. Coates Corelli, Thelma. Rand, McNally Cervantes, Don Quixote. 2v. Crowell Gollins, The Woman in White. Harpers Collins, The Moonstone. Harpers Craddock, The Prophet of the Great Smoky Mountains. Houghton Crane, Italian Popular Tales. Houghton Caird, A Romance of the Moors. Henry Holt Cox, Popular Romances of the Middle Ages. Henry Holt Celiere, Startling Exploits of Dr. Quies. Harpers Clifford, Mrs. Keith's Crime. Harpers Coppee, Ten Tales. Harpers Curtis, Prue and I. Harpers Oable, Old Creole Days. Scribners Crane, The Red Badge of Courage. Appleton De Stae1, Corinne. Crowell Dickens, David Copperfield. Rand, McNally Dickens, Tale of Two Cities. Rand, McNally Dickens, Pickwick Papers. Rand, McNally Dickens, Old Curiosity Shop. Coates Dumas, Three Musketeers. Caldwell Dumas, Twenty Years After. Caldwell Dumas. Count of Monte Cristo. 2v. Caldwell Doyle, Micah Clarke. Rand, McNally Doyle, The White Company. Crowell De'Foe, Robinson Crusoe. Rand, McNally Dumas, Vicomte De Bragelonne. Caldwell Dumas, Louise de la Valliere. Caldwell Dumas, The Man with the Iron Mask. Caldwell Deland, John Ward, Preacher. Houghton, Mifflin Daudet, The Apostate. Appleton Daudet, Port Tarascon. Harpers De Kay, The Vision of Nimrod. Appleton De Kay, The Vision of Esther. Appleton Doyle, The Refugees. Harpers Du Maurier, Peter Ibbetson. Harpers Du Maurier, Trilby. Harpers Didier, Would Any Man ? Williams & Wilkins Daudet, Sappho ; Parisian Manners. Macmillan Daudet, Tartarin on the Alps. Macmillan Daudet, The Nabob. 2v. Little, Brown De Berville, The Chevalier. Scribners fibers, An Egyptian Princess. CaldweU LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 139 Ebers, Uarda. Eckstein, A Monk of the Aventine. Eliot, Adam Bede. Eliot, Middlemarch. Eliot, Mill on the Floss. Eliot, Romola. Fothergill, The First Violin. Fielding, Tom Jones. Fawcett, The House at Highbridge. Fawcett, Tinkling Cymbals. Caldwell Little, Brown Rand, McNally Rand, McNally Rand, McNally Rand, McNally Caldwell Caldwell Houghton, Miftlin Houghton, Mifflin Fenelon, Adventures of Telemachus. Houghton, Mifflin Franzos, For the Right. Harpers Fouque, Undine. Macmillan Gaskell, Cranford. Putnams Griin, The Last Night. Houghton, Mifflin Gautier, A Winter in Russia. Henry Holt Gautier, Constantinople. Henry Holt Gautier, Chanson do Roland. Henry Holt Green, That Affair Next Door. Putnams Galdos, Dona Perfecta : a Story. Harpers Goethe, Select Works. Vols. 5, 7, 8, 9. Macmillan Goldsmith, The Vicar of Wakefleld. Cassell Hugo,Les Miserables. 2v. Caldwell Hugo, Toilers of the Sea. Crowell Hugo, Notre Dame de Paris. Crowell Hardy, Far from the Madding Crowd. Rand, McNally Hobbe*, The School for Saints. Stokes Hawthorne, House of the Seven Gables. Rand, McNally Hawthorne, The Scarlet Letter. Rand, McNally Hale'vy, Abbe Constantin. Rand, McNally Holmes, Elsie Venner. Houghton, Mifflin Howells, A Foregone Conclusion. Houghton, Mifflin Howells, The Rise of Silas Lapham. Houghton, Mifflin Howells, A Modern Instance. Houghton, Mifflin Haggard, King Solomon's Mines. Cassell Haggard, Cleopatra. Longmans Haggard, She. Longmans Heyse, The Children of the World. Henry Holt Hope, The Prisoner of Zenda. Henry Holt Hope, Rupert of Hentzau. Henry Holt Howells, A Hazard of New Fortunes. 2v. Harpers Howells, The (Duality of Mercy. Harpers Harland, Some Colonial Homesteads. Putnams Harraden, Ships that Pass in the Night. Putnams Hardy, Tess of the D'Urbervilles. Harpers Hardy, The W r oodlanders. Harpers Hauff, The Caravan, the Sheik, etc. Macmillr.n Heine, Travel Pictures (Storr). Macmillan Hale, The Man Without a Country. Little, Brown Harris, Evening Tales. Scribners Holland, The Bay Path. Scribners Holland, Arthur P-onnicastle. Scribners Hughes, Tom Crown at Oxford. Rand, McNally Hughes, Tom Brown's School Days. Rand, McNally Irving, Alhambra. Rand, McNally Irving, The Sketch Book. Rand, McNallv Irving, Tales of a Traveler. Crowell Irving, Old Christmas. Macmillan Ingraham, Prince of the House of David. Rand, McNally James, The Portrait of a Lady. Houghton, Mifflin James, Roderick Hudson. Jackson, Ramona. James, Daisy Miller. Jokr.i, The Green Book. Jokai, Eyes Like the Sea. James, The Bostonians. Jokai, The Nameless Castle. Houghton, Mifflin Little, Brown Harpers Harpers Putnams Macmillan Doubleday & McClure Jacobs, History of Reynard the Fox. Macmillan Kompert, Christian and Leah. Macmillan Kiplmg, Light that Failed. Rand, McNally Kipling, Soldiers Three. Rand, McNally Kipling, Plain Tales from the Hills. Rand, McNally Kingsley, Hypatia. Rand, McNally Kingsle'v, Westward, Ho ! Rand, McNally King, The White Hills. Dana Kste's Kipling, The Dav's Work. Doubleday & McClure KinsrlaKe, Eothen. Scribners Le Sage, Gil Bias. Caldwell Longfellow, Complete Prose Works. 2v. Houghton, Mifflin Lyall, Hope the Hermit. Longmans Lyall, Doreen ; the Story of a Singer. Longmans La Farge, An Artist's Letters from Japan. Century Lagerlof , The Story of Gosta Berling. Little, Brown Lever, Charles O'Mallev. Rand, McNally La Qnintana, The Cid Campeador. Longmans Laboulaye, Abdallah. Scribners , Arabian Nighty. I/ongmaius Meredith, The Egoist. Scribners Maclaren, Beside the Bonnie Briar Bush. Dodd, Mead Merimee, Carmen. Little, Brown Meredith, Diana of the Crossways. Rand, McNally Muloch, John Halifax, Gentleman. Rand, McNally Muhlbach, Frederick the Great and his Court. Caldwell Mitchell, Hueh Wynne, Free Quaker. Century Mitchell, The Adventures of Francois. Centurv Morris, The Story of the Glittering Plain. Little, Brown Muloch. A Life for a Life. Harpers Maartens, God's Fool. Appleton Morier, Adventures of Hajji Baba of Ispahan. Macmillan Manzoni, The Betrothed. Macmillan Marco Polo, Travels. (Marsten.) Macmillan Maundeville, The Marvellous Adventures of. Macmillan Morell, Tales of the Genii. Macmillan Mitford, Our Village. Macmillan Mitchell, Reveries of a Bachelor. Scribners Mitchell, Dream Life. Scribners Morris, Old French Romances. Scribners Oliphant, The Makers of Florence. Caldwell Oliphant, The Makers of Venice. Caldwell Pickering, Margot. Putnams Porter, Scottish Chiefs. Appleton Peacock, Maid Marion, and Crochet Castle. Macmillan Peronne, The Veil of Liberty. Macmillan Page, In Old Virginia. Scribners Page, Red Rock. Scribners Richardson, Clarissa Harlowe. Routledge Rousseau, Confessions. 4v. Lippincott Reade, It's Never too Late to Mend. Rand, McNally Reade, The Cloister and the Hearth. Crowell Roche, The Children of the Abbey. Rand, McNally Rostand, Cyrano de Bergerac. Cassel'l Rousselet, A Tale of the Indian Mutiny. Scribners Tteade, Put Yourself in his Place. Scribners Sand, Francois the Waif. Little, Brown Sand, The Devil's Pool. Little, Brown Sand, Fadette. Little, Brown Rand, The Master Mosaic Workers. Little, Brown Sand, Consuelo. 2v. Caldwell Sue, Mysteries of Paris. 2v. Caldwell Sue, The Wandering Jew. 2v. Caldwell Stowe, Uncle Tom's Cabin. Crowell Scott, The Antiquary. Rand, McNally Scott, Ivanhoe. Rand, McNally Scott, Kenilworth. Rand, McNally Scott, Heart ol Midlothian. Rand, McNally Scott, Fair Maid of Perth. Rand, McNally Scott, Poems. Rand, McNally Stevenson, Kidnapped. Rand, McNally Stevenson, Master of Ballantrae. Band, McNally Stevenson. Treasure Island. Rand, McNally Sand, Mauprat. Little, Brown Sand, Nanon. Little, Brown Schreiner, The Story of an African Farm. Little, Brown Schreiner, Dreams. Sterne, The Sentimental Journey. Sterne, Tristram Shandy. Fiienkiewicz, C.Hio Vadis. Sienkiewicz, With Fire and Sword. Sienkiewicz, The Deluge. 2v Santine, Picciola. Little, Brown Longmans Longmans Little, Brown Little, Brown Little, Brown Appleton Appleton Appleton Macmillan Macmillan Macmillan Scribners Macmillan Saint-Pierre, Paul and Virginia. Touvestre, An Attic Philosopher in Paris. Strachey, Morto de Arthur. Smith, Greek romances. Shorthouse, John Inglesant. f-'tepniak, King Stork and King Log. 2v. Steel, Tales of the Punjab. Sheridan, The School for Scandal and the Rivals. Macmillan Saintsbury, Marmontel's Moral Tales. Macmillan Swan, Gesta Romanorum. Macmillan Stevenson, The Black Arrow. Scribners Stevenson, Dr. Jekyll and Mr. Hyde. Scribners Stevenson, St. Ives. Scribners Stimson, KingNoanett. Scribners 1 timson, Guerndale. Scribners Stockton, Rudder Grange. Scribners Trollope, The Warden. Dodd, Mead Trollope, Barchester Towers. 2v. Dodd, Mead Trollope, Framley Parsonage. 2v. Dodd, .Mead Tolstoi, Anna Karenina. Crowell Tolstoi, War and Peace. 2v. Crowell Theuriet, Rustic Life in France. Crowell Thackeray, Vanity Fair. CaldweU, 140 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Thackeray, Henry Esmond. Caldwell Thackeray, The Newcomes. Caldwell Thackeray, The Virginians. 2v. Dana Estes Thackeray. Pendennis. Putnams Turgenev, Rudin. Macmillan Tugenev, Dream Tales. Macmillan Valdes, The Marquis of Penalto. Crowell Voltaire, Zadig et Micromegas. Routledge Voltaire, Tales. Macmillan Verne, Michael Strogoff. Scribners Ware, Zenobia. Caldweli Wa"re, Aurelian. Dana Estes Weyman, The Castle Inn. Longmans Weyman, Under the Red Robe. Longmans Wallace, Ben Hur. Harpers Ward, Robert Elsmere. Macmillan Ward. Helbeck of Bannisdale. 2r. Macmillan Zangwill, Dreamers of the Ghetto. Harpers Zola, Paris. 2v. Macmillan Zangwill, Children of the Ghetto. Macmillan Zola, Rome. 2v. Macmillan Classics, Poetry, and Drama. Aldrich, Poetical Works. 2v. Houghton, Mifflin Arnold, Poems. Crowell .flSschylus, Dramas (tr. Swanwick). Macmillan -iBschylus, Tragedies (tr. Buckley). Macmillan Alger, The Poetry of the Orient. Little, Brown Arnold, Collected Poems. 2v. Little, Brown Ariosto, Orlando Furioso. 2v. Macmillan Alfieri, Tragedies. 2v. Macmillan Aristophanes, Comedies. Routledge Aristotle, The Poetics. MacmiUan Arnold, The Light of Asia. Scribners Bulwer-Lytton, Richelieu : a Drama. Dodd, Mead Bryant, Complete Poetical Works. Stokes Browning, Poetical and Dramatic Works. 6v. Houghton, Mifflin Bryant, Homer's Iliad. Houghton, Mifflin Bryant, Homer's Odyssey. Houghton, Mifflin Browning, Mrs., Poetical Works. Crowell Burns, Complete Works. Macmillan Beaumont and Fletcher, Best Plays. 2v. Scribners Cicero, the Academics (tr. Reid). Macmillan Cicero, Nature of the Gods. Macmillan Cicero, Officers, Old Age, etc. Macmillan Cicero, Orations. 4v. Macmillan Chaucer, Canterbury Tales (Pollard). 2v. Macmillan Camoens, Luciad ; or The Discovery of India. Macmillan Coleridge, Poetical Works. Macmillan Cowper, Poetical Works. Macmillan Dryden, Poems. Crowell Dryden, Works in Verse and Prose. 2v. Harpers Dore", Dante's Inferno. Cassell Dore 1 , Dante's Purgatory and Paradise. Cassell Dore 1 , Milton's Paradise Lost. Cassell De Vere, Select Poems. Macmillan Dutt, Ancient Ballads and Legends of Hindustan. Scribners Demosthenes, Orations. 5v. Macmillan Firdusi, The Epic of Kings. Henry Holt Goldsmith, Comedies. Stokes Goethe, Faust (tr. Taylor). Houghton, Mifflin Goldsmith and Gray, Poems. Houghton, Mifflin Gladstone, Odes of Horace. Scribners Holmes, Complete Poetical Works. Houghton, Mifflin Homer, Iliad and Odyssey (tr. Pope). 2v. Crowell Howells, Modern Italian Poets. Harpers Hesiod, Callimachus, Theognis. Macmillan Hugo, Dramatic Works. Macmillan Hapgood, Epic Songs of Russia. Scribners Holland, Bitter-Sweet. Scribners Heine, Poems and Ballads. Scribners Hood, Works in Prose and Verse. Scribners Ibsen, Prose Dramas, vols. 1, 4, and 6. Scribners Jackson, Complete Poems. Little, Brown Juvenal, Thirteen Satires (Mayor). 2v. Macmillan Keats, Poetical Works. Crowell Khayvam, Rubaiyat. . Page Longfellow, Conmlete Poetical Works. Houghton Longfellow, The Divina Commedia of Dante. 3v. Houghton. Lowell, Poetical Works. Houghton Leasing, Nathan the Wise. Henry Holt Leasing, Dramatic Works. 3v. Macmillan Lucan,Thel'harsalia (Conway). . Macmillan Lucian, Dialogues of the Gqd^, Macmillan Lettsom, The Fall of the Niebelungs. Scribnero Macdonald, Poems. Dutton Milton, Complete Poetical Works. 2v. Crowell Morris, Defence of Guenevere. Little, Brown Morris, The ^Eneids of Virgil. Little, Brown Morris, The Story of Sigurd the Volsung. Little, Brown Moliere, Dramatic Works. 3v. Macmillan Milton, Areopagitica. Clarendon Press Moore, Prose and Verse (Shepard). Scribnert Marlowe, Dramatic Works. Scribners Norton, Dante's New Life. Houghton (man, The Great Indian Epics. Macmillan Ossian, Poems (MacPherson). Macmillan Ovid, Works. 3v. Macmillan Poe, Complete Works. 6v. Armstrong Pope, Complete Poetical Works. 2v. Crowell Pliny, Letters (Melmoth). Macmillan Petrarch, Sonnets, Triumphs, and Other Poems. Macmiilan Pindar, Works. Macmillan Quintilian, Institutes of Oratory. 2v. Macmillan Riley, Poetical and Dramatic Works. 4v. Scribners Rosetti, Dante and His Circle. Little, Brown Racine, Dramatic Works. 2v. Macmillan Rossctti, Complete Poetical Works. Little, Bro.wr Shelley, Complete Poetical Works. 2v. Crowell Stedman, Victorian Poets. Scribners Swinburne, Poems. Crowell Sheridan, The Rivals, and School for Scandal. Macmillan Schiller, Dramatic Works and Poems. 4v. Sophocles, QSdipus Tyrannus (Jebb). Sophocles, Antigone (Jebb). Sophocles, Electra (Jebb). Sallust, The Conspiracy of Catiline Macmillan Macmillan Macmillan Macmillan (Pollard). Macmillan Scribnert Crowell Houghton Macmillan Henry Holt Sidney, Arcadia. Tennyson, Complete Poetical Works. 2v. Taylor, Poetical Works. Tasso, Poetical Works. Tegner, Frithiof 's Saga. Thomson, The Seasons, and Castle of Indolence. Clarendon Press Wordsworth, Complete Poetical Works. 2v. Crowell Whittier, Poetical Works. Houghton Essays and Criticisms. Arnold, Essays and Criticism. MacmiUan Adler, Creed and Deed. Putnams Bacon, Advancement of Learning. Clarendon Press Bacon, The Essays. Longmans Bacon, Novum Organum. Clarendon Press Blackie, Four Phases of Morals. Scribners Blackie, Natural History of Atheism. Scribnere Browne, Religio Medici. Scribners Burton, Anatomv of Melancholy. Scribners Burke, Works. Vol. 1. Macmillan Choate, Addresses and Orations. Little, Brown Channing, Self Culture. Crowell Carlyle, Sartor Resartus. Stokes Carlvle, Heroes and Hero Worship. Stokes Carlyle, Past and Present. Routledge Carlyle, Critical and Miscellaneous Essays. 2v. Houghton Clarke, Self Culture. Houghton Chesterfield , Worldly Wisdom (Hill). Clarendon Press Coleridge, Age to Reflection. Macmillan Coleridge, Table Talk. Macmillan De Quincey, Complete Works. 6v. Houghton Everett, Poetry, Comedy, and Duty. Houghton Emerson, Works. Vols. 2, 3, 4, 6, 7, and 9. Houghton, Mifflin Eliot, American Contributions to Civilization. Century Epictetus, Discourses, Encheiridion, etc. 2y. Little, Brown Fiske, The Unseen World and Other Essays. Houghton Francke, Social Forces in German Literature. Henry Holt Froude, Short Studies on Great Subjects. Scribners Haweis, Music and Morals. Scribners Hodgson, Time and Space. Putnams Hazlitt, the Spirit of the Age. Putnams Hamerton, The Intellectual Life. Little, Brown Hamerton, Human Intercourse. Little, Brown Hamerton, The Quest of Happiness. Little, Brown Holmes, The Professor at the Breakfast Table. Holmes, The Autocrat of the Breakfast Table. , Men, Women, and, BQp,k, Honghton Houghton LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 141 Hunt, Table Talk. Scribners Higginson, Atlantic Essays. Putnams Higginson, The Procession of the Flowers. Putnams Higginson, Outdoor Papers. Putnams Jessopp, Random Roamings in Time and Space. Putnams Jessopp, Arcady : For Better, For Worse. Putnams James, The Will to Believe. Putnams Jerrold, The Barber's Chair. Scribners King, Substance and Show. Houghton Le Gallienne. If I Were God. Crowell Lamb, Some Essays of Elia. Appleton Longinus, On the Sublime. Macmillan Luther, Table Talk. Macmillan Mazzini, Essays. Macmillan Massey, The Natural Genesis. Williams & Northgate Macaulay, Complete Essays. 3v. Armstrong Morris, Hopes and Fears for Art. Little, Brown Pascal, Thoughts, Letters and Opuscules. Houghton Pascal, Provincial Letters. Houghton Phillips, Speeches, Lectures, and Letters. 2v. Lee & Shepard Palmer, The Glory of the Imperfect. Crowell Palmer, Self Cultivation in English. Crowell Pater, Marius, the Epicurean. Macmillnu Smiles, Self Help. Harpers Schiller, Essays. Macmillan Smith, Selections. Putnams Sainte-Beuve, English Portraits. Henry Holt Selden, The Table Talk. Clarendon Press Swift, Selections (Craik). 2v. Clarendon Press Smith, Guess at the Riddle of Existence. Macmillan Thoreau, Walden. Houghton Taylor, Diversions of the Echo Club. Putnams Van Dyke, Little Rivers ; A Book of Essays. Scribners Philosophy and .^Esthetics. Aquinas, On Universals (tr. Dering). Leamington Alden, A Study of Death. Harpers Abbott, Scientific Theism. Little, Brown Allen, Evolution of the Idea of God. Henry Holt Aristotle, Metaphysics (tr. McMahon). Macmillan Aristotle, Nichomachian Ethics (tr. Peters). Scribners Aristotle, Organon. 2v. Macmillan Baldwin, Interpretations in Mental Development. Macmillan Baldwin, Dictionary of Philosophy and Psychology. Macmillan Berkeley, Philosophical Works. 3v. Macmillan Boethius, Consolations of Philosophy. Macmillan Bradley, Appearance and Reality. Macmillan Bosanquet, A History of .^Esthetics. Macmillan <3obbe, An Essay on Intuitive Morals. Williams & Northgate Clifford, Lectures and Essays. Macmillan Clifford, Seeing and Thinking. Macmillan Cousin, The True, the Beautiful, and the Good. Macmillan Descartes, Method and Meditations. Scribners Krdmann, History of Philosophy. 3v. Scribners Everett, Ethics for Young People. Ginn Fichte, Doctrine of Religion (tr. Smith). Amsterdam Frothingham, Transcendentalism in New England. Putnams Falckenberg, History of Modern Philosophy. Henry Holt Fiske, Outlines of Cosmic Philosophy. 2v. Houghton Fichte, Science of Knowledge (tr. Smith). Scribners Fichte, Science of Rights, (tr Smith). Scribners Gilman, Conduct as a Fine Art. Houghton Green, Prolegomena to Ethics. Clarendon Press Hyde, Practical Ethics. Henry Holt Hyde, Practical Idealism. Macmillan Hegel, Philosophy of Right (tr. Dyde). Macmillan Hegel, Logic (tr. Wallace). 2v. Clarendon Press Hegel, Philosophy of Mind (tr. Wallace). Clarendon Press Hume, Treatise of Human Nature. Clarendon Press Hume, Enquiry Concerning Human Understanding. Clarendon Press Hegel, Philosophy of Religion. 3v. Scribners Jaraes, Principles of Psychology. 2v. Henry Holt Jevons, Studies in Deductive Logic. Macmillan Jevons, The Principles of Science. Macmillan Janet, Final Causes. Scribners Janet, The Theory of Morals. Scribners Kant, Principles of Politics. Amsterdam Kant, Philosophy of Law. Scribners Kant, Metaphysic of Ethics. Longmans , Th,e Critique of Pu.re Kant, The Critique of Judgment (tr. Bernard). Macmillan Kant, Prolegomena to Philosophy (tr. Bax). Macmillan Lessing, Education of the Human Race. Amsterdam Lotze, Microcosmos. 2v. Scribners Leopard! , Essays and Dialogues. Amsterdam Lewis, Biographical History of Philosophy. Appleton Le Bon, The Crowd. Macmillan Locke, An Essay Concerning Human Understanding. Clarendon' Press Lotze, Logic (tr. Bosanquet). 2v. Clarendon Press Lotze, Metaphysics (tr. Bosanquet). 2v. Clarendon Press Ladd, A Theory of Reality. Scribners Ladd, Physiological Psychology. Scribners Maudsley, Body and Will. Appleton Mill, A System of Logic. Longmans Mill, Utilitarianism. Longmans Mackenzie, Introduction to Social Philosophy. Macmillan Marshall, Pain, Pleasure, and Esthetics. Macmillan Mercier, The Nervous Svstem and the Mind. Macmillan Martineau, Types of Ethical Theory. Clarendon Press Mivart, On Truth : a Systematic Inquiry. Benziger Nordau, Degeneration. Appleton Nash, Genesis of the Social Conscience. Macmillan Nitti, Catholic Socialism. Macmillan Powell, Our Heredity from God. Appleton Preyer, Mental Development in the Child. Appleton Paulsen, Introduction to Philosophy. Henry Holt Paulsen, Ethics (tr. Thilly). Scribners " Physicus," Theism. Amsterdam Royce, The Spirit of Modern Philosophy. Houghton Royce, The Religious Aspect of Philosophy. Houghton Rosenkrantz, Philosophy of Education. Appleton Royce, Studies of Good and Evil. Appleton Rendall, Marcus Aurelius to Himself. Macmillan Santayana, The Sense of Beauty. Scribners Sidis,'The Psychology of Suggestion. Appleton Spencer, First Principles. Appleton Spencer, Principles of Biology. 2v. Appleton Spencer, Principles of Sociology. 3v. Appleton Spencer, Principles of Ethics. 2v. Appleton Spencer, Education. Appleton Spencer, Philosophy of Style. Appleton Stirling, The Secret of Hegel. Putnams Spinoza, The Philosophy of. Henry Holt Spinoza, Chief Works. 2v. Macmillan Smith, Theory of the Moral Sentiments. Macmillan Sigwart, Logic. 2v. Macmillan Schopenhauer, The World as Will and Idea. 3v. Scribners Schopenhauer, On Human Nature. Scribners Taylor, Ancient Ideals. 2v. Putnams Ueberweg, History of Philosophy. 2v. Scribners Venn, The Logic of Chance. Macmillan Voltaire, Philosophical Dictionary. 2v. Truelove Von Hartman, The Philosophy of the Uncon- . scious. 2v. Scribners Wundt, Human and Animal Psychology. Macmillan Wundt, The Facts of the Moral Life. Macmillan Wundt, Ethical Systems. Macmillan Windelbrand, History of Philosophy. Macmillan Science and Travels. Aiidubon, His Journals. 2v. Scribners Allen, Physiological ^Esthetics. Appletou Amicis, Constantinople. Harpers Amicis, Morocco : Its People and Places. Harpers Agassiz, Geological Sketches. 2v. - Houghton Agassiz, Methods of Study in Natural History. Houghton Argyle, Organic Evolution Cross Examined. Henry Holt Bastian, The Brain as an Organ of Mind. Appleton Barker, Physics. Henry Holt Berdoe, Origin and Growth of the Healing Art. Amsterdam Cajori, The History of Mathematics. Macmillan Chrystal, Algebra. 2v. Macmillan Carpenter, The Principles of Mental Physiology. Appleton Clifford, The Common Sense of the Exact Sciences. Appleton Clodd, Pioneers of Evolution. Appleton Croll, Climate and Time. Appleton Dana, Text Book of Mineralogy, Appleton Donaldson, The Growth of Brain. Scribners Da.rwiq, Origin of Specie* 142 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Darwin, Descent of Man. Appleton Darwin, A Naturalist's Voyage Around the World. Appleton Ellis, Man and Woman. Scribners Finck, Spain and Morocco. Scribners Foster, Text Book of Physiology. 5v. Macmillan Faraday, Chemistry of a Candle. Harpers Friend," Flowers and Flower-lore. Amsterdam Gummere, Germanic Origins. Scribners Guyot, The Earth and Man. Scribners Gallon, Hereditary Genius. Appleton Gray, Anatomy. Longmans Huxley, Man's" Place in Nature. Appleton Holland, The Butterfly Book. Doubleday and McClure Hertwig, Embryology of Man and Mammals. Macmillan Hertwig, The Biological Problems of To-day. Macmillan Humboldt, Cosmos. 5v. Macmillan Haeckel, The History of Creation. 2v. Appleton Haeckel, The Evolution of Man. 2v. Appleton Huxley, Physiography. Macmillan Huxley, Evolution and Ethics. Appleton Huxley, Science and Christian Tradition. Appleton Jordan, Footnotes to Evolution. Appleton Jones, Logarithmic Tables. Macmillan Kingsley, Natural History. 6v. Dana Estes Kingsley, Health and Education. Appleton Kingsley, Town Geology/ Appleton Kelvin, The Constitution of Matter. Macmillan Lyell, Principles of Geology. 2v. Appleton Lockyer, Dawn of Astronomy. Cassell Le Conte, Evolution and Religious Thought. Appleton Lubbock, Origin of Civilization. Appleton Lubbock, The Beauties of Nature. Macmillan Letourneau, Evolution of Marriage. Scribners Manaceine, Sleep : a Study. Scribners Mason, The Origins of Invention. Scribners Mosso, Fear. Longmans Muir, The Alchemical Essence and the Chemical Element. Longmans Martin, The Human Body. Henry Holt Maxwell, Electricity and Magnetism. 2v. Clarendon Press Meyer, History of Chemistry. Macmillan Maury, Physical Geography of the Sea. Amsterdam Newton, Principia (tr. Main). Macmillan Newcomb, Popular Astronomy. Harpers Proctor, Other Worlds Than Ours. Appleton Proctor, Light Science for Leisure Hours. Harpers Packard, Textbook of Entomology. Macmillan Quatrefages, The Natural History of Man. Appletou Quatrefages, The Human Species. Appleton Romanes, Animal Intelligence. Amsterdam Reclus, The Earth. Harpers Ribot, Heredity. Appleton Ribot, Diseases of the Memory. Appleton Roemer, Origins of the English People. Appleton Romanes, Mental Evolution in Man. Appleton Remsen, Inorganic Chemistry. Henry Holt Stewart a'fad Tait. The Unseen Universe. Macmillan Scientific Series (International), Vols. 1, 2, 3,4, 7, 16, 17, 21, 23, 31, 34, 36, 39, 40, 42, 44, 47, 50, 62, 65, 66, 67. Appleton Thudicum, A Treatise on Wines. Macmillan Tyndall, Forms of Water. Appleton Tyndall, Heat as a Mode of Motion. Appleton Tyndall, On Sound. Appleton Tyndall, Fragments of Science. 2v. Appleton Tyndall, SixXectures on Light. Appleton Tait, Dvnamics. Macmillan Tylor, Primitive Culture. 2v. Henry Holt Verne, The Exploration of the World. 3v. Scribners White, Natural History of Selbourne. 2v. Appleton Wurtz, History of Chemical Theory. Macmillan Weismann, Es'says on Heredity. 2v. Clarendon Press Winchell, Sketches of Creation. Harpers Williams, Geological Biology. Henry Holt White, The Warfare of Science. 2v. Appleton Whewell, History of the Inductive Sciences. 2v. Appleton Political Science, Economics, And Law. Adams, The Science of Finance. Henry Holt Ashley, English Economic History and Theory. 2v. Putnams Aristotle, Politics (tr. Jowett). 2v. Clarendon Press Burgess, Political Science and Constitutional Baldwin, Modern Political Institutions. Little, Brown Bentham, Theory of Legislation. Amsterdam Blackstone, Commentaries on English Law. 2v. Lippincott Boehm, Capital and Interest. Macmillan Buckalew, Proportional Representation. Phila Bax, Ethics of Socialism. Scribners Beaulieu, The Modern State. Scribners Bagehot, Physics and Politics. Scribners Bagehot, The English Constitution. Appleton Bentham, Principles of Morals and Legislation. Clarendon Press Bentham, A Fragment on Government. Clarendon Press Bluntschli, The Theory of the State. Clarendon Press Burke, Thoughts on the Present Discontents. Clarendon Press Burke, Reflections on the French Revolution. Clarendon Press Cairnes, Principles of Political Economy. Harpers Curry, Constitutional Government in Spain. Harpers Cossa, Taxation : its Principles and Methods. Putnams Crane and Moses, Politics. Putnams Coulanges, Origin of Property in Land. Scribners Cossa, Introduction to Political Economy. Macmillan Dawson, The Federalist. Scribners De Tocqueville, Democracy in America. 2v. Century Dicey, English Constitutional Law. Macmillan De Laveleve, Primitive Property. Macmillan Dunbar, History and Theory of Banking. Putnams Dawson, The Unearned Increment. . Scribners De Laveleye, Elements of Political Economy. Putnams De Laveleye, Luxury. Scribners Ely, French and German Socialism. Harpers Fiske, Civil Government in the United States. Houghton Ford, Rise and Growth of American Politics. Macmillan Goodnow, Comparative Administrative Law. 2v. Putnams Gneist, History of the English Constitution. 2v. Putnams George, The Science of Political Economy. Doubleday George, Piogress and Poverty. Doubleday Giddings, Principles of Sociology. Macmillan Gaius, Roman Law (tr. Poste'). Clarendon Press Holland, Elements of Jurisprudence. Clarendon Press Holmes, The Common Law. Little, Brown Hadley, Economics. Putnams Hearn, The Aryan Household. Longmans Hammond, Political Institutions of the Greeks. Macmillan Hadley, Roman Law : Its History and System. A"ppleton Hall, International Law. Clarendon Press Hyslop, Democracy : A Study in Government. Scribners Jenks, Law and Politics in the Middle Ages. Henry Holt Johnston, History of American Politics. Henry Holt Justinian, The Institutes (tr. Sandars). Longmans Kent, Commentaries on American Law. 4v. Little, Brown Knox, United States Notes. Scribners Lavisse, Political History of Europe. Longmans Lafargue, The Evolution of Property. Scribnera Letourneau, Property : Its Origin and Development. Scribners Lieber, Civil Liberty and Self Government. Lippincott Lincoln, Political Speeches and Writings. Doda, Mead Lieber, Political Ethics. 2v. Lippincott Mull'ord, The Nation. Houghton Mayne, Hindu Law and Usage. Stevens Mill, The Subjugation of Women. Longmans Mill, Principles of Political Economy. 2v. Appleton Mill, Representative Government. Longmans Mulhall, Industries and Wealth of Nations. Macmillan Malthus, The Principle of Population. Scribners Munro, The Constitution of Canada. Macmillan Machiavelli, The Prince (tr. Thompson). Clarendon Press More, Utopia. Clarendon Press Maine, Ancient Law. Henry Holt Maine, Early History of Institutions. Henry Holt Maine, Popular Government. Henry Holt Mackenzie, Introduction to Social Philosophy. Macmillan Playfair, Subjects of Social Welfare. Cassell Pollock and Majtland,, History of English Law. 2v. Little, B.rowf LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. Paine, The Rights of Man. Putnams Puchta, Science of Jurisprudence. Scribners Pollock, Introduction to the Science of Politics. Macmillan Plehn, An Introduction to Public Finance. Macmillan Plato, The Republic (tr. Jowett). Clarendon Press Plato, The Dialogues. 4v. Scribners Rousseau, The Social Contract. Putnams Richie, The Princ'.plesof State Interference. Scribners Richie, Natural Rights. Macmillan Rae, Contemporary Socialism. Scribners Rannie, Outline of the English Constitution. Scribners Stoddard, Abraham Lincoln. Fords Shaw, Municipal Government in Great Britain. Century Shaw, Municipal Government in Continental Europe. Century Story, Equitv Jurisprudence. Little, Brown Samuelson, The History of Drink. Amsterdam Story, The Conflict of Laws. Little, Brown Story, Constitution of the United States. Harpers Shaw-Lefevre, Agragrian Tenures. Cassell Shearman, Katural Taxation. Doubleday Smith, Wealth of Nations. 2v. Clarendon Press Sohm, Institutes of Roman Law. Clarendon Press Stubbs, Constitutional History of England. 3v. Clarendon Press Stubbs, Select Charters. Clarendon Press Simon, Government of M. Thiers. 2v. Scribners Timing, The Family. Little, Brown Turner, The Germanic Constitution. Putnams Von Hoist, Constitutional History of the United States. Scribners Ward, Dynamic Sociology. 2v. Appleton Wells, Recent Economic Changes. Appleton Wallace, Land Nationalization. Scribners Wieser, Natural Value Macmillan Woolsey, Political Science. 2v. Scribners Woolsey, International Law. Scribners Woolsey, Communism and Socialism. Scribners Walker, Political Economy. Henry Holt Alphabets, The alphabets of different languages contain the following number of let- ters : English, 26 ; French, 23 ; Italian, 20; Spanish, 27 ; German, 26 ; Slavonic, 27 ; Rus- sian, 41 ; Latin, 22 ; Greek, 24 ; Hebrew, 22 ; Arabic, 28 ; Persian, 32 ; Turkish, 33 ; San- skrit, 50 ; Chinese, 214. Early Literature. The first Greek writ- ers were Homer and Hesiod, 1000 B. C., Tyr- taeus and Archilochus, 700 B. C., and Alcaeus, Sappho, and Anacreon, 600. The first Latin writers were Cluatua, Ennius, and Terentius, 200 B. C. The first British writers, Gildas, Nennius and Bede, 500 and 600 A. D. The first German writers, Eginhard, Wallafrid, and Rabanus, 800 A. D. The first French writers, Fort, Gregory, and Maralfe, 500 A. D. The first Spanish, Anian, Fulgentius, and Martin, 500 A. D. The first Polish, Yaraslof and Nes- tor in 1000 A. D. The first Italian, Gracian, Falcand and Campanus in 1100 A. D. CHINESE LITERATURE. The antiquity of Chinese literature is pro- portionate to that of the language, and its development has been greatly promoted by the early invention of the art of printing, which has been known in China for at least nine hundred years. The Chinese language presents a remarkable specimen of philological structure, which for ingenuity of arrangement and copiousness of expression, is not surpassed in any written literature. It belongs to that class of idioms which are called monosyllabic. Every word consists of only one syllable. The roots or original characters of the Chinese are only 214 in number, and it is supposed that a minute analysis would reduce them to a still smaller amount. Each of these characters represents one word, and each word an idea. Their various combinations form the whole language. Taken singly, they express the principal objects or ideas that are suggested in the common intercourse of life ; and combined, according to obvious analogies, they are made to comprehend the entire field of thought. Thus the character, which originally repre- sents the word " hand," is so modified and combined with others, as to denote every vari- ety of manual labor and occupation. The Chinese characters are written from top to bottom, and from right t; left. The lines are not horizontal, but perpendicular and parallel to each other. Much importance is attached by the Chinese to the graphic beauty of their written characters, which in picturesque effect, it must be owned, are superior to most forms of alphabetic symbols. The grammar of the language is very limited. The nouns and verbs cannot be inflected, and hence the relation of words to each other in a sentence can be un- derstood only from the context, or marked by their position. The Chinese literature is rich in works in every department of composition , both verse and prose. Their scholars are fond of discus- sions in moral philosophy, but they have also numerous books of history, geography, voy- ages, dramas, romances, tales, and fictions of all kinds. The labors of various European travelers,and students have given us specimens of almost every description of Chinese litera- ture. In legislation, we have a translation of the Penal Code of the Empire ; in politics and morals, the sacred books of Confucius, and his successor Meng-Tsew ; in philology and belles- lettres, a well-executed dictionary of the lan- guage ; several translations and abstracts of history ; and selections from the drama, criti- cism, and romance. Among the most success- ful explorers of the field of Chinese literature, we may mention Staunton, Davis, Morrison, Klaproth, and Remusat, who have followed up the earlier researches of the Jesuits at Pekin, and elucidated a subject which had been sup- posed to be inaccessible. Chinese literature suffered a similar mis- fortune to that of the West in the destruction of the Alexandrian brary ; for their Emperor, Chee-whang-tee, ordered all writings to be destroyed, that everything might begin anew from his reign ; consequently their books and 144 THE CENTURY BOOK OP PACTS. records were recovered with great difficulty by succeeding emperors. GREEK LITERATURE. The language which we call Greek was not the primitive language of Greece, for that country was originally inhabited by the Pelasgi, whose language had become extinct in the time of Herodotus. With regard to its origin, there is a diversity of opinion among the learned, although it evidently forms a branch of the extensive family of languages known by the name of the Indo-Germanic. It has existed as a spoken language for at least three thousand years, and, with the exception of the Arabic and the English, has been more widely diffused than any other tongue. Out of Greece, it was spoken in a great part of Asia Minor, of the South of Italy and Sicily, and in other regions which were settled by Grecian colonies. The Greek language is divided into four lead- ing dialects, the ^Eolic, Ionic, Doric, and Attic, beside which there are several secondary dia- lects. The four principal dialects may, how- ever, be reduced to two, the Hellenic-Doric, and the Ionic- Attic, the latter originally spoken in the northern part of Peloponnesus and Attica, the former in other parts of Greece. In each of these dialects, there are celebrated authors. To the Ionic dialect, belong in part the works of the oldest poets, Homer, Hesiod, Theognis ; of some prose writers, especially Herodotus and Hippocrates ; and the poems of Pindar, Theocritus, Bion, and Moschus. The Doric dialect was of the greatest antiquity. We have few remains of Doric prose, which consists chiefly of mathematical or philo- sophical writings. After Athens became the center of literary cultivation in Greece, the works of JSschylus, Sophocles, Euripides, Aristophanes, Thucydides, Xenophon, Plato, Isocrates, Demosthenes, and so forth, were re- garded as standards of style, and made the Attic the common dialect of literature. Poetry, however, was not written in the Attic dialect. The peculiarities of Homer were imitated by all subsequent poets except the dramatists, and even they assumed the Doric to a certain degree in their choruses, for the sake of the solemnity of expression which belonged to the oldest liturgies of the Greeks. According to the general tradition, Cadmus the Phoenician was the first who introduced the alphabet into Greece. His alphabet consisted of but six- teen letters ; four are said to have been in- vented by Palamedes in the Trojan war, and four more by Simonides of Ceos. It has been maintained, however, by some persons, that the art of writing was practiced by the Pe- lasgi before the time of Cadmus. On the other hand, many of the most sagacious critics place the origin of writing in Greece at a much later period. The origin of Greek literature, or the in- tellectual cultivation of the Greeks, by written works, dates at a period of which we have few historical memorials. The first period oi Grecian cultivation, which extends to eighty years after the Trojan war, is called the ante- Homeric period, and is destitute of any liter- ary remains properly deserving the name. Of the poets previous to Homer, nothing satisfac- tory is known. The most ancient was Olen, who is mentioned by Pausanias. He was fol- lowed by Linus, Orpheus, Musaeus, and others, but the poems which are circulated under their names cannot be regarded as their genuine productions. It was in the Greek colonies of Asia Minor that the first great impulse was given to the development of literature ; and among them we find the earliest authentic specimens of Greek poetry and historical com- position. Situated on the borders of a noble sea, enjoying a climate of delicious softness and purity, abounding in the most nutritious and tempting products of nature, whose fertil- ity was not inferior to its beauty, these colo- nies possessed a character of refined voluptuous- ness 'which, if not favorable to the perform- ance of great deeds, allured the dreamy spirit to poetical contemplations, and was manifested in noble creations of the fancy, which have not been surpassed in the progress of cultiva- tion. Living near the scene of the Trojan war, the bards devoted their first poems to the celebration of Grecian heroism. With them commenced the second period of Greek litera- ture, which we call the Epic age. Of these, Homer alone has survived. We have from him the two great poems, the Iliad and Odys- sey, with several hymns and epigrams. He gave his name to the Homeridac, an Ionian school of minstrels, who preserved the old Homeric and epic style, and who are probably the authors of much that has been ascribed to Homer himself. Next to the Homeridse, come the Cyclic poets, whose works embrace the whole circle of mythology and tradition, describing the origin of the gods and of the world, .the ad- ventures of the Heroic times, the Argonautio expedition, the labors of Hercules and Theseus, the principal events of the Theban and Trojan wars, and the fortunes of the Greeks after the fall of Troy. A transition between these his- toric poets and the later school of Ionian min- strelsy is formed by Hesiod, who conducted poetry back from Asia Minor into Greece. Of the sixteen works ascribed to him, we have the Theogony, the Shield of Hercules, and Worl;i LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 145 and Days, the last, an agricultural poem, interspersed with moral reflections and pruden- tial maxims. The third period commences with the growth of lyric poetry, of apologues and phi- losophy, with which history gained a new development and a higher degree of certainty. Lyric poetry sprung up on the decline of the Epic school, and was much cultivated from the beginning of the epoch of the Olympiads (776 B. C.) to the first Persian war. The poems of this period are considered among the most valuable productions of Grecian literature. Many of them resembled the epic, and con- tained the subjects of heroic song. They were sung by bands of youths and maidens, accompanied by instrumental music. Among the most celebrated of the lyric poets were Archilochus of Paros, the inventor of the Iambus; Tyrtseus, Terpander, and Alcman, whose martial strains enkindled the valor of the Spartans ; Callimachus of Ephesus, in- ventor of the elegaic measure ; Simonides and Anacreon of Ceos ; the impassioned Sappho of Mitylene ; Stesichorus, Hipponax, and Pindar. Many didactic poems, fables, and proverbs were written during this period, and served to prepare the way for prose composition. The philosophy of this age was marked by its constant reference to practical affairs. Among its expounders we may consider the seven wise men of Greece, as they are called (Periander, or according to some, Epimenides of Crete, Pittacus, Thales, Solon, Bias, Chilo, and Cleobulus), of whom six acquired their fame, not by the teaching of speculative ab- stractions, but by their admirable wisdom in the affairs of life, and their skill in the offices of state. Their celebrated sayings are the maxima of experience, applied to the practical relations of life. But with the progress of intellectual culture, a taste for speculative inquiries was unfolded. This resulted in the establishment of the Ionic philosophy by Thales, the Italian, by Pythagoras, and the older and later Eleatic. With the develop- ment of these schools, we are brought to the scientific period of Greek literature. The Ionic school ascribed a material origin to the universe. Its principal followers were Phere- cydes, Anaximander, Anaxamines, Anaxago- ras, Diogenes of Apollonia, and Archilaus of Miletus. Of the Pythagorean school, which explained the organization of the world by number and measure, were Ocellus Lucanus, Timeeusof Locris, Epicharmus,Theages, Archy- tas, Philolaus, and Eudoxus. To the older Eleatic school, which cherished a more sub- lime, but less intelligible conception of the origin of the world, assuming the fact of a pure necessary existence, belonged Xenophanes and Parmenides ; to the later Eleatic, Melissus and Diagoras. Until about the commence- ment of the 90th Olympiad, the philosophers and their disciples were dispersed throughout the various Grecian cities. Athens subse- quently became their chief residence, where the class of men called Sophists first rose into importance as public teachers. Of these, the most distinguished names that have been pre- served to us are Gorgiasof Leontium, Protag- oras of Abdera, Hippias of Elis, Prodicus of Cos, Trasimseus, and Tisias. They were especially devoted to the subjects of politics and eloquence, but also made a study of tht natural sciences, mathematics, the theory of the fine arts, and philosophy. Professing the art of logic as a trade, they were less earnest in the pursiiit of truth than in the construc- tion of plausible arguments. Their fallacious pretenses awakened the honest indignation of Socrates, who not only became their zealous antagonist, but gave a vigorous and original impulse to the progress of philosophy. This shrewd and subtle reasoner opened a new direction to philosophical research, turning it to the study of human nature and of the laws of psychology and ethics, instead of barren speculations and theories. Without leaving any written record of his genius, he is known at the present day by the affectionate and beautiful memorials which have been conse- crated to his character in the productions of his disciples. Among these, Plato was pre-eminent by the force and comprehensiveness of his reason, the marvelous keenness of his insight in the region of transcendental ideas, the vigor and acuteness of his logical faculties, and the winning sweet- ness and grace of expression, which lend a charm to his writings that has never been equaled in philosophical literature. The masterly conversations of Socrates, in which he expounded the principles of his philosophy in the streets and market place of Athens, are reproduced with admirable dramatic effect, in the glowing pages of his eloquent disciple. The progress of history kept pace in Grecian cultivation with the development of philosophy. Among the oldest historical prose writers, are Cadmus, Dionysius, and Hecataeus of Mile- tus, Hellanicus of Mitylene, Pherecydes of Scyros. After them appears Herodotus, who has received the name of the Homer of history. He was followed by Thucydides, the grave, condensed, arid philosophical historian of the Pelopennesian war. Strongly contrasted with his sternness and energy, is Xenophon, whose limpid narrative flows on with the charming facility of a graceful stream, presenting a de- 146 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. lightful specimen of the tranquil beauty of Greek prose in its most simple form. These three historians distinguished the period from 450 to 400 B. C., during which time we have to notice the introduction of a new class of poetical creations. The popular festivals which were celebrated after the vintage, with rude songs and dances, led to the gradual creation of the drama. A more artistic form was given to the wild choruses in honor of Bacchus ; the recitation of fables by an intermediate speaker was intro- duced into the performances ; and soon the games of the vintage festival were repeated on other occasions. The spirit of the drama was thus cherished, until the appearance of JEschy- lus. who may be deemed the author of the dramatic art in Greece. He divided the story into different portions, substituted the dialogue for recitation by a single person, and assigned the various parts to skillful actors. The three great tragic writers are JEschylus, Sophocles, and Euripides, while the most distinguished rank in comedy is held by Cratinus, Eupolis, Crates, and especially Aristophanes. During this period we find several didactic and lyric poets, while the sister art of elo- quence was illustrated by the names of Lysias, Demosthenes, .ZEschines, Antiphon, Gorgias, and Jsocrates. The succeeding period, which is usually called the Alexandrine, was characterized by the prevalence of a critical spirit ; the luxuriant bloom of the earlier Greek literature had passed away ; and the fresh creative impulses of genius were made to yield to the love of specu- lation and the influence of erudition. The glowing imaginative philosophy of Plato was succeeded by the more rigid system of Aristotle, who founded the Peripatetic school, and gave order and precision to the principles of reason- ing. With the passion for subtle analysis, which was the characteristic of his mind, he drew a sharp line of distinction between logic and rhetoric, ethics and politics, physics and metaphysics, thus enlarging the boundaries of philosophy, and establishing a system which exercised an undisputed supremacy for ages. The dogmatic tendencies of Aristotle found their counterpart in the skeptical principles of which Pyrrho of Elis was the most dis- tinguished advocate. The same principles prevailed to a certain extent in the Middle and New Academies founded by Arcesilaus and Carneades, while the Socratic philosophy was modified by the disciples of the Stoic school, established by Zeno, and of the Epicurean, which bears the name of its celebrated founder. At length the intellectual scepter, which had been so long wielded by the philosophers and poets of Greece, passed from Athens to Alex- andria ; the nation itself was absorbed in the progress of Roman conquest ; Greek literature ceased to give birth to original productions ; and its brilliant career became the subject of history. HEBREW LITERATURE. The literature of the ancient Hebrews, apart from its religious character and claims, pre- sents a curious and important subject of inves- tigation. It is the oldest literature of which any remains have come down to modern times. With a rich poetical coloring, a profound sentiment of humanity, and a lofty religious faith, it sustains a most intimate relation to the development of the intellect and the moral and political history of the race. The Hebrew language is one of the oldest branches of the numerous family of languages which have received the name of Semitic, on account of the supposed descent of the nations by which they were spoken, from Shem, the son of Noah. These are the Chaldaic, the Aramaic, the Hebrew, the Syriac, the Arabic, the Phoenician, and the Ethiopian. The his- tory of the language has been divided by many critics into four periods. I. From Abraham to Moses. II. From Moses to Solomon. III. From Solomon to Ezra. IV. From Ezra to the end of the age of the Maccabees, when it was gradually lost in the modern Aramaic and became a dead language. The differences, however, which can be traced in the language are so slight, that a sounder division would be into only two periods, the first extending from the time of Moses to the reign of Hezekiah, and the second from the reign of Hezekiah to its final extinction as a spoken language. The written characters or letters, which date from the time of Solomon, were the same as the Phoenician. During the Babylonish captivity, the Hebrews received from the Chaldees the square character in common use, and, in the time of Ezra, the old Hebrew manuscripts were copied in these characters. The punctu- ation of the language was not settled until after the seventh century of the Christian era. The accents, vowels, points, and divisions into words were also introduced at a later period. The poetical and religious sentiment was the foundation of Hebrew literature. Lyric poetry received a rich development under David, to whom are ascribed several noble specimens of song and elegy. The fragments of didactic poetry which bear the name of Solomon are stamped with a character of prac- tical wisdom, and often exhibit an energy of expression, which authorizes us to class them among the most extraordinary productions of LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 147 ancient literature. After the division of the kingdom, the prophets became the great teachers of the people, and have left various collections of their writings, none of which have come down to us with completeness. Upon the return of the exiled people from the Babylonish captivity, the remains of Hebrew literature were collected by a college of learned men under the direction of Ezra, and from their labors we have received the books of the Old Testament in their present form. ROMAN LITERATURE. The language of the ancient Romans is usually called Latin, for, though Rome and Latium were originally separate communities, they always appear to have spoken the same language. The Latins, as far as we can de- cide on such a question at the present day, seemed to have formed a part of that great race which overspread both Greece and Italy under the name of Pelasgians. It is supposed that the Pelasgians who settled in Italy originally spoke the same language with the Pelasgians who settled in Greece. The Greek and Latin languages accordingly have many elements in common, though each has its own distinctive character. The history of Roman literature may be divi ded into four periods : I. From the earliest times till Cicero. II. To the death of Augus- tus, A. D. 14. III. To the death of Trajan. IV. To the conquest of Rome by the Goths. During the first five hundred years of the Roman history, scarcely any attention was paid to literature. Its earliest attempts were translations and imitations of the Greek models. The Odyssey was translated into Latin by Livius Andronicus, a Greek captive of Taren- tuir, and the earliest writer of whom we have any account. His tragedies and comedies were taken entirely from the Greek. He was fol- lowed by Nsevius, who wrote an historical poem on the first Punic war, by the two tragic writers Pacuvius and Attius, and by Ennius, B. C. 239, the first epic poet, and who may be regarded as the founder of Roman literature. Being a Greek by birth he introduced the study of his native language at Rome, and had among his pupils, Cato, Scipio Africanus, and other distinguished citizens of that day. At the same time, he taught the Romans the art of easy and graceful writing in their own lan- guage, and helped to inspire them with a love of literature by his refined taste and elegant cultivation. Contemporary with Ennius was Plautus, whose dramatic pieces, in imitation of the later comedies of the Greeks, were remarkable for their vivacity of expression and their genuine comic humor. He was followed by Cecilius and Terence, of whom the latter has left several admirable comedies, fully im- bued with the Grecian spirit. The first prose writers were Quintus Fabius Pictor and Lucius Cincius Alimentus, who lived in the time of the second Punic war, and wrote a complete history of Rome. Their style was meager and insipid, aiming only at brevity, and entirely destitute of ornament or grace. With the age of Augustus, in which some earlier writers are usually reckoned, a new spirit is exhibited in Roman literature. In didactic poetry, Lucretius surpassed his Gre- cian masters, by the force of thought, and the splendor of diction, which characterize his great philosophical poem on the origin of the universe. Catullus attempted various styles of poetry, in all of which he obtained emi- nent success. His lyric and elegiac poems, his epigrams and satires, are marked by singular versatility of feeling, frequent flashes of wit, and rare felicity of expression. Among the elegiac poets, of whose genius we still possess the remains, the highest distinction was gained by Tibullus, Propertius, and Ovid. The former of these poets was pronounced by Quin- tilian to be the greatest master of elegiac verse ; Ovid possessed an uncommon fertility of invention and ease of versification ; while Propertius tempers the voluptuous cast of his writings with a certain dignity of thought and vigorous mode of expression. The great lyric poet of the Augustan age is Horace, whose graceful and sportive fancy, combined with his remarkable power of delicate and effective satire, continues to make him a favorite with all who have the slightest tincture of classical learning. The noblest production of this period, how* ever, is the jEneid of Virgil, which with his elaborate poem on rural affairs, the Georgics, and his sweet and tender pastorals, or Ec- logues, fairly entitles him to the position which has been given him by universal consent, of the most gifted epic and didactic poet in Roman literature. The prose writings of the Latin authors, taken as a whole, betray a higher order of genius and cultivation than the works of the poets. In this department, the preeminence belongs to Cicero, whose various productions in eloquence, philosophy, and criticism are among the most valuable treasures of antiq- uity. In history, Csesar, Sallust, and Livy are the most prominent names, who, each in his own peculiar style, have left models of historical composition which have been the admiration of every subsequent age. The lit- I erature of the Augustan period partook of the general character of the Roman people. De- THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. voted to the realization of practical objects, with slight tendencies to the ideal aspect of things, and absorbed in the exciting game of politics and war, the Romans had little taste either for abstract speculation or for the lofti- est flights of poetical fancy. Hence no new system of philosophy was produced in their literature ; their best poets were essentially imitative ; and of all branches x>f study, those connected with popular eloquence were held in the greatest esteem. With the death of Augustus commenced the decline of Roman literature. Among the poets of this period are Phaedrus, an ingenious fabulist, the satirists, Juvenal and Persius, whose works are more important for their illustrations of the manners of the age than for their poetical merit, and Lucan, who de- scribes the wars of Csesar and Pompey in an insipid historical epic. In prose, we have the somber but condensed and powerful histories of Tacitus, and the quaint and artificial trea- tises on ethics and philosophy by Seneca. Sub- sequent to the reign of Trajan, we meet with no writers who have any claim upon our atten- tion, and the literature of Rome, after a brief interval of splendor, during the golden age between Cicero and Augustus, passes into Unimportance and obscurity. SANSKRIT LITERATURE. Until the close of the last century, the Sans- krit literature was almost wholly unknown to the learned of Europe. The Roman Catholic missionaries in India had, to a certain extent, engaged in the study of the language at an earlier period, but it is only since the year 1790 that it has attracted the attention of eminent scholars. Among those who have given an impulse to the study of Sanskrit, and who have themselves pursued it with distin- guished success, are Sir William Jones, Wil- kins Forster, Colebrooke, Wilson, Haughton, Rosen, ChSzy, Burnouf, A. W. Schlegel, Oldenberg, Max Miiller, and Bopp. We are indebted to their labors for a knowledge of this rich and curious literature, which, on many accounts, may be considered as one of the most remarkable products in the history of intellectual culture. The Sanskrit language is a branch of the Indo-Germanic family of languages, and is supposed to bear the greatest resemblance to the primitive type. In its construction, it is in the highest degree ingenious and elaborate, and the variety and beauty of its forms are well adapted to illustrate the laws of the for- mation of language. It is the sacred language of the Brahmans, and contains the Vedas, the oldest records of their religion. The last cen- tury before the Christian era was the period of its richest blossoming, although it extends back to a far more remote antiquity. It ap- pears in its most ancient form in the Vedas, which date from the thirteenth century before Christ, and in that state exhibits many strik- ing analogies with the Zend, the ancient language of Persia. These writings are the foundation of Sanskrit literature, and diffuse their influence through the whole course of its development. The Vedas are divided into four classes, the first being in poetry, the second in prose, the third consisting of lyrical prayers, and the fourth of devotional pieces, intended to be used in sacrifices and other religious offices. Each Veda is composed of two parts, the prayers and the commandments. The Sanskrit possesses a variety of other works in sacred lit- erature, which contain not only a copious ex- position of religious doctrines, but numerous discussions of philosophical and scientific sub- jects, and an extensive collection of poetical legends. The two oldest and most interesting epic poems are The Ramayana, describing the sev- enth great incarnation of Vishnu, and The Mahabharata, devoted to the wars of two rival lines descended from the ancient Indian mon- arch, Bharata. An episode from this work called Bhagavat Gita has been translated by Wilkins, Herder, Schlegel, and others, and has excited no small interest as an illustration of the early oriental philosophy. A new character was given to Sanskrit poe- try about one hundred years before the Chris- tian era, by the introduction of themes con- nected with courts and princes. It lost the popular and national tendency which appears in the two great epics, alluded to above, and assumed a more artificial form. With a man- ifest improvement in the mere externals of style, the new poetry shows a degeneracy in point of thought, and an entire absence of original invention. In the principal works of this class we find labored descriptions of nat- ural objects, and many curious artifices of composition, but they are destitute both of b illiancy of imagination and depth of reflec- tion. The most fertile author of the new school is undoubtedly Kalidasa, who attempted almost every species of poetical composition, and whose epic, lyric, and dramatic produc- tions must be allowed to possess considerable merit. His best descriptive poem, entitled Meghaduta, is a model of simplicity and ele- gance. It exhibits a highly ideal character, tracing out the spiritual significance of visible phenomena, and striving to penetrate into the hidden life of the universe. The drama called LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 14& Sakoontala or The Fatal Ring, by this author, has received the warmest commendation from modern critics. " All its scenes," says the genial Herder, " are connected by flowery bands, each grows out of the subject as natu- rally as a beautiful plant. A multitude of sub- lime as well as tender ideas are found in it, which we should look for in vain in a Greek drama." A valuable translation of this poem has been made by Sir William Jones. The influence of religious speculation in India early gave birth to numerous philosoph- ical writings. With the love of contempla- tion, to which the natives are so strongly in- clined, and the progress of thought in opposi- tion to the doctrines of the Vedas, a variety of philosophical systems was the natural conse- quence. The oldest of these is called the San- khya. It teaches the duality of matter and spirit, which are essentially different in their nature, though found in such intimate union. The problem of life is the emancipation of the soul from the dominion of the senses, and the attainment of blessedness by the supremacy of the intellect. Another system of transcenden- tal speculation is named the Nyaya. This is constructed from strict logical deductions, which it applies to the interpretation of nature, and arrives at a theory of materialism, the re- verse of the Sankhya ideality. The Nyaya school has produced a multitude of writings. Opposed to each of these systems is the Mim- ansa, which maintains the doctrines of the Vedas in their original strictness, and strives to reconcile them with the suggestions of phi- losophy. The Sanskrit literature, moreover, abounds in works on various other branches of learning. Its philological treatises, especially, are of great value. The Indian grammarians sur- pass those of any other ancient people. No less important are the Sanskrit works on rhet- oric, criticism, music, astronomy, and juris- prudence. They well deserve the attention of the scholar, not only on account of their in- trinsic character, but as precious memorials of the early development of the intellect, and significant illustrations of the history of the ARABIC LITERATURE. Literature, after its decay and final extinc- tion in the Eastern and Western Roman Em- pires, revived first among the Arabic tribes in the East. Even before the era of Mahomet, there were renowned poets and story-tellers in Arabia. In the fifth century, during the great fairs of Mecca, poetical contests frequently took place, the victorious productions being lettered with gold and hung up in the Caaba. Among the most renowned poets of this period were Amralkeis, Tharafa, and Antar. Their works are distinguished by imaginative power, richness of illustration, and great skill in de- picting the passions of love and revenge. With Mahomet commenced a memorable epoch in Arabic literature. Through the Koran, which was arranged from Mahomet's teachings, by Abubekr, the first caliph, the method of writ- ing and the literary style of the nation were determined. The reigns of Haroun Al-Raschid and Al-Mamun in the seventh and eighth cen- turies were the most enlightened periods of the Arabic dominion, though for two cen- turies afterwards the nation produced many eminent geographers, philosophers, jurists, and historians. Under the government of Al- Mamun, excellent universities were established at Bagdad, Bussora, and Bokhara, and exten- sive libraries in Alexandria, Bagdad, and Cairo. The dynasty of the Abbassides in Bagdad emulated that of the Ommanides in Spain ; during the tenth century the University of Cordova was almost the only refuge of literature in Europe. The labors of the Arabic scholars and travelers contributed greatly to the spread of geographical knowledge. Ibn Batuta, who in the thirteenth century visited Africa, India, China, and Russia, ranks with Marco Polo and Rubruquis. In the twelfth century Abu'l Kasein wrote the history of the Arabs in Spain ; Bohaeddin, a biography of Sultan Saladin ; IbnArabschah described the exploits of Tamerlane, and Hadji Khalfa, in later times, has produced an encyclopedia of Arabic, Persian, and Turkish literature. The style of the Arabian historians is clear, concise, and unincumbered with imagery. The most renowned philosopher was Avicenna, who flourished in the eleventh cen- tury. Averrhoes, whose name is also familiar to scholars, was famous as an expounder of the system of Aristotle. In the departments of medicine, astronomy, geometry, and arith- metic, there are many Arabic works which ex- hibit great research and scientific knowledge. The number and variety of the works pro- duced by the Arabian poets is most remark- able, and their influence on the modern litera- ture of Europe was greater than is generally suspected. In picturesque narration they have rarely been excelled, and the Thousand and One Nights, which first appeared in its collected form during the reign of Caliph Man- sur, in the ninth century, has been naturalized in all modern languages. Only half of this, however, is Arabic, the remainder having been translated from the Sanskrit and Persian. The Arabian poets left many poetic chronicles, the most celebrated of which are : The Deedt 150 THE CENTURY BOOK OF PACTS. of Antar, The Deeds of the Warriors, and The Deeds of the Heroes. Of late years several eminent French and German scholars have given their attention to the study of Arabic literature, the best works of which are now ac- cessible through their translations. PERSIAN LITERATURE. The modern literature of Persia succeeded that of Arabia. After the conquests of the country by the caliphs, about the middle of the seventh century, the arts and sciences of the Arabs, together with the religion of Mahomet, were transplanted upon Persian soil, but the fruits of this new culture did not appear for several succeeding generations. The first Per- sian books, both of poetry and history, were written in the early part of the tenth century, and for several centuries there v/as no inter- ruption in the list of renowned authors. Lit- erature was encouraged and rewarded, what- ever might be the political convulsions that affected the empire. Persian poetry consists for the most part of small lyrics, arranged in divans, or collections. There are also several voluminous historical, romantic, and allegor- ical poems, besides legends and narratives told in a mixture of prose and verse. The first Persian poet is Rudegi, who flourished about the year 952. Firdausi, the great epic poet of Persia, died in the year 1030, at the age of seventy. He wrote the Shah Nameh, or King's Book, describing the deeds of the Persian rul- ers, from the creation of the world to the downfall of the Sassanide dynasty in 632. He was thirty years in the composition of this work, which contains sixty thousand verses. The most celebrated portion is that recounting the adventures of the hero Rusten>r Nisami, at the close of the twelfth century, wrote ex- tensive romantic poems, the most remarkable of which were Medjnoun and Leila, and Iskan- der-Nameh, an epic on Alexander the Great. Chakani was a celebrated writer of odes in the thirteenth century. Saadi, one of the most celebrated Persian authors, was born in 1175, and lived till 1263. His poems are principally moral and didactic, but rich with the expe- rience of a fruitful life, and written in a very simple and graceful style. His best works are the Gulistan, or Garden of Roses, and the Bos- tan, or Garden of Trees. Hafiz, the oriental poet of love, was born at Schiraz in the begin- ning of the fourteenth century, where he lived as a dervish in willing poverty, resisting the invitations of the caliphs to reside in Bagdad. In the year 1388 he had an interview with Tamerlane, by whom he was treated with much honor. His poems consisted of odes and ele- gies which have been collected into a Divan. His lyrics, devoted to the praise of love and wine, are full of fire and melody. Djami, who died in 1492, was one of the most prolific of Persian writers. His life was spent at Herat, where, in the hall of the great mosque, he taught the people the precepts of virtue and religion. He left behind him forty works, theological, poetical, and mystical- Seven of his principal poems were united un- der the title of The Seven Stars of the Bear, His history of mysticism, entitled The Breath of Man, is his greatest prose work. Among the later Persian poems are the Schehinscheh- Nameh, a continuation of the Book of Kings, and the George- Nameh, an account of the con- quest of India by the British. The Persian is the only Mahometan literature containing dramatic poetry. Its dramas strikingly resem- ble the old French mysteries. Of the collec- tions of tales, legends, and fairy stories, the most celebrated are the Anwari soheili, or Lights of the Canopy, and the Beharidanisch, or Spring of Wisdom. The historical works in the Per- sian language are very numerous and valuable. They embrace the history of the Mahometan races from Mongolia to Barbary. The princi- pal works are the Chronicles of Wassaf, a his- tory of the successors of Genghis Khan, which appeared in 1333 ; the Marrow of the Chronicles, by Khaswini, in 1370, and the Rauset Essafa, a great universal history, of which modern his- torians have made good use. It was written by Mirchond, about the year 1450. In the departments of ethics, rhetoric, theology, and medicine, the Persian scholars are only second to the Arabic. They also excelled in transla- tion, and have reproduced, in Persian, nearly the entire literature of India. ITALIAN LITERATURE. The Italian language assumed a regular and finished character at the Court of Roger I., King of Sicily, in the twelfth century. Sev- eral poets arose, who, borrowing the forms of verse from the provemjal troubadours, gave the people songs in their native language in place of the melodies of the Moors and Ara- bians. The Italian soon became the court language of Italy, and Malespina's History of Florence, which was written in the year 1280, is scarcely inferior in elegance and purity of style to any Italian prose works which have since been produced. The first genuine poet of Italy, however, was her greatest, and one of the greatest of all time. Dante commenced his great poem of the Divina Commedia in the year 1304, just before his exile from Florence, and completed it during his many years of wandering from one court of Italy to another. Out of the rude and imperfect materials within LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 151 his reach, he constructed an epic which places his nama beside that of him whom he humbly called his master, Virgil. Taking the religious faith of his time as the material, he conducts the reader through the sad and ter- rible circles of Hell, the twilight region of Purgatory, and the fair mount of Paradise, showing him all forms of torture and punish- ment for the vile, all varieties of supreme hap- piness for the pure and good. The poem takes a fierce and gloomy character from the wrongs and persecutions which the poet endured in his life. Dante died in 1321, at which time Pe- trarch, who was born in 1304, had commenced those studies which led to the restoration of classic literature to Italy. As an enthusiastic admirer of antiquity he imparted to his con- temporaries that passion for the study of the Greek and Roman authors which preserved many of their masterpieces at a moment when *hey were about to be lost to the world. His songs and sonnets, most of which were in- spired by his unfortunate love for Laura de Sade, gave him a worthy place after Dante in Italian literature. He died in 1374. Con- temporary with Petrarch was the great master of Italian prose, Boccaccio, who was born ill 1313. He early devoted his life to literature, and in 1341 assisted at the celebrated examina- tion of Petrarch, previous to his coronation in the capitol. His principal work is the De- cameron, a collection of one hundred tales, which, notwithstanding the impurities with which they are disfigured, are models of nar- ration and exhibit the most varied powers of imagination and invention. Boccaccio is con- sidered as the inventor of romances of love a branch of literature which was wholly un- known to antiquity. For a century following the death of Boc- caccio, the literature of Italy shows no great name, though several scholars distinguished themselves by their attainments and the aid which they rendered to the cause of classic literature. The most noted of these were John of Ravenna ; Leonardo Aretino, who wrote a history of Florence in Latin ; Poggio Brac- ciolini, a most voluminous writer, who enjoyed the patronage of Cosmo de'Medici, at Florence ; Francesco Fileflo and Lorenzo Valla, both men of great erudition, whose labors con- tributed to bring on a new era of Italian litera- ture. Lorenzo de'Medici, called the Magnifi- cent, towards the close of the fifteenth cen. tury, gave the first impulse to the cultivation of the Italian tongue, which had been lost sight of in the rage for imitating Latin poets. Besides being the author of many elegant songs and sonnets, his court was the home of ?tU the Author? of that period^ Among these were Politiano, who wrote Or/to, a fable formed on the myth of Orpheus, which was performed at the court of Mantua, in 1483 ; Luigi Pulci, the author of Morgante Afaggiore, andBoiardo, author of the Orlando Innamorato. Both the last named poems are chivalrous romances, written in the oltava rima, and full of a quaint humor which before that time had only appeared in the prose of Boccaccio. But the master of the gay and sparkling poetic narrative was Ariosto, who was born in 1474, and first appeared as an author about the year 1500. Five years later he commenced his Orlando Furioso, which was not completed till 1516. This is a romantic poem in forty-six cantos, celebrating the adventures of Roland, the nephew of Charlemagne. It is one of the classics of Italy, and has been translated into all modern languages. After the death of Ariosto in 1533, no literary work of any prom- inence appeared until Torquato Tasso pub- lished his Jerusalem Delivered in 1581. Ala- manni, Trissino and Bernardo Tasso flourished in the interval and produced labored poems, which are no longer read. The subject of Tasso 's poem is the rescue of the Holy Sepul- cher from the Moslems, by the Crusaders under Godfrey of Bouillon. The wrongs and per- seciitions heaped upon Tasso clouded his mind and shortened his days ; he died in Rome in 1595, on the day before that appointed for his coronation. Three other Italian authors of the sixteenth century are worthy of mention : Cardinal Bembo, the most finished scholar of his day, and author of a history of Venice ; Nicolo Machiavelli, whose name has become synonymous with all that is sinister and un- scrupulous in politics, from his treatise en- titled The Prince, for which, after his death, an anathema was pronounced against him ; and Pietro Aretino, one of the most infamous and dissolute men of his time. Machiavelli wrote an admirable History of Florence, which is still a standard work. In the haif-century following the death of Tasso, there are but two poets who have at- tained any renown : Guarini, the author of Pastor Fido, and Tassoni, who wrote the Secchia Rapita (Rape of the Bucket). Filicaja, whose impassioned lyrics are still the revolu- tionary inspiration of Italy, belongs to the latter part of the seventeenth century ; he died in 1707. After another long interval arose Frugoni, a lyric poet of some celebrity, who died in 1768, and Metastasio, the author of plays, operas, and ballets innumerable. He is remarkable for his wonderful command of the language, and the free and spirited movement of his dialogue. He died in Vienna in the year 1782. During thi? same period, 152 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. dramatic literature received a new accession in Goldoni, whose comedies are still the glory of the Italian stage. He had a rival in Count Gazzi, whose works, nevertheless, are far inferior to Goldoni 's in humor and brilliancy. What Goldoni did for comedy, Alfieri accom- plished for Italian tragedy. This author justly stands at the head of modern Italian litera- ture. His tragedies, odes, and lyrics exhibit an eloquence and fervor of thought which are scarcely reached by any other author. His principal works are Saul, Myrrha, Octavia, Brutus the Second, and Philip II. Since the commencement of this century, Italy has not been barren of authors. Pindemonte, who has published several volumes of dramatic poetry ; Ugo Foscolo, author of a poem called The Sepulchres ; Manzoni, who wrote / Pro- messi Sposi (The Betrothed), a charming romance of life on the shores of Lake Como ; Silvio Pellico, whose Le Mie Prigione is a nar- rative of his sufferings in the prison at Spiel- berg, and Niccolini, equally celebrated as a poet and prose writer. Mazzini, Triumvir of Rome during the brief period of the Republic, and Gioberti distinguished themselves as Italian authors, as did also Leopardi. During the last half-century the rapid prog- ress of political events in Italy seems to have absorbed the energies of the people, who have made little advance in literature. For the first time since the fall of the Roman empire the country has become a united kingdom, and in the national adjustment to the new conditions, and in the material and industrial development which has followed, the new lit- erature has not yet, to any great extent, found voice. Yet this period of natural formation and consolidation, however, has not been without its poets, among whom a few may be here named. Aleardo Aleardi (d. 1882) is one of the finest poetical geniuses that Italy has produced within the last century, but his writings show the ill effects of a poet sacrific- ing his art to a political cause, and when the patriot has ceased to declaim, the poet ceases to sing. Prati (1815-1884), on the other hand, in his writings exemplifies the evil of a poet refusing to take part in the grand move- ment of his nation. He severs himself from all present interests and finds his subjects in sources which have no interest for his contem- poraries. He has great metrical facility and his lyrics are highly praised. Carducci, like Aleardi, is a poet who has written on political subjects ; he belongs to the class of closet democrats. His poems display a remarkable talent for the picturesque, forcible, and epi- grammatic. The poems of Zanella are nearly flU 9ft scientific subject? connected feeling, and entitle him to a distinguished place among the refined poets of his country. A poet of greater promise than those already spoken of is Arnaboldi, who has the endow- ment requisite to become the first Italian poet of a new school, but who endangers his posi- tion by devoting his verse to utilitarian purposes. The tendency of the younger poets is to realism and to representing its most material- istic features as beautiful. Against this cur- rent of the new poetry Alessandro Rizzi, Guerzoni, and others have uttered a strong protest in poetry and prose. Among historians, Capponi is the author of a history of Florence ; Zini has continued Farina's history of Italy ; Bartoli, Settembrini, and De Sanctis have written histories of Italian literature ; Villari is the author of able works on the life of Machiavelli and of Savonarola, and Berti has written the life of Giordano Bruno. In criticism philosophic, historical, and literary, Florentine, De Sanctis, Massa- rani, and Trezza are distinguished. Barili, Farina, Bersezio, and Giovagnoli are writers of fiction, and Cossa, Ferrari, and Giacosa are the authors of many dramatic works. The charming books of travel by De Amicis are extensively translated and very popular. SPANISH LITERATURE. The earliest essay in Spanish literature is the Chronicle of the Cid, which is supposed to have been written about the middle of the twelfth century. In form the poem is suffi- ciently barbarous, though the language is remarkably spirited and picturesque. It has been the fount of numberless songs and legends through the later centuries. It narrates the adventures of Ruy Diaz de Bivr. the Cid Campeador. In the following century, Gonzales de Berceo, a monk, wrote nine voluminous poems on the lives of the saints. Alfonso X. of Castile, whose reign terminated in 1284, was the author of a poem entitled The Philosopher's Stone, besides several prose works. The first author of the fourteenth century was Prince Don John Manuel, who wrote a prose work entitled Count Lucanor, a collection of tales embodying lessons of policy and morality. He was followed by Pedro Lopez de Ayala and Mendoza, Marquis de Santillana ; though the latter belongs properly to the next century. He produced a number of works, both prose and poetry, all of which were remarkable for the erudition they displayed. Some of his lighter poems are very graceful and melodious. Under the reign of Charles V. Spanish liter- ature firt reached it? full development. LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 153 the union of Arragon and Castile, and the transfer of the seat of the government to Madrid, the Castilian became the court lan- guage, and thus received a new polish and elegance. The first author of this period was Boscan, an imitator of Petrarch, in some re- spects, but a poet of much native fervor and passion. Garcilaso de la Vega, the friend of Boscan, surpasses him in the sweetness of his verses and in their susceptibility and imagina- tion. He was a master of pastoral poetry, and his eclogues are considered models of that species of writing. His life was actively devoted to the profession of arms. He fought under the banner of Charles XI. in Tunis, Sicily, and Provence, and was finally killed while storming the walls of Nice. Don Diego de Mendoza, one of the most cele- brated politicians and generals of that pe- riod, is generally awarded a place next to Garcilaso. He was a patron of classical liter- ature, and the author of a history of the Moorish Revolt in the Alpuxarra, and a His- tory of the War of Granada, but a man of cruel and tyrannical character. Montemayor, who nourished at the same time, attained much celebrity from his pastoral of Diana. These authors during the reign of Charles V. gave Spanish poetry its most graceful and cor- rect form, and have since been regarded as models of classic purity. The great masters of Spanish literature, however, were reserved for the succeeding generation. Herrera and Ponce de Leon, lyrical poets, fill the interval between the age of Garcilaso de la Vega and Cervantes. Herrera is considered the first purely lyrical poet of Spain. Ponce de Leon, who was imprisoned five years by the Inquisi- tion for having translated the Song of Solo- mon, was the author of several volumes of religious poetry. Two of the brightest stars of Spanish litera- ture, Cervantes and Lope de Vega, were con- temporaries, and were followed in the next generation by the third, Calderon. Cervantes was born in 1549. He traveled throughout Italy, lost a hand at the battle of Lepanto, and was five years a slave in Barbary. He commenced his literary career by the writing of comedies and tragedies, the first of which, Galatea, was published in 1584. Thirty of his comedies have been entirely lost. His great work, Don Quixote, was published in 1605, and was immediately translated into all the lan- guages of Europe. From this time until his death in 1616, he wrote many novels and comedies. The tragedy of Numantia and the comedy of Life in Algiers are the only two of his plays which have been preserved. To this Same period, belongs Dor; AloflSQ 4 Erckmann-Chatrian, Droz, Daudet, Cherbulliez, Gaboriau, Dumas, fits, Zola, Merime'e, and others. As dramatists, Scribe, Leon Gozlan, Etienne Arago. Germain Dela- vigne, Sardou, and Felix Pyat have distin- guished themselves. The most prominent historical and political writers are .Lamartine, Thiers, Michelet, Guizot, Louis Blanc, De Tocqueville and Thibaudeau ; while Cousin and Comte are the founders of the new schools of philosophy. French oratory now occupies a higher position thnn ever before; its most illustrious names are Guizot, Thiers, Berryer, Lamartine, Odilon Barrot, Victor Hugo, La- cordaire, Pere Hyacinthe, and Coquerel. Rerian is a prominent name in theological writing, and Montalembert a historian with strong religious tendencies. The great master of criticism is Sainte-Beuve (1804-1869), who possessed a rare combination of great and ac- curate learning, compass and profundity of thought, and, above all, sympathy in judgment. Henri Taine, whose works on English litera- ture are among the best we have, Theophile Gautier, Arsene Houssaye, Jules Janin, Sarcy, and others, are distinguished in this branch of letters. 158 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. GERM AX LITERATURE. The first period of German literature com- menced with the reign of Charlemagne in the eighth century, and extends to the time of the Suabian emperors, at the close of the twelfth century. The first learned society was in- stituted by Alcuin, the greatest scholar of Charlemagne's time. In the succeeding period, Einhard, Kithard, and Lambert von Aschaf- fenburg distinguished themselves as historical and theological writers. About this time also originated those epic ballads and fragments which were afterwards collected under the title of the Nibelun gen- Lied, or " Lay of the Nibeluugen," and the " Songof Hildebrand." The Nibelungen-Lied, which has been called the German Iliad, received its present form about the year!210. Its subject is the history of Siegfried, son of the King of the Nether- lands, his marriage with Chriemhild, sister of Giinther, King of the Burgundians, and the revenge of Brunhild, Queen of Ireland, who married Giinther. The second period terminates with the close of the fifteenth century. It includes the Min- nesingers, or German Troubadours, who were the result of the intercourse of Germany with Italy and France, which made German schol- ars acquainted with the amatory literature of Provence. The most renowned Minnesingers were Wolfram von Eschenbach, who wrote Percival ; Walter von der Vogelweide, the m>3t graceful and popular of all, and Hein- rich von Ofterdingen. Otto von Friesingen achieved renown for his histories, which were written in Latin. The third period, dating from the com- mencement of the fifteenth century, at which time the German language was fully developed and subjected to rule, extends to the present time. It has been subdivided by German critics into three parts, viz. : 1, to the commencement of the Thirty Years' War; 2, to Klopstock and Lessing ; 3, to our own day. The progress of the Reformation in the fifteenth century operated very favorably upon German litera- ture. Melanchthon, Luther, Ulricvon Hutten, and the other leaders of the movement were also distinguished scholars. The celebrated Paracelsus ; the naturalist Gesner ; the painter Albert Dilrer, and the astronomers Kepler and Copernicus, flourished also in the fifteenth century. The most distinguished poet of this period was Hans Sachs, the shoemaker poet of Nuremberg. He was the master of a school or guild of poetry, which was then considered as an elegant profession. In the number of his works he rivals Lope de Vega, as he is said to have written 0048, 208 of which were comedies and tragedies. He died in 1576. Martin Opitz, who marks the commencement ' of a new era in German poetry, was born in 1597. He first established a true rhythm in poetry, by measuring the length of the svlla- bles, instead of merely counting them, as for- merly. His principal poems are Vesuvius, Jwlith. and a number of lyrics. . He was fol- lowed by Paul Flemming and Simon Dach, who wrote in the low German dialect. As prose writers of the seventeenth century, Puf- fendorf, a writer on jurisprudence and inter- national law, Leibnitz, the distinguished philosopher, and the Brothers Baumgarten, are most prominent. There is no great name in German literature, however, from Opitz till the middle of the last century, when Gellert, Gessner, Klopstock, and Hagedorn were the inauguration of a new life. Under these au- thors, and others of less note, the language attained a richness of expression, a flexibility of style, and a harmony of modulation which it never possessed before. Gellert, born in 1715, is distinguished for his " Spiritual Songs and Odes," his letters, and his romance of The Sicedish Countess, which is the first domes- ; tic novel written in the German language. Gessner is best known through his idyls, in which he followed the classic models. Hage- dorn, who died in 1754, wrote many poems ; ! he is supposed to have exercised considerable influence on Klopstock in his earlier years. As prose writers, Forster, Mendelssohn the ! philosopher, and Musaus, who made a collec- 1 tion of German legends and traditions, are worthy of note. With Klopstock commenced the golden age of German literature, and the list of renowned names continues unbroken until the present time. Klopstock was born in 1724. In his odes and lyrical poems he struck out a new and bold path, casting aside the mechanical ; rules of the older schools of German poetry. His greatest work is the Messias, a sacred epic, which was commenced in 1745 and finished in 1771. Lessing, born in 1729, stands by the side of Klopstock as a poet, while he is also distinguished as a pro;e writer. He may be considered as the first successful German dramatist, his plays of Emilia Galotti, Minna von Barnhclm, Nathan the Wine, still keeping their place on the stage. As a criticnl writer on all the branches of the Fine Arts, he is also distinguished. Wieland follows next in the list of German classics. Born in 1733, lie is the link between the age of Gellert and Klop- stock, and that of Schiller and Goethe. lie died in 1813. His principal works are Tie \'">- A marl in, which illustrates the triumph of spiritual over physical beauty, the heroic epic of Oberon, a romance of the middle ages, the LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 159 drama of Alceste, the History of the Abderites, a satirical romance, besides inany letters, satires, and criticisms on literature and art. Herder, his contemporary, in addition to his fame as a poet, is celebrated for his philosoph- ical and theological writings, and his Spirit of Hebrew Poelry. He died in 1803. At the com- mencement of the 19th century, Wieland, Her- der, Goethe, and Schiller were gathered together at the court of Weimar the most illustrious congregation of poets since Shakespeare, Spenser, Ben Jonson, and Fletcher met to- gether in London. Goethe was born in 1749, and from his boyhood displayed a remarkable talent for literature, science, and art. His first romance, The Sorrows of Werther, pro- ' duced a great sensation throughout all Europe. His tragedy of Gotz von Berlichingen, written at the age of 22, established his fame as a j poet. After his settlement at Weimar in 1774, | his works followed each other rapidly. He produced the tragedies of Iphigenia, Egmont, \ Tasso, and Clavigo, the pastoral epic of Her- \ inann und Dorothea, the philosophical romances of W'dhelm Meistcr and Die Wahlverwandschaf- ' ten, the West-Oestliche Divan, a collection of poems founded in his studies of Oriental literature, and the first part of his greatest work, Faust. He also published narratives of travel in France and Italy, and Wahrheit und Dichlung, an autobiography of his life. His philosophic and scientific writings, especially his theory of color, are scarcely less celebrated than his literary works. He is equally a master in all departments of litera- ture, and is generally acknowledged as the greatest author since Shakespeare. He died in 1832. Schiller, born in 1759, exercised scarcely less influence on German literature than Goethe. His tragedy of The Robbers pro- duced nearly as great a revolution as The Sor- rotcs of Werther. On account of this and other works he was obliged to fly from his native Wiirtemberg, and, .after many vicissi- tudes, settled in Weimar, with his great col- leagues. After a brief but intense and laborious life, he died in 1805. After The Robbers, he wrote the following dramatic works : Fiesco, Cabal and Love, Don Carlos, Tlie Maid of Orleans, Marie Stuart, William Tell, The Bride of Messina, and Wallenstein. \ The last is the greatest drama in the German language. His lyrical poems are unsurpassed. His principal prose works are the History of \ the Netherlands and History of the Thirty Years' War. This period, so glorious for German literature, produced also the poets. Burger, author of Lenore and The Wild Huntsman : Count Stolberg ; Yoss, author of Luise ; Salis and Matthisson, elegiac poets ; Tiedge, author , of Urania ; and the hero Korner, the Tyrtaeus of the wars of 1812 and 1813. The depart- ment of prose was filled by many distin- guished writers of philosophy, history, and romance. Kant, who lived from 1724 to 1804, is the father of modern German philosophy, and exercised a great influence on all his contemporaries. Schlegel, in the department of literary criticism, and Winckelmann, in that of art, are renowned names. Hegel and Fichte succeeded Kant as philosophers, and these in turn were followed by Ruge, Strauss, Feuerbach, Ulrici, Schopenhauer, and Von Hartmann ; while Alexander von Ilumboldt became the leader of a new and splendid com- pany of writers on cosmical science. The name of Tieck heads the school of modern German romance. He was born in 1773, and early attracted attention by his Bluebeard and Puss in Boots. In addition to a great number of plays, romances, and poems, he produced, in conjunction with Schlegel, a German trans- lation of Shakespeare, which is the most remarkable work of its kind in all literature. Jean Paul Richter, the most original and peculiar of all German authors, was born in 1763 and died in 1825. His first work was a humorous and satirical production, entitled, The Greenlandic Lawsuit, followed by Selec- tions from the Devil's Papers. His works are distinguished by a great knowledge of human nature, and a bewildering richness of imagina- tion, and a style so quaint and involved as almost to form a separate dialect. His best w r orks are Titan, Hesperus, -Die Unsichlbare Loge, and Flower, Fruit, and Thorn Pieces. E. T. A. Hoffman is scarcely less original in his romances, which have a wild, fantastic, and supernatural character. Among other German authors, the brothers Grimm are cele- brated for their Kinder und Haus Mdhrchen, the notorious Kotzebue for his plays, and Wolfgang Menzel for his History of Germany and German Literature. Since the commencement of the 19th cen- tury Germany has been prolific of authors, but the limits of this sketch prohibit us from much more than the mere mention of their names. Baron de la Motte Fouque is known as the author of Undine, one of the most purely poetical creations of fiction, Sintram, and TUiodolf, the Icelander. Borne attained celeb- rity as a satirist, critic, and political writer. Uhland stands at the head of the modern gen- eration of poets. His ballads, romances, and his epic of Ludirig dcr Daicr are among the best German poems of the day. After him rank Ruckert, also renowned as an Oriental scholar ; Hauff, a lyric poet, and author of the romance of Lichtenstein ; Gustav Schwab, Jus- 160 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. tin us Kerner, author of the Seeress of Prevorst ; Arndt, author of the German Fatherland, the national lyric ; Anastasius Grim (Count Auer- sperg), author of the Pfaff von Kohlenberg; Nicholas Lenau, author of Savonarola ; Ferdi- nand Freiligrath, a vigorous political poet; Heinrich Heine, author of many popular songs and ballads; C'hamisso, who also wrote the romance of Peter ScMcutihl : Gutzkow, distin- guished as a dramatist ; Halm, also a drama- tist, and author of Dcr Sohn der*Wildni*s ; and, as lyric poets, Herwegh, Geibel, and Beck. Among the distinguished prose writers are Schlosser, author of a Universal History ; Ne- &,uder, author of a History of the Church, and a Life of Christ ; Prince Puckler-Muskau and the Countess Hahn-Hahn, critics and tourists; Zschokke (a Swiss), Auerbach and Freytag distinguished as novelists, and Feu- eroach ; Schelling as a philosopher; Strauss, author of a Life of Christ and head of the Ger- man "Rationalists"; Miiller, as a historian, and Krummacher, a writer of fables and para- bles. As historians Rotteck, Niebuhr, and Ranke are among the most distinguished of the present century. One of the most popular prose writers is Adalbert Stifter, whose Stud if n are unsurpassed for exquisite purity and pic- turesqueness of style. In science the first place belongs to Humboldt's Cosmos; In chem- istry Liebig is widely and popularly known ; Du Bois-Raymond has made great researches in animal electricity, physics, and physiology ; V 7 irchow in biology ; Helmholt/ in physiologi- cal optics and sound ; Haeckel has extended the theories and investigations of Darwin. Modern German literature is singularly rich in history, theology, and criticism. SCANDINAVIAN LITERATURE. Under this head we have grouped the litera- ture of the three nations of Scandinavian ori- gin, Sweden, Norway, and Denmark. The old Scandinavian Eddas, or hymns of gods and Heroes, may be traced back to the seventh or eighth century. The earlier Edda, which was collected and arranged by Samund in the year 1100, consists of legends of the gods, most of which were probably written in the eighth century. The latter Edda, collected by Snorre Sturleson in the first half of the thirteenth century, contains fragments of the songs of the okalds who flourished in the ninth and tenth centuries, especially in the latter, when their genius reached, its culmination in Norway and Iceland. Among the most renowned works of the Skalds were the Eiriksmal, the apotheosis of King Eric, who died in 952, and the Hako- narmal, describing the fall of Jarl Haco. A celebrated Skald was Egill Skalagrimssou, who wrote three epic poems, and two drapas, of elegiac poems. The power of the Skalds de- clined through the eleventh and twelfth cen- turies, and after the fourteenth, when the Christian element first began to appear in Ice- landic poetry, wholly disappeared. Many sagas were written in prose, and the Heimskrinala of Snorre Sturleson, who died in Iceland in 1238, contains the chronicles of Scandinavian history from its mythic period to the year 1177. Previous to the establishment of the Univer- sity of Upsala, in 1476, the only literature of Sweden was a few rhymed historic legends. The two centuries succeeding this period have left no great names, and few distinguished ones. Saxo-Grammaticus made a collection of legends in the fifteenth century ; Olaus Magni wrote a history of the North in Latin ; Messenius,whodiedin 1637, wrote comedies and a historical work entitled Scandia Illustrata ; Axel Oxenstierna, the celebrated minister, was also a theologist and patron of literature ; Olof Rudbeck, a distinguished scholar, pub- lished in 1675 his Atlantica, wherein, from the study of the old Sagas, he endeavored to show that Sweden was the Atlantis of the ancients. George Stjernhjelm, who died in 1672, was the author of a poem called Hercules, whence he is named the father of Swedish poetry. Sweden- borg, the most striking character in Northern literature, was born in 1688. After several years of travel in England and on the conti- nent, he established himself in Sweden, where he devoted his attention to science, and pro- duced a number of works on natural philoso- phy, mineralogy, zoology, and other kindred subjects. The close of his life was entirely occupied with his religious studies, and the production of his Arcana Calestia, which con- tains his revelations of the future life, and his theory of the spiritual universe. These writ- ings gave rise to a new religious sect, the mem- bers of which, in the United States, are sup- posed to number about 6,000. He professed to be visited by the Holy Spirit, and his works are considered by his disciples as equally in- spired with those of the Apostles. He died in London in 1772. Dalin and Madame Norden- flycht were the first noted poets of the last century. They were succeeded by a multitude of lyric and didactic poets ; but Swedish poe- try did not attain a high character before the commencement of the present century. Among the authors most worthy of note are Lidner, Bellman, and Thorild. An important history of Sweden has been written by Professors Gei- jer, Fryxell, and Strumbolm. The 19th cen- tury produced Atterbom and Dahlgren, poets of considerable celebrity, and Tegner, the first of Swedish poets, whose Frithiofs Saga has LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 161 been translated into English, French, and Ger- man. Longfellow has translated his Children of the Lord's Supper. In the glow of his imag- ination, his fine artistic feeling, and his won- derful command of rhythm, Tegner ranks among the first of modern poets. He died in 1850. As writers of fiction, Count Sparre, au- thor of Adolf Findling, Frederika Bremer, whose fame, as a painter of Swedish life, has j extended over both hemispheres, and Madame Flygare-Carlen, author of the Rose of Thistle \ Inland, have attained an honorable place. The most celebrated works of Miss Bremer are The Neighbors, The Home, and Strife and Peace. There are few names in Danish literature before the last century. Ludwig von Holberg, born in 1685, was the first who achieved a permanent reputation as poet and historian. Towards the close of the last century Denmark produced many distinguished scholars and men of science. Raf n and Finn Magnusen rescued the old Icelandic sagas from oblivion, and es- tablished the fact of the discovery of New England by Bjorne in the tenth century ; Pe- tersen became renowned as a classical scholar and critic ; Oersted is a well known name in science and philosophy ; and Muller and Allen successfully labored in the department of his- tory. Nearly all these authors first became known in the present century. At the head of Denmark's poets is (Ehlenschlager, who died I in 1850. His national tragedies, epics, and : lyrics were written partly in German and partly in Danish. He is considered the originator of the artist-drama, of which his Coregyio is a masterpiece. Baggesen, who commenced his career in the last century, is one of the first Danish lyric poets. Heiberg devoted himself to vaudeville and the romantic drama, and Hauch to tragedy, in which he is justly dis- tinguished. Hertz is known through his King Rene's Daughters, which has been successfully produced on the English stage. One of the most distinguished of modern Danish authors is Hans Christian Andersen, known alike as poet, novelist, and tourist. His romances of Danish life are the most characteristic of his works, though he is better known out of his native country by his Improvisatore and The True Story of My Life. Norway cannot be said to have had a literature distinct from the Danish until after its union with Sweden in 1814. The period from that time to the present has been one of great literary activity in all departments, and many distinguished names might be mentioned, among them that of Bjornson whose tales have been extensively translated. Jonas Lie, who enjoys a wide popularity, Camilla Collett, and Magdalene Tkoresen are also favorite writers. Wergeland and Welhaven were two distinguished poets of the first half of the century. Kielland is an able novelist of the realistic school, and Pro- fessor Boyesen is well known in the United States for his tales and poerns in English. Henrik Ibsen is the most distinguished dra- matic writer of Norway and belongs to the real- istic school. Among other recent writers are Borjesson, whose Eric XI V . is a masterpiece of Swedish drama ; Tekla Knos, a poetess whose claims have been sanctioned by the Academy ; and Claude Gerard (nom de plume} , very pop- ular as a novelist. RUSSIAN LITERATURE. The first fragments of Russian literature belong to the tenth and eleventh centuries. They consist principally of rude songs and legends, the hero of which is Wladimir the Great, who first introduced Christianity into the country. Nestor, a monk in the monas- tery of Kiev, who died in the year 1116, left behind him a collection of annals, beginning with 852, which threw much light on the early history of Russia. After the empire was freed from the Mongolian rule by Ivan I. in 1478, the progress of literature and the arts were more rapid. The first printing press was es- tablished in Moscow in 1564, though the Acad- emy in that city was riot founded until a cen- tury later. Peter the Great devoted much at. tention to the Russian language and literature. At his command, the characters used in print- ing were greatly simplified and improved. The first Russian newspaper was prjnted in 1705, in this character. From 1650 to 1750, Russia produced several authors, but principally among the clergy, and their works are dissertations on theology or lives of the saints. Tatitschev wrote a His- tory of Russia, which still retains some value. The only poet of this period was Kantemir, son of the Hospodar of Moldavia, who entered the Russian service, devoted himself to study, and obtained much reputation from his satires. Towards the close of the last century, and es- pecially during the reigns of Elizabeth and Catharine II., the establishment of universities and academies of science and art, contributed greatly to the development of the language and the encouragement of literature. The distinction between the old Slavic and mod- ern Russian dialects is strongly exhibited in the works of Lomonosow, and the pre- dominance of the latter was still further de- termined by Sumarakow, the first Russian dramatist, whose plays were performed on the stage. Cheraskow, who belongs to the last half of the eighteenth century, wrote a long epic poem on the Conquest of Kazan, and an- 162 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. other on Wladimir the Great. He was con- sidered the Homer of his time, but is now never read. Among his contemporary poets were Prince Dolgoruki, who wrote philosophic odes and epistles, and Count Chvostow, the author of some of the best lyric and didactic poetry in the language. The first Russian poet whose name was known beyond the borders of the empire was Derzhavin, who was born at Kazan in 1743, and after filling important civil posts under the Empress Catharine, died in 1816. Many of his most inspired odes were addressed to his imperial patroness. His ode To God has been translated into nearly all languages, and a Chinese copy, printed in letters of gold, hangs upon the walls of the palace at Pekin. The prose writers of this period were Platon, Lew- anda, and Schtscherbatow, who wrote a His- tory of Russia. Under Alexander I., in the commencement of the present century, Rus- sian literature made rapid advances. Karam- sin, who stood at the head of Russian authors during this period, first freed the popular style from the fetters of the classic school, and de- veloped the native resources of the language. Prince Alexander Schakowski wrote many comedies and comic operas, and Zukowski, following in the path of Karamsin, produced some vigorous and glowing poetry. Count Puschkin, one of the most celebrated Russian authors, was born in 1799. His first poem, published at the age of fourteen, attracted so much attention that he resolved to devote him- self to literature. An Ode to Freedom, how- ever, procured him banishment to the south of Russia, where his best poems were written. His works are Husulan and Ljwlmilla, a ro- mantic epic of the heroic age of Russia ; the Mountain Prisoner, a story of life in the Cau- casus ; the Fountains of Baktsch'issarai , and Boris Godunoff, a dramatic poem. In his in- vention, the elegance of his diction, and the richness of his fancy, Puschkin excels all other Russian authors. He was killed in a duel in 18-57. His contemporary, Baratynski, who s'ood nearest him in talent, died i~i 1844. Other poets of this period are Lermontow, Podolinski, and Baron Del wig. Russian ro- mance is not yet fairly developed. The first names in this department are Bestuzew, who suffered banishment in Siberia and met death in the CancofHtt, where his best work, Amnlelh- B( fi, wa-< vritten, Bulgarin, author of f'emetrius and Mf:;t'i>/,n, Count Tolstoi, and Turgenieff. The only histories written in Russia are his- tories of Russia. The best of these which aave been produced by the present generation of authors are those of Ustrialow, Pogodin, Pol^woi. and Michailowski-Dauilewski. POLISH LITERATURE. The Polish language has received a more thorough development and boasts a richer literature than any other language of Slavic origin. It first reached a finished and regular form in the sixteenth century, though a frag- ment -of a hymn to the Virgin remains, which was supposed to have been written by St. Adalbert, in the fifteenth century. The first bloom of Polish literature happened during the reigns of Sigismund I. and Augustus, from 1507 to 1572. Michael Rey, the father of Polish poetry, was a bold, spirited satirist. He died in 1586, and was followed by the brothers Kochanovvski, Miaskowski, and Szy- monowicz, who, for his Latin odes, was called the Latin Pindar. Bielski wrote the Kronika, a collection of Polish legends, and Gornicki, secretary to Sigismund, a History of the Crown of Poland. Orzechowski, one of the most dis- tinguished orators of his day, wrote in the Latin language, the A nnales Polonice. After the commencement of the seventeenth century, Polish letters declined, and as the kingdom came under the ascendency of the Jesuits, a corresponding change came over the character of the literature. Kochowski, who died in 1700, was historiographer to King John Sobieski, and accompanied him against the Turks. Opalinski, the Woiwode of Posen, published in 1652 his Satyres, a lively and characteristic work, and a number of Jesuit historians undertook histories of the country, in which few of them were successful. Through the influence of French authors, Polish literature made another advance, at the close of the first half of the last century. The j first poet who served to concentrate the scat- i tered elements of Polish poetry, was Krasicki, ] who was born in 1734, and in 1767 was made Bishop of Ermeland. He wrote a mock- i heroic poem, Myszeis (The Mousead), an epic entitled Woyna Chocimaka (The War of Chocim), and many fables in verse. The most prominent of the later poets are Godebski, Wezyk, author of romances and dramas, Felin- ski, author of Barbara Radziwill, and Gen. Kropinski. who wrote Ludyarda Tropinski, who died in 1825, was the author of many ad- mirable lyrics and idyls, and a tragedy called Jndyta. Niemcewicz, his contemporary, wrote , the Historical Li res of Poland, a History of ; the reign of Sigismund III., and a romance, i Johann r. Tenczyn. The university of Wilna, : which i:i 1815 was the seat of Polish learning, witnessed a revolution in the character of the literature. Several young authors, with Mickiewicz at 1 heir head, determined to free j themselves from the classic spirit of the lan- I guage, and imitate the later English and LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 163 German schools. From this time Polish fiction took a freer, bolder, and more varied form. Mickiewicz, born in 1798, published his first volume of poetry in 1822. Banished to the interior of Russia, on account of political troubles, he wrote a series of sonnets which at- tracted the attention of Prince Galizin, under whose auspices his epic poem, Konrad Wallen- rod, was published in 1828. His Polish epic of Pan Tadeusz first appeared in Parie in 1834. Among his contemporary authors, the most noted are Odyniec, author of the drama of Izora ; Korsac, a lyric and elegiac poet ; Garczynski, who wrote many fiery battle- songs ; and Czajkowski, a noted writer of Slavic romances. The later prose writers of Poland are the historical Lelewel, and Count Plater, and Ilenryk Sienkiewicz, author of With Fire and Sword and Quo Vadis, who is the first of Polish novelists, and second to none in this generation. ENGLISH LITERATURE. The English language, like other composite modern tongues, such as the French and Italian, passed through several phases before reaching its present form and character. During the prevalence of the Anglo-Saxon tongue, from the fifth century to the Norman conquest, England boasted several authors, whose names and works have in part descended to us. -The venerable Bede, born in North- umberland in 672, is distinguished for his scholarship. lie left an Ecclesiastical history of the Angles, which forms the basis of early English history. The monk Csedmon, who flourished in the seventh century, wrote a par- aphrase of Genesis and some fragments which are supposed to have given Milton the first idea of Paradise Lost. The song of Beowulf, which belongs to the eighth century, is a spirited and stirring heroic. King Alfred's poems belong to the best specimens of Anglo- Saxon literature. The Norman conquest in- troduced the French language and the litera- ture of the Trouveres, while the Anglo-Saxon was left to the peasants and thralls. Out of these elements, however, the English language was gradually formed, and under the reign of Edward III., in the fourteenth century, was made the language of the court. It then as- sumed a character which is intelligible to the educated English of the present day, and that period, therefore, may be considered as the first age of English literature. The earliest English author is Chaucer, "the morning-star of English song," who was born in 1328, and produced his first poem, The Court of Loi-e, in 1347. During his life he enjoyed the favor of Edward III., and his I son, John of Gaunt. He filled various diplo- 1 matic stations, among others that of ambassa- dor to Genoa. During his residence in Italy, 1 he became familiar with the works of Dante, Boccaccio, and Petrarch, and is supposed to have visited the latter. He also wrote Troilus and Cressida, The House of Fame, and The Canterbury Tales, his most famous work, an imitation, in poetry, of the Decameron. He died in 1400. The first prose works in the English language were translations of the gos- pels and of some of the classics. Wickliffe, the Reformer, who first made an English version of the Bible, was a contemporary of ; Chaucer. Sir Thomas Wyatt, and Henry Howard, Earl of Surrey, who flourished under the reign of Henry VIII., in the beginning of the sixteenth century, are the next English poets of note. They wrote principally songs and odes. Surrey was beheaded on charge of treason in 1547. The reign of Elizabeth, at the close of the sixteenth century, was the golden age of English literature. Shakespeare, Spenser, Raleigh, Sidney, Ben Jonson, Beaumont, and Fletcher formed a constellation of poets and dramatists, such as no other age or country ever produced. Spenser, born in 1553, became early associated with Sir Philip Sidney, to whom, in 1579, he dedicated his first work, the Shepherd's Calendar, a pastoral. From 1586 to 1598, he was sheriff of the county of Cork, in Ireland, and resided at Kilcolman Castle, where his greatest work, The Faery Queen, was composed. This is an allegory in twelve books, written in stanza of his own in- vention (modeled, however, on the Italian ottava rimaj, and which now bears his name. He died in 1599. Sidney, who was born in 1554, is best known as the author of Arcadia, a pastoral romance, and the Defence of Poetry. He is the first writer who gave an elegant and correct form to English prose. Shakespeare, the greatest dramatic poet of any age, was born in 1564. He commenced his career by | preparing for the stage the plays of some of ! his predecessors, and this fact has thrown some doubt about the authenticity of two or ! three of the plays included among his works. | The order in which his own plays appeared has never been satisfactorily ascertained. The following, however, are known to have been written before 1598 : The Two Gentlemen of Verona; Love's Labor Lost; The Comedy of Errors ; Midsummer Night's Dream ; Romeo and Juliet ; Merchant of Venice ; Richard II. ; Rich- ard III. ; Henry IV. ; and King John. The Tempest, which appeared in 1611, is believed to be his last dramatic work. He also wrote the poems of Venus and Adonis and 164 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. The Rape of Lucrece, a lyric called The Pas- sionate Pilgrim, and a great number of son- nets, some of which are the finest in the language. He died in 1616. Ben Jonson was born in 1574, and published his first dramatic work, the comedy of Every Alan in His Humor, in 1596. In addition to other comedies, the best of which are Volpone, the Fox, and The Alchemist, he wrote many exquis- ite songs and madrigals. Sir Walter Raleigh is more distinguished as a gallant knight and daring adventurer than as an author, yet his^ lyrics and his History of the World, written during twelve years' imprisonment in the Tower, give him full claim to the latter title. He was born in 1552, and was beheaded by order of James I. in 1617. Beaumont and Fletcher, contemporaries and in some degree imitators of Shakespeare, deserve the next place after him among the dramatists of that period. Beaumont is supposed to have been the inventive genius of their plays, and Fletcher to have supplied the wit and fancy. The Faithful Shepherdess is the work of Fletcher alone. Many dramatists flourished during this and the succeeding generation, whose works are now but little read, but who would have attained eminence but for the greater lights with which they are eclipsed. The most noted of them are Marlowe, Mars- ton, Chapman, Decker, Webster, Ford, and Massinger. Between Shakespeare and Milton, the only name which appears in English literature is Cowley, the author of the Darideis, a for- gotten epic. Milton was born in 1608, and in his early boyhood exhibited the genius which afterwards made him the first Eng- lish poet and one of the great masters of English prose. His hymn on the Nativity was written in his twenty-first, and his mask of Comus in his twenty-third year. L' Allegro, II Penseroso, and Lycidas soon afterward appeared. After his return from Italy, he devoted his attention to theology and poli- tics. His treatise on Marriage was published in 1643, his Areopaffitiea in 1644, and his famous reply to Salmasius in 1651. In the following year he lost his sight, and was obliged to retire from public service. His Paradise Lost appeared in 1665, and was fol- lowed by Paradise Regained in 1671, and Sam- son Agonistes. He died in 1074. Dryden, who, born in 1681, was known as a poet dur- ing Milton's life, introduced a new school of poetry the narrative and didactic. His first noted poem, the Annus Mirabilis, was produced in 1666, his satire of Absalom and Achitophel in 1681, and shortly afterwards his Hind and Panther, a religious satire. He also wrote sev- eral rhymed tragedies and an essay on Dra- matic Poesy. Defoe, born in 1663, wrote the world-renowned narrative of Robinson Crusoe, which was first published in 1713. The seven- teenth century was also an important epoch for English philosophical literature. Lord Bacon, born in 1561, published his De digni- tate et augmentis Scienfarmn in 1605, and his celebrated Novum Organum in 1620. These, although written in Latin, are the most impor- tant philosophical works which have ever emanated from an English author. Hobbes, a writer on politics, jurisprudence, and moral philosophy, died in 1679. Locke, born in 1632, first published his Essay on the Human Understanding in 1690. The commencement of the last century brings us to a group of authors of very differ- ent character. The influence of French liter- ature began to be felt, and the characteristics of the English writers of this period are ele- gance and grace. This is properly the age of English prose, which was enriched successively by Addison, Horace Walpole, Swift, Sterne, Richardson, Smollett, Fielding, Hume, Gib- bon, Chesterfield, and Robertson. The first poet who rose to eminence in the last century was Pope, who was born in 1688, and pub- lished his Essay on Criticism in 1711. His most celebrated poetical works are the Rape of the Lock, the Essay on Man and The Dunciad. Thomson, author of The Seasons and the Castle of Indolence, lived and died in the first half of the century.- Gay, a contemporary poet, is distinguished for his Fables. Gray ranks as one of the finest lyric poets of Eng- land. The few odes he has left, and his Elegy in a Country Churchyard, belong to the classics of the language. Goldsmith was born in 1728 and died in 1774. His poems of The Traveller and 77(e Deserted Village, and his romance of the Vicar of Wakefield, will live as long as his native tongue. Cowper closes the list of the poets of the last century. He died in 1800, after a life darkened by religious melancholy. His Task, Table-Talk, and ballad of John Gil- pin, are his best poetical works. Returning to the prose writers, Addison is first in point of time, having been born in 1672. His best works are his essays, contributed to The Spec- tator, which he established in 1711, in con- junction with his friend Steele. His English has rarely been excelled for purity and ele- gance. Chesterfield, Lady Montague, and Horace Walpole are distinguished as episto- lary writers. Dean Swift, born in 1667, was a politician and satirist, but is nowbestknown by his Tale of a Tub, published in 1704, and Gulliver's Travels, in 1726. Sterne in his Tristram Shandy and The SentimentalJourney , LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 165 displayed a droll mingling of wit and pathos, in a style exceedingly lively and flexible. Richardson, one of the first English romance writers, was born in 1689. His principal novels, which are of immense length, are Pamela, Clarissa Harlowe, and Sir Charles Grandison. Smollett, his successor, published his Roderick Random in 1748, and Humphrey Clinker, his last work, in 1771. Hume, in addition to political and philosophical works, wrote the History of England, from the inva- sion of Caesar to the rebellion of 1688, which was published in 1673-4. Smollett wrote four volumes in continuation of the history. Gib- bon, born in 1737, completed, after twenty years' labor, his History of the Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire, which appeared from 1782 to 1788. Robertson, the contemporary of Gibbon, published his History of Scotland in 1759, and his History of the Reign of Charles V. in 1769. Dr. Johnson, whose Rasselas, Lives of the Poets, and contributions to The Rambler exercised such a salutary influence on the popular taste of his time, died in 1784. His Dictionary of the English Language was first published in 1755. Edmund Burke, one of the most finished and powerful of English orators, published, in 1756, his Essay on the Sublime and Beautiful, which is a model of philosophical writing. He died in 1797. With the present century commenced a new era in English literature. The reign of the drama and the epic was over ; the reign of romance, in both prose and poetry, and the expression of a higher and more subtle range of imagination now commenced. The lan- guage lost something, perhaps, of its classic polish and massive strength, but became more free and flowing, more varied in style, and richer in epithet. The authors in whom this change is first apparent are Coleridge and Wordsworth in poetry, and Scott in prose. Nearly coeval with the two former, but differ- ent in character, were Byron and Moore ; the latter are the poets of passion, the former of imagination. Scott, in his Waverley novels, first developed the neglected wealth of English romance. Burns, although his best songs are in the Scottish dialect, stands at the head of all English song writers. Campbell, in the true lyric inspiration of his poems, is classed with Gray. Rogers and Southey can hardly be ranked among those poets who assisted in developing the later English literature. The former imitates the old models ; the latter, more daring irr his forms of verse and more splendid in his imagination, has never been able to touch the popular heart. Coleridge's prose works contain probably the most impor- tant contributions to English philosophical literature since the time of Bacon. The de- partment of history has been amply filled by Scotf, Alison, author of a History of Europe, \ Gillies and Grote, celebrated for their Histories \ of Greece, Napier in his History of the Peninsu- lar War, Hallam in his History of the Middle Ages, and Macaulay in his History of England. ; Leigh Hunt wrote The Rimini. The field of historical romance opened by Sir Walter Scott ! has been successfully followed by Sir Edward Bulwer-Lytton and G. P. R. James. As novelists of English life and society, under all its aspects, Dickens and Thackeray and Miss Bront, author of Shirley and Jane \Eyre stand preeminent. As essayists and critics, the names of Lords Jeffrey and Brougham, Sidney Smith, Macaulay, Professor Wilson, De Quincey, Carlyle, and Stevens surpass even the group who produced The Tatler and The Spectator. Carlyle, in his Sartor Resartus, Past and Present, and Heroes and Hero Worship, has made use of an idiom of his own a broken, involved, German- esque diction, which resembles that of no other English author. Some of the most prominent English poets of this period are Lord Byron, Shelley, Thomas Moore, Leigh Hunt, Rogers, Alfred Tennyson, Milnes, Barry Cornwall, Robert Browning, Elizabeth Barrett Browning, probably the most impas- sioned and imaginative of English female authors, Walter Savage Landor, Mary How- i itt, R. H. Home, author of Orion, Croly, Philip James Bailey, author of Festus, and ; T. N. Talfourd, author of the tragedy of Ion. Among later writers of poetry, Matthew Arnold has written some of the most refined verse of our generation, and among critics holds the first rank. Algernon Swinburne excels all living poets in his marvelous gift of rhythm and command over the resources of | the language. Dante Rossetti had great lyrical I power ; Edwin Arnold has extraordinary pop- ; ularity in the United States for his remark- able poem, The Light of Asia, and for other poems on Oriental subjects. Among other ' poets of the present generation whose writings | are marked by excellences of various kinds ; are Lord Lytton ("Owen Meredith"), Wil- ; liam Morris, Edmund Gosse, Austin Dobson, Andrew Lang, and Philip Marston. Among female writers, the poems of Jean Ingelow have a merited popularity ; those of Adelaide Procter are pervaded by a beautiful spirit of faith and hope ; while Christina Rossetti shows great originality and deep feeling. Chief in the field of fiction are the writings o2 "George Eliot," a woman of rare genius, whose works are among the greatest EngL.r.d has produced. Anthony Trollope has produced 166 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. many works remarkable for their accurate pic- tures of English life and character. George Macdonald and Wilkie Collins are novelists of great merit, as are Mrs. Humphry Ward, Rudyard Kipling, and Richard Blackmore. Among others in popular favor are William Black, Mrs. Oliphant, Conan Doyle, and J. M. Barrie. Charles Darwin and Herbert Spencer have been the most distinguished authors identified with the scientific and phil- osophical aspects of evolution, and have had a wide influence on contemporary thought. Tyndall has done more than any other writer to popularize great scientific truths. Huxley stands foremost among physiologists and nat- uralists. Among numerous other writers dis- tinguished in various branches of science, a few only can be here named. Walter Bagehot writes of Political Society ; Alexander Bain on Mind and Body ; Henry Maudsley on Brain and Mind ; Norman Lockyer on Spectrum Analysis ; and Sir John Lubbock on Natural History. The most distinguished historian of the times is James Anthony Froude, who shows great vigor of thought and power of description. The histories of John Richard Green and E. A. Freeman are valuable for their original research, and have wide celeb- rity. Max Muller has rendered important service to the sciences of Philology and Eth- nology. Lecky is eminent for his Rationalism in Europe and History of Morals. Leslie Stephen, John Morley, and John Addington Symonds are distinguished in various depart- ments of criticism and history. Thomas Hill Green and James Martineau are masters of Ethical Philosophy. John Stuart Mill holds a high place as a writer on Political Economy. All English works of any merit are now imme- diately reprinted in this country, and the English literature of the present century is as familiar to most Americans as their own. AMERICAN LITERATURE. The literature of the United States belongs almost exclusively to the present century. The language being that of England, and all the treasures of English literature the common in- heritance of our countrymen, whatever Ameri- can authors produce is necessarily measured by the English standard. The language comes to us finished and matured, while the means of intel- [ lectual cultivation until a comparatively recent period have been limited, and our abundant stores of legend and history are still too fresh to be available for the purpose of poetry and fiction. The present generation, however, has witnessed the growth of a national literature, which, if not peculiarly American in language, j is at least so iu style and the materials chosen. . The seventeenth century boasted two or three authors, but none we believe native to the soil. Mrs. Anne Bradstreet, wife of a governor of Massachusetts, published in 1640, a poem on the Four Elements, smoothly versi- fied, but of little poetical merit. Cotton Mather, born in 1663, is almost the only prose writer worthy of note. His Magnolia contains some valuable historical matter. The last century produced some distinguished prose writers and some accomplished versifiers, though no poet in the true sense of the title. Franklin, born in 1706, was master of a sin- gularly clear, compact, and vigorous style. Jonathan Edwards, who flourished during the last century, wrote a celebrated treatise on the Will, which is one of the first metaphysical works in the language. The Revolutionary struggle and the circumstances which pre- ceded and succeeded it, produced a number of bold and brilliant writers and speakers, among whom were Jefferson, Hamilton, the Adamses, Richard Henry Lee, and Patrick Henry. The diplomatic correspondence of the Revolution has rarely been surpassed. Philip Freneau, who has been called the first American poet, wrote many patriotic songs, which were sung during the struggle, but none have retained their original vitality. Trumbull was the author of a Hudibrastic poem entitled Mc- Finf/al, in which the Tories were held up to ridicule ; the first part \vas published in 1775. Joel Barlow, \vho aspired to the rank of an epic poet, published, in 1787, his Vision oj Columbus, which, in 1808, was expanded into the Columbiud, and printed in what was then a style of unusual magnificence. Dana, Bryant, Washington Irving, Cooper, Paulding, and Everett, were all born towards the close of the last century. Dana may be considered as the first genuine poet the United States has produced. His Buccaneer is a picturesque and striking poem, founded on a legend of the pirates who formerly frequented the American coast. Irving's Knickerbocker's History of New York appeared in 1809, and instantly gave him a position as a writer of the purest style and of exquisite humor and fancy. A Biography of Goldsmith, to whom he has been compared, was published in 1849. Many of his works among them The Sketch Book, Bracebridge Hall, The Alhambra, and the Life of Columbus were first published in England, where he lived many years. Cooper's first essay in literature was a novel of society entitled Precaution, but he subsequently con 1 - fined himself to the two fields in which he has earned his best fame the forest and the ocean. His most successful novels are The Spy, The Pioneers, The Deerslayer, The Pilot, LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 167 and The Pathfinder. Bryant first attracted notice by his poem of Thanatopsis, "written in his nineteenth year. His first volume, The Ages, was published in 1825. William Ellery Channing's essays, criticisms, and moral, religious, and political writings won him much celebrity as a prose writer. William Wirt, author of The British ^py, a collection of letters written in a chaste and elegant style ; Charles Brock den Brown, the earliest Ameri- can novelist, author of Wieland ; Richard Henry Wilde, author of a Life of Tasso: Chief Justice Marshall, who compiled a voluminous Life of Washington: Henry Wheaton, author of standard works on law and political econ- omy ; Judge Story, author of several celebrated legal works ; Edgar Allan Poe, a most original and strongly marked character, who wrote the poem of The Raven and a number of weird and fantastic prose stories ; Margaret Fuller, a woman of remarkable acquirements, who has left behind her much admirable descriptive and critical writing, are all entitled to distin- guished mention. The stories and poems of N. P. Willis, as well as his records of travels in Europe and the East, are unsurpassed in point of bril- liancy. Hawthorne, author of The Scarlet Letter, The House of Seven Gables, and The Marble Faun, is remarkable for the delicacy of his psychological insight, his power of intense characterization, and for his mastery of the spiritual and the supernatural. His style is the pure colorless medium of his thought ; the plain current of his language is always equable, full, and unvarying, whether in the company of playful children, among the ancestral asso- ciations of family or history, or in grappling with the mysteries and terrors of the super- natural world. Harriet Beecher Stowe, author of Uncle Tom's Cabin, and a crowd of other writers of various and high degrees of merit and reputation, followed in almost unbroken succession down to the present. Among these, as writers of fiction, may be mentioned Wil- liam Ware, author of Probus and Palmyra ; William Gilinore Simms, Oliver Wendell Holmes, author of the Autocrat of the Break- fast Table ; George William Curtis, Donald G. Mitchell, William Dean Howells, Henry James, Helen Hunt Jackson, Frances Hodgson Burnett, Elizabeth Stuart Phelps, Louisa M. Alcott, F. Marion Crawford, George W. Cable, F. J. Stimson, Edward Everett Hale, Bret Harte, and Lew Wallace. Prominently de- voted to poetry and criticism are Richard H. Dana, Emerson, Longfellow, Lowell, Whit- tier, Bayard Taylor, Walt Whitman, R. II. Stoddard, T. B. Aldrich, R. W. Gilder, Edgar Faucett, Joaquin Miller, James Whitcomb Rilev, John Hay, and Edmund Clarence Sted- man. To the historical school belong the names of Prescott, Motley, Parkman, Bancroft, Hil- j dreth. AVinsor, Fiske, and McMaster. The : works of Prescott are among the finest models | of historical composition, and they breathe freely the spirit of our liberal institutions. His History of Ferdinand and Isabella, of the Conquest of Mexico, and the Conquest of Peru, unite all the fascination of romantic fiction I with the grave interests of authentic events. I Motley's History of the Rise of the Dutch Re- I public is a work distinguished for its historical i accuracy, philosophical breadth of treatment, and clearness and vigor of style. Bancroft i has written the most accurate and philosophical i account that has been given of the United \ States, which has been worthily supplemented ! by the volumes of McMaster. In Hildreth's History of the United States, rhetorical grace i and effect give way to a plain narrative con- fined to facts gleaned with great care and con- scientiousness. The writing of Winsor and Fiske has been confined to certain important epochs. Of the statesmen of the present century who have contributed to our literature of ora- tory, the most eminent are Webster, Clay, and Calhoun. The speeches and forensic argu- ments of W T ebster are remarkable for clear- ness and impressiveness, and rise occasionally to grandeur. The speeches of Clay are dis- tinguished by a sincerity and warmth which were characteristic of the man, who united the gentlest affections with the pride of the haughtiest manhood. His eloquence reached the heart of the whole nation. The style of John C. Calhoun was terse and condensed, and his eloquence, though sometimes impas- sioned, was always severe. He had great skill as a dialectician and remarkable power of analysis, and his works will have a permanent place in American literature. The writings and speeches of John Quincy Adams are dis- tinguished by universality of knowledge and independence of judgment, and they are re- positories of rich materials for the historian and political philosopher. Edward Everett, as an orator, had few equals, and his occasional addresses and orations have become permanent memorials of many important occasions of public interest. Of the numerous other ora- tors, eminent as rhetoricians or debaters, a few only can be named ; among them are Legar6, Randolph, Choate, Sumner, Phillips, Preston, Prentiss, Lincoln, and Robert G. Ingersoll. Philosophy assumed its first distinctive char- acter under the influence of the Transcendental School of New England. The first to plant 168 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. the seeds of this philosophy was George Rip- ley, a philanthropist of high ideals. Theo- dore Parker owed his great power as a preacher to his faith in the Transcendental philosophy. The Absolute God, the Moral Law, and the Immortal Life he held to be the three cardinal attestations of the universal consciousness. The first place, however, belongs to Ralph Waldo Emerson, who lighted up its doctrines with the rays of ethical and poetical imagina- tion. With many inconsistencies to be allowed for, he still remains the highest mind that the world of letters has produced in America. His essays are marvels of keen insight and profound wisdom. Other writers identified with the Transcendental movement are O. B. Frothingham, O. A. Brownson, James Free- man Clarke, Henry D. Thoreau, A. Bronson Alcott, C. P. Cranch, and Thomas Wentworth Higginson, the latter one of the most delightful prose writers of this generation. The most distinguished philosophical waiter of the pres- ent day is Josiah Royce, a professor in Harvard University, with whom must be mentioned John Fiske, William James, Andrew D. White, Joseph Le Conte, and George T. Ladd. The physical sciences, from an early period, have found able investigators in the United , States, and the fields of theology, economy, : and jurisprudence have furnished many hon- [ orable names. Among scientists those most prominent in chemistry and physics are Ben- jamin Franklin, Morse, Hare, Silliman. Henry, Edison, Remsen, and Rowland ; in geology, Dana, Hitchcock, Hall, Hodge, Owen, Whitney, Le Conte ; in botany, Torrey, Gray, Bessey, Coulter, and Campbell ; in natural history, Holbrook, Audubon, Agassiz, Henry, | and Jordan ; in political economy, Henry C. Carey, Francis A. Walker, and Henry George ; in psychology, William James and G. Stanley Hall." French Academy, The, was created by Louis XIV. in 1635. Its-original pursuits were j eloquence and poetry. In 1648 it was ex- tended to the fine arts ; and in 1666, by Col- bert, to the arts and sciences. Scandinavians anciently employed an alphabet of letters formed principally of straight linefc, which has been called Runic, from an Icelandic word runa, meaning a fur- row or lina. Volapak. This so-called universal lan- guage was indented in 1870, by Johann Martin Schleyer, a Swabian pastor and latterly a ! teacher in Constance. Of the vocabulary, about one third is of English origin, while the Latin and Romance languages furnish a fourth. The grammar is simplified to the utmost. The most practical disciples limit their aims t to making Volapiik a convenience for com mercial correspondence, a kind of extended international code. Sanskrit is one of the Indo-European group of languages, intimately connected with the Persian, Greek, La'iu, Teutonic, Slavo- nian, and Celtic languages. It is the classical language of the Hindus, and the parent of all the modern Aryan languages of India. It ceased to be a spoken language about the sec- ond century B. C. Sanskrit literature, which extends back to at least 1500 B. C., and is very voluminous, was introduced to the west- ern world by Sir William Jones, who founded the Asiatic Society in Calcutta in 1784. Languages of the World. It has been estimated that there are over 3000 lan- guages in the world. English is spoken by above 130,000,000 of the human race ; Ger- man by 100,000,000 ; Russian by 70,000,000 ; French by 45,000,000 ; Spanish by 40,000,- 000 ; Italian by 30,000,000, and Portuguese by 13,000,000. English is spoken by 4,000,000 Canadians ; over 3,500,000 West Indians; 3,000,000 Aus- tralians; 1,000,000 East Indians; 38,000,000 in the British Isles, and 65,000,000 in Amer- ica. German is spoken by 2,000,000 in the United States and Canada; 2,000,000 in Switzerland ; 40,000 Belgians ; 46,000,000 in the German Empire, and 10,000,000 in the Austro-Hungarian Empire. French is spoken by 2,250,000 Belgians; 1,000,000 in the United States and Canada ; 1,000,000 in Algiers, India, and Africa; 600,000 Swiss ; 600,000 in Hayti ; 200,000 in Alsace-Lorraine, and 38,000,000 in France. Troubadours were minstrels of southern France in the eleventh, twelfth, and thirteenth centuries. They were the first to discard Latin and use the native tongue in their composi- tions. Their poetry was either about love and gallantry, or war and chivalry. In northern France they were called Trouveres and the language employed was the Walloon. Grub Street, London, is thus described in Dr. Johnson's Dictionary: "Originally the name of a street near Moorfields, in Lon- don, much inhabited by writers of small his- tories, dictionaries, and temporary poems, whence any production is called Grub Street." Andrew Marvell used the name in its appro- priate sense, which later was freely used by Pope, Swift, and others. Madrigal is a short lyric poem, generally on the subject of love, and characterized by .ome epigrammatic terseness or quaintness. It was written as a rule in iambic meter, and contained not less than six or more than thir- LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 169 ten lines, and ran chiefly upon three rhymes. The name is also applied to the music for a simple song sung in a rich, artistic style but without musical accompaniment. Minnesingers, The, were love poets, contemporary in Germany with the House of Honenstauffen. Though called love singers, some of their poems were national ballads, and some were extended romances. Walter of Vogelweide was by far the best of the lyrists ; Heinrich of Veldig was the most naive and ingenuous ; Hartman the most classical ; Wol- fram the most sublime, and Gottfried the most licentious. Iliad, The, is the tale of the siege of Troy, an epic poem in 24 books by Homer. Mene- laus, King of Sparta, received as a guest, Paris, a son of Priam, King of Troy. Paris eloped with Helen, his host's wife, and Menelaus in- duced the Greeks to lay siege to Troy to avenge the perfidy. The siege lasted tea years, when Troy was taken and burned to the ground. Homer's poem is confined to the last year of the siege. Lorelei, famed in song and story, is a rock which rises perpendicularly from the Rhine to the height of 427 feet, near St. Goar. It was formerly dangerous to boatmen, and has a celebrated echo. The name is best known from Heine's " Song of the Siren," who sits on the rock, combing her long tresses, and singing so ravishingly, that the boatmen, en- chanted by the music of her voice, forget their duty, and are drawn upon the rock and perish. Beauty and the Beast. This venerable story, from Les Contes Marines, of Mme. Ville- neuve (1740), is, perhaps, the most beautiful of all nursery tales. A young and lovely woman saved her father by putting herself in the power of a frightful but kind-hearted monster, whose respectful affection and melan- choly overcame her aversion to his ugliness, and she consented to become his bride. Being thus freed from enchantment the monster as- sumed his proper form and became a young and handsome prince. JEneid, The, Virgil's epic poem, is con- tained in twelve books. When Troy was taken by the Greeks and set on fire, ^Eneas,_with his father, son, and wife, took flight, with the in- tention of going to Italy, the original birth- place of the family. The wife was lost, and the old man died on the way ; but, after nu- merous perils by sea and land, ^-Eneas and his son Ascanius reached Italy. Here Latinus, the reigning king, received the exiles hospita- bly, and promised his daughter Lavinia in marriage to .ZEneas ; but she had been already betrothed by her mother to Prince Turnns, son Of Valmus, king of Rutuli, and Turnus would not forego his claim. Latinus, in this dilemma, said the rivals must settle the dispute by an appeal to arms. Turnus being slain, ^Eneas married Lavinia, and ere long succeeded his father-in-law in the throne. Gesta Romaiiorum, the deeds of the Romans, is the title of a collection of short stories and legends in the Latin tongue, widely spread during the Middle Ages, but of the authorship of which little is known save that it took its present form most likely in England, about the end of the thirteenth or the begin- ning of the fourteenth century. The stories are invariably moralized, and, indeed, this edifying purpose throughout is the sole unify- ing element of the collection. The title is only so far descriptive as the nucleus of the collection consists of stories from Roman his- tory, or rather pieces from Roman writers, not necessarily of any greater historical value than that of Androcles and the Lion from Allus Gallius. Moralized, mystical, and religious tales, as well as other pieces, many of ultimate oriental origin, were afterwards added, and upon them edifying conclusions hung, bring- ing the whole up to about 180 chapters. ' Bluebeard is the hero of the well-known nursery tale, and is so named from the color of his beard. The story is widely known in Western Europe, but the form in which it has become familiar is a free translation of that given by Perrault in 1697. In this story Bluebeard is a Signeur of great wealth, who marries the daughter of a neighbor in the country and a month after the wedding goes from home on a journey leaving his wife the keys of his castle, but forbidding her to enter one room. She cannot resist her curiosity, opens the door, to find the bodies of all Blue- beard's former wives, and at once sees the fate to which she herself is doomed. Bluebeard, on his return, discovers from a spot of blood upon the key which could not be cleaned off, that his wife has broken his command and tells her that she must die. She begs for a short respite to commend herself to God, sends her sister Anne to the top of the tower to seek for help, and finally is just on the point of having her head cut off, when her two brothers burst in and dispatch Bluebeard. There are many versions of the story, all agreeing in es- sential details. It is found in the German, French, Greek, Tuscan, Icelandic, Esthonian, Gaelic, and Basque folklore. Sugas, The, belong to the Norse literature and are generally books in the form of a tale, like a Welch " mahinogi." " Edda " was the name of the Bible of the ancient Scandinavi- ans. In the Edda there are numerous Sagas*. As our Bible contains the history of the Jews, 170 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. religious songs, moral proverbs, and religious stories, so the Edda contains the history of Xorway, religious songs, a book of proverbs, and numerous stories. The original Edda was compiled and edited by Saemun Sigfusson, an Icelandic priest, in the eleventh century. It contains twenty-eight parts or books, all of which are in verse. Two hundred years later, Snorro Sturles- son, of Iceland, abridged, re-arranged, and reduced the prose of the Edda, giving the vari- ous parts a kind of dramatic form like the Dialogues of Plato. It then became need- ful to distinguish between the two works ; so the old poetical compilation is called the Elder or Rhythmical Edda, while the more modern work is called the Younger or Prose Edda, and sometimes the Snorro Edda. The Younger Edda is, however, partly original, containing the discourse of Bragi on the Origin oi Poetry ; here, coo, we find the famous story called by the Germans "Xibe- lungen-Lied." Beside the Sagas contained in the Eddas there are a number of productions of various forms. Miracle Plays, The, were founded on the historical parts of the Old and New Testa- ments and on the lives cf the saints. They were performed at first in churches, and after- wards on platforms in the streets. Their de- sign was to instruct the people in Bible his- tory ; but long before the Reformation, they had so far departed from their original charac- ter as to bring contempt upon the church and religion. The exhibition of a single play often occupied several days. The earliest re- corded Miracle Play took place in England in the beginning of the twelfth century ; but they soon became popular in France, Germany, Spain, and Italy. In Germany these plays, with one excep- tion, were suppressed in the year 1779. The vil- lages of Oberammergau in the Bavarian High- lands, had, upon the cessation of a pl:iy, in 1633, vowed to perform the "Passion of Our Saviour" every tenth year out of gratitude, and also as a means of instruction to the peo- ple. The pleading of a deputation of Oberam- mergau peasants with Maximilian II. of Ba- varia, saved their play from general condemna- tion. The play was remodeled and is per- haps the only Miracle Play that survives to the present day. The performance lasts for eight hours with an intermission of one hour at noon ; and though occurring only once in a decade is repeated on several Sundays in succession during the season. The characters in the play number about 500. Tfie person- ator of the Saviour seems to regard the per- formance of his part as an act of religious worship ; and the other important actors* are said to be selected for their holy life and to be consecrated to their work with prayer. Travel- ers from all parts of the world flock to Oberammergau during the time announced for its representation. Cid Campeador, historically Roderigo Diaz, the noted Spanish warrior, is so inter- mingled with fable that it is almost impossible to get at the truth. His career is celebrated in the Spanish Epic, " Poem of the Cid." From this poem and other Spanish works Southey translated and compiled his " Chroni- cle of the Cid." The Cid is supposed to have been born about the year 1026, and to have died at Valentia, 1099. He was such a terror to the Moors, and seemed so superior to all others, that he was called El Seid (Arabic for the Lord) ; and finally Cid Campeador (Lord Champion). Rebecca, of Ivanhoe. Sir Walter Scott's model for this character was a young woman, Rebecca Gratz by name, of an honorable Jewish family of Philadelphia. She was born on the 4th of March, 1781, and in her younger days, and even beyond middle life, possessed singular beauty. She was noted for her be- nevolent and charitable life and for her devo- tion to the Jewish faith. Oce of the most intimate friends of her family was Washing- ton Irving, who in the fall of 1817 first introduced the character to the notice of Scott during his visit to Abbotsford. During one of their many conversations, Irving spoke of his friend Rebecca Gratz of Philadelphia, de- scribed her wonderful beauty, and related the story of her firm adherence to her religious faith. Scott was deeply interested and con- ceived the plan of embodying a character like hers in one of his novels. Shortly after this he wrote Ivanhoe, and named his heroine Rebecca. Romance of the Rose, the Iliad of France, is a poetical allegory begun by Guil- laume de Loris in the latter part of the thjj- teenth century and continued by Jean de Munge in the fourteenth century. The poet dreams that Dame Idleness conducts him to the palace of pleasure, where he meets Love, whose at- tendant maidens are Sweet Looks, Courtesy, Youth, Joy, and Competence; by them he is conducted to a bed of roses. He has just singled out one rose when an arrow from Love's bow stretches him fainting on the ground and he is carried away. When he is revived he resolves to find his rose, and Wel- come promises to aid him. Shyness, Fear, and Slander obstruct his way ; Reason advises him to give up the quest ; Pity and Kindness show LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 171 him the object of his search ; but Jealousy seizes Welcome and locks her in Fear Castle. Here the original poem ends. The sequel takes up the tale at this point, and is an ex- traordinary mixture of erudition and satire. The poem reached the height of its popularity in the sixteenth century. A Curious Book. A book belonging to the family of Prince De Ligne of France is said to be the most curious book in the world, because it is neither written nor printed. The letters of the text are cut out of each folio upon the finest vellum ; and, being interleaved with blue paper, it is as easy to read as print. The labor bestowed upon it was excessive. Rudolph II. of Germany offered for it, in 1640, $60,000. Koran, The, in the Arabic language sig- nifies "The Reading." That Mohammed is the real author of the Koran there is no doubt ; but the Mohammedans steadfastly deny it to be the work of their prophet, the orthodox among them believing it to be of divine origin. Mohammed left his revelations written upon palm leaves and skin, which were thrown promiscuously into a chest, bearing no dates but merely the places of revelation ; some are marked Mecca and some Medina. Three years after the death of the prophet, in 635, Aby- Bekr collected and published these articles in the form of what is now called the Koran. Goethe, the acknowledged prince of Ger- man literature, was born at Frankfort-on-the- Main, August 28, 1749, and died in Weimar on March 22, 1832. His greatest work is Faust, but it can never become popular, be- cause its wisdom does not lie on the surface. When he had finished it, he said the work of his life was done. Hermann and Dorothea is as immortal as the Vicar of Wake field. The Son-'j/rs of Wertlier brought him equal fame. It is said that the Werther fever ran so high that in some countries booksellers were for- bidden by law to sell it. Young women cried over ft, and young men shot themselves with a copy of Werther in their hand. Classic and Romantic Literature. The term classic has, ever since the second cen- tury, been applied to writers of the highest rank. Latterly it has come to designate the best writers of ancient Greece and Rome. Romantic literature was the term first used in Germany, about the beginning of the present ! century, by a number of young poets and critics who wished to indicate that they sought the essence of art and poetry in the wonderful and fantastic. Telenaachus was written by Francois Fen- elon, Arcnoisnop of Cambrey. It is a French rose epic, in 24 boots, and contains the adventures of Telemachus, the only son of Ulysses and Penelope, while in search of his father, who had been absent thirty years from his home. Telemachus is accompanied by the god of wisdom under the form of Mentor. There is perhaps no book in the French lan- guage which has been more read, and it is a class book in almost every European school. Dante is called the father of Italian litera- ture. Before his time the poets of northern Italy wrote in the Prbvengal language, which was the dialect spoken chiefly in southern France. But Dante wrote in Italian, and from his time the Italian became a real language. His great work is the "Divine Comedy," an epic poem consisting of three parts, viz. : hell, purgatory, and paradise. This poem is an allegory conceived in the form of a vision, which was the most popular style of poetry in that age. As a poem, it is of the highest order, and ranks Dante with Homer and Milton. Songs of the Gondoliers. For more than two hundred years the gondoliers of Venice sang no other songs than strophes from Tasso's immortal epic, "Jerusalem Delivered."- This poem commemorates the delivery of Jeru- salem from the Saracens ; and the hero of the poem is Godfrey de Bouillon, the first Christian king of Jerusalem. Tasso was born at Sorrento in 1544. He became melancholy, and was for seven years confined by the Duke Alfonso in an insane asylum. When released he went to Naples. Pope Clement VIII. invited him to Rome to receive the laurel crown of poet ; but he died before the ceremony took place, April, 1595, and was buried on the day on which hft was to have been crowned. Writing, History of. The very firs^ origin of the art of writing has been a mattev of speculation from the earliest times. Th myths of antiquity ascribe it to Thoth, or to Cadmus, which only denotes their belief in it* being brought from the East, or being, pet-- haps, primeval. The Talmud ascribes it to a special revelation. Unquestionably the first step toward writing was rude pictorial repre- sentations of objects, the next the application of a symbolic meaning to some of these pic- tures, and gradually all pictures became synriv bolic, and for convenience were abbreviated. Later thev became conventional signs, and in time they were made to stand for the sounds of spoken language. The various systems of writing of the ancient world had probably at least three sources the Egyptian, the Assyr- ian, and the Chinese systems all of which were originally hieroglyphics, or made up of pictures. The Egyptians had four distinct styles of writing the hieroglyphics, hieratic, 172 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. enchorial, and Coptic. The hieroglyphic was probably in use before 4,000 B. C., and at first was made up entirely of pictures ; but about 2,000 B. C. the hieratic form was intro- duced, in which the hieroglyphs were greatly simplified, and developed into purely linear forms. The enchorial form of writing was in use from 700 B. C. to A. D. 200, and was a still further simplification of the earlier forms, finally developing into the alphabetic form known as the Coptic. The cuneiform writing of the Assyrian empire disputes the honors of antiquity with the Egyptian early forms. This was probably hieroglyphic in its origin, but became modified by the different nations occu- pying the Assyrian empire until it assumed the form of the inscriptions as known to archaeol- ogists. The name of this writing is from a Latin word meaning a wedge, and it is so called because all the characters used are made up of different arrangements of a single pointed figure resembling a wedge in form. There were three classes of cuneiform characters used in the period of development of this form of writing; first, the Assyrian or Babylonian, which was very complicated, containing from six hundred to seven hundred symbols ; the Scythian or Median, having about one hundred characters only ; and the third, the Persian, which is purely alphabetic. The Chinese gives an example of a written language which was arrested in an early period of its develop- ment, before the alphabetic stage had been reached. The people of China still use a writ- ten character for a word, as they did thou- sands of years ago. The Egyptian is the most important of those early systems, as from it was probably derived the Phoenician alphabet, which became the parent of all the graphic systems of the modern world. The Egyptians never fully separated the hieroglyphic and phonetic symbols, but the Phoenicians adopted the latter only, and thus originated the first purely alphabetic plan of writing. The Phoe- nician alphabet was the parent of five principal branches of graphic forms, the most important of which is the Greek, which was the parent of the Roman alphabet, from which sprung the alphabets of all modern European nations, and those taken from them by the people who now inhabit the Western hemisphere. Capital letters were first invented, and were in use for many centuries before the invention of small letters. The oldest manuscripts now in use, dating as far back as the third century, are written entirely in capitals, and without spacing between the words, or marks of punc- tuation . Tho small letters were first introduced about the seventh century. n was unknown to the ancjen.t9, Aristophanes of Alexandria, about two and a half centuries before the Christian era, intro- duced some of the marks now used. But it was not until about the 'year 1500 A. D., that Aldus Manutius, a learned printer of Venice, reduced the art of punctuation to a system.' Surnames are so called from the early practice of writing them over the Christian names. In modern times they were first used in France, particularly in Normandy, where they can be traced to the latter part of the tenth century. They were introduced into England by the Normans after the conquest. The ancient Hebrews, Egyptians, Syrians, Per- sians, and others had but a single name which was generally significant of some feature con- nected with their birth. Thus, Rachel, dying, had called her child Benoni, " the son of my sorrow"; but Jacob gave him the name of Benjamin, " the son of my strength." These simple names, however, soon became so com- mon to many owners, that they failed to con- vey individuality ; and this led to the addition of other designations, now known to us as surnames. Only about a thousand surnames were taken up by the most noble families in France and in England about the time of Edward the Confessor. The lower nobility did not follow this example before the twelfth century and the citizens and husbandmen had no family names before the fourteenth cen- tury. English names have recruits among them from almost every race. The three most numerous patronymics of Celtic origin now in use among the English are the O, the Mac, and the Ap. The Irish O originally meant grandson, the Scotch Mac and the Welch Ap meaning son. The Jews were the last to adopt surnames, and it is only within the past hundred years that they were compelled by law to adopt them in England. Sacred Books of the Hindus are of great antiquity. The oldest of their sacred books, the Vedas (knowledge or science), con- tain the revelation of Brahma, and were pre- served by tradition until collected by Vyasa. The Vedas are three in number : first, the Rig- Veda containing hymns and mystic pray- ers ; second, the Yajur-Veda containing the religious rites ; third, the Sama-Veda, with prayers in the form of songs. The Vedas were written in Sanskrit and were first translated into English by Sir William Jones. The whole life of Ancient India is found in the Vedas, the Puranas, and the two great epics, called the Ramayana and the Mahabharata. The Ramnyana contnins about 50,000 lines describing the youth of Rama who is an in- cajn.a.t,iQu, of. their Qo4 Vis.tmu, ; his banish' LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 173 ment and residence in central India. The Mahabharata of later date consists of about 220,000 lines and is divided into eighteen books. Five brothers, the descendants of Bhar- ata are the heroes of the Mahabharata ; and episodes in the lives of these heroes occupy three fourths of the poem. The Puranas re- late largely to mythological legends. The gods Siva and Vishnu are the sole objects of wor- ship in the Puranas. Pilgrim's Progress, the chief work of John Bunyan, has gone through more editions and been translated into more languages, than any book, except the Bible. It is an allegory of a Christian's life from the time of his con- version to that of his death. The book was written during the author's incarceration in Bedford jail, where he passed twelve years of his life. He was born near Bedford, in Eng- land, in 1628, in 1655 became a Baptist minis- ter and preached with great success until the restoration of Charles II., when an act against conventicles was passed, which put an end to his labors. His trial, conviction, and sentence followed. He was several times offered his liberty on the condition that he would give up preaching ; but his answer was always, "If you let me out to-day, I will preach again to-mor- row." He died in London, 1688. Latin language first appears in literature as a written language as well as spoken, in the plain of Latium in the third century B. C. The conquering armies of Rome soon carried a knowledge of the Latin tongue to the utmost boundaries of the known world. Kence its presence is discernible in all European lan- guages. Those languages which are the im- mediate offspring. of the Latin, as the Italian, Spanish, Portuguese, and French, both Nor- man and Provengal, are called the Romance languages. Wallachian, the language of Rou- mania, in which Lathi predominates, has not until lately been classified with the Latin lan- guage. Latin ceased to be a spoken language about 580 A. D. Poet Laureate means" The Poet of the Laurel Wreath." It was the custom in early Greece to crown with a laurel wreath the suc- cessful poet in a contest ; this custom was adopted by the Romans during the Empire. But the title of "Poet Laureate " originated in Germany during the twelfth century, when the ancient ceremony of crowning the poet par excellence was revived. The early history of the Laureateship in England is traditional. The story goes that Edward ITT., following the example of the coronation of Petrarch at Rome, conferred a similar honor upon Geoffrey Chau- cer with the yearly pension of 100 marks and Qther perquisites. Although the Laureateship was generally recognized, it did not become an established office until 1619, with Ban Jonson. Hungarian Literature is in the main confined to the Magyar language, which bears a resemblance to the Turkish. It is only of late years that, this literature has assumed a popular character. The native language was excluded from public and official documents for eight centuries, but, notwithstanding this fact, the Hungarians possess to-day a litera- ture, which, both in regard to quantity and quality, will sustain comparison with that of iiio most civilized of western nations. The Latin language was introduced about 1000 A. D. and became the tongue of both church and state until the close of the fifteenth century. The Hungarian language was revived in the sixteenth century and became the sole vehicle for sacred poetry. Translations of the Bible were multiplied, chronicles, histories, gram- mars, and dictionaries were published, and the period from 1702 to 1780 probably marks the Golden Age of literature in Hungary. But the native language suffered a severe reverse when the country cameoinder the absolute do- minion of Austria. Renaissance, The, means simply a new birth or revival ; but the word is always un- derstood to mean a revival in learning. The period known as the Renaissance dates from the taking of Constantinople by the Turks (1453), but long before that epoch the love for classical literature had been reviving. This event, however, gave a decided impulse to the revival of learning in western Europe ; the learned men of the Greek or eastern empire sought new homes in the Occident and estab- lished schools throughout Europe. The revi- val of learning, the invention of printing, the discovery of the new world, the decline of feu- dalism, the elevation of the middle classes, all contributed to bring about the Renaissance. It reached its climax about the beginning of the present century. Theatrical Performances have been traced to the Grecian custom of celebrating every spring, in Athens, a festival in honor of Bacchus. Thespis originated the custom of introducing a single speaker to amuse the company with recitations. He also invented a movable car on which his performances were exhibited in various places. Theatrical per- formers are still called thespians. The car of Thespis was soon exchanged for a permanent stage in the Temple of Bacchus. J^schylus I soon added a second speaker and a chorus, i masks, scenery, etc., and is therefore called it he "Father of Tragedy." At the festivals ! of Bacchus new plays were brought out yearly i in competition. ^Jschylus won the prize every 174 THE CENTURY BOOK OP PACTS. year until he was fifty-six years old, when he was defeated by Sophocles. Greek comedy de- rived its origin from the revels of the Comus (God of revelry) during the Bacchic festivals. Its great master was Aristophanes, 444 B. C. FOREIGN WORDS AXD PHRASES. A has. Down with. A capite ad calcem. From head to foot. A fin. To the end. Afortiori. With stronger reason. A Vabandon. At random. A la bonne fteure. Opportunely; in good time. A la derobee.Ky stealth. A la mode. According to the fashion. A main armee. With force of arms. A mensa et thoro. From bed and board. A posteriori. From effect to cause ; from the latter. A priori. From cause to effect ; from the former. A tempo ffiusto. To sing or play in true time. (Music.) A tempo rimo. To restore the original movement. Untie.) A vlncnlo matrimonii. From the tie of marriage. A votre santi. To your health. Ab extra. From without. Ab inttio. From the beginning. Ab origine.From the beginning. Ab oro. From the beginning. Ab urbe condita. From the building of the city (Rome) ; abridged A. U. C. Abit invldia. All offense apart ; let there be no malice. Absit omen. May it not prove ominous. Absque hoc. "Without this or that. Ac etiam. And also. Actum est de republica. It is all over with the com- monwealth. Ad absurdum. To show the absurdity. Ad arbitrium. At pleasure. Ad astraper aspera.fo the stars through difficulties. Ad captandum vwlffus. To catch the mob or the vulgar. Ad eundem.To the same point or degree. Adfinem.To the nd. Ad Grcecas Calendas. An indefinite postponement. (The Greeks had no calends.) Ad homi nem. To the man (that is, to the interests or the passions of the man,. Ad inflnitum. Without end. Ad inquirendum. For inquiry. Ad interim. In the meanwhile. Ad libitum. At pleasure. Adlitem. For t!ie action (at law). Ad nauseam. To a disgusting degree. 4d referendum. For further consideration, Adrem. Tc the purpose. Ad un0uem.To the nail; exactly; nicely. Ad valorem. According to the value. Addendum. An addition or appendix. Adh-ucsub judice Us est. The affair is not yet decided. JEgresdt medendo. The remedy is worse than the dis- ease. jEquam servare mentem. To preserve an equable mind. jKquo ammo. With an equable mind. sOtre perennius. More lasting than brass; enduring ever. Affaire du cceur. A love affair; an amour. Afflatus. Inspiration. Agenda. Things to be done. Agitato. A broken style of performance, to awaken surprise. (Music.) Agnus Dei. Lamb of God. Aiile-rle-camp. Assistant to ageneral. Aide-tot, et fe del t'aidera. Help thyself, and Heaven will help thee. Alereflammam. To feed the flame. Alfresco. In the open air. Alga. A kind of seaweed. AlguazU. A Spanish constable. /4Mw. Otherwise ; elsewhere. Alibi. Elsewhere ; not present. Alis volat propriis.Slie flies with her own wings. Aliur.de. From some other quarter or person. Allegretto. A movement quicker than andante, but not so quick as illegro. (Miiitic.) Allemande. A kind of German dance. Almamater. Benign mother (applied to a university). Alter ego. A second self . 4lto octavo. AO octave bi|h.e.r. 1 Alto relievo. High relief. (Sculpture') Alto ripieno. The tenor of a great chorus. Alto nolino. A small tenor violin. Amende. Compensation ; apology. Ami du people. Friend of the people. Amicus ounce. A friend of the court. Amorpatriae. Love of country. Amour propre. Self-lore; vanity. Ancien rdgime. Former administration ; ancient order of things. -4ndne. Moderately slow movement, between largo and allegro. (Music.) Anglica. In English. Anguis in herba. A snake in the grass. Animis opibusque parati. Ever ready with our liveg and property. Animo etflde. By (or with) courage and faith. Animofacto. Really and truly. Animus furandi. Felonious intent. Anno Domini. In the year of our Lord. Anno lucis. In the year of light. Anno mundi. In the year of the world. Annusmirabilis. Year of wonders. Ante bellum. Before the war. Ante lucem. Before light. Ante meridiem. Before noon. Apercu. A brief sketch of any subject. Appoggiatura.A. note in a smaller character than the regular notes of the piece. (Music.) Apropos (Fr. apropos). To the purpose. Aqua, vitxe. Water of life ; brandy. Arbiter elegantiarum. Master of ceremonies; an um- pire in matters of taste. Arcana imperil. State secrets. Arcanum. A secret. Argumentum ad crumenam. An argument to thg purse. Arffiimentum adfidem. An appeal to faith. Argumentum ad hominem. An argument to the person. Argumentum ad ignorantiam. An argument founded on an ad versary's < ignorance of facts. Argumentum adyudicium. An appeal to the common sense of mankind. Argumentum adpopulum.An appeal to the people. Argumentum ad verecundiam. An argument to mod- esty. Argumentum baculinum. Club law. Arioso. Light, airy. Armiger. One bearing arms ; an esquire. Arpeggio. The notes of a chord played in rapid suc- cession, and not simultaneously. (Music.) Arriere-pensee. Mental reservation. Ars est celare artem. True art is to conceal art. Assumpsit. It is assumed or taken for granted. Astra castra, Ninnen lumen. The stars my^camp, the Deity my light. At spes nonfracta. But hope is not broken. An fait. Well instructed ; master of it. Aufond. To the bottom, or main point. Au pied de la, lettre. Literally. Aupis aller. At the worst. Au reroir. Farewell. Audi alteram partem. Hear the other side. Aura popidarls. The gale of popular favor. Auri sacra fames. The accursed thirst for gold. Autre droit. Another's right. Autrefois. Another time. Autre vie. Another's life_. Aut vincere out mori. Victory or death. Auto-Qa-fc, Auto-de-fe. An act of faith; burning of heretics. Atixttium ab alto. Help from on high. Avant-coureur. A forerunner. Ave, Maria. Hail, Mary. Badinage. Light or playful discourse. Bagatelle. A trifle. Bas bleu. A bluestocking ; a literary woman. Basso-continuo. Thorough bass. Basso-relievo. Figures in low relief. Bateau. A long light boat. Beau-ideal. A model of ideal perfection. Beau monde. The fashionable world. Bel esprit. A brilliant mind. Bella-donna. The deadly nightshade ; fair lady. Belles-lettres. Polite literature. Bellum internecinum. A war of extermination. Bellum lethale. A deadly war. Beneplacito. At pleasure. (Music.) jSent^M? nwwttntf. JJy th.e f ^VQT of Provideqcj. LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 175 Sen trovato. Well found ; an ingenious solution. Billet-doux. A love letter. Bis dat gui citd dot. He gives twice who gives promptly. Bis peccare in bello non licet. To blunder twice is not allowed in war. Bis vincit, qui se vincit in victoria. He conquers a second time, who controls himself in victory. Bizarre. Odd; fantastic. Blast. Surfeited. Bon gre mal gre. "Willing or unwilling. Bon jour. Good-day ; good-inorning. Bon mot. A witty saying ; a jest ; a quibble. Bon soir. Good evening. Bon ton. High fashion ; first-class society. Bonvivant. Ahigh liver. Bonajft.de. In good faith. Bon-bon. A sweetmeat ; confectionery. Bonhomie. Good-natured simplicity. Bonis nocet quisquis pepercerit malis. He hurts the good who spares the bad. Bonne bouche. A delicious morsel. Bonus. An extra payment for a service rendered or a thing received. Boreas. The north wind. Boudoir. A small private apartment. Bourgeois. A c.'tizen of the trading class ; a printing type. Bourgeoisie The body of citizens. Bravura. A song of difficult execution. Brevete. Patented. Brvtumfulmen. Aharmless thunderbolt; unreasoning i luster. Bwlttta. A musical farce. Cachet. A seal. Cacoethes. A bad habit or custom. Cacoethes carpendi. A rage for finding fault. Cacoethes loquendi. An itch for speaking. Cacoethes scribendi.A. passion for writing. Cadenza. The fall or modulation of the voice, in music. Caeca est invidia. Envy is blind. Cceteradesunt. The remainder is wanting. Cceteris paribus. Other things being equal. Calibre. Capacity or compass ; mental power ; a term in gunnery. Camera obscura. A dark chamber used by artists.' Campus Alartius. The field of Mars ; a place of mili- tary exercise. Canaille. The rabble. Candida Pax. White-robed Peace. Cantata. A poem set to music. Cantate Domino. Sing to the Lord. Cap-a-pie. From head to foot. Capias'ad satisfaciendum. You may take to satisfy. Capriccio. A fanciful irregular kind of musical com- position. Capriole. A leap without advancing ; capers. C&putmortuum. Dead head ; the worthless remains. Caret. Is wanting or omitted. Caret initio etfine. It wants beginning and end. Carpe diem. Enjoy the present day. Carte blanche. Unconditional terms. Casus belli. An occasion for war. Casus fcederis. A case of conspiracy; the end of the league. Catalogue raisonnt.A. catalogue of books arranged according to their subjects. Cause celcbre. A remarkable trial in a court of justice. Caveat actor. Let the doer beware, Caveat emptor. Let the purchaser take heed or beware. Cavendo tutus. Safe through caution. Ce riest que le pretnier pas qid coHte. It is only the first step which is difficult. Cedanf arma togce. Let military power yield to the civil. Cede I)eo. Submit to Providence. Certiorari. To be made more certain. Cessio bonorum. Yielding uj> of goods. (Test une autre chose. That is quite a different thing. Chacun a son gotit. Every one to his taste. Chanson. A song. Chansonnette. A little song. Chapeau. A hat. Chapelle ardente. The place where a dead person lies in state. Chaperon. An attendant on a lady, as a guide and pro- tector. ' Chargi d'affaires. An ambassador of second rank. Chateau. A. castle ; a country mansion. .A. masterpiece. Chevalier d'industrie. A knight of industry ; one who lives by persevering f rauu. Chi tac's confessa. Silence is confession. Chiaro-oscuro or Chiaroscuro. Light and shadow in ^ painting. Chose qui platt est d, demi vendue.A. thing which pleases is already half sold. Cicerone. A guide or conductor. Cicisbeo.A. dangler after a lady. Ci-devant. Formerly ; former. Circa. About. Citb maturum citb putridum. Soon ripe, soon rotten. Clarior e tenebris. More bright from obscurity. Clique. A party ; a gang. Cognomen. A surname. Comme ilfaut. As it should be. Commune bonum. A common good. Communia proprie dicere. To express common thing? with propriety. Communibus annis. One year with another. Compos mentis. Of sound mind. Con amore. With love or hearty inclination. Concio ad clerum. A discourse to the clergy. Conge d'elire. Permission to elect. Connoisseur. A skillful judge. Consensus facet legem. ^Consent makes the law. Contour. The outline of a figure. Contra. Against. Contra bonos mores. Against good manners. Contretemps. A mischance ; disappointment. Coram nobis. Before us. Coram non judice. Before one who is not the prope 1 judge. Cornucopia. The horn of plenty. Corpus delicti. The whole nature of the offense. Corrigenda. Corrections to be made. Coryphceus. A leader, or chief. Cotillon. A lively dance. Couleur de rose. Rose-color ; an aspect of beauty and attractiveness. Coup de grace. The finishing stroke. Coup de main. A bold and rapid enterprise. Coup de pied. A. kick. Coup de soleU.- -A stroke of the sun. Coup d'etat. A masterstroke of state policy. Coup d'ceil. Rapid view or glance. Coftte qu'il caftte. Cost what it may. Credat Judceus. A Jew may believe it. Crescit amor nummi quantum ipsa pecunia crescit. Theloye of money increases as rapidly as th monej itself increases. Crescit eundo.lt increases by going. Crescite et multiplicamini. Increase and multiply. Crimenfafsi. Falsehood ; perjury. Crux criticorum. The cross or puzzle of critics. Cui bono ? To whose good? Cuimalo? To whose harm? Guide sac. The bottom of the bag; a difficulty; astreel or lane that has no outlet. Cum grano salis. With a grain of salt; with son/ allowance. Cum multis aliis. With many others. Cum primlegio. With privilege. Curia advisari vult. Tne court wishes to be advised. Curiosa felicitas. A felicitous tact. Currente calamo. With a running pen; written off hand. Gustos rotulorum. Keeper of the rolls. Da capo. Over again. Damnant quod non intelliguttt. They condemn what they do not comprehend. Data. Things granted (sing, datum). De bonisnon. Of the goods not yet administered on. Dedie in diem. From day to day. De facto. In fact ; in reality. Degustibusnonestdisputandum. There is no disput- ing about tastes. Dejure. By law or right. De mortuis nil nisi bonum. Say nothing but what is good of the dead. De novo. Anew. Deprofundis. Out of the depths. Detrop. Out of place; not wanted. Debitojustitiee. Bytotof justice. Dtbut. Beginning of an enterprise ; first appearance. Deceptio vistis. An illusion of the sight. Dedimus potestatem. We have given power. Deficit. A want of deficiency. .- By the grac* of God. ire THE CENTURY BOOK OP PACTS. Dejeuner A la fourchette. A breakfast or luncheon with meats. Dele. Blot out or erase. Dclenda cst Carthago. Carthage must be Wotted out. Delta (The Greek letter A)- A triangular tract of land toward the mouth of .1 river. Denouement. An unraveling or winding up. Deo adjurante, non timendum. God helping, nothing need be feared. Decfavente. With God's favor. Deo gratias. Thanks to God. Deojnvante. With God's help. Deononfortund. From God, not fortune. DeorolenteoT D. V. God willing. Depot. A store; the recruiting reserve of regiments. Dei nicr rcssort. The last resort. Desideratum. Something desired or wanted. Desunt ccetera. The other things are wanting. Detinet. He detains; he keeps. Detour. A circuitous march. Detur diyniori. Let it be given to the more worthy. Deus ex machind. A god from the clouds ; unexpected aid in an emergency. Devastavit. He wasted. Devoir. Duty. Dexter. The ri^ht hand. Dictum. A positive assertion (pi. dicta). Dictum de dtcto. Report upon hearsay. Diesfaust'iis. A lucky day. Dies tree. Dav of wrath. Dies non. A. clay on which judges do not sit. Dieu et mon droit. God and my right. Dieu vous garde. God protect you. Dii majoriDii gent htm . The gotls of the superior class ;. the twelve superior gods. Diipenates. Houshold gods. Dilettanti. Persons who devote themselves to science merely for amusement or relaxation (sing, dilet- tante). Diluvium. A deposit of superficial loam, sand, etc., caused by a deluge. Dirigo. I direct or guide. Disjecta membra. Scattered parts, limbs, or writings. Distrait. Absent in thought ; absent-minded. DLstringas. A writ for distraining. Divide et irnpera. Divide and govern. Doce "ul discus. Teach, that you may learn. Docendo dicimus. Welearn'by teaching. Dolce. Sof t and agreeable. (Jftuie.) Dolce far niente. Sweet idleness. Dolt iticapax. Incapable of mischief. Doloroso. Sof t and pathetic. (Music.) Domicile^, domic-ilium). An abode. Domine diritje nos. O Lord, direct us. Domitnts robisciim. The Lord be with you. Double entendre. Double meaning (co'rrectly written double entente). Douceur. \ present or bribe ; sweetness. Draco. A dragon ; a constellation. Dramatis pcrsonce, The characters in a play. Duet(ltal. duetto). A song for two performe'rs. Dulce est desipere in loco. It is pleasant to jest or revel at the proper time. Dulce et decorum est propatrid mori. It is sweet and pleasant to die for ones country. Dulia.A.n inferior kind of worship. Dum spiro spero. Whilst I breathe, I hope. Dum vMmua, rivamus. While we live, let us live. Duo. Two ; a two-part song. Duodecimo. A. book having twelve leaves to a sheet. Durante placito or durante bcnrplaci fr>. During pleasure. Durante vita. During life. Duxfceminafacti. A woman was the leader to the deed. E pluribus unum.One out of many ; one composed of many ; the motto of the United States. Eau de i-lf. Brandy ; water of life. Ecce homo. Behold the man. Eccesignum. Behold the sign. Eclairci.-iIiffifio>iefnycK.ln contemplation of flight. Memento mori. Remember death. Memorabilia. Things to be remembered. Memoriter. By rote. Menage. Household . Mens sana in corpora sano. A sound mind in a sound body. Menssibi conscia recti.A. mind conscious of rectitude. Menfa et thoro. From bed and board. Merlin sal. Pure salt : genuine Attic wit. Meum et tuum. Mine and thine. Minimum. The least. Minutiae. Minute concerns ; trifles. Mirabile dictu. Wonderful to be told. MiriihUia. Wonders. Mittimus. We send ; a warrant for the commitment of an offender. Modus operandi. Manner of operation. Montam semper liberi. Mountaineers are always free- men. Morceau. A morsel. More suo. In his own way. Mot duguet.A. vratehword. Multum in pfi rvo. Much in a small space. Mutanda. Things to be altered. Mutatis mutandis. The necessary changes being made. Mutato nomine. The name being changed. Naivett. Ingenuousness ; simplicity. Ne cede malis. Yield not to misfortune. Ne exeat. Let him not depart. Ne plus nJfrii .Nothing further ; the uttermost point. Ne quid TM'wiis. Not too much of anything ; do noth- ing to excess. Ne sutor ultra crepidam.'Let not the shoemaker go beyond his last. Ne tentes, out perflce. Attempt not, or accomplish thoroughly. Nee pluribus impar. Not an unequal match for num- bers. Nee scirefas est omnia.lt is not permitted to know all things. Necessttatis non habet legem. Necessity has no law. Nee. Born. Nefasti dies. Davs upon which no public business was transacted; also, unlucky day.-;. Nemine contrddteente.yo one contradicting. Nemine difisentiente. Without opposition or dissent. Nemo me impune lacessit. No one wounds me with im- punity. Nemo mortalium omnibus horis sapit.'So one is wise at all times. Nemo repentefuit turpissimus. 'Sf) man ever became a villain at once. Nemo solus sapit. No one is wise alone. Niaiserle. Silliness. Nih il debet. He owes nothing ; a plea denying a debt. Nihil quod tetigit,non ornavit. Whatever he touched he embellished. Nil admirari.To wonder at nothing. Nil desperandum. Never despair. Nimium ne crede colori. Trust not too much to looks. N'importe. It matters not. Nisi Dominusfrustra. Unless the Lord be with us, all efforts are in vain. Noblesse oblige. Rank imposes obligation. Nolens volens. Willing or unwilling. Noli me tangere.Dont touch me. Nolle prosequi. Unwilling to proceed. Nolo episcopari. I am not willing to be made a bishop (an old former way of declining a bishopric). Nom de guerre. An assumed name. Nom de plume. A literary title. Nomen et omen. Name and omen; a name that is ominous. Non compos mentis. Not of sound mind. Non deficiente crumen&.ll the money does not fail. Non est dispHtandvm It is not to be disputed. Non est invent us. Not found. NOH libet.It does not please me. Non mi ricordo.l don't remember. Non nobis solum. Not merely for ourselves. Non obstante. Notwithstanding. Non omnis moriar.l shall not wholly die. Nonpassibiis cequis.Sot with equal steps. Non sequUur. It does not follow ; an unwarranted con- clusion. Non sibi, sed omnibus. Not for itself, but for all. Nonchalance. Coolness ; easy indifference. Nonpareil. Peerless; a small printing type. Nosce te ipsum. Know thyself. XoacUur ex sociis. He is known by his companions. Nota bene. Mark well. Novs verrons.Vi'e shall see. Novus homo A new nian. Nudum pactum. An invalid agreement. NuUa crux, nulla corona. No cross, no crown. LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 179 Ifulla nuova, bona nuova. The best news is no news JfiuliU8ftUug.The son of nobody. Nunc aut nunquam. Now or never. O tempora ' o mores 'Oh, the times ! oh, the manners ' Obilt. He (or she) died. Obiter dictum A thing said by the way, or in passing. Obsta pritieipiis. Resist the first beginnings Odiprofannm.l loathe the profane. Odium theolofficum.- The hatred of theologians. Ohe ' jam satis. Oh, there is now enough. Ollapodrida.An incongruous mixture. Omne ianotum pro maanifico. Whatever is unknown is thought to be magnificent. Omnes. All. Omnia bona bonis.All things are good with the good Omnia vincit amor. Love conquers all things. On-dit.A rumor; a Hying report. Onus. Burden. Onusprobandi. The responsibility of producing proof. Ope et consi/io. With assistance and counsel. Ora et labora. Pray and work. Orator fit. poeta nascitur.The orator is made by edu- cation, but a poet must be born. Ore rotunda. With full sounding voice. Otium cum dignitate. Dignified leisure. Outre. Preposterous ; eccentric. Oyer and Terminer. A criminal court. Pallida mors. Pale death. Par excellence. By way of eminence. Par nobilefratrum. A noble pair of brothers; two iust alike. Paripassu. With equal step ; in the same degree Parole d'honneur. Word of honor. Pars pro toto.Part for the whole. Particeps rriminis. An accomplice. Partiinunf montes, nascetur ridiculus mus. The moun- tains are in labor ; a ridiculous mouse will be brought forth. Parva componere magnis.To compare small things with great. Parvenu. A new comer ; an upstart. Pas. A step ; precedence. Passe-partout. A master key. Passim. In many places; everywhere. Paterfamilias. Toe father of a family. Pater noster.Our Father ; the Lord's prayer. Pater patrice. Father of his country. Patois. A provincial dialect. Pax in bello. Peace in war. Peccai-i.l have sinned. Penchant. An inclination ; a leaning toward. Pendente lite. While the suit is pending. Penetralia. Secret recesses. Per aspera ad astro.. Through trials to glory. Per cajnta.Hy the head ; equal division. Per cent, or per centum. Ky the hundred. Per contra. Contrariwise. " Per curium. By the court. Per diem.Tly the day. Per fas et nefas. Through right and wrong. Per saltum. With a leap ; at once. Per se.Ky itself ; alone. Perdu. Lost. Pvre defamille.The father of a family. Petit. Small; little. Petitio principii.A begging of the question. Petit^naitre.A fop. Peu (l peu. Gradually ; a little by little. Pinxit. Painted it; placed after the artist's name on a picture. Piit. More. Plateau. A plain; a flat surface. I'h'lix. Common people. Pluries.Very often ; a third writ, after two writs have issued. Poco.A little. Poeta tirtscitur, nonfit. A poet is born, not made. Point d'appiii. Point of support; prop. Poisson (VArril. April fool. Pgfvttu rnit. df dpi. People like to be deceived. Posse comitaMls.Tbe power of the county. Poatea. Afterward; indorsement of the verdict upon the record. Post mortem. After death. Postulata. Things assumed. Pratcoffnita. Things previously known. Prcemonitus prcemunitus. Forewarned, forearmed. Preux chevalier. A brave knight. Primd/ucie, On tbe first view. / nmum mobile. The primary motive, or moving power / rtm us inter pares. Chief among equals. Principia, non homines. Principles, not men fTtaantfe obsta. Resist the first innovations Pro arts etfocia.For our altars and our hearths Pro bono publico. For the public good. Pro et con (for contra). For and against. Pro form&. For form's sake ; according to form / ro hdc vice. For this turn or occasion. Pro loco et tempore.For the place and time Propatrid.For our country. Pro ratd.ln proportion. Pro re nata. For a special emergency Pro tanto.YoT so much. Pro tempore.For the time being. Probatum est.lt has been tried and proved. Proces-verbat.A written statement. Prochein ami. The next friend. Procul, O procul este, profani .'Far, far hence, O ye profane ! Pronunciamento.A public declaration. Propaganda fide. For extending the faith. Protege. A person taken charge of, or patronized a ward, etc. Prudensfiituri. Thoughtful of the future. Pugrnis et calcibus.With fists and heels ; with all the might. Punica fides. Punic faith ; treachery. Quare. Query ; inquiry. Quamdiu se bene gesserit.So long as he shall conduct himself properly. Quantum. The due proportion. Quantum libet. As much as you please. Qitantummeruit.As much as he deserved. Quantum sufficit.A sufficient quantity; enough. Quare clausumfregit.An action for damages to real estate. < fiiliiin . As in a mirror. I (tiiii/iuniexponos. That you expose to sale; writ of execution. Veni, ridi, rid. I came, I saw, I conquered. -To come ; a writ to a sheriff directing him to summon jurors. renue.Tbe place from which the jury are draw*. Verbatim et literatim. Word for word and letter for letter. Verbum sat sapienti.A. word is enough for a wise man. Ferdad es verde, Truth is green. LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 181 Peritas vlncit. Truth conquers. Versus. Against; toward. Vertu, Virtu. Virtue; taste; art; skill. Veto. -I forbid. Vi et armis. Bv force and arms. Vi&. By the way of. Via, media. A middle course. Vice. In the room of. Vice versd. The terms being exchanged ; reversely. Vide. See. Vide et crede. See and believe. Vide ut supra. See as above. Videlicet. To wit, namely. Videttes. Sentinels on horseback. Vignette. A namegiventoslight engravings with which books, bank-notes, etc., are ornamented. Vincit amor patriot. "Love of country prevails. Vinculum matrimonii. The bond of marriage. Virtuoso. One skilled in matters of taste or art. Virtiite officii. By virtue of office. Vis in&rtiue. Inert power ; the tendency of every body to remain at rest. Vis medicatrix naturce. The healing tendency of na- ture. Vis poetica. Poetic genius. Vis vitce.The vigor of life. Vis-a-vis. Face to face. Vita brevis, ars longa. Life is short, and art is long. Viva v oce. By word of mouth ; by the living voice. Vivant rex et retina. Long live the king and queen. Vivat rejjittrt. Long live the queen. Viyat respublica.Live the republic. Vive la bagatelle.- -Sm-.cess to trifling. Vive la reine. Long live the queen. Vivel'empereur. Long live the emperor. Vive le roi. Long live the king. Vive I' imperatrice. Long live the empress. Vive, rale. Farewell, and be happy. Voila tout. That's all. Voila une autre chose. That's quite a different mat ter. Voir dire. A preliminary examination to determine the competency of a witness. Volens etpotens. Willing and able. Volgo gran bestia. The mob is a great beast. Volere c. potere. To will is to do. Voltisubito. Turn over quickly. Vox, ctpr&terea nihU.A. voice, and nothing more. Vox populi, vox Dei. The people's voice is God's voice. Vox stettarum.Tiie voice of the stars; applied to almanacs. Vulffo. Vulgarly ; commonly. Vuelta. Over, to next page, or (o). Vulnns immedicalMe. An irreparable injury. Vidtus est iiid-ex animi. The countenance is the index of the mind. Zonain solvere. To loose the virgin zone. ABBREVIATIONS IN GENERAL USE. A.B. Artium Baccalaureus, Bache- lor of Arts. Abp. Archbishop. Abr. Abridgment. A.C. A nte Christum, before Christ; Arch-Chancellor. Acad. Academy. Acct. Account; Accent. AJX Anno Domini, in the year of our Lord. A.D.C. Aide-de-camp. Ad. Advertisement. Adj. Adjective. Adit. Adjutant. Adjt.-Gen. Adjutant-General. Ad lib. Ad libitum, at pleasure. Adm. Admiral; Admiralty. Admr.. Administrator. Admx. Administratrix. Adv. Adverb; Advent; Advertise- ment. Mt. JEtatis, of age ; aged. Agr. Agriculture. Agt. Agent. Ala. Alabama. A.M. Anno mundi. In the year of the world; Artium Mayister, Master of Arts; Ante meridiem, Before noon, morning. Ang. Sax. Anglo-Saxon. Anon. Anonymous. Ans. Answer. A.R.A. Associate of the Royal Academy. Arab. Arabic, or Arabia. Ariz. Ter. Arizona Territory. Ark. Arkansas. Atty. Attorney. Attv.-Gen. Attorney-General. A.tf.A. American Unitarian Asso- ciation, ug. August. B.A. Bachelor of Arts. Bal. Balance. Bart, or Bt. Baronet. Bbl. Barrel. B.C. Before Christ. B.C.L. Bachelor of Civil Law. B.D. Bachelor of Divinity. B.E. Bachelor of the Elements. B.M. Bachelor of Medicine. B. Mus. Bachelor of Music. Brig.-Gen. Brigadier-General. Bro., Bros. Brother, Brothers B.S. Bachelor of Science. B.V. Blessed Virgin, B.V.M. Blessed Virgin Mary. C., Ch. or Chap. Chapter; Consul. C. or Cent. A hundred, Centum. Cal. California; Calends; Calen- dar. Caps. Capitals. Capt. Captain. Capt.-Gen. Captain-General. C.E. Civil Engineer; Canada East. Cel.orCelt. Celtic. C.H. Court-house. , Chap. Chapter; Chaplain. Chrou. Chronicles. Clk. Clerk. C.M. Common Meter. C.M.G. Companion of the Order of St. Michael and St. George. Co. Company; County. C.O.D. Cash*(or collect) on delivery. Col. Colonel ; Colossians ; Colorado. Colo. Colorado. Con. Against ; In opposition ; Con- tra. Conn, or Ct. Connecticut. Cor. Sec. Corresponding Secretary. Cr. Creditor; Credit. Ct., cts. Cent, Cents; Connecticut. Cwt. Hundredweight. d. Penny or Pence. Dak. Ter. Dakota Territory. D.C. District of Columbia. D.C.L. Doctor of Civil Law. D.D. Doctor of Divinity. D.D.S. Doctor of Denta'l Surgery. D.E. Dynamic Engineer. Dec. December; Declaration. Deft, or Dft. Defendant. Del. Delaware; Delegate. Dept. Department. Dent. Deuteronomy. Disc. Discount. Dist.-Atty. District-Attorney. D.M. Doctor of Music. D.M.D. Doctor Dental Medicine. Do. The Same, Ditto. Dol., Dols., $. Dollars. Doz. Dozen. Dr. Debtor; Doctor. Eccl. Ecclesiastes. Ed. Editor ; Edition. e.g. For example, Exempli gratia. Eug. England; English. Ep. Epistle. Eph. Ephesians; Ephraim. Esq. , Esqs. Esquire, Esquires. etal. A iid others, j oWv etc. or &c. And other things ; And so forth, et. seq. And what follows, Et sequentia. Ex. Example, ex. g. For example, Exempli gratia. Fahr. Fahrenheit. F.A.M. Free and Accepted Masons. F.A.S. Fellow of the Antiquarian Society. fcap. or fcp. Foolscap. Feb. February. Fig. Figure; figurative. Fla. Florida. F.R.A.S. Fellow of the Royal Astronomical Society. F.R.C.S.L. Fellow of the Royal College of Surgeons, London. F.R.G.S. Fellow of the Royal Go- graphical Society. Fri. Fridav. F.R.S. Fellow of the Royal Society. F.R.S.E. Fellow of the Royal So- ciety, Edinburgh. F.S.A. Fellow of the Society of Arts. Ga. Georgia. Gal. Galations; Gallon. Gen. Genesis; .General. Goth. Gothic. Gov. Governor. Gov.-Gen. Governor-General. H.B.M. His or Her Britannic Majesty. Heb. Hebrews. Hhd. Hogshead. H.R. House of Representatives. H.R.H. His or Her Royal Highness, la. Iowa. Ib. or ibid. In the same place. IA. The same, Idem. Id. Ter. Idaho Territory, i.e. That is, la est. I.H.S. Jesus the Saviour of men. 111. Illinois. incog. Unknown, Incognito. Ind. Indiana; Index; Indian. Ind. Ter. Indian Territory. Indef. Indefinite, in loc. In the place ; on the pas- sage. In loco. I. N.R.I. Jesus of Nazareth, King of the Jews. Inst. Instant, of this month: Insti- tute. 182 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Io. Iowa. I.O.F. Independent Order of For- esters. I.O.O.F. In dependent Order of Odd Fellows. I.S.M. Jesus Salvator mundi, Jesus the Saviour of the world. Ital. Italic; Italian. Jan. January. J.C.D. Juris Civilis Doctor, Doctor of Civil Law. J.D. Jurum Doctor,Doctor of Laws. J.P. Justice of the Peace. Jr. or Jun. Junior. J.U.D. or J.V.D. Juris ufriusque Doctor, Doctor of both Laws (of the Canon aud the Civil Law). Jul. July; Julius. Kas. Kansas. K.B. King's Bench ; Knight of the Bath. K.C. King's Counsel; Knight of the Crescent, in Turkey. K.C.B. Knight Commander of the Bath. K.G. Knight of the Garter. K.G.C. Knight of the Grand Cross. K.G.C.B. Knight of the Grand Cross of the Bath. Knt. Knight. Ky. Kentucky. Lev. Leviticus. Lex. Lexicon. L.I. Long Island. Lib. Liber, book. Lieut. Lieutenant. LL.B. Legum Baccalaureus, Bache- lor of Laws. LL.D. Legum Doctor, Doctor of Laws. loc. cit. Loco citato, in the place cited. Lond. London. L.8. Locus sigilli, Place of the seal. Lt. Lieutenant. M. Meridies, noon. M. Mille, a thousand. M. or Mons. Monsieur, Sir. M.A. Master of Arts. Maj. Major. Maj.-Gen. Major-General, Mar. March. Mass. Massachusetts. Math. Mathematics ; Mathema- tician. Matt. Matthew. M.B. Medicince Baccalaureus, Bachelor of Medicine. M.B. MusiccB Baccalaureus, Bache- lor of Music. M.C. Member of Congress. Mch. March. M.D. Medicince Doctor, Doctor of Medicine. Md. Maryland. Mdlle. or Mile. Mademoiselle. Mdse. Merchandise. M.E. Methodist Episcopal; Mili- tary or Mechanical Engineer. Me. Maine. Mech. Mechanics, or Mechanical. Med. Medicine. Mem. Memorandum. Memento, remember. Messrs, or MM. Messieurs, Gentle- men. Mex. Mexico, or Mexican. Mich. Michigan. Minn. Minnesota. Miss. Mississippi. MM. Their Majesties; Messieurs, Gentlemen; Two thousand. Mme. Madame. M.M.S.S. Massachusettensis Medi- cince Societatis Socius, Fellow of the Massachusetts Medical So- ciety. Mo. Missouri; Month. Mon. Monday. Mvna. ifonritw, 8k. Mont. Ter. Montana Territory. M.P. Member of Parliament ; Met- ropolitan Police. M.P. P. Member of Provincial Par- liament. Mr. Mister. M.R.A.S. Member of the Royal Asiatic Society; Member of the Royal Academy of Science. M.R.C.C. Member of the Royal College of Chemistry. M.R.C.S. Member of the Royal College of Surgeons. M.R.G.S. Member of the Royal Geographical Society. M.R.I. Member of the Royal Insti- tute. Mrs. Mistress. M.R.S.L. Member of the Royal Society of Literature. M.S. Memoriae sacrum, Sacred to the memory; Master of the Sci- ences. MSS. Manuscripts. Mus. B. Bachelor of Music. Mus. D. Doctor of Music. N. A. North America. N.B. New Brunswick ; North British; Nota bene, mark well, take notice. N.C. North Carolina ; New Church. N.E. New England ; Northeast. Neb. Nebraska. Nev. Nevada. New Test, or N.T. New Testament. N.F. Newfoundland. N.H. New Hampshire; New Haven. N. J. New Jersey. N.Mex. New Mexico. No. Numero, number. Nol.pros. Nolens prosequi, I am un- willing to prosecute. Non pros. Non prosequitur, He does not prosecute. Non seq. Non sequitur, It does not ' follow. Nov. November. N.S. New Style (after 1752); Nova Scotia. N.T. New.Testament. Num. Numbers; Numeral. N.V.M. Nativity of the Virgin Mary. N.Y. New York. O. Ohio. O.K. A slang phrase for "All cor- rect." Oct. October. Old Test, or O.T. Old Testament. Or. Oregon. O.S. Old Style (before 1752). O.S.F. Order of St. Francis. O.T. Old Testament. Oxon. Oxoniensis, Oxonii, of Ox- ford, at Oxford. Oz. Ounce. Pa. Pennsylvania. Par. Paragraph. Pd. Paid. P.E. Protestant Episcopal. Penn. Pennsylvania. Per. or pr. By the. Per cent. Per centum, by the hun- dred. Pha.r. Pharmacy. Ph.B. Philosophic Baccalaureus, Bachelor of Pnilosophy. Ph.D. Philosophice Doctor, Doctor of Philosophy. Pinx. Pinxu, He (or she) painted it. PI. or plur. Plural. Plff. Plaintiff. P.M. Post meridiem, Afternoon, Evening ; Postmaster ; Passed Midshipman; Paymaster. P.O. Post office. Pop. Population. P.P.C. Pour prendre conye, to take leave. Pp. or pp. Pagei. Pro tern. Pro iempore, for the time being. Prov. Proverbs; Provost. Prox. Proximo, next (month). P.S. Post scriptum, Postscript. P.S. Privy Seal. Ps. Psalm or Psalms. Pt. Part; Pint; Payment; Point; Port; Post-town. Pub. Publisher; Publication; Pub- lished; Public. Pwt. Pennyweight; Pennyweights. Pxt. Pinxit, He (or she) painted it. q.e.d. Quod erat demonstrandum, which was to be proved. q.l. '/'"""'"'" libet, as much as you please. Q.M. Quartermaster. Qr. Quarter. q.s. Quantum sufficit, a sufficient quantity. Qt. Quart, Ques. Question. q.v. Quod vide, which see; quan- tum vis, as much as you will. R. Recipe, Take; Regina, Queen; Rex, King; River; Rod; Rood; Rises. R.A. Royal Academy ; Royal Acad- emician ; Royal Arch ; Royal Arca- num ; Royal Artillery. Reed. Received. Ref. Reference; Reform. Rev. Reverend; Revelation (Book of); Review; Revenue; Revise. R.I. Rhode Island. R.M.S. Royal Mail Steamer. R.N. Royal Navy. Rom. ( 'nth. Roman Catholic. R.S.A. Royal Society of Antiqua- ries ; Royal Scottish Academy. R.S.D. Royal Society of Dublin. R.S.E. Royal Society of Edinburgh. R.S.L. Royal Society of London. R.S.V.P. Respondez s'il vents p'eii. Answer if you iileaSft, Rt. Hon. Right Honorable. Rt. Rev. Right Reverend. S.A. South America ; South Africa ; South Australia. Sat. Saturday. S.C. Senatus consultum, A decree of the Senate ; South Carolina. Sc. He (or she) engraved it. sc. or scil. Namely. Scot. Scotland. Sculp, or sculp. He (or she) en- graved it, Sculpsit. S.D. Doctor of Science. Sec. Secretary; Second; Section. Sept. September; Septuagint. Seq. Following, Sequentia ; It fol lows, Sequitur. Serg. Sergeant. Serg. Maj. Sergeant Major. S.J. Society of Jesus. S.J.C. Supreme Judicial Court. S.P. Without issue, Sine prole. Sp. Spain. Sq. ft. Square foot or square feet. Sq. in. Square inch or inches. Sq. m. Square mile or miles. Sq. r. Square rood or roods. Sq. yd. Square yard. Sr. Sir or Senior ; Sister. SS. or ss. To wit, Scilicet. St. Saint; Street; Strait. Stat. Statute. S.T.D. Doctor of Sacred Theology. Ster. or Stg. Sterling. S.T.P. Professor or Sacred The- ology. Subj. Subjective. Subst. Substantive. Supt. Superintendent. Surg. Surgeon ; Surgery. Surg.-Gen. Surgeon-General. Surv. Surveyor. Surv.-Gen. Surveyor-General. Syu. Synonym; Synonymous. LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. Tenn. Tennessee. Ter. Territory. Tex. Texas. Th.orThurs. Thursday. Tr. Transpose; Translator; Trans- lation. Trans. Translator ; Translation ; Transactions. Treas. Treasurer. Tues. or Tu. Tuesday. Typ. Typographer. U.J.C. Doctor of both Laws (Civil and Canon). U.K. United Kingdom. ult. Last; of the last month, Ul- timo. Unit. Unitarian. Univ. University. U.S. United States. U.S.A. United States Army. U.S.A. United States of America. U.S.M. United States Mail. U.S.M. United States Marine. U.S.M.A. United States Military Academy. U.S.N. United States Navy. U.S.N.A. United States Naval Academy. Ut. Utah. U.T. Utah Territory, v. or vs. Against ; In such a way ; Versus; Versiculo. Va. Virginia. Vat. Vatican. Ven. Venerable. Ver. Verse ; Version. Vice-Pres. or V.P. Vice-President. Vise. Viscount. viz. or vi. To wit; Namely; That is to say ; Videlicet. Vo. Left hand page, Verso. Vol. Volume. V.R. Queen Victoria, Victoria Re- gina. V.S. Veterinary Surgeon. Vt. Vermont. Vul. Vulgate (Latin version of the Bible). Wash. Washington. W.Ter. Washington Territory. Wed. Wednesday. Wise. Wisconsin. Wk. Week. W.T. Wyoming Territory. X. Ten or tenth. Xmas or Xm. Christmas. Xn or Xtian. Christian. Yd. Yard. Y.M.C.A. Young Men's Christian Association. Y. M. Cath. A. Young Men's Catho- lic Association. Yrs. Years; Yours. &. And. &c. And the rest; And so forth; Et ccetera. CELEBRATED CHARACTERS IN THE LITERATURE OP THE WORLD. The name of the character is given in black letter ; the name of the author and of the work from which the character is taken, in italic. Abdiel. Paradise Lost, Milton. The faithful angel who opposed Satan in his revolt. Abigail. The Bible. A waiting maid. Able-white, Godfrey. Moonstone, Wilkie Collins. A disreputable spy. Abou Hassan. Arabian Nights. An Arab who was made to believe himself Caliph. Absalom. 1. The Bible. The son of David, King of Israel. 2. Absalom and Achitophel, Dryden. A pseudonym for the Duke of Monmouth, an illegitimate son of King Charles II. Absolute, Captain. The Rivals, Sheridan. The hero of the comedy, the gallant and fortunate lover. Absolute, Sir Anthony. The Rivals, Sheridan. Father of Captain Absolute, a very irascible and abso- lute old gentleman. Achitophel. Absalom and Achitophel, Dryden. The pseudonym for the Earl of Shaftesbury. Acres, Bob. The Rivals, Sheridan. A cowardly boaster, the butt of the comedy. Acrasla. The Faery Queene, Spenser. An old witch, the personification of intemperance. Adam, Bell. Reliques, Percy. A celebrated archer. Adams, Parson. Joseph Andrews, Fielding. An eccentric, good-natured clergyman. Adriana. Comedy of Errors, Shakespeare. The wife of Antipholus. Aguecheek, Sir Andrew. Twelfth Night, Shakes- peare. A coward and a fool. Aladdin. Arabian Nights. The owner of a magic lamp and ring, which gave the possessor every wish ne made. Allworthy, Squire. Tom Jones, Fielding. A good- natured old country gentleman. Alp. The Siege of Corinth, Byron. A brave and de- voted man. Amadis de Gaul. Amadis de Gaul. The hero of a Portuguese chivalric romance, the authorship of which is unknown. It wa^s translated into every language in Europe. Amelia. Amelia, Fielding. A lovely woman, sup- posed to be drawn from Fielding's own wife. Amine. Arabian Nights. A wicked sorceress, who changed her three sisters into hounds. Amlet, Richard. The Confederacy, Vanburgh. A gambler. Amrl. Absalom and Achitophel, Dryden. Pseu- donym for H. Finch. Andrews, Joseph. Joseph Andrews, Fielding. A hero ridiculously upright and pure. Anerley, Mary. Mary Anerley, Blackmore. A lovely and beautiful girl. Apemantus. Timon of Athens, Shakespeare. A cynic. Arden, Enoch. Enoch Arden, Tennyson. A sailor, supposed drowned, who returns honje to find his wife Argante. The Faery Queene, Spenser. A giantess. Ariel. The Tempest, Shakespeare. A spirit of the air, perhaps the daintiest creation of the myriad-minded poet. Artful Dodger. Oliver Twist, Dickens. A young thief who understands his business. Arthur, King. Idyls of the King, Tennyson. A legendary British King, who established an order of chivalry known as the Round Table, and about whom many popular legends are afloat in Wales and Western France. Ashton, Lucy. The Bride of Lammermoor, Scott. A beautiful character, loved and lost by Ravenswood. Atalanta. Atalanta in Calydon, Swinburne. One of Diana's maidens. Autolycus. Winter's Tale, Shakespeare. An intel- lectual sneak thief. Baba, AH. Arabian Nights. The hero of the tale of the forty thieves, who breaks into the robbers' cave by means of the magical password " Sesame." Baba, Cassim. Arabian Nights. Brother of the above, who forgets the password and is captured by the robbers. Backbite, Sir Benjamin. School for Scandal, Sheridan. A scandal monger. Bagstock, Joe. Dombey and Son, Dickens. A pompous fellow. Bailey, Young. Martin Chuzzlewit, Dickens. A precocious youth. Balder stone, Caleb. Bride of Lammermoor, Scott. The butler of Ravenswood. Balthazar. 1. Comedy of Errors, Shakespeare. A merchant. 2. Much Ado About Nothing, Shakespeare. A servant. Banquo. Macbeth, Shakespeare. A chieftain mur- dered by Macbeth ; later in the same play, a ghost. Bardell, Mrs. Pickwick Papers, Dickens. Mr. Pickwick's landlady, who sues him for breach of prom- ise of marriage. Bardolph. Henry IV., Shakespeare. A follower of Sir John Falstaff. Barkis. David Copperfleld, Dickens. A marrying man who eventually marries. Bath, Major. Amelia, Fielding. A pompous officer. Bayes. The Rehearsal, Duke of Buckingham. A pseudonym for Dry den. Baynes, Charlotte. Adventures of Philip, Thack eray. The hero's sweetheart. Bede, Adam. Adam Bede, George Eliot. An ideal workingman. Belch, Sir Toby. Twelth Night, Shakespeare. Olivia's hard-drinkinguncle. Belford. Clarissa Barlmve, Richardson. The friend of Lovelace. Belinda. Rape of the Look, fope. Tto whQs^ Uajr Is. c.u.V 184 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Bell, Laura. Penrlennis, Thackeray. One of the sweetest heroines in English literature. Bell, Peter. Peter Bell, Wordsworth. An extremely prosaic man. Bellaston, Lady. Tom Jones, Fielding. One of Tom Jones' sweethearts. Bellenden, Lady, Old Mortality, Scott. A Tory gentlewoman. Belphoebe. The faery Queetie. Spenser. A pseu- donym for Queen Elizabeth. Belvidera. Venice Preserved, Otway. The heroine of the poem. Benedick. Much Ado About Nothing, Shakespeare. A confirmed bachelor who was converted to matrimony by the lovely Beatrice. From this gentleman comes the name Benedick or Benedict applied to married men who were not going to marry. Bennet, Mrs. Amelia, Fielding. An improper char- acter. Benvolio. Jlomeo and Juliet, Shakespeare. One of Romeo's friends. Bertram. AWs Well that Ends Well, Shakespeare. The hero of the play, who marries Helena. Bianca. Othello, Shakespeare. Cassio's sweetheart. Birch, Harvey. The Spy, Cooper. The chief char- acter of the novel. Bilfil. Tom Jones, Fielding. Allworthy's nephew, a talebearer. Bleuvber,Miss Cornelia. Dombey and Son, Dickens. A bluestocking governess. Bobadil, Captain. Every Man in His Humor, Jon- son. A boasting coward. Boeuf, Front de. Ivanhoe, Scott. One of King John's followers. A ferocious scoundrel. Boffin, Noddy. Our Mutual Friend, Dickens. The good-natured occupant of Boffin's Bower. Bois Guilberi, Brian de. Ivanhoe, Scott. The master of the Knights Templars. Boniface. The Beaux Stratagem, Farquhar. A landlord. Hence applied to landlords generally. Booby, Lady. Joseph Andrews, Fielding' One of the minor characters. Booth. Amelia, Fielding. The hero of the story. Bottom, Nick. A Midsummer Niylit's Dream, Shakespeare. A ridiculous weaver with 'whom Titania, the queen of the fairies, is forced to fall in love by a charm. Bounderby, Josiah. Hard Times, Dickens. A pro- saic, matter-of-fact manufacturer. Bowles, Tom. Ketielm Chillingly, Bulwcr. A black- smith. Bowline, Tom. Roderick Random, Smollett. A sailor, whose name has been applied to mariners ever since. Box and Cox. Box and Cox, Morton. The heroes of the farce. Bradwardine, Baron. Waverley, Scott. The father of Rose Bradwardine. Bramble, Matthew. Humphrey Clinker, Smollett. A walking epitome of dyspepsia. Brangtons. Evelina, Miss Burney. Very vulgar people. Brass, Sally and Sampson. Old Curiosity Shop, Dickens. A shystering lawyer and his sister. Brick, Jefferson. Martin Chuzzlewit, Dickens. A ridiculous American editor. Bridgenorth, Major Ralph. Pevcril of the Peak, Scott. A prominent officer in the Puritan Army. Bridget, Mrs. Tristram Shandy, Sterne. Tristram's nurse. Brown, Tom. Tom Broom's School Days and Tom Brown at Oxford, Thos. Hughes. The hero of one of the best boys' books ever written in English. Bucket, 'inspector. Bleak House, Dickens. A de- tective. Bumble. Oliver Twist, Dickens. A beadle. Caius, Doctor. Merry Wives of Windsor, Shakes- peare. Ann Page's Welsh lover. Caliban. The Tempest, Shakespeare. Prospero's mon- strous servant. Candor, Mrs. The Rivals, Sheridan. A scandal monger. Carker. Dombey and Son, Dickens. A scoundrelly clerk. Cassio. Othello, Shakespeare. Othello's lieutenant. Caudle, Mrs. Curtain Lectures, Douglas Jcrrold. An artistic scold. Caustic, Col. The JL,ounger, Mackenzie, A satirical Celia. As You Like It, Shakespeare. Rosalind's cousin. C'hadbaiid. Bleak House, Dickens. A hypocrite. Chamont. The Orphans, Otway. The hero of the play. Chillingly, Keiielin. Kenelm Chillingly, Bulwer. The hero of the novel. Christabel. Christabel, Coleridge. The heroine of the poem. Christiana. Pilgrim's Progress, Bunyan. The wife of the hero Christian. Chiizzlewit, Jonas and Martin. Martin Chuzzle- wit, Dickens. The first a miser and murderer, the sec- ond the hero of Dickens' story. Clare, Ada. Bleak House, Dickens. The wife of Carstone, and one of the most important characters in the story. Clifford, Paul. Paul Clifford, Bulwer. A beautiful highwayman hero. Clinker, Humphrey. Humphrey Clinker, Smollett. A philosophical young man who meets very singular adventures. Co3lebs. Ccelebs in Search of a Wife, Hannah More. A gentleman who has very precise ideas on the subjects of matrimony and woman. Coldstreaiii, Sir Charles. Used Up, Matthews. A fatigued and weary man of the world. Consuelo. Consuelo, George Sand. The heroine of the novel, a rather inflammable young lady. Copper Captain, The. Rule a, Wife and Have a Wife, Beaumont and Fletcher. A nickname applied to Perez, the boastful coward of the play. Copperfield, David. David Copperfield, Dickens. The hero of the novel, supposed to be a picture of Dickens' own life and character. Cordelia. Ring Lear, Shakespeare. The faithful daughter of the king in the play. Corinne. Corinne, Mme. de Sta'el. The heroine of de Stael's greatest work. Costigan, Captain. Pendtnnis, Thackeray. The father of Pendenuis' first sweetheart, a hard drinking but amusing old man. Coverley, Sir Roger de. Spectator, Addison. A model country gentleman of the olden time. Crane, Irhabod. Sleepy Hollow, Irving. The school- master in the sketch. Crawley, Rawdon. Vanity Fair, Thackeray. The hereof "the novel without a hero." The husband of Becky Sharp. Cressida. Troilus and Cressida, Shakespeare. The heroine of the play, in love with Troilus. Crummies, "Vincent. Nicholas A'ickleby, Dickens. A theatrical head of a theatrical family. Crusoe, Robinson. Robinson Cmnoe, DeFoe. The hero of the most remarkable novel ever written. It has been translated into every civilized language on the globe. The story relates Crusoe's adventures on a desert isle upon which he was cast by the sea, and is one of intense interest. Cflttle, Captain. Dombey and Son, Dickens. A nautical character who indulges in a number of queer mannerisms. Cymbeliue. Cymbeline, Shakespeare. A heroic king of Britain. Dalgarno, Lord. The Fortunes of Nigel, Scott. A Scottish nobleman of bad character. Dalgetty,I)ugald. Waverley, Scott. A famous and well drawn soldier of fortune, w'hose name has become proverbial. Deans, Davie, Effie, and Jeanie. Heart of Midlo- thian, Scott. Famous characters in the story. Jeanie is the heroine. Dedlock, Lady, and Sir Leicester. Bleak House, Dickens. Husband and wife, proud and unfortunate, but noble people. Delamaine, Geoffrey. Man and Wife, Collins. A man of muscle. Delphine. Delphine, Mme. de Stdel. The heroine of the novel. Deronda, Daniel. Daniel Deronda, George Eliot. The hero of the novel, one of the best character sketches which George Eliot has made. Desdemona. Othello, Shakespeare. The unfortunate heroine of the play, wife of the Moor Othello. Diddler, Jeremy. Raising the Wind, Kinny. The prototype of all modern deadbeats. Dimmesdale, Rev. Arthur. The Scarlet Letter, Hawthorne. The seducer of Hester Prynne. Duds, Me$. St. Ronnn's FFe#, S.cot$. LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 185 Dodson & Fogg. Pickwick Papers, Dickens. Mrs. Bardell's attorneys in her suit against Mr. Pickwick. Dogberry. Much Ado About Nothing, Shakespeare. 4n absurd character who travesties justice. Dombey, Florence, Mr. and Paul. Dombey and Son, Dickens. Characters in the novel. Dominie, Sampson. Guy Mannering, Scott. An eccentric clergyman. Don Quixote. Don Quixote, Cervantes. The hero of the novel. This has been described by eminent critics as the best work of fiction which the world has yet pro- duced. It was written in Spanish by Miguel de Cer- vantes, as a protest against the ridiculous extrava- gances of what are known as Chivalric Romances. Don Quixote is the type upon which thousands of later novels have been "founded. Crazed by the reading of knightly tales, he arms himself and goes out in search of adventures, on his steed Rozinante, and accompanied by his squire Sancho Panzo. These adventures are told so wittily, that the world has been laughing at them for centuries, and the book has never lost its fresh, boyish interest. The best English translation is Smollett's. Gustave Dore 1 , the famous French artist, some years since .completed a set of illustrations for Don Quixote, which have added greatly to its interest. Dora. David, Copperfleld, Dickens. Copperfield's child-wife. Dorimant. The Man of Mode, Etheref/e. A dandy. Dorothea. Middletnarch, George Eliot. The herofne of the tale. Dorrit, Edward, and "Little." Little Dorrit, Dickens. The father of the Marshalsea prison and his interesting daughter. Drawcansir. The Rehearsal, The Duke of Bucking- ham. A bully. Dulcinea del Toboso. Don Quixote, Cervantes. A country girl whom Don Quixote selects as his lady love. Dundreary, Lord. Our American Cousin, Taylor. A tvpical and absurd English lord. The character was really created by the actor Sothern. Edgar. King Lear, Shakespeare. The son of Glou- cester. Emilia. Othello, Shakespeare. "Wife of lago, the villain of the play. Esmond, Beatrix, and Henry. Henry Esmond, Thackeray. Heroine and hero of the novel, which is of the time of the English Revolution. Eugenia. The Return of the Native, Ha rdy. A beau- tiful and unfortunate girl. Evangeline. Evangeline, Longfellow. Heroine of the poem ; her wanderings are told in verse that will never die. Evans, Sir Hugh. The Merry Wives of Windsor, Shakespeare. A Welsh clergyman. Evelina. Evelina, Miss Burney. Heroine of the novel. Eyre, Jane. Jane Eyre, Bronte. Heroine of the novel. Fag. The Rivals, Sheridan. A servant. Fagin. Oliver Twist, Dickens. The preceptor in the thieves' academy, where Oliver Twist is held a prisoner. Faithful, Jacob. Jacob Faithful, Marryat. The hero of the novel. Falkland. The Rivals, Sheridan. A jealous lover of Julia's, and friend to Captain Absolute. Falstaff, Sir John. Henry 1 V. and the Merry Wives of Windsor, Shakespeare. This is Shakespeare's most comic character; Queen Elizabeth was so pleased with Sir John in Henry IV. that, at her request, Shakespeare composed The Merry Wives of Windsor, in order to give the fat knight a wider field for fun. Fanny. Under the Greenwood Tree, Hardy. A pretty schoolmistress. Fat Boy, The. Pickwick Papers, Dickens. One of the minor characters in the novel, given to sleep and pie. Faust. Faust, Goethe. The hero of the great Ger- man tragedy, who sells his soul to the Devil, and gets in return youth, wealth, and an attendant devil, Mephis- topheles. Goethe was to Germany what Shakespeare was to England. Felton, Septimius. Septimius Felton, Hawthorne. The mystical hero of the novel. Ferdinand. The Tempest, Shakespeare. Bon. of the king, falls in love with Prospero's (laughter, Miranda. Ferrers, Endymion. Endymion, Benjamin Dis- raeli. Hero of the novel. Figaro. The Marriage of Figaro, Bcaumarchais. 40 Exceedingly QQm,ical and sharp-wi^ed, ba.rbe,r. Firmin, Philip. The Adventures of Philip, Thack- eray. The hero of the novel. Florizel. A Winter's Tale, Shakespeare. The prince of Bohemia. Fluellen. Henry V., Shakespeare. A pedantic but brave Welsh officer. Foker, Harry. Pendennis, Thackeray. One of the minor characters. Foppington, Lord. The Relapse, Van Brugh. An idiotic dandy. Fosco, Count. Woman in White, Collins. A com- plicated scoundrel. Frankenstein. Frankenstein, Mrs. Southey. The dreadful result of the labors of a German student, who makes a man in the dissecting room out of corpses, and brings him to life by galvanism. The hideous hero of the novel has a series of most blood-curdling adven- tures. Friar Tuck. Reliques, Percy. The jolly companion of Robin Hood, the outlaw of Sherwood Fo'rest. Friday. Robinson Crusoe, De Foe. Crusoe's savage servant. Gadgrind, Jeremiah. Hard Times, Dickens. A tyrannical " practical " man. Gamp, Sairy. Martin Chuzzleicit, Dickens. A comi- cal and hard-drinking monthly nurse. Gargantua. Garganttia, Rabelais. Hero of the tale. Gaunt, Griffith. Griffith Gaunt, Reade. Hero of the novel. Gay, TV alter. Dombey and Son, Dickens. Marries Florence Dombey. Gibbie, Goose. Old Mortality, Scott. A half-witted boy. Gil Bias. Gil Bias, Le Sage. The hero of a very famous novel. His adventures are of the most surpris- ing character, and are told in a most interesting man- ner. Gilpin, John. John Gilpin's Ride, Cou~per. The absurd hero of the poem. Ginevra. Ginevra, Rogers. The heroine of the poem, accidentally locked in a trunk on her wedding day, and not found for years and years. Gobbo, Launcelot. The Merchant of Venice, Shakes- peare. A merry servant. Goneril. King Lear, Shakespeare. The eldest daugh- ter of the king, a traitor and an ingrate. Gonzalo. The Tempest, Shakespeare. An old coun- cilor. Gosling, Giles. Kenilivorth, Scott. A landlord. Grandison, Sir Charles. Sir Charles Grandison, Richardson. Hero of the novel. Gray, "Vifian. Vivian Gray, Disraeli. Hero of the novel. Grundy, Mrs. Speed the Plow, Morton. A old lady who represents worldly propriety and talebearing. Gulliver, Lemuel. Gulliver's Travels, Swift. Hero of the romance. Hamlet. Hamlet, Shakespeare. The melancholy Dane, hero of the play. Harley. The Man of Feeling, Mackenzie. Hero of the novel. Harlowe, Clarissa. Clarissa Harloicc, Richardson. Heroine of the novel. Harris, Mrs. Martin Chuzzlewit, Dickens. A ficti- tious person invented by Sairy Gamp, for the purpose of enforcing her statements by quoting the opinions of Mrs. Harris upon the subject under discussion. Headstone, Bradley. Our Mutual Friend, Dickens. A schoolmaster in love' with Lizzie Hexain. Heep, Uriah. Dand Copperfteld, Dickens. A hyp- ocrite and sneak. Helena. All's Well that Ends Well, Shakespeare. Heroine of the play. Hero. Much Ado About Nothing, Shakespeare. Daughter of Leonato. Hexam, Lizzie. Our Mutual Friend, Dickens. Hero- ine of the novel. Holof ernes. As You Like it, Shakespeare. A school- master and pedant. Holt, Felix. Felix Holt, George Eliot. Hero of the novel. Honeyman, Charles. The Neiccomes, Thackeray. A fashionable preacher. Honor, Mrs. Tom Jones, Fielding. Sophia Western's waiting woman. Hopeful. Pilgrim's Progress. Bunyan. A pilgrim. Horatio. Hamlet, Shakespeare, The friend. 9$ 186 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Howe, Miss. Clarissa Harlowe, Richardson. Cla- rissa's friend. Hudibrag. ffudibras, Sutler. Hero of the poem. Hunter, Mr. and Mrs. Leo. Pickwick Papers, Dickens. Minor characters in the novel. lago. Othello, Shakespeare. The villain of the tragedy. Imogen. Cymbeline, Shakespeare. Heroine of the play. Isabella. Measure for Measure, Shakespeare. Her- oine of the play. Ivanhoe. Ivanhoe, Scott. Hero of the novel. Jack, Col. Col. Jack, DeFoc. The criminal hero of the tale. Jamer. Venice Preserved, Otivay. Hero of the poem. Jaques. As You Like It, Shakespeare. The melan- cftoly philosopher. Jarndyce, John. Bleak House, Dickens. A benevo- lent old gentleman. J avert. Les Miserables, Hugo. A detective. Jessica. Merchant of Venice, Shakespeare. Shy- lock's daughter. Jingle, Alfred. Pickwick Papers, Dickens. An amusing adventurer. Kilmansegg, Miss. The Golden Legend, Hood. The golden-legged neroine of the poem. Kitely. Every Man in His Humor, Jonson. A jeal- ous husband. Lady Bountiful. The Beaux Stratagem, Far- quhar. A generous lady. Laertes. Hamlet, Shakespeare. The son of Polonius, killed by his own sword. l.a 1 1 a Rookh. Lalla Rookh, Moore. Heroine of the poem, to whom Feramorz relates the stories told in the romance. Languish, I.ydia. The Rivals, Sheridan. Heroine of the play. Lear, King. King Lear, Shakespeare. Hero of the play. Leatberstocking, Natty. Pathfinder, Deerslayer, and other novels, Cooper. A huntsman and Indian fighter. Legree. Uncle Tom's Cabin, Stowe. Slave master. Leigh, Aurora. Aurora Leigh, Browning. Heroine of the romance. i.ila. Giaour. Byron. Heroine of the poem. Light wood. Mortimer. Our Mutual Friend, Dick- ens. Minor character in novel. Lismahago, Capt: Humphrey Clinker, Smollett. A retired officer. Little, Henry. Put Yourself in His Place, Reade. Hero of the novel. Little Nell. Old Curiosity Shop, Dickens. Heroine of novel. Locksley. Ivanhoe, Scott. One of Robin Hood's pseudonyms. Long Tom Coffin. Pilot, Cooper. A boatman. I. i>i hair. Lothair, Disraeli. Hero of novel, sup- posed pseudonym for the Marquis of Bute. Lothario. The Fair Penitent, Rowe. A rake. Lovelace. Clarissa Harlowe, Richardson. A rake. Lumpkiii, Tony. She Stoops to Conquer, Goldsm i/h. A country squire. Macbeth. Macbeth, Shakespeare. Hero of the play. MacdufT. Macbeth, Shakespeare. Rival of Macbeth. Maclvor, Flora. Rob Roy, Scott. Heroine of novel. Mackenzie, Mrs. Newcomes, Thackeray. A terma- gant widow. Malagrother, Sir Mingo. The Fortunes of Nigel, Scott. An ill-natured courtier. ilalaprop, Mrs. The Rivals, Sheridan. A charac- ter famed for verbal blunders. Malvolio. Twelfth Night, Shakespeare. Olivia's conceited steward. Manfred. Manfred, Byron. Hero of the tragedy. Mantalini. Nicholas Nickleby, Dickens. The absurd husband of the milliner in the story. Marchioness, The. Old Curiosity Shop, Dickens. Mr. Dick Swiveller's remarkable little nurse. Margaret. Faust, Goethe. The heroine of the tragedy. Marlow, Young. She Stoops to Conquer, Goldsmith. Hero of the play. Medora. The Corsair, Byron. Heroine of the poem. M.erflle, Mr, Little Dorrit, Dick.ens, A speculator. Meister, "Wilhelm. Wilhelm Meister, Goethe. Hero of the novel. Mephistopheles. Faust, Goethe. The Devil. Mercutio. Romeo and Juliet, Shakespeare. A won- derfully witty friend of Komeo's. Micawber, AVilkins. David Copperfield, Dickens. A remarkable character, always waiting for something to turn up. Miller, Daisy. Daisy Miller, Henry James. An alleged representative American girl. Minna. The Pirate, Scott. One of the heroines of the novel. Miranda. The Tempest, Shakespeare. Daughter of Prospero, beloved of Ferdinand ; heroine of the play. Monimia. The Orphan, Otway. Heroine of 'the poem. Mouldy. Henry IV., Shakespeare. One of FalstafT s recruits. Mucklewrath, Habakkuk. Old Mortality, Scott. A fanatical preacher. Neuchatel, Adriana. Endymion, Disraeli. A wealthy young lady. Newcome, Clive, Colonel, Ethel. The Newcomes, Thackeray. Characters in the best novel Thackeray has written. Nickleby, Mrs. Nicholas Nickleby, Dickens. The exasperating mother of the hero, Nicholas. Norna. The Pirate, Scott. An insane soothsayer. Nydla. Last Days of Pompeii, Bulwer. A blind flower girl. Obadiah. Tristram Shandy, Sterne. A servant. Oberon. Midsummer Night's Dream. Shakespeare. The King of Fairyland. Ochiltree, Edie. The Antiquary, Scott. A beggar of prominence. Oldbuck, Jonathan. The Antiquary, Scott. Hero of the novel. Old Mortality. Old Mortality, Scott. A gravestone cleaner. Olif aunt, Nigel. The Fortunes of Nigel, Scott. Hero of the novel. Ophelia. Hamlet, Shakespeare. Heroine of the tragedy. Orville, Lord. Evelina, Miss Burney. Evelina's lover. Othello. Othello, Shakespeare. Hero of the play, a Moor, husband of Desdemona. O'Trigger, Sir Lucius. The Rivals, Sheridan. A tire-eating Irishman. Overreach, Sir Giles. A New Way to Pay Old Debts, Massinger. A usurer. Page, Anne and Mrs. The Merry Wives of Windsor, Shakespeare. Characters in the play. Pamela. Pamela, Richardson. An intensely good young lady. Pane-loss. The Heir-at-Law, Colman. A pedantic teacher . Pantagruel. Pantagruel, Rabelais. Hero of the sketch. Partridge. Tom Jones, Fielding. The hero's trusty follower. Pecksniff, Charity, Mercy, Mr. Martin Chuzzle- ivit, Dickens. Characters in the story. Pendennis, Arthur, Helen, Major. Pendennis, Thackeray. Well drawn and forcible characters in the novel. Perdita. Winter's Tale, Shakespeare. Florizel's sweetheart. Petruchio. The Taming of the Shrew, Shakespeare, The hero, and husband of Katherine. Pickle, Peregrine. Percyrine Pickle, Smollett. Tiiu wandering and immoral hero of the novel. Pickwick, Samuel. Pickwick Papers, Dickens. Hero of the novel. Pierre. Venice Preserved, Otway. A conspirator. Pistol, Ancient. Merry Wires of Windsor and Henry I V., Shakespeare. Falstaff's most characteristic follower. Pleydell, Paulus. GUI/ Mannering, Scott. A lawyer. Poiiis, Ned. Henry IV., Shakespeare. A friend of Prince Hal. Portia. The Merchant of Venice, Shakespeare. Hero- ine of the play. Poundlitit, Peter. Old Mortality, Scott. A preacher. Primrose, Dr. Vicar of Wakefield, Goldsmith. The. Vicar of Wakefield. Primrose, Moses, Son of the preceding. LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 187 Prolius. Two Gentlemen of Verona, Shakesjieare One of the two gentlemen. Proudfute. Fair Maid < f Perth, Scott. A bonnet maker. Prynne, Hester. Scarlet Letter, Haicthorne. Hero- ine of novel. Pumblechook, Uncle. Great Expectations, Dick- ens. A bully and fraud. Pynchon, Phoebe. House of the .Seven Gables. Hawthorne. Heroine of the novel. Quasimodo. Our Lady of Notre Dame, Hugo. A monster. Quickly, Mrs. Henry 1 V., Shakespeare. The famed hostess of the Boar's Head Tavern, in Eastcheap. Qullp. Old Curiosity Shop, Dickens. A vicious awarf. Quince, Peter. Midsummer Night's Dream, Shakes- peare. Character in the interlude. Random, Roderick. Roderick Random, Smollett. Hero of the novel. Rashleigh. Rob Roy, Scott. The villain of the novel. Rasselas. Rasselas, Dr. Johnson. Prince of Abys- sinia, hero of the tale. Rattler, Jack. Roderick Random, Smollett. A nautical character. Ravenswood. The Bride of Lammermoor, Scott. Hero of the novel, lover of Lucy Ashton. Rebecca. Ivanhoe, Scott. A lovely Jewess. Redgauntlet. Redgauntlet, Scott. Hero of the novel. . Rob Roy. Rob Roy, Scott. A Scottish chief, hero of the novel. Roderigo. Othello, Shakespeare. lago's dupe. Romeo. Romeo and Juliet, Shakespeare. The hero of the play, lover of Juliet. Sabrina. Comus, Milton. River nymph. Sacripant. Orlando Furioso, Ariosto. King of Cir- cassia, in love with Angelica. Saddletree, Bartoline. Heart of Midlothian, Scott. A learned peddler. Sancho Panza. Don Quixote, Cervantes. Worthy squire of a worthy master; the right man in the right place. Sandford, Harry. Sandfordand Merton, Day. Hero of the story. Sangrado, Doctor. Gil Mas, Le Sage. A confirmed phlebotomist. Arabian Nights. The Sul- Scheherezade, Queen. taness who tells the tales. Scrub. The Beaux Stratagem, Farquhar, A face- tious valet. Sedley, Amelia. Vanity Fair, Thackeray. An ami- able woman, but of no great decision. Sedley, Joseph. Vanity Fair, Thackeray. A fat, bashful East Indian. Selim. Bride of Afatdos, Byron. The hero. Shaft on, Sir Piercie. The Monastery, Scott. A pedantic courtier. Shandy, Tristram. Tristram Shandy, Sterne. Hero of the story. Sharp, Rebecca. Vanity Fair, Thackeray. The designing heroine. Shylock. Merchant of Venice, Shakespeare. A vin- dictive Jew. Silvia. Two Gentlemen of Verona, Shakespeare. In love with Valentine. Skimpole, Harold. Bleak House, Dickens. Always out of money. Slipslop, Mrs. Joseph Andrews, Fielding. A waiting woman or doubtful character. Slop, Doctor. Tristram Shandy, Sterne. An iras- cible physician. Sly, Christopher. Taming of the Shrew, Shakes- peare. A drunken tinker. Slyme, Chevy. Martin Cttuzzlewit, JHckens. A " gent short of fuiids." Smyke. Nicholas JFickleby, Dickens. An ill-used, poor, nalf-witted pupil of Squeers. Sneer-well, Lady. School for Scandal, Sheridan. A gossip and backbiter. Snodgrass, Augustus. Pickwick Papers, Dickens. A poetical character. Snow, Lucy. Vittette, Charlotte Bronte. The heroine. Sparkler, Edmond. Little Dorrit, Dickens. Man of fashion. Squeers, Wackford. Nicholas Nickleby, Dickens. The brutal master of Dotbeboys Hall. Squeers, Master Wackford. In same. A spoiled child, the image of his father. St. Leon. St. Leon, William Godu'in. Hero of the tale, has the secret of perpetual youth, and the transmu- tation of metals. Steerforth, James. David Copperfifld, Dickens. Talented and profligate. Steggs, Miss Carolina \Vilhelmina Amelia. Vicar of Wakefleld, Goldsmith. A pretender to gentility. Stiggins, Elder. Pickinck Papers, Dickens. Affects pineapple rum and Mrs. Weller. Strap, Hugh. Roderick Random, Smollett. Rod- erick's follower. Surface, Sir Charles and Joseph. School for Sca/i- dal, Sheridan. The first a good-natured rake, the sec- ond a hypocrite. Swiveller, Dick. Old Curiosity Shop, Dickens. A gay rattlepate and a good fellow. Tamora. Titus Andronicus, Shakespeare. A Gothic queen. Tapley, Mark. Martin Chuzzlewit, Dickens. Hap piest when most miserable ; jolly when he ought to cry. Tappertit, Simon. Barnaby Riidge, Dickens. A ferocious little apprentice. Tartuffe. Tartuffe, Moliere. A hypocritical charac- ter. Teazle, Lady. School for Scandal, Sheridan. The heroine. Teazle, Sir Peter. School for Scandal, Sheridan. The old husband of Lady Teazle. Thersites. Iliad, Homer, and Troilus and Cressida, Shakespeare. A foul-mouthed Greek. Thwackum. Tom Jones, Fielding. A philosophical pedagogue. Tillemina. The Critic, Sheridan. A maiden very much cr.ossed in love. Timon. Timon of Athens, Shakespeare. A misan- thrope, hero of the play. Tinto, Dick. The Bride of Lammermoor and St. Ronan's Well, Scott. An artist. Titania. Midsummer Night's Dream, Shakespeare. The queen of fairies. Titmouse, Tittlebat. Ten Thousand a Year, Dr. Warren. Astonished Parliament by an imitation of Chanticleer. Tito. Romola, George Eliot. The handsome, but weak hero. Todgers, Mrs. Martin Chuzzteunt, Dickens. The keeper of a commercial boarding house. Toots. Dombey and Son, Dickens. A simple, eccen- tric fellow. Topsy. Uncle Tom's Cabin, Mrs. Stou-e. An igno- rant young slave girl. Touchstone. As You Like It, Shakespeare. A clown. Touchwood, Peregrine. St. Ronan's Well, Scott An irascible F,ast Indian. Tox, Miss. Dombey and Son, Dickens. A spinster, slightly curious. Traddles, Tom. David Copperfleld, Dickens. A bar- rister and friend of Copperftefd. Trapbois. The Fortunes of Nigel, Scott. A usurer. Trim, Corporal, Tristram Shandy, Sterne. The fol- lower of Uncle Toby. Trinculo. Tempest, Shakespeare. A jester. Triol, Marquis. The Pirate, Scott. A wealthy Zea- ander. Trotwood, Betsy. David Copperfleld, Dickens. The dndest of women, but with an aversion to trespassing donkeys. Trnlliber, Parson. Joseph Andrews, Fielding. An gnorant clergyman. Trunnion, Commodore Hawser. Peregrine Pickle, Smollett. An odd nautical character. Tulkinghorn, Mr. Bleak House, Dickens. A wily solicitor. Tulliver, Maggie. Mill on the Floss, George Eliot. The heroine. Tulliver, Tom. Mill on the Floss, George Eliot. The selfish, conceited brother of Maggie Tulliver. Tupman, Tracy. Pickwick Papers, Dickens. An obese admirer of lovely women. Turveydrop. Bleak House, Dickens. Dancing mas- ter and professor of deportment. Tusher, Thomas. Henry Esmond, Thackeray. JL. sycophantic clergyman. Twemlow, Mr. Our Mutual Friend, Dickens. A diner-out and friend of the Veneerings. Twist, Oliver. Oliver Twist, Dickens. Hero of the novel. 188 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Twysden, Talbott. Philip, Thackeray. A public ullice". Tybalt. Romeo and Juliet, Shakespeare. Nephew of Lady Capulet, slain by Romeo. Ulrica. Ivanhoe, Scott. An old witch. Una. The Faery Oueene, Spenser. The personification of Truth. Uncas. The Last of the Mohican, Cooper. A Mohi- can chief. Uncle Toby. Tristram Shandy, Sterne. A noble veteran, the real hero of the story. Uncle Tom. Uncle Tom's Cabin, Stowe. A pious and unfortunate slave, the hero of the novel. This book added more converts to the abolition party than any other factor. It is the most remarkable and effective American work printed. Varden, Dolly. Barnaby nudge, Dickens. The her- oine of the story. Yathek. Vathek, Beckford. The hero of Beckford's remarkable novel. Vernon, Di. Rob Roy, Scott. The heroine of the novel. Vholes. Bleak House, Dickens. A crafty lawyer. Viola. Twelfth A'ight, Shakespeare. A sweet little lady in love with Orsino. Virjfilia. Coriolamis, Shakespeare. Wife of Corio- lanus. Virginia. Paid and Virginia, St. Pierre. Heroine of the novel. Vivian. Idyls of the King, Tennyson. The mistress of Merlin, the Enchanter. Wadman, Widow. Tristram Shandy, Sterne. The lady who seeks to decoy Uncle Toby into matrimony. Wamba. Ivanlioe, Scott. A clown. Wardle, Mr. Pickwick Papers, Dickens. A jolly country gentleman, friend of Mr. Pickwick. Weeg, Silas. Our Mutual Friend, Dickens. The vil- lain of the novel. Weller, Tony and Samivel. Pickwick Papers, Dickens. Father and son; the latter, Mr. Pickwick's serving man, is undoubtedly the most original and most humorous creation of Dickens' exuberant fancy. Werther. Sorrows of Werther, Goethe. He'ro of the tale. Western, Squire and Sophia. Tom Jones, Fielding. Father and daughter, the latter the heroine of the novel. Whiskerandos, Don Ferolo. Tlie Critic, Sheridan. The lover of Tilburina. Wickfield, Agnes. David Copperfleld, Dickens. Heroine of the novel. Wild, Jonathan. Jonathan Wild, Fielding. A famous highwayman, and afterwards a noted thief- taker of London. Wildair, Sir Harry. The Constant Couple, and Sir Harry Wildair, Farqwtar. The hero of both plays. Wilfer, Bella, Laviiiia, IJegiiiald, and Mrs. Our Mutual Friend, Dickens. One of the most entertaining family groups in English fiction. The first is the charming heroine of the novel. Lavinia is her abom- inable sister; Reginald, her angelic papa; while the somber background is made by the gloomy mamma, whose other name in the family is The Tragic Muse. Wilfrid. Strteby, Scott. Hero of the poem. Williams, Caleb. Caleb Williams, Godu-in. The hero of a very remarkable Hovel. Wimble, Will. Spectator, Addison. Pseudonym for Thomas Morecraf t. Winkle, Kip Van. Sketch Book, Irring. The im- mortal sleeper of the Catskills. Wishfort, Lady. The Way of the World, Congreve. Heroine of the play. Worldly Wiseman, Mr. Pilgrim's Progress, Bun- yan. One of Christian's difficulties. Wray, Enoch. The Village, Crablte. A noble old man. Wren, Jenny. Our Mutual Friend, Dickens. The dolls' dressmaker. Wronghead, Sir Francis. The Provoked Husband, Vunburgh. Hero of the play. Yorick. Tristram Shandy, Sterne. A jester de- scended from the Yorick whose history is told by Hamlet. YMnlt. Tristram and Tseult, Matiheu- Arnold. A Cornish heroine of the olden time. Zadoc. Absalom and Achitophel, Dryden. Pseudo- nym for Sancroft, Archbishop of Canterbury. Zanoni. Zanoni, Btilwer. The mystical hero of the novel. Zelnco. Zeluco, Dr. J. Moore. The prodigal hero of the novel. Zobeide. Arabian Sights. The wife of the great Haroun al Raschid. Zadig. Zadig, Voltaire. The Babylonian hero of the novel. Zophiel. Paradise Lost, Milton. A swift-winged cherub. Zuleika. The Bride of Abydos, Byron. Heroine of the poem. LITERARY PSEUDOXYMS. A. L. O. E. ( = A Lady of England) Charlotte Maria Tucker. Adeler, Max Chas. Heber Clark. Alexander, Mrs Mrs. A. F. Hector. Anstey, F. F. Anstey Guthrie. Atlas (" World") Edmund Yates. Bab W. S. Gilbert. Bede, Cuthbert Rev. Edw. Bradley. Bell, Acton Anne Bronte^ Bell, Currer Charlotte Bronte. Bell, Ellis Emily Jane Bronte. Bibliophile, Jacob Paul'Lacroix. Bickerstaff, Isaac Dean Swift and Steele in Tatter. Biglou; Hosea J. Russell Lowell. Billings, Josh Henry W. Shaw. Bon (faultier Sir Theodore Martin and W. E. Aytoun. Boz Chas. Dickens. Breitmann, Hans Chas. G. Leland. Ca rmen, Sylva Queen of Roumania. I Conway, Hugh F. J. Fargus. I Cornwall, Barry B. W. Procter. I Crayon, Geoffrey Washington Irving. Danbury Neivsman J. M. Bailey. Ella Charles Lamb. Eliot, George Mrs. Mary Ann Cross (nia Evans). Ettrick Shepherd James Hogg. Fern, Fanny Mrs. Sara P. Parton. Graduate of Oxford John Rusk in. Greenwood, Grace Mrs. Lippincott. Greville, Henry Mme. Durand. H. H. Mrs. Helen Hunt Jackson. Hamilton, Gail Mary Abigail Dodge. Harland, Marion Mrs. M. V. Terhune . (nee Hawes). Historicus Sir W. Vernon Harcourt. Jean Paul J. P. F. Richter. Kerr, Orpheus C. R. H. Newell. Knickerbocker, Dietrich Washington Irving. L. E. L LetitiaE. Lan^,n. Lee, Vernon Violet Paget. i Loti, Pierre Julien Viaud. ! Lyall, Edna Ada Ellen Bayly. i Maitland, Thomas R. Buchanan. ! Malet, Lucas Mrs.Harri8on(/u ! eK.ingsley). Mathf-rs, Helen Mrs. Reeves (nie Matthews}, Mr, -filth, Oiren Earl of Lytton. Miller, Joaquin C. H. Miller. ffasby, Petroleum V D. R. Locke. JfortK, Christopher Prof. John Wilson. O'Doicd, Cornelius Charles Lever. Ogilvy, Gavin J. M. Barrie. Old Hinnpli rey G. Mogridge. Omnium, Jacob Matt. Jas. Higgins. Opium Eatfr T. De Quincey. Optic, Oliver Win. T. Adams. O f Rell, Max Paul Blouet. Ouida Louise de la Rame. I Douglas Jerrold. V J A.T. Quiller Couch. (Sam. G . G oodrich ; W.Martin; G. Mogridge; W.Tegg; J. Bennett. Phiz Hablot K. Browne. Pindar, Peter John Wolcot. Plymley, Peter Sydney Smith . Prout, Father F. S. Mahony. Onirinus Dr. Ddllinger. Rob Roy... John Macgregsr. LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 189 Sand, George Mme. Dudevant (n&e Dupin). Scriblerus, Martinus Swift, Pope, and Arbuth- not. Shirley John Skelton. Slick, Sam T. C. Haliburton. Stepniak eS. Kartcheffsky. Btretton, Hesba Sarah Smith. Syntax, Dr Wm. Combe. Titcomb, Timothy J. G. Holland. Titmarsh, Michael Anyelo. .W. M. Thackeray. Twain, Mark Samuel L. Clemens. Tytler, Sarah Miss H. Keddie. Uncle Remus Joel Chandler Harris. Urban, Sylvanus Editor of The Gentlema n's Magazine. Vacuus, Viator Thomas Hughes. Voltaire Franjois Marie Arouet. Ward, Artemus Chas. F. Browne. Warden, Florence Mrs. G. James. Wetherell, Elizabeth Susan Warner. Winter, John Strange Mrs. H. E. V. Stannard. Zadkiel Oapt. R. J. Morrison, R. N. FIRST NEWSPAPERS. In ancient Rome an official gazette, called Ada Diurna, was issued under the manage- ment and authority of the government, and posted up daily in some prominent place in the city. In Venice a paper of public intelligence, called Gazetta, was published in 1620 In England the first weekly newspaper was published by Nathaniel Butler in 1622 In England the first daily newspaper in 1709 In France the first weekly newspaper was published in 1631 In France the first daily in 1777 In America, at Boston, a newspaper was published in 1690 In Ireland the first newspaper, called Pue's Occurrences, appeared in 1700 In Ireland the oldest Dublin newspaper, The Freeman's Journal, in 1755 In Germany the first newspaper was pub- lished in 1715 In Holland the first newspaper was pub- lished in 1732 In Turkey the first newspaper was pub- lished in 1795 In Australia the first newspaper was pub- lished in 1803 THE FORTY IMMORTALS OF THE FRENCH ACADEMY. Year Elected. KAMK. Boru. Predecessor. 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 in 11 12 18 14 15 If) 17 18 19 20 L'l 22 23 24 J.-, 26 -l- 28 29 80 :;i 82 33 34 86 86 37 38 311 40 1855 1862 1870 1874 1870 1877 1878 1880 1881 1882 1884 1881 1886 1886 1888 1888 1890 18'Jl 1892 1893 1893 1893 1894 1894 1894 1894 1895 1890 1890 1896 1896 Ifr96 1897 1897 1898 1899 1899 1900 1900 1900 Ernest Wilfred Gabriel Baptiste Legouve... Jacques Victor Albe, Due de Broglie Paris, 1807 Ancolot Paris, 1821 .... Lacordaire Pere Emile Ollivier Marseilles 1825 Alfred Jean Frai^ois Mezieres Paris, 1826 ..St. Marc-Girardin Marie Louis Antoine Gaston Boissier Nimes 1823 Patin Victorien Sardou Paris, 1831 Edmund Armand, Due d' Audiff ret Pasquier Aime Joseph Edmund Rousse Ren6 Fra^ois Armand, Sully-Prudhomme. Paris, 1823 .Dupanloup (Bishop) Jules Favre DuvergierdeHauranne Paris, 1817 Paris, 1839 Lyons 1828 Francois Edouard Joachin Coppee Ludovic Halevy ... Paris, 1842 Paris, 1834 De Laprade Conite d'Haussonville Comte de Falloux Caro Vallery Clement Octave Greard Othemn P. de Citron Comte d' Huussonville Vire, 1828 Gurey, 1843 Limoges, 1840 Cuvillier-Fleury Eugene Marie Melchior, Vicomte de Vogue Charles Louis de Saulsesde Freycinet Louis Marie Julien Viaud (Pierre Loti) Ernest Lavisse Nice, 1848 Desire Nisard Foix 1828 . ...Emile Augier Rochefort, Ih5.> Octave Feujllet Nouvien, 1812 Jurien delaGraviere Xavier Marmier Rousset Vicomte Henri de Hornier Paul Louis Thureau-Dangin Lunel, 1825 Paris, 1837...: Toulon, 184J Lemoinne Albert Sorel Honfleur, 1842 Taine Jose Maria de Heredia Santiago, Cuba, 1842 Amiens, 1852 Paris, 1858 De Mazade Paul Bourget ...Maxime Du Camp Leconte de Lisle Henri Houssaye Orleans, 1853 . Jean Victor Duruy . . . Comte de Lesseps Jacques Anatole Thibault (Anatole France). Marquis Marie C. A. Costa de Beauregard. Gaston Bruno Paulin Paris Claude -Adhemar (Andr6 Theuriet) Paris, 1844 Nyotte, Savoy, 1S3 1 .).. Avenay, 1839 Marly-le-Roi, 1833... Paris, 1861 ...Camille C. Doucet Louis Pasteur ...Alexandre Dumas . . Leon Say Lumigny , 1841 Jules Simon Gabriel Hanotaux Beaure voir , 1853 Montbard, 1822 . . . Cliallemel-Lacour Due d' Aumale Orleans, 1859 Henri Meilhac Paul Deschanel Brussels, 1856 Neuilly, 1857 Herve Pailleron La Roche, 1847 Cherbuliez Paris 1827 Bertrand 190 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. NIBELUNGEN LIED. This famous historic poem, which is called the Iliad of Germany, was produced about 1210, and is divided into two parts, and thirty- two lieds or cantos. The first part ends \vith the death of Siegfried, and the second part with the death of Kriemhild. Siegfried, the youngest of the kings of the Netherlands, went to Worms to crave the hand of Kriemhild in marriage. While he was staying with Gunther, king of Burgundy (the lady's brother), he assisted him to obtain in marriage Brunhild, queen of Issland, who an- nounced publicly that he only should be her husband who could beat her in hurling a spear, throwing a huge stone, and in leaping. Sieg- fried, who possessed a cloak of invisibility, aided Gunther in these three contests, and Brunhild became his wife. In return for these services Gunther gave Siegfried his sister Kriemhild in marriage. After a time the bride and bridegroom went to visit Gunther, when the two ladies disputed about the rela- tive merits of their respective husbands, and Kriemhild, to exalt Siegfried, boasted that Gunther owed to him his victories and his wife. Brunhild, in great anger, now employed Hagan to murder Siegfried, and this he did by stab- bing him in the back while he was drinking from a brook. Thirteen years elapsed, and the widow mar- ried Etzel, king of the Huns. After a time she invited Brunhild and Hagan to a visit. Hagan, in this visit, killed EtzePs young son, and Kriemhild was like a fury. A battle ensued in which Gunther and Hagan were made prisoners, and Kriemhild cut off both their heads with her own hand. Hildebrand, horrified at this act of blood, slew Kriemhild ; and so the poem ends. Who was its author, or rather the man who cast it in its present form, is altogether unknown ; the attribution of it to minnesingers of Kurenberg in Upper Austria now finds very little acceptance. The Nibelungen Lied has been ascribed to Heinrich von Ofterdingen, a minnesinger ; but it certainly existed before that epoch, if not as a complete whole, in separate lays, and all that Heinrich von Ofterdingen could have done was to collect the floating lays, connect them, and form them into a complete story. The Volsunga Saga is the Icelandic ver- sion of the Nibelungen Lied. This saga has been translated into English by William Morris. There is a continuation of the poem, called Nibelungen Klage, or Lament for the Nibe- lungs, a production much inferior to the Nibelungen Lied. In spite of the uncouth versification of this last, it exercises a strong fascination upon the reader, owing to the gran- deur of its conception, its strong characteriza- tion, and tragic intensity. THE MEANING OF CHRISTIAN NAMES. Aaron, Hebrew, a mountain, a loft. Abel,< Hebrew, vanity. Abraham, Hebrew, the father of many. Absalom, Hebrett; the father of peace. Adam, Hebrew, red earth. Adolphus, Saxon, happiness and help. Adrian, Latin, one who helps. Alan, Celtic, harmony ; or Slavonic, a hound. Albert, Saxon, all bright. Alexander, Greek, a helper of men. Alfred, Saxon, all peace. Alonzo, form of Alphonso, q. r. Alphonso, German, ready or willing. Ambrose, Greek, immortal. Amos, Hebrew, a burden. Andrew, Greek, courageous. Anthony, Latin, flourishing. Archibald, German, a bold observer. Arnold, German, a maintainer of honor. Arthur, British, a strong man. ASfS } Latin > venerable, grand. Baldwin, German, a bold winner. Bardulph, German, a famous helper. Barnaby, Hebrew, a prophet's son. Bartholomew, Hebrew, the son of him who made the waters to rise. Beaumont, French, a pretty mount. Bede, Saxon, prayer. Benjamin, Zfeireii 1 , the son of a right hand CHRISTIAN NAMES OF MEX. Bennet, Latin, blessed. Bernard, German, bear's heart. Bertram, German, fair, illustrious. Bertrand, German, bright raven. Boniface, Latin, a well doer. Brian, French, having a thundering voice. Cadwallader,i?rfti',s/t, valiant in war. Caesar, Latin, adorned with hair. Caleb, Hebreu; a dog. Cecil, Latin, dim-sighted. Charles, German, noble spirited. Christopher, Greek, bearing Christ. Clement, Latin, mild tempered. Conrad, German, able counsel. Constantino, Latin, resolute. Cornelius, Latin, meaning uncer- tain. Crispin, Latin, having curled locks. Cuthbert, Saxon, known famously. Dan, Hebrew, judgment. Daniel, Hebreiv, God is judge. David, Hebreu; well-beloved. Denis, Greek, belonging to the god of wine. Douglas, Gaelic, dark gray. Duncan, Saxon, brown chief. Dunstan, Saxon, most high. Edgar, Saxon, happy honor. Edmund, Saxon, happy peace. Edward, Saxon, happy keeper. Edwin, Saxon, happy conqueror. Egbert, Saxon, ever "bright. Elijah, Hebrew, God the Lord. Elisha, Hebreu; the salvation of God. Emmanuel, Hebrew, God with us Enoch, Hebrew, dedicated. Ephraim, Hebreu; fruitful. Erasmus, Greek, lovely, worthy to be loved. Ernest, (.Ireek, earnest, serious. Esau, Hebrew, hairy. Eugene, Greek, nobly descended. Eustace, Greek, standing firm. | Evan or Ivan, British, the same as John. i Everard, German, well reported, i Ezekiel, Helrrew, the strength of God. Felix, Latin, happy. Ferdinand, German, pure peace. Fergus, Saxon, manly strength. Francis, German, free. Frederic, German, rich peace. Gabriel, Hebrew, the strength of God. Geoffrey, German, joyful. George, Greek, a husbandman. Gerard, Saxon, strong with a spear. Gideon, Hebrew, a breaker. Gilbert, Saxon, bright as gold. Giles, Greek, a little goat. Godard, German, a godly disposi- tion. Godfrey, German, God's peace. Godwin, German, victorious in God. Griffith, British, having great faith. Guy, French, a leader. Hannibal, Punic, a gracious lord. Harold, Saxon, a ehampion. Hector, Greek, a stout defender. Henry, German, a rich lord. Herbert. German, a bright lord, LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 191 Hercules, Greek, the glory of Hera or Juno. TTezekiah, Hebrew, cleaving to the Lord. Horace, Latin, meaning uncertain. Horatio, Italian, worthy to be be- held. Howell, British, sound or whole. Hubert, German, a bright color. Hugh, Dutch, high, lofty. Humphrey, German, domestic peace. Ignatius, Latin, fiery. Ingram, German, of angelic purity. Isaac, Hebrew, laughter. Jabez, Hebrew, one who causes pain. Jacob, Hebrew, a supplanter. James or Jacques, beguiling. Joab, Hebrew, fatherhood. Job, Hebrew, sorrowing^. Joel, Hebrew, acquiescing. John, Hebrew, the grace of the Lord. Jonah, Hebrew, a dove. Jonathan, Hebrew, the gift of the Lord. Joseelin, German', just. Joseph, Hebrew, addition. Joshua, Hebrew, a Savior. Josiah or Josias, Hebrew, the lire of the Lord. Julius, Latin, soft hair. Lambert, Saxon, a fair lamb. Lancelot, Spanish, a little lance. Laurence, Latin, crowned with laurels. Lazarus, Hebrew, destitute of help. Leonard, German, like a lion. Leopold, German, defending the people. Lewis or Louis, Frencli, the defender of the people. Lionel, Latin, a little lion. Llewellin, British, like a lion. Llewellyn, Celtic, lightning. Lucius, Latin, shining. Luke, Greek, a wood or grove. Ada, German, same as Edith, q. v. Adela, German, same as Adeline, q, v. Adelaide, German, same as Adeline, q. v. Adeline, German, a princess. Agatha, Greek, good. Agnes, German, chaste. Alethea, Greek, the truth. Althea, Greek, hunting. Alice, Alicia, German, noble. Alma, Latin, benignant. Amabel, Latin, lovable. Amy, Amelia, French, a beloved. Angelina, Greek, lovely, angelic. Anna, or Anne, Hebrew, gracious. Arabella, Latin, a fair altar. Aureola, Latin, like gold. Aurora, Latin, morning brightness. Barbara, Latin, foreign or strange. Beatrice, Latin, making happy. Bella, Italian, beautiful. Benedicta, Latin, blessed. Bernice, Greek, bringing victory. Bertha, Greek, bright or famous. Bessie, short form of Elizabeth, q. v. Blanche, French, fair. Bona, Latin, good. Bridget, Irish, shining bright. Camilla, Latin, attendant at a sacri- fice. Carlotta, Italian, same as Charlotte, q. v. Caroline, feminine of Carolus, the Latin of Charles, 'nolile spirited. Cassandra, Greek, a reformer of men. Catherine, Greek, pure or clean. Cecilia, Latin, from Cecil. Cecily, a corruption of Cecilia, q. v. Charity, Greek, love, bounty- Manfred, German, great peace. Mark, Latin, a hammer. Martin, Latin, martial. Matthew, Hebrew, a gift or present. Maurice, Latin, sprung of a Moor. Meredith, British, the roaring of the sea. Michael, Hebrew, Who is like God ? Morgan, .British, a mariner. Moses, Hebrew, drawn out. Nathaniel, Hebrew, the gift of God. Neal, French, somewhat black. Nicholas, Greek, victorious over the people. el, Noel, French, belonging to one's nativity. Norman, French, one born in Nor- mandy.' Obadiah, Hebreiv, the servant of the Lord. Oliver, Latin, an olive. Orlando, Italian, counsel for the land. Orson, Latin, a bear. Osmund, Saxon, house peace. Oswald, Saxon, ruler of a house. Owen, British, well descended. Patrick, Latin, a nobleman. Paul, Latin, small, little. Paul inns, Latin, little Paul. Percival, French, a place in France. Percy, English, adaptation of "pierce eye." Peregrine, Latin, outlandish. Peter, Greek, a rock or stone. Philip, Greek, a lover of horses. Phineas, Hebrew, of bold coun- tenance. Ralph, contracted from Randolph, or Randal, or Ranulph, Saxon, pure help. Raymond, German, quiet peace. Reuben, Hebrew, the son of vision. Reynold, German, a lover of purity. Richard, Saxon, powerful. Robert, German, famous in counsel. CHRISTIAN NAMES OF WOMEN. Charlotte, French, all noble. Chloe, Greek, a green herb. Christiana, Greek, belonging to Christ. Clara, Latin, clear or bright. Clarissa, Latin, clear or bright. Constance, Latin, constant. Dagmar, German, joy of the Danes. Deborah, Hebrew, a bee. Diana, Greek, Jupiter's daughter. Dorcas, Greek, a wild rose. Dorothea or Dorothy, Greek, the gift of God. Edith, Saxon, happiness. Eleanor, Saxon, alt fruitful. Eliza, Elizabeth, Hebrew, thb oath of God. Ellen, another form of Helen, q. r. Emily, corrupted from Amelia. Emma, German, a nurse. Esther, Hesther, ffebreiv, secret. Eudoia, Greek, prospering in the way. Eudora, Greek, good gift. Eudosia, Greek, good gift or well given. Eiigenia, French, well-born. Eunice, Greek, fair victory. Eva, or Eve, Hebrew, causing life. Fanny, diminutive of Frances, q. v. Fenella, Greek, bright to look on. Flora, Latin, flowers. Florence, Latin, blooming, flourish- ing. Frances, German, free. Gertrude, German, all truth. Grace, Latin, favor. Hagar, Hebrew, a stranger. Hadassah, Hebrew, form of Esther, q.v. Hannah, Hebrew, gracious. Roderick, German, rich in fame. Roger, German, strong counsel. Roland or Rowland, German, coun- sel for the land. Rollo, form of Roland, q. v. Rufus, Latin, reddish. Samson, Hebrew, a little son. Samuel, Hebrew, heard by God. Saul, Hebrew, desired. Sebastian, Greek, to be reverenced. Seth, Hebrew, appointed. Silas, Latin, sylvan or living in the woods. Simeon, Hebrew, hearing. Simon, Hebrew, obedient. Solomon, Hebrew, peaceable. Stephen, Greek, a crown or garland. S within, Saxon, very high. Theobald, Saxon, tola over the people. Theodore, Greek, the gift of God. Theodosius, Greek, given of God. Theophilus, Greek, a lver of God. Thomas, Hebrew, a twin. Timothv, Greek, a f earer of God. Titus, Greek, meaning uncertain. Toby, or Tobias, Hebrew, the good- ness of the Lord. Valentine, Latin, powerful. Victor, Latin, conqueror. Vincent, Latin, conquering. Vivian, Latin, living. Walter, German, a conqueror. Wai win, German, a conqueror. Wilfred, Saxon, bold and peaceful. William, German, defending many. Zaccheus, Syriac, innocent. Zachary, Hebrew, remembering the Lord. Zachariah, Hebrew, remembered of the Lord. Zebedee, Syriac, having an inheri- tance. Zedekiah, Hebrew, the justice of the Lord. Harriet, German, head of the house. Helen, or Helena, Greek, alluring. - Henrietta, fern, and dim. of Henry, q.v. Hepnzibah, Hebrew, my delight is in her. Hilda, German, warrior maiden. Honora, Latin, honorable. Huldah, Hebrew, a weasel. Isabella, Spanish, fair Eliza. Jane, or Jeanne, fern, of John, q. r. Janet, Jeanette, little Jane. Jemima, Heltrew, a dove. Joan, Hebrew,fem. of John, q. r. Joanna, or Johanna, form of Joan, q.v. Joyce, French, pleasant. Judith, Hebrew, praising. Julia, Juliana, feminine of Julius, tt.V. Katherine, form of Catherine, q. r. Keturah, Hebrew, incense. Keziah, Hebrew, cassia. Laura, Latin, a laurel. Lavinia, Latin, of Latmm. Letitia. Latin, joy or gladness. Lilian, Lilv, Latin, a lily. Lois, Greek, better. Louisa, German, fern, of Louis, q. r. Lucretia, Latin, a chaste Roman lady. Lucy, Latin, feminine of Lucius. Lvdia, Greek, descended from Lud. UM&l. Latin, lovely or lovable. Madeline, fonn of Magdalen, q. r. Magdalen, Si/raic, magnificent. Margaret, Greek,:i pearl. Maria, Marie,/or/s o/Mary, q. r. Martha, Hebmv, bitterness. Mary, Hebrew, bitter. Matilda, German, a lady of honor. 192 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Maud, German, dim. form of Ma- tilda, q. v. May, Latin, month of May, or dim. of Mary, q. v. Mercy, English, compassion. Mildred, Saxon, speaking mild. Minnie, dim. of Margaret, q. v. Naomi, ffebreie, alluring. Nest, British, the same as Agnes. Nicola, Greek, feminine of Nicholas. Olive, Olivia, Latin, an olive. Olympia, Greek, heavenly. Ophelia, Greek, a serpent. Parnell, or Petronilla, little Peter. Patience, Latin, bearing patiently. Paulina, Latin,feminine o/Paulinus. Penelope, Greek, a weaver. Persis, Greek, destroying. Philadelphia, Greek, brotherly love. Philipna, Greek,feminine of 'Philip, Phoebe, Greek, the light of life. Phvllis. Greek, a green bough . Pollv, variation of Molly, dim. of Mary.tf. v. Priscilla, Latin, somewhat old. Prudence, Latin, discretion. Psyche, Greek, the soul. Rachel, Hebrew, a lamb. Rebecca, Hebreiv, fat or plump. Rhoda, Greek, a rose. Rosa, or Rose. Latin, a rose. Rosalie, or Rosaline, Latin, little Rose. Rosalind, Latin, beautiful as a rose. Rosabella, Italian, a fair rose. Rosamond, Saxon, Rose of peace. Roxana, Persian, dawn of day. Ruth, Hebrew, trembling, or beauty. Sabina, Latin, sprung from the Sa- bines. Salome, Hebrew, perfect. Sapphira, Greek, like a sapphire stone. Sarah, Hebrew, a princess. Selina, Greek, the moon. Sibylla, Greek, the counsel of God. Sophia, Greek, wisdom. Sophronia, Greek, of a sound mind Susan, Susanna, Hebrew, a lily. Tabitha, Syriac, a roe. Temperance, Latin, moderation. Theodosia, Greek, given by God. Tryphena, Greek, delicate. Tryphqsa, Greek, delicious. Victoria, Latin, victory. Vida, Erse,f nuinineof David. Ursula, Latin, a she bear. Walburga, Saxon, gracious. Winifred, Saxon, winning peace. Zenobia, Greek, life from Jupiter. MISUSE OF WORDS. A and An. A is used before all words beginning with consonants except those beginning with silent II, or when the word beginning with H is accented on some other syllable than the first. An is to be used before all vowel sounds, silent H, and when the words beginning with H are accented on some other syllable than the first. Ability (for capacity). Capacity is the power of re- ceiving and retaining knowledge with facility. Ability is the power of applying knowledge to practical pur- poses. Abortive (for unsuccessful). A plan may be abortive, but an act cannot. Acceptance (for acceptation). " No word is more vague in its general acceptance," should be " in its acceptation." Accident (for wound). " Witch hazel cures acci- dents." Accredit (for credit). Few, except very bad writers, employ it as a robust substitute for credit or believe. Administer (for deal). "The blows were adminis- tered [dealt] by Policeman Johnson." Admire (for desire). It is an error to follow this verb with an infinitive, as " I admire to see a man con- sistent." Doubly wrong, therefore, is the expression, " I should admire to go with you." Aggravate (for irritate, worry, annoy). " There would be no danger in aggravating Violet by this ex- pression of pity." Better " irritating." Agriculturalist (for agriculturist). The first is never correct. Ain't. The only legitimate contraction of I am not is I'm not. Allow (for say, assert, express opinion). We may allow or admit that which we have disputed, but of which we have been convinced ; or we may allow certain premises as the basis f argument; but" we assert, not allow, our own opinions. Allude (for say or mention). Allude (from l-udo, lu- dere, to play) means to indicate jocosely, to hint at playfully: and so to hint at in a slight, passing manner. Allusion is the byplay of language. Alone (for only). Alone means " quite by one's self," and is always an adjective, differing herein from only, which is both an adverb and an adjective. In some cases the words may be used indifferently, but as a rule there is a marked distinction between alone and only, as " I did it alone," quite by myself; " an only daugh- ter ; " " they differ on one point only." Alternately (for by turns). This word should be used only in speaking of two objects or classes of ob- jects. Whately rightly defines alternative as a choice between two objects. Amateur (for novice). A professional actor who is new and unskilled in his art is a novice, and not an ama- teur. An amateur may be an artist of great experience and extraordinary skill. Among: (for between, when speaking of two). Gould says it should not be written amongst, but Worcester and Webster give both forms. And. The commonest case in which it is violated is where and introduces a relative clause, no relative hav- ing occurred before, as "I have a book printed at Antwflrp, and which was once possessed by Adam Smith." And for to is a frequent misuse. "Try to do it," not " try and do it." Anyways (for anyway). This is a, frequent misuse. Anywheres (for anywhere). Belongs to the class of words frequently misused. Apprehend (for comprehend). Apprehend denotes the laying hold of a thing mentally, so as to understand it clearly, at least in part. Comprehend denotes the embracing: or understanding it in all its compass and extent. We may apprehend many truths which we do not comprehend. As (for that). " I don't know as [that] I can go." Assurance (for fire insurance). Webster and Worces- ter agree that this word is limited to life insurance. At (for by). " I bought it at auction " is correct Eng- lish, but " It is to be sold at auction " is American only. At all. A needless expletive, as " I did not like the play at all." Avocation (for vocation). Vocation is one's pursuit, employment, business; avocation refers to incidental or pleasure pursuits. Acoustics takes a singular verb. Names of sciences, such as mathematics, economics, politics, physics, gym- nastics, etc., are now regarded as singular in number. Awful (lor very or for ugly). " The crowd present was awfully boisterous." Bad. " I feel bad," not "I feel badly." Balance (for rest, remainder). Balance refers to the ledger account, and does not properly convey the same meaning as remainder. Banquet (for dinner, supper). A banquet is a public, sumptuous feast. Beau, a word used by the uneducated instead of escort. Been to (for been). " Where have you been to ? " Between (for among). Between is only for two by and twain. Carefully avoid such expressions as " Be- tween every stitch." Blame it on (for accuse). A common vulgarism. Bountiful (for plentiful). Bountiful applies to per- sons, not to things, and has no reference to quantity. Bourn (for place, instead of boundary). Frequently misused. Bravery (for courage). Bravery is inborn, instinc- tive. Courage is the product of reason, calculation. Men who are simply brave are careless, while the cour- ageous man is always cautious. Bring (for fetch). Bring expresses motion toward, not away. A boy is properly told to take his books to school and to bring them home. A gardener may say to his helper, " Go and bring me yonder rake," 'but he might better say, " Fetch me yonder rake." Bound (for determined;). " He is bound to go West." Bursted (for burst). " The pipes bursted during the cold weather." But (for that or if). "I have no doubt but he will come to-night." But that (for that). " I should not wonder but that was the case." By (for upon). " By [upon] returning it to this office the finder will be rewarded. Calculate (for expect). "I calculate [expect] logo to-morrow. Can (for may). The boy says, " Can I go down street ?" when he means " May I ? " It is a question not of possibility but of permission. LANGUAGE AND LITERATURE. 193 Caption (for heading). Not sanctioned by good writers. Casket (for coffin). A newspaper writer facetiously Intimated that a man in a casket is not quite so dead as a man in a coffin. Citizen (for person). A citizen is a person who has certain political rights. To say " Several citizens car- ried the victims of the accident into a shop, "would be as absurd as to say, "several church members." Come (for go). " I am coming to pay you a visit." Coming is right. Comment-* to (for begin). Omit to. We begin to write. We commence writing. Compnlsion (for obligation). The former is a phys- ical, the latter a moral, necessity. Confess to (for confess). " I confess to a little curios- ity on this subject." The natural rejoinder was, " Well, did the little curiosity absolve you ? " Construe (for construct). Writers construct ; read- ers construe. Consummate (for perform). ." The marriage was con- summated [performed] at Paris, last April." Contemptible (for contemptuous). "To a gentle- man who, at the close of a fierce dispute with Porson, exclaimed, 'My opinion of you is most comtemptible, sir," he retorted, ' I never knew an opinion of yours that was not contemptible.' " Continual (for continuous). A continuous action is one which is uninterrupted ; continual is that which is constantly renewed and recurring, though it may be in- terrupted as frequently as i t is renewed. Continue on is often erroneously used for continue. Corporeal, frequently misused for corporal, espe- cially of punishment. Cortege (for procession). A cortege is a procession, but every procession is not a cortege. Credible (for credulous). " He is very credible [credu- lous]." Creditable (for credible). " I am creditably [credi- bly] informed." Dead and buried, dead and gone, and similar expres- sions are to be deprecated. Those who have died have usually been buried, and they are also gone. Dearest. "A gentleman once began a letter to his bride, thus : My dearest Maria.' The wife replied : ' My dear John, I beg that you will mend either your morals or your grammar. You call me your " dearest Maria " ; am I then to understand that you have other Marias?' " Deduction (for Induction). Induction is the mental process by which we ascend to the delivery of special truths ; deduction is the ^process by which the law gov- erning particulars is derived from a knowledge of the law governing the class to which particulars belong. Demoralized (for scared). "The horse, in addition to losing all the hair on his tail, became considerably demoralized." Departure. To take one's departure is a corruption of the accurate form, " to take one's leave." Differ with, in opinion; differ from, in appear- ance. Die -with (for die of). A man dies of smallpox, not with smallpox. Dock (for wharf or pier). A dock is an open place without a roof, into which anything is received, and where it is inclosed for safetv. The shipping around a city lies at wharfs and piers, but goes into docks. Done should be used only with has, had, or have ; frequently misused for did. Don't (for doesn't). Don't is the contraction for do not ; doesn't the contraction for does not. Doubt but (for doubt). " I have no doubt but that it is so." Kacli and every (often followed by a plural verb). " When I consider how each of these professions are [is] crowded." Emblem (for motto, sentiment). The figure is the emblem ; not the accompanving motto. Enthuse (for inspirit). This word is not sanctioned by good usage. Epithet (as necessarily decrying). Is usually and erroneouslv applied to derogative adjectives. Equally as well (for equally well). "He plays equally as well [equally well]." Every once in a while is au absurd and meaningless expression. Every (for entire or all). " Rendered them every ' assistance," is absurdly wrong. Kvery is separated, and can be applied only to a whole composed of many indi- viduals. It is always singular in number. Execute does not mean to put to death. The law is executed when the criminal is nanged or imprisoned. Expect (for suppose). Expect refers only to that which is to come, and which, therefore, is looked for. We cannot expect backward. Female (for woman). A vulgar misuse of English. From out (for from). " From out the castle. Farther, further. Farther properly signifies dis- tance, further degree or quantity. " As he walked far- ther he saw they were further along with the work." Future (for subsequent). " Her future life was vir- tuous and fortunate." First two. Often written and spoken, two first. Gent and pants. " Let these words go together, like the things they signify. The one always wears the other." Gentleman, lady (for man, woman). The most im- portant rule to observe is that where adjectives are used the nouns must be man, woman not a polite gentleman, or a lovely lady ; but a polite man, a lovely woman. Girl (for daughter). A father, on being requested by a rich and vulgar fellow for permission to marry " one of his girls," gave this rather crushing reply : " Cer- lainly. Which one would you prefer the waitress or the cook ?" Graduated (for was graduated). Students do not graduate, but are graduated. " I graduated [was grad- uated] in 1876." Great, big. Frequently used for large. Gums (for overshoes).* "Emily is outside, cleaning her gums upon the mat." Get signifies possession obtained by exertion. " He has [not nas got] red hair." Had ought (for ought). " You had ought to have been with me." Haven't no. Omit no. Do not use two words mean- ing no in the same sentence. Healthy, healthful, wholesome. Healthy refers to living tilings. " The man is healthy." " The food is wholesome." " The surroundings are wholesome." Is (for are). " Their general scope and tendency is [are] not remembered at all." It is I (not me). It is he (not him). It is she (not her). Jewelry (for particular jewels). Its use in the latter sense is always to be preferred. Think of Cornelia pointing to the Gracchi, " These are my jewelry." Kids (for kid gloves). Colloquial and should not be used. Last (for latest). " I have received your latest [not last] letter." Lay (for lie). Remember that lay expresses transitive action, and lie means rest. We lay the book on the table and the book lies where we have placed it. ILearn (for teach). Learn means to acquire knowl- edge; teach, to impart it. This use of learn is found in respectable writers, but is now deemed improper, as well as inelegant. Leave (without an object). "Anna Louise Carey will leave the stage," announces an exchange. " Thanks, Annie ; we were afraid you would take the stage with you. So kind to leave it)" rejoins the critic. Leave (for let). " Leave [let] me be." Let's (for let). " Well, farmer, let's you ami I goby ourselves." Liable. Frequentlv misused for likely. Lit (for lighted). Much censured as an Americanism. Look (followed by an adverb). " Miss Marlowe looked charmingly." Just as correct to say " Miss Marlowe looked gladly, or madly, or sadly, or delightedly." Loan (for lend). The former word is a noun, the verbal form of which is to lend. Mutual (for common). It should always convey a sense of reciprocity. Nice is now applied to a sermon, to a jam-tart, to a young man, in short, to everything. The word should be used with extreme caution. Nor (for than, after comparative). " Better nor fifty bushel." Notion (for inclination). "1 have a notion to go. Of course incorrect. None is etymologically singular. " .None but the brave deserves the fair," wrote Dryden. Off of (for off). "A yard off of the cloth." Over his signature (for under his signature). A let- ter is issued under or by the authority of the writer's signature. Particle (for at all). As " not a particle," for "not atalL" 194 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS- Past two weeks. Better, the last two weeks. Patron (for customer) is wrong. Pile (for amount). " He owed me quite a pile." Party (for person). Avoid it. Posted (for informed). A colloquialism in the United States. Must be used with caution. Previous (for previously). " Previous to my going." Prolific (for frequent). " It was a prolific [frequent] source of annoyance." Promise (for assure). " I promise [assure] you I was astonished.' 1 Proof (for evidence). Proof is the result of evidence. Quite is not to be used for nearly. Quite means wholly, completely, or thoroughly. Raise (for bring up, educate). A peculiarity of the Southern states. Real (for very). " Real [very] nice." Reckon (for conjecture, conclude). Provincial and vulgar. Restive (for restless). Restive signifies stubborn, unwilling to move, balkv. Remember (for recollect). We remember without effort. Recollect with some exertion. Retire (for to go to bed). A vulgar but unfortu- nately very common euphemism. Reverend (for the reverend). The article is abso- lutely required. Right (for obligation). "The cars have as good a right to be stopped as the carriages." Rise up (for rise). " He rose up and left the room." Sabbath (for Sunday). Sunday is the name of the day, while Sabbath is the name of an institution. Shall and Will. Shall, in an affirmative sentence, in the first person, and will in the second and third per- sons, merely announce future action. Thus, " I shall go to town to-morrow." " I shall wait for better weatljer." " We shall be glad to see you." " I shall soon be twenty." " We shallnet out early, anil shall try toarrive by noon." " You iritl be pleased." " You will soon be twenty." " You will find him honest." " He will go with us." Shall, in an affirmative sentence, in the second and third person, announces the speaker's intention to con- trol. Thus, " You shall hear me out." " You shall go, sick or well." " lleshallbe my heir." " They shall go, whether they want to go or not." Witt, in the first pe_rson, expresses a promise, an- nounces the speaker's intention to control, proclaims a determination. Thus, " I will [I promise to] assist you." " I will [I am determined to] have my right." " We will [we promise to] come to you in the morning." Shall, in an interrogative sentence, hi the first and third person, consults the will or judgment of another; in the second person, it inquires concerning the inten- tion orfutureaction of another. Thus, " Shalll go with you?" "When shall we see you again?" "When shall I receive it ? " " When shall I get well ? " " When shall we get there?" "Shall he come with us?" " Shatt you demand indemnity?" "Khali you go to town to-morrow ? " " What shall you do about it ? '' Will, in an interrogative sentence, in the second per- son, asks concerning the wish, and, in the third person, concerning the purpose or future action of others. Thus, " Will you have an apple ?" " Will you go with me to my uncle's?" "Will he be of the party?" " Will they be willing to receive us ? ' " When ivill he be here?" Will cannot be used interrogatively in the first person singular or plural. We cannot say, " Will I go?" " Will I help you ? " " Will I be late ? " " Will we get there in time ? " " Will we see you again soon ? " Official courtesy, in order to avoid the semblance of compulsion, conveys its comniandsin the yon will form instead of the strictly grammatical you shall form. It says, for example, " You will proceed to Key West, where you will find further instructions awaiting you." A clever writer on the use of shall and will says that whatever concerns one's beliefs, hopes, fears, likes, or dislikes, cannot be expressed in conjunction with I will. Are there no exceptions to this rule ? If I say, " I think I sfuill go to Philadelphia to-morrow," I convey the impression that my going depends upon circum- stances beyond my control ; but if I say, " I think I will go to Philadelphia to-morrow," I convey the impression that my going depends upon circumstances within my control that my going or not depends on mere incli- nation. We certainly must say, " I fear that I shall lose it;" " I hope that I shall be well ; " "I believe that I sfea^have the ague;" "I hope that I shall not be left alone ; " "I fear that we shall have bad weather ; " "I shall dislike the country ;" "I shall like the perform- ance." The writer referred to, asks, " How can one say, ' I will have the headache ? '" I answer, very easily, as every young woman knows. Let us see : ""Mary,"you know you promised John to drive out with him to- morrow; how shall you get out of it?" "Oh, I will have the headache!" We request that people will do thus or so, and not that they sliall. Thus, " It is re- quested that no one will leave the room." Shall is rarely, if ever, used for will; it is will that is used for shall. Expressions like the following are com- mon : " Where will you be next week ? " " I will be at home." " We will have dinner at six o'clock." " How trill you go about it?" "When will you begin?" " When will you set out ?" " What will you do with it ? " In all such expressions, when it is a question of mere future action on the part of the person speaking or spoken to, the auxiliary must be shall and not u"ill. Should and ^vo^dd follow the regimen of shall and will. Would is of ten used for should ; should rarely for would. Correct speakers say, " I should go to town to- morrow if I had a horse." " I shoidd not ; I should wai t for better weather." " We should be glad to see you." "We should have started earlier, if the weather had been clear." "I should like to go to town, and would go if I could." "I would assist you if I could." " I should have been ill if I had gone." "I would I were home again ! " "I should go fishing to-day if I were home." " I should so like to go to Europe ! " "I should prefer to see it first." "I should be delighted." " I should be glad to have you sup with me." "I knew that I should be ill." "I feared that I should lose it." " I hoped that I shmdd see him." " I thought that I should have the ague." " I hoped that I should not be left alone." "I was afraid that we should have bad weather." " I knew I should dislike the country." " I should not like to do it, and mil not [determination] unless compelled." Shut to ( for shut). " Shut the door to." Somewheres(f or somewhere). " The farmer had gone out somewheres." Sparrowgrass, a corruption of asparagus. Spoonsful (for spoonfuls). " Two spoonsful [spoon- fuls] at bedtime." Stopping (for staying). "At what hotel are you stop- ping ? ft Such (for so). "Such an extravagant young man," for " So extravagant a young man." Than (for when). "The admiral was hardly in the channel than [when] he was driven to sea by the storm." Think for (for think). " You will find that he knows more than you think for." Those sort of things. "I never approved of those [that] sort of things." Those who (for they that). That and those, as de- monstrative adjectives, refer backward, and are not therefore well suited for forward reference. To (for at). " When I was to [at] home." Try and (for try to). " I will try and [to] come to- morrow." Unique (for beautiful). A thing is unique when it is the only one of its kind, whether it is good or bad, ugly or beautiful. Vengeance (for revenge). Vengeance should never be ascribed save to God or to men acting as the execu- tors of his righteous doom. Vulgar (for immodest). The word vulgarity was for- merly thought to mean indecent ; now it simply means bad manners. Vulgar people are low, mean, coarse, plebeian, no matter where the wheel of fortune has placed them. Warn't (for wasn't). Heard only as a vulgarism. Was (for is, of general truths). " Truth is eternal." In the expression of general and necessary truths the present tense is to be preferred to the past tense. Ways (for way). " He was a long ways [way] behind." What (for that). " I don't know but what [that] I shall go." Which (for that). " She would be all which [that] the emperor could desire." Widow woman (for widow). Uselessly redundant. You was (for you were). You takes the plural form of a verb- NAPOLEON BONAPARTE. Book III. History and Biography. History and Biography. Chronological Eras. The year 1899 corresponds to the year 7407-8 of the Byzan- tine era ; to 5659-60 of the Jewish era, the year 5650 beginning at sunset on September 4 ; to 2652 since the foundation of Rome ac- cording to Varro ; to 2675 of the Olympiads (the third year of the 669th Olympiad begin- ning July 1, 1899) ; to 2559 of the Japanese era, and to the 32d year of the Meiji ; to 1316- 17 of the Mohammedan era or the era of the Hegira, the year 1317 beginning on May 12, 1899. The 125th year of the Independence of the United States of America begins on July 4, 1900. Date of Beginning of Epochs, Eras, and Periods. BEGAN. 5598, Sept. 1 5508, Sept. 1 5502, Aug. 29 5492. Sept. ' 4713, Jan. 4008, Oct. 3761, Oct. 2015, Oct. 776, July 753, Apr. 24 747, Feb. 26 432, July 15 312, Sept. 1 166, Nov. 24 125, Oct. 19 110, Oct. 1 48, Sept. 45, Jan. 38, Jan. 30, Jan. 27, Feb. 1, Jan. 69, Sept. 1 284, Sept. 17 295, Nov. 12 552, July 7 622, July 16 632, June 16 Divisions of Time. The interval be- tween two consecutive transits of a fixed star over any meridian or the interval during which the earth makes one absolute revolution on its axis is called a Sidereal Day, and is invariable, while the interval between two consecutive transits of the Sun over any meridian is called an Apparent Solar Day, and its length varies from day to day by reason of the variable motion of the earth in its orbit, and the incli- nation of this orbit to the equator, on which time is measured. A Mean Solar Day is the average or mean of all the apparent solar days in a year. Mean Solar Time is that shown by a well-regulated clock or watch, while Apparent Solar Time is that shown by a well-constructed sundial ; the difference between the two at any time is the Equation of Time, and may amount to 16 NAME. Grecian Mundane Era is. i Civil Era of Constantinople " Alexandrian Era " Ecclesiastical Era of Antiocb " Julian Period Mundane Era Jewish Mundane Era Era of Abraham Era of the Olympiads Roman Era (A. U. C.) Era of Nabonassar Metonic Cycle Grecian or Syro-Jnatedonian Er.i Era of Maccabees Tyrian Era Sidunian Era , Cassarean Era of Antioch Julian Year " Spanish F.ra " Actian Era " Augustan Era " Vulgar Christian Era A.D. Destruction of Jerusalem " Era of Diocletian " Era of Ascension " Era of the Armenians " Mohammedan Era " Persian Era of Yezdegird " minutes and 21 seconds. The Astronomical Day begins at noon and the Civil Day at the preceding midnight. The Sidereal and Mean Solar Days are both invariable, but one day of ! the latter is equal to 1 day, 3 minutes, and ' 56.555 seconds of the former. The interval during w T hich the earth makes j one absolute revolution round the Sun is called j a Sidereal Year, and consists of 365 days, hours, 9 minutes, and 9.6 seconds, which is invariable. The Tropical Year is the interval between two consecutive returns of the Sun to the Ver- nal Equinox. If this were a fixed point, the Sidereal and Tropical Years would be identical ; but in consequence of the disturbing influence of the moon and planets on the spheroidal fig- ure of the earth, the Equinox has a slow, ret- rograde mean motion of 50.26 seconds annually, and the Sun returns to the Equinox sooner every year than he otherwise would by 20 min- utes, 23.6 seconds ; the Tropical Year, there- fore, consists of 365 days, 5 hours, 48 minutes, and 46 seconds. The Tropical Year is not of uniform length ; it is now slowly decreasing at the rate of .595 second per century, but this variation will not always continue. Julius Caesar, in B. C. 45, was the first to re- form the calendar by ordering that every year whose date number is exactly divisible by 4 contain 366 days, and all other years 365 days. The intercalary day was introduced by count- ing the sixth day before the Kalends of March twice ; hence the name bissextile, from bis, j twice, and sex, six. He also changed the be- ginning of the year from first of March, to the ; first of January, and also changed the name of j the fifth month (Quintilis) to July, after him- j self. The average length of the Julian year is therefore 365^- days, which, however, is too long by 11 minutes and 14 seconds, and this would accumulate in 400 years to about three days. The Julian Calendar continued in use until A. D. 1582, when the date of the begin- ! ning of the seasons occurred 10 days later than in B. C. 45, when this mode of reckoning time was introduced. The Gregorian Year was introduced by Pope Gregory XIII. with the view of keeping the Equinox to the same day of the month. It consists of 365 days, but every year exactly di- visible by 4 and the centurial years which are exactly divisible by 400 contain 366 days ; and if in addition to this arbitrary arrangement the centurial years exactly divisible by 4,000 contain 3P6 days, the error in the Gregoriar HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY 197 system will amount to only one day in about 20 centuries. If, however, 31 leap years were in- tercalated in 128 years, instead of 32 as at present, the calendar would be practically ex- act, and the error would not amount to more than a day i" 100,000 years. The length of the mean Gre orian Year may therefore be set down at 36t days, 5 hours, 49 minutes, 12 j seconds. Th Gregorian Calendar was intro- duced into E gland and her colonies in 1752, at which tim the Equinox had retrograded 11 days since tL~ Council of Nice in A. D. 325, when the festival of Easter was established and the Equinox occurred on March 21 ; hence Sep- tember 3, 1752, was called September 14, and at the same time the commencement of the legal year was changed from March 25 to January 1, so that the year 1751 lost the months of January and February and the first 24 days of March. The difference between the Julian and Gregorian Calendars is now 12 days. Russia and the Greek Church still employ the Julian Calendar for civil and ecclesiastical purposes. Standard Time. Primarily, for the con- venience of the railroads, a standard of time was established by mutual agreement in 1883, by which trains are run and local time regu- lated. According to this system, the United States, extending from 65 to 125 west longi- tude, is divided into four time sections, each of 15 of longitude, exactly equivalent to one hour, commencing with the 75th meridian. The first (eastern) section includes all territory be- tween the Atlantic coast and an irregular line drawn from Detroit to Charleston, S. C., the latter being its most southern point. The sec- ond (central) section includes all the territory between the last named line and an irregular line from Bismarck, N. D., to the mouth of the Rio Grande. The third (mountain) section includes all territory between the last-named line and nearly the western borders of Idaho, Utah, and Arizona. The fourth (Pacific) sec- tion covers the rest of the country to the Pa- cific coast. Standard time is uniform inside each of these sections, and the time of each sec- tion differs from that next to it by exactly one hour. Thus at 12 noon in New York city (eastern time), the time at Chicago (central time) is 11 o'clock A. M. ; at Denver (moun- tain time), 10 o'clock A. M., and at San Fran- cisco (Pacific time), 9 o'clock A. M. Stand- ard time is 16 minutes slower at Boston than true local time, 4 minutes slower at New York, 8 minutes faster at Washington, 19 minutes faster at Charleston, 28 minutes slower at De- troit, 18 minutes faster at Kansas City, 10 minutes slower at Chicago, one minute faster at St. Louis, 28 minutes faster at Salt Lake City, and 10 minutes faster at San Francisco. Old English Holidays. These holidays, with their names, had their origin in mediaeval England when the State religion was that of the Church of Rome, and they are still ob- served generally or in some parts of England, Scotland, and Ireland. JANUAKY 6. TWELFTH DAY, or Twelfth- tide, sometimes called Old Christmas Day, the same as Epiphany. The previous 'evening is Twelfth Night, with which many social rites have long been connected. FEBRUARY 2. CANDLEMAS : Festival of the Purification of the Virgin. Consecration of the lighted candles to be used in the church during the year. FEBRUARY 14. OLD CANDLEMAS : St. Val- entine's Day. MARCH 25. LADY DAY : Annunciation of the Virgin. April 6 is old Lady Day. JUNE 24. MIDSUMMER DAY : Feast of the Nativity of John the Baptist. July 7 is old Midsummer Day. JU"LY 15. ST. SWITHIN'S DAY. There was an old superstition that if rain fell on this day it would continue forty days. AUGUST 1. LAMMAS DAY: Originally in England the festival of the wheat harvest. In the Church the festival of St. Peter's miracu- lous deliverance from prison. Old Lammas Day is August 13. SEPTEMBER 29. MICHAELMAS: Feast of St. Michael, the Archangel. Old Michaelmas is October 11. NOVEMBER 1. ALLHALLOWMAS : Allhal- lows or All Saints' Day. The previous even- ing is Allhalloween, observed by home gath- erings and old-time festive rites. NOVEMBER 2. ALL SOULS' DAY: Day of prayer for the souls of the dead. NOVEMBER 11: MARTINMAS: Feast of St. Martin. Old Martinmas is November 23. DECEMBER 28. CHILDERMAS : Holy Inno- cents Day. Lady Day, Midsummer Day, Michaelmas, and Christmas are quarter (rent) days in Eng- land, and Whitsunday, Martinmas, Candle- mas, and Lammas Day in Scotland. Shrove Tuesday, the day before Ash Wednes- day, and Maundy Thursday, the day before Good Friday, are observed by the Church. Mothering Sunday is Mid-Lent Sunday, in which the old rural custom obtains of visiting one's parents and making them presents. Legal Holidays in the Various States. JANUARY 1. NEW YEAR'S DAY: In all the States (including the District of Columbia) except Kentucky, Massachusetts, Mississippi, New Hampshire, and Rhode Island. JANUARY 8. ANNIVERSARY OF THE BAT- TLE OK NEW ORLEANS : In Louisiana. 198 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. JANUARY 19. LEE'S BIRTHDAY: In Flor- ida, Georgia, North Carolina, South Carolina, and Virginia. FEBRUARY 12. LINCOLN'S BIRTHDAY : In Connecticut, Illinois, Minnesota, New Jersey, New York, North Dakota, Pennsylvania, and Washington (State). FEBRUARY 14, 1899. SPRING ELECTION DAY : In Pennsylvania (from 12 o'clock noon). FEBRUARY 14, 1899. MARDI-GRAS : In Alabama and the parish of Orleans, Louisiana. FEBRUARY 22. WASHINGTON'S BIRTHDAY : In all the States (including the District of Co- lumbia) except Mississippi. MARCH 2. ANNIVERSARY OF TEXAN INDE- PENDENCE : In Texas. MARCH 31, 1899. GOOD FRIDAY: In Ala- bama, Louisiana, Maryland, Pennsylvania, Tennessee. APRIL 5, 1899. STATE ELECTION DAY: In Rhode Island. APRIL 6. CONFEDERATE MEMORIAL DAY; In Louisiana. APRIL 19. PATRIOTS' DAY : In Massachu- setts. APRIL 21. ANNIVERSARY OF THE BATTLE OF SAN JACINTO : In Texas. APRIL 26. CONFEDERATE MEMORIAL DAY : In Alabama, Florida, and Georgia. MAY 10. CONFEDERATE MEMORIAL DAY : In North Carolina and South Carolina. MAY 20. ANNIVERSARY OF THE SIGNING OF THE MECKLENBURG DECLARATION OF IN- DEPENDENCE : In North Carolina. MAY 30. DECORATION DAY : In Arizona, California, Colorado, Connecticut, Delaware, District of Columbia, Illinois, Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Maine, Maryland, Mas- sachusetts, Michigan, Minnesota, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New Hampshire, New Jersey, New York, North Dakota, Ohio, Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Is- land, South Dakota, Tennessee, Utah, Ver- mont, Wisconsin, Washington, and Wyoming. JUNE 3. JEFFERSON DA vis's BIRTHDAY : In Florida and Georgia. JULY 4. INDEPENDENCE DAY : In all the States and the District of Columbia. JULY 24. PIONEERS' DAY : In Utah. AUGUST 16. BENNINGTON BATTLE DAY : In Vermont. SEPTEMBER 4, 1899. LABOR DAY : In Ala- bama, California, Colorado, Connecticut, Del- aware, District of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Idaho, Illinois, Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Maine, Maryland, Massachusetts, Michigan, Minne- sota, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, New Hampshire, New Jersey, New York, Ohio, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Virginia, Washington, Wisconsin, and Wyoming. SEPTEMBER 9. ADMISSION DAY: In Cali- fornia. NOVEMBER 1. ALL SAINTS' DAY: In Louisiana. NOVEMBER GENERAL ELECTION DAY : In Arizona, California, Colorado, Idaho, Indi- ana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Louisiana, Maryland, Minnesota, Missouri, Montana, Ne- vada, New Hampshire, New Jersey, New York, North Dakota, Ohio, Pennsylvania, Rhode Is- land, South Carolina, South Dakota, Tennes- see, Texas, West Virginia, Washington, Wis- consin, and Wyoming, in the years when elec- tions are held in these States. In 1900 the date is November 6. NOVEMBER 25. LABOR DAY: In Louis- iana. NOVEMBER 1900. THANKSGIVING DAY is either the fourth or last Thursday in Novem- ber in 1900, as the President may determine. It is observed in all the States, and in the Dis- trict of Columbia, though in some States it is not a statutory holiday. DECEMBER 25. CHRISTMAS DAY : In all the States, and in the District of Columbia. Sundays and Fast Days are legal holidays in all the States which designate them as such. There are no statutory holidays in Missis- sippi and Nevada, but by common consent the Fourth of July, Thanksgiving, and Christmas are observed as holidays in Mississippi. In Kansas, Decoration Day, Labor Day, and Washington's Birthday are the only legal hol- idays by legislative enactment ; other legal hol- idays are so only by common consent. In New Mexico, Decoration Day, Labor Day, and Ar- bor Day are holidays when so designated by , the Governor. ARBOR DAY is a legal holiday in Arizona, Colorado, Minnesota, North Dakota, Wiscon- sin, and Wyoming, the day being set by the Governor ; in Texas, February 22 ; in Ne- braska, April 22 ; Montana, third Tuesday in April; Utah, April 15; Rhode Island, first Friday in May ; Idaho, on Friday after May 1 ; Florida, February 7 ; Georgia, first Friday in December. Every Saturday after 12 o'clock noon is a legal holiday in New York, New Jersey, Penn- sylvania, Maryland, Virginia, and the District of Columbia, the city of New Orleans, and in Newcastle County, Del., except' in St. George's Hundred ; in Louisiana and Missouri in cities of 100,000 or more inhabitants; in Ohio in cities of 50,000 or more inhabitants ; and June 1 to August 31 in Denver, Col. In Connecti- cut and Maine, banks close at 12 noon on Sat- urdays. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 199 There is no national holiday, not even the Fourth of July. Congress has at various times appointed special holidays. In the sec- ond session of the fifty-third Congress it passed an act making Labor Day a public holiday in the District of Columbia, and it has recognized the existence of certain days as holidays, for commercial purposes, but, with the exception named, there is no general statute on the sub- ject. The proclamation of the President des- ignating a day of Thanksgiving only makes it a legal holiday in those States which provide by law for it. The Months and their Names. Jan- uary, the first month of the year, was among the Romans held sacred to Janus, from whom it derived its name, and was added to the calen- dar along with Februaiy by Numa in 713 B. C. It was not till the eighteenth century that Jan- uary was universally adopted by European nations as ihe first month of the year, although the Roman's considered it as such as far back as 251 B. C. February is the name given to the second month, in which were celebrated the Februa, or feasts to the manes of deceased persons. March, the first month of the Roman year, and the third according to our present calen- dar, consists of 31 days. It was considered as the first month of the year in England until the change of style in 1752, and the legal year was reckoned from the 25th of March. Its last three days (old style) were once popularly supposed to have been borrowed by March from April, and are proverbially stormy. To the fourth month of our year the Romans gave the name of Aprilis, derived from aperire, "to open," probably because it is the season when the buds begin to open. By the Anglo- Saxons it was called Eastermonth. The name of the fifth month, May, is said to be derived from Maia, the mother of Mer- cury, to whom the Romans on the first day offered sacrifices. It was the third month of the Roman year. June, the sixth month of the year in our calendar, but the fourth among the Romans, consisted originally of 26 days, to which four were added by Romulus, one taken away by Numa, and the month again lengthened to 30 days by Julius Caesar. The seventh month of the year in our calendar, and the fifth in the Roman calendar, was originally called Quintilis (the fifth). At first it contained 36 days, was reduced to 31, then to 30, but was restored to 31 days 'by Julius Caesar, in honor of whom it was named July. August, the eighth month of the year, was so named by the Emperor Augustus (B. C. 63 -A. D. 14), who commanded that his name should be given to the month. August was ! the sixth month of the Roman year and was previously called Sextilis. September (Lat. Septem, seven) was the ; seventh month of the Roman calendar, but is the ninth according to our reckoning. The ! Anglo-Saxons called it gerst-monath, " barley- month." October (Lat. octo, eight) was the eighth month of the so-called "year of Romulus," but became the tenth when (according to tra- 'dition) Numa changed the commencement of the year to January 1st, though it retained its original name. November (Lat. novem nine) was among the Romans the ninth month of the year (the Ger. Wind month) at the time when the year consisted of ten months, and then contained 30 days. It subsequently was made to contain only 29, but Julius Caesar gave it 31 ; and in the reign of Augustus the number was restored to 30, which number it has since retained. December means the tenth month, and re- ceived that name from the Romans when the year began in March, and has retained its name since January and February were put at I the beginning of the year. The Origin of the Days of the Week. The names of these are derived from Saxon idolatry. The Saxons had seven deities more particularly adored than the rest, namely : The Sun, the Moon, Tuisco, Woden, Thor, Friga, and Saeter. Sunday being dedicated to the sun, was called by them Sunandaeg ; his idol repre- sented the bust of a man , with the face dart- ing bright rays, holding a wheel before his breast, indicative of the circuit of the golden orb around our sphere. Monday was dedicated to the moon, and was represented by a female on a pedestal, with a very singular dress and two long ears. Tuesday was dedicated to Tuisco a German hero, sire of the Germans, Scythians, and Sax- ons. He was represented as a venerable old man, with a long, white beard, a scepter in his hand and the skin of a white bear thrown over his shoulders. Wednesday was consecrated to Woden, or Odin, a supreme god of the northern nations, father of the gods and god of war. He was represented as a warrior in a bold martial atti- tude, clad in armor, holding in his right hand a broad, crooked sword and in his left a shield. Thursday was consecrated to Thor, eldest son of Woden, who was the Roman Jupiter. He was believed to govern the air, preside over lightning and thunder, direct the wind, 200 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. rain, and seasons. He was represented as sit- ting on a splendid throne, with a crown of gold adorned with twelve glittering stars, and a scepter in his right hand. Friday was sacred to Friga Hertha or Edith the mother of the gods and wife of Woden. She was the goddess of love and pleasure and was portrayed as a female with a naked sword in her right band and a bow in her left hand, implying that in extreme cases women should fight as well as men. Saturday was named in honor of Saeter, who is the Roman Saturnus. He was repre- sented on a pedestal, standing on the back of a prickly fish called a perch, his head bare, with a thin, meager face. In his left hand he held a wheel and in his right a pail of water with fruits and flowers. The sharp fins of the fish implied that the worshipers of Saeter should pass safely through every difficulty. The wheel was emblematic of their unity and freedom, and the pail of water implied that he could water the earth and make it more beautiful. Anniversaries. DATES OF HISTORICAL EVENT* CUSTOMARILY OR OCCASIONALLY OBSERVED. 1. Emancipation Proclamation by Lincoln, 1863. 8. Battle of New Orleans, 1815. 17. Franklin born, 1706. 17. Battle of the Cowpens. S. C., 1781. 18. Daniel Webster born, 1782. 19. Robert E. Lee born. 1807. 27. German Emperor born, 1859. 12. Abraham Lincoln born. 1809. 15. Battle-ship Maine blown up, 1898. 22. George Washington born. 17 ..;.'. Feb. 22-23. Battle of Buena Vista, 1847. March 5. Boston Massacre, 1770. March 15. Andrew Jackson born, 1767. March is. Grover Cleveland born, 1837 April 1. Bismarck born, 1815. 9. Lee surrendered at Appomatwrx, 1865. 12. Fort Samter fired upon, 1861. 12. Henry Clay born, 1777. 13. Thomas Jefferson born, 1743. 14. Lincoln assassinated, 1865. April 19. Primrose Dav in England, Lord Keaconstield died, 1881.* April 19. Battles of Lexington and Concord, 1775. April 23. Shakespeare born. 1.V4. April 27. General Grant born, 1822. April 30. Washington was inaugurated first President, 1789. 1. Dewey destroyed the Spanish fleet at Manila, 1898. 13. First English settlement in America at James- town, 1607. 13. The Society of the Cincinnati was organized by officers of the Revolutionary Army, 1 7<;. 20. Mecklenburg, N. C., Declaration of Independ- ence, 1775. 24. Queen Victoria born, 1819. 6. General Nathaniel Greene born, 1742. 15. King John granted Magna Charta at Runny- mede. 1215. June 17. Battle of Bunker Hill. 1775. June is. Battle of Waterloo, 1815. June 28. Battle of Fort Moultrie. Charleston, S.C., 1776. July 1. Dominion Day in Canada. July 1-2. General assault on Santiago de Cuba, 1898. July 1-3. Battle of Gettysburg, 1863. July 3. Cervera's fleet was destroyed off Santiago, Jan. Jan. Jan. Jan. Jan. Jan. Jan. Feb. Feb. Feb. April April April April April May May May May May June June July 16. July 21. Aug. 13. Aug. 16. Sep. 1. Sep. x. Sep. 10. Sep. 11. Sep. 13. Sep. 14. Sep. 17. Sep. 19-20. Sep. 20. Oct. 7. Oct. 8-11. Oct. 12. Oct. 17. Oct. 19. Nov. 5. Nov. 9. Nov. Id. Nov. 25. Dec. 2. Dec. 14. Dec. 16. Dec. 16. Dec. 22. Dec.25-26. Dec. 29. Santiago surrendered, 1898. Battle of Bull Run, 1*61. Manila surrendered to the A mericans, 1898. Battle ol Bennington, Vt.. 1777. Capitulation of Sedan, 1*70. Battle of Eutaw Springs, S. C.. 1781. Battle of Lake Erie, Perry's victory, 1813. Battle of Lake Champlain, McDonough's vic- tory. 1814. Battle of Chapultepec. 1847. City of Mexico taken by the U. S. troops, 1847. Battle of Antietam, 1862. Battle of Chickamauga, 18f : 3. Italians occupied Rome, 1870. Battle of King's Mountain, N. C., 1780. Great fire of Chicago, 1871. Columbus discovered America, 1492. Burgoyne surrendered at Saratoga. 1777. Cornwallls surrendered at Yorktown, 1781. Guv Fawkes Day in England. The Gunpow- der Plot discoVered, 1604. Great fire of Boston, 1872. Martin Luther born, 1483. British evacuated New York, 1783. Battle of Austerlitz, 1805. Washington died. 1799. Boston "Tea Partv," 1773. The great fire in New York, 1835. Mayflower pilgrims landed at Plymouth Rock, 1620. Battle of Trenton, N. J., 1776. William Ewart Gladstone born, 1809. The First Day of the Year. Readers of Parish Registers and other ancient docu- ments are sometimes puzzled by the dates, and espe- cially by the apparent discrepancies in the time when the year commenced. It began: 7th to 14th Centuries, at Christmas. 12th Century, by the Church, on March 25. 14th Century, by Civilians, same time. In 1752 the New Style was introduced, and 1753 com- menced on the 1st of January. Previous to this two dates were used, one for the "civil year, and the other for the historical; the former commenced March 25, and the latter January 1 ; thus we find the same event with two dates, e. g., Feb. 20, 1681-2. Another change was made in the calendar bv the same Act, 24 Geo. II. c. 23; the day after September 2d was accounted the fourteenth, hence the difference between Old and New Michaelmas and other days. General Councils. Jerusalem Against Judaizers Aries Against the Donatists First CEcumenical Council A.D. 51 314 325 337 Rome ". Athanasian 342 Sardis Against Arius 347 *ConslantiiioiAe . . Second (Ecumenical 381 *Ephesus Third do 431 *Chalcedon Fourth do 451 Constantinople.. Fifth do 553 * Constantinople. .Sixth do KM Jfice Seventh do 77 Constantinople. . Eighth do 870 Rome First Lateran 1123 Rome Second do 1139 Rome -. Third do 1197 Rome Fourth do 1215 Lyons Emperor Frederick deposed 1 24:j Lyons Temporary reunion of Greek and Latin Churches 1274 Vienne Fifteenth CEcumenical 1312 Pisa Popes elected and deposed 1409 Constance Huss condemned to be burned . . . 1414 Rasle Eighteenth CEcumenical 1431 Rome Fifth Lateran 1512 to 1517 Trent Nineteenth CEcumenical... 1545 to 1563 Rome Last CEcumenical 1870 Julv July 4. Declaration of Independence, 1776. 14. The Bastille was destroyed. 17*9 * Only the six thus marked were indisputably Genaral or CEcumenical. Some other councils, such as those summoned to Pavia and Siena, were designed to be (Ecumenical, but led to no such result. The Greek Church recognizes seven. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. A BEADY REFERENCE CALENDAR. 201 For ascertaining any Day of the Week for any given Time within Two Hundred Years from the introduction of the New Style, 1753 to 1952, inclusive. YE^ IRS 17 53 TO 1952. 4 I | =2 3 1 1 HS X "-9 fci 1 ** a. 1 1 i' - 1753ff 1754d 1781g 1782d 1800e ISOla, 1828q '1829a 1856q 1857a 1884q 1885a 1900g 1901d 1928h 1929d a 4 7 7 3 5 1 3 6 2 4 7 2 1755e 1756p 1783e 1784p 1802b 1803c 1830b 1831c 1858b 1869C 1886b 1887C 1902e 1903a 1930e 1931a b 5 1 1 4 6 2 4 7 3 5 1 3 1757C 1758f 1785C 1786f 1804h 1805d 1832h 1833d 1860h 1861d 1888h 1889d 1904k 1905f 1932k 1933f c 6 2 2 5 7 3 5 1 4 6 2 4 1759g 1760q 1787g 1788q 1806e 1807a 1834e 1835a 1862e 1863a 18906 1891a 1906g 1907d 1934g 1936d d 2 5 5 1 3 6 1 4 7 2 5 7 1761a 1762b 1789a 1790b 1808k 1809f 1836k 1837f 1864k 1865f 1892k 1893f 19081 1909b 19361 1937b e 3 6 6 2 4 7 2 5 1 3 6 1 1763C 1764h 1791c 1792h 1810ff 181 Id I838g 1866g 1867d 1894g 1910c 1911f 1938C 1939f f 7 3 3 6 1 4 6 2 6 7 i3 5 1765d 1766e 1793d 1794e 18121 1813b 18401 1841b 18681 1869b 18961 1897b 1912m 19136 1940m 1941e S 1 4' 4 7 2 5 7 3 6 1 4 1767a 1768k 1795a 1796k 1814C 1815f 1842c 1843f 1870C 1871f 1898c 1899f 1914a 1915b 1942a 1943b h 7 3 4 7 2 5 7 3 6 1 4 1769f 1770g 1797f 1798g 1816m 1*176 1844m 1845e 1872m 1873e 1916n 1917g 1944n 1945g k 5 1 2 5 7 3 5 1 4 6 1 4 1771d 17721 1799d 1818a 1819b 1846a 1847b 1874a 187Bb 1918d 19196 1946d 19476 1 8 6 7 3 5 1 3 6 2 4 1 2 1773b 1774c 1820n ,1821g 1848n 1849g 1876n 1877g 19?0p 1921C 1948p 1949C m 1 4 5 1 3 6 1 4 7 2 6 7 1775f 1776m 1822d 1823e 1830d 1851e 1878d 1879e 1922f 1923g 1950f 1951g n 6 2 3 6 1 4 6 2 6 7 3 5 17778 17V8a 1824p 1825C 1852p 1853C 1880p 1881C 1924q 1925a 1952q P 4 7 1 4 6 2 4 7 3 5 1 3 1779b 1780n 1826f 1827g 18Mf 1855g 1882f 1883g 1926b 1927C q 2 5 6 2 4 7 2 5 1 3 6 1 TABLE OF DAYS. 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 Monday 1 Tuesday 1 Wednesday 1 Thursday 1 Friday 1 Saturday 1 SUNDAY 1 Tuesday 2 Wednesday 2 Thursday 2 Friday 2 Saturday 2 SUNDAY 2 Monday 2 Wednesday 3 Thursday 3 Friday 3 Saturday 3 SUNDAY 3 Monday 3 Tuesday 3 Thursday 4 Friday 4 Saturday 4 SUNDAY 4 ! Monday 4 Tuesday 4 Wednesday 4 Friday 5 Saturday 5 SUNDAY 5 Monday 6 Tuesday 5 Wednesday 5 Thursday B Saturday 6 SUNDAY 6 Monday 6 Tuesday 6 Wednesday 6 Thursday 6 Friday e SUNDAY 7 Monday 7 Tuesday- 7 Wednesday 7 Thu rsday 7 Friday Y7 Saturday 7 Monday 8 Tuesday 8 Wednesday 8 Thursday 8'Friday 8 Saturday 8 Tuesday 9 Wednesday 9 Thursday 9 Friday 9 Saturday 9 SUNDAY 9 Monday 1 Wednesday 10 Thursday " 10 Friday 10 Saturday 10SUNDAY 10 Monday 10 Tuesday u Thursday 11 Friday 11 Saturday 11 SUNDAY 11 Monday 11 Tuesday 11 Wednesday n Friday 12 Saturday 12 SUNDAY 12 Monday 12i Tuesday 12 Wednesday 12 Thursday 19 Saturday 13 SUNDAY 13 Monday 13 Tuesday 13 Wednesday 13 Thursday 13 Friday 13 SUNDAY 14 Monday 14 Tuesday 14 Wednesday 14 Thursday 14 Friday 14 Saturday 14 Monday 15 Tuesday 15 Wednesday 15 Thursday 15 Friday 15 Saturday 15 SUNDAY 15 Tuesday 16 Wednesday 16 Thursday 16 Friday 16 Saturday 16 SUNDAY 16 Monday 16 Wednesday Thursday 17 Thursday 18 Friday 17 Friday 18 Saturday 17 Saturday 18 SUNDAY 17 SUNDAY 18 Monday 17 Monday 18 Tuesday 17 Tuesday 18 Wednesday 17 18 Friday 19 Saturday 19 SUNDAY 19 Monday 19 Tuesday 19 Wednesday 19 Thursday 10 Saturday 20 SUNDAY 20 Monday 20 Tuesday 20 Wednesday 20 Thursday 20 Friday 20 SUNDAY 21 Monday 21 Tuesday 21 Wednesday 21 Thursday 21 Friday 21 Saturday 81 Monday 22 Tuesday 22 Wednesday 22 Thursday 22 Friday 22 Saturday 22 SUNDAY 82 Tuesday 23 Wednesday 23 Thursday 23 Friday 23 Saturday 23 SUNDAY 23 Monday 83 Wednesday 24 Thursday 24 Friday 24 Saturday 24 SUNDAY 24 Monday 24 Tuesday M Thursday 25 Friday 25 Saturday 25 SUNDAY 25' Monday 25 Tuesday _'"> Wednesday 20 Friday 26 Saturday 26 SUNDAY 26 Monday 26 Tuesday 26 Wednesday 26 Thursday 88 Saturday 27 SUNDAY 27 Monday 27 Tuesday 27 Wednesday 27 Thursday 27 Friday n SUNDAY 28 Monday 28 Tuesday 28 Wednesday 28 Thursday 28 Friday 28 Saturday K Monday 29 Tuesday 29 Wednesday 29 Thursday 29 Friday 29 Saturday 29 SUNDAY 29 Tuesday Wednesday 30 Wednesday 31 Thursday 30 Thursday 31 Friday 30 Friday 31 Saturday 30 Saturday ffllSUNDAY 39 SUNDAY 31 Monday 30 Monday 31 Tuesday 80 n NOTE The letters in the list of "YEARS from 1768 to 1952 " refer to the table headed with the MONTHS, tliefleurei in which refer to the same figures at the head of the table of DATS. For example : To know on what day July 4, 1900, will f all , look for ISM in the table of TEAKS. The letter g is attached. Look for the same letter in the table of .MONTHS, and in a parallel line under July is th n*ur 7, which direct* to column 7 in the table of DATS below, in which it will b en that July 4 f alia on Wedneeday 202 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. A DICTIONARY OF MYTHOLOGY. Abeo'na. A goddess of voyages, etc. kcha'tes. The trusty friend of ^Eneas. Ach'eron. The son of Sol and Terra, changed bv Jupiter into a river of hell. Used also for hell itself. Achil'les. A .Greek who signalized himself in the war against Troy. Having been dipped by his mother in the river Stvx, he was invulnerable in every part except his rigtit heel, by which she held him, but was at length killed by Paris with an arrow. A'cis. A Sicilian shepherd, killed by Polyphemus because he rivaled the latter in the affections of Galatea. Actae'on. A famous hunter, who, having surprised Diana as she was bathing, was turned by her into a stag, and killed by his own dogs. Ado'nis. A be'autiful youth beloved by Venus and Proserpine. He was killed by a wild boar. When wounded, Venus sprinkled nectar into his blood, from which flowers sprang up. JEge/u*. A king of Athens, giving name to the JEgean sea by drowning himself in it. JE'gia. A shield given by Jupiter to Minerva. Also the name of a Gorgon whom Pallas slew. -Ene'as. A Trojan prince, son of Anchises and Ve- nus ; the here of Virgil's poem, the jEneid. JE'oIna. The god of the winds. JEo'ns. One of the four horses of the sun. -"Escula'pius. The god of medicine and the son of Apollo. Killed by Jupiter with a thunderbolt for hav- ing restored Hippolytus to life. JE'thon. One of "the four horses of the sun. Asramem'iion. King of Mycenae and Argos, brother to Menelaus, and chosen captain-general of the Greeks at the siege of Trov. Aganip'pe. A fountain at the foot of Mount Heli- con, daughter of the river Permessus. Agla'ia. One of the three Graces. A'jax. Next to Achilles, the bravest of all the Greeks in the Trojan war. Al'bion. The son of Neptune ; went into Britain and established a kingdom. Alces'te, or Alcestis. The daughter of Pelias and wife of Admetus, brought back from hell by Hercules. Alci'des. A title of Hercules. Alec'to. One of the three Furies. Alo'a. A festival of Bacchus and Ceres. Am'moii. A title of Jupiter. Amphi'on. A famous musician, the son of Jupiter and Antiope, who built the city of Thebes by the music of his harp. He and his brother Zethus are said to have invented music. Amphitri'te. Goddess of the sea and wife of Nep- tune. Androm'ache. Wife of Hector. Androm'eda. The daughter of Cephens and Cassio- peia, who, contesting with Juno and the Nereides for the prize of beauty, was bound to a rock by them and exposed to a sea monster, but was rescued and married by Perseus. Ange'rona. The goddess of silence. Antae'ua. The giant son of Neptune and Terra; squeezed to death by Hercules. Antever'ta. Goddess of women in labor. Antig'one. The daughter of CEdipus and Jocasta, famous for her filial piety. Aii'ubis. An Egyptia'n god with a dog's head. A'pis. Son of Jupiter and Niobe ; called also Serapis and Osiris. Taught the Egyptians to sow corn and plant vines, and was worshiped by them in the form of an ox. Apollo. The son of Jupiter and Latona, and the god of music, poetry, eloquence, medicine, and the fine arts. Arach'ne. A Lydian princess, turned into a spider for contending with Minerva at spinning. A ret lui'sa. One of Diana's nymphs, who was changed in to a fountain. Aligns. The son of Aristor: said to have had a hun- dred eyes; but being killed by Mercury when appointed ly Juno to guard lo, she put his eves on the tail of a peacock. Also an architect, who built the ship Argo. Ariad'ne. The daughter of Minos, who, from love to Theseus, gave him a clew of thread, to guide him out of the Cretan labyrinth ; being afterward deserted by him, she was married to Bacchus, and made his priestess. Ari'on. A lyric poet of Methymna, who, in his voyaee to Italy, saved his life from the cruelty of the mariners by means of dolphins, which the sweetness of his music brought together Arlstae'us. A son of Apollo and Cyrene. Astrae'a. The goddess of justice; changed into the constellation Virgo. Atalan'ta. A princess of Scyros, who consented to marry that one of her suitors who should outrun her, Hippomenes being the successful competitor. Atlas. One of the Titans, and king of Mauretania; said to have supported the world on his shoulders ; he was turned into a mountain by Perseus. Anro'ra. The goddess of morning. Autum'nus. The god of fruits. Bacchan'tes. Priests of Bacchus. Bac'chus. The son of Jupiter and Semele, and the god of wine. Bap'ta. The goddess of shame. Beller'oplion. The son of Glaucus, king of Ephyra. He underwent numerous hardships for refusing an inti- macy with Sthenobrea, wife of Prostus, the king of Argos. With the aid of the horse Pegasus, he destroved the Chimera. Bello'na. Goddess of war ; sister of Mars. Bereni'ce. A Grecian lady ; the only person of her sex permitted to see the Olympic games. Boli'na. A nymph rendered immortal for her mod- esty and resistance to Apollo. Bo'reas. The son of Astraeus and Aurora ; the name of the north wind. Bria'reuB. A giant who warred against heaven, and was feigned to have had fifty heads and one hundred arms. Busi'ris. The son of Neptune ; a tyrant of Egypt, and a monstrous giant, who fed his horses with human flesh ; was killed by Hercules. ByMis. The daughter of Miletus ; she wept herself into a fountain through love of her brother Caunus. Ca'cus. A son of Vulcan and a most notorious rob- ber ; slain by Hercules for stealing his oxen. Cad'mus." The sen of Agenor, king of Pluenicia; founder of Thebes, and the reputed inventor of sixteen letters of the Greek alphabet. Cadu'ceus. Mercury's golden rod or wand. Calli'ope. One of the Muses, presiding over elo- quence and epic poetrv. Calyp'so. One of the Oceanides who reigned in the island Ogygia, and entertained and became enamored of Ulysses. Campe'na, or Carna. Goddess of infants. C'assan'dra. A daughter of Priam and Hecuba, en- dowed with the gift of prophecy by Apollo. Castal'ides. The Muses, so called from the fountain Castalius, at the foot of Parnassus. Cas'tor. A son of Jupiter and Leda. He and his twin brother Pollux shared immortality alternately, and were formed into the constellation Gemini. Ce'cropg. The first king of Athens, who instituted marriage, altars, and sacrifices. Cen'taurs. Children of Ixion, half men and half horses, inhabiting Thessaly, and vanquished by Theseus. Cer'beros. The three-headed dog of Pluto, guarding the gates of hell. Ce'res. The daughter of Saturn and Cybele, and goddess of agriculture. Cha'ron. The son of Erebus and Nox, and ferryman of hell, who conducted the souls of the dead over the rivers Styx and Acheron. Charyb'dis. A ravenous woman, turned by Jupiter into a very dangerous gulf or whirlpool on the coast of Sicily. Cbii'mera. A strange monster of Lycia, killed by Bellerophon. Chi'ron. A Centaur, who was preceptor to Achilles, taught .iBsculapius physic and Hercules astronomy, and who became the constellation Sagittarius. Chry'seis. The daughter of Chryses, priest of Apollo, famed for beauty and for her skill in embroidery. Cir'ce. A noted enchantress. Cli'o. One of the Muses, presiding over history. Clo'tho. One of the three Fates. Clytemnes'tra. The faithless wife of Agamemnon, killed by her son Orestes. Co'mus. The god of merriment. Cro'cns. A young man enamored of the nymph Smi- lax, and changed into a flower. Croe'sus. King of Lydia; the richest man of his time. Cn'pid. Son of Mars and Venus ; the god of love. CyVele. The daughter of Coelus and Terra ; wife of . and mother of the gods. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 203 Cy'clopB. Vulcan's workmen, giants who had only one eye, in the middle of their foreheads; slain by Apollo in a pique against Jupiter. Dsed'alus. A most ingenious artificer of Athens, who formed the Cretan labyrinth, and invented the auger, axe, glue, plumb-line, saw, and masts and sails for ships. Da'mon. The friend of Pythias. Dana'ides, or Besides. The fifty daughters of Danaus, king of Argos, all of whom, except Hyperm- nestra, killed their husbands on the first night of their marriage, and were therefore doomed to draw water out of a deep well, and eternally pour it into a cask full of holes. Daph'ne. A nymph beloved by Apollo ; the daughter of the river Peneus ; changed into a laurel tree. I >;t l> li 11 i s. A shepherd of Sicily and son of Mercury ; educated by the nymphs, and inspired by the Muses with the love of poetry. Dar'danus. A son o'f Jupiter and founder of Troy. Deida'mia. The daughter of Lycomedes, king of Scyros ; wife of Achilles, and mother of Pyrrhus. Deipb/obus. A son of Priam and Hecuba ; married Helena after the death of Paris, but betrayed by her to the Greeks. Dejani'ra. "Wife of Hercules, who killed herself in despair, because her husband burned himself to avoid the torment occasioned by the poisoned shirt she had given him to regain his love. Del'phi. A city of Phocis, famous for a temple and an oracle of Apollo. Deucalion. The son of Prometheus, and king of Thessaly, who, with his wife Pyrrha, was preserved from the general deluge, and repeopled the world by throwing stones behind them, as directed by the oracle. Dian'a. Daughter of Jupiter and Latona, and god- dess of hunting, chastity, and marriage. Di'do. Founder and queen of Carthage ; daughter of Belus, and wife of Sichaeus. According to Virgil, she entertained JEneas on his voyage to Italy, and burned herself in despair, because he left her. IMome'des. Son of Tydeus, and king of Mtolia,; gained great reputation at Troy, and, with Ulysses, carried off the Palladium. Dir'ce. "Wife of Lycus, king of Thebes; dragged to death by a mad bull. Dry'ades. Nymphs of the woods. Ech/o. The daughter of Aer, or Air, and Tellus, who pined away for love of Narcissus. Elec'tra. Daughter of Agamemnon and Clytemnes- tra; instigated her brother Orestes to revenge their father's death upon their mother and ^Egisthus. Elys'him. The happy residence of the virtuous after death. Encel'adus. Son of Titan and Terra, and the strong- est of the giants ; conspired against Jupiter, and at- tempted to scale heaven. llncl VIM ion. A shepherd and astronomer of Caria, condemned to a sleep of thirty years. Epe'us. The artist who made the Trojan horse, in- ventor of the sword and buckler. Er'ato. The Muse of lyric and amorous poetry. Er'eane. A river whose waters inebriated. Er'ebus. The son of Chaos and Nox ; an infernal deity. A river of hell, and often used by the poets for hell itself. K ri 11 11 vs. The Greek name for the Furies, or Eumen- ides. E'roa. A name of Cupid. Eumen'ides. A name of the Furies. Kupbor'lnm. The son of Panthous; slain by Mene- laus in the Trojan war. Euphros'yne. One of the three Graces. Euro'pa. The daughter of Agenor ; carried by Jupi- ter, in the form of a white bull, into Crete. Eury'ale. A queen of the Amazons. Also one of the three Gorgons. Eury'alus. A Peloponnesian chief in the Trojan war. Also, a Trojan and a friend of Nisus, for whose loss jEneas was inconsolable. Euryd'ice. Wife of Orpheus ; killed by a serpent on *\er marriage day. Kuryl'ochus. One of the companions of Ulysses; the only ene who was not changed by Circe into * hog. Euter'pe. One of the Muses, presiding orer music. Erad'ne. Daughter of Mars and Thebe ; threw her- self on the funeral pyre of her husband, Oataneus. FaVula. Goddess of lies. Fa'uia. Goddess of report, etc. Fates. Powerful goddesses, who presided over the birth and the life of mankind, were the three daughters of Nox and Erebus, named Clotho, Lachesis, andAtro- pos. Clotho was supposed to hold the distaff, Lachesis to draw the thread of human life, and Atropos to cut it off. Fau'iia, and Fatu'a. Names of Cybele. Fau'ni. Rural gods, described as having the legs, feet, and ears of goats. Fiiu'nus. Son of Mercury and Nox, and father of the Fauni. Flo'ra. The goddess of flowers. Fortu'na. The goddess of fortune ; said to be blind. Fu'ries. The three daughters of Nox and Acheron, named Alecto, Tisiphone, and Megaera, with hair com- posed of snakes, and armed with whips, chains, etc. Galate'a. A sea-nymph, daughter of Nereus and Doris, passionately loved by Polyphemus. Gan'ymede. The son of Tros, king of Troy, whom Jupiter, in the form of an eagle, snatched up and made his cupbearer. Ge'ryon. A monster, having three bodies and three heads, and who fed his oxen with human flesh, and was therefore killed by Hercules. Gor'dius. A husbandman, but afterward king of Phrygia, remarkable for tying a knot of cords, on which the empire of Asia depended, in so intricate a manner, that Alexander, unable to unravel it, cut it asunder. Gor'gons. The three daughters of Phorcus and Ceta, named Stheno, Euryale, and Medusa. Their bodies were covered with impenetrable scales, their hair entwined with serpents; they had only one eye betwixt them, and they could change into stones those whom they looked on. Gra'ces. Three goddesses, Aglaia, Thalia, and Eu- phrosyne, represented as beautiful, modest virgins, and constant attendants on Venus. Ha'des. A title of Pluto. Har'pies. Winged monsters, daughters of Neptune and Terra, named Aello, Celaeno, and Ocypete, with the faces of virgins, the bodies of vultures, and hands armed with claws. He'be. The daughter of Juno ; goddess of youth, and Jupiter's cupbearer; banished from heaven on account of an unlucky fall. Hec'tor. The son of Priam and Hecuba ; the most val- iant of the Trojans, and slain by Achilles. Hec'uba. The wife of Priam, who tore her eyes out for the loss of her children. Hel'ena, or Hel'en. The wife of Menelaus. and the most beautiful woman of her age, who, running away with Paris, occasioned the Trojan war. Hel'enus. A son of Priam and Hecuba, spared by the Greeks for hia skill in divination. Helle. The daughter of Athamas, who, flying from her stepmother Ino, was drowned in the Pontic sea, and gave it the name of Hellespont. Her'cules. The son of Jupiter and Alcmena; the most famous hero of antiquity, remarkable for his great strength and numerous exploits. Her'mes. A name of Mercury. Hermi'one. The daughter of Mars and Venus, and wife of Cadmus; was changed into a serpent. Also, a daughter of Menelaus and Helena, married to Pyrrhus. He'ro. A beautiful woman of Sestos, in Thrace, and priestess of Venus, whom Leander of Abydos loved so tenderly that he swam over the Hellespont every night to see her: but he, at length, being unfortunatelj drowned, she threw herself in despair, into the sea. Hesper'idea. Three nymphs, ^Egle, Arethusa, and Hesperethusa, daughters of Hesperus. They had a gar- den bearing golden apples, watched by a dragon, which Hercules slew, and bore away the fruit. Hes'perus. The son of Japetus, and brother to At- las ; changed into the evening star. Hippol'ytua. The son of Theseus and Antiope, or Hippolyte, who was restored to life by ^sculapius, at the request of Diana. Hippom'enes. A Grecian prince, who, beating Ata- lanta in the race by throwing golden apples before her, married her. They were changed by Cybele into lions. Hvacin'tbus. A beautiful DOJ, beloved by Apollo and Zephyrus. The latter killed him ; but Apollo changed the blood that was spilled into a flower called hyacinth. Hy'adea. Seven daughtera of Atlas aud jEthra, changed by Jupiter into seven stara. 204 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Hy'4ra, A celebrated monster, or serpent, with seren, or, according to some, fifty heads, which infested the Lake Lerna. It was killed by Hercules. Hy'men. Son of Bacchus and Venus, and god of marriage. Hyperi'on. Son of Ccelus and Terra. Ica'rius. Son of CEbalus ; haying received from Bac- chus a bottle of wine, he went into Attica to show men the use of it, but was thrown into a well by some shep- herds whom he had made drunk, and who thought he had given them poison. lo'arus. The son of Daedalus, who, flying with his father out of Crete into Sicily, and soaring too high, melted the wax of his wings, and fell into the sea, thence called the Icarian sea. I'o. The daughter of Inachus, turned bv Jupiter into a white heifer, but afterward resumed her former shape ; was worshiped after her death by the Egyptians, under the name of Isis. Iphigeni'a. The daughter of Agamemnon and Cly- temnestra, who, standing ready as a victim to be sac- rificed to appease the ire of Diana, was by that goddess transformed into a white hart and made a priestess. I'ris. The daughter of Thaumas and Electra ; one of the Oceanides, and messenger and companion of Juno, who turned her into a rainbow. Ixi'on. A king of Thessaly, and father of the Cen- taurs. He killed his own sister, and was punished by being fastened in hell to a wheel perpetually turning. Ja'nns. The son of Apollo and Creusa, and first king of Italy, who, receiving the banished Saturn, was re- warded by him with the knowledge of husbandry, and of things past and future. Ja'son. The leader of the Argonauts, who, with Medea's help, obtained the golden fleece from Colchis. Jocas'ta. The daughter of Creon. She unwittingly married her own son, CEdipus. Ju'no. The daughter of Saturn and Ops ; sister and wife of Jupiter, the great queen of heaven, and of all the gods, and goddess of marriages and births. Jn'piter. The son of Saturn and Ops ; the supreme deity of the heathen world, the most powerful of the gods, and governor of all things. I.aoh'esis. One of the three Fates. Laoc'oon. A son of Priam and Hecuba, and high priest of Apollo, who opposed the reception of the wooden horse into Troy, for which he and his two sons were killed by serpents. L.om'edon. A king of Troy, killed by Hercules for denying him his daughter Hesione after he had delivered her "from the sea-monster. La'rs. Inferior gods at Rome, who presided over houses and families ; sons of Mercury and Lara. L.aver / na. A goddess of thieves. Lean'der. See Hero. l>'the. A river of hell, whose waters caused a total forgetfulness of things past. Ln bpii'tia. Goddess of pleasure. L,u'cifer. The name of the planet Venus, or morning star ; said to be the son of Jupiter and Aurora. l.iu-i'iia. A daughter of Jupiter and Juno, and a goddess who presided over childbirth. I,u'na. The moon; the daughter of Hyperion and Terra. L.uper'calla. Feasts in honor of Pan. Mars. The god of war. Mede'a. The daughter of ^Etes, and a wonderful sorceress or magician ; she assisted Jason to obtain the golden fleece. Medu'sa, The chief of the three Gorgons ; killed by Perseus. Megae'ra. One of the Furies. Meg'ara. Wife of Hercules. Melpom'ene. One of the Muses, presiding over tragedy. Mem'non. The son of Tithonus and Aurora, and king of Abydon ; killed by Achilles for assisting Priam, and changed into a bird at the request of his mother. Menela'us. The son of Atreus, king of Sparta; brother of Agamemnon, and husband of Helen. Men'tor. The faithful friend of Ulysses, the gov- ernor of Telemachus, and the wisest man of his time. Mer'cary. The son of Jupiter and Maia ; messenger of the gods, inventor of letters, and god of eloquence, commerce, and robbers. Mi'das. A king of Phrygia, who had the power given him of turning whatever he touched into gold. Miner'va. The goddess of wisdom, the arts, and war ; produced from Jupiter's brain. Min'otanr. A celebrated monster, half man and half bull. Mnemog'yne. The goddess of memory, and mother of the nine Muses. Mo'mus. The son of Nox, and god^f folly and pleas- antry. Mor'pheus. The minister of Nox and Somnus, and god of sleep and dreams. Mors. Goddess of death. Mu'ses. Nine daughters of Jupiter and Mnemosyne, named Calliope, Clio, Erato, Euterpe, Melpomene, Poly- hymnia, Terpsichore, Thalia, and Urania. They were mistresses of all the sciences, and governesses of the feasts of the gods. Mu'ta. Goddess of silence. Na'iades. Nymphs of streams and fountains. Narcis'sus. A beautiful youth, who, falling in love with his own reflection in the water, pined away into a daffodil. Neni'esis. One of th infernal deities, and goddess of revenge. Nep'tune. The son of Saturn and Ops; god of the sea, and, next to Jupiter, the most powerful deity. Ne'reids. Sea nymphs. Nes'tor. The son of Neleus and Chloris, and king of Pylos and Messenia. He fought against the Centaurs, was distinguished in the Trojan war, and lived to a great age. Ni'obe. Daughter of Tantalus, and wife of Amphion, who, preferring herself to Latona, had her fourteen children killed oy Diana and Apollo, and wept herself into a stone. Nox. The most ancient of all the deities, and goddess of night. Ocean'ides. Sea nymphs, daughters of Oceanus; three thousand in number. Oce'anus. An ancient sea god. CEd'ipus. King of Thebes, who solved the riddle of the Sphinx, unwittingly killed his father, married his mother, and at last ran mad and tore out his eyes. Om'phale. A queen of Lydia, with whom Hercules was so enamored that he submitted to spinning and other unbecoming offices. Ops. A name of Cybele. Ores'tes. The son of Agamemnon. Or'pheus. A celebrated Argonaut, whose skill in music is said to have been so great that he could make rocks, trees, etc., follow him. He was the son of Jupiter and Calliope. Osi'ris. See Apis. Palla'dinm. A statue of Minerva, which the Trojans imagined fell from heaven, and with which their city was deemed unconquerable. Pal'las and Py'lotis. Names of Minerva. Pan. The son of Mercury, and the god of shepherds, huntsmen, and the inhabitants of the country. Pando'ra. The first woman, made by Vulcan, and endowed with gifts by all the deities. Jupiter gave her a box which contained all the evils and miseries of life, but with hope at the bottom. Par'iB. or Alexander. Son of Priam and Hecuba; a most beautiful youth, who ran away with Helen, and thus occasioned the Trojan war. Parnas'sus. A mountain of Phocis, famous for a temple of Apollo; the favorite residence of the Muses. Pesr'asus. A winged horse belonging to Apollo and the Muses, which sprung from the blood of Medusa when Perseus cut off her head. Pena'tes. Small statues or household gods. Penel'ope. A celebrated princess of Greece, daugh- ter of Icarus, and wife of Ulysses; celebrated for her chastity and constancy in the long absence of her hus- band. Per'seus. Son of Jupiter and Danae; performed many extraordinary exploits by means of Medusa's head. Pha'eton. Son of Sol (Apollo) and Climene. He asked the guidance of his father's chariot for one day as a proof of his divine descent; but, unable to manage the horses, set the world on fire, and was therefore struck by Jupiter with a thunderbolt into the river Po. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 205 Philomela. The daughter of Pandion, king of Athens ; changed into a nightingale. Phin'eas. King of Paphlagonia; bad his eyes torn out by Boreas, but was recompensed with the knowl- edge of futurity. Also a king of Thrace turned into a stone by Perseus. Phoe / bu8. A title of Apollo. Ple'iades. Seven daughters of Atlas and Pleione, changed into stars. Plu'to. The son of Saturn and Ops, brother of Jupi- ter and Neptune, and the god of the infernal regions. Plu'tus. The god of riches. Pomo'na. The goddess of fruits and autumn. Polyhym'nia. The Muse of rhetoric. Pri'am. The last king of Troy, the son of Laomedon, under whose reign Troy was taken by the Greeks. Prome'theus. The son of Japetus; said to have stolen fire from heaven to animate two bodies which he had formed of clay, and was therefore chained by Jupi- ter to Mount Caucasus, with a vulture perpetually gnawing his liver. Pros'erpine. Wife of Pluto. Pro'teus. The son of Oceanus and Tethys ; a sea god and prophet, who possessed the power of changing him- self into any shape. Psy'che. A nymph beloved by Cupid and made im- mortal by Jupiter. Pyg'mies. A nation of dwarfs only a span long, car- riedaway by Hercules. Pyl'ades. The constant friend of Orestes. Pyr'amus and Thisbe. Two lovers of Babylon, who killed themselves with the same sword, and thus caused the berries of the mulberry tree, under which they died, to change from white to red. Py'thon. A huge serpent, produced from the mud of the deluge ; killed by Apollo, who, in memory thereof, instituted the Pythian games. Re'mug. The twin brother of Romulus, killed by him for ridiculing the city walls. Rhadaman / thus. One of the three infernal judges. Kom'ulus. The son of Mars and Ilia ; thrown into the Tiber by his uncle, but saved, with his twin brother, Remus, by a shepherd; became the founder and first king of Rome. Sa'lii. The twelve frantic priests of Mars. Sa'lus. Goddess of health. Sut uriiH'lia. Feasts of Saturn. Sat/urn. A son of Coelus and Terra ; god of time. Sat'yrs. Attendants of Bacchus; horned monsters, half goats, half men. Sem'ele. The daughter of Cadmus and Thebe, and mother of Bacchus. Semir'amis, A celebrated queen of Assyria, who built the walls of Babylon; was slain by her own son, Nimyas, and turned into a pigeon. Sera'pis. See Apis. Sile'nus. The foster-father, master, and companion of Bacchus. He lived in Arcadia, rode on an ass, and was drunk every day. Si'rens. Sea nymphs, or sea monsters, the daughters of Oceanus and Amphitrite. sis' yph us. The son of ^Eolus ; a most crafty prince, killed by Theseus, and condemned by Pluto to roll up hill a large stone, which constantly fell back again. Sol. A name of Apollo. Som'iius. The son of Erebus and Nox, and the god of sleep. Sphinx. A monster, who destroyed herself because CEdipus solved the enigma she proposed. Sten'tor. A Grecian, whose voice is reported to havo been as strong and as loud as the voices of fifty men together. Sthe'no. One of the three Gorgons. Styx. A river of hell. sy I Minus. A god of woods and forests. Ta'cita. A goddess of silence. Tan'talns. The son of Jupiter, and king of Lydin, who served up the limbs of his son, Pelops, to try t'u divinity of the gods, for which he was plunged to th-i chin in a lake of hell, and doomed to everlasting thirst and hunger. Tar' tarns. The part of the infernal regions in which the wicked were punished. Tau'run. The bull under whose form Jupiter carried away Europa. Tlm'achus. The only son of Ulysses. Terpticn'ore. The HUM presiding over dancing. The'mls. The daughter of Coelus and Terra, and goddess of justice. Ti'phys. Pilot of the ship Argo. Tisiph'one. One of the three Furies. Ti'tan. " The son of Coslus and Terra, elder brother of Saturn, and one of the giants who warred against heaven. Titho'nus. The son of Laomedon, -loved by Aurora, and turned by her, in his old age, into a grasshopper. Tri'ton. The son of Neptune and Amphitrite, a powerful sea god, and Neptune's trumpeter. Tro'ilus. A son of Priam and Hecuba. Troy. A city of Phrygia, famous for holding out a siege of ten years against the Greeks, but finally cap- tured and destroyed. Ulys'ses. King of Ithaca, who, by his subtlety and eloquence, was eminently serviceable to the Greeks in the Trojan "War. Ura'nia. The Muse of astronomy. Venus. One of the most celebrated deities of the ancients, the wife of Vulcan, the goddess of beauty, the mother of love, and the mistress of the graces and of pleasures. Vertum'nus. A deity of the Romans, who presided over spring and orchards, and who was the lover of Pomona. Ves'ta. The sister of Ceres and Juno, the goddess of fire, and patroness of vestal virgins. Viri'placa. An inferior nuptial goddess, who recon- ciled husbands and wives. A temple at Rome was dedi- cated to her, whither the married couple repaired after a quarrel. Vulcan. The god who presided over subterraneous fire, patron of workers in metal. Zeph'yrus. The west wind, son of JEolus and Aurora, and love'r of the goddess Flora. Zeus. A title of Jupite'r. LEGEND AND FOLKLORE. The eccentricities of traditional story and tradition- ary practice have always been found a more or less in- teresting and amusing study by the contemplative observer of human nature ; and almost all travelers and historians, from Herodotus downward, have occasion- ally condescended to add something to the general col- lection of curiosities in that department. But to make a thorough investigation of the " vulgar antiquities " of any country, and especially of one's own, was, until very recently, regarded as childish and useless. An ex- ception, indeed, has been made in favor of the folklores of ancient Greece and Rome, as "being intrinsically beautiful and exceptionally instructive. But the very fact that these had been beautified by artistic treat- ment impaired their usefulness from the purely anti- quarian point of view ; and in any case the floating traditions of Attica and Latium were too few, too frag- mentary, and gathered from too narrow an area to fur- nish adequate data for the anthropologist and the so- ciologist. It was in Germany that the study of folklore entered upon its scientific stage, and indeed that country has been most prolific in curious oral traditions and unwrit- ten customs. Every custom has an instructive history if we can but succeed in interpreting its lore. Orion was a giant hunter, noted for his beauty. Puck and Robin Goodfellow are identical myths. Ogri, The, were giants said to feed on human flesh. Toadstool, The, is called in Ireland the fairy's mush- room. i.ok i was the god of strife and evil in Scandinavian mythology. Jupiter chose the eagle as the best preservative against lightning. Apotheosis was the deification or raising of a mortal to the rank of a god. Oak, The, is sacred to Jupiter because he first taught mankind to live upon acorns. Goat, The, was the animal usually sacrificed to Bac- chus, on account of its propensity to destroy the vine. Gypsies, The, are said to be wanderers because they refused shelter to the Virgin and Christ-child on the flight into Egypt. Valkyri, in the northern mythology, are either nine or three times three divine maidens, who cleave their way through air and water to lead to Odin those who have fallen in battle and who are worthy of Valhalla. 206 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Dagon, the national god of the Philistines, half man and half fish, is mentioned in the Old Testament as having temples at Gaza and Ashdod. Several names of places prove that the worship of Dagon existed also in other parts of Palestine. Astral Spirits are the supposed spirits which per- vade the stars, each star having its own spirit or soul. Paracelsus thought that every human being had an astral spirit; hence the influence of one's particular star on his life. Wehr-wolf. According to the ancient German superstition, the Wehr-wolf was a man-wolf, who had the form of a man by day and a wolf by night. Lycan- thropy, or wolf-madness, was prevalent in Europe, and especially in Germany, in the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries. Cornucopia ,the horn or symbol of plenty, is placed in the hands of emblematical figures of Plenty, Liberality, and the like, who are represented as pouring from it an abundance of fruits or corn. It is frequently used in architecture, sculpture, and heraldry. I dris, a mythical figure in Welsh tradition, supposed to have been at once a giant, a prince, and an astrono- mer. On the summit of Caderldris in Merionethshire, may be seen his rock-hewn chair, and an ancient tradi- tion told that any "Welsh bard who could pass the night upon it would be found the next morning, either dead, mad, or endowed with supernatural poetic inspiration. This tradition forms the subject of a fine poem by Mrs. Hemans ; the gigantic size of the chair is alluded to in Tennyson's " Geraint and Enid." Griffin, The, is a chimerical creature, and first men- tioned by Aristeas about 500 B. C. The griffin is vari- ously described and represented, but the shape in which it most frequently appears is that of a cross between a lion and an eagle, having the body and legs of the for- mer, with the beak and wings of the latter, and the addition of pointed ears. Sometimes the four legs are all like those of an eagle, and the head is that of a cock. The figure seems to have originated in the East, as it is found in ancient Persian sculptures. Among the Greeks it appears on antique coins, and as an ornament in clas- sical architecture. Nectar is the name given by Homer, Hesiod, Pindar, and the Greek poets generally, and by the Romans, to the beverage of the gods, their food'being called am- brosia. But Sappho and Alcman make nectar the food of the gods, and ambrosia their drink. Homer describes nectar as resembling red wine, and represents its con- tinued use as causing immortality. By the later poets, nectar and ambrosia are represented "as of most deli- cious odor ; and sprinkling with nectar, or anointing with ambrosia, is spoken of as conferring perpetual youth, and they are assumed as the symbols of every- thing most delicious to the taste. Vishnu is the second god of the Hindu triad, now the most worshiped of all Hindu gods. Originally, in the oldest Vedas, a sun-god, he graduallv increased in influ- ence at the expense of other gods, and in the later Purana, is the supreme god. Always a friendly god, he became specially the friend and benefactor of man in his avatars or incarnations. The Vishnuite doctrines were gathered into one body in the eleventh century, as the Vishnu-Purana. Of twenty principal sects, votaries of Vishnu, and one hundred minor brotherhoods, some are merely local, others are wealthy bodies and wide- spread. Damon and Pythias, two noble Pythagoreans of Syracuse, are remembered as the models of faithful friendship. Pythias, having been condemned to death by the elder Dionysius, the tyrant of Syracuse, begged to be allowed to go home for the purpose of arranging his domestic affairs, Damon pledging his own life for the reappearance of his friend at the time appointed for his doom. Dionysius consented, and Pythias re- turned just in time to save Damon from death. Struck by so noble an example of mutual affection, the tyrant pardoned Pythias, and desired to be admitted into' their sacred fellowship. Brownie, a very engaging though mythical creature of the Scottish rural districts, is believed to assist in housework at night. The brownie is good tempered and industrious, but has a great objection to slovenli- ness, and marks his sense of neglect by pinching slat- ternly maids. Good housewives leave" out a bowl of milk for him. If the farm changed hands the brownie usually left, which may explain why there are none now. The resemblance of the Scotch brownie to the Jtotin Goodfellow of the English and the KoboUL of the folklore la obvious, but perhaps they may be traced further to the lares or hearth spirits of the an- cients. The Russian Domovoy lives behind the stove, and in some families a portion of the supper is always set aside for him ; for if he is neglected he waxes wroth and knocks the tables and benches about at night. Spirits with similar functions elsewhere, are the Lithu- anian karika, the Finnish paara, and the French lutin. Star Legends. In Galicia, the province northeast of Hungary, the peasants believe that when a star falls to earth, it is at once transformed into a rarely beautiful woman with long hair, blonde and glittering. This splendid creature, miraculously engendered, exercises on all who come in contact with her a magical influence. Every handsome youth unfortunate enough to attract her attention becomes her victim. Thus having allured them to her, she encircles them with her arm in an em- brace that becomes gradually tighter and tighter, until the poor dupes are strangled to death. If certain words are murmured the moment the star starts to fall, they cause her allurements to lose their power. From this superstition springs the custom of wishing while a star is seen hurrying through the air, a wish said surelv to come true'if completely formulated before the lignt is extinguished. The Spaniards saw in the falling stars the souls of their dead friends, the thread of whose ex- istence was cut short by destiny. The Arabs thought these stars to be burning stones thrown by angels at the heads of devils who attempted to enter Paradise. Valhalla is the place of residence for the fallen in battle, in Scandinavian mythologv. The name Valhalla was given to a magnificent marble structure of nearly the same proportions as the Parthenon, erected by Lud- wig I., of Bavaria (1830-41), as a Temple of Fame for all Germany, on an eminence two hundred and fifty feet above the Danube, near Ratisbon. By means of statues, busts, reliefs, and tablets, the mythology and history of Germany are illustrated and her great names comme'mo- rated. Thule was the name given by ancient Greeks and Romans to the most remote northern portion of the world then known. Whether an island or part of a continent, is not known. It is mentioned by Pytheas, the Greek navigator, who says it is six days sail from Britain, and that its climate is a mixture of earth, air, and sea. Ptolemy, with more exactitude, tells us that the sixty-three degrees of north latitude runs through the middle of Thule, and adds that the days there are, at the equinoctials, twenty-four hours long. Amulet is any object worn as a charm. It is often a stone or a piece of metal, with an inscription or some figures engraved on it, and is generally suspended from the neck, and worn as a preservative against sickness or witchcraft. Its origin, like its name, seems to be ori- ental. Cockatrice, The, is a fabulous monster, often con- founded with the basilisk, and regarded as possessing similar deadly powers. To the charms of the basilisk is added a dragon's tail armed with a sting; and it shared also the power of destroying, by a glance, so often re- ferred to in Shakespeare, and other early writers. Cuneiform is a term descriptive of a form of writ- ing of which the component parts resemble a wedge. It was used by the peoples of Babylonia, Assyria, and other ancient nations, and was inscribed upon stone, bronze, iron, glass, and clay. It was not until the seventeenth century that the wedge-shaped characters were sus- pected to be other than idle fancies of the architects. Arthur's Round Table contained seats for one hun- dred and fifty knights. Three were reserved ; two for honor, and one (called the siege perilous) for Sir Gala- had, destined to achieve the quest of the Sangreal. If anvone else attempted to sit in it, his death was the cer- tain penalty. Undines, The, according to the fanciful system of Paracelsis, were female water sprites. They intermarry readily with human beings, ana the Undine who gives birth "to a child under such a union receives, with her babe, a human soul. But the man who takes an Undine to wife must be careful not to go on the water with her, or at least must not vex her while there, or she returns to her native element. Igis was an Egyptian goddess. The deities of ancient Egypt might be male or female, but in neither case could the Egyptian wershiper conceive a deity as ex- isting in isolation; to every deity of either sex there ! must be a counterpart of the other sex. It was to this notion that the godQess Isis owed her origin ; she war I the counterpart of Osiris, and this fact is expressed in I the StateBiwnt. that ohp wa_ t nv iHfo atirt 1tcr of . Osirtt DISTORT AND BIOGRAPHY 2or OUTLINES OF HISTORY. CHRONOLOGICAL AND HISTORICAL TABULATIONS DESIGNED FOR READY REFERENCE. Prehistoric Ages. Sir J. Lubbock distinguishes four prehistoric ages, as follows : 1. The Paleolithic or Early Stone Age. 2. The Neolithic or Polished Stone Age. 3. The Bronze Age. 4. The Iron Age. In the Stone Age man knew nothing of pottery or agri- culture and had no domestic animals except the dog. In the Bronze Age arms and cutting instruments were made of bronze. In the Iron Age bronze was superseded by iron. B.C. FROM THE DELUGE TO THE TIME OF CYRUS 235O The Deluge. 2200 (circa). Hia dynasty founded in China. 1996. Birth of Abraham. 1921. Call of Abraham. 1896. Isaac born. 1837. Jacob and Esau born. 1822. Egyptian alphabet invented. 1729. Joseph sold into Egypt. 1706. Jacob removes into Egypt. 1700. Rameses, King of Egypt. 1618. Sesostris, King of Egypt. 1582. Beginning of the chronology of the Arundelian marbles, brought to England A.D. 1627. 1574. Moses born. 1571. Aaron born. 13OO 1491. The Exodus. The I- aw given from Sinai. 1451. Moses and Aaron die. 1451. Joshua leads the Israelites into Canaan. The Hebrews Egypt Assyria Greece, etc. The Pharaohs. 1200 45. Gideon conquers the Midian- ites. 73. Rise of the Assyrian Empire. Semiramis. 63. Jason and the Argonauts. 11OO 88. Jephthah. 56. Eli. 36. Samson slays the Philistines. 20. Samuel. 50. Nebuchad- nezzar I. 30. Tiglath Pileser. 94. The Trojan "War. 84. Capture of Troy. Chow dynasty founded in China. 95. Saul, King. 55. David, King. 42. The Ark removed to Jerusalem. 69. Codrus dies for his people. 68. Archous chosen. 23. Revolt of Absalom. IOOO 15. Solomon, King. 12. The Temple begun. 90. Queen of Sheb 75. Solomon dies. Revolt of th Kingdoms Judah a visits Solomon. e ten tribes two formed : 78. Shishak. 71. Invades Judea and plunders the Temple. Israel 9OO Rehoboam, King. 68. Abijah. 55. Asa. 4. Jehosha- phat. Jeroboam, King. 54. Nadab. 26. Samaria built. 18. Ahab and Jezebel. 900. Erection of the Northwest Palaca of Nimroud. 800 89. Jehoram. 88. The Philis- tines plunder Jerusalem. 78. Joash. 97. Elijah trans- lated. 92. Syrians be- siege Samaria. 84. Jehu. 40. .1 ehoash ,'u:- feats King Benhadaa of Syria. 76. Sardanapalus. 70. The Assyrians conquer Phoenicia. Homer. 84. Legislation of Lycurgus at Sparta. 78. Carthare founded by Dido. 208 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. B.C. Judah Israel Assyria Egypt Greece, Rome Joel, prophet. Jonah. 76. Commence- 59. Jotham. 42. Aha/ pays trib- ute to Tiglath Pileser. 41. Pekah, King of Israel, besieges Jerusalem ; 47. Assyrians in- vade Israel. 30. Hosea pays tribute. 47. Nabonassar. 41. Tiglath Pileser. 28. Shalrnaneser. ment of Olym- piads first authentic date in Greek history. 53. Rome founded by Romulus. 120 ,000 of his men are slain in one 21. The ten tribes carried into cap- 23. Invades Phoenicia. 50. Sabine war in lioiuc day. tivity. 26. Hezekiah. 17. Sennacherib. Isaiah. 11. Sennacherib's Nahuin. 10 Sennacherib's 9. Esarhadon, King of invasion. 700 army destroyed. Babylonia 97. Manasseh. 42. Amon. 41. Josiah. 11. Necho II. loses 24. Code of Draco, Jeremiah. Habakkuk. 200,000 men try- ing" to cut canal to Red Sea. Athens. 16. Tarquin the Elder, King of ^"^-^ 6. Jerusalem 6. Nebuchadnezzar the Great defeats 6. Nebuchadnez- Rome. taken by Necho of Egypt, invades Judea and zar defeats GOO Nebuchadnezzar. takes Jerusalem. Necho. 98. Jehoiachin. 96. Zedekiah. 88. Jerusalem de- 89. Nebuchadnezzar invades Phoenicia. 94. Apries, King. 94. Solon gives laws at Athens. stroyed. 79-72. Conquered 79. Takes Tyre. and devasted by 78. Servius Tul- Ezekiel. Destroys Nineveh. Nebuchadnezzar. lius, Rome. Jews carried captive to Babylon. 55. Belshazzar. Amasis. 34. Tarquin the 38. Cyrus, the Mede, captures Babylon and establishes the Persian Empire. Psammenit. 25. Conquest by Proud. 36. Cyrus ends captivity of the Jews. 1 Cambyses, son of 29. Death of Cyrus. Cyrus. FROM CYRUS TO ALEXANDER Persia Greece Macedonia Rome 21. Darius I. Zechariah, prophet. Haggai. 15. Dedication of sec- ond temple at Jerusa- lem. 10. The Pisistratidae 10. The Tarquins van- expelled from Athens. 8. Subdued by Darius quished. 8-6. Conquest of Republic. of Persia. Republic. Thrace, Paeonia, and 4. Sardis bun led by Consuls. 5OO Macedonia. the Greeks. 1. Dictators. 94. Darius invades 90. Miltiades defeats 93. Tribunes chosen. Greece. the Persians at 91. Coriolanus con- 90. Defeated at Marathon. quered. Marathon. 81. Xerxes invades Greece. 80. Leonidas at Ther- mopylae. Themisto- cles at Salamis. Xerxes destroys Athens. 89. Besieges Rome. 88. Retires at his mother's suit. 79. Returns defeated. 80-50. Anaxag jras 67. Ezra returns to teaches philosophy. Jerusalem. 65. Artaxerxes I. 79. Battles of Mycale and Plataea ; Persians 58. Cincinnatus Dic- tator. 60. Egypt revolts. retreat. 51. First decemvirate. 56. Esther. 44. Pericles supreme. 49. Virginius kills his 55. Jerusalem rebuilt by Nuh e mi ah. 43. The Parthenon built by Phidias. daughter to save her honor. 31. Peloponnesian war. 40. Famine in Rome. 29. Death of Pericles. Socrates. 1. Battle of Cunaxa ; 14. Battle of Syracuse. 400 Cyrus the Younger 13. Athenians invade slain. Sicily. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 209 B.C. Persia Greece Macedonia Rome Artaxerxes Mnemon. 95. Corinthian war. 98. Amyntas. 94. Persians and Athe- 90. Rome burnt by the Gauls nians in battle of on Olinthian war Cnidus. 76. Civil war between 78. Theban war Eatricians and ple- Epaminondas,Theban eians. general. 58. Philip II. 69. Tribunes abolished. 38. Athenians and Thebans defeated 40. Samnian war begins 39. War with Macedon. at Chseronea. 37. War with Latins. 36. Darius III. (Codo- manus). 36. Murder of Philip. Accession of Alex- 35. Surrender of 35. Greeks conquered ander the Great. Latiuiu. by Alexander the 34. Battle of the Great. Grjiuicus Thebes destroyed. 34. Persia invaded and conquered by Alex- ander the Great of 33. Battle of Issus. Af acedon. 33. Capture of Damascus. Siege of Tyre. 39 Treatv with Alex- 32. Alexander captures Tyre and conquers Egypt. Alexandria founded. ander. 31. Battle of Arbela sub j ugation of Persia. * 30. Darius assassinated. 28. Alexander invades India. 24. Alexander dies at Babylon. FROM ALEXANDER TO AUGUSTUS Egypt Syria Greece Macedonia Rome 22. Ptolemy I. 23. Seleucus I. 21. Romans de- 1. Battle of Issus. feated by Pon- Final division of tius. Alexander's do- 30O minions. 81. War with Ptolemy Lagus. 84. Ptolemy Phila- delphus. 83. Antiochusl. 99. Athens taken by Demetrius. 97. Republic re- established. 98. Philip IV. Pyrrhus, King of Epirus. 80. Pyrrhus invades Italy. 74. Pyrrhus 87. Birth of Ar- chimedes (d. 212). 91. Achaean league. 88. Lysimachus, King of Thrace, subjects Mace- defeated at Ben- even turn. C5. Rome supreme over all Italy. 79. Irruption of donia. 64. First Punic the Ga ils. war. 56. Defeat of 46. Ptolemy Ever- 46. Seleucus I. 51. Achaean league Carthaginians. getes. renewed. 55. Regulus capt'd, bv Carthaginians 41. Catullus Egyptians conquer Syria. defeats Carthaginians. 18. Second Punic war. Hannibal 26. Reforms of defeats Romans Cleomenes. at Ticinus. 21. Ptolemy Philo- pater. 23. Antiochus the Great. 17. Hannibal passes the 20. Philip V. Apennines. 16. Battle of Cannae. 11-5. First Mace- donian war. 7. Carthaginians defeated at 11. War with Rome Metaurus. 3. Scipio carries 4. Ptolemy war into Africa. no Epiphane. 2. Hannibal & Wr defeated. 210 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. B.C. Egypt Judea Syria Greece Macedonia Rome 1OO 80. Ptolemy Philometer. 45. Ptolemy Physcon. 17. Ptolemy Lathyrus. Egyptians driven out by Antiochus. 65. Antiochus defeated by Judas. 35. John Hyr- canus. 6. Aristobulus. 5. Alexander Jannaeus. 98. Independ- ent. 75. Antiochus IV. 70. Plunders Jerusalem. 30. Antiochus VII. 23. Antiochus VIII. 12. Antiochus IX. 91. Sparta joins the league. 88. Laws of Lycurgus abolished by Philopcemen. 46. Corinth taken by Mummius. 99. Second war with Rome. 78. Perseus. 72. Third war with Rome. 68. Battle of Pydna. Macedonia made a Roman province. 99. Second war with Mace- donia. 72. Third war with Mace- donia. 49. Third Punic war. 46. Carthage destroyed. 34. First Servile war. 33. Conquest of Spain. 2. Second Servile War. B.C. Ptolemy Alexander. 66. Berenice. 48. Murder of Pompey. 45. Cleopatra. 30. Death of Antony and Cleopatra. Egypt subdued by Rome. 78. Alexandra, Queen. 70. Hyrcanusll. 67. Aristobulus II. 63. Jerusalem taken by the Romans. 69. Antiochus XIII. 64. Pompey makes Syria a Roman province. 90-88. The Social war in Italy. 88. War with Pontus. Civil war Marius and Sulla. 73-72. Victories of Lucullus. 63. Second conspiracy of Catiline Cicero's orations. 60. First triumvirate : Pompey, Julius Caesar, Crassus. 55. Caesar invades Britain. Crassus killed by the Parthians. 51. Gaul subjugated. 49. Civil war between Caesar and Pompey. Caesar dictator. 48. Battle of Pharsalia. 45. War in Spain. Pompeians defeated at Munda. Caesar dictator for life. 44. Caesar assassinated. Antony master of Rome. Corinth and Carthage rebuilt. 43. Second triumvirate Octavius, Antony, Lepidus. Cicero put to death. Ovid born. 42. Battle of Philippi. Death of Brutus and Cassius. Triumvirs masters of the Roman world. 40. Herod made King of the Jews. 32. War between Octavius and Antony. 31. Battle of Actium. Establishment of the Roman Empire. 27. Caesar Octavius, Emperor, under the title of Augustus. 17-7. Temple of Jerusalem rebuilt by Herod. 12. Drusus invades Germany. 4. The Advent of Christ (according to Usher). FROM AUGUSTUS TO CHARLEMAGNE A.D. 4-6. Tiberius in Germany. 9. Varus and his legions destroyed by the Germans under Hermann. 29. The Crucifixion of Jesus Christ. (Some authorities give A.D. 33 as the date.) 37. Caligula. 41. Claudius. 54. Nero. 61. Insurrection of the Britons under Boadicea. 34. Rome burned. Christians persecuted. 70. Jerusalem destroyed by Titus. 79. Pompeii and Herculaneum destroyed by eruption of Vesuvius. 100 17. Hadrian. 30. Birth of Galen. 63. Persecution of Christians. 96. Severus captures Byzantium. 2OO 2. Persecution of Christians. 9. Severus invades Caledonia. 31. Persian war. 36. Persecution of Christians renewed. 52-67. Dreadful pestilence. 63. The Franks invade Gaul. 3OO 3. Diocletian persecutes Christians. 6. Constantino the Great. 11. Edict to stop persecutions. 23. Constantino sole emperor. 26. Council of Nice. 26. Arian controversy. 64. Yalentinian and Valens joint emperors. Final division of the empire. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 211 The Western Empire The Eastern Empire 8OO 4OO 93. Honorius, Emperor. 94. Theodosius master of the whole Roman world. 95. Death of Theodosius. 400. The Goths, under Alaric, overrun Italy. 9. Romans driven from Spain. 10. Alaric sacks Rome. 11. Roman legions recalled from Britain. 40. Leo I. (the Great) Bishop of Rome. 49. I ,;i ml ii._ of Anglo-Saxons in Britain. 52. Attila invades Italy. 53. Death of Attila. 55. Genseric sacks Rome. 57. Hengist founds the kingdom of Kent. 72. The Visigoths conquer Spain. 76. Odoacer, King of Italy. End of Western Empire. 76. Valens allows the Huns to settle in Thrace. 78. Constantinople threatened by the Goths. 95. Arcadius, Emperor of the East. The Huns invade the Eastern provinces. 8. Theodosius II. 28. Nestor, Patriarch of Constantinople. 29. Vandals, under Genseric, invade Africa. 33. Attila, King of the Huns. 39. The Vandals surprise Carthage. 47. Attila ravages the empire and exacts tribute 50. Marcian. 65. Great fire at Constantinople. 500 6OO 700 86. The Franks in Gaul. 89. The Ostrogoths in Italy. 7. Kingdom of the Franks founded by Clovis. 39. Belisarius in Italy. 52. Ostrogoths expelled from Italy. 96. The Lombards overrun Italy. 28. Dagobert, King of France. 56. Clovis II., King of France. 62. Lombards defeat Constans II. in Italy. 78. Cadwallader, last King of the Britons. 97. Anefesto, Doge of Venice. 11. Saracens invade Spain. 14. Charles Martel, Duke of France. 32. Battle of Tours. Saracens defeated by the Franks under Charles Martel. 62. Pepin the Short, King of France. 68. Succeeded by his sons, Charlemagne and Carloman. 72-85. Charlemagne conquers the Saxons. 74. Charlemagne conquers the Lombards. 87. The Danes in England. 91-96. Charlemagne establishes the margravate of Austria. 2. The empire ravaged by the Persians. 29. The Justinian code published. 81. The Slavonians in Thrace. 12. Mahomet spreads his doctrines. 14. Persians ravage Syria and Palestine. 22. The Hegira. 40. The Saracens invade Egypt. 73. Siege of Constantinople. 97. Saracens conquer Northern Africa. 20. The Saracens defeated at Constantinople. 30. Iconoclasts burn and destroy works of art. 800 800. Charlemagne crowned Emperor of the West oy Pope Leo III. Haroun al Raschid, Caliph of Arabia. 212 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. FROM CHARLEMAGNE TO NAPOLEON A.D. England France Germany Eastern Empire 800 900 The Anglo-Saxons 28. Egbert, King. 71. Alfred the Great. 41. Charles the Bald. 61. Pillaged by North- men. House of France 14. Louis the Debon- naire separates Ger- many from France. 11. Bulgarians defeat the Greek Emperor. 24. Athelstane. 37. Defeats Danes, 12. Robert. Duke of Normandy. House of Saxony 18. Henry I. (the Fowler). Scots, etc. Capetian Dynasty 34. Conquers Huns, Danes Vandals 79. Edward the Martyr assassinated. 88. Hugh Capet, King. 96. Robert II. Bohemians. 62. Otho I. crowned 69. John Zimisces. 1OOO Paris made capital. Emperor by Pope. 83. Otho III. Ethelred. 10. Edmund. House of Bavaria The Danes 2. Henry II. (Saint). 17. Canute sole ruler. v^^ 34. Canute II. 31. Henry I. House of Franconia 42. Saxons restored. 22. Conrad II. 54. Schism of Greek Edward the Con- fessor. 66. Battle of Hastings. The Normans 60. Philip I. 39. Henry III. 56. Henry IV. 73. War with Saracens. Church. 81. Alexius Comnenus. 11OO William I. (the Conqueror). 87. William H. 87. War with England. 77. Henry goes to Canossa and submits to Pope. 96. Suspicious recep- tion of Crusaders. Henry I. 8. Louis the Fat. 6. Henry V. 36. Stephen. The Plantagenets 38. Conrad in. 54. Henry H. 37. Louis VH. 52. Frederick I. 43. Manuel Comnenus. 71. Invasion of Ireland. 89. Richard Coeur de Barbarossa. 54. Invades Italy. 47. Treachery to Ger- man Crusaders. Lion. 80. Philip II. 62. Destroys Milan. 1200 99. John Lackland. 67. Italian League. 15. Magna Charta signed. 14. Philip Augustus. Battle of Bouvines. 9. Otto IV. 18. Frederick II. 4. Baldwin I. 16. Henry III. 41. Hanseatic League 6. Peter de Courtenay. 62. War of the Barons. 26. Louis IX. formed. 19. Robert de 65. Barons defeated. 48. Louis IX leads House of Hapsbnrg Courtenay. 72 Edward I. 82. Conquest of Wales. seventh crusade. 70. Dies before Tunis. 73. Rudolph I. 92. Adolph. 28. Baldwin II. 13OO 97. Sir William Wallace in Scotland. Philip III. 98. Albert I. 61. Michael Paleologus. "rTEdward II. 1. Philip IV. quarrels 7. Swiss revolt. 14. Battle of Bannock- with the Pope. William Tell. 28. Andronic in. burn. 27. Edward HI. 46. Battle of Creasy. 14. Louis X. House of Valoia 16. Battle of Morgarten. Swiss independence. 41. John Paleologus. 56. Battle of Poictiers. 28. Philip VI. House of Luxemburg 60. The Turks in 77. Richard III. 60. John II. 49. Charles IV. Adrianople. 14OO House of Lancaster 99. Henry IV, 64. Charles V. 80. Charles VI. 78. Wenceslaus. 91. Manuel Paleologus. 13. Henry V. War with France. 15. Battle of Agincourt. 22. Henry VI. 63. War of the Roses. 22. Charles VII. 29. Joan of Arc raises siege of Orleans. 51. English expelled. 10. Sigismund. 15. John Huss burned. House of Austria 25. John Paleologus II. 48. Constantino Pale- ologus. House of York 61. Louis XI. 38. Albert II. 63. Amurath captures 61. Edward IV. 40. Frederick in. Constantinople . 83. Edward V. House of Tudor 83. Charles VIII. Valois-Orleans Turkey 66. Turks defeated at ti 6. Henry VII. 98. Louis XII. 93. Maximilian I. Belgrade. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 213 FROM CHARLEMAGNE TO NAPOLEON \.I>. Spain Italy Russia Scandinavia Contemporary 8OO 73. Kingdom of Navarre founded by Sancho Inigo. 42. Invasion by the Saracens. 2. Ruric, the Nor- man, establishes first regular government at 800-1000. Viking Period. Norwegians colonize Iceland. 9. Haroun al Raschid, Caliph of Arabia, des. 9OO Novgorod. 4. Oleg invades Greek empire. 88. Vladimir the Eric. 90. Genoa becomes Great embraces 93. Olaf , first rich and power- Christianity. Christian King 1000 ful. of Sweden. 26. Sancho II. King of Castile. 31. Ramirez I. King of Aragon. 16-17. Saracens expelled by the Normans. 2. Massacre of Danes by Ethelred of Eng. 3. Avenged by Svenn, King of 1. The Northmen discover America. 65. Turks take Denmark. Jerusalem. 91. Moors seize 73-86. GregoryVII. establishes 13. Svenn conquers England. Saracen universal sover- 96. First Crusade. 11OO possessions. 95. Henry of Besanfon takes Portugal from Saracens. eigntyof Papacy. 80. Inge the Elder King of Sweden. 98. Crusaders take Antioch. 99. Crusaders take Jerusalem. Exploits of the Cid Ruy Diaz. 20. Rise of Lorn^ bard cities. 25. The glory of 4. Crusaders .take Acre. 46. Second Venice. Crusade. 54. Barbarossa. 72. Saladin's con- 1094-1144. Dynasty of the Almora- vides at Cordova 61. Wars of the Guelphs and Ghibellines. 76. Barbarossa 55. Eric Edwardson. quest in Asia. 87. Third Crusade. 94. Fourth Crusade. 44. Alphonso of defeated at Leon defeats Legnano. the Moors in 83. Peace of 12OO several battles. Constance. . 33-48. Ferdinand III. takes Cordo- 23. Irruption of Tartars. 44. Danes invade 1200. Fifth va, Toledo, etc., from the Moors. 36-50. Wars of 42. Tartars defeated by Alexander Crusade. 17. Sixth Crusade. 38. Moors found Granada. Frederick II. 77. The Visconti at Milan. establish empire of Kaptschak. Newski. 18. Genghis Khan, the Mogul, conquers Asia. 13OO 74. Crown of Navarre passes to France. 82. The Sicilian Vespers. French expelled from Sicily. 79. Magnus. 90. Birger. 68. Eighth and last Crusade. 99. Osman I., Turkish empire. 27. King of Gra- nada brings 200,000 Moors from Africa. 8. Pope Clement V. removes to Avignon. 39. First Doge of 80. War with 89. Margaret offered the Swedish Crown. 11. Knights Templars suppressed. 40. Alphonso XI. of Castile defeats Moors at Tarifa. Genoa appointed 47. Rienzi frees Rome. 51. Death of Rienzi Tartars. 83. Moscow burned 95. Invasion by Tamerlane. 97. Union of Calmar: Sweden, Norway and Denmark. 96. Battle of Nico- polis. Christians 14OO Eric King. defeated . 74. Ferdinand II. of Aragon marries Isabella of Leon and Castile. 80-84. Inquisition established. 95. Charles VII. conquers Naples 96. Charles loses Naples. 99. Louis XII., 62. Ivan the Great founds present monarchy. 79. Great Tartar 14. War with Schleswig. 34. Revolt of peasantry. 39. Eric dethroned 7. Battle of Angora Tamerlane captures Bajazet 22. Amu rath II. consolidates Ottoman Empire 42. Hungarians defeat Turks at Vasag. 92-98. Jews perse- cuted. 92. Ferdinand takes Granada. aided by Venice, conquers Milan, but does not hold it long. invasion. 91. Tartars defeated. 70. Sten Sture. 92. Columbus dis- covers America. 97. Cabot discovers* Newfoundland. 214 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. A.D. England France Germany America 15OO 9. Henry VTII. 12. Florida discovered 13. Battle of Flodden. 13. English Invasion. 17. Protestant Refor- by Ponce De Leon. 15. Wolsey. 15. Francis I. mation Luther. 13. Balboa discovers 20. Field of the Cloth of Gold. 25. Battle of Pavia. 19. Charles V. the Pacific Ocean. 21. Diet of Worms. 36. Anne Boleyn beheaded. 47. Henry II. 30. Augsburg Con- fession. 21. Cortez conquers Mexico. 47. Edward VI. 53. Mary. 54. Marries Philip of 59. Francis II. 60. Huguenot War. 72. Massacre of St Bartholomew 36. Death of John of Leyden. 56. Charles V. abdicates. 44. De Soto discovers the Mississippi. Spain. 58. Elizabeth. 74. Henry III. Ferdinand I. 87. Mary of Scots House of Bourbon 64. Maximilian II. 85. First American beheaded. 89 Henry IV. of 88. Spanish Armada. ; Navarre. 76. Rudolph II. settlement founded by Walter Raleigh. 16OO House of Stuart 12. Mathias. 3. James I. 10. Louis Xm. 18. Thirty Years' War. 7. Jamestown settle- 19. Ferdinand II. ment. 25. Charles I. 49. Commonwealth 24. Richelieu. 27. Siege of Rochelle. 20. Battle of Prague. 30. Gustavus Adolphus 14. New Amsterdam of Sweden invades : settled. Germany. ^^^ Oliver Cromwell. 43 - lj m8 *** 32. Battle of Lutzen. 20. Puritans land at 60. Stuarts restored. Ware of the Fronde. Death of Gustavus Adolphus. Plymouth Rock. Charles II. 34. Death of Wallen- 66. Great London fire. 72. Holland invaded. , 8t * in ' J . 79. Habeas Corpus Act. . . 37 - Ferdinand III. 80. William Penn. 85. James II. revoked. lia closes war and 88. William and Mary. ^ War ^ Eng]and establishes religious toleration. 90. Battle of the Boyne. 97. Peace of Ryswick. 59. Leopold I. 99. Peace of Carlowitz. 17OO~ 2. Anne. House of Hanover 4. Defeated by Marl- borough at Blenheim. 13. Peace of Utrecht. 15. Louis XV. 5. Joseph I. 11. Charles VI. 33. Oglethorpe founds Savannah 14. George I. 16. Speculation era. 27. George II. 39. War with Spain. George Law. 45. Battle of Fontenov. 46. Victories of Marshal 42. Charles VTI. War of Austrian suc- cession. 59. Quebec captured by the English. 46. Stuart troubles in Scotland. Battle of Culloden. 48. Peace of Aix-la- Chapelle. 74. Louis XVI. House of Lorraine 45. Francis I. (husband 63. Peace of Paris. France cedes Cana^i to England. 56. War with France. 78. Aids America. 87. Assembly of of Maria Theresa). 75 Battle of Lexington ] 60. George m. 75. War with American Notables. 88. States General. 89. Revolution. 56-63. Seven Years' War. 65. Joseph II. 76. Declaration of In<*H pendence. Colonies. 93- Reign of Terror. , || Louis beheaded. 90. Leopold II. 89. George Washing- ton, President. 97. Nelson destroys ReoubHc French fleet near i^ZiL^ T- ir _ t Alp-rand Ha ' -NapOICOn, * irSt Consul. 92. Francis I. Battle of Valmy. 97. John Adams, Pref ' dent. 18TOO~ 1. Union with Irela id. 3. War with Frana . 5. Napoleon defeat* d 4. Napoleon, Emperor. 5. Battle of Austerlitz. 4. Francis renounces title Emperor of the Romans and assumes that of Emperor of 1. Thomas Jefferson President. at Trafalgar. 6. Jena. Austria 4-6. Lewis and Claris- 5. Napoleon estab- lishes Kingdoms of explore the Upper Missouri. 8. Peninsular War. Wurtemberg and 9. wagram. Bavaria. 6. Dissolution of Ger- 9. James Madison, 12. War with U. 8. 12. Russian campaign. man Empire. Confederation of the President. 12. War with all Rhine formed. . Europe. 7. Kingdom of West- 14. Peace with U. S. 14. Allies enter France. Napoleon sent to Elba. phalia. 8. Serfdom abolished in Prussia. Restoration 13. War of Liberation Louis XVIII., King. (against Napoleon). 13. Battle of Leipzig. IB. Battle of Waterloo. 15. Napoleon returns. Battle of Waterloo. 14. Prussians occupy Paris. 15. Battle of New Orleans Napoleon sent to 14-15. Congress of St. Helena. Vienna. German Con- federation formed. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 215 A.D. Spain Italy Russia Scandinavia Contemporary 1 ~fn 1500-22. Mohamme- J.O \J\J dans expelled. 9. Venice stripped 20. Christian II. 12. Ferdinand con- of Italian posses- quers Navarre. ! sions. 21. Sweden breaks loose from Union 16. Accession ftf ("'alinaT House of Austria 13-22. Pope Leo X. Charles I., 33. Ivan IV. Gustavus Vasa. 35. Order of Jesu- its founded. King of Spain 19. Charles be- comes Emperor 53. Trade with England begun. 59. Frederick II. of Denmark. 72. Holland, undei William of of Germany as Charles V. 57. War with 64. Siberia discov- ered. 60. Eric XIV.King of Sweden. War between Orange, rebels against Philip's tyranny. France. Denmark and 61. Turks defeated 98. The race of Sweden. 81. Holland a re- at Le panto. 80. Portugal con- quered. 88. Armada de- feated. Ruric, which governed Russia for 700 years, becomes extinct. 70.Peace of Stettin. 93. Augsburg Con- fession accepted at Upsala. public. 82. Reformation of calendar. 160O~ 1600-10. 300,000 Moors banished. 27-31. War of 6. Demetrius the impostor. 10. Interregnum. 13. Michael Fedorovitz,Czar, establishes the 1600. Charles IX. 11. Gustavus Adolphus. Axel Oxenstjerna. 17. Russia cedes Finland to Sweden. 35. Tulip mania. 52. VanTromp sweeps the Channel. Mantuan succes- house of 69. Turks take 40. Portugal inde- sion. Romanoff. 30. Gustavus Candia. pendent. 45. Alexis. defeats Tilly. 54. Victories in 32. Gustavus Adol- 83. SobiesM, King Poland. phus killed at of Poland, de- 93. Battle of Marsaglia. 81. The Cossacks subdued. battle of Lutzen. Christina. feats the Turks at Vienna. French defeat 82. Ivan and Peter 54. Charles X. 99. Peace of Car- Duke of Savoy. the Great. 89. Peter sole ruler. 97. Charles XII. lowitz. 170O~ PhilipV. (Bour- 1700. War with Sweden. 1700. Swedes defeat bon). 2. War of Succes- 3. St. Petersburg founded Russians at Narva. sion. 6. Battle of Turin. 9. Peter defeats 4. English cap- ture Gibraltar. the Swedes at Pultowa. 9. Pultowa. Peter sends 14,000 13. Siege of Barce- lona. 13. Peace of Utrecht. 11. War with Turkey. Swedish prison- ers to colonize Siberia. 40. Maria Theresa, Queen of Hun- Italy divided 25. Catharine I. gary. 35. Charles con- 30. Peter II. quers Naples. deposed. 41. Elizabeth. 59. Charles III. 62. Catharine the Great. 96. War with 96-97. Bonaparte's first victories in 69-84. Conquest of the Crimea. England. Italy. 98. Pius VI. depos- 95. Partition of Po- 97. Battle of Cape St. Vincent. ed by Bonaparte. land completed. 96. War with Persia. 18OO 2. Italian Repub- 1. Alexander I. 3. Humboldt lic, Bonaparte traverses 5. Battle of president. 5. Russia joins Mexico. Trafalgar. 5. Napoleon crowned King of coalition against France. 9. Finland ceded to Russia. 5. Mungo Park 8. French take Italy. murdered in Madrid. 7. Treaty of Tilsit. Africa. Charles IV. abdi- Peace with cates. Joseph France. Bonaparte, King. 12. Napoleon invades Russia. 14. Union of 12. Battle of Sala- Burning of Sweden and manca. Moscow. Norway. 15. Treaty of 14. Fall of Napo- Vienna. 13. Wellington oc- leon. Kingdom . cupies Madrid'. overthrown. 15. Alexander 14. Ferdinand VII. 15. Lombardo- organizes the "Holy Alliance." restored. Venetian King- dom established by Austria. 216 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. FROM NAPOLEON TO THE PRESENT TIME A.D. England France Prussia Austria America 1800 1 18. Zollverein 17. James Monroe, President. 20. George IV. formed. . 19. Death of Mar- 24. Death of Lord shal Blucher. Byron. 24. Charles X. 1825~ 26. Great commer- cial crisis. 27. War with 25. Hungarian Diet meets. 25. John Quincy Adams, Presi- Algiers. dent. 29. Catholic relief bill. 29. Andrew Jack- 30. William IV. 30. Louis Philippe. son, President. Conquest of 37. Victoria. Algiers. Hanover separated from 31. Hereditary peerage 34. Zollverein 33. Martin Van Buren, President Great Britain. abolished. includes most of 39. War with the German 36. Ferdinand I. 41. Wm. H. Harri China. States. son, President. 40. Penny postage. 48. Revolution. Republic pro- 40 Frederick * 8 - Insurrection at John Tyler, William IV. Vienna. President. 46. Repeal of the Corn Laws. claimed. Outbreak of 48. Revolution. Franc1"josT a h' 45 ' James K - Polk ' 48. Chartist riots. 49. Cholera. Red Republicans Louis Napoleon President. 50. New Constitu- tion. VJ. Hungarian revolution put 49. ZacharyTaylor, down. President. 1850~ 51. First " Great Exhibition." 51. Coup d'etat. Louis Napoleon re-elected. 53. Plot to over- throw govern- ment at Berlin. 56. Amnesty to i 53. Franklin Hungarians. Pierce, Presi- 59. War w. France dent. 54. Crimean War. 52. Empire re- established by and Sardinia. 57. James Buchan- Solferino. an, President 56. War with popular vote and the President de- Death of Prince 58. Atlantic cable, ilcttc rnich . China. War with Persia. 57. Indian mutiny. Great com- mercial crisis. 58. Jewish disabil- ities removed. 67. War with Abyssinia. Fenian trouble clared Emperor as Napoleon III. 59. War with Austria. Magenta and Solferino. 70. War with Prussia. Battle 61. William I. 62. Bismarck appointed premier. 64. War with Denmark. 66. War with Austria. Battle of Sadowa. Han- over annexed. 61. Disaffection in Hungary. 63. Insurrection in Poland. 64. War with Den- mark. 66. Defeat at Sadowa. 61. Abraham Lin- coln, President. Civil war. 65. Andrew John- son, President. Austria with- 69. Disestablish- of Sedan. Napo- ment of Irish Icon surrenders. draws from German confed- Church. 71. The Commune. Republic. ?n War with eration. France 67.Newconstitu- 73. Ashantee war. Thiers, Presi- dent. 73. .Mac Mali on, President. William made Emperor of Germany uon. 73. International Exhibition. Vienna. 69. Ulysses S. Grant.President. 1875~ 76. Queen pro- claimed Empress of India. 78. Attempt to I 78. Occupation of president y ' 78. Great commer- cial depression. Warm Afghanistan. 79. Zulu war. 80. Famine in Ireland. Land League. 82. War in Egypt. 88. Irish Home 79. Jules Grevy, President. 87. Sadi-Carnot, President. 89. Boulanger ex- citement. assassinate the Emperor. 80. Trouble with Socialists. 82. Imperial rescript. 88. Accession and death of Frederick HI. William II. Herzegovina and Bosnia. 79. Count An- drassy resigns. 80. Agreement with Germany on Eastern question. 81. James A. Gar- fleld, President. 81. Chester A. Arthur, Presi- dent. 85. Grover Cleve- land, President. Rule discussion 93. Gladstone's Home Rule bill passed by the Commons, but defeated by the Peers. 96. War with Ger- many imminent. 98. Richener's 94. Sadi-Carnot - 89. Mining strikes, assassinated. j 93, Enormous Casimir-Perier, incr e a se in Socialist vote. 95. Casimir-Perier, Passage of resigns. Felix Emperor's army Faure, President billf Faure 96. Trouble with M.Loubet ; England over 93. Attempt to assassinate the Emperor. 89. Benjamin W. Harrison, Presi- dent. 93. Grover Cleve- land, President. 97. Wm.McKinley, President, 98. War with Spain. 1900 victory at Omdurman. Gladstone died President. Dreyfus case re-opened. rransvaai. 98. Death of PrinceBismarck. 98. Empress 99. Acquisition of assassinated at Cuba, Porto Rico Geneva. > and Philippines. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 217 FROM NAPOLEON TO THE PRESENT TIME A.D. Spain Italy Russia Scandinavia Contemporary 18OO 17. Slave trade abolished. * 18. Charles XIV. 18. Sir John Ross 20. Revolution. (Bernadotte). explores Baffin's 23. French invest Bay. Cadiz. Revolu- tion crushed. 1825~ 28. French evacu- 25. Death of Alex- ander. ate Cadiz. Nicholas Czar. 27. Greece inde- 29. Cadiz made a 26. War with pendent. free port. 30. Salique law abolished. Persia. 28. War with Turkey. 29-32. James Ross discovers mag- netic pole. 33. Isabella II. 30. Polish War of Christina, Regent. 34. CarlistWar. 39. Don Carlos de- 37. Charles Albert of Sardinia pro- mulgates new code. Independence. 31. Russians take Warsaw. 32. Poland made 31. Belgium independent. integral part of 41. Espartero, Regent. 43. Driven out. Queen 13 years old declared of 48-49. Sardinia defeated by Austria. 49. Victor Emanuel II. Russian empire. 44. Oscar I., King of Sweden. 48. War between Denmark and 46. Franklin's exp to North Pole. 47. Liberia found- ed. age. Roman Germany. I 47. Espartero Republic. restored. Overthrown. 1850~ 54. War with 66. Insurrection. O'Donnell, 55. Sardinia joins alliance against Turkey, France, and England. dictator. Russia. Siege of Sebas- topol. 69. War with 59. War with Balaklava. Morocco. Austria. Inkerman. ! 60. Moors defeated 60. Garibaldi invades Naples. Sardinian 55. Alexander II. 56. Amnesty. Treaty of Paris 59. Charles XV. 58. Livingstone's Zambezi expedi- army defeats 61. Polish insur- tion. (Africa.) ! 66. Prim insurrec- tion. Papal troops. Sicily and Naples annexed rection. 63. Serfs freed. 64. Christian IX. 1 68. Successful rev- olution led by Prim and Serano 70. Crown accept- ed by Amadeus. to Sardinia. 61. Victor Eman- uel, King of Italy 66. War with Germany. of Denmark re- nounces claim to Schleswig and Holstein. 72-76. Carlistwar. 73. Abdicates. Republic. Alfonso XII. 70. Rome annexed. '..'" 72. Oscar II., King of Sweden. 71-7. Stanley in Africa. 1875~ 76. Conquest of 78. Montenegro in, 79. Death of Khiva. dependent. Queen Mercedes. 78. Death of Vic- 77. War with Servia free 80. Slavery abol- ished in Cuba. 86. Posthumous son born to tor Emanuel. Humbert, King. Death of Pius Turkey. Russians take Plevna and Osman Pasha. state. Roumania ind 81. Thessaly ceded to Greece. Queen Christina. IX. Leo XIII., 78. Occupy Adrianople. 81-6. Greely's North Pole exp. 90. Senor de Cas- Pope. Treaty of Ber- lin 85. Congo Free tillo, premier. 93. War with 80. Republican agitation. 1111. 81. Alexander II. assassinated. Alexander III. State constituted 87-9. Stanley pen- etrates to Lake Albert Nyanza. Moors. 94. Nicholas HI. 90. Heligoland transferred to I 95. Republican uprisings. 95-97. Cuban revolt 96. Defeated in Abyssinia. 96. Coronation of Nicholas III. Germany. 94. War between China and Japan 19OO 97. Revolt in the Philippines. - 98. War with United States. 99. Death of Senor Canovas. 97. Attempted assassination of King Humbert. 98. Lease of Port Arthur from China. 99. Czar's universal peace proposal. 98. Norwegian Arctic expedi- tion on the "Fram." 95. Armenian massacres. 96. X ray discovery. 97. Turko-Greeian War. 218 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. A.D. HISTORY OF AMERICA 14OO 1500 1600 965. The Icelandic discovery. Leif Erikson and the Northmen. 92. Columbus discovers the island of Guanahani, of the Bahamas, which he names San Salvador, Oct. 12. He discovers Cuba, Oct. 28 ; Hayti, Dec. 6. 97. Cabot discovers Labrador. 99. Amerigo Vespucci's voyage. 1. Negro slaves imported into Hispaniola. 6. Death of Columbus. 13. Balboa discovers the Pacific Ocean. 21. Cortez conquers Mexico. 28. Narvaez visits Florida. 34. Cartier explores the St. Lawrence. 41. De Soto conquers Louisiana. 44. De Soto discovers the Mississippi. 64. The Huguenots in Florida. 65. St. Augustine, in Florida, founded by the Spaniards. 85. First settlement, at Roanoke Island, founded by Walter Raleigh, a failure. The Colonies 17OO 1607. Settlement at Jamestown. 9. Hendrik Hudson discovers the Hudson River. 20. The Puritans land at Plymouth Rock. 27. Settlement by Swedes and Finns at Cape Henlopen. 34. Maryland granted to Lord Baltimore. SsTSettlement by English at Win^ drow, Hartford, and Wethers- _field. 36. Settlements by English, under Roger Williams, at Providence. 64. Elizabethtown settled. 65. Clarendon Colony settlement. 70. First settlement, English, Ashley River. 82. First settlement in Pennsyl- vania by English under William Penn. . 33. English settlement, under Ogletborpe, at Savannah. 41. New Hampshire separated from Massachusetts. Virginia New York Massachusetts Delaware Maryland Connecticut Rhode Island New Jersey North Carolina South Carolina Pennsylvania Georgia New Hampshire 14. New Amsterdam (now New York City), settled by the Dutch 20. Dutch vessel, with first negro" slaves, enters James River. 30^ Boston founded. 38. Peter Minuit at Christina. 34. Settlement by English Catholics at St. Mary's. (First settlement by Dutch, at Bergen, 1620.) 80. Charleston founded. 86~T Odious administration of Sir~ Edmond Andros. 89._King William's War. 2. Queen Anne's War. (First settlement in New Hamp- shire, Eng., Little Harbor, 1623.) 44. King George's War. 54. French and Indian War. 55. Braddock's defeat. Kentucky settled by Daniel Boone. 58. Fort Du Quesne taken by Washington. 63. France cedes Canada to England. 66. Colonial Congress at New York resists the stamp act. 66. Stamp act repealed. 67. Tax on tea. 68. General Gage sent to Boston. 70. Boston Massacre. Repeal of the duties on tea. 73. Destruction of tea in Boston harbor. 74. First Continental Congress meets in Philadelphia, Sept. 5. Issues declaration of rights, Nov. 4. 75. Revolutionary War begins with battle of Lexington. Battle of Bunker Hill. 76. Declaration of Independence. 77. Lafayette joins the Americans. Federal government adopted by Congress and recognized by France. Battle of Princeton. Battle of Braudywine. Burgoyne surrenders at Saratoga. 78. Buttle of Monmouth. 81. Battle of Cowpens. Oornwallis surrenders at Yorktown. 83k Treaty of peace. 86. Cotton introduced inta Georgia. 87. The Constitution adopted. 88. The Constitution of the TTMITBD STATES ratified by eleven States. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 219 " A.D. United States Canada Spanish America 1789 GEORGE WASHINGTON, President. John Adams, Vice-President. 90. Indian war in Ohio. 91. Vermont admitted. 91. Canada is given a constitution and 92. Kentucky admitted. divided into two provinces. 94. Whisky insurrection. 94. Toronto capital of Upper Canada. 96. Tennessee admitted. 1797 JOHN ADAMS, President. Thomas Jefferson, Vice-President. 1 . 99. Capital removed from Philadelphia to Washington. 1801 THOMAS JEFFERSON, President. Aaron Burr, Vice-President. 3. Ohio admitted. 3. Louisiana purchase. 8. Slavery abolished. 3. Hayti republic. War with Tripoli. 4. Burr-Hamilton duel. 1 5. George Clinton, Vice-President. 7. Trial of Aaron Burr. 8. King of Portugal goes to Brazil. 18O9 JAMES MADISON, President. 9. War of Independ- George Clinton, Vice-President. ence in Buenos Ayres. 11. Battle of Tippecanoe. 11. Dr. Francia dic- tator of Peru. 12. Louisiana admitted. 12. British capture Venezuela inde- War -with England. Canada invaded. Mackinaw surrenders. Detroit. pendent. 11-24. Simon Bolivar's struggles for liberty. 13. Commander Perry captures English fleet. 13. Americans capture Elbridge Gerry, Vice-President. Battle of the Thames. Toronto and Fort George. Death of Teeumseh. 14. Battle of Lundy's Lane. English capture Washington and burn public buildings. Bombardment of Fort McHenry. 15. Brazil made a 15. Battle of New Orleans. 16. Sir John Sherbroke, kingdom. 16. Buenos Ayres inde- 16. Indiana admitted. Governor of Lower pendent. Canada. 1817 JAMES MONROE, President. Daniel Tompkins, Vice-President. 17. Chile independent. Mississippi admitted. 18. Illinois admitted. Seminole war in 18. Duke of Richmond, Florida. Governor of Lower 19. Alabama admitted. Purchase of Florida. Canada. 20. Missouri Compromise. Maine admitted. 17-26. Political agita- tion in Upper Canada. Robert Gourlay. 21. Central America independent. 22. Brazil independent. 21. Missouri admitted. 92. Antagonism be- Dom Pedro, Emperor. Iturbide, Emperor of 28. South American republics acknowledge*. 23. Monroe doctrine declared. tween French and English in Lower Canada. 24. Welland Canal in- Mexico. 24. Simon Bolivar dictator of Peru. 24. Visit of Lafayette. corporated. 26. Bolivia independ't. 220 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. A. P. United States Canada Spanish America 1825 JOHN OUINCY ADAMS, President. John C. Calhoun, Vice-President. 28. Protective tariff bill passed. 25. Agitation in Upper Canada over alien bill. 26. Mob destroys Mac- kenzie's printing office. 28. Uruguay independ- ent. 1829 ANDREW JACKSON, President. John C. Calhoun, V ice-President. 32. United States Bank bill vetoed. Black Hawk war. 33. Martin Van Buren, Vice-President. Public funds withdrawn from United States Bank. 35. Seminole war. 36. Arkansas admitted. 29. Agitation for re- sponsible government in Upper Canada. 30. Lord Aylmer Gover- nor of Lower Canada. 32. Imperial duties sur- rendered to assembly. 35. Pupinean party de- mand total separation from Great Britain. 29. Formation of United States of Colombia. 31. Dom Pedro abdi- cates. His six-year- old son, Dom Pedro 11., Emperor of Brazil. 32. The Texans revolt. 33. Defeat of the Mex icans. 1837 MARTIN VAN BUREN, President. Richard M. Johnson, Vice-President. Michigan admitted. Financial crisis. Banks suspend specie payment. Business failures and general distress. 40. Northeastern boundary line disputes. 37-38. Insurrection. 38. End of rebellion in Upper Canada. 39. Union of Upper and Lower C. Lord Syd- enham, Governor. 40. Responsible govern- ment established. 1841 WILLIAM H. HARRISON, President. John Tyler, Vice-President. Harrison dies April 4. JOHN TYLER, President. Veto of bank bill. 43. Dorr rebellion in Rhode Island. 44. Texas applies for annexation. 44. Government remov- ed to Montreal. 1845 JAMES K. POLK, President. George M. Dallas, Vice-President. Texas annexed. Florida admitted. War with Mexico. 46. Iowa admitted. 48. Acquisition of New Mexico and California. Wisconsin admitted. 45. Great fire at Quebec 47. Lord Elgin, Gover- nor. Agitation over rebellion losses bill. 45. Venezuela inde- pendent. War bet. Mexico and U. S. 46. Battles of Palo Alto and Resaca de la Palma. 47. Buena Vista, Cerro Gordo, Contreras. City of Mexico cap- 1849 ZACHARY TAYLOR, President. Millard Fillmore, Vice-President. BO. MILLARD FILLMORE, President. California admitted. Fugitive slave law passed. 49. Annexation to U. S. advocated. Riots in Montreal. 50. Reciprocity with U. S. urged. 50. Lopez' attempt on Cuba. 51. Lopez garroted. 1853 FRANKLIN PIERCE, President. William Rufus King, Vice-President. 56. Kansas-Nebraska bill. Commotion in Kansas. 02. Government remov- ed to Quebec. 65. Sir Edmund W. Head, Governor. 53. Santa Ana, dicta- tor of Mexico. 66. Walker's expedi- tion to Nicaragua. 1857 JAMES BUCHANAN, President. John C. Breckinridge, Vice-Preeident. Dred Scott decision. Mormon Insurrection. Tinancial diitreee. IT. Oregon admitted. 5& Minnesota admitted. K. John Brown's ln*urrettw. 00. Sooth Carolina secede*. 61. Kansas admitted. 58. Juarez, President of Mexico. 00. Walker invades Honduras. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 221 A.D. The United States Canada Spanish America 1801 ABRAHAM LINCOLN, President. 61. Lord Monok, Gover- Hannibal Hamlin, Vice-president. nor. Attack on Ton Somtar. The Confederate States 82. France at War with 61. Mississippi, Florida Mexico. Alabama, Georgia, Harper's Ferry and Louisiana and Texas Norfolk seized. secede. Jefferson Davis elected President. Arkansas, North Carolina, and Ten- nessee secede. Virginia secedes. 63. The French enter Battles of Bull Run, City of Mexico. Wilson's Cr^ek. Archduke Maximil- ian of Austria invited 62. Battle of Antietam. 62. Ft. Donelson captured. to become Emperor. Battles of Pea Ridge, Shiloh, Bull Run, 68. Proclamation of Wilson's Creek. 64. He accepts. Emancipation. 63. Chancellorsville. West Virginia Siege of Vicksburg. admitted. Battle of Gettys- burg. 64. Battle of the Wilderness. 65. ' Great Fire at Quebec 65. Paraguay at war with Uruguay, 64. The Kearsarge sinks the Alabama. Siege of Petersburg Sherman's march Brazil, Argentine Republic. to the sea. Cnile and Spain at war. 65. Andrew Johnson, Vice-President. Surrender of Gen. Lee, April 9. Lincoln assassi- 65. Battle of Five Forks Petersburg and Richmond captured. 66. Reciprocity treaty with 17. 8. Fenian invasion. 66. Juarists in Mexico have great success. nated April 14. Surrender of Gens. Lee, Johnston, ANDREW JOHNSON, Pres. Morgan, Taylor and Kirby Smith. The war ended. Amnesty issued by the President 67. Nebraska admitted. Alaska purchased. Southern States organized as military 67. Canada, New Bruns- wick and Nova Scotia 67. Maximilian surren- ders and is shot. districts. 68. Impeachment, trial, and acquittal of form the Dominion of Canada. President Johnson. 1369 ULYSSES S. GRANT, President. 69. Cuban revolt. Schuyler Colfax, Vice-President. Pacific Railroad completed. 70. Fifteenth amendment ratified. 71. Great fire at Chicago. Tweed ring exposed. Geneva award. 72. Great fire at Boston. 71. British Columbia becomes part of the Political disabilities of Southern people Dominion. removed. 72. Prince Edward 73. Henry Wilson, Vice-President. The Virginius troubles with Spain. Financial panic. 75. Passage of act for specie resumption in 1879. Island joins the Dominion. Lord Dufferin, Governor-General. Colorado admitted. 76. Centennial Exposition, Philadelphia. Custer massacre. 1877 RUTHERFORD B. HAYES, President. 77. Great Fire at William A. Wheeler, Vice-President. Si . John, N. B. Railroad riots. 78. Yellow fever epidemic along Lower Mississippi. 79. Resumption of specie payment. 78. Marquis of Lome appointed viceroy. 79. War between Cfcile and Peru. 222 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. A.D. The United States Canada Spanish America 1881 JAMES A. GARFIELD, President. Chester A. Arthur, Vice-President. President Garfield shot by Guiteau. CHESTER A. ARTHUR, President. Treaty with China. 84. Dynamite explo- sions in Parliament 83. Opening of Brooklyn Bridge. buildings, Quebec. Apaches captured by General Crook. General strike of telegraph operators. 1885 GROVER CLEVELAND, President. 85. Rebellion of Louis Thomas A. Hendricks, Vice-President. Riel. Riel captured and hanged. 86. Labor agitations. Anarchist riot at Chicago. 88. Lord Stanley, Governor-General . Fisheries treaty re- 88. Lord SackviUe, British Minister, dismissed. jected by U. S. 1889 BENJAMIN HARRISON, President. 89. Great Fire at Quebec 89. Civil war in Hayti. Levi P. Morton, Vice-President. Dom Pedro of Bra- North Dakota, South Dakota, Wash- ington, and Montana admitted to the Union. 90. Reciprocity defea- ted in House of Com- mons. zil deposed. Opening of Oklahoma. Johnstown flood. Toronto University Pan-American Congress. burned. 91. Balmaceda, Presi- 90. Idaho and Wyoming admitted. Reciprocity treaty with South American dent of Chile, deposed. Commits republics. suicide. McKinley tariff law goes into effect. Sioux war. Death of Sitting Bull. Eleventh census population, 62,622,250. 92. Birth of the People's party at Omaha. 1893~ GROVER CLEVELAND, President. 93. The Earl of Aber- 93. Revolution in Adlai E. Stevenson, Vice-President. deen, Governor-Gen. Brazil. Sandwich Islands ask to be annexed. Revolution in World's Columbian Exposition at Chicago. Great financial depression. Cleveland calls Argentine. special session of Congress to repeal Sher- 95. War for Independ- man bill. ence in Cuba. Congress of Religions, Chicago. 96. Maceo assassinated. 94. Great coal strike. Great railroad strike. 96. Free Silver movement. Venezuela boundary dispute with Great Britain. 96. Utah admitted to the Union. 1897^ WILLIAM McKINLEY, President. General Weyler re- Garret A. Hobart, Vice-President. called from Cuba. Arbitration Treaty with Great Britain Attempted assassi- signed ; rejected by the Senate. Greater New York charter granted. nation of President Moraes of Brazil. 1 98. Annexation of Hawaii. Battle-ship Maine blown up. Spanish-American war. Acquisition of Cuba, Porto Rico, and the Philippines by treaty. Commercial treaty with France. 98. Earl of Minto, Governor-General. Meeting of the U. S. and Canadian High Commission. 98. United States inter- venes in behalf of Cuba. Cuba under the U. S. protectorate? Campos Salles elec- ted Pres. of Brazil. 99. Philippine war. U. S. of Central Many Trusts formed. America formed. Gen. A leer, secretary of war, resigned ; Elihu Root appointed to succeed him. 19OO Troubles with China. 01. Theodore Roosevelt, Vice-President. President McKinley shot by Czolgosz, Sept. 6. Parliamentary elec- tions carried by Lib- erals. President Sande- mente of Colombia resigned. THEODORE ROOSEVELT, President. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 223 CALENDAR OF AMERICAN BATTLES. Naval engagements are indicated by IttiHoe; * means that it was a drawn battle ; f means a general estimate. JANUARY. 1 1 1 1 2 3 4 6 5 6 7 8 8 8 9 10 10 10 11 11 11 12 13 14 14 14 14 15 15 16 17 18 111 20 21 22 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 n 29 30 30 31 NAME OF BATTLE. Opponent. Victor. CASUALTIES. United, States. Opponents. Killed. Wounded. Killed. "Wounded. 1818 1863 1863 1863 1777 1862 1781 1813 1813 1862 1815 1847 1863 1779 1863 1863 1865 1863 1863 1865 1848 1865 1813 1863 1865 18G5 1815 1865 1864 1781 1813 txrc' 1864 1863 1814 1813 1813 1814 1813 1813 1814 1815 1814 1863 1862 1864 1863 New Orleans.... English Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... * U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... u.s ... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... Eng.... Ind . . . . U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... * Conf... Conf... 11 17 1,533 31 1 4 1 3 4 2 14 1 7 1 2 129 5 "i' 7 "f" 24 184 8 12 12 39 6 1 20 357 400 40 3 1 17 2 12 24 9 23 23 20t 7',245 64 3 16 2 3 8 13 9 145 3 26 69 8 6 831 20 2 '"S 27 "27 66 749 32 60 66 207 17 3 76 64 60 8 3 132 2 49 80 20 24 20 26 1,384 49 2 13 1 14 11 700 70 23 140 lot 18 14 60 3 3 "io 14 "l4 11 160 16 120 30t 192 30 220t 150 200t 6 37 1 .8 224 22 6 30t 117 6',892 161 4 22 7 8 32 1,400 160 164 3 30t 74 32 1 78 6 8 "l4 36 "36 14 249 49 199 60t 132 62 2 156 9 2 1 14t 8 28 32 Galveston Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates English English English Confederates English Mexican Confederates English Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Mexican Confederates Portuguese.. Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates English English Confederates Confederates Confederates Indians English.. Indians.. Indians.. English.. English.. Indians.. English.. English., [ndians.. Confederates Confederates Confederates , Murf reesboro (continued). Murfreesboro (ended) Princeton HuntersviUe, Ya. ... PUgrim-Afary Ultor-boata Fox-Lapwing Middle Creek New Orleans , San Gabriel Springfield Protector-Admiral Duff Arkansas Post (continued) Hartsville Scottsboro Hatteras-Alabama Arkansas Post (ended) Beverly, "W. Va San Bias Fort Fisher (continued) Comet-frigate Carney's Bridge Fort Fisher (continued) Red Hill..... President- Endymion Fort Fisher (ended) Gen. Sturgis Cowpens. Frenchtown Mill Spring (Logan Cross Roads) Sturgis' Raid (January 16-28) Sabine Pass Emucf au Frenchtown No. 2 Stony Creek Enotachopco Dolphin-squadron Umon-Iris Camp Defiance Surprise-Star Alligator Bear River Kelly's Stores Underwriter Off Charleston FEBRUARY. 1 2 2 3 3 3 4 f> 6 6 7 7, 8 8 9 10 10 11 12 13 14 14 15 16 16 17 1864 1800 1864 1863 is,::; 1865 1863 L865 1862 L865 1S32 1865 1862 1865 1799 1862 1863 1SG5 1864 18C2 1776 1813 1862 1804 1847 1781 Bachelor's Creek Confederates French Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Malays Confederates Confederates Confederates French Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English English Confederates Tripolitans . . Mexican English Conf . . . U.S. .. Conf .. U.S. .. U.S. .. U.S. .. U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.v.. U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... 24 14 16 18 2 "l7 '"2 232 * 2 2 2 5 6t 3 8 660 3 1 77 26 3t 60 70 4 "27 "ii 1,062 198 3 3 2 7 t 6 2 3 10 746 1 8 1 13 60 4 150 8 20 6t '5 i20t 249 26 3 29 4 4 31 16 13 13 % 466 1W IS 4 22 110 6t 400 20 80 7t 'ii '200t 761 30 6 41 10 7 160 m 22 4 i,aw 8tt Constellation- Vengeance Patterson Creek Dover, Col. Harding Mingo Swamp Sakelhatchie Batesville Dabnev's Mills (continued) Fort Henry .\ ' Dabney's Mills (continued) Oualla Jiattoo Dabney's Mills (ended) Roanoke Island Williston Station Constellation^Insurgent Elizabeth City Old River Aikens Rock House Blooming Gap Moore's Creek Philadelphia (frigate ) Holker-Hypoerite 224 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. FEBRUARY Continued. 1 | 1813 1815 1862 1815 1864 1865 1865 1812 1847 1864 1813 1847 1813 1863 1815 1863 1847 1863 1812 NAME OF BATTLE. Opponent. Victor. CASUALTIES. United States. Opponents. Killed. Wounded. Killed. Wounded. 17 IK 1'J 20 2d 20 21 a 22 22 24 24 25 26 27 28 29 Highflyer-Poictiers English English Confederates English Confederates Confederates 'Confederates English Mexican Confederates English Mexican English Confederates English Confederates Mexican Confederates English Eng Eng.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf. . . U.S.... Conf. . . U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... 1 2 4 193 5t 1 isot 1 267 1 1 5 5t 3 3 6 10 1,175 8t 3 7 "200t 3 456 4 1 8 8t 5 3 3 1 35 150 8t 2 2 "sot 1 568 5 2 16 6 33 2 . 1 4 42 360 18t 8 11 'iso 2 1,241 33 5 23 8 67 5 1 George Little-Granicus . . . Winton,N.C. Constitntion-Cyane and Levant Olustee .- Town Creek Cumberland, Md Hazard-Caledonia Buena Vista (continued) Tunnel Hill Cora-boats Buena Vista (ended) Hornet-Peacock Indianola Chasseur-St. Lawrence Falmouth Chihuahua Van Buren, Ark. Courier-Andromache * MARCH. 11813 21815 31863 41863 51863 51863 61862 71778 71862 81862 81862 81865 91862 91865 101865 111863 12 1863 121864 131863 131863 141862 141863 15 1781 16 1779 161863 161865 17 1813 181865 181865 191776 201863 21 1864 221865 231816 23 1862 241847 251865 261865 27 1814! 281814 291779 291813 301814 301863 31 1865 1 1 (Janonnier Warsptte English English Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English English Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates Confederates English.' Confederates Mexican Confederates Confederates Indians English English English English Confederates Confederates Eng.... U.S.... Conf... Conf... Conf... Conf... U.S... Eng.... U.S 1 99 'sii 3 1 14 301 ""6 'soi 972 '"i 421 2 .... 152 ""5 "" 1,040 '"6 is2 1 13 1 "4 453 12 "ii 3,638 2 '643 33 'i52 'sis 20 8t 632 2 l',38i 6 241 18 1,231 28 342 2,000t 698 401 10 22 1 47 73 998 America- Elizabeth Fort McAllister Thompson's Station (continued). . . . Spring Hill Thompson's Station (ended) Pea Ridge (continued) Randolph- Yarmouth Pea Ridge (continued) Aferrimac in Hampton Roads Conf... U.S.... Conf.. . 250 203 Pea Ridge (ended) Wilcox's Bridge (continued) ... Monitor-Memmac U.S.... Conf... Conf. . . Conf "so Wilcox's Bridge (continued) Wilcox's Bridge (ended) Fort Pemberton (continued) Fort Pemberton (continued) Conf... "29 7 *432 314 5 19 477 3 i',io8 3 33 3 598 11 441 56 337 695 106 66 8 3 66 38 1,134 i4 "56 '23! 13 3t 86 '267 2 63 5 352 10 80 981 134 152 557 5 11 11 24 236 Fort De Russey U.S.... U.S.... Conf... 18 8 Port Hudson. . . . Fort Pemberton (continued) New Berne U.S.... Conf... Eng.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... Eng.... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... 102 "i23 3 7 77 1 igi 23 1 99 1 103 11 68 99 26 58 8 II 177 Fort Pemberton (continued) Guilf ord Court-House Hazard Active Fort Pemberton (ended) . Averysboro Antelope Zephyr Bentonville (continued) Bentonville (ended) Industry-brig Vaughrs Hill Henderson's Hill Wilson's Raid (to April 24) Hornet-Penguin Kernstown Vera Cruz Fort Stedman Spanish Fort (to April 8) Horseshoe Bend Essex Phoebe and Cherub Tyrannicide Revenge Revenge Sfarcissus La Colle Mill. . . . ; Somerset Boydton and White Oak Road ; APRIL. 1 1865 21805 21865 21S65 31780 4 1864! 017791 e 180*' 6 1862; 7il776 Five Forks ;..... Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates English Confederates Confederates English U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... * U.S.... U.S 124 198 153 298 8 1 166 706 304 347 2,566 2 26 3 1,014 "i4 450 249 198 341 3 18 " *"j 750 353 409 3,092 6 39 9 2,032 '"i Forts GreggB and Alexander Selma ; Petersburg Boats-Black Snake Col. Gooding ." Hibernia-brig of war Sailoi's Creek ; Pittsburgh Landing (continued) Glasgow Eng.... 10 HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 225 APRIL Continued. h * 3 fX NAME OF BATTLB. Opp'onent. Victor. < \MAI.I IKS. United States. Opponents. Killed. Wounded. Killed. Wounded. 71862 71862 71863 71864 81782 81864 8 1861 91777 91864 91865 91865 101863 10 1X63 11 1863 121864 121864 13 1813 14!l779 141780 15 1813 161863 161865 17 1776 17 1864 18 1814 181847 181847 181863 19 1775 19 1864 201862 201863 20 1864 21 i 1775 22 '1847 231862 231864 241778 251781 251862 251864 261863 261864 27 1805 271813 28 1863 291814 291862 291863 30,1814 301863 30!l864 Island No. 10 Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English English English English Confederates Confederates English Confederates English Mexican Mexican Confederates English A Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English Mexican Confederates Confederates English English Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Turkish English Confederates English Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates U.S... U.S.... * U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... Conf... U.S.... Eng.... Eng.... Eng.... U.S... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Coftf . . . U.S.... Conf... U.S.... 19 1,735 3 23 4 199 7 99 203 113 17 8 1 348 1 26 1 10 2 20 3 63 4 7 2 16 41 49 37 98 2 52 98 6 17 6 66 12 3 19 2 '222 32 7,882 18 39 11 893 '"s 688 297 516 20 15 3 52 3 4 73 3 3 14 2 31 11 368 26 9 12 98 59 34 3 147 152 6 141 3 142 18 31 8 203 69 2 8 57 9 '978 1 M2B 45 20 486 "'9 348 189 242 79 18 1 19 164 3 3 7 30 6t 29 6 25 loot 17 12 4 125 74 12 108 18 38 7 126 22 28 10t loot 8 31 8 4 '842 3 8,012 3 88 33 1,024 "ii 1,654 386 874 163 36 7 61 341 4 6 6 1 18 50 8t 42 12 34 500t 36 67 8 174 199 4 40 1C4 24 104 18 394 43 61 201 302 15 42 16 11 l',458 Pittsburg Landing (ended) Ironclads at Charleston . . . . Red River Hyder Ally-Gen. Monk Sabine Cross Roads Pleasant Hill (continued) Trumbull-transports Pleasant Hill (ended) Appomattox Fort Blakely Franklin . .. Prairie d' Anne Fort Pulaski Fort Pillow Lexington, Red River Canonnler- Medusa Hunter-armed ship Monk's Corner Diligent-squadron Vicksburg Columbus, Ala Lexington-Edward Fort Wessels York-Lord Somers Tuspan Cerro Gordo Fayetteville Lexington Southfield-Albemarle South Mills or Camden McMinnville Plymouth 1 Concord and retreat Perote New Orleans Cane River Ranger-Drake Hobkirk's Hill Fort Macon Mark's Mills Cape Girardeau Red River Derne York Streight's Raid (to May 3) Peacock-Epervier Bridgeport, Ala Grand Gulf. . . Saucy Jack-Pelham Chancellors ville (continued) Jenkins Ferry MAY. 11863 11863 11898 2 1863 31863 31863 41863 51813 51813 51862 51864 51864 51864 61814 61864 71779 71862 71864 81846 81862 81864 91847 91864 91864 Port Gibson Confederates Confederates Spanish Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English English Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates English Confederates Confederates Mexican Confederates Confederates Mexican Confederates Confederates U.S.... Conf... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... Conf... Conf . . . U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... 130 '"6 "i5 l',512 64 80 456 38 4 718 ""i "94 9',5i8 124 101 1,400 64 25 "38 "io 110 12,188 42 176 "is 144 3^8 '898 I'.iis 30t 15 351 4 "70 '"8 3 1,966 102 71 'ieo 832 '298 l',202 10',563 60t 45 1,403 18 'l65 "i9 161 10,444 127 390 '228 Chancellorsville (continued) Manila A Chancellorsville (continued) Siege of Suffolk, N. C. (ended) Chancellorsville (continued) Chancellorsville (ended) Fort Meigs Rapids of Miami Williamsburg Dunn's Bayou Albemarle Wilderness (continued) Oswego U.S.... U.S.... 6 Wilderness (continued) Providence Diligent U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... 4 84 2,309 4 80 "S9 West Point Wilderness (ended) Palo Alto . Spottsylvania (continued) Resaca de la Palnia Spottsylvania (continued) Swift Creek (continued).. . 226 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. MAY Continued. NAME OF BATTLE. II Opponent. Viotot. CASUALTIES. United States. Opponents. Killed. Wounded. Killed. Wounded. 9 1864 Cloyd's Mountain and New River Bridge 10 1776 Ticonderoga ., 101862 Fort Pillow.. Confederates English Confederates Confederates Confederates English English Confederates Confederates Confederates English Mexican Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates English Confederates English Confederates Confederates U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.I.... Conf... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... Conf. . . U.S.... U.S.... 126 '"6 90 3,288 3 92 69 698 37 250 18 422 120 426 9 29 2,031 "42 12 3 "32 11 3 38 1,848 585 4 401 19,278 5 142 341 2,147 228 130 62 2,380 663 1,842 18 242 7,956 'ios 38 8 'l22 52 5 154 2,378 '121 344 1,549 1,460 20 "s4 "~3 998 3,627 248 '"2 124 3,342 14 76 103 861 64 5 83 514 96 11 486 32 40 1,762 "74 26 4 6 49 4 68 1,420 'ios 198 110 304 11 "29 "is 864 1,987 652 i 376 20,187 18 189 720 1,949 392 14 142 1,086 306 21 1,954 64 186 7,248 'l68 37 16 "is 76 16 329 2,161 '163 732 173 l',513 30 'ioi "28 2,136 2,233 10 1864 Swift Creek (ended) 11 1864 Spottsvlvania (ended) 11 1777 Hancock- fox 12 1780 Siege of Charleston (ended) 12 1863 Raymond 13 1864 Resaca 14 1863 Jackson 15 1780 Waxhaws 15 1847 Puebla 15 1802 Drewrv's Bluff 15 1864 New Market, Pa 16 181 1 Pre#ident~Little Belt 16 1863 Champion Hills 161864 Marksville 17 1863 Black River 18 1864 Spottsylvania (continued) 19 1863 Vicksburg (continued May 22) 19 1864 Yellow Bayou 20 1863 Fort Blunt 21 1863 ', Gum Swamp 22 1863 Vicksburg (continued to May 25) 23 1862 Front Royal 23 1862 Lewisburg 24 1862 New Bridge 25 1862' Winchester 25 1863 Vicksburg (ended) 26 1864 Bermuda Hundreds (continued) 26 1864'North Anna (continued) U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... * "S9 63 293 '223 5 "21 .... 201 891 27 1813 Fort George 27 1862 Hanover Court-House 27 1863 Port Hudson 27 1864 Bermuda Hundreds (continued).. 27 1864 North Anna (ended) 28 1781 \ Alliance-squadron 28 18641 Bermuda Hundreds (continued). . ... 29 lS\3\Sackett's Harbor .... 29 1864 ' Bermuda H undreds (continued) 30 1814 Sandy Creek 30 1864 Bermuda Hundreds (ended) 31 1862 Seven Pines, or Fair Oaks JUNE. 1 1813 Chesapeake-Shannon English English En|.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... * Conf... Coiif... Conf... U.S.... u.s 47 19 1 1,905 1 1 15 19 130 17 10 154 125 67 156 223 13 99 20 '"3 2 10,670 3 4 32 73 650 38 4. 223 498 361 289 394 64 '"4 490 '"2 680 "ii 7 397 438 304 9 24 39 '"4 3 364 8 3 20 22 633 20t 20t 148 29 104 253 124 "is 124 '"2 'iis "eot 20t 00 68 369 18 59 62 "l8 11 1,336 12 6 60 81 2,337 30 30t 294 302 796 354 582 "S2 582 " - 5 '364 "i46t act 81 141 696 aot 2 1780 Trunwu.ll-Wa.tt 2 1864 Cold Harbor (continued) Confederates English English Confederates English English Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Spanish Confederates Confederates Spanish English : Spanish Confederates Confederates Spanish Mexican Confederates Confederates English English 3 1776 Boats-tender to Naiitilus 3 1776 Lady Washington-barges 31864 Cold Harbor (ended) 4 1780 Gen. Pickering-Achilles 4;1782 Charming Sally-Revenge . 5 1862 Harrisonburg 5 1864 Columbia, Ark 5 1864i Piedmont 6 1813 Stony Creek 6 1W21 Memphis 7 1863 Milliken's Bend 8 1862 Cross Keys 9 1862'Port Republic 9 1863 1 Beverly Ford 10 1864 Brice's Cross-Roads, Miss 10 1864 Kellar's Bridge 11 1864 Trevilian Station (continued) 11 1898 Camp McCaUa (continued) U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... * Conf. i 85 ""i '260 12 1863 Middletown 12 1864 Trevilian Station (ended) 12 1898 Camp McCaUa (continued) 13 1776 Tyrannicide Dispatch 13 1898 Camp McCalla (continued) 14 1863 Port Hudson 14 1863 Winchester (continued) 14 1898' Camp McCalla (ended) U.S.... U.S.... Conf... Conf... Sf:::: 6 203 137 146 15 1847 ! .A T ear Tabasco 15 1863 Winchester (ended) 1 6 186'' Secession ville 17 1 775 Bunker Hill 17 1776 Defense-transports HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 227 JUNE Continued. NAMK OF BATTLE. Opponent. Victor. CASUALTIES. United States. Killed. Wounded. Opponents. Killed. Wounded. 17 1815, Guerrlere-Mashouda Algerine U.S.. 17 1863 St. Charles Confederates U.S. . 17i 1863i Weehawken-Attanta Confederates U. S . . 17 1861 Lynchburg (continued) Confederates Conf 18 1864 Lynchburg (ended) Confederates Conf, 181781 Ninety-six English Eng.. 19 1864 Kearsarge-Alabama Confederates U.S.. 191864 Petersburg (from June 15) Confederates 20 1864 Petersburg (continued to June 30) Confederates U.S. 21|l863Upperville Confederates U.S.. 22 1813 Craney Island English U.S.. 22 1898 Santiago forts bombarded Spanish 23 1812 ! President-Belvedere English U.S.. 23 1864 Weldon Railroad Confederates U.S.. 21 1813 Beaver Dam English Ene 24 1898 Las Guasimas Spanish U.S 25 1862 Oafc G rove, near Richmond Confederates U. S . . 25 1876 Big Horn Indians Ind.. 26 1862 Mechanicsville Confederates U. S . . 27il861 \MatMas Point (Confederates Conf 27 1862 Gaines Mill [Confederates Conf. 27 ( 1863|Shelbyville iConfederates U. 27 1864 White River ' Conf ederates U. 28 1776 Fort Moultrie ! English 3 136 "99 48 1 1,298 28 1778 Monmouth , 281779 Stone Ferry 28 1814; Wasp-Reindeer 28 1862 Farragut at Vicksburg 28 1863J Donaldsonville 29 1862J White Oak Swamp 30 1815 Peacock- Nautilus 30 1847 Tamultay 30 1864 Petersburg (ended) 30 1864 i Wilson's Raid (June 22-30). English English English Confederates U Confederates U Confederates U English Mexican Confederates U Confederates U .S.. .8.. U.S.. U.S.. Eng.. U.S.. .8.. .S.. .8.. U.S.. U.S.. .8.. .S.. 30 1 3 604 25 16 61 261 149 1 3,000 143 52 11 72 51 11 15 1 34 6 112 76 11 20 '603 107 2 7,474 o 11 19 2,494 50t 50 401 224 4 4,500 361 148 26 160 99 15 30 3 43 63 506 266 12 6 "47 24 9 984 "50 75f 156 30f 28 60 81 156 2,000 164 162 68 294 31 25 85 66 6 42 801 48 18 8 8 "i57 61 21 6,721 'ioo 125f 344 34 124 300 126 236 4,000 344 341 437 170 63 42 114 86 8 103 1,417 252 JULY. 1802 1863 1863 1898 1898 1863 1898 1898 1778 1863 ?898 1898 1863 1863 1863 1814 1862 1776 1781 1864 1777 1862 1864 1864 1780 1864 1864 1898 1812 1S98 1863 1863 1898 1862 1863 1813 1862 1863 1864 1779 1863 1863 Malvern Hill Confederates Confederates Confederates Spanish Spanish Confederates Spanish Spanish English Confederates Spanish Spanish Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates English English Confederates English Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates Spanish English Spanish Confederates Confederates Spanish Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates ' Confederates English Japanese .... Confederates U.S.... u.s 2,860 3,600 "is 356 "l2 '"6 13,709 1,007 1 152 23 3,688 244 8 3 81 '583 46 61 "i 579 450 '"6 '766 349 13 62 80 50 78 63 70 4 a 3,023 "42 120 "io '"2 4,000 204 342 205 280 25 199 3 2 21 "35 110 12 "si 78 201 '"4 "ii 88 47 126 10 10 34 184 63 100 48 4,077 'ioi 400 "SO "*8 14,000 1,340 461 504 687 20 328 4 6 49 'i4i 150 26 "64 322 402 7 'soi 126 103 354 21 16 66 616 81 200 103 Cabin Creek U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... u.s 8 88 El Caney U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... U S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... '225 2,834 151 1 98 6 545 60 4 1 37 Wvoming, or Fort Forty San Juan (ended) Spanish squadron destroyed off Santiago Ene.. . . U.S.... Conf... U.S.... 211 8 36 Hazard Duff U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... * U.S... U.S.... U.S.... U.'S.... 2 90 80 '"6 "88 151 2 33 25 4 18 2- 8.-. 20 94 Chattahoochee ( ended) Decatur-Commerce Murf reesboro Tupelo, Harrisonburg, and Old Town James Island 228 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. JULY Continued. f-l ft H 171863 181863 181863 191863 201864 21 1861 221812 221864 231864 211863 241864 25 1779 251814 261863 26 1864 271864 281864 201863 30 1779 311812 311864 NAXH or BATTLE. Opponent. Victor. CASUALTIES. United States. Opponent*. Killed. Wounded. Killed. Wounded. Honey Springs Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English English Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Indians English English Confederates U.S... Conf... Conf... U.S... U.S... Conf.. U.S... U.S... U.S... U.S... U.S... U.S... U.S... U.S... U.S... Conf.. U.S... U.S... U.S... U.S... U.S.... 17 21 624 2 301 481 499 "36 342 1 171 1 18" 10 99 12 6 419 60 62 876 8 1,411 1,011 7 2,142 "59 836 3 672 12 32 15 601 42 16 2,076 153 3 26 12 880 362 3 1,162 ' 41 26 3 201 22 48 12 864 32 6 799 378 8 74 41 3,916 1,390 9 7,337 - 79 152 6 559 43 102 19 3,778 98 20 3 4,023 ; Wytheville . . . , Fort Wagner Near Pomeroy Peach Tree Creek Bull Run Highflyer-Caledonia Atlanta, Hood's first sortie Martinsburg (continued) Manassas Gap Martinsburg (ended) Jason-privateer Niagara (Lundy's Lane) New Lisbon Big Creek . Fort Smith Ezra Chapel Stony Lake Holker-briy Julian-Gloucester Petersburg (from July 1, exclusive of losses at the Crater and Deep Bottom) AUGUST. 1 1801 1 1812 1 1863 21813 31804 31812 31814 41812 41862 51813 51862 51864 61777 61862 71781 71804 81862 91812 91862 101861 11 1814 12 1776 121898 131812 131863 131898 141813 15 1814 16 1777 16 1780 171862 18 1779 181864 181864 191780 19 1812 19 1847 19 1864 201779 201847 20 1864 21 1863 21 1864 221814 231864 241814 251864 261863 271776 271862 271863 2 isei 291779 29182 30 1814 301868 Enterprise Tripoli Tripolitan . . . English Confederates English Tripolitan . . . English English English Confederates English Confederates Confederates English . . Confederates English Tripolitan... Confederates English Confederates Confederates English English Spanish English Confederates Spanish English English English English Confederates English Confederates Confederates English English Mexican Confederates English Mexican Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates English Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates Confederates Indians Confederates English Confederates U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... * U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... Eng.... Conf... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S... 16 1 1 2 2 17 6 4 99 145 120 28 5 22 "is 450 223 1 4 3 8 6 17 30 94 12 2 401 2 98 7 13 5 8 30 8 16 203 170 268 60 11 6 '*58 660 721 5 8 18 40 17 66 41 281 18 3 1,754 '281 7 40 '" 876 "22 1,155 42 42 646 144 188 28 8 22 "*"i 4,023 20 2 22 60 60 2 10 10 18 125 12 86 180 60t "56 223 331 21 6 lot 28 '"2 222 59 80 3 6 338 "'2 15 700 '"2 l,000f '"3 862 1 6 183 289 42 61 11 11 4 12 "is 1,090 30 7 104 101 70 4 20 18 45 234 10 204 498 3 80t "75 1,060 764 56 3 (?) 3 92 *5 309 81 245 8 12 762 "21 63 2,200 '"7 3,0001 14 3,138 2 33 297 1,211 75 257 16 31 26 34 " 6,164 Yankee-Royal Eounty Culpepper Court-House Fort Stephenson Attack on Tripoli Atlas-Planter and Pursuit Comoeta Creek Brownstown Malvern No. 2 Decatur- Dominica Baton Rouge farraffiit in Mobile Fort Schuyler Kirksville Tritmbullr-Iris Attack on Tripoli Cedar Mountain (continued) Maguaga * .' Cedar Mountain (ended) Wilson Creek Stonington Andrea JJoria Racehorse ManzanUlo Essex-Alert Pineville Manila Argus-Pelican FortErie Bennington Camden Paulus Hook Strawberry Plains, etc Six-Mile House (continued) Catawba Fords Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... 162 7 20 '"6 131 Constitittion-Guerriere Contreras Six-Mile House (continued) Churubusco Six Mile House (continued) Lawrence . Conf... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... Eng.... * Conf... Eng.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... Conf... 140 212 13 30 127 63 62 14 2 8 '"6 798 Six Mile House (ended) Diomede Upton Duvall's Bluff Bladensburg Ream's Station.. White Sulphur Springs Manassas Junction Bavou Metea Fort HatteTQA Nswtown Bull Run No. 2 (continued) i4 .. Moorflelds Bull Run No. 2 (endfltt) HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 229 AUGUST Continued. 1 1862 1864 1864 MAKE OF BATTLE. Opponent. Victor. CASUALTIES. United States. Opponents. Killed. Wounded. Killed. Wounded. Richmond, Ky Confederates Confederates Confederates Conf... U.S.... U.S.... 199 87 689 484 153 101 248 605 Petersburg (August 1 to August 3D Jonesboro, Ga. (continued) SEPTEMBER. 1814 1864 1812 1777 1863 1804 1812 1813 1781 1781 1813 1781 1862 1863 1847 1813 1863 1777 1814 1814 1862 1814 1847 1863 1862 1862 1862 1814 1776 1812 1862 1814 1862 1778 1863 1777 1862 1863 1864 1777 1863 1777 1862 1779 1864 1846 1812 1814 1864 1812 1813 1864 1864 1863 1861 1864 Wasp-Avon Confederates Confederates Confederates English Indians Tripolitan... Indians English English English English English Confederates Confederates Mexican English Confederates English English English Confederates English Mexican Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English English U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Trip . . . U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... u.'s!;;; Conf... Coiif... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... * Eng.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... * U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf. . . U.S.... U.S.... Conf. . I ' 4 1 8 13 2 2 11 88 130 23 17 8 27 22 289 37 52 42 24 116 80 312 115 15 4 7 "79 2,010 1 98 144 i 1 1,149 7 2 23 2 10 19 34 1 349 57 19 31 96 59 668 62 58 108 139 671 120 1,234 418 22 5 8 8 "216 9,416 3 "262 598 3',7i9 10 9,262 162 24 67 364 1 7 154 8 17 "46 2,031 10 498 3 6 194 20 8 4 25 86 10 85 46 41 31 98 50 84 33 80 l.OOOt 224 98 29 32 2 3 iio 1,842 3 iei 385 l',632 2 6,000 2 84 49 19 2001 4 137 245 7 12 '"6 399 32 1,502 8 26 42 30 20 17 31 142 19 402 2 89 94 45 398 98 110 65 301 2,0001 860 342 31 40 20 250 9,399 8 "328 692 3J868 3 10,000 5 138 68 18 450t 4 107 756 16 20 '"2 1,601 Jonesboro (ended) Dolphin-two ships Raleigh- Druid Whitestone Hill Intrepid Fort Harrison Enterprise-Boxer Congress- Savage Gen. Armstrong-Queen Eutaw Springs Del Rev Lake rie Plattsburg Lake Champlain Near Baltimore '. South Mountain Fort Bowyer Rossie- Princess Amelia English Confederates English Confederates English Confederates English Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates English Indians English Confederates Mexican English English .. Confederates English English Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Antietam (continued) Fort Erie (sortie) .' Chickamauga (continued) U.S.... Eng.... Conf... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... 653 3 1,644 94 8 49 142 2 2 47 3 10 Gen. Wayne Jionhomme Richard-Serapis Globe Sir Simon Clark New Market Heights (continued) U.S.... Conf... U.S.... U.S.... "l4 398 New Market Heights (ended) Preble's Farm (continued) : OCTOBER. 1 1864 Preble's Farm (ended) 1 1864 Harrison 2 1863 Anderson' 8 Cross-Roads 3!l814 Saucy Jack-troop ship 3 1862 Corinth (continued) 4 ! 1777 Germantown 4'1812 Ogdensburg 41862 Corinth (ended) 41863 Baxter's Springs 6 1S13 Moravian towns 51864 Allatoona 8,1777 Fortt Montgomery and Clinton.. . 6 1782 Wasp-packet 7 1777 Saratoga 711780 King's Mountain 7 1812 Caledonia and Detroit-boats Confederates:U.S. Confederates U. S. Conf ederates U. S . English U.S. Confederates U.S. Eng. U.S. Confederates U.S. Confederate* Conf English English English U.S. Confederates U.S. English Enr English TJ.f English.. English.. U. U.S. U.S. English iU.S... 141 8 8 189 315 SO 1 US M S 83 28 1 788 24 16 15 "542 1,812 21 23 *: 1M 214 16 32 3 3 1,423 12 80 HI 00 4 tt 168 5 686 46 41 2 "462 6 6,892 33 101 rot 141 IT 106 284 10 230 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. OCTOBER Continued. NAME OF BATTLE. Opponent. Victor. CASUALTIES. United States. Opponents. Killed. Wounded. ' Killed. Wounded. 7 1863 Fannington Confederates U.S... 8 1780 Saratoya-MoUy English U.S... 8 1862 Perryville Confederates U . S . . . 8 1779 Savannah English Eng... 9 1779 Assault on Savannah English Eng... 9 1814 Prince de Neuchatel-Endymion lEnglish ;U.f 10 1863 Blue Springs ~ 11 1776 Lake Champlain English . . English.. Confederates U.S... English Eng. . . 12 1800 Boston-Berceau French U.S... 12 1863 Arrow Bock (continued) Confederates Conf . . 13 1812 Queenstown English Eng.. . 13 1863 Arrow Rock (ended) Confederates 14 1863 Bristow Station Confederates 15 1779 Vengeance-Defiance English 16 1776 Ranger-privateer English 17 1862 FortRidgeley Indians 18 1812 Wasp-Frolic English. 19 1781 Yorktown (ended) 191814 Cook's Mills 19 1863 Buckland's Mills 19 1864 Cedar Creek 20 1863 Philadelphia, Tenn 21 1861 Ball's Bluff 221777 Red Bank. 22 1862 Pocotaligo (continued) , 23 186 Pocotaligo (ended) 24 1864 Big Blue (continued) 25 1776 White Plains 251812 United Slates-Macedonian English U.S. 25 1863 Pine Bluff Conf ederates U. S . 251864 Big Blue(ended) Confederates U.S. 261846 Tabasco Mexican U.S. 27 1863 Wauhatchie (continued) Confederates U.S.. 271864 Albemarle ^Confederates U.S.. 27 1864 Hatcher's Run Confederates * 27 1864 Fair Oaks (continued) Confederates * 28 1863 Wauhatchie(continued) Confederates U.S.. 28 1864 Fair Oaks (ended) Confederates * 29 1863 Wauhatchie (ended) Confederates U. S . . 30 1864 Petersburg (September 1-October 30). ... Confederates U.S.. 31 1799 Norfolk-Picaroons Picaroons ... U.S.. U.S.. U.S... U.S.., U.S.. U.S.. U.S... Confederates Conf.. Confederates U.-S. . . Confederates j Conf . . Conf ederates ; Conf . English U.S... Confederates Conf . . Confederates Conf., Confederates U. S . . . English 8 2 916 7 33 30 4 90 45 50 3 3 1 5 8 11 8 588 26 223 11 M '24 5 IT 41 I "2 m 120 76 170 16 4 2,943 136 173 23 62 50 11 ieo 162 150 5 11 6 5 16 54 23 3,516 73 226 21 152 1,047 783 339 822 22 6 980 20 18 33 48 15 4 50 84 150 4 16 44 15 199 20 4 961 34 58 142 "ii 39 78 4 ""6 247 150 153 240 65 37 10 1.520 36 37 37 94 26 17 'ioi 205 250 11 24 108 47 353 60 31 3,239 62 242 258 io2 68 111 135 10 "6 763 301 208 761 70 NOVEMBER. 1 1779 Jason-Perseus English Eng 18 2 1813 Governor Tompkins-Mary Ann English U.S i 3 1813 Talluschatches Indians U.S ! 5 3 1863 Near Opelousas Confederates * 26 41812 Marengo-Leonidas English U.S ' 5 1812 Paul Jones-Hassan English U.S 6 1861 Belmont (continued) Confederates Conf ...I 61863 Droop Mountain Confederates U.S 6 1863 Rogersville Confederates Conf . . . 61863 Campbell Station Confederates Conf... 7 1811 Tippecanoe Indians U.S 7 1861 Port Royal Confederates U. S 7 1861 Belmont (ended) Confederates U.S 7 1863 Rappahannock Station Confederates U.S 8 1813, Globe-packets English U. S. . . . 9 1813 Talladega Indians U.S.... 10 1813 Saucy Jack-Sherbroke English |U.S 1 11 1813 Chrysler's Fields English 121813 Tom-Townsend English 131776 Alfred-transports English 14 1813 Wile Renard-ship ; English 16 1779 ImpertinentrHarlem, English 16 1776 Industry-brig. 16 1776 Mount Washington. 17 1847 Guaymas 17 1863 KnoxviUe . English English En Mexican U. i Confederates 18 1813 Hillabee towns 'Indians U.S 19 1847 Unas Mexican U.S.... 20 1780 Ennoree Ford English U.S.... 201856 Canton Fort (continued) Chinese U.S 21 1847, San Jose 1 Mexican U.S.... 21 1866 Canton Forts (continued) iChinese U^8 22 1778 Lee-shi^ Engllin 2B 1886 Canton Forts (ended) Chinese.. . 23 1863 Chattanooga, including Orchard Knob, Lookout Mountain, and Missionary Ridg* (continued) Confederates U. S 41 5 112 37 8 90 149 8 15 102 6 2 48 24 3 12 41 124 1 12 186 151 23 173 250 18 86 3 237 2 2 40 1 6 101 72 4 1 186 58 1 "82 3 136 120 11 231 80 i9 299 2 22 8 3 82 8 3 252 12 18 61 8 9ft 2 400 9 4 298 1 1 "158 24 214 180 48 682 160 18 5 147 13 10 3 8 448 18 64 12 102 '26 HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 231 NOVEMBER -J Continued. t i 1863 1863 1863 1863 1812 1863 1813 1863 1864 1864 NAME OF BATTLE. .Opponent. Victor. CASUALTIES. United States. Opponents. Killed. Wounded. Killed. Wounded. 24 25 20 27 2* 28 29 29 30 30 Chattanooga, etc. (continued) Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates Indians Confederates Confederates Confederates U.S.. U.S.. U.S.. U.S.. U.S.. U.S.. U.S.. U.S.. U.S.. Conf. 'TOT ""s 99 11 24 189 66 4',629 "l2 398 54 68 1,033 645 860 "i4 121 204 259 1,141 18 2,150 30 432 432 6,113 114 Chattanooga, etc. (ended) Operations at Mine Run (continued) Operations at Mine Run (continued) Niagara batteries Mine Run (ended) Autosse Knoxville Franklin, Tenn Honey Hil), S. C DECEMBER. 1 1782; Commerce-brig and schooners 2Vm\Massachusetts-Lavmsdaie English English English English Confederates English. Confederates U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... U.S.... * * U.S.... Conf... u s.... * U.S.... Conf 1 3 1 3 38 4 ii 167 48 "is 39 3 2 5 4 8 62 13 "36 798 102 "22 390 7 gjioi 36 478 l',74i 26 478 3 4 12 9 6 113 '"i 63 4 ""B 990 69 25 "42 139 14 6 3 4 21 6 42 161 35 "32 112 2 "605 17 71 24 '584 39 201 23 2 6 6 30 99 17 3 3 'l20 63 7 60 .... 48 24 13 8 9 32 21 64 817 115 "68 228 5 4.",'1 77 268 81 s.oii 538 21 11 13 230 "78 66 8 'i49 134 19 101 '"s 152 3 1815 Kemp-merchantmen (armed) 4 17811 Prosperity-privateer 6 1863 Coffeeville 6 1812 Montgomery-armed ship 6 1864 Deveraux's Neck (continued) 7 1777, Chestnut Hill 7. 1862' Prairie Grove Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates Confederates Confederates English Confederates English Confederates Confederates Indians Confederates English Confederates English 7 1862'Hartsville 8 1864' Deveraux's Neck (continued) 9 1862 Col. Matthews 9 1864 Deveraux's Neck(ended) 10 1812 \Saratoffa~Morffiana 11 1862 Fredericksburg ( continued) 12 1862 i Fredericksburg (continued) Conf 13 1862 Fredericksburg (ended) Conf... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... u s 1,152 6 90 14 1814 Lake Borgne 14 ; 1862jKinston 15jl776 Great Bridge 15 1864 Nashville (continued) 16 1864 Nashville (ended) U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... U.S.... Conf... * U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... Conf 399 11 90 3 5 4 1 24 17 1812 ! Massasinewa 18 1862 Foster" s expedition (ended) 19 vn& Rover- Africa 20 1862 Holly Springs 21 \\779 Sally-transports 22 \Tt%\ Saratoga-Chance 23 1813 Econochaca English Indians English Confederates English Confederates English Confederates English Confederates English English Confederates English Confederates Confederates 23 1814 Near New Orleans 24 1864 Fort Fisher (continued) 25 1776 Trenton U.S.... Conf... * Conf 2 20 1 25 1864 ] Fort Fisher (continued) 26 1781 'St. James-ship (armed) 27 1862! Vicksburg assault(continued) 28 : 1814' Near New'Orleans* U.S.... Conf... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... Eng.... U.S.... U.S.... 7 724 28 9 "is 23 28 1862 Vicksburg assault (ended) 29 1778i Savannah 29 1812' Constitution-Java 30 1862 Murfreesboro (continued) 31 1775 Quebec 31 1862 Parker's Cross-Roads 31 1862 Murfreesboro (continued) THE RTJTLERS OF FRANCE FROM THE REVOLUTION OF 1792. The First Republic. The National Convention first sat ........... Sept. 21, 1792 The Directory nominated ................... Nov. 1 , 1796 The Consulate. Bonaparte, Cambace'res, and Lebrun ....... Dec. 24, 1799 Bonaparte, Consul for ten years ............. May 6, 1802 Bonaparte, Consul for life ................. Aug. 2,1802 The Empire. Napoleon I. dec-reed Kmperor ............... May 18, 1804 Napoleon II. (never reigad) .......... died July 22, 1832 Louis XVIII. r-entered Paris .............. May 3, 1814 Charles X. (dep. July 30, 1830, d. Nov. 6, 1836) 1824 The House of Orleans. Louis Philippe, King of the French ........ 1830 (Abdicated Feb. 24, 1848, died Aug. 26, J850.) The Second Republic. Provisional Government formed Feb. 22, 1848 Louis Napoleon elected President Dec. 19, 1848 The Second Empire. Napoleon III. elected Emperor Nov. 22, 1852 (Deposed Sept. 4, 1870, died Jan. 9, 1873.) The Third Republic. Committee of Public Defense Sept. 4, 1870 L. A. Thiers elected President Aug. 31, 1871 Marshal MacMahon elected President May 24, 1873 Jules Grevy elected President Jan. JO, 1879 Marie F. S. Carnot sleeted President Dec. 3, 1887 (Assassinated at Lyons, June 24, 1894.) Jean Casimir Perier elected President June 27, 1894 Felix Francois Faure elected President Jan. 17, 1896 (Assassinated, in Paris, Feb. 16, 1899.) M. Emile Loubet elected President Feb. 18, 1899 232 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. A TABLE OF THE KINGS AND QUEENS OF ENGLAND. NAME. SAXONS AND DANES. First King of all England Accession. Died. Age. Reigned. Egbert 827 837 858) 858J 866 871 901 925 940 946 955 958 975 979 1016 1017 1035 1040 1042 1066 1066 1087 1100 1135 1154 1189 1199 1216 1272 1307 1327 1377 1399 1413 1422 1461 1483 1483 1485 1509 1547 1553 1558 1603 1625 1649 1653 1658 1660 1685 1689 1702 1714 1727 1760 1820 1880 1837 1901 839 858 860 866 871 901 925 940 946 955 958 975 979 1016 1016 1035 1040 1042 1066 1066 1087 1100 1135 1154 1189 1199 1216 1272 1307 1327 1377 Dep. 1399 1413 1422 Dep. 1461 1483 1483 1485 1509 1547 1553 1558 1603 1625 1649 1658 Res. 1659 1685 Dep. 1688 Dec. 1701 f!702 (1694 1714 17B7 1760 1820 1880 1837 1001 52 46 23 20 31 17 28 40 64 60 43 67 49 56 42 51 65 67 43 65 33 46 34 49 41 12 33 62 55 16 42 69 58 48 59 54 68 si 32 49 t 82 68 72 81 12 21 2 8 5 30 24 15 6 9 3 17 4 37 1 18 5 2 24 21 13 35 19 35 10 17 56 35 20 50 22 14 9 39 22 2 21 38 ft a 4! 2rt 2 3 is 5 12 I 60 10 7 61 Ethelwulf Son of Egbert Son of Ethelwulf 4 ( Ethelbald I Ethelbert ... Second son of Ethelwulf Ethelred Third son of Ethelwulf Alfred Fourth son of Ethelwulf Edward the Elder Son of Alfred At helstnn Eldest son of Edward Edmund Brother of Athelstan Edred Brother of Edmund Edwy Son of Edmund Edgar Second son of Edmund Edward the Martyr Ethelred II.. . ... Son of Edgar Half-brother of Edward Edmund Ironside Eldest son of Ethelred Canute By conquest and election Harold I Hardicanute Another son of Canute Edward the Confessor. . Harold II Son of Ethelred II Brother-in-law of Edward William I..., THE HOUSE OF NORMANDY. Obtained the Crown by conquest William II.. Third son of William I Henry I Youngest son of William I Stephen . Third son of Stephen, Count of Blois Henry II. THE HOUSE OF PLANTAGENET. Son of Geoffrey Plantagenet Richard I Eldest surviving son 01 Henry II Sixth and youngest son of Henry II Henry III Eldest son of John Edward I Eldest son of Henry III Edward II Eldest surviving son of Edward I Edward III Eldest son of Edward II Richard 11 Son of the Black Prince, eldest son of Edward III. THE HOUSE OF LANCASTER. Son of JoHn of Gaunt, fourth son of Edward III. Eldest son of Henrv IV Henry IV Henry V Henry VI Only son of Henry V. (died 1471) Edward IV THE HOUSE OF YORK. His grandfather was Richard, son of Edmund, fifth son of Edward III. ; and his grandmother, Anne, was great-granddaughter of Lionel, third son of Edward III Eldest son of Edward IV Edward V Richard HI Younger brother of Edward IV Henry VII THE HOUSE OF TUDOR. Son of Edmund, eldest son of Owen Tudor, by Katharine, widow of Henry V. ; his mother, Margaret Beaufort, was great-granddaughter of John of Gaunt Henry VIII Only surviving son of Henry VII ... . . Edward VI Son of Henry VIII , by Jane Seymour Mary I Daughter of Henry VIII . , by Katherine of A ragon Daughter of Henry VIII , by Anne Boleyn Elizabeth James I THE HOUSE OF STUART. Son of Mary Queen of Scots, granddaughter of James IV. and Margaret, daughter of Henry VII. Only surviving son of James I Charles I Commonwealth \ Commonwealth declared May 19 Oliver Cromwell, Lord Protector Charles II Richard Cromwell, Lord Protector THE HOUSE OF STUART RESTORED. Eldest son of Charles I James II Second son of Charles I. (died Sept 16, 1701) William III ( (Interregnum, Dec. 11, 1688 Feb. 13, 1689.) Son of William, Prince of Orange, by Mary, ) daughter of Charles I J and Mary II ( Eldest daughter of James II ) Anne Second daughter of James II fteorge I THE HOUSE OF HANOVER. Son of Elector of Hanover, by Sophia, daughter of Elizabeth, daughter of James I George II Only son of George I George III Grandson of George II .... George IV Eldest son of George HI William IV Third son of George III Victoria. Daughter of Edward, fourth son of George III... Son of Victoria Edward VII HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 283 DICTIONARY OF BIOGRAPHY. ABBREVIATIONS: Am., American. Br., British. Dan., Danish. Eng., English. Fl., flourished. Fr., French. Ger., German. Gr., Greek. Ir., Irish. It., Italian. Nor., Nor- wegian. Port., Portuguese. Prus., Prussian. Rom., Roman. Scot., Scottish. Sp., Spanish. Sw., Swedish. The numbers after each name indicate the years of birth and death. An interrogation mark denotes that the date is doubtful. After the names of the Popes the first date indicates time of accession unless otherwise stated. ABBAS I. (the Great), 1557-1628, shah of Persia. ABBASSIDES, fl. within 749-1258, famous dynasty of Caliphs at Bagdad and Damascus. ABBOTT, John Stevens Cabot, 1805-77, Am. historian. ABD-EL-KADER, 1807-83, emir of Algeria. ABELARD, Pierre, 1079-1142, Fr. orator and philosopher. ABERCROMBIE, James, 1706-81. Br. gen- eral in America. ABERCROMBIE, John, 1781-1844, Scot, met- aphysician. ABERCROMBY, Sir Ralph, 1734-1801, Br. general. ABERNETHY, John, 1764-1831, Eng. anato- mist. ABOUT, Edmond, 1828-85, Fr. author. ABRAHAM (or ABRAM), born about 2000 B. C., and died at the age of 175, Hebrew prince and patriarch. ADAMS, Charles Francis, 1807-88, Am. statesman, son of J. Q. A. ; negotiated treaty of Geneva. ADAMS, John, first vice-president and sec- ond president of the United States ; one of the negotiators of the treaty of peace with Great Britain, 1782 ; defeated by Jefferson for the presidency in 1800, he retired to private life. ADAMS, John Quincy, 1768-1848, son of J. A., sixth president of the United States; being elected by the House ; defeated by Jack- son in 1828 ; elected to the House in 1830, his oratory gained for him the title "Old Man Eloquent " ; member of the House until 1848, in which year, while in his seat at the Capitol, he received a stroke of paralysis, which caused his death. ADAMS, Samuel, 1722-1803, Governor of Massachusetts ; one of the popular leaders of the Revolution ; signer of the Declaration of In- dependence. ADDISON, Joseph, 1672-1719, Eng. poet, moralist, and dramatist. ADRIAN I., pope from 772-95 ; II., 867-72 ; III., 884-5 ; IV., 1154-9 ; V., 1276, died same year; VI., 1521-3. 5, 389-14 B.C., Athenian orator. 5, 525-456 B.C., first great tragic poet and founder of the drama. , 6197-564 B.C., Gr. fabulist ; a slave, but liberated by his master on account of his talents. AFFRE, Denis Auguste, 1793-1848, arch- bishop of Paris ; killed during the insurrection of June, 1848. AGASSIZ, Louis, 1807-73, Swiss naturalist ; professor at Harvard ; founded museum of comparative zoology, Cambridge. AGRICOLA, Cnaeus Julius, 37-93, Rom. gen- eral. AGRIPPA, Marcus Vipsanius, 63-12 B.C., Rom. soldier and statesman. AINSWORTH, William Harrison, 1805-82, Eng. novelist. AKBAR, 1542-1605, most illustrious of the Mogul emperors. AKENSIDE, Mark, 1721-70, Eng. physician, poet, and scholar. ALADDIN, fl. 1375, son of Osmanand organ- izer of the Janissaries. ALARIC, 350?-410, king of the Visigoths. ALBERT, or ALBERT FRANCIS, Augustus Charles Emmanuel, prince of Saxe-Coburg- Gotha, 1819-61, consort of Queen Victoria. ALBUQUERQUE, Alfonso, Marquis de, 1453- 1515, Portuguese conqueror. ALCIBIADES, 450-404 B.C., Athenian gen- eral. ALCOTT, Amos Bronson, 1799-1888, Am. philosopher and teacher. ALCOTT, Louisa May, 1833-88, Am. au- thoress. ALEMBERT, Jean le Rond d', 1717-83, Fr. geometer. ALEXANDER (the Great), 356-323 B.C., king of Macedon ; taught by Aristotle ; as- cended the throne of Macedon 336, destroyed Thebes and was chosen commander of the Greeks against Persia ; invaded Asia Minor in 334, defeating Darius on the banks of the Granicus ; in 333 he almost annihilated the Persian army at the battle of Issus ; cut the Gordian knot and caused the Ammonian oracle to declare him the son of Jupiter Aminon ; captured Tyre in 332, and, having invaded Egypt, founded Alexandria; in 331 he de- feated Darius at Arbela ; elated by his success, he claimed the homage due to a god, stabbing his fostr-brother Clitus for refusal to pay such 284 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. homage; invaded India in 327. advancing as far as the Hyphasis : his death is said to have been caused by excessive drinking. ALFIERI, Vittorio, 1749-1803, It. poet. ALFRED (the Great), 8497-901, king of the West Saxons ; one of the greatest and noblest of Englishmen ; established schools and a sys- tem of police, and founded a navy. ALLEN, Ethan, 1737-89, Am. Revolutionary commander ; captured Ticonderoga and Crown Point in 1775 with only eighty-three men. ALLIBONE, Samuel Austin, 1816-89, Am. writer. ALLSTOX, Washington, 1779-1843, Am. painter. ALVA, Fernando Alvarez de Toledo, Duke of, 1508-82, Spanish commander in Nether- lands ; infamous for cruelty. AMBROSE, Saint, 3407-97, one of the fathers of the Church. AMKRICUS, see Vespucci. AMES, Fisher, 1758-1808, Am. orator and statesman. AMHERST, Jeffrey (Lord Amherst), 1717-97, Br. general and field-marshal and governor of Virginia. AMPERE, Andre Marie, 1775-1836, Fr. elec- trician and natural philosopher. ANACREON, B. C. 5607-478, Gr. lyric poet. ANAXAGORAS, B. C. 500-428, Gr. philos- opher ; " the father of modern science." ANAXIMANDER, B. C. 610-547, Gr. philos- opher. ANDERSEN, Hans Christian, 1805-75, Dan. author. ANDRASSY, Julian, Count, 1823-90, Hun- garian statesman. ANDRE, John, 1751-80, Eng. spy ; hanged for connection with the Arnold treason. ANDROS, Sir Edmund, 1637-1714, Br. col- onial governor of New England. ANNE, 1664-1714, queen of England; last of the Stuarts. ANTHONY, St., 251-3567, Egyptian founder of monachism. ANTISTHENES, fl. 400 B. C., Gr. philosopher ; founder of the Cynic school. ANTOINETTE, Marie, 1755-93, queen of Louis XVI. of France ; guillotined. ANTONIUS, Marcus (Mark Antony), B. C. 937-30, Rom. general and statesman. AQUINAS, Thomas, Saint (the Angelic Doc- tor), 1224-74, theologian, teacher, and writer; member of the order of St. Dominic ; the great- est of the schoolmen of the middle ages. ARAM, Eugene, 1704-59, Eng. scholar; ex- ecuted for the murder of one Daniel Clark, whom he is said to have killed to procure means for prosecuting his studies ; chief character 111 em* of Bulwer's novels. ARCHIMEDES, B. C. 2877-12, Gr. mathema- tician and natural philosopher ; founder of physics. ARGYLL (or ARGYLE), Archibald Campbell, eighth earl, 1598-1661, Scot. Covenanter; de- feated by Montrose ; executed for treason. ARIOSTO, Ludovico, 1474-1533, It. poet. ARISTIDES, B. C -4687, Athenian gen- eral and statesman. ARISTOPHANES, B. C. 4447-3807, Gr. comic poet ; his genius and audacity in burlesque have never been equaled. ARISTOTLE (the Stagirite), B. C. 384-22, Gr. founder of analytic philosophy. ARIUS, 2557-3367, patriarch of Alexandria and founder of the Arian schism. ARKWRIGHT, Sir Richard, 1732-92, Eng. manufacturer; inventor of the spinning-jenny. ARMINIUS, Hermann, B. C. 16-21, A. D., i Ger. hero ; defeated the Romans A. D. 9, near the Lippe. ARNAUD, Henri, 1641-1721, leader of the Waldenses. ARNOLD, Benedict, 1740-1801, Am. general and traitor ; his plot to deliver West Point into the hands of the British was foiled by the cap- ture of Major Andre, and he barely escaped ; he became a colonel in the British army. ARNOLD OF BRESCIA (or Arnaldo), .... -1155, It. reformer and orator. ARNOLD, Matthew, 1822-88, Eng. author, poet, and critic. ARNOLD, Thomas, 1795-1842, Eng. historian. ARNOLD VON WINKELRIED, .... -1386, Swiss patriot, who broke the Austrian phalanx at the battle of Sempach by throwing himself against the points of their spears. ARTEMISIA, fl. 350 B. C., consort of Mau- solus, prince of Caria, in whose memory she erected a tomb numbered among the seven wonders of the world. ARTEVELDE, Jacob van, 13007-45, leader of people of Ghent. ARTEVELDE, Philip van, son of J. v. A., 1340-82, leader of insurrection in Flanders. ARTHUR, Chester Alan, 1831-86, twenty- first president of the United States ; born at St. Albans, Vermont ; read law, was admitted to the bar, and began practice in New York city; 1860, quartermaster general on the staff of Governor Morgan; 1871, collector of the port of New York, but superseded, 1878, by General Merritt ; 1880, nominated for vice- president by the Republicans and elected ; suc- ceeded to the presidency on the death of Gar- field. ASCHAM, Roger, 1515-68, Eng. scholar and author. ASHBURTON, Alexander Baring, Lord, 1774- 1848, Eng. diplomatist. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 235 ABPASIA of Miletus, B. C 432 ?, mis- tress of Pericles, the Athenian law not permit- ing a citizen to marry a foreigner ; Socrates called himself one of her disciples. ASTOR, John Jacob, 1763-1848, Am. mer- chant, native of Germany ; settled in New York city and entered the fur trade, establish- ing trading posts in the northwest as far as the Pacific and founding Astoria in 1811 ; he made extensive investments in real estate, and when he died his property was estimated at twenty millions. ATTILA (the Scourge of God), . . . .-453, king of the Huns. , ; , AUBER, Daniel Francois Esprit, 1784-1871, Fr. composer. AUDUBON, John James, 1780-1851, Am. ornithologist ; spent many years in studying and illustrating from life the birds of America. AUERBACH,' Berthold, 1812-82, Ger. Jewish author and poet. AUGUSTINE, Saint, 354-430, Latin father of the Church and founder of Roman Catholic theology. AUGUSTUS C^SAR, B. C. 63-A. D. 14, first emperor of Rome. AURELIUS ANTONINUS, Marcus (Marcus Aurelius), 121-80, Rom. emperor and philoso- pher. AUSTEN, Jane, 1775-1817, Eng. author. AVICENNA, 980-1037, Arabian physician. BABER, Mohammed, 1483 ?-l 530, founder of the Mogul empire in India. BACH, Johann Sebastian, 1685-1750, Ger. composer and director ; founder of modern music. BACON, Francis, Baron Verulam, Viscount St. Albans (Lord Bacon), 1561-1626, Eng. statesman, jurist, and philosopher, and father of experimental philosophy ; from him dates the origin of all industrial science. Son of Sir Nicholas Bacon, keeper of the great seal under Elizabeth ; studied at Trinity College, and at 15 began to oppose the phi- losophy of Aristotle ; called to the bar, and made queen's counsel at 28 ; solicitor-general, 1607 ; judge of the marshal's court, '1611 ; attorney-general, 1613 ; lord keeper, 1617; lord high chancellor, 1619 ; charged with bribery and corruption in Parliament, 1621, he pleaded guilty (some say to save the king), and was sentenced to pay a fine of 40,000, and to be imprisoned during the royal pleas- ure ; he regained his liberty after two days' imprisonment, his fine, too, being remitted by King James, who also allowed him a pension ; he spent the rest of his life in retirement, diligently pursuing the study of literature and science. BAFFIN, William, 1580-1622, Eng. naviga- tor. BAILLY, Jean Sylvain, 1736-93, Fr. astron- omer and philosopher ; first president of the States-General; executed by the Jacobins. BAKER, Sir Samuel White, 1821- Eng. explorer and author ; in 1847 he estab- lished a sanitarium and prosperous agricul- tural settlement in the mountains of Ceylon, 6,200 feet above the sea level ; in 1861-4 ex- plored the region lying around the sources of the White Nile ; discovered and named Lake Albert Nyanza, and fcund the exit of the Nile ; in 1869 another expedition was made to the great African lakes. BALBOA, Vasco Nunez de, 1475 7-1517, Sp. discoverer ; discovered the Pacific Ocean, 1513 ; the jealousy of his superior officers caused his conviction and execution on a charge of treason. BALFE, Michael William, 1808-70, Ir. com- poser ; " Bohemian Girl. " BALIOL, John de, 1259 7-1314, king of Scotland ; rival of Bruce. BALLOU, Hosea, 1771-1852, Am. theologian ; founder of Universalist denomination. BALMACEDA, Jose Manuel, 1840-91, presi- dent of Chile. BALZAC, Honore" de, 1799-1850, Fr. novel- ist. BANCROFT, George, 1800-91, Am. historian and diplomat; his "History of the United States" has been translated into all the prin- cipal languages of Europe. BARBAROSSA, Hadher, 1476 7-1546, Corsair king of Algiers. BARBAULD, Anna Letitia, 1743-1825, Eng. authoress. BARCLAY DE TOLLY, Michael, Prince, 1755- 1818, Russian field-marshal. BARHAM, Richard Harris, 1788-1845, Eng. divine and humorist ; " Ingoldsby Legends." BARMECIDES, Persian family, noted for tragic fate. BARNEVELDT, Johanvan Olden, 1549-1619, Dutch statesman. BARRAS, Paul Francois Jean Nicola, Count de, 1755-1829, Fr. statesman. BARRETT. Lawrence (real name, Branni- gan), 1838-92, Am. actor. BARTHELEMY SAINT-HILAIRE, Jules, 1805- . . . . , Fr. statesman and writer. BAXTER, Richard, 1615-91, Eng. Dis. minister and writer. BAYLE, Pierre, 1647-1706, Fr. philosopher and critic. BAZAINE, Francois Achille, 1811-88, Fr. general ; in the Franco-German war he sur- rendered the fortress of Metz, with 173,000 men, 6,000 officers, 50 generals and 3 mar. 236 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. shals, and fled to England ; court-martialed and sentenced to degradation and death, but sentence was commuted to twenty years' im- prisonment ; confined at the isle Sainte Mar- guerite, he escaped and settled in Madrid. BEACONSFIELD, Benjamin Disraeli, Earl of, 1804-80, Eng. statesman and novelist. BEATTIE, James, 1735-1803, Scot, poet and philosopher. BEAUMONT, Francis, 1586-1615, Eng. dramatic writer ; associate of John Fletcher. BEAUREGARD, Peter Gustavus Toutant, 1816 V-1893, Am. Confederate general, born in Louisiana ; graduate of West Point ; served in Mexico ; commanded at Fort Sumter and at the first battle of Bull Run ; defeated at Shiloh by Grant, 1862 ; defended Charleston, 1863. BECKET, Thomas a, 1117-70, archbishop of Canterbury ; high chancellor of England ; hav- ing excommunicated two bishops for comply- ing with the king's will, he was assassinated by four barons of the royal household ; canon- ized in 1172. BEDE (the Venerable), 673-735, Eng. monk and ecclesiastical writer. BEDFORD, John Plantagenet, duke of , 1390- 1435, Eng. general; defeated by Joan of Arc. BEECHER, Henry Ward, 1813-87, Am. divine and lecturer. BEETHOVEN, Ludwig von, 1770-1827, Ger. composer and considered the greatest of musi- cians. BEHRING, Vitus, 1680-1748 ?, Dan. navi- gator. BENNETT, James Gordon, 1800-72, Scot.- Am. journalist. BENTHAM, Jeremy, 1748-1832, Eng. jurist and utilitarian philosopher. BENTON, Thomas Hart, 1782-1858, Am. statesman; born at Hillsboro, N. C. ; re- moved to Tennessee, where he studied law ; commanded a regiment under General Jack- son ; removed to St. Louis, where he published a political paper ; elected to the U. S. Senate in 1820, he continued a member of that body for 30 years; defeated in 1850 by a division in Democratic party on slavery question ; advo- cacy of a gold and silver currency during his second term in Senate earned for him sobri- quet " Old Bullion" ; elected in 1852 to the House, he opposed the repeal of the Missouri Compromise ; defeated for governorship of Missouri in 1856; favored Buchanan for the presidency in opposition to his son-in-law, Fremont. BERANGER, Pierre Jean de, 1780-1857, FT. lyric poet. BERG, Christen Paulseu, 1820- . . . ., Dan. statesman BERIOT, Charles Auguste de, 1802-70, Bel- gian violinist and composer. BERKELEY, George, 1684-1753, IT. Protes- tant prelate and metaphysician ; founder of the philosophy of idealism. BERLIOZ, Louis Hector, 1803-69, Fr. com- poser. BERNADOTTE, Jean Baptiste Jules, 1764- 1844, marshal of France ; king of Sweden and Norway as Carl XIV. Johan. BERNARD, Saint, 1091-1153, Fr. ecclesiastic, canonized 1174 ; "the greatest of the monks ;" abbot at Clairvaux, refusing ecclesiastical pre- ferment, but exerting great power over Europe ; preacher of the second Crusade. BERNARDO DEL CARPIO, fl. ninth century ; Sp. soldier. BICHAT, Marie Francois Xavier, 1771-1802, Fr. physiologist ; the greatest physician of modern times and founder of general anatomy. BIDDLE, John, 1615-62, Eng. theologian ; father of English Unitarians. BIERSTADT, Albert, 1829-82, Ger.-Am. land- scape painter. BINNEY, Horace, 1780-1875, Am. lawyer. BiSMARCK-ScHONHAUSEN, Karl Otto, Prince, 1815-1898, Ger. statesman; chancellor of the German empire ; within ten years he < ' humbled the Austrian empire, destroyed the French empire, and established the German empire " ; retired 1890. BLACK, Jeremiah Sullivan, 1810-83, Am. jurist. BLACKSTONE, Sir William, 1723-80, Eng. jurist. BLACKWOOD, William, 1776-1817, Scot, pub- lisher. ELAINE, James Gillespie, 1830-93 ("the Plumed Knight"); born in Pennsylvania; removed to Maine, where he edited the Port- land Advertiser ; served four terms in the leg- islature ; in Congress from 1862 to 1876, and speaker for three years ; prominent candidate for the Republican nomination for the presi- dency in 1876, 1880, 1892; chosen United States senator in 1877, but resigned to accept the secretaryship of state under Garfield ; sec- retary of state under Harrison, but resigned just before the Republican convention of 1892. BLAIR, Hugh, 1718-1800, Scot, divine and rhetorician. BLAKE, Robert, 1599-1657, Br. admiral; founder of England's naval supremacy. BLANC, Jean Joseph Louis, 1813-83, FT. journalist, historian, and politician. BLATCHFORD, Samuel, 1820-1893, justice United States Supreme Court. BLAVATSKY, Helena, 1831-91, theosophist. BLENNERHASSET, Harmon, 1770-1 881, friend and accomplice of Aaron Burr. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 287 BLESSIXGTON, Margaret, Countess of (nee Power), 1789-1849, beautiful and accomplished Irish lady. BLOOMFIELD, Robert, 1766-1823, Eng. poet. BLUCHER, Gebhard Lebrecht von (Marschall Vorwarts), 1742-1819, Prussian field-marshal; decided battle of Waterloo. BOABDIL -1536?, last Moorish king of Granada. BOCCACCIO, Giovanni, 1313-75, It. novelist. BOERHAAVE, Herman, 1688-1738, Dutch physician and philosopher. BOGARDUS, James, 1800-74, Am. inventor. BOLEYN, Anne, 1507?-36, second queen of Henry VIII. of England ; beheaded. BOLINGBROKE, Henry St. John, Viscount, 1678-1751, Eng. author, orator, and politician. BOLIVAR, Simon, 1783-1830, liberator of the South American colonies. BONAPARTE, Charles Louis Napoleon (Napo- leon III.), 1808-73, son of Louis Bonaparte; emperor of the French ; as claimant to the throne of France, attempted in 1836 to take Strasburg, but was banished ; imprisoned in Havre, 1840, for an attempted insurrection at Boulogne, but escaped to England, 1846 ; re- turning to France after revolution of 1848, he was elected president, gained support of the army, and, abolishing popular representation by the coup d'etat of 1851, was declared em- peror ; in 1853 he married Eugenie, Countess de Teba. Having surrendered at Sedan, after the decisive battle of the Franco-German war, he was deposed and retired to Chiselhurst, in England. BONAPARTE, Joseph, 1768-1844, king of Spain, eldest brother of Napoleon I. BONAPARTE, Louis, 1778-1846, king of Hol- land, brother of Napoleon I. BONAPARTE, Napoleon (Napoleon I.), 1769- 1821, emperor of the French and greatest of modern generals. Born, at Ajaccio, Corsica. Attended military school, 1779 to 1784. En- tered army as sub-lieutenant in 1785, and in 1792 had risen to the rank of captain of artil- lery. In 1793 he submitted a plan for the re- duction of Toulon, held by the English and Spaniards, and was intrusted with its execu- tion. His success won for him a commission as brigadier-general. In the spring of 1795, on the remodeling of the army, he was sus- pended and placed upon half-pay, the reason given by the authorities being that he was too young to command the artillery of an army. In the fall, on the breaking out of an insurrec- tion led by the National Guard, the convention recalled Napoleon, who gained a brilliant vic- tory after a brief but bloody engagement. This virtually made him commander-in-chief of the army of the interior. In 1 796 he was ap- pointed to the command-in-chief of the army of Italy, and in the same year he married Josephine de Beauharnais. In his very first campaign Napoleon appeared a consummate general. In a few weeks he gained four victories, conquered Lombardy and captured Mantua, almost annihi- lating three Austrian armies. He then turned his arms against the Pope, compelling him to pay 30,000,000 lire and surrender many valu- able works of art. After defeating another Austrian army sent to Italy, Napoleon concluded a treaty securing his success. In 1798 he was giren command of a powerful expedition into Egypt, the intention being to strike at the power of Great Britain, and gained decisive victories over the Mamelukes and Turkish auxiliaries. Returning to France he overthrew the Directory and was elected first consul. In 1800 he gained the great victory of Marengo. Made peace with England, 1802, granted general amnesty, es- tablished public order, reestablished the Cath- olic faith, and produced his Civil Code. Napo- leon became emperor in 1804, and engaged in war with England, Russia, Sweden, and Prus- sia. Divorced from Josephine in 1809, he mar- ried Maria Louise, daughter of the emperor of Austria, in 1810. In 1812 occurred the ill- fated Russian campaign, Napoleon's loss be- ing estimated at 450,000 men. Beaten at Leipzig, 1813, he made a disastrous retreat. In 1814 the allies entered Paris, compelled Napoleon to abdicate, and sent him to Elba, granting him the sovereignty of that island, with a yearly pension of 6,000,000 francs. Returning again to France, he was enthusias- tically received and raised an army of about 125,000, but was completely defeated at Water- loo, 1815. He abdicated again, and, unable to carry out his intention of embarking for America, surrendered to the captain of a British man-of-war. Carried to the island of St. Helena, he died there in 1821. BONAVENTURA, Saint, 1221-74, It. theolo- gian. BONHEUR, Rosa (or Rosalie), 1822-1899, FT. painter of animals. BONIFACE I., pope, ruling 419-22 ; II., 530-2; III., elected 607 and died same year ; IV., 608-15 ; V., 619-24, distinguished for his efforts to convert the Britons. BONIFACE, Winifred, Saint, apostle of Ger- many, 680-755? BONNER, Edmund (Bloody Bonner), 1490?- 1569, bishop of London, noted for persecution of Protestants. BONNIVARD, Francois de, 1496-1570, hero of Byron's " Prisoner of Chillon." BOONE, Daniel, 1735-1820?, Am. pioneer; born in Pennsylvania, but removed in boyhood to North Carolina ; visited Kentucky, hitherto 238 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. unexplored, in 1769, and emigrated to that state with his own and five other families in 1773, constructing a fort at Boongborough in 1775 ; captured by the Indians, he was adopted by them, but escaped and returned to the fort, which was shortly after attacked by Indians under the British flag ; the fort was ably de- fended, two of Boone's sons, however, being killed. Boone lost his lands in Kentucky in consequence of a defective title, and, removing to Missouri, pursued the occupation of a hunter and trapper. BOOTH, Edwin, 1833-93. son of Junius Brutus Booth ; Am. tragedian. BOOTH, John Wilkes, J 835-65, son of Junius Brutus Booth ; Am. actor ; assassin of Abra- ham Lincoln ; effected his escape, but was traced into Virginia, where, refusing to sur- render, he was shot. BOOTH, Junius Brutus, 1796-1852, Eng. tra- gedian. BORGIA, Cesare, Due de Valentinois, 1457- 1507, natural son of Alexander VI., It. mili- tary leader ; made cardinal in 1492, but after- wards secularized ; notorious for cunning, per- fidy, and cruelty. BORGIA, Francisco ; see Francis, Saint. BORGIA, Lucrezia, Duchess of Ferrara, . . . . -1523, sister of Cesare ; distinguished for beau- ty and talents, and a patron of learning, but contemporaneous writers differ in their estima- tion of her character. BORROMEO, Carlo, Saint, 1538-84, It. cardinal. BOSSUET, Jacques Benigne, 1627-1704, Fr. prelate and controversialist, and considered the greatest of Christian orators ; first advo- cate of papal infallibility. BOSWELL, James, 1740-95, Scot, lawyer; biographer of Dr. Johnson. BOTTCHER, Johann Friedrich, 1682-1719, inventor of Dresden china. BOUCICAULT, Dion, 1822-90, Ir.-Am. dramatist. Bo UL ANGER, Georges Ernest Jean Marie, 1837-91, Fr. general. BOUILLON, Godfrey de, 10607-1100, leader of first Crusade. BOURDALOUB, Louis, 1632-1704, Fr. Jesuit orator. BOURNE, Hugh, 1772-1852, Eng. founder of Primitive Methodism. BOWDITCH, Nathaniel, 1773-1838, Am. mathematician. BOWLES, Samuel, 1826-78, Am. journalist. BOWXES, William Lisle, 1762-1850, Eng. poet. BOYKSKN, Hjalmar Hjorth, 1848-1895, Nor. author ta America. BOZZABIS, Marcos, 1790-1823, patriotic leader in Greek war for independence. BRADDOCK, Edward, 1715 V-55, Eng. gen- eral in America ; killed by Indians. BRADFORD, William, 1590-1657, governor of Plymouth colony. BRAGG, Braxton, 1815-76, Confederate general. BRANDT, Joseph (Thayendanega), 1742- 1807, half-breed chief of the Mohawks. BRECKINRIDGE, John Cabell, 1821-75, Am. statesman and Confederate general ; born in Kentucky; vice-president, 1857-61; Demo- cratic candidate for presidency in 1860 ; elected to U. S. Senate in 1861, but resigned to enter the Confederate army ; Confederate secretary of war, 1865. BREMER, Fredrika, 1802-65, Sw. novelist. BRENGHEL, Jan, 1569-1825, Flemish painter. BREWSTER, Sir David, 1781-1868, Eng. optician and physicist. BRIAN BORU (or Boroihme), 926-1014, king of Ireland. BRIDGET, Saint, 1302-73, patron saint of Ireland. BRIDGMAN, Laura, 1829-89, Am. blind deaf-mute, noted for mental acquirements. BRIGHT, John, 1811-89, Eng. statesman and orator. BRONTE, Charlotte (Currer Bell), 1816-55, Eng. novelist. BROOKS, Phillips, 1835-93, Am. clergyman. BROUGHAM, Henry, Lord, 1779-1868, Br. author, statesman, and orator. BROTTN, John, Captain, 1800-59, born in Connecticut ; a tanner by trade ; removed to Kansas and became prominent as an abolition- ist ; gained the title of < ' Ossawatomie " by a victory, in 1856, over a company of Missou- rians vastly exceeding his own force in number ; in pursuance of a plan for the invasion of Virginia, he surprised Harper's Ferry in 1859, and took the arsenal and armory and forty prisoners ; attacked the next day by U. S. marines and the Virginia militia, two of his sons and most of his company of twenty men were killed, and he himself wounded and taken prisoner ; he was tried and hanged at Charles- town, Virginia. BROWNE, Charles F. (Artemus Ward), 1835-67, Am. humorist. BROWNE, Sir Thomas, 1605-82, Eng. phy- sician, philosopher, and author. BROWNING, Elizabeth Barrett, 1809-61, wife of Robert Browning ; Eng. poetess. BROWNING, Robert, 1812-89, Eng. poet : "The Ring and the Book," " Straff ord," "Men and Women," " Fifine at the Fair," " A Soul's Errand. " BRUCE, Robert, 1247-132, the greatest of HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 230 the kings of Scotland ; defeated Edward II. at Bannockburn, in 1314. BRUMMEL, George Bryan (Beau Brummel) , 1778-1840, Eng. man of fashion. BRUNO, Saint, 1040V-1191, Ger. founder of the Carthusians. BRUTUS, Lucius Junius, fl. 500 B.C., Rom. patriot. BRUTUS, Marcus Junius, 80-36 B. C., one of Caesar's assassins. BRYANT, William Cullen, 1794-1878, Am. poet and journalist ; born in Mass. ; entered Williams College, read law, admitted to the bar in 1816 ; published " Thanatopsis " in 1816 ; became editor of the New York Evening Post in 1826. BUCHANAN, James, 1791-1868, fifteenth president of the United States ; born in Penn- sylvania ; admitted to the bar, 1812 ; member of Congress, 1821-31 ; minister to Russia, 1832- 4 ; U. S. senator, 1834-5 ; secretary of state, 1845-9 ; minister to England, 1853-6 ; signed Ostend Manifesto, 1854 ; president, 1857-61 ; in his last message, President Buchanan cen- sured the Northern people for the imminent disruption of the Union, holding that neither the executive nor Congress had power to coerce a state. BUCKLE, Henry Thomas, 1822-62, Eng. his- torian. BUDDHA (or Boodha), Gautama, 624-523, B. C., Hindoo reformer ; founder of Buddhism. BUFFON, Georges Louis Leclerc de, Comte, 1707-88, Fr. naturalist and philosopher. BULL, Ole Bornemann, 1810-80, Norwegian pianist and violinist. BuLWER-LYTTON,Edward George Earle Lyt- fcon, Baron Lytton, 1805-73, Eng. novelist. BUNSEN, Christian Karl Josias von, Baron, 1791-1860, Ger. philologist and diplomatist. BUNYAN, John, 1628-88, Eng. author; the son of a tinker, he followed that vocation and led for many years a wandering life ; served in the Parliamentary army ; joined the Ana- baptists in 1654, and in 1655 became a Bap- tist minister ; sentenced to transportation on a charge of promoting seditious assemblies, but sentence nr^ enforced ; was, however, impris- oned for more than twelve years, and during that time wrote his " Pilgrim's Progress." BURGOYNE, John, 1730-92, Brit, general and iramatist ; surrendered at Saratoga. BURKE, Edmund, 1730-97, Ir. orator, states- man, and writer; prominent as the ablest mem- ber of the Commons to oppose the ministry's American policy ; impeached Warren Hastings in 1788. BURNS, Robert, 1759-96, Soot, lyrip poet; born at Ayr ; the son of a poor farmer ; worked hard on his father's farm and had lit- tle opportunity for education ; began rhym- ing at 16, and studied mensuration and sur- veying ; his poems brought him into society, where he acquired dissipated habits ; formed a liaison in 1785 with Jean Armour, whom he married in 1788 ; intended to emigrate, but the popularity of his poems, published in full, 1787, induced him to remain in Scotland ; he afterward became an officer of the excise. BURNSIDE, Ambrose Everett, 1824-81, Am. general. BURR, Aaron, 1756-1836, Am. states- man and lawyer. In 1800 Burr and Jeffer- son were the Democratic candidates for president and vice-president ; receiving the same number of votes, the House gave the higher office to Jefferson. Burr's course in endeavoring to supplant Jefferson cost him the regard of his party. Unsuccessful as candi- date for governor of New York in 1804, Burr attributed his defeat to Alexander Hamilton, whom he killed in a duel. After the expira- tion of his term as vice-president, Burr was tried for treason, charged with the subversion of federal authority, and with raising an ex- pedition for the conquest of Mexico, but acquit- ted. BURRITT, Elihu (the Learned Blacksmith), 1810-79, Am. scholar, journalist, lecturer, and reformer ; the son of a shoemaker, and appren- ticed to a blacksmith, he devoted all of his spare time to study, and eventually mastered eighteen languages. BUSHNELL, Horace, 1802-76, Am. divine. BUTLER, Benjamin Franklin, 1818-93, Am. politician, lawyer, and general ; born in New Hampshire ; military governor of New Or- leans in 1862, ruling with vigor and efficiency and preserving the city from the yellow fever ; went to Congress as a Republican in 1866, and was re-elected for several terms ; elected gov- ernor of Massachusetts in- 1882 by the Demo- crats, but defeated for the same office a year later. BYRON, George Gordon Noel, Lord, 1788- 1824, Eng. poet. In 1815 he married Anne Isabel Millbank, but separated from her and left England in 181G ; in Italy he formed a liaison with the beautiful Countess Guiccioli ; espousing the cause of the Greeks in their struggle for liberty, he left for Greece in 1823, and died the following year at Missolonghi from the effects of exposure while preparing for the siege of Lepanto. CABOT, John, .... -1498?, Venetian navi- gator in service of England ; discovered North American continent 1497. CABOT, Sebastian, 14777-1557, son of pre- ceding ; Eng. navigator. 240 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. CJEDMON, . . . .-680?, Anglo-Saxon poet. C..ESAR, Caius Julius, 100-44 B. C., the great- est of Roman generals. Elected consul 60 B. C. ; formed a secret alliance with Pompey and Crassus known as the first triumvirate. It is said that during his Gallic wars a million D men were slain, eight hundred cities and towns captured and three hundred tribes sub- dued. Pompey having become his enemy through jealousy, Caesar crossed the Rubicon 49 B.C., and in a short time became master of Italy ; having conquered all his enemies, and subdued Spain and Africa, he was made perpetual dictator, and received from the sen- ate the title of Imperator. Although beloved by the masses, the patricians feared and hated him, and the result of a conspiracy of Cassius, Brutus, and others was his assassination. CAGLIARI, Paolo (Paul Veronese), 1530?- 88, It. painter. CALDERON DE LA BARCO, Don Pedro, 1600-83, Sp. poet and dramatist. CALHOUN, John Caldwell, 1783-1850, Am. statesman ; born in South Carolina ; elected to Congress, 1810 ; secretary of war, 1817 ; vice-president, 1825-32, resigning to enter the Senate ; secretary of state, 1844 ; returned to the Senate 1845 ; Calhoun was an avowed champion of slavery and States' rights. CALIGULA, Caius Caesar, 12-41, emperor of Rome ; cruel and sensual ; built a temple to himself ; assassinated. CALVIN, John, 1509-64, Fr. theologian ; established Presbyterian form of church gov- ernment ; the fundamental principle of his theology is that of predestination to eternal happiness or misery by the absolute decree of God. CAMBYSES, 522 B. C., king of Persia ; conqueror of Egypt. CAMOENS, Luis, 1517-79, Portuguese poet. CAMPBELL, Alexander, 1788-1866, Ir. founder of the denomination of " Christians," or " Disciples of Christ." CANOVA, Antonio, 1757-1822, It. sculptor. CANUTE II., 990-1035, king of Denmark; conqueror of England. CAPET, Hugh, 940?-996, founder of the Capetian dynasty. CAREY, Henry Charles, 1793-1879, Am. political economist. CARLYLE, Thomas, 1795-1881, Scot, essay- ist, biographer, and historian. CARROLL, Charles, 1737-1332, Am. patriot. CARTIER, Jacques, 1494-1555?, Fr. naviga- tor. CARTWRIGHT, Edmund, 1743-1823, Eng. inventor. CASTLEREAGH, Robert Stewart, Viscount, 1709-1822, second marquis of Londonderry; Br. statesman, prominent in suppressing the Irish rebellion of 1798 ; committed suicide. CASTRO, Joan de, 1500-48, Portuguese gen- eral and navigator. CATHERINE, Saint, 1347-80, It. nun at Siena ; mediator between the rival popes in the great schism. CATHERINE I., 1682-1727, empress of Rus- sia ; succeeded to the throne on death of her husband, Peter the Great. CATHERINE OF ARAGON, 1486-1536, queen of Henry VIII. of England ; divorced. CATHERINE DE MEDICI, 1510-89, queen of Henry II. of France; opponent of the Hugue- nots. CATILINE, Lucius Sergius, 108?-62 B. C., Rom. conspirator. CATO, Dionysius, fl. 3d century, Latin poet. CATO, Marcus Portius (the Elder), 234-149 B. C., Rom. statesman and author. CATO, Marcus Portius (the Younger), 95- 46 B. C., opponent of Caesar; famed for pur- ity and nobility ; committed suicide. CATULLUS, Caius Valerius, 77?-45?, B. C., Latin poet. CAVOUR, Camillo Benso di, 1818-61, first prime minister of the kingdom of Italy. CAXTON, William, 1412?-92, Eng. scholar and merchant ; introduced printing into Eng- land. CECILIA, Saint, fl. second century, Rom. martyr ; patroness of music. CENCI, Beatrice, 1583 ?-99, " the beautiful parricide ' ' ; Rom. lady famous for beauty and tragic fate. CERVANTES SAAVEDRA, Miguel de, 1547- 1616, Sp. novelist. CESNOLA, Louis Palma di, 1832- . . . ., born in Italy ; colonel in United States army during the civil war ; appointed 1865 consul to Cyprus, and became famous for his excava- tions in that island. CHALMERS, Thomas, 1780-1847, Scot, di- vine. CHAMISSO, Adelbert von, 1781-1838, Ger. traveler. CHAMPOLLION, Jean Frangois, 1791-1832, Fr. Egyptologist. CHANNING, William Ellery, 1780-1842, Am. divine. CHARLEMAGNE (Charles the Great, or Charles I.), 742-814, emperor of Germany and founder of the kingdom of the Franks (now France) ; crowned emperor of the west, with the title of Caesar Augustus, by Pope Leo III., 800 ; the most powerful and enlightened mon- arch of his time ; his empire extended from thd Elbe to the Ebro, and from Calabria to Hungary ; first of the Carlovingian dynasty. CHARLES II. (the Bald Charles II. of HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 241 France), 823-77, emperor of Germany ; in- vaded Italy and was crowned emperor ; III. (the Fat), 832?-88; IV., 1316-78, emperor of Germany and king of Bohemia; V., 1500-58, emperor of Germany ; king of Spain as Charles I. ; in 1521, summoned the Diet of Worms to check the progress of Luther's doc- trines ; in 1527, warring with Francis I. of France and Pope Clement VII., Rome was sacked and the pope made prisoner ; convened the Diet of Augsburg to suppress the reforma- tion, but, the Protestants having united, liberal terms were granted them ; in 1535, defeated Barbarossa and captured Tunis, liberating thousands of Christian slaves ; defeated in 1552 by the Protestant forces under Maurice of Saxony, he signed the treaty of Passau, es- tablishing the Protestant church on a firm basis ; three years later he retired to the mon- astery of St. Yuste. CHARLES I. (Charles Stuart), 1600-49, king of England ; beheaded, after attempting to sub- due his rebellious subjects; II., 1630-85, witty, but careless and voluptuous ; the habeas cor- pus act was passed during his reign. CHARLES XII., 1682-1718, king of Sweden, ascended the throne in 1697 ; a league being formed against him by Russia, Denmark, and Poland in 1700, he besieged Copenhagen, forced Denmark to make peace, and beat the Russians ; he then invaded Poland, compelling King Au- gustus to resign ; invading Russia, he was badly defeated at Pultowa ; he fled to Turkey, but soon returned ; marching into Norway, he was killed at the siege of Frederickshall. CHARLES MARTEL, 6947-741, king of the Franks. CHASE, Salmon Portland, 1808-73, Am. statesman and jurist. CHATEAUBRIAND, Francois Auguste de, Vis- count, 1768-1848, Fr. author. CHATHAM, William Pitt, Earl of (the Great Commoner), 1708-78, Eng. statesman and orator ; opposed taxation of American colo- nies. CHATTERTON, Thomas, 1752-70, Eng. liter- ary impostor. CHAUCER, Geoffrey, 13407-1400, Eng. poet; " Father of English poetry." CHERUBINI, Maiia Luigi, 1760-1842, It. composer. CHESTERFIELD, Philip Dormer Stanhope, Earl of, 1694-1773, Eng. orator and wit; dis- tinguished as a man of fashion. CHITTY, Joseph, 1776-1841, Eng. jurist. CHOATE, Rufus, 1799-1859, Am. lawyer and statesman. CHORIS, Louis, 1795- 1828, Russian painter and traveler. CHRISTINA, 1626-89, queen of Sweden; daughter of Gustavus Adolphus ; learned and eccentric ; abdicated, 1654. CHRYSOSTOM, John, Saint, 3507-407, Gr. father of the Church. CHURCHILL, Randolph Spencer, Lord, 1849- 1895, Eng. statesman. CIBBER, Colley (James Rees), 1671-1757, Eng. actor and dramatist. CICERO, Marcus Tullius, 106-43 B. C., Rom. author, statesman, and orator ; the greatest critic of antiquity ; while consul, suppressed the conspiracy of Catiline; exiled 58 B. C., but recalled ; was an adherent of Pompey, but enjoyed the favor of Julius Caesar ; killed by the soldiers of Antony ; as an orator, Cicero is regarded second only to Demosthenes. CID CAMPEADOR (Ruy Diaz de Bivar), 10407-99, Castilian hero. CINCINNATUS, Lucius Quintus, 520-438 B. C., Rom. patriot and dictator; elected consul while cultivating a farm, having lost his prop- erty ; conquered the ^qui ; twice chosen dic- tator, and at the expiration of each term of office, he returned to the plow. CLARKE, Adam, 1762-1832, Irish Methodist Bible commentator. CLAUDIUS (Tiberius Claudius Drusus Nero), B. C. 10-54 A. D., Rom. emperor; invaded Britain. CLAY, Henry, 1777-1852, Am. statesman and orator ;." The Great Pacificator." Born in Virginia; removed to Kentucky, 1797; practiced law ; elected to Kentucky legislature in 1804, and two years later chosen to fill a short term in the U. S. Senate ; re-elected to the Senate 1809, and to the House of Repre- sentatives 1811, of which body he was made speaker; re-elected speaker 1813 ; signed treaty of Ghent 1815 ; re-elected speaker four times ; in 1824, he was one of four candidates for the presidency ; when the election devolved on the House, his influence decided the contest in favor of Jackson ; a bloodless duel between Clay and Randolph, in 1826, was the result of charges against Clay growing out of this elec- tion ; re-elected to the Senate in 1831 for six years ; in 1832, defeated for the presidency as the candidate of the anti-Jackson party ; again elected to the Senate 1836, but resigned 1842 ; Whig candidate for the presidency in 1844 ; re-elected senator 1848. To Clay is due the credit for the " Missouri Compromise," be- lieved to have postponed for ten years the civil war. CLEOPATRA, 69-30 B. C., queen of Egypt; noted for beauty and accomplishments. CLINTON, Sir Henry, 1733-95, Eng. general in America. CLIVE, Robert, Lord, 1725-74, Eng. general and founder of British empire in India, 242 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. CLOOTZ, Jean Baptiste, Baron (Anacharsis Clootz), 1753-94, Prussian traveler and Fr. rev- olutionist ; guillotined. CLOUGH, Arthur Hugh, 1820-61, Eng. poet. CLOVIS (or Chlodwig), 465-511, king of the Franks ; conqueror of Gaul. COBDEN, Richard, 1804-65, Eng. statesman and economist. COKE (or Cook), Sir Edward, 1552-1633, Eng. jurist. COLE, Thomas, 1801-48, Eng. landscape painter. COLERIDGE, Samuel Taylor, 1772-1834, Eng. poet. COLIGNY, Gaspard de, 1517-72, Fr. admi- ral ; leader of the Huguenots ; killed in mas- sacre of St. Bartholomew. COLLIER, Jeremy, 1650-1726, Eng. theolo- gian. COLUMBA, Saint, 521-97, the apostle of Cal- edonia. COLUMBUS, Christopher (It. : Cristoforo Co- lombo ; Sp. : Cristoval Colon), 1436-1506, Genoese navigator; became a sailor at 14; studied mathematics at the University of Pavia ; removed to Lisbon at the age of thirty ; was employed in several expeditions to the west coast of Africa ; meditated reaching India by a western route, and unsuccessfully solic- ited the aid of John II. of Portugal ; but finally Ferdinand and Isabella of Spain fur- nished him two small vessels, and another was added by the efforts of friends ; with one hun- dred and twenty men he set sail from Palos, August 3, 1492, and discovered the island of San Salvador, October 12 of same year ; sup- posing that he had reached India, he called the natives Indians ; after visiting Cuba and Hayti, he returned to Spain, where he was re- ceived triumphantly ; in 1493 he again sailed across the Atlantic, this time with seventeen ships, and discovered Jamaica and Porto Rico ; in 1498 he made his third voyage, with six vessels, discovering the mainland at the mouth of the Orinoco ; in 1499, complaints having been made to the court of the conduct of Co- lumbus at Hispaniola, he was carried to Spain in chains by Francisco de Bobadilla ; Colum- bus' last voyage to America was made in 1502, to Honduras ; he died neglected. COMTE, Auguste, 1798-1857, Fr. philoso- pher. CONDE, Louis II., Prince de, 1621-86, Fr. general ; victorious over the Spaniards at Rocroi, 1643, and over the Germans at Nord- lingen, 1645 ; again defeated the Spanish at Lens in 1648, almost annihilating their infan- try, previously regarded invincible ; seeking revenge for having been imprisoned by the orders of Mazarin or the queen, he warred ! against the government, and next entered the service of Spain ; returned to France in 1659, and defeated William of Orange in 1674. CONFUCIUS, or KONG-FOO-TSE, 551-478 B. C., Chinese philosopher; the son of a soldier, he was raised to the rank of mandarin at 19 ; commenced public teaching at 22 ; became, in 499 B. C., minister of crime, and soon after retired from public life, devoting his time to study, travel, and the dissemination of his doctrines. The philosophy of Confucius re- lates to the present life only ; he placed great importance upon the outward forms of polite- ness, being the first to enunciate, in substance, the golden rule ; his influence has been enor- mous, his teachings affecting two thirds of humanity for twenty-three centuries. CONGREVE, William, 1670-1729, Eng. dramatist. CONKLING, Roscoe, 1829-88, Am. states- man, lawyer, and orator. CONSTAXTINE I. (the Great), 272-337, em- peror of Rome ; embraced Christianity, and transferred his court from Rome to Byzantium, thenceforth called Constantinople. CoopER,Sir Astley Paston, 1768-1841, Eng. physician. COOPER, James Fenimore, 1779-1851, Am. novelist. COPERNICUS (Kopernik), Nicholas, 1473- 1543, Ger. astronomer ; father of modern astronomy ; disproved the Ptolemaic theory ; in his great work, "The Revolution of the Celestial Orbs," the first copy of which was handed to him on the day of his death, he demonstrated that the sun is the center of the system. CORDAY, Charlotte, 1768-93, Fr. heroine ; assassinated Marat. CORIOLANUS, Cneius Marcus, fl. 490 B. C., Roman hero. CORNEILLE, Pierre, 1606-84, founder of the French drama. CORNELL, Ezra, 1807-74, Am. philanthro- pist. COROT, Jean Baptiste Camille, 1796-1875, Fr. painter. CORREGGIO, Antonio Allegri da, 1494-1534, It. painter ; known as " the divine " ; his work excels in harmony, grace, and sweetness of color and form. CORTEZ, Hernando, 1485-1547, Sp. con- queror of Mexico. CowpER,William, 1731-1800, Eng. poet. CRAIK, Dinah Maria (Mulock), 1826-87, Eng. authoress. CRANMER, Thomas, 1489-1556, Eng. re- former ; archbishop of Canterbury ; burned to death. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 248 CREASY, Sir Edward Shepherd, 1812-78, Eng. historian. CRICHTON, James (the Admirable Crichton), 1560-83, Scot, prodigy ; stabbed by his pupil, a son of the Duke of Mantua. CRITTENDEN, John Jordan, 1787-1863, Am. statesman. CROCKETT, David, 1786-1836, Am. back- woodsman. CRCESUS, 590-46 B. C., king of Lydia; fa- mous for wealth. CROMWELL, Oliver, 1599-1659, Eng. gen- eral and leader of the political and religious revolution in England ; entered the Parlia- mentary army, in 1642, as captain of cavalry ; rapidly promoted, and led left wing at Marston Moor, 1644 ; commanded right wing at Naseby, 1645, and became leader of the independents ; transferred the custody of the king from Par- liament to the army, 1647 ; won the battle of Preston, 1648 ; signed the death warrant of Charles I., 1649; made commander-in-chief, 1650, and defeated the Scotch at Dunbar and Charles at Worcester; dissolved Parliament in 1653, and was, in 1654, proclaimed by the army lord protector of the commonwealth. CUMBERLAND, William Augustus, Duke of, 1721-65, conqueror at Culloden. CURTIS, George William, 1824-92, Am. author and editor. GUSHING, Caleb, 1800-79, Am. lawyer and statesman. CUSHMAN, Charlotte Sanders, 1816-76, Am. actress. CUSTER, George A., 1839-76, Am. general; killed by the Sioux. CUVIER, Georges C. L. F., Baron, 1769- 1832, Fr. naturalist ; the greatest of zoologists and founder of comparative anatomy. CYRUS (the Great, or the Elder), . . . . -529 B. C., king of "Persia ; conquered Babylon. CYRUS (the Younger), . . . .-401 B. C., hero of Xenophon's "Anabasis." DAGUERRE,Louis Jacques Mand6, 1789-1851, Fr. artist ; inventor of the daguerreotype. DALTON, John, 1766-1844, Eng. chemical philosopher. DANA, Charles Anderson, 1819-1898, Am. journalist. DANDOLO, Enrico, 1105-1205, blind doge of Venice. DANE, Nathan, 1752-1835, Am. lawyer and statesman. DANIEL, fl. sixth century B. C., Hebrew prince and prophet. DANTE ALLIGHIERI, 1265-1321, the great- est poet of Italy ; ' ' the Christian Homer. " DANTON, George Jacques, 1759-94, a leader of the French revolution ; guillotined. D'ARBLAY, Mme. Frances (Burney), 1752- 1840, Eng. novelist. DARIUS I. (Darius Hystaspis), . . . .-435 B. C., king of Persia; II., . . . .-405 B. C. ; III. (Codomanus), . . . .-330 B. C., defeated by Alexander. DARLEY, Felix O. C., 1822-88, Am. artist. DARWIN, Charles Robert, 1809-82, Eng. naturalist ; originator of the theory of evolu- tion ; in his "Origin of Species by Means of Natural Selection," published 1859, he pro- pounds the theory that all forms of life have been produced by a series of gradual changes in natural descent ; in his " Descent of Man," he infers that "man is descended from a hairy quadruped furnished with a tail and pointed ears, probably arboreal in its habits." DARWIN, Erasmus, 1731-1802, Eng. physi- cian and poet. D'AUBIGNE, Jean Henri Merle, 1794-1872, Swiss historian. DAVID, 1090-15 B. C., king of Israel. DAVIS, Jefferson, 1808-89, Am. statesman and president of the Confederacy ; born in Kentucky ; graduate of West Point ; served in Black Hawk and Mexican wars ; elected to U. S. Senate from Mississippi, 1847 ; secretary of war, 1853-7 ; re-elected senator, 1857 ; inaugurated provisional president of the Con- federate States, 1861, and elected for six years, 1862 ; imprisoned in Fortress Monroe for two years after the fall of Richmond. DAVY, Sir Humphrey, 1778-1829, Eng. chemist, inventor of the safety lamp. DECATUR, Stephen, 1779-1820, Am. naval commander ; defeated the Algerines ; killed in a duel. DE FOE (or DEFOE), Daniel, 1661-1731, Eng. novelist. DE KALB, John, Baron, 1732-80, Ger. general ; accompanied Lafayette to America, and served under Washington ; killed at bat- tle of Camden. DE HAAS, Maurice F. H., 1830?-1895, Dutch marine painter. DEL SARTO, Andrea Vanucchi, 1486-1531, Florentine painter. DEMOCRITUS, 460-361 B. C., " the laugh- ing philosopher of Greece." DEMOSTHENES, 3857-332 B. C., Athenian orator ; conquered an impediment in his speech, and by perseverance and determination became the greatest of orators ; opposed Philip of Macedon, against whom he delivered his Philippics ; condemned to death by Antipater, he committed suicide by poison. DE QUINCEY, Thomas, 1785-1859, Eng. author ; his " Confessions of an Opium-Eater, " an autobiography, published in 1821, created a great sensation. 244 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. DERBY, Edward Geoffrey Smith Stanley, Earl of, 1799-1869, Eng. statesman and orator; translated Homer's Iliad. DESCARTES, Rene, 1596-1650, Fr. philos- opher and mathematician ; represented the revolt against scholasticism, re-examining all questions and discarding the authority of great names ; " I think, therefore I am." DE SOTO, Ferdinand, 1460-1542, Sp. ex- plorer ; discovered the Mississippi. DESSALINES, Jean Jacques, 1760-1806, negro emperor of Hayti. DICKENS, Charles, 1812-70, Eng. novelist. DIDEROT, Denis, 1712-84, Fr. philosopher and novelist ; chief editor of "The Encyclo- paedia," and librarian of Catherine of Russia. DIOGENES, died 323 B. C., Gr. cynic philos- opher ; lived in a tub, affecting contempt for the comforts of life. DODGE, Mary Abigail (Gail Hamilton), 1839-96, Am. authoress ; cousin of James G. Blaine. DOELLINGER, John Joseph Ignatius, 1799- 1890, Ger. theologian and historian ; leader of the " Old Catholic" movement. DOMINIC, Saint, 1170-1221, Sp. preacher ; founder of order of Dominicans. DOMITIAN, 51?-96, Rom. emperor. DONATUS, fl. 300, founder of the Donatists. DONIZETTI, Gaetano, 1798-1848, It. com- poser. DORE", Paul Gustave, 1832-83, Fr. artist. DORIA, Andrea, 1468-1560, Genoese patriot and commander. DORR, Thomas Wilson, 1805-54, Am. poli- tician. DORSET, Charles Sackville, Earl of, 1637- 1706, Eng. poet and wit. DORSET, Thomas Sackville, Earl of, 1536- 1608, Eng. poet and statesman. DORSEY, John Syng, 1783-1818, Am. sur- geon. DOUGLAS, Archibald (Bell-the-Cat), . . . .- 1514?, "the great earl of Angus"; lord chancellor. DOUGLAS, James, Earl of, ... .-1330, Scot, patriot. DOUGLAS, Stephen Arnold (the Little Giant), 1813-1861, Am. statesman ; native of Ver- mont ; admitted to the bar in New York ; re- moved to Illinois and gained distinction as an orator ; judge of Illinois Supreme Court, 1841 ; elected to Congress, 1843 ; senator, 1847 ; supported the compromise measures of Henry Clay, and advocated the doctrine known as " squatter sovereignty" ; re-elected to Senate, 1853, and reported bill repealing Missouri Compromise ; candidate for Democratic nomi- nation for presidency in 1856 ; defeated Lincoln fer U. S. Senate in 1858, they canvassing the State together ; candidate of one wing of the Democratic party for president in 1860; sup- ported the Union party in 1861. DOUGLASS, Frederick, 1817 V-95. Am. ora- tor ; formerly a slave. Dow, Lorenzo, 1777-1834, Am. - reacher. DRACO (or Dracon), fl. 624 B.'C., Athe- nian lawgiver. DRAKE, Sir Francis, 1540-95, Eng. naval hero ; first English circumnavigator of the globe. DRAKE, Joseph Rodman, 1795-1820, Am. p@et. DRAPER, John William, 1811-82, Am. scientist. DREYSE, Johann Nikolaus von, 1787-1867, Prussian inventor of the needle gun. DRYDEN, John, 1631-1700, Eng. poet, critic, and dramatist. DUDEVANT, Mme. Amantine Lucile Aurora (ne'e Dupin) (George Sand), 1804-76, Fr. novelist. DUDLEY, Robert, Earl of Leicester, 1531?- 88, favorite of Queen Elizabeth. DUFAURE, Jules Armand Stanislas, 1798- 1881, Fr. statesman. DUMAS, Alexandre, 1802-70, Fr. novelist: DUMAS, Alexandre, 1824-1895, son of A. D., Fr. novelist. DUMOURIEZ, Charles Francois, 1739-1823, Fr. general. DUNCAN I., ... .- 1040, Scot, king; killed by Macbeth. DUNGLISON, Robley, 1798-1869, Am. phy- sician. DUNOIS, Jean de (Bastard of Orleans), Fr. national hero ; natural son of the Duke of Or- leans ; defeated the English at Montargis in 1427, and assisted at the siege of Orleans ip 1429 ; expelled the English from Nor- mandy and Guienne, and was created Count d'Orleans. DUNS SCOTUS (the Subtle Doctor), 1265 ?- 1308, Scot, theologian. DUPONT, Samuel Francis, 1803-65, Am. rear- admiral. DCRER, Albrecht, 1471-1528, Ger. painter and engraver. DWIGHT, Timothy, 1752-1817, Am. author and divine. DYCK, VAN, Philip, 1680-1752, Dutch painter. EADS, James Buchanan, 1820-87. Am. en- gineer. EASTLAKE, Sir Charles Lock, 1793-1865, Eng. painter. EDWARD I. (Longshanks), 1239-1307, king of England ; conquered Wales and Scotland ; II.. 1284-1327, defeated by Bruce at Bannock- HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 245 burn ; dethroned by the queen and her favo- rite, Roger de Mortimer, 1326 ; murdered the following year; III., 1312-77, son of Edward II. ; proclaimed king in 1327 ; executed Mor- timer, and imprisoned the queen-mother ; car- ried on war with France and won the great victory of Crecy ; IV., 1441-83; V., 1470-83, ascended the throne at the age of 13, assassi- nated two months later; VI., 1557-53. EDWARD, Prince of Wales (the Black Prince), 1330-76, son of Edward II. ; partici- pated in invasion of France, commanding the main body of the English at Crecy ; won the battle of Poictiers. EDWARDS, Amelia Blandford, 1831-92, Eng. novelist. EDWARDS, Jonathan, 1703-58, Am. theo- logian and metaphysician. EDWIN, 586? -633, king of Northumbria. EGMONT, Lamoral, Count, 1522-68, Flem- ish statesman and soldier. ELIOT, John, "Apostle of the Indians," 1604-90, Eng. clergyman. ELIOT, Sir John, 1590-1632, Eng. orator and statesman. ELIZABETH, 1533-1603, queen of England ; d?.ughter of Henry VIII. ELIZABETH PETROVNA, 1709-62, empress of Russia ; daughter of Peter the Great. ELIZABETH, Saint, 1207-31, queen of Hun- gary. ELLENBOROUGH, Edward Law, Lord, 1748- 1818, Eng. chief justice. ELLSWORTH, Oliver, 1745-1807, Am. jurist and statesman. ELLWOOD, Thomas, 1639-1713, Eng. Quaker author. ELZEVIR, a celebrated family of printers and publishers at Leyden, 1570-1680. EMERSON, Ralph Waldo, 1803-82, Am. es- sayist, philosopher, and poet, and founder of the " Transcendental " school of philosophy. EMMANUEL (the Great), 1469-1521, king of Portugal. EMMET, Robert, 1780-1803, Ir. patriot and orator ; became a leader of the " United Irish- men," and was implicated in the killing of Lord Kilwarden, chief justice of Ireland, and others ; although defending himself with great eloquence, he was sentenced to death and paid the penalty of his complicity. EMMET, Thomas Addis, 1764-1827, brother of R. E. ; a leader of the " United Irishmen," and imprisoned from 1798 till 1801 ; removed to America in 1804, and was in 1812 elected attorney-general of New York. ENCKE, Johann Franz, 1791-1865, Ger. as- tronomer. ENDICOTT, John, 1588-1665, colonial gov- ernor of Ma*gachustts. ENGHIEN, Louis Antoine Henri de Bourbon, Due d', 1772-1804, Fr. prince; executed by order of Napoleon. ENOCH (or Henoch), 3378- . . . . B. C., father of Methuselah ; translated at the age of 365. EPICTETUS, 60- , Gr. Stoic philos- opher. EPICURUS, 3407-270 B. C., Gr. philoso- pher ; founder of the Epicurean school. ERASMUS, Desiderius, 1466-1536, Dutch scholar and printer of the first Greek New Testament. ERASTUS, Thomas, 1524-83, Ger. physician and writer. ERATOSTHENES, 276-196 ? B. C., Gr. ge- ometer ; considered the founder of the science of astronomy. ERIC THE RED, fl. 1000, Scandinavian nav- igator ; discovered Greenland. ERICSSON, John, 1803-89, Sw. engineer and inventor; constructed the first "Monitor," with revolving turrets for guns, which de- stroyed the Confederate iron-clad Merrimac. ERIGENA, Joannes Scotus, fl. 850, Ir. phi- losopher. ERSKINE, Henry, 1746-1817, Scot, lawyer and orator. ERSKINE, Thomas, Baron, 1750-1823, Scot, lawyer and orator. ESCOBAR Y MENDOSA, Antonio, 1580-1669, Sp. Jesuit and casuist. ESPARTERO, Joaquin Baldamero, Duke de la Vittoria, 1792-1879, Sp. statesman and gen- eral ; defeated the Carlists. ESSEX, Robert Devereux, second Earl of, 1567-1601, a favorite of Queen Elizabeth ; be- headed for high treason. ESTAING, Charles Hector, Count d', 1729- 94, Fr. admiral ; beheaded. ESTERHAZY DE GALANTHA, Paul, 1635- 1713, Hungarian governor-general. EUCLID OF ALEXANDRIA, fl. 300 B. C., Gr. mathematician. EUGENE OF SAVOY (Prince Francois Eu- gene deSavoie-Carigna^), 1663-1736, Austrian general ; defeated tkj Turks at Peterwardein in 1716, and at Belgrade in 1717. EULER, Leonard, 1707-83, Swiss mathema- tician. EURIPIDES, 480-406 B. C., Gr. tragic poet; mediator between ancient and modern drama. EUSEBIUS PAMPHILI, 266-340?, ecclesiastical historian, and bishop of Caesarea. EVANS, Marian C. (George Eliot), 1820- 81, Eng. novelist; the daughter of a clergy- man ; lived with George H. Lewes, as his wife, for several years, and after his death married J. W. Cross. 246 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. EUSTACHI, Bartolommeo, 1510-74, It. anat- omist. EVERETT, Edward, 1794-1865, Am. scholar, orator, and statesman ; elected to Congress in 1824, remaining in that body for ten years; in 1835 became governor of Massachusetts ; minister to England, 1841-5 ; secretary of state, 1852 ; elected to the United States Sen- ate, 1853, but resigned on account of illness; defeated for the vice-presidency in 1860. EYCK, VAN, Hubert, 1366-1426, Flemish painter. EYCK, VAN, Jan (John of Bruges), 1390?- 1440 ?, brother of H. E., Flemish painte EZEKIEL, fl. seventh century B. C., Heorew prophet. EZRA, fl. fifth century B. C., Hebrew law- maker. FABIUS MAXIMUS, Quintus (Cunctator), 203 B. C., Roman consul and general; inaugu- rated the " Fabian " policy, carrying on only a defensive war against Hannibal. FAHRENHEIT, Gabriel Daniel, 1686-1740, Ger. inventor of the thermometer. FAIRFAX, Thomas, Lord, 1611-71, parlia-. mentary general ; won the battle of Naseby. FARADAY, Michael, 1791-1867, Eng. chem- ist and natural philosopher ; founder of sci- ence of magneto-electricity. FARRAGUT, David Glascoe, 1801-70, Am. admiral ; passed the New Orleans forts and captured New Orleans in 1862. FAUST, Dr. Johann, fl. 1500, Ger. necro- mancer. FAUST, Johann, . . . .-1466? one of the inventors of printing. FAWKES, Guy -1606, Eng. conspira- tor. FEXELON, Francois de Salignac de la Mothe, 1651-1715, Fr. prelate and author; " Telema- chus." FERDINAND V., 1452-1516, founded the Spanish monarchy. FERGUSSON, James, 1808-86, Scot, architect. FERRY, Jules Francois Camille, 1832-93, Fr. statesman. FESSENDEN, William Pitt, 1806-69, Am. statesman. FEUERBACH, Paul Johann Anselm, 1775- 1833, Ger. jurist. FEUILLET, Octave, 1821-90, Fr. author. FICHTE, Irnmanuel Hermann, 1797-1879, Ger. philosopher. FICHTE, Johann Gottlieb, 1762-1814, Ger. metaphysician. FIELD, Cyrus West, 1819-92, Am. merchant and financier ; established first telegraph cable between America and Europe. FIELD, Eugene, 1850-95, Am. poet. FIELDING, Henry, 1707-54, Eng. novelist and dramatist. FIESOLE, Giovanni da (Fra Angelico), 1387- 1455, It. painter. FILLMORE, Millard, 1800-74, Am. states- man ; thirteenth president of the United States ; born in New York ; learned fuller's trade ; read law and acquired lucrative practice in Buffalo ; elected to Congress, 1832, and con- tinued a member till 1842 ; elected vice- president, 1848 ; became president on the death of Taylor, 1850 ; approved the Fugitive Slave Law and the compromise measures of Henry Clay, and made Daniel Webster sec- retary of state. FISB, Hamilton, 1808-1893, Am. states- man. FITCH, John, 1743-98, Am. inventor (steam- boat). FITZGERALD, Edward, Lord, 1763-98, IT. revolutionist. FLAMINIUS, Cains, . . . ,-217 B. C., Rom. general and consul, FLAMINIUS, Titus Quintius, 230-174 B.C., Rom. genera] and consul. FLAXMAN, John, 1755-1826, Eng. sculptor. FLETCHER, John, 1576-1625, Eng. poet and dramatist ; associate of Beaumont. FLOTOW, Frederick Ferdinand Adolphus von, 1812-83, Ger. composer ; "Martha." FONTENELLE, Barnard de Bovier de, 1657- 1757, Fr. author. FORREST, Edwin, 1806-72, Am. tragedian. FORTUNY, Mariano, 1839-74, Sp. painter. FOSTER, Stephen Collins, 1826-64, Am. song-writer. FOURIER, Francois Charles Marie, 1772- 1837, Fr. socialist. FOWLER, Orson Squire, 1809-87, Am. phre- nologist. Fox, Charles James, 1749-1806, Eng. ora- ator and statesman ; entered Parliament 1768 as a Tory, but joined the opposition in 1773, and became leader of the Whigs, opposing the policy of Pitt. Fox, George, 1624-90, Eng. founder of the society of Friends, or Quakers. Fox, John, 1517-87, Eng. Protestant clergy- man and author ; " Book of Martyrs." FRA DIAVOLO (Michael Rozzo), 1769-1806, Neapolitan brigand. FRANCIS I., 1494-1547, king of France ; de- feated at Pavia; II., 1543-60. FRANCIS BORGIA, Saint, 1510-72, duke of Gandia and viceroy of Catalonia ; joined the Society of Jesus and became general of the order. FRANCIS DE PAULA, Saint, 1416-1507, It. Franciscan monk; founded the order Fratres Minimi. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 247 FRANCIS DE SALES, Saint, 1567-1622, Fr. Jesuit vrriter and orator ; bishop of Geneva. FRANCIS OF ASSISI, Saint, 1182-1226, It. founder of the Franciscan order, whose labors gave new life and power to the Church of Rome. FRANCIS, Sir Philip, 1740-1818, Br. states- man and writer; supposed author of "Let- ters of Junius." FRANKLIN, Benjamin, 1706-90, Am. states- man and philosopher ; born in Boston ; the youngest of a family of seventeen children; his father was a tallow chandler ; learned the trade of a printer and studied diligently, re- moved to Philadelphia, where he established the Pennsylvania Gazette ; began the publica- tion of Poor Richard's Almanac in 1735 ; dis- covered the identity of lightning and elec- tricity in 1752, by means of a kite ; Franklin occupied many positions of public trust and was the recipient of many honors. FRANKLIN, Sir John, 1786-1847, Eng. Arc- tic explorer. FREDERICK I. (Barbarossa), 1121-90, em- peror of Germany ; crowned by Pope Adrian IV. ; reduced Milan in 1158, but was defeated by the Lombards near Legnano ; joined the third crusade in 1189 with 150,000 men, and defeated the Turks at Iconium ; died in the Holy Land; II., 1194-1250, opposed by the Guelphs and the pope in his project to unite Italy and Germany in one empire ; began a crusade against the Moslems in 1227, but turned back, and was excommunicated by Pope Gregory IX. ; resumed the crusade in 1228, captured Jerusalem and made peace with the pope ; defeated the Guelphs at Cortenuova, 1237, and renewed war with the pope. FREDERICK WILLIAM (the Great Elector), 1620-68, elector of Brandenburg ; founder of the Prussian monarchy. FREDERICK I., 1657-1713, first king of Prus- sia ; II. (Frederick the Great), 1712-88, sub- jected to inhuman treatment in youth by his father, he gave but little promise of his future greatness ; ascended the Prussian throne in 1740, and invaded Silesia, which was ceded to him by Maria Theresa in 1742 ; an alliance having been formed against him by Austria, Russia, and France, he began the Seven Years' War in 1756 by invading Saxony ; gained a great victory at Prague in 1757 ; but was de- feated at Kolin soon afterward ; in the same year he defeated a French army twice as large as his own at Rossbach, and won a brilliant and decisive victory over the Aiistrians at Leuthen ; in 1759 he was defeated at Kunners- dorf, and Berlin wa captured by the allies, but IB 1760 ha gained the victories of Liegnitz *ud Torgau, and peace was mad* in 1703, Prussian Poland being added to Frederick's dominions. Frederick was a voluminous writer, and a friend of Voltaire, who spent several years at his court. FREILIGRATH, Ferdinand, 1810-76, Ger. lyric poet. FREMONT, John Charles, 1830-90, Am. pol- itician, explorer, and general ; Republican candidate for the presidency, 1856. FROEBEL, Frederick, 1782-1852, Ger. edu- cator; founder of the "kindergarten." FROISSART, Jean, 1337-1410 ?, Fr. histo- rian ; "Chronicles." FROUDE, James Anthony, 1818-1895, Eng. historian. FULLER, Sarah Margaret, Countess d'Os- soli, 1810-50, Am. authoress. FULTON, Robert, 1765-1815, Am. engineer and inventor, born in Pennsylvania ; after spending some years in London as an artist, he turned his attention to civil engineering and inland navigation ; went to Paris, and there he invented a submarine torpedo ; returned to New York, 1801, and, with the assistance of Robert Livingston, discovered steam naviga- tion ; in 1806 he built the steamer Clermont, which made regular trips between Albany and New York at a speed of five miles an hour ; although he spent a large amount of money on his invention, the patent did not prove of pe- cuniary value to him. FUSELI, John H., 1742-1825, Swiss histor- ical painter. GADSDEN, Christopher, 1724-1805, Am. statesman. GADSDEN, James, 1788-1858, Am. statesman. GAINSBOROUGH, Thomas, 1727-88, Eng. painter. GALBA, Servius Sulpicius, B. C. 4 ?-A. D. , Rom. emperor. GALEN, 131-205 ?, Gr. physician, medical writer and philosopher, living at Rome ; his works remained authority until the fifteenth century. GALILEI, Galileo (Galileo), 1564-1642, It. astronomer; discovered, about 1584, theisoch- ronism of the vibrations of a pendulum, and the law by which the velocity of falling bodies is accelerated ; adopted in astronomy the sys- tem of Copernicus ; constructed his wonder- ful telescope, 1609 ; through it he discovered the satellites of Jupiter, and wasenabled to ex- plore the surface of the moon and view the phases of Venus ; he also ascertained that the ' ' Milky Way ' ' was composed of myriads of stars ; in 1632 he produced his " Dialogues on the Ptolemaic and Copernican Systemi, " but was compelled by the Inquisition to abjure the theory of the motion of the earth ; he was 248 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. detained in prison for several years, but it does not appear that he was severely treated, as he was allowed to pursue his studies until prevented by blindness. GALL, Franz Joseph, 1758-1828, Ger. phy- sician ; founder of phrenology. GALLATIN, Albert, 1761-1849, Am. states- man ; native of Switzerland. GALVANI, Aloisio, 1737-89, It. discoverer of galvanism. GAMA, Vasco da, 14507-1524, Port, naviga- tor. GAMBETTA, Leon, 1838-82, Fr. statesman. GAMBIER, James, Baron, 1756-1833, Br. admiral. GARFIELD, James Abram, 1831-81, twen- tieth president of the United States ; born in Ohio ; worked on a farm in boyhood, and learned the trade of a carpenter ; afterward became driver and helmsman of a canal-boat ; graduated at Williams College in 1856 ; ap- pointed professor of Latin and Greek at Hiram College, Ohio, and chosen president of that in- stitution in 1858 ; married Miss Lucretia Ran- dolph, and occasionally acted as a Campbellite minister; elected to the State Senate, 1859, and in 1861 was chosen colonel of an Ohio regiment ; promoted to the rank of brigadier- general ; elected to Congress, 1862, and re- mained in that body until 1880, when he was made senator ; nominated for the presidency by the Republican party in 1880, and elected ; shot by Charles J. Guiteau, in Washington, July 2, 1881, and died on September 19 of same year. GARIBALDI, Giuseppe, 1807-82, It. patriot and general. GARRICK, David, 1716-79, Eng. actor. GARRISON, William Lloyd, 1804-79, Am. abolitionist. GATES, Horatio, 1728-1806, Am. Revolu- tionary general ; born in England ; captured Burgoyne's army at Saratoga. GAUSS, Carl Friedrich, 1777-1855, Ger. mathematician. GAY, John, 1688-1732, Eng. poet. GENGHIS KHAN, 1163-1227, Mogul con- queror ; subdued China and Persia. GENSERIC, 406?-477, king of the Vandals ; invaded Africa, 429 ; defeated the Romans in numerous battles ; captured Carthage, 439 ; captured and sacked Rome, 455 ; defeated the navy of the Emperor Marjorian, 457. GEOFFROY of Monmouth, 11007-54, Eng. chronicler. GEORGE I. (Lewis), 1660-1727, king of Great Britain; II. (Augustus), 1683-1760, defeated the French at Dettingen in 1743 ; Charles Ed- ward Stuart was defeated at Culloden, 1746, ky the duke of Cumberland, and the latter part of the reign of George II. was marked by victories over the French in Canada, in India, and on the ocean ; III. (William Frederick), 1738-1820, arbitrary and ignorant and through his obstinacy lost the American colonies ; be- came insane in 1810; IV. (Augustus Freder- ick), 1762-1830, "the first gentleman of Eu- rope " ; led a dissipated life and incurred an immense debt ; married, in 1786, Mrs. Fitz- herbert ; she being a Roman Catholic, the marriage was illegal ; his father refusing to pay his debts unless he contracted a regular marriage, he was induced, 1795, to marry his cousin, whom he regarded with great dislike, a separation being the result ; became regent, 1811 ; took little interest in public affairs ; one year before his death an act was passed reliev- ing Roman Catholics from political disabil- ities. GEORGE, Saint, fl. third century, bishop of Alexandria ; patron saint of England ; to him is attributed the destruction of a terrible dragon . GEORGE, Henry, 1839-1898, Am. author and economist, and advocate of the single tax. GERRY, Elbridge, 1744-1812, Am. revolu- tionary statesman ; signer of the Declaration of Independence ; governor of Massachusetts, 1810; vice-president, 1812. GHIBERTI, Lorenzo, 1378-1455, Florentine sculptor. GIBBON, Edward, 1737-94, Eng. historian. GIBSON, John, 1791-1866, Eng. sculptor. GIFFORD, Sanford Robinson, 1823-80, Am. painter. GIFFORD, William, 1757-1826, Eng. writer and critic. GILBERT, Sir Humphrey, 1539-83, Eng. navigator. GIRARD, Stephen, 1750-1831, Am. merchant and banker ; born in France; founded Girard College. GIULIO ROMANO, 1492-1546, It. painter and architect. GLADSTONE, William Ewart, 1809-1898, Eng. premier. GLUCK, Christoph Wilibald von, 1714-87, Ger. composer. GODFREY OF BOUILLON, 10587-1100, lead- er of first crusade, GODIVA (Lady Godiva), fl. llth century, Eng. heroine ; wife of Leofric, earl of Leices- ter. GOETHE, Johann Wolfgang von, 1749-1832, Ger. poet and author, dramatist, scientist and statesman. GOLDSMITH, Oliver, 1728-74, IT. poet and writer. GOMEZ, Sebastiano, 1616-90, Sp. painter; a slave of Murillo, who liberated him and tok him into his studio HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 249 GONSALVO DE CORDOVA, Hernandez, 1443?- 1515, Sp. commander. GOODYEAR, Charles, 1800-60, Am. inventor. GORDON, Charles George (Chinese Gordon), 1833-85, Eng. soldier. GORTSCHAKOFF, Alexander Michaelovitch, Prince, 1798-1883, Russian statesman and diplomatist. GOTTSCHALK, Louis Moreau, 1829-69, Am. composer. GOUGH, John B., 1822-86, Am. temperance lecturer ; born in England. GOULD, Jay, 1836-92, Am. railway financier. GOUNOD, Charles Francois, 1818-93, Fr. composer. GRACCHUS, Caius Sempronius, 159-126 B. C., Rom. statesman. GRACCHUS, Tiberius Sempronius, brother of C. T. G., B. C. 168?-33?, Rom. statesman. GRAHAM, John, Viscount Dundee (Claver- house), 1650?-89, Scot, officer noted for merci- less severity toward the Covenanters. GRANT, Ulysses Simpson, 1822-85, eight- eenth president of the United States ; born in Ohio ; graduated at West Point, 1843 ; served in Mexico ; became a captain in 1853 ; re- signed in 1854, and after passing some time at St. Louis removed to Galena, 111., in 1859, And engaged in business; in 1861 he was made aide-de-camp to the governor of Illinois, but Boon after was chosen colonel of the Twenty- first Illinois Volunteers, and in July of same year was made brigadier-general ; made com- mander-in-chief of the Union armies in March, 1864 ; elected to the presidency in 1868, and again in 1872, and after the expiration of his second term he traveled extensively in Europe and Asia. GRATTAN, Henry, 1746-1820, Ir. orator and statesman. GRAY, Asa, 1810-88, Am. botanist. GRAY, Thomas, 1716-71, Eng. poet. GREELEY, Horace, 1811-72, Am. journal- ist ; born in New Hampshire ; learned the printer's trade and worked as a journeyman printer in New 3fork for one year ; founded the New York Tribune, 1841 ; a stanch Whig and Republican, he favored Fremont for the presidency in 1856, and Lincoln in I860; ac- cepted the Democratic nomination in 1872, but was defeated by Grant. GREEN, John Richard, 1874-83, Eng. his- torian. GREENE, Nathaniel, 1742-86, Am. Revolu- tionary general. GREENLEAF, Benjamin, 1786-1864, Am. mathe m atician . GREENLEAF, Simon, 1783-1854, Am. jurist. GREENOUGH, Horatio, 1805-52, Am. sculp- tor. GREGORY XIII., 1572-85, reformed the Ju- lian calendar. GREGORY OF NYSSA, Saint, 332-94, Gr. father of the Church. GREGORY OF TOURS, Saint, 540-95, Fr. prel- ate and historian. GRESHAM, Walter Q., 1832-1895, Am. jurist and secretary of state. GREVY, Francois Paul Jules, 1807-91, Fr. president. GREY, Lady Jane, 1537-54, gifted Eng. lady ; beheaded. GRIMM, Friedrich Melchior, Baron, 1723- 1807, Ger. writer. GRIMM, Jakob Ludwig (1785-1863), and Wilhelm Karl (1786-1859), Ger. philologists; brothers. GROTIUS (De Groot), Hugo, 1583-1645, Dutch jurist and theologian. GROUCHY, Emmanuel de, Marquis, 1766- 1847, Fr. general. GUATEMOZIN, 1497-1525, last Aztec emperor of Mexico. GUELPH (or Welf), noble German family, originally Italian. GUIZOT, Francois Pierre Guillaume, 1787- 1874, Fr. statesman and historian. GUSTAVUS I. (Gustavus Vasa), 1496-1559, king of Sweden ; II. (Gustavus Adolphus), 1594 1632, defeated the Polish and Russian armies invading Sweden ; became the head of the Protestant league in Germany and defeated Tilly at Leipsic in 1631, and on the banks of the Lech in 1632 ; at the great battle of Lutzen, Wallenstein now commanding the imperial army, Gustavus was killed, his troops neverthe- less gained a complete victory; III., 1746-92, assassinated; IV., 1778-1837, ascended the throne in 1792, but was deposed in 1809. GUTENBERG, Johann (Gansfleisch), 1400-68, Ger. inventor of movable type and the print- ing press ; first books printed about 1457 ; died iu poverty. GUZMAN, Alfonso Perez de, 1258-1309, Sp. commander. HAHNEMANN, Samuel Christian Friedrich, 1755-1843, Ger. founder of homoeopathy. HALE, Sir Matthew, 1609-76, Eng. jurist. HALE, Nathan, Captain, 1755-73, Am. pa- triot. HALEVY, Jacques F. F. E., 1799-1862, Fr. composer. HALLAM, Arthur Henry, 1811-33, Eng. critic and essayist. HALLAM, Henry, 1777-1859, father of pre- ceding ; Eng. historian and critic. HALLECK, Fitz Greene, 1790-1867, Am. poet. HALLECK, Henry Wager, 1814-72, Am. gen- eral and writer. 250 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. HALPINE, Charles Graham (Miles O'Reilly), 1829-68, Ir.-Am. journalist and poet. HAMILTON, Alexander, 1757-1804, Am. orator, statesman, financier, and general ; born in the West Indies ; secretary and aide-de- camp to Washington in Revolutionary war ; chosen to the Continental Congress, 1782, but resigned in order to practice law ; leading member of the convention of 1787 : secretary of the treasury, 1789-95 ; became recognized leader of the Federal party. Hamilton died from a wound received in a duel with Aaron Burr, and his death was deeply deplored. HAMILTON, Sir William, 1788-1856, Scot, metaphysician. HAMLIN, Hannibal, 1809-91, Am. states- man. HAMPDEN, John, 1594-1643, Eng. statesman and reformer; entered Parliament in 1620; denied the authority of the crown to levy ton- nage without the consent of Parliament, and refused to contribute to the force loan ordered by King Charles, for which he was imprisoned ; regaining his liberty and reentering Parlia- ment, he ably and firmly resisted the arbitrary measures of the crown ; intending, with his cousin, Oliver Cromwell, to emigrate in 1638, they were detained by order of council ; in 1640 he led the opposition in the Long Parlia- ment, and was the most popular public man in England ; impeached for high treason in 1642, together with four other members, the Commons refused to surrender them, although the king personally led his guard in an attempt to arrest them in their seats ; Hampden after- ward raised a regiment for the Parliamentary army, and, after displaying great courage in numerous engagements, was slain in a skir- mish. HANCOCK, John, 1737-93, Am. statesman ; president of the Continental Congress. HANCOCK, Winfield Scott, 1824-86, Am. general ; second in command at Gettysburg ; Democratic candidate for president in 1880. HANDEL, George Frederick, 1684-1759, Ger. composer ; settled in England in 1712 ; " The Messiah, "the greatest of oratorios, was produced, 1741 ; Handel was stricken with blindness, 1751, but continued to conduct his oratorios ; buried in Westminster Abbey. HANNIBAL, 247-183 B. C., Carthaginian general ; considered the greatest general of the world ; sworn by his father, Hamilcar Barca, to eternal enmity toward Rome ; became com- mander of the Carthaginian forces, 221 B. C. ; subdued several powerful Spanish tribes, and in 219 captured Saguntum ; crossed the Alps, 218 ; defeated the Romans near the Ticinus and on the banks of the Trebia ; routed Fla- minius at Lake Thrasymene, 217 ; almost de- stroyed a superior Roman army near Cannae, 216 ; captured Capua ; recalled to Carthage to repel a Roman invasion under Scipio Africa- nus, he was defeated at Zama in 202 ; ban- ished from Carthage about 194, through the enmity of the aristocracy ; finally ended his life by taking poison, to escape falling into the hands of the Romans. HAROUN AL RASCHID, 7667-809, caliph of Bagdad. HARRISON, William Henry, 1773-1841, Am. general and ninth president. HARVARD, John, 1608?-88, founder of Har- vard College. HARVEY, William, 1578-1657, Eng. physi- cian and anatomist, and the greatest of physi- ologists ; discovered the circulation of the blood. HASDRUBAL, 207 B. C., Punic general ; brother of Hannibal ; defeated the Scipios ; slain at the Metaurus. HASTINGS, Warren, 1732-1818, Br. general and statesman ; president of the Council of Bengal, and governor-general of India ; de- feated Hyder Ali, king of Mysore ; after per- petrating great outrages in order to replenish the treasury, he resigned in 1775 and returned to England ; impeached soon afterward, and opposed in his trial by Burke, Sheridan, and Fox, but acquitted. HAVELOCK, Sir Henry, 1795-1857, Br. gen- eral ; defeated the Sepoys in India, and re- lieved Lucknow. HAWTHORNE, Nathaniel, 1804-64, Am. au- thor. HAYDN, Joseph, 1732-1809, Ger. musical composer ; his masterpiece, the oratorio of " The Creation," was produced in 1798. HAYDON, Benjamin Robert, 1786-1848, Eng. painter. HAYES, Isaac Israel, 1832-81, Am. Arctic explorer. HAYES, Rutherford Birchard, 1822-93, nine- teenth president of the United States ; born in Connecticut ; admitted to the bar, 1845 ; brig- adier general in civil war ; Congress, 1865-8 ; governor of Ohio, 1868-76 ; Republican can- didate for the presidency, 1876 ; inaugurated president, 1877, the electoral commission to determine the result of the election of 1876 having decided, by a vote of eight to seven, that Hayes had received 185 electoral votes as against 184 for Samuel J. Tilden, the Demo- cratic candidate. HAYNE, Robert Young, 1791-1840, Am. orator and statesman ; opponent of Webster in discussing the Constitution ; governor of South Carolina. HAZLITT, William, 1778-1830, Eng. critic and writer. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 251 HKBER, Reginald, 1783-1826, Eng. prelate and author. HEGEL, Georg Wilhelm Friedrich, 1770- 1831, Ger. philosopher, metaphysician, and pantheist. HEINE, Heinrich, 1799-1856, Ger. lyric poet and author. HELOISE, 1101-64, Fr. nun; pupil and friend of Abelard. HELVETIUS, Claude Adrian, 1715-71, Fr. philosopher. HEMANS, Felicia Dorothea (ne'e Brown), 1794-1835, Eng. poetess. HENDRICKS, Thomas Andrews, 1819-86, Am. statesman. HENGIST, -488 Jutish chief; founded kingdom of Kent. HEXNEPIX, Louis, 1640-1702 ?, Fr. Catho- lic missionary and explorer of the Mississippi. HENRY I. (Beauclerc), 1068-1135, king of England ; defeated his brother Robert and usurped the throne; II., 1133-89; first of the Plantagenets ; issued constitutions of Claren- don, which were, however, repealed about ten years later ; conquered Ireland ; during his reign Thomas a Becket was killed. HENRY VI., 1421-71 ; his reign was made memorable by the War of the Roses. HENRY VII., 1456-1509 ; founded the Tudor dynasty. HENRY VIII., 1491-1547; defeated the French at Guinegaste and the Scotch at Flod- den, 1513 ; made Thomas Wolsey prime min- ister ; applied unsuccessfully to the pope for a divorce from Catherine of Aragon, his wife ; favored the Reformation ; deposed Wolsey and elevated Thomas Cranmer ; had himself de- clared head of the church ; married Anne Boleyn after the convocations of York and Canterbury had declared his marriage with Catherine invalid ; declared the English church independent of the papal see and abolished the monasteries ; had Anne Boleyn executed in 1536, and married Jane Seymour the day after the execution ; excommunicated by the pope, 1538 ; his third wife having died in 1537, he married Anne of Cleves in 1540 ; was divorced from her the same year and married Catherine Howard, who was executed on a charge of adultery in 1542; married Catherine Parr in 1543, she surviving him. HENRY, Patrick, 1736-99, Am. patriot and orator ; mem her of the Continental Congress ; governor of Virginia. HERACLITUS, fl. 500 B.C., Gr. philosopher. HERBERT, George, 1593-1632, Br. poet and divine. HERDER, Johann Gottfried von, 1744-1803, Ger. author. HEROD (the Great), B. C. 73-A. D. l.king of Judea. HERODOTUS, 4847-408 B. C., Gr. historian; 1 ' the father of history;" his work covers the period of 240 years preceding his own time. HEKSCHEL, Sir John Frederick William, 1790-1871, Eng. astronomer and philosopher. HERSCHEL, Sir William, 1738-1822, father of preceding ; Ger. astronomer ; born in Han- over, but moved to England at 21 ; discovered Uranus. HESIOD, fl. 800 B. C., Gr. poet. HEZEKIAH, 750-698 B. C., king of Judah. HICKS, Elias, 1748-1830, Am. Quaker preacher. HILDRETH, Richard, 1807-65, Am. journal- ist and historian. HILL, Sir Rowland, 1795-1879, authorof the Eng. penny post system. HIPPOCRATES, 460-360? B. C., Gr. physi- cian; ''the father of medicine"; many dis- eases still bear the names he gave them. HOBBES, Thomas, 1588-1679, Eng. philos- opher. HOE, Richard March, 1812-87, Am. inven- tor of printing presses. HOFER, Andreas, 1767-1810, Tyrolese pa- triot ; executed. HOGARTH, William, 1697-1764, Eng. paint- er and engraver. HOLBEIN, Hans (the Younger), 1497-1554, Ger. painter. HOLLAND, Josiah Gilbert, 1819-81, Am. author. HOLMES, Oliver Wendell, 1809-94, Am. physician, author, and poet. HOMER, fl. 1000 B. C., Gr. poet ; " the father of poets ' ' ; about his life scarcely anything is known ; supposed to have been blind and poor ; some maintain that the " Iliad" and " Odys- sey," the two great epics ascribed to him, are collections of songs from various poets, and that Homer never existed. HOPKINSON, Francis, 1738-91, Am. author; signed the Declaration of Independence. HORACE (Quintus Horatius Flaccus), 65-8 B. C., Latin poet. HOUSTON, Sam, 1793-1863. Am. general and statesman ; governor of Tennessee, 1827- ; passed a number of years with the Chero- kee Indians ; commander-in-chief of the Texan forces in revolt against Mexico, and defeated and captured Santa Ana in 1836 ; elected president of Texas same year, and re-elected 1841 ; elected senator from Texas after its ad- mission to the Union, in 1845, and governor in 1859. HOWE, Elias, 1819-67, Am. inventor. HUDSON, Henry (or Hendrik), . . . .-1611, Eng. navigator. 252 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. HUGHES, Thomas, 1823-1896, Eng. author and barrister. HUGO, Victor Marie, Vicomte, 1802-85, Fr. poet, novelist, and dramatist. HUMBOLDT, Friedrich Heinrich Alexander von, Baron, 1769-1859, Ger. scientist. HUME, David, 1711-76, Scot, historian and skeptic philosopher. HUNT, . James Henry Leigh, 1784-1859, Eng. poet and author. HUNT, William Henry, 1790-1864, Eng. painter in water colors. Huss, John, 1373-1415, Bohemian re- former ; burned at the stake. HUXLEY, Thomas Henry, 1825-95, Eng. scientist. HYPATIA, fl. 500, female philosopher at Alexandria. IBERVILLE, Pierre le Moyne d', Sieur, 1661- 1706, Canadian military and naval commander. INGRES, Jean A. D., 1781-1867, Fr. painter. INMAN, Henry, 1801-46, Am. portrait painter. INNOCENT I., pope, ruling 402-17 ; during his reign Rome was sacked by Alaric. INNOCENT III., (Lotharius), born in 1161, and chosen pope 1198 ; put France under the ban, 1190, because Philip Augustus repudiated his wife ; promoted the fourth crusade, the result of which was the capture of Constanti- nople ; deposed Otho, emperor of Germany, transferring the crown to Frederick of Sicily ; subjected John of England to the papal see, compelling him to pay an annual tribute ; crushed the Albigenses in 1214, and died two years later. IBEN^US, Saint, 1407-202?, bishop of Lyons, martyr. IRVING, Washington, 1783-1859, Am. au- thor ; the purest prose writer and humorist of America ; born in New York city. ISABELLA I. (the Catholic), 1451-1504, queen of Castile ; wife of Ferdinand of Ara- gon : patroness of Columbus. ISABELLE OF FRANCE, 1292-1358, queen of England, wife of Edward II., whom her ad- herents deposed, and with whose assassination she is charged ; her son Edward III. , ascended the throne and ordered her arrest, and she died after twenty years' incarceration. ISAIAH, fl. 740 B. C., Hebrew prophet. ITURBIDE, Don Augustin de, 1790-1824, emperor of Mexico. IVAN III. (Vasilievitch), 1438-1505, czar of Russia; IV. (Vasilievitch, the Terrible), 1529-84. JACKSON, Andrew, 1767-1845, seventh pres- ident ; born in South Carolina ; son of an Irishman ; received but little education ; served against the British in 1781 ; began the prac- tice of law at Nashville, 1788 ; Congress, 1796 ; U. S. Senate 1797 ; judge Tennessee Supreme Court, 1798-1804 ; fought several duels, killing Chas. Dickinson in 1806 ; defeated the Creek Indians, 1814, and was commissioned briga- dier-general ; defeated the British at New Or- leans, 1815 ; successfully carried on war against the Seminoles, 1817-18; Senate, 1823, and nominated for the presidency, the opposing candidates being Clay, J. Q. Adams, and W. H. Crawford ; Jackson had the highest number of votes, but not a majority, and Adams was elected by the House of llepresentives ; Jack- son was elected to the presidency, however, in 1828 ; he was the first president to remove public officers on account of their politics ; re- elected in 1832 ; in that year, the convention of South Carolina having declared the tariff laws of 1828 null and void, Jackson issued a proclamation declaring his intention to check by force of arms all movements tending to disunion. JACKSON, Thomas Jonathan (Stonewall), 1824-63, Confederate general, native of Vir- ginia ; defeated General Banks at Cedar Moun- tain, and captured Harper's Ferry with 10,000 prisoners, 1862 ; killed by a company of his own men, mistaking him and his staff for 'Federal cavalry. JACQUARD, Joseph Marie, 1752-1834, Fr. inventor. JAMBLICHUS, fl. 320, Syrian Neo-Platonic philosopher. JAMES I., 1566-1625, king of England (VI. of Scotland) ; executed Raleigh ; a trans- lation of the Bible was made under his direc- tion. JAMES IV., 1473-1513, defeated and slain at Flodden. JANSEN, Cornelis, 1585-1638. Dutch theo- logian ; founder of the Jansenists. JANUARIUS, Saint, 272-305, patron saint of Naples. JAY, John, 1745-1829, Am. statesman ; first chief justice. JEANNE D' ALBRET, 1528-72, queen of Navarre. JEFFERSON, Thomas, 1743-1826, Am. states- man ; third president ; born in Virginia ; ad- mitted to the bar, 1767 ; elected to Virginia House of Burgesses, 1769 ; Continental Con- gress, 1775 ; drafted the Declaration of Inde- pendence ; governor of Virginia, 1779-81 ; minister plenipotentiary, 1784, to negotiate treaties with European powers ; minister at Paris, 1785-9 ; secretary of state, 1789-93; elected vice-president, 1796, and president in 1800, holding that office from 1801 to 1809. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 253 JEFFREY, Francis, 1773-1850, Scot, critic and judge. JEFFREYS, George, Lord, 1650-89, infamous Br. judge ; lord high chancellor under James II. ; died in the Tower. JENNER, Edward, 1749-1823, Eng. physi- cian ; introduced vaccination. JEROME, Saint, 340?-420, Latin father of the Church. JEROME OF PRAGUE, 1378-1416, Bohemian religious reformer ; follower of HUBS ; burned at the stake. JERROLD, Douglas William, 1803-57, Eng. humorist and satirical writer. JOAN OK ARC (Jeanne d'Arc), 1411 ?-31, Fr. heroine ("the Maid of Orleans"); born in Lorraine of an humble peasant family ; be- lieving herself commissioned by heaven to lib- erate France, and convincing Charles VII. of her divine authority, she was given command of a considerable force, and by the victories she gained enabled Charles to be crowned at Rheims ; although she wished to return home and resume her former humble life, she was in- duced to retain her command in the army ; she was captured in 1430 by the Burgundians t delivered to the English, and burned at the stake after a mock trial. JOHN, 1166-1216, king of England ; granted Magna Charta. JOHN OF GAUNT (Ghent), 1340-99, duke of Lancaster ; son of Edward III. JOHN THE BAPTIST, B. C. 5-A. D. 28, prophet. JOHN THE EVANGELIST (St. John), . . . .- 100?, apostle. JOHNSON, Andrew, 1808-75, Am. statesman ; seventeenth president ; born in North Caro- lina; learned the trade of a tailor in Ten- nessee; Congress, 1843-53 ; governor. 1853-7; senator, 1857 ; military governor, 1862 ; elected vice-president, 1864, and succeeded to the presidency on the death of Lincoln, 1865 ; became involved in a bitter quarrel with the leaders of the Republican party, and was im- peached in 1868, but acquitted, although thirty-five senators voted for conviction to only nineteen against, a two-thirds majority being necessary ; he was subsequently elected to the Senate from Tennessee as a Democrat. JOHNSON, Reverdy, 1796-1876, Am. states- man. JOHNSON, Samuel, 1709-84, Eng. writer and lexicographer. JOHNSTON, Albert Sydney, 1803-62, Con- federate general. JOHNSTON, Joseph Eccleston, 1809-91, Con- federate general. JOLIKT, Louis, 1645-1700?, Fr. explorer of toe Miwissippi JOMINI, Antoine Henri, Baron, 1779-1869, Swiss military writer. JONES, John Paul, 1747-92, Am. revolu- tionary naval commander; born in Scotland; captured the Serapis. JONES, Sir William,1746-94, Eng. orientalist. JONSON, Ben, 1574-1637, Eng. poet and dramatist. JOSEPH I., 1676-1711, emperor of Germany; II., 1741-90 ; abolished feudal serfdom. JOSEPHINE, 1763-1814, empress of France ; wife of Napoleon Bonaparte. JOSEPHUS, Flavius, 377-95?, Jewish his- torian. JOSHUA, 1537-1427 B. C., Hebrew leader. JUAREZ, Benito Pablo, 1806-72, Mexican Aztec statesman. JUDAS MACCABEUS, . . . .-160 B. C., He- brew leader. JUSTIN (the Martyr), 103-65?, church father in Palestine. JUSTINIAN I. (the Great), 482?-565, By- zantine emperor. JUVENALIS, Decimus Junius, 40?-125?, Latin poet. KANE, Elisha Kent, 1820-57, Am. Arctic explorer. KANT, Immanuel, 1724-1804, Ger. meta- physician and philosopher. KEAN, Edmund, 1787-1833, Eng. tragedian. KEARNEY, Philip, 1815-62, Am. general. KEATS, John, 1795-1821, Eng. poet. KEBLE, John, 1792-1866, Eng. divine and writer. KEMBLE, Charles, 1775-1854, brother of J. P. K., Eng. actor. KEMBLE, Frances Anne, 1809-93, Eng. ac- tress. KEMBLE, John Philip, 1757-1823, Eng. tragedian. KEMPIS, Thomas a, 1380-1471, Ger. ascetL writer; " Imitation of Christ." KENT, James, 1763-1847, Am. jurist. KEPLER, Johann, 1571-1630, Ger. astron- omer ; discovered the laws and orbits of mo- tion of the planets. KEY, Francis Scot, 1776-1843, Am. poet; author of " The Star- Spangled Banner." KIDD, William, 1650-1701, Am. pirate; executed. KILPATRICK, Hugh Judson, 1836-81, Am. general. KING, Rufus, 1755-1827, Am. statesman. KING, William Rufus, 1786-1853, Am. statesman. KINGSLEY, Charles, 1819-75, Eng. divine and author. KI.OMTOCK, Fridrich Gottlieb, 1724-1803, Ger. poet- 254 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. KNOWLKS, James Sheridan, 1784-1862, Eng. dramatist and actor ; subsequently became a Baptist minister. KNOX, John, 1505-72, leader of the Scot, reformation. KOSCIUSKO, Thaddeus, 17467-1817, Polish patriot and general ; commanded the Polish insurgent army ; bravely defended Warsaw, but was defeated. KOSSUTH, Louis, 1802-93, Hungarian pa- triot, orator, and statesman ; leading spirit in the insurrection of 1848-49. KKUPP, Alfred, 1810-87, Ger. manufacturer of steel guns. KULLAI-KHAN, . . . .-1296, founder of Mon- gol dynasty in China. LACTANTIUS, 2607-325, Latin father of the Church. LA FAYETTE, Marie Jean Paul Roch Yves Gilbert Motier de, Marquis, 1757-1834, Fr. general and patriot; came to America in 1777 to aid the Americans in their struggle for in- dependence, and was commissioned major- general; fought at Brandywine, where he was wounded, and in numerous other engagements ; visited France and obtained supplies and muni- tions, returning 1779 ; commanded the ad- vance guard at Yorktown, 1781 ; returned again to France ; chosen commandant of the French National Guard, 1 789 ; visited America, 1824, and was enthusiastically received ; took a prominent part in the revolution of 1830. LA FONTAINE, Jean de, 1621-94, Fr. poet and fabulist. LAGRANGE, Joseph Louis, 1736-1813, Fr. mathematician. LAMARTINE, Alphonse de, 1792-1869, Fr. poet and statesman. LAMB, Charles (Elia), 1775-1834, Eng. es- sayist. LAMOTTE-FOUQUE", Friedrich Heinrich Karl de, Baron, 1777-1843, Ger. novelist and poet. LANDOR, Walter Savage, 1775-1864, Eng. author. LANDSEER, Sir Edwin, 1802-73, Eng. ani- mal painter. LANGLANDE (or Longland), Robert, fl. 1360, Eng. monk and poet. LANIER, Sidney, 1843-81, Am. poet. LANSDOWNE, William Petty, Marquis of, 1737-1805, Eng. statesman. LAPLACE, Pierre Simon, Marquis, 1749- 1827, Fr. astronomer and mathematician. LA ROCHEFOUCAULD, Francois de, Duke, 1613-80, Fr. moralist and statesman. LA SALLE, Jean Baptiste, 1651-1719, founder of th Christian Brothers. LA SALLE, Robert Cavelier de, 16357-87, Fr. explorer LASKKX, Eduard, 1829-84, Ger. statesman. LASSALLE, Ferdinand, 1825-64, Ger. social- ist. LATIMER, Hugh, 1480-1555, Eng. reformer; burned. LATOUR D'AUVERGNE, Thophile Malo Corret de, 1743-1800, Fr. officer; called, by Napoleon, " The First Grenadier of France." LAVATER, Johann Caspar, 1741-1801, Swiss physiognomist. LAVOISIER, Antoine Laurent, 1743-94, Fr. chemist ; founder of modern chemistry ; guil- lotined by revolutionary tribunal. LAW, John, 1671-1729, Scot, financier in France; promoted the "South Sea Bubble." LAWRENCE, Amos, 1786-1852, Am. philan- thropist. LAWRENCE, James, 1781-1813, Am. naval hero ; as commander of the Chesapeake, he engaged the British frigate Shannon off Bos- ton and was killed in the action ; his last words were : " Don't give up the ship." LEDRU-ROLLIN, Alexandre Auguste, 1808- 74, Fr. socialist. LEDYARD, John, 1751-88. Am. traveler. LEE, Henry (Light-Horse Harry), 1756- 1818, Am. general and statesman ; governor of Virginia. LEE, Richard Henry, 1732-94, Am. orator and patriot. LEE, Robert Edward, 1807-70, Am. Gen- eral ; commander-in-chief of the Confederate army ; son of Henry Lee ; born in Virginia ; graduate of West Point ; chief engineer of Gen . Scott's army in Mexico ; Confederate briga- dier-general, 1861, and appointed to the chief command, 1865 ; surrendered at Appomattox, April 9, 1865 ; subsequently chosen president of Washington College, at Lexington, Va., where he died. LEIBNITZ, Gottfried Wilhelm von, Baron, 1646-1716, Ger. philosopher and mathemati- cian. LEICESTER, Robert Dudley, Earl of, 1532 7 -88, a favorite of Queen Elizabeth. LEONIDAS, .... -480 B. C., king of Sparta ; leader of the brave three hundred at Thermopylae. LEOPOLD I. (the Great), 1640-1705, em- peror of Germany. LE SAGE, Alain Rene, 1668-1747, Fr. nov- elist. LESSEPS, Ferdinand de, Viscount, 1^805-94, Fr. engineer and diplomatist ; planned the Suez Canal and the interoceanic canal across Panama. LESSING, Gotthold Ephraim, 1729-81, Ger. author and critic ; ' ' the Luther of German literature, drama and art/' HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 256 LEUTZE, Emanuel, 1816-68, Ger. historical painter. LEVER, Charles James, 1806-72, Ir. novel- ist. LEWES, George Henry, 1817-78, Eng. au- thor; husband of " George Eliot." LEYDEX, Lucas van, 1494-1533, Dutch painter. LIEBIG, Justus von, Baron, 1803-73, Ger. chemist. LINCOLN, Abraham, 1809-65, sixteenth president of the United States ; " with malice toward none, with charity to all;" born in Kentucky ; removed to Indiana when eight years old ; captain in the Black Hawk war, 1832 ; elected to the Illinois legislature, 1834 ; admitted to the bar, 1836, and removed to Springfield, 111. ; elected to Congress in 1846 ; Republican candidate for U. S. senator in 1854, his opponent being Stephen A. Douglas ; nominated for the presidency and elected, 1860; re-elected, 1864, but assassinated April 14, 1865, by John Wilkes Booth ; his death was universally deplored, for his wise admin- istration of affairs during the civil war had won for him the regard of both factions of the bloody controversy. LIND, Jenny (Mrs. Goldschmidt), 1821-87, Sw. vocalist. LINN.EUS, Charles, 1707-78, Sw. botanist, and greatest naturalist of modern times. LIPPI, Filippo, 1412-69, It. painter. LISZT, Franz, Abbe, 1811-85, Hungarian pianist. LITTLETON (or Lyttleton), Sir Thomas, 1420 ?-81, Eng. jurist. LIVINGSTON, Edward, 1764-1836, Am. ju- rist. LIVINGSTONE, David, 1817-73, Scot, ex- plorer in Africa. LIVY (Titus Livius), 59 B. C.-17 A. D., Rom. historian. LOCKE, John, 1632-1704, Eng. philosopher, founded the sensational school of philosophy, claiming that all knowledge comes through the senses. LOGAN, John Alexander, 1826-87, Am. general and statesman. LONGFELLOW, Henry Wadsworth, 1807-82, Am. poet. LONGINUS, fl. third century, Gr. philosopher. Louis I. (le Debonnair), 778-840, emperor of the West and king of France ; divided the empire among his sons ; VI. (the Fat), 1078 ?- 1137, king of France; IX. (Saint), 1215-70, led a large army against the Saracens in 1248 ; defeated and taken prisoner in Egypt, but effected his ransom ; led another crusade in 1270, but died the sam year near Tunis ; a wise ruler, and noted for many virtues. Louis PHILIPPE, 1773-1850, "the citizen king " of France ; abdicated, 1848. Louvois, Francois Michel Letellierde, Mar- quis, 1641-91, Fr. statesman ; caused revoca- tion of the edict of Nantes. LOVER, Samuel, 1797-1868, Ir. novelist. LOWELL, James Russell, 1819-91, Am. poet and critic. LOYOLA, Ignatius de (Saint Ignatius), 1491- 1566, Spanish founder of the Society of Jesus, or Jesuits ; entered the army at an early age ; crippled by a wound in 1520, he turned hi attention to religion ; made a pilgrimage to Jerusalem in 1523, and subsequently studied at the University of Paris, where he met Fran- cis Xavier and James Lainez, in conjunction with whom, in 1543, he formed the society which has since become so celebrated. LUCANUS, Marcus Annaeus, 38-65, Rom. epic poet. LUCIAN. 120 ?-...., Gr. satirist. LUCILIUS, Caius, 148 7-100? B. C., Rom. satiric poet. LUCRETIUS (Titus Lucretius Carus), 95- . . . . B. C., Latin poet ; greatest didactic poet and most profound of Latin authors. LUTHER, Martin, 1483-1546, leader of the Protestant Reformation ; born at Eisleben, Germany, the son of a miner ; educated at the University of Erfurt, and in 1505 entered the Augustine convent at that place ; ordained a priest, 1507 ; became professor of philoso- phy at Wittenberg, 1508 ; visited Rome, 1510 ; denounced the sale of indulgences, 1517 ; and became involved in numerous controversies ; cited to appear before Leo X., he refused to comply ; burned the papal bull containing an order to destroy certain of his works, and de- nied the authority of the pope ; excommuni- cated ; enjoyed the support of the elector of Saxony ; attended the Diet of Worms, con- vened for his trial, in 1521 ; laid aside his monastic dress in 1524, and married Cathe- rine von Bora, an ex-nun, in 1525 ; enjoyed, during the latter part of his life, the greatest distinction from the princes of Germany. Luther completed, in 1522, his translation of the New Testament, and in 1534 that of the Old Testament ; the central point of hie theol- ogy is justification by faith. LUXEMBOURG, Francois Henri de Montmo- renci de, 1628-95, marshal of France. LYCURGUS, fl. 850 B. C., Spartan law- giver. LYELL, Sir George, 1797-1875, Scot, geolo- gist. MACAULAY, Thomas Babington, Baron, 1800-59, Eng. critic, poet, and essayist. MACBETH -1056 ?, king of Scotland. 256 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. MACCHIAVELLI, Nicolo di Bernardo di, 1469-1527, It. statesman and author. MCCLELLAN, George Brinton, 1826-85, Am. general ; born in Philadelphia; served in the Mexican war. Became commander of the armies of the United States, 1861 ; defeated in Peninsular campaign, was superseded but re- called to command and defeated Lee at Antie- tam ; soon relieved of command ; was defeated for the presidency 1864; retired to private life. McCoRMicK, Cyrus Hall, 1809-84, Am. inventor of reaping machine. McCosH, James, 1811-1894, Scot, theolo- gian in America. MACDONALD, Sir John A., 1814-91, Cana- dian premier. MCDOWELL, Irvin, 1818-85, Am. general. MACKENZIE, Morrell, Sir, 1837-92, Eng. physician. McKiNLEY, William, 25th president of the United States ; born in Ohio, Jan. 29, 1843. He enlisted as a private in the 23d Ohio Vol- unteer Infantry when but 18 years of age. Passed rapidly to captain and was brevetted major when only 22 years of age for gallantry on the field of battle. Later he studied law, was admitted to the bar in 1867, elected mem- ber of Congress 1876-91. He was elected gov- ernor of Ohio in 1891 and re-elected in 1893. Elected president in 1896 by 603,854 popular plurality; re-elected in 1900 by 849,455. As president he proved unusually able and enjoyed in a remarkable degree the confidence of the people. Shot by Leon Czolgosz at Buffalo, Sept. 6, 1901, and died Sept. 14, 1901. "Let us ever remember that our interest is in concord, not in conflict ; that our real em- inence rests in the victories of peace not those of war." (Buffalo speech.) MACMAHON, Marie Edme Patrice Maurice de, Due de Magenta, 1808-93, marshal of France and president of the Fr. republic. MACREADY, William Charles, 1793-1873, Eng. tragedian. MADISON, James, 1751-1836, 4th president of the United States ; born in Virginia ; member of th Virginia legislature and delegate to the convention of 1787 ; joint author with Jay and Hamilton of the Federalist; Congress, 1789-97; secretary of state, 1801-9; president, 1809-17. MAGELLAN, Fernando, 1470-1521, Port, navigator. MAHMOOD, Abool-Kasim-Yemeen-ed-Dow- lah, 967-1030, Mohammedan conqueror. MAINTENON, Francoise d'Aubigne" de, Mar- quis*, 1635-1719, consort of Louis XIV. MALIBRAN, Marie Felicita (ne Garcia), 1808-36, Fr. vocalist and actress. MALTHUS, Thomas Robert, 1766-1834, Eng. writer on political economy. MANNING, Henry Edward, 1808-92, Eng. Catholic prelate and author ; united with the Roman Catholic church in 1851 ; archbishop of Westminster, 1865 ; cardinal, 1877. MANTEUFFEL, Edwin Hans Carl von, Baron, 1800-83, Prussian field-marshal. MARAT, Jean Paul, 1744-93, Fr. Jacobin demagogue, assassinated by Charlotte Corday. MARCELLUS, Marcus Claudius, 268V-208 B. C., Rom. consul. MARGARET (Semiramis of the North), 1353-1412, queen of Norway, Sweden, and Denmark. MARGARET OF ANJOU, 1429-82, queen of Henry VI. of England. MARGARET OK ANGOULEME, 1492-1549, queen of Navarre and author. MARGARET OF AUSTRIA, 1480-1530, re- gent of the Netherlands. MARGARET OF VALOIS, 1553-1615, queen of France. MARIA DE' MEDICI, 1573-1642, queen of France. MARIA LOUISA, 1791-1847, empress of France. MARIA THERESA, 1717-80, empress of Austria and queen of Hungary and Bohemia. MARIE ANTOINETTE, 1755-93, wife of Louis XVI. of France ; guillotined. MARION, Francis, 1732-95, Am. Revolution- ary general. MARIUS, Caius, 157-86 B. C., Rom. genera! and consul. MARLBOROUGH, John Churchill, Duke of, 1650-1722, Eng. commander ; commanded the English forces in the Netherlands, 1689 ; com- manded in Ireland, 1690 ; accused of treason, deposed and confined in the Tower, 1692 ; re- instated, 1696 ; commanded the allied armies in Holland, 1702 ; won the battle of Blenheim, 1704 ; Ramilles, 1706 ; Oudenarde, 1708 ; Malplaquet, 1709. MARLOWE, Christopher, 1564-93, Eng. dramatist. MARQUETTE, Jacques, 1637-75, Fr. mis- sionary and discoverer ; explored the Missis- sippi. MARSHALL, John, 1755-1835, Am. jurist and statesman ; chief justice of the United States. MARTEL, Charles, Duke of Austrasia (the Hammer), 694-741, conquered the Saracens in the great battle of Tours, or Poictiers, 732. MARTINEAU, Harriet, 1802-76, Eng. writer. MARX, Karl, 1818-83, Ger. socialist. MARY I. (bloody Mary), 1516-58, queen of England ; married Philip II. of Spain ; per- secuted the Protestants. MARY STUART, 1542-87, queen of Scots: daughter of James V. and Mary of Guise : HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 257 educated in France, where she was married to the Dauphin in 1558, who the following year ascended the French throne as Francis II., but died childless, 1560 ; invited to the throne of Scotland, and married her cousin, Lord Darn- ley ; suppressed, 1565, a revolt of the Protest- ants instigated by Queen Elizabeth ; joined, 1566, a league to extirpate heresy, and, weary- ing of the arrogance and dissoluteness of Lord Darnley, bestowed her confidence on David Riz- zio, an Italian musician, whose murder was instigated the same year by Mary's jealous husband ; Lord Darnley was killed in 1567, and Queen Mary married the Earl of Bothwell the same year ; public sentiment in Scotland against her became so intense that she was com- pelled to fly to England, where she was finally beheaded on an unproved charge of conspiracy. MASANIELLO, 1620-47, Neapolitan insur- gent leader. MASSINGER, Philip, 1584-1640, Eng. drama- tist. MATHER, Cotton, 1663-1728, Am. divine and writer, notorious for his persecution of witchcraft. MATHEW, Theobald (Father Mathew), 1790- 1856, Ir. Catholic priest, called "the Apostle of Temperance." MAUPASSANT, de, Henri R. A. G., 1850-93, Fr. novelist. MAURICE, 1521-53, elector of Saxony ; Ger. general and Protestant leader. MAURICE OF NASSAU, 1567-1625, Dutch warrior ; prince of Orange. MAXIMILIAN (Ferdinand Maximilian Jo- seph), 1832-67, archduke of Austria and em- peror of Mexico ; executed by the Mexicans. MAZARIN, Giulio, Cardinal, 1602-61, Fr. prime minister. MAZEPPA, Ivan Stepanovitch, 1644-1709, Polish nobleman and hetman of the Cossacks ; hero of Byron's poem. MAZZINI, Giuseppe, 1807-72, It. patriot. MEADE, George Gordon, 1815-72, Am. gen- eral ; won the battle of Gettysburg. MEDICI, Alessandro de', 1510-37, first duke of Florence ; assassinated. MEDICI, Cosimo de' (the Great), 1519-74, first grand duke of Tuscany. MEDICI, Lorenzo de' (the Magnificent), 1448-92, prince of Florence ; scholar and pa- tron of literature and art. MEISSONIER, Jean Louis Ernest, 1812-91, Fr. painter. MELANCHTHON, Philipp, 1497-1560, Ger. reformer ; leader .of the Reformation after Luther's death. MELIKOFF, Loris, 1824-88, Russian general. MBNDELSSOHN-BARTHOLDY, Felix, 1800-47, Ger. composer. MENELEK, emperor (or negus) of Abys- sinia ; proclaimed March 12, 1889. MENNO SYMONS (Menno Simonis), 1496- 1561, Frieslandic founder of the Mennonites. MERIME'E, Prosper, 1803-70, Fr. novelist. MESMER, Friedrich Anton, 1733-1815, Ger. discoverer of "mesmerism." METELLUS, Quintus Caecilius, fl. 100 B. C., Rom. general. METTERNICH, Clemens Wenzel Nepomuk Lothar von, 1775-1859, Austrian statesman. MEYERBEER, Giacomo (Jakob Meyer-Beer), 1794-1864, Ger. composer. MICHAEL ANGELO (Michelangelo Buona- rotti), 1475-1564, It. painter, sculptor, archi- tect, and poet; "the Dante of the arts;" patronized by Lorenzo the Magnificent ; in- vited to Rome by Pope Julius II., where he designed the church of St. Peter ; became architect of that magnificent structure in 1546, and devoted the rest of his life almost ex- clusively to its completion. MIFFLIN, Thomas, 1744-1800, Am. patriot ; president of Continental Congress. MILL, James, 1773-1830, Scot, historian and writer. MILL, John Stuart, 1806-73, Eng. philos- opher and political economist. MILLAIS, John Everett, 1829-1896, Eng. painter. MILTIADES, fl. 500 B. C., Athenian com- mander ; gained the great victory of Marathon . MILTON, John, 1608-74, poet of the Puri- tans ; educated at Cambridge ; passed several years in travel ; advocated the popular party, opposing prelacy and the established church ; wrote many political and controversial works in prose; was appointed in 1648 Latin secre- tary of the Council of State ; in 1654 he had become entirely blind ; his " Paradise Lost" was completed in 1655, and sold for 10, half of which was not to be paid until after the sale of 1,300 copies. MINIE, Claude Etienne, 181 0-79, Fr. inventor (Minie rifle). MIRABEAU, Honore 1 Gabriel de Riquetti de, Comte, 1749-91, Fr. orator and statesman; entered the army in 1776 ; exiled and im- prisoned for debt ; separating from his wife, he eloped with a young woman in 1776, for which offense he was condemned to death ; escaped, however, with four years' imprisonment ; led a wandering life for several years, engaging in numerous intrigues ; sent to Berlin on a secret mission in 1786, and elected to the States-General in 1789, and later to the National Assembly, of which he became pres- ident in 1791. MITCHEL, Ormsby Macknight, 1810-62, Am. general and astronomer. 258 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS, MITFORD, Mary Russell, 1786-1855, Am. authoress. MITHRIDATES VI. (the Great), 132-63 B. C., king of Pontus. MOHAMMED (or Mahomet), 569-632, con- queror and prophet, and founder of the Mos- lem religion, which threatened to subdue the Christian world ; pretended, at the age of forty, to have received a revelation from Allah, and thenceforth devoted himself to the propaga- tion of his new religion ; previous to this time he had been an idolator ; his new faith, which included the unity of God, was rejected at Mecca, where a conspiracy was formed against him, but was warmly embraced in Medina, to which place the prophet fled in 622 ; from this flight called the Hegira, the Mussulmans com- pute their time ; after this event, Mohammed propagated the faith of Islam by the sword, gaining numerous victories, and spreading his religion over a large portion of Western Asia. MoLifcRE (Jean Baptiste Poquelin), 1622-73, Fr. dramatist and actor ; the French Shakes- peare. MOLTKE, Carl Bernhard Hellmuth von, Count, 1800-91, commander of the German armies in the Franco-German war ; he planned the entire campaign. MONK, George, Duke of Albemarle, 1608-70, Eng. general ; restored the monarchy. MONMOUTH, James Scott, Duke of , 16497- 85, natural son of Charles II. ; rebelled, but was defeated and executed. MONROE, James, 1758-1831, fifth president ; born in Virginia ; captain in the war of 1812 ; studied law under Jefferson ; Congress, 1783 ; opposed the Constitution ; governor of Vir- ginia, 1799 ; envoy extraordinary to France, 1802; re-elected governor, 1811; appointed secretary of state same year by Madison ; elected president, 1816, and re-elected 1820. MONTAGU, Lady Mary Wortley, 1690-1762, Eng. authoress. MONTAIGNE, Michel Eyquem de, 1533-92, Fr. philosopher and essayist ; originator of the modern essay ; his ' ' Essays ' ' have been called "the breviary of freethinkers." It is claimed by some scholars that Montaigne's name on the title page of the " Essays " was but a cover for Francis Bacon or his brother. MONTALEMBERT, Charles Forbes de, Comte, 1810-70, Fr. publicist. MONTCALM, Louis J. de St. Ve'ran, Marquis of, 1712-59, Fr. commander in Canada. MONTEFIORE, Moses, Sir, 1786-1885, Eng. Jewish philanthropist. MONTESQUIEU, Charles de Secondat, Baron de, 1689-1755, Fr. jurist and philosopher ; his "Esprit des Lois " is the first philosophy of history. MONTEZUMA II., 14807-1520, last Aztec emperor of Mexico. MONTFORT, Simon de, 11507-1218, Norman crusader. MONTFORT, Simon de, Earl of Leicester, 12007-65, son of preceding; led the barons against Henry III. MONTROSE, James Graham, Marquis of, 1612-50, Scot, general ; executed. MOORE, Sir John, 1761-1809, Br. general ; fell at Corunna. MOORE, Thomas, 1779-1852, Ir. poet. MORALES, Luis, 1509-86, Sp. painter. MORE, Sir Thomas, 1480-1535, Eng. states- man and philosopher ; educated at Oxford ; entered Parliament, 1504 ; produced " History of Richard III.," 1513; "Utopia," 1516; became a great favorite of Henry VIII., who made him lord chancellor in 1530 ; being an ardent Catholic, he refused to sanction the divorce of Queen Catherine and resigned his office in 1532 ; imprisoned in 1534 for declin- ing to take an oath acknowledging the validity of the king's marriage to Anne Boleyn, and executed the following year for denying the king's supremacy as head of the church. MORRIS, George P., 1802-64, Am. journal- ist and poet. MORRIS, Gouverneur, 1752-1816, Am. states- man. MORRIS, Robert, 1734-1806, Am. statesman and financier. MORRIS, William, 1834-96, Eng. poet. MORSE, Samuel Finley Breese, 1791-1872, Am. inventor of the magnetic telegraph ; grad- uate of Yale College ; studied painting in England, returning to America in 1832 ; con- structed small recording electric telegraph in 1835; finally obtained *id from Congress in 1843, and constructed a line between Wash- ington and Baltimore in 1844. MORTIMER, Roger, Earl of March, 12877- 1330, favorite of Isabella of England ; exe- cuted. MORTON, James Douglas, Earl of, 1530-81, regent of Scotland ; executed as accessory to Darnley's murder. MOSCHELES, Ignaz, 1794-1870, Ger. pianist and composer. MOSES, 1570-1450 B. C., Hebrew lawgiver ; led the Israelites out of Egypt. MOTLEY, John Lothrop, 1814-77, Am. di- plomatist and historian. MOTT, Lucretia (nee Coffin), 1793-1880, Am. social reformer. MOULTRIE, William, 1731-1805, Am. Rev- olutionary general. MOZART, Johann Chrysoatomus Wolfgang Amadeus, 1756-1791, Ger. composer; com- posed short pieces at the aj?e of HIT. and at HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 259 seven gave concerts in Paris and London ; dis- tinguished for the universality of his genius ; he gave artistic form to opera. MriiLENBERG, Henry Melchior, 1711-87, founder of the German Lutheran church in America. MriiLENBEKG, John Peter Gabriel, 1746- 1807, Am. general. MUNCHAUSEN, Hieronymus Karl Friedrich von, Baron, 1720-97, Ger. soldier and roman- cist. MURAT, Joachim, 1771-1815, Fr. marshal and king of Italy. MURILLO, Bartolome 1 Esteban, 1618-82, Sp. painter ; excelled as a colorist, and regarded as the greatest of the Spanish school. MURRAY (or Moray), James Stuart, Earl of, 1533-70, regent of Scotland ; opponent of Mary Stuart ; assassinated. NAPIER, Sir Charles James, 1782-1853, Eng. general in India. NAPIER, John, 1550-1614, Scot, mathe- matician. NAPIER, Sir William Francis Patrick, 1785- 1860, Br. general and writer. NAPIER OF MAGDALA, Robert Cornells Napier, Baron, 1810-76, Br. general. NEBUCHADNEZZAR, .... -561 B. C., Chal- dean king of Babylon ; conquered Jerusalem, Tyre, and Egypt. NECKER, Jacques, 1732-1804, Fr. states- man and financier ; father of Mme. de Stael. NELSON, Horatio, Viscount, 1758-1805, the greatest of Britain's admirals ; entered the navy at 13 ; post-captain, 1779 ; rear-admiral, 1797, his promotion having been earned by his share in the victory of St. Vincent ; lost his right arm in an unsuccessful attack on Teneriffe ; won the battle of the Nile in 1798, for which he was raised to the peerage as Baron Nelson of the Nile ; became separated from his wife, owing to an infatuation with Lady Ham- ilton, which lasted until his death ; created a viscount for the victory of the Baltic, where, being second in command, he disobeyed the orders directing him to retreat ; fell at Trafal- gar, where his fleet gained a decisive victory over the French and Spanish ; his last words, " Thank God, I have done my duty." NEPOS, Cornelius, fl. 5 B. C., Rom. histo- rian. NERI, Filippo de, Saint (St. Philip Neri), 1515-95, It. founder of the "Priests of the Oratory. ' ' NESSELRODE, Charles Robert von, Count, 1780-1862, Russian diplomatist. NESTORIUS. -440?, Syrian prelate; founder of the Nestorian schism. NEWMAN, John Henry, Cardinal, 1801-90, Eng. theologian ; recognized leader of the High Church party until 1845, when he be- came a Catholic ; appointed rector of Catholic University at Dublin, 1854, and made a cardi- nal by Pope Leo XIII. in 1879. NEWTON, Sir Isaac, 1642-1727, Eng. phi- losopher ; the son of a farmer ; graduated at Cambridge, 1665, about which time he in- vented the "method of fluxions," and dis- covered the laws of gravitation ; discovered, 1668, that light is not homogeneous, but con- sists of rays of different refrangibility. NEY, Michel, Duke of Echlingen and Prince of the Moskwa, 1796-1815, Fr. marshal; the son of a cooper ; entered the army at 18 as a private, and was gradually promoted ; Napo- leon called him "the bravest of the brave," and his titles were conferred upon him for his services at Echlingen, in 1805, and his victory at the battle of Borodino ; commanded the rear guard in the retreat from Moscow ; de- feated by Bernadotte at Dennewitz, 1813 ; submitted to Louis XVIII. upon the abdica- tion of Napoleon, against whom he was sent with an army in 1815, but united his army with that of his old commander ; had five horses shot under him at Waterloo, where he fought with his usual valor ; was captured soon after, and shot on a charge of treason. NIEBUHR, Barthold Georg, 1776-1831, Ger. historian. NICOT, Jean, 1530-1600, Fr. scholar; in- troduced tobacco. NORTH, Frederick, Lord, 1732-92, Eng. statesman. NORTHCOTE, Sir Stafford Henry, 1818-87, Eng. statesman. NOTES, George Rapall, 1798-1868, Am. theologian. GATES, Titus, 1620-1705, Eng. informer; contriver of the " Popish Plot." OBERLIN, Jean Frederic, 1740-1816, Fr.- Ger. reformer and philanthropist. O'CONNELL, Daniel, 1775-1847, Ir. patriot and orator; advocated Catholic emancipation, but opposed resort to arms ; elected to Parlia- ment, 1828, but not allowed to take his seat until 1829, when the bill for Catholic emanci- pation was passed ; gave up his law practice and gave his entire attention to public duties ; began advocating the repeal of the union in 1840; was convicted in 1844 on a charge of treason, but sentence was reversed by the House of Lords. OCCAM, William of (the Invincible Doctor) 12807-1347, Eng. theologian. () DO ACER, .... -493, Gothic king of Italy -, executed. OERSTED, Hans Christian, 1777-1851, Dan- 260 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS, ish natural philosopher ; founder of the science of electro-magnetism. OGLETHORPE, James Edward, 1698-1785, Eng. general ; colonized Georgia. OLLENDORF, Henri Godefroy, 1803-65, Ger. educator. OMAR I., 581-644, Arabian caliph; con- quered Jerusalem. OMAR KHAYYAM, .... -1123, Persian poet. OMAR PASHA (Michael Lattas), 1806-71, Turkish commander in the Crimean war. ORANGE, William, Prince of (the Silent), 1553-84, founder of .the Dutch republic ; leader of the insurrection which broke out when it was attempted to introduce the Inquisition into the Netherlands ; assassinated. O'REILLY, John Boyle, 1844-91, Ir.-Am. poet and journalist. ORIGEN, 1867-253, Gr. theologian and preacher ; endeavored to harmonize the teach- ings of Christ and Plato. ORLEANS, Louis Philippe Joseph, Due d', 1747-93, took the popular side on the assem- bling of the States-General, renounced his ti- tles and assumed the name of Egalite (Equal- ity) ; voted for the death of his cousin, Louis XVI. ; condemned by the revolutionary tribu- nal and executed ; his son, Louis Philippe, af- terward became king of France. ORLOFF, Alexis, Count, 1787-1861, Russian general. ORSINI, Felice, 1819-58, It. conspirator; leader in the attempted assassination of Napo- leon III. in 1858 ; executed. OSMAN I., 1259-1326, founder of Ottoman dynasty. OSSOLI, Margaret Fuller, Marchioness, 1810- 50, Am. authoress. OTHO I. (the Great), 912-73, emperor of Germany, Christianized the Danes, deposed Pope John II. OTIS, James, 1725-83, Am. lawyer, orator, and patriot. OVID (Publius Ovidius Naso), B. C. 43-18 A. D., Rom. poet. OWEN, Robert, 1771-1858, Eng. socialist. PAINE, Robert Treat, 1731-1814, Am. law- yer and statesman. PAINE, Thomas, 1737-1809, Am. political writer and freethinker ; born in England. PAKENHAM, Sir Edward Michael, 1778- 1815, Br. general ; fell at New Orleans. PALEY, William, 1743-1805, Eng. theolo- gian. PALISSY, Bernard, 1506-89, Fr. potter and inventor of pottery enamel ; died in the Bas- tille. PALMER 9TOX Henry John Temple, Vis- count, 1784-1865. Eng. statesman. PAOLI, Pasquale di, 1726-1807, Corsican gen- eral. PAPINEAU, Louis Joseph, 1789-1871, Cana- dian politician. PARACELSUS, Philippus Aureolus Theo- phrastus Bombastus (Von Hohenheim), 1493- 1541, Swiss alchemist. PAREPA-ROSA, Euphrosyne, 1836-74, Scot, vocalist. PARKER, Theodore, 1810-60, Am. rational istic theologian. PARKMAN, Francis, 1823-93, Am. historian. PAKNELL, Charles Stewart, 1846-91, Ir. statesman. PARTON, James, 1822-91, Am. historian. PASCAL, Blaise, 1623-62, Fr. philosopher and mathematician. PASTEUR, Louis, 1822-1895, Fr. chemist and pathologist. PATRICK, Saint, 3727-460?, apostle of Ire- land. PAUL, Saint, of Tarsus (Saul), 107-66, apostle and founder of the Christian church, making Christianity a world-religion in place of a Jewish religiou. PAUL VERONESE (Paolo Cagliari), 15307-88, It. painter. PAUSANIAS, fl. 479 B. C., Spartan general. PAYNE, John Howard, 1792-1852, Am. dramatist and poet. PEABODY, Get rge, 1795-1869, Am. philan- thropist in England ; acquired great wealth as a banker ; expended over five millions in be- nevolent enterprises. PEALE, Rembrandt, 1778-1860, Am. painter. PEEL, Sir Robert (Orange Peel), 1788-1850, Eng. statesman ; repealed the corn laws. PENN, William, 1644-1718, Eng. Quaker, statesman, courtier, author, and philanthropist ; founder of Pennsylvania. PEPIN (the Short), 7147-68, king of France ; son of Charles Martel and father of Charle- magne. PEPYS, Samuel, 1632-1703, Eng. author and scholar. PERCIVAL, James Gates, 1795-1856, Am- poet. PERICLES, 4957-429 B. C., Athenian orator, statesman, and general ; became the leader of the democratic party and the first man in Athens ; erected many noble public works, in- cluding the Parthenon ; his age is called " the golden age of Athens." PERRAULT, Claude, 1613-88, Fr. architect. PERRY, Oliver Hazard, 1785-1819, Am. commodore ; defeated the British on Lake Erie. PERSIUS FLACCUS, Aulus, 34-62, Rom. sat- irist. BISTORT AND BIOGRAPHY. PESTALOZZI, Johann Heinrich, 1745-1827, Swiss educationist. PETER, Saint, . . . .-66, apostle. PETER I. (the Great), 1672-1725, czar of Russia and founder of the Russian monarchy ; organized an army and entered it as a private ; studied practical seamanship, and formed a navy ; traveled incognito in Western Europe ; worked as a ship carpenter in Holland ; founded schools and effected a number of re- forms ; defeated Charles XII. of Sweden, at Pultowa, 1709 ; founded St. Petersburg ; his second wife. Catherine, was a prisoner of war, of obscure parentage ; the crown prince, Alexis, opposing the czar's policy, was forced to renounce the succession, and is said to have been poisoned by his father. PETER THE HERMIT, 10507-1115, preacher of the first Crusade. PETRARCH (Francesco Petrarca), 1304-74, It. poet and scholar ; enamored of Laura de Sade, whose name he made immortal. PHIDIAS, 490-432 B. C., the greatest of Greek sculptors, and architect of the Parthe- non ; he was never excelled in expressing the ideal majesty of the human form, and his Zeus, at Olympia, is counted among the won- ders of the world. PHILIP II., 382-336 B. C., king of Macedo- nia ; father of Alexander the Great. PHILIP II. (Augustus), 1165-1223, king of France ; annexed Normandy, Anjou and Lor- raine ; won the battle of Bouvines. PHILIP IV. (the Fair), 1268-1314, reduced the power of the feudal nobles ; imprisoned Pope Boniface III. and caused him to remove his seat to Avignon ; suppressed the order of Knights Templars ; VI. (of Valois), 1293-1350. PHILIP' II., 1527-98, king of Spain ; son of Charles V.; pjovoked insurrection in the Netherlands by his attempt to introduce the Spanish Inquisition ; married, on the death of Mary Tudor, his second wife, Isabella of France, the betrothed of his son, Don Carlos ; equipped the ''Invincible Armada" for the conquest of England. PHILLIPS, Wendell, 1811-84, Am. orator and abolitionist. PHIPS (or Phipps), Sir William, 1651-95, colonial governor of Massachusetts. PHOCION, 4027-317 B. C., Athenian general and statesman. PICCOLOMINI, Ottavio, 1599-1656, Austrian general ; conspirator against Wallenstein ; gained great distinction in the Thirty Years' War ; led Spanish army in Flanders. PICKERING, Timothy, 1745-1829, Am. states- man. PIERCE, Franklin, 1804-69, fourteenth pres- ident of the United States ; born in New Hampshire ; Congress, 1832-7 ; senator, 1837- 42 ; brigadier-general in Mexican war ; elected president on the Democratic ticket in 1852, holding that office from 1853-7 ; opposed coer- cion of the South in 1863. PIERREPONT, Edward, 1800-92, Am. lawyer. PILATE, Pontius, .... -38, Roman governor of Palestine. PINCKNEY, Charles Cotesworth, 1746-1825, Am. statesman and soldier ; leader of the Federalists. PINDAR, 5207-440? B. C., greatest of Greek lyric poets. PINKNEY, William, 1764-1822, Am. lawyer and orator. PITT, William, 1759-1806, Eng. statesman and orator ; son of the earl of Chatham ; head of the great coalition against Bonaparte. Pius IX. (Giovanni Maria Mastai-Ferretti), born, 1792 ; chosen to the pontificate, 1846 ; died, 1878 ; during his incumbency the dogmas of the Immaculate Conception and of Papal Infallibility were promulgated, temporal power overthrown, 1870, and the Papal States annexed to Italy. PIZARRO, Francisco, 1496-1541, Sp. con- queror of Peru. PLATO, 428-347 B. C., Gr. philosopher ; disciple of Socrates ; held that the human soul has always existed, and that an idea is an eter- nal thought of the divine mind ; Emerson says, " Plato is philosophy, and philosophy is Plato." PLINY (the Elder), 23-79, Rom. naturalist ; perished at an eruption of Vesuvius. PLINY (the Younger), 627-116, Rom. orator and author. PLOTINUS, 205-70, Gr. Neo-Platonic philos- opher. PLUTARCH, 507-1207, Gr. biographer and philosopher ; " father of biography." POCAHONTAS, 15957-1617, daughter of Powhatan ; saved the life of Capt. John Smith, an Eng. explorer ; was converted to Christian- ity, and married an Englishman named Rolfe. *PoE, Edgar Allan, 1809-49, Am. author. POLK, James Knox, 1795-1849, Am. states- man ; eleventh president ; born in North Car- olina ; removed to Tennessee ; admitted to the bar; Congress, 1825; speaker for two terms; governor of Tennessee, 1839-41; elected pres- ident on the Democratic ticket, holding that office from 1845-9. POLK, Leonidas, 1806-64, episcopal bishop and Confederate general ; prominent at Shiloh and Stone River. POLLOK, Robert, 17987-1827, Scot. poet. POLO, Marco, 12527-13247, Venetian trav- eler. POLYBICS, 2067-124 B. C., Gr. historian. 262 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS, POLYCABP, Saint, 807-169?, bishop of Smyrna ; martyr. POMPEY (the Great), 106-48 B. C., Rom. general and triumvir ; conquered Suetonius and Mithridates ; became leader of the aristoc- racy and opponent of Caesar ; defeated at Pharsalia. PONCE DE LEON, Juan, 1460-1521, Sp. dis- coverer of Florida. PONTIAC, 17127-69, chief of the Ottawas ; formed coalition of Indians against the whites, and attempted to capture Detroit. POPE, Alexander, 1688-1744, Eng. poet. POWERS, Hiram, 1805-73, greatest of Ameri- can sculptors. POWHATAN, 1550-1618, Indian chieftain in Virginia. PRAXITELES, fl. 360 B. C., Gr. sculptor, who expressed the perfect ideal grace of the female figure. PRENTICE, George Denison, 1802-70, Am. poet and journalist. PRESCOTT, William Bidding, 1796-1859, Am. historian. PRIM, Juan, Count de Reus and Marquis de los Castillejos, 1814-70, Sp. general and states- man ; assassinated. PRIOR, Matthew, 1664-1721, Eng. poet and diplomatist. PROCTER, Bryan Waller (Barry Cornwall), 1790-1874, Eng. poet. PTOLEMY I. (Soter), 397?-283 B. C., king of Egypt; II. (Philadelphus), 309-247 B. C. PTOLEMY (Claudius Ptolemaeus), fl. second century, Gr. astronomer and geographer ; be- lieved the earth to be at rest in the center of the universe, the heavenly bodies moving around it. PULASKI, Casimir, Count, 1747-79, Polish patriot ; general in the American Revolution- ary army ; fell at the siege of Savannah. PUTNAM, Israel, 1718-90, Am. Revolution- ary general ; conspicuous at the battle of Bunker Hill. PYM, John, 1584-1643, Eng. republican statesman and orator. PYRRHO, 376-288 B. C., Gr. skeptic and philosopher. PYRRHUS, 3187-272 B. C., king of Epirus and one of the greatest of ancient generals ; defeated the Romans and conquered Mace- donia. PYTHAGORAS, 6007-510? B. C., first Gr. philosopher ; taught the doctrine of transmi- gration of souls ; basis of his philosophy, number and harmony ; soul distinct from body. RABELAIS, Frangois, 14957-1553, Fr. scholar and satirist; joined the Franciscans, but left] the order ; afterward studied medicine ; his great work, " The Pleasant Story of the Giant Gargantua," is a satire upon the different branches of society of his age, more particu- larly the monastic orders. RACINE, Jean, 1630-99, Fr. dramatist. RALEIGH, Sir Walter, 1552-1618, Eng. courtier, statesman, navigator, and author ; a favorite of Queen Elizabeth ; executed by James I. RAMEAU, Jean Philippe, 1683-1764, Fr. composer. RANDOLPH, John (of Roanoke), 1773-1835, Am. politician and orator. RANDOLPH, Peyton, 1723-75, president of first Am. Congress. RAPHAEL (Raffaelle Sanzio, or Santi d' Urbino), 1483-1520, It. painter ; " the prince of painters." READ, Thomas Buchanan, 1822-72, Am. poet and artist. READE, Charles, 1814-84, Eng. novelist. RECAMIER, Jeanne, F. J. A. B., 1777-1849, Fr. lady noted for her beauty and accomplish- ments. RED JACKET, 1760-1830, Seneca Indian chief. REGCLUS, Marcus Atillius, .... -250 B. C., Rom. general and statesman. REMBRANDT VAN RYN, Paul, 1607-69, Dutch painter ; chief of the Dutch school ; the great- est master of colors, and unrivaled as an etcher. REMUSAT, Charles Frangois Marie, Count, 1797-1875, Fr. statesman and philosopher. REXAN, Joseph Ernest, 1823-92, Fr. philol- ogist and writer. REVERE, Paul, 1735-1818, Am. engraver and Revolutionary patriot ; carried the news of Gage's impending attack to Concoid. REYNOLDS, John Fulton, 1820-63, Am. gen- eral. REYNOLDS, Sir Joshua, 1723-92, Eng. por- trait painter. RICARDO, David, 1772-1823, Eng. political economist. RICHARD I. (Coeur de Lion), 1157-99, king of England ; led a large army into Palestine ; conquered Acre and defeated Saladin ; II., 1366-1400; III., 1452-85, last of the Plan- tagenets. RICHARDSON, Samuel, 1689-1761, Eng. nov- elist. RICHELIEU, Armand Jean du Plessis, Cardi- nal, 1585-1642, Fr. prelate and statesman ; minister to Louis VIII., but real ruler of France for thirteen years. RICHTER, Johann Paul Friedrich (Jean Paul), 1763-1825, Ger. author. RIENZI, Nicola Gabrini, 13137-54, Rom. orator ; attempted to restore the republic. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 263 RITTENHOUSE, David, 1732-96, Am. astron- omer. RIZZIO, David, 1540-66, It. musician; fa- vorite of Mary Stuart ; assassinated. ROBERT II., 13-16-90, first of the Stuarts. ROBERTSON, Frederick William, 1816-53, Eng. divine. ROBESPIERRE, Maximilien Joseph Marie Isidore, 1758-94, Fr. Jacobin revolutionist ; ruler during the Reign of Terror ; guillotined. ROBIN HOOD, fl. twelfth century, Eng. outlaw. ROCHAMBEAU, Jean Baptiste Donation de Vimeur de, Count, 1725-1807, Fr. marshal ; general in America in 1781. ROCHEFOUCAULD, Francois Due de la, 1613- 80, Fr. wit and author. ROCHEJAQUELIN, Henri de la, Comte, 1772- 94, Fr. royalist. ROEBLING, John Augustus, 1806-69, Am. engineer. ROGERS, John, 1500 ?-55, Eng. divine; burned at Smithfield. ROLAND, Marie Jeanne Philipon, Mme., 1754-93, Fr. Girondist and writer ; guillotined. ROLLIN, Charles, 1661-1741, Fr. historian. ROLLO (or Hrolf), 8607-930?, Norwegian viking ; first duke of Normandy. ROMANOFF, Michael Feodorovitch, 1598?- 1645, founder of the Russian dynasty. ROMULUS, fl. 750 B. C., founder of Rome. ROSA, Salvator, 1615-73, It. painter. ROOSEVELT, Theodore, born N. Y. 1858, 26th pres. U. S. Ross, Sir John, 1777-1856, Arctic navigator. Ross, Sir James Clark, 1800-62, nephew of preceding ; Br. Arctic navigator. ROSSETTI, Dante Gabriel, 1828-82, Eng. painter and poet. ROSSINI, Gioacchimo. 1792-1868, It. comp. ROTHSCHILD, Mayer Anselm, 1743-1812, Jewish banker at Frankfort ; founder of the house of Rothschild. ROUSSEAU, Jean Jacques, 1712-78, Fr. phi- losopher and writer. RUBENS, Peter Paul, 1587-1640, Flemish painter ; chief of the Flemish school. RUBINSTEIN, Anton Gregor, 1829-94, Rus. composer and pianist. RUDOLPH I. OF HAPSBURG, 1218-91, em- peror of Germany ; founder of the Austrian empire; II., 1552-1612. RUMFORD, Benjamin Thompson, Count, 1753-1814, Am. natural philosopher in France. RUPERT, Prince (Prince Robert of Bavaria), 1619-82, Ger. warrior. RUSKIN, John, English writer, 1819-1900. SAINT CLAIR, Arthur, 1734-1818, Am. gen- eral. SAINTE-BEUVE, Charles Augustin, 1804-69. Fr. poet and critic. SAINT-PIERRE, Jacques Henri Bernardin de, 1737-1814, Fr. author. SAL A, George Augustus Henri, 1828-95,- Eng. litterateur. SALADIN, 1137-93, sultan of Egypt and Syria ; opposed the Crusaders ; defeated the Christians at Tiberias. SALE, George, 1680-1736, Eng. orientalist. SALLUST (Caius Sallustius Crispus). 86-34 B. C., Rom. historian. SALVINI, Tommaso, 1829? -1896, It. tra- gedian. SANTA ANNA (or Ana), Antonio Lopez de, 1798-1876, Mexican general and statesman. SAPPHO, fl. 600 B. C., Gr. lyric poetess. SAUL, .... - 1055 B. C., first king of Is- rael. SAVONAROLA, Girolamo, 1452-1598, It. re- ligious reformer. SAY, Jean Baptiste Leon, 1816-1896, Fr. statesman. SCHELLING, Friedrich Wilhelm Joseph von, 1775-1854, Ger. philosopher. SCHILLER, Johann Christoph Friedrich von, 1759-1805, the most popular of German poets. SCHLEGEL, August Wilhelm von, 1767- 1845, Ger. poet, critic, and philologist. SCHLEGEL, Karl Wilhelm Friedrich von, brother of A. W., 1772-1829, Ger. philoso- pher and scholar. ScHLiEMANN,Heinrich, 1822-90, Ger. archae- ; ologist. SCHOEFFER, Peter, 1430-1500, one of the inventors of printing ; partner of Johann Faust. SCHOPENHAUER, Arthur, 1788-1860, Ger. pessimist philosopher. SCHUBERT, Franz, 1797-1828, Ger. com- poser. SCHUMANN, Robert, 1810-56, Ger. composer. SCHUYLER, Philip, 1733-1804, Am. general. SCHWARZ, Berthold, fl. fourteenth century, Ger. monk and alchemist ; reputed inventor of gunpowder. SCHWATKA, Frederick, 1849-92, Am. explorer. SCIPIO AFRICANUS MAJOR, Publius Corne- lius, 235-184? B. C., Rom. general; invaded Africa and defeated Hannibal. SCIPIO JEMILIANUS AFRICANUS MINOR, Publius Cornelius, 185?-29 B. C., Rom. gen- eral ; destroyed Carthage. SCOTT, Sir Walter, 1771-1832, Scot, nov- elist and poet. SCOTT, Winfield, 1786-1866, Am. general. SEBASTIAN, Saint, 255?-88, Rom. soldier and martyr. SELKIRK, Alexander, 1676?-1723, Scot. sailor whose adventures suggested the story of "Robinson Crusoe." 264 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. SKMIII AMIS, fl. 1250 B. C., Assyrian queen ; built Babylon and greatly increased her do- minions ; invaded India, but was defeated. SENECA, Lucius Annseus, 5?-65, Rom. statesman, moralist, and Stoic philosopher. SENNACHERIB, fl. 700 B. C., Assyrian king. SERVETUS, Michael, 1509-53, Sp. theolo- gian. SESOSTRIS (Rameses), fl. 1400 B. C., king of Egypt. SEVIGNE, Marie de Rabutin-Chantal, Mar- quise de, 1627-96, Fr. lady celebrated for her beauty and accomplishments. SEWARD, William Henry, 1801-72, Am. statesman. SEYMOUR, Horatio, 1811-86, Am. states- man ; Democratic nominee for the presidency in 1868. SHAFTESBURY, Anthony Ashley Cooper, third Earl of, 1671-1713, Eng. philanthropist, author, and freethinker. SHAKSPERE (Shakspeare, or Shakespeare), William, 1564-1616, reputed author of the world's greatest dramas ; born at Stratford-on- Avon ; married Anne Hathaway, 1582 ; went to London about 1586, and became an actor and owner of a playhouse ; acquired a compe- tence and retired to his native town about 1610 ; " Venus and Adonis," and " The Rape of Lucrece," the only works published under his own hand, appeared in 1593-4 ; the first collective edition of the Shakespeare plays appeared in 1623. SHELLEY, Percy Bysshe, 1792-1822, Eng- lish poet. SHERIDAN, Philip Henry, 1831-88, Am. general ; victorious at Winchester, Cedar Creek, and Five Forks ; made lieutenant-gen- eral, 1869, and promoted to the chief com- mand on retirement of General Sherman, 1883. SHERIDAN, Richard Brinsley, 1751-1816 ; Ir. orator and dramatist. SHERMAN, William Tecumseh, 1820-91, brother of J. S. ; Am. general ; made the cel- ebrated " March to the Sea " ; became general of the army in 1869, retiring in 1883. SIDDONS, Sarah (ne'e Kemble), 1755-1831, Eng. actress. SIDNEY, Algernon, 1622-83 ; Eng. republi- can ; executed on false charge of complicity in " Rye House Plot." SIDNEY, Sir Philip, 1554-86, Eng. soldier and poet. SIGOURNEY, Mrs. Lydia Howard Huntley, 1791-1865, Am. poetess. SILLIMAN, Benjamin, 1789-1864, Am. nat- uralist. SIMON, Jules, 1814-1896, Fr. statesman. SMITH, Adam, 1723-90, Scot, political econ- omist. SMITH, John, Captain, 1579-1631, Eng. explorer ; founder of Virginia. SMITH, Joseph, 1805-44, founder of the Mormon church. SMITH, Sydney, 1771-1845, English divine and essayist. SMOLLETT, Tobias George, 1721-71, Scot, novelist. SOBIESKI, John, 1629-96, king of Poland and patriot ; defeated the Turks and raised the siege of Vienna. SOCRATES, 4707-399 B. C., Gr. philosopher of ethics ; teacher of Plato. SOLIMANII. (the Magnificent), 1494-1566, sultan of Turkey ; conquered Persia and part of Hungary. SOLOMON (the Wise), 1033?-975? B. C., king of Israel. SOLON, 638-558? B. C., Athenian lawgiver and poet. SOPHOCLES, 495-405 B. C., Gr. tragic poet. SOUTHEY, Robert, 1774-1843, Eng. poet- laureate. SPARKS, Jared, 1789-1866, Am. historian. SPARTACUS, .... -71 B. C., Thracian glad- iator in Rome ; inaugurated Servile war. SPEKE, John Banning, 1827-64, Eng. ex- plorer in Africa. SPENSER, Edmund, 1553-99, Eng. poet. SPINOZA, Benedict, 1632-77, Dutch-Jewish philosopher and pantheist. SPURGEON, Charles Haddon, 1834-92, Eng. pulpit-orator. SPURZHEIM, Johann Caspar, 1776-1832, Ge. phrenologist. STAEL-HOLSTEIN, Anne Louise Germaine, Baronne de (Mine, de Stael), 1766-1817, Fr. authoress. STANDISH, Miles, 1584-1656, captain of Plymouth colony. STANFORD, Leland, 1824-93, Am. lawyer and philanthropist. STARK, John, 1728-1822, Am. Revolution- ary general. STEIN, Heinrich Friedrich Karl von, Baron, 1757-1831, Prussian statesman. STEPHEN, Saint, stoned 36 ?, first Christian martyr. STEPHENS, Alexander Hamilton, 1812-83, Am. statesman and writer; the "Nestor of the Confederacy " ; born in Georgia ; admitted to the bar, 1835 ; Congress, 1843 ; opposed the secession of his State; vice-president of the Confederate States ; elected to the U. S. Senate from Georgia, but not permitted to take his seat ; member of the House of Rep- resentatives, however, from 1874 until his death. STKPHENSON, George, 1781-1848, Eng. en gineer ; inventor of the locomotive engine. HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 265 STEPHENSON, Robert, 1803-59, son of G. S., Eng. engineer ; inventor of tubular bridge. STERNE, Laurence, Rev., 1713-68, Ir. hu- morous writer. STEUBEN, Frederick William Augustus von, Baron, 1730-94, Ger.-Am. general in the Rev- olutionary war. STEVENS, Thaddeus, 1793-1868, Am. aboli- tionist. STORY, Joseph, 1779-1845, Am. jurist. STOWE, Mrs. Harriet Elizabeth Beecher, 1812-96, Am. authoress. STRABO, 54 B. C.-24 A. D., Gr. geographer. STRADELLA, Alessandro, 1645-78, It. com- poser. STRAFFORD, Thomas Wentworth, Earl of, 1593-1641, Eng. statesman; beheaded. STRAUSS, Johanu, 1804-49, Ger. composer. STUART, Gilbert C., 1756-1828, Am. por- trait painter. STUYVESANT, Peter, 1602-82, last Dutch governor of New Netherland (Ne~v York). SUE, Marie Joseph Eugene, 1804-57, Fr. novelist. SULLA (or Sylla), Lucius Cornelius, 138-78 B. C., Rom. statesman and general. SUMNER, Charles, 1811-74, Am. statesman. SWEDENBORG, Emanuel, 1688-1772, Sw. theosophist ; in his theosophy the central point is the correspondence of the natural and the supernatural. SWIFT, Jonathan, 1667-1745, Ir. divine and satirist. TACITUS, Caius Cornelius, 557-118?, Rom. historian ; to him we owe nearly all our knowl- edge of the early Britons and the Germans. TAINE, Hippolyte Adolphe, 1828-93, Fr. author. TALBOT, William Henry Fox, 1800-77, Eng. author and discoverer of photography. TALFOURD, Sir Thomas Noon, 1795-1854, Eng. author. TALLEYRAND-PERIGORD, Charles Maurice de, Prince of Benevento, 1754-1838, Fr. di- plomatist. TAMERLANE (or Timour), 1336-1405, Asiatic conqueror. TANCRF.D, 1078-1112, Norman leader in the first Crusade. TANEY, Roger Brooke, 1777-1864, Am. jurist. TASMAN, Abel Janssen, 16007-45, Dutch navigator. TASSO, Torquato, 1544-95, It. poet. TAUCHNITZ, Christian Bernhard, Baron, 1816-95, Ger. publisher. TAYLOR, Bayard, 1825-78, Am. traveler, novelist, poet, and journalist. TAYLOR, Jeremy, 1613-67, Eng. bishop and author. TAYLOR, Zachary, 1784-1850, Am. general and statesman ; twelfth president ; born in Virginia ; entered the army in 1808 ; served in Seminole and Black Hawk wars ; major- general in Mexican war, and won the battles of Resaca de la Palma and Buena Vista ; elected president by the Whigs in 1848. TECUMSEH, 1770-1813, chief of theShawnee Indians ; defeated by Harrison at Tippecanoe ; killed in the battle of the Thames. TELL, Wilhelm, fl. 1305, legendary Swiss hero. TENNYSON, Alfred, Baron, 1809-92, Eng. poet-laureate. TERENCE (P. Terentius Afer), 1957-160? B. C., Rom. comic poet. TERTULLIAN, 1507-2307, Latin father of the Church. TETZEL, Johann, 14607-1519, Ger. monk ; vender of indulgences. THACKERAY, William Makepeace, 1811-63, Eng. novelist. THALES, 6357-546 B. C., Gr. age and philosopher. THEMISTOCLES, 5147-449? B. v.., Athenian general and statesman. THEOCRITUS, ft. 275?, Gr. pastoral pot. THEODORA, . . . .-548, empress of the East; wife of Justinian. THEODORIC (the Great), 455-526, king of the Ostrogoths. THEODOSIUS, Flavius (the Great), 3467-395, Rom. emperor. THEOPHRASTUS, 3727-287? B. C., Gr. phi- losopher and moralist. THIERRY, Jacques N. Augustin, 1795-1836, Fr. historian. THIERS, Louis Adolphe, 1797-1877, Fr. statesman and historian. THOMAS, George II., 1816-70, Am. Federal general ; won the battles of Chickamauga and Nashville. THOREAU, Henry D., 1817-62, Am. author. THORWALDSEN, Albert D., 1770-1844, Dan- ish sculptor. THUCYDIDES, 470-400 B. C., greatest of Greek historians. TIBERIUS, 42 B. C.-37 A. D., Rom. emperor. TILDEN, Samuel Jones, 1814-86, Am. statesman ; governor of New York ; Demo- cratic candidate for presidency, 1876. TILLY, Johann Tzerklas von, Count, 1559- 1632, Ger. general in Thirty Years' war ; fell at the battle of the Lech. TINTORETTO, II (Giacomo Robusti), 1512- 94, It. painter. TITIAN (Tizianb Vecellio), 1477-1576, the greatest of Venetian painters. TOCQUEVILLE, Alexis Charles Henri Clerel de, 1805-59, Fr. statesman and author. 266 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. TODLEBEN, Franz Eduard, 1818-84, Russian general. TONE, Theobald Wolfe, 1763-98, Ir. patriot ; founder of the United Irishmen. TORQUEMADA, Tomas de, H20-98, Sp. Do- minican monk ; inquisitor-general. TORRICELLI, Evangelista, 1608-47, It. physicist. TOUSSAINT L'OuvERTURE, Francois Domi- nique, 1743-1803, negro leader of the Haytian rebellion. TRAJAN, 52-117, Rom. emperor. TROLLOPE, Anthony, 1815-83, Eng. nov- elist. TUPPER, Martin Farquhar, 1810-89, Eng. poet and author. TURENNE, Henri de la Tour d'Auvergne, Vicomte de, 1611-75, Fr. general. TURGENEF, Ivan Sergyevich, 1818-83, Rus- sian novelist. TURNER, Joseph Mallord William, 1775- 1851, Eng. landscape painter. TYLER, John, 1790-1862, tenth president of the United States ; born in Va. ; practiced law ; Congress, 1816-21 ; governor of Virginia, 1825 ; senator, 1827 ; sympathized with the nullifiers and opposed Jackson ; resigned, 1836 ; elected vice-president on Whig ticket, 1840; succeeded Harrison in 1841. TYNDALL, John, 1820-93, Ir. scientist. UHLAND, Johann Ludwig, 1787-1862, Ger. lyric poet. ULLOA, Antonio de, 1716-95, Sp. mathema- tician and naval officer ; governor of Louisiana. ULPHILAS (or Ulfilas), 313-83, the apostle of the Goths ; translated the Scriptures into Gothic. UNGER, Johann Friedrich, 1750-1813, Ger. printer and engraver. URQUHART, David, 1805-77, Scot, writer and politician. USSHER, James, 1580-1656, Ir. prelate and scholar. VALENS, Flavius, 328?-78, emperor of the East. VAN BUREN, Martin, 1782-1862, eighth president of the United States ; enrolled at the bar in New York in 1803, and elected to the State Senate ; state attorney-general, 1815 ; leader of the " Albany Regency " ; U. S. sen- ator, 1821 ; governor, 1828 ; secretary of state, 1829-31; vice-president, 1833-7; president, 1837-41. VANCOUVER, George, 17587-98, Eng. navi- gator. VANDERBILT, Cornelius, 1794-1877, Am. capitalist. VANDTKK (or Van Dyck), Sir Anthony, 1599-1641, Flemish painter; resided in Eng- land for several years before his death, where he became the most popular artist of his time. VANE, Sir Henry, 1612-62, Eng. republican statesman . VAN RENSSELAER, Stephen (the Patroon), 1764-1839, Am. statesman and landholder. VARUS, Publius Quintilius, ft. 7, Rom. gen- eral ; defeated by Arminius. VELASQUEZ, Don Diego Rodriguez de Silva y, 1599-1660, Sp. painter. VELDE, Willem van der (the Elder), 1610- 93, Dutch marine painter. VELDE, Willem van der (the Younger), 1633-1707, Dutch marine painter. VERBOECKHOVEN, Eugene Joseph, 1799-1881, Belgian painter. VERDI, Giuseppe, 1814-98, It. composer. VERNET, Antoine Charles Horace, 1758- 1836, Fr. painter. VESPASIANUS, Titus Flavius, 9-79, Rom. emperor. VESPUCCI, Amerigo (Americus Vespucius), 1451-1512, It. navigator and astronomer. VICTOR EMMANUEL I., 1759-1824, king of Sardinia; II., 1820-78, first king of Italy; restored Italian unity. VINCENT DE PAUL, Saint, 1576-1660, Fr. priest and reformer. VINCI, Leonardo da, 1452-1519, Florentine painter. VIRGIL (or Vergil) (Publius VirgiliusMaro), 70-19 B. C., Latin poet. VOLTA, Alessandro, 1745-1827, It. inventor of voltaic pile. VOLTAIRE, Francois Marie Arouet de, 1694- 1778, Fr. author, poet, wit, dramatist, histo- rian, philosopher, and skeptic, and the great- est critic of modern times ; the son of a notai'y ; imprisoned in the Bastille in 1716 on an un- founded suspicion of being the author of a libel on the regent, and there produced " CEdipe," and wrote part of the " Hen- riade " ; in England, 1726-9, passing much time in the society of Bolingbroke ; passed the years 1750-3 with Frederick the Great. WAGNER, Richard, 1813-83, Ger. composer, poet, and critic. WAITE, Morrison Remich, 1816-88, Am. chief justice. WALLACE, Sir William, 12707-1305, Scot- general and patriot ; defeated by Edward I. of England ; betrayed and executed. WALLENSTEIN, Albrecht Wenzel Eusebius von, Count, 1583-1634, Austrian general ; hero of one of Schiller's dramas ; entered the im- perial army at the beginning of the Thirty Years' war ; raised an army at his own ex- pense in 1625, invading Denmark : banished HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 267 from court by Emperor Ferdinand, but recalled on the death of Marshal Tilly ; defeated by Gustavus Adolphus at Lutzen in 1632, but gained several victories in Silesia ; again lost the emperor's favor, being charged with aspi- rations to the throne of Bohemia, was deprived of his command and assassinated. WALPOLE, Horace, Earl of Oxford, 1717-97, Eng. author and wit. WALTHER VON DER VOGELWEIDE, 1170?- 1230?, greatest of Ger. minnesingers. WALTON, Izaak, 1593-1683, Eng. writer ; " The Complete Angler." WARREN, Joseph, 1741-75, Am. physician ; Revolutionary general and patriot ; fell at Bunker Hill. WARREN, Samuel, 1807-77, Eng. author. WARWICK, Richard Neville, Earl of (the king maker), 1420 ?-71, Eng. warrior; setup and deposed Edward IV. WASHINGTON, George, 1732-99, commander- in-chief in the American Revolution, and first president of the United States; "the father of his country;" born in Virginia; aide-de- camp to Braddock in the Indian campaign of 1755 ; married Martha Custis, 1759 ; chosen to Congress, 1774 ; appointed commander-in- chief, 1775 ; president, 1789-97. WATT, James, 1736-1819, Scot, engineer and inventor ; improved and completed the steam engine ; also credited with the discovery of the composition of water. WATTEAU, Jean Antoine, 1684-1721, Fr. painter. WATTS, Isaac, 1674-1748, Eng. Dissenting minister and sacred poet. WAYNE, Anthony, 1745-96, Am. Revolu- tionary general. WEBER, Karl Maria Friedrich Ernst von, Baron, 1786-1826, Ger. composer. WEBSTER, Daniel, 1782-1852, Am. lawyer, orator, and statesman ; " the expounder of the Constitution ; " born in New Hampshire ; Congress, 1812-16, 1822-8; Senate, 1828-41 ; secretary of state ; re-entered Senate in 1844 ; again became secretary of state in 1850 ; nomi- nated for the presidency in 1834, but defeated ; candidate for the Whig nomination in 1848, but defeated by Taylor, whom he supported ; Webster's reply to Hayne, of South Carolina, is considered the greatest speech ever made in Congress. WEBSTER, Noah, 1758-1843, Am. lexicog- rapher. WEDGWOOD, Josiah, 1730-95, Eng. potter. WEED, Thurlow, 1797-1883, Am. journalist. WELLINGTON, Arthur Wellesley, first Duke of, 1769-1852, greatest of Br. generals ; gained great distinction in India, in the war against the Mahrattas ; major-general, 1802 ; Parlia- ment, 1805 ; secretary for Ireland, 1807 ; de- feated the Danes at Kioge, and was given command of an army sent to Spain against the French, 1808; triumphantly entered Madrid, 1812; defeated Jo urdan and Soult, 1813; in- vaded France and gained numerous victories ; defeated Napoleon at Waterloo, 1815 ; was afterward prime minister and minister of for- eign affairs. WENCESLAUS (or Wenzel), 1361-1419, em- peror of Germany and king of Bohemia. WESLEY, Charles, 1708-88, Eng. Methodist divine and hymn-writer. WESLEY, John, 1703-91, brother of C. W. ; Eng. founder of Methodism, " the religion of feeling." WEST, Benjamin, 1738-1820, Am. painter in England. WHARTON, Francis, 1820-89, Am. jurist and theologian. WHATELY, Richard, 1787-1863, Ir. prelate and author. WHEELER, William Alrnon, 1819-87, Am. statesman ; vice-president. WHITE, Henry Kirke, 1785-1806, Eng. religious poet. WHITE, Richard Grant, 1822-85, Am. author. WHITEFIELD, George, 1714-70, Eng. preacher, founder of Calvinistic Methodists. WHITMAN, Walt, 1819-92, Am. poet. WHITNEY, Eli, 1765-1825, Am. inventor of the cotton-gin. WHITTIER, John Greenleaf, 1807-92, Am. poet ; member of the Society of Friends. WILBERFORCE. William, 1759-1833, Eng. philanthropist and statesman ; secured the abolition of the slave trade. WILLIAM I. (the Conqueror), 1027-87, king of England ; duke of Normandy ; conquered England. WILLIAM III. (William Henry of Nassau, prince of Orange), 1650-1702, won battle of the Boyne. WILLIAM I., 1772-1843, king of the Neth- erlands. WILLIAM I., 1797-1888, king of Prussia and emperor of Germany. WILLIAMS, Roger, 1599-1683, Eng. Puritan minister ; founder of Rhode Island colony ; born in Wales. WILLIS, Nathaniel Parker, 1806-67, Am. journalist and poet. WILMOT, David, 1814-68, Am. statesman. (Wihnot Proviso.) WILSON, Henry (original name Jeremiah Jones Colbath), 1812-75, Am. politician ; eighteenth vice-president. WISEMAN, Nicholas, 1802-65, Eng. cardi- nal. 288 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. WITTEKIND, . . . .-807, Saxon warrior; con- quered by Charlemagne. WOLFE, James, 1726-59, Eng. general ; fell at Quebec. WOLSEY, Thomas, 1471-1530, Eng. cardi- nal and statesman ; prime minister of Henrv Vm. ; deposed 1529. WOOD, Mrs. Henry, 1820-87, Eng. novelist. WOODWORTH, Samuel, 1785-1842, Am. poet. WORCESTER, Edward Somerset, Marquis of, 1601 ?-67, Eng. nobleman ; one of the invent- ors of the steam engine. WORCESTER, Joseph Emerson, 1734-1866, Am. lexicographer. WORDSWORTH, William, 1770-1850, Eng. poet. WRANGELL, Ferdinand Petrovitch von, Baron, 17957-1870, Russian explorer. Wren, Sir Christopher, 1632-1723, Eng ar- chitect. (St. Paul's Cathedral, London.) WYCLIFFE (or Wickliffe) John de, 1324?- 84, Eng. reformer. XANTIPPE, the wife of Socrates, notorious for bad temper, but credited by her husband with many domestic virtues. XAVIER, Francis, Saint, 1506-52, Sp. Jes- uit missionary to India and Japan. XENOPHON, 4457-355? B. C., Athenian his- torian and general. XEKES, Francisco de, 15047-70, Sp. histo- rian with Pizarro. XERXES (the Great), . . . .-465 B. C., king of Persia ; invaded Greece, but defeated at Salamis. XIMENES DE CISNEROS, Francisco (Cardinal Ximenes), 1436-1517, Sp. prelate and states- man ; published Polyglot Bible. YALE, Elihu, 1648-1721, patron of Yale College. YORK, Edmund Plantagenet, first Duke of, 1341-1402, founder of the house of York. ZALEtJCU8,fl. seventh century B. C.,Gr. leg- islator and reformer ; first to make a written code of laws. ZAMOJSKI, John Sarius, 1541-1605, Polish general, statesman, and scholar. ZECHARIAH, fl. sixth century B. C., Hebrew prophet. ZENO (or Zenon), 3557-307? B. C., Gr. philosopher ; founder of Stoic school. ZENOBIA, Septima, . . . .-275, queen of Palmyra. ZEPHANIAH, Hebrew prophet ; flourished in the reign of Josiah. ZIMMERMAKN, Johann Georg von, 1728-95, Swiss physician and philosopher. ZINZENDORF, Nikolaus Ludwig von, Count, 1700-60, Ger. theologian. ZISKA, John, of Trocznow, 1360-1424, Bo- hemian general and leader of the Hussites. ZOEGA, Georg, 1755-1809, Danish archaeol- ogist. ZOROASTER, fl. 500 B. C., Persian philoso- pher and founder of the Magian religion. ZSCHOKKE, Johann Heinrich Daniel, 1771- 1848, Ger. author. ZWINGLI, Ulrich, 1484-1531, Swiss re- former ; killed in battle. DERIVATIONS AND FICTITIOUS NAMES OF STATES AND TERRITORIES. ALABAMA (Ala.). The name is of Indian origin, signifying " Here we rest." ARIZONA (Ariz.). An Indian word, mean- ing " sand hills." ARKANSAS (Ark.). French and Indian words, signifying " Bow of Smoky Waters." The fictitious name of the state is " Bear State," from the number of these animals formerly found there. CALIFORNIA (Cal.). From Spanish words, meaning " hot furnace." The fictitious name is "The Golden State." COLORADO (Colo.). Spanish word, mean- ing " colored." CONNECTICUT (Conn.). An Indian name, signifying " The long river. " The nicknames are, "Freestone State," "Nutmeg State," and " Land of Steady Habits." DAKOTA (Dak.) Indian word, meaning "allied." DELAWARE (Del.). Named in honor of Lord De La War. It is called " The Diamond State," from its small size and its intrinsic worth; also "Blue Hen State." FLORIDA (Fla.). From the Spanish, mean- ing " flowery " ; so called from the abundance of flowers, and the day (Easter Sunday) upon which it was discovered. From its shape it is sometimes called " The Peninsular State." GEORGIA (Ga.). Named in honor of King George II. of England. The nickname is the "Empire State of the South." ILLINOIS (HI.). An Indian word, signify- ing " Tribe of men." The sobriquet is " Prai- rie State " ; also, " Sucker State." INDIANA (Ind.). So called from the In- dians. The original meaning of the word In- dia is " river." The nickname is " The Hoo- sier State." IOWA (la.). An Indian word, meaning " The Sleepy Ones." The fictitious name is " The Hawkeye State." HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 269 KANSAS (Kan.) Indian word, signifying "Smoky Water." The sobriquet is "Gar- den of the West." KENTUCKY (Ky.) Indian name signifying " The Dark and Bloody Ground. " The nick- name is " The Corn-Cracker State." LOUISIANA (La.) Named in honor of King Louis XIV. of France. " The Creole State." MAINE (Me.). So called from Maine in France. " The Pine Tree State." MARYLAND (Md.). Named in honor of Queen Henrietta Maria of England. MASSACHUSETTs(Mass.). An Indian name, signifying " Blue Hills." The fanciful name is "The Bay State." MICHIGAN (Mich.). Indian word, mean- ing " The Lake Country." It is nicknamed "The Lake State"; also "The Wolverine State." MINNESOTA (Minn.). From Indian words meaning " Cloudy Water." It is called " The Gopher State." MISSISSIPPI (Miss.). Indian word for " Father of Waters." It is nicknamed " The Bayou State." MISSOURI (Mo.). Indian word, meaning " Muddy Water." MONTANA (Mont.) From the Spanish, meaning " Mountain Land." NEBRASKA (Neb.) An Indian word, mean- ing " Shallow River." NEVADA (Nev.) Spanish word, signify- ing "Snow-clad." The fictitious name is "The Sage Hen State." NEW HAMPSHIRE (N. H.). Named from Hampshire county, Eng. The sobriquet is "The Granite State." NEW JERSEY (N. J.). Named for the Isle of Jersey. The sobriquet is " The Jersey Blue." NEW MEXICO (N. M.) Spanish. Named from the country of Mexico, meaning " The Place of Aztec, God of War." NEW YORK (N. Y.). Named in honor of the Duke of York and Albany. It is called "The Excelsior State" and "The Empire State." NORTH CAROLINA (N. C.) Named, with South Carolina, in honor of Charles II. of England. ' ' The Old North State, " " The Tar State," and " The Turpentine State." OHIO. An Indian word, signifying " Beau- tiful." Called " The Buckeye State." OKLAHOMA (Okl.). Signifies in Cherokee " Home of the Red Man." OREGON (Ore.). Signifies "River of the West." PENNSYLVANiA(Pa.). "Penn's Woodland" is the signification. The sobriquet is " The Keystone State." RHODE ISLAND (R. I.) Named from the Isle of Rhodes, in the Mediterranean. Rhodes signifies a "rose." It is nicknamed " Little Rhody." SOUTH CAROLINA (S. C.) Named in the same manner as North Carolina, which see. The sobriquet is " The Palmetto State." TENNESSEE (Tenn.) Derived from Indian words signifying "River of the Big Bend." It is nicknamed " The Big Bend State." TEXAS (Tex.). Spanish ; said to signify "Friends." It is nicknamed "The Lone Star State." UTAH Named from the Utes, or Utah Indians. VERMONT (Vt.). From the French, signi- fying "Green Mountain." It is called the " Green Mountain State." VIRGINIA (Va.). Named for Elizabeth, Queen of England the "Virgin Queen." It is nicknamed " The Mother of States," also "The Old Dominion." WASHINGTON .(W.) Named for President Washington. WEST VIRGINIA (W. Va.) It is nick- named the " Panhandle State." WISCONSIN (Wis.) Named from its prin- cipal river, and that from the French, mean- ing " flowing westward. ' ' The fictitious name is " The Badger State." WYOMING (Wyo.). An Indian term, mean, ing " large plains." THE SPANISH AMERICAN WAR. War began Thursday, April 21, 1898, 7.00 A. M. Peace Protocol signed Friday, August 12, 1898, 4.23 P. M. Treaty of Peace signed December 10, 1898. CHRONOLOGICAL RECORD. January 1-12. The North Atlantic Squad- ron assembled in the neighborhood of Dry Tortugas, Gulf of Mexico. January 15-20. Hostile demonstrations at Havana by Spanish volunteers against Ameri- cans caused the Governor-General to place a guard around the United States Consulate. January 25. The battle-ship Maine arrived at Havana on a friendly visit. February 8. A letter by Minister De Lome, in which he wrote disparagingly of President McKinley, was published. On learning of the exposure the Minister requested his govern- ment to accept his resignation. February 9. The United States Senate dis- cussed intervention in Cuba. February 14. Resolutions requesting , the President to transmit information relative to THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. the situation in Cuba were adopted by Con- gress. February 14. Sefior Luis Polo y Bernabe was appointed Spanish Minister to the United States to succeed Seilor De Lome. February 15. The battle-ship Maine was blown up in the harbor of Havana by a float- ing mine ; 260 American lives were destroyed. February 16. Spain officially expressed re- gret for the Maine " incident." February 17. A naval court of inquiry into the cause of the destruction of the Maine was appointed by the United States Government. February 18-25. The Spanish cruiser Viz- caya visited New York harbor. On the last date she sailed for Havana. February 20. The Court of Inquiry began its session in Havana. February 22. The cruiser Montgomery pro- ceeded to Havana. March 5. Spain asked for the recall of Consul-General Lee, which was promptly re- fused by the United States Government. March 7. A bill appropriating $50,000,000 for the national defense was introduced in the House of Representatives. It passed the House March 8 and the Senate March 9, and was signed by the President. March 11. The War Department began the mobilization of the army. March 12. The battle-ship Oregon sailed from San Francisco to join the Atlantic squad- ron. March 12. Armistice was offered by Spain to the Cuban insurgents. March 14. The Spanish fleet sailed from Cadiz for the Canary Islands. March 14. Senator Proctor's report on Span- ish atrocities in Cuba was published. March 19. The Maine Court of Inquiry completed its labors. Its report was deliv- ered to the President March 25, and trans- mitted by him to Congress March 28. March 25. Commodore Schley took com- mand of the Flying Squadron in Hampton Roads. March 30. The President requested per- mission of Spain to relieve the reconcentrados, which was granted. April 2. The Spanish fleet arrived at the Cape de Verde Islands. April 4. The pope appealed to Spain in the interests of peace. April 5. United States consuls in Cuba were recalled. April 7. The diplomatic representatives of the great powers of Europe waited on the Pres- ident with a plea for peace. April 9. Consul-General Lee with many Americana departed from Havana. April 1 1 . The President sent a message tc Congress outlining the situation, declaring that intervention was necessary, advising against the recognition of the Cuban Government, and requesting Congress to take action. April 19. Congress adopted resolutions de- claring Cuba independent and directing the President to use the forces of the United States to put an end to Spanish authority in Cuba. April 20. The president signed the resolu- tions of Congress. An ultimatum to Spain was cabled to Minister Woodford. April 20. The Spanish Cortes met and re- ceived a warlike message from the Queen- Regent. April 21. The Spanish Government smt Minister Woodford his passports, thus begin- ning the war. April 21. Congress passed an act for in- creasing the military establishment. April 21. Great Britain notified Spain that coal was contraband of war. April 22. Proclamation to the neutral pow- ers announcing war was issued by the President. April 22. Admiral Sampson's fleet sailed from Key West. The blockade of Cuban ports began. April 22. The gunboat Nashville captured the Spanish ship Buena Ventura, the first prize of the war. April 23. The President issued a call for 125,000 volunteers. April 24. Great Britain issued a procla- mation of neutrality and was followed subse- quently by the other powers, except Germany. April 24. Spain formally declared that war existed with the United States. April 25. Congress passed an act declaring that war had existed since April 21. April 25. Commodore Dewey's fleet sailed from Hong Kong for the Philippines. April 26. Congress passed an act for the increase of the regular army. April 27. Batteries at Matanzas were bom- barded. April 30. Admiral Cervera's fleet left the Cape de Verde Islands for the West Indies. May 1. Commodore Dewey destroyed the Spanish fleet at Manila. American loss, six men slightly wounded. May 5-7. Riots in Spain. May 11. Commodore Dewey was made a rear-admiral. May 11. Attack on Cienfuegos and Carde- nas. Ensign Bagley and four men on the tor- pedo-boat Winslow were killed. May 11. Admiral Cervera's fleet appeared off Martinique. May 12. Admiral Sampson bombarded San Juan de Porto Rico HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 271 May 13. The Flying Squadron left Hamp- ton Roads for Eastern Cuba, via Key West. May 18. A new Spanish Ministry under Senor Sagasta came into office. May 19. Admiral Cervera's fleet arrived in ihe harbor of Santiago de Cuba. May 22. The cruiser Charleston sailed from San Francisco for Manila. May 24. The battle-ship Oregon reached Jupiter Inlet, Florida. May 25. The President issued a second call for volunteers, the number being 75,000. May 25. The first Manila expedition from San Francisco started. May 30. Admiral Sampson's fleet arrived at Santiago from Porto Rico. May 31. Forts at the entrance of Santiago Harbor were bombarded. June 3. Lieutenant Hobson sank the Mer- rimac in the entrance to Santiago Harbor. June 4. Captain Gridley, of the Olympia, died at Kobe, Japan. June 6. Spanish cruiser Reina Mercedes was sunk by American navy at Santiago. June 10. War Revenue bill was finally passed by Congress. It was signed by the President, June 13. June 11. Marines landed at Guantanamo, and skirmished with the Spaniards the follow- ing day. June 12-14. General Shafter's army of invasion, 16,000 strong, embarked at Key West for Santiago. June 14-15. There was fighting between marines and Spaniards at Guantanamo Bay and a bombardment of the fort at Caimanera by warships. June 15. Admiral Camara's fleet sailed from Cadiz for the Suez Canal. June 20-22. General Shafter's army landed at Daiquiri ; one killed, four wounded. June 2 1 . The Ladrone Islands were captured. June 22. The auxiliary cruiser, St. Paul, repulsed a Spanish torpedo-boat attack off San Juan, Porto Rico. June 24. Juragua was captured. The Span- iards were defeated at Las Guasimas. Capron and Fish were killed. June 26. Admiral Camara's fleet reached Port Said. June 28. General Merritt departed for Manila. July 1-2. The Spanish earthworks at El Caney and San Juan, Santiago, were carried by assault, with heavy loss, in which the Rough Riders and the Seventy-first New York participated. July 3. Admiral Cervera's fleet, attempting to escape from Santiago, was destroyed by the American war vessels. July 3. The surrender of Santiago was de- manded. July 6. Hobson and his comrades were ex- changed. July 8. Admiral Dewey's vessels took possession of Isla Grande in Subig Bay, near Manila, and the German gunboat Irene, which had been interfering, withdrew. July 8. Admiral Camara started to return through the Suez Canal to Spain. He reached Cadiz, July 29. July 10. Bombardment of Santiago was re- sumed. July 1 1 . General Miles arrived at American headquarters in Cuba. July 13. Admiral Cervera and captured Spanish prisoners arrived at Portsmouth, N. H. July 17. Santiago surrendered. July 20. General Leonard Wood was ap- pointed Military Governor of Santiago. July 21. Last naval engagement on the coast of Cuba. Four United States warships entered the harbor of Nipe, and after a furious bombardment took possession of that port. July 25. United States Army under Gen- eral Miles landed at Guanica, Porto Rico. The town surrendered, and Ponce followed, July 28. July 26. The Spanish government, through French Ambassador Cambon, asked for terms of peace. July 29. General Merritt landed at Cavite", Manila Harbor. July 30. The President, through the French Ambassador, stated the American terms. July 31 . The Americans repulsed the Span- iards, with loss on both sides, at Mai ate, near Manila. August 7. The Rough Riders left Santiago for Montauk Point, L. I. August 9. General Ernst defeated a Span- ish force at Coamo, Porto Rico. August 9. Spain formally accepted the President's terms of peace. August 12. The peace protocol was signed and an armistice was proclaimed. The block- ade of Cuba was raised. August 13. Manila surrendered to the Amer- ican forces after a short land fight and bon> bardment by the fleet. August 20. Imposing naval demonstration in the harbor of New York. The battleships Iowa, Indiana, Massachusetts, Oregon, and Texas, and cruisers New York and Brooklyn, amid a great popular ovation, steamed up the Hudson river to Grant's Tomb and saluted. August 30. General Merritt sailed from Manila for Paris to attend the Peace Confer- ence. September 9. United States Peace Com- 272 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. missioners were ap t ointed. They sailed for France, September 1 T . September 10. The United States Cuban Evacuation Commissioners arrived at Havana. September 13. Admiral Cervera and other Spanish naval officers sailed for Spain. September 18. Spanish Peace Commission- ers were announced. September 20. The evacuation of Porto Rico by the Spaniards began. September 24. A commission appointed by the President to investigate the conduct of the War Department, began its sessions at Wash- ington. October 1. The conferences of the Peace Commissioners began in Paris. October 12. The battleships Oregon and Iowa sailed from New York for Manila. October 18. Peace Jubilee celebration at Chicago. October 18. The American army and navy took formal possession of the island of Porto Rico at San Juan. October 24. Time limit for the evacuation of Cuba by the Spaniards was extended to January 1, 1899. October 27. After a long and earnest con- tention the Spanish Peace Commissioners ac- cepted the American ultimatum not to assume the Spanish Cuban debt. October 31. The United States Peace Com- missioners presented the demand of the United States for the Philippines. November 1 . The captured cruiser Infanta Maria Teresa was abandoned in a gale off San Salvador. November 7. The Cuban Assembly was organized at Santa Cruz del Sur. Domingo Mendez Capote was elected president. December 10. The Treaty of Peace was signed at Paris at 8.45 o'clock P. M. Casualties in the Navy During the War. Lost on the Maine preceding the war, 2 officers and 257 men. Manila, May 1, 7 wounded. Cienfuegos, May 11, 1 killed, 11 wounded. Cardenas, May 11, 5 killed, 3 wounded. San Juan, May 12, 1 killed, 7 wounded. Guantanamo, June 11-20, 6 killed, 16 wounded. Santiago, June 22, 1 killed, 9 wounded. Santiago, July 3,1 killed, 1 wounded. On the Yankee, June 13, 1 wounded. On the the Eagle, July 12, 1 wounded. On the Ban- croft, July 2, 1 killed. On the Amphitrite, August 7, 1 killed. Total for the war, 19 killed and 48 wounded, exclusive of the loss on the Maine. In addition to the above, 1 man died of disease, and 6 were invalided. Only 18 were killed in battle. The average strength of the navy and marine corps together was 26,- 102 for the 114 davs of hostilities. The total deaths from disease were 56, while 29 died from injuries received in battle. Casualties in the Army During the War. Losses of Santiago Campaign Killed : Officers, 23 ; men, 237. Wounded : Officers, 99; men, 1,332. Losses of Porto Rico Campaign Killed : Officers, ; men, 3. Wounded : Officers, 4 ; men, 36. Losses of Manila Campaign Killed : Offi- cers, ; men, 17. Wounded : Officers 10 ; men, 96. Total losses from all causes up to October 1, 1898 Killed: Officers, 33; men, 257. Wounded : Officers, 4 ; men, 61. Died of dis- ease : Officers, 80 ; men, 2,485. Total of 107 officers and 2,803 men ; or a percentage of 159-1,000, being an aggregate of 2,910 out of a total of 274,717 officers and men, the total of the war. Died in Camps in the United States and Cuba, and at Sea. Camp Thomas 245 ; Camp Cuba Libre, 246 ; Tampa, Fla. 56 ; Cuba (of disease only), 427 ; at sea, 87 Camp Wikoff, 257 ; Manila, 63 ; Porto Rico 137 ; Camp Wheeler, 35 ; Camp Hamilton 29 ; Camp Alger, 107 ; Camp Meade, 64 Camp Merritt, 139 ; Camp Poland, 23 ; Camp Shipp, 12 ; other camps, 378. Arms Captured at Santiago. Mauser rifles, 16,902 ; Argent rifles, 872 ; Remington rifles, 6,118 ; Mauser carbines, 833 ; Argent carbines, 84 ; Remington carbines, 330 ; re- volvers, 75. Ruled cannon Bronze, 30 ; cast iron, 10; steel, 8; smooth bore and obsolete, 44 ; mortars, 5. Projectiles 3,551 solid shot, 437 shrapnel, 2,577 shells. Small-arm am- munition Mauser,! ,471 ,200 rounds ; Argent, 1,500,000 rounds; others, 1,680,000 rounds. Spanish Vessels Captured or De- stroyed by the Navy. By Admiral Samp- son's Squadron, July 3 Cristobal Colon, Vizcaya, Maria Teresa, Admiral Oquendo, all armored cruisers; torpedo-boat destroyers Furor and Plutou. Destroyed July 18 Gunboats Maria Pon- ton, Delgado Perado, Jos6 Garcia, Cuba, and Espanola, all burned at Manzanillo ; transport Gloria sunk. By Admiral Dewey's Squadron, May 1 and subsequently Cruisers Reina Cristina, Cas- tilla, Ulloa, Tsla de Cuba, General Lozo ; gun- boats Duero, Correo, Velasco, Mindano, and one transport on May 1. Subsequently cap- tured Torpedo boat Barcelow; gunboats Cal-. lao, Leyte, Manila, and Mindanao. Vessels captured in Cuban waters all gun- boats of about 300 tons, Hernan Cortez, Pi- zarro, Vasco Nufiez, Diego Valasquez, Alerta, Ardilla, Tradera, Flecha, Ligera, Satellite, HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 273 Margarit, Vigia, General Blanco, Intrepida, and Cauto. The Alvarado was captured at Santiago. The Sandoval was sunk in Guan- tanamo Harbor, but was raised by Commander McCalla. DECISIVE BATTLES OF HIS- TORY. ACTIUM, B. C. 31. The combined fleets of Antony and Cleopatra defeated by Octavius, and imperialism established in the person of Octavius. PHILIPPI, B. C. 42. Brutus and Cassius defeated by Octavius and Antony. The fate of the Republic decided. METAURUS, B. C. 207. The Carthaginians under Hasdrubul were defeated by the Romans under Caius and Marcus Livius. ARBELA, B. C. 331. The Persians defeated by the Macedonians and Greeks under Alexan- der the Great. End of the Persian empire. SYRACUSE, B. C. 414. The Athenians de- feated by the Syracusans and their allies, the Spartans, under Gylippus. MARATHON, B. C. 490. The Athenians under Miltiades defeated the Persians under Datis. Free government preserved. WixFELD-LiPPE, A. D. 9. Teutonic inde- pendence established by the defeat of the Ro- man legions under Varus at the hands of the Germans under Arminius (Hermann.) CHALONS, A. D. 451. The Huns under At- tila, called the "Scourge of God," defeated by the confederate armies of Romans and Vis- igoths. TOURS, A. D. 732. The Saracens defeated by Charles Martel and Christendom rescued from Islam. HASTINGS, A. D. 1066. Harold, command- ing the English army, defeated by William the Conqueror, and a new regime established in England by the Normans. SIEGE OF ORLEANS, A. D. 1429. The Eng- lish defeated by the French under Joan of Arc. DEFEAT OF THE SPANISH ARMADA, A. D. 1588. England saved from Spanish invasion. LUTZEN, A. D. 1632. Decided the relig- ious liberties of Germany. Gustavus Adolphus killed. BLENHEIM, A. D. 1704. The French and Bavarians under Marshal Tallard defeated by the English and their allies under Marlborough. PULTOWA, A. D. 1709. Charles XII. of Sweden defeated by the Russians under Peter the Great. SARATOGA, A. D. 1777. Critical battle of the American War of Independence. The English defeated by the Americans under Gen- eral Gates. VALMT. A. D. 1792. An invading army of Prussians, Austrians, and Hessians under the Duke of Brunswick, defeated by the French under Kellermann. The first success of the Republic against foreigners. TRAFALGAR. On the 21st of October, A. D. 1805, the great naval battle of Trafalgar was fought. The English defeated the French and destroyed Napoleon's hopes to successfully invade England. WATERLOO, A. D. 1815. The French un- der Napoleon defeated by the allied armies of Russia, Austria, Prussia, and England un- der Wellington. SIEGE OF SEBASTOPOL, A. D. 1854-5. The Russians succumbed to the beleaguering armies of England, France, and Turkey, and the re- sult was delay in the expansion of the Russian Empire. GETTYSBURG, July, A. D. 1863. The de- ciding battle of the war for the Union. The Confederates under General Lee defeated by the Union forces under Meade. SEDAN, A. D. 1870. The decisive battle of the Franco-German war. RECENT DESPERATE WARS. Indian Mutiny. General disaffection from a variety of real or supposed grievances had been for a long time smoldering amongst the Sepoys, who were the flower of the British East India Company's forces, but when a re- port spread that cartridges smeared with cow and pork fat were to be used by the native soldiers, open mutiny, attended with great cruelty, broke out. The war, which may be said to have commenced in March, 1857, raged until June, 1858. It was marked by a suc- cession of romantic, pathetic, and heroic inci- dents the siege of Delhi, the massacre of Cawnpore, the relief and capture of Lucknow but was suppressed in the latter year, when the East India Company ceased to exist, and the government of India was assumed by the British crown. A cruel vengeance was taken on the mutineers, hundreds of whom were strung together and blown to pieces at the mouths of cannon. The Abyssinian War arose out of the imprisonment of Consul Capt. C. Cameron, Rev. H. Stern, a missionary, and others by King Theodore, in consequence of a supposed slight by the British government, 1864. Mr. Rassam was sent on a mission to Abyssinia for their release. On the refusal of the king to surrender the prisoners, an English army, some 12,000 strong, under Sir Robert (after- wards Lord) Napier, defeated the Abyssinian forces at Arogee, April 10, 1868, and three days later stormed the fortress of ITagclala. In consequence of this King Theodore com- 274 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS, mitted suicide. The prisoners were released, and the war terminated. American Civil War. This began April 13, 1861, with the capture of Fort Sumter, Charleston, by the Confederate forces. The North prepared for the contest with energy, and blockaded the Southern ports. Through- out the war the Confederates chiefly acted up- on the defensive, the Federals or Northern forces, being the attacking party, and possess- ing the advantage of superior forces, money, and war material. The principal generals of the South were Lee, "Stonewall" Jackson, Hood, Albert Sidney Johnston, Longstreet, Bragg, Beauregard, Stuart, Joseph E. Johns- ton ; and of the North, Grant, Sherman, Sher- idan, McClellan, Thomas, Rosecrans, Pope, Butler, Halleck, Baker, Burnside, Fre'mont, Meade, Banks, and McDowell. In the com- paignof 1861 the advantage was chiefly on the side of the Confederates, who were victorious at Bull Run (Manassas, Va.) and Ball's Bluff, Va. (October 21), but suffered a reverse at Springfield, Mo. (Aug. 10), and lost Fort Hat- teras, N. C., captured by Butler (August 29). During 1862 the Confederates were successful at Bull Run (August 20) and in Virginia (June) at Fredericksburg, Va. (Dec. 10-15), but sustained severe defeats at Mill Springs, Ky. (January 19), Pea Ridge, Ark. (March 6-8), Winchester, Va. (March 23), Williams- burgh, Va. Great battles were fought at Shi- loh, Tenn. (April 7), Fair Oaks, Va. (May 31, June 1), on the Chickahominy (June 25- July 1) and Antietam Creek, Md. (September 17), in none of which either party could claim a victory ; but the battle of Antietam Creek obliged Lee to abandon his invasion of the North. During this year the naval operations of the Federals were generally successful, Ad- miral Farragut running past the forts of the Mississippi and seizing New Orleans (May). The memorable conflict between the " Merri- mac " (Confederate) and the Federal " Moni- tor " resulted (March 9) in the repulse of the former, the " Merrimac" being burned by the Confederates on the capture of their arsenal at Norfolk, Va. (May 11). The war during 1803 was decidedly in favor of the Federal forces, although the Confederates, under " Stonewall " Jackson, defeated Hooker at Chancellorsville (May 2-4), Jackson subsequently 'dying from his wounds (May 10), and Lee invaded Mary- land and Pennsylvania. At Gettysburg, Pa. (July 1-3), Lee was defeated, and retreated into Virginia, while at Chattanooga, Tenn. (Nov. 24, 25), the Confederates, under Bragg, sustained a severe repulse. Grant made a suc- cessful campaign in Tennessee, gaining sev- eral battles and capturing Vicksburg, Miss., which, after a gallant defense, surrendered (July 4). In August, the siege of Charleston began, and Fort Sumter was destroyed (Au- gust 21, 22), but the city was not taken until 1865 (February 18). With the appointment of Grant as commander-in-chief, in the early part of 1864 (March 3), and his vigorous reor- ganization of the army, the power of the North was greatly strengthened. Taking the com- mand of the army of the Potomac, Grant op- posed the Confederates under Lee, while Sher- man operated against Joseph E. Johnston. In the Virginian campaign, after two days' severe fighting (May 3-6) at the Wilderness, the re- sult was indecisive, and Grant's attempt to cut off Lee's army from Richmond was unsuccess- ful. At Atlanta, Ga., Sherman, in three bat- tles (July 20, 22, 28), defeated the Confeder- ates under Hood. In the Shenandoah valley the Federals were victorious in several engage- ments (August), and under Sheridan at Win- chester (September 9), and Cedar Craek (Oc- tober 19). In November General Sherman marched through Georgia to Savannah, which was entered December 21, while at Nashville, Tenn., the Confederates under Hood were de- feated (December 14-16) by the Federals un- der Thomas. Among the incidents of this year were the sinking (June 19) by the Fed- eral corvette "Kearsarge " of the Confederate steamer "Alabama," commanded by Captain Semmes, which had caused great devastation among the Federal shipping, and the destruc- tion (August 5), by Admiral Farragut, of the Confederate flotilla at Mobile. The war closed in 1865 by the defeat of Lee at Five Forks, Va. (March 31-April 2), by Sheridan, who again defeated Lee at Sailor's Creek (April 6). Lee subsequently surrendered (April 9) his army to Grant, who had occupied Richmond, the capital of the Confederate States (April 2) on its evacuation by the Southern forces. The other Confederate armies soon afterwards sur- rendered. An amnesty, with certain limita- tions, was proclaimed (May 29) by President Andrew Johnson (1865-69), who, as vice- president, succeeded Abraham Lincoln, assas- sinated in Ford's Theater, Washington, by J. Wilkes Booth (April 14), Lincoln having but newly entered on his second term of office. Russo-Turkish Wars. Of the many wars between the Muscovite and Mohamme- dan powers, we cite the two latest: (1) The first arose from a demand on the part of Nich- olas, the Czar of Russia, of a protectorate over the Greek Christians in Turkey. The Sultan refused the demand, and appealed to his allies. Russia declared war against Tur- key, November 1, 1853. England and France declared war against Russia. March 27, 28, HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 275 1854. Sardinia joined the allies, January 26, 1855. Among the great battles of this war were Alma (September 20, 1854), Balaklava (October 25, 1854), during which occurredthe memorable "Charge of the Six Hundred." Inkerman (November 5, 1854), Tchernaya (August 16, 1855), in all of which the Russians were defeated. The great event of the war was the siege of Sebastopol (commenced Octo- ber 17, 1854), which fell September 8, 1855. The war which is usually termed the Crimean war, was ended by the treaty of peace con- cluded at Paris, March 30, 1856. One of the articles of this treaty was that the Christians of Turkey, without any preference to Russia, should have the protection of all the Powers concerned in the treaty. (2) The second war arose (1877-8) from substantially the same cause as the war of 1853-6, viz., the desire of Russia to protect the Greek Christians of Tur- key. By a protocol of March 31, 1877, the Great Powers agreed to see the promised re- forms of Turkey carried out. This protocol was repudiated by Turkey, and war was de- clared by Russia against Turkey, April 24. Among the more prominent events of this war were General Gourko's march through the Bal- kans (July 13), his defeat by Suleiman Pasha at Eski Sagra (July 30), and Suleiman Pasha's desperate, but fruitless, attempt to gain the Schipka Pass, held by General Gourko ; the fall of Kars (November 18), and of Plevna (December 10), and Suleiman Pasha's defeat by Skobeloff and Radetsky at Senova (Janu- ary 9, 1878), the battle which virtually ended the war. Treaty of San Stefano (March 3), modified by treaty of Berlin (July 13), by which Bulgaria was created an automatic and tributary principality, Servia and Roumania were declared independent, and Bosnia and Herzegovina were ordered to be occupied and administered by Austria. Zulu War (1879). Cetewayo, king of Zululand, became embroiled with the British, on the annexation by the latter of the Trans- vaal and the British, under Lord Chelmsford, crossed the Tugela, and entered Zululand (January 12). They suffered a terrible re- verse at Isandhlwana (January 22), with a loss of eight hundred men, and, in spite of the heroic defense of Rorke's Drift (January 22), had to retreat. Eventually reinforcements ar- rived, and the Zulus were defeated at Ging- hilono (April 2), and Ulundi (July 4). Cete- wayo was captured (August 28), and a dis- patch from Sir Garnet Wolseley (September 3) announced the end of the war. Cetewayo died (February 8, 1884), the New Repub- lic was formed by a party of Transvaal Boers (1886-87), and the annexation of the remain- der of Zululand as a British possession was proclaimed (June 21, 1887). Trouble subse- quently arose, and several Zulu chiefs were convicted of high treason and sentenced to various terms of imprisonment (1888-9). -To- wards the end of 1891, the resolution of the colonial authorities to impose Zibebu as chief upon the northern tribes, was protested against by Miss Colenso as likely to lead to further troubles in Zululand. Franco-German War. The friction between France and Prussia, arising from the proposed cession of Luxembourg, became ac- centuated by the demand of France that the Crown of Spain, offered (1870) to Prince Leo- pold of Hohenzollern, should not be accepted by that Prince. On the refusal of Prussia to accede to this request, war was declared by France (July 19, 1870). The Prussian forces, about 640,000 strong, in which were associated the states of the North and South German Con- federation, were divided into four armies, the first, that of the North, commanded by General Vogel von Falkenstein ; the second, that of the Center, commanded by General Steinmetz ; the third, that of the Right, under Prince Fred- erick Charles, and the fourth, that of the Left, led by the Crown Prince, the King (William) of Prussia being commander-in-chief, with General Von Moltke as head of the staff. The whole army was in the highest state of prepa- ration and efficiency. The French army, about 300,000 strong, on the other hand, badly organized and practically unprepared for the contest, was formed into six army corps, respectively commanded by Generals Frossard, De Failly, Bazaine, Mac- Mahon, Ladnierault and Marshal Canrobert. The Emperor, nominally commander-in-chief, had as his second in command, General Le Bceuf, to whom, later, Marshal Bazaine suc- ceeded. The war resulted in an almost un- broken series of successes for the Germans. After victories at Woerth and Forbach (both on August 6), the Germans invested the for- tress of Strasburg (August 10 capitulated September 28), and Mtt down before Metz, which capitulated (October 27), after the bat- tles of Longueville (August 14), Mars La Tour (August 16), Gravelotte or R6zonville (August 18), and unsuccessful attempts at a sortie by Marshal Bazaine (August 26 and October 6). At Sedan the French under Marshal MacMa- hon were hopelessly beaten (September 1), and the Emperor surrendered to the Prussian king (September 2), and was deported as pris- oner to Wilhelmshohe (Cassel). At Paris (September 4) the deposition of the Imperial dynasty was declared, and the establishment of ft Republic proclaimed by M. Gambetta and 276 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. other members of the Left in the Legislative Assembly. A government of defense was pro- claimed, with General Trochu as President, M. Gambetta as Minister of the Interior, M. Jules Favre (Foreign), General Le Flo (War). The Empress Eug6nie fled from Paris (Septem- ber 4), and settled at Chiselhurst. Negotia- tions for peace between M. Favre and Count Bismarck ended in failure (September 24), and a proclamation from the Government at Tours was issued calling upon the people ' ' to fight to the bitter end." The siege of Paris was commenced by the Germans (September 15), and five days later the troops at Versailles surrendered, and the Crown Prince of Prussia occupied the place. A levee en masse of all under twenty-five years of age was ordered by the Government (Sep- tember 23) , and all Frenchmen between twenty and twenty-five years were prohibited (Septem- ber 26) leaving France, those between twenty- one and forty years being organized as a na- tional garde mobile. M. Gambetta, escaping by means of a balloon from the beleaguered city (October 7), was appointed by the government at Tours, Minister of War. An attempt on the part of the Red Repub- licans at Paris, headed by Blanqui, L6dru-Rol- lin, and others to establish a Commune in that city, was successfully defeated (October 14). The news of the capitulation of Metz caused riots at Paris (October 31). As the result of a plebiscite to confirm the powers of the Gov- ernment of Defense, the votes recorded were 557,976 for, 62,638 against. The successes of the German arms continued, the army of the Loire was defeated by the Grand Duke of Mecklenburg (November 17), the fortresses of Verdun (November 8) and Thionville (Novem- ber 27) capitulated. The army of the Loire un- der General Chanzy was again attacked and de- feated at Beaugency (December 8). After various battles, the army of the Loire, fighting and retreating, was defeated by Prince Fred- erick Charles at Le Mans (January 11, 1871), and near Vosges (January 15, 16). The army under General de Paladines, in- trenched at Orleans, suffered defeat by Prince Frederick Charles (December 4), and Orleans surrendered, Rouen being two days later oc- cupied by General Manteuffel, who engaged the army of the North under General Faid- herbe atPointe a Noyelles (December 23), and at Bapaume (January 2, 3, 1871), the French retreating in each case. General Bourbaki was also defeated by the German general Von Werder, near Belfort (January 15-17), and General Von Goeben gained a victory over the French under Faidherbe at St. Quentin (Janu- ary 1 9) . After gallant but unsuccessful sorties from Paris by Generals Trochu and Ducrot (November 20 and January 21), the city, which had been bombarded, capitulated (Jan- uary 28) . Following the fall of Paris, General Bourbaki's army was defeated (January 30- February 1) by the Germans under Genera* Manteuffel, and driven across the frontier into Switzerland. The fortress of Belfort capitu- lated (February 16) with military honors after a long defense. An armistice took place pre- paratory to negotiations for peace. On the res- ignation of M. Gambetta a National Assembly was elected (February 8) of which M. Gr6vy was chosen president, M. Thiers becoming head of the executive power. The French Govern- ment was recognized by the chief European powers (February 18), and (February 26) preliminaries of peace were signed by MM. Thiers and Favre and fifteen delegates of the National Assembly on the part of France, and Count Bismarck on the part of Germany. By this France was to cede certain parts of Lor- raine, including Metz and Thionville and Alsace, excluding Belfort. In addition, five milliards of francs ($1,000,000,000) were to I be paid as war indemnity to Germany ; certain departments to be occupied by German troops until this was fully discharged. The treaty, signed February 26, was accepted by the National Assembly sitting at Bordeaux (March ; 1), by 546 votes to 107, at the same time unanimously confirming the fall of the Em- pire. The Germans, after occupying Paris for forty-eight hours (March 1-3), withdrew from Versailles (March 12). A Peace Conference met at Brussels (March 28), and at Frankfort a definite treaty of peace was signed (May 10), and ratified by the French Assembly (May 21). The last installment of the indemnity was paid September 5, 1873, and the last of the German troops quitted French soil (September 16). The Red Republicans under the lead of Blan- qui, Gustav Flourens, and Felix Pyat rose in revolt (March 18, 1871) against the Gov- ernment, held Paris and established the Com- mune, which was not suppressed until the insur- gents had committed many outrages and de- stroyed much property, after holding possession of Paris until May 28, when the troops under Marshal MacMahon captured the city ; some eight hundred troops were killed, the Com- munist forces losing fifty thousand. One fourth of Paris was destroyed, the loss to prop- erty being estimated at 160,000,000. Great numbers of the Communists were subsequently tried, some executed, and the remainder trans- ported. Since this period France has enjoyed a respite from martial dissensions, though the temper of the people is a continual menace to stability of rule- HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 277 PRESIDENTS OF THE UNITED STATES. PRESIDENTS. BORN. PARENTS. TERM^OF OFFICE. Date. Birthplace. Father. Mother. From To Washington. Feb. \\, 1732 Adams, John Oct. Jg, 1735 Jefferson.. . 'Apr. j 3 .,, 1743 Madison... . Mar. , s g , 1751 Monroe Apr. 28, 1758 Adams, J. Q. July 11, 1767 Jackson... . Mar. 15, 1767 Van Buren . Dec. 5, 1782 Harrison, W. Feb. 9, 1773 Tvler Mar 29 1790 Bridges Creek, Va Braintree, Mass Shadwell, Va Port Conway, Va Augustine John Peter James Mary Ball Apr. 30, 1789 Mar. 4,1797 Mar. 4, 17!7 Mar. 4, 1801 Mar. 4, 1801 Mar. 4, 1809 Mar. 4, 1809 Mar. 4, 1817 Mar. 4, 1817 Mar. 4, 1825 Mar. 4, 1825 Mar. 4, 1829 Mar. 4, 1829 Mar. 4, 1837 Mar. 4, 1837 Mar. 4, 1841 Mar. 4, 1841 Apr. 4, 1841 Apr. 6, 1841 Mar. 4, 1845 Mar. 4, 1845 Mar. 4, 1849 Mar. 4, 1849 Julv 10, 1850 July 10, 1850 Mar. 4, 1853 Mar. 4, 1853 Mar. 4, 1857 Mar. 4, 1857 Mar. 4, 1861 Mar. 4, 1861 Apr. 15, 1865 Apr. 15, 1865 Mar. 4, 1869 Mar. 4, 1869 Mar. 4, 1877 Mar. 4, 1877 Mar. 4, 1881 Mar. 4, 1881 Sep. 19, 1881 Sep. 20, 1881 Mar. 4, 1885 Mar. 4, 1885 Mar. 4, 1889 Mar. 4, 1889 Mar. 4, 1893 Mar. 4, 1893 Mar. 4, 1897 Mar. 4, 1897 Sep. 14, 1901 Sep. 14.1901J Susanna Boylston Jane Randolph Nellie Conwav Westmoreland Co., Va. Quincy, Mass Spence Elizabeth Jones John 1 Ahiirail Smith- Mecklenburg Co., N.C. Kinderhook, N. Y Berkeley, Va Andrew Elizabeth Hutchinson Marv TTnps Abraham Benjamin Elizabeth Bassett John Marv Anuisteail Charles City Co., Va. Mecklenburg Co., N.C. Orange Co., Va Summer Hill, N.Y.... Hillsborough, N. H... Stony Batter, Pa Polk 'Nov. 2, 1795 Samuel I Jane Knoz Taylor Nov. 24, 1784 Fillmore :Jan. 7,1800 Pierce Nov 23 1804 Richard 1 Sarah Strnt.hAiv . Nathaniel Benjamin Phebe Millard Buchanan . . . ! Apr. 23*, 1791 Lincoln Feb 12 1809 James Elizabeth Speer Nolin Creek, Ky Thomas Nancy Hanks Johnson Dec. 29, 1808 Grant Apr 27 1822 Raleigh, N.C Point Pleasant, Ohio. . Delaware, Ohio Bedford, Ohio Jacob Jesse Root Rutherford... Abram Mary McDonnough . . . Harriet Simpson Hayes Oct. 4,1822 Garfield Nov 19 1831 Sophia Bircnard Eliza Ballou... Arthur Oct 5 1830 Fairfield,Vt William 'Malvina Stone Cleveland.. . . Mar. 18^ 1837 Harrison, B.. Aug.20,1833 Cleveland.. . . Mar. 18, 1837 McKinley . . . Jan. 29, 1843 Roosevelt . . . Oct. 27, 1868 Caldwell, N.J North Bend, Ohio Caldwell N J Rich'dFalley. John Scott . . . Richard F.... William Anne Neale Elizabeth F. Irwin.... Anne Neale Nancy C. Allison Martha Bullock New York City, N. Y. Theodore Biographical Statistics. * i DIED. - i 7 f.l - " '.i ">4 K* H 4: i'4 Mi is H 4i 54 4: 50 47 .V! x Dec. 14, 1799 July 4,1826 July 4,1826 June 28, 1836 July 4,1831 Feb. 23, 1848 June 8, 1845 July 24, 1862 Apr. 4,1841 Jan. 17, 1862 June 15, 1849 July 9, 1850 Mar. 9,1874 Oct. 8, 1869 June 1, 1868 Apr. 15, 1865 July 31, 1875 July 23, 1885 Jan. 17, 1893 Sep. 19, 1881 Nov. 18, 1886 Mar. 13, 1901 Sep. 14, 1901 Mt Vernon, Va Membraneous croup r.7 :K> 83 *5 73 SO 78 79 f.s 71 53 to 74 f4 77 M; W, Ri M 4:' W *V7 57 Mt. Vernon, Va. Unitarian Church, Quincy, Mass. Monticello, Albemarle Co.,Va. Montpelier, Hanover Co., Va. Originally 2d Ave. Cemeterv, NT Y., transferred, 1858, to Hollywood Cemetery, Rich- mond, Va. Unitarian Church, Quincy, Mass. Hermitage, near Nashville, Tenn. Village Cemeterv, Kinder- hook, N. Y. North Bend, Ohio. Hollywood, Richmond, Va. Nashville, Tenn. Near Louisville, Ky. (Spring- field). Forest Lawn, Buffalo, N. Y. Minot Cemetery, Concord, N.H. Woodward Hill Cemetery, Wheatland, Pa. Oak Ridge Cemeterv, Spring- field, in. Greeneville. Tenn. Riverside, New York City. Fremont, Ohio. Lake View Cemetery, Cleve- land, Ohio. Rural Cemetery, Albany, N.Y. Crown Hill Cemetery, Indian- apolis, Ind. Cemetery, Canton, Ohio. Natural decline Monticello, Va Chronic diarrho3a Natural decline New York City, N. Y.. . . Halls of Congress.Wash- ington D C Natural decline Adams, J. Q.. Jackson Van Buren. . . Harrison Tyler Paralysis Hermitage, near Nash- Dropsy Kinderhook N Y Asthma White House, Washing- ton D C Pleurisy fever Ballard House, Rich- Bilious attacks, with bron- chitis. Polk Nashville Tenn Chronic diarrhoea White House, Washing- ton, D. C Cholera morbus and ty- phoid fever -. Fillmore Buffalo N Y Paralysis Concord, N. H Dropsy and inflammation of the stomach Buchanan Rheumatic gout Assassinated by Booth Paralvsis Johnson Grant Greeneville, Tenn Mt. McGregor, N. Y Cancer of the tongue Neuralgia of the heart... Assassinated by Guiteau . . Bright's disease, culmi- nating in paralysis and aiioi>lf \ \ . . . Haves Garneld Elberon, Long Branch, N J New York, N.Y Cleveland .... Harrison McKinley Pneumonia Buffalo, N. Y Assassination Upon accession to office. t At death. 278 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Biographical Statistics (Continued). Educational Advantage*. 'profession. 1 Vo ^ Son. ^c*8try. Father's Business. Religious Connection.* Washington. Adams Jefferson Mrt.livm. Monroe . . Adams, J.Q. Jackson Van Buren . . Harrison, W. Tyler Polk., Tavlor Fiflmore Pierce Buchanan. .. Lincoln Johnson Grant.. Hares Garneld Arthur Cleveland Harrison, B. McKinley . . . Roosevelt . . . Common school Planter Surveyor., . Harvard College, 1755 Lawyer Teacher . . . College William and Mary,[ ! 1762 !Lawyer Lawyer . . . . Princeton College, 177L jLawyer 'Lawyer... . Entered College William] i and Mary Politician.. Lawyer... . Harvard College, 1787 jLawyer 'Lawyer. . . . Self-taught Lawyer 'Lawyer. . . . Academy Lawyer [Lawyer . . . , Entered" Hampden- Sydney College Army . College William and Marv,l 1806 '.. Lawyer... University of North Carc- 1 lina Lawyer Lawver... Common school LAnny Soldier ... Public school ^Lawyer iTailor Bowdoin College, 1824 'Lawyer Lawyer... Dickinson College, 1809 Lawyer Lawver... Self-taught Lawyer Farmer... Self-taught Politician.. Tailor :West Point Military Acad- i emy, 1843 iAnny Tanner... Kenyon College, O., 1842 [Lawyer Lawyer. . . Williams College, 1856 Lawyer JTeacher . . Union College, 1848 Lawyer [Teacher . . Common school Lawyer jTeacher . . Miami University, O., 1851.. ILawyer ; Lawyer. . . Entered Allegheny College . Lawyer ... Lawyer . . . Harvard .. .. J S!^ : 1C i \ Publicist. . English Planter ' Episcopalian. . English Farmer Unitarian. . Welsh Planter Liberal. . English Planter Episcopalian. . Scotch Planter Episcopalian. . English Lawyer Unitarian. .j Scotch-Irish. Farmer Presbyterian. . 'Dutch Farmer Dutch Reformed. Medicine.. English Statesman Episcopalian. . Lawyer English Jurist Episcopalian. 'Scotch-Irish. Farmer Presbyterian. English Planter Episcopalian. English Farmer Episcopalian. English Farmer Episcopalian. Scotch-Irish. Merchant Presbvterian. English Farmer Liberal. English Sexton Liberal. Scotch Tanner Methodist. Scotch Merchant Methodist. English Farmer Disciples. Scotch-Irish. Clergyman Episcopalian. English Clergyman... English Farmer Presbyterian. Presbvterian. Scotch-Irish. Iron Mf r Methodist. Dutch Merchant .... Dutch Reformed. Adams married a minister's daughter, and was inclined to Unitarianism. Jefferson was not a believer, at least while he was Chief Magistrate. Madison's early connections were Presbyterian. Monroe is said to have favored the Episcopal Church. John Quincy Adams was like his father. Jackson was a Presbyterian and died in the communion of that church. Van Buren was brought up in the Reformed Dutch Church, but alterward inclined to the Episcopal Church. Harrison leaned toward the Methodist Church, and Tyler was an Episcopalian. Polk was baptized by a Methodist preacher after his term of office expired. Taylor was inclined to the Episcopal communion. Fillmore attended the Unitarian Church, and Franklin Pierce was a member, bnt not a communi- cant, of a Congregationalist Church at Concord. Buchanan was a Presbyterian, as was also Benjamin Harrison. General Grant attended the Methodist Church, and President Garfleld the Church of the Disciples. President McKinley was a member of the Methodist Church. Roosevelt attends the Dutch Reformed Church. Biographical Statistics (Continued). MARRIED. CHI DBI . WIFE " Date. To Whom. Where. g g ; Birthplace. O Date. Washington.. Adams, John. Jefferson Madison Monroe Jan. 17, 1759 Mrs. Martha Custis. . . Oct. 26, 1764 Abigail Smith Jan. 1, 1772 Mrs. Martha Skelton Oct. 1794 Mrs. Dorothy Todd Feb. 23, 1786 Eliza Kortwfight July 26, 1797 Louisa C. Johnson Jan. 1791 Mrs. Rachel Robards . . . Feb. 1807 Hannah Hoes (Goes) .... Nov. 22, 1795 Anna Svnimes Mar. 29, 1813 Letitia "Christian Williamsburg, Va . . . Wevmouth, Mass. ... 3 The" Forest, Va Harewood, Va I New Kent Co., Va.. . 2 Weymouth , Mass 6 Charles C. Co., Va.. North Carolina 2 New York, N.Y 1 London, Eng May, 1732 Nov. " 17U Oct. ,,,1748 Mav 20, 1 .72 1768 Feb. 11,1.75 1707 Mar. 8,1783 July 25. 1775 Nov. 12, 1790 184 Sept. 4, 18C3 1790 Mar. 13, 1798 Oct. 21,1813 Mar. 12, 1806 Unmarried. Dec. 12, 1818 Oct. 4, 1810 Jan. 26, 182P Aug. 2*, 183 t Apr. 19, 183-' Aug. 30, 1837 July 21, 1864 Oct. 1, 1832 June 8, 1847 NewYork,N.Y I j London, Eng 3 Adams, J. Q. . Jackson Van Buren . . . Harrison Tyler Natchez, Miss 3 ' . . . .T Kinderhook, N. Y. . . 4 North Bend , Ohio. .. 6 Cedar Grove, Va 3 New York City, N.Y. 4 Murfreesboro", Tenn. Near Louisville, Ky. ' 1 Moravia, N.Y 1 Kinderhook, N. Y. .. 4 Morristown, N. J.. . . 4 Cedar Grove, Va 2 East Hampton, N.Y Murfreesboro, Tenn 3 CalvertCo., Md 1 Stillwater, N. Y Polk June 26, 18 W Julia Gardiner Jan. 1, 1824 Sarah Childress Tavlor 1810 Margaret Smith FiUmore Pierce Buchanan , , . Feb. 5, 1836 Abigail Power Feb. 18, 185S Mrs. Caroline Mclntosb Nov. 19, 1834 Jane Means Apple ton... Unmarried Albanv, N. Y Amheret, N. H 3 Hampton, N. H Lincoln Johnson Grant Nov. 4, 1842 Marv Todd May 17, 1827 Eliza McCardle Lexington, Ky 4 Greenville, Tenn 3 St. Louis, Mo 3 Cincinnati, Ohio 7 Hiram Ohio .1*1 Lexington, Ky 2 Leesburg, Tenn 1 St. Louis, Mo 1 rhillicothe,Ohio 1 Hiram, Ohio Aug. 22, 1818 Julia Dent Dec 30, 1852 Lucy Ware Webb Garfleld Arthur Nov 11 1858 Lucretia Rudolph Oct. 29, 1859 Ellen Lewis Herndon . . . June 2, 1886 Frances Folsom Oct. 20, 1853 Caroline Lavinia Scott. . Xew York, N.Y... . 1 Washington, D. C... 1 Oxford, Ohio ... . 1 1 Culneper C. H.,Va.. 3 Buffalo.N. Y 1 Oxford, Ohio Cleveland Harrison McKinley.... Roosevelt .... Canton, Ohio 2 Canton, Ohio 1883 and 1886 Alice Lee < Edith Carow 4 2 HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. VICE-PRESIDENTS OF THE UNITED STATES. 279 NAME. Birthplace. 1 John Adams 2 Thomas Jefferson 3 Aaron Burr 4 George Clinton 5 Elb ridge Gerry 6 Daniel D. Tompkins.. 7' John C. Calhoun 8, Martin Van Buren. . . 9 Richard M. Johnson. 10 John Tyler ^1 George M. Dallas 12 Millard Fillmore 13 William R. King 14 John C. Breckinridge 15 Hannibal Hamlin 16 Andrew Johnson 17 Schuyler Colfax 18 Henry Wilson 19 William A. Wheeler.. M Chester A. Arthur 21 Thos. A. Hendricks. . 22 Levi P. Morton 23 Adlai E. Stevenson... 24 Garret A. Hobart . . . . 2 Theodore Roosevelt . . Quincy , Mass Shadwell, Va Newark, N. J Ulster Co., N. Y Marblehead, Mass Scarsdale, N. Y Abbeville, S. C Kinderhook, N. Y Louisville, Ky Greenway, Va Philadelphia, Pa Su iimirrliill , N. Y Sampson Co., N. C . . . Lexington, Ky Paris, Me Raleigh, N. C New York citv, N. Y.. Farmington, N. H Malone/N. Y Fairneld, Vt Muskingum Co., Ohio Shoreham, Vt Christian Co.,Ky 1 Long Branch, N.J... i New York city, N.Y.. Paternal Ancestry. 1735 English 1743 Welsh 175U English 1739 English 1744 English 1774 English 1782 Scotch-Irish. 17S2 Dutch 1780 English 1791) English .1792 English 1800 English 1786 English 1821 Scotch 1809 English 1808 English !*. English 1812 English 1X19 English 1830 Scotch-Irish. 1819 Scotch-Irish. 1824 Scotch ,1835, Scotch-Irish. 1844 English 1858 Dutch Mass iVa... N. Y. N. Y. Mass. N. Y. S. C.. N. Y. Ky... Va... Pa... N. Y. [Ala.. Tenn. Ind.. Mass. N. Y. N. Y. Ind.. N. Y. 111.... N.J.. IN. Y. 1789 Fed.. 1797 Rep.. 1801 Rep.. 1805 Rep.. 1813 Rep.. 1817 Rep.. 1825 Rep.. 1833 Dem. 1*57 Dem. 1841 Dem. 1845 Dem. 1849 Whig 1853 Dem. 1857 Dem. 1861 Rep.. 1865 Rep.. 1869 Rep.. 1873 Rep. . 1877 Rep.. 1881 Rep.. 1885 Dem. 1889 Rep.. 1893 Dem. 189T Rep.. 1901 Rep.. Place of Death. Quincy, Mass , Monticello, Va Staten Island, N. Y. , Washington, D. C Washington, D. C Staten Island, N. Y. . Washington, D. C Kinderhook, N. Y Frankfort, Ky , Richmond, Va Philadelphia, Pa Buffalo, N. Y Dallas Co., Ala Lexington, Ky Bangor, Me , Carter Co., Tenn Mankato, Minn Washington, D. C. . . Malone, N . Y , New York city, N. Y Indianapolis, Ind. . . 1826 90 . 18-J6 . 1836 . 1812 . 1814 . 1825 .1850 . 1862 . 1850 . 18R2 . 1864 . 1874 . 1853 . 1875 . 1891 . 1876 i 66 1885 62 1*75 1887 1886 Paterson, N. J. 55 SPEAKERS OF THE TJ. S. HOUSE OF REPRESENTATIVES. $i Yeare - Name. State. Born. Died. Con- gress. Years. Name. State. Born. Died. i 3 3 4, 5 6 7-9 10, 11 12, 13 13 14-16 10 17 IX 19 20-23 23 24. 25 27 1789-91 1791-93 1793-95 1795-99 1799-1801 1801-07 1807-11 1811-14 1*14-15 1815-'-0 1820-21 1821-23 1823-25 1825-27 1827-34 1834-36 1835-39 1839-41 1841-43 F. A. Muhlenburg.. . Jonathan Trumbull. F. A. Muhlenburg... Jonathan Davton . . . Theo. Sedgwick NathanielMacon Joseph B. Varnum. . Henry Clav Langooa C-heves Henry Clav John W.Taylor Philip P. Barbour .. Henry Clav John W. Taylor Andrew Stevenson. . John Bell Pa... Ct Pa.... N.J... Mass.. N. C.. Mass.. Ky. . . . S. C.. . Ky.... N.Y.. Va.... Ky.... N.Y.. Va.... Tenn. . 1750 1740 1760 1760 1746 1757 1750 1777 1776 1777 1784 1783 1777 1784 1784 1797 1795 1809 1805 1801 1809 1801 1824 1813 1837 1821 1852 1857 1852 1854 1841 1852 1854 1857 1869 1849 1887 1845 28 29 30 31 32, 33 34 35 36 37 38-10 41-43 44 44-46 47 48-60 61 52, 53 54, 55 66 1843-45 1845-47 1847-49 1819-51 1851-55 18.15-57 1857-59 1859-61 1861-63 1863-69 1869-75 1875 76 1876-81 1881-83 iss:i-s;i 1889-91 1891-95 1805-99 18 ;s*- John W. Jones John W. Davis Robert C. Winthrop. Howell Cobb Va... Ind... Mass.. Ga... 1805 1799 1809 1815 1800 1816 1822 1796 1823 1823 1830 1827 1828 1836 1835 1839 1845 1839 1140 1848 1850 1894 1868 1859 1894 1873 1862 1885 1893 1876 1890 1896 LinnBovd Kv Nathaniel P. Banks. Ma-s. JamesL Orr s. c.. Wm. Pennington Galusha A. Grow Schuyler Colfax James G . Blaine Michael C. Kerr Samuel J. Randall.. John W. Keifer John G.Carlisle Thomas B. Reed Charles F. Crisp Thomas B. Reed Daviu B. Henderson N.J... Pa.... Ind... Me.... Ind... Pa.... Ohio.. Ky.... Me.... Ga.... Me.... la James K. Polk R. M. T. Hunter John White Tenn.. Va Ky.... PRESIDENTIAL CABINET OFFICERS. SECRETARIES OF STATE. Presidents. Cabinet Officers. Resi- dence. Date of , Appoint- ment. Presidents. Cabinet Officers. Resi- dence. l';iU>..t Appoint- in. !,! Thomas Jefferson Va 1789 Taylor John M. Clayton Del.... 1849 Edmund Randolph Timothy Pickering Mass.!! 1794 1795 1797 Fillmore Pierce Daniel Webster Edward Everett Will iani L. Marcy , Mass... N. Y.'!! 1860 1852 1853 Va 1800 Lewis Cass Mich... 1857 Jefferson Madison James Madison Robert Smith Md...'! Va 1801 1809 1811 Lincoln Jeremiah S. Black William H. Seward Pa N. Y... 1860 1861 1866 Monroe John Quincy Adams Mass... Kv 1817 1826 Grant Elihu B. Washburne Hamilton Fish 111... N. Y... 1869 1869 Martin Van ituren N! Y.., 1829 Hayes William M.Evarts 1877 Edward Livingston I .mi is .Me I. am- John Forsyth La Del. ... Ga .... 1831 1833 1834 Garfield Arthur ( 'Irvrland . . . James (i. Blaine F. T. Frelinghuysen Thomas F. Bayard Me... N.J.. . Del 1881 1 1 1885 1837 Harrison James G. P.l.i i i i Me 1889 Harrison Tvler . . . Daniel Webster Mass... 1841 1841 Cleveland . . John W. Foster Walter Q. Gresham Ind.... Ill 1892 1893 S C 1843 Richard Olney M.I--. 1896 ., Abel P. Upshur ......... Va 1843 McKinley... John Sherman Ohio. . . 1897 ,1 John C. Calhoun S.C.... 1844 William R. Day Ohio... 1897 Polk James Buchanan Pa 1846 " John Hay Ohio... 1898 280 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Presidential Cabinet Officers Continued. SECRETARIES OF THE TREASURY. Presidents. ' Cabinet Officers. Resi- dence. Date of Appoint- Presidents, ment. ' ! Cabinet Officers. Resi- dence. Date of Appoint- ment. Washington. Adams Alexander Hamilton. . Oliver Wolcott N. Y... Ct 1789 1795 1797 1801 1801 1801 1809 1814 1811 1816 1817 1825 182.) 1831 1833 1833 1834 1837 1841 1841 1841 1843 1844 1845 1849 Fillmore Pierce Thomas Corwin Ohio .. 1850 1853 1857 186() 1861 1861 1864 1865 1865 1869 1873 1874 1876 1877 1881 1881 1884 1*4 1885 1887 1889 1891 1893 1897 1902 James Guthrie HowellCobb Ky .... Ga Buchanan . . . M Lincoln Samuel Dexter Mass Philip F. Thomas Md .... Jefferson Madison Monroe John A Dix N. Y... Albert Gallatin Pa Salmon P. Chase William P. Fessenden . . Hugh McCulloch Ohio . . Me .... Ind .... George W. Campbell... Alexander J. Dallas William H. Crawford. . . Richard Rush _ . . Tenn .. Pa Ga Pa ! ! ! '. '. Johnson Grant George S. Boutwell William A. Richardson. Benjamin H. Bristow. .. T.ot.M Mnrrill .. Mass'!! Ky ..!! Me .... J. Q. Adams. Jackson ti Van Buren. . Harrison Tvler > Samuel D. Ingham Louis McLane Dei!!! ii Hayes John Sherman Ohio .. William J. Duane Roger B Tanev Pa Md Garaeld William Windom Charles J. Folger Walter Q. Gresham Hugh McCulloch Minn.. N. Y... Ind .... Arthur .... Levi Woodbury N.H... u Thomas Ewing Ohio .. Cleveland Harrison .Cleveland McKinley . . . Roosevelt . . . Daniel Manning Charles S. Fairchild William Windom Charles Foster N. Y... Minn ! ! Ohio . . Walter Forward Pa... M John C Spencer N. Y... H George M. Bibb Ky John G. Carlisle Lyman J. Gage Ky .... Ii] Polk Robert J. Walker William M. Meredith. .. Miss... Pa Taylor Leslie M. Shaw Iowa. . . SECRETARIES OF WAR. H " Timothy Pickering ii 1795 ii Edward Bates Mo 1850 || James McHenry . . Md 1796 Fillmore Charles M Conrad La 1850 Adams 1797 Pierce . Jefferson Davis Miss. . . 1853 John Marshall Va. .. 1800 Buchanan . . . John B. Floyd Va 1857 ii Samuel Dexter Mass 1800 Joseph Holt Ky 1861 M Roger Griswold Ct 1801 Lincoln Simon Cameron Pa 1861 Jefferson Madison ii Monroe . . . Henry Dearborn William Eustis John Armstrong James Monroe William H. Crawford. . . Isaac Shelby Mass.. N.Y.!! Va Ga Ky .. 1801 1809 1813 1814 1815 1817 Johnson Grant . Edwin M. Stanton Ohio. . . U. S. Grant (ad. in.) .... Ill ..... Lor. Thomas (ad. in.) John M. Schoneld N. Y. . . John A Rawlins . Ill 1862 1865 1867 1868 1868 1869 Geo. Graham (ad. in.). . . fa.:::: 1817 u William T. Sherman Ohio .. 1869 i John C. Calhoun S.C.... 1817 u William W. Belknap la 1869 J. Q. Adams James Barbour Va 1825 : II Alphonso Taf t . . ..*.... Ohio . 1876 Peter B. Porter N.Y... 1828 II James Don Cameron .... Pa 1876 Jackson John H. Eaton Tenn . . 1829 Havp-i George W. McCrary la . ... 1877 Lewis Cass Ohio .. 1831 IT Alexander Ramsev! Minn . . 1879 ii Benjamin F. Butler N. Y... 1837 Garfleld . . . Robert T. Lincoln". Ill 1881 Van Buren . . Joel R. Poinsett S.C.... 1837 Arthur 1881 Harrison John Bell Tenn . . 1841 Cleveland . . . William C. Endicott Mass .. 1886 Tyler 1841 Redfleld Proctor Vt- 1889 John McLean Ohio .. 1841 Stephen B. Elkins W. Va. 1891 ii John C. Spencer N.Y. . 1841 Cleveland . Daniel S. Lamont N. Y. . . 1893 ii James M. Porter Pa 1843 McKinley . . . Russell A. Alger Mich . . 1897 ii William Wilkins 1844 Elihu Root N. Y. . . 1899 Polk William L. Marcy N.Y... 1845 1 SECRETARIES OF THE NAVY. Adams , George Cabot Ma.- .. 1798 'Tyler Thomas W. Gilmer Va 1844 ii Benjamin Stoddert Md .... 1798 John Y. Mason 1844 Jefferson 1801 Polk George Bancroft Mass .. 1845 Robert Smith ii 1801 John Y. Mason Va 1846 ii Jacob Crowninshield . . . Mass .. 18ns Tavlor William B. Preston 1849 Madison .... Paul Hamilton S. C . . . 1809 Fillmore William A. Graham .... N. C . . . 1850 William Jones Pa 1813 John P. Kennedy Md . . . . 1852 ii B. W. Crowninshield . . . Mass . . 1814 Pierce James C. Dobbin N. C . . . 1853 Monroe Smith Thompson N. Y . . 1817 1818 Buchanan . . Isaac Toucey Gideon Welles Ct ii 1857 1861 ii Samuel L. Southard .... N. J . . . 1823 Johnson u 1866 J. Q. Adams 1825 Grant Adolph E. Borie Pa... 1869 Jackson John Branch N. C . . . 1829 George M. Robeson N. J . . 1869 Levi Woodbury N.H .. 1831 Hayes Richard W. Thompson. . Ind ... 1877 M Mahlon Dickerson . N. J 1834 Nathan Goff , Jr W. Va 1881 Van Buren.. Harrison Tyler James K. Paukling George E. Badger N.Y.'!! N.C... 1887 1838 1841 1841 Garfleld Arthur Cleveland . . . William H. Hunt William E. Chandler. . . . William C. Whitney La.... N.H . N.Y. 1881 1882 1885 1889 Abel P. TJpshur .... Va 1841 Hilarv A Herbert Ala... 1893 " David Henshaw Mass - 1843 McKinley . . . John D. Long Mais .. 1897 HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 281 Presidential Cabinet Officers. Continued. POSTMASTERS-GENERAL.* Presidents. Cabinet Officers. Resi- dence. Date of Appoint- ment. Presidents. Cabinet Officers. j ^ Date of Appoint- ment. Washington Adams Jefferson Madison Monroe J. Q. Adams Jackson Van Buren . . Harrison Tyler Samuel Osgix>d Timothy Pickering Joseph Habersham . ... Gideon Granger Mass . . isa../.; Ct .'"" 1789 1791 1795 1797 1801 1801 1809 1814 1817 18i'3 1825 18'->9 1835 1837 1.840 1811 1841 1841 1845 1849 1850 1852 1853 1857 Buchanan . . . Lincoln Johnson Grant . '. " '. Joseph Holt Ky .. Horatio King. 'Me . .. 1859 1861 1861 1864 1865 nee 1869 1X74 1874 1876 1877 1880 1881 1881 1883 1884 1885 188 ISV.I 18U3 1895 1897 1898 1901 Montgomery Blair Mil William Dehnison Ohio . . Alexander W. Randall" Wis .'.'. John A. J. Cresswell ...Mil James W. Marshall Va Marshall Jewell Ct James N. Tyner Ind David McK. Key JTenn . . Horace Maynard ! " Thomas L. James N. Y... Timothy O. Howe Wis ... Walter Q. Gresham Ind .... Frank llatton Iowa .. William F. Vilas Wis Return J. Meigs, Jr John McLean Ohio . . tt tt ' tt Haves William T. Barry Amos Kendall . ." Ky.... Garfleld Arthur Cleveland . . Harrison . . . Cleveland . . McKinley ! 1 Roosevelt . . >< John M. Niles "Francis Granger Ct N. Y... Charles A. Wickliffe . . . Cave Johnson Jacob Collamer Ky .... Tenn . . vt Don M. Dickinson Mich . . John Wanaraaker Pa Polk Tavlor Wilson S. Bissell N. Y... William L. Wilson W. Va Fillmore .... Pierce Nathan K. Hall N. Y... Samuel 1). Hubbard James Campbell Aaron V. Brown Ct Pa Tenn . . James A. Gary ,Md Charles Emory Smith . . Pa Henry C. Pavne 'Wis.... Buchanan . . . SECRETARIES OF THE INTERIOR. Tavlor Fillmore Pierce Thomas Ewing James A. Pearce Thos. M. T. McKernon.. Alexander H. H. Stuart Robert McClella nd Jacob Thompson Ohio .. Md.... Pa Va Mich . . Miss .. 1849 1850 1850 1850 1853 -1857 1861 1863 1865 1865 1866 1869 Grant Columbus Delano Ohio Zachariah Chandler ... Mich.. Carl Schurz i Mo 1870 1875 1877 1881 1882 1885 1888 1889 1893 1896 1897 1899 Hayes .... Garfleld Arthur ... . Samuel J. Kirkwood . . . Iowa . . Henry M. Teller Colo Buchanan. .. Lincoln Johnson Grant ..'..'.'.. Cleveland . . . Harrison Cleveland . . . McKinley . ! ! Lucius Q. C. Lamar Mi--. . . William F. Vilas Wis... John W. Noble Mo.. . Caleb B. Smith John P. Usher Ind tt Hoke Smith Ga.... David R. Francis Mo James Harlan Iowa . . Orville H. Browning Jacob D. Cox Ill Ohio . . Cornelius N. Bliss N. Y. .. Ethan A. Hitchcock .... JMP.... SECRETARIES OF AGRICULTURE. Cleveland . . . Harrison Norman J Col man Jeremiah M. Rusk MO....I 1889 I! Cleveland... Wis...| 1889 llMcKinley... J. Sterling Morton James Wilson INeb ... Iowa . . 1-..: 1897 ATTORNEYS-GENERAL. Washington. Adams Jefferson Madison Monroe J. Q. Adams. Jackson Van Buren . . Harrison Tyler Kdmuiid Randolph William Bradford Charles Lee Va Pa T? 1789 1794 1795 1797 1801 1801 1805 1805 1807 1809 1811 1814 1817 1817 in 1829 1831 1833 1837 1838 1840 1841 1841 1841 1843 1815 1846 Polk Isaac Toucey Reverdv Johnson Ct Md .. 1848 1849 1850 1853 1857 184-0 1861 . 1863 1-1 1865 186t> 18V8 1869 1870 1X71 1875 1876 J877 1881 1M 1885 18*9 1893 18 STATES SUPREME COURT. (Names of the Chief Justices in Italics.) NAME. SERVICE. Term. ( Yrs Born. John Jay, N. Y 1789-1705 6 John Rutledge, S. C 1789-1 791 2 William Gushing, Mass 1789-1810 21 James Wilson, Pa 1789-1798 9 John Blair, Va 1789-1796 7 Robert H. Harrison, Md 1789-1790 1 James Iredell, N. C 1790-1799 9 Thomas Johnson, Md ,1791-1793 2 William Paterson, N. J 1793-1806 13 John Rutledge, S. C 1795-1795! . . Samuel Chase, Md : 1796-1811 15 Oliver Ellsworth, rt 1796- IfOO 1 4 Bushrod Washington, Va 1798-1829 31 Alfred Moore, N. C 1799-1804 5 John Marshall, Va 1801-1835 34 William Johnson, S. C 1804-1834 30 Brock. Livingstone, N. Y ... 1806-1823 17 Thomas Todd, Ky 1807-1826 19 Joseph Story, Mass 1811-1845 34 Gabriel Duval, Md 1811-1?6 25 Smith Thompson, N. Y 1823-1843 20 Robert Trimble, Ky 18JC-I828 2 John McLean, Ohio 1829-1861 32 Henry Baldwin, Pa 1830-1844) 14 James M. Wayne, Ga.. Roger B. Tariey, Md. . Philip P. Barbour, Va John Catron, Tenn John McKinley, Ala 1835 1867 32 1836-1864 28 1836-18411 5 1837-1865 28 1837-1852 15 Peter V. Daniel, Va 1841-1860 19 1745 1739 1733 1742 1732 1745 1751 1732 1745 1739 1741 1745 1762 1755 1755 1771 1757 1765 17~9 1752 1767 1777 1785 1779 1790 1777 1783 1786 1780 1785 Died. 1800 1810 1798 18TO 1790 1799 1819 1806 i 1800 I 1811 I 1807 1829 1810 1835 18?4 1>23 1826 1845 1844 1843 1828 1861 1844 1867 1864 1841 1865 1852 NAME. SERVICE. Term. Yrs Samuel Nelson, N. Y 1845-1872 Levi Woodbury, N. H 1845-1851 Robert C. Grier, Pa 1846-1870 Benjamin R. Curtis, Mass 1851-1857! John A. Campbell, Ala 1853-1861J Nathan Clifford, Me 1858-1881 1 Noah H. Swayne, Ohio 1861-18M Samuel F. Miller, Iowa 18C.2-1890 David Davis, HI 1862-1K77 Stephen J. Field, Cal 1863-1897, Salmon P. Chase, Ohio 18C4-1873I William Strong, Pa 1870-1880, Joseph P. Bradley, N. J 1870-1892 Ward Hunt, N. Y 187L>-18*2 Morrison R. Waite, Ohio 1874-1888 John M. Harlan, Kv 1877- WilliamB. Woods," Ga 188VJ887 Stanley Matthews, Ohio 18S1-1)89 Horace Gray, Mass 1831- Samuel Blatchford, N. Y !S>-2-i893 Lucius Q. C. Lamar, Miss 1888-1893i Melville W. Fuller, 111 1888- . David J. Brewer, Kan 1889- Henry B. Brown, Mich 18DO-! '. '. George Shiras, Jr., Pa 1892-!!! Howell E. Jackson, Tenn 1893-1895 Edward D. White, La igo-j- Ruf us W. Peckham, N. Y 1895- ! . ! . Joseph McKenna, Cal i8U7- Oliver Wendell Holmes 1902-.. . Born. 1792 1789 1794 1809 1811 1803 1804 1816 1815 1816 ]> 1?08 1813 1811 1816 1833 1824 1824 1818 18JO 1825 1833 1837 1836 1832 1832 1845 1837 1*4.5 Died. 1873 1851 1870 1874 1889 1881 1884 !-'.> 1885 187s 1895 1892 1886 1888 1887 1889 1893 1803 1895 SOME FAMOUS NAVAL BATTLES. From the naval battle of Salamis to the great sea fight at Manila is a " far cry," B. C. 480 to A. D. 1898, more than 2,000 years. Salamis was the first great recorded battle of the world. Salamis drove the Persians from Greek soil; Manila drives Spain from Asiatic waters. The loss of life at Salamis has been variously estimated at from 5,000 to 50,000 ; at Manila from 400 to' 2,000. Tri- remes were at Salamis, and shield and sword and brute numbers; at Manila the hell of monster guns and iron- clads, the scream of shell, and the carnage of high ex- plosives. Salamis was fought in the youth of nations ; Manila in the dawn of the greatness of the American people, the night of Spain. One notable parallel to Manila is founn in the battle of the Nile, fought August 1,1798 Lord Nelson and the English fleet against 'Ad- miral Brueys and the French fleet. Nine French linc- of -battle snips were taken, two burned, and two escaped. The French L'Orient, with Brueys and 1,000 men on board, blew up, and only seventy or eighty escaped. Nelson's cry for this engagement was: " Victory or Westminster Abbey ! " Other famous sea contests of the world are : Winchelsea English defeat 40 Spanish vessels and capture 36, August 2!, 1350. Harfleur English capture or destroy 500 French ves- sels, August 15, 1416. Gibraltar Bay Dutch defeat the Spanish, April 25, 1607. Dover Strait Dutch destroy the English fleet, Novem- ber 29, 1652. Portsmouth English defeat the Dutch and destroy 11 men-of-war and 36 merchantmen, Februarv 18, 1053. North Foreland 100 English and Dutch men-of-war engaged ; 11 Dutch taken and 6 sunk, June 2, 1683. Coast of Holland English sink 30 Dutch men-of-war, July 31, 1653. Santa Crue Spanish fleet burned bv the English, April 20, 1627. Harwich Dutch lose 18 ships to the English, June 3, 1605. Thames Dutch lose to English 24 men-of-war, 4 ad- mirals killed, and 4,000 seamen, July 25, 1666. Messina Spanish fleet, 29 vessels, destroved bv Eng- lish, July 11, 1718. Gibraltar English defeated combined fleets of Spain and France, September 13, 1782. Trafalgar Nelson sunk 10 French and Spanish vessels after fighting with 27 ships, 33 of the combined fleet ; Nelson killed; October 21, 1805. Navarino The fleets of England, France, and Russia destroy 30 Turkish men-of-war, October 20, 1827. Most notable of American naval battles preceding Manila are the following : Coast of Scotland Paul Jones captures the Serapis and Scarborough, 70 guns, September 23, 1779. Off St. Kitts The Constellation, 26 guns, captures the French L'Insurgent, 40 guns, February 9, 1799. Coast of United States Constitution, 44 guns, sinks the Guerriere, 38 guns, in 30 minutes, August 19, 1812. Madeira United States, 44 guns, captures the Mace- donian, 40 guns, October 25, 1812. Brazil Constitution captures the Java, Dec. 29, 1812. Demerara River Hornet captures the Peacock, Feb- ruary 24. 1813. Lake Erie Perry, with 54 guns, defeats English fleet with C3 guns, September 10, 1813. Lake Champlain McDonough, with 86 guns, defeats English fleet with 96 guns, September 11, 1814. Manila Bay Rear Admiral Dewey, with six ships : the Olympia (flagship), Boston, Baltimore, Petrel, Ra- leigh, ana Concord, destroyed Spain's Asiatic Squad- ron, 13 vessels, under Admiral Montejo: Isla de Cuba, Isla de Luzon, Castilla. Don Antonio de Ulloa, Don Juan de Austria, Reina Cristina, Callao, El Cano, El Correo, General Lezo, Hercules, Marques del Duero, Rapido; also the navy yard and nine batteries. American loss, eight wounded and about $5.000 damage to ships. Span- ish loss, about 1,200 killed or woundeu and some $6,000,- 000 in vessels destroyed or captured. May 1, 1898. Santiago de Cuba Cervera's squadron'of six vessels : the Vizcaya, Almirante Oquendo, Maria Teresa, Cristo- bal Colon, Furor, and Pluton, made a bold dash to escape from the harbor, and was destroyed by Samp- son's fleet: The Oregon, Iowa, Indiana, Texas, Brook- lyn, Gloucester, and Vixen. American loss: 1 killed. 2 wounded. Spanish loss: 360 killed, 165 wounded, 1,650 taken prisoners. July 3. 1898. At Santiago de Cuba the armies and navies were both engaged. Army losses: United States, '-'7^ killed, 1,000 wounded ; Spain, 2,000 killed, 1,500 wounded, 1,650 taken prisoners. Total army and navy losses : United States, .'74 killed, 1,002 wounded. Spain, 2,310 killed, 1,665 i wounded, 3,300 taken prisoners. In all her naval conflicts with England, France, Spain, and the Tripoli pirates, the United States has never sus- tained what would be considered a crushing defeat. She has lost individual vessels, but only after the most desperate resistance, giving proof of the saying that " Americans do not fight to save their skins." HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 283 DICTIONARY OF HISTORY. Abbeys and Monasteries robbed of their plate and jewels by William the Conqueror, 1069; entirely dis- solved by Henry the VIII., 1540. This ruler suppressed in England and Wales 643 monasteries, 90 colleges, 2374 churches and chapels, and 110 hospitals; and had the abbots of Beading, Glastonbury, and St. John's, Col- chester, hanged and quartered for refusing to surren- der their abbeys, and denying his supremacy. Aberdeen, University Off. founded 1477; King's Col- lege founded 15HO; Marechal College founded 1593: the town of Aberdeen and its vicinity was visited by a destructive inundation Augusts, 1829. Aboukir, in Egypt, surrendered to the English forces March 18, 1801. Abydos is a town of Asia Minor, situated on the Hellespont. Tradition places here the story of Hero andLeander; history tells that this was whe're Xerxes led his vast army over the Hellespont on a bridge of boats; and Byron here swam the Hellespont, and ren- dered it ever famous by his " Bride of Abydos." Acre, taken by Richard I. and other Crusaders July 12, 1191, after a siege of two years and the loss of 300,000 men; attacked by the French under Bonaparte, who, failing in the twelfth assault, retired with great loss of men, May 21, 1799. Actinm, in Epirus, naval battle of, which rendered Augustus master of the Roman Empire, September 2, 31 B. C. Adrianople, taken by the Ottomans, 1360; taken from the Turks by the Russians, 1829. Agincourt, Battle of, between the French and Eng- lish, gained bv Henry V., October 25, 1415 ; 10,000 of ihe French killed and 14,000 taken prisoners, the English losing only 40. In the French army were four times as many men as in the English. Aix-la-Cliapelle, taken by the French, 1793; and again, September ul, 1794; Congress at, September 29, 1818. Albans, St., the first 1 attle between the Houses of York and Lancaster, in which the former was victori- ous, May 22, 1455 ; another battle was fought, February 2, 1461, between the Yorkists, under the Earl of War- wick, and the Lancastrians, under Queen Margaret; the latter were the victors. Alderton Moor, Yorkshire, Battle of , where the Roy- alists routed the Parliamentarians, June 29, 1643. Alessandria, Italy, taken by the French, 1798; sur- rendered to the Austrians and Russians, July 24, 1799. Alexandria, Egypt, built by Alexander in 17 days, the walls whereof were six miles in circuit, B. C. 333; taken by Ca>sar, B. C. 46; by Dioolesian, 2!)6 A. D.; by the Persians, 615 A. D. ; by the Saracens, 640 A.D; by the French, 179K. Battle of, between the French syid English, in which the former were defeated, but the English general, Abercrouiby, was killed, 1801. Alhambra, The, is a pa'lace and fortress of the Moors, founded about 1253, by Mohammed I. Cele- brated as the palace of the kings of Granada. Its two courts, that cf tin Myrtles and that of the Lions, arc beautiful examples of Arabian art in Spain. The Al- hambra was surrendered to the Christians by the Moors about 1491. Albinos, called also Leueoethiopes, or white negroes, and by the Dutch and Germans Kukerluken, were at one time considered a distinct race, but closer observa- tion has shown that the same phenomenon occurs in individuals of al> races, and that the peculiar white appearance rises iroiu an irregularity of the skin. The iris of the eye is red in the Albino. Albinoism occurs also in other" mammalia, birds, and insects. Alabama, first settlement was made by the French, at Mobile, in 1711. The commerce of the Mate is consid- erable, and its manufacturing interests are increasing rapidly; chieMy cotton and cotton goods, yarn, thread. iron, leather, and lumber. Its mining interests are being rapidly developed : but the principal industry is agri- culture, cotton and corn being the leading productions. Various cereals, sugar cane, rice, and tobacco are also produced. Alaska was purchased by the Tinted States from Russia in IS'.T, lor 7,200,000 in gold, and was formally taken possession of October 9th of the same year by General Rousseau on behalf of the 1'nited States, at New Archangel, on the Island of Sitka. With the islands, it comprises 680. 107 square miles, or nearly one sixth of the entire area of the United States previous to this purchase. The land abounds in fur-bearing ani- mals; th seas yield fur-bearing seals and others, and fish in immense quantities. Among other important resources of the Territory are lumber and minerals of all kinds. The southwestern part is covered for thou- sands of miles with dense forests of yellow cedar, white spruce, and balsam fir. Among the valuable minerals, coal has been found at different places along the coast : petroleum, lead, iron, and graphite at various points; copper, marble, and sulphur in great abundance; also gold and silver and valuable stones, such as amethysts, garnets, agates, and carnelians. The climate of the Territory is very severe in the inland districts, but mild along the coast. At Fort Yukon the thermometer sinks as lovy as seventy degrees beJow zero in the winter; the summers are short and hot, the winters long and cold. In Southern Alaska the winter climate is the average winter climate of Kentucky, and the summer climate about that of Minnesota. The capital of Alaska is Sitka, and the Territory is governed by a Governor and other necessary officers appointed by the authorities at Washington. The trade of seal hunting is entirely in the hands of the Alaska Commercial Company, who in 1870 secured, by Act of Congress, a monopoly of this business for twenty years. They are not allowed, how- ever, to kill the animals except during certain months iu the year, nor more than a specified number annually. Alexandrian Library, consisting of 47 which would have been before either Cabot or Columbus and in which the suggestion is made that he should give his name to the world he had discovered. Anglesey, the Mona of the Romans, reduced by Julius Agr'icola, 76 A. I). : by the English, 1295. Aiijou, Battle pf, where the Duke of Clarence and l,r>9. The high wall around it was subsequently erected by Philippe-Auguste. Louis XI. first used it asa state prison, and it was even- tually demolished by the people during the Revolution, July 14, 1789. The "Man in the Iron Mask" was im- prisoned there, and died in 1703. Battle of Lake Erie, between the British squadron, commanded by Captain Barclay, and the United States, commanded by Captain Perry, in which the whole Brit- ish force was captured, September 10, 1813. Belgium, incorporated with the French republic, September 30,1794; incorporated with Holland by the Congressof Vienna, 1815j declared itself independent, October 4, 1830, and has since chosen a king as its ruler. Belgrade, Battle of , between the Germans and Turks, when the hitter were beaten and lost 40,000 men, 1456; the city taken by the Turks, 1690; battle of, between the Hungarians under Prince Eugene, and the Turks, when the latter were defeated, July 16, 1717. Bermuda Islands, discovered 1609; settled 1612; set- tlements destroyed by a hurricane, October 11, 1780. Bedouins, The, are that class of Arabs who lead a nomadic life. Living in the desert of Arabia, they have evolved characteristics as robbers and herdsmen in- timately connected with their mode of life. Keen of physica'l sense, with active imagination, yet destitute of solid knowledge, the Bedouin unites independence and love of liberty, with a violent passion, an infamous love of plunder, and an entire disregard of the rights of property. They are professedly Mohammedan. Big- amy is rare; polygamy scarcely known. Bible Societies, first commenced under the auspices of Granville Sharp, March 7,1804; the pope issued a bull against them, March 20, 1807. Bitbvnia, a kingdom of Asia, conquered by Croesus, king of Lydia, B. C. 560; by Alexander, 332. From its ruins rose the Ottoman Turks, who made Prusa their capital before they possessed Constantinople, 1327. Blenheim, Battle of, between the English ana French, when the latter were defeated, with a loss of 27,000 killed and 13,000 prisoners; while the total loss of HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 285 the English amounted to no more than 13,000 in killed, wounded, and prisoners, August 3, 1704. Boadicea, queen of Iceni, at the head of the Britons, attacked the Romans, burned London, and massacred 70,000 of its inhabitants; but being shortly afterward captured by Suetonius, poisoned herself, C5~A. D. Boulogne, France, besiege^ and taken by Henry VIII. ,1514; sold to France for 400,000 crowns, 1550 ; Sir Sidney Smith i'ailed in an attack on the flotilla there, November, isoe. Bi>yne, battle of, between King William and King James, when the latter was defeated, July 1, 1090. Brazil, discovered by the Portuguese, 1500, who set- tled there 1540; diamond mines discovered 1730; the royal family arrives at, 1807; revolution took place, 1821; its independence declared and the prince regent declared emperor, 18-.'2; the king of Portugal ratified the treaty and took the title of emperor of, 18-.'5; war with Buenos Ayres, 18J6 : death of the dowager princess of, at Lisbon, August 8, 1829 ; revolution and expulsion of the emperor, Dom Pedro, and the appointment of a re- gency in the name of his son, 1830; became a republic, 1883. Brochs are prehistoric structures in Scotland re- sembling low, circular, roofless towers, with walls of great thickness of unhewn stones, and inclosed by a narrow passage, chiefly in Orkney, Shetland, etc. The brochs of Mousa is a' typical arid the best preserved example. Buenos Ayres, founded 1535 by Pedro de Mcndoza; rebuilt 1580; taken from the Spaniards by Sir Home Popham, June 21, 1806; retaken after an attack of three days, August 12; British attack on, under Lieutenant General Whitelock, in which the British were repulsed, July C, 1807; declaration of independence published, July 19, 1816. Bulgarians, defeated by Basilius, Emperor of the East, wBO made 15,000 of them prisoners and caused their eyes to be put out, except one in a hundred, whom he left one eye, that they might serve as leaders to the rest, 1014. By/.antium, built by a colony of Athenians, B. C. 670. The seat of empire removed thither from Rome, A. D. 300, and its name changed to Constantinople. California, first settled by the Spaniards, 17>9, at San Diego. Ranks first in barley, grape culture, gold, and quicksilver; second in wool; third in hops; fifth in wheat and salt ; seventh in silk goods ; eighth in soap and silver; and ninth in wealth. Mining, manufactur- ing, stock raising, and agriculture form the' principal industries of the state. Commerce is extensive with China, Japan, the East Indies, and Australia, and with other states and territories. No state in the Union has developed so rapidly. Caledonia is the' name given by the Romans to that part of Scotland lying between the Forth and the Clyde ; so called from the" tribe of Caledonii. The name disap- pears in the fourth century, and the people of Scotland began to be called PictsUo the cast) and Scots (to the west). In more modern times Caledonia u a poetical name for Scotland. Canada, discovered, 1499 ; settled by the French, 1534 ; toucher built by Samuel Champlain, 1608; conquered by the English, 1759; ceded to them, 1763. Canary Islands, discovered by a Norman, 1405; con- quered by tin- Spaniards, 1491. Camlia, the ancient Crete, once subject to Greece, sold to the Venetians till taken by the Turks after 22 years' siege, 1669. Canna, Battle of, where 40,000 Romans were killed by tin- Carthaginians, B. C. 21(i. Carthage, founded by the Tyrians, B. C. 1259; built by Queen Dido, about 869; destroyed, B. C. 704. Catalonia, Kingdom of, conquered by the Goths, 414 ; by the Saracens, 714 ; taken by the Moors, 800 ; united to Spain, 1492. Central America. Under the name of Central America are included the republics of Guatemala, Honduras. San Salvador, Nicaragua, Costa Rica, and the territory known as British Honduras. In 1502 Co- lumbus discovered the eastern shore of Central America, and shortly afterward the Spaniards took possession of it, retaining it until 1820, when it rebelled, and many of the states which then composed it were annexed by Mexico. Three vears afterwards was formed the Cen- tra' American Confederation, I ut in 1839 Nicaragua withdrew, as did also Costa Rica in 1P40, and Guatemala in 1847. In 1872 Guatemala, Costa Rica, San Salvador, and Honduras became united, forming the Central American Union, the object of the union being the maintenance of peace in the several states and of the republican form of government. ' The representatives of the Greater Republic of Cen- tral America, which w::s formed by the treaty of A ma- pa In , concluded June 2; but it was not held till June 1, 1815. The object was to pro- claim ISActe additioiiel an f constitutions de V Empire. Charing Cross was originally a London suburb, where was erected the last of the crosses in memory of Eleanor, queen of Edward I. The cross was destroyed in ir>47. but a new one was placed on the spot in 1865. Chillon is a celebrated castle of Switzerland, at the pastern end of the Lake of Geneva. It stands on an isolated rock, and long served as a state prison. Here for six years (1530-36) Bonnivard endured the captivity immortalized by Byron's " Prisoner of Chillon "(1821). China, Monarchy of , commenced B. C. 2367; but its history does not extend above the Greek Olympiads. Fohi is by many writers supposed to be the founder of 286 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. the Empire, and its first sovereign, B. C. 2247. The country conquered bv the eastern Tartars, when the emperor and his family killed themselves, A. D. 1644. First voyage to China" from the United States made from New York, February 22, 17*4. 4 iinbri. The, were the ancient inhabitants of Jut- land, of disputed nationality. They made serious in- cursions into Italy, but were utterly routed by the Romans, 101 B. C.,and were afterwards merged in the Saxons. Colorado (Centennial state). First settlement, by Americans, near Denver, about 1850. Organized as a territory, 1861. Ranks first in silver, fourth in gold, eighth in square miles, seventeenth in miles of railway, thirty-fifth in population and wealth. About one third of the state is good agricultural land and easy of irriga- tion, bringing forth bountiful harvests of all the cereals. As a grazing and dairy country it is unsurpassed, its nutritious grasses having peculiar advantages for herd- ing. Its chief production is mining; in its vield of gold and silver, it is the leading state of the Union. Commune, The, is the unit or lowest division in the administration of France, corresponding in the rural districts to our township, and in towns to a munici- pality. The rising of the Commuue at Paris in 1871, and which should not be confounded with communism, was a revolutionary assertion of the autonomy of Paris, that is, of the right of self-government through its commune or municipality. The theory of the rising was that every commune should have a" real autonomy, the central government being merely a federation of communes. The movement was based on discontent at Paris, where the people found themselves in possession of arms after the siege by the Germans. The rising be- gan on the 18th of March, 1871, and was only suppressed ten weeks later, after long, bloody fighting between the forces of the Commune and a larg'e army of the central government; 6,500 Communists having fallen during 23-30th of May, and 38,578 having been taken prisoners. Covent Garden, originally the garden or the Abbot of Westminster, is a spacious square in London, cele- brated for a great market held within it of fruit, vege- tables, and flowers. The square was formed about 103 1 , and is famous from its connection with the modern his- tory of London. Confederation of the Rhine, The, formed July 12, 1806, was a federation of the Germanic States, formed by Napoleon Bonaparte, whose disastrous Russian cam- paign (1812) caused the dissolution of the confederation, the Germanic Confederation taking its place. Connecticut, first settled by the English at Windsor 1633. Ranks first in clocks : third in silk goods ; fourth in cotton goods ; eighth in tobacco ; fourteenth in wealth. Manufactures cotton, woolen, aud wocsted goods, hard- ware, jewelry, plated ware, leather goods. Agricul- ture and manufacture are carried on to a considerable extent. Several extensive granite and freestone qaar- ries are successfully worked as are also mines of lead copper, and iron. Many of the towns have an extensive coasting trade, and foreign commerce with the West Indies. Comedy, the first acted at Athens on a stage, B C 562; those of Terence first acted, B. C. 154 ; the first reg- ular one performed in England, 1551. Constantinople, founded by Argives, B. C. 608; be- sieged and destroyed, 193; received its present name from Constant ine the Great, who removed there the seat of the Eastern Empire, 324 ; suffered greatl v by fire, pestilence, famine, and an earthquake, that overturned its walls and towers, 446; had first an emperor, 1268- taken from the Greeks by Mahomet II., who slew the emperor and 60,000 inhabitants this put an end to the eastern empire, which began with the reign of Arcadus, 395, and continued 10C.5 years; the embassadors of Eng- land and France arrived at, June 20, 1829. Convention, for forming the constitution of the United States, met at Philadelphia, May 25, 1787, and re- ported the same to the States for adoption, September 17, of the same year. Cook, Captain, sailed July 30, 1708, to go round the world ; returned August, 1771 ; again to explore the south- ern hemisphere, July 13, 1772 ; returned July 29, 1775. Killed by savages on a voyage to the Sandwich Islands, 1879 ; ship returned, 1780. April 2, 1801 ; garrison of, capitulated to the British troops after a severe bombardment of three davs. Sep- tember 6, 1807. Cordova, the first Roman colonv in Spain, settled by Marcellus; the residence of the Moorish princess, 759; kingdom of, destroyed, 1014. Corsica, dependent on Genoa until 1730 ; became free, 1733; elected Theodore king, 173ti; ceded to France by Genoa, 1779; sold to Germany, 1781 ; the Corsicans ac- knowledged George III. as .their king, 1794; the island, evacuated by the English, November, 1790. Crusades', or Holy Wars, between the Christians and I Mohammedans, which, in the end, cost the lives of two ! hundred million men. The first, in 10U5, was under i Peter the Hermit and Godfrey de Bouillon ; the second, in 114K. under Emperor Conrad II. and Louis VII. of France; the third, in 1188, bv Frederick Barbarossa, joined in 11. :0 by Philip II. of France and Richard I. of England ; the fourth, in 1204, under Baldwin, Count of Flanders; the fifth, in 12^8, under Frederick II.; the j sixth, in 1248, under Louis IX. of France against Egypt ; the seventh, in 1270, also by Louis IX. .against Tunis, I where Louis lost his life. Curfew Bell was established in England in 1068, which, to prevent fires, obliged people to put out their fire and candles at eight in the evening, when the bells rang; abolished in 1100. i Danes, their first descent upon England was at Port- land, 787; their second in Northumberland. 794, when they were repelled and perished by shipwreck. Suc- cessive invasions took place up to the year 998; de- feated the English at Ipswich, 1010; took Canterbury and put nine out of ten of the inhabitants to death, 1011; settled in Scotland, 1020; expelled the English, 1041; landed again at Sandwich, 1047, and carried off great plunder to Flanders; joined the Northumbrians, burned York, and slew 3,000 Xormans, 1069; invaded England again, but, bribed bv William II.. quitted it, 1140. Dakotas, The, first settled by Americans at Pembina. Admitted into the Union as two states, North and South Dakota, 1889. Ranks third in gold, nintli in sil- ver, thirty-ninth in population. Delaware, first settlement mnde by Swedes at Cape Henlopen, less. The principal industries are agricul- tural pursuits and mining. Fruic grows in great abundance. Considerable manufacturing is done in the northern part of the state. Delft, one of the most ancient towns of South Hol- I land, is situated on the Schie, eight miles northwest of Rotterdam by rail, and is intersected by numerous canals. Delft was noted from the sixteenth to the eighteenth century for its Delft ware, but has now en- tirely lost its high "reputation for this manufacture. Decemvirs, The, were men wh > drew up a code of , Roman laws, and who, in 451 B. C., had the whole gov- I ernment of Rome in their hands. They were successful I in their administration till the incident of Appius Claudius and Virginia led to the appointment of consuls. Delphi v/as an ancient northern Greek town, cele- brated for the oracles pronounced by the Pythian ? priestess inthe temple of Apollo. The oracle was known .' as early as 600 B. C., and the temple became the reposi- tory of immense treasures. It was plundered by the Phocians and Nero, the latter taking away three hun- dred costly statues in 67 A. D. Denmark, the ancient kingdom of the Goths; its first king reigned 714; embraced Christianity, 910; united with the Crown of Norway, 141'-', and with Swe- * den, 1497; separated from Sweden") n 1528; crown made hereditary and absolute, 1660; Copenhagen bombarded by the English, 1807; commercial treaty between Den- mark and England, 1824. Diana, Temple of, at Ephesus, burned by the Anw.- zons, about 1182; again by Erostratus, in order to per- petuate his name, B. C. 356; again by the Goths, in their third invasion, about 256. Dionysins, Usurpation of, B. C. 409; besieged Rhe- gium, 388, and took it after eleven months; began the first Punic war, 384 ; expelled from Syracuse by Dfon, 357. Doomsday Book, The, or " Domesday Book" (10f5- 1086), was a statistical survey of that part of England which was under the sway of William the Conqueror. So called, probably, because it was of authority in all dooms, i. e., judgments in disputed questions which afterwards arose on matters contained therein. It was anciently known as the " Liber de Wintonia" (Book of Winchester), because at one time it was preserved in the royal treasury of that city, under three locks and kevs. "it was printed and published in 1783, in two folio volumes. In 1816 two supplementary volumes wer published. Atfi) 287 Dublin, city, Wall built about 838; stormed by Der- mond, 1171; its first charter granted, 1173; castle built, 12-'<>; its University founded, 1591; Parliament House begun, 1729; finished, 1739; Insurrection in and murder of Lord Kilwarden, July 23, 1803. Duke, Title of, first given in England to Edward, son Of Edward III., March 17, 1336; quite extinct, 1572, but has since been renewed in many instances. Egrypt, The kingdom of, began under Misraim, the son of Ham, the second son of Noah, B. C. 2188, and lasted 1,663 years; conquered by Cambyses, 525 1 revolted- from the Persians, assisted by the Athenians, 463; taken by Alexander, 332; reduced to a province, 31; conquered by the Turks, A. D. 1517; invaded by the French under Bonaparte, 1798, who, by the aid of the British, were eventually expelled, 1800. Egypt, since the year 1807, has been under the dominion of the Mo- hammedans. England, originally inhabited by the Britons, a branch of the ancient Gauls or C'eltae j the western part in the time of the Romans was inhabited by the Belgae ; the northern part by the Brigantes ; South Wales by the Silures, and Norfolk and Suffolk by the Iceni. Invaded by Julius CsBsar, B. C. 54 ; subdued by Claudius.44, and completely so by Agricola, in 85 A. D. The Romans kept possession of it until 410. Conquered by the Sax- ons, 455, who were invited over by the ancient inhab- itants, and who divided it into seven kingdoms, called the Heptarchy. Ravished by the Picts and Scots, 448. Erected into a kingdom by Egbert, by a union of all the kingdoms of the Heptarchv, 827. Conquered by the Danes, 877; recovered by Alfred, 880. Divided into counties and hundreds, 886 ; invaded by the Scots, who were defeated by Athelstan, 921 ; by the Welsh, 984; by Sweyn, king of Denmark, 1003; again by Sweyn and almost subdued by him, 1013; by the Irish, 1069; by Malcolm, king of Scotland, 1071, and again 1091 ; again, 1093, when Malcolm and his son were killed at Alnwick; by Robert, Duke of Normandy, 1101; by David of Scot- land, 1136; by the Scots again, in 1183; by Henry, Duke of Richmond^ 1485 ; England declared war against Spain, January 4, 1762 ; the famous dynasty of the Plantagenets commenced with the reign of Henry of Anjou. The Magna Charta was adopted during John's reign, in 1215. The reign of Elizabeth was signalized by the defeat of the Spanish Armada, 1588. James VI., of Scotland, was the first ruler of Great Britain. K pirns. Kingdom of, first known in history by the great warlike achievements of Pv rrhus, about B. C. 950 ; a second Pyrrhus was renowned for his wars against 'the Romans, B. C. 280; became a republic, 240, but was subdued by the Romans, B. C. 167. It was finally con- quered by Mahomet II., 1466, and became part of the Ottoman Empire. Falk L,aws, The, 1873, were so called from Dr. Talk, who insisted on the compulsory education of the clergy of Prussia. The laws are four in number: (1) The first was directed against the abuse of ecclesiastical discipline for political purposes, such as " boycotting," excommunication, anu anathemas ; (2) the next regu- lated the effect of secession from the Church on the ob- ligation to meet certain taxes; (3) the third law was directed at the evasions by Roman Catholics of state education incumbent on all Germans; and (4) abolished the legality of papal tribunals, recognizing the judg- ments o* the German ecclesiastical courts as the only authority on Church matters. In 1874 these four laws were supplemented by others, to insure more perfect obedience. Dr. Adalbert Falk was appointed by Prince Bismarck " Minister of Public Worship," January 22, 1872. In 1872 Prince Bismarck carried through the Prussian Housesabill to transferthe control of primary education from the Church to the State authorities. Famous Retreat, The, of the ten thousand, occurred B. C. 401-399. It was conducted by Xenophon, the his- torian, who had joined the expedition of Cyrus. In the battle of Cunaxa, Cyrus lost his life, and the Greeks were left without a leader. Xenophon volunteered to lead them back to Greece, and has left a historical nar- rative of this famous retreat, called " Xenophon's Anabasis." Feudal raw. introduced 1070. This consisted in dividing the kingdoms into baronies, giving them to certain persons and requiring those persons to furnish the king with money and a stated number of soldiers. First French Revolution. Its chief leaders: Corote deMirabcau, 1789-1791; Danton, from the death at Mirabeau to 1793; Robespierre, from June, 1793, to July 27, 1794. Next to these three were St. Just, Cou- thon, Marat, Carrier, Hebert, Santerre, Camille Des- moulins, Roland and his wife, Brissot, Barnave, Sieyes, Barras, Tallien, etc. Its great days : 1789, June 17, the Tiers tat constituted itself into the " National Assem- bly " ; June 20, the day of the Jeu de Paume, when the Assembly took an oath not to separate till it had given France a constitution ; July 14, Storming of the Bastille ; October 5, 6, the king and National Assembly trans- ferred from Versailles to Paris. This closed the ancient regime of the court. 1791, June 20, 21, flight and cap- ture of the king, queen, and royal family. 1792, June 20, attack on the Tuileries by Santerre ; August 10, at- tack on the Tuileries and downfall of the monarchy ; September 2, 3, 4, massacre of the state prisoners. 1793, January 21, Louis XVI. guillotined ; May 31, commence- ment of the Reign of Terror; June 2, the Girondists proscribed ; October 16, Marie Antoinette guillotined ; October 31. the Girondists guillotined. 1794, April 6, downfall of Danton ; July 27, downfall of Robespierre. Florida (Peninsular State). First settlement by the Spaniards, at St. Augustine, 1565. Admitted to the Union, 1845. Ranks third in sugar and molasses ; sixth in rice; tenth in cotton; twenty -first in square miles; twenty-seventh in miles of railway; thirty-fourth in population; thirty-sixth in wealth. The inhabitants confine themselves to agriculture. The chief products are cotton, sugar cane, rice, corn, and sweet potatoes, and tropical fruits of great variety. There is considera- ble trade also in lumber. France, the country of the ancient Gauls ; a colony of the Belgse from Germany were permitted to settle in it B. C. 200; conquered by the Romans, B. C. 25; by the Goths, Vandals, Alans, Suevi, and Burgundi, who divided it amongst them, from 400 to 486. The Franks, from whom the French are derived, occupied part of Brabant, one hundred and thirty years before the reign of Clovis; it is the only state in Europe that can boast a perpetual succession from the conquerors of the west- ern empire. Its first king was Pharamond, who began to reign in 418 ; Clovis was the first Christian king, 481 ; the Assemblies, called the States-General, first met, 1302, and continued to 1614; the English crown lost all its possessions in France between 1341 and 131/9. The Revolution in France began 1789; the nobility and all religious orders suppressed, 1790 ; Louis XVI. beheaded, January 21, 1793; nis queen, Marie Antoinette, be- headed, October 16, 1793; Bonaparte made first consul, 1799; Louis XVIII. made his second entry into Paris, July 8, 1815; Louis was succeeded in 1824, by his brother, Charles X., who was expelled, with his family, which country, as a consequence, was ceded to France. In 1848, the Bourbons were again driven out, and a republic established, with Napoleon III. as president. In December, 1851, Napoleon seized the absolute power, set aside the constitution, and shortly afterward was ' crowned emperor. A war with Prussia was precipitated in 1870, at the conclusion of which the present republic was established. Franks, The, arose from a confederacy of the inhab- itants of the Lower Rhine and Weser about 240. Freemasons, The society of, are said to have taken rise from a set of foreigners who called themselves free- masons, whose secrets were kept intact; they are said to have introduced the art of building with stone into England about 670 ; another version has it that the insti- tution is as early as the building of Solomon's Temple. The first lodge opened in America was at Boston, July 30, 1733. men killed, May 4, 1807. Games, Olympic, first celebrated in Elis by the Ida;! Dactvli, B <-:i453; instituted by Pelops, 1307 ; celebrated by Hercules, 1222 ; restored at Elis by Iphitus, Lycurgus, and Cleosthenes, 884 : Isthmian, instituted at Corinth by King Sisvphus, B. C. 1326 ; restored, 584 ; Pythian, first celebrated by Adrastus, king of Argos, B. C.iaiS; in- stituted at Delphi, in Greece, 591 ; Capitoline, instituted by Domitian, A. D. 86; Secular, celebrated at Rome, A. I'.**. Genoa, Republic, founded B. C. 63; the present one, AD 950- the first Duke of , chosen 1337; republic re- stored to its liberties by Doria, 1528 ; bank failed, 1750 ; the city in 1799, then in possession of the French, was taken 2S8 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. hy the united forces of Austria and England, and in 1815 was united to the Sardinian monarchy. Georgia (Empire State of South). First settlement, by the English, Savannah, 1733. Ranks second in rice and sweet potatoes ; third in cotton and molasses ; fourth in sugar; seventh in mules; tenth in hogs; thirteenth in population ; fifteenth in miles of railway ; nineteenth in square miles; twenty-fifth in wealth. The leading industry is agriculture, the products being corn, rice, cotton, and sweet potatoes, and manufacturing, in which it leads all other Southern States, having fine facilities. Gold, iron, marble, and slate abound. Germany, from Germann or warlike man, being an- ciently divided into several independent states, was in- significant in history until B.C. 25, when the people withstood the power of the Romans, and expelled them in 290; Charlemagne became master of the whole, 802. The Emperor of Germany assumed the title of Emperor of Austria, August 11, 1804. In 1521, at the Diet of Worms, Luther made his famous defense ; religious dis- sensions occupied the country for a long period after the retirement of Charles V., in 1556, and in 1618, the Thirty Years' "War broke out; Germany secured her religious freedom by the Peace of Westphalia, in 1648. The foundation of the Prussian monarchy was laid in 1075. Numerous wars took place during the eighteenth century, and constant mutations occurred in the map of Germany. Under the famous Fredericks, the Kingdom of Prussia developed into a first-class power. German unification began under William I. ; the war with Prus- sia was declared on July 19, 1870, and resulted in the complete unification of Germany; the king of Prussia, by thistreaty, was proclaimed Emperor of Germany. Ghent, Be'lgium, stands on 26 islands, connected with each other by 80 bridges. The city of Venice is built on 80 islands, connected by nearly 400 bridges. In Venice canals serve for streets, and gondolas for carriages. Gibraltar, taken by Sir George Rooke.July 24,1704; besieged by the Spaniards, February 24, 1727; again, May. "1731 : besieged again by the Spaniards, from 1780 to September 13, 17*2, when their floating battery was burned with red hot balls from the garrison commanded by General Elliott. Gibraltar came into the possession of the English in 1704. .!<. ndins. The, in English " The Girondists," were the pure republican party in the National Assembly and National Convention of the first French Revolution. So called because it consisted mainly of the deputies of the Gironde. This party was distinguished for its oratory, and for a time dominated the assembly ; but, horrified at the September massacres, they condemned the Reign of Terror, and tried to bring in more moderate meas- ures. This drew upon them the hatred of the dema- gogues, and on May 31, 1793, some twenty-nine of the Girondists were arrested at the instigation of Robes- pierre, and on October 31 twenty of them were guillo- tined, among whom were Brissot, Gensonne, Vergniaud, Ducos, and Sillery. Valaze stabbed himself while he stood -in the dock. Gordiaii Knot, the knot of the thong in the wagon of Gordius. who was elected king of Phrygia from driving a wagon, and which he afterwards deposited in the temple of Jupiter. Whoever loosed this knot, the ends of which were not discoverable, the Oracle declared should be emperor of Persia. Alexander the Great cut away the knot till he found the ends, and thus inter- pretated the Oracle, 1$. C. 330. Goths', The, who inhabited all the countries from the Baltic to the Euxine seas, first mentioned as invading the Romans, 250; waged war with them, 366; from which time may be derived the fall of the Roman Em- pire. The -whole nation, a million in number, through fear of the Huns, removed to the waste land in Thrace, 376; rebelled against the Romans, 377, and were quelled ; afterwards attacked ly Valens, the Roman army was cut to pieces, and the emperor killed. The Goths capit- ulated with and submitted to the Romans, October 3, >2. Embraced Christianity. 400; pillaged Rome and m-.-i-ii-red tlic inhabitants, 410; slew 300,000 inhabitants . . ...V,9. ' >m of. conquered by the Moors, 715; i lie capital of a new kingdom, and attni v : 1.1 cell I ess splendor; the lasc Moori.h ' - ' ii 'i<- \liilillah, who was conquered by the '! 2 Grecian Monarchy, commenced by Alexander the Great's victory over Darius, the last Persian monarch, B. C. 328; empire began under Nicephorus, 1811, ended, 1453. Greece, The early history of, is surrounded with legend and. myth. The heroic age of Greece is a frag- ment of the poetic imagination. Hellen was claimed by the Greeks as their common ancestor, the popular be- lief being that from his sons, Dorus and .-Bolus, and his grandsons, Ion and yEchaeus, sprang the foiir different branches of the nation the Dorians, the /Eolians, the lonians, and -the ^Schaens. From first to last, Greece was divided into numerous independent states. Au- thentic history begins 77t> B. C., when the first Olympiad was held. In B. C. 431, began the Peloponnesian war. Greece passed under Macedonian rule about 344 B. C. ; in B. C. 214 occurred the first collision between the Greeks and the Romans; from the fifth to the eighth centuries Slavic and other foreign iieople appeared in Greece, but were finally expelled ; in the eleventh century the Normans plundered and ravaged the cities of Thebes, Athens, and Corinth. In 1203, the Latin princes appeared in the Crusades, conquered Constantinople, and divided Greece among them, which divisions were swept away by the Turks in 1453. In 1687 the Christian league besieged and took Athens, and the Moslem rule was again established; the Ottoman yoke was com- pletely thrown off in 1821, and was accomplished by what is known as the modern revolution. Moslem rule was again attempted in 1822, but the allied powers of Euroi>e decided to create Greece an independent king- dom ; in 1866 a revolution in Crete strained the relations of Greece and Turkey ; a renewed outbreak in 1896 led to a war with Turkey, which resulted in favor of Tur- key, but did not impe'ril the independence of Greece. Gretna Green is a village in Dumfriesshire, Scot- land, and the place where, for nearly a century, runa- way couples were made man and wife. These irregular marriages were discountenanced by law in the year 1856. Guelphs and Ghibellines. At the great battle of Weinsberg, in Suabia, A. D. 1140, the Emperor Conrad of Hohenstaufen, and Welf, uncle of Henry the Lion, Duke of Saxony, rallied their followers by the respective war cries, "H~ie Waiblingen ! " " Hie Welf!" As the chief theater of the conflict of these parties was Italy, the original names took the Italian form of Ghibellini and Guelfi, and under these names they became two great parties, whose conflicts may almost be said to make up the history of Italy and Germany from the eleventh till the fourteenth century. The Ghibellini may, in general, be described as the supporters of the imperial authority in Italy, the Guelphs as the oppo- nents of the emperors and adherents of the poj>es. Five great crises in the strife of the Guelphs and Ghibelline parties are commonly noted by historians: Under Henry IV., in 1055; under Henry the Proud, in 1127; under Henry the Lion, in 1140; under Frederick Barba- rossa, in 1159 ; and in the pontificate of the great cham- pion of Church temporal power. Innocent III. The cities of northern Italy were divided between the two parties Florence, Bologna, Milan, and other cities, as a general rule, taking the side of the Guelphs; while Pisa, Verona, and Arezzo were Ghibelline. In general, it may be said that the nobles of the more northern provinces of Italy inclined to the Ghibelline side, while those of the central and southern provinces were Guelph. After the downfall of the preponderance of the German emperors in Italy, the contest ceased to be a strife of principles and "degenerated into a mere struggle of rival factions. From the fourteenth cen- tury the Guelphs or Ghibellines are seldom heard of as actually existing parties; but in the sense already ex- plained, the conflict of principles >yhich they repre- sented is found in every period of political history. Gypsy Tribes. Gypsies, a term applied to a mysteri- ous, vagabond race, scattered over the whole of Europe, and parts of Asia, Africa, and America. Whence they originally came, is not definitely known, but India seems to'have been the cradle of the tribe. They are called Bohemians, in France ; Xingari, in Italy. For cen- turies past they have drifted about over Europe, in small bands, having no permanent homes; living by begging. fortune telling, and various tricks. The first notice of them, which occurs in European literature, is embodied in a free paraphrase, in German, of the Book of Genesis, written by an Austrian monk, about 1122. On August 17, 1427, a band of them, coming from Bohemia, made their appearance before Paris, which, however, they were not allowed to enter, but were lodged at La Chapelle Saint Denis. Other hordes succeeded these in the fol- lowing years, spreading in rapid succession over all parts of Germany, over Spain, England, Russia, Scan- dinavia, and, indeed, over the remotest parts of Europe. The account which they most frequently gave of them- HISTORY AKt) BIOGRAPHY. 289 selves was, that they originally came from " Little Egypt," that the king of Hungary had compelled about Hanseatic I-ea^ne, The, was a trades-union to pro- tect merchandise from pirates and the pillage of nobles. It began with the three towns of Hamburg, Bremen, and Liibeck, but ultimately contained eighty -five trad- ing towns. The league was divided into four colleges, viz., Liibeck, Cologne, Brunswick, and Dantzig. Of these, Liibeck was the chief, and presided in all the con- ferences. Hebrew Race, The, is distributed over the Eastern continent as follows : In Europe there are 5,400,000; in France, 63,000; Germany, 562,000, of which Alsace- Lorraine contains 39,000"; Austro-Hungary, 1,544,000; Italy, 40,000; Netherlands, 82.000; Roumania, 285,000; Russia, 2.552,000; Turkey, 105.003, and in other countries 35,000, Belgium containing the smallest number, only 3,000. In Asia there are 319,000; Asiatic Turkey, 47,000, in Palestine there being 25,000; Asiatic Russia. 47,000: Persia, 18,000; Middle Asia, 14,000; India, 19,000, and China, 1,000. Africa contains 350,000; Egypt, 8,000; Tunis, 55,009; Algiers, 35,000; Morocco, 60,000; Tripoli, 6,000, and Abyssinia, 20:),000. The entire number of Hebrews in the world is nearly 6,300,000. Heptarchy, The Saxon, consisting of the kingdoms of Kent, the Sooth Saxons, the West Saxons, the East Saxons, Northumberland, the East Angles, and Mercier, commenced in the sixth century, and continued till 800, when Egbert reigned alone. Th'e Saxons, notwithstand- ing this division of the kingdom, were subject to one monarch, who was called King of Britain; the mon- archy was not then hereditary, but that person suc- ceeded who had the greatest power. Herculanenm, lirst suffered by an earthquake, Feb- ruary 5, 63 A. D. ; totally overwhelmed, with Pompeii, by ah eruption of Mt. Vesuvius, November 1, 79 A. D. 'Hittites, The, were one of the most important tribes in the south of Canaan. They are mentioned in Gen. x. as the descendants of Heth, a son of Canaan. In the age of Abraham the Hittites inhabited Hebron and its neighborhood (Gen. xxiii.). The primitive seat of the Hittites was probably the Taurus mountains of Asia Minor, from whence, as indicated by the cuneiform re- cords of Tel-el-Amarna, in the latter part of the eight- eenth Egyptian dynasty, they invaded Syria, and later, in the reign of Ramcses II., were settled at Kadesh, ultimately spreading to the south of Palestine. In race the Hittites were probably Turanian, and in their lan- guage allied to the Alarodian family. The peculiar hieroglyphic writings found on Hittite monuments in Syria, Asia Minor, etc., are beginning to be deciphered. In common with the Ilyksos, the deity of the Hittites was Seti, the Egyptian Typhon, and the local goddess of Kadesh Anata', the Canaanitish goddess of war. Hivites, The, were a Canaanitish people, specially as- sociated with the Amorities, dwelling in the time of Joshua (Josh, ix.) near the center of Palestine, and near Mount Hermon and Mount Lebanon, the latter be- ing regarded as the country of the Amorites in the Egyp- tian texts, and Tel-el-Amarna tablets. The Hivites are first mentioned in Scripture in Gen. x. : 17; they were subjected to tribute by Solomon, after whose reign their name no longer appea'rs. Holland, in the fourteenth century.after being ruled ^r four centuries as a province of France or Germany, came under the rule of the Duke of Burgundy. Several wars, growing out of an attempt to extend the power of the inquisition, occurred between- Holland and Spain. tin; last ending in 1C4S, when the Netherlands achieved their independence; was overrun by the French, Janu- ary, 1785; secret expedition against, commenced by the Duke of York, August, 1799; British troops evacuated, November, 1799; Louis Bonaparte proclaimed king of , June 11, 180C; decree for annexing it to France, July 9, 1810; the French expelled, 1813. Holy Alliance, The, was a league formed by the Emperors Alexander I. of Russia, Francis of Austria, and King Frederick -William III. of Prussia, after the sscond abdication of Napoleon. The main principles of the alliance were : 1. That the different Governments of Europe belonged to one family of nations. 2. That all the different creeds of Christendom were to be accorded full ami equal rights in the alliance. 3. That the Chris- tian religion was to be regarded as the moral principle governing in the international conduct and comity of the states. 4. That the Christian religion was to regu- late the whole system of public law. 6. That the allied sovereigns were to give one another united aid in all cases when required. A special article of the treaty also provided that no member of the Bonaparte family should ever sit upon a European throne. Alexandei of Russia drew up the agreement and gave it a name. It was signed by the three monarchs, September 2>, 1815, but it was not wholly made public until February 2, 1810. All thn Governments of Europe, except Rome, which had not been Invited, probably through fear that the Pope would claim the lirst place in jts councils, and thus revive the old difficulty of the supremacy of the Church over Christian Governments, and England, which had declined, became members of the alliance. The alliance accomplished but little, and after Alexander's death, in 1x25, the compact lost authority, and the French Revo- lution of IJWO caused a wide breach between the parties to it. The formation of the Prussian Diet, in 1817, the European uprising in184S, the re-establishment of the Napoleon dynasty in 1850, and finally the war of Russia against England, France, and Turkey in 1^54, brought about the complete dissolution of the alliance. Hottentots, The, are an African native race, occupy- ing the country north from the Cape Colony to Mossa- medes, stretching westward to the Atlantic, and bounded on the east by the Kalahari desert. Formerly a numer- ous nation, the Hottentots have been greatly diminished by the oppression of the Boers, and the race is now nearly extinct. The Hottentots include the Griquas, Bushmen, Korannas, Namaquas, and Damaras. Huguenots, Protestants flrstcalled so in France, from a German word signifying "allied by oath," 1560; mas- sacre of them at Paris, August 24, 1572. Hungary, the Pannonia of the ancients, was subject to the Romans, B. C. 11 ; conquered by the Huns under Attila, when the kingdom of began, A. D.433; annexed to Germany under Charlemagne, but became independent, 920; the Turks contended with the Germans for it from 1540 to 1739, when by the treaty of Belgrade, it was ceded to the latter; in 1848 occurred the Hungarian revolu- tion, led by Kossuth, and which ended in the independ- ence of Hungary, July 8,1867; the dual monarchy be- tween Austria and Hungary was established in 1867. Huns, savage inhabitants of part of Siberia; their kingdom was founded B.C. 230; kingdom taken and divided A. D. 48 ; embraced Christianity, 416 ; conquered Scythiaand Germany, about 432; the kingdom destroyed sooi. after the death of Attila, 453. Idaho. Ranks sixth in gold, seventh in silver, twelfth in square miles, forty-third in miles of railway, forty, fifth in population. "Population, 1890, 81.385. First set- tlement, by Americans, 1842. Organized as a Territory, 1863. Admitted to the Union in 181)0. Independents, The, or Puritans, in the reign of Charles I. were called "Roundheads." The royalists were nicknamed " The Cavaliers." The former wore their hair short, and dressed with great simplicity; the latter wore their hair flowing over their shoulders, and dressed showily and expensively. The two came into collision about the expulsion of the bishops from the House of Lords. The Roundheads insisted on their expulsion, and the severance of the clergy from all secular and state offices. It was in this brawl that the two parties gave each other the nicknames of Round- heads and Cavaliers. Indian Territory was originally set apart as a res- ervation for peaceful tribes. Organized in 1834, but not under the same forms of government as the other ter- ritories. The lands are held in common by the Indians, each being allowed to cultivate as mncn as desired, and whites can hold land only by marrying an Indian. Grazing and agriculture are the leading industries. Oklahoma was opened up to white settlers in 18*9, and organized as a territory' in the following year, its cap- ital being fixed at Guthrie. Indian War, King Philip's, commenced in New England and ended by his death, August 12. 1767. Indiana, lirst settlement by the French at Vincennes, 1730. Ranks second in wheat, fourth in corn, hogs, and agricultural implements, sixth in coal, and population; seventh in horses, oxen, and other cattle, malt and dis- tilled liquors, and wealth ; ninth in hay and milch cows. The inhabitants arc largely engaged in agriculture. Large quantities of coru, wheat, oats, pork, and beef 'Jf)0 THE CENTURY BOOK OP FACTS. are exported. Its mining and manufacturing interests are constantly increasing. Indies, East, first discovered by the Romans; Alex- ander marched into, B. C. 328; discovered by the Portu- guese, A. D. 1487; conquered in 1500, and settled by them in 1506; the first settlement was Goa; the East India Company, established 1600. Illinois, first settlement made by the French at Kas- kaskia, 1682. Illinois is in the front rank as an agricul- tural state, surpassing all others in the production of wheat and corn, and second to none in the extent of stock raising. It ranks fourth in population, and next to Missouri in manufacturing, and the sixth in the Union; its fruit and orchard products are very large. The state abounds in mineral production, coal, lead, and salt being the chief. Its great rivers and lakes lire- sent natural facilities for an extensive commerce. The railroads of the state are greater in the number of miles within the state than any other. Iowa, first settlement made by the Fronch Cana- dians at Burlington, 1788. Agriculture and mining are the leading pursuits. The state takes a leadingposition in the production of wheat, corn, and cattle. Tlie man- ufactures are important and show great progress an- nually. It ranks first in hogs, second in milch cows, oxen, and other cattle, corn, hay, and oats; third in horses, fifth in barley, sixth in potatoes and rye, seventh in coal and wheat. Ireland, was originally occupied by the Celts; in 432 Christianity was introduced by St. Patrick ; from the eighth to the twelfth centuries perpetual warfare ex- isted between the petty kings and their chiefs; con- quered in 1174 by Henry II. of England, and appor- tioned among his Anglo-Norman followers ; Parliamen- tary union with Great Britain took place in 1800 : Catholic Emancipation Act passed, 1829; Fenian riots, 1867. Iron Crown of Lombardy, The, is not an iron crown, but a magnificent gold diadem containing a narrow iron band about three-eighths of nn inch broad and one-tenth of an inch in thickness, This band was made out of a nail given to Constantino by his mother, and said to be one of the nails used in the crucifixion. | The outer circlet of the crown is of beaten gold, set i with large rubies, emeralds, and sapphires, and the iron band is within this circlet. The first Lombard king crowned with it was Agilulph, at Milan, in 591. Charle- magne was crowned with it in 774; Friedrich III., in 1452; Karl V., in 1530; and Napoleon I., May 23,1805, crowned himself with it as "King of Italy" in Milan Cathedral. It was given up to Victor Emmanuel on the conclusion of peace with Austria, in 1866. The motto on the crown is, " God has given it me ; beware who touches it." Israel, kingdom divided, B. C. 979; ended, and the ten tribes carried captive by Shalinanezar, king of Syria, 720. Issus, Battle of, between Darius and Alexander, in which the former lost 100,000 men, B. C. 333. Italy, the successor of ancient Rome, suffered con- siderable political change by the aggressions of Napo- leon I. In 1801 Savoy and Piedmont were united to France, the Duchy of Milan, formed the Cis-Alpine re- public, to which, in 1805, the Duchy of Venice was added, forming together the kingdom of Italy, and Genoa was incorporated with France ; Naples was seized, the Pope was deposed, and all Italy, except Sardinia and Sicily, were subjected to France. In 1814, the states were re- stored to their former rulers, except the Duchies of Milan and Venice, which were given to Austria, and .formed the Lombardo- Venetian kingdom. In 1848 the great revolution was inaugurated, originating from a simultaneous insurrection in Lombardy and Venice. March 14, 1861, Victor Emmanuel was de'clared king of Italy, under whom the kingdom was strengthened and consolidated. He was succeeded by Humbert, the pres- ent ruler, in 1878. Jacobins were the members of a political club which exercised a great influence during the French Revolu- tion. It was oritrinally called the Club Breton, and was formed at Versailles, when the States-General assembled there in 1789. Jacobites (from the Latin Jacobus, " James "), was the name given after the Revolution of 1C88 to the ad- herents of the exiled Stuarts James II. (103::-1701). and his son and two grandsons, James Francis Edward, the Chevalier de St. George (1688-1706), Charles Edward (1720-88), and Henry Benedict, Cardinal York (1725-1807). Those adherents were recruited from the Catholics, the Nonjurors, the High Churchmen, and Tories generally, discontented and place-seeking Whigs, the Episcopa- lians and Highlanders of Scotland, and the great body of the Irish people. Jamaica, discovered by Columbus, 1494; settled by the Spaniards, 1509 ; taken from the Spaniards by Ad- miral Penn, May 7, 1G53. Japan, Empire of, founded by Jimmu, 660 B.C. ; first discovered by the Portuguese, 1549; Buddhism was in- troduced into Japan in the sixth century; in 1549 St. Francis Xavier introduced Christianity; in 1615 the priests were exiled, and all foreigners expelled from the island ; in 1637, massacre of the Christians began ; commercial treaty between the United States and Japan ratified in 1X54. Jerusalem, Temple of, V>uilt B. C. 1094; city taken by Nebuchadnezzar after a siege of eighteen months, 5H7 ; the second temple finished under Darius, B. C. 515; de- stroyed by Titus, A. D. 70; pillaged by the Persians, and 90.030 inhabitants killed, 613; taken by the Saracens, 637; taken by Godfrey of Boulogne, who was elected king of it, July 5, 1100; conquered by Saladiu. 1187 ; now subject to the Turks. Jugurthine War, begun B. C. Ill, and continued five years. Juries, first instituted, 970; trial of civil causes by in Scotland enacted, 1815. Justice of the Peace, first appointed, 1076. Justinian Code, first published, 529. Kansas (Garden of the West). Settled by American?. Admitted to the Union, 1861. Ranks fifth in cattle, corn, and rye, seventh in hay and miles of railway, ninth in hogs," horses, wheat, and coal, fourteenth in square miles, twenty-first in population, twenty-fourth in wealth. Agriculture and stock raising form the chief pursuits ot the inhabitants. Every variety of cereal and farm products is raised in great quantities. Nearly 2,000,000 acres are mineral lands. Three fourths of the state is suited for agriculture. Kentucky, first settled at Boonesboro, 1775, by the English. Agriculture is the main pursuit. Wheat, corn, hemp, flax, and tobacco are leading productions. Fruits of an excellent quality abound. Horses and cat- tle are reared in great numbers. Thousands of swine fatten in the wooils. Mining is carried on to a large extent. Kentucky produces nearly one half the tobacco raised in the United States. Knights Templars, a religious order instituted 1119; flourished in England during the reign of Henry II.; all of them arrested in France in one day; they were charged with great crime and great riches ; 59 of them were burned alive at Paris, October 13, 1307; their order destroyed by Philip of France, 1311. La Belle Alliance is the name of a farm some thir- teen miles from Brussels; ever memorable for being the position occupied by the center of the French in- fantry in the battle of Waterloo (June 18, 1815). Napo- leon himself was in the vicinity of this farm, but Wellington was at Mont St. Jean, two miles further north. Between these two spots was La Have Sainte, where were posted the French tirailleurs. The Prus- sians call the battle of Waterloo the " Battle of la Belle Alliance," and the French call it the " Battle of Mont Saint Jean." Liberia, First settlement of, on the west coast of Afriqa, made in 1820, under the patronage of the Ameri- can Colonization Society. Lignv, Battle of, Prussians under Blucher, totally de- feated by the French, June 16, 1815. Lincoln's Inn, London, the palace of the Bishop of Chichester, about 1226; converted into an inn of court about 1310. Louisiana (Creole state). First settlement, by the French, at Iberville, 1699. Admitted to the Union, 1812. Ranks first in sugar and molasses; third in rice; ninth in salt; twenty-second in population ; twenty-seventh in wealth; twenty-eighth in square miles; twenty-ninth in miles of railway. Holding, as it does, the outlet to the Mississippi Valley, the state is able to control both the foreign and domestic trade of this large and rich section, hence commerce is large and important. The manufacturing interests are comparatively small, ex- cept iu sugars and molasses. Agriculture is the chief pursuit. This state is the only part of our country pro- ducing sugar in large quantities. Cotton is largely cultivated, Louisiana ranking fourth in its production. The rice crop is also large. Indian corn and other cere- HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 291 als i. re also produced to a considerable extent. The tropical fruits are abundant. Lombardy, kingdom of, began 573; made numerous conquests till 1771, when Desiderius, their last king, was taken by Charlemagne and territories annexed to the German empire. London, formerly called Augusta, founded by the Romans, 49; walled and a palace built, 368; city re- paired by Alfred, 885; burned to the ground, about 912 ; nearly destroyed by fire, 1077,and again in 1110 ; the chief magistrate in the time of William I. was called >ort-reeve; Richard I. ordained two bailiffs, but King John changed them to a mayor; obtained their first free charter for electing their own magistrates, 1208 ; gates of the city taken down, 1760 ; the common council ordered to. wear blue silk gowns at court, September 16, 1761; practice discontinued, 1775; London bridge built about 1098. The largest and richest city in the world. Louisburg, taken by the French, July 27, 1758. - Lycurgus, established his laws at Lacedaemon, B. C. 884 ; his institutions renounced by the Spartans, 188. Malirattas, The, are a native Indian race which founded an empire in Central and Western India, 1674. After 1795, Scindia, Holkar, and Berar became inde- pendent; the confederacy of Mahratta states came to an end in 1818, and all the chiefs became dependants of the British Crown. Massachusetts, first settled by the English at Ply- mouth in 1620. Ranks first in cotton, woolen, and worsted goods, cod and mackerelfishing; second in com- merce; third in manufactories, printing, and publish- ing; fourth in silk goods; fifth in soap and in wealth, sixth in iron and steel; ninth in agricultural imple- ments. Its manufactured articles include leather and morocco, flour and meal, lumber and furniture, refined molasses and sugar, machinery, ship-building, animal and vegetable oils. Manufacturing and commerce chiefly engage" the attention of its inhabitants. The middle and western parts are fertile. Farms are highly cultivated. Madagascar, firstseen by the Portuguese, 1506 ; at- tempts at colonization were made by the English and French from 1644 to 1773. The island is at present under a native ruler, though tributary to France. Madeira Islands, discovered by the Portuguese, 14in. Madrid, built B.C. 936; occupies the site of the an- cient Mantua-Carpepanorum, called Majorititim in the Middle Ages. Its importance commenced in 1563, when it was made the capital of Spain by Philip II. It was held by the French from 1808 to 1812, and here Napoleon placed his brother Joseph on the throne of Spain. Marriage, first institution of, by ceremony, ascribed to Cecrops, king of Athens, B. C. 1556; celebration in churches first ordained by Pope Innocent III. about 1200, before which the only ceremony was that of a man leading his bride home to his house; marriage in Lent forbidden by the Church, 364; forbidden to priests, 1015 ; publication of bans instituted about 1210. Maryland, first settled by the English, 1634, at St. Mary's. The chief industries are agriculture and man- ufacturing. Corn, wheat, and tobacco are the leading agricultural products. Coal is mined extensively. Among other commercial products are flour and meal, smelted copper, refined sugar and molasses, cotton goods, lumber and furniture, malt and distilled liquors, tobacco and cigars, oysters, fish, and vegetables, leather goods, clothing, printing and publishing. The foreign commerce of the state is carried on chiefly through the city of Baltimore, which has all the advantages of a seaport. The chief exports are tobacco, flour, canned fruits, and oysters. Maine (Pine Tree State). Settled by French at Bris- tol, 1625; admitted to the Union, 1820. Ranks fifth in buckwheat and copper; eighth in hops and potatoes; eleventh in hay ; twenty-first in wealth ; twenty-seventh in population; thirty-third in miles of railway; thirty- sixth in square miles. Industries: Extensive lumber and ship-building trade, fisheries, cotton, woolens, tanned a,nd curried leather, boots and shoes, lime, etc. T'.-ie agricultural portion of the state lies in the valley of St. John, and between the Penobscot and Kennebec rivers. Magna Charta, The, was the great charter or docu- ment, founded mainly upon earlier Saxon charters, which the English barons compelled King John to sign at Runnymede(June 15, 1215). The most important pro- visions are: (1) No scutage or aid shall be raised, except in the case of the king's captivity, the knighting of his eldest son, or the marriage of his eldest daughter, except by the general council of the kingdom; (2) no freeman shall be imprisoned or disseised, outlawed, or proceeded against otner than by the legal judgment of his peer, or by the law of the land ; (3) that right or jus- tice shall not be sold, delayed, or denied to any ; (4) that the civil court shall be stationary, and not follow the king's person. Other provisions were directed against the abuse of the power of the king as lord paramount. the tyranny of the forest laws, and grievances connected with feudal tenure. The Charter of Forests was granted at the same time. Both documents have been confirmed by Act of Parliament thirty-two times. Manitoba was first settled by the French in 1731, and English traders first made their appearance in 1767. It is a wheat- growing country, and furs are also a leading product. All kinds of garden vegetables, as well as oats, barley, Indian corn, hops, flax, hemp, potatoes, and other root crops are easily raised. The grassy savannas of the Red River afford abundant pasturage. The climate is very severe in winter, but occasionally hot in summer. Winnipeg is the capital. Massacres at Alexandria of many thousand citizens by order of Antoninus. 213; of Thessalonica, when up- wards of 7,000 persons were put to the sword by order of Theodosius, 390 ; of 35,000 persons at Constantinople, 532 ; of the Jews, 1189; of the Huguenots at Paris, by order of Charles IX., when 70,000 where destroyed, June 12, 1418; of the Swedish nobility at a feast, by order of Christian II., 15-20; at Paris, when the king led the way and nearly 10,000 Protestants were slain, 1572; of the Christians in Croatia by the Turks, when 65,000 were slain, 1592 ; of the English factory by the Dutch at Am- boyna, 1623, in order to dispossess them of the Spice Islands; of the Irish at the Island of Magee, when 40,000 English Protestants were killed, 1641; of the whites in San Domingo by the negroes, 1803 and 1804; of the Greeks at Scio, 1823. Memiion, the Egyptian, invented letters, B. C. 1822. Mexico, first conquered by Spain, 1521, by Cortez; a revolution, fomented by the clergy, took place in 1810; a constitution was proclaimed in 1812, and in May, 1822, Don Augustin Iturbide was elected emperor of Mexico; he abdicated in 1823; became a federal republic in 1824: in 1863, a French army invaded Mexico and occupied the capital. Under the patronage of Napoleon the III., Maximilian of Austria became emperor of Mexico from 1864 till 1867, when he was shot and a republic re- proclaimed. Minnesota (Gopher State). First settlement, by Americans, Red River, 1812. Admitted to the Union, 1858. Ranks fourth in wheat and barley ; eighth in oats and hay; twelfth in miles of railway; thirteenth in square miles; seventeenth in wealth; twenty-sixth in population. The leading industries are: 1. Agricul- ture; the staple productions being corn, wheat, and oats, while other cereals are largely raised. 2. Lumber- ing; great quantities of lumber are sawed in this state, and immense rafts of logs are floated down the Missis- sippi, to be sawed in other states. 3. Manufacturing; the principal articles being sawed lumber and flour. Missouri (Pennsylvania of the West). First settle- ment, by the French, at St. Genevieve, 1764. Admitted to the Union, 1821. Ranks first in mules ; third in oxen, hogs, corn, and copper; fifth in population: sixth in iron ore, wool, milch cows, and horses ; seventh in oats ; eighth in wealth, wheat, and tobacco ; ninth in sheep and potatoes ; tenth in miles of railway; sixteenth in square miles. Agriculture is the leading occupation. Mining is extensively carried on in the section south of St. Louis. The iron resources of the state exceed those of any other. The manufacturing interests are large and increasing. The chief agricultural products are great crops of corn, wheat, rye, tobacco, hemp, and grapes. Mississippi. First settlement made by the French at Natchez, 1716. This state ranks second in cotton ; fifth in rice; fifth in mules and molasses; seventh in sugar. It is almost exclusively an agricultural state. Great quantities of rice, corn, sugar, and sweet potatoes are produced. Many tropical fruits grow in abundance. The labor is largely performed by negroes. Horses, mules, swine, and cattle, are extensively raised. Microscopes. First used in Germany, 1821 ; with two glasses, invented by Drebbel, 1624; solar, invented by Lieberkuk, 1470. Milan, anciently Liguria, the seat of the Roman em- pire, 303; conquered by the Goths in the fifth century, who were dispossessed by the Lombards, 572 ; subdued by the Emperor Charlemagne, 800 ; the French expelled about 1525; taken by the Imperialists, 1706: recovered by France and Spain, 1743 ; restored to Austria, 1748 ; in 292 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. 1805 the French made it the capital of the kingdom of Italy; retaken by Austria in 1814; in 185!' was incorpo- rated with Lombardy in the kingdom of Italy. Minstrels, originally piers appointed by the Lords of Manor to divert their copyholders whilst at work: owed their origin to the gleemen or harj>ers of the Saxons; continued until about 1500; female harpers not uncommon in Britain, 6*0. Mint. First established in London as a privileged place, 1066 ; for the coinage of monev, 1813 ; mint of the United States first established at Philadelphia, April 2, 1792 ; coinage of gold commenced July 31, 17!>5. Michigan (Wolverine State). First settled by the French, at Detroit, 1650. Admitted to the Union, 1837. I Ranks first in copper, lumber, and salt; second in iron | ore; third in' buckwheat and wool; fifth in hops and potatoes; sixth in wheat, barley, and wealth; seventh in agricultural implements: ninth in pats, population, and miles of railway, and twentieth in square miles. Agriculture, mining^ lumbering, manufacturing, and commerce command the attention of the inhabitants. Large crops of wheat, corn, pats, and potatoes are pro- duced, as also great quantities of wool, butter, and cheese. Fruit raising is extensivelv followed, the vaiue of the orchard products exceeds that of New Jersey or California. The copper mines of the state are the rich- est known, and are extensively worked. The produc- tion of sawed lumber is greater than that of any other state. The value of manufacturing exceeds $100,000,000. The fisheries form one of the secondary, yet important i sources of wealth, large quantities being taken for home j use and export. Montana ranks fourth in silver, and square miles; fifth in gold; fifteenth in cattle; thirty-sixth in miles of railway, and forty-fourth in population. The popula- tion ,"f Montana, according to census of 1880, was 39,159, but in 1884 the total vote cast -for delegate to Congress was 26,969, and in 1886,32,262. In 1890, the population numbered 132,159. First settlement, by Americans, 1852. Organized as a territory, 1864. Admitted to the Union in 1889. Mogul Empire. First conquered by JenghisKahn, a Tartar prince, who died 1220; Tiiiiur Bek became great mogul by conquest, 13UO; the dynasty continued in his family until the conquest of Tamerlane in the fifteenth century; Kouli Khan, the famous Sophi of Persia, considerably diminished the power of the mogul, and since that event many, of the nabobs have made themselves independent: the last sovereign, Shah Allum, died in 180C, a pensioner of England. Monkery began in Kgypt and Persia ; tolerably well established about 330; in 'Egypt alone there were'96,000 monks. St. Anthony, the first example of a monastic life, 305, established the first monastery- on Mt. Colzim, near the Red Sea. Athanasius introduced monastic life into Rome, 341. Mount Vernon, memorable as the residence and the burial place of George Washington, is on the right bank of the Potomac, in Virginia, fifteen miles below Wash- ington. . In 1856 the mansion and surrounding property were" saved from the auctioneer's hammer, and secured as a national possession. Moors, driven out of Spain, after they had continued there 900 years, 1620, for attempting to 'free themselves from the" Inquisition; they were in number about 900,000. Mo'rocoo, Empire of. anciently Mauritania, first known, 1008; possessed by the Romans, B. C.2-3; about 1116 Alxlallah, the leader of a sect of Mohammedans, founded the dynasty of Almahides, which ended in the last sovereigns total defeat in Spain, 1212; Morocco was afterwards seized by the King of Fez. but the de- scendants' of Mahomet, about l.VA subdued and united the three kingdoms, and formed what is called the Em- pire of Morocco. The present sovereign of Morocco belongs to the ninth dynasty, founded in 1C48. Moscow, burned, 30,000 nouses destroyed, in 1730; entered by the French, September 11. 18121 and burned by the Russians, in consequence of which the French retreated with great loss. Museum, The British, established 1753; large addi- tionsr-made to the building and the library of George III. given to the institution. by George IV., 1827. Nantes, Edict of, passed by Henry IV., by which Protestants enjoyed toleration 'in France, 1598, "revoked by Louis XIV., 1685; in consequence of which 50,000 F'rench Protestants emigrated to England ; they engaged largely in the manufacture of silk ; some introduced the art of making crystal glasses for watches and pictures. Naples, anciently Capua and Campania, kingdom of, began 1020; given by the pope to the Cornte D'Anjmi, 1266; Alphonsusof Arragon united Sicily to it, and the kings have since been called king of the Two Sicilies, 1442; taken from the French and annexed to Spain, 1504; order of the Crescent founded, 1464; taken by the French, January 24, 179!); Joseph Bonaparte was made king of Naples in 1805, but replaced by Murat in 1808; the Austrians took possession in 1814; in 1861 the last king of Naples was expelled by Garibaldi, and the two Sicilies were merged in the kingdom of Italy. Nebraska. First settlement made by Americans. Beef, cattle, and other livestock are raised 'in great num- bers upon the grazing sections. Corn, wheat, and other cereals, and fruit growing are carried on extensively and with great success. The cheap and fertile land's offer great inducements for settlement to immigrants. New Hampshire (Granite State). First settlement by the English at Little Harbor, 1623. Ranks third in manufacture of cotton goods; fifteenth in potatoes; twenty-second in wealth; thirty-first in population; thirty-seventh in miles of railway ; forty-first in square miles. Largely engaged i:i manufacturing; the abun- dant water power affords great advantages. Agricul- ture, pasturage, and drainage occupy a large number. New Mexico. First settled by the Spaniards at Santa Fe, 1537; organized as a territory, 1850. Ranks eighth in silver; eleventh in gold; nineteenth in sheep, and twenty-second in cattle. Chief industries, mining and cattle'raising. Nevada. First settled, by Americans, in 1850. Ranks second in gold; fourth in silver, and thirty-seventh in wealth. The leading industry is mining. The mines of the state yield over three fifths of all the silver pro- duced in the United States. Stock raising is also largely followed, owing to the large amount of good pastii re land. Netherlands were placed under the sovereignty of the house of Orange and became a kingdom, 1*15; In 1*16, the Prince of Orange was elevated to the rank of King of the Netherlands, with increas^l territories, ex- tending over the present kingdom of Belgium; Bel- gium was then erected into a kingdom, and the present limits of the kingdom of the Netherlands were defined in 1833. New England, First settlement of. made at Plymouth, November 10, 1620; states united, 1643. Newfoundland, discovered by Cabot about 1500; began to be settled by the English, 1520: in 1713 it was declared by the treaty of Utrecht to belong wholly to Great Britain. New Jersey (Jersey Blue). First settlement by the Dutch at Bergen, 1620. Ranks first in fertilizing marl, zinc, and silk goods; fourth in iron ore; fifth in iron and steel ; sixth in buckwheat, manufactories, and soap; seventh in rye, twelfth in wealth; nineteenth in population ; twenty-sixth in miles of railway ; forty- third in square miles. Manufactures: Molasses arid sugar refining, flour, machinery, leather and leather goods, hats, caps, and clothing, woolen and cotton goods, bleaching and dyeing, glass. Industries : The commerce of the state is small, its manufactures large and various. Its shad and_ oyster fisheries are exten- sive. Mining is also a leading industry. But its chief industry is agriculture and market gardening, the state being one immense garden, , the mildness of its climate being such that small fruits are very productive, and, being adjacent to the markets of New York and Phila- delphia, farmers and fruit raisers find large profits from their labor. New Orleans. First laid out by the French, 1720; battie of, January 8, 1815. New Zealand, in the South Seas, first discovered by Abel J. Tasman, 1642; visited by Pope Marcus, 330; formally taken possession of as a British colony in 1840. New York (Empire State). First settlement by the Butch at New York(New Amsterdam), 1614. Ranks first in value of manufactories, population, soap, printing, and publishing, hops, hay, potatoes, buckwheat, milch cows, and wealth ; second in salt, silk goods, malt and distilled liquors, and barlev; third in agricultural im- plements, iron ore, iron and steel, oats and rye ; fourth m wool and miles of railway ; twenty-seventh i:i square miles. In population, wealth, and commerce. New York is the first in the Union. The commerce extends to all parts of the world. Manufacturing is large, and con- stantly increasing. Agriculture is one of the chief pur- s'' it s, wheat and corn being the Staple productions. The development of the salt springs of the interior is also one of the industries of the state. Its magnificent system HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 293 of canals and railroads has done much to increase its domestic trade. North Carolina (Old North State). First settlers, English, Cowan river, 1650. Ranks first in tar and tur- pentine: second in copper; third in peanuts and to- bacco ; fourth in rice ; ninth in cotton ; fifteenth in poj>- ulation; twentieth in miles of railway; twenty-third in wealth; twenty-sixth in square miles. Agriculture is the leading industry, the chief articles being com, wheat, tobacco, sweet potatoes, oats, rice, and cotton. Vast forests furnish three times as much pitch, tar, and resin as all the other states together. There are valuable gold mines, and iron, copper, and coal abound. Normandy, erected into a dukedom, 87(i; ceded to France by Henry III., May 20, 1251); taken bytheEng- lish in 1419, and retained until 1125; finally joined to France under Charles VII. Norway, the ancient Scandinavia, including Swecien, united with Denmark, Ktft; in 131'J Norway and Sweden, for a short time, became united wnder Magnus V.; in 1397 Norw_ay, Sweden, and Denmark were again united, which union remained in force until 1523, when Sweden emancipated herself; Norway was annexed to Sweden, Novemher 4, 1814, by the treaty of Kiel. Notaries Public, originally "appointed by the Fathers of the Christian Church to collect the acts and memoirs of martyrs in the first century ; sineechanged into com- mercial offices. Nova Scotia, charter granted, 1621 ; afterwards in the possession of the French, but ceded to England, 1713; peopled by Knghmd, 1749. Nova Zembla, discovered by Capt. Hugh "Willoughby, 1553 ; has no permanent inhabitants. Oath, swearing on the Gospels, first used, 528; first administered in judicial proceedings by the Saxons about 600. Ohio was first settled by the English, at Marietta, in 1788. Ranks first in agricultural implements and wool ; second in petroleum, iron, and steel; third in popula- tion, wheat, sheep, coal, malt, and distilled liquors; fourth in printing and publishing, salt, soap, and wealth ; fifth in milch cows, hogs, horses, hay, tobacco, Iron ore, and miles of railway. The agricultural inter- est is very large. Great crops of wheat, corn, oats, bar- ley, hay, potatoes, garden and orchard products are raised; also flax, tobacco, and grapes. Coal and iron mining are extensively carried on in the eastern and southern parts, and large numbers of live stock are sent to the eastern markets. Its commerce by lake, river, canal, and railroad transportation, is very large. Olympiads, games instituted at Olympia by Pelops, in honor of Jupiter, B. C. 1307 ; they were revived by the Greeks about 400 years after the'destruction of Troy, and continued until the reign of Theodosius the Great, when a new code of reckoning began; the first Olympiads began July 23, 776, Cora-bus being then the Olympic victor ; the last ended about 410 B. C. Ontario is the most important province of Canada. Principal products are grain, fruit, lumber, petroleum, copper, and iron. The population of Ontario is one third of the whole Dominion. Toronto, the capital, is the manufacturing and educational center. The popu- lation of the province is largely of British descent. Oregon was first settled by the Americans in 1811. Agriculture, stock raising, and lumbering are the chief pursuits; wheat being the staple article of the former, while most of the cereals of the middle states flourish. Cutting timber from the immense pine forests of the state gives employment to great iiumbersof inhabitants. Orange, Title of, first in the Nassau family by the marriage of Claude de Chalons, the Prince of Orange's sister, with the Count of Nassau, 1530; the Prince of Orange was applied to by England for assistance, 1688; landed at Torbay, in England, with an army, November 5, 1688 ; took on him the government at the invitation of tb.3 Lords; declared king of England, February 13, 1689. Organs. First introduced into churches by Pope Vitallian I., C83 ; into the western churches, 8:16. Ostrogoths, their kingdom began in Italy, 476 ; ended 554. Ottoman, or Turkish Empire, founded by Othman 1., in 1299, in Asia Minor, and soon extended into Europe. With the capture of Constantinople, in 1453, it suc- ceeded to the Byzantine Empire. Paganism, finally overthrown in the Roman Empire in the reign of Theodosius between 388 and 395. Palatines. Seven thousand families of these poor Protestants were driven by the French from their habi- tations on the hanks of the Rhine, and came to Eng- land ; a brief was granted to collect alms for them. Five hundred families went under the protection of the government to Ireland and the rest were sent to New York anil Hudson's Bay ; they finally went to Pennsyl- vania, where they settled, 1709". Pandects, a system of laws accidentally discovered at Amalfi, Italy, 1137. Pantheon, The, at Rome, built by Agrippa B. C. 25. Paris, made the capital of France," 51J; consumed by fire, 588; barricaded to oppose the entry of the Duke of Guise, 15-8; again 1C88, in opposition'to the regencv; first parliament held, 1302 ; general confederation in the Champ dc Mars, July 14, 179); an armed mob forced the Tuileries anil insulted the king of France, June 20, 17!>2; Tuileries again attacked and Swias (Juan I mas-acred by the Populists, August 10, 1792; royal fain ily imprisoned in the temple, August 14; massacre of the state prisoners, September 2-5, 1792; Lord Maluieshury negotiated for peace, October 28, 1796; Napoleon arrived at midnight, December 1*. 1S12; allied sovereigns en- tered, March 31, 1814; Louis XVIII. entered May 3, 18U ; Napoleon returned to, from Elba, March 1:1, 1815; left it to meet the allied forces, May 2, 1815 ; capitulated to the allies, July 3, 1815; treaties of general peace signed November20, 1815. Pauls, St., London, built by Ethelbert, King of Kent, on the foundation of an old temple of Diana, 696; burned, 9W; rebuilt and .consecrated, 1240; it was 150 years building; again burned down, it was re- built, 1C31 ; first stone ol the present building laid, 1675 ; finished, 1710, at an expense of about $5,000,000. Persecution, by the Jews, the first in 33; second, 44; first general of the Christiana under Nero, 64; second under Domitian, 93; third under Trajan, 107; fourth under Marcus Aurelius, l.H; fifth under Severus, 202; sixth under Ma \i minus, 235; seventh under Decius, 250; eighth under Valerian, 257; ninth under Aureliau,272; tenth under Diocletian, 302; eleventh by the Arians under Coustantius, 337; twelfth under Julian the Apos- tate, 361; Luther's followers persecuted in FrancOnia, 1525. The Protestant j persecuted in England, 1556 ; in France, 1723. Persian Empire, began under Cyrus after his con- quest of Media, B. C. 536; ended in the conquest of Darius, about 330; a new empire called the Parthian was founded upon its ruins by the Persians under Ar- baces, B. C. 250, but took its original name under Arta- xerxes, 229; the Saracens, however, A.D. 651, put an end to that empire and Persia became a prey to the Tartars, and the province of Hindustan, until the emperor Kouli Kahu raised it to a powerful kingdom; emperor assas- sinated by his relatives, 1747. Pennsylvania (Keystone State). First settlement, English, Philadelphia, 1J*?2. Rank* first in rye,' iron and steel, petroleum, and coal; second in wealth, popu- lation, manufactories, buckwheat, potatoes, printing, and publishing; third in miles of railway, milch cows, hay, soap; fourth in oats and tobacco; fifth in silk goods, wool, malt and distilled liquors; sixth in salt, copper, and agricultural implements; eighth in horses and sheep; thirtieth in square miles. Pennsylvania ranks next to New York in wealth, population, and manufactures. Industries : The people are largely en- gaged in agriculture, mining, ami manufactures ; wheat, corn, orchard fruits, potatoes, butter, and wool, arc the chief products. The farms are generally large and weli conducted. The manufactures are very extensive, and comprise a great variety of articles; iron, cotton, and woolen goods being the leading articles. In the pro- duction of coal and iron Pennsylvania surpasses all other states. Pharsalia, Battle of, where Pompey was defeated by Caesar, B. C. 47. Philippi, Battle of, which terminated in the Roman Republic, B. C. 41. I'lio-iiiciaiis, by order of Pharaoh Necho, sailed from the Red Sea, round Africa, and returned by the Med- iterranean, B. C. 607. Picts. First mentioned in history, 284; kingdom of. began in Scotland, 823; extirpated by the Scots, 840; Pict's wall between England and Scotland built, 123. Plagne. Almost the whole world visited by one, B C 76.' i:i Rome, which carried oiT 10,000 persons in a dav 78 A. D. ; in England, that carried off 34,000, 772; in Scotland, wherein 40,000 died, 954; in England, 1247; again 1347- in Germany, which cut <>:f 90,000 people, 1348 ; in Paris and England, when 57,000 died in England, 1362 ; again in England, 30.000 killed in London, 1407; at Con- stantinople, when 200,000 persons died, 1611; at Lyons, 294 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. where 60,000 died, 1632; again at London, where 68,000 were destroyed, 1665 ; at Marseilles, fatal i,o 18,000 per- sons, 1720 ; at Bassora, in Persia, when 80,000 persons died, 1773. Poet Laureate. The first mention of one is in the reign of Edward IV., though the present office under this title is derived from the " King's Versifier," of whom we hear in 1251. Poictiers, Battle of, between the French and English, in which the former were defeated, September 19, 1356. Poland, made a duchy, 694 ; kingdom of began, under Boleslaus, 999 ; Red Russia added to it, 1059; Pomerania united with it, 1465; embraced Christianity, 965; seized and divided between Russia, Prussia, and Austria, 1773 ; annexed to Russia, 1815; revolution commenced at War- saw, November 29, 1830. Pope, Title of, formerly given to all bishops; but Boniface III., 606, influenced the emperor Phocas to con- fine it to the Bishops of Rome; Hygenus was the first Bishop of Rome that took the title, 138 ; pope's suprem- acy over the Christian church, first established by Bon- iface IIT., 607; John XIX., a layman made pope, 1024; first pope that kept an army was Leo IX. ,1054; pope Gregory obliged Henry IV., emperor of Germany, to stand three days ; in the depth of winter, barefooted, ab his castle gate, to implore his pardon, 1077 ; the pope's authority hrst introduced into England, 1079 ; abrogated by Parliament, 1534: the word pope struck out of all English books, 1541. Portueal, formerly called Lusitania, with the rest of Spain, SUD ject to the Moors, 713 ; held by the Moors until the end of the eleventh century ; Portuguese monarchy established, 1139; first conquest abroad made in 1415, upon the discovery of the Island of Madeira; in 1500 Brazil was discovered by Cabral, which was followed by the establishment of a colony; taken by the Spaniards, 1580 ; revolted from Spain, and the Duke of Braganza sat on the throne under Philip IV. of Spain, and the III. of Portugal, 1640; in the latter year, the Duke of Braganza expelled the Spaniards, and ascended the throne under the title of John IV. ; invaded by France in 1807, when the royal family went to Brazil; from 1827 to 1833 the throne wasusurped by Don Miguel. The erection of Brazil into an independent empire in ] 826, robbed Portugal of her richest possession. Post, method of carrying letters invented by the Uni- versity of Paris about 1470; general post office, estab- lished in England, 1643. Potatoes. First introduced into England from America by Sir Francis Drake, 1586; introduced into Ireland, 1610. Protestants, Name of, began from the Diet of Spires, when several of the German states protested against a decree of the Diet to support the doctrine of the Church of Rome, April 19, 1530. Prussia, anciently possessed by the Venedi, B. C. 320; the Venedi were conquered by Borussi who inhab- ited the Riphaean Mountains ; whence the country was called Borussia or Prussia, which was subdued by the Mercian knights, sent by the Emperor Frederick II., 1215; revolted to Jagello, King of Poland, 1219; the grand master of the Teutonic order conquered the Poles and kept possession till 1700, when he was made a king. Public Houses, power of licensing them, first granted to Sir Giles Montesson and Sir Francis Michel, 1621. Punic Wars, First, began B. C. 264, lasted twenty- three years; second, began 218, and ended 200 ; third, be- gan 150. Quakers, founded by George Fox, 1646; sixty trans- ported from England to America by order of Council, 1664; their affirmation adopted by Act of Parliament for an oath, 1696. Quebec, a province of Canada, was originally settled by the French, and the present population is largely composed of descendants of the Voyagers. The capital, Quebec, is the oldest city in the Dominion. Its fortifi- cations were at one time considered next to Gibraltar, the strongest in the world. Nevertheless, the fortress was captured by General Wolfe ; taken by the English, December 13, 1758 ; unsuccessful attack on, by the Ameri- cans, under General Montgomery, December 31, 1775. The metropolis, Montreal, is noted for its churches. Ship building i? the chief manufacturing industry. There are also manufactures of iron castings, machin- ery, cutlery, nails, leather, musical instruments, boots arid shoes, paper, India rubber goods, tobacco and steel. The staple of export is timber. Quebec was first vis- ited by Jacques Cartier in 1535. It then consisted of an Indian village called Stadacona. In July, 1608- Champlain founded the city, giving it its present name. Reformation, The, first set on foot by John Wycliffe, 1370; began in England by Henry VIII. casting off the pope's supremacy and introducing the Protestant reli- gion, 1534 ; completed by Edward VI., 1547. Revolution, in Great Britain, took place through the Prince of Orange taking possession of the throne, No- vember 5, 1688; in France, began 1789; in the United States, July 4, 1776; in Sweden,^ in 1772; second French revolution, July, 1830. Rhodes. An island of the Turks, peopled from Crete, B. C. 916; the republic completed, 480 ; the city built, 432 ; taken by the Saracens and the Colossus sold, C52; taken from the Turks, 1308; retaken by them from the Knights of Jerusalem, 1523; almost destroyed by an inundation, B. C. 314; Hipparchus began his astronom- ical observations here, 167* Rhode Island. First settlement made by the Eng- lish at Providence, 1636. Ranks second in cotton, flax, and linen goods; twentieth in wealth. The state is largely engaged in manufactiiring. It has considerable commerce. Farming is carried on to some extent ; the chief productions are grain, fruit, butter, and cheese. Romans. First engaged in naval affairs and de- feated the Carthaginians, B. C. 260; first crossed the Po, pursuing the Gauls, who had entered Italy, 223; de- feated by Hannibal at Cannae, 216; commenced the auxiliary war against Philip in Epirus, which was con- tinued at intervals, 21G; subdued Spain and Sparta, 134; defeated Antiochus at Thermopylae, 194; made war an-ainst the Achaeans, 147; destroyed Carthage, 146; 80',000 defeated on the banks of the Rhone by the Cimbri and Texitones, 105 ; Cyrene laf t them by Ptolemy A pion, 97; first invaded England, B. C. 54; quitted Britain, 426. Rome, built by Romulus, B. C. 753; republican gov- ernment established, 509; first alliance between Rome and Carthage, 508 ; burned by the Gauls, 390 ; first coin- ing of silver, 269; first divorce known, 235; surgery in- troduced, 219 ; gold first coined, 206 ; Asiatic luxury first introduced by the army, from the spoils of Antiochus, 190; first library created with books obtained from Macedonia, 168 ; philosophers and rhetoricians banished, 161 ; sumptuary law, limiting the expenses of eating and drinking, 110; set on fire by Nero, A. D. 64; Capitol and Pantheon destroyed bv fire, 80. Russia, anciently Sarmatia, was inhabited by the Scythians; came into renown in 864, when the natives attempted to take Constantinople. The foundation of the Russian empire was laid by the Tlus or Varangians, a body of Scandinavians led by Rurick, at Novgorod, about 862; in the twelfth, thirteenth, and fourteenth centuries, Russia was tributary to the Mongols; the country was consolidated and extended under Ivan the Great, and Ivan the Terrible, 14(52-1584. Peter the Great was the most distinguished ruler of Russia, 1672-1725. Important events of more recent times were : The dis- memberment of Poland, of which the greater part be- came Russian ; the wars of Napoleon and the burning of Moscow, 1812; the Crimean war, 1853-55; the vast in- crease in area by war and treaty of the Asiatic prov- inces, 1858-73 ; the abolition of serfdom, 1851 ; the sale of Alaska to the United States, 1867 ; the Turko-Russian war, 1877-78. Rubicon, The, is a river of Italy, flowing into the Adriatic, which formed the boundary between Cisalpine Gaul and Italy proper. The passage of this river by Julius Caesar was necessarily the signal for civil war, the issue of which could not be foreseen, as Roman gen- erals were forbidden to cross this river at the head of an army. Rye House Plot, a plot to assassinate Charles II. at a place called Rye House on his way to Newmarket, was prevented by tlie king's house at Newmarket acciden- tally taking lire, which hastened his departure eight flays before the plot was to take place ; discovered June 12, 1683. Sacred "War, first, concerning the temple of Delphi, B. C. 448; second war, on Delphi being attacked by the Phocians, 356; war finished by Philip taking all the cities of the Phocians, 348. St. Helena, first taken possession of by the English, 1600; taken by the Dutch, 1673; retaken by the English the same year ; celebrated as the place of exile of Napo- leon Bona'parte, 1815, where he died May 5, 1821. Saints, tutelar, St. George of England, St. Andrew of Scotland, St. Patrick of Ireland, St. David of Wales, St. Dennis of France, St. James of Spain. Saracens, conquered by Spain, 713; 70,000 slain in HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 295 battle by Ramirus,king of Spain, 844; empire of, ended by the taking of Bagdad by the Tartars, 1268. Sardinia, conquered by the Spaniards, 1303, in whose possession it continued until 1708, when it was taken by an English fleet and given to the Duke of Savoy, with the title of king. Savoy. Part of Gallia, Narbonensis, submitted to the Romans, B. C. 118 ; the Alemanni seized it in 395 ; the Franks, 496; it shared the revolutions of Switzerland till 1040, when Conrad, Emperor of Germany, gave it to Hubert with the title of earl; erected into a duchy, 1417. Sabines, The, were an important tribe of ancient Italy, allied to the Latins, Samnites, etc. Famous in Roman history as the people whose daughters were treacherously seized by the Romans at the Consualia or games in honor of the god Census. A treaty of peace was concluded with the Sabines, 750 B. C. After fre- quent wars, the Sabines were finally defeated, 449 B. C., by M. Horatius, and were incorporated with Rome in the third century B. C. Salic Law, The, was the code of the Salian Franks, introduced into France (Gaul) by the Franks. It con- tained four hundred articles, chiefly concerning debt, theft, murder, and battery, the penalty in every case being a fine. The most famous article of the code is Title lxii.6, according to which only males could suc- ceed to the Salic land or loci, i. e. to the lands given for military service. In 131f., at the death of Louis le Hutin, the law was extended to the crown, and continued to be observed to the end of the monarchy. San Marino, in Italy, on the coast of the Adriatic Sea, is the oldest republic in the world. It is, next to Monaco, the smallest state in Europe. The exact date of the establishment of this republic is not known, but according to tradition it was in the fourth century, by Marinus, a Dalmatian hermit, and has ever since re- mained independent. It is mountainous and contains four or five villages. The word "liberty " is inscribed on its Capitol. St. James's Palace is a large, inelegant brick struc- ture, fronting towards Pall Mall. Originallv a hospital dedicated to St. James, it was reconstructed and made a manor by Henry VIII., who also annexed to it a park. Here Queen Mary died, 1558; Charles I. slept here the night before his execution; and here Charles II., the Old Pretender, and George IV. were born. When "Whitehall was burned, in 1G97, St. James became the regular London residence of the British sovereigns, and it continued to be so till Queen Victoria's time. The Court of St. James is a frequent designation of the British Court. St. James Park lies southward from the Palace, and extends over fifty-eight acres. Saxons, The ancient, were pirates, and inhabited three small islands at the month of the Elbe, and some part of the shores of the Baltic ; were invited to Eng- land, A. D. 44'J, by the Britons. Scotland, anciently Caledonia. History began, B. C. 328, when Fergus I. was sent over by the people of Ire- land; accepted the Christian faith about 203; united under one monarchy by Kenneth II. and called Scotland, 838 ; divided into baronies, 103^ ; invaded by the King of Norway, near Loch Lomond, 1263 ; on the death of Alex- ander III. was disputed by twelve candidates, who sub- mitted their claims to the arbitration of Ed_ward I. of England, 1285, which gave him an opportunity to con- quer it; recovered by the Scots, 1314; first General Assembly of the church held, December 20, 1500 ; United with England under the reign of James VI. of Scotland and James I. of England. Sealing of Writings. First introduced into Eng- land, 1085. Sicily. First colonized from Italy, B. C. 1294; usurped by Agathocles, 317 ; Servile war began and con- tinued three years, 135. Slave Trade, Abolition of, in England proposed in Parliament, 1789; abolished, 1807; abolished by France, Spain, and Holland, 1817; treaty concluded between Great Britain and Brazil for the abolition of, 1826. The importation of slaves into the United States prohibited after January 1, 1808; emancipation proclamation is- sued, 1863. Smyrna, built by the people of Cumne, B. C. 1050; destroyed by an earthquake, 1040 A. D., and again, 1688 ; the chief commercial emporium of West Asia. South Carolina (Palmetto State). First settlers, English, Ashley river, 1670. Ranks first in pho.-phates and rice; fifth in cotton; twentieth in population; twenty-eighth in miles cf railway ; thirtieth in wealth ; thirty-seveptlj ia square miles. Agriculture is the prin- cipal industry, the state producing a larger amount of rice than any other state. " Sea Island Cotton " is f the finest quality , and superior to all other, and is raised on several islands along the coast of this state, and Georgia. Corn, oats, wheat, sweet potatoes, and to- bacco, are extensively raised. The export of rice and cotton is large. But few manufactures are as yet es- tablished in the state, though considerable attention is being given to them. Spain. First civilized by the Phosnicians ; conquered by the Romans, B. C. 206; the Goths and Vandals over- turned the Roman power, 409, and continued in posses- sion of the country till it was conquered bv the Moors in 712; the Moors kept possession till the small kingdoms were swallowed up in Castile and Aragon: kingdom founded by the union of the two crowns of Castile and Aragon, 1504; the king and princes of the House of Bourbon ceded their claims to the throne of Spain in 1808; Joseph Bonaparte became king in the same year; Ferdinand's rule was shortly afterwards re-established, but was marked by serious insurrections ; he was suc- ceeded by his daughter Isabella 1L, who was forced to abdicate in 1868 ; in 1876 a constitution was proclaimed, providing that the government shall be a constitutional monarchy. War was declared against Spain by the United States in April, 1898. Sparta, built by Laceda-mcm, B. C. 1490; kingdom of commenced under Euristhenes and Procles, B. C. 1102; ephori established at, 760. Straits of Babelmandeb, The, the passage from the Persian Gulf into the Red Sea, are called the Gate of Tears by the Arabs. The channel is only about twenty miles wide, is rocky and very dangerous for passage in rough weather. It received its melancholy name from the number of shipwrecks that occurred there. Surnames, first used among the nobilitv, 1200; many of the most common were taken by the Flemings who were naturalized in England about 1435. Sweden, anciently Scandinavia, kingdom of, began 481 ; united to the crown of Denmark and Norway from 1394 to 1525, when Gustavus Vasa expelled the Danes ; Christianity introduced there 829; no nobility before 1500; popery abolished and the crown declared heredi- tary, 1544 ; the house of Vasa ascended the throne in 1523, and gave to Sweden the great Gustavus Adolphus ; it was succeeded by the House of Deux-Ponts, which furnished the famous Charles XII.; in 1810 Marshal Bernadotte of France was chosen Crown Prince and as- cended the throne as Charles John XIV. in 1818; the union with Norway took place in 1814. Switzerland, inhabited formerly by the Helvetii.who were subdued by Caesar B. C. 57; became part of the kingdom of Burgundy, 883; the confederation was founded January 1, 1308; in 1803 Napoleon I. organized a new confederation composed of 19 cantons ; this con- federation was modified in 1815, the number of cantons being increased to 22; a new constitution was adopted in 1848. Tarpeian Rock, The, was so called from Tarpeia, daughter of Spurius Tarpeiu*, governor of the citadel on the Saturnian Hill of Rome. The story is that the Sabiucs bargained with the Roman maid to open the gates to them for the " ornaments on their arms." As they passed through the gates, they threw on her their shields saying, "These are the ornaments we bear on our arms." She was crushed to death, and buried on the Tarpeian Hill. Ever after, traitors were put to death by beinghurled headlong from the hilltop. Tarquin. The last king of Rome, expelled B. C. 609. Tartary. The first ruler was Genghis Khan, 1206, whose descendants held the empire until 1582, when the Mongols revolted to the Manchew Tartars in China ; the Eluths became a separate state about 1400. Taxes. Originated from those levied by Solon at Athens, B. C. 540; the first paid in money in England were in 1067. Tea. First brought into Europe by the Dutch East India Company, early i n the seventeenth century ; a quantity of it was brought from Holland by Lord Ar- lington and Lord Ossorv, 1666; from this time it became universal ; taxed in North America, 1770, Americans re- fused to receive it with the duty on, and threv a cargo of it into the sea at Boston, 1773. Texas (Lone Star State). First settlement by the Spaniards, at San Antonio, 1692. Admitted to the Union, 1845. Ranks first in cattle and cotton and square miles; second in sugar, sheep, mules, and horses; sixth in miles of railway ; seventh in milch cows ; eighth m rice and hogs ; eleventh in population ; nineteenth in 296 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. wealth. Stock raising is the leading industry, Texas ranking first in this production. Agriculture exten- sively engages the attention of its inhabitants; corn, wheat, and the other cereals are raised in the northern part; sweet potatoes, sugar cane, tobacco, and tropical fruits in the southern part. Its commerce consists of exports of cotton, hides, and live stock. The state has vast resources that have not, as yet, been fully devel- oped; an abundance of most valuable timber, large deposits of coal, iron, and salt, and other useful minerals. Teutones, The, were a German tribe, mentioned by Roman writers as inhabiting the northwest part of Ger- many north of the Kibe. In conjunction with the Cim- bri.they invaded Gaul, 103 B. C., destroying three Roman armies, and then proceeded to invade Italv; but the Teutones were defeated and almost annihilated by Marius at Aquae Sextise, 102 B. C.,and the Cimbri at Campus Raudius, near Verullre, 101 15. C. Tennessee, settled at Fort London, 1757, by the Eng- lish. Agriculture is the most important industry, toe staples being wheat, cotton, corn, hemp, and tlta<-co. In the production of tobacco, the state ranks third. The iron and coal interests are growing rapidly, and will prove one of the richest resources. The marbles of the state are esteemed for their color and variety. Im- mense numbers of swine and mules are raised in the state. The manufacturing industries are better devel- oped than in any of the southern central states. A large internal commerce is carried on by means of the rivers and railroads of the state. Theater, thatof Bacchus at Athens, first ever erected, built by 1'hilos, 15. C.420; the ruins still exist: pla.ys were opposed by the Puritans, 1633, and suspended till 16HO, when Charles II. licensed two companies ; till this time boys performed women's parts; Sir William Dave- nant introduced operas, 1684. Thebes, founded 1571 15. C. ; citadel built by Cadmus, 1403; flourished as a republic, 820; destroyed by Alex- ander, with the slaughter of 120,000 persons, when he left only the house of Pindar, the poet, standing, 335 ; rebuilt by Cassander, 15. C. 315. Thermopylae, defended by Leonidas B. C. 480, dur- ing the invasion of Xerxes; Romans defeated An- tiochusat, 191. Thrace, a considerable part of ancient Greece an- nexed to Macedon by Philip and Alexander about 355; conquered by the Romans, 168 ; Byzantium was its cap- ital, on the ruins of which Constantinople was built; taken by the Turks, 1453. Tilts and Tournaments, instituted by Henry I. of Germany, 919; forbidden by the Council of RhHms. 1131 ; in fashion in England in the eleventh and twelfth centuries; abolished in France 1560, Henry II. having been killed in one. Tithes, first given by Moses to the tribe of Levi, B. C. 1490 ; established in France under Charlemagne ; estab- lished by law by the Lateran Council, 1215. Tobacco Plant, found by the Spaniards in the penin- sula of Yucatan, 1220: introduced into France by Nicot, 1560 ; first brought into England by Ralph Lane.' 1583. Toulouse, France, founded about B. C. 615 : a d read- fnl tribunal established there to extirpate heretics, 1229; dissolved 1242; the troubadours or rhetoricians of, had their origin about 1150, and consisted of a fraternity of poets whose art was extended throughout Europe and gave rise to the Italian and Spanish poetry. Trojan "War commenced B. C. 1193. The kingdom of Troy began by Scamander, from Crete, B. C. 1546; city built, B.C. 1255; burned, B. C. 1184, when an end was put to the kingdom. Tunis and Tripoli, formerly the republic of Car- thage. Carthage stood nearly where Tunis now stands. The former was besieged by Louis IX. of France, 1270; it remained under African kings till taken. by Barlia- rOSga'iinderSolyman the Magnificent; Barbarossa was expelled by Charles V. but the country was recovered by the Turks under Selim II., since which it has been tributary to the Grand Seignior; it has long been a de- pendency of Turkey. Turkish Empire, founded about 998; at the end of the thirteenth century, Othman established the present i empire in Asia Minor; in the fourteenth century they invaded Europe and in 1453 took Constantinople; the capture of Constantinople was followed by other im- Eortant conquests, among which were Greece and Ara- ia; the glory of the empire culminated iu the reien of Solynian the 'Macnificont, 1520-15G6 ; after his death be- gan the declineof the Ottoman empire; Austria expelled them from Hungary, Russia deprived them of the prov- inces between the mouths of the Danube and the Cau- casus in Europe, and those forming western Trans-Cau- casia in Asia; the G reeks formed an independent state ; Algiers was wrested from them by the French ; the power of the Porte has nearly vanished from the provinces of Asia Minor, Arabia, and Egypt, and finally the Russo-Turkish war of 1877-78 has deprived the Porte of much of the territory in Europe. Tnileries, The, is the name of a garden and palace in Paris, built on the site of an ancient faltrique de tuiles It was composed of three great pavilions, called the pavilion de AInrsa n (north), the pavilion de Flore (south), and the pavilion de I'/forlof/e (center). It was joined to the Louvre by Napoleon III. (1851-6). The land was bought by Francois I. in 1564, and the original palace was made for Catherine de Medicis after the design of Philibert Delorme. Tuscany, the ancient seat of the Etruscans, belonged to Germany till J240. Tyre, a city of great antiquity, suffered destruction at an early period ; rebuilt under Nimus ; taken by Nebu- chadnezzar after a siege of thirteen years ; it became subject to the Romans, B. C. 64. Utah was first settled by Americans at Salt Lake City, 1847. Organized as a territory, 1850 : admitted as a state, 1*'96. Ranks third in silver ; 'tenth in gold ; fifteenth in coal. Varangians, The, were the Norse vikings, who, in the ninth century laid the foundations of the Russian Empire. Many of them entered the service of the By- zantine emperors, and in the days of the Comneni the Varangians regularly formed the imperial bodyguard at Constantinople. The Varangiausat Constantinople were largely recruited by Anglo-Saxons and Danes from Eng- land a'fter the Norman Conquest. " Vaiicamis Mons " is a hill r.t Rome, chiefly noted for its magnificent palace of the popes, the Vatican, with its superb gardens, its museums, celebrated library, and basilica of St. Peter. The palace was constructed in 498, but has often been enlarged. Valencia, conquered by the Moors under Abdallah Ciz, and lost by them, 1094; relinquished to the Moors again bv the king of Castile ; soon after taken again by James L of Aragon, 12i!8, and with Aragon united with Spain, 1492; capitulated to the French January 9, 1812. Vandals, The, inhabited Germany and embraced Christianity, 400; began their kingdom in Spain, 411 ; in- vaded and 'conquered the Roman territories in Africa under Genseric, 430; sacked and pillaged Rome, 455. Vermont (Green Mountain State). First settled by the English, Fort Dummer. 1761. Ranks fourth in cop- per; seventh in hops and buckwheat; twenty-sixth in wealth ; thirty-second in population; fortieth in square miles ; forty-first in miles of railway. The state is noted for its rich quarries of marble, soapstone, and slate, whichare worked at several points. It is also noted as a good grazing country. The dairy products are exten- sive and valuable. Stock raising is carried on to a con- siderable extent. Vendome Column, The, in Paris was erected by Na- poleon I. 1806, in the Place Vendome, to commemorate his successful campaign in Germany; pulled down by the Communists 1871, but restored by the National As- sembly. 1874. It isonchundred and thirty-two feethigh, with a statue of Napoleon I. at the top. Venice. Originally inhabitated by the Veneti ; con- quered by the (ranis' and made a kingdom about B. C. 356 ; conquered for the Romans by Marcellus, 221. The islands on which the city now stands began to be in- habited by Italians about 421; its university founded, 1592. A'esu^ius, eruptions of, A. D. 79, 203, 272; ejected flames that were seen at Constantinople ; obscured the sun at noonday, and ravaged all Campania; was in an active state of eruption upward of 35 times, between the years 472 and the present. Vienna, the capital of Austria-Hungary, was orig- inally Vindobona of Upper Pannonia ; afterwards cap- ital of the east provinces of theempire of Charlemagne ; besieged by the Turks in 1529, and again in 1683; the French took it in 1806 and in 1809; the Congress of Vienna , which fixed for a time the limits of the countries of Europe, was held here November, 1814, to June, 1816. Vikings, The, were the piratical Northmen who in- fested the coasts of the British Islands and of France in the eighth, ninth, and tenth centuries. This word is quite unconnected with "king," being derived from the Scandinavian vik, " a bay " (the same which appears HISTORY AND BIOGRAPHY. 297 in the names Lerwick, Berwick, etc.), and this class of marauders were so called because their ships put off from the bays and tiords. Visigoths, The, or Western Goths, were the descend- ants ot that branch of the Gothic race established by Aurelian in Dacia (270). The descendants of the other branch of the race, which remained in Southern Russia, were called Ostrogoths (Eastern Goths). On the death of Theodosius, the Visigoths, under Alaric, overran Greece (390) and Italy (400). After Alaric's death (410) they established a kingdom at Toulouse (418) which eventually comprised the whole of Gaul south of the Loire and west of the Rhone, as well as Provence and the greater part of Spain. With the defeat (and death) of Alaric II. by Clovis,on the Held of Vougle (or Vouill6 or Voclacl) near Poitiers (507), the kingdom of Toulouse came to an end, and the Visigoths abandoned to the conqueror all their territories north of the Pyrenees, with the exception of a small tract of country in Gaul, including the cities of Carcassone, Narbonne, and Nimes. Virginia, first settled at Jamestown by the English, 1607. Ranks first in peanuts ; second in to'bacco ; eighth in salt and iron ore; sixteenth in wealth. Agriculture is the leading industry ; tobacco, wheat, corn, and pota- toes being the great staples. The mineral resources are vast; the mountains containing rich deposits of coal and iron, valuable marble, slate, and stone quarries with important salt springs. "Wales. The first king wasEdwawl, COO; it was con- quered and divided by William I., 1091 ; Griffith, the last king, died 1137 ; the sovereign from that time f orward was the prince ; completely conquered ami annexed to the crown of England, 1283. Walloons, The, are the inhabitants of the southeast- ern division of Belgium, their country comprising the provinces of I la man It , Namur, Liege, and Luxemburg, with part of Brabant. The Walloons are Romanized Gauls, lineal representatives of the ancient Belgan, dis- tinguished from their Flemish (Teutonic) neighbors by their Romance language, their stronger physique, anil their darker complexion. The Walloon language, how- ever, a strongly marked dialect of Northern France (the Langue d'Oil), is now merely a provincial patois, French being the written standard 'and official language of the whole kingdom. Warsaw, after two days' hard fighting, capitulated and was taken possession "of by the Russians, September 7, 1831. Washington ranks eighth in gold, seventeenth in square miles, forty-first in population, forty-second in miles of railway. Population, according to territorial census in 1885, 127,292 ; United States Census, 189;,349,390. First settlement, by Americans, at Astoria, 1811. Organ- ized as a territory, 1853. Admitted to the Union, 1889. Wat Tyler's insurrection occurred November 5, 1380, a peasant's revolt, immediately due to the imposition or a poll-tax on all persons above fifteen. Almost the whole of the peasantry of the southern and eastern counties of England rose in arms, murdering and plun- dering, under the leadership of Wat Tyler, said to hav been a soldier in the French wars. On June 12, 1381, they gathered on Blackheath. On June 14, Richard II., then a lad of fifteen, met the Essex contingent at Mile End, and, promising the abolition of villenage, induced them to return home. On June 15, he met the Kentish men at Smithfield, and in the parley Wat Tvler was killed by William Wai worth, mayor "of Lond"on , and others. The peasants were about to avenge his death, when Richard, with great presence of mind, rode, for- ward alone, and induced them to follow him to Isling- ton, when, a body of troops coming to the king's aid, and Richard being profuse of promises, they dispersed. Waterloo, Battle of, in which Napoleon with 69,001 men attacked a combined army of 8!),000 English, Dutch. Belgian, and Hanoverian troops; a dreadful slaughter continued until four o'clock, when two Prussian corps of 30,000 and 43,000, under Bulow and Blucher, succes. sively arrived, and, turning his right wing, the wholr army fled in confusion at half past nine o'clock, Juni 18, 1815. West Virginia. The first setters were English, Wheeling, 1774. Agriculture is the 1 -ading industry, and the principal staples are tobacco, wheat, and corn. The mountain pastures are well adapted to stock raising. Its mineral resources are rich deposits of coal, iron, and numerous oil wells, and salt springs. Westminster Abbey, built by Sebert, king of Essex, on the spot where the Temple of Apollo hail once stood ; its monastery, consecrated by Edward the Confessor, 10o5; rebuilt and consecrated, 1269; turned into a colle- giate church, 1560. Wills are of a very high antiquity; Solon intro- duced them at Athens ; there are many regulationa re- specting wills in the Koran ; the Roman had this power ; so had the native Mexican, so that it prevailed at least in three parts of the globe ; lands were devisable by will before the conquest ; privilege of making wills granted by Henry I. in 1100. Wisconsin (Badger State). First settlement, by the French, Green Bay, 1660. Admitted to the Union, 184*. Ranks second in hops, third in barley and potatoes, fourth in rye and buckwheat, fifth in oats and agricul- tural implements, seventh in iron, steel, and wool, eighth in hay and milch cows.ninth in copper, tenth in wealth, eleventh ; in miles of railway, sixteenth in population, and twenty-third in square miles. The chief industry is agriculture, with large crops of corn, wheat, oats, bar- ley, hay, potatoes, and hops, as the staple productions. Live stock is largely raised. In t'.ia production of wool and cheese it is among the leadi.ig states. The manu- facturing inte/ests are large and increasing. Tho great pine forests in abundance, and the most valuable t iiu > er, lead, iron, zinc, and marbleminesaro extensively worked. Lakes Michigan and Superior, and the Mississippi, afford great natural highways for commerce. Witchcraft. Six "hundred condemned as wizards, and most of them burned in France. 1609; G randier, parish priest of Loudan, burned on tlic supposition of having bewitched a whole convent of nuns, mil: nine old women were burned at Kalish, iu Polau-l, charged with having bewitched and rendered unfruitful the lands belonging to a gentleman in that palatinate: the last punished in England for witchcraft, was October 29, 180$. Wyoming. Ranks ninth in square miles, twelfth in cattle, fourteenth in gold, sixteenth in coal, forty-fourth in miles of railway, forty-sixth in population. First settlement, by Amer'jans, 1867. Organized as a terri- tory, 1868. Admitted to the Union in 1890. HISTORIC TREATIES. 843. Contract of Verdun. This treaty concluded the war between Lothar, Louis the German, and Charles the Bald.overtheir respective shares of the imperial domin- ions on the death of their father. Louis the Pions. 911. Treaty of St.-Clair-sur-Epte : concluded the war between the invading Norsemen under Rollo and the French king, Charles the Simple- 1122. Concordat of Worms : an agreement between the emperor and the pope, closing the long strife known as the war of investitures. 1183. Treaty of Constance: between the emperor, Fre-lerick Barbarossa, and the Lombard cities. 1360. Peace of Bretigny : a treaty that interrupted the Hundred Years' war between France and England. 1397. Union of Calmar : the treaty by which Denmark, Sweden, and Norway were united under Queen Mar- garet of Denmark. % 1420. Treaty of Troyes: interrupted the Hundred Years' war on terms most favorable to England. 1435. Treaty of Arras : a compact between Burgundy 1466. Treaty o* Thorn : settled the terms of the Polish conquest of West Prussia. 1482. Treaty of Arras : settled the dispute between Louis XI. of France, and Maximilian of Austria. 1493. Bull of Pope Alexander VI. : arranged the con- flicting claims of Spain and Portugal to newly discov- ered lands. 1508. League of Cambray: a union fornied by Lotus XII. of France and the Emperor Maximilian, which the pope and others were invited to join. 1526. Treaty of Madrid : formed between Charles V. of Germany and Francis I. of France. 1529. Treaty of Cambray: between Francis I. and Charles V. 1514. Treaty of Crespy : concluded the fourth and last war between Francis I. and Charles V. 1579. Union of Utrecht : laid the foundations of the Dutch Republic. 1648. Peace of Westphalia: concluded the Thirty Years' War. 1659. Peace of the Pyrenees : closed the long war b , tween France and Spain. 298 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. 1660. Treaty of Copenhagen: between Denmark and Sweden. 1667. Treaty of Breda : between England and Hol- land. 1668. Triple Alliance : between England. Holland, and Sweden to defend Spain against Louis XIV. 1668. Treaty of Aix-la-Chapelle : between France and Spain. 1668. Treaty of Lisbon : between Spain and Portugal through the mediation of England. 1678. Peace of Nymwegen : ended the Dutch war. 1697. Peace of Ryswick : closed the war between France under Louis XIV. and the principal states of Europe called the War of the Palatinate. 1699. Peace of Carlowitz : between Turkey on the one hand and the Emperor of Germany, the King of Poland, and the republic of Venice on the other. 171314. Treaties of Utrecht, Rastadt, and Baden: concluded between the states taking part iii the war of the Spanish succession. 1717. Triple Alliance : between Great Britain, France, and Holland. 1718-19. Quadruple Alliance: between Great Britain, France. Holland, and the emperor against the aggres- sions of Spain. 1718. Peade of Passarowitz : between the sultan and emperor. 1721. Peace of Nystadt : between Sweden and Russia. 1738. Treaty of Vienna: between France and Ger- many. 1742. Peace of Breslau : between Frederick II. of Prus- sia and Maria Theresa of Austria. 1748. Peace of Aix-la-Chapelle : between Great Brit- ain, France, and Holland ; Austria, Spain, Sardinia, Genoa, aYid Modena being accessories. 1761. The Family Compact: between the Bourbon rulers of France and Spain. 1763. Peace of Paris: terminated the Seven Years' war, known in United States hisjtory as the French and Indian war. 1772. First Partition of Poland : executed by Russia, Austria, and Prussia.* 1774. Peace of Kutchuk-Kainardji : between Russia and Turkey. 1783. Treaty of Paris : in which Great Britain acknowl- edged the independence of the North American colonies. 1783. Treaty of Versailles: between Great Britain, France, a,nd Spain. 1792. First Coalition against France : involved all the powers except Sweden, Switzerland, Denmark, Tuscany, Venice, and Genoa. 1795. Peace of Basel : between France and Prussia. 1795. Jay Treaty: between the United States and Great Britain. 1797. Treaty of Tolentino: between the French re- public and the pope. 1797. Treaty of Campo Formio: between Napoleon and the emperor of Germany. 1798. Second Coalition against France: initiated by Russia; afterward comprised England, Austria, Naples, Portugal, and Turkey. 1802. Peace of Arniens : between Great Britain on the one hand, and France, Spain, and the Bataviar. republic on the other. 1803. Treaty between France and the United States : touching the purchase of Louisiana. 1805. Peace of Pressburg : between Austria and France. 1807. Treaties of Tilsit : concluded between France, Prussia, and Russia. 1809. Treaty of Schonbrunn: between France and Austria. 1814. First Peace of Paris : between France and the principal European powers ; after the defeat of Napo- leon at Leipzig. 1814. Treaty of Ghent : between the United States and Great Britain. 1815. Congress of Vienna: attended by the principal European powers. 1815. Second Peace of Paris : between France and the allies after the defeat of Napoleon at Waterloo. 1815. Holy Alliance : formed at Paris between the monarchs of Russia, Austria, and Prussia. 1818. Congress of Aix-la-Chapelle : participated in by Great Britain, Russia, Prussia, and France. 1827. Treaty of London : between Great Britain, Rus- sia, and France, to put an end to the war between Tur- key and Greece. 1829. Treaty of Adrianople : between Russia and Tur- key. 1840. Quadruple Treaty of London : between Great Britain, Austria, Prussia, and Russia on the one hand and Turkey on the other, touching Mehemet Ali of Egypt. 1842. Treaty of Nanking: concluded the so-called opium war between Great Britain and China. 1842. Ashburton Treaty : signed at Washington to define the northeastern boundary between the United States and British North America. 1848. Treaty of Guadalupe Hidalgo: between the United States and Mexico. 1854. Treaty between the United States and Japan: negotiated by Commodore Perrv. 1856. Treaty of Paris : after the Crimean war. 1858. Treaties of Tientsin: between China and each of the four nations, Great Britain, France, Russia, and United States. 1859. Peace of Zurich ; settled the dispute between France and Sardinia on the one hand and Austria on the other. 1864. Peace of Vienna: concluded the war between Austria, Prussia, and Denmark, growing out of the Schleswig-Holstein question. 1865. Convention of Gastein: a compact between Prussia and Austria. 1866. Peace of Prague : concluded the war between Prussia and Austria. 1871. Treaty of Frankfort : between France and Ger- many. 1871. Treaty of Washington: to adjust the Alabama claims. 1878. Treaty of San Stefano supplemented by the Congress of Berlin : closed the Russo-Turkish war. 1879. Triple Alliance : between Austria, Germany, and Italy. 1895. Treaty of Shimonoseki : concluded the war be- tween China and Japan. 1898. Treaty of Paris : concluded the Spanish-Ameri- can war. THOMAS A. EDISON. Book IV. Science, Invention, Discovery. Science, Invention, Discovery. Alcoholic Drinks. The number of the sea increases, owing to the upper portions alcoholic drinks is surprisingly large and of the atmosphere pressing upon and ccndens- varied. The following are the principal : I ing the lower strata, so much so, that one half Agua ardiente, made in Mexico, from the fer- ! the actual weight of the atmosphere is com- mented juice of agave ; arrack, made in India prised within the space of the lower five miles of its total height, the remaining forty miles in height containing the other half. The air is highly compressible and elastic, and its volume diminished inversely as the pressure increases. This accounts for the facility of from the juice of the palm and from rice ; araka, made in Tartary, from fermented mare's milk ; araki, made in Egypt from dates ; brandy, made in nearly all wine countries from wine and from fruits ; Geneva or Holland gin, made in Holland from malted barley or rye, rec- tified on juniper berries ; gin made in England from malted barley, rye, or potatoes, and recti- fied with turpentine ; goldwasser, made at Dantzic from various kinds of corn and recti- fied with spices ; kirchwasser, made in Switz- erland from the Mahaleb cherry ; lau, made in Siam from rice ; maraschino, made in Dal- matia from the Macarska cherry ; Mabwah arrack, made in India from the flowers of the madhuca tree ; rum, made in the West Indies and South America from cane sugar and mo- lasses ; rakia, made in Dalmatiafrom the husks of grapes, mixed with aromatics ; rossolio, made at Dantzic from a compound of brandy with certain plants ; stetkai-trava, made at Kamtschatka from a sweet grass ; show-choo, made in China from the lees of rice wine ; trosta, made in the Rhenish provinces from the husks of grapes fermented with barley and rye ; tuba, made in the Philippine Islands from palm wine ; vino mescal, made in Mexico by distilling the fermented juice of the agave ; whisky, made in Scotland, Ireland, and United States from raw and malted grain, and south of France from sloes. Air. The gaseous envelope of the earth. Our planet has two coverings : one the water, which is distributed as lakes and seas, filling up the deep cavities of the solid surface, tend- ing to produce a more level superficies ; the setting it in motion and its velocity. Like fluids, it presses equally in every direction, and when it comes in contact with a more expanded and therefore lighter portion of air, it pushes it up and occupies its place, producing cur- rents of air and winds when it flows in streams, and sounds when it is thrown into vibrations or undulations. The air is warmed solely by the earth, and not by the transmitted rays of the sun, hence warm air exists within the tropics, and diminishes towards the poles, and insensibly decreases every three hundred and fifty feet of elevation. Acoustics. The doctrine of the different sounds of vibrating strings, and the communi- cation of sounds to the ear by the vibration of the atmosphere, was probably first explained by Pythagoras, about 500 B. C. Mentioned by Aristotle, 330 B. C. The speaking trum- pet is said to have been used by Alexander the Groat, 335 B. C. The discoveries of Galileo were made about 1600 A. D. The velocity of sound was investigated by Newton before 1700. Galileo's theorem of the harmonic curves was demonstrated by Dr. Brook Taylor, in 1714; and further perfected by D'Alembert, Euler, Bernoulli, and LaGrange, at various periods qf the eighteenth century. Algebra. Where Algebra was first used, and by whom, is not precisely known. Dio- phantus first wrote upon it, probably about 170 second covering is the air or atmosphere, which A. D. ; he is said to be the inventor. Brought rests upon the top of the water and the dry I into Spain by the Saracens, about 900 ; and land, enveloping the highest mountains, and j into Italy by Leonardo of Pisa, in 1202. The rising upwards to an altitude somewhat above j first writer who used algebraical signs was forty-five miles ; it is a true, aeriform ocean surrounding our earth and has upon its upper surface waves and tides, and; throughout its mass, currents flowing in constant and vari- able directions, precisely as those of the ocean comport themselves ; it is held down to the surface of the earth by attraction, and rotates with the planet ; its density varies with its actual height at the place of observation, of which ihe barometric pressure is the evidence. Stifelius of Nuremberg, in 1544. The intro- duction of symbols for quantities was by Fran- cis Vieta, in 1590, when algebra came into general use. The binomial theorem of New- ton, the basis of the doctrine of fluxions, and the new analysis, 1668. Descartes applied al- gebra to geometry about 1637. Almanacs. The time by instruments. Egyptians computed Log calendars were anciently in use. The word almanac is of This pressure ainuuisb.es as the elevation above 1 Sason origin. Michael Nostradamus, the as- SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 301 fcrologer, Wrote an almanac in the style of Mer- lin, 1556. The first published is said to have been by Martin Hykus, at Buda in 1470. The first almanac in England was printed at Oxford, in 1673. Anatomy. The human body was studied by Aristotle about 350 B. C., and its structure was made part of the philosophical investiga- tions of Plato and Xenophon ; it became a branch of medical education, under Hippocra- tes about 420 B. C. Erasistratus and Herophi- lus first dissected the human form, and may be regarded as the fathers of anatomy ; it is said that they practiced upon the bodies of living criminals about 300 and 293 B. C. Galen, who died 193 A. D., was a great anatomist. In England the schools were long supplied with bodies unlawfully exhumed from graves ; and until 1832 the bodies of executed murder- ers were ordered for dissection. Pope Boni- face VIII. forbade the dissection of dead bodies, 1297. The first anatomical plates, designed by Titian, were employed by Vesalius, about 1538. The discoveries of Harvey were made in 1616. The anatomy of plants was discovered in 1680. Angling'. The origin of this art is in- volved in obscurity ; allusion was made to it by the Greeks and Romans, and in the most ancient books of the Bible, as Amos. It came into general repute in England about the pe- riod of the reformation. Winkin de Worde's Treaty se of Fysshinye, the first book printed on angling, appeared in 1496. Isaac Walton's book was printed in 1653. Arithmetic. Where first invented is not known, at least with certainty. It was brought from Egypt into Greece by Thales, aboat 600 B. C. The oldest treatise upon arithmetic is by Euclid, about 300 B. C. The sexagesimal arithmetic of Ptolemy was used A.'D. 130. Diophantus of Alex'andriawasthe author of thirteen books of arithmetical ques- tions (of which six are extant) in 156. Nota- tion by nine digits and zero, known at least as early as the sixth century in Hindostan in- troduced from thence into Arabia, about 900, into Spain 1050, into England 1253. Arith- metic of decimals invented 1482.. First work printed in England on arithmetic was by Tonstall, bishop of Durham, 1522. The theory of decimal fractions was perfected by Lord Napier in 1617. Assaying. The assaying of silver and gold is affected by a process called cupellation. Cupels are small flat crucibles made by press- ing bone ash moistened with water, into cir- cular steel molds, and they are dried by ex- posure to the air. The principle upon which the operation depends is, that all metals with which gold and silver are usually alloyed, are convertible into oxides by exposure to atmos- pheric air at a high temperature, whereas the precious metals remain unacted upon. To assay silver by cupellation the silver is flattened and wrapped up in an envelope of lead. A muffle or oven is heated in an assay furnace and the two metals put into it. The metals melt and the lead becomes converted into an oxide, which as well as any baser met- als before combined with the silver is absorbed by the substance of the cupel until at length the silver is left absolutely pure. The assaying of gold is performed, to a cer- tain extent in a similar way, and if the gold were alloyed only with copper, the process would be as simple as that of silver assaying. Usually, however, gold contains silver, and this cannot be got rid of by cupellation, the part- ing process is, therefore, had recourse to ; this consists in dissolving the silver by dilute ni- tric acid, which leaves the gold perfectly pure. Iron ores are assayed by separating the oxy- gen from the iron, by the greater affinity of charcoal for that element at high temperatures. The ore, some charcoal, and an alkaline flux are heated in a crucible ; and the result is that all the impurities in the ore are made to leave the iron so that the latter is presented in a purely metallic form. Copper ores usually contain sulphur, and in order to assay them a flux is prepared of fluor spar, borax, slacked lime, argol, and niter. Automobile. This name covers all forms of self-propelling vehicles for use on country roads or city streets, whether driven by steam produced by the combustion of fuel, stored steam, compressed air, oil or gasoline engines, or by electric motors taking current from accu- mulators. Automobiles are not of recent ori- gin, as many generally suppose, but date back to the early days of the steam engine, to the time of Sir Isaac Newton, who, in 1680, pro- posed a form of steam carriage which embodied the essential features of a steam automobile. In 1790 Nathan Read patented and constructed a model steam carriage. But the first actual experiments were made in 1769, by a French army officer, Nicholas Cugnot, who built a three wheel carriage. In America, Oliver Evans, as early as 1786, suggested a form of road wagon to be propelled by steam. In 1803 Richard Trevithick built a full sized carriage which was exhibited in London, having driven itself 90 miles en route from Camborne, where it was constructed!. David Gurney built and operated a steam carriage in 1827, in which he made frequent and long journeys, covering as much as 85 miles in 10 hours. He was ex- celled by Walter Hancock who established THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. several stage linen. Since 1895 the construc- tion of automobiles has been carried on with great energy, and many improvements have been made. So far the most satisfactory re- sults have been obtained with the steam, oil, and electric carriages. In tire construction the pneumatic tire occupies the first place in public favor, although solid rubber tires are largely employed. The highest speed is ob- tained by use of light oils, preferably gasoline ; steam motors are most successfully used with heavy trucks and vans ; the electric motor has given the best satisfaction when employed on vehicles for city cab and carriage work and short radius runs. JEolian Harp was the invention, it is be- lieved, of Athanasius Kircher, who lived in the seventeenth century, and it is so called from ./Eolus, the god or ruler of the winds. It is a simple musical instrument, the sounds of which are produced by the vibrations of strings moved by wind. It may be composed of a rectangular box made of thin boards, five j or six inches deep and about the same width, j and of a length sufficient to extend across the ' window it is to be set at, so that the breeze coming in can sweep over it. At the top of ; each end of the box a strip of wood is glued, about a half-inch in height ; the strings are then stretched lengthwise across the top of the | box, ai.d may l>e tuned in unison by means of . < constructed to control their tension, as in the case of a violin. The sounds produced by the rising and falling wind, in passing over the tarings, are of a drowsy and lulling charac- ter, and havel>een beautifully described by the poet Thomson as supplying the most suitable kind of music for the Castle of Indolence. Aerial Navigation. Pilatre des Hosiers made the first balloon ascension at Paris, No- vember 21, 1783. His balloon was inflated with heated air. December 1, 1783, an ascen- sion was made by M. Charles, a professor of Natural Philosophy, at Paris, and at about the i same time successful ascensions were also made by Messrs. Rittenhouse and Hopkins, of Phila- delphia, hydrogen gas being used in these in- stances for inflating purposes. The valve at the top of the balloon, and the hoop attached to the balloon with netting, by which is sus- pended the car, are the inventions of M. | Charles. In 1785 a successful passage of the ' English Channel was made by M. Blanchard, the first professional aeronaut, and an Ameri- can traveler named Dr. Jeffries. The use of I ropes for the purpose of steadying balloons was first adopted by M. Gay-Lussac, in 1803. ; From 1852 to 1884 French, German, and American aeronauts labored with degrees of , success to improve the method of construction , and to invent a means for the propulsion of balloons, and in the latter year Captains Ren- ard and Krebs produced an air ship which was considered the crowning effort in this line of invention. This ship was a cigar- shaped balloon, carrying a platform, on which the steering and propelling apparatus was placed. The balloon was made of strong silk and covered with a light netting of cords. It was 197 feet long and l ; 9 feet in diameter. To the netting was suspended the platform, 131 feet long and 10 feet broad, on the front of which was fixed the propeller, a screw of light, wooden framework and air-tight cloth. The rudder was at the rear of the platform. The propeller was driven by electricity, generated by a dynamo, which was in turn driven by stored electricity. The first ascension of this ship fully satisfied the most sanguine expecta- tions of its builders. It was driven seven miles and back in the space of forty minutes, and obeyed fully every movement of the rudder. During the siege of Paris, in the Franco-Ger- man war of 1870-71 , ballooning was extensively used by the besieged for communication with the outer world, and also by the besiegers for military purposes, and since that date military ballooning has become an important subject of study and experiment by soldiers. American Clocks and Watches. The first attempt to manufacture watch J3 or clocks on a large scale in America was made by Eli Terry, a Connecticut Yankee, who in- vented wooden wheels for clocks in 1792. In 1837 Chauncey Jerome, of Massachusetts, first applied machinery to the making of metal- wheeled clocks, and as a result drove the wooden-wheeled clocks out of the market. The manufacture of watches by machinery, which has since become such an important business, was begun at Roxbury, Mass., in 1850, and was continued there until 1854, when the works were removed to Waltham. Archimedes, Principle of. Archi- medes, the most celebrated of ancient mathe- maticians, was born at Syracuse about 287 B. C. He is said to have been a kinsman of King Iliero, though he does not seem to have held any public office, but devoted himself en- tirely to science. He is the only one of the ancients who contributed anything satisfactory on the theory of mechanics and on hydrostat- ics. He first established the truth that a body plunged in a fluid loses exactly as much of its weight as is equal to the weight of the fluid displaced by it. This is one of the most important principles in the science of hydro- statics, and is called by his name. It was by this law that he determined how much alloy the goldsmith, whom Iliero had cc in missioned SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 303 to make a crown of pure gold, had fraudu- lently mixed with the metal. The solution of the problem had suggested itself to him as he was entering the bath, and he is reported to have been so overjoyed as to hasten home with- out waiting to dress, exclaiming, "I have found it! I have found it!" Among the numerous inventions ascribed to Archimedes is that of the endless screw, and the cochlea, or water-screw, in which the water is made in a manner to ascend by its own gravity. Atlantic Cables. In July/ 1866, the first permanent Atlantic cable was laid from Valentia Bay, Ireland, to Trinity Bay, N. F., and in September of the same year a cable which had been lost in 1865 was recovered and its laying completed, thus giving two lines between the two points. These -lines were known as the Anglo-American Cable, and were managed by a company of the same name. The French Atlantic Telegraph Com- pany was formed in 1868, and it laid a line from Brest, France, to Roxbury, Mass., the following year. In the summer of 1873 the fourth Atlantic telegraph cable was laid from Valentia, Ireland, to Heart's Content, Trinity Bay, N. F., and the Brazilian telegraph cable was laid from Rio de Janeiro, Brazil, to a bay on the coast of Portugal a few months later. The Direct United States Cable Company was formed, and laid a line from Ballenskill- ings Bay, Ireland, to Rye, N. H., via Nova Scotia, in 1874. The same year a sixth line across the Atlantic was laid from Ireland to Newfoundland, and in 1880 another French line was laid from Brest to St. Pierre, an is- land in the Gulf of St. Lawrence. In 1884- '85, the companies owning all these lines hav- ing previously formed a combination to keep up rates, a competing company was formed by James Gordon Bennett and Air. Mackay, who laid two lines from Ireland to Nova Scotia, and also a connecting line from Ireland to France. The difficulty with these submarine cables at first was to send through them a cur- rent of sufficient power to record the message. The method adopted is as follows : Two keys, which when depressed transmit respectively positive and negative currents, are employed at the sending station, in connection with the battery. The current of the battery does not pass directly into the cable, but into a con- denser, which passes it into the submarine line. This greatly increases the force of the current used, and serves 1o cut off interfering earth-currents. The receiving-instrument first employed was a reflecting galvanometer. Upon the magnet of this instrument is carried ft small curved mirror. .About two feet in front of it is placed a lamp behind a frame in which is a vertical slit, while above it is a screen. The light from this lamp, passing through the slit, falls on the surface of the mirror, which throws it back upon the screen. The flash of light, moving from right to left with the motion of the needle, indicates the message sent. This method, however, has been of late years almost entirely superseded by an invention called the syphon galvanome- ter. In this the movements of the needle are recorded by means of ink spurted from a fine glass syphon-tube. This tube is attached to a coil suspended between two fixed magnets, which swing to right or left as the pulsations of the needle pass through it. The possibility of laying an electric cable in the Atlantic from Europe was suggested by Professor Morse as far back as 1843, but it was not until 1854 that Mr. Cyrus W. Field discussed the means of practically realizing the idea, and it is to his energy that the successful completion of this great work is due. Aurora Borealis. Since the discovery of electricity, and especially electro-magnetism, all speculation on the nature of the aurora has taken in that force as a principal element, and modern experiments have been especially turned to securing proof of the electric nature of the auroral display. The theory advanced by M. De La Rive, a Genoese scientist, and which is generally accepted, is, that the aurora is caused by the recomposition of the positive and negative electricity, always to be tound in the upper and lower strata of air respectively. Miniature auroras have been produced by electricity by M. De La Rive, and also by a M". Lenstrom. In M. Lenstrom's experiments, which were made in Finland in 1882, the peak of a mountain was surrounded with a coil of copper wire, pointed at intervals with tin nibs. This wire was charged with electricity, and a yellow light was produced on the tin points, in which the spectroscope analysis revealed the greenish yellow ray that characterizes the au- rora borealis. The aurora was supposed to be of supernatural origin by the ancients. Armor. The warlike Europeans at first despised any other defense than the shield. Skins and padded hides were first used ; and brass and iron armor, in plates or scales, fol- lowed. The first body armor of the Britons were skins of wild beasts, exchanged, after the Roman conquest, for the well tanned leathern cuirass. This latter continued until the A nglo- Saxon era. Hengist is said to have had scale armor, A. D. 449. The heavy cavalry were covered with a coat of mail, 1216. Armor be- came exceedingly splendid about 1350. The armor of plate commenced, 1407. The armor of Hary VII. consisted of a cuirass of steel, 304 THE CENTURA BOOK OF FACTS. in the form of a pair of stays, about 1500. Armor ceased to reach below the knees in the time of Charles I., 1625. Artillery. The first piece was a small one, contrived by Schwartz, a German cordel- ier, soon after the invention of gunpowder in 1330. Artillery was used, it is said, by the Moors at Algeciras in Spain, in the siege of 1341 ; it was nsed, according to historians, at the battle of Cressy, in 1346, when Edward III. had four pieces of cannon, which gained him the battle. Artillery was used at the siege of Calais, 1347. The .Venetians first employed artillery against the Genoese at sea, 1377. Cast in England, together with mortars for bombshells, by Flemish artists in Sussex, 1543. Made of brass, 1G35. From this time forward the improvement in field artillery has been rapid and important. Astronomy. The earliest accounts we have of this science are those of Babylon, about 2234 B. C. The study of astronomy was much advanced in Chaldea under Xabonas- sur ; it was known to the Chinese about 1 100 3. C. ; some say many centuries before. Lu- nar eclipses were observed at Babylon with ex- ceeding accuracy, 720 B. C. Spherical form of the earth, and the true cause of lunar eclipses, taught by Thales, 640 B. C. Further discoveries by Pythagoras, who taught the doc- trine of celestial motions, and believed in the plurality of habitable worlds, 500 B. C. Hip- parchus began his observations at Rhodes, 167 B. C., began his new cycle of the moon in 143, and made great advances in the science, 140 B. C. The procession of the equinoxes confirmed, and the places and distances of the planets dis- covered, by Ptolemy, A. D. 130. After the elapse of nearly seven centuries, during which time astronomy was neglected, it was resumed by the Arabs about 800 ; and was afterwards brought into Europe by the Moors of Barbary and Spain, but not sooner than 1201, when they also introduced geography. True laws of the planetary motions discovered by Kepler 1619 ; the discoveries of Galileo were made about 1631. Newton's Principia published and the system as now taught incontroverti- bly established, A. D. 1687 ; Mecanique Celeste, published by La Place, 1796. Ax- Wedge. These instruments, with the lever, and various others of a coarse construc- tion and still in common use, are said to have been invented by Daedalus, an artificer of Athens, to whom also is ascribed the invention of masts and sails for ships, 1240 B.C. Many tools are represented on the Egyptian monu- ments. Beer, Origin of. The Germans, Gauls, and Bretons manufactured beer from barley and wheat as far back as there are any written records regarding them. Tacitus tells us that beer was a common beverage of the Germans when lie wrote, in the first century. We learn from Pliny that " The people of Spain, in par- ticular, brew this liquor so well that it will keep a long time." He describes it as made from corn and water. The earliest of Greek writers speak of wine made from barley, anc. of the art of making it as derived from the Egyptians. It is believed that Archilochus, the Parian poet, who lived about 700 B. C., re- ferred to beer drinking when he depicted the follies and vicious indulgences of his time. In the ancient writings of China reference is made to a f ermented drink called " sam-shoo, " made from rice. When it was first invented is unknown, but it was probably long before the Christian Era. Blood, Circulation of. The true the- ory regarding the circulation of blood was discovered by the celebrated English physiolo- gist, William Harvey, about 1616. He re- ceived his diploma as Doctor of Medicine from the University of Padua in 1602, and in 1615 was made Lecturer at the College of Physi- cians in London, an appointment which he held for forty years. It is generally supposed that he expounded his views regarding blood circulation in his first course of lectures. He died at London June 3, 1657. Bonnet. The English bonnet, which was superseded in the early part of the sixteenth century by the hat, was made of cloth, silk, or velvet, less or more ornamented, according to the taste or means of the wearer. In Scotland, however, bonnets were universally worn for a century or two later, and they still are, to a certain extent, a national characteristic. The bonnet worn by the Lowland Scottish peasan- try was of a broad, round, and flat shape, over- shadowing the face and neck, and of a dark- blue color, excepting a red tuft like a cherry on the top. It was made of thick milled woolen, and with reasonable care would last a man his whole life. From having been worn, till comparatively late times, by small rural proprietors such as owners of a cottage and an acre or two of land it gave to these local notabilities the distinctive appellation of Bonnet Lairds. The bonnets worn by the Highland- ers were made of the same fabric, but rise to a point in front and are without any rim. From time immemorial these various kinds of Scots bonnets have been manufactured at Stewarton, a small ixywn in Ayrshire. Formerly the Stew- arton bonnet makers formed a corporation, which, like other old guilds, was governed by regulations conceived in a narrow and often amusingly absurd spirit ; one of the rules of SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 305 of the fraternity, however, can be spoken of only with commendation, for it enforced a cer- tain weight of material in each bonnet, as well as durability in the color. Botanic Gardens In 1309 A. D., the first approach to a botanic garden was made in the garden of Matthaeus Salvations, at Sa- lerno, botanic science, however, being merely subservient to medicine ; and it was not until 1533 that the first true botanic garden was formed. This was made for Gaspar de Ga- brieli, a wealthy Tuscan noble at Padua, and was followed by similar gardens at Pisa, Florence, Bologna, and Rome, the first public garden being that at Pisa. In 1545 a public garden was established at Padua by decree of the Republic of Venice. In 1580 the Elector of Saxony established a public botanic garden at Leipzig, which was soon followed by others. There was no botanic garden in France till Louis XIII. established the Jarrlin des Planter at Paris, which was completed in 1634. The first public botanic garden was established in England at Oxford by the Earl of Danby, al- though numerous private gardens had existed in England for the greater part of a century. The botanic garden at Edinburgh, the first in Scotland, was founded about 1680. The bo- tanic garden at Kew occupies a high place among British national institutions, and pos- sesses one of the richest collections of plants in the world. The gardens connected with the imperial palace at Schonbrunn, in Austria, and that of Berlin, are the greatest in Germany. The Jardin dex Planter in Paris undoubtedly may be regarded as holding the first place on the continent of Europe, both with reference to the strictly scientific study of botany and to the care bestowed upon the introduction and diffusion of useful or beautiful plants from all parts of the world. In the United States the botanic gardens of New York and Philadelphia are the most worthy of notice. Brain. The latest classification of races, according to Bastian and other experts, shows weight of brain, in ounces, as follows : Scotch, 50.0; Germans, 49.6; English, 49.5 ; French, 47.9; Zulus, 47.5; Chinese, 47.2; Pawnees, 47.1; Italians, 46.9; Hindoo, 45.1; Gypsy, 44.8; Bushmen, 44.6; Esquimaux, 43.9. Compared with size of body, the brain of the Esquimau is as heavy as the Scotchman's. The measurement of that part of the skull which holds the brain is stated in cubic inches thus: Anglo-Saxon, 105; German, 105; Ne- gro, 96 ; Ancient Egyptian, 93 ; Hottentot, 58 ; Australian native, 58. In all races the male brain is about 10 per cent, heavier than the female. The highest class of apes has only 16 oz. of brain. A man's brain, it is estimated, consists of 300,000,000 nerve cells, of which over 3,000 are disintegrated and destroyed every minute. Every one, therefore, has a new brain once in sixty days. But excessive labor, or the lack of sleep, prevents the repair of the tissues, and the brain gradually wastes away. Diversity of occupation, by calling upon different portions of the mind or body, successively affords, in some measure, the requisite repose to each. But in this age of overwork there is no safety except in that perfect rest which is the only natural restorative of exhausted power. It has been noticed by observant physicians in their European travels that the German people, who, as a rule, have no ambition and no hope to rise above their inherited station, are pecul- iarly free from nervous diseases ; but in Amer- ica, where the struggle for advancement is sharp and incessant, and there is nothing that will stop an American but death, the period of life is usually shortened five, ten, or twenty years by the effects of nervous exhaustion. After the age of 50 the brain loses an ounce every ten years. Cuvier's weighed 65, Byron's 79, and Cromwell's 90 ounces, but the last was diseased. Post-mortem examinations in France give an average of 55 to 60 ounces for the brains of the worst class of criminals. Beds. The ancients slept on skins. Beds were afterwards of loose rushes, heather, or straw. The Romans are said to have been the first to use feathers. An air-cushion is said | to have been used by Heliogabalus, 218-222 ; air beds were in use in the sixteenth century. Feather beds were used in England in the reign of Henry VIII. The bedsteads of the Egyp- tians and later Greeks, like modern couches, be- came common among the Roman upper classes. Bells were used among the Jews, Greeks, and Romans. The responses of the Dodonean oracle were in part conveyed by bells. The monument of Porsenna was decorated with pinnacles, each surmounted by bells. Said to have been introduced by Paulinus, bishop of Nole, in Campagna, about 400 ; and first known in France in 550. The army of Clo- thaire IT., king of France, was frightened from the siege of Sens by the ringing of the bells of St. Stephen's church. Bells were used in churches by order of Pope John IX., about 900. as a defense, by ringing them, against thunder and lightning. Bells are mythically said to have been cast by Turketul, Abbot of England, about 941. His successor improved the invention, and caused the first tunable set to be put up at Croyland Abbey, 960. In most Catholic states, bells are baptized as we do ships, but with religious solemnity. 30ft THE CENTURY BOOK OP FACTS. Billiards. Invented by the French, by whom, and by the Germans, Dutch, and Ital- ians, they were brought into general vogue throughout Europe. The French ascribe their invention to Henrique Devigne, an artist, in the reign of Charles IX., about 1571. Slate billiard tables were introduced in England in 1827. Boots, said to have been the invention of the Carians, were mentioned by Homer, 907 B. C., and frequently by the Roman historians. A variety of forms may be seen in Fairholt's "Costume in England." An instrument of torture ' ' termed the boot ' ' was used in Scot- land upon the Covenanters about 1666. Botany. Aristotle is considered the founder of the philosophy of botany. The Historia Plan- tarum of Theophrastus was written about 320 B. C. Authors on botany are numerous from the earlier ages of the world to the close of the fifteenth century, when the science became better understood. The study was advanced by Fuchsius, Bock, Bauhin, Caesalpinus, and others, between 1535 and 1600. The system and arrangement of Linnaeus, the first bota- nist of modern times, made known about 1750 ; Jussieu's system, in 1758. At the time of the death of Linnaeus, A. D. 1778, the species of plants actually described amounted in number to 11,800. The number of species of all de- nominations now recorded cannot fall short of 100,000. Bottles in ancient times were made of leather. The art of making glass bottles and drinking-glasses was known to the Romans at least before 79 A. D. ; for these articles and other vessels have been found in the ruins of Pom}>eii. Bottles were made in England about 1558. Bread. Ching-Noung, the successor of Fohi, is reputed to have been the first who taught men (the Chinese) the art of hus- bandry, and the method of making bread from wheat, and wine from rice, 1998 B. C. Bak- ing of bread was known in the patriarchal ages ; it became a profession at Rome, 170 B. C. During the siege of Paris by Henry IV., owing to the famine which then raged, bread, which had been sold whilst any re- mained for a crown a pound, was at last made from the bones of the charnel-house of the Holy Innocents, A. D. 1594. In the time of James I. the usual bread of the poor was made of barley ; in Iceland codfish beaten to powder is made into bread ; potato bread is used in Ireland. Bread was made with yeast by the English bakers in 1634. In 1856 and 1857,! Dauglish patented a mode of making ' ' aerated j bread " in which carbonic acid gas is com- bined with water and mixed with the flour, and which is said to possess the advantages of cleanliness, rapidity, and uniformity. Briere readilr inflamed by dipping the prepared ends into the sulphuric acid. These were suc- ceeded by the lucifer, or loco-foco match, which was ignited by friction ; and that, in turn by the Congreve, which was similar to the sulphur matches now in use ; and this, shortly afterward, by the present parlor match. Maxim Self-Acting Gun was invented 334 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. by Hiram S. Maxim of England. The peculiar features of this gun are : Every round after the first is fired by the recoil of the previous explosion ; the cartridges are picked out of the cartridge belt, one end of which is placed in the gun mechanism on one side by the auto- msvtic action of the gun, and the belt and cartridge shells are ejected after firing; every recoil of the gun brings the next cartridge into position, forces it into the barrel, cocks the hammer, pulls the trigger, extracts the empty shell, and ejects it from the gun all these processes going on with such marvelous rapid- ity that six hundred rounds are fired in a minute. The gun can be turned in any direc- tion by means of a crank, and the rate of dis- charge is regulated by a controlling chamber, ingeniously contrived so that the gun may be fired rapidly or slowly, as desired. At the moment of firing, the recoil drives the barrel back about three qiiarters of an inch, and it is this recoil which directs the mechanism of the gun and makes its discharges continuous. Medicine appears to have been first prac- ticed by the Egyptian priests. Pythagoras endeavored to explain the philosophy of disease and the action of medicine about 529 B. C. Hippocrates, the Father of Medicine, flour- ished about 422 B. C., and Galen, born A. D. 131, was the oracle of medical science. About 980, Avicenna, an Arab, wrote a system of medicine. The art was brought into Europe from the East, about A. D. 1150. In the early stages of the practice, the preparation of simples was principally confined to ecclesiastics in Europe generally, until the close of the fif- teenth century. The dogmatic age of medi- cine lasted until the Reformation, when it was attacked by Paracelsus (1493-1541) and Vasa- lus (1514-64). Since 1800 medical practice has been completely transformed by physio- logical and chemical research. The practice of medicine is now one of the highest sciences, and in most countries is in the hands of learned and distinguished men ; various statutes have been enacted to discourage pretenders to the healing art. Meerschaum is a mineral existing in many parts of the world. In Europe, it is found chiefly at Hrubschitz in Moravia, and at Sebastopol and Kaffa in the Crimea ; and in Asia it is found abundantly just below the soil in the alluvial beds at Kittisch and Bursain Natolia ; and in the rocks of Eske-Hissar, in the same district, it is mined so extensively as to give employment to nearly a thousand men. Meerschaum, from its having been found on the seashore in some places, in peculiarly rounded snow white lumps, was ignorantly imagined to be petrified froth of the sea, which is the meaning of its German name. It is composed of silica, magnesia, and water. AVhen first dug from the earth it is quite soft and soap-like to the touch, and as it lathers with water and removes grease, it is employed by the Turks as a substitute for soap in wash- ing. After being molded into pipes, these are boiled in oil or wax and baked until hard. Mesmerism was first brought into notice by Frederick Anton Mesmer, a German physi- cian, in 1766, when he published a thesis on " The Influence of the Planets on the Human Body," claiming that the heavenly bodies diffused through the universe a subtle fluid which acts on the nervous system of animated beings ; and he further stated that he regarded the new force, which, he said, could be exerted by one living organism upon another, as a means of alleviating or curing disease. In 1778 he left Vienna for Paris, where he gained numerous proselytes and much money. His discovery was fostered by Dr. D'Elson, physi- cian to the king's brother, and in 1784 the French government ordered the medical fac- ulty of Paris to investigate Mesmer 's theory. A committee was appointed, who subsequently reported that ' ' The violent effects which are observed in the public practice of magnetism are due to the manipulations, to the excite- ment of the imagination which leads us to repeat anything which produces an impression upon the senses." One year later, 1785, Mesmer 's popularity had so far declined that he left Paris and retired to Switzerland, where he spent the balance of his life. Mesmer- ism excited some attention again in 1848, when Miss Harriet MartLieau and others an- nounced their belief in it. Meteors. Meteors are small, erratic bodies rushing through the planetary system, and, getting hot in the process, appear in the atmosphere surrounding our earth as " shoot- ing stars." Some of these falling bodies have reached the earth, and such are called " aero- lites " or " meteorites." Numbers, of course, are burned up before they reach us, and who can tell what destruction such a catastrophe may represent, or whether it be or be not an inhabited world which has thus been plunged to destruction by fire ? They are of a metallic or stony nature. On certain nights in August and November it has been calculated that these meteors will appear. They fall from certain constellations, after which they are named ; as Leonides, from Leo, in the Novem- ber displays. The star showers sometimes present the ap- pearance of a beautiful display of rockets. Millions of them rush round the sun, and when, as occasionally happens, our earth SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 335 corned hear them, we have a grand display of celestial fireworks. It is estimated that the average number of meteors that traverse the atmosphere daily, and which are large enough to be visible to the eye on a dark, clear night, is 7,500,000; and if to these the telescopic meteors be added, the number will be increased to 400,000,000. In the space traversed by the earth there are, on the average, in each volume the size of our globe (including its atmosphere), as many as 13,000 small bodies, each one capable of fur- nishing a shooting star visible under favorable circumstances to the naked eye. Metric System, The, originated in France I about 1790. In 1799, on the invitation of, the Government, an international convention, i at which were present representatives from j France, Holland. Denmark, Sweden, Switzer- j land, Spain, Savoy, and the Roman Republics, assembled at Paris to settle, from the results j of the great Meridian Survey, the exact length of the " definitive meter." As a result of the I investigations of this learned body, the Metric | System was based upon the length of the fourth i part of a terrestrial meridian. The ten-mil- i lionth part of this arc was chosen as the unit I of measures of length, and called Meter. The i cube of the tenth part of the meter was adopted as the unit of capacity, and denominated Liter. j The weight of a liter of distilled water at its greatest density waa called Kilogramme, of which the thousandth part, or Gramme, was adopted as the unit of weight. The multiples of these, proceeding in decimal progression, are distinguished by the employment of the pre- fixes deca, hecto, kilo, and myria (ten, hundred, thousand, ten thousand) from the Greek, and the subdivisions bydeci, centi, and milli (tenth, hundredth, thousandth) from the Latin. Measures of Lengrth (Unit, Meter). Millimeter EQUAL TO Inches. 0.03937 . Feet. 0.003281 Yards. U.C010936 Fathoms. O.OOO.M68 . Miles. 0.0000006 Centimeter 0.31)371 . 0.032809 o.oio:;?(53 0.00546*2 0.0000062 Decimeter 393708 . 0.328098 0.1093033 0.054*816 0.0000621 METKR 30.37079 . 3.280!8 1.093li331 0.5468165 0.0006214 Decameter 393.70790 . 32.809892 10.13033(6 5.4681653 (1.0062138 Hectometer 3,937.07900 . 3-'8.08B917 109 36330:6 54.6816528 0.06213*1 Kilometer 39,370.79000 . 3,280.899167 I,093.63305. r 6 546 8165278 0.6213824 Mvriameter... 394.707. 90UOO . 32,i<08.99]667 10-J3C .330K6C 5.468.1652778 6.2138242 Cubic Measures, or Measures of Capacity (Unit, I i i -r . EQUAL TO Milliliter, or cubjc centimeter Centiliter, 10 cubic centimeters Deciliter, 100 cubic centimeters LITKK, or cubic Decimeter, Decaliter, or Centistere Hectoliter, or Decistere Kiloliter, or Stere, or cubic meter, Myrialiter, or Decastere ft/Me Inche*. O.OC103 061027 6.10271 61 027P6 610.27(52 6,102.70515 61,027 051*2 610,270.51519 Cubic Feet. tt.000035 0.000253 0.003532 0.035317 0.353166 S.MNflS 35.316581 353.165807 J'ints. 0.00176 0.01761 0.17608 1.7(077 17.G0773 176.07734 1,760.77341 17,607.73414 Measures of Weight (Unit, Gramme). EQUAL TO Grains. 0.01543 0.15432 1.54323 15 43235 154.32349 1,54:( i':; INS 15,432.M8f Myriagramnie 154,323.48800 Milligramme Centigramme Decigramme GRAMME Decagramme Hectogramme Troy Oz. 0.000032 0.000322 0.003215 0.032151 0.3:' 1507 3.215073 32.150727 Aroirdtijxiis Lbs o.oowO'.2 0.0000220 0.0002t!05 0.0022046 0.022i'4l-2 0.221 46'.' 1 2.2046213 22 0462129 Gallons. 0.0002201 0.0022010 0.02200! 7 0.2200! 67 2.200<>668 22.009C677 220.0966767 L',200.9667675 Cu-t. o/112 L MOMMO 0.000(002 O.OOOC020 OOOCOI97 0.000 19f 8 0.0019084 0.0196841 0.1908412 Square Measures, or Measures of Surface (Unit, Ar*\ E"QUAL TO Sq.Feet. Sq. Yards. Kq. Perches. Centare, or square meter ........... 10794299 .. 1.1P6033 .. 0.0395T*3 AKI . or KH)x|ii;iro meters .......... 1.076 429!>34 .. 119.603326 .. 3.9&8290 Hectare, or 10,000 square meters... 107,642.993419 . . 11,960.332602 .. ::%.:;s28!i69 Sq. Itoofts. 0.(H Oi'885 0.0988467 9.8845724 Jivshets. 0.0000275 0.0002751 0.0027512 0.0275121 0.2751208 2.7612085 27.5120846 275.1208459 Tons. ft. t 0.001 KMXK) 0.0000001 i ! 00000098 O.OMOBN 0.0009H42 0.0098421 7. Acres. 0.(M02471 0.0247111 2.4711434 Microphone, The, is the black carbon button used in telephones, and is an instru- ment for magnifying sound. The most sensi- tive substance, so far as yet discovered, to have the peculiar power, when placed in the electric current, of magnifying sound, is willow char- coal plunged, when at white heat, into mercury. A piece of such charcoal an inch long, placed vertically between two blocks of carbon, hol- lowed to receive its ends, wires connecting the blocks with an electric battery, and the ordi- nary receiving instrument of a telephone, con- stitute one of the simplest forms of a micro- phone. The invention of the microphone is claimed by Professor Hughes of England, and Thomas Edison, the American inventor. Microscope, Invention of the. It is i generally believed that the first compound mi- | croscope was made in 1590 by a Hollander named Zacharias Jansen. Pocket microscopes i were first made in London in 1740 by Ben- jamin Martin. The discovery of the magnify- ing power of the simple lens was undoubtedly made long before the Christian era, as it is 336 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. known that the Greeks used magnifiers of glass which they called " reading-glasses," and rude lenses of crystal have been found in Egyptian ruins. Mirage. Mirage (sometimes called Fata Morgana) is the appearance in the air of the image of some distant object, seen either in connection with the object itself, above or be- low the latter, or suspended in the air, the ob- ject being invisible. It is a very curious but sufficiently common phenomena, and in the Asiatic and African plains it is frequently observed. When the weather is calm and the ground hot, the Egyptian landscape appears like a lake, and the houses look like islands in the midst of a widely-spreading expanse of water. This causes the mirage, which is the result of evaporation, while the different tem- peratures of the air strata cause an unequal re- flection and refraction of light, which give rise to the mirage. Travelers are frequently deceived, but the camels will not quicken their usual pace until they scent water. The Fata Morgana and the inverted images of ships seen at sea are not uncommon on Eu- ropean coasts. Between Sicily and Italy this phenomenon is seen in the Sea of Reggio with fine effect. Palaces, towers, fertile plains, with cattle grazing on them, are seen, with many other terrestial objects, upon the sea the palaces of the Fairy Morgana. The inverted images of ships are frequently perceived, and many most extraordinary but perfectly authen- tic tales have been related concerning the re- flection and refraction of persons arid objects in the sky and on land, when no human beings nor any of the actual objects were within the range of vision. Mirrors. In ancient times mirrors we-e made of metal ; those of the Jewish women of brass ; mirrors of silver were introduced by Praxiteles, 328 B. C. Mirrors or looking- glasses were made at Venice, A. D. 1300 ; and in England, at Lambeth, near London, in 1673. The French excelled in their manu- facture of them in the last century. Various methods of coating glass by a solution of silver, thus avoiding the use of mercury, so injurious to the health of the workman, have been made known, by M. Petitjean,in 1851 ; by M. Cimeg, in 1861, and by Liebig and others. Mother-of -Pearl. The shells of many molluscous animals display a brilliant pearly and iridescent luster, resulting from the peculiar manner in which the layers of calcareous matter of .which they are composed have been successively formed. Such shells, even when ' small in size, form bright and, especially to | the untutored eye, attractive ornaments, and j as such are used for necklaces and similar purposes. When the shells are of sufficient size to cut and shape for purposes of utility, they become articles of some commercial importance under the name of Mother-of- Pearl. This term, though applicable to all pearly shells, is in commerce principally applied to the shells of the bi-valve pearl mussel, which is the principal source of the commercial product. The largest and steadiest consumption of mother-of-pearl is in the button trade, and much is also consumed by cutlers for handles of fruit and dessert knives and forks, pocket- knives, and other forms of cutlery. It is also used in the inlaying of Japanese and Chinese lacquers, European lacquered papier-mach6 work, trays, toys, and as an ornamental inlay generally. In an innumerable variety of small and fancy articles, mother-of-pearl is also employed, its use being limited only by the moderate dimensions and- thickness of material obtained, and its rather brittle nature. The carving of pilgrim shells, and the elaboration of crucifixes and ornamental work in mother-of-pearl is a distinctive industry of the monks and other inhabitants of Bethlehem. Among the South Sea Islands the shell is largely fashioned into fishing hooks, a purpose for which its brilliant, conspicuous appearance seems to render it suitable without. the addi- tion of any bait or other lure. Music. Lucretius ascribes its invention to the whistling of the winds in hollow reeds. Franckinus, to the various sounds produced by the hammers of Tubal-Cain ; Pontique and others to the singing of birds ; and Zarlino to the sound of water. It is however agreed that music was first reduced to rules by Jubal, 1800 B. C. The flute and harmony or concord in music was invented by Hyagnis, 1506. Vocal choruses of men are first mentioned 56 B. C. The first six musical notes are said to have been invented by Guy Aretino, a Benedictine monk of Arezzo, about 1025. The notes of present use were perfected in 1338. Musical pitch was settled in France in 1859. Pythago- ras maintained that the motion of the twelve spheres must produce delightful sounds inau- dible to mortal ears, which he called the music of the spheres. Saint Cecilia, a Roman lady, is said to have excelled so eminently in music, that an angel was enticed from the celestial re- gions by the fascinating charms of her melody ; this hyperbolical tradition has been deemed sufficient authority to make her the patroness' of music. She died in the third century. Nails. It is only since 1810 that machin- ery has been employed to any extent in the manufacture of nails. Previous to that date, SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 337 they were made by hand by forging on an anvil, and great numbers of men were em- ployed in the industry, there having been as many as GO, 000 nailers in the neighborhood of Birmingham alone. It appears that as early as 1606 a patent was obtained for cutting nail rods by water power, by Sir Davis Bul- mer. An improvement on this was patented in 1618, and a new invention in 1790, which last was the first nail machine in actual use ; it was patented by Thomas Clifford, and used in French's factory at Wimburn, Staffordshire, in 1792. Toward the close of the last cen- tury many patents were obtained in the United States for new machines and improvements on old ones. Many of the first inventors spent large sums of money on their machines, and it has been estimated that it cost fully $1,000, 000 to bring them to the perfection attained in 1810, when a machine made 100 nails a min- ute. The machine invented by Jesse Reed of Massachusetts, about 1800, is the one which first came into general use, and this, with some improvements, is the one most largely used to-day. In 1810, Joseph C. Dyer of Boston, then a merchant in London, took out patents in England for the nail machinery in- vented in Massachusetts. It was at once widely introduced, and large manufacturing establishments were soon founded. Some factories at Birmingham are now capable of making over 40,000,000 nails a week. The term penny, used to indicate the size of nails, is supposed to be a corruption of pound ; thus a fourpenny nail was one such that 1,000 of them weighed four pounds ; a tenpenny, such that 1,000 weighed ten pounds. Originally, the " hundred,*' when applied to nails, meant sixscore, or 120 ; consequently the thousand was 1,200. In France, the greater part of the nails used in carpentry-work are made of soft iron wire, pointed with the hammer, and the head is formed by pinching them in a toothed vise. Nebular Hypothesis. The Nebular Hy- pothesis assumes that the solar system was once an enormous mass .of gaseous substance. Rapid rotation arising in this gaseous mass, it took the form of a disc, and at last inertia (popularly but erroneously called centrifugal force), overcoming cohesion, whole rings and fragments flew off from this disc, and by grav- itation contracted into spheroid masses. As, in the original mass, the velocity of the outer circle of each body thrown off is greater than the inner circle, this causes each spheroid to revolve on its own axis. This process goes on, and the central mass continues to cool and shrink until we have at last a central body with a number of smaller spheroidal bodies re- volving around it in orbits ; the smaller, the nearer they are to the central orb. Certain points are assumed in this hypothesis to ex- plain the distribution of matter in our solar system. It is. assumed that in throwing off great masses from the central disc, immense quantities of minute particles were also thrown, which continue to revolve, in the same plane with the large mass around the central body. By slow degrees these minute atoms, by the law of gravitation, were aggregated into the mass nearest to them. These subor- dinate aggregations would form with most dif- ficulty nearest the large central mass, because of the superior attractive force of the latter, where/ore the interior planets Mercury, Venus, the Earth, and Mars are smaller than the two great orbs in the zone beyond them. These two enormous planets, Jupiter and Saturn, occupy the space where conditions are most favorable to subordinate aggregations ; but beyond them the gravity of aggregating material becomes reduced, and so the planets found in the outer zone, Uranus and Neptune, are smaller than the planets of the middle zone. This hypothesis was first suggested by Sir William Herschel, and was adopted and developed by Laplace. Needles. The making of Spanish needles was first taught in England by Elias Crowse, a German, about the eighth year of Queen Eliza- beth, and in Queen Mary's time there was a negro who made fine Spanish needles in Cheap- side, London. At his death the secret of fab- rication was lost, and not recovered again till 1566. The family of Greenings, ancestors of Lord Dorchester, established a needle factory in Bucks a little later. German and Hunga- rian steel is of best repute for needles. The manufacture was greatly improved at White Chapel, London ; Redditch, in Gloucestershire; and Hathersage, in Derbyshire. An exhibi- tion of ancient needles and needlework was formed at South Kensington museum in 1873. Nickel was first obtained as a metal in Germany about 1751 ; but the ore had been previously known to miners, who called it kupfernickel, or Old Nick's copper, for the reason that, though it looked like copper ore, no copper could be obtained from it. Nickel, when pure, is silvery white, and does not oxidize or tarnish in the air. It is found in many parts of the world, but the principal mines are in Russia, Sweden, Germany, Aus- tria, England, and Scotland, and in the states of Pennsylvania and Connecticut in America. Its chief use is for plating other metals, but it is also used in alloys. Oceans, Depths of. The average depth of all the oceans is from 2,000 to 3,000 338 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. fathoms. Soundings have been made in the Atlantic Ocean, ninety miles off the island of St. Thomas, in the West Indies, which shelved a depth of 23,2oO feet, or about four and one- half miles. In 1872-'74, the ship Challenger made a voyage around the world for the pur- pose of taking deep-sea soundings, and the .result showed that the greatest depth in the Pacific Ocean was between four and one-half and five miles, while that of the Atlantic was probably as given above. Ocean Steam Navigation. The first ogean steam navigation in the world was by the steamboat Phcenix, built by Colonel John Stevens, and navigated from Hoboken, N. J., to Philadelphia in 1808 by Robert L. Stevens. In 1819, the Savannah, an American vessel of 380 tons burden, built at Corlear's Hook, N. Y., made the first steam voyage across the Atlantic. The steamer went from New Y'ork to Savannah, Ga., and thence to England. From England she proceeded to St. Petersburg, Russia, where an effort was made to dispose of her to the czar. The sale not being consum- mated, she returned to New York, and was afterwards converted into a sailing vessel. Ohm's Law is so named from its discov- erer, Georg Simon Ohm, a German physicist, born 1787, died 1854. He devoted himself particularly to the investigation of the laws governing galvanic currents, and by a combina- tion of mathematical and experimental inves- tigation, carried on for many years, he at length discovered and established the law which forms the basis of the mathematical theory of elec- tricity. His discoveries were first announced in scientific journals in 1825- '26. Thisfunda- j mental theorem, known as Ohm's Law, may [ be briefly stated as follows : The strength of a galvanic current is equal to the electro-motive force divided by the resistance. The term ohm is now used to designate the standard measure or unit of galvanic resistance, and is equal to the resistance of a cylindrical wire of pure copper one twentieth of an inch in diameter and 250 feet long. Oleomargarine. The belief which is , prevalent among the masses that the ingredients which constitute oleomargarine are unclean is fallacious, as will be seen by the following description : Clean beef fat and a proportion- ate quantity of salt are by process of machin- ery and heat transformed into what is called j white stearine and butter oil, otherwise the oil which has been pressed from the fat. This oil is then churned in the proportion of about 442 pounds of butter oil, 120 pounds of milk, 37 pounds of cream-made butter, and If ounces of bicarbonate of soda. To this some coloring matter is added, and the mixture churned for some fifty minutes, giving as & result a smooth mass resembling an emulsion of cream. This is put into ice-cream freezers and kept constantly agitated until it solidifies. It is then worked over with revolving butter- workers to get the necessary amount of salt well into it, and is then packed in firkins 01 made into molds. Science shows that chem- ically, pure oleomargarine butter differs but slightly from pure cream butter. By analysis the constituents of cream butter are : Water 11.968, butter solids 88.032. Those of oleo- margarine are: Water 11.203, butter solids 88.797. The process of making oleomarga- rine was invented by M. Hippolyte Niege, a French chemist, about 1872 ; but later exper- iments, made by Doctor Mott of New Y'ork, added' to the commercial value of the original process. The name is derived from two words oleine and margarine. Oleine is the thin, oily part of fats, and margarine is a peculiar, pearl-like substance, extracted from some veg- etable oils, and also from some animal fats, the name being of Latin origin, from mar- garita, a pearl. Painting. An art, according to Plato, of the highest antiquity in Egypt. Osymandyas caused his exploits to be represented in paint- ing, 2100 B. C. Pausias, of Sicyon, was the in- ventor of the encaustic, a method of burning the colors into wood or ivory, 335 B. C. The ancients considered Sicyon the nursery of painters. Antiphiles, an Egyptian, is said to have been the inventor of the grotesque, 332 B. C. The art was introduced at Rome from Etruria, by Quintus Fabius, who on that ac- count was styled Pictor. The first excellent pictures were brought from Corinth by Mum- mius,146 B. C. After the death of Augustus not a single painter of eminence appeared for several ages ; Ludius, who was very cele- brated, is supposed to have been the last, about A. D. 14. Painting on canvas seems to have been known at Rome in A. D. 66. Bede, the Saxon historian, who died in 735, knew some- thing of the art. It revived about the end of the thirteenth century and to Giovanni Cima- bue of Floi-ence is awarded the honor of its restoration. It was at once encouraged and generously patronized in Italy. .John Van- Eyck, of Bruges, and his brother Hubert, are regarded as the founders of the Flemish school of painting in oil, 1415. Paulo Uccello was the first to study perspective. The earliest mention of the art in England is A. D. 1523, about which time Henry the Eighth patronized Hulbein, and invited Titian to hiscourt. Wil- kins invented a process of using oil with min- eral colors for frescoes in 1853. The first practicing rtist of celebrity in the United SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 339 States was John Watson, who commenced pain ting portraits in New Jersey, 1715. Ben- jamin West was the first native American artist; born in Chester County, Pennsylvania, 1708. John Singleton Copley, born in Boston, 1738, began his first important work in 1760. Other noted American painters, belonging to the early period, were Charles W. Peale, Gil- bert Charles Stuart, John Trumbull, William Dunlap, and E. G. Malbone. Latterly Amer- ican artists have been greatly influenced by the French schools. Paper Hangings. The invention of hangings of paper to take the place of other more costly hangings, has been attributed to a manufacturer of paper hangings named Breit- kopf, of Leipsic. That kind known as velvet paper is said to have been invented by Jerome Lanyer, an Englishman, who received a patent for it in 1634, although the invention has also been claimed for Francois, a Frenchman, who is asserted to have introduced it at Rouen, in 1620. Paper, History of. It is generally con- ceded that the Egyptians were the first manu- factures of paper, which they made from papy- rus, a species of reed. In former times this plant grew in abundance on the banks of the Nile, but it is now said to have disappeared from Egypt. It was called by the Egyptians "papu"; by the Greeks "papyrus"; our word paper is a later derivative. Herodotus named it " byblus," whence came the Greek " biblion " (book) and our word Bible. The ancient Mexicans used a kind of paper pre- pared from the maguey plant that grows on tablelands and closely resembles the Egyp- tian papyrus. This paper took ink and color well, as is attested by specimens which have been preserved. The credit of being first to form from fiber the web which constitutes modern paper belongs to the Chinese, and the art was known to them as early as the com- mencement of the Christian era. In the sev- enth century the Arabians learned the art of making it from cotton from the Chinese, and the first manufactory was established at Sa- marcand, about A. D. 706. From thence it was taken into Spain, where under the Moors paper was made, it is thought, of hemp and (lax as well as cotton. Just when linen rags were first used in the composition of paper is uncertain ; but the best evidence is offered by the Arabian physician Abdollatiph, who writes, in an account of his visit to Egypt in the year 1200, " that the cloth found in the catacombs and used to envelop mummies was made into I garments or sold to the scribes to make paper I for shopkeepers "; and as there is no doubt that these mummy cloths were linen, it proves the use of this material to be of considerable antiquity. Of the use of linen rags in Europe, the earliest proof is the celebrated document found by Ichwaiidner in the monastery of Goss, in Upper Styria, which purports to be a man- date of Frederick II., Emperor of the Romans, and is dated 1242. It is written on paper which has been proved to have been made of 1 linen. The practice of making a distinctive watermark on paper was also of very early date, as manuscripts as old as the thirteenth i century bear it. There is, however, no really satisfactory information respecting the exact i time or place of the introduction of paper making into Europe. By some it is supposed i that Spain was the first to receive the art, and that thence it spread to France and Holland, and subsequently to England ; but it is quite ! certain that England was a long time behind the other countries. As proof of this we find that the first patent for paper making was taken out in 1665, by one Charles Hildeyerd, but it was for " the way and art of making blew paper used by sugar-bakers and others." Ten years later, 1675, a patent was taken out by Eustace Barneby for " the art and skill of making all soils of white paper for the use of writing and printing, being a new manufacture, and nevpr practiced in any way in any of our kingdoiye or dominions." Paper is now made out of cotton and linen rags, waste paper, straw, esparto grass, wood, cane, jute, and manilla. Papier-Mache has been in use for more than a century in Europe, and it is thought probable that it was first suggested by some of the beautiful productions of Sinde and other parts of India, where it is employed in making boxes, trays, etc., as well as in China. Its first application, as far as is known, was to the manufacture of snuff boxes by a German named Martin in 1740, who learned it of a Frenchman named Lefevre. The cheaper arti- cles of papier-mache" are made of paper reduced to a pulp with water and glue, and pressed in oiled molds. Better articles are produced by pasting together sheets of paper, and when a proper degree of thickness is attained it is pressed into the shape desired. When moist, this substance may be made to take any form, and when dry may be planed into any shape. A brilliant surtace can be had by polishing with rotten stone and oil. Papier-mache" is much used to make architectural ornaments, both for exterior and interior decorations. The sheets of paper, placed in layers with glue, are pressed into metal molds for some hours ; then they are removed, and a composition of paper pulp, mixed quite thin with resin and glue, is poured in, and the paper impression? are again put in and subjected to powerful 340 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. pressure. This causes the composition to adhere to the molded articles, and gives them the rough surface that is desired. Papier- mache' can be made waterproof by adding to the pulp sulphate of iron or some of the sili- cates, and fireproof by mixing with clay and borax, phosphate of soda, or any alkali. Parchment. The ordinary writing- parchment is made from the skins of the sheep and she-goat ; the finer kind, known as vellum, is made from those of very young calves, kids, and lambs. The thick, common kinds of ' parchment, which are used for drums, tarn- I bourines, battledoors, etc., are made from the | skins of old he-goats and she-goats and in north- ern Europe from wolves ; and a peculiar kind which is used for tablets, is made from asses' skins. Parchment, as a writing material, was known at least as early as 500 B. C. Herodotus speaks of books written upon skins in his time. Pliny, without good grounds, places the inven- tion as late as 19(5 B.C., stating that it was made at Pergamos (hence the name Pergamena, cor- rupted into English parchment). Possibly the Pergamian invention was an improvement in the preparation of skins, which had certainly been used centuries before. The manufacture rose to great importance in Rome about a cen- tury before Christ, and soon became the chief writing material ; and its Use spread aU over Europe, and retained its pre-eminence until the invention of paper from rags. Pearl Fisheries. The cause of the pearl is the introduction of a grain of sand or other foreign substance into the shell of the pearl oyster. This causes an irritation of the deli- j cate tissues of the oyster, which immediately | deposits the pearly matter around it for pro- | tection. Advantage of this fact has been taken to put substances within the shells of young oysters to induce the formation of pearls, and the Chinese by this method force a species of fresh-water mussels to produce the jewel. The most important pearl fisheries of the world are those of Ceylon and Coromandel, in the Indian Sea, whence pearls have been obtained since the earliest times of history. The divers are i natives, trained to the pursuit, who are accus- ! tomed to descend to the depth of six or eight | fathoms some forty times a day, and remain ( under water from a minute to a minute and a half. The fishing season begins in March or April and lasts but one month. A single shell may contain from eight to twenty pearls, vary- ing in size from that of a small pea to about three times that size. The coasts of Java, Sumatra, Japan, and also Colombia and other points on the shores of South America have yielded large quantities of pearls ; but they are usually smaller tha.n the Oriental pearls. Percussion Caps, Composition of. The explosive which is used in the making of percussion caps is a fulminate of mercury, made by first dissolving 100 parts mercury in 1,000 parts of nitric acid or 740 parts by measure. When the solution is heated to 100 degrees Fahrenheit it should be slowly poured through a glass funnel tube into 830 parts alcohol, sp. gr. .830 or 1,000 parts by measure. After effervescence, filtering, wash- ing, and drying, the explosive is dropped into the copper cap. Perfumery. Directions are given for making the holy incense in Exodus, chapter 30, 1490 B. C. The Scriptures abound with in- stances 'of the use of incense and perfumes. Philip Augustus of France granted "a charter to the master perfumers in 1190. Perfumes became fashionable in England in the reign of Elizabeth. No such trade as a perfumer was known in Scotland in 1763. A stamp tax was laid on various articles of perfumery in Eng- land, and the vender was obliged to take out a license, in 1786. In I860 there were about forty manufacturing perfumers in London ; in Paris about eighty. Petrified Bodies. Petrifaction is sim- ply the substitution of the organic substance by the inorganic, atom by atom. As a mole- cule of wood or bone decays, a molecule of stone takes its place. This can only occur when the air, or earth, or water surrounding the organic substance holds in solution some readily precipitated mineral. In the case of a woody substance, or of bone, while decomposi- tion goes on there yet remains a framework whose interstices are gradually filled by the mineral substance ; but in the case of flesh no such framework exists. The very rapid de- cay of flesh also makes it impossible for the very slow process of petrifaction to have any effect upon it. The stories of petrified bodies found in graveyards, that float periodically through the press, are usually made up of "whole cloth," as the saying is, though it is true that bodies of both men and animals have been found incrusted with silicious substance so as to resemble petrifactions. These, how- ever, when veritable finds, are fleshless skele- tons, the soft parts of the body having decayed while the slow process of incrustation was go- ing on. It maybe noted here that but one true human bone petrifaction has ever been found, and that is the " Fossil Man of Men- tone," discovered in 1873-74. The majority of fossils, be it remembered, are of great age, antedating the existence of man on the earth. In places where the silicious deposits have been rapid, as in limestone caverns, human bones, fossilized, have been discovered. TWO SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 341 human skeletons were found in an apparent state of complete petrifaction on the Island of Guadaloupe early in the present century. One | of these was placed in the British Museum, and the other in the museum at Paris. But I examination showed that in these the bony structure stiil remained, though it was com- pletely incased in the calcareous deposits. In excavating in the cavern of Mentone, in France, on the coast of the Mediterranean, some fifteen years ago, M. Riviere, a noted French scientist, found a number of human bones and a complete skeleton in a true fossil condition, which were complete evidence of the existence of men upon the earth at a period of very great antiquity. Phonograph. The phonograph is a machine for recording and then transmitting sounds, speech, music, etc. It is the invention of Thomas A. Edison, the most noted electri- cian of this age. The phonograph was acci- dentally discovered. Mr. Edison was at work on an apparatus for recording a telegraphic message, by having an armature (with a needle fastened in one end) of the sounder make in- dentations on a piece of tin foil wrapped around a cylinder. The message would thus be punctured or indented on this tin foil, then, by substituting another needle blunt for the sharp one and turning the cylinder, the armature would be vibrated as the needle en- tered into and passed out of the indentations. While experimenting, he turned the cylinder very rapidly, and instead of a succession of '' clicks," a musical sound was produced. He seized the idea, and the Edison phonograph is the result. The perfected phonograph of to-day consists of a cylinder of wax, or other plastic material, j which is revolved either by hand, foot power, j or an electric motor. This cylinder, called the phonogram, is used for recording the sound. This is done by a diaphragm such as is used in a telephone into the center of which is fastened a sharp needle, which rests upon and just touches the phonogram. When the words are spoken the diaphragm vibrates, moving this needle up and down, and a series of in- dentations are made in a spiral line on the phonogrnm, which is turning around about eighty-five times a minute. To make the phonograph speak, or repeat the words, an- other diaphragm, similar to the first or re- corder, but having a blunt instead of a sharp ! needle, is placed at the starting point and the phonogram made to revolve ; of course, as the needle passes over the indentations it vibrates the diaphragm and the words are reproduced, as in a telephone. The phonograph faithfully reproduces mu- sic, whistling, singing, speech, or any sounds, and the phonograms can be packed into a mailing tube and sent all over the world to be used as often as desired. Phosphorescence is the property which some bodies' possess of being luminous in the dark without the emission of sensible heat. There are five kinds distinguished by physicists, and designated as follows : Spontaneous phos- phorescence ; phosphorescence from the effects of heat ; from mechanical action ; from the action of electricity ; by insolation or exposure to the light of the sun. The first is by far the most common and familiar phenomenon, being exhibited by certain living organisms both in the vegetable and animal kingdoms. There are flowers of a bright red or yellow color which have been observed to emit light flashes in the dark, and other plants which give out a faint, continuous light, caused prob- ably by the oxidation of some hydro-carbon which they secrete. The best known exam- ples, however, are those seen in animals, as the glow-worm or firefly, and the myriads of minute animalcula which cause the magnifi- cent displays of phosphorescence that are often seen at sea by night, especially in the tropics, and in temperate zones during the summer. Various causes have been assigned for this ani- mal phosphorescence, and they doubtless vary with different animals. In the glow-worm and firefly it is thought to be produced by an act of the will. M. Jousset discovered the liquid which exudes from the crushed eggs of the glow-worm to be phosphorescent, and to re- main so until dried up. In the marine ani- malcula. it is believed that a subtle luminous matter is thrown off as a secretion supplied by glands having this special function ; and some naturalists assert that it contains epithelial cells in a state of fatty degeneration, the de- composing fat being the cause of the phosphor- escence. That phosphorescence seen in de- caying fish and other animal matter, and in wood (called "fox-fire"), is due to a species of slow combustion by which vibrations are excited capable of emitting luminous rays. The other kinds of phosphorescence are, for the most part, seen only in scientific experiments, except the Last, which is now receiving some application in articles of everyday use, as matchboxes, clock-faces, etc. ; they are covered with a preparation possessing this property, and remain luminous, and therefore easily vis- ible in the dark. Certain compounds have been discovered which exhibit the property in a high degree, as Canton's phosphorus, Bo- lognese phosphorus, etc. It is probably due to the absorption of the energy of the vibra- tions falling upon them, which is afterward 342 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. radiated from them again . It is probable that all bodies possess the quality in a greater or less degree ; but with the great majority the duration of the phenomenon is very short rarely more than a small fraction of a second. The phenomenon has no connection with or- dinary phosphorus, but the name is* thence derived from the similar light emitted by phos- phorus in the dark, which is due to the slow combustion of this element, which oxidizes at a very low temperature. Photography. The action of light on chloride of silver was known as early as the sixteenth century. The phenomenon was studied by Scheele (1777), Senebier (1790), Rit- ter and Wollaston (1801). From the results of these investigations, experiments were made by Thomas Wedgwood and Humphry Davy, which were published, 1802. Wedg- wood may be regarded as the first photog- rapher. His paper was entitled " An Account of a method of copying paintings upon glass, and of making profiles by the agency of light upon nitrate of silver." Further discoveries were made by Niepce in 1814, and by Sir J. Herschel in 1819. Daquewe commenced his experiments in 1824; and in 1826 joined Niepce, and worked with him till the death of the latter in 1833. In 1839, Henry Fox Tal- bot first published his mode of multiplying photographic impressions, by producing a nega- tive photograph (i. e., with the lights and shades reversed), from which any number of positive copies may be obtained. His patent is dated February, 1841. From this time im- provements have been made with great rapid- dity. Celestial photography began with Professor Bond, the astronomer, of Cambridge, Mass., in 1851. It was greatly improved by Dr. Draper in 1859 to 1881, and by others more recently. Photogravure. The earliest attempt at photographic engraving dates back to 1827, which was six years previous to the introduc- tion of the daguerreotype process, and was the invention of M. Nicephore Niepce of Paris, who first discovered that thin plates of bitu- men were curiously affected by light. He therefore coated metal plates with a thin layer of bitumen of the kind called Jew's pitch, and placed them in a camera obscura, so arranged that he could insure their exposure to the same image for several hours. The plate was then submitted to the action of oil of spike, which readily dissolved those portions not acted upon by the light, but exerted little action upon the remainder. The metal exposed by the solution of the bitumen was then acted upon by acid, which produced, a complete etching plate, the picture part being protected by its bituminous varnish from the action of the acid. The art, which can now be per- formed by several different methods, is also known by the names of photo-zincography and process-engraving. In ordinary zincography the picture is laid, by the help of transfer paper, on a zinc plate ; the parts to be pro- tected are then covered with a varnish that will resist acid, and the whole is then dipped in a bath of dilute nitrous acid. This is re- peated until the Mting-in is sufficient, when the plate is dried and the ink taken off with ben- zine. In another process brass . plates are used, which are covered with white wax, the design being drawn with an etching point upon the wax. The plate is then submitted to a powerful acid, which acts upon the parts of the metal exposed by the lines, but does not affect the wax. In photo-zincography the drawing is photographed to the right size, and an ordinary negative on glass is taken. This is then laid on a sensitized zinc plate, on which the picture is printed by the action of light. The zinc is coated with bitumen, and after the picture is printed, so much of the bitumen as has not become insoluble by the action of light is removed by a wash of tur- pentine. In another ^process the photo- graphic etching process the negative is printed on a sensitized carbon paper, which is then laid on a polished zinc plate, and, being wet, all the carbon paper that does not hold the lines of the drawing is readily removed. The plate is then bitten-in in an acid bath. In what is called the Ives process a negative is applied to a gelatine plate, sensitized with bichromate of potash. This plate is then put into water, and all the parts not touched by the negative will swell. A cast is then taken of this in plaster of paris, which serves to form a base for electrotypes. The lines of engrav- ing can also be reproduced by photography, and a late process produces successfully intaglio plates. Photo-engraving has enormously cheap- ened the reproduction of pictures, but it does not give plates that print with the clearness and distinctness of those taken from wood engravings. Physics has been described as a science of unbounded extent, and as reaching from an atom to God himself. It is made to embrace the entire doctrine of the bodies and existences of the Universe : their phenomena, causes, and effects. Lockwood would include God, angels, and spirits under this term. The origin of phys- ics is referred to the Brahmans, magi, and Hebrew and Egyptian priests. From these it was passed to the Greek sages, particularly Thales, who first professed the study of nature SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 348 in Greece, about 595 B. C. Pythagoras en- deavored to explain the philosophy of disease and the action of medicine, about 529 B. C. From him, together with Plato and the Peri- patetic Schools, it descended into Italy and the rest of Europe. Pianoforte. Invented by Schroter of Dresden, in 1717 ; he presented a model of his invention to the court of Saxony. Some time after, Silberman, a musical- instrument maker, began to manufacture pianofortes with considerable success. The invention has also been ascribed to Cristofalli, an Italian instru- ment maker of Florence, and Marius, a Frenchman, early in the eighteenth century. The square pianofoi^e was first made by Fried- erici, an organ builder of Saxony, about 1759. Pianofortes were made in London by M. Zumpie, a German, 1766, and have been since greatly improved by dementi, Broadwood, Collard, Kirkman, Erard, Pleyel, Chickering, Steinway, and others. Upright pianos, first made in the United States, were suggested by Isaac Hawkins, in 1800, and Thomas Loud, in 1802. Pins are first mentioned in the statutes of England, A. D. 1483. Brass pins were brought from France in 1540, and were first used in England it is said by Catherine How- ard, queen of Henry VIII. Before the in- vention of pins both sexes used ribbons, loop holes, laces with points and tags, clasps, hooks and eyes, and skewers of brass, silver, and gold. Pins were made in England in 1543. They were first manufactured by machinery in 1824, under a patent of Lemuel Wellman Wright of the United States. Playing-Cards. The invention of play- ing-cards has been 'variously attributed to In- dia, China, Arabia, and Egypt, There seems to be but little dou" ,t that they originated in Asia, and were introduced into Europe by the Saracens about the close of the thirteenth cen- tury. There is historical mention of the game of cards in Germany in 1275, in Italy in 1299, but not in France until 1393. An active trade in cards sprung up in Germany as early as the fifteenth century, where they were manufac- tured for other portions of Europe. One hun- dred years later we find the manufacture of cards a flourishing business in England, and under Edward IV. their importation was for- bidden, thus protecting the home industry. Owing to their supposed immoral influences j they were at times prohibited by various Eu- ; ropean governments. The marks upon the | suits of cards are believed to have been chosen to represent symbolically the different classes of society. Thus, the hearts stood for the clergy, clubs for the soldiery, spades for the serfs, and diamonds for the merchants. In the early French cards the kings were pictures of David, Alexander, Caesar, and Charlemagne, representing the monarchies of the Jews. Greeks, Romans, and French ; the queens were Argine, Esther, Judith, and Pallas. The num- ber of the cards, the ace, and the knave, were probably based on similar ideas. The suits of the earliest German cards were designated by hearts, bells, leaves, and acorns. Italian cards had swords, batons, cups, and monev. The court cards at first were the king, cheva- lier, and knave. The queen was first substi- tuted for the chevalier by the Italians. The English cards in the seventeenth century were embellished with heraldic designs, the king of clubs bearing the coat-of-arms of the Pope of Rome, and those of hearts, diamonds, and spades being adorned respectively with the ar- morial device of the kings of England, Spain, and France. The club of modern cards de- rived its form from the trefoil, a French design. A pack of Hindustani cards in the possession of the Royal Asiatic Society of England is supposed to be fully 1,000 years old. It consists of eight suits of divers colors. The kings are mounted on elephants ; the viziers, or second honors, upon horses, tigers, and bulls ; and some of the common cards have such curious marks as a pineapple in a shallow cup, and a something like a parasol without a handle, and with two broken ribs sticking through the top. Post Offices, Origin of. The name post office originated in the posts placed at in- tervals along the roads of the Roman Empire, where carriers were kept in readiness to bear dispatches and intelligence ; but the posts of ancient times were never used for the convey- ance of private correspondence. The first letter post seems to have been established in the Hanse towns in the early part of the thirteenth century. A line of letter posts followed, connecting Austria with Lombardy, in the reign of the Emperor Maximilian, which are said to have been organized by the princes of Thurn and Taxis; and the repre- sentatives of the same house established another line of posts from Vienna to Brussels, con- necting the most distant parts of the domin- ions of Charles V. In England, in early times, both public and private letters were sent by messengers, who, in the reign of Henry III. wore the royal livery. They had to supply themselves with horses until the reign of Ed- ward I., when posts were established where horses were to be had for hire. Camden men- tions the office of ' ' Master of the Postes ' ' as ex- isting in 1581, but the duties of that officer were probably connected exclusively with the THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. supply of post horses. A foreign post for the conveyance of letters between London and the Continent seems to have been established by foreign merchants in the fifteenth century ; and certain disputes which arose between the Flemings and Italians regarding the right of appointing a postmaster, which were referred to the privy council, led to the institution of a "Chief Postmaster of England, "who should have charge both of the English and the foreign posts. Thomas Randolph was the first Chief Postmaster of England, appointed in 1581. In 1635 a mail was established to run weekly between London and Edinburgh, and soon eight other lines were instituted. Far back in the twelfth century the University of Paris, whose students gathered from all the civilized nations, employed foot runners to carry letters for its members to all parts of Europe. But not until 1524 was permission granted to the Royal French posts to carry other letters than those for the Government and the nobility. In the United States, Massachusetts w r as the first colony to provide by legislation for a postal system. This was done in 1639, and Virginia followed in 1657. In 1762 a monthly post was instituted between Boston and New York. In the beginning, letters arriving in this country from beyond the seas were de- livered on board the ship. Letters not called for were left by the captain at a coffee house near the wharf, where they were spread on a table or shelf, awaiting call. These coffee houses gradually grew into common use for letters between cities and the interior, until reg- ular posts were instituted. The establish- ment of a general post office department was one of the first acts of the Continental Con- gress, and Benjamin Franklin was appointed as the first Portmaster-General. Postage Stamps, First. Postage stamps, in the form of stamped envelopes, ' were first used by M. de Velayer, who owned a private post in the city of Paris in the reign of Louis XIV. Over a century later, in 1758, M. de Chamouset, also the proprietor of a post, issued printed postage slips to be attached to letters. In Spain, in 1716, and in Italy also, stamped covers for mail matter were tried ; but it was not until 1840 that stamps, as we know them now, were put in use. This was in England, the Government adopting the sys- tern devised by Rowland Hill. Brazil was the first country to take up the new invention. Russia adopted the postage stamp next, in : 1845 ; then Switzerland, in 1846 ; and March j 3, 1847, the Congress of the United States; authorized the issue of postage stamps. These were at first a five-cent stamp and a ten-cent stamp. The reduction of ratei in 1851 gave a new set of stamps, valued at one, three, and twelve cents respectively. Other stamps of different values were added from time to time to meet the exigencies of postal arrangements, reduction of postage to foreign countries, etc. Before 1845, the postal rate on letters in the United States varied from six cents for carry- ing a distance of thirty miles to twenty-five I cents for over four hundred miles. By the reduction of that year the postage was made five cents for three hundred miles or less, and ten cents for any distance above that. In 1851 j the rate was fixed at three cents for every half ounce for three thousand miles, and six cents ; for any greater distance within the United I States. In 1883 the postage was reduced to I two cents for half an ounce for letters sent less i than three thousand miles, and in 1885 to two cents an ounce. Potatoes. The potato was used as a food ! in America long before the advent of Europe- | ans, and was probably indigenous from Chili to Mexico. It was taken from Peru to Spain, and thence into the Netherlands, Burgundy, and other parts of Europe early in the six- teenth century. In 1563 or 1565 it was car- i ried from Virginia to Ireland by Sir John ! Hawkins, arid Sir Francis Drake introduced it \ into England in 1585. Its importance as a vegetable was not recognized, however, until the time of Sir Walter Raleigh, who cultivated i it on a considerable scale on his estates in the Co'unty of Cork, Ireland. Through the exer- tions of Raleigh it was developed in quality and popularized as food to such an extent in Ireland that its cultivation spread into Eng- land, where it became known as the "Irish potato." The potato mentioned by early Eng- i lish writers before the seventeenth century was l the same as the Spanish batatas, or sweet potato. Printing Crockery. Common crockery, when it is in the state called biscuit ware that is, when it has been whitened by baking but has not been glazed is figured upon or decorated by applying to its surface a design freshly printed upon paper. The ware absorbs the enamel ink, and the paper is removed by water. It is then fired in seggars, or a muffle, to fix the color, dipped in glaze, and then again fired, which converts the glaze into a perfectly transparent glassy covering all over the surface of the pottery. Porcelain decora- tion has long held a righ rank as a fine art ; and the exquisite skill shown in some of the finest works of the continental manufacturers, and also in those of Great Britain, has fairly entitled it to that rank. The colors employed are all colored glasses ground to impalpable powder, and mixed with borax, or some other SCIENCE, INTENTION, DISCOVERY, 345 fluxing material ; for use they are generally made liquid with oil of spike, and they are laid on with hair pencils in the same way as oil colors. The whole process is exactly the same as in painting or staining glass, the glaze 011 the biscuit porcelain being true glass, and the enamel colors being exactly the same as those used by the glass decorator. Peculiar and beautiful metallic lusters are produced upon pottery by precipitated platinum and other metals. The manufacture of pottery is carried on with great activity at Trenton, N. J., Philadelphia, Liverpool v l;i Ohio), and other places in the United States. Printing in America. Printing was introduced into America at Mexico by the Viceroy Mendoza in 1536. The first book printed was the Escala etpiritual de San Juan Climaco, of which no copy is known to exist ; but the oldest American book now extant is the Manual de Adultos, dated 1540, of which only the last four leaves are to be found in the library of the Cathedral of Toledo. The name of the earliest printer is a matter of question. Cambridge, Massachusetts, is entitled to the distinction of having the first printing press in North America, which was under the charge of Stephen Daye. For this press the colony was mainly indebted to the Rev. Jesse Glover, a nonconformist minister possessed of a con- siderable estate, who had left England to set- tle among his friends in Massachusetts. Some gentlemen of Amsterdam also " gave towards furnishing of a printing press with letters, forty-nine pounds and something more. " This was about 1638. The first book issued was the Bay Psalm Book, in 1640. The first book issued in the Middle Colonies was an almanac, printed by William Brad- ford in 1685, near Philadelphia. Bradford was brought out from England in 1684 by William Penn. As the government of Penn- sylvania became very restrictive in regard to the press, Bradford in 1693 removed to Xe\v York, and was appointed printer to that colony, where he established, in 1725, the New York Gazette, the first newspaper published there. He died May 23, 1752, after an active and useful life of eighty-nine years. The first newspaper in America was the Boston News Letter, which was first issued by John Campbell on Monday, April 24, 1704 ; it was regularly published for nearly seventy- two years. The second was the Boston Gazette, begun December 21, 1719. The third was the American Weekly Mercury, issued in Philadel- j phia, by Andrew Bradford, on December 22, 1719. James Franklin, an elder brother of Benjamin, established the New England Cou- rant, August 17, 1721, The oldest living paper of the United States is the New Hampshire Gazette, published at Portsmouth, now (Oct. 7, 1899) one hundred and forty-three years old. The North American and United States Ga- zette leads the existing daily press of this coun- try in point of antiquity. It is the successor of the Pennsylvania Packet (begun in 1771 and becoming a daily paper in 1784), and is still the chief commercial journal of Philadelphia. The first paper mill in America was estab- lished near German town, Pa., in 1690, by William Rittenhouse. Ptolemaic System, The. Ptolemy of Alexandria (A. D. 130-150) was the founder of a theory called the Ptolemaic system, based largely upon the materials gathered by previ- ous astronomers, such as Hipparchus, already mentioned, and Eratosthenes, who computed the size of the earth by means even now con- sidered the best the measurement of an arc of the meridian. The advocates of the Ptole- maic theory assumed that every planet revolves in a circle, and that the earth is the fixed cen- ter around which the sun and the heavenly bodies move. They conceived that a bar, or something equivalent, is connected at one end with the earth ; that at some part of this bar the sun is attached ; while between that and the earth, Venus is fastened, not to the bar di- rectly, but to a sort of crank ; and farther on, Mercury is hitched on in the same way. They did not fully understand the nature of these bars whether they were real or only imag- inary but they did comprehend their action, as they thought ; and so they supposed the bar revolved, carrying the sun and planets along in a large circle about the earth ; while all the short cranks kept flying around, thus sweep- ing each planet through a smaller circle. The movements of the planets were to the ancients extremely complex. Venus, for in- stance, was sometimes seen as "evening star " in the west; and then again as "morning star " in the east. Sometimes she seemed to be moving in the same direction as the sun, then, going apparently behind the sun, she appeared to pass on again in a course directly opposite. At one time she would recede from the sun more and more slowly and coyly, un- til she would appear to be entirely stationary; then she would retrace her steps, and seem to meet the sun. All these facts were attempted to be accounted for by an incongruous system of "cycles and epicycles." The system of Ptolemy passed current lor 1400 years, and during this time astrology was ranked as one of the most important branches of knowledge. Star diviners were held in the greatest estimation, and the issue of any ixn 346 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. portant undertaking, or the fortune of an individual, was foretold by means of horo- scopes representing the position of the stars and planets. The system of the astrologers was very complicated, and contained regular rules to guide the interpretation, so intricate that years of study were required for their mastery. Venus foretold love ; Mars, war : the Pleiades, storms at sea. Not only the ignorant were the dupes of this system, Lord Bacon believing in it most firmly. Pulley. The pulley, together with the vise, and other mechanical instruments, is said to have been invented by Archytas of Tarentum, a disciple of Pythagoras, about 516 B. C. Ctesibius of Alexandria, architect and mechanic, is said to have invented the pump, with other hydraulic instruments, about 224 B. C., although the invention was ascribed to Danaus, 1485 B. C. They were in general use in England, A. D. 1425. The air pump was invented by Qtto Guericke in 1654. and was improved by Boyle in 1657. Rainbow. A rainbow can only be seen when the spectator stands between it and the sun ; its center must always be directly oppo- site the sun, moving with the sun's motion, falling if the sun is rising, and rising if the sun is declining. A rainbow occurs when the sun or moon, not too far above the horizon, throws its beams upon a sheet of falling rain- drops on the opposite side of the heavens. Thus, a ray of light from the sun strikes a rain-drop obliquely ; part of it is reflected at the surface of the drop ; the rest, passing into the drop, is refracted; on the other side of the drop part of the ray passes through, and the rest is again reflected ; on passing from the drop m the same side that it entered, a second refraction occurs. These successive reflections and refractions separate the ray of white light ! into its component colored rays, and as the i angles of incidence and emergence vary for ! each color, the eye of a spectator perceives ! them as distinct bands. Now, every drop in i the sheet of falling water which has equal i obliquity to the spectator's eye will send to it ' rays of the same color. But the only drops which can fulfill these conditions of like obliq- i uity of reflected rays are those which define the j base of a cone whose apex is the eye, and the center of whose base is in a right line passing j through the sun and the eye of the spectator, i At or near sunset, when the sun and the : observer are in the same horizontal plane, the bow will be seen to form a complete semicircle ; when the sun is higher in the sky, a smaller arch is seen ; the entire circle could only be visible to a spectator on the top of a very high and narrow mountain peak, which would ele- vate his plane much above that of the sun's rays without cutting off their light. A com- plete circle may also be sometimes seen in the rainbow formed by the sunlight on the spray arising from cataracts. The lunar rainbow, which is a comparatively rare but very beauti- ful phenomenon, differs from the solar simply in the source and intensity of the light by which it is produced ; and, as in all cases of feeble light, the distinction of the colors is ve'ry difficult. In fact, except under the most favorable circumstances, the lunar rainbows rarely show colors at all, giving a pale, ghostly gleam of apparently white or yellow light. Reaper, First in the United States. In 1803 a reaping machine was patented by Richard French and John J. Hawkins, but it did not prove successful. Prior to 1832 there were granted eight patents for machines for cutting grain. No inventor, however, suc- ceeded in producing machines that possessed sufficient practical merit to be used otherwise than experimentally until we come to Bell, Hussey, and McCormick, whose machines have since become so well known . At the meeting of the British Association at Dundee, September, 1867, the Reverend Patrick Bell stated that he invented his reaping machine in 1826. Mc- Cormick 's American machine was patented in 1834, and, with improvements added in 1845 and 1847, received a medal at the World's Fair in London, 1851. In 1833, Obed Hussey; then of Cincinnati. Ohio, patented a machine to which he applied .saw-toothed cutters and guards. This machine was at once put into practical operation, and gave general satisfac- tion. Hussey, in 1847, patented the open- topped slotted finger. The practical use of self-rakers, in this country, dates from the in- vention of W. H. Seymour of New York, in 1851. He arranged a quadrant-shaped plat- form directly behind the cutters, a reel to gather the grain, and a rake moving over the platform in the arc of a circle depositing the sheave* on the ground. In 1856, Owen JJorsey of Maryland combined the reel and rake, and his improvement has been extensively used here and abroad, with some modifications, one of which was by Johnston in 1865, who ar- ranged it so that the size of the sheaves, or gavels, as they are called, could be regulated at the will of the driver. The names of Haines, Ketchum, Manny, and Wood are prom- inent among inventors of improvements in mowers and harvesters. Saddles. Pliny informs us that one Pele- thronus was the first to introduce a piece of leather fastened to the back of a horse for the accommodation of its rider. For a long time these cloths and pieces of leather were regarded SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 847 as unmanly, and were consequently treated by soldiers with great scorn. The old German races despised the Roman cavalry for riding on such effeminate contrivances. Saddles of the kind now used appear to have been in use in 385. Side-saddles were first used in 1380. Previous to their introduction women always rode astride. Salt, Sources of. At one time nearly the whole of the salt used as food and for in- dustrial purposes was obtained from sea-water, and in many countries where the climate is dry and warm and there is a convenient sea- board, large quantities are still so obtained. In Portugal more than 250,000 tons are an- nually produced, and about the same quan- tity is obtained on the Atlantic and Mediter- ranean coasts of France. Spain has salt-works in the Balearic Islands, the Bay of Cadiz, and elsewhere, which turn out annually 300,000 tons ; and even the small Adriatic seaboard of Austria produces every year from 70,000 to 100,000 tons. The peninsula and islands of Italy yield about 165,000 tons, and there are still a few establishments in England and Scot- land ; but in these latter countries the indus- try has been almost entirely driven out by the rock-salt works. The salt obtained from this ! source is called " sea " or " bay " salt. The \ works are generally called salt gardens saUna (Spanish) sulz garten, in Austria. They consist of a series of large, shallow evaporat- ing reservoirs. The sea water is admitted, and flows slowly from one to another, all the while evaporating under the heat of the sun, until finally the dry salt remains in crystalline crusts on the salting-tables in the final basins. These reservoirs vary from ten to sixteen inches in depth, the sediment and many of the impuri- ties being deposited in the earlier and deeper basins in the first stages of evaporation. Be- tween the temperatures of 25 and 26 degrees (Baum6) pure salt is deposited, equal to about twenty-five per cent, of the whole. This is kept pure by conducting the brine to separate salting-tallies at this temperature, and, after it reaches 26 degrees, carrying it on to other basins, where a second quality, equal to about sixty per cent, of the whole, is formed. After the brine reaches 28.5 degrees it is led into still other basins, where the remainder of the salt is deposited. The salt is raked up and sold just as it is formed, with the slight puri- fication resulting from a few months' exposure to the weather, which is customary. The evaporating surface of these shallow basins covers, in many establishments, hundreds of acres. Those at Berre, on the Mediterranean, have an area of 815 acres. Sea-salt has been obtained in this way in many of the seaboard , ; States of the United States, but not to any ex- I tent. . The other great source of common salt is the vast mineral deposits. Salt also occurs as a mineral in an almost pure state, and asso- ciated with the rocks of almost every geologic period. Many of the deposits are of vast ex- tent, and are another great commercial source of this substance. This mineral deposit is called rock-salt, and is evidently the result of the evaporation of great shallow bodies of salt- water in remote ages, as is proved by its gen- erally stratified nature, with beds of clay in- tervening, and the occurrence of marine shells and fossils in the surrounding rock formation. Large mines are worked in England and all the European countries, and in many places throughout the world. The most famous of all is the mine at Williczka, nine miles from Cracow, in Galicia, which has been worked continuously for upward of six hundred years. It is stopped-out in longitudinal and trans- verse galleries, with frequent large vaulted chambers supported by massive pillars. These extend on four different levels, and have a to- tal length of 30 miles, the mine being 1 mile 1,279 yards long by 830 yards wide and 284 yards deep. The lower levels contain streets and houses, constituting a complete village ; and many of the miners, of whom there are 800 to 1,000, rarely come above ground. The salt is sold just as it is dug out of the mine, and 55,067 tons are annually extracted. The total extent of this deposit is 500 by 200 miles, with an average depth of 1,200 feet. Salt is also obtained in many localities from mineral deposits by means of salt-wells. In some cases the water occurs naturally in the salt strata, and the saturated brine is reached by deep borings (sometimes 1.500 feet) ; in other cases water is introduced into the borings and then pumped out again, two concentric tubes being employed. After the brine is secured it is evaporated by artificial heat in large iron vats. The salt-wells in Onondaga County, New York, near Syracuse and Salina, are a large and im- portant industry. Michigan has the largest output next to New York, and many other States produce it to some extent ; but the home supply is not equal to the demand, and there is a large annual importation into the United States. Saw. Invented by Daedalus. Talus, it is said, having found the jaw bone of a snake, employed it to cut through a piece of wood, arid then formed an instrument of iron like it. Sawmills were erected in Madeira in 1420; at Breslau in 1427. Norway had the first sawmill in 1530. The attempts to introduce sawmills in England were violently opposed, and one erected by a Dutchman in 1663 was 348 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. forced to be abandoned. Sawmills were erected near London about 1770, and thenceforward became general. Screw Propeller, The. In 1802 Dr. Shorter, an English mechanician, produced motion by the agency of a screw ; but his dis- covery was of no value at the time, as the steam engine had not then been applied to navigation. In 1832, Mr. B. Woodcroft pat- ented a screw propeller with an increasing pitch ; and four years later Mr. F. P. Smith patented a screw making two whole turns, which lie reduced in 1839 to one whole turn. In 1837 he and Captain Ericsson brought the matter practically forward on the Thames, where a small screw steamer, forty-five feet long, eight feet broad, and of twenty-seven inches draught, towed a vessel of six hundred and thirty tons, against the tide at four and one half knots an hoar. This experiment was followed by a number of others, some un- dertaken under the direction of the British Admiralty, which clearly established the practicability of the screw, and its advantages for ships of war became incontestable. From the entire submergence of the propeller, and $he consequent lowness of its engines in the ship, the chances of injury from an enemy's shot were reduced almost to nothing. The screw propeller is of the same construction as the common screw, but with the narrow thread exaggerated into a broad, thin plate, and the cylinder diminished to a mere spindle. Tf a screw of this form were turned round in an unyielding substance, as wood, it would for each turn advance as much as the center of the blade (or thread) had moved along the spindle in forming the screw, i. e., the dis- tance. If, on the other hand, the screw itself were prevented from moving longitudinally, and the piece of wood not fixed, the latter would be compelled to advance along the screw the same distance. When the screw is fixed beneath a ship and made to revolve in the water, the case lies between the two just supposed the screw moves forward, and with it the ship, and the water in which it has been working moves backward. The backward motion should only be small proportionately, and the ratio between it and the sum of the backward motion of the water and the forward motion of the ship is called the slip. Screws have been formed with two, three, four, and six blades, or arms ; but the form most com- monly used is two blades for ships of war, and three or four blades in the merchant service. Ship Building. This art is attribiited to the Egyptians, as the first inventors ; the first ship (probably galley) being brought from Egypt to Greece by Danaus, in 1485 B. C. ! The first double-decked ship was built by the Tyrians, 786 B. C. The first double-decked one built in England was by order of Henry VII. , 1509. It was called the Great Harry and cost 14,000 pounds. Portholes and other improvements were invented by Descharges, a French builder at Brest, in the reign of Louis XII., about 1500. Ship building was first treated as a science by Hoste, 1696. Iron is now greatly used in ship building. For beau- tiful models and fast sailing, the shipping of the United States (especially the packet ships and steamers sailing from New York) is not surpassed, and probably not equaled, by that of any other nation in the world. Signals, Wind and Weather. A red flag with a black center indicates that a storm of marked violence is expected. A yellow flag with a white center indicates that the winds expected will not be of extreme severity. A red pennant indicates easterly winds that is, from northeast to south, inclusive, and that, generally, the storm center is approaching. If shown above the red flag, winds from the northeast are more probable ; if below, winds from the southeast may be expected. A white pennant indicates westerly winds that is, from north to southwest, inclusive, and that, generally, the storm center has passed. If shown above the red flag, winds from north- west will probably prevail ; if below, winds from southwest. A white flag indicates fair weather. A blue flag indicates rain or snow. A black triangular flag refers to temperature ; when placed above the white or blue flag it indicates warmer weather ; and when placed j below them, colder weather. A white flag ' with black square in center indicates the ap- j proach of a sudden and decided fall in tempera- ture, and is usually ordered at least twenty-four hours in advance of a cold wave. When dis- j played on poles, the signals are arranged to I read downward ; when displayed from horizon- | tal supports, a small streamer is attached to indicate the point from which the signals are to be read. Silkworm. It is the general belief that the great importance of the silkworm was first discovered by Se-ling, the wife of the Chinese Emperior Hoangti, who reigned about 2637 B. C., and that she also invented and taught the art of silk-spinning and weaving. The worms are exceedingly tender, and liable to perish from the slightest changes of tempera- ture and dampness. They feed upon the leaves of various trees and bushes, but experiments go to show that the best silk is produced when the worm is fed upon mulberry leaves. The great centers of this industry are China, Japan, India, and Southern Europe, and they have SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 34S been successfully raised in California, Ohio, Kansas, East Tennessee, Northern Georgia, Kentucky, and in some parts of New Jersey. Soap is a salt, a compound of fatty acid with an alkali, soda, or potash. The Hebrew borith, translated soap, is merely a general term for cleaning substances. Pliny declares soap to be an invention of the Gauls, though he preferred the German to the Gallic soap. In remote periods clothes were cleansed by being rubbed or stamped upon in water. Homer tells us that Nausicaa and her attend- ants washed clothes by treading upon them with their feet in pits of water. The Roman's used fuller's earth. Savon, the French word for soap, is ascribed to its having been manufac- tured at Savona, near Genoa. The manufac- ture of soap began in London in 1524, before which time it was supplied by Bristol at one penny per pound. Soaps, Natural. From time immemo- rial the Egyptian soaproot and the Spanish soaproot have been employed for washing in Southern Europe and Egypt, and are, to some extent, exported for use in cleansing fine arti- cles. In the West Indies and South America, a pulpy fruit, which grows on a tree known as the soap-tree, is said to have such cleansing properties that it will clean as much linen as sixty times its weight of manufactured soap. There is also a tree in Peru, Quillaja Saponaria, whose bark, in infusion, yields a soapy liquid much valued for washing woolens, and is largely imported to England and other coun- tries for this purpose. The juice of the soap- wort, or, as it is commonly called in the United States and Great Britain, the " Bounc- ing Bet," strongly possesses the saponaceous qualities. In California the roots of the Phel- angium Pomaridianum, which grows there abun- dantly, are much used for washing. This plant has a strong odor of brown soap in its leaves and stems, as well as the roots. The South Sea Islands and the islands of the Carib- bean Sea also produce plants which are used as soap substitutes. Solar System, The. So named from sol (Latin), the sun, consists of the sun in the center, numerous planets, and an unknown number of bodies named comets. The word planet is from the Greek planao, to wander, because the few such bodies known to the ancients were chiefly remarkable in their eyes on account of their constantly shifting their places with reference to the other luminaries of the sky. Comets are so named from coma (Latin), a head of hair, because they seem to consist of a bright spot, with a long brush streaming behind. Some of the planets have other planets mov- ing round them as centers the moon, for in- stance, round the earth. These are called secondary planets, moons, or satellites ; while those that move round the sun are called pri- mary planets. The primary planets consist 1st, of eight larger planets, including the Earth ; their names, in the order of their near- ness to the sun, are Mercury, Venus, the Earth, Mars, Jupiter, Saturn, Herschel or Uranus, and Neptune. 2d. A group of small planets or planetoids, called also asteroids, con- siderable in number. The discovery of a new asteroid by Professor Borelli, places the entire number of planets in the solar system at one hundred and eighteen, against six known in 1781, when Sir W. Herschel discovered Ura- nus. The planets move round the sun on nearly one level or plane, corresponding with the center of his body, and in one direction, from west to east. The secondary planets, in like manner, move in planes round the centers of their primaries, and in the same direction, from west to east. These are denominated revolutionary motions ; and it is to be ob- served that they are double in the case of the satellites, which have at once a revolution round the primary, and a revolution, in com- pany with the primary, round the sun. The path described by a planet in its revolution is called its orbit. Each planet, secondary as well as primary, and the sun also, has a motion in its own body, like that of a bobbin upon a spindle. Au imaginary line, forming, as it were, the spindle of the sun or plane't, is denominated the axis, and the two extremities of the axis are called the poles. The axes of the sun and planets are all nearly at a right angle with the plane of the revolutionary movements. The motion on the axis is called the rotary motion, from rota, the Latin for a wheel. The sun, the pri- mary planets, and the satellites, with the doubtful exception of two attending on Uranus, move on their axes in the same direction as the revolutionary movements, from west to east. Sun Mercury Venus.. . Karth . . . Mars Jupiter . Saturn . . Uranus.. Neptune 92.9 66.9 26.7 48.6 390.4 793.2 1,689.0 2,608.8 36.0 67.2 92.9 141.5 483.3 886.0 1,781.9 2,791.6 87.969 224.701 366.L'56 886.900 4.332.58 10,769.22 30,686.82 60,181.11 23 to 36 21.9 18.6 15.0 8.1 W56.400 3.030 7,700 7.918 4.230 86500 The present number dates is 6.0 71,000 I J i 31,900 3.4 I 31,800 of asteroids discovered up to 330 A number of these small THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. planets have not been observed since their dis- covery, and are practically lost. Consequently it is now sometimes a matter of doubt, until the elements have been computed, if the sup- posed new planet is really new, or only an old one rediscovered. It is supposed that a Centauri, one of the brightest stars of the Southern Hemisphere, is the nearest of the fixed stars to the earth. The researches on its parallax by Henderson and Maclear gave it for its distance from the earth, in round numbers, 20,000,000,000,000 of miles. At the inconceivably rapid rate at which light is propagated through space, it would require three years and three months to reach the earth from this star. Some Interesting Dates. FRUITS, FLOWERS, ETC. The cherry dates back to A. D. 100 ; the lily, 800 ; jasmine, 1500 ; mul- berry, 1520 ; mignonette, 1528 ; the plum, 1530; geranium, 1534; gooseberry, 1540; melons, 1540 ; hyssop, 1548 ; pomegranate, 1548; lemon, 1554; peach, 1562; carnation, 1567; pink, 1567; lavender, 1568; pineap- ple, 1568 ; quince, 1573 ; tulip, 1578 ; oleander, 1600; Virginia creeper, 1629; black walnut, 1629; hickory nut, 1640 ; nectarine, 1652; honeysuckle, 1656 ; sassafras, 1663 ; hawthorn, 1683 ; passion flower, 1692 ; raspberry, 1696 ; foxglove, 1696 ; currant, 1705 ; snowdrop, 1756 ; chrysanthemum, 1790 ; dahlia, 1803 ; camellia, 1811 ; petunia, 1823 ; verbena, 1827 ; fuchsia, 1835. FOODS AND COOKERY. Forks first used, 1220; sugar in Europe, 1250; first English cook book, 1498; cabbages, 1510; turkeys, 1523; guinea fowl, 1540; potatoes, 1565; cauliflower, 1603; tea, 1610; cattle imported to America, 1611; coffee, 1616; bread made with yeast, 1634; rice, 1690; celery, 1704; ice cream, 1760; United States fish culture, 1804 ; Liebig's extract, 1847 ; condensed milk, 1849; food adulteration act, 1854; aerated bread, 1856 ; cooking schools, 1873. FUEL AND LIGHT. Wood fuel, prehistoric ; charcoal, B. C. 1800; oil lamps, B. C. 1000; wax candles, B. C. 200 ; peat, B. C. 60 ; rush lights, A. D. 1300; coal gas, 1739; Davy's safety lamp, 1802 ; sperm candles, 1811 ; par- nffine, 1825; petroleum, 1859; natural gas, 1S70 ; water gas, 1873 ; electric heating, 1876 ; incandescent electric light, 1878. THE WORLD'S CLOTHING. Spinning and weaving and dyeing are prehistoric. The peplon. or long cloak, was worn in Greece, B. C. 600; Tyrian purple dye used, B. C. 600-300; Roman toga worn, B. C. 250-A. D. 100; breeches worn by the Scythians, B. C. 550 ; kilts and trews worn by the Celts, B.C. 100: figured weaving in Italy, A, D. 100- 1000 ; Dutch and Flemish weaving, A. D. 1100 ; silk weaving at Palermo, A. D. 1146 ; linen cloth made in England, 1253 ; English wool trade flourished from A. D. 1337 ; Brabant looms brought to England, 1340; linen shirts in common use, 1560; silkworms brought to France, 1600; felt in common use, 1610; fly shuttles, 1738 ; calico printing, 1764 ; spin- ning jenny, 1767 ; carding machine, 1770 ; mule, 1779 ; power loom, 1785 ; cotton gin, 1791 ; shoddy, 1813 ; sewing machine. 1841 ; silkworm disease, 1854; rubber coats, 1875; electric looms, 1889. Specific Gravity of Substances. A gallon of water or wine weighs 10 Ibs., and this is taken as the basis of the following ta- ble : LIQUIDS. Water TIMBER. METALS. 100 Cnrk . VA Zinr 719 721 723 779 783 40 S9.j 1,051 1,135 1,357 1,926 2,150 4063 428.3 . 226 . 252 . 270 . 278 . 279 Sea Water Dead Sea Alcohol 103 124 M Poplar 38 Cast iron... Tin Fir 55 Cedar 61 Bar iron . . . Steel Olive oil 92 99 100 101 102 102 102 103 104 104 T 77.5 65.3 77 92 93 94 120 130 SE per Ft. 15 36 51 Pear 66 Turpentine \Vine Walnut 67 Cherry 72 Brass Copper Silver Lead Urine Maple 75 Cider Ash 84 Beer Apple 79 Mercury. . . Gold Woman's milk, Cow's milk Goat's milk Porter Beech 85 Mahogany... 106 Oak 317 Plat ina Garnet Ruby Porcelain.. . Stone Marble . . Granite Chalk Ebony 133 Emerald 2 Crystal 2 Indigo RECIOUS STONES. Diamond . . 353.0 Topaz 401.1 SUNDRIES. Peat 133 Ice Opium 134 Honey 145 Gunpowder . . . Butter Ivorv 183 Brick 200 Clay . . . Coal Sulphur 203 LECTED WEIGHTS Lbs. per Cub. Ft. Oak 70 Glass . 289 Lbs. Cub. Cork. Lbs CuL Iron .F^ 470 520 630 712 1,203 Cedar Clay 72 Coal ... 80 Copper Silver.. .. Butter. F6 Brick 120 Lead Water 6*> Stone 150 Gold Mahoganv Coke ....". 66 70 Granite JC6 Glass 172 Spectacles and Beading Glasses were unknown to the ancients. They are generally supposed to have been invented in the thir- teenth century by Alexander de Spina, a monk of Florence in Italy, about A. D. 1285. Ac- cording to Dr. Plott they were invented by Rogei Bacon, about 1280. Manni attributes them to Salvino, who died in 1317. Spinning Wheel. The invention of the art of spinning was ascribed by the ancients to Minerva, the Goddess of Wisdom. It is said that Areas, the King of Arcadia, taught his subjects the art about 1500 B. C. The use of the spindle and distaff, however, was known in Egypt even earlier than this, as is shown by pictures upon Egyptian monuments. The dis- taff was a simple stick, around which the fiber SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 351 was coiled, and was held in the left hand. The ! spindle was a species of top, which was set in | motion bj a twirl of the hand and by com- ! bining its rotary motion with a gradual move- ment away from the spinner. The size of the I fiber was equalized by passing it between the finger and thumb of the right hand until the motion of the spindle was exhausted, when the thread was wound around it, and the process was repeated. The improvement upon this method by placing the spindle in a frame, and making it revolve by mechanical action of the hand or foot in connection with a wheel and treadle, constituted the spinning wheel, which, though probably in use long before, cannot be traced farther back than A. D. 1530. The spinning jenny, a machine of eight spindles, was first invented in 1767, and subsequent to that time many improvements in spinning Ly machinery have been made. Sponges and Sponge Fishing. Sponges belong to the very lowest order of -animal life, and are attached like plants to rocks, or similar substances. Those fit for use are found generally in the seas of warm climates. They consist of a framework, which is sometimes of an elastic fibrous sub- stance, and sometimes is made up of an aggre- gation of hard, siliceous spicules. A sponge, when fixed to a rock, increases in size by a regular process of growth. To free them from the jelly-like animal matter which they contain when first brought, they are buried for some days in the sand, and are then soaked and washed. In the Turkish sponge fisheries the sponge is obtained by diving, and the diver guides himself beneath the water with a stone, to which a cord from the boat is attached. The best sponges are obtained from eight to ten fathoms below the surface of the water. In the Greek sponge fisheries of the Morea, and on the Bahama Islands, a pronged fork at the end of a long pole is used to detach the sponges from the rocks below. Two species are found in the Levant, another on the Ba- hamas, and still another on the coasts of Flor- ida and Mexico.' Spontaneous Combustion may be defined as the ignition of inflammable bodies without the application of flame, or without obvious cause of increase of temperature, and arises from the well-understood liability of certain bodies to undergo chemical changes which develop sufficient heat to set them on fire. Recently expressed fixed oils are particularly disposed to oxidize when exposed to light and air. They then absorb oxygen, and give out carbonic acid and hydrogen. If the process goes on rapidly, as it usually does when the oil is diffused through light inflammable sub- stances, as cotton, tow, the waste used in lubricating machinery, oatmeal, etc., the heat may be sufficient to set them on fire. Bitu- minous coal lying in large heaps is liable to be ignited by the heat evolved in the decompo- sition of the sulphuret of iron which it com- monly contains. The rapid absorption of water by quicklime is also attended with development of heat sufficient to ignite combustible bodies in contact with the lime. Strong nitric acid will act on straw, hay, and such bodies, so as to render them spontaneously combustible. Stars, The. The idea at which astron- omers have arrived respecting the stars, is, that they are all of them suns, resembling our own, but diminished to the appearance of mere specks of light by the great distance at which they are placed. As a necessary consequence to this supposition, it may be presumed that they are centers of light and heat to systems of revolving planets, each of which may be further presumed to be the theater of forms of beings bearing some analogy to those which exist upon earth. The stars seen by the naked eye on a clear night are about two thousand in wumber. This, allowing a like number for the half of the sky not seen, gives about four thousand, in all, of visible stars. These are of different degrees of brilliancy, probably in the main in proportion to their respective distances from our system, but also, perhaps, in some meas- ure in proportion to their respective actual sizes. Astronomers class the stars under dif- ferent magnitudes, not with regard to appar- ent size, for none of them present a meas- urable disc, but with a regard to the variouf quantities of light flowing round them ; thus, there are stars of the first magnitude, the second magnitude, and so on. Only six or seven varieties of magnitude are within our natural vision ; but with the telescope vast numbers of more distant stars are brought in,to view ; and the magnitudes are now extended by astronomers to at least sixteen. Steam Engines. The application of steam as a moving power is claimed by va- rious nations, but the first extensive employ- ment of it, and most of the improvements made upon the steam engine, the world indis- putably owes to the English and the Americans. It would appear that as early as 15-13 a Span- ish captain named Blasco de Garay showed in the harbor of Barcelona a steamboat of his own invention. It is most likely that Blasco 'fl engine was on the principle of the JEolipile of Hero, invented 130 B. C., in which steam pro- duces rotatory motion by issuing from orifices, as water does in Barker's mill. The preacher Mathesius, in his sermon to miners in Nureni- THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. berg in 1562, prays for a man -who " raises water from fire and air," showing the early application of steam power in Germany. An Italian engineer, G. Branca, invented in 1629 a sort of steam windmill, the steam being gen- erated iu a boiler, which was directed by a spout against the flat vanes of a wheel, which was thus set in motion. In England, among the first notices we have of the idea of employ- ing steam as a propelling force is one contained in a small volume, published in 1647, entitled " The Art of Gunnery," by Nat. Nye, math- ematician, in which he purposes to "charge a piece of ordnance without gunpowder " by putting in water instead of powder, ramming down an air-tight plug of wood and then the shot, and applying a fire to the breech ' till it burst out suddenly." But the first successful effort was that of the Marquis of Worcester. In his " Century of Inventions," the manuscript of which dates from 1655, he describes a steam apparatus by which he raised a column of water to the height of forty feet. This, under the name of " Fire Waterwork," appears actually to have been at work at Vaaxhall in 1656. The first patent for the application of steam power to various kinds of machines was taken out in 1698 by Captain Savery. In 1699 he exhibited before the Royal Society a work- ing model of his invention. His engines were the first used to any extent in industrial opera- tions. In all the attempts at pumping engines hitherto made, including Savery's, the steam acted directly upon the water to be moved, without any intervening part. To Dr. Papin, a celebrated Frenchman, is due the idea of the piston. It was first used by him in a model constructed in 1690. The next great step in ad- vance was made in 1705, in the " atmospheric engine," conjointly invented by Newcomen, i Cawley, and Savery. This machine held its own for nearly seventy years, and was very largely applied to mines. The next essential improvements on the steam engine were those of Watt, which began a new era in the history of steam-power. His first and most important improvement was the separate condenser, patented in 1769. He had observed that the jet of cold water thrown into the cylinder to condense the steam necessarily reduced the temperature of the cylinder so much that a great deal of the steam flowing in at each up- ward stroke of the piston was condensed before the cylinder got back the heat abstracted from it by the spurt of cold water used, for condens- ing the steam in the cylinder. The loss of steam arising from this was so great that only about one fourth of what was admitted into the cylinder was actually available as motive power. This difficulty was overcome by Watt's invention. The principal improvements that have been made since Watt's time have been either in matters relating to the boiler, in details of construction consequent upon our increased facilities, improved machinery, and greater knowledge of the strength of materials, in the enlarged application of his principle of expansive working, or in the application of the steam engine to the propulsion of carriages and vessels. Steel, Manufacture of, Steel, which is a compound of iron and carbon, was used by the Egyptians, Assyrians, and Greeks. The oldest method of making it is the pot-steel process, which consists at first in melting wrought iron with carbon in clay crucibles, and this process is still used to some extent. The dii'ect process of making steel by immers- ing malleable iron in a bath of cast-iron was first invented in 1722 by Reaumur. Improve- ments in this manufacture were made in the early part of this century by Mush at and Lu- cas, and the eminent metallurgist, Heath, first successfully melted the ingredients of cast steel on the open hearth of the reverberatory furnace about 1839. He patented his process in 1845, but it was not regarded as successful until practical conditions were furnished for it by the invention of the Siemens regenerative gas- furnace in 1862. By the Bessemer process, which was first patented in 1855, and which is now the most generally used, twenty tons of crude iron have been converted into cast steel in twenty-three minutes. Sir Henry Bessemer has received in royalty on this process some $10,000,000. The manufacture of steel has been carried to the highest perfection in the United States, and the output of American steel works is about 600,000 tons yearly. Steel Pens, Invention of. During the last century many efforts were made to im- prove the quill pen, the great defect of which was its speedy injury from use, and the conse- quent trouble of frequent mending. These efforts were chiefly directed to fitting small metal, or even ruby, points to the nib of the quill pen ; but the delicacy of fitting was so great that but very little success attended the experiments. At the beginning of this cen- tury pens began to be made wholly of metal. They consisted of a barrel of very thin steel, and were cut and slit so as to resemble the quill pen as closely as possible. They were, however, very indifferent, and, being.dear, they made but little way. Their chief fault was hardness, which produced a disagreeable scratching on the paper. In 1820 Joseph Gil- lott perfected the present form of steel pens and began their manufacture at Birmingham, England. The first gross of steel pens ever SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 353 sold at wholesale were sold for $36, in 1820, at Birmingham. In 1830 the price was $2 ; in 1832, $1.50; in 1860, 12 cents; while an ar- ticle as good as those manufactured in 1820 was sold at 4 cents. The annual production of steel pens in Birmingham alone ranges from 8,000,000 to 15,000,000 gross. Stenography. The art of writing in shorthand is said to have been practiced by the ancients. It is said to have followed from the hieroglyphics of the Egyptians. It is also at- tributed to the poet Ennius, to Tyro, and still more to Seneca. The Ars Scribendi Charac- teris, written about 1 H2, is the oldest system extant. Dr. Timothy Bright's " Characterie, or the art of short, swift, and secret writing," published in 158S, is the first English work on shorthand. Peter Bales, the famous penman, wrote on stenography in 1590. There are now numerous systems of it, many of them of easy acquirement and great simplicity. By- rom's system was invented, 1767 ; Guerney's, 1710; Mason's, 1750; Taylor's, 1786 ; Ma- vor's, 1789; Pitman's (phonographic), 1837. Stereotyping. The papier-mache process, which is the most general, was first used in France in 1848. It is extremely simple. The types being set, corrected, made into pages, and fixed in a frame, are laid upon the stone or table used, face upward, and a little fine oil is brushed over them to prevent the papier- mache from adhering to the face of the types. This papier-mache, which is used for making the matrix or mold, is formed by pasting upon a sheet of tough brown paper, several sheets of tissue paper, and a sheet of soft, absorbent white paper. It is made in sheets, and usu- ally, to make a matrix of the desired thick- ness, several sheets are used. It is kept moist for use, and is lightly covered with pulverized French chalk when laid upon the face of the types. Then it is beaten with a stiff brush to force the soft paper into all the interstices of the types. Other sheets of prepared paper are added to secure the desired thickness, and the whole is then covered with a woolen blanket and put into a press, the bed of which is mod- erately heated, and the press is screwed down. The heat soon dries the matrix, which, when taken out of the press, is a stiff card, showing a perfect reversed impression of the types. A mold of metal is then taken from the matrix, in which the exact face of the types are repro- duced for printing. When the plate is to be run on a rotary press, it is cast in a box which is curved inside, so that the form of the plate will fit the cylinder of the press. By this method an entire large plate can be made in a quarter of an hour, or even less time. For fine book work the matrices are made of plaster 1 of paris, which is a much slower and more I costly way, but produces a finer and cleaner plate when finished. This process was in- j vented about 17-31. Suez Canal, The, is the most important shipping enterprise known to history. It en- ables two ships to do the work of three in trading between Europe and the East. From London to Bombay, by way of the Cape, is 10,595 miles; by the canal, 6,330. It cost 17,000,000, was begun in 1856, and finished in 1869. Its length is ninety-two miles, depth, twenty-six feet ; the tolls average 800 per vessel, or eight shillings per ton of net tonnage. The estimated saving to commerce is 5,000,000 a year. In 1889, 3,425 vessels went through, the mean time of passing being twenty-seven hours. Electric lights are now used to enable ships to pass at night as readily as in the daytime. Sugar is supposed to have been known to the ancient Jews. Found in the East Indies by Nearchus, admiral of Alexander the Great, 325 B. C. An oriental nation in alliance with Pompey used the juice of the cane as a common beverage. It was prescribed as a medicine by Galen, second century. Brought into Europe from Asia, A. D. 625 ; in large quantities, 1150. Its cultivation was attempted in Italy, but not succeeding the Portuguese and Spaniards carried it to America about 1510. Sugar cane first grown in the territory now constituting the United States, 1751. First American sugar mill built near New Orleans, 1758. Sugar refining was made known to Europeans by a Venetian, 1503 ; and was first practiced in England in 1659. The invaluable vacuum pan was invented by How- ard, 1812, and Dr. Scoffern's processes were patented in 1848-50. Technical Terms in Printing. Al- ley. The space between two stands. Ascending letters. Letters that ascend into the upper shoulder; as, b, d, 1, etc., and all the capitals. A uthor's proof. The clean proof sent to an author after the compositors' errors have been corrected. Bank. A table about four feet high, to lay sheets on at press. Bastard title. A short title preceding the general title of a work. Bastard type. Type with a face larger or smaller than its regular body : as Nonpareil on Minion body, or Minion on Nonpareil body. Batter. Types accidentally injured in a form. Beard of a letter. The outer angles support- ing the face of a type and extending to the shoulder. Bearer. A strip of reglet to bear off the im- 354 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. pression from a blank page. A long piece of furniture, type-high, used in working jobs. A solid-faced type interspersed among the blank parts of a page composed for stereotyping, to resist the pressure of the knife when the plate is shaved. Bearer-lines. The top line and bottom line in a page prepared for stereotyping. Bed. The flat part of the press on which the form is laid. Bevels. Slugs cast nearly type-high, with a beveled edge, used by stereotypers to form the flange ou the side of the plates. Bile. An irregular white spot on the edge or corner of a printed page, caused by the fris- ket not being sufficiently cut out. Blanket. A woolen cloth used in the tym- pan. Blank-line. A line of quadrates. Blocks. The mahogany forms on which stereotype plates are placed for printing. Blocked up. When the font of type is all set, and none is available for present use. Bvdkin. A delicate awl-like tool used for correcting errors in type. Body. The shank of the letter. Botch. A bungling, incompetent workman. Bottled. Type wider at the bottom than at the top. Boxes. The compartments of a case in which the types are placed. Brayer. A wooden or glass rubber, flat at the bottom, used to bray or spread out ink on the ink-block. Break-line. A short line. Broad-side. A form of one page, printed on one side of a whole sheet of paper. Broken matter. Pages of type disrupted and somewhat intermingled. Bundle. Two reams of paper. Bur. Rough edge of a type which the founder neglected to take off in dressing. Cabinet. A receptacle for cases, chases, leads, etc. Canceled figures. Figures cast with lines across the face. Caret. A character [A] used in proof read- ing to denote the place where omitted words or letters should be inserted. Case. The receptacle for type, divided into numerous compartments. Castie paper. Formerly, the two outside quires of a ream, consisting of defective sheets. Casting off. Estimating how many pages a certain quantity of copy will make in type. Cattie. Imperfect or smutty look of a printed sheet caused by an oily or unclean roller. Ceriphs. The lines or cross-strokes at the ends of the stem of a letter. Chapel. A printing office. Chapel laws. Rules of a printing office. Chase. A rectangular iron frame in which pages of type are imposed. Circular quadrates. Blank types curved on one side. Clean proof. A proof containing few faults. Clearing away. Properly disposing of ma- terials after a work has been completed. Clicker. The chief of a companionship. Close matter. Solid matter with few break lines. Companionship. All the hands employed on a work. Composing. Setting type. Composing rule. A steel or brass rule, with a beak at one end, used in type setting. Composing stick. An instrument in which types are arranged in words and lines. Corner quadrates. A quarter section of a hollow square or rectangle. Correct. A compositor is said to correct when he amends the faults marked in a proof. Corrections. The alterations or errors marked in a proof. Cut-in letter. A type of large size adjusted at the beginning of the first paragraph of a chapter. Cut-in note. A note justified into the side of a page. Dead horse. Matter charged and paid for before it is set. Dele, 8 A proof reader's mark, signifying to take out. Descending letters. Letters that go down into the lower shoulder of the body ; as, g, j, p. q, y- Devil. The errand boy of a printing office. Dished. A defect in electrotype plates, the center of a letter being lower than its edges. Distributing. Returning types to their vari- ous boxes after having been printed from. Spreading ink evenly over the surface of a roller. Double. Among compositors, repetition of words ; among pressmen, a sheet that is twice pulled and mackled. Dressing a chase or form. Fitting the pages and chase with furniture and quoins. Drive out. To space widely. Duck's-bill. A tongue cut in a piece of stout paper and pasted on the tympan at the bottom of the tympan-sheet, to support the paper when laid on the tympan. Duodecimo or 12mo. Twelve pages to a form, Em. The square of the body of a type En. Half the dimensions of the preceding. Even page. The 2d, 4th. 6th, or any even- numbered page of a book. SCIENCE, INTENTION, DISCOVERY. 355 Fat. Poetry and leaded matter. Fat face, or fat letter. Broad stemmed letter. Father of the chapel. President or chair- man of a composing room or press room, chosen by the hands. Feed guide. An implement attached to a press to aid in correct feeding. Feeding. Supplying the press with sheets. First form. The form first printed, which generally contains the first page of a sheet. Fly. The person or apparatus that takes off the sheets from the press. Folio. Two pages to a form. Font. A complete assortment of type, of the same nick, body, and face, put up by type founders in accordance with an ascertained ratio. Foot sticks. Sloping pieces of furniture placed at the bottom of pages, between which and the chase the quoins are driven to fasten the pages. Form. The pages when imposed in a chase. Foul proof. A proof with many faults marked in it. Fountain. Reservoir for ink, attached to printing presses. Friar. A light patch in a printed sheet, caused by defective rolling. Frisket. An iron frame fastened by a hinge to the upper part of the tympan, to hold the ; sheet of paper fast as it goes in and comes ! from the press. Fudge. To contrive without proper materials. Full press. When two men work at the press with hand rollers. Furniture. Strips of wood or metal placed around and between pages to make the proper margin. Galley. A wooden or brass flat oblong tray, with side and head ledges, for holding type when composed. Galley slaves. An ancient term of derision applied by pressmen to compositors. Gauge. A strip of regletwith a notch in it, passed with the make-up, to denote the length of the pages. Gauge-pm. An instrument to aid in feed- ing job presses correctly. Get in. To set close. Good color. Sheets printed neither too black nor too light. Guide. A strip of metal frequently used to denote the last line of copy set. Gutter-sticks. Furniture used in imposition to separate the pages. Half press. When but one person works at ihe press. Half title. The title of a book inserted in the upper portion of the first page of matter. Hanging indention. Where successive lines are set-in an em or more beyond the first line. Head sticks. Furniture put at the head of pages in imposition, to make margin. Hell. The receptacle for broken or battered letters ; the old metal box ; the shoe. High-line. Term applied to a type that ranges above the rest in a line. High (or low) to paper. Applied to a type cast higher or lower than the rest of the font. Hollow quadrates. Metal quadrates mortised for the insertion of types, etc. Horse. The stage on the bank on which pressmen set the heap of paper. Horsing. Charging for work before it is ex- ecuted. Imposing. Arranging and locking up a form of type in a chase. Imposing stone. The stone on which com- positors impose and correct forms. Imprint. The name of the printer or of the publisher appended to jobs or title pages. Inferior letters. Small letters cast near the bottom of the line. Inset. Same as off cut. Jeff. To throw for the first choice with em quadrates instead of dice. Justifying. Spacing out lines accurately. Keep in. To crowd in by thin spacing. Keep out. To drive out or expand matter by wide spacing. Kerned letter. Type of which a part of the face hangs over the body. Laying cases. Filling cases with a font of new type. Laying pages. Placing pages of type on the stone in a proper order for imposition. Leaders. Dots or hyphens placed at inter- vals of one or more ems in length, to guide the eye across the line to the folio in tables of con- tents, etc. Leads. Thin strips of metal cast of various thicknesses, quadrate-high, to separate lines of type. Lean. Close and solid matter. Lean face. Light, thin type. Letter hangs. When the page is out of square. Letter-press printing. Printing from types. Ligatures. Two or more letters cast on the sanie shank, as ff, fi, fl, ffi, ffl, a?, ce. Line formers. Brass rule bent in various shapes to aid in making curved lines of type. Locking up. Tightening up a form by means of quoins. Logotypes. The same as ligatures. Long cross. The bar that divides a chase the longest way. Long pull. When the bar is brought close to the cheek of a press. 356 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Low cae. When the compositor has set almost all the letters out of his case. Loictr cage. The case containing the small letters of the alphabet, figures, points, etc. Lou line. Applied to a type that ranges lower than the rest in a line. Mackle. When part of the impression ap- pears double. Make-up. To arrange the lines of matter into pages. Make-up rule. A steel rule with a projec- tion on the top, for making up matter. Making margin. In imposition, arranging the space l>etween the pages of a form so that the margin will be properly proportioned. Making ready. Preparing a form on the press for printing. Mallei. A wooden hammer. Mailer. Composed type. Measure. The width of a page. Monk. A black spot in a printed sheet, owing to the ink not being properly distrib- uted. Naked form. A form without furniture. Nick*. Hollows cast in front of the lower part of the shank of a type, to show the com- positor how to place it in his stick. Octaro or 8ro. Eight pages to a form. Octodecimo or 18mo. Eighteen pages to a form. Odd page or folio. The first, third, and all uneven numbered pages. Off. Signifies that the pressman has worked off the form. Offcut. A portion of a sheet that is cut off before folding. Off its feet. When matter does not stand upright. Open matter. Matter widely leaded or con- taining numerous break lines. Out. An omission marked in a proof by the reader. Out of register. When the pages do not back each other. Orrrlay. A scrap of paper pasted on the tympan-sheet to bring up the impression. Overrunning. Carrying words backward or forward in correcting. Page-cord. Twine used for tying up pages. Patting the make-up. Passing to the next hand in order the lines remaining (if any) after a compositor has made up his matter, to- gether with the gauge and proper folio. Peel. A broad, thin board with a long handle. Perfecting. Printing the second form of a sheet. Perforating rule. Brass or steel rule, some- what higher than type. Pi. Type promiscuously intermingled. Pick. A particle of ink or paper imbedded in the hollow of a letter, filling up its face and occasioning a spot. Pigs. An ancient nickname given in deri- sion by compositors to pressmen. The press room was called a pigsty. Planer* A smooth block of wood used for leveling the surface of pages of type when imposed. Planing down. To bringdown types evenly on their feet, by laying a planer on a page and striking it firmly with a mallet. Platen. The part of a printing press which, acted upon by the lever, gives the impression to a sheet. Point-holes. Fine holes made by the points to register the second impression by. Points. Two thin pieces of steel with a point at one end, adjusted to the tympan with screws, to make register. Quadrate. A low square blank type, used to indent the first line of a paragraph, and to fill up blank spaces. Quarters. Octavos and twelves are said to be imposed in quarters, not from their equal divisions, but because they are imposed and locked up in four parts. Quarto, or Jfto. Four pages to a form. Quire. Twenty-four sheets of paper. Quoins. Small wedges for locking up a form . Q uotation furniture . Quotations cast of vari- ous sizes in length and width, used for blank- ing and as furniture. Quotations. Large hollowed quadrates. Rack. Receptacle for cases. Ratchet. An instrument for turning the screws of stereotype blocks. Ratting. Working at less than established prices. Ream. Twenty quires of paper. Recto. Right hand page. References. Letters or characters serving to direct the reader's attention to notes at the foot of the page. Register. To cause the pages in a sheet to print precisely back to back. Register sheet. The sheet used to make reg- ister. Reglet. Thin furniture, of an equal thick- ness all its length. It is made to match the depth of type. Reiteration. The form printed on the second side. Revise. The last proof of a form before working it off. Riding. One color falling on another. Type at the end of a line catching against a lead. Rise. A form is said to rise when, in rais- ing it from the correcting stone, no letters drop out. SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 357 Roller. A wooden- cylinder covered with composition, which, set in an iron frame, re- volves upon a rod, and is used for inking type. Rounce. The handle for running in and out the carriage of a hand press. Round pick. A dot in a letter in a stereo- type plate caused by an air bubble. Running title. The title of the book or sub- ject placed at the top of the pages. Runs on sorts. Requiring an inordinate pro- portion of particular letters. Saw-block. A box similar to a carpenter's miter-bloek, to guide in cutting furniture, etc. Schedule. A sheet of paper passed with the make-up, containing folios, on which the com- positor marks his name opposite to the pages set by him. Set off. When sheets that are newly worked off soil those that come in contact with them, they are said to set-off. Shank. The metal body upon which the face of a letter stands. Sheep's foot. An iron hammer with a claw end. Sheetmse. When the pages of a sheet are imposed in two forms, which are backed in printing. Shooting stick. A wedge shaped instrument for locking up a form. Short cross. The short bar which, crossing the long bar, divides the chase into quarters. Shoulder. The surface of the shank of a type not covered by the letter. Side sorts. Types in the side and upper boxes of a case, consisting of letters not fre- quently used. Side sticks. Sloping furniture on the out- side of the pages next to the chase, where the quoins are inserted. Signature. A letter or a figure used at the bottom of the first page of a sheet, to direct the binder in placing the sheets in a volume. Slice galley. A galley with an upper mova- ble bottom, called a slice, used for pages and jobs too large to be lifted by the fingers. Sing. A thick lead. Sometimes with a word or figure on top, used to denote the own- ership of matter on galleys. Slur. A blurred impression in a printed sheet. Solid pick. A letter in a stereotype plate filled up with metal, resulting from an imper- fect mold. Sorts. The letters in the several case boxes are separately called sorts, in printers' and founders' language. Space rules. Fine lines cast type high, and of even ems in length, for table aud algebra- ical work. Spaces. Low blank types used to separate words. Squabble. A page or form is squabbled when the letters are twisted out of a square position. Stand. The frame on which the cases are placed. Stem. The vertical strokes of a type. Stereotype printing. Printing from stereo- typed plates. Stet. Written opposite to a word in a proof, to signify that the word erroneously struck out shall remain. Sub. A compositor occasionally employed on a daily paper, to fill the place of an absen- tee. Superior letters. Letters of a small face, cast by the founder near the top of the line. Table-work. Matter consisting partly of rules and figures. Take, or Taking. A given portion of copy. Token. Two hundred and fifty sheets. Turn for a letter. When a sort runs short, a letter of the same thickness is substituted, placed bottom upward. Tympan. A frame covered with parchment or muslin and attached to the press-bed to lay the sheet on before printing. Underlay. A piece of paper or card placed under types or cuts to improve the impression. Upper case. The case containing capital and small capital letters, fractions, etc. Verso. Left-hand page. Wayz-goose. A term given in England to the annual dinner customary among printers there during the summer months. White line. A line of quadrates. White page. A blank page. White paper. Until the second side of a sheet is printed, pressmen call the heap white paper. Work and turn. When a sheet is printed half-sheetwise, the paper must be turned and worked on the second side. Working in pocket. When the hands share equally their earnings on a work. Telegraph, The. The word is Greek, meaning "to write from a distance." The Greekc never thought of doing such a thing. Like most scientific designations, it is a made- up word out of that wonderful tongue. Before Morse's time it had come to mean the giving of any information from afar. The ideas of speech, quick delivery, are involved. If time is not the essential, we may go or send. In- diana use columns of smoke. We use signals and the heliograph. Vessels at sea have long used visual telegraphic signals. But as soon as it was known that electricity could be sent long distances over wires, human genius began S5S THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. to devise means for using it for sending mes- sages. Many of these devices were tried and fklUd- Some of them seem now to us aosurd, because they were attempted before even the battery was invented, when the current was obtained by friction. In 1832 an American, Morse, while on a voyage home from Europe in a sailing vessel, began to think of making what we now know as a telegraph. After more than eight years of waiting, Congress made an appropriation for building a line be- tween Baltimore and Washington. The story of this first line is curious, almost absurd, showing how little the inventor knew when he began it, and how much was learned during its construction. Morse had an assistant named Alfred Vail, who is the author of most of the features of the telegraph which have proved useful, as we now know it. In principle, and even in practice, the tele- graph is one of the simplest of electrical ap- pliances. Any two operators can communi- cate with each other over a great distance with two parts only ; a battery and a wire, for the wonderful alphabet of Vail, the dots and dashes, can be read in any language, and by sight, hearing, tasting, or feeling. Something to produce a current, and a wire to carry it, are all that are absolutely necessary. There is usually only one wire. There would be two, but the earth acts in place of the return wire, and the connection is simply made at the bat- tery, along the wire, and into the ground. The only machine, so to speak, that is neces- sary in practice is the small electro-magnet which one hears pulling down the armature to it every time a connection is made by the op- erator at the other end of the circuit who is sending a message, and spelling out the words of it with the click and pause sound which would be the dot and dash of the old roll of paper indented by a pointed stylus, now dis- carded. This electro-magnet and its action with an interrupted current has been briefly explained. The key with which the message is spelled out is a lever with a button at the end, which, when pressed down, makes a con- tact and completes the circuit over the wire and the windings of the electro-magnet, and, when released, breaks it again. Telephone, The. This wonderful ad- vance in electrical science was made practical in 1875, and is the invention of Prof. A. G. Bell, Chicago. There were simultaneous in- ventions by Gray, Edison, and others. Tn reality, the telephone is simple in construc- tion, but it is difficult to explain in words. The human voice, recognizable in articulate words, is apparently carried for miles on a wire. Yet it is well to understand in the be- is now used, slightly but not altering the ginning that such is not the case. The lis- tener does not hear any person talk. All that goes over the wire is thousands of varying impulses of electricity. The entire secret lies in electrical induction. It has been shown that electricity produces magnetism. Following it has been shown that this process can be reversed, and that mag- netism produces electricity. This last fact was made use of in the original Bell telephone. The Blake transmitter modifying the action, principle of the instrument, and an endeavor to explain this will be made. It has been shown that an approach to, or a receding from, a wire carrying a current, produces an induced current. Then it was shown that if one of the pieces were a magnet, and there was a rapid approach and receding by a piece of soft iron, an induced current would also be produced. Now there is in the transmitting instrument of a telephone a bar magnet, and on one end of this is wound several layers of fine insulated wire. The ends of this wire run off and be- come a part of the circuit between two tele- phones. No current passes over this circuit ordinarily, but one can be induced if a piece of iron is made to move quickly, to tremble, near the bar. This is accomplished by placing crosswise to the end of the bar magnet the thin black disc of sheet-iron against which, so to speak, one talks when using the telephone. The voice impinging upon this, causes it to tremble ; to approach to and recede from the magnet, not vaguely and without rule, but pre- cisely in proportion to the tone of the voice. Every time one of these very small movements of the disc occurs a small impulse is sent from the magnet out over the circuit whose coil in- closes it. At the other end of the circuit there is a pre- cisely similar arrangement of bar magnet and coil and disc, inclosed in that trumpet-shaped receiving instrument which is held to the ear. The magnetism in this last magnet is increased with each impulse in precise proportion to the power of the impulse, and this disc of the re ceiving instrument is drawn toward its mag- net and released again in unison with the movements of the disc in the transmitter, which movements, as stated, are great or small, or slow or fast, in accordance with the tones of the voice of the speaker. It follows that the mechanical rattle of a disc of sheet-iron held close to the ear pro- duces sounds that vary in pitch and intensity precisely as those do which are produced by the impinging of the human voice upon the other disc, a mile or more away. The move- ment of the transmitting disc controls those SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 359 of the receiving disc through the medium of varying impulses of electricity sent to the mag- net of the latter by the magnet of the former. The movements of the former are controlled by the human voice. It follows that the move- ments of the latter are also controlled by the same voice. It is the reversal of a process. If a disc is moved by the voice in a certain "way, the moving of a disc in the same way by some other means will imitate the voice. So far as volume is concerned the imitation is micro- scopic. But it can be heard, and answers all purposes. It is doubtful if, among all the productions of human genius, there will ever be anything nearer the miraculous than the almost universally used telephone. Telescopes. This invention is noticed by Leonard Digges, about 1571. Roger Bacon, A. D. 1250, described telescopes and micro- scopes exactly, and yet neither was made till one Metius, at Alkmaar, and Jansen, of Mid- dleburg, made them about the same time ; the latter from an accidental discovery made by his children, 1590-1609. Galileo imitated their invention by its description, and made three in succession, one of which magnified a thousand times. With these he discovered Jupiter's moons, and the phases of Venus. Telescopes became very popular, and were improved by Zucchi, Huygens, Gregory, and Newton ; and finally by Martin, Hall, Dolland, and Herschel. Achromatic telescopes were made by Hall about 1723. Many excellent and powerful tele- scopes have since been constructed. Terms in Electricity. The technical terms used in regard to electricity refer to units of various nature. Thus the unit of capacity is one farad ; the unit of activity, one watt ; the unit of work, one joule ; the unit of quantity, one coulomb ; the unit of current, one ampere ; the unit of resistance, one ohm ; the unit of magnetic field, one gauss ; the unit of pressure, one volt ; the unit of force, one dyne. The names are mostly derived from the names of men that have been famous in the field of electrical research. Thus Michael Far- aday, James Watt, and James P. Joule, famous English discoverers, give their names to the first three units mentioned; Charles A. Cou- lomb and Andre M. Ampere, French invent- ors, to the two units following ; G. S. Ohm and Carl F. Gauss, Germans, name two more units ; and the volt is named from the Italian discoverer, Volta. The dyne is derived from the root word of dynamo, itself meaning force. Thermometer, The. The thermometer is an instrument for measuring the heat or tem- perature of bodies by the regular expansion of mercury or alcohol in a graduated glass tube. Halley proposed the substitution of mercury Reau- mur. Centi- grade. Fahren- heit. Freezing point o 32 Vine cultivation g 10 50 Cotton cultivation 16 20 68 Hatching eggs 32 40 104 Water boils 40 48 56 64 72 80 50 60 70 80 90 100 122 140 158 176 194 212 for alcohol in 1 6 97 . The thermometers usually employed are Fahrenheit's, the Centigrade, and Reaumur's, the first invented in 1726, and the two others soon afterwards. The following table is interesting as a com- parison of the three thermometers : Ice melts at 32; temperature of globe, 50 ; blood heat, 98 ; alcohol boils, 174 ; water boils, 212 ; lead melts, 594 ; heat of common fire, 1,140; brass melts, 2,233; iron melts, 3,479. Thunder is caused by the sudden re- entrance of the air into a vacuum which is sup- posed to be caused by the lightning in its pas- sage through the atmosphere. The electricity exerts a powerful repulsive force upon the par- ticles of air along the path of its discharge, thus making a momentary vacuum. Into this void the surrounding air rushes with a violence proportioned to the intensity of the electricity, and is thus thrown into vibrations, which are the source of the sound. Tides, The The ebb and flow of tidal waters depend upon the moon to a great extent Twice every day we have the tides, twelve hours apart, and the flow and ebb are merely examples of the attraction of gravitation which is exercised on all bodies, whether liquid or solid. The tides may be compared to a great wave, which, raised by the moon's attraction, follows her in her course round the earth. The sun also aids in this effect, but as the moon is so much nearer the earth her influence is far greater. The tides are highest at the equator and lowest at the poles, because the tropics are more exposed to the lunar attraction. Tobacco. The name tobacco is thought by some to have been taken from Tobacco, a province of Yucatan ; by others from Tobago, an island in the Caribbean Sea ; and by still others from Tobasco, in the Gulf of Florida. The plant, although it is asserted that the Chinese have used it from earliest times, was not introduced into Europe until after the discovery of America by Columbus. He first found it in use on the Island of San Domingo in the West Indies. The Indian, among all the tribes from Teru to Upper Canada, smoked it in pipes. Tht. seed of the plant was first introduced in Europe by Gonzalo Hernandez 360 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. de Oviedo, who took it to Spain and cultivated it for ornamental purposes ; but its narcotic qualities were shortly afterward discovered and the practice of smoking it soon became gen- eral, and its manufacture into snuff folio wed in course of time. It was introduced in Italy and France in 1560, and was brought into the latter country by Jean Nicot, the French Embassador to Portugal, in whose honor it received its bo- tanical name Nicotiana, whence the name nico- tine. The plant was introduced into England by Sir Walter Raleigh. It was along in the seventeenth century before it was known to be used in Asia, but the Oriental nations at the present time are probably the greatest smokers in the world. Type-Setting Machines. The first type-setting machine appears to have been in- vented by William Church of Connecticut about 1820. This, after the lapse of twenty years, was followed by a number of others, scarcely a year passing without one or more being made the subject of a patent. In 1857 a machine was invented by Robert Hattersley which is capable of setting from 4,000 to 6,000 types in an hour about three men's work. This machine, which occupies a space of about two or three feet, has a horizontal stage on which is placed a partitioned tray, containing the rows of type running from back to front, each row being, of course, all the same letter. Descending vertically along the front of this tray is a series of as many wires with pistons as there are rows of types, and these pistons are depressed by the keys acting by bell cranks, and then return to their positions by means of India rubber bands or springs. A propeller kept in a state of tension by an India rubber string is placed in the rear of each row of types, and draws them forward to the piston. When the girl working the machine presses down, say, an e key, it depresses the e piston, which pulls down with it an e type, and drops it into a tube or channel, which conveys it to what represents the composing-stick, and so on with every letter, figure, comma, or space. Another successful machine is the Mitchell type-setter. The compositor has a key-board, each key of which strikes out a type from a brass slide placed on an incline. The type travels along an endless band to a spot where it is turned on end and pushed forward by a notched wheel. The apparatus comprises nu- merous bands, the lengths and velocities of which so vary as to enable the types at differ- ent distances from the wheel to reach it in the order in which the keys are struck. The words ar built up in rows thirty inches long, and "justified," as is the case with the Hattersley machine, by hand. Typewriters. Perhaps the earliest form of a typewriter is a rude machine invented in England in 1714, without any practical fruits. j M. Foucault sent to the Paris Exposition of ! 1855, a writing machine for the blind, but the first of ' what are now popularly known as | typewriters, was patented in 1868 by C. L. j Sholes, of Wisconsin. This has been im- proved, until now it is possible to attain a speed of seventy-five to eighty words a minute in writing with this machine, which is fast I enough for reporting speeches. The princi- pal advantages gained are rapidity of execu- tion and legibility. A typewriter can write with both hands and several fingers in instant succession, every letter being made with a sin- gle light touch, instead of requiring from three to seven distinct strokes and dots, as in ordi- nary script. Umbrellas are by no means a modern in- vention. They are found sculptured on the monuments of Egypt, and on the ruins of Nineveh, and their use in China and India is also very ancient. In Greece they had a part in certain religious ceremonies ; and there is no doubt, from the paintings on ancient Greek vases, that umbrellas very much like those in use at the present time were known many years before the Christian era. They were also used among the Romans, but only by women. The umbrella also seems to have been a part of an insignia of royalty, as is still the case in parts I of Asia and Africa. An English dictionary, j published in 1708, defines an umbrella as " a screen commonly used by women to keep off rain." Jonas Han way is said to have been the first man to have carried an umbrella through the streets of London in rainy weather, about 1750, and he was hooted and jeered at ; by boys for his fears of a wetting. It is not known, however, when their use began in j England, as representations of such articles are j found in very ancient manuscripts. Umbrellas were introduced in America in the latter part : of the eighteenth century, but their use at first ! was confined almost exclusively to women, as ' it was considered very effeminate to carry one. Undulatory Theory of Light. For a long while there were two rival theories to account for the nature of light and optical phenomena, and it is only of late years that the observations and experiments of scientists have j fully established the undulatory theory aud disproved the corpuscular theory. The former maintains that light is a transference of energy to the eye ; the latter, that it is a transference ] of matter. The undulatory theory assumes the j entire universe and all matter to be pervaded with a highly elastic imponderable fluid, which I is called ether. Light, then, consists in the SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 861 propagation of energy by a wave motion through this fluid a process exactly anal- ogous to the transmission of sound in air and of waves in water. This theory explains the nature of radiant heat also and its relation to light, considering it is an undulatory motion, in this same ether, of similar character but different degree. The now discarded corpus- cular theory, which was supported by no less a man than Sir Isaac Newton, assumed that an infinite number of minute material particles emanated from a luminous body, and, imping- ing o.n the eye, gave the sensation of light. Huygena has the credit of having propounded, developed, and illustrated the undulatory theory. His propositions and conclusions were finally and fully substantiated by the succes- sive experiments and demonstrations of Young, Fizeau, and Foucault. The velocity of light, or the rate at whicli this wave motion is com- municated through the ether, is 186,000 miles a second. Vaccination, as a preventive of small- pox, was discovered by Dr. Edward Jenner, an English physician. His attention was directed to the subject upon casually hearing that per- sons engaged in milking cows frequently had the cowpox, a mild disorder of the eruptive kind appearing on the udder of the animal, and communicated in a similar form to the hands, and that the belief was common among the agricultural classes that whoever had taken the disease was secure against the infection of smallpox. After frequent experiments he ascertained that only one form of the eruption on the cow's udder possessed this property, a number of these experiments being made upon his son, a boy six years old. He labored against opposition for many years before the value of his discovery was acknowledged by the medical profession. There are several places in the United States where a business is made of supplying the market with "vaccine points" small quills, with a coating of the cow virus on the ends. The name is derived from caeca, meaning a cow. Vacuum. This word means, literally, empty space, or space wholly devoid of matter. In this sense, the results of modem scientific investigation tend to prove that a vacuum can- not exist, as all space is pervaded by the im- ponderable elastic fluid called ether, whose existence must be allowed to explain the trans- mission of light and heat from distant lumi- nous bodies. (See Undulatory Theory of Light.) In common language, a vacuum (more or lees perfect) is said to be produced when ordinary ponderable matter, as air, has been removed from the interior of a closed vessel. ., Until the beginning of the present century the most perfect vacuum that could be obtained was what is called the Torricellian vacuum t. e., the space above the mercury in a carefully filled barometer tube. Such a vacuum is, however, almost useless for experi- mental purposes ; and, besides, it contains mercurial vapor. By modern scientific meth- ods and appliances a vacuum may be obtained in which there is left less than 1-135,000 of the original volume of air. An ordinary air-pump in good working order will remove all but about 1-120 of the air in the receiver. The old phrase that "Nature abhors a vacuum," was used to account for various phenomena in the past among them the rise of water in pumps. Most of these are now well under- stood, the simple natural laws governing them . Water, for instance, rises in a tube, when the air is exhausted above it, owing to the pres- sure of the atmosphere on the open surface of the liquid in which the end of the tube is im- mersed. This pressure or weight of the at- mosphere is equal to the weight of a column of water about thirty-two feet high, and, ac- cordingly, will raise the water to this height. Velocity. The average velocity of various bodies is here given : A man walks. Ahorse trots. A horse runs . Steamboats move 18 Sailing: vessels move 10 Slow rivers flow Rapid rivers flow 7 A moderate wind blows 7 A storm moves 36 A hurricane moves 80 A rifle ball moves 963 Sound moves 743 Per hour. 3 miles, or 7 L'O Per M'C. . 4 feet. 10 29 26 14 4 10 10 52 117 1,466 1,142 Light moves 192,000 miles per second. Electricity moves 288,000 " " Violin. The origin of the violiti can be traced back to a stringed instrument called the ravanastron, invented, it is believed, in 5000 B. C., by Ravana, King of Ceylon. The crwth, which was in use in Wales long before the sixth century, and to which the Anglo- Saxons gave the name of fythel, whence our fiddle, was a similar instrument. The violin of modern form was not niade until the fifteenth or sixteenth centuries, and its earliest maker was Gaspard di Salo, of Lombardy ; and the Italian school of violin-making was probably founded by him at Brescia. These Brescian instruments that is to say, those made by Giovanni Paolo Magini, still hold a place among the best ever made. It was not long, however, after the establishment of the Bres- cian school when the makers of Cremona be- gan to produce instruments \vl.ich have been objects of wonder and admiration from their time to the present. The three greatest Crem 362 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. onese makers were Nicholas Amati, Joseph Guarneri del Gesu and Antonius Stradivarius. To those who at the present time willingly pay hundreds and even thousands of dollars for a violin made by one of these great makers, it may be of interest to know that they all were simple, hard-working artisans, who sold their works of genius for a few florins. Volcanoes. A volcano is a mountain, or opening in the earth's crust, through which issue fire, smoke, ashes, lava, steam, etc. Volcanoes may be distinguished as extinct and active. Extinct volcanoes are such as are now at rest, but were subject to eruptions in former ages, as is shown by their form and structure, and the presence of craters. Active volcanoes are such as are either in a constant state of eruption, or have eruptions from time to time, with intervals of rest. Volcanoes throw out an enormous amount of material. Whole islands and portions of con- tinents have been formed by volcanic action. Iceland is an example of a volcanic island. The lava, when it first issues from a volcano, is somewhat like melted iron running from a furnace, but soon cools on the surface and forms a black, porous crust. Sometimes the streams are so thick that the interior remains hot for twenty years. A terrific eruption of Mt. Vesuvius, A. D. 79, destroyed the flourishing cities of Pompeii, Herculaneum, and Stabife, and covered them with ashes and cinders to the depth of fifteen feet. About sixty eruptions of Mt. Etna are re- corded. In 1669, a stream of lava from this mountain overflowed the ramparts of Catania, sixty feet in height, and destroyed a portion of the city. In 1832, several craters opened in the sides of the mountain, and a stream of lava eighteen miles long, one mile broad, and thirty feet deep, poured over the adjacent fields. In 1835, the terrible eruption of Conseguina occurred. It lasted three days, during which the light of the sun was obscured over half of Central America, and more than 40,000 square miles are said to have ' been covered with dust, ashes, and lava. Water Gas. Much of the illuminating gas now used is made by the comparatively new process in which the main volume of the gas, consisting of hydrogen, is taken out of water. In the original coal gas process the illuminating agent is obtained directly from ; the distillation of soft or bituminous coal ; i and impurities being removed by washing it with water and then passing it through lime, the gas is ready for burning. The new proc- i es is, in outline, as follows : Steam is passed through retorts filled with anthracite coal raised to a white heat by an air blast. In its passage it is decomposed, and the gas issuing from the pipes at the top consists of a mixture of hydro- gen and carbon dioxide. This serves as the carrier for the true illuminating agents, which are a comparatively small percentage of the entire volume, and these are combined by mingling with naphtha vapor. This mixture has now about the same composition as the ordinary coal gas, but must be fixed that is, made a stable compound by subjecting it to the effect of heat and cold. This is accom- plished by conducting it through two series of pipes, surrounded in one case by cold, running water, and in the other by steam. It is then purified in the same way as mentioned above. By passing it through a water tower loosely filled with something, as charcoal, down through which water trickles as the gaseous mixture ascends, the ammonia is dissolved out ; then, by passing it through thin layers of lime, the other main impurity, sulphureted hydro- gen, is removed. It is then ready for distri- bution through the city. Its illuminating power is about the same as, or somewhat greater than, that of coal gas. The water process produces the gas at a much lower cost ; but in the other process there are a number of by-products derived from the distillation of the coal e. g., coke, coal tar, and also aqua ammonia, which is present in greater quanti- ties in the coal gas which are sold, and thus make the entire cost of manufacture about the same in each case. Weaving. The art of weaving appears to have been practiced in China from the ear- liest antiquity more than a thousand years before it was known in Europe or Asia. Poets assign the art to the spider. Women origi- nally spun, wove, and dyed ; and the origin of these arts is ascribed, by ancient nations, to different women as women's art. The Egyp- tians ascribed the art to Isis, the Greeks to Minerva, and the Peruvians to the wife of Manco Capac. In most Eastern countries, the employment of weaving is still performed by the women. The Saviour's vest, or coat, had not any seam, being woven from the top throughout, in one whole piece. In 1331, two weavers from Brabrant settled at York, Eng- land, where they manufactured woolen. Flem- ish dyers, cloth drapers, linen makers, silk throwsters, etc., settled at Canterbury, Nor- wich, Colchester, Southampton, and other places, on account of the Duke of Alva's per- secution, 1567, and carried on the occupation of weaving. Whisky The process of distilling liquors from grain is thought to have been first SCIENCE, INVENTION, DISCOVERY. 363 discovered in India, and introduced into Europe by the Moors about 1150. Its use in Ireland dates back to about the same time, but it was not introduced into England until the close of the century. When first made, whisky was used as a medicine ; and direc- tions for making usquebaugh, or aqua vitae, are contained in the " Red Book of Ossory," a volume compiled in the fourteenth century, in which it is described as a panacea for all diseases. The name whisky was at first given by the Scotch Highlanders to the liquor which they distilled from barley only, and had not, until later times, its present more general application. Usquebaugh was a Celtic name for the liquor, from which the word whisky is no doubt derived. Wire. The invention of drawing wire is ascribed to Rodolph of Nuremberg, about 1410. Mills for this purpose were set up at Nuremberg in 1563. The first wire mill in England was erected at Mortlake in 1663. The astonishing ductility, which is one of the distinguishing qualities of gold, is no way more conspicuous than in gilt wire. A cylin- der of forty-eight ounces of silver, covered with a coat of gold weighing only one ounce, is usually drawn into a wire, two yards of which weigh only one grain ; so that ninety- eight yards of the wire weigh no more than forty-nine grains, and one single grain of gold covers the whole ninety-eight yards. Eight grains of gold, covering a cylinder of silver are commonly drawn into a wire 13,000 feet long ; yet so perfectly does it cover the silver that even a microscope does not discover any appearance of the silver underneath. X or Rontgen Rays are a newly dis- covered form of energy that is radiated from a highly exhausted discharge tube, and devel- oped by an electrical discharge. The rays are so called for their discoverer, Prof. W. C. Rontgen of Wurtzburg, who gave them the name " X rays " because he was ignorant of their precise nature, the letter " X " being the usual algebraic symbol for an unknown quan- tity. The Rontgen rays resemble ordinary light in being propagated in straight lines, in being capable of reflection, in causing phos- phorescence, and in affecting a sensitized plate. They differ from it in being invisible, in not being capable of refraction or polarization, and in being able to traverse many substances that are opaque to ordinary light. The phe- nomena caused by the passage of electricity through exhausted tubes have long attracted attention. It was noticed by Faraday in 1837, and by Plucker, in 1858, who was the first to .cause apparatus to be made whereby a practi- cally permanent vacuum could be maintained in a glass bulb. The physicist Crookes im- proved the tube and made many experimente with " cathode rays." The discovery of Rontgen was announced in 1896 as a new form of radiation. The discovery was accidental, and was made by observing that a highly flour- escent substance with which he was experi- menting gave out light whenever a neighbor- ing Crookes tube was excited, though this tube was covered with an opaque cloth. The phenomena differed from cathode rays, and it was found that when the human hand was interposed between the tube and a photo- graphic plate, the new rays caused a marked shadow picture of the skeleton to appear on the plate. Nothing but a shadow picture was possible owing to the fact that the rays are capable of but slight reflection. Extraordi- nary and widespread interest was at once aroused, but the purely scientific interest was for the time being overshadowed in the public mind by the sensational announcement that a means of " seeing through " the human body had been devised. Notwithstanding these exaggerations, experimenters in all countries verified Prof Rontgen 's own claims. The shadow pictures are used for a great variety of purposes, such as locating foreign bodies, examining fractures and malformations of bones, in dental surgery, and in detecting adulterations. The rays have also been util- ized in France for the study of fossils. Zodiac* The, is the name given by the ancients to an imaginary band extending around the celestial sphere, having as its me- sial line the ecliptic or apparent path of the sun. The signs of the zodiac embrace the twelve important constellations which, owing to the motions of the earth, appear to revolve through the heavens within a belt extending nine degrees on each side of the sun's apparent annual path, and within or near which all the planets revolve. Since the sun appears suc- cessively in each of these constellations during the year, the zodiac was divided into twelve equal parts, corresponding to the months. These signs and their subdivisions were used in measuring time, and as a basis of astro- nomical and astrological calculations and predic- tions. Astronomers now, for' convenience, use these signs, giving to each constellation an ex- tent of thirty degrees, although the constella- tions vary in size. These signs are" Aries, representing the ram ; Taurus, the bull ; Gem- ini, the twins ; Cancer, the crab ; Leo, the lion ; Virgo, the virgin ; Libra, the balance ; Scorpio, the scorpion ; Sagittarius, the archer; Capricornus, the goat; Aquarius, the water- bearer, and Pisces, the fishes. On the 20th of March the sun enters Aries, and at midnight 364 THK CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Virgo, the opposite constellation, will be over- head. During the month of April the sun will pass into Taurus, and at midnight Libra will be overhead. The early astronomers were astrologers, and claimed to be able to predict the future careers of individuals and nations by observing the positions and movements of the planets and the condition of the weather at the most important periods of men's lives. A man born when the sun was in the coustella- tion Scorpio was believed to be naturally bent toward excessive indulgence of the animal passions ; one born when the sun was in Aries was destined to be a great scholar or ruler ; one born when the sun was in Pisces was pre- destined to grovel or be a servant, and so on. The porticoes of the temples of Denderah and Esne, in Egypt, have representations of the zodiacal constellations which are of great an- tiquity and have formed a fruitful theme of discussion ; but the truth seems to be that nothing is as yet known respecting these an- cient representations, for the manner in which the investigations have been mixed up with the Biblical question of the antiquity of man has prevented any truly scientific research. The Greeks would seem to have borrowed their constellations from the Egyptians and Baby- lonians, and this is corroborated to some ex- tent by occasional remarks of Greek writers as to the positions of various constellations at certain times, which positions are inconsistent with the supposition of the observer being in Greece. The zodiacal figures of the Hindus, ancient Persians. Chinese, and Japanese have such a remarkable resemblance to those of the Egyptians that there can be little doubt as to their common origin. Zoology is that science which treats of ani- mals, their structure, habits, and classification. There are four principal divisions of animals, based on distinct types of structure, and in- cluding all the denizens of the earth, the water, and the air. Following art mo uivisions of th a animal kingdom, beginning with the lowest : CLASSES OF SUB- DIVISIONS. 1. Amoeba, sponges, pro- tei, etc. They Dave no mouth, and no distinct members, but are ca- pable of making many UB-KINGDOMS OR DIVISIONS. I. PROTOZOA First-liv- ing things, or lowest form of animal life. II. RADIATA Radiates, that is, such as are shaped p like a star or flower, and i have their organs arrang- ed uniformly around a common center. III. MOLLUSCA Mol- lusks, that is, soft-bodied, without joints, and with- - out vertebrae, but usually protected by a shell. rv. ARTICCLATA Ar- ticulates, that is, animals j having the body and mem- 'bers jointed, but without an internal skeleton. V. VERTEBRATA Ver- tebrates, that is, animals that have a backbone, and an articulated or jointed skeleton, and a great ner- vous cord, the spinal mar row, inclosed m a bony sheath. changes in their form. 1. Coral animals, sea- anemones, etc. 2. Jelly-fishes, sea-nettles. 3. Star-fishes, sea-urchins. 1. Bryozoa, that is, moss animals ; as sea-mats, white sea-weeds, etc. 2. Brachiopods, that is, with arm-feet, or spiral appendages; as the lin- gulae, spirifers, etc. 3. Ascidians, that is, pouch-like; as salpse, etc. 4. Acephals, that is, head- less ; as oysters, etc. 5. Cephalates, thatis.with heads ; as snails, etc. 6. Cephalopods, that is, witn heads and feet, or, more strictly, tentacles. 1. Worms, as earthworms, leeches, etc. 2. Crustaceans, as crabs, lobsters, etc. 3. Centipedes, etc. 4. Spiders, etc. 5. Beetles, butterflies, etc. 1. Fishes. 2. Reptiles, that is, creep- ing things, as turtles, frogs, snakes, lizards, etc. 3. Birds, that is, "Every winged fowl." 4. Mammalia, that is, .ai- mals with teats. The last class, Mammalia, is further sub- divided into fourteen orders, of which the most distinctive, still ascending from the lower co theliigher, are four, namely: 1. Cetacea, that is, of the whale tribe. 2. Quadrupeds, that is, four-footed animals generaTy. 3. Quadrumana, that is, four-handed; as the go-rula, chimpanzee, ape, and monkey. 4. Bimana. that is, two-handed; of whJcn the oa f representative is man. 52! O H O 525 ce 3 ^ O H Book V. t Domestic Economy, Hygiene, Dietetics. Domestic Economy, Hygiene, Dietetics. AIR. The common air is a fluid composed mainly of two gases, in certain proportions ; namely, oxygen as twenty and nitrogen as eighty parts in a hundred, with a very minute addition of carbonic acid gas. Such is air in its pure and right state, and such is the state in which we require it for respiration. When it is loaded with any admixture of a different kind, or its natural proportions are in any way deranged, it cannot be breathed without producing inju- rious results. We also require what is apt to appear a large quantity of this element of healthy existence. The lungs of a healthy full-grown man will inhale the bulk of twenty cubic inches at every inspiration, and he will use no less than fifty-seven hogsheads in twenty-four hours. Now, there are various circumstances which tend to surround us at times with vitiated air, and which must accordingly be guarded against. That first calling for attention is the miasma or noxious quality imparted to the air in certain districts by stagnant water and de- caying vegetable matter. It is now generally acknowledged that this noxious quality is in reality a subtle poison, which acts on the hu- man system through the medium of the lungs, producing fevers and other epidemics. Putrid matter of all kinds is another con- spicuous source of noxious effluvia. The filth collected in ill-regulated towns, ill-managed drains, collections of decaying animal sub- stances placed too near or within private dwell- ings, are notable for their effects in vitiating the atmosphere, and generating disease in those exposed to them. In this case, also, it is a poison diffused abroad through the air which acts so injuriously on the human frame. The human subject tends to vitiate the atmosphere for itself, by the effect which it produces on the air which it breathes. Our breath, when we draw it in, consists of the in- gredients formerly mentioned ; but it is in a very different state when we part with it. On passing into our lungs the oxygen, forming the lesser ingredient, enters into combination with the carbon of the venous blood (or blood which has. already performed its round through the body) ; in this process about two fifths of the oxygen is abstracted and sent into the blood, only the remaining three fifths being expired, along with the nitrogen nearly as it was before. In place of the oxygen consumed, there is ex- pired an equal volume of carbonic acid gas, such gas being a result of the process of com- bination just alluded to. Now, carbonic acid gas, in a larger proportion than that in which it is found in the atmosphere, is noxious. The j volume of it expired by the lungs, if free to | mingle with the air at large, will do no harm ; I but, if breathed out into a close room, it will render the air unfit for being again breathed. Suppose an individual to be shut up in an air- tight box : each breath he emits throws a cer- tain quantity of carbonic acid gas into the air filling the box ; the air is thus vitiated, and every successive inspiration is composed of worse and worse materials, till at length the oxygen is so much exhausted that it is insuffi- cient for the support of life. He would then be sensible of a great difficulty in breathing, and in a little time longer he would die. Most rooms in which human beings live are not strictly close. The chimney and the chinks of the doors and windows generally allow of a communication to a certain extent with the outer air, so that it rarely happens that great immediate inconvenience is experienced in ordinary apartments from want of fresh air. But it is at the same time quite certain that, in all ordinary apartments where human beings are assembled, the air unavoidably becomes considerably vitiated, for in such a situation there cannot be a sufficiently ready or copious supply of oxygen to make up for that which has been consumed, and the carbonic acid gas will be constantly accumulating. This is par- ticularly the case in bedrooms, and in theaters, churches, and schools. Perhaps it is in bedrooms that most harm is done. These are generally smaller than other rooms, and they are usually kept closed during the whole night. The result of sleep- ing in such a room is very injurious. A com- mon fire, from the draught which it produces, is very serviceable in ventilating rooms, but it is at best a defective means of doing so. The draught which it creates generally sweeps along near the floor between the door and the fire, leaving all above the level of the chimney- piece unpurified. Yet scarcely any other ar- rangement is anywhere made for the purpose of changing the air in ordinary rooms. FOOD. A food is a substance which, when intro- duced into the body, supplies material which renews some structure or maintains some vital process ; and it is distinguished from a medi- cine in that the latter modifies some vital ac- tion, but does not supply the material which DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 367 sustains such action. It is essential to the tain it can efficiently produce flesh or repair idea of a food that it support or increase vital wasted tissue. So important is this distinction, actions ; whilst medicines usually may lessen, \ in fact, that one of the divisions of food most increase, or otherwise modify some of them, j generally recognized by physiologists is into " Foods are derived," says Dr. Edward Smith, nitrogenous and non-nitrogenous, or, as Lie- " from all the great divisions of nature and big termed them, the flesh-forming and the natural products, as earth, water, and air, ] heat -producing. Both kinds are essential to solids, liquids, and gases ; and from substances the maintenance of life, and it is because veg- which are living and organic, or inanimate and etables as a whole are deficient in nitrogen inorganic. The popular notion of food as a ; that the highest degree of bodily vigor cannot solid substance derived from animals and veg- etables, whilst comprehensive is too exclusive, since the water which we drink, the air which we breathe, and certain minerals found in the substance of the earth, are, adopting the defi- nition given, of no less importance as foods. It is, however, of great interest to note how fre- quently all these are combined in one food, and how closely united are substances which seem to be widely separated. Thus water and min- erals are found in both flesh and vegetables, whilst one or both of the components parts of the air, viz., oxygen and nitrogen, are dis- tributed through every kind of food which is alone capable of sustaining life. Hence, not only may we add food to food to supply the waste of the body, but we may within certain limits substitute one for another as our appe- tites or wants demand. . . . Further, there seems to be an indissoluble bond existing between all the sources of food. There are the same classes of elements in flesh as in flour, and the same in animals as in vegetables. The vegetable draws water and minerals be kept up by them alone. It is understood that the structures of the body are in a state of continual change, so that atoms which are present at one hour may be gone the next, and when gone the structures will be so far wasted, unless the proc- ess of waste be accompanied by renewal. But the renewing substance must be of the same nature as that wasted, so that bone shall be re- newed by the constituent elements of bone, and flesh by those of flesh. This is the duty assigned to food, to supply to each part of the body the very same kind of material that it lost by waste. As foods must have the same composition as the body, or supply some such other materials as can be transformed into the substances of the body, it is desirable to gain a general idea of what these substances are. The following is a summary of the prin- cipal materials of which the body is com- posed : Flesh, iu its fresh state, contains water, fat, fibrin, albumen, besides compounds of lime, phosphorus, soda, potash, magnesia, silica, and from the soil, whilst it absorbs and incorporates j iron, and certain extractives, whose nature is the air in its own growth, and is then eaten to sustain the life of animals, so that animals gain the substances which vegetables first ac- unknown. Blood has a composition similar in elements to that of flesh. Bone is composed of cartilage, fat, and salts quired. But in completing the circle the veg- j of lime, magnesia, soda, and potash, combined etable receives from the animal the air (car- : with phosphoric and other acids, bonic acid) which was thrown out in respira- I Cartilage consists of chondrin, from which tion, and lives and grows upon it ; and at gelatine is formed, with salts of soda, potash, length the animal itself in whole or in part, and the refuse which it daily throws off, be- come the food of the vegetable. Even the very lime, phosphorus, magnesia, sulphur, and iron. The brain is composed of water, albumen, fat (so-called), phosphoric acid, osmazome, bones of an animal are by the aid of nature or i and salts, man made to increase the growth of vegetables j The liver consists of water, fat, and albu- and really to enter into their structure ; and men, with phosphoric and other acids, in con- being again eaten, animals may be said to eat junction with soda, lime, potash, and iron, their own bones, and live on their own flesh." The lungs are formed of a substance called It will be seen from this that animal and veg- ; connective tissue, from which gelatine is formed etable foods contain precisely the same ele- by prolonged boiling, albumen, a substance ments though in different combinations. At analogous to casein, various fatty and organic the same time they differ sufficiently to make acids, with salts of soda and iron, and water, a due proportion of each necessary to perfect Bile consists of water, fat, resin, sugar, fatty nutrition. One sterling point of difference is, and organic acids, cholesterin, and salts of that nitrogen constitutes a much larger per- potash, soda, and iron, centage of animal bodies than of vegetables. ' Hence, it is requisite that the body shp Nitrogen is one of the most important ele- | be provided with salts of potash, soda, lime, ments of food; only such substances as con^ttagnesia, sulphur, iron, and manganew. as 368 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. well as sulphuric, hydrochloric, phosphoric, and fluoric acids and water ; also, nearly all the fat which it consumes daily, and probably all the nitrogenous substances which it re- quires and which are closely allied in compo- sition, as albumen, fibrin, etc. "So great an array of mysterious substances," says Dr. Smith, " might well prevent us from feeding ourselves or others if the selection of food de- pended solely upon our knowledge or judg- ment ; but it is not so, for, independently of the aid derived from our appetites, there is the great advantage of having foods which con- tain a proportion of nearly all these elements ; and combinations of foods have been effected by experience which protect even the most ignorant from evil consequences. Thus flesh, or the muscular tissue of animals, contains precisely the elements which are required in our flesh-formers, and, only limited by quan- tity, our heat-generators also ; and life may be maintained for very lengthy periods upon ani- mal food and water. Seeing, moreover, that the source of flesh in animals which are used as food, is of vegetable origin, it follows that vegetables should contain the same elements as flesh, and it is a fact of great interest that in vegetables we have food elements closely analogous to those contained in the flesh of animals. Thus, in addition to water and salts, common to both, there is vegetable chondrin, vegetable albumen, vegetable fibrin, and vege- table casein, all having a composition almost identical with animal albumen, fibrin, chondrin and casein." The articles containing most of the three articles needed generally in the body are as follows : for fat and heat-making butter, lard, sugar and molasses; for flesh or muscle-forming lean meat, cheese, peas, beans, and lean fishes ; for brain and nerves shell fish, lean meats, pease, beans, and very active birds and fishes, who live chiefly on food in which phosphorus abounds. Tn a meat diet, the fat supplies the carbon for keeping up the heat of the body, and the lean furnishes nutriment for the muscles, brain, and nerves. Green vegetables, fruits, and berries furnish additional supplies of the acids, the salts, and water needed. Kinds of Food The simplest and most powerful agent in determining the character of our food is climate. In cold countries the requirements of man are very different from those felt in the tropics, and from the Esqui- maux, who, according to Dr. Kane, will drink ten or twelve gallons of train oil in a day, to the Peruvians and other tropical nations for whom the banana suffices for nearly all seasons of the year, there are various gradations in which the constituents of the diet bear a very j direct relation to the prevailing temperature. In cold regions man requires such food as not only supplies him with nutriment, but also with heat ; as oil, butter, fat, sugar, and other substances in which carbonaceous elements predominate. In warm countries, on the con- trary, it is one of the most essential conditions of good health, that his food should be as lit- tle heating as possible. Tn our own climate this law holds good as between summer and winter ; in the latter season, plenty of lean meat, butter, potatoes, eggs, sugar, and similar food are necessary to keep the animal machine in working order, while in summer the diet should consist chiefly of those sub- stances of which nitrogenous or flesh-forming elements compose the largest part. There is probably no other cause so fruitful in produc- ing the dyspepsia and similar diseases of which Americans, as a nation, are in a peculiar degree the victims as the neglect to harmonize the food with the changing seasons. The next most important question in deter- mining the character of our food is that of its digestibility; and it must be borne in mind that the nutritive value and the digestibility of food have no necessary relation to each other. A food may have a very high nutri- tive value and yet be so indigestible as to be practically useless, and on the other hand it may be very easily digested and worth little or nothing for nutrition. No general rules as to the digestibility of different foods can be laid down, because it depends very largely upon in- dividual habits and conditions. Persons who have a strong constitution, and take sufficient exercise, may eat almost anything with appar- ent impunity ; but young children who are forming their constitutions, and persons who are delicate, and who take but little exercise, are very dependent for health upon a proper selection of food. As a general thing, when the body requires a given kind of diet, spe- cially demanded by brain, lungs, or muscles, the appetite will crave that food until the neces- sary amount is secured. If the food in which the needed aliment abounds be not supplied, other food will be taken in larger quantities than needed until that amount is gained ; for all kinds of food have supplies for every part of the body, though in different proportions. Thus, for example, if the muscles are worked a great deal, food in which nitrogen abounds is required, and the appetite will remain un- appeased until the requisite amount of nitro- gen is secured. Should food be taken which has not the requisite quantity, the consequence will be that the vital powers will be needlessly taxed to throw off the excess. There are other kinds of food which are not only nourishing DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 369 but stimulating, so that they quicken the functions of the organs on which they operate ; the condiments used in cookery, such as pep- per, mustard, and spices, are "of this nature. There are certain states of the system in which these stimulants may be beneficial and even necessary ; but persons in perfect health, and especially young children, never receive any benefit from such food, and just in proportion as condiments operate to quicken the action of the internal organs, they tend to wear down their powers. The same observation applies to the use of wines and other spirituous and malt liquors. Under certain conditions where the vital powers are low, they are a highly im- portant addition to ordinary food ; but when used habitually, their temporary stimulation is gained at the expense of permanently weak- ening the digestive organs which finally refuse to perform their work without some such ex- ternal aid. It follows from the above that the requirements of food in each case may in a nor- mal condition of things be left to the individual taste, to be selected and prepared as is indi- cated by experience to be most appropriate. Nutritiousness of Food. The follow- ing table from authentic sources shows the ascertained percentage of nutriment in the common articles of table consumption : Digestibility of Food. In Order of Time. The following table of the digesti- bility of the most common articles of tood, prepared from standard authorities, is approxi- mately correct, and is of very general prac- tical interest : QUALITY. Preparation. Time of Digestion. H. M. 1 00 1 00 1 00 1 00 1 30 1 30 1 30 I 30 1 30 1 35 1 45 1 45 2 00 2 00 2 00 2 00 2 00 2 00 2 00 2 00 2 15 2 15 2 18 2 25 2 25 2 30 2 30 2 30 2 30 2 30 2 30 2 30 2 30 2 30 2 30 2 40 2 45 2 45 2 45 2 50 2 55 3 00 3 00 3 00 3 00 3 00 3 00 3 00 3 00 3 00 3 00 3 15 3 15 3 15 3 16 3 15 3 30 3 30 3 30 3 30 3 30 3 30 3 30 3 30 3 30 3 30 3 30 3 30 3 45 3 45 4 00 4 00 4 00 Rice boiled boiled boiled raw boiled fried boiled raw broiled boiled boiled boiled boiled boiled broiled raw boiled raw raw raw roasted roasted hoi led boiled roasted roasted roasted broiled warmed boiled baked boiled roasted raw boiled fricasseed baked boiled raw raw soft boiled broiled roasted stewed broiled boiled boiled boiled boiled baked roasted broiled roasted baked boiled broiled fried fried stewed melted raw boiled boiled baked boiled boiled hard boiled boiled boiled boiled fried broiled Pig's feet, soused Tripe, soused Eggs, whipped Trout, salmon, fresh Trout, salmon, fresh Soup, barlev Apples, sweet, mellow Venison steak Brains, animal Sago Barley Milk Liver, beef's, fresh Eggs, fresh Codfish, cured, drv Apples, sour, mellow Cabbage, with vinegar Milk Eggs, fresh Turkey, wild Turkey, domestic Gelatine Turkey, domestic Pig, sucking Lamb, fresh KIND OF FOOD. Preparation. Per cent, of Nutriment. Time of Digestion. Hash, meat and vegetables Beans, pod Cake, sponge Almonds raw raw raw boiled boiled roast 66 10 26 92 87 26 22 80 7 10 25 27 21 2 13 21 35 19 27 18 3 7 30 74 96 93 20 10 29 21 13 88 79 21 20 12 4 25 22 96 H. M. 1 30 2 00 2 30 3 30 3 30 4 30 3 15 2 00 2 45 2 00 1 30 2 00 2 39 2 30 2 00 2 15 3 15 3 30 3 30 2 30 2 00 3 30 2 30 5 15 2 30 1 00 3 30 3 00 1 30 2 00 3 30 4 30 1 30 3 30 Parsnips Potatoes, .Irish Cabbage, head Spinal marrow, animal Chicken, full grown Custard Beef Beef, with salt onl v Blood Apples, sour, hard*. Bread baked boiled boiled raw fricasseed boiled raw whipped in bread in bread raw raw boiled raw raw roast baked raw boiled raw raw raw roast bciled boiled baked fried boiled raw boiled fried broiled baked Oysters, fresh Eggs fresh Bass, striped, fresh Beef, fresh, lean, rare Pork, recently salted Codfish Mutton, fresh Soup L/UCU m oers . . . . Chicken soup Flour, unbolted. . . Grapes Oysters, fresh Pork steak Mutton, fresh Milk Bread, corn Mutton Carrot, orange Oatmeal Oils Sausage, fresh Flounder, fresh Pease, dry Peaches Catfish, fresh Oysters, fresh Butter Plums Pork Cheese, old, strong Soup, mutton Oyster soup Rice Rye flour Bread, wheat, fresh Turnips, flat Soup, barley Strawberries Turnips Veal . . Eggs, fresh Beets' Salmon, salted Venison Wheat bread Beef Veal, fresh 370 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Composition of Various Articles of Food. In 100 parts. KIND OF FOOD. 1 8 5 e" 1 3 3 Carbohy- drates. ts fa 73.3 66.8 2.4 2.5 29.8 3.6 1.3 1 83.0 0.7 0.5 0.2 24.3 31.1 6.3 81 26.7 138 10.5 30.7 2.9 4.1 15.45 3.49 3.9 1.8 31 1 A "3 tn 2.9 2.1 20 3.3 4.4 5.1 0.2 1.7 2.0 0.8 0.7 1.0 54 4.5 1.8 1.3 1.5 1.6 1.3 1.0 3.0 1 3.0 .21 0.8 0.8 3.5 4.8 3.0 1.0 2.5 2.3 0.7 12 0.5 1.8 1.4 2.4 0.6 4.7 1.7 i 2 cc 1 a 6C Arrowroot 18 15 24 15 11.75 51 72 91 8 37 15 88 91 83 36.8 38 44 14 66 75 74 78 52 78 74 54 88 86 88 53 72 15 82 15 39 75 74 13 15 77 5 23 68 91 63 15 8.8 7.1 6.3 24.3 14.8 19.3 0.1 156 8.1 4.1 2.0 1.3 33.5 28.4 44.8 11.1 2.7 9.9 14.0 20.4 16.0 18.1 18 9 27.6 3.4 4.1 4.0 12.4 18.3 12.6 1.1 23.0 9.8 2.1 21.0 6.3 8.0 16.1 13.2 1.2 165 10.8 82.0 69.4 47.4 8.4 64.7 4.6 4.9 5 58.4 9.6 55.4 18.8 7>.l 69.5 5.1 66.3 4.9 8.7 3.6 6.4 6.1 0.4 2.8 5.2 5.4 5.4 58 2.0 3.2 I 0.4 3.7 95.0 77.0 2.1 4.2 Bacon, dried Barley meal Beans Beef, fat Beef, lean Biscuit Bread Butter and fat Carrots Cheese Cheese, Cheddar Cheese, skim Cream Eels Egg, white of Egg, yolk Fish, white Liver, ox Meat, cooked, roasted. Milk, human Milk, new Milk, skimmed 4.9 5.6 0.5 2.1 48.9 02 3.8 0.7 2.0 6.5 16. 15.8 2.0 Oatmeal Parsnips Pease Pork, fat Potatoes Poultry Rice Rye meal Salmon Sugar Treacle Tripe Turnips Veal Wheat flour Quantity of Food. With regard to the quantity of food to be taken, this also depends upon individual conditions and cannot be formed into a general rule. Where hunger is felt it may safely be assumed that when the hunger has been fully appeased sufficient food has entered the stomach. Such are the cir- cumstances of civilized life, however, that in most cases hunger is a very rare sensation ; and food is prepared and eaten more to gratify" the palate than because nature demands it. On this point each individual is and must be a law unto himself, and we can only point out the consequences of eating a larger quantity than is needed. When too great a supply of food is put into the stomach, the gastric juice only dissolves that portion of it which the wants of the system demand ; most of the re- mainder is ejected in an unprepared state, the absorbents take portions of it into the cir- culatory system, and all the various bodily functions dependent on the blood are thus gradually and imperceptibly injured. Very often, indeed, intemperance in eating pro- duces immediate results, such as colic, head- ache, indigestion, and vertigo ; but the more common result is the gradual undermining of all parts of the human frame, shortening life by thus weakening the constitution. As to the hours of meals these are of no im- portance provided they are regular and come at regular intervals. This interval should never be less than five hours, as the stomach requires at least three hours to digest its sup- ply of food, and not less than two hours should be allowed it for rest and recuperation. Eating between meals is a most injurious practice, the source in children, especially, of endless stomachic disorders. It may be well to give children under ten years of age one more meal during the day than the three which adults in this country usually allow themselves ; but these, as we have said above, should be at regular times and with stated intervals between them. After taking a full rneal, it is very impor- tant to health that no great bodily or mental exertion be made till the labor of digestion is over. Muscular exertion draws the blood to the muscles, and brain work draws it to the head ; and in consequence of this the stomach loses the supply which is necessary to it when performing its office, the adequate supply of gastric juice is not afforded, and indigestion is the result. The heaviness which is felt after a full meal is a sure indication of the need of quiet ; when the meal is moderate, the process of digestion will be sufficiently ad- vanced, in an hour, or an hour and a half, to justify the resumption of bodily or mental labor. The Diet of Brain Workers. It has long been one of the pet theories of popular physiology, that fish and other substances com- posed largely of phosphorus, are the most ap- propriate diet for brain workers ; but it is now conceded that the best food for the brain is that which best nourishes the whole body with special reference to the nervous system, viz. : fat and lean meat, eggs, milk, and the cereals. Discussing this point in a recent treatise, Dr. George M. Beard says : "The diet of brain workers should be of a large variety, delicately served, abundantly nutritious, of which fresh meat, lean and fat, should be a prominent constituent. In vacations, or whenever it is desired to rest the brain, fish may, to a certain extent, take the place of meat. We should select those articles that are most agreeable to DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 371 our individual tastes, and, so far as possible, we should take our meals amid pleasant social surroundings. In great crises that call for un- usual exertion, we should rest the stomach, that for the time the brain may work the harder ; but the deficiency of nutrition ought always to be supplied in the first interval of repose." CHEMICAL COMPOSITION OF THE HUMAN BODY. The human body is composed of the follow- ing elements, all of which are found also in the food provided by nature, or in air or water, and all must be supplied, day bv day, or some bad results are sure to follow : Oxygen, a gas, in quantity sufficient to occupy a space equal to 750 cubic feet, Hydrogen, a gas, in quantity sufficient to occupy 3000 feet, which -with oxygen, constitutes water, the weight of the two indicating nearly the necessary amount of water Carbon, constituting fat, and used also for fuel to create animal heat Nitrogen, which constitutes the basis of the muscles, and solid tissues, and which is supplied by that part of the food which we shall denominate Ni- trates Phosphorus, the physical source of vitali- ty, and the most important of the mineral elements, will represent the whole class which we shall denominate the Phosphates Calcium, the metallic base of lime, which is the base of the bones Fluorine, found combined in small quanti- ties in bones Chlorine, constituting, with sodium, com- mon salt, found in the blood Sodium, the base of all the salts of soda. . Iron, which is supposed to give color to the blood . Potassium, the base of all the salts of pot- ash Magnesium, the base of magnesia, and magnesian salts Silicon, the base of silex, which is found in the hair, teeth, and nails LB. oz. OR. ill 47 Ul 106 290 The elements of a man weighing 154 Ibs. Classification of Food. Food may be divided into three classes. That class which supplies the lungs with fuel, and thus furnishes heat to the system, and supplies fat or adipose substance, etc., we shall call Carbonates, car- bon being the principal element ; that which supplies the waste of muscles, we shall call Nitrates, nitrogen being the principal element ; and that which supplies the bones, and the brain, and the nerves, and gives vital power, both muscular and mental, we shall call the ( Phosphates, phosphorus being the principal ele- ment. These last might be subdivided into the fixed and the soluble phosphates, the fixed being a combination principally with lime to form the bones, and the soluble being combinations with potash and soda, to work | the brain and nerves ; but our analyses as yet I are too imperfect to allow a subdivision, and as all the mineral elements are more or less ! combined with each other, and all reside to- I gether in articles of food, we shall include ! all mineral elements under the term Phos- J phates. The waste, and consequently the supply, of these three classes of elements is very differ- ent, four times as much carbonaceous food being required as nitrogenous, and of the phosphates not more than two per cent, of the carbonates. Altogether, the waste of these prin- ciples will average in a man of moderate size, with moderate heat, more than one pound in a day, varying very much according to the amount of exercise and the temperature in which he lives. These elements must all be supplied in vegetable or animal food, not one being allowed to become a part of the system unless it has been first organized with other elements of food, in some vegetable, or in water, or the atmosphere ; but being appropriated by some animal, remain organized and adapted to the human system, so that animal and vegetable food contain the same elements in the same proportion and nearly the same chemical combinations, and are equally adapted to supply all necessary el- ements. In Animal Food, 'The Carbonates are furnished in Fat. {Albumen, Fibrin, and Casein. In Vegetable Food, ("The Carbonates ) Sugar, ; Starch, and a | are furnished in ) little Fat. ) Gluten, The Nitrates in [ Albumen, I ) and Casein. The Phosphates in both animal and vege- table food are found inseparably connected with the nitrates, none being found in any of the carbonates, and generally in the propor- tion of from two to three per cent, of all the principles in vegetable, and from three to five in animal food. The Carbonates of both animal and vegeta- ble food are chemically alike fat, sugar, and starch, all being composed of carbon, oxygen, and hydrogen, and in about the same chemical combinations and proportions. The Nitrates, also albumen, gluten, fibrin, and casein, are alike in chemical combina- tions and elements, being composed of nit'-o- gen, oxygen, and hydrogen, and a little carbon not digestible. These simple bodies are not, however, capable of being assimilated and con- verted into tissue ; they must be previously combined, primarily by the vegetable kingdom. 372 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Analysis of Articles of Food in their Natural State. ARTICLES. Nitrates. Carbonates. Phosphates. Water. Wheat .. .. 15.0 69.8 1.6 14.0 Barley 1T.O 69.5 3.5 14.0 Oats 17.0 66.4 3.0 13.6 Northern corn, or maize 12.0 73.0 1.0 14.0 Southern corn 35.0 45.0 4.0 14.0 Tuscarora corn 5.0 80.0 1.0 14.0 Buckwheat 8.6 75.4 1.8 14.2 Rye 13.8 71.5 1.7 13.0 Beans 24.0 57.7 3.5 14.8 Pease . . 23.4 60.0 2.5 14.1 Lentils 26.6 58.5 1.5 14.0 Rice 6.5 79.5 0.5 13.5 Potatoes 1.4 22.5 0.9 75.2 Sweet potatoes 1.6 26.5 2.9 67.5 Parsnips 1.2 7.0 1.0 82.0 Turnips . 1.1 4.0 ' 0.5 90.6 Carrots 0.6 6.6 1.0 87.5 Cabbage 4.0 5.0 1.0 90.0 Cauliflower / 6.4 3.6 1.0 90.0 Cucumbers 1.5 1.0 0.5 97.0 Apples 5.0 10.0- 1.0 81.0 Milk of cow 5.0 8.0 1.0 86.0 Human milk 3.0 7.0 0.5 89.5 Veal 16.0 16.5 4.5 62.5 Beef 15.0 30.0 5.0 50.0 Lamb 11.0 35.0 3.5 50.5 Mutton 12.5 40.0 3.5 44.0 Pork 10.0 50.0 1.5 38.5 Chicken 20.0 35.0 4.5 73.0 Codfish 14.0 very little 5 or 6 79.0 Haddock 13.0 very little 5 or 6 82.0 Sole 15.0 . very little 5 or 6 79.0 Plaice 14.0 very little 5 or 6 80.0 Flounder 15.0 some fat 3 or 4 78.0 Turbot 14.0 very little 5 or 6 79.0 Trout 17.0 very little .5 or 6 75.0 Whiting 15.0 very little 5 or 6 78.0 Smelt 17.0 very little 5 or 6 75.0 Salmon 20.0 some fat 6 or 7 74.0 Eels 17.0 some fat 3 or 4 75.0 Herring 18.0 some fat 4 or 5 75.0 Halibut 18.0 some fat 3 or 4 74.0 Oyster 10.0 very little 2 or 3 87.0 Clam 120 very little 2 or 3 Lobster 14 very little 5 or 6 79.0 Efirers. white of... 15 5 none 4.5 80.0 Eggs, yolks of 17 5 28% 5.5 54.0 Butter :-... all carbonates CLEANLINESS. To keep the body in a cleanly condition is the third important requisite for health. This becomes necessary in consequence of a very important process which is constantly going on near and upon the surface of the body. The process in question is that of perspira- tion. The matter here concerned is a watery secretion produced by glands near the surface of the body, and sent up through the skin by channels imperceptibly minute and wonderfully numerous. From one to two pounds of this secretion is believed to exude through these channels, or pores, in the course of twenty-four hours, being, in fact, the chief form taken by what is called the waste of the system, the re- mainder passing off by the bowels, kidneys, and lungs. To promote the egress of this fluid is of great consequence to health ; for, when it is suppressed, disease is apt to fall upon some of the other organs concerned in the discharge of waste. One of the most notable checks which per spiration experiences is that produced by a current of cold air upon the skin, in which case the pores instantly contract and close, and the individual is seized with some ailmenf either in one or the other of the organs of waste whichever is in him the weakest, or in the in- ternal lining of some part of the body, all of ! which is sympathetic with the condition of the i skin. A result of the nature of that last described is usually recognized as a cold or : catarrh. We are not at present called on par- ticularly to notice such effects of checked per- spiration, but others of a less immediately hurtful or dangerous nature. The fluid alluded to is composed, besides water, of certain salts and animal matters, which, being solid, do not pass away in vapor, as does the watery part of the compound, but rest on the surface where they have been dis- charged. There, if not removed by some arti- ficial means, they form a layer of hard stuff, DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 373 and unavoidably impede the egress of the cur- vent perspiration. By cleanliness is merely meant the taking proper means to prevent this or any other matter accumulating on the sur- face, to the production of certain hurtful con- sequences. Ablution or washing is the best means of attaining this end ; and accordingly it is well for us to wash or bathe the body very frequently. Many leave by far the greater part of their bodies unwashed, except, perhaps, on rare oc- casions, thinking it enough if the parts ex- posed to common view be in decent trim. If ' the object of cleaning were solely to preserve fair appearances, this might be sufficient; but the great end, it must be clearly seen, is to keep the skin in a fit state for its peculiar and very important functions. Frequent change of the clothing next to the skin is of course a great aid to cleanliness, and may partly be esteemed as a substitute for bathing, seeing that the clothes absorb much of the impuri- ties, and, when changed, may be said to carry these off. But still this will not serve the end nearly so well as frequent ablution of the whole person. Anyone will be convinced of this, who goes into a bath, and uses the flesh- brush in cleansing his body. The quantity of scurf and impurity which he will then remove, from even a body which has changes of linen once a day, will surprise him. EXERCISE. Bodily exercise is absolutely essential to the maintenance of good health. The human body may be regarded as a complex machine, the various parts of which are so beautifully adapted to each other, that, if one be dis- turbed, all must suffer. The bones and mus- cles are the portions of the frame on which motion most depends. There are four hun- dred muscles in the body, each of which has certain functions to perform that cannot be disturbed without danger to the whole, and it is a wise provision of nature that the more these muscles are exercised the stronger do they become ; hence it is that laborers are stronger and more muscular than persons whose lives are passed in easy or sedentary occupa- tions. Besides strengthening the limbs, mus- cular exercise has a most beneficial influence on respiration and the circulation of the blood. Says a distinguished medical writer : "Exer- cise tells by inciting both heart and lungs to increased action and energy, and this, done in a pure air, is great gain to the purification of the blood ; but exercise does much more, for not only are the lungs, with their large capac- ity for air, great purifiers, but the skin is little less effective towards the same end. All know the palpable effect of exercise upon the skin ; but many are not aware that the sensible perspira- tion is but an increase of an insensible per- spiration which is unceasingly poured out from myriads of little pores the mouths of the sweat glands and the oil glands of the skin. The ordinary insensible perspiration is contin- ually freeing us from amass of impurity which cannot be retained in our system without in- jury. Convert the insensible perspiration into sensible, by exercise, and produce moderate sweating, and if the clothing be rational, you will give off to the winds the cause of many a headache and gloomy thoughts. Now this in- creased skin secretion must come from some- where ; and so it does, for the increased exertion causes increased wear and tear of system ; every step works up tissue ; and mus- cles, blood vessels, nerves, are all used quicker than when there is no action. Off go these used-up matters, probably the worst first, through lungs and skin, as fast as they can, and the man begins to feel this waste, for from all sides there are telegraphs to the stomach for supplies, and he finds himself getting ex- cessively hungry, the dinner hour very wel- come, and the formerly capricious stomach ready for anything ; and so new supplies go in to supply the place of the old used-up works, and the physical man is greatly renovated taken to pieces, as it were, and built up again. 1. In order that exercise may be truly ad- vantageous, the parts must be in a state of sufficient health to endure the exertion. In no case must exercise be carried beyond what the parts are capable of bearing with ease ; other- wise a loss of energy, instead of a gain, will be the consequence. 2. Exercise to be efficacious, even in a healthy subject, must be excited, sustained, and directed by that nervous stimulus which gives the muscles the principal part of their strength, and contributes so much to the nutri- tion of parts in a state of activity. 3. The waste occasioned by exercise must be duly replaced by food ; as, if there be any deficiency in that important requisite, the blood will soon cease to give that invigoration to the parts upon which increased health and strength depend. Kinds of Bodily Exercise. Exercise is usually considered as of two kinds active and passive. The active consists in walking, running, leaping, riding, fencing, rowing, skating, swimming, dancing, and various ex- ercises, such as those with the poles, ropes, etc., prescribed in gymnastic institutions. The passive consists in carriage-riding, sailing, friction, swinging, etc. Walking is perhaps the readiest mode of tak- 374 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Ing exercise, and the one most extensively re- sorted to. If it brought the upper part of the body as thoroughly into exertion as the lower, it would be perfect, for it is gentle and safe with nearly all except the much debilitated. To render it the more effectual in the upper part of the body it were well to walk at all times, when convenient, singly and allow the arms and trunk free play. It is best to walk with a companion, or for some definite object, as the flow of nervous energy will be by these means promoted, and the exercise be rendered, as has been already explained, the more serv- iceable. Very long or rapid walks should not be at- ^smpted by individuals of sedentary habits, nor by weakly persons. Their frames are totally unprepared for such violent exertion. Running as an Exercise. Among the means which nature has bestowed on animals in general for the preservation and enjoyment of life, running is the most important. Since, then, it is pointed out to us by nature, it must be in a high degree innocent. It is very sin- gular that we should apparently do ail we can which, fortunately, is not much to make ir children unlearn the art of running. Our earliest physical treatment of them seems cal- culated to destroy their aptitude for it ; in a little time, it is too often the case that the city boy scarcely dares look as if he wished to run, we prohibit it so strongly as vulgar, and when he is more grown up gentility steps in and pro- hibits it altogether. Medical prejudices and our own convenience contribute likewise their share, and never allow our children, boys and girls, to acquire an art innocent of itself and necessary to all. It is possible that a person may get injury from running, but the fault is not in the exercise, but in the person who runs without having had proper training and prac- tice. Running should only be practiced in cool weather ; as, for instance, in the late fall, winter, and early spring months. The clothing should be light, the head bare, and the neck uncovered. As soon as the ex- ercise is finished, warm clothing should be put on and gentle exercise continued for some time. It is not necessary to have a race course. The teacher of a school may take his pupils into the fields and find suitable ground for them. Then his pupils may exercise their bodies in other ways, acquire strength, agility, health, and the capacity of continued exertion ; the will is brought into play vigorously, which is a great aid in the battle of life. Care must be taken not to overdo, and thus, perhaps for life, weaken or injure the heart. The race, at first, should be short and fre- ; quently repeated, rather than long, and full speed should not be attempted for some time. Running is well adapted to young and mid- dle aged persons, but not to those who are fat. Sedentary persons may find great benefit in it after the day's work is ended. If they live in cities, a quiet spot in the park maybe selected, and short trials adapted to the strength entered into. Invalids may do the same thing, only they must be more careful than the robust never to over-exert themselves. Girls may run as well as boys, and, while they cannot go so fast, they can race much more gracefully and beautifully . Indeed , there can be few more attractive sights than that of a race between beautiful girls from ten to twelve years of age. After maturity, the change in the formation of the bones of the pelvis in girls renders running less easy and graceful. In ancient Greece girls were trained to run races as well as boys, and to their superb physical culture was in great part due the grandeur and beauty of Greek life during the years of their ascendency. The modern style of dress for young women is also entirely unsuited to running. Fencing is of all active exercises that which is the most commendable, inasmuch as it throws open the chest, and at the same time calls into action the muscles both of the upper and lower extremities. Add to this that it improves very much the carriage of the body ; for which reason it may be reckoned a branch of polite education. Dancing is exhilarating and healthful, and seems to be almost the only actrve exercise which the despotic laws of fashion permit young ladies to enjoy. Rope Jumping. As the cool weather approaches the jumping rope maybe more and more in the bands of girls. Properly used it is not an objectionable plaything. But chil- dren cannot be too frequently cautioned against jumping against time or competing to see who can jump the greatest number of times with- out stopping. Repose a Condition Demanded by Exercise. Exercise demands occasional pe- riods of repose, and, in particular, that a cer- tain part of every twenty-four hours be spent in sleep. After having been engaged in daily occupations for fourteen or sixteen hours, a general feeling of fatigue and weakness is in- duced ; the motions of the body become diffi- cult, the senses confused, the power of volition or will suspended, and the rest of the mental faculties, becoming more and more inactive, sink at length into a state of unconsciousness. The sense of sight first ceases to act by the closing of the eyelids ; then the senses of taste DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 375 and smell become dormant ; and then those of hearing and touch. The muscles, also, dis- pose themselves with a certain reference to ease of position, those of the limbs having grown indolent before those that support the head, and those that support the head be- fore those of the trunk. In proportion as these phenomena proceed, the respiration be- comes slower and more deep, the circulation diminishes in impetus, the blood proceeds in great quantity toward the head, and all the functions of the internal organs become re- tarded. In this state, shut out as it were from the external world, the mind still retains its wonted activity, deprived, however, of the guidance of judgment and the power of dis- tinct recollection ; in consequence of which, it does not perceive the monstrous incongruities of the imagery which sweeps before it, and takes but faint cognizance of the time which elapses. It may be laid down as an axiom, that the more uninterrupted sleep is, the more refresh- ing and salutary will be its effects ; for dur- ing this period, the body undoubtedly acquires an accession of nervous energy, which restless- ness, however induced, must disturb ; and therefore the state of the body before going to sleep, the kind of bed, and the manner of cloth-ing, require especial attention. As the functions of the body are performed more slowly during our sleeping than our waking hours, a full meal or supper, taken immedi- ately before going to bed, imposes a load on the stomach which it is not in a condition to digest, and the unpleasant consequence of op- pressive and harassing dreams is almost cer- tain to ensue. When the sleeper lies on his back, the heart pressing, while pulsating, on the lungs, gives rise to a sense of intolerable oppression on the chest, which seems to bear down upon the whole body, so that in this painful state not a muscle will obey the im- pulse of the will, and every effort to move ap- pears to be altogether unavailing. This con- stitutes incubus or nightmare ; and it may be observed, that, as acidity on the stomach, "or indigestion, gives rise to such dreams, so all dreams of this disturbed character are converse indications of indigestion ; for which reason the great physiologist Haller considered dream- ing to be a symptom of disease. The kind of bed on which we repose requires attention. Some are advocates for soft, others for hard, beds ; hence some accustom themselves to feather beds, others to mattresses. The only difference between a soft and a hard bed is this that the weight of the body in a soft bed presses on a larger surface than on a hard ted, and thereby a greater degrae of comfort is enjoyed. Parents err in fancying that a very hard bed contributes to harden the con- stitution of their children ; for which reason they lay them down on mattresses, or beds with boarded bottoms. A bed for young children cannot be too soft, provided the child does not sink into it in such a manner that the surrounding parts of the bed bend over and cover the body. The too great hardness of beds, says Dr. Darwin, frequently proves in- jurious to the shape of infants, by causing them to rest on too few parts at a time ; it also causes their sleep to be uneasy and unrefresh- ing. Whatever be the time chosen for sleep, it is evident that no person can with impunity convert day into night. Eight o'clock for children, and eleven for adults, may be recom- mended as good hours for retiring to rest. It is well known that children require more sleep than adults ; and move sleep is requisite in winter than in summer. The average duration of sleep which may be recommended for adults is eight hours*; but much depends upon habit, and many persons require only six. It is scarcely necessary to observe that, on rising in the morning, the strictest attention should be paid to washing the face, neck, and hands ; the mouth and teeth should also be well cleansed. The most simple powder for the teeth is finely brayed charcoal, a little of which will clear away all impurities, and pre- serve the teeth. On leaving the bedroom, the windows should be opened, and the clothes of the bed turned down, in order that the exhala- tions of the body during sleep may be dissi- pated. If, instead of this, the bed be made immediately after we have risen, these exhala- tions are again folded up with the clothes a practice which is not consonant either with cleanliness or health. Overworking: the Undeveloped Brain. "Overwork," properly so-called, can only occur when the organ upon which the stress of the labor falls is as yet immature, and, therefore, in process of development. When an organ has reached the maturity of its growth it can only work up to the level of its capacity or faculty for work ! Fatigue may produce exhaustion, but that exhaustion will come soon enough to save the organ. Re- peated "efforts" may, under abnormal condi- 1 tions, follow each other too rapidly to allow of recuperation in the intervals of actual exertion, and as the starting point will, in each succes- sive instance, be lower than the previous state, there may be a gradual abasement ; but even this process should not seriously injure a healthy and well developed organ. In short, a great deal of nonsense has been said and written about the "overwork" of mature 876 THE CENTURY BOOK OF TACTS. brains, and there are grounds for believing that an excuse has been sought for idleness, or in- dulgence in a valetudinarian habit, in the pop- ular outcry on this subject which awhile ago attracted much attention. Nevertheless there can be no room to question the extreme peril of "overwork" to growing children and youths with undeveloped brains. The excessive use of an immature organ ar- rests its development by diverting the energy which should be appropriated to its growth, and consuming it in work. What happens to horses which are allowed to run races too early happens to boys and girls who are overworked at school. The competitive system as applied to youths has produced a most ruinous effect on the mental constitution which this genera- tion has to hand down to the next, and particularly the next but one ensuing. School work should be purely and exclusively directed to development. " Cramming " the young for examination purposes is like compelling an infant in arms to sit up before the muscles of its back are strong enough to support it in the upright position, or to sustain the weight of its body on its legs by standing while as yet the limbs are unable to bear the burden im- posed on them. A crooked spine or weak or contorted legs is the inevitable penalty of such folly. Another blunder is committed when one of the organs of the body to wit, the brain is worked at the expense of other parts of the organism, in face of the fact that the measure of general health is proportioned to the integrity of de- velopment, and the functional activity of the body as a whole in the harmony of its compo- nent systems. No one organ can be developed at the expense of the rest without a corre- sponding weakening of the whole. Mental Exercise. The same rules and regulations by which exercise may be service- able to the physical system, hold good respect- ing the mental faculties. These, as is gener- ally allowed, however immaterial in one sense, are connected organically with the brain a portion of the animal system nourished by the same blood, and regulated by the same vital laws, as the muscles, bones, and nerves. As, by disuse, muscle becomes emaciated, bone softens, blood vessels are obliterated, and nerves lope their natural structure, so, by dis- use, does the brain fall out of its proper state, and create misery to its possessor ; and as, by over-exertion, the waste of the animal system exceeds the supply, and debility and unsound- ness are produced, so, by over-exertion, are the functions of the brain liable to be deranged and destroyed. The processes are physiologic- ally the same, and the effects bear an exact rela- tion to each other. As with the bodily powers, the mental are to be increased in magnitude and energy by a degree of exercise measured with a just regard to their ordinary health and native or habitual energies. Corresponding, moreover, to the influence which the mind has in giving the nervous stimulus so useful in bodily exercise, is the dependence of the mind upon the body for supplies of healthy nutri- ment ; and, in like manner with the bodily functions, each mental faculty is only to be strengthened by the exercise of itself in partic- ular. It ought to be universally known, that the uses of our intellectual nature are not to be properly realized without a just regaid to the laws of that perishable frame with which it is connected ; that, in cultivating the mind, we must neither overtask nor undertask the body, neither push it to too great a speed, nor leave it neglected ; and that, notwithstanding this intimate connection and mutual depend- ence, the highest merits on the part of the mind will not compensate for muscles mis- treated, or soothe a nervous system which se- vere study has tortured into insanity. To come to detail, it ought to be impressed on all, that to spend more than a moderate number of hours in mental exercise diminishes insensibly the powers of future application, and tends to abbreviate life ; that no mental exercise should be attempted immediately after meals, as the processes of thought and of digestion cannot be safely prosecuted together ; and that, with- out a due share of exercise to the whole of the mental faculties, there can be no soundness in any, while the whole corporeal system will give way beneath a severe pressure upon any one in particular. These are truths completely established with physiologists, and upon which it is undeniable that a great portion of human happiness depends. THE HUMAX PULSE. The phenomenon known as the arterial pulse or arterial pulsation is due to the disten- tion of the arteries consequent upon the inter- mittent injection of blood into their trunks, and the subsequent contraction which results from the elasticity of their walls. It is per- ceptible to the touch in all excepting very minute arteries, and, in exposed positions, is visible to the eye. The pulse is usually examined at the radial artery at the wrist, the advantages of that position being that the artery is very superficial, and that it is easily compressed against the bone. It is usual and convenient, though not quite accurate, to include under the term the conditions observed between the beats, as well as those produced by them. DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 377 The condition of the pulse depends mainly on two factors, each of which may vary inde- pendently of the other : First, the contraction of the heart, which propels the stream of blood along the artery ; and, second, the re- sistance in the small arteries and capillaries, which controls the rate at which it leaves the artery. The first determines the frequency and rhythm of the pulse and the force of the beats ; but the tension of the artery between them and their apparent duration depends mainly upon the peripheral resistance. " Feel- ing the pulse," therefore, gives important in- formation besides the rate of the heart's action, and implies much more than the mere count- ing of pulsations. Dr. Broadbent says : "A complete account of the pulse should specify (1) the frequency i. e., the number of beats per minute, with a note of any irregularity or intermission or instability of the rhythm ; (2) the size of the vessel ; (3) the degree of distention of the artery between the beats ; (4) the character of the pulsation whether its access is sudden or gradual, its duration short or long, its subsidence abrupt or slow, note being taken of dicrotism, when present ; (5) the force or strength of both the constant and variable pressure within the artery, as measured by its compressibility ; (6) the state of the arterial walls.'' The frequency of the pulse varies with age, from 130 to 140 per minute at birth to 70 to 75 in adult males, and with sex, being six or eight beats more in adult females. In some individuals it deviates considerably from this standard, and may even be habitually below forty or above ninety without any signs of dis- ease. Ifc is increased by exertion or excite- ment, by food or stimulants, diminished in a lying posture or during sleep. In disease (acute hydrocephalus, for example), the pulse may reach 150 or even 200 beats; or, on the other hand (as in apoplexy and in certain or- ganic affections of the heart, it may be as slow as between 30 and 20. The normal regular rhythm of the pulse may be interfered with either by the occa- sional dropping of a beat (intermission), or by variations in the force of successive beats, and in the length of the intervals separating them (irregularity). These varieties often occur in the same person, but they may exist independ- ently of each other. Irregularity of the pulse is natural to some persons ; in others it is the mere result of debility ; but it may be caused by the most serious disorders, as by disease of the brain, or by organic disease of the heart. The other qualities of the pulse are much more difficult to recognize though of no less importance. The degree of tension or resist- ance to compression by the fingers varies greatly : in a soft or " low tension " pulse the artery may be almost imperceptible between the beats ; in a hard or " high tension " pulse it may be almost incompressible. An unduly soft pulse is usually an indication of debility ; an unduly hard one is most of ten characteristic of disease of the kidneys and gout. But the tension, like the frequency of the pulse, under- goes considerable variations in health from temporary causes, and may in certain individ- uals be habitually above or below the average without actual disease. The force of the beats is a measure of the vigor and efficiency of the heart's action. A ; strong pulse is correctly regarded as a sign of a vigorous state of the system ; it may, how- ; ever, arise from hypertrophy of the left ven- | tricle of the h'eart, and remain as a persistent I symptom even when the general powers are failing. As strength of the pulse usually in- i dicates vigor, so weakness of the pulse in- I dicates debility. Various expressive adjectives | have been attached to special conditions of the pulse, into the consideration of which our space will not permit us to enter. Thus, we read of the jerking pulse, the hobbling pulse, the corded pulse, the wiry pulse, the thrilling pulse, the rebounding pulse, etc. The full significance of changes of the pulse in disease can only be appreciated by considering them in connection with the other signs and symp- toms of the case. Average frequency at different ages in health. AGES : BEATS PEB MINUTE In the foetus in utero between 150 and 140 Newborn infants between 140 and IL'o During the first year from 130 down to 115 During the second year from 150 down to 100 During the third year Iron) 105 down to 96 From 7th to 14th year from 90 down to 80 From 14th to'2l8t"year from 85 down to 75 From 21st to 60th year from 75 down to 70 In old age between 75 and 70 Co-Relation of Pitlse and Tempera- ture. As a general rule the co-relation of pulse and temperature may be stated as fol- lows, namely : An increase of temperature of one degree above 98 F. corresponds with an increase of ten beats of the pulse per minute, as in the following table : Temperature of 98 corresponds with a pulse of 60 99 100 101 102 103 104 105 106" 70 80 90 100 110 1-JO 1 " 140 Themiometry. In children the temper- ature is normally one or two degrees higher than in adults. 378 THE CENTURY BOOK OF PACTS. The temperature is normally one degree higher under the tongue than in the axilla. It is highest upon awakening in the morning ; lowest at midnight. A rise of one degree in temperature usually marks an increase of the pulse from six to ten beats a minute. Continued temperature above 98.50 indi- cates prostration and illness; 101 to '105, severe fever; 105 to 108, danger; 108 to 109, impending death. A temperature of 105 or 106 on the first day of illness, is prima facie evidence of epheme- ral fever ; it is not typhoid or typhus, but probably malarious. Though the typical evidences of pneumonia are present, if the thermometer fails to reach 1 01 .70, it may be concluded no soft infiltration of lungs is present. High temperature after the eruption of measles has faded, indicates complications. An evening typhoid temperature of 103.5 in- dicates a mild course of fever ; 105 in the evening or 104 in the morning, in the third week, indicates danger. A temperature of 104 and upwards, in pneumonia, indicates a severe attack. A temperature of 104 is always alarming in acute rheumatism ; look for cardiac complications. In jaundice a rise of temperature is unfavorable. A rise of tem- perature in a puerperal female indicates the approach of pelvic inflammation. An increase of temperature in tuberculosis shows an ad- vance of the disease, or rise of complications. Daily fluctuations of temperature are asso- ciated with malarial fever, typhus, typhoid, exanthemata, rheumatism, pyaemia, pneu- monia, and acute tuberculosis. An even tem- perature from morning until evening is favorable. A high temperature from evening until morning is unfavorable. A falling tem- perature from evening until morning is favor- able. A rising temperature from evening until morning is dangerous. The temperature of the body must be normal before convalescence begins. Respiration. Two months to two years 35 per minute Two to six years 23 " " Six to twelve years 20 " " Twelve to fifteen years 18 " " Fifteen to twenty<>ne years 16 to 18 " " Respiration and pulsation in the adult female is usually a trifle faster than in the male, especially during pregnancy. ALE. This a liquor manufactured from malt, which is usually produced from the parched grain of germinating barley by a process of great antiquity called brewing. It can, how- ever, be made from the dried germinating grain of wheat and other cereals ; any sub- stance containing sugar being capable of yield- ing a wort or solution which may be fermented or converted into ale or beer. In several of the English pale ales the proportion of alcohol is as. high as 10 per cent., and the average is from 5 to 7 per cent. So that a pint of good ale contains the same amount of alcohol as a bot- of claret. These ales, with those of Scotland, are largely imported, and are generally much superior to the American product. Burton ale, so called from the place where it is made, is one of the strongest and most intoxicating. It is of a somewhat thick, glutinous consist- ence, and sweetish to the taste ; a small quan- tity of it produces intoxication in those who are not accustomed to it. The best English ales are Bass and Allsopp's. Scotch ale, espe- cially the Edinburgh brands, has a pale flavor, extremely vinous and very like some of the light French wines. It is mild in its effect, pale in color, and the taste of the hops does not predominate as in the India pale ale (man- ufactured especially for the Indian market) and Allsopp's. Scotch ales are also said to be less liable to adulteration than the English. American ales are very light, as compared with many foreign products, but they contain alcohol sufficient to intoxicate, even when taken in small quantities, by those not accus- tomed to alcoholic stimulants. Often, too, ingredients are used which are injurious to the system, in addition to the poison of the alcohol. BATH. The skin of the human being is not merely an outward covering for the body, but an organ the proper performance of whose work is of vital importance to good health.. Its seven million pores are not a useless part of the animal economy, but form the sluices through which the system throws off a por- tion of its waste and deleterious matter ; this matter is removed in the form of an impercep- tible watery vapor, mixed with a few saline and gaseous substances, and the quantity capable of being gotten rid of in this way, in the space of twenty-four hours, amounts in round num- bers to twenty ounces. The retention of this, by reason of the inability of the skin to per- form its functions, is of course productive of great injury to the system, throwing more than their due share of work on the other secretive organs. The only method of keeping the skin clear and in proper working order is bathing with sufficient frequency. Bathing not only removes the matter which the skin has already discharged, but stimulates its activity, arid in- DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 379 creases its efficiency. The temperature of the water is a highly important circumstance, and medical writers usually classify baths, as cold, warm, and hot. Cold Bath. The cold, bath is taken in water which is cold as compared with the normal heat of the body, or at a temperature of 33 to 05. The effect of such a bath on a person in good health is, on first plunging in, a sensation of extreme cold (the duration of which depends on the temperature of the water and the condition of the bather), and is followed by a reaction which brings on a sensa- tion of warmth and a feeling of lightness and vigor. By degrees, if the body continue to be immersed, the bather again begins to feel cold, chilliness, accompanied by shivering, comes on, the pulse grows feebler and slower, and the whole body becomes languid and powerless. The time to leave the bath is during the period of warmth, before the second chilliness be- gins ; and immediately on stepping out the bather should rub himself dry with a coarse towel, and continue rubbing till the skin is in a glow. The ultimate effect of the cold bath has been differently described by different phy- sicians, and some are strongly opposed to its use at all ; but, where it agrees, it is tonic and bracing, it improves the digestion, stimulates the skin, and renders the circulation more active and, vigorous. It also hardens the sys- tem and causes it to be much less sensitive to changes of temperature, being on this account an excellent protection against taking cold on exposure. Its beneficial effect depends much on the strength of the reaction ; if, therefore, on coming out of the cold bath, the person feels dull and chilly, or complains of headache, or a sensation of tightness across the chest, the cold bath disagrees, and should be discontinued or modified. But many persons experiencing these symp- toms seem to need just the sort of stimulus the cold bath gives. This they can get by apply- ing cold water with a wash rag to a square foot or two of the skin at a time, rubbing the space into a glow with a towel, and repeating the process until the whole body has been bathed. The writer knows instances where this method has cured people too sensitive to cold. The diseases for which cold baths are valu- able as a remedy are morbid irritability and sensibility, accompanied by general debility ; also for asthma, in the intervals between the paroxysms* when the system is in other re- spects in a proper condition for it. When there is a tendency to colds and rheumatism, the cold bath is an excellent preventive ; for this purpose it should be used continuously throughout the year. It is improper in the case of those who have a tendency to consump- tion, or who are constitutionally liable to bowel complaints ; and it should never be ven- tured on by anyone suffering from chronic inflammation of the mucous membranes of the bronchia and intestinal canal. The best j time for taking a cold bath is in the early I morning just after rising. But persons of feeble circulation in whom reaction does not [readily follow, had better not take a cold bath | before their breakfast is digested. Warm Bath. This includes all baths ranging in temperature from 66 to 95. Its effect is very different from that of the cold bath. There is no shock, but the temperature is grateful to the bather ; the blood circulates more rapidly, and a gentle glow pervades the body ; the skin absorbs water, is softened, and throws off the scales of decomposed matter which may have accumulated on it ; pain is allayed, and nervous irritation is soothed. The warm bath is especially grateful and ben- eficial after excessive muscular exertion, or after the fatigue and excitement of traveling. It refreshes and tranquilizes the system ; but, on the other hand, it has none of the tonic in- fluence of the cold bath, and its frequent use tends to relax and debilitate, while rendering the system more sensible to changes of temper- ature. The best temperature for the bath of a healthy person is what is called tepid, and it I is also the most agreeable. A distinctly warm bath taken just before going to bed will prob- ably cure any tendency to wakefulness, espe cially if the wakefulness come from overuse of the brain. No bath whatever should be taken while digestion is going on say in less than two hours after a meal. Hot Bath. This has a temperature rang- ing from 98 (blood-heat) to 112. It is a very powerful stimulant, and should never be used by persons in a good state of health. Even in cases of disease, it should only be taken under a physician's advice. As the ob- ject is to stimulate the vital actions, the bather should never remain long enough in the bath to produce exhaustion, the average time is from ten to fifteen minutes. The best way to obtain the full beneficial effect of the hot bath is to commence with tepid water and gradually increase the temperature. The hot bath is chiefly used where it is desirable to produce abundant perspiration, when it should be fol- lowed by rolling the patient in blankets. Shower Bath. When cold water is used, the effect of this bath is similar to that of the ordinary cold bath, but the shock from the shower bath is greater than that from simple immersion, especially if the quantity of water 380 THE CENTURY BOOK OP PACTS. be large, the temperature low, and the fall considerable. Its effects are also more speedy, and extend more to the internal organs than those of the common bath. When the result is beneficial the glow is felt almost imme- diately, consequently when recourse is had to it, the bather should withdraw immediately after the shock ; if its use is prolonged it quickly lowers, and at last destroys the sensi- bility, and is then highly injurious. For del- icate persons, the tepid shower bath is prefera- ble ; and salt added to the water is an improve- ment. When used for hygienic purposes the beat time to take the shower bath is imme- diately after rising in the morning. Sponge Bath Sponging the body off with water and a sponge or cloth is as effectual, though perhaps not as pleasant, as any other form of bathing, and may be resorted to when bathing conveniences are not at hand. It is frequently adopted in cases of fever, to cool the surface of the body ; but as its action is powerful it is rather venturesome to employ it except as directed by the physician. Spong- ing is also used successfully as a tonic to ward off disease. It is found especially serviceable when a person is disposed to asthma or is suf- fering from a cough. For this purpose the chest may be sponged daily, and afterwards well rubbed and dried, so as to produce a glow on the surface. In some cases vinegar and water, or salt and water are preferable and then much rubbing is not necessary. This is an excellent method for bathing very young children. THE TREATMENT OF CORPU- LENCE. According to Ebstein, in his work on cor- pulence, fattening is strictly analogous to the fattening of cattle, and depends on overfeed- ing. He, however, disputes the current view that fat makes fat ; on the contrary, he thinks fatty food protects the albumen, and prevents its forming fat. His plan of treatment, there- fore, consists in moderating the quantity of food, and while cutting off all vegetable carbo- hydrates, sugar, starch, etc., allowing a mod- erate quantity of fat, two or three ounces daily to be taken. He also suggests that the diet should be monotonous, greasy, and suc- culent, so as to cause satiety rapidly. He dis- allows beer, but permits light wines. The plan advocated appears rational, and is free from the objection to Banting's method, which is too much like starvation. The fol- lowing is the diet used successfully by Ebstein in one of his cases : Breakfast. One large cup of black tea about half a pint without sugar ; two ounces of white bread or brown bread, toasted, with plenty of butter. Dinner. Soup, often with marrow; from four to six and one half ounces of roast or boiled meat ; vegetables in moderation, legu- minous preferably, and cabbages. Turnips were almost, and potatoes altogether, excluded. After dinner a little fresh fruit. For second course a salad or stewed fruit without sugar. Two or three glasses of light wine, and imme- diately after dinner a large cup of black tea, without milk or sugar. Supper. A large cup of black tea, as be- fore. An egg, a little fat roast meat, or both, or some ham with its fat, Bologna sausage, smoked or dried fish, about an ounce of white bread well buttered, occasionally a small quan- tity of cheese, and some fresh fruit. On this diet the patient lost twenty pounds in six months. Ebstein insists on tne necessity of always keeping to the restricted diet if the tendency to corpulence is to be successfully combated. Di. George Johnson's diet for excess of fat : The patient may eat : lean mutton and beef, veal, lamb, tongue, sweetbreads, soups, not thickened, beef tea and broths, poultry, game, fish, cheese, eggs, bread in moderation, greens, spinach, watercress, mustard and cress, let- tuce, asparagus, celery, radishes, French beans, green pease, Brussels sprouts, cabbage, cauli- flower, onions, broccoli, sea-kale, jellies, flavored but not sweetened, fresh fruit in moderation, without sugar or cream, pickles. May not fat: Fat bacon and ham, fat of meat, butter, cream, sugar, potatoes, carrots, parsnips, beet root, rice, arrowroot, sago, tapi- oca, macaroni, vermicelli, semolina, custard, pastry, and pudding of all kinds, sweet cakes. May drink: Tea, coffee, cocoa from nibs, with milk, but without cream or sugar, cereal coffee made from parched grain ; also a very agreeable drink extensively used is a preparation known as Postum. Apollinaris water, soda water, seltzer water. May not drink: Milk, except sparingly, porter and stout, sweet ales, sweet wines. As a rule, alcoholic liquors should be taken very sparingly, and never without food. MEDICINAL, FOOD. Spinach has a direct effect upon complaints of the kidneys ; the common dandelion, used as greens, is excellent for the same trouble ; aspar- agus purifies the blood ; celery acts admirably upon the nervous system, and is a cure for rheumatism and neuralgia ; tomatoes act upon the liver ; beets and turnips are excellent appe- tizers ; lettuce and cucumbers are cooling in their effects upon the system ; beans are a very DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 381 nutritious and strengthening vegetable ; while onions, garlic, .leeks, chives, and shallots, all of which are similar, possess medicinal virtues of a marked character, stimulating the circu- latory system, and the consequent increase of the saliva and the gastric juice promoting digestion. Red onions are an excellent diu- retic, and the white ones are recommended raw as a remedy for insomnia. They are tonic, nutritious. A soup made from onions is regarded by the French as an excellent restora- tive in debility of the digestive organs. Eggs are considered one of the best reme- dies for dysentery. Beaten up slightly, with or without sugar, and swallowed, they tend by their emollient qualities to lessen the in- flammation of the stomach and intestines, and, by forming a transient coating on those organs, enable Nature to resume' her healthful sway over the diseased body. Two, or at most three, eggs per day, would be all that is re- quired in ordinary cases ; and, since the egg is not merely medicine, but food as well, the lighter the diet otherwise, and the quieter the patient is kept, the more certain and rapid is the recovery. LOCATION OF THE HOUSE. Its situation is a most important factor in the choice of a dwelling. The climate, the direction in which it faces, its altitude, its loca- tion upon a hillside or in a valley, the neigh- boring rivers, ponds, lakes, swamps, and j marshes, whether upon dry, sandy, or rocky soil, all these features are to be considered. The severity of the sun's rays, the prevailing direction of the wind, temperature, and hu- midity vary in different localities. Rooms facing south are warmer, but subject to greater changes of temperature ; those facing north are cooler, but preserve a more equable tempera- ture. Houses situated in deep forests or lying between dense clumps of large trees are apt to ' be unhealthy from dampness. But a wood at j Borne distance from the house is an advantage, since it furnishes abundance of oxygen besides protection from high winds and excessive heat. It is best not to live near a factory, mine, or ! hospital, since injurious gases, vapors, and i dust particles may be developed there. Swamps and marshes, too, are bad neighbors, for the j humid air is often vitiated by the emanations of decomposing animal and vegetable matter. These are very unhealthy, often causing marsh fever, malaria, and other ailments. In trop- ical and sub-tropical regions, where cold north- ern winds are unfelt, such swamps may be rendered harmless by plan ting eucalyptus trees j in their vicinity ; and sunflowers, in the tem- perate zone, may be made to serve a similar \ | purpose in some degree, especially when planted : in large numbers. SPRIXG FEVER. ITS ANTIDOTE A writer gives the symp- toms and several remedies for a very common complaint, prevalent with almost every one to a greater or less extent at this season of the year. The hampered body, says the writer, which has been coddled, petted, stuffed with carbon- bearing fats, and calorified in every possible way, begins to protest. The machinery ia clogged ; headache, dyspepsia, and the thou- sand nameless sensations of discomfort which we charge to variable weather, afflict and hamper poor humanity. To-day the fog depresses our vital force, to-morrow the brain is pierced with blinding sunshaft ; and so each day's external is made responsible for internal shortcoming. The litterateur, in atrabilious humor, afflicts the world with morbid philos- ophy. The pastor sees weak humanity more than ever sinful, and his Lenten homilies are unconsciously tinctured with a deeper dye for the pangs of his own mortality. The house- wife, in overheated rooms, with a monotone of circumscribed care and too little outside diver- sion, finds dirt and despair in the kitchen, chaos in the nursery, a forlorn hope in her mending basket. Among other remedies for people who say, " I always have a bilious attack in the spring," the following seems the most potent : On rising, sponge the body lightly and quickly with cold water, briskly toweling after. It is not necessary that this be a long or laborious operation ; the more rapidly the bet- ter, with sufficient friction to bring a glow to the skin. If you cannot secure time to go over the whole bodily surface, at least make it a point to daily sponge the trunk and arms. Rousing and stimulating the whole system, clearing and opening the pores, it imparts an indescribable freshness and exhilaration, amply repaying the effort. Rehabilitated, you are now ready for your morning bitters, namely, the clear juice of a fresh lemon in a wineglass of water, without sugar. This is a bomb straight at the enemy, for a more potent sol- vent of bile is not in the materia inedica. Searching out rheumatic tendency, attacking those insidious foes which are storing up an- guish against our later days calculi it pervades the system like a fine moral sense, rectifying incipient error. It is needful, per- haps, to begin with two lemons daily, the second at night just before retiring. A primitive but most efficacious prescrip- tion, which corrected the physical reaction after a pork -eating winter for our ancestors, 382 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. was a wineglass full of very hard cider, made effervescent by a crumb of sal soda. More poteat and palatable is the concentric force of the pure lemon acid. We venture to claim for this self-treatment alone, faithfully applied, more relief for the body and stimulus to the mind than from a battery of pills or quarts of herb decoction. Common Sense in Summer. The employment of the natural common sense pos- sessed by intelligent adult humanity would do much to mitigate the discomforts of our torrid summers. Natural appetite, if not corrupted or perverted, is an excellent guide to eating and drinking. The following of Procrustean rules as to the quality and quantity of food is pernicious. An unvarying amount of food, as three hearty meals each day, which might be healthful for winter or the cool weather of autumn, is not appropriate for the intense heats of summer. No set of rules can be laid down for anybody's guidance, still less is it competent to make rules for everybody's guid- ance ; but a few simple suggestions made by a physician recently may not be amiss. He said : " Keep cool in temper ; enter into no argument or contention on politics, ethics, or religion ; restrain anger ; attempt no athletic feats of rowing, walking, or ball playing ; look on the pleasant side of your circumstances ; be kindly affectionate, as St. Paul recom- mended ; do not sit outdoors long after sun- down - the .less of this the better ; never work before breakfast ; eschew meats as much as possible and chew food thoroughly ; drink but little ice water or hot tea and coffee warm tea is not injurious. Lemonade in moderate quantities is not hurtful. Alcoholic stimulants should be tabooed entirely unless a physician's prescription compel their use. Do not allow your dress to be a burden in material or amount, nor have it so light and thin that the body, from perspiration, becomes chilled." BREAKFAST. The substantial and hearty meal partaken of by Americans is the bone of a very great contention. On the one hand it is maintained it is the ruin of digestion and the most pro- lific source of dyspepsia, etc. On the other hand it is shown that, for a busy, active peo- ple, and also for a people who generally have only two meals a day breakfast and dinner the meal is none too substantial. However, which is right or wrong, must be a matter of individual opinion and experience. The difficulty lies in what is eaten at break- fast. More attention could be, with very great advantage, bestowed on this meal. The table, to begin with, could be fresher and more cheer- ful, with flowers and fruit; tablecloth and napkins white, with a colored border too, have a much more pleasing effect than a cloth en- tirely colored. Too often the breakfast-room is about the worst for the purpose in the house dark, dismal, and chilly. The dishes should be varied ; a change should be striven for every day. The beef- steak one day should be plain, another day with fine herbs or stewed tomatoes over it, with brown oyster sauce or onion sauce, etc. ; then vary it with chops, eggs, kidneys broiled, stewed, or saute' ; with fish, in the many differ- ent ways described ; tripe, oysters, liver, and the many other preparations given, such as savory hashes of game, beef, lamb ; with slices of cold, boiled and roast beef, mutton, etc. ; grilled or deviled, and served with any sort ol piquant sauce. Fresh fruit and salads are to be commended for breakfast very relish able and extremely healthful. Oatmeal, too, is to be particularly recommended ; eat it the first thing at break- fast every morning. Eschew too Jiberal in- dulgence in hot breads ; accustom yourselves to eating bread (homemade) twelve hours old. Breakfast parties are rapidly com' eg into fashion they have been popular abi lid for some time usually served at 9 A. M. to 12 M. Of course the earlier they are served the more appropriate they are as breakfasts. Some bills of fare are given as selections for parties and also for family use. The dishes marked in italics may be left out, if thought too elab- orate, without spoiling the effect of the break- fast. Family Breakfasts. Spring. Oatmeal and milk. Stewed apples. Rolls, butter, coffee, chocolate, broma, or tea Beefsteak, broiled oysters. Lyonnaise potatoes, poached eggs on toast. Rice cakes, syrup. Spring. Cracked wheat and milk. Stewed prunes. Bread or rolls, butter, coffee, etc. Mutton chops, fried bacon. Boiled eggs, potatoes a la matore d'hotel. Waffles, cinnamon and sugar. Spring. Fried hominy. Stewed dried peaches. Rolls er bread, butter, coffee, etc. Broiled ham, with fried eggs. Mutton and potato hash, browned. Baked potatoes. Flannel cakes, powdered sugar. Summer. Coarse hominy, boiled. Strawberries and cream. Bread, butter, coffee, etc. Broiled chicken, stewed potatoes. Dried beef, dressed with cream. Radishes. Muffin*, DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 383 Summer. Oatmeal and milk. Fresh currants and sugar. Buttered toast, bread, coffee, etc. Broiled bluefish or \vhitefish. Stewed potatoes. Minced mutton, served on toast. Shirred eges. Hominy rakes, syrup. Summer. Cracked wheat and milk. Fresh raspberries. Rolls, butter, coffee, etc. Cold roast beef, sliced thin. Frizzled ham, with eggs. Fried potatoes, sliced cucumbers. Graham gems, or popovers. Autumn. Oatmeal mush, fried in slices. Peaches and cream, or blackberries. Brown bread, rolls, butter, coffee, etc. Lamb chops, fried potatoes. Mushrooms baked, and served on toast. Sliced tomatoes, dressed as a salad. Autumn. Hulled corn, with cream. Baked pears, grapes. Bread, butter, coffee, etc. Veal cutlets, potato balls. Omelette, with grated ham. Virginia bakes (thin com meal pancakes). Autumn. Coarse hominy, boiled and browned. Peaches and cream. Bread, butter, coffee, etc. Beefsteak, oysters on toast. Stewed potatoes. Muffins. Winter. Fried mush. Baked sweet apples. Rolls, bread, butter, coffee, etc. Turkey hash, stewed potatoes. Salt mackerel. Buckwheat cakes, syrup. . Winter. Cracked wheat. Baked pears. Rolls, Graham bread, butter, coffee, etc. Sausages, garnished with fried sour apples. Quail on toast, baked potatoes. Buckwheat cakes, syrup. Winter. Fried hominy. Stewed apples. Bread, butter, coffee, etc. Venison steak, cold sparer ib, sliced. Potatoes a la maitre d'hotel. Buckwheat cakes, syrup. Breakfast Parties. Early Spring. Grapes, apples, oranges. ( Cutlets of bass en papillate. ( Cucumbers pickled. ( Roast English snipe. | Baked mushrooms. ( Lobster salad. ) Coffee 1 Bread, butter, crackers. ) i Chocolate e'clairs. ( Vanilla ice cream. Summer. Berries and peaches with cream. ( Brook trout broiled, with tomato sauce. I Boiled potatoes, pickled gherkins, and ( olives ( Fillets of beef saute, with Lima j beans. Cauliflower bread-crumbed. Fillets of chickens en fricassee, with rice. BrnoHAl sprouts & la Bechamel. C Fried oysters. I Celery and lettuce, mixed with mayonnaise. Tutti frutti, assorted cake, coffee. Winter. Chicken consomme with poached eggs. ' Small middle cut larni>> of salmon, ' with anchovy sauce and shrimps. Potatoes & la Frintaniere. ( Chicken croquettes. i Canned string beans (Haricots verts). Sorbet au kirchwasser. Roast saddle of Southdown mutton, sauce soubise. Turnips au yeloute. I Broiled quails aux croutons. I Endive, with plain dressing. ( Cream in mold of swan an. z to 2 tablespoonfuls Asafretida, Tincture of V 2 to 2 teaspoonfuls Asafoetida, Pill of 1 to 4 pills Atropia, Sulphate of ^ to J^ of a grain Belladonna, Extract of y 4 to 1 grain Belladonna, Fluid Extract of 1 to 5 drops Belladonna, Tincture of 5 to 30 drops Bismuth, Subnitrate of 10 to 30 grains Bromide of Ammonia 5 to 20 grains Bromide of Potassium 5 to 20 grains Bromide of Sodium. 5 to 20 grains Buchu, Fluid Extract of 10 to 60 drops Calibar Bean, Extract of % to 1 gram Calomel J to 10 grains Camphor, Spirits of 5 to 15 drops Camphor Water 1 to 4 teaspoonfuls Capsicum, Tincture of 10 to 20 drops Castor Oil 1 A to 2 tablespoonf ills Chloral, Hydrate of 5 to 30 grains Cinchona, Sulphate of 5 to 30 grains Cinchona, Compound Tincture of 1 to 4 teaspoonfuls Cod Liver Oil V 2 to 1 tablespoonf ul Copper, Sulphate of J to y 2 grain Co-rosive Sublimate A to A grain Cream of Tartar 5 to CO grains Croton Oil 1 to 2 drops Digitalis, Extract of .. % to 2 grains Digitalis, Tincture of 5 to 60 drops Dover's Powder 5 to 10 grains . Epsom Salts % to 2 tablespoonfuls Ergot. Fluid Extract of % to 2 teaspoonf^ DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 303 MEDICINE - DOSE - I should be instructed with regard to disinfec- Gehsenrium, Fluid Extract of 5to 10 drops ' t ; oll 'pi. pv miiet i. p fuicrht that no rlianr-P Gentian, Extract of 1 to 5 grains Hydrochloric Acid, dilute l to 5 drops can be placed upon disinfectants simply be- Hyoscyamus, Fluid Extract of 5 to 20 drops cause fhev smell of ohlorine or par hoi i<* arid Hyoscyamus, Tincture of / 2 to 2 teaspoonfuls i iodine, Compound Tincture of -j to 5 drops ; or possess the color of permanganate, and ipecacufnSF&Extract of .Y.' "USSfiSS " ^ ^^ P r P rietar y disinfectants with Ipecacuanha, Syrup of 1 to 4 teaspoonfuls high-sounding names are practically worthless, Ipecacuanha, Troches of Morphine and... 1 to 10 troches ! as thev pi thpr havp no valnp whatever or if Iron, Reduced Ito2grains| lever, 01 , II iron, pyrophosphate of 2 to 5 grains value, cost many times as much as they are Iron. Tincture of the Chloride of 5to30drops wor th ftn H parmnt be napd in siiffiripnt Lactic Acid 15to30drops ' Laudanum 15 to 40 drops quantity. May\ppfe a , r Ke f s inof.::: ^totSSta Explanations.- Disinfection is the de- May Apple, Extract of 3 to 8 grains struction of the poisons of infectious and con- Muriatic Acid, dilute 5 to 10 drops taerimia rMaonapa Morphine % to % grains ta lous diseases. Magnesia, Sulphate of Vi to 2 tabiespoonfuis Deodorizers, or substances which destroy Mustard, Ground 1 to 2 teaspoonfuls < m ,.]U are nnt tionpaaarilv Hieinfpptaiifa atiH Nitre, Sweet Spirits of % to 1 teaspoonf ul S lls are JSsailly aisinl .ctants, and Nitro-Muriatic Acid, dilute 2 to 10 drops , disinfectants do not necessarily have odor. NllX Voinica, Tincture of 10 to 25 drops Diainfpntinn rarmnt pomnprKJit^ fnr want nf Opium, Extract of V 2 to 2 grains Opium, Tincture of 15 to 40 drops cleanliness or ventilation. Opium, Camphorated Tincture of... !/4 to 2 tablespoonfuls , mi WET-TAW TA RE- v\tvi nvu-n Paregoric V 4 to 2 tablespoonfuls Potassium, Bicarbonate of 5to20grains 1. Roll sulphur (brimstone) for fumiga- Potassium Bitartrateof 5 to 60 grains ! tirm Potassium Bromide of 5to20grains ,. ,. , , . Potassium Chlorate of 5to20grains 2. Sulphate of iron (copperas) dissolved in rSlum fiSSft::::;: :: 5 2 t t o 3 2Vdn i ,pI water in the Proportion of one and a half Pepsin 5 to 10 grains pounds to the gallon ; for soil, sewers, etc. Qufnfne^.^!". 1 ! 6 . 04 '::::'.'"' ""fffff&m 3- Sul P hate of zinc and common salt, dis- Salicin... '.'.'.'.'.'.!'........................... ..5 to20 grains solved together in water in the proportion of Senna, Confection of 1 to 2 teaspoonfuls f mlr niin^pa nlnliat^> aiifl two nnnppa anlt in Senna, Fluid Extract of 1 tablespoonful J Soda, Bicarbonate of 5 to 30 grains the gallon ; tor clothing, bed linen, etc. lnnti'i R Q li r eylat f f .10 to 30 grains NOTE. Carbolic acid is not included in Squill, Syrup of y 2 to 1 teaspoomul ,. ,. , , ,. , ,, T , . Strychnia, Sulphate of fa to ^ of a grain the above list for the following reasons: It is ^^^S^^--.^io2^^ y difficult to determine the quality of the Veratrum Viride, Tincture of 1 to 4 drops commercial article, and the purchaser can Zinc, Oxide of y 2 to 5 grains never ^ cer tain of securing it of proper strength ; it is expensive, when of good qual- DISINFECTANTS AND HOW TO ity, and experience has shown that it must be USE THEM. employed in comparatively large quantities to The National Board of Health of the United be of any use ; it is liable by its strong odor States of America, consisting of a number of to give a false sense of security, our leading physicians and chemical experts, of which Professor C. F. Chandler of New York it now TO USE DISINFECTANTS. was chairman, have issued the following in- 1. In the Sick Room. The most available structions for disinfection, intended especially agents are fresh air and cleanliness. The for the guidance of physicians and nurses in | clothing, towels, bed linen, etc., should at the yellow fever districts, but which are equally once, on removal from the patient, be placed applicable in other classes of contagious dis- | in a pail or tub of the zinc solution, boiling eases. In submitting this report the chairman hot if possible, before removal from the room. says: All discharges should either be received in It has been the aim of the committee to pre- vessels containing copperas solution, or, when pare concise directions for disinfection, so this is impracticable, should be immediately simple and clear that they may be easily fol- covered with copperas solution. All vessels lowed by any person of intelligence. used about the patient should be cleansed with In the selection of disinfecting agents the the same solution. aim has been: 1st, to secure agents which Unnecessary furniture especially that which can be relied upon to accomplish the work; is stuffed carpets and hangings, when possi- 2d, which can be procured in a state of com- ! ble., should be removed from the room at the parative purity in every village in the United ' outset ; otherwise, they should remain for -States ; 3d, so cheap that they may be used in subsequent fumigation and treatment. Equate quantities. 2. Fumigation with sulphur is the only It is extremely important that the people practicable method for disinfecting the house. 394 THE CENTURY BOOK OP FACTS. For this purpose the rooms to be disinfected must be vacated. Heavy clothing, blankets, bedding, and other articles which cannot be treated with zinc solution, should be opened and exposed during fumigation, as directed below. Close the rooms as tightly as possible, place the sulphur in iron pans supported upon bricks, set it on fire by hot coals, or with the aid of a spoonful of alcohol, and allow the room to remain closed for twenty-four hours. For a room about ten feet square, at least two pounds of sulphur should be used ; for larger rooms, proportionally increased quantities. 3. Premises. Cellars, yards, stables, gut- ters, privies, cesspools, water-closets, drains, sewers, etc., should be frequently and liberally treated with copperas solution. The copperas solution is easily prepared by hanging a basket containing about sixty pounds of copperas in a barrel of water. 4. Body and Bed Clothing, etc. It is best to burn all articles which have been in contact with persons sick with contagious or infectious diseases. Articles too valuable to be destroyed should be treated as follows : a. Cotton, linen, flannels, blankets, etc., should be treated with the boiling hot zinc solution, introducing piece by piece, securing thorough wetting, and boiling for at least half an hour. 6. Heavy woolen clothing, silks, furs, stuffed beds covers, beds, and other articles which can- not be treated with the zinc solution, should be hung in the room during fumigation, pockets being turned inside out, and the whole garment thoroughly exposed. After- ward they should be hung in the open air, beaten, and shaken. Pillows, beds, stuffed mattresses, upholstered furniture, etc., should be cut open, the contents spread out and thor- oughly fumigated. Carpets are best fumi- gated on the floor, but should afterward be removed to the open air and thoroughly beaten. SLEEPLESSNESS. Nothing lowers the vital forces more than sleeplessness, which may generally be traced to one of four causations : (1) mental worry ; (2) a disordered stomach ; (3) excessive muscu- lar exertion ; (4) functional cr organic disease. Loss of sleep is, when rightly understood, one of Nature's premonitory warnings that some of her physical laws have been violated. When we are troubled with sleeplessness, it becomes requisite to discover the primary cause, and then to adopt suitable means for its re- moval. When insomnia, or sleeplessness, arises from mental worry, it is indeed most difficult to remove. The best and perhaps the only effectual plan under such circum- stances to reach the root of the disorder is i: spare diet, combined with plenty of outdoor exercise, thus to draw the blood from th.3 brain ; for it is as impossible for the brain to continue active without a due circulation of blood as it is for an engine to move without steam . When suffering from mental distress, a hot soap bath before retiring to rest is an invalua- ble agent for obtaining sleep, as by its means a more equable blood pressure becomes estab- lished, promoting a decrease of the heart's action and relaxation of the blood vessels. Many a sleepless night owes its origin to the body's temperature being unequal. In mental worry, the head is often hot and the feet cold, the blood being driven to the brain. The whole body should be well washed over with carbolic soap and sponged with very hot water. The blood then becomes diverted from the brain, owing to an adequate diffusion of circu- lation. Tea and coffee should not be taken of an evening when persons suffer from insom- nia, as they directly induce sleeplessness, be- ing nervine stimulants. A sharp walk of about twenty minutes is also very serviceable before going to bed. Sleeplessness is sometimes engendered by a disordered stomach. Whenever this organ is overloaded, its powers are disordered, and wakefulness or a restless night is its usual ac- companiment. Dr. C. J. B. Williams, F.R.S., remarks that no food should be taken at least within one hour of bedtime. It cannot be too generally realized that the presence of undi- gested food in the stomach is one of the most prevailing causes of sleeplessness. Persons Buffering from either functional or organic disease are peculiarly liable to sleep- lessness. When inability to sleep persistently occurs, and cannot be traced to any perverted mode of life or nutrition, there is good reason for surmising that some latent malady gives rise to a condition so truly distressing. Under these circumstances, instead of making bad worse, by swallowing deadly sleeping drugs, a scientific physician should be without delay consulted. Functional disorders of the stomach, liver, and heart, are often the primary source of otherwise unaccountable wakefulness. Recently the dangerous and lamentable habit of promiscuously taking sleeping draughts has unfortunately become very prevalent, en- tailing misery and ill health to a terrible de- gree. Most persons addicted to this destruc- ti"e practice erroneously think that it is better to take a sleeping draught than lie awake. A greater mistake could hardly exist. All opi- ates more or less occasion mischief, and even the state ^f stupefaction they induce utterly DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. fails to bring about that revitalization resulting from natural sleep. The physiological effect of hypnotics, or sleeping draughts, upon the system is briefly as follows : (1) They para- lyze the nerve centers and disorder the stomach, rendering it unfit for its duties ; witness the | sickness and loss of appetite consequent upon a debauch. Chloral, chloroform, opium, etc., act upon the system much in the same way as inebriation. (2) One and all anaesthetics in- troduced into the body have life-destroying properties in a low degree proved by an overdose being fatal. (3) The condition they produce is not sleep, but a counterfeit state of unconsciousness. (4) They directly poison the blood, consequent upon its carbonization, re- sulting from their action. While speaking of sedatives, we cannot omit drawing special at- tention to chloral. This powerful drug is pop- ularly supposed to give a quiet night's rest, without any of the after effects (headache, etc.) produced by various preparations of morphia. Now chloral is what is termed cumulative in its action, which implies that even the same dose, persisted in for a certain length of time, may cause death. Of all hypnotics, chloral is by far the most deadly, and should never, under any circumstances, be taken except under medical supervision. To epitomize what has already been said re- garding sleeplessness : its rational cure should be arrived at in each individual case by seeking out the cause, and then removing the morbid action, of which it is but a natural sequence. Lastly, sleeplessness, under no circumstances, should be neglected,, as it acts disastrously both on the mental and physical forces. DRUGS. In purchasing drugs, whether in the raw state or in the form of extracts, tinctures, etc., it is very important to obtain them from a reputable chemist, who will take care that the article is genuine and properly labeled. The adulteration of drugs is carried on to an enor- mous extent, and, as commonly sold by irre- sponsible parties, the strength is seldom above one half of what it ought to be. Besides this, there is the danger of substituting a cheap drug for a dear one. Drugs are, most of them, soon spoiled by keeping, and in all cases they should be preserved in well-stoppered bottles with the exception of Epsom salts, niter, soda, and some few others, which will keep without injury for an indefinite time. All vegetable medicines lose their virtues in the course of a few months, if not carefully closed from the air ; and even in bottles, they seldom keep good for a year. It is desirable, there- fore, to purchase them in small quantities at a time, and to renew them at intervals of twelve months. Most drugs simply lose their strength with time ; but laudanum, on the contrary, becomes stronger, especially if it be left un- corked ; the spirit evaporates, leaving almost pure opium. This must be guarded against, as the most fatal results might occur from giv- ing a dose much greaier (in point of strength) than was intended. A few drugs requiring extended notice are given under separate titles in this work. The additional ones given below are least liable to abuse, in family use. Each is intro- duced in alphabetical order, with its properties and effects given under the respective heads () Physical properties; (b*) Therapeutical effects ; (c) Use; and (d) Dose and mode of adminis- tration. Extracts, tinctures, and all such com- pounds as will bear keeping, and are likely to be useful in a family, are better when bought of a good druggist than as made at home. They are therefore given without direction to manufacture. It should be borne in mind, however, that drugs of any kind should be used very sparingly except by direction of a physician. Acid, Acetic. Vinegar distilled from wood, and purified. (a) Physical properties. Limpid, colorless, volatile ; odor, pungent and fragrant ; taste, acid. (i) Therapeutical effects. Stimulant, escha- rotic, but, when diluted with water, cooling. (c) Used in lotions for cooling purposes diluted with water, also in ringworm and re- moving warts. ( ounces twice or thrice a day. Decoction of Dandelion. (a) Boil 4 ounces of bruised dandelion in 1 pints of distilled water to a pint, and strain. (6) Therapeutical effects. Diuretic, slightly aperient, and specially acting on the liver. (c) Used in torpid conditions of the liver, jaundice, habitual constipation, etc. ( _ ypf.iH r*Hrr * wra^m "KiffiioJ- - *m\*lt\4-rr ^-P -. Amber, or clear soup. Consomm^ aux legumes (kon-so-m 6 le-gu-m). Soup, with vegetables. Consomme an macaroni (kon-so-me' o ma-ka-ro-ni). Macaroni soup. Consomme aux nouilles (kon-so-me 6 nou-i). Noodle soup. Consomme aux vermicelles (kon-so-m^ 6 ver-mi-she-1). Vermicelli soup. Consomme de volaille (kon-so-m^ de vo-la-i). Chicken soup. Potage aux croutons (po-ta-j 6 krou-ton). Soup, with bread. Potage printanier (po-ta-j prin-ta-ni). Spring soup. Potage a la julienne (po-ta-j a la ju-lie-n). Julienne soup. Potage d' asperge (po-ta-j das-per-j). Asparagus soup. Potage aux queues de boeuf (po-ta-j 6 keu de beuf). Ox-tail soup. Potage a la puree de volaille (po-ta-j a la pu-^6 de vo-la-i). Chicken puree. Potage la fausse tortue (po-ta-j a la f 6-s tor-tu). Mock-turtle soup. Potage aux huitres (po-ta-j 6 ui-tr). Oyster soup. Potage & la puree d'haricots (po-ta-j a la pu-r6 da-ri-ko). Bean soup. Potage aux tomates (po-ta-j 6 to-ma-t). Tomato soup. Potage i la puree de pommes de terre (po-ta-j a la pu-r6 po-m de te-r). Potato soup. Puree de legumes (pu-r6 de le-gu-m). Vegetable puree. Soupe a 1'oignon (soup a lo-gnon). Onion soup. Soupe a 1'oseille (soup a 16-ze-i). Sorrel soup. Poissons (poa-son). Fish. Saumon, sauce Hollandaise (so-mou, so-s ho-lan-di-z). Salmon, Hollandaise sauce. Saumon, sauce homard (so-mon, so-s ho-mar). Salmon, with lobster sauce. Saumon, sauce au persil (so-mon, so-s 6 per-si). Salmon, with parsley sauce. Saumon, sauce aux O3ufs (s6-mon, so-s 6 euf). Salmon, with egg sauce. Saumon, aux pommes de terre (so-mon 6 po-m de te-r). Salmon, with potatoes. Tranches de saumon (tran-sh de so-mon). Slices of salmon. Tron9on de saumon (tron-son de so-mon). Middle cut of salmon. Cotelettes de saumon aux cornichons (ke-t-le-t de so-mon 6 kdr-ni-shon). Salmon cutlets, with pickles Saumon aux concombres (so-mon 6 kon-kpn-br). Salmon, with cucumbers. Sardines grillees (sar-di-n gri-i). Sardines, broiled. Eperlans frits (e-per-lan free-t). Smelts, fried. Petites truites f rites (pe-ti trui-t f ree-t). Little trout fried. Truite en coquilles (trui-t an ko-ki-i). Trout in shells. Truite saumonee (trui-t so-mo-ne'). Salmon trout. Morue a la sauce aux capres (mo-ru a la s6-s 6 ka-pr). Codfish, with caper sauce. Morue a la Bechamel (mo-ru a la be-sha-mel). Codfish, with Bechamel sauce. Morue aux pommes de terre (mo-ru 6 po-m de te-r). Codfish, with potatoes. Gratin d'anguilles (gru-tin dan-ghi-i). Eels au gratin (with crumbs). Matelote d'anguilles (ma-t-lo-t dan-ghi-i). Eels en matelote (sailor fashion). Maquereau frais & la raaitre d'hdtel (ma-k-ro fre a la me-tr do-tel). Fresh mackerel, with ma!tre d'hotel butter. II nit n- (ui-tr). Oysters. Huitres en coquille (ui-tr an ko-ki-i). Oysters in shells. Huitres f rites (ui-tr free-t). " Oysters fried. Beignets d'huitres (be-gne dui-tr). Oyster fritters. Petite vol-au-vent u'huitres (pe-ti vol 6 van dui-tr). Oyster patties. Bonchees d'huitres (bou-she dui-tr). Oyster patties. Sauces (so-s). Sauces. Sauce a la Bechamel (so-s a la be-sha-mel ). White sauce (made with stock). Sauce aux cornichons (so-s 6 kor-ni-shon). Pickle sauce. Sauce aux oeuf s (so-s 6 euf). Egg sauce. Sauce aux capres (so-s 6 ca-pr). Caper sauce. Sauce aux anchois (s6-s 6 an-shoa), Anchovy sauce. Sauce aux crevettes (so-s 6 kre-ve-t). Shrimp sauce. Sauce homard (so-s ho-mar). Lobster sauce. 8uce aux huitres (s6-s 6 ui-tr). Oyster sauce. .Sauce au persil (s6-s 6 per-si). Parsley sauce. Sauce au chou-fleur (so-s 6 shou-fleflr). Cauliflower sauce. Sauce au vin de Madere (s6- 6 vin de ma- jan-bdn). Omelet, with ham. Omelette au rluini (om-le-t 6 rora). Omelet, we-gn6 de bou-i). ) rrpnm ..*,, Crome frite (kre-m free-t). f Cl ere - Beignets d'hflitres (be-pn^ dui-tr). Ojuter fritters. Bouchtes au poulet (bou-sh^ 6 pou-le). Chicken pattiex. Bouchees a la reine (bou-sh^ i la re-n). Any kind of meat patties. Bouchees aux fraises (bou-sh^ 6 fre-zi. Strawberry patties. Bouchees au citron (bou-sh^ o si-tron). Patties, with lemon paste. Tartelettes aux confitures (tar-t-le-t A kon-fl-tu-r). Little tarts of preserves. Tartelettes aux pommes (tar-t-le-t o po-m). Little apple tarts. Poudings (pou-dln-g). Puddings. Pouding de cabinet (jK>u-din-g de ka-bi-nJ*). Cabinet pudding. Pouding au riz (pou-din-g o ri). Rice pudding. Pouding roule (pou-din-g nui-tf). RoIy-polT poddiDg. Pouding au pain (pou-din-p A pan-g>. Bread pudding. Pouding de riz aux peches (pou-din-g de ri A pe-sh). Rice pudding, with peaches. Souffle de pommes (sou-fle de po-m). Apple souffle. 412 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Tarte aux pommes (tar-t 6 po-m). Apple pie. Bavaroise au chocolat (ba-va-roa-z 6 sho-ko-la). Chocolate Bavarian cream. Bavaroise au caf6 (ba-va-roa-z 6 ka-f6). Coffee Bavarian cream. Bavaroise a 1'ananas (ba-va-roa-z a la-na-na). Pineapple Bavarian cream. Desserts (de-ser). Desserts. Blanc-manger (blan-man-j6). Blanc-mange. Compote de peches (kon-po-t de pe-sh) Peach compote. Compote de pommes (kon-po-t de po-m). Apple compote. Champagne f rapp (shan-pa-gn f ra-p^). Iced champagne. Creme glacee & la vanille (kre-m gla-se a la va-ni-i). Ice cream, vanilla. Glacis (gla-s6). Ices of any kind. Glace de creme au chocolat (gla-s de kre-m o sho-ka-la). Chocolate ice cream. Gelee au Madere (j8-le 6 ma-de-r). Madeira wine jelly. Gelee f ouettee aux fruits (j8-le f que-te' 6 f rui). Whipped jelly with fruits. Gelee au vin de champagne (je-le' 6 vin de shan-pa-gn). Champagne jelly. Gelee a la mac^doine (J8-16 a la ma-s6-doa-n). Jelly, with fruits. Macarons aux amandes (ma-ka-ron 6 a-man-de 1 ). Macaroons. Marmelade d'abricots (mar-m6-la-d d-abri-ko). Peach marmalade. Miscellaneoas Dishes. C&eri (se-l-ri). Celery. Fromage (f ro-ma-j). Cheese. Macaroni au f romage (ma-ka-ro-ni 6 fro-ma-j). Macaroni, with cheese. Macaroni, sauce tomate (ma-ka-ro-ni sd-s to-mat). Macaroni, tomato sauce. Coquilles de volaille (ko-ki-i cie vo-la-i). Chickens in shells. Coquilles de homard (ko-ki-i de ho-mar). Lobster in shells. Coquilles de poisson (ko-ki-i de poa-son). Fish in shells. Coquilles de champignons (ko-ki-i de shan-pi-gnon). Mushrooms in shells. CaU (ka-fe). Coffee. Caf 6 noir (ka-f 4 no-ar). Black coffee. Fromage de Brie (fro-ma-j de bri). Brie cheese. Fromage de Roquefort (fro-ma-j de ro-k-f or). Roquefort cheese. MEASURES AND WEIGHTS IN ORDINARY USE AMONG HOUSEKEEPERS. 4 Teaspoonfuls equal 1 tablespoonful liquid. 4 Tablespoonfuls equal 1 wine-glass, or half a gill. 2 Wine-glasses equal one gill, or half a cup. 2 Gills equal 1 coffeecupful, or 16 table- spoonfuls. 2 Coffeecupfuls equal 1 pint. 2 Pints equal 1 quart. 4 Quarts equal 1 gallon. 2 Tablespoonfuls equal 1 ounce, liquid. 1 Tablespoonful of salt equals 1 ounce. 16 Ounces equal 1 pound, or a pint of liquid. 4 Coffeecupfuls of sifted flour equal 1 pound. 1 Quart of unsifted flour equals 1 pound. 8 or 10 ordinary sized eggs equal 1 pound. 1 Pint of sugar equals 1 pound. (White granulated.) 2 Coffeecupfuls of powdered sugar equal 1 pound. 1 Coffeecupful of cold butter, pressed down, is one half pound. 1 Tablespoonful of soft butter, well rounded, equals 1 ounce. An ordinary tumblerful equals one coffeecup- ful, or half a pint. About twenty-five drops of any thin liquid will fill a common sized teaspoon. One pint of finely-chopped meat, packed solidly, equals one pound. A set of tin measures (with small spouts or lips), from a gallon down to half a gill, will be found very convenient in every kitchen, though common pitchers, bowls, glasses, etc., may be substituted. BEDS AND BEDDING. For beds an elastic material is required, with a variation in its heat conducting powers according to the season of the year and the age of the individual. Thus the infant and the aged, in both of whom vitality is low, require the slowest conductor that can be procured, especially in the winter season. For the mid- dle-aged, on the other hand, the same material which is desirable for the first and last periods of life would be much too warm and relaxing. In the order of their conducting powers, the various materials for beds stand as follows, beginning with the warmest or slowest con- ductor : First, down ; second, feathers ; third, wool; fourth, wool-flock; fifth, hair; sixth, cotton-flock; seventh, "excelsior"; eighth, sea moss; ninth, paper shavings; and tenth, straw. Hence it follows that the first two are peculiarly fitted for the very young and the old ; while wool and hair, holding an interme- diate position, are best adapted for healthy persons of middle age. Where a particularly cool mattress is required, as for those who perspire freely, or for warm weather, the sea moss and paper shavings are the best materials, and as the latter can be obtained everywhere, a mattress made of it is often a very grateful addition to the furniture of a bed. Feathers and down were formerly almost universally employed for beds in this country, but their place is now largely supplied by wool and hair, which are sufficiently soft for comfort and not hot enough to promote perspiration. Wool mattresses are very healthy and pleasant to lie upon, though at first they feel rather hard and unyielding to those accustomed to feathers ; by placing a spring mattress under them, they are rendered yielding enough for anyone. The best of all materials for beds, however, is hair. It is more healthful than feathers, more comfortable than any of the cheaper materials, and is equally serviceable in summer and win- ter. Mattresses of it can be made thick or otherwise, according as springs or otlier mat- tresses are used ; and though expensive, the DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 413 same hair can be made over several times, and so made to do many years' service. Straw mattresses are seldom used except for putting under hair or feather beds ; where used for a top mattress, the straw is generally mixed with moss or cotton. For the cheaper kinds of beds the material called ' ' excelsior ' ' is superior to any other. Springs add greatly to the comfort of a bed, and they can be had now in any style and at almost any price. Their cost is but little more than that of an under mattress, which can then be dispensed with. But the " spring mattress ' ' should never be used ; it almost inevitably becomes the harbor of bedbugs and other ver- min which cannot be got at without destroy- ing the mattress. The " woven-wire mattress, " a recent invention, is probably the most perfect apparatus of the kind ever devised, and though expensive, will stand many years of ordinary use. The only objection to it we have heard is that when used long by heavy people it is liable to ' ' sag. ' ' Pillows are seldom made of any other material than feathers, though hair, sponge, i or chipped cork is occasionally used. Feather pillows should never be stuffed very full, as this gives them a hardness and inelasticity which is peculiarly disagreeable and also in- jurious. In buying them it is best to choose j the feathers first and have them made up to ; suit ; select goose or chicken feathers of the softest and most downy kind. Hair pillows are cooler than feather, though not so soft and yielding. They are recommended for per- sons with a tendency to fullness in the head, and for all young children. It is necessary to make them lower than those made of feathers. An excellent pillow for invalids or feeble per- sons is sold at the drug stores in the shape of an india-rubber sack, which can be inflated j with air to any desired degree of flexibility. Sheets were formerly almost universally made of linen, but experience has proved that cotton is much better. Linen in any shape, when brought into contact with the skin, con- ducts away the heat of the body very rapidly. | In winter in our climate linen sheets are j scarcely endurable on account of their cold- ness ; and, being comparatively impervious to air, and therefore confining perspiration, are inferior at all times to cotton. The best material for sheets is " Russian sheeting"; it will last twice as long as any other, and though yellow at first, will soon bleach. It is a mistake to make sheets exactly to fit the bed. They should be about a yard larger each way than the bed. Pillow Cases of linen are very pleasant to the head, and may be appropriately used) with cotton sheets. They are a luxury at best, however, rumpling easily and requiring more frequent change than cleanliness alone would call for. A popular method of arrangement is to make the pillow cases of cotton and cover the pillows during the day, while they are not in use, with linen "shams" simple squares of linen which may be tastefully ornamented. STIMULANTS AND NARCOTICS. Stimulants, such as wine, beer, whisky, rum, gin, brandy, etc., are not to be classed as food for the human system. Stimulants exalt nervous action temporarily, and compel the wheels to revolve rapidly ; but they supply no threads to either the woof or warp, and, sooner or later, break the shuttle. The man who has eaten one pound of beef daily, for one year, does not find it necessary, in order to obtain the same effect, to eat two pounds daily for the next year ; but he who drinks one pint of whisky daily for one year, must take two pints daily the second year to obtain the same effect. Any article of food or of drink, the use of which creates the necessity for larger quanti- ties, and at shorter intervals, in order to attain the same mental and physical elevation, by that fact proves itself pernicious. Stimulants may be employed as medicines, to encourage digestion temporarily, to sustain life until nourishment can be introduced ; or, in declining life, to enliven an existence which nature has limited, but which she will not longer attempt to repair or prolong. Stimulants, habitually used, cause indiges- tion, inflammation of the stomach, disease of the liver, of the kidneys, and of the bladder, chronic diarrhoea, piles, neuralgia, nervous tremors, paralysis, insanity, idiocy, rheuma- tism, gout, dropsy, sore eyes, eruptions, car- buncles, boils, tubercles on the nose, ulcers on the legs. They fill the almshouses, dispen- saries, and prisons ; they supply the gallows with most of its victims, and occasion, directly or indirectly, one half of all the poverty, suf- fering, and sadness which clouds this world. It is no proof because a man grows fat, and his face becomes red under the use of stimu- lants, that he is improving in health. Cholera, and all other pestilential diseases, make their first visits to those who use, habitu- ally, stimulating drinks. Dirt, debauchery, disease, and death are links of the same chain. If stimulants must be used by those " who, being well, would wish to be better," no doubt ales and wines are to be preferred to alcoholic drinks. Coffee and tea are modified stimulants, whose 414 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. influences are more exactly limited to the ner- vous system than alcoholic stimulants. Habit- ually used in excess, they cause indigestion, emaciation, neuralgia, paralysis, impaired vis- ion, wakefulness, restlessness, palpitation of the heart, etc. They are, however, sometimes excellent medicines ; and may be drunk in moderate quantities by most persons who are in health without doing appreciable harm. Of tobacco, Franklin has said that "he could not think it had ever done much good in the world, since he never knew a person who used it habitually who would recommend an- other to do the same." Tobacco is certainly not food for man, nor has it much value as a medicine. The tobacco worm is the only animal known to thrive upon its use. Tobacco causes neuralgia, paralysis, espe- cially of the nerve of vision, tremors, etc. It impairs the appetite, dries up the fluids, gives a dirty, parchment color to the skin, stains the teeth, makes the gums spongy and tender, renders the breath foul, and causes not un- frequently cancer of the mouth, lips, and tongue. The habitual use of opium and other narcot- ics causes neuralgia, restlessness, wakeful- ness, paralysis, indigestion, innutrition, and dropsy. COFFEE ITS USES AND MEDI- CINAL QUALITIES. Dr. Bock of Leipsic says : ' The nervous- ness and peevishness of our times are chiefly attributable to tea and coffee ; " he' says that ' ' the digestive organs of confirmed coffee drinkers are in a state of chronic derangement, which reacts on the brain, producing fretful and lachrymose moods. Ladies addicted to strong coffee have a characteristic temper, which may be described as a mania for acting the persecuted saint," etc. I cannot agree with Dr. Bock that the ner- vousness and peevishness of the present time are to be attributed to the use of coffee. If people are more nervous or in worse humor now than formerly, we may find other causes arising from the customs and habits of society much more likely to produce such a state of things than the use of this particular article of diet. I have no intention of pointing out many changes and peculiarities in the habits of the age, to show many other more promi- nent reasons for people being in bad humor besides the use of coffee. My object is to de- fend coffee from a slander aimed at one of our best friends a friend more likely to relieve the morbid state of things complained of, than to produce it. Who that has experienced the i good effects of coffee can sit quietly and hear it abused? Especially by an estimable phy- sician who has written learned books on the nervous system. The nerves of every honest friend of coffee tremble with the shock of an attack from such a quarter. Let us examine the effects of coffee on the economy. Taken in moderation it is a mental and bodily stimulant of a most agreeable nature ; and, followed by no harmful reaction, it produces contentment of mind, allays hun- ger and bodily weakness, and increases the in- centive and capacity for work, makes man forget his misfortunes, and enables those who use it to remain a long time without food or sleep, to endure unusual fatigue, and preserve their cheerfulness and contentment. Jomand says : " An infusion made with ten ounces of coffee enabled me to live without other food for five consecutive days, without lessening my ordinary occupations,. and to use more and more prolonged muscular exercise than I was accustomed to, without any other physical injury than a slight degree of fatigue and a little loss of flesh." The mental exhilaration, physical activity, and wakefulness it causes, explain the fond- ness for it which has been shown by so many men of science, poets, scholars, and others devoted to thinking. It has, indeed, been called " the intellectual beverage." It supported the old age of Voltaire, and enabled Fontenelle to pass his hundred years. The action of coffee is directed chiefly to the nervous system. It produces a warming, cordial impression on the stomach, quickly followed by a diffused, agreeable nervous ex- citement, which extends itself to the cerebral functions, giving rise to increased vigor of imagination and intellect, without any subse- quent confusion or stupor, such as are char- acteristic of narcotics. Coffee contains essential principles of nu- trition far exceeding in importance its exhila- rating properties, and is one of the most desirable articles for sustaining the system in certain prostrating diseases ; as compared with the nutrition to be derived from the best of soups, coffee has decidedly the advantage, anf to be preferred in many instances. Liebig says: "We shall never know how men were first led to the use of coffee, but that we may consider the article as remarkable for its action on the brain and the substance of the organs of motion, and as an element of food for organs as yet unknown, which are destined to convert the blood into nervous substance, and thus recruit the energy and the nervous moving and thinking faculties." The medicinal effects of coffee are very DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 415 great. In intermittent fever I have used it with the happiest effect in cutting short the attack, and if properly managed is better in many cases than the sulphate of quinine. In that low state of intermittent, as found on the banks of the Mississippi river and other ma- larial districts, accompanied with enlarged spleen and torpid liver, when judiciously admin- istered it is one of the surest remedies. In these cases it should be given in decoction made with four ounces of well roasted and ground coffee, boiled in a quart (16 ounces) of water in a covered vessel, down to half a pint (4 ounces), and two tablespoonfuls given hot every two hours, commencing six hours before the expected attack, and keeping the patient well cover ad in bed. It has been found that in typhus fever coffee increases the elimination of urea, and so far purifies the blood without increasing the de- structive metamorphosis of tissue, and that it lessens coma and low delirium. In yellow fever, from a long experience, I consider coffee as my chief reliance, after other necessary remedies have been administered ; it restrains tissue change, and thus becomes a conservator of force, in that state in which the nervous system tends to collapse, because the blood has become impure ; it sustains the nervous power until the depuration and re- organization of the blood are accomplished, and lias the advantage over other stimulants in in- ducing no injurious secondary effects. In spasmodic asthma its utility is well es- tablished, and in whooping cough, stupor, lethargy, etc. In the hysterical attacks of some females, for which the physician can form no diagnosis or cause for the peculiar and eccentric symp- toms manifested ; a screaming, crying, staring, kicking patient, with no coherent answer for the medical adviser, at the same time with an evident tendency to act the persecuted saint give her a cup of well made, strong, black coffee, she becomes quiet, revives, smiles be- nignly, as if she had swallowed a panacea that had suddenly delivered her from the clutches of the imps of Satan and wafted her from all the miseries of a condemned and tortured spirit to the elysian fields of houris. We have used it as a remedy in croup, diphtheria, nephritis, chronic diarrhoea, etc. In poisoning from opium it is well known as the best remedy, and always on hand. Hayne says: "That in a case of violent spasmodic disease, attended with short breath, palpitation of heart, and a pulse so much increased in frequency that it could scarcely be counted, immediate relief was obtained from 3 cup of coffee, after the most powerful anti- spasmodics had been used in vain for several hours," etc. After a hearty meal a cup of coffee will re- lieve that sense of oppression so apt to be ex- perienced, and enable the stomach to perform its offices with comparative facility. In fact, coffee carries healing on its wings. It is opposed to malaria, to all noxious vapors ; as a disinfectant it has wonderful powers ; as an instantaneous deodorizer it has no equal ; for the sick room, the fetid odors arising from cutaneous exhalations are immediately neutralized by simply passing a chafing dish with burning coffee grains through the room. It may be urged that an article possessing such powers and capacity for such energetic action must be injurious as an article of diet of habitual employment, and not without del- eterious properties ; but I have never noticed any corresponding nervous derangement after its effects have disappeared, as is seen in nar- cotics and other stimulants. The action im- parted to the nerves is natural and healthy, and I must positively deny that the habitual use of the article is injurious. Habitual coffee drinkers generally enjoy good health and live to a good old age. Some of the oldest persons I have ever known have used it from earliest infancy without feeling any depressing reaction, such as is produced by alcoholic stimulants. In Porto Rico our fairest part of creation, at the tenderest age, have been induced to forget the delicious draught from the maternal foun- tain by the substitution of a decoction of coffee, which soon becomes the daily beverage. Henry Segur, M. D. COFFEE. Coffee is said to be a native of Arabia, but is has spread from thence throughout the trop- ical portions of the world and parts of the temperate zone ; it will grow in any climate where the temperature does not fall below fifty-five degrees. The best coffee of com- merce comes from Arabia, and is known as ! Mocha, the next best is the Java, and after i that the Ceylon, Bourbon, and Martinique. The principal supply of the United States, however, is derived from Brazil, which fur- nishes three fourths of the whole import. This is known as the Rio, and is the kind always supplied unless another variety is asked for. The only way Jo secure pure coffee is to buy the raw beans, roast, and grind them at home. When coffee is bought already roasted, the dis- advantage is in its losing its delicate aroma very rapidly ; when it is both roasted and ground, it very generally is adulterated with chicory, pease, or potatoes. Good coffee can- 416 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. not by any means be made from it, and in many cases dangerous decoctions have been made from adulterated coffee. In buying raw coffee, choose that which is dry and light ; the coffee which feels dense and weighty is green. Coffee which is from eight to ten months old is the best selection. The roasting of coffee in a proper manner requires great nicety, and cannot be done suc- cessfully without the aid of some such appa- ratus as those to be had for that purpose in the better class of furnishing stores. They are inexpensive, and the supply of charcoal needed for them is very trifling indeed ; not sufficient to justify their disuse. The cylinder which contains the coffee should be only half filled, and it should be turned rather slowly over the fire, which should never be very fierce, until a strong aromatic smell is emit- ted ; the movement should then be quick- ened, as the bean is in that case quite heated and it will scorch before it is roasted through if slowly finished. When the coffee is of a light, chestnut brown color, which can be as- certained by sliding back the door of the cylinder and looking at it occasionally towards the end of the process, spread it quickly over a large dish, beat up the white of an egg with a tablespoonful of incited butter, and stir up well with it, and then cover it over with a thickly folded cloth. Let it remain thus until it is quite cold ; then put it into canisters or bottles where the air cannot get at it. For grinding coffee there are two kinds of coffee mills, those which are portable and others for fixing against the walls. It should be ground to a moderately fine powder ; if it is too coarse the essence will be only partially extracted from it in making, while if it is too fine the water will not percolate through it and it will not be clear. No more should be ground at a time than will suffice for a single making. Coffee (boiled). Allow a tablespoonful of ground coffee to each person ; and for each tablespoonful a coffeecupf ul of water. Let the water boil, and while it is boiling stir in the coffee ; allow it to boil hard five minutes, then set it where it will simmer for ten min- utes ; pour out a large cupful, hold it high over the coffeepot, and pour it in again ; re- peat this, and then set it on the stove where it will keep hot without simmering for five or ten minutes longer. Coffee made thus will be perfectly clear unless it is mismanaged. Should fining be necessary, however, use a pinch of isinglass, or a small piece of the skin of salt codfish, or, better still, the shell of a raw egg with a little of the white adhering to it. Coffee (filtered). There are a great num- ber of patent coffeepots designed to make coffee after the Continental method without boiling, and as minute directions for using ac- company each one we will only mention that the principle involved in each is very simple, and consists in allowing hot water to percolate slowly through ground coffee into a receptacle below. Some of them are good, though need- lessly expensive ; but a simple filter or per- colator, as it is called, will answer perfectly well, and it can be obtained to fit any coffeepot. In making coffee by this method allow rather more coffee than when it is to be boiled ; spread the grounds over the percolator ; and pour on the boiling water, slowly till the coffee is saturated and then more rapidly. Should the coffee not be strong enough, run it through the filters again. Coffee made thus is thought to have a more delicate and aromatic flavor than when boiled ; but on the other hand, Mr. Donovan, a prominent English chemist, who has made a special study of the matter, thinks that it requires boiling for a little time to ex- tract the bitter principle in which much of the exhilarating quality of coffee resides. ALLSPICE. So called because it is thought to combine the flavor of cinnamon, nutmeg, and cloves. It is the berry of a handsome tree that grows to the height of twenty feet in the West Indies and South America. The fruit is not allowed to ripen, but is gathered while yet green ; when dried in the sun it becomes black. It is less expensive than the Oriental spices, is agreeably aromatic, and is considered the most mild and harmless of the common spices ; hence it is much used in cookery. The best comes from Jamaica. The essential oil of all- spice is of a deep reddish brown color, and ex- tremely pungent ; and a few drops is sufficient to give a flavor to gravy or to mulled wine. TO MAKE TEA. Allow two teaspoonfuls of tea to one large cupful of boiling water. Scald the teapot, put in the tea, pour on about a cupful of boiling water, set it on the fire in a warm place where it will not boil, but keep very hot, to almost boiling ; let it steep or " draw " ten or twelve minutes. Now fill up with as much boiling water as is required. Send hot to the table. It is better to use a china or porcelain teapot, but if you do use metal let it be tin, new, bright, and clean ; never use it when the tin is worn off and the iron exposed. If you do you are drinking tea-ate of iron. To make tea to perfection, boiling water must be poured on the leaves directly it boils. Water which has been boiling more than five DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 417 minutes, or which has previously boiled, should on no account be used. If the water does not boil, or if it be allowed to overboil, the leaves of the tea will be only half-opened and the tea itself will be quite spoiled. The water should be allowed to remain on the leaves from ten to fifteen minutes. A Chinese being interviewed for the Cook, says: Drink your tea plain. Don't add milk or sugar. Tea brokers and tea tasters never do ; epicures never do ; the Chinese never do. Milk contains fibrin, albumen, or some other stuff, and the tea a delicate amount of tannin. Mixing the two makes the liquid turbid. This turbidity, if I remember the cyclopaedia aright, is tannate of fibrin, or leather. People who put milk in tea are therefore drinking boots and shoes in mild disguise. TEA. As sold in the shops, tea is the leaf of the tea-tree, dried and stored for use. These leaves are gathered at three or four different seasons, by which in some measure the different quali- ties of tea are produced, those first picked be- ing the most valuable and the last coarse and large. The young leaves are narrow, convo- luted, and downy ; the middle-aged have their edges serrated and veined with more or less delicacy, while in the old leaves the serration and veining are more marked, and, in addition, some peculiar hoops are developed along the margins, which are readily seen when the leaves are closely examined. All teas are classed as black and green, depending partly on the age of the leaves, partly upon the locality where they are grown, and partly upon the method of drying. Thus the black tea is not only roasted in a shallow iron vessel, called the Kus, but it is also again submitted to the action of a charcoal fire, in sieves. Green tea, on the other hand, escapes the second process. As the names of the different teas relate to the time of their being gathered, or to some peculiarity in their manufacture, consumers should know something about them. Black Teas. As soon as the leaf-bud be- gins to expand, it is gathered to make Pekoe. A few days' later growth produces what here is called Black-leaved Pekoe. The next picking is called Souchong. As the leaves grow larger and more mature they form Congou ; and the last and latest picking is called Bohea. Bohea is called by the Chinese Ta-che (large tea), on account of the maturity and size of the leaves. It contains a larger proportion of woody fiber than other teas, and its infusion is of a darker color and coarser flavor. Congou, the next higher kind, is named from a corruption of the Chinese Koongfoo (great care, or assiduity). This forms the bulk of the black imported, and is most valued for its strength. Souchong, Seaon-chong (small, scarce sort), is the finest of the stronger black tea, with a leaf that is generally entire and curly. It is much esteemed for its fragrance and fine flavor. Pekoe is a corruption of the Canton name Pak-ho (white down), being the first sprouts of leaf-buds ; they are covered with a white silky down. It is a delicate tea, rather defi- cient in strength, and it is principally used for flavoring other teas. Green Teas. The following are the prin- cipal kinds : Twankay, Hyson-Skin, Hyson, Gunpowder, and Young Hysori. Young Hyson (when genuine) is a delicate young leaf, called in the original language, Yu-tsien (before the rains), because gathered in the early spring. Hyson, from the Chinese word, Hich'un, which signifies flourishing spring. This fine sort of tea is gathered in the early part of the season. There is extreme care and labor used in the preparation of this tea ; each leaf is picked separately, and nipped off above the foot stalk, and every separate leaf is twisted and rolled by the hand. It is much esteemed for its agreeable flavor. Gunpowder, as it is called, is nothing but Hyson rolled and rounded to give it the gran- ular appearance whence it derives its name. The Chinese call it Choo-cha (pearl-tea). Hyson-Skin is so named from the original Chinese term in which connection the skin means the refuse or inferior portion . In pre- paring Hyson, all those leaves that are of a coarse yellow, or imperfectly twisted appear- ance, are separated and sold as skin tea, at an inferior price. CHOCOLATE. A substance made from the seeds of the cocoa tree which grows extensively in the West Indies and South America. The seeds are about the size of an almond, and when broken into small pieces are subjected to great pressure until they are reduced to a rough powder, after which they are mixed with sugar and rolled into a very thick paste, or into a very fine powder, called chocolate. Chocolate is less exciting to the nervous sys- tem than tea or coffee, and at the same time it contains a much larger proportion of nutri- tive matter. Its flavor, moreover, is not les- sened by the addition of milk, so that it may be boiled in milk only and thus produce a most agreeable and nutritive food. " There are, therefore," says Dr. Edward Smith, " many persons, states of system, and circumstances, 418 THE CENTURY BOOK OF I ACTS. in which its use is to be preferred to either tea or coffee." CHEESE. Cheese is obtained exclusively from the milk of animals, and its quality varies with the class, breed, and food of the animal, and the process of manufacture. The most ordinary source of cheese is the milk of the cow, and there are certain varieties of cows which pro- duce much cheese and little butter, as there are others which produce much butter and little cheese. The kind of food given to the cows is very important, for just in proportion to the richness of the milk in casein and cream is the richness of the cheese. The value of cheese as an article of diet has not been entirely es- tablished. If we consider its chemical compo- sition, it is one of the richest of foods in nutri- tive elements ; but Dr. Smith has found that the popular belief that it is not easily digested is true. This objection, however, applies only to the new and poor cheese ; those that are old and rich not only digest easily, but promote the digestion of other food. That which is old and dry (but not decayed) may be given to children to relieve constipation. VARIETIES IJf MARKET. The following cheeses can generally be found in American markets. It is best to take the advice of a reliable dealer regarding the quantity of any cheese that it is wise to lay in at a time. Strong, in this list, means of a high flavor and odor, but not necessarily sharp. Most new cheeses are relatively mild, and develop their characteristics, especially sharpness, with age. American and Canadian Cheeses. Pineapple, English Dairy (imitations of), Fac- tory, and the homemade Cottage cheese, like the Schmeer Kase of the Germans. None of these are classed among strong cheeses. They are good all the year around, but the Cottage is best in summer. English Cheeses (Of variable strength, sometimes sharp). Stilton comes first in fame and price. It is so named from the place where it was first sold. The cheeses are mostly manufactured in Leicestershire. It takes two years to properly mature the cheese for use ; then it becomes decayed, blue, and moist. It is a common trick to hasten its maturity by putting each separate cheese in a bucket and covering it with horse dung. This rapidly gives the required appearance of maturity. In a district of Ross-shire they ripen their cheeses to make them like Stilton, by burying them below high water mark. Cottcnham A strong kind of Stilton. Cheddar (Mild). Made from new milk, re- taining its natural cream. English Dairy (Medium). Dutch Cheese. Dutchman's Head or Edam (Medium) . Not equal to the best cheeses of England, being hard. French Cheeses are generally for winter consumption, and come to us only from Octo- ber to May. Brie Cheeses (Mild). Are made from cream. Camembert (Strong). A little like the Swiss. Mont d'Or (Mild). From Central France. Made from goats' milk. Pont de Salu (Vary strong). Pont d'Eveque (Mild). A very pleasant cheese. More flavor than Brie. Roquefort (Medium and sharp). Made from the milk of goats and sheep, and ripened with great care in caverns. Solferino (Strong). German Cheeses. Limburger (very strong). Not considered ready for consump- tion until partly putrefied. Schabzieger or Sap Sago Which gets its green color from melilot leaves. Italian Cheeses. Livarno (Strong), Par- mesan (Medium slightly sharp). From the most fertile Milanese territory ; they are so full of oil that it has been erroneously supposed that oil was added to the curd. It was formerly supposed to be made from goat's milk, but it is made merely of skimmed cow's milk manip- ulated in a peculiar way. The best Parmesan is kept three or four years, and none is sent to market until it is at least six months old. Scotch Cheese. (Dunlop.) Which gets its flavor from lovage leaves, is the only one known here. Swiss Cheeses. Gruyere is the best of the Swiss cheeses, many of which are celebrated. It is made in the canton of Fribourg. Its pecul- iar flavor is said to be owing to the herbage of the mountain pastures on which the cows feed. Neufchatel (Variable). Is sold in small rolls, covered with tin foil ; it is simply a cream cheese such as is described above. CARE OF THE EYES. A writer on the care of the eyes, in an Eng- lish paper, says : " All are anxious to do this, but few know how effectually to do so, and many never think of the matter till failing eyesight warns them that it is absolutely neces- sary. By the latter, " says the same writer, ' ' the following suggestions will be read with interest : " The sight in most persons begins to fail from forty to fifty years of age, as is evidenced by an instinctive preference for large print ; a seat near the window for reading is selected : DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 419 there is an effort to place the paper at a con- venient distance from the eye, or to turn it so as to get a particular reflection of the light ; next the finger begins to be placed under the line read, and there is a winking of the eye as if to clear it, or a looking away at some dis- tant object to rest it ; or the fingers are pressed over the closed lids in the direction of the nose, to remove the tears caused by straining. ''Favor the failing sight as much as pos- sible. Looking into a bright fire, especially a coal fire, is very injurious to the eyes. Look- ing at molten iron will soon destroy the sight ; reading in the twilight is injurious to the eyes, as they are obliged to make great exertion. Reading or sewing with a side light injures the eyes, as both eyes should be exposed to an equal degree of light. The reason is, the sympathy between the eyes is so great that if the pupil of one is dilated by being kept par- tially in the shade, the one that is most exposed cannot contract itself sufficiently for protec- tion, a"hd will ultimately be injured. Those ffho wish to preserve their sight should ob- serve the following rules, and preserve their general health by correct habits : " 1. By sitting in such a position as will allow the light to fall obliquely over the shoul- ier upon the page or sewing. "2. By not using the eyes for such pur- poses by any artificial light. "3. By avoiding the special use of the ?yes in the morning before breakfast. " 4. By resting them for a half minute or no while reading or sewing, or looking at small objects ; and by looking at things at a distance or up to the sky ; relief is immediately felt by so doing. "5. Never pick any collected matter from the eyelashes or corners of the eyes with the finger nails ; rather moisten it with the saliva and rub it away with the ball of the finger. " 6. Frequently pass the ball of the finger over the closed eyelids toward the nose ; this carries off an excess of water into the nose it- self by means of the little canal which leads into the nostril from each inner corner of the eye, this canal having a tendency to close up in consequence of the slight inflammation which attends weakness of eyes. "7. Keep the feet always dry and warm, so as to draw any excess of blood from the other end of the body. " 8. Use eyeglasses at first, carried in the rest pocket attached to a guard, for they are instantly adjusted to the eye with very little trouble, whereas, if common spectacles are used, such a process is required to get them ready that to save trouble the eyes are often strained to answer a purpose. "9. Wash the eyes abundantly every morning. If cold water is used, let it be flapped against the closed eyes with the fingers, not striking hard against the balls of the eyes. " 10. The moment the eyes feel tired, the very moment you are conscious of an effort to read or sew, lay aside the book or needle and take a walk for an hour, or employ yourself in some active exercise not requiring the close use of the eyes." CARPETS. Before describing the various kinds of car- pets there are one or two points to be con- sidered. And first the material, colors, and pattern of the carpet must be adapted to the room into which it is to be put, and the other furniture of the room. Large patterns will not look well in small rooms, nor will very small patterns look well in large ones ; an ex- pensive carpet renders it necessary to have expensive furniture ; and every bit of color in the room, from the carpet to the ceiling, must have some harmony with every other. At the same time it must be borne in mind that there is harmony in contrasted colors as well as in those which are similar, and if the furniture is either very dark or very gay, the carpet should be either gay or neutral, in order to relieve the general effect. The large patterns which used to prevail have been discarded of late years ; and patterns as small as the room will bear are considered most desirable. Medallion carpets, or those with figures of animals, bouquets of flowers, baskets of roses, or stripes, should never be chosen : the most pleasing figures are simple geometrical designs, a tracery of vines, arabesques, or an almost solid neutral groundwork of broken lines. A carpet with much white in it is objectionable anywhere unless the furniture is very dark, but it should never be laid in a room that is much used ; on the other hand, a very dark carpet is almost as hard to keep clean. Carpets with blue or green, or any "delicate" color, fade on ex- posure to sunlight. A bordered carpet makes a room look smaller than it is ; and a small room will look larger if the floor is covered with a carpet of neutral tint and small figures. Axminster Carpet is expensive, but wears almost well enough to make up for it. There are French, English, and American Axminsters in the market ; they do not differ much from each other in cost, the price being from $2 to <$5 a yard. Brussels Carpet, on account of its dura- bility, is probably the cheapest for general use. The basis is a warp and woof of linen thread ; worsted threads are also interwoven, which are formed into loops by means of wires and form 420 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. the patterns, the linen threads uot being visible on the surface. When well made they are very durable, and, being at the same time ele- gant, are among the most desirable of all car- pets. Good English Brussels is worth about $1.25 to fl.75 per yard, three quarters of a yard wide. American about $1.00 to $1.50. \See TAPESTRY CARPET.) Dutch Carpet. A cheap carpet woven in pieces about a yard wide. The warp is of wool and the filling of wool, hemp, or cotton; and the only patterns are stripes and checks. This is very good for stairs. Price 75 cts. to $1.10. I M u rain Carpet is, perhaps, most fre- quently used in bedrooms and the like. It is made of two threads only, and the colors are reversed on either side ; in the best both threads are wool, in the cheaper kinds the warp is of cotton. The English Ingrain costs about $1 .25 per yard ; the American from 85 cte. to $1 .10 ; yard wide. Kidderminster Carpet. This is made of two woolen webs which intersect each other at various points to produce the pattern, which is the same on both sides with the color re- versed. They are woven in large squares to fit the room, and are of various qualities. A good article is worth about $1.25 per square yard. Moquette Carpet is a very rich and beautiful French carpet made on same princi- ple as Wilton. Price $1.25 to $1.75. Persian and Turkish Carpets. These are unequaled for richness of fabric and patterns ; they are woven with a soft pile like that of velvet, and some of the costliest of the Persian have floss silk mixed with the wool. The colors are indescribably rich and brilliant, and one of them spread upon the floor bright- ens up the most cheerless room. They are woven in one piece, and are from five to ten yards long, and from five to six wide. They are very expensive, and the finer qualities are appropriate only in elaborately furnished rooms. Printed Felt is made of coarse wools brought together by the process of felting, and the patterns are imprinted in colors by means of the rollers on which they are cut. It is bright colored but rather flimsy, and only appropriate for rugs, druggets, or table covers. It is of various widths. Price about $1.00 per square yard. Rag Carpet is the lowest in price of all, and can readily be made at home on a hand loom. Use a warp of strong cotton threads, and weave in any kind of rags by twisting them up into small rolls. It is thick, and serv- iceable to spread over kitchen floors in winter. Price in the shops about 50 cents a yard ; yard wide. Tapestry Carpet is an imitation of Brus- sels, but only one woolen thread is used instead of four or five different colors. The warp is of coarse linen threads, and the pattern ap- pears only on one side. Tapestry is very pretty, and in the best patterns is hard to dis- tinguish from Brussels ; but it is not durable, and is liable to fade. It is woven in pieces three fourths of a yard wide, and costs 50 cents to $1.25 per yard. Brussels is cheaper at twice the price. Three-Ply Carpets are the same as in- grain, except that a third thread is added, and this makes the pattern on the right side. It is the prettiest of the cheaper all-wool carpets ; but as the single layer of threads on the sur- face is liable to wear off, it is not s.o durable as ingrain, and cannot be turned like the lat- ter. Price, about $1.00 per yard ; yard wide. Velvet Carpet is an English material, in which the weaving is the same as tapestry; only the loops are cut, thus giving it a high pile, like velvet. It has a rich and soft effect, and wears better than tapestry. Price, about $1.50 per yard; three quarters yard wide. Wilton Carpet differs from Brussels jusi as velvet differs from tapestry ; after weaving, the loops are cut with a sharp knife, and a pile like that of velvet produced. Wilton is, perhaps, the most beautiful and durable of all carpets. Price, about $3.25 per yard ; three quarters wide. In Royal Wilton the pile is raised higher than in the common kind. AVood Carpet. This is a late invention. It is made of well-seasoned and kiln-dried hard woods, cut into strips one and one eighth to one and three eighths inches wide, and a quarter of an inch thick, and glued on to I heavy cotton drill. The wood is then planed j smooth and oiled. It rolls up like an oilcloth, can be sent anywhere, and can be put down by any good carpenter. It can be laid to look like ordinary flooring of one kind of wood, or in fancy designs, center pieces, etc. That of one kind of wood, or of alternate strips of dif- 1 ferent kinds, is a yard wide, at $1.25 to $2.50 a yard. The fancy styles cost from 35 cents to $1.25 per square foot. It is claimed for this carpeting that it is insect proof, that dust cannot penetrate it, that it is so thin as not to j interfere with door sills, etc., and that it is j very durable ; but it needs to be more thor- oughly'tested. CARE OF THE TEETH. DUTY OF DENTISTS. There is, perhaps, as much oversight or neg- lect by the average dentist, in the matter of cleansing the teeth, in the ordinary cases that eome to his care, aa in any other particular DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 421 in practice. How often it is that teeth that have been recently filled will exhibit upon their surfaces more or less of foreign matter, usually salivary calculus ! This is sometimes removed from the exposed surfaces, while it is permitted to remain in considerable quantities beneath the margin of the gums. When the care of a set of teeth and the mouth is committed to the dentist, the first step, so far as treatment and manipulation is concerned, is to render all the teeth thoroughly clean, removing every particle of foreign mat- ter, and polishing the surfaces as perfectly as possible ; giving particular attention to all rough and abraded places. The gums should be rendered healthy and freed from all irritants. In proper and systematic treatment this should precede the operation of filling. Still, in some cases, it will be necessary that all go on to- gether, but the rule should be that thorough cleansing precede the operation of filling. Cleaning the teeth and making the mouth healthy is as important as, and, indeed, more so in some respects, than the operation of filling decayed teeth. If the profession could feel the full impor- tance of this, better success would attend the operation of filling. He who neglects the condition of the mouth in respect to health and purity, and simply fills teeth, irrespective of these conditions, does both himself and patient great injustice. Such operations, however well performed, are far less efficient than they would be if the mouth were kept clean and free from disease. Nor is it enough that the mouth be made healthy and pure, but it must be kept so, if the work of the dentist is to be of permanent service. And in order that this good condi- tion of the mouth be maintained the patient should have a clear understanding of its im- portance, and of the means by which it is ac- complished, and be made to feel that it is mainly dependent upon himself. It is the duty of the dentist, not only to fully impress this fact upon the mind of his patient, but also to give him all needed information as to the means to be used. In order that the mouth be kept in proper condition, it should be examined thoroughly once in from four to twelve months ; with some as often as every four months ; with others once in twelve months will suffice. The dentist who has the best interest of his patients at heart, and a just appreciation of his own repu- tation, cannot afford to dismiss them indefi- nitely, or until the patient finds something breaking down, or is admonished by the pain of some active disease. It is very often that quite faulty filling in mouths kept healthy and clean seem entirely to arrest decay of the teeth in which they are ; while in mouths that are neglected, impure, and diseased, the most perfect fillings utterly fail to save the teeth for any considerable time. Were dentists as careful in this matter as they ought to be, there would be far less of failure in operating upon the natural teeth than is at present realized ; and the appreciation of the service of the dentist would be much greater, and his reputation of a higher order than at present, a result to be greatly desired. Toothpicks. At the temperature of the mouth, only a few hours is sufficient to induce a putrefactive change of particles of food left between the teeth. They should be removed with the quill or wooden toothpick, or with floss silk. Silk is preferable, as it can be passed between teeth that stand in contact, and effectually cleanses the surface that cannot be reached by the pick or the brush. If this be too expensive, linen threads, such as are used by shoemakers, may be substituted. Toothbrushes should be used with great thoroughness every night and morning, and, if practicable, after every meal. Great care should be taken, however, to select brushes not too harsh and stiff, as they may do much harm to the gums. On the other hand, if brushes are too soft, the teeth will not be well cleansed. Powders should always be used, as by their help the sticky mucus is more thoroughly removed and the surface kept smooth and pol- ished. The chalk of which they are mostly made, has also an affinity for the acids, thereby protecting the teeth. Soap is very cleansing, and may be always used to advantage. Most of the powders before the public may be con- sidered reliable. The chalk and orris, of which they are chiefly made, are so cheap that there is no inducement for adulteration. Washes for the teeth and gums may be used, but care should be taken to avoid those which are astringent. Such may be used to advantage in case of diseased gums, but in a state of health the teeth and gums need to be cleansed, not medicated. BALDXESS. In an article recently contributed to the Gesundheit a paper, as its name imports, de- voted to sanitary subjects Professor Reclam, a German Gelehrter, makes some timely and useful observations on the subject of baldness. After describing, in a vein of pleasantry, the vast array of bare polls which may be seen any evening in the pit of a theater or the body of a lecture room, he discusses the causes of bald- ness. He does not think, as is sometimes said, 422 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. that loss of hair is the result either of impaired health or of much study. The strongest men Are often bareheaded, and German professors, who are nothing if not studious, are distin- guished above all men by the profusion of their locks. On the other hand, soldiers and postilions, who wear heavy helmets and leather caps, and wear them a good deal, are fre- quently as bald as billiard balls. From these facts Herr Reclam draws the conclusion that baldness is chiefly due to the artificial deter- mination of blood to the head, and to the heat and perspiration thence arising. The result is a relaxed condition of the scalp and loss of hair. If the skin of the head be kept in a healthy state, contends the professor, the hair will not fall off. To keep it healthy, the head- covering should be light and porous, the head kept clean by washings with water, and the hair cut short. The nostrums vended as hair restorers, and on which a fabulous amount of money is wasted by the ignorant for the bene- fit of quacks, he denounced as worse than useless. In ninety-nine cases out of a hundred they are worse than useless. Cleanliness and cold water are the sole trustworthy specifics ; but when once the hair roots are destroyed, not all the oil of Macassar, the bear's grease of Siberia, nor the cantharides of Spain will woo back the vanished locks. TREATMENT OF THE HAIR. How to preserve the hair is a subject which seems to interest almost everybody, if we may judge from the frequent inquiries from every direction which come to our attention. One wishes to know what will prevent baldness, another how to preserve his hair from turn- ing gray, another how to eradicate dandruff, etc. Now it is a delicate matter to recommend any special treatment, but Professor Wilson, of England, who is deemed high authority on the hair, condemns washing it, and advises, instead, thorough brushing. This promotes circulation, removes scurf, and is in all respects, he says, better than water. Cutting the hair does not, as commonly thought, promote its growth. Most of the specifics recommended for baldness, not ex- cepting petroleum, are mere stimulants, and are seldom or never permanently successful. Some of them give rise to congestion of the scalp. When^a stimulant is desirable, ammo- nia is the best! It is safe. For falling out of the hair, Dr. Wilson pre- scribes a lotion composed of water of ammonia, almond oil, and chloroform, one part each, diluted with five parts alcohol, or spirits of rosemary, the whole made fragvant with a drachm of oil of lemon. Dab it on the skin, after thorough friction with the hair brush. It may be used sparingly or abundantly, daily or otherwise. For a cooling lotion, one made of two drachms of borax and glycerine to eight ounces of distilled water is effective, allaying dryness, subduing irritability, and removing dandruft. Both baldness and grayness depend on de- fective powers of the scalp skin, and are to be treated alike. What is needed is moderate stimulation, without any irritation. The fol- lowing is good : Rub into the bare places daily, or even twice a day, a liniment of cam- phor, ammonia, chloroform, and aconite, equal parts each . The friction should be very gentle. SPECTACLES(Hints on the use of). From a valuable little book, " Practical Re- marks on Impaired Vision," by Mr. Cooper, the well-known London optician, we extract the following: "It cannot be too strongly urged upon anyone about to use spectacles for the first time that that power which will enable him to read without much exertion by candle- light is the only power suitable for him. It is by candlelight only that he should use glasses at first, and as soon as he finds that he stands in need of glasses by day as well as by candle- light, and that the glasses he uses no longer afford him sufficient assistance by candlelight, it will be proper to use the next power for the evening, but for the evening only, and to al- low himself the use of the others and their use only during the day. " The greatest caution as to increasing the power of glasses should be observed ; for per- sons who change their glasses, unnecessarily increasing their power each time, are exhausting the resources of art, instead of economizing them as much as possible. Optical aid can only be extended to a certain point, and the steps to that point should be as slow- and as numerous as possible. By exercising prudent precautions, persons may often attain great age, and yet never require the aid of glasses beyond a very moderate power ; others, on the contrary, who from ignorance frequently increase the power of their glasses, may run through the whole assortment, and leave themselves only the most inconvenient resources to fall back upon viz., the very highest powers." Common, cheap spectacles sometimes appear to answer as well as those which cost three or four times as much ; but cheap glasses are not to be depended upon ; they are sometimes ground irregularly and imperfectly, and then they injure the eyes. It is better, therefore, to have spectacles from a respectable optician, who has a character to maintain. Spectacles having leases called pebbles, which is rock DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE DIETETICS. 423 crystal, are not liable to be scratched like glass ; but they are not in any degree better than those of glass for the eyesight ; and if care be taken of the latter- they do just as well. There are three kinds of spectacle glasses, the convex, the concave, and the periscopic. The first are to correct short sight, the second to correct long sight, while the periscopic are for either. This last description of lens is both concave and convex, the former on the side nearest the eye, the latter on the side furthest from it. For long sight, as well as short, the convexity and concavity are made to differ so as to furnish any required focus. It is to be observed that in glasses of this form the aberration of light is greater than in any other lenses, and that periscopic glasses are liable to be scratched. They have, however, one very great advantage, which is this : "With common glasses, especially concave, the wearer can see only through the exact middle of the lens ; he must, therefore, turn his head whenever he directs his view to any lateral object. With periscopic glasses he may see through any part of them, and can observe objects by his side without turning his head. If, however, periscopic glasses be defectively made, they are injurious to the eyes. They should be gauged and examined before they are purchased, to be assured of their accuracy. HAIR. The proper management of the hair is very simple. It should be kept as clean as possible by daily brushing with a stiff brush, by re- moval of the scurf that forms upon the skin (See DANDRUFF), and by occasionally washing it with pure cold water, which will have no injurious effect upon the health, provided the hair is not so long as to make its drying diffi- cult. To assist in drying it thoroughly, dip the brush into a very little hair powder or starch, brush it into the hair, and then brush it out. After this a little perfumed pomatum may be brushed in too much not only makes the hair greasy, but injures it. There is a natural oil secreted by the hair which ought to be sufficient for keeping it in good order, but this is often deficient, and the hair be- comes dry and harsh ; then it is that the defi- ciency may be supplied by a little pomatum or oil. A multitude of hair oils are sold by perfumers, their compositions being kej.t secret, and each being represented as having extraordinary qualities. It is best to have nothing to do with any of them, for when they are not injurious they are no better than prep- arations which can be made at home with little trouble, and for which we shall give a receipt or Iwp further along. When hair has become too greasy from too free use of oil or pomatum, it is proper to remove the unctuous matter by persistent brushing. Occasionally soap is resorted to for this purpose, but soap will change the color of the hair, and should be used cautiously. A little white soap dis- solved in spirits of wine is most effectual and less injurious than soap alone. After using it the hair must be well washed with water. It is very doubtful whether frequent cutting of the hair is favorable to its growth and beauty, as is generally assumed. It always renders the hair coarse and stubby, and it is certain that the common practice of cropping or shaving the head, for the purpose of strength- ening the growth of the hair, not only fails of this effect, but often produces total baldness. The loosening and falling out of the hair is frequently the direct result of fever or derange- ment of the system, but is more often the con- sequence of weakness of the nervous power. It may be checked by improvement of the general health and the use of proper local rem- edies. A useful practice, when the hair is sufficiently short, is to plunge the head into cold water every morning and night, and, after thoroughly drying, to brush it briskly until the scalp is warmed to a glow. A sim- ple lotion composed of 2 drachms of tincture of cantharides, 6 drachms of essence of rose- mary, and 11 ounces of elder-flower water may be effectually employed as a tonic. In cases of baldness the scalp may be advantageously shaved and the secretion of the hair stimulated by dry friction, tonic lotions (rum for exam- ple), and by a stimulating diet. There is a premature grayness which sometimes occurs in the young, chiefly in those of light complexion and light colored hair. It comes from the same causes as the loosening or falling out of tin hair. Dyeing the hair is the most absurd of all at- tempts at human deceit, since it never is suc- cessful, and deceives no one but the deceiver himself. The practice is generally begun with the idea that a single application will be suffi- cient for all time ; but the dye only discolors that portion of the hair above the surface of the scalp. The new growth, which is con- stantly taking place from the roots, appears always with the natural tint. Moreover, there is no dye which does not injure the hair itself; and many of them those containing lead or arsenic tend to paralyze the brain and ner- vous system. WINE. This term is usually applied only to the fermented juice of the grape ; when other fruits, as currants, blackberries, gooseberries, 424 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Wine. Alcohol, per cent. Roussillon 15.96 Hermitage, White 16.14 Lisbon 17.46 Sherry 17.63 Constantia 18.2!) Madeira 20.31 Port 21.75 elderbenies, etc., are used instead of grapes in making it, the product is generally distin- guished as domestic or homemade wine. Di- rections for making all the different kinds of homemade wines are given under the special fruit from which each is made ; and informa- tion as to the choice and serving of the various wines commonly used in this country is given under the name of each. We shall confine ourselves here, therefore, to a few general ob- servations which will apply equally to all wines. The quantity of alcohol is the first element which determines their price. A duty is levied on all wines coming into this country, and those containing less than a certain percentage of alcohol pay less than those containing more. The proportion of alcohol in the stronger wines has been determined by Brande as fol- lows : Wine Alcohol, lne> per cent. Tokay 9.15 Hermitage, Red .-> ....11.40 Champagne 11.65 Vin de Grave 11.84 Burgundy 12.20 Hock 13.31 Bordeaux Claret 13.53 Marsala 15.14 Wines, however, are not consumed for their alcohol alone ; they contain other ingredients which they derive from the grape juice, which give them taste and flavor. Thus, when fer- mentation of the grape juice is not complete, a certain quantity of sugar is left, and according to the quantity of sugar left wines are said to be "sweet " or " dry." While hocks, clarets, and other light wines contain little or no sugar, port, sherry, and champagne always contain a large amount. In the case of port and sherry this sugar is added during the manufacture, in order to enable them to bear exportation. There are three other qualities in wines which demand some consideration. The first is what is called the bouquet and the flavor. These things are sometimes confounded, but they are really different. The vinous flavor is common to all wines, but the bouquet is pecul- iar to certain wines. Tle substance which gives flavor to all wines is oenanthic ether, and it is formed during the fermentation of the grape juice. The bouquet of wines is formed in the same way by some of the acids found in the grape juice after fermentation combining with the ethyl of the alcohol, and forming ejhers. These are the things which make one wine more pleasant to drink than another, and which give their high prices to the best wines. They are not detectable by any chemical agency ; but it is the taste of these bouquets, and noth- ing else, which gives to one wine the value of five, dollars a bottle, and to another fifty cents, when all other qualities are precisely the same. The second point in the nature of wines is their color. Some wines are what is called "red "and others are "white." Ports, clar- ets, burgundies, are all red ; also many other wines. The red colors of these wines have been analyzed with some care, but they do not seem to exert any influence upon the system. The most important agent in them is tannic acid, or tannin, which exists in some wines to a very large extent, and which is produced by the skins of the grapes used in making the wine. It gives an astringency to red wines which is not found in white. The other color- ing matters described by chemists are blue and I brown. These also come from the skins of the grapes, and the latter is found in dark white wines as well as in red. The other matters which give a character to wines are the saline compounds. These sub- stances, which constitute the ashes of all vege- table tissues, exist in a varying quantity in all fruits, and are found dissolved in the juices of fruit ; hence we find them remaining in wine after fermentation of the juice. The most abundant of these salts is bitartrate of potash (cream of tartar). Besides this, wines contain tartrate of lime, tartrate of alumina, tartrate of iron, chloride of sodium, chloride of potassium, sulphate of potash, and phosphate of alumina. These salts occur in the proportion of from one to four parts in the one thousand of wine. They do not make much difference in the flavor or action of wines ; but their presence or absence is one of the surest indications of the genuineness of a wine. Those who manu- facture wines with alcohol and water and add a certain quantity of good wine to give a flavor, do not usually add these mineral constituents, which are always the best test of a pure wine. Champagne. The most celebrated of the French wines, chiefly produced in the prov- ince of that name. It is generally understood in this country to be a brisk, effervescing, sparkling white wine of a peculiar flavor; but this is only one of several varieties. There care both red and white champagnes, and both of them may be either sparkling or still ; the sparkling wines are called mousseux, and the still non-mousseux. The sparkling are most highly esteemed, on account of their delicate flavor, and the agreeable pungency which is given them by the carbonic acid they contain. There is a great difference in the quality of champagne wines, according to the particular vineyards at which they have been made. The finest are produced in the sloping grounds on the north bank of the river Marne ; and they are mostly while wines. Owing to excessive adulterations and intox.icating effects cham- DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 425 pagne is considered a very dangerous beverage. There is no wine, with the possible exception of sherry, that is more extensively adulterated and imitated by artificial combinations than sparkling champagne. The sparkling of cham- pagne is properly caused by the fermentation of rock candy introduced into still wine. In- ferior wines have carbonic acid pumped in ; in either case the sparkle cannot be depended upon for more than two years. The red cham- pagnes are not used much in this country ; they seldom equal Burgundy, which they much resemble. That of Clos de St. Thierry is considered the best. In selecting champagne, many consider the briskness and effervescence as a test of their excellence ; but a good judge will prefer a liquor of moderate briskness, as much of the aroma evaporates with the froth. Champagne must be kept in an equable temperature, and cooled by ice, outside of the bottle, never in the wine. It intoxicates quickly and the ex- citement it produces is of a more vivacious and agreeable character than that which comes from any other wine, but its duration is shorter, and the reaction less. For this rea- son it is sometimes used as a tonic for invalids and those suffering from a very debilitated condition. The best brands are: Pornmery and Greno, Roederer, Mumm, Due de Monte- bello, Krug, Geisler, and Heidsieck. Veuve Clicquot is highly prized as one of the best of the sweet wines. Claret. - Those wines which are known to us as claret are the product of the country around Bordeaux ; but in France there is no wine known as claret, which is simply a cor- ruption of clariet, a term applied there to any ! red or rose-colored wine. The genuine wines ! of Bordeaux are of great variety, that being one of the most famous wine districts of France, I and a number of them are of the first quality. The principal vineyards are those of Medoc, ! Palus, Graves, and Blanche, the produce of | each being different in character. The red Medoc wines are the best, and are known as Latour, Lrftte, Chateau Mitrnattx, etc. When in perfection, they are of a rich red color, have a most agreeable bouquet, and are strong and somewhat intoxicating. The Lajitte is considered to have the finest flavor ; the Chateau Margaux is next in rank ; the Latour is the strongest, and has the fullest body, but lacks the softness of the others. Besides these there are vast quantities of second and third rate i Medoc wines, which seldom find their way out ! of France in a pure state. All the Medoc | wines are improved by a sea voyage. The wines of Graves are so called from the gravelly soil on which they are produced ; they are both red and white, but the latter is most celebrated. Some of the red resemble Bur- gundy in flavor, but are inferior to good Me- doc wines. Another class of white Bordeaux wines well known in this country are Barsac, Sauterne, and Beaume, which have the advantage of keeping long and having considerable dryness. The Palus wines are inferior to the Medoc and Graves. They are strong and rough when new, and are often used to mix with Medoc wines to give them additional strength and body ; when old, some of them have a fine bouquet. The Bordeaux wines, when genuine, are among the best that France produces ; but they seldom reach us in a pure state. The in- ferior are mixed with the better kind for ex- portation ; and very often they are adulterated with the cheap Spanish wines of Alicant, or with brandy. The highest grades of claret, which we sel- dom get in this country, are said to keep from fifteen to eighteen years, improving in delicacy, After that time they rapidly deteriorate and soon become repulsive in odor, and nauseating to the taste. Madeira. A white wine made in the island of Madeira, which, when genuine, is one of the richest wines in the world, hav- ing great strength, dryness, and delicacy of flavor. It is extremely durable in all cli- mates, and improves with age. Madeira, be- ing a strong wine naturally, has, least of all, occasion for the addition of brandy ; yet it is the constant practice to add some of this spirit previous to exportation, which is incorporated in time. The inferior kinds are made up with almonds and various additions ; and, in fact, the adulterations are so numerous that the wine has lately fallen into comparative disrepute. The prejudice against Madeira has been considerably in- creased by the supposed discovery that it con- tains a little more acid than sherry, but this opinion has been disputed, and seems to have been derived from the inferior Madeiras. Several years ago, the vines failed in the island of Madeira, and the best Madeira is now very old. The new wine made from vines planted in the island within a few years is excellent for its age. Madeira keeps best in demijohns in a mod- erately warm place, though it keeps quite well in bottles. Warmth seems to ripen it and bring out its best qualities. Burgundy. The choicest wines of the ancient province of Burgundy in France are among the richest, most aromatic, and deli- 426 THE CENTURY BOOK OP FACTS. cately flavored in the world. They are im- perfectly known in this country, but if properly bottled the\ can be brought over in good con- dition, and it is to be hoped they will become better known, especially in our sick rooms. The Burgundy wines are of two kinds, white and red. The red is much the finer of the two, but the best of these rarely leave France. The first in quality of the red wines- is the Romance Conti, but this is not easy to get even in France ; the next in order of excellence are C7o.s Vouf/eot, Chambcrtln, Pommard, Nuitx,Vol- \ nay, and Beaune. The Macon wines are lighter i and of a lower grade. The higher grades of Burgundy should be drunk at the temperature of the room, never iced. High grade Burgun- dies will keep for Irom twenty to thirty years, or even, longer, while the lower grades are best at the age of from five to ten years. Burgundies are often sorved in a cradle. The white Burgundies are smaller in num- ber and inferior in quality to the red ; but some of them rank very high for their fine flavor, as the ChaUis, Mont Racket, La Goutte a" Or, and Les Charmes. Pure, unadulterated Burgundy is more mild and less intoxicating than many other wines, j but stimulating and highly tonic in effect. It is doubtful if very much real Burgundy wine reaches this country. Catawba Wine. One of the best and most popular of the native American wines. considered by many to be superior to most of j the French and German wines, at least such of them as are to be had in our markets. It is made from the Catawba grapes, which grow abundantly in the valley of the Ohio and in other parts of the country. It is a sweet wine, containing in its pure state from ten to twelve per cent, of alcohol, and is made either into still or sparkling wine ; the latter, which is most in demand, contains an addition of al- cohol and consequently is stronger. Catawba wine is mostly white, though some red wine is made. It is fit for use two years from the time the grapes are pressed, but reaches per- fection, according to Mr. Longworth, when *hout seven years old. DANDRUFF. There is no permanent remedy for dandruff except frequent and regular brushing of the hair and keeping the head as clean as possible, ! The use of pomades or grease of any kind must be abandoned or kept within the most rigid limits ; and about once a week the head should be washed with clean cold water with a few drops of ammonia in it. rubbing the scalp vig- orously with the fingers, and brushing the j out dry. The hair washes and other! preparations sold for this purpose are generally worthless, and, even when they afford tempo- rary relief, they always aggravate the evil in the end. The cause of dandruff is the failure of the skin on the scalp to perform its functions properly, usually on account of the pores being stopped up with grease ; and the only remedy is to bring the skin back to its normal condition, which can be done only by cleanliness, local friction, and attention to the general health. NON-ALCOHOLIC DRINKS AND HOME-MADE BEVERAGES. The question of cooling summer drinks is one of importance to large numbers. The re- freshing influence of acids is well known. From the number of acids which is found in nature, it is evident that they are essential to our life and well-being. The degree of acids employed in drinks will necessarily be largely a matter of taste. Many will find relief from a beverage composed of diluted and unsweet- ened lemon or lime juice with an equal part of any pure form of effervescing water. The beverages which best serve the purpose of relieving thirst are the sour liquids : lem- onade, raspberry vinegar and other fruit juices, or those, which, though not acid in them- selves, have been rendered acid in taste by being charged with carbon dioxide. The carbonated and mineral waters are the best for the elimination of waste material. The special virtues and medicinal qualities of the noted mineral waters are known through- out the civilized world. These waters have all been carefully analyzed and found to con- tain the ingredients as below given. They may be prepared at home and drank with veiy nearly equally beneficial effects as though taken from the original spring. Hunyadi Jaiios Water. Sulphate of lime, 1 ounce; glauber salts, 24 ounces; Epsom salt, 26 ounces; sulphate of potassa, 1 drachm ; pure spring water, 10 gallons. Violiy Water. Carbonate of ammonia, 10 grains; bicarbonate of soda, 5 ounces; common salt, 6 drachms; phosphate of soda, 25 grains ; sulphate of soda, 4 scruples ; sul- phate of potassa, 2 drachms ; pure spring water, 10 gallons. Congress Water. Calcined magnesia, 1 ounce ; bicarbonate of soda, 20 grains ; hydrate of soda, 23 grains; common salt, 7^ ounces; pure spring water, 10 gallons. Carlsbad Water. Sulphate of soda, 100 grains ; carbonate of soda, 25 grains ; sulphate of magnesia, 15 grains; chloride of sodium, 16 grains; chloride of calcium, 15 DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 427 grains ; tartrate of iron and potassa, 10 grains ; pure spring water, 10 gallons. Hot drinks, as tea, coffee, hot water, while aiding in the washing out of waste material, also tend to cool the body by increasing the perspiration. Besides the sour lemonade, raspberry vine- gar and orangeade, whose pleasant taste and thirst-relieving properties are well known, many other essences and fruit juices contain- ing more or less acid are used to relieve thirst. Unfermented grape juice is recommended as an excellent beverage for invalids, being wholly free from alcohol. Root beer, sarsaparilla and ginger ale are non-alcoholic and are wholesome when pure. The great American drink is soda in all its various forms. Soda water, which, by the way, contains no soda whatever, is water charged with carbonic acid gas, and flavored to suit the taste. ANTIDOTES FOR POISONS. The following list gives some of the more common poisons and the remedies most likely to be on hand in case of need : Acids. These cause great heat and sensa- tion of burning pain from the mouth down to the stomach. The remedies are : Magnesia, soda, pearl ash, or soap dissolved in water, every two minutes ; then use the stomach pump or an emetic. Alkali Drink freely of water with vinegar or lemon juice in it, made very strong of the sour. Ammonia. -Remedy is lemon juice or vin- egar. Arsenic Remedies. Give prompt emetic of mustard and salt, a tablespoonful of each, in a ~effeecup oi warm water ; then follow with sweet oil, butter made warm, or milk. Also may use the white of an egg in half a cupful of milk or lime water. Chalk and water is good, and the preparation of iron, ten drops in water every half hour ; hydrated magnesia. Alcohol. First cleanse out the stomach by an emetic, then dash cold water on the head, and give ammonia (spirits of hartshorn). Laudanum, Morphine, Opium. First give a strong emetic of mustard and water, then very strong coffee and acid drinks ; dash cold water on the head, then keep in motion. Belladona. Give an emetic of mustard, salt and water ; then drink plenty of vinegar and water or lemonade. Charcoal. In poisons, by carbonic gas, re- move the patient to the open air, dash cold water on the head and body, and stimulate the nostrils and lungs with hartshorn, at the same time rubbing the chest briskly. Corrosive Sublimate, Saltpetre, Blue Vitriol, Bedbug Poison. Give white of egg, freshly mixed with water, in large quantities ; or give wheat flour and water, or soap and water freely, or salt and water, or large draughts of milk. Lead. White lead and sugar of lead. Give an emetic, then follow with cathartics, such as castor oil, and Epsom salts especially. Nux Vomica First emetics, and then brandy. Oxalic Acid (frequently taken for Epsom salts). First give soap and water, or chalk or magnesia and water. Give every two min- utes. White Vitriol. Give plenty of milk and water. Tartar Emetic. Take large doses of tea made of white oak bark, or peruvian bark. Drink plenty of warm water to encourage vom- iting; then, if the vomiting should not stop, give a grain of opium in water. Nitrate of Silcer (lunar caustic). Give a strong solution of common salt and water, and then an emetic. Verdigris* Give plenty of white of egg and water. Tobacco. Emetics, frequent draughts of cold water ; camphor and brandy. COSMETICS. This term is usually applied to substances used for the purpose of beautifying the skin. They may be divided into two kinds : those which are injurious and even dangerous by rea- son of some of the ingredients of which they are really composed ; and those which, though harmless in themselves, are highly injurious when applied to the skin, because they arrest that insensible perspiration through the pores by which the temperature of the body is pre- served and a large part of its refuse matter thrown off. Under the first class fall nearly all those French preparations, so often used in the toilet, such as pearl-white, beruse, rouge, and the like ; these are never composed of the harmless materials which are claimed to be employed, and in rour/c arsenic has repeatedly been detected. The least objectionable article used as a cosmetic is the mixture of hydrated oxide of bismuth with the subnitrate of the same metal, known as the magister of bismuth. Applied to the skin, its only injurious effects appear to be the interruption of the insensible perspiration referred to above, which after long-continued use produces a tendency to clamminess ; a slight nausea, too, is sometimes experienced in consequence of its use, accom- panied with spasms and flatulence. It has the disagreeable quality, however, of turning black on the face when exposed to sulphureted hy 428 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. drogen, a gas frequently met with in badly- ventilated rooms, and, indeed, everywhere that gas or sewers exist. The perfume of onion also has a tendency to turn it black. There is nothing, it must be borne in mind, that can really beautify the skin except bathing, exer- cise, and a regular compliance with the laws of health. EARTHEXWARE. The various wares known as earthenware, china, or porcelain, are all compounds of clay, with bone earth, flint, and other similar ma- terials, ground together and baked. Accord- ing to the proportion of clay will be the toughness of the china, and the capability of being molded, while the flint and bone earth give hardness, whiteness, and transparency. There are two main divisions of table- ware glazed earthenware and china or porce- lain. Nearly all are originally white, and sorted after baking. The finer only are then decorated and re-baked. When glazed earth- enware chips, the exposed surface becomes dark ; in porcelain it remains white. The finer Oriental china, and that of Sevres and Dresden, cost from $300 up, for a set for twelve persons. The sets generally are for eighteen. The ordinary decorated French china costs from $45 to $500 per set. The white French china costs from $35 to $300, depending on quality. The decorated English china costs from $150 up. Broken pieces can- not be duplicated here, as the decoration is printed on, from designs more elaborate than the handwork of the average French sets. The French can be duplicated here at a few weeks' notice. The English is heavier and much more durable. Both the French and the Eng- lish make a decorated glazed earthenware that is very durable more so than French china, and possibly than English china. It costs from $30 to $125 per set ; the various pieces can generally be bought separately, which is not the case with decorated china. For econ- omy, plates and cups of this ware, with tureen, vegetable dishes, etc., of plated silver, is prob- ably the best possible arrangement. Still fur- ther variety in this or any service is desirable, and may be had through pickle dishes, compo- tiers, etc., of other kinds of ware. The so-called Ironstone and Stone China are merely glazed earthenware undecorated. Sets cost from $20 to $40. As regards the finer porcelain, the following remarks may be of service : Oriental China is remarkable for its close texture, its flinty hardness, fine surface, and capacity for bearing heat. It is supposed to ' take from ten to twenty years to get some of these wares into a state fit for baking. They are generally very expensive, but extremely durable. Dresden China is finer in outline than the Oriental, and the best kinds are fully as dura- ble. Secres China is of French manufacture and is not so close or fine in the grain as those above alluded to ; but it has a superior glaze, and is generally of elegant shape, with beauti- ful colors and magnificent gilding. The common lied Earthenware is that used most extensively for cooking, dairy, and other purposes. It does not stand the heat well, and is very easily broken. Acids should never be put into any vessels made of this ware, as there is a poisonous ingredient in the glazing which the acid takes off. The common stone- ware is stronger and cleaner and better every way than any other kind. CATHARTICS. A class of medicines that act strongly on the bowels as purgati% - es. Their number is very large, and they may be divided into several classes : mechanical, including unbolted meal of various kinds, fruits, and mustard seed ; oily, as castor and croton oil ; saline, as mag- nesia and its carbonate, sulphate, and citrate, sulphate, and phosphate of soda, etc. ; acid or bitter, as rhubarb, senna, colocynth, and aloes ; resinous, as jalap, gamboge, scammony ; and mercurial, as calomel and blue pill. Their action varies greatly, from the mild and almost natural effect of magnesia and aloes, to the violent purging of jalap and gamboge. Cathar- tics are very commonly used in domestic medi- cine, and probably no class of drugs is so fre- quently abused ; a resort to them being so easy as to lead in many instances to the neglect of highly important hygienic rules. A due atten- tion to diet, exercise, and bathing would be a far more effective remedy than any cathartics for a majority of the difficulties for which the latter are used. In many cases, however, their use is necessary, and directions for them are given under the various diseases. Castor oil, Epsom salts, magnesia, aloes, rhubarb, and senna are the only cathartics that should be used without medical advice ; the most violent ones may produce serious results. No cathar- tics, however, either should or can be relied upon to cure constipation, to " work off a cold," or to relieve dyspepsia ; in all such cases a cure can be looked for only in a due ob- servance of hygienic laws. CRABS. Though not so popular as lobsters, crabs are among the most pleasantly flavored fish of DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 429 their class. They are in season from June to January, but are considered to be more whole- some in the cold months. The middling sized, when heavy, lively, and possessed of large claws, are the best and sweetest ; if light, they are poor and watery. When crabs are stale, the eyes look dead, the claws hang down, and there is no muscular activity ; in this condi- tion they are not fit to eat. The female is considered inferior to the male, and may be distinguished by the claws being smaller, and the apron, which appears on the white or un- der side, larger. Soft shell crabs are deemed a great luxury ; but they must not be kept over night, as the shells harden in twenty-four hours. CANCER. (1 ) The following is said to be a sure cure for cancer : A piece of sticking plaster is put over the cancer, with a circular piece cut out of the center, a little larger than the cancer, so that the cancer and a small circular rirn of healthy skin next to it is exposed. Then a plaster, made of chloride of zinc, bloodroot, and wheat flour, is spread ou a piece of muslin, the size of this circular opening, and applied to the cancer for twenty-four hours. On re- moving it, the cancer will be found burned into, and appear of the color and hardness of an old shoe sole, and the circular rim outside of it will appear white and parboiled, as if scalded by hot steam. The wound is now dressed, and the outside rim soon separates, and the cancer comes out in a hard lump, and the place heals up. The plaster kills the can- cer, so that it sloughs like dead flesh, and never grows again. The remedy was dis- I covered by Dr. King, of London, and has been j used by him for several years with unfailing | success, and not a case has been known of the reappearance of the cancer when this remedy has been applied. (2) An old Indian cancer doctor in Oregon pronounces this a sure cure : Take common wood sorrel, bruise it on brass, spread it in the form of a poultice, and apply as long as the patient can bear ; then apply bread and rnilk poultice until the patient can bear the wood sorrel again. Continue this until the cancer is drawn out by the roots. (3) Take the blossoms of red clover and j make tea of them, and drink freely. It will | cure cancer in the stomach as well as on the surface. EMBROCATIONS. Applications intended to relieve local pains, either by counter-irritation, or by the anodyne effects of their ingredients, or by aiding the friction,which cannot long be maintained with- out some such application. (a) Liquor of ammonia, tincture of opium, spirits of turpentine, and olive oil, of each equal parts. Useful for rheumatism or any local pains. (6) Flour of mustard, one half ounce ; vin- egar, boiling, three ounces. Mix, and rub into the parts to produce counter-irritation. (c) Laudanum, chloroform, and soap lini- ment, in equal proportions, will often relieve local pains. (d) Chloroform alone may be applied, sprinkled on a piece of spongiopiline (to be had at the drug stores), and applied to the parts affected with neuralgia. Care must be taken not to inhale the vapor too long. (e) All embrocations may be applied with good effect by wetting with them the inner surface of spongiopiline, and keeping it to the part. In this way, as the ammonia cannot evaporate, embrocations made with it arc much more active. WHISKY. An ardent spirit distilled from barley, rye, Indian corn, wheat, etc. It is the cheapest and the most common form of intoxicating liquor made in the United States, where its production is very large. The whisky of Penn- sylvania and Kentucky, and the better quali- ties of that manufactured in New York, are distilled chiefly from rye ; most of that pro- duced in the Western states is from Indian corn, which contains a large quantity of fusel oil. The peach whisky, the Monongahela of Pennsylvania, and the Bourbon from Kentucky are accounted the best. The peculiar and much liked flavor of Scotch and Irish whisky is said to be due to the peaty water which is obtained in the mountains for the use of the stills, or to the smoke of the fuel which is used. New whisky is rough and fiery, quickly intoxicates, and produces disease of the mu- cous membrane of the stomach, of the liver, spleen, and kidneys. Pure whisky improves in smoothness of taste with age, but much of the whisky sold as "pure" and "aged," has been "doctored " with drugs and ingre- dients which are seriously injurious to the stomach and system. AMMONIA (Spirits of Hartshorn). An. alkali which is the result of decomposi- tion in animal and vegetable substances. It exists almost universally in the air, and can be obtained in many ways ; but the article of commerce usually comes from the distillation of coal in making gas. Ammonia has proper- ties which are very injurious as food, but it is 430 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. probably for household purposes the most use- ful of drugs. It is very powerful, and dissolves grease and dirt with the greatest ease. For washing paint, put a tablespoonful in a quart of moderately hot water, dip in a flannel cloth, and then wipe the woodwork ; no scrubbing will be necessary. For taking grease spots from any fabric, apply ammonia nearly pure, then lay white blotting paper over them, and iron lightly. In washing lace, put about twelve drops in a pint of warm suds. To clean silver, mix two teaspoonf uls of ammonia in a quart of hot suds ; put in the silverware and wash, using an old nail brush or tooth brush for the purpose. For cleaning hair brushes, etc., simply shake the brushes up and down in a mixture of one tablespoonful of ammonia to one pint of hot water ; when they are cleansed, rinse them in cold water and stand them in the wind or in a hot place to dry. For washing finger marks from looking glasses or windows, put a few drops on a moist rag and make quick work of it. House plants will flourish surprisingly if a few drops of am- monia are added to each pint of water used in watering. A teaspoouful will add much to the refreshing effect of a bath. Nothing is better than ammonia water for cleaning the hair ; in every case rinse off the ammonia with clear water. For removing grease spots from cloth- ing, a mixture of equal parts of ammonia and alcohol is better than alcohol alone ; and for taking out the red stain produced by acids in blue and black cloth, nothing is so effective as ammonia. OYSTERS. When spawning, oysters are milky, watery, and poor ; and are unwholesome food. The months of spawning are May, June, and July ; but they require a month longer to fatten, and are seldom in good condition before Sep- tember. Wholesale dealers usually have four quali- ties or sizes of oysters for sale. The best are known as extras, the second best as box, and then follow cullings and bushels. Retail deal- ers usually open them and sell them by the hundred, gallon, or quart, in any quantity de- sired. Other dealers make a large business of pickling them for home and foreign con- sumption, and packing them for inland places. The largest oysters are not always the best, especially for eating raw and for stewing ; those of medium size are generally preferred by epicures. Nor are those found in clusters as good as the single oysters. Oysters are not good when dead. To ascertain whether j they are or not, as soon as opened and when one of the shells is removed, touch the edge of the oys'ter gently, and, if alive, it will con- tract. COCOA. Cocoa is generally purer than chocolate, which is a preparation of the same bean, and is also more nutritious. The best comes from Trinidad, and may be had in the original seed or nibs, flaked, or ground and prepared like chocolate in small, square packets. The latter is a mixture of cocoa and arrowroot. The surest way of getting cocoa pure is to buy the beans and roast them, afterwards grinding them like coffee, or simply bruising them. It deteriorates by keeping, and it is best to buy it in small quantities at a time. BEDROOMS. Rooms devoted to sleeping purposes should above all things be light, cheerful, and thor- oughly ventilated. A third of our lives is nec- essarily spent in these rooms, and where the current practice of reserving the parlor for " company " obtains, a great deal more. An ample supply of fresh air should be secured at all times and everywhere, but its necessity is peculiarly urgent in the case of bedrooms. We are much more susceptible to injurious influ- ences when asleep than when awake, and these accumulate with startling rapidity in an un- ventilated chamber in which two or more per- sons spend the night. An excellent plan is to open the window above and below ; lowering the upper sash, with an opening over the door, is also very effective. But if the bedroom have no fireplace, it should be connected by tubes with the chimney-flue. At the same time the prevalent notion that a bedroom to be health- ful must be cold, is altogether mistaken. No room should be slept in in winter that has not had a fire in it at least three times a week, and it is all the more wholesome if it have one every day. Warmth is in itself necessary to any thorough ventilation ; and the temperature of a bedroom should not be suffered to fall below 40. SUBSTITUTE FOR CARPETS. The carpets of a house claim a special men- tion from us. The plan of carpeting floors to which we are accustomed is a decidedly un- healthful one. When the carpets are nailed to the floor in such a way that every portion is covered, the dust which settles upon them can be only partially removed by sweeping, and accumulates in increasing quantity upon the planking below, as well as in the meshes of the carpet itself. This dust, continually raised by every footstep, inevitably renders the aii- unhealthful ; and the evil is increased by the DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 431 layers of thick paper and cotton wadding usually interposed between the floor and the carpet by way of lining. The floor should be inlaid, or at any rate '.aid in hard woods, and should be frequently polished with wax. One large carpet is used co cover the greater part of the room, or per- haps rugs are spread in different places, be- neath tables, and before sofas, pianos, book- cases, and other articles of furniture, much as we are accustomed to lay them upon our carpets. This insures much greater cleanli- ness and a remarkable absence of dust. BENZIXE. A colorless liquid, lighter than petroleum, and obtained from that oil in process of re- finement. It is sometimes used as a burning fluid, but is extremely dangerous ; also as a substitute for turpentine in mixing paints, but its chief value in the household comes from its power of dissolving fats, wax, and paraffine ; every kind of grease spot on clothes may be removed by it. In using, saturate a woolen rag and rub over the spot, renewing several times. Benzine must never be used near a fire or light of any kind ; for it is so inflammable as to take fire at a considerable distance. Keep it in a dark, cool place. OLIVES. The fruit of the olive tree, which is exten- sively cultivated in Italy, Spain, and the South of France, partly for the green fruit, and partly for the oil which it yields when mature. Olives are oval in shape, with a smooth rind, and closely resemble a small half ripe plum. For the purposes of the table they are gathered when immature, and are then pickled in salt and water, and barreled for exportation. The Italian olives are the best, then the French, and lastly the Spanish, which, though large, are not so well flavored. In choosing, select the light colored and bright looking ones ; those which have a blackish cast are unfit to eat. Pickled olives are supposed to have pecul- iarly appetising properties, but they are eaten chiefly with a view to remove the taste of food from the inouth, previously to enjoying the flavor of wine. They should be passed round after the soup. OLIVE OIL. This oil, sometimes called salad oil, is ex- pressed from ripe olives. It is largely used in the more delicate kinds of cookery, instead of butter, and is a useful addition to salads, pre- venting them from fermenting and from caus- ing flatulency. When it ia fresh and pure it has only a very slight yellowish-green color, and but little smell or flavor, so that it may even be drunk by those who like oil ; and it cannot be doubted that it is one of the most easily digested fats in food. Its use in cook- ery might properly be extended in this country, notwithstanding our excellent animal fats. The best quality of oil is that produced by the first gentle pressure of the olives, and this is at once bottled in the flasks peculiar to the article. Stronger pressure on the fruit breaks the kernels and produces an inferior grade of oil, which is exported in jars and barrels. Italian oil is superior to either French or Span- ish, and is distinguished as Florence, Lucca, and Gallipoli oil. The first is most desirable. CURTAIXS. Window curtains should be selected in ac- cordance with the general principles of taste laid down in the article on DECORATION. Ac- cording to their several purposes, and the na- ture of the apartments, the quality of the materials and the manner of hanging them must be determined. In this country partic- ularly, window curtains are necessary to ex- clude the cold air which presses in from the windows in winter when the fires are burning, however closely the sashes may be fitted. But there is another cause for this which is not generally thought of. The warm air in a room, which always occupies the upper part near the ceiling, coining into contact with the glass, is cooled by it, and, descending immediately in consequence, diffuses itself through the lower part of the room and is felt as a cold current coming from the windows, though no outside air may actually have entered them. Curtains check this partly by preventing the warm air from reaching the glass, and partly by turning the current sideways. But though curtains help to keep air out, heavy ones may exclude it too much and also keep bad air in. They should therefore be hung on rings sliding on rods so that they can be drawn entirely away from the window. For the same reason lambrequins are very objec- tionable, more so even than curtains, as they have no opening in the center, and are fixed obstacles to ventilating the upper part of the room where the air is most heated. As to taste, too, this arrangement is certainly inferio. to others. The rod and rings are more " con- structive " than the cornice, and the general effect conforms to the purpose in view. It is well that curtains are now so seldom used for shutting ventilation away from beds. In low- priced materials curtains are apt to be cheaper than lambrequins because the latter require more fringe. 432 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. ORANGE. There are many varieties of this most deli- cious, wholesome, and refreshing fruit. The largest and best are from Florida and Cali- fornia, and sell at the highest prices. The Havana oranges are equal in flavor, but have a thick and rough rind ; the pulp of either is very juicy and delicious. The Maltese oranges have also a very thick and spongy rind, and are sometimes almost juiceless. The Sicilian fruit, commonly called Messina oranges, have a thin rind and a sour taste, but are usually most abundant and cheap. The Florida and West India oranges are in market from October till April, and those from the Mediterranean from January until May. California oranges possess a delicious flavor. The Seville or bitter orange is of the same variety as -the sweet, but it cannot be eaten raw, and is used only in marmalades, candy, etc., and for the same purpose as the lemon. It is not brought to this country to any con- siderable extent. FURNISHING. The reader, if impecunious, need not be dis- couraged by the discussion here of points in- volving considerable outlay, for, in addition to these, the article contains much for his special benefit. The Hall determines the first impression on entering the house, and it is well worth while to economize elsewhere for the sake of effect here. Probably the worst possible step is to buy the stereotyped hat and umbrella rack. No matter how elaborate, they are always the same thing over again, and generally very ugly. If, however, one is needed, some simple ar- rangement honestly made of good wood, with "dead" finish, will probably give more sat- isfaction, in the long run, than the more elaborate designs in which the cabinetmakers delight. A mirror, large or small, of some original shape, framed in some durable way, with pegs for the hats and coats, can be made very effective. Under it, may stand a chair or table, either having a drawer ; or a table alone will do, for hats and coats can be kept on plain hooks back under the stairs. Sticks or umbrellas can be disposed of in a cheap stand behind the door. If the hall be rather dark, a white cast or bust at the end will be very effective. A pair of horns, or several pair, can never be amiss, nor can any other decoration suggesting out of doors and the storied halls of the olden time. Where there is room for them, one should try to have the broad table, the clock, and the little cupboard for brushes, gloves, and other things that one needs on going out and com- ing in. A hall should look as large as it can be made to look. Stair rods seem a ridiculous superfluity for poor folks. Let the stair carpet be long enough to shift as often as it wears out on the edges of the steps. The Parlor is usually the most Philistine of all Philistine American institutions. Where there is the usual ill-spent wealth, the room is filled with gorgeous upholstery in the cabinet- maker's style of art, has the horrible " cabinet rich and stylish," which usually figures on the furniture man's bills for enough to buy two respectable paintings, is either utterly inno- cent of all works of art but a few china or parian dolls and a French clock of a pattern j turned out by the dozen , or has the walls cov- ered with paintings which are simply good canvas spoiled. If such parlors were fur- nished in honest pine, and one tenth of the saving devoted to a few good engravings on the walls, their refinement would be vastly in- creased. There is no need of extremes, how- ever, for the money usually spent would give honest hard wood furniture, luxuriously fash- ioned and cushioned, covered with good worsted reps or satines, and good photographs, en- gravings, or even, in many cases, paintings by deserving artists. In the few well-furnished parlors that we have, the most frequent lack is the suggestion of ease. There is generally too much wood shown in chairs and sofas, and too little cushion. Ladies are always complaining that sofa seats are too broad. Hence the advantage of cushions that can be piled against each other, or laid against the back of a deep easy chair. A good table is desirable, and a fitly colored jar, contrasted with the wood, in graceful posi- tion, is always very agreeable. There seems, in most parlors, too much reluctance to have anything around to indicate that the room is used. The parlor should suggest festivity rather than meditation. If colors be well chosen, Brussels carpet and worsted reps will produce really as good effects as richer mate- rial ; though on account of the danger from moths, woolen upholstery and Brussels carpets are less economical for people upon whom the first outlay does not bear too heavily than silk fabrics, and the higher grades of carpet. Most parlors are oblong, with two windows at one end. The spot between them is the point in the whole room for effect ; all living things turn toward the light. People of taste, if they have plenty of money for more impor- tant things, sometimes put mirrors in this spot ; Philistines always do. Something bright and effective should go there always. Ther aie worse things for the purpose than a light DOMESTIC ECONOMY, 'HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 433 cabinet (if it is tasteful, which not one in a hundred is), laden with good bric-a-brac. What- ever is done, don't let the piano stand in front of this spot and obliterate it. The Library. The main economical question is, doors or no doors to the bookcases. Doors nearly double the cost, and the books will do very well without them, especially if a strip of leather depend over their tops from the shelf above. " Pinked " edges on this strip will curl up, but gilt lines have a pleasant effect. Library furniture is best covered in leather green or dark brown. Here one conies to read, and the eye should not be wooed from its work by any dashes of impor- tunate color. The Dining Room. Probably there is no better test of the refinement of a family than the relation of its dining room to the rest of the house. If the family meal is regarded as a mere feeding, the place where it is taken will plainly show the fact. If the meal be a cheerful household ceremony, where the best qualities of head and heart engage, and to which the most honored friends are gathered, these facts, too, will be indicated by the room. The piece of furniture that makes or mars the dining room is the sideboard, or buffet, as we seem to be in the way of calling it now. With a good substantial table and chairs (the latter cushioned if it can possibly be afforded), any amount of effect can be added to the buffet without its appearing to overshadow the rest, and every feature will tell. If you cannot have an elaborate one, you will not be in bad taste with one of simple outline. When people are at table, they see neither the table nor the chairs, but they do see the buffet. If you can cover it with ancestral plate, very good ; j but if you cannot, it may, perhaps, be made to j look as well with bright china, glass, Japanese lacquer-work, and flowers (never artificial j ones). Don't have a marble top, it will, "chip" glass articles with angular bottoms. Many a fine piece has been thus gradually spoiled, and the cause not realized. Bedrooms. As far as decorative effect goes, the thing of least importance in a bed- room is the bed. Generally, the more the cabinetmaker does to it, the uglier he gets it, and, even if he gets it pretty, those who lie upon it do not see it, and when not lying upon it, their attention is more apt to be directed to another article, which is the real center of bed- room effect, namely, the dressing bureau. This generally stands in the same important spot between the windows that has been enlarged upon in treating of the parlor. Hence, if you are not rich, get a plain bedstead and spend your spare money on the bureau,- Don't over- . | look brass bedsteads. It is to be hoped that they will soon be cheaper than at this writing. Nothing need be better. Wardrobes are not generally included in bedroom suites ; but if they cannot be found to match, may be made to order. Xur sery. Don 't have a carpet. It always will smell. Lay the floor in hard wood if you can possibly afford it ; the cheaper wood car- peting can be made to do. In the middle of the room have a woolen drugget, fastened at the corners by movable nails, so it can be taken up and shaken daily, and washed often. Don't have curtains to the windows. The children while awake need every ray of light they can get. Have thick, dark-green shades, though, to shut out all light while they are napping. A low table, six or eight feet long by two wide, is a grand thing for a nursery. The children will handle many toys on it instead of cultivating round shoulders on the floor. Let its legs fold against it so that it can be laid against the wall when room for romping is needed. The height of your chair seats regulates the distance your children shall tumble from. Servants' Rooms. Iron bedsteads are the thing. They are durable and do not make good nests for bugs. Bureau washstands economize space. The room is not to be oc- cupied much ; it ought to be comfortable though, and decent enough to attract servants who are decent. Bright, broad coloring in the carpet will do much to obviate a cheerless look. Gas Fixtures do more to make or mar a room than almost anything else. We do not mean that the chandelier should be so gaudy as to be the only thing visible in the room, but that it should cost enough to be good. This is too often lost sight of, and some people even economize on the gas fixtures which never wear out, rather than on the carpets and upholstery, which do. Most people do worse, however, by buying abominable angular cast metal concerns, or those with curved glass tubes which threaten breakage if you look at them. The basis of most good metal chande- liers is wrought tubing, and of most good glass or earthenware ones, vases, or plates around or through which the gas is conveyed in metal tubes. A room in Brussels and worsted reps with a good chandelier will have treble the effect of a room in moquette and brocatelle with a poor chandelier. Common gas fixtures can be refinished for about one third of their cost, and changed from gilt to bronze or steel or oxidized silver, if desirable. The better ones of honest brass are generally covered with lacquer, and nee4 434 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. relacquering not oftener than once in ten or twelve years. DECORATION. With special reference to walls, floors, and furniture. It is always best to begin by first consider- ing those things in which we have least room for choice. On account of the change and want of aim of " fashion," the least variety is to be found in floor covering, and the greatest in wall covering -- supposing \ve use wall paper, which is almost always the best where econ- omy is a motive. The first step, it is true, that time dictates in preparing the house, is to color the wood- work and the walls. But this being done to suit the taste as far as it alone is concerned, trouble is apt to come in finding carpets to cor- respond. As the accessible variety of wall paper and tints for painting is so much greater than that of upholstery and carpets, it is best to select the carpets at the very outset. Then it will be comparatively easy to find appropriate furniture and, that being selected, to find ap- propriate wall paper and to paint appropri- ately, if the woodwork is to be painted. One strong argument in favor of unpainted woodwork, especially as compared with that painted white, is that it will tone in with a variably greater variety of carpets and wall decorations. White woodwork is constantly bringing to grief the best laid plans of wall and floor decoration. Pretty papers and car- pets have more than once been sent home, and even put in place, before it has been real- ized that the uncompromising woodwork must kill them. For the floor of the entrance or hall, encaus- tic tiles are best in durability as well as in ap- pearance. Combinations of these may be made good and harmonious in color if we will but be simple and not attempt display. Mar- ble tiling, to be satisfactory, must be expen- sive, and demands the exercise of great taste and judgment. Next to tiling, hard wood, paint, or even oilcloth, if it can be had of moderately fair design and color, should be preferred to carpet. For other floors in the house a Irrge rug, reaching to within about a foot and a half or two feet of the walls, is, for many reasons, to be preferred to a nailed-down carpet covering the entire floor. This maybe made up of car- peting sold by the yard, with a border ; or may be an Eastern carpet in one piece, which of course is very greatly to be preferred. For the floor itself hard wood is best. If it have a border, one of simple design should be chosen, avoiding conspicuous spots or zigzags, or sharply contrasted stripes. If it is to be painted, the carpet, furniture, and wall papei should first be chosen, then the floor color agreeably to all of these, contrasting not too strongly with the carpet, or the effect of breadth over the whole floor maybe destroyed. In the carpet the contrasts and colors should generally be not too striking, because it is the thing most under our eyes when they oftei; I need rest. If the texture be a deep velvety i pile, the contrasts of lights and darks an<( separate colors may be greater. Generally, it had better be inclined to the dark and warn in tone. Aggravating lessons in geometry, as well as roses, scroll, and pictures, as subjects of design in carpet, are things to be tabooed. There are to be found carpets of fair design copied from Eastern patterns, but their over preciseness and painfully small accuracies, and their inferiority of color, leave them far be- hind a genuine Oriental carpet, with its slight i pleasing waywardness. In choosing furniture, consider the colors of the woods. Against a wall of dull red, black or dark oak will generally look well. And ' with a wall of sage or olive green, greenish ! blue or dull gray blue ; mahogany, oak, wal- ! nut, or rosewood. Yellow with black and some kinds of gray always looks well. Rarely choose any wood lighter than oak. If the articles be of somewhat light construction, they may contrast rather strongly with the floor and walls ; if large enough to make im- portant masses in the room, the contrast should not be of a sudden and violent kind. The introduction of black in furniture is often of great value. Generally take the plainest , and most reasonably constructed furniture ' that you can find. Avoid in it extravagance I of shape ; curving fronts to drawers, things made to imitate drawers, and doors, and lumps of carving glued on. Do not lightly, and without consideration, choose adjustable chairs, extension tables, and shutting beds. j Avoid having a piece of furniture which is not quite sufficient for its uses, and so has to be eked out by other insufficient things ; such as two or three inconvenient makeshifts for book- cases, cabinets, etc. Upholstery of chairs and sofas may con- trast with floors or walls ; there can be no rule ; sometimes one plan will be found the best and sometimes the other ; or a partial adoption of both. The larger the pattern in furniture, coverings, and curtains, the less conspicuous should be their colors. Curtains may generally harmonize pretty closely with the furniture upholstery. They may often be somewhat more lively, as, in the daytime the light does not fall on the surface DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 435 the most in view, and at night they should not break too suddenly the general effect of pic- tures and furniture against the walls. They should always be suspended from rings on rods. Lace curtains, except where mere screens against the inside of the window sash, are not to be commended on any account, to say the least. The carpets being selected little difficulty need be experienced in properly coloring the walls and woodwork. If the doors and casings in a room be of hard wood, their color is of importance in connec- tion with floor and walls. If they be painted, the colors may well be of such tones as will more strongly contrast with the walls than with the carpet, the doors themselves being more nearly like the wall than the casings around them are. Ceilings cannot be left plain, unbroken surfaces of white plaster without sacrificing the harmony of the room, if the least degree of fullness of coloring be attempted in other parts. They may generally be made lighter than the side walls, and slightly contrasting with them. With the walls very light, they may be darker. In any case they should have as much gentle variation of light and dark and color as may be. A fashion of showing the construction of the floors and roofs above, is a thing to be wished by all decorators. It would add more to the effect of the rooms we live in than one half of what we now take pains to do to them. Papers. In choosing wall papers avoid over-brightness, display, sharpness, or angu- larity of pattern. It is not necessary that they should be precisely and accurately ' made out. ' ' It is as well that something should be left to J the imagination. Prefer those of a general | tone of warm gray, and but few detached j broken colors ; or creamy ocherish yellows ; or sage, citron, olive, and tea greens ; or dusky reds. Blues are the hardest to choose ; they should generally incline to green or greenish- gray, or to the quality of blue of some kinds of old china. Rarely or never choose stripes, whatever your friends may say about their mak- ing your rooms look higher. Sometimes they do j so, and sometimes they do exactly the reverse by calling attention to the shortness of the space they have to run. They more often than not produce a bad effect on a wall. Dado. It will often be of advantage to have a plinth or dado around the room varying in height from one and a half to four feet, of a color of about the same degree of force as ; the color of the floor. It should be plainer in j design thau the wall above ; and may often with advantage be absolutely plain. The line is invaluable where there are pictures. Dadoes to passages and staircases, where there is no wainscot, are good on account of their use- fulness as well as appearance. They had best be made of paper of such a pattern that, where a piece is rubbed off, another may be substituted. It is not always the case, as is constantly said, that a wainscot or dado makes a low room look lower ; for it is interrupted by doors and windows and large pieces of fur- niture. Entire blankness and absence of de- tail never make a space look larger. Detail is always good when sufficiently subordinated, and always bad when obtrusive. Simple treat- ment is what is required, that the space shall not be so cut up as to leave no leading feature. Border. A border or frieze does often make a room look lower. It arrests the eye at a lower point than the top of the wall, and by its uninterrupted line carries it around the room at that level. Pictures. The walls may properly be al- lowed to furnish the key for the whole scheme of color ; a not necessarily namable color, as red, green, or blue ; but hue, tone, what might be called atmosphere. In proportion to the absence of pictures walls require a strong and elaborated treatment. If slight water-color drawings or prints are to be hung on them, walls should be light and delicate. Jf oil paintings are to be hung, the particular pic- tures should be consulted, as tar as possible beforehand. It is often said that water-color and oil-color pictures, or either of them with photographs and prints, should never be hung together on the same wall. But it is as well not to make quite so broad a rule. We have seen a water-color drawing which erred by having too much of one particular color hung with good effect by a cool brown Liber Studiorum print, and a photograph of a painting made to glow with a warm hue by a neighboring blue. Remarks on the Various Rooms. The Hall it is well to have rather darker than the rooms opening from it, on account of the agreeable contrast. It is also well to have the coloring quiet and grave, without strong con- trasts and never rising to positive color. The ornamental details should be very restrained, it being rather out of order in a place which is principally a passage, and more telling if kept for other parts of the house. Large, comparatively blank spaces are in place here, the incidents of light and shade often giving enough variation. Dining Room. Probably the fashion of hav- ing a dining room sober and rather dark in its coloring came about because of the table and those around it being the chief point of inter- est, and also of the pleasant contrast of the drawing room. 436 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. When the sideboard is simple in its lines and dark and subdued in color, whatever is put on it will show to better advantage. The Drawing Room of course should be some- what light and gay; fitted to be bright at night, and should not have any point of con- centration, or be too decided in any way. The Library, where it is a library, should contain nothing to distract the attention ; the ornament and coloring should be of the most quiet kind. Instead of things being so ar- ranged as to appeal to the eye, the eye should have to search for things. Bedrooms ought to be airy and rather light ; but curtains hung so as to be easily drawn to shut off draughts and light are desirable. If the furniture is to be bought in the shops, the plainer it is, the better. General Advice. Advice in these things can only be of value so long as we remember that it is but advice ; but the occasion would probably be rare when we could not let the following have the force of rules : North rooms, south rooms, poorly or fully lighted rooms, whatever their uses may be, should have some attention given to making their coloring suit their respective quantities and qualities of light. In doing this, that kind of contrast between different rooms in a house which is always pleasant, is secured. Adhere as much as possible to simplicity of general arrangement. Avoid on the one hand mcagerness, and on the other hand what is perhaps worse, overcrowding. Beware of " hard finish " and white paint, and all large spaces of plain white in carpet, curtains, walls, or ceilings ; of brilliant things, large mirrors, displays of gilding and marble, and elaborate cast metal gas fixtures, long lace curtains, sentimental statuettes and bronzes, and an undue abundance of small " artistic " things. It is better not to indulge a fondness for that useless order of things which includes " tidies," "mats," worsted embroideries, etc. Ae we usually see them, they are harsh spots of white or inharmonious vivid color, and not untrying to the nerves of those who do not feel at liberty to treat them with disrespect, and who do not like "fancy things," although they may care for art. Finally, do not be disturbed if your house be simple, inexpensive, and unpretending ; but do be disturbed if it be "cheap"; that is, if it be evidently not a fine thing, while it makes a shallow pretense by being dressed up in the fashion of a fine thing. Extreme sim- plicity and great dignity may go together dignity and cheapness, never. Remember that u quiet harmony of colors, and the simplest 1 mode of arranging simple things, are always good, and that brilliance, abundance, and ex- travagance are always at least near the perilous borders of no-land. Woods. An account of the qualities of the different woods may be of use to the pur- chaser. Ash is rather lighter colored than oak, but is sometimes used in connection with it. It is less likely to split. Beech , a very close and tough wood , is chiefly used for the framework of chairs, tables, and bedsteads. It is nearly of the ct)lor of birch, but rather paler, and it may be known by the presence of those peculiar little specks of darker brown, which are easily seen in a carpenter's plane. Birch is very close-grained, strong, and easily worked. It is of a pale yellowish brown. If polished or varnished, it somewhat resem- bles satinwood, but is darker, and by staining is capable of being made to closely resemble Honduras mahogany. It is used in the better kinds of low-priced furniture. Cedar somewhat resembles mahogany, though more purplish. It has no "curl," and is free from tendency to warp or " cast." The best varieties have a peculiarly pleasant aroma, which is offensive to moths ; hence it is highly valued for making drawers and chests for clothing. Chestnut is coarse-grained, strong, elastic, light, and very durable. Some of the best of the cheaper furniture is made of it. It looks so much like white oak as to be frequently used in combination with it. Ebony is of a deep black color, and highly prized for several purposes, particularly inlay- ing. It is exceedingly hard, heavy, and dura- ble, but expensive. Pear and other woods dyed black are often substituted for it ; but are not so susceptible of good polish and luster, or so permanent in color. The best comes from Africa ; a kind variegated with brown is brought from Mauritius and Ceylon. Mahogany is imported of two kinds Hon- duras and Spanish. The former has a coarse, loose, and straight grain, without much curl or wave. The latter is darker, with curl, by which in great measure its price is regulated, and with a very fine, close texture. Spanish ma- hogany will bear great violence ; it is also free from any tendency to warp. When, how- ever, it is very much curled, it is not nearly so strong or so free from twist ; but this is of little consequence, as its value is so great that it is generally veneered on to some less valu- able wood, as Honduras or cedar. The heavi- est mahogany is generally the best. Maple is of several qualities, the bird's-eyermeate the surrounding textures. Exudation. Escaping or discharging through pores. Farinaceous. Containing farina or flour. Fascicles. Little bundles of libers. Fauces. The back of the mouth and upper part of the throat. Feces, fecal. That part of the food remaining after > digestion and which is ejected at intervals from the bowels. Feculent. FouL Fermentation. Chemical action and combination by which new substances are formed. Fiber, fibrous. The hard, elastic, organic particle which, aggregated, forms muscle and other tissues. Fibrine. An organic substance, fluid, coagulable, found in the blood, lymph, etc. DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 489 Filaments. A thready fiber. Flagellation. Flapping the body with the corner of a wet towel or the snap of a whip. Flatulence. Wind in the stomach and bowels. Foetus, foetal. The young of any animal during ute- rine existence. Pertaining to the unborn. Follicle. A little depression throwing off moisture to keep the contiguous part soft and supple. Foreskin. The prolonged skin of the penis, which covers the glans or head. Fumigation. Disinfection by gas, smoke, or vapor. Function. The normal or healthy action of an organ. Fundament. The seat ; anus. Fungus. Parasitical plant. Ganglion. Masses of nerves resembling brain. Oanglionic. Composed of ganglia. Gangrene. Mortification; local death. Gastric juice. The digestive fluid secreted by the stomach. Generative. Productive. Genetic. Pertaining to the genital organs. Genitals. The generative organs. Germ theory. The theory of the propagation of disease by germs floating in the atmosphere. Gestation. The period of carrying the young in the womb. Glands, Glandular. Organs of the body, each pos- sessing vital properties peculiar to itself, as secre- tion of tears, milk, saliva, urine, excretion, etc. Glans. The conical end of the penis, covered by the foreskin. Gluten. The ingredient in flour (farinse) which gives it adhesiveness. Grain. One sixtieth of a drachm. Graminivora. Grain-eating animals. Granular. Consisting of little grains. Granules. Little grains. Griping. The pains of colic. Gullet. The canal for food leading from the throat to the stomach. Gynaecology. That part of the science of medicine devoted to the diseases of women. Hectic. Debilitated; exhausted. Hereditary. Transmitted from parent to child. Hibernate, hibernation. A partial suspension of ani- mation. Animals that sleep through the winter hibernate. Histogenetic. Tissue-forming. Hydragogues. Medicines producing copious, watery, alvine discharges. Hydrocarbons. Starch, sugar, and oils. Hydrogen. A light, inflammable gas, forming, by chemical combination, water and animal and vege- table matter. Hygiene, hygienic. The science of the preservation of nealth. Hymen. A fold of membrane at the outer orifice of the vagina, found sometimes, but not always, in virgins. Hypertrophy. Increased nutrition and consequent growth. Hypnotic. Producing sleep. Hypochondriasis. Belief in the possession of an imaginary disease. Hypodermic. Under the skin. Hypodermic syringe. An instrument for injecting liquid remedies under the skin. Ileum. The convoluted portion of the intestines. Impotence. Loss of sexual power; inability to copulate. Indications. The symptoms or conditions needing medication. Infection, Infecting. The communication of disease ' by touch, food, drink, or the breath. Infecundity. Unfruitfulness. Infiltrate. To penetrate the pores of a part. Inflammation. A condition attended with heat, pain, redness, and swelling. Injection. Passing a liquid into a cavity of the body, through and by means of a syringe. Innocuous. Harmless. Inoculation. Taking a disease by contact with an abraded surface. Insolation. Sunstroke. Insomnia. Inability to sleep. Inspiration. Inhaling air by the lung*. Inspissated. Thickened by evaporation. Instinct. An inborn principle directing to health and self-preservation. Intercostal. Between the ribs. Intestine, intestinal. The canal from the stomach to the anus ; the bowels. Relating to the intestines. Invermination. Infested with worms. Iris. The colored membrane seen in the eyeball; it is blue in blue eyes, gray in gray eyes, etc. Irritation. Local excitement, or excess of vital action. Kidneys. Two organs, one on each side of the spine, internally and above the small of the back, which secrete the urine from the blood. Lachrymal gland. Organ for forming tears. Lachrymation. Weeping. r.acteal. Milky. Vessels containing chyle. Larynx. The Adam's apple of the neck ; the upper part of the windpipe which contains the organs of voice. Lancinating. A deep and sudden pain, compared to the stab of a lance. Leeching. Removing blood by the application of a leech. Lesion. A diseased change. Leucocytes. White corpuscles of the blood. Leucorrhrea. Whites. Liquor sanguinls. The fluid part of the blood, hold- ing in solution fibrine, albumen, etc. Liver. The great assimilating gland of the body. It is situated below the diaphragm or midriff, and above the stomach, bowels, and kidney, and extends from the base of the chest to the spine, and from side to side. Lobe. A rounded, projecting part. Loins. The small of the back, between the ribs and pelvis. Lungs. Two organs situated in the chest, one on each side, with the heart between ; the organs of respi- ration. Lymph, lymphatic. The fluid secretion of the lym- phatic glands, which is emptied into the circulation. Mackintosh. Cloth covered with waterproof material. Malaria. Poisoning emanations in the air, producing disease. Mammary gland. The female breast. Mastication. Chewing the food. Masterbation. Personal excitement of the sexual organs. Median line. An imaginary line dividing the body into the right and len side. Medulla oblongata. An organ, marrow-like, lying at the base of the skull. Medullary. Pertaining to the marrow. Membrane, membranous. A thin, web-like struc- ture covering parts and organs, and lining cavities. Meninges. Coverings of the brain and spinal cord. Meiisis, menses. The monthly uterine flow during the middle age of women. iVTenstrual. Pertaining to the monthly flow. Mesentery. The folds of the peritoneum which hold the intestines in place. Metamorphosis. Transformation. Metastasis. Change in the seat of a disease. Miasm, miasmatic. The germs of disease floating in the air, which produce infection. Microscope. An instrument for magnifying minute objects. Micturate. To evacuate the bladder. Molar teeth. The sixth, seventh, and eighth teeth from the center of the lips. Molecule. A little portion of any body. Morbid. Diseased. Motor. Moving. Mucilages. The gummy principle of plants. Mucoid. Like mucus. Mucus, mucous. A viscid fluid, which in health keeps the membranes in their proper condition. Myopic. Near-sighted. Narcotic. A stupefying remedy; in large doses de- stroying life. Nausea. Sickness at the stomach; ineffectual effort to vomit. Navel. The round scar at the center of the abdomen, marking the place of attachment of the cord pre- vious to and at birth. Neuralgia. Nerve pain. Neurine. The substance of which the brain is com- posed. 440 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Nitrogen, nitrogenous. The gas constituting four fifths of the volume of the atmosphere. Noxious. Poisonous; harmful. Nucleus, nuclei. The germinal point in a cell ; kernel. Nutrition. Increasing in growth, or supplying the materials for growth. Obcordate. Half egg-shape and half heart-shape. Obesity. Excessively fat. Oesophagus. The food-passage from the throat to the stomach. OZstrnation. Periodical sexual desire ; heat. Oleaginous. Oily. Ophthalmoscope. An instrument for examining the interior of the eve by concentrated and reflected light. Cptic nerve. The nerve conveying visual impressions from the eye to the brain. Osmosis. Attraction of fluids for each other through moist membranes and their motion. Occicles. Little bones. Ounce. One sixteenth of a pound; in fluids, eight drachms or teaspoonfuls. Oxygen. The gas constituting one fifth the volume of the atmosphere. It supports combustion. Pad. A folded cloth used as a support. Palate. Roof of the mouth. Palatine arch. The arch in the rear of the mouth, formed by the palate bone. Palsy. Loss of sensation or motion, or both ; paralysis. Pancreas, pancreatic juice. A large gland in the abdomen, beneath and behind the stomach. Its secretion. Papillae. Little raised points upon the surface ; they can be seen upon the tongue. Papulose, papular. With dry pimples. Paralysis. To lose the power of motion in a part, or sensation, or both. Parasites. Animals or plants that subsist upon others. Parenchyma. The texture of organs like the liver, kidneys, etc. Parotid eland. A gland at the angle of the lower jaw which secretes saliva and discharges it by a short tube upon the cheek near an upper molar (back) tooth. Paroxysm. The period of more aggravated symptoms, following an interval of comparative freedom. Parturition. Childbirth. Pathology. That department of medical science whose object is the knowledge of disease. Pelvis. The bony structure at the termination of the spine, enveloping and protecting the lower intes- tines, bladder, genitals, etc. Pentandria Monogynia. A name given to a class of plants having five stamens and one style. Percussion. Striking with the finger-tips to discover by the resonance the condition of internal parts. Perineum. The part between the genitals and the anus or tip of the spine. Periodicity. Occurring at regular periods, as a chill every other day, etc. Periosteum. The tough membrane covering all bones. Peristaltic. The peculiar motion of the intestines which propels its contents forward, somewhat like the crawling of a worm. Peritoneum. The membrane lining the abdominal walls and covering the intestines. Petaloid. Resembling a leaf-stock. Petals. The colored leaves of a flower. Pharmacist, pharmaceutist. One who manufactures drugs. Pharmacy. The manufacture of drugs. Pharynx. The posterior portion of the cavity of the mouth, behind the palate, above the windpipe and gullet. The breath and food pass through it. Phosphorus, phosphates. A substance familiar to us in matches. It is a constituent of the brain and nerves. Phrenic nerve. The respiratory nerve. It arises in the neck, passes through it and the chest, and is mainly distributed to the diaphragm. Physiology. The functions of the organs of the body ; the phenomena Of life. Pile-compressor. An instrument supporting the rec- tum and anus. Placenta. A fleshy body attached to the womb and by a cord to the child, supplying blood and. nourish- ment before birth. Plasma. The fluid portion of the blood holding lh solution flbrine, albumen, etc. Plastic. Formative. Plethora. Abounding in blood : full-blooded. Pleura. A wetted membrane lining the walls of the chest and covering the outer surface of the lung. There are two. Plexus. A network of blood-vessels or nerves. Pneumogastric nerve. The great nerve distributed to the chest and stomach. Polypus. A kind of tumor. Post-mortem. After death. Prepuce. The prolonged skin of the penis which covers the glans or head. Probang. A whalebone rod with a sponge on one end. Probe. A wire for examining wounds, canals, etc. Prophylactic. Preventive. Prostate gland. A gland at the upper portion of the urethra surrounding it and touching the bladder. Psoas muscle. The great muscle wnich draws the thigh up to the abdomen. Puberty. That period of life, about the age of 13, when the procreative organs most rapidly develop ; hair grows about them and upon the face of the male, the breasts of the female enlarge, and, in fact, the period of youth has passed and that of manhood or womanhood arrived. Pubic bone. A bone in the lower abdomen immedi- ately under that part of the surface covered with hair. Pulse. The beating or throbbing of arteries produced by afflux of blood from heart. Pupil. The circular opening in the colored part of the eye (iris). Purgative. A medicine causing free alvine discharges. Pus. Matter discharged from inflamed tissue. Pustules. Mattery pimples. Receptaculum chyli. A hollow organ for holding chyle. Rectum, rectal. That portion of the bowels nearest the outlet. Recuperate. To regain health and strength. Regurgitate. To flow backward. Remission. Decrease in fever. Renal. Pertaining to the kidney. Respiration. Breathing. Retching. Ineffectual effort to vomit. Retina. The lining of the eye. Revulsive. Agents which create diseased action on the surface to relieve internal disorder. Roborant. Strengthening; tonic. R, recipe. Take the articles following. Saccharine. Of the nature of sugar. Saliva. One of the digestive fluids which is mixed with the food during mastication. Sanitarium. A remedial institute. Schneiderian membrane. The lining of the nasal cavity. Scrofulous. Of the nature of scrofula. Scrotum. The skin covering the testicles. Sebaceous. A name given to the oil-glands of the skin. Secernent. Secreting. Secrete, secretion. Drawing out fluids from the blood; each gland absorbs material peculiar to it- self. Sedatives. Remedies which control or depress exces- sive vital action. Self-pollution. Personal excitement of the sexual organs. Semen. The fecundating fluid of the male which is secreted by the testicles. Seminal. Pertaining to semen or sperm. Sensorlnm. The center of sensations. Sepals. The leaves of the envelope of a flower. Serum, serous. The watery portion of animal fluids. Sigmold flexure. A bend in the intestines just above the rectum. Sinapism. An irritating plaster. Sound. A solid rod, catheter shape. Spasms. Violent and involuntary muscular move- ments. Specific disease. Syphilitic diseases ; private diseases. Speculum. An instrument for dilating the orifice to internal canals or cavities. Spermatic. Pertaining to sperm or the organs of gen- > oration. DOMESTIC ECONOMY, HYGIENE, DIETETICS. 441 Spermatic cord. A eord consisting of blood-vessels, nerves, and the canal of the sperm, which supports the testicle. Spermatozoa. The formative agents in generation found in the semen of the male. Sphincter. A round muscle closing an outlet. spirulu. A splinter of bone. Spleen. A spongy organ situated deep in the upper abdomen, between the kiduev and stomach. Sputa. Expectorated matter. Squamous. Scaly. Stercoraceous. Kxcrementitious. Stern ut at ives. Remedies which provoke sneezing. Stethoscope. An instrument for exploring the chest. Sthenic. Possessing excessive strength. si mi. Unconsciousness produced by a blow or fall. Stupor. Diminished sensibility or exercise of the in- tellectual faculties. Styptic. Arresting hemorrhage; astringent. Subliiigual gland. A salivary gland under the tongue. Sudoriferous. A name given to the sweat glands of the skin. Suppository. A semi-solid medicine deposited in the rectum. Suppurate. To discharge matter or pus. Suspensory bandage. A bandage for supporting the scrotum. sy 1 1 1 1 tii hetic nerves. The nervous system of the auto- matic functions. Symptom. A sign of disease. Syncope. Fainting. Tampon. A plug made of lint or cotton. Tapping. Drawing off fluids in cavities by puncturing the surface. Tenesmus. Violent contractions. Test -s. The male organs contained in the scrotum. Testicles. Testes. Tetanus. Permanent contraction of muscles. Therapeutics. The department of medical science concerned in the treatment of disease. Thoracic. Pertaining to the chest. Thyroid glands. Throat glands. Tissues. The anatomical elements cf organs. Tonics. Remedies which improve the health and strength. Tonsil. A gland at the side of the throat near the soft palate. Toxic. Poisonous. Trachea. That part of the windpipe between the larynx or vocal organs and the bronchial tubes. Traumatic. Pertaining to a wound. Tubercle. Concretions of degenerated matter. Tubule. A little tube or canal. Tympanitis. Having a drum-like sound from the accumulation of air. Tympanum. The drum of the ear. Ulcer, ulceratlon. A chronic sore situated in the soft parts. A diseased action resulting in ulcer. Umbilicus. The navel. Uraemic. Pertaining to urine. Urea. A constituent of urine. Ureters. The canals, two in number, carrying the urine from the kidneys to the bladder. Urethra. Thecan?! or pipe leading from the bladder for the conveyance of urine from the body. Uric acid. A constituent of urine; in excess it forms combinations, producing calculus or stone. Urine. The secretion of the kidneys which collects in the bladder and is discharged through the urethra. Uterus. An organ situated between the bladder and rectum and above the vagina, which holds the foetus during gestation. Uvula. A fleshy organ hanging from the center of the soft palate. Vaccine. Pertaining to smallpox. Vagina. The canal, five or six inches in length, lead- ing to the uterus or womb. Varicose. Pertaining to a dilated vein. Vascular. Full of blood-vessels. Vaao-motor. Affecting vessels by reflex nervous action. Vein. A bloed-vessel which, with one exception, car- ries the blue or venous blood. Ventricle. A chamber in the heart. Vertigo. Dizziness. Vesicle. A bladder-like sac. Vesicular. Full of little vessels. Vicarious. In place of another ; a function performed through other than the natural channels. Virus. The poison transmitting infectious disease. Viscus, viscera. An organ of the body. Organs. Vitality. The vital principle. Void. To evacuate. Vomiting. Emptying the stomach upward. Water-brash. A profuse flow of saliva. Womb. An organ situated between the bladder and rectum and above the vagina, which holds the foetus during gestation. Zoon, Zoa. Animal. Animals. Zymotic. Epidemic and contagious. SICK BOOM. In preparing a meal for anyone whose appe- tite is delicate, it should be made to look as tempting as possible. The tray should be covered with the whitest napkin, and the sil- ver, glass, and china should shine with clean- liness. There should not be too great a variety of viands, and but a very small portion of each one. Nothing more quickly disgusts a feeble appetite than a quantity of food pre- sented at one time. The patient should never be consulted be- forehand as to what he will eat or what he will drink. If he asks for anything, give it to him, with the doctor's permission ; otherwise prepare something he is known to like, and offer it without previous comment. One of the chief offices of a good nurse is to think for her patient. His slightest want should be an- ticipated and gratified before he has had time to express it. Quick observation will enable her to detect the first symptom of worry or excitement, and to remove the cause. An in- valid should never be teased with the exertion of making a decision. Whether the room is too hot or too cold ; whether chicken broth, or beef tea, or gruel is best for his luncheon, and all similar matters, are questions which should be decided without appealing to him. Household troubles should be kept as far as possible from the sick room. Squabbles of children or servants should never find an echo there. In the event of some calamity occur- ring, for which it is absolutely necessary the sufferer should be informed, the ill news should be broken as gently as possible, and every soothing device employed to help him to bear the shock. Above all, an invalid, or even a person apparently convalescent, should be saved from his friends. One garrulous acquaintance ad- mitted for half an hour will undo the good done by a week of tender nursing. Whoever is the responsible person should know how much her patient can bear ; she should keep a careful watch on visitors of whose discretion she is uncertain, and the moment she preceives it to be necessary, politely but firmly dismiss them. 442 THE CfctfTURY BOOK OF PACTS. She must carry out implicitly the doctor's directions, particularly those regarding medi- cine and diet. Strict obedience to his orders, a faithful, diligent, painstaking following of his instructions, will insure to the sufferer the best results from his skill, and bring order, method, and regularity into domestic nursing. Temperature. Excessive heat, long con- tinued, is detrimental to health. It causes in man, enlargement of the liver, jaundice, indi- gestion, diarrhoea, dysentery, dropsy, etc., and hastens the fatal termination of a majority of human maladies. In geese it causes the enlarged liver, employed in making the cele- brated pate de foie gras. Excessive cold, long continued, is less prej- udicial than exceesive heat, except to the old and feeble. Exposure of a limited portion of the body t& cold disturbs the equilibrium of both the nerv- ous and vascular systems, causing local con- gestions, or "colds." " If the wind strikes you through a hole, Go count your beads and mind your soul." Old Proverb. Do not stand long upon the cold ground on a warm spring day. It is equally dangerous to sit upon anything cold on a warm day. Keep the head cool and the feet warm. Sudden changes of extreme temperature are . not necessarily injurious. If the heat or the cold is applied only for a few minutes, as in certain baths, etc., it often proves invigorating. The most perfect examples of physical and ! mental development are not usually found in j regions having the most uniform temperature, ! but in those which have a considerable range 1 of temperature. Exercise in the cold air contracts and strengthens the muscles and toughens the sinews. In general, the best temperature for health is that in which one cannot be comfortable for ! any length of time without exercise. With ! most persons this is a temperature of from 58 | to 63 Fahrenheit. Radiated heat is better than heated columns of air. The sun, and an open fireplace or grate furnish radiated heat. Hot air furnaces, with registers opening directly into the rooms, supply only heated columns of air ; which are generally dry and impure. Rooms thus warmed are first and most heated near the ceiling. Air heated by red hot, or very hot iron, is rendered in a great measure unfit for respira- tion. Light. Light is essential to the perfect life of most vegetables and of most animals. To render a plant brittle and watery, the gardener excludes from it completely the rays of the sun. Etiolation has the same effect upon man and other animals. Without light, man becomes scrofulous, rickety, goitrous, consumptive, and dies in a state of premature decrepitude. Children reared without light and air are in the animal kingdom what good celery is in the vegetable kingdom, white and succulent ; but they wilt under the slightest touch of frost, and are broken under the slightest pressure. Children should not be sent into parks with their faces veiled. Patients on the sunny side of a hospital ward recover the soonest. Light gives a bronzed, or "tan " color to the skin ; but where it uproots the lily, it plants the rose. Light is one of the most valuable disin- fectants. Air and light, are among the best medi- cines known to man. o X Book VI. Finance, Industry, Trans- portation. Finance, Industry, Transportation. EARLY FORMS OF CURRENCY. Skins of wild animals cured constitute one of the earliest forms of currency known, and while employed in the most ancient times, are not yet disused in some portions of the world. Such a medium seems appropriate among those who subsist by the chase, as all- primeval peo- ples must in some degree, and it is not, there- fore, surprising to find that in the transactions of the Hudson Bay Fur Company with the Indians, the unit of value by which the price of other articles was reckoned was the beaver skin. Pastoral people employ similarly the skins of tame animals, originally delivering the en- tire skin, a cumbrous process deficient in con- venience and economy, but finally employing a small disc cut from the leather as a represent- ative of its value. Live stock is also widely employed, as it has been from the days of Abraham, and though a rude, it is still a sub- stantially uniform, denominator of value. The Greeks stamped the image of an ox on a piece of leather, and the image had thence the cur- rent value of the animal represented. In the East, the camel, the ass, and the sheep have been, ever since they were subdued to the uses of mankind, employed to reckon possessions or determine the amount of tribute or marriage portions. In Lapland and some portions of Sweden and Norway, the amount of wealth possessed by a person is denominated in rein- deer. Among the Tartars the number of mares similarly determines the opulence of their pos- sessors. Among the Esquimaux it is custom- ary to speak of one another as worth so many dogs. Slaves have been employed to determine ratios of value since the state of bondage was first established among men. In New Guinea the slave is still the unit by which the value of other possessions is recorded, as he used to be among the Portuguese traders of the Gold Coast. The Portuguese also found small mats called libongoes, valued at about one and one halfpence each, employed as currency on the African coast, and bunches of red feathers serve by their comparative stability to mark the fluctuations of yams and breech-clouts in some of the tropical islands of the Pacific. Some tribes of North American Indians found wampum as useful in their rather limited mer- cantile transactions as the merchant of South street or Burling slip finds greenbacks or bills of exchange. Cowry sheila are still extensively used in East India, Siam, and among some of the islands of the Indian Archipelago. Among the Fijians whales' teeth pass readily from hand to hand, effecting all necessary inter- changes, the red teeth being taken at about twenty times the value of the white ones. Ornaments of all kinds have in all times constituted measures of value. In Egypt, Phoenicia, Etruria, and many other ancient countries, as well as in Ireland and Northum- bria, rings have been found which were de- signed to serve the double purpose of orna- ment and currency, and the same dual function may be ascribed to the anklets, armlets, and earrings which are worn throughout British India, Persia, Egypt, and Abyssinia. The Goths and Celts fashioned their rings of thick golden wire wound in spirals, from which va- rious lengths could be broken to accommodate the varying needs of traffic. Gold chains have been similarly employed. In many countries golden beads are yet hoarded, worn, and circu- lated, fulfilling thus the triple functions of money, inasmuch as they constitute at once a store of value, a standard of value, and an instrument of exchange. Amber was used as currency by the savage races of the Baltic in the period of the Roman do- minion, as it still is in some of the regions of the East. The Egyptian scarabee carved on sard or nephrite or other precious stones, circulated freely throughout the Mediterranean coasts and islands probably before the first Phoenician coin was impressed ; and engraved gems and precious stones were employed to transfer wealth as well from one country to another as from hand to hand until a compar- atively recent period. In Africa ivory tusks pass to and fro in the processes of trade, rudely defining the ratio of value of other articles. Among the Tartars, bricks of tea, or cubes of that herb pressed into a solid form, pass from hand to hand as freely as beaver skins do at the tracing posts of Hudson Bay or the Sas- katchewan. Among the Malayans the only currency entirely equal to the requirements of trade consists of rough hardware, such as hoes, shovels, and the like. Pieces of cotton cloth of a fixed length, called Guinea cloth, for a long period constituted the unit of value in Senegal, Abyssinia, Mexico, Peru, Siberia, and some of the islands of the Pacific Ocean. In Sumatra, cubes of beeswax of a fixed weight ; in Scotland handmade nails ; in Switzerland, eggs ; in Newfoundland^ dried codfisbi; an Vir- ginia* tobacco; in Yucatan, cacao nuts; in FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 445 the Greek Islands and the Levant, olive oil ; on the regions of the Upper Nile, salt, have all, at one time or another, served the purposes of commercial interchange. In agricultural coun- tries it is not strange that corn should have early been adopted as a measure of value. The leases of the great school foundations of Britain, Cambridge, Oxford, and Eton, with probably many others, were "corn leases," that is, specifying that the rental should consist of so many quarters of corn. In Norway, corn is deposited in banks and lent and borrowed on time or call loans, as money is with us. In Central America and Mexico, maize was long employed to serve the uses of currency. In New England, in the early colonial days, leaden bullets were employed to indicate value, and that metal is still coined and circulated in Burmah. Pewter has often been coined, and in many countries, though not to the same ex- tent as tin. In fact, tin coins are not only of immense antiquity, but their impress has been sanctioned by government authority down to a recent period. The Phoenician mariners freighted their galleys with the tin of Britain before Carthage was founded, and coins of the same oiled the wheels of commerce in the marts of Tyre and Sidon before Solomon built the temple at Jerusalem. In England, as late as the period of William and Mary, tin half-pence and farthings were struck, though they failed to become a permanent part of the circulation. In numismatical collections, series of tin coins stamped with the effigy and legend of sev- eral of the Roman emperors are abundant. In Java as well as Mexico, tin coins were once current, and the metal, measured by weight, is still a sort of legal tender in the Straits of Malacca. METALLIC COINS. In all civilized countries, gold, silver, and copper have always constituted the main ele- ments of coinage and the most familiar forms of currency. The ratio of value between the first two has probably varied less during the last 2,500 years than that between any other known substances. Copper has fluctuated more, but its function has always been subsidiary and limited to small transactions. In the hierarchy of the metals used as coins, gold may repre- sent the king, silver the lord, and copper the slave. The latter is now practically emanci- pated, bronze and nickel taking its place. In- dium, osmium, and palladium have been pro- posed as substitutes for gold, and aluminum and manganese for silver, but without any practi- cal result thus far. Platinum, which is mainly found in the Ural Mountains, has been coined to some extent by the Russian government ; but, although a beautiful and valuable metal, possessing many of the qualities to render it acceptable as coin, its employment as money has been found to be impracticable. Great numbers of alloys have been employed in coinage, and indeed it may be said that al- most the entire system of metallic currency throughout the world is composed of alloys. The Tuscan sequin, the purest coin known in history, contained 999 parts of gold in 1,000. The six ducat piece of Naples was next in pu- rity, having only an alloy of 4, while old By- zantine coins called bezants contained an alloy of 14 parts in 1000. Pure gold and silver, however, are soft metals, and untempered by others are subject to serious loss by abrasion. | They are, therefore, rendered more useful by I the admixture of a small portion of copper I which, in the English system, in the case of i gold, may be expressed decimally by 916.66, j and of silver 925 parts in 1,000. Nickel is usually alloyed with three parts of copper, and j it is noteworthy that its adoption as a subsid- ' iary coinage in Germany, coincident with the i demonetization of silver, caused it to advance rapidly in price, while the latter was as rapidly declining. The old Roman as was made of the mixed metal called ces, a compound of copper and tin, and in quality and value not unlike i bronze. Brass was also extensively used from the time of Hiram of Tyre to that of the Em- ' peror Otho. The old Kings of Northumbria I coined a small money called stycas out of 9 natural alloy, composed of copper, zinc, gold, silver, lead, and tin, which the metallurgists of that rude northern coast had 'not enough chemical skill to separate. Lycurgus established an iron coinage for Lacedaemon, not only making the coins of such weight and bulk as to forbid their export, but depriving them of their metallic value by caus- ing them while heated to be plunged into vin- egar, thereby destroying their malleability. While these coins were the largest of which historic mention is made, the Portuguese rei, too small to be actually coined, is doubtless the smallest unit of value in the money systems of the world. It is only about the nineteenth part of an English penny, and is considerably | smaller than the Chinese cash, which, of actual j coins, is perhaps of the lowest value known. | In Sweden, during the last century, huge squares of copper, weighing between three and four pounds, with a stamp in each corner and one in the center, were issued as coin, and curi- ous specimens of them may still be seen iu ; numismatical collections. These, with the Maundy money, a small portion of which is still annually struck at the British Mint, and 1 distributed by Her Majesty in alms, probably 446 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. represent the extremest variation of dimen- sions known among modern systems of coin- age, the smallest piece of the Maundy money being a silver penny. The Chinese probably illustrate in the most extreme manner the length to which loose views concerning currency can be carried. The history of their currency presents that mingling of the grotesque with the tragic which most of their actions have when viewed through West- ern eyes. Coined money was known among them as early as the eleventh century before Christ, but their inability to comprehend the principles upon which a currency should be based has led them into all sorts of extrava- gances, which have been attended by dis- order, famine, and bloodshed. Coins came at last to be made so thin that one thousand of them piled together were only three inches high ; then gold and silver were abandoned, and copper, tin, shells, skins, stones, and paper were given a fixed value and used until, by abuse, all the advantages to be derived from the use of money were lost, and there was nothing left for the people to do but to go back to barter, and this they did more than once. They can- not be said now to have a coinage ; 2900 years ago they made round coins with a square hole in the middle, and they have since made no advance beyond that. The well- known cash is a cast brass coin of that descrip- tion, and although it is valued at about one mill and a half of United States money, and has to be strung in lots of one thousand to be computed with any ease, it is the sole meas- ure of value* and legal tender of the country. Spanish, Mexican, and the new trade dollars of the United States are employed in China; they pass because they are necessary for larger operations, and because faith in their standard value has become established ; but they are current simply as stamped ingots, with their weight and fineness indicated. The coined money of Great Britain is the most elegantly executed, and among the purest in the world. The greater part of the conti- nental coinage is poorly executed and basely alloyed. In Holland, and most of the German states, the coins legally current as silver money are apparently one third brass, and resemble the counterfeit shillings and sixpences of a former period in England. In France and Belgium, the new gold and silver coins are handsome, and so likewise are the large gold and silver pieces of Prussia. The coins and medals executed by direction of Napoleon in France are in a high style of art. The Latin Monetary Union was established in December, 1865, for the purpose of main- taininf the double standard of metallic cur- rency, or keeping silver at a constant ratio with gold. The combination was formed by a union of France, Italy, Belgium, and Swit- zerland. The possible depreciation of silver was fore- seen, and some of its fluctuations had been experienced, but it was thought that, by a close union of silver-using powers rating silver at a common value, its price could be made | permanent. At first the combination proceeded i boldly. It threw open the mints of the Union i to bullion owners, declaring that it would coin silver at the ratio to gold that it had estab- lished of fifteen and one half to one, and pro- I claimed that the coins thus issued should have ' in the markets both a legal tender efficiency and an intrinsic efficiency in exchange exactly represented by that proportion. The plan worked well until the year 1873, ! when Germany demonetized silver. But in the i meantime it was sought to give the double standard a broader foundation by bringing j other nations into the combination. For this purpose, at the invitation of the French government, forty-five representatives of twen- ty-three countries met at Paris, in 1867. The proposed double standard was examined and discussed from every point of view by ' men skilled in financial science, and was at ' last rejected by a vote of forty-three to two. In 1870, there was a second gathering of the same kind, which, by a smaller majority, arrived at the same conclusion. Meantime silver had begun to accumulate, and deprecia- tion to foreshadow itself more clearly. The demonetization of the metal by Germany gave the first sharp alarm. The Union was imme- diately forced to limit the coinage for 1874 to 824,000.000. This was increased to $30,000,- I 000 in 1875, but again reduced in 1876 to $24,000,000, and in 1877, to $11,600,000. In the meantime, also, France, Belgium, and Switzerland stopped the coinage of five-franc pieces, thus reducing what silver they had to a large subsidiary currency. Later signs of the dissolution of the Union with the defeat of its objects were supplied by the failure of the monetary conference at Paris, and by the with- drawal of Switzerland from the Union. GREAT BRITAIN, COINED MONEY OF. In Great Britain, money of the current and standard coinage is frequently signified by the term sterling, as "one pound sterling," etc. With respect to the origin of the word ster- ling there are three opinions. The first is that it is derived from Stirling Castle, and that Ed- ward I. , having penetrated so far into Scotland, caused a coin to be struck there, which he FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 447 called Stirling. The second opinion derives it from the figure of a bird called starling, which appears about the cross in the ancient arms of England. The third most probably assigns its true origin, by deducing it from Esterling ; for in the time of Henry III., it is called Moneta Esterlingorum, the money of the Esterlings or people of the East, who came hither to refine the silver of which it was made, and hence it was valued more than any other coin, on account of the purity of its substance. The denomination of the weights and their parts is of the Saxon or Esterling tongue, as pound, shilling, penny, and farthing, which are so called in their language to the present day. The term sterling is now disused in Eng- land in all ordinary transactions, but is still used in Scotland to distinguish sums from the ancient money of the country, as referred to in old deeds and notices of pecuniary transac- tions. The old Scots' money, previous to the Union of 1707, was in pounds, shillings, and pence, but these were only a twelfth of the value of sterling money of the same denomina- tion ; thus a pound Scots was only twenty pence sterling. The word sterling is also in use in the colonies, to distinguish the legal standard of Great Britain from the currency money in these places. It is customary to estimate the purity of gold by an imaginary standard of 24 carats. If in a piece of gold weighing 24 carats there be l-24th of alloy, then the piece is one be- low the standard. What is called jewelers' ! gold is seldom purer than 20 fine to 4 of alloy ' the alloy being usually silver, but some- ] times copper, which gives a deeper red tinge to the metal. Perfectly pure gold is never seen either in trinkets or coins, for it is too ductile, and for that and other reasons requires a certain quantity of alloy. Sovereigns, and other modern English gold coins, contain one twelfth of alloy, but this twelfth is not reck- oned as gold in point of value. At present j the gold coin of Great Britain is issued at very i nearly its precise market value as bullion. A pound weight of gold of 22 carats fineness produces coins to the amount of 46 pounds, 14 shillings, and 6 pence, which is about the price ' at which bullion sells for in the market. Thus the gold of that country is coined free of ex- pense. In coining silver, the government is allowed by the Act of 56, George III., a profit or seigniorage of about 6 per cent. ; the pound weight of silver, which should produce 62 shillings, being coined into 66 shillings. The silver coins being therefore of a little less real value than the sums they represent, they are not liable to be melted down by silversmiths for the manufacture of articles in their trade. AMERICAN COINAGE, EARLY. The earliest coinage that can be called Amer- ican, in the sense of Anglo-American, was ! ordered by the original Virginia Company only 1 five years after the founding of Jamestown. { The coin was minted at Somers Island, now , known as the Bermudas. For a long while the standard currency of Virginia was tobacco, as in many of the early settlements of the Northwest it was beaver skins, and other pelts reckoned as worth such a fraction of a beaver j skin or so many beaver skins. In 1645 the Assembly of the Virginia Colony, after a pre- : amble reciting that " It had maturely weighed and considered how advantageous a quoiue j would be to this colony, and the great wants and miseries which do daily happen unto it by the sole dependency upon tobacco," provided for the issue of copper coins of the denomina- tion of twopence, threepence, sixpence, and ninepence ; but this law was never carried into effect, so that the first colonial coinage of America was that struck off by Massachusetts under the order of the General Court of that colony, passed May 27, 1652, creating a " mint house " at Boston, and providing for the mint- age of " twelvepence, sixpence, and threepence pieces, which shall be for forme flatt, and stamped on the one side with N. E., and on the other side with xiid., vid., and iiid., ac- cording to the value of each pence." In 1662 from this same mint appeared the famous "pine tree shillings," which were twopenny pieces, having a pine tree on one side. This mint was maintained for thirty-four years. In the reign of William and Mary copper coins were struck in England for New England and Carolina. Lord Baltimore had silver shillings, sixpences, and fourpences made in England to supply the demand of his province in Mary- land. Vermont and Connecticut established mints in 1785 for the issue of copper coin. New Jersey followed a year later. But Con- gress had the establishment of a mint for the confederated States under advisement, and in this same year agreed upon apian submitted by Thomas Jefferson, and the act went into opera- tion on a small scale in 1787. After the adop- tion of the Constitution of the United States in 1789 all the state mints were closed, as the Constitution specifically places the sole power of coining money in the Federal Government. The gold pieces are : 1. The double eagle, or $20 piece. Coin- age of the double eagle was authorized by the Act of March 3, 1849. Its weight is 516 grains. Its fineness is 900. (This technical form of expression means that 900 parts in 1,000 are pure metal, the other 100 parts are alloy.) The amount of coinage of the double 448 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. eagle is far greater than that of all the other gold pieces of the country. 2. The eagle, or $10 piece. Its coinage was authorized by the Act of April 2, 1792. The weight was first established by law at 270 grains, but was changed forty-two years afterward, by the Act of June 28, 1834, to 258 grains, where it has remained ever since. Its fineness was in the beginning made 916f, but was changed by the Act of June 28, 1834, the same act that lowered its weight, to 899.225. Two years and a half subsequently its fineness was increased less than one part in a thousand to 900. Its weight and fine- ness have remained thus fixed to the present day. 3. The half eagle, or $5 piece. This ele- gant coin has undergone the same vicissitudes as the eagle. Its coinage was authorized by the same Act of April 2, 1792. Its weight was 135 grains, and its fineness 916. By the Act of June 28, 1834, its weight was reduced to 129 grains, and its fineness to 899.225. By the Act of January 16, 1857, its fineness was slightly raised to the uniform standard of 900. Its weight and fineness have thus remained to our time. 4. The quarter eagle, or 82.50 piece. This fine coin belongs to the same family with the eagle and half eagle. Its coinage was author- ized, its weight and fineness correspondingly altered, by the same acts. The statute of 1792 made its weight 67.5 grains and its fineness 916. Its weight was reduced to 64.5 grains and its fineness to 800.225 by the Act of 1834. The Act of 1837 raised its fineness to 900. 5. The dollar. This pretty little gold piece was created by the Act of March 3, 1849, the same act that authorized the coinage of the double eagle. It has remained unchanged. Its weight is 25.8 grains and its fineness 900. 6. Three-dollar piece. An Act of February 21, 1853, established this irregular coin. Its weight, 77.4 grains, and its fineness 900, are of the normal standard, and have not been changed by subsequent acts. hi gold coin the alloy was at first a com- pound of silver and copper. It was forbidden by statute that the alloy should be more than half silver. It is now nearly all copper, owing to advances in the art of assaying and im- proved methods in coinage. There are four coining mints, located at Philadelphia, Pa. ; San Francisco, Cal. ; Car- son City, Nev. ; and New Orleans, La., the last one being put in operation on January 20, 1879. The largest proportion of assaying and refining is done at New York city ; Helena, Montana; Bois4 City, Idaho; and Denver, Colorado. The Philadelphia Mint is capable of turning out about$l,500,000 in coined money a month ; the San Francisco Mint, $1,000,000 ; the Car- son City Mint, $500,000 ; and the New Or- leans Mint about 500,000 pieces of various denominations. Under the law of February 28, 1878, which required that between 2,000,000 and 4,000,000 of the new (" Bland ") dollars should be turned out by the mints every month, the coining facilities of the govern- ment were severely tested to produce this par- ticular silver coin, and maintain the usual supply of gold and subsidiary coins. Silver is sent from the assay offices to the mints pure, or 999 fine, which is about as pure as silver can be. It is sent in large bars, and, when received at the mint, is melted and alloyed with copper. Coin silver is 900 fine. The first silver coins were struck in 1794 (authorized in 1792), at the Philadelphia Mint, and consisted of 1,758 dollars, and 10,600 half dollars, and a few half dimes (5 cents), more for curiosities than use. In the succeeding year the issue was 203,033 dollars, 323,038 half dollars, no quarters, no dimes, and 86,416 half dimes. In 1796 the mint coined only 72,920 dollars, and 3,918 half dollars, with 2,948 quarters. In 1797 the number of dol- lars issued was 2,776, and the mint records state that there were no half dollars and only 252 quarters. Dollars only were coined in 1798. In 1796 the head of Liberty was changed, and a new head, inferior in point of comeliness, substituted. This also had flow- ing locks, but these were bound by a broad fillet, and hence the name " fillet dollars." In 1798 there were no halves nor quarters, and there were none in 1799, nor again in 1800. But in the following year the half dollars were commenced again, being of the fillet series, with the heraldic eagle on the reverse. 1804 is the annus mirabilis of the American silver coins. According to the records, 19,570 dollars were issued, 156,519 halves, and 6,738 quarters. There are but two dollars of 1804 known to exist, and these are said to have been struck surreptitiously from the original die at the Philadelphia mint in 1827. The value of these two to numismaticians is enormous ; as high as $1,000 has been refused for one of them. The first dollar pieces (1792) contained 416 grains of silver of 892.7 fineness, and this pro- portion was maintained until 1873, when the quantity of silver was reduced to 412.5 grains, and the fineness increased to 900. The fifty- cent pieces, from 1792 to 1837, contained 208 grains, 892.7 fineness, and the twenty-five cent pieces a proportionate amount ; and both wer FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 449 subjected to a reduction in number of grains and increase in fineness in 1873. The ten- cent pieces contained 41.6 grains, of standard fineness, and now bear 38.58 grains under the new standard of fineness. From 1851 to 1853, the five-cent pieces were composed of 12.375 grains, 750 fine, and from 1853 to 1873, when their coinage was abolished, 11.52 grains, 900 fine. The old copper cents, authorized in 1792, contained 264 grains ; the next year the amount was reduced to 208, and three years later to 168. As a purely copper token this coin was abolished shortly after the last reduc- tion in the number of grains. The two-cent piece of April, 1864, contained 96 grains of copper, zinc, and tin, and was discontinued in 1873. The half-cent pieces were established in 1792, containing 132 grains ; this amount was reduced in 1793 to 104, and in 1796 to 84. None are coined now. An act of March, 1875, authorized the coinage of a silver twenty-cent piece, containing 77. 16 grains, 900 fine. This coin being but a trifle smaller than the twenty- five cent piece, led to such a general confusion of the two, that in 1878 its coinage was stopped. But few are now found in circula- tion. The one-cent piece of present use was authorized in 1857, and consisted of 72 grains of copper and nickel, and in 1864 this compo- sition was changed to 48 grains of copper, zinc, and tin. Finally, the five and three cent nickel pieces were authorized in 1866 and 1865 respectively; the latter has a comparatively small circulation. The amount of standard silver dollars coined from February 28, 1878. to October 31, 1882, was $128,329,880, of which $93,006,382 re- mained in the Treasury, and $35,323,498 was placed in circulation. Of -the $30,007,175 coined in the thirteen months preceding Octo- ber 31, 1882, $2,950,072 went into circulation, and $27,057,103 remained in the Treasury. The total value of the minor coin in the Treasury on September 1, 1882, was $504,- 515.29. The supply of five-cent nickel coins in the Treasury, which three years previous reached the sum of $1,184,252.95, had been exhausted, and their coinage was resumed by the mint. None of these coins are supplied by the Treasury, but the one-cent and five-cent pieces are furnished in multiples of $20 by the mint, which bears the expense of their trans- portation. BANKS. The term bank, in reference to commerce, signifies a place of deposit of money, and is derived from the Italian banco, a seat or bench, because the early custodians and dealers in money in Italy were accustomed to sit on benches in the market places of the principal towns. During the middle ages, in which commerce was but little developed, there could be no field open for banking as a business ; but on the revival of business in the twelfth century, and when the cities of Italy engrossed nearly all the trade of Europe, the necessity arose again for the employment of bankers. The successful manufacturing efforts of the Florentines brought them into commercial dealings with different countries in Europe, and thence arose the establishment of banks as private concerns. The earliest public bank established in modern Europe was that of Venice, which was founded in 1157. About the year 1350, the cloth merchants of Barce- lona, then a wealthy body, added the business of banking to their other commercial pursuits ; being authorized so to do by an ordinance of the King of Aragon, which contained the im- portant stipulation that they should be re- stricted from acting as bankers until they should have given sufficient security for the liquidation of their engagements. In 1401 a bank was opened by the functionaries of the city, which was both a bank of deposit and of circulation, the first of the kind ever estab- lished in Europe. The Bank of Genoa was planned and par- tially organized in 1345, but was not brought into operation until 1407, when the numerous loans which the Republic had contracted with its citizens were consolidated, and formed the nominal capital stock of the bank. As secu- rity for its capital in the hands of the Republic, this bank, which was given the name of the Chamber of St. George, received in pledge the Island of Corsica, and several other depend- encies of Genoa. Since 1800, when the French, besieged in Genoa, appropriated its treasure to the payment of their troops, the bank has had little other than a nominal existence. The banks of note next established, of which records remain, were opened in Holland and in Hamburg. The most celebrated of these was the Bank of Amsterdam, established in 1609, simply as a bank of deposit, under the guaranty of the city. The credit given in the bank for foreign coin and the worn coin of the country was called bank money, to distin- guish it from current money of the place ; and as the regulations directed that all bills drawn upon or negotiated at Amsterdam, of the value of 600 guilders and upwards, must be paid in bank-money, every merchant was obliged to keep an account with the bank, in order to make his ordinary payments. The Bank of Hamburg was established in 1619, on the model of that of Amsterdam originally. Deposits are received only in bullion, and ? 450 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. charge is made for their safe keeping. It ad- vances money on jewels up to three fourths of their value. The city is responsible for all deposits, which may be sold at auction if they remain eighteen months without payment of charges. If the value is not claimed within three years, the property in the deposits is lost, and passes to the poor fund of the city. Next in point of date among these establish- ments is the Bank of England, which was opened in 1694. It was originally chartered for ten years, and the charter has since been prolonged, by various renewals, till August 1 , 1879, and, from that date, subject to a year's notice. The Bank of England is, and always has been, the government bank, transacting for it all the banking business of the nation, receiving the produce of the taxes, loans, etc., and paying the interest of the public debt, the drafts of the Treasury, and other public de- partments, transferring stock, etc. For this service the bank receives, exclusive of the use of the balances of the public money in its hands, about 95,000 a year. Down to 1797 the bank always had paid its notes on demand. But in 1796 and the early part of 1797, owing to rumors of a French in- vation, there was a run made on the bank, an 1 it was feared that a suspension was inevi- table. In February, 1797, Mr. Pitt, appre- hensive that he might not be able to obtain sufficient specie for foreign payments, in con- sequence of the low state of the bank reserve, procured the issue of an order in council, re- quiring the bank to suspend specie payments. The suspension lasted till 1819, and is known to writers on finance as "the period of the bank restriction." The bank's notes, how- ever, continued to circulate, and a committee of the House of Commons reported soon after the suspension that the bank was not merely possessed of the most ample funds to meet all its engagements, but that it had a surplus stock, after the deduction of all demands, of no less than 15,513,000. The Bank of England is the custodian of the reserves of the several London banks and pri- vate bankers. These deposited reserves are, for the most part, loaned out by the bank. Then, again, the reserves of the country banks, and of the Scotch and Irish bankers as well, are deposited with the great English banks, which, in their turn, keep their reserves at the Bank of England. Therefore the reserve in the banking department of the Bank of Eng- land is the banking reserve not only of the Bank of England but of all London, and not only of all London, but of all England, Ire- land, and Scotland. The credit system of Great Britain depends upon the security of the Bank of England. The Bank of Vienna, established in 1703 as a bank of deposit and circulation, became a bank of issue in 1793. This institution now does comparatively little commercial business being recognized as a means of the govern, ment for managing the public debt and fi- nances. The Banks of Berlin and Breslau were founded in 1765 under the direct authority of the government. They are banks of deposit and issue, and also discount bills of exchange. In some important particulars the banking system of Germany resembles that of the United States, the Imperial Bank and its branches in nearly every town corresponding to the American chain of National Banks. The Imperial Bank enjoys an enormous monop- oly of immunities and powers. Russian Banks. During the reign of the Empress Catharine, three different banks were established in St. Petersburg : the Loan Bank, the Assignation Bank, and the Loan Bank for the nobility and towns. The first, opened in 1772, made advances upon deposits of bul- lion and jewels, and allowed interest upon all sums remaining for one year and over. At present the operations of this bank are carried on for the benefit of the Foundling Hospital in St. Petersburg. The Assignation Bank was opened in St. Petersburg in 1768, and in Mos- cow in 1770. It issues paper money, and is really an imperial institution. The Loan Bank, for the nobility and towns, advances money on real security, discounts commercial paper, and carries on an insurance business. In 1797 the Aid Bank was established for the purpose of advancing money to relieve estates from irort- gages, and to provide for their improvement. There is also the Commercial Bank of Russia, whose capital is declared to be sacred by the government, and free from all taxes, attach- ments, and calls from the State. It has numerous branches throughout the empire, re- ceives deposits of coin and bullion, discounts paper, and makes advances upon merchandise of domestic production. The Bank of Stockholm was founded in 1688, when its direction was assumed by the Assembly of the States of the Kingdom of Sweden, and it became a bank of deposit, dis- count, and circulation. Since 1766, when the affairs of the bank fell to a very low state, and the Assembly assisted it with a large loan, a committee, composed of members of each of the three States, nobles, clergy, and bnrghers is appointed triennially to inspect its condition, securities, and prospects. The Bank of France, originally formed in 1800, was placed on a solid basis in 1806, when its capital was raised to 80,000,000 FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 451 francs. The bank is now the only authorized source of paper money in France. Its charter and exclusive privileges have been conferred, varied, or continued by different governments and under various laws ; the year 1897 was the time fixed at which the terms made with the bank by the public might be ended. The bank has branches scattered throughout all the departments. Besides discounting, the Bank of France advances upon deposits of stock and pledges of a miscellaneous kind. It also undertakes the safe custody of valuables. A council of twenty-one members conducts the direction of affairs, viz. : a governor and two sub-governors, who are to be nominees of the head of the government ; fifteen directors and three censors, nominated by the shareholders. UNITED STATES BANKS. The, first United States bank was established by Act of Congress, approved July 25, 1791. It was organized at Philadelphia, with a capi- tal of $10,000,000, divided into 25,000 shares of $400 each. The act prescribed that any person, copartnership, or body politic might subscribe for any number of shares not exceed- ing 1,000 only the United States could s.ib- scribe for more than this number of shares ; that with the exception of the United States the subscriptions should be payable one fourth in gold and silver, and the remaining three fourths in certain six per cent, bonds of the United States ; that the subscribers should be incorporated under the name of " The Presi- dent, Directors, and Company of the Bank of the United States, ' ' and the organization should continue until March 4, 1811 ; that the bank could hold property of all kinds, inclusive of its capital, to the amount of $15,000,000 ; that twenty-five directors should be chosen, who in turn should choose from their number a President ; that as soon as $400,000 in gold and silver was received on subscription, the bank could organize, after giving a notice of its intention. The general effect of this insti- tution was very salutary. The credit >of the United States became firmly established. The bank notes stood at par with gold and silver. The large deposits made the money available for the use of the Treasury, and the State bank currency, which had flooded the country with no prospects of redemption, was greatly re- duced. But with all its recognized advantages, the act to recharter was defeated in 1811 by the casting vote of the Vice-President, George Clinton. Its loss, however, was immediately felt in the sudden and rapid increase of the currency of the State banks. To ward off an impending crisis, a second bank was estab- | Ushed by an act approved by President Madi- , son, April 10, 1816, at Philadelphia. A capital of $35,000,000 was required, which was to be equally divided into 350,000 shares, of which the United States took 70,000. The charter extended to March 3, 1836. The bank Was prohibited from lending, on account of the United States, more than $500,000, or to any prince or foreign power any sum whatever, without the sanction of law first obtained ; and it was also prohibited from issuing bills of less denomination than $5. In time, to facilitate business, branch offices were established in every state. In December, 1829, however, the bank met strenuous opposition in the message of President Jackson, who argued, as did Jeffer- son when the first bank was started, against the constitutionality of its charter ; and when Congress, in 1832, passed a bill to recharter the institution he imposed his veto, and soon after removed from the bank the United States depos- its. The bank corporation, however, continued to exist until 1836, when the charter terminated. The National Banking System was created by Congress in the belief that it was the best permanent method of securing paper money absolutely safe from loss to the holder and readily convertible into coin. Under the laws of the United States any number of per- sons not less than five may form an association and obtain a charter for the purpose of carry.- ing on the business of a national bank. The capital stock of a national banking association is divided into shares of $100 each, and in cit- ies of 50,000 population, or over, no associa- tion can be organized with a less capital than $200,000 ; in cities of less than 50,000, $100,- 000 capital is required, but, with the approval of the Secretary of the Treasury, national banks may be organized in places of less than 6,000 inhabitants \vith a capital of $50,000. National banks are authorized to discount and negotiate notes, drafts, etc. ; to receive deposits; to buy and sell exchange, coin, and bullion ; to loan money on personal security, and to issue circulating notes. They are pro- hibited from making loans on real estate, or on security of their own shares of capital, ex- cept to secure debts previously contracted, and real estate purchased or mortgaged to secure a pre-existing debt cannot be held for a longer period than five years Every national bank, before it is authorized to comin3i.ce business, must transfer to the Treasurer of the United States registered bonds, bearing interest, to an amount not less than one fourth of the capital stock paid in, as security for its circulating notes. Banks hav- ing a capital of more than $150,000 shall be required to deposit bonds to the amount of one third of their capital stock. 452 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Upon a deposit of registered bonds, the as- sociation making the same will receive from th Comptroller of the Currency circulating notes of different denominations, in blank, equal in amount to ninety per cent, of the cur- rent market value, not exceeding par, of the bonds so deposited. The national banks pay to the United States a tax of one per cent, annually upon the average amount of their notes in circulation, one half per cent, annually upon the average amount of their deposits, and one half per cent, annually upon the average amount of capital not in- vested in United States bonds. Banks other than national pay taxes to the United States on account of their circulation, deposits, and capi- tal at the same rates as are paid by the na- tional banks. Savings Banks. These are banks for receiving and taking charge of small sums, the savings of industry, and were instituted for the benefit of workmen and others, who were able to spare a little from their earnings. It is believed that Quaker thrift in Philadelphia, Pa. , led to the inception of the idea, and that the first saving^ bank in the world was founded in that city in 1816. As the scheme grew in popularity throughout the United States, guardians of minor children, administrators of estates of deceased persons, and other hold- ers of trust funds, found the savings banks very serviceable as places of deposit for money that had to be laid away for a specified period of time. Hence, the exigencies of business transac- i tions forced an innovation upon the original i plan. In the United States this use of savings j banks is still maintained ; but during the past ; fifteen years Safe Deposit and Trust Companies \ have been numerously established for the special | purpose of holding funds, both in trust and in legal dispute, besides securities of all kinds, jewelry, diamonds, and articles of like value, j Thus a guardian, an administrator, or a society i will invest money in Government, State, or ! City bonds, or, if permitted by the terms of ; trust, in real estate, or stock of various corpo- rations, and place the bond, certificate of stock, or other acknowledgment of the indebtedness, with a Safe Deposit or Trust Company, for safe-keeping. The savings banks are allowed by law to invest their money in first-class se- curities only, so as to prevent their officers from using the fund in the irregular pursuit of " wild-cat " speculation. The average rate of interest allowed by sav- ings banks in the United States on deposits is four per cent. ; it is frequently below that rate. Some of the larger banks will not permit indi- vidual deposits beyond a special amount atone , while others decrease the rate of interest ; as the amount of deposits increases, claiming that their vast aggregates of deposits cannot be invested, under the law, in a manner that will warrant the maximum rate of interest after paying current expenses. From Philadelphia the original conception or plan of the savings bank extended all over the United States, throughout the United Kingdom, France, and other countries. Sev- eral Acts of Parliament were successively passed between 1817 and 1828 for the regula- lation of savings banks in England ; and in the year last mentioned the whole of these were consolidated in one statute (9 Geo. IV., chap. 92). This Act, together with another passed in 1833, conferring additional and im- portant privileges on savings banks (3 Will. IV., chap. 14), constitutes the existing law relative to these establishments. In 1835 the Act was extended to Scotland. SEIGNIORAGE. This term, as used in the United States, means the profit arising from the coinage of bullion. The government does not purchase gold bullion, but coins it on private account. There is no profit from the coinage of gold bullion, the face value of gold coins being the same as their bullion value ; but at the present ratio of 16 to 1, the face value of the silver dollar is greater than its bullion value ; there- fore, when silver bullion is purchased and coined into dollars there is a profit arising from such coinage, the amount of which de- pends upon the price paid for the bullion. For example, there are 371 1-4 grains of pure sil- ver in a dollar, and there are 480 grains of pure silver in a fine ounce. The coinage value of a fine ounce is therefore $1.2929 . If the fine ounce can be purchased for severity cents, the profit of its coinage (the seigniorage) is $0.5929 , and the profit on the 371 1-4 grains of pure silver in the single dollar is $0.4586 , which is the difference between the actual cost of the bullion in the dollar and the nominal value of the coin. MONEY IN THE UNITED STATES. i 18CO 1870 1880 1890 1894 1895 1896 1897 1898 MI a*ii Mi a9 * . sa fi ft Mils *"*!!* $442,102.477 722,868,461 l,205,92'.t,197 2,144,226,159 2.420,434.781 2,398,607.4iO 2,347,306.006 2,497 .4K5.572 2,637,433,375 $435,407,252 31,443,321 f 14.16 $13.85 675.212,794 38.55H.371 18.73 17.50 973,382,228 50,155,783 24.04 19.41 1,429,251,270 62,622,250 34.24 22.82 1.660,808.708 68,397,000 35.39 24.28 1,601,968,473 9,878,000 34.33 'Z2.93 1,506434.966 71,390,000 32.88 21.10 l,640,i.'09,519 72,937,000 34.24 K.49 1,837,859,895 74,522,000 35.39 24.66 FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 463 VAIiUB FOREIGN COINS IN UNITED STATES MONEY. COCNTBY. Standard. Monetary Unit. Value In U. S. Gold Dollar. Coras. Argentine Rep . . . Austria-Hungary Belgium Gold&Sil. Gold Peso $0.96,5 .20,3 .19,3 .43.6 .54,6 1.00 .43,6 .36,5 .64,5 .71,8 .68,4 .67,5 .43,6 .46,5 .92,6 .26,8 .43,6 4.94.3 .19,3 .19.3 .23,8 4.86,6% JM .96.5 .20.7 .19,3 .49,8 1.00 .47,4 .40,2 1.01,4 .26.8 .436 108 .51,5 .19,3 .2K.8 .19.3 Gold : argentine ($4.82,4) and % argentine. Silver : peso and divisions. Gold: former system 4 florins ($1.92.9\ 8 florins ($3.85 81, ducat ($2.23,7), and 4 ducats ($9.14,9). Silver: 1 and 2 florins. Gold: present system 20 crowns (84.05,2) and 10 crowns (82.02,6). Gold : 10 and 20 francs. Silver : 5 francs. Silver: boliviano and divisions. Gold : 5, 10, and 20 milreis. Silver : %, 1, and 2 mllreis. Silver : peso and divisions. Gold : escudo (1.82,5), doubloon ($3.65), and condor ($7.30). Silver : peso and divisions. Gold : condor ($9.64,7) and double-condor. Silver : peso. Gold : 2, 5, 10, and 20 colons ($9.30,7). Silver : 5, 10, 25, anil 50 centimes. Gold: doubloon ($5.01,7). Silver: peso, ftold : 10 and 'JO crowns. Gold: condor ('. 64, 7) and double-condor. Silver: sucre and divisions. Gold: pound (100 piasters), 5, 10, 20, and 50 pias- ters. Silver . 1, 2. 5, 10, and 20 piasters. Gold : 20 marks ($3.85.9), 10 marks ($1.93). Gold : 5, 10, 20, 50, and 100 francs. Silver : 5 francs. 3old : 5, 10, and 20 marks. Told: sovereign (pound sterling) and % sovereign. Gold: 5, 10, 29, 50, and 100 drachmas. Silver: 5 drachmas. Silver: gourde. Gold : mohur ($7.10,5). Silver : rupee and divisions. Gold : 5, 10, 20, 50, and 100 lire. Silver : 5 lire. Gold : 1, 2, 5, 10, and 20 yen. Silver : 10, 20, and 50 sen. Gold : dollar ($0.98,3), 2%, 5, 10, and 20 dollars. Sil- ver : dollar (or peso) and divisions. Gold : 10 florins. Silver: y a , 1, and 2% florins. Gold : 2 dollars ($2.02,7). "Jold : 10 and 20 crowns. Silver: sol and divisions. Gold : 1, 2, 5, and 10 milreis. Gold: imperial ($7.71,8) and \ imperial ($3.86). Crown and V 2 crown. Silver : %, */4 and 1 ruble, lold : 25 pesetas. Silver : 5 pesetas. Gold : 10 and 20 crowns. Gold : 5, 10. 20. 50, and 100 francs. Silver : 5 francs. Gold : 25, 50, 100, 250, and 500 piasters, i old: peso. Silver: peso and divisions. Gold : 5, 10, 20, 50, and 100 bolivars. Silver : 5 boli- vars. Crown Gold&Sil. Silver Gold Franc Bolivia Brazil Boliviano.. . Milreis Canada Central America. Chile China Colombia Costa Rica Cuba Gold Silver Gold Silver Silver Gold Gold& Sil. Gold Silver Gold Gold... Gold&Sil. Gold Gold Gold&Sil. Gold&Sil. Silver Gold & Sil. Gold Gold Silver Gold&Sil. Gold Gold Dollar Peso Peso (Shanghai.. Tapl J Haikwan . . rael "-n Tientsin... l^Chefoo .... Peso Colon Peso Denmark Ecuador Egypt Finland France Crown Sucre Pound (100 piasters). Mark Franc Germany Great Britain.... Greece Mark Pound sterling Havti. . . Gourde India Italy Rupee Lira ....... Japan Liberia Mexico Netherlands Newfoundland . . . Norway Yen Dollar Dollar Florin Dollar Crown Peru Portugal Russia Spain Silver Gold Gold Gold&Sil. Gold Sol Milreis Ruble Peseta Sweden Crown Switzerland Turkey Uruguay Venezuela Gold & Sil. Gold Gold Gold&Sil. 1'iaster .04,4 1.03.4 .19,3 Peso Bolivar * Not including Costa Rica. t Value of the rupee to be determined by consular certificate. Coinage at United States Mints. Total coinage of the mints since their organization, 1792 (Philadelphia), to June 30, 1900, is as follows : DENOMINATIONS. DENOMINATIONS. DENOMINATIONS. GOLD. Dollars (Lafayette souv.) $50,026.00 MINOR. Double Eagles $1,538,826,060.00 Half Dollars 144,988,509.00 5 cent pieces, nickel . . Eagles 319,061,160.00 Half Dollars (Coluinbi- ! 3 cent pieces, nickel . . Half Eagles 259,066,545.00; an souvenir) 2,501,052.50 2 cent pieces, bronze .. 3 dollar pieces 1,619,376 00 Quarter Dollars 63,763,021.50 1 cent pieces, copper .. Quarter Eagles 29,015,635.00 Quarter Dollars (Co- 1 cent pieces, nickel. .. Dollars 19,499,337.00! luigbian souvenir;.. . 10,005.75 1 cent pieces, bronze.. Total Gold $2~W 0881T3 00 2 cent P ieces 271,000.i V, cent pieces, copper. Dimes 35,931.861.20 Total Minor .. Half Dimes 4.880,219.40 1,282,087.20 $17,967,308.10 941,349.48 912,020.00 1,562,887.44 2,007,720.00 10,072,758.69 39026.11 SILVER. Dollars *$50C,527,453.00 3 cent pieces Trade Dollars 35,905,924.00 Total Silver $796,171,159.56 $33,503.e9.72 Total Coinage $2,996,763. ***Xl Silver dollar coinage under act of April 2, 1792, $8,031.238; March 3, 1891, $408,486,215; total, $506^27,45*. 464 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Approximate Amount of Money in the World, January 1, 1900. (Compiled from the Report of the Director or the Mint.) COtTNTBIES. Popula- tion.* Stock of Gold. STOCK OF SILVEB. Uncovered Paper. PER CAPITA. Full Tender. Limited Tender. Total. Gold. Silver. Paper. Total. United States.... United Kingdom. France 76,300,000 40,700,000 38,500,000 52,300,000 6,700,000 31,900,000 3,100,000 2,400,000 17,700,000 5,100,000 5,600,000 2,400,000 46,300,000 5,l(iO,000 2,100,000 5,100,000 2,300,000 130,900,000 24,500,000 4,500,000 9,800,000 12,600,000 3,500,000 38,700,000 43,800,000 296,900,000 383,500,000 4,500.000 5,500,000 1,600,000 1,000,000 3,300,000 5,000,000 2,200,000 1,100,000 2,600,000 $1,020,200,000 486,700,000 810.600,000 697,900,000 21,100,000 98,000,000 24,000,000 400,000 77,200,000 5,200,000 7,100,000 1,500,000 244,300,000 27,500,000 8,600,000 13,400,000 15,800,000 791,700,000 50,000,000 128,600,000 30,000,000 8,600,000 1,400,000 72,900,000 61,000,000 22,200,000 $563,300,000 $80,000,000 111,900,000 59,300,000 122,800,000 5,000,000 27,900,000 10,700,000 1,000,000 243,700,000 9,800,000 600,000 1,700,000 46,300,000 3,500,000 2,400,000 6,800,000 5.600,000 104,500,000 10,000,000 6,100,000 6,400,000 $643,300,000 111,900,000 421,200,000 208,400,000 40,000,000 43,900,000 10,700,000 1,500,000 243,700,000 9,800,000 600,000 -1,700,000 96,300.0110 53,400,000 2,400,000 6,800,000 5,600,000 104,500,000 40,000,000 6,100,000 6,400,000 106,000,000 11,700,000 24,200,000 26,100,000 389,300,000 750,000,000 242,000,000 5,000,000 1,500,000 2,500,000 6,800,000 193,000,000 1,000,000 1,200,000 400,000 $336,600,000 112,300,000 194,100,000 173,8"0,000 92,900,000 174,900,000 20,500,000 28,800,000 157,400,000 74,100,000 14.100,000 3,300,000 93,300,000 41,500,000 5,400,000 31,000,000 6,200,000 $13.37 11.96 11.05 13.35 3.15 3.07 7.74 .17 4.36 1.02 1.26 .63 5.27 5.39 4.09 2.62 6.87 6.05 $843 2.75 10.94 3.98 5.97 1.38 3.45 .62 13.77 1.92 .11 .70 2.08 10.47 1.14 1.33 2.43 .79 $4.41 2.75 5.04 3.32 13.86 5.48 6.61 12.00 8.89 14.53 2.51 1.37 2.01 8.14 2.57 6.07 2.70 $26.21 17.46 37.03 20.65 22.98 9.93 17.80 12.79 27.02 17.47 3.88 2.70 9.36 21.00 7.80 10.03 12.00 6.89 3.67 29.93 3.71 13.41 5.91 33.00 9.93 1.49 1.96 53.77 11.90 2.18 7.00 2.36 43.00 17.50 27.63 5.42 361,900,000 85,600,000 35 OO'J.OOO 16,000,000 Germany Belgium Italy Greece 500,000 Portugal Austria- Hungary Netherlands 50,000,000 49,900,000 Sweden Russia ... . Turkey n~r. .~r 30,000,000 ' 54,466,'000 7,600,000 1,180,200,000 69,900.000 32,400,000 2.04 28.58 3.06 .68 .40 1.88 : 3.07 .07 1.63 1.35 .65 8.41 3.34 .62 1.38 1.31 1 96 '4'.32 2.17 30.50 5.48 .11 Egypt Mexico 106,000,000 9,300,000 8,400,000 Cent. Am. States. South Am. States Japan 2,400,000 15,800,000 26,100,000 India 389,300,000 750,000000 240,000,000 China Straits Settlem'ts Canada 2,066,600 5,000,000 1,500,000 1,500,000 3,400,000 ' 40,566,'000 's'.es 1.25 53.77 .;.. .90 7.37 .93 20,666,000 2,000,000 1,000,000 1,000,000 20,000,000 37,500,000 29,200,000 4,400,000 Cuba Hay ti 1.000,000 3,400,000 193,000,000 3,500,000 2,io6,000 9,3o6;ooo 1.00 .30 4.00 17.05 26.54 1.69 2.50 2.06 38.60 .45 1.09 .15 3.50 ' ' '.40 '3.58 Bulgaria Siam Cape Colony 1,000,000 1,200,000 400,000 So. African Rep.. Finland Total 1,319,100,000 $4,841,000,000 $2,892,600,000 $926,300,000 $3,8 18,900,000 $2,960,100,000 $3.66 $2.89 $2.24 $8.79 As estimated by the Bureau of the Mint for per capita calculation. World's Production of Gold and Silver in 1899. COUNTRIES. Gold. Silver. United States Oz. line. 3,437,210 411,187 tlJ131,563 3,542,361 3,837,181 1,072,333 94,037 3,589 Value. $71,053,400 8,500,000 21,324,300 73,227,100 79,321,600 22,167,100 1,943,900 74,200 '70',600 165,900 2,000 ' 14,200 ' 58,800 137,700 68,500 $893,600 1,809,500 2,149,500 il,089,300 2,040,500 687,600 1,688,700 628.000 584,200 790,800 6,574,400 1,459,000 8,517,500 425,100 Oz., fine. 54,764.500 55,612,090 3,411,644 12,686,659 134,887 1,895,253 6,242,053 166,908 73,619 804,512 2,452,940 tl, 348 ,411 142,157 460.946 186,582 383,479 10,843,977 4,754.636 3,521,563 4,722,687 924,695 1,660,200 Coining Value. $70,806,600 71,902,500 4,411,000 16,403,000 174,400 2,450,400 8,070,500 215,800 95,200 1,040,200 3,171,500 743,400 183,800 596,000 241,200 495800 14,020.500 4:6,147,400 4,553,100 $6,106,100 1,195.600 2,146,500 Mexico Canada, Newfoundland. . . Africa Australasia Russia Austria-Hungary Germany Norway Sweden 3,414 8,027 Italy Spain Greece Turkey 687 France Great Britain 2,844 6,661 3,311 43,229 87,535 103,983 62.694 98,712 28,423 81,691 30,380 28,263 38,253 269,662 Argentina Bolivia Chile Colombia Brazil Venezuela ; Guiana (British) Guiana (Dutch) Guiana (French) Peru Japan China Korea India (British) 412,032 20,562 East Indies (British) Fine oz. of gold, $20.671834+; of silver, $1,292929+, coining rate U. S. silver dollars, Bstimat* of Him. t Newfoundlaad, 1897. J1898. \ 1*977 FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 456 STATISTICS OF SAVINGS BANKS. NUMBER OF DEPOSITORS, AMOUNT OF DEPOSITS, AND AVERAGE TO EACH DEPOSITOR, 1899-1900. STATES AND TERRITORIES. Number of Depositors. Amount of Deposits. Average to Each Depositor. STATES AND TERRITORIES. Number of Depositors. Amount of Deposits. Average to Each Depositor. Maine 183,103 136,544 118,354 *1,491,143 142,096 393,137 2,036,016 *202,682 *361,220 20,300 171,130 3,360 12,369 *8,550 *26,150 $66,132,677 53,896,711 38,290,394 533,845,790 75.489,533 174,135,195 922,081,596 57,886,922 105,416,854 5,027,395 57,857,276 421,313 1,926,407 1,717,158 5,086,451 $361.18 394.72 323.52 358.01 517.18 442.94 452.89 285.60 291.84 247.65 338.09 125.39 155.74 200.84 202.24 Florida 877 10,518 2,980 19,687 *99,592 21,091 }.208,992 2,945 51,418 $160.773 216,534 6,522 $225,395 3,284,892 584,424 2,015,472 44,535,975 5,650,961 t64,777,036 568,187 12,066,170 58,208,115 158,167,462 2,252,124 $257.01 312.31 196.12 102.37 447.18 267.93 309.95 192.93 234.67 362.05 730.45 34531 New Hampshire.. . Vermont Louisiana Texas Massachusetts Rhode Island Tennessee Ohio Connecticut Indiana .. . New York Illinois New Jersey Pennsylvania Delaware Iowa California Dist. of Columbia. West Virginia North Carolina South Carolina Utah United States... 6,107,083 $2,449,547,885 $401.10 * Partially estimated, t Savings deposits in State institutions having savings departments abstract of re- port included with State banks. $ Estimated. No returns for 1899-1900 from the following States and returns for previous years are given : Alabama, 1893-94, depositors, 2,500 ; amount of deposits, $102,347. New Mexico, 1894-95, depositors, 217 ; amount of deposits, $37,951. Washington, 1894-95, depositors, 6,512; amount of deposits, $1,148,104. Oregon, 1895-96, depositors, 1,631 ; amount of deposits, $972,298. Georgia, 1896-97, depositors, 5,384 ; amount of deposits, $288,010. Approximate Value of the Product of Gold and Silver in the United States in 1899. STATES AND TERRITORIES. Gold Value. Silver Coining Value. Total Value. STATES AND TERRITORIES. Gold Value. Silver Coining Value. Total Value. Alabama $4,300 $129 $4,429 New Mexico $584,100 $650,731 $1,234 831 Alaska 6,459,500 181,140 5,640,640 North Carolina. . . . 34,500 388 34,888 Arizona 2,566,100 2,040,630 4,606,730 Oregon 1,429,500 173,641 1,603 141 California 15,197,800 1,065,762 16,263,562 South Carolina. . . . 160,100 617 160,617 Colorado 25,982,800 29,301 ,527 55,284,327: South Dakota 6,469,500 188,251 6,667,751 Georgia 113,000 517 113,517 Texas 6900 672,323 679 223 Idaho 1,889,000 4,980,105 6,869,105! Utah 3,450,800 9,171,135 12,621,935 Maine 3,600 646 4,246 Vermont 100 100 Maryland 800 129 929 Virginia 7,100 129 7,229 Michigan 100 145,843 145,943 Washington 685,400 330,990 1,016,390 Missouri 100 129 229 Wyoming 29,200 517 29 717 4 760 100 20 810 990 25 571 090 Nevada... 2,219,000 1,090,457 3,309,457 Total . . . $71,053,400 $70,806,626 $141,860.026 Wild-cat Banks. The fraudulent in- stitutions known as wild-cat banks were started principally in the West and South after the closing up of the United States Bank and the transfer of its deposits to State banks in 1832. The scarcity of capital in these regions made it comparatively easy to put in circulation any- thing that purported to be money. Hence, any- one with a very limited capital or, in fact, without any capital at all could open a bank, issue $10,000 or more in small notes, and pass them over in easy loans to land speculators, who, in their turn, paid them out in country villages and among farmers, where the stand- ing of the bank of issue would necessarily be unknown. Hundreds of these banks were started, and immense amounts of so-called money were loaned to build cities in the wil- derness, and to contractors anxious to build rail- roads without material, tools, or means of pay- ing wages. In some cases the real place of issue was, for instance, New Orleans or Buffalo, while the bills purported to be issued and pay- able in, say, Georgia or Illinois. This method of doing business lasted four years, when the panic of 1837, one of the most painful and pro- longed crises in the financial history of the United States, overtook the country. Fortu- nately this led to the adoption in nearly all the States of such banking laws as rendered similar schemes impossible in the future. These in- stitutions were called wild-cat banks, owing to their utter lawlessness and because their vic- tims were " most awfully clawed." Trade Dollars. Previous to the coin- age of this dollar, which was brought into ex- istence through the demand on the Pacific coast for a coin to be used in commercial rela- tions, particularly with China and Japan, the old silver dollar of 37 1 grains was the only one known. The new dollar contained 420 grains, and eventually was extensively circu- lated all over the Union, but was retired after the Forty-fourth Congress enacted that it was not a legal tender. Clearing House. Th clearing house ia 456 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. an institution founded not merely upon the idea of saving time and trouble in the use of the precious metals, but also of circulating notes. The Clearing House of London, which was the first of the kind, originated among the bankers of that city, whose transactions in the checks, bills, and drafts drawn upon each other became so large as to call for the daily, and even hourly, use of vast sums in bank- notes by all of them. Appreciating how readily the debts and credits respectively due or held by them might be get off, one against the other, they formed the clearing house, where, up to four o'clock each day, all drafts, bills, etc., upon each individual member were taken. This system of the London Clearing House has, however, been much extended and im- proved. Clearing houses exist in Xew York, Philadelphia, Boston, Chicago, and other cities in the United States. A description of the system in use in Philadelphia will, in the main, answer for all. The clearings are made each morning at 8.30, just before which hour a messenger and a clerk from each bank are at the clearing house. The clerks take their seats at a series of desks arranged in the form of a half oval. The messenger brings with him from his bank a sealed package for each other bank, containing all checks or drafts on such banks. The name of the bank sending, and that of the bank to which it is sent, is printed on each package, and the amount sent is writ- ten thereon. The messengers take their places near the desks of their respective banks, and they have with them tabular statements of the amount sent to each bank, and the aggregate. These are exhibited to the respective clerks and noted by them on the blank forms. At 8.30 o'clock precisely, the manager calls to order and gives the word, when all the messen- gers move forward from left to right of the clerks, handing in to those clerks the packages addressed to their respective banks, and tak- ing receipts for them on their statements. The several clerks then pass around a memo- randum of the debts, credits, and balances, each of his respective bank. When these memoranda have made the circuit, each clerk has on his statement the debts, credits, and balances, whether debtor or creditor, of each bank. If these debits and credits, or debtor or creditor balances, are found to balance, the clerks now leave the clearing house. If not, they remain until the error or errors are discovered. The balances due by the several banks are paid into the clearinghouse that day by 11.30 o'clock A.M., and are receivable by the cred- itor bank by 12.30 P. M. Each bank is obliged daily to furnish to the clearing house g statement of ite condition at the end of the business on that day, and table* are daily fur- nished to the several banks of all the banks in the clearing house. Freedmaii's Bank was established in I March, 1865, as a charitable enterprise, to encourage frugality and thrift among the newly-liberated slaves. The institution was started at first in Washington, but afterward branch banks to the number of thirty-four ', were located in different parts of the Union. The bank was not intended to be a money-mak- ing concern, either for bankers or for deposi- ; tors, but as a place of deposit for the savings | of negroes, which savings were to be invested ! in the stocks, bonds, Treasury notes, and other securities of the United States. During the , existence of the bank, nine years, it handled jfio less than $56,000,000 of deposits, the ne- : groes being led to believe that the safety of the institution was guaranteed by the. Government,- \ which was untrue. The institution was man- aged by a number of trustees of unsavory finan- cial reputation, and, as a consequence, at the expiration of nine years it suspended payment. At the investigation which was made by a com- mittee appointed by Congress a most scandal- ous condition of affairs was discovered. The regulations of the charter had been completely ignored, and the funds had been dissipated by loans made upon inadequate securities. By law the investments of the bank were confined to Government securities alone. Unimproved real estate, unsalable stocks and personal notes, were among the assets of the bank. Deficits and embezzlements at the branch banks also produced many losses. The unsecured debts owed tojhe depositors amounted to $2,900,000, and JM assets yielded about $1 ,700,000. For some years three bank commissioners were employed, at a salary of $3,000 each, to wind up the affairs of the institution. After $475,- 000 had been expended in this " winding-up" process the affairs of the bank were all turned over to the Comptroller of the Currency. Div- idends have been paid at various times ; but many small depositors, through ignorance and despair, forfeited their dividends by not calling for them. In all, 77,000 dividends, amount- ing to $112,000, were thus forfeited. Revenues of the Government, year ending June 30, 1898 : From internal revenue, From customs, From profits on coinage, bullion de- posits, etc., From District of Columbia, From fees consular,letters patent, and land. From tax on national banks, From sales of public lands, From navy pension and navy hospital funds, From miscellaneous. From sinking fund for Pacific railway*, $170,900.841.49 149,575,062.35 4,756.469.71 3,693,282.98 2.6S9.750.M 1.97B.849.2S 1,243,1^9.42 1.146,590.41 FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 457 From sales of Indian lands, $576,687.41 From customs fees, fines, penalties, etc., 676,487.50 From payment of interest by Pacific railways, 526,286.13 From immigrant fund, 306,992.86 From sales of Government property. 224,331.32 From deposits for surveying public lands, 113,049.08 From Soldiers' Home, permanent fund, 107,612.49 From donations, 10^,^94.87. From sales of lands and buildings, 99,273.15 From sales of ordnance material, 94,638.59 From reimbursement for cost of water supply, District of Columbia, 93,086.98 From depredations on public lands, 29,154.30 From sale of Kansas Pacific Railroad, 6,303,000.00 From sale of Union Pacific Railroad, 68,448,223.75 From Postal Service, 89,012.618.55 Total receipts, $494,333,953.75 Expenditures for the same period : For the civil establishment, including foreign intercourse, public build- ings, collecting the revenues, Dis- trict of Columbia, and other miscel- laneous expenses, $86,016,464.75 For the military establishment, includ- ing rivers and harbors, forts, arsenals, seacoast defenses, and expenses of the Spanish war, 91,992,000.29 For the naval establishment, including construction of new vessels, ma- chinery, armament, equipment im- provement at navy yards and ex- penses of the Spanish war, 58.823,984.80 For Indian Service, 10,994,067.70 For pensions, 147,452,368.61 For interest on the public debt, 37,585,656.23 For deficiency in postal revenues, 10,504,040.42 For Postal Service, 89,012,618.55 Total expenditures, $532,381,201.35 Showing a deficit of, $38,047,247.60 Trades Unions. In one form or another, combinations have always existed since the employed and employing classes became dis- tinguishable from each other. Trades unions, organized for purposes such as those which contemporary unions contend for, have existed for more than three centuries. So early as 1548 a statute of Edward VI. is directed, among other culprits, against certain " artific- ers, handicraftsmen, and laborers," who had "sworn mutual oaths" to do only certain kinds of work, to regulate how much work should be done in a day, and what hours and times they should work. The usual penalties of fines, pillory, and loss of ears were to follow a breach of its enactments. Add the regula- tion of wages and the employment of union or non-union men to the objects enumerated in this statute, and we have in effect the trades unions of the present day. Many fruitless acts were afterward passed to prevent combi- nations for raising wages ; but since that time the trades unions have increased in numbers and membership, until they include nearly all the laboring classes of England and America. The advocates of the unions insist that they are the only means by which workmen can de- fend themselves against the aggressions of em- ployers. It is argued that the individual laborer has no chance of resisting the capital- ist on equal terms ; that starvation treads toe closely on his heels to permit his successfully opposing a reduction of his wages, no matter how arbitrary or unjust. It is urged that associations of employers are practically uni- versal, and that their object is mainly to secure for themselves the largest possible share of the profits which are the product of capital and labor united. Yet it cannot be denied that against these uses may be set many serious evils. Strikes are often determined upon by unions at times when the condition of the market renders success impossible, resulting in severe and prolonged suffering. Unions undoubtedly foster an unfortunate spirit of antagonism. Being constantly and consciously on the defen- sive, they come at last to suspect evil in every movement and to put a sinister interpretation on every action of employers, and in some trades the practice of coercion has grown into systematic terrorism and crime. Mississippi Scheme. The gigantic commercial scheme commonly known by this name was projected in France by the celebrated financier John Law of Edinburgh in 1717, and collapsed in 1720. Its primary object was to develop the resources of the Province of Louisiana and the country bordering on the Mississippi, a tract at that time believed to abound in the precious metals. The company was incorporated in August, 1717, under the title of the "Company of the West," and started with a capital of 200,000 shares of 500 livres each. They obtained the exclusive privi- lege of trading to the Mississippi, farming the taxes and coining money. The prospectus was so inviting that shares were eagerly bought; and when, in 1719, the company obtained the monopoly of trading to the East Indies, China, and the South Seas, and all the possessions of the French East India Company, the brilliant vision opened up to the public gaze was irresistible. The " Company of the Indies," as it was now called, created 50,000 additional shares ; but a rage for speculation had seized all classes and there were at least 300,000 applicants for the new shares, which consequently rose to an enormous premium. Law, as director general, promised an annual dividend of 200 livres per share, which, as the shares were paid for in the depreciated billet* d'etat, amounted to an annual return of 120 per cent. The public enthusiasm now rose to absolute frenzy, and Law's house and the street in front of it were daily crowded by ap- plicants of both sexes and of all ranks, who were content to wait for hours nay, for days together in order to obtain an interview with the modern Plutus. While confidence lasted a factitious impulse n-as given to trade in 498 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Paris, the value of manufactures was increased ' fourfold, and the demand far exceeded the upply. The population is said to have been \ increased by hundreds of thousands, many of whom were glad to take shelter in garrets, kitchens, and stables. But the Regent had meanwhile caused the paper circulation of the National Bank to be increased as the Missis- sippi scheme stock rose in value, and many wary speculators, foreseeing a crisis, had se- cretly con verted their paper and shares into gold, which they transmitted to England or Belgium for safety. The increasing scarcity of gold and silver becoming felt, a general run was made on the bank. The Mississippi stock now fell considerably, and despite all efforts it con- tinued to fall steadily and rapidly. In 1720 the National Bank and the Company of the Indies were amalgamated ; but, though this gave an upward turn to the share market, it failed to put the public credit on a sound basis. The crisis came at last. In July, 1720, the bank stopped payment, and Law was compelled to flee the country. The French Government was nearly overthrown, and widespread financial distress and bankruptcy were occasioned. Credit Mobilier The Credit Mobilier of America was a joint stock company organ- ized iu 1863 for the purpose of facilitating the construction of public works. In 1867 another company, which had undertaken to build the Union Pacific Railroad, purchased the charter of the Credit Mobilier, and the capital was in- creased to $3,750,000. In 1872 a lawsuit in Pennsylvania developed the startling fact that much of the Credit Mobilier was owned by members of Congress. A suspicion that those members had voted corruptly in the legislation affecting the Pacific Railway at once seized the public mind, and led to a Congressional investigation, in the course of which many scandalous transactions were brought to light, and the reputation of many public servants suffered greatly. The investigation showed that some of the members of Congress who had this stock in their possession had never paid for it ; in other words, that their votes had probably been obtained by giving them stock. In other cases it was shown that per- sons whose integrity could not be questioned had been reported as stockholders, for the pur- pose of influencing others to subscribe or to regard the project favorably. The report of $e committee exonerated many whose names had been used without authority in connection with the scheme. Owing to the profitableness of ths work in which the company was en- gaged, the stock rose rapidly in value previous to the investigation, and enormous dividends were paid to the shareholders. Boycott and Boycotting. The origin of the term ' ' Boycotting ' ' was as follows : A Captain Boycott was the agent of a landowner in Ireland. His policy proved to be distasteful and offensive to the tenants, and such was their feeling in the matter that they asked the landlord to remove him. This was refused, and in retaliation the tenants and their friends refused to work for or under Boycott. They would not harvest his crops, and they made an agreement among themselves that none of them or theirs should assist or work for him in the harvest. His crops were endangered, when relief arrived in the person of certain Ulster men, who, under the protection of troops, harvested the crops of Boycott. The defensive league of the tenantry was much more powerful and effective than might be supposed from the single instance of the com- bination referred to above. The ramifications of their compact were very numerous and ex- tensive. For example, if anyone had dealings with Boycott or those who represented him, then no one was to have any dealings with that person. If a man 'worked for Boycott he was looked upon by his old friends and neighbors as a stranger no one would sell to or buy of him, no one was to know him. The effect of this agreement when carried to this extent was just what its authors proposed, and "Boycotting" has become a very forcible phrase. Debt, Imprisonment for. During late years the laws of most countries bearing upon imprisonment for debt have been greatly modi- fied. In England the old harsh laws concern- ing debtors, which made the issuance of 101 ,000 writs for debt in one year, 182 5, possible, were abolished in 1838 ; and in 1869, by the passage of the " Debtors' Act, " still more lenient regu- lations were adopted. Imprisonment is still possible there, in certain cases, as when it is believed a debtor intends leaving the country, or when a debtor refuses, when he is able, to settle a claim decided against him by the courts, or when there is palpable evidence of premedi- tated fraud. The imprisonment cannot con- tinue, however, longer than a specified time ] usually one year. Imprisonment for debt was i abolished in France by a decree of March 9, 1793, was re-enacted several years later, was again abolished in 1848, and was again re- established the same year. Since that time, however, the law has been greatly modified, and now imprisonment is permitted for a lim- ited period only, and certain classes are ex- empted from the law ; as, for instance, those under twenty years or over seventy years of age, ecclesiastics, and women not engaged in commerce. In France, as in most all conti- nental countries, the entire cession of the prop- FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 456 erty of the debtor to his creditors will procure immunity from personal process, even though it may not cover the amount owed. New York was the first state in the United States to abol- ish imprisonment for debt. This was done in 1831, and the example was shortly followed by the other states ; and though there is great difference in the insolvent laws of the several states, they all permit debtors their freedom, except in cases wherein dishonesty or pecula- tion render the debtor also amenable to the Penal Code. Both in Greece and in Rome, in ancient times, the creditor had a claim to the person of the debtor. In Rome, thirty days after judgment was pronounced against the debtor, he was given into the hands of his creditor, who kept him sixty days in chains, exposing him on three market-days, and pro- claiming his debt. If no one stepped in to re- lease him, the debtor, at the end of that time, might be sold for a slave or put to death. If there were several creditors, the letter of the law permitted them to cut their debtor in pieces, sharing him in proportion to their claims. The common practice, however, was to treat him as a slave, and make him work out the debt. The children in his power, in ac- cordance with the constitution of society at Rome, followed his condition. Wealth of Principal Nations (1899). Holland $4,900,000,000 Italy 14,815,000,000 Mexico 3,190.000,000 Norway 1 ,215,000,000 Portugal 2,040.000,000 Russia 25,445,000,000 Spain 1-2,580.000.000 Sweden 3,1X5.000,000 Argen. Rep ...$2,545,000,000 Australia 6,836,000,000 Austria 19,275,000,000 Belgium 5,035 000,000 Canada 4,900.000,000 Denmark 2,020.000,0 France 42,990,000,000 Germany 32,185,000,000 United Km... 47.000,000,000 Greece 1,500,000,000 S wi tzerland 2,470.000,000 U. States 64,120,0'JO.OOO American Mine, Oldest. The first re- corded account of the discovery of coal in the United States is contained in Ilennepin's nar- rative of his explorations in the West, between 1673 and 1680, when he saw the coal outcrop in the bluffs of the Illinois river, not far from Ottawa and La Salle. In New Mexico and Arizona, there are silver mines which were operated by the Toltecs and Aztecs years be- fore the Spanish invasion. So there are cop- per mines in the Lake Superior region in which the tools and mining marks of ancient miners of prehistoric times were found by the pioneers of the present American mining companies. Where the first colonists of Virginia got the shipload of "fool's gold" which they sent back to England, to the great disgust of the London Company, is not certainly Kiicx-i* , but it is known that at the same time, in 1608, they shipped a quantity of iron from James- town, which yielded seventeen tons of metal the first pig-irou ever made from Ameri- can ore. In North and South Carolina, and Georgia, there are diggings, now overgrown with forests, which are supposed to have been excavated by the followers of De Soto and his immediate successors between 1539 and 1600. The oldest mining enterprise of the United States, still active, is generally conceded to be the mine La Motte, in the lead district of Eastern Missouri, which was opened about 1720 under Renault, of Law's notorious Missis- sippi Company.^ It was named after La Motte, the mineralogist of the expedition, and has been worked at intervals ever since it was opened. Liverpool Docks. The docks, at Liv- erpool, England, extend on the city side of the river Mersey 6^ miles, and have a water area of 333 acres, and a lineal quayage of 22 miles. The great landing stage at Liverpool is the fin- est structure of the kind in the world. It was originally built in 1857, and was greatly en- larged in 1874, but shortly after its completion, July 28, 1874, it accidentally caught fire and was entirely consumed. It was again built in the most substantial manner. Its length is 2,063 feet, and its breadth is 80 feet. It is supported on floating pontoons, which rise and fall with the tide, and is connected with the quay by seven bridges, beside a floating bridge 550 feet in length for heavy traffic. The great system of docks at Liverpool was commenced by the corporation in 1709, and was for a cen- tury under the control of the City Council, but since 1856 their management has been in the hands of a board. The amount of capital in- vested in these docks is 10,000,000, of which 7,000,000 is in Liverpool proper, and the rev- enue derived from them is over 1,250,000 an- nually. They are constructed as water-tight inclosures, with flood gates, which are opened during the flow.ing and closed during the ebb- ing of the tide, so that vessels within can be kept afloat and at the same level while being loaded and unloaded Communism and Socialism. Commu- nism is the doctrine that society should be re- organized on the basis of abolishing individual ownership of property and control of wages, and most of the now generally admitted rights of individuals in their private and domestic re- lations, and substituting therefor community ownership and control of every person and everything. Attempts to realize Communism have been made in both England and France, but in all cases resulted in disaster to the com- iTumities. The communistic leader in Eng- land was Robert Owen, who made two attempts to carry out hia views in that country. Fou- rier and St. Simon, French Communists, made similar efforts in France, but the results were 460 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. not more fortunate. A community of St. Simonians established a college or corporation at Menilmontant, with a "supreme father" at their head. The leaders were brought to trial by Louis Philippe on a charge of under- mining morality and religion. They were subjected to imprisonment, and not having public feeling with them, they were unable to bear up against contumely thus thrown on them. Socialism is a sort of limited Commu- nism. It would not entirely abolish individ- ual rights of all, but would make such rights subordinate to the common good, and in a manner limit them to it. Locomotives, Weight and Cost. The average weight of the locomotive engines now on the standard gauge roads is from twenty-five to thirty-five tons. As locomotives are now built, anything above thirty-five tons would be considered heavy, although there have been locomotives built weighing seventy tons. The cost of a locomotive for the stand- ard gauge roads is about $10,500. It is usu- ally computed by railroad men that in weight and cost the locomotives oil the narrow gauge roads are from one third to one half less than those of the atandard gauge lines. Fur Trade, American. The North- west Fur Company, a British organization, practically controlled the fur industry along the great lakes and westward at the beginning of this century. A rival company, composed of American and French, and called the Mack- inaw Fur Company, was formed about that time ; but the importance of the American fur trade is undoubtedly due to the commercial genius of John Jacob Astor. In 1783 Mr. Astor landed in America with a few hundred dollars' worth of musical instruments, which he immediately exchanged for furs. This action was brought about through a conversa- tion with a furrier during the voyage, who im- pressed upon the young emigrant the great profit to be gained in the fur traffic. From that time until 1809 he made repeated visits to the scattered settlements of western New York and Canada for the purchase of furs, and did much business with the Northwest Fur Company. All direct trade between the United States and Canada was then forbidden by laws of the British Government ; hence furs pur- chased in the latter had first to be taken to London before they could be brought to New York. These restrictions on trade with Can- ada were removed by treaty in 1794. In 1809 the American Fur Company, an organization with $1,000,000 capital, was granted a charter by the New York Legislature, and it was gen- erally understood that the capital for this enterprise was furnished by Mr. Astor in fact that he was the company. In 1811 Mr. Astor, in connection with certain parties for- merly connected with the Northwest Fur Com- pany, purchased the Mackinaw Fur Company and merged it, with the American Fur Com- pany, in another organization known as the Southwest Fur Company. Four years later, 1815, Mr. Astor bought all the shares of this company and pushed the American Fur Com- pany to the front again, :vnc in tlie same year succeeded in having a bill passed through Con- gress excluding all foreigners from taking any part in the fur trade of the United States thus securing at one stroke a monopoly of the business. From that time he accumulated enormous wealth. Gold Exports. When this country buys abroad more than it sells abroad it must pay the difference, which is called the balance of trade, in sterling exchange. The par value of sterling exchange is $4.867, that is, a pound sterling is worth $4.867 in United States gold. The price or demand of sterling exchange varies according to the supply and demand of bills drawn against London. If we have made heavy shipments to London, or if Europe has been a heavy buyer of our securi- ties, there is plenty of sterling exchange in the market, and it can be bought below its par value. When we have made heavy imports from Europe, or when Europe has been a heavy seller of our securities, or when Ameri- can travelers have spent a large amount of money in Europe, the supply of sterling ex- change is limited and its price rises. If the price of sterling bills is as high as $4.88 J it is just as cheap to ship gold bars to London and pay the expenses of the shipment as it is to buy the exchange. If sterling exchange is $4.89 gold coin can be shipped without loss. If rates go higher, as, for instance, to $4.90, gold coin or bars can be shipped at a good profit and exchange sold against them. When the rate of sterling exchange falls to $4.83 gold can be imported from London without loss, and if it goes lower it can be imported with a profit. The South Sea Bubble The South Sea Bubble," as it is generally called, was a financial scheme which occupied the attention of prominent politicians, communities, and even nations in the early part of the eight- eenth century. Briefly, the facts are : In 1711, Robert Hartley, Earl of Oxford, then Lord Treasurer, proposed to fund a floating debt of about 10,000,000, sterling, the interest, about $600,000, to be secured by rendering perma- nent the duties upon wines, tobacco, wrought silks, etc. Purchasers of this fund were to become also shareholders in the " South Sea FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. Company," a corporation to have the monop- oly of th trade with Spanish South America, a part of the capital stock 6f which was to be the new fund. But Spain, after the treaty of Utrecht, refused to open her commerce to England, and the privileges of the " South Sea Company " became worthless. There were many men of wealth who were stockholders, and the company continued to flourish, while the ill success of its trading operations was concealed. Even the Spanish war of 1718 did not shake the popular confidence. Then in April, 1720, Parliament, by large majorities in both houses, accepted the company's plan for paying the national debt, and after that a frenzy of speculation seized the nation, and the stock rose to 300 a share, and by August had reached 1,000 ashare. Then Sir John Blunt, one of the leaders, sold out, others followed, and the stock began to fall. By the close of September the company stopped payment, and thousands were beggared. An investigation ordered by Parliament disclosed much fraud and corruption, and many prominent persons were implicated, some of the directors were imprisoned, and all of them were fined to an aggregate amount of 2,000,000 for the bene- fit of the stockholders. A great part of the valid assets was distributed among them, yield- ing a dividend of about 33 per cent. Trusts. A " Trust," in its broad sense, is a combination of individuals or corpora- tions for controlling the price of a commodity. It seeks to do this by restricting production or by < cornering" the market, and strives to accomplish its end without incurring the pen- alties of the law. This endeavor to keep within the law has given rise to many forms of "trust " agreements. The simplest is a mere naked contract between manufacturers or deal- ers that each shall carry on his business in his own way, but that none shall sell below an agreed minimum price. Examples of this are agreements between the coal producers of Pennsylvania and the trades union agreements. Another simple form of combination is an agreement that all shall carry on their business independently, but that profits shall all be turned into a common fund and divided in a definitely agreed on ratio, no matter what the profits of each individual may actually have been. Of such a nature are railroad pools. Another kind occurs when a corporation leases the works, or contracts to take all the products of other corporations, or enters into partner- ship with them. In all of these cases, how- ever, there is a danger of overstepping the bounds of legality. Courts in all parts of the country have repeatedly refused to enforce such contracts if deemed to bo injurious to the pub- lic , and some authorities have declared them criminal, if dangerous to the common good. This has led to the invention of a subtile and elusive form which we may call the " Trust" proper. In this, the stock of all the stock- holders of all the corporations comprising it is placed in the hands of a few men as trustees, thus securing to a dozen or so persons the absolute control of stock representing many millions of dollars and possibly thousands of owners. The Standard Oil Trust and the Sugar Trust illustrate this form, the Standard Oil being probably the pioneer in this line, and now one of the most powerful moneyed institutions in the world. Whether this " Trust " will stand the attacks of its enemies or, in its turn, will be decided to be illegal, it is too soon to judge. In a recent case the New York Supreme Court has declared it illegal and the charters of its constituent corporations liable to forfeiture. As has been said, a " Trust " is not a corporation, nor subject to the restrictions placed by law on incorporated companies. Strikes, Statistics. The plan of settling labor difficulties by strikes is a very old one. The first strike in the United States occurred iu New York city in 1803, when a number of sailors struck for an advance of wages. Ac- cording to " Bradstreet's Commercial Reports " there were 697 strikes in 1888, involving211,- 841 employees a decline from 1887 of 23 per cent, in the number of strikes and of 38 per cent, in strikers. Against 1886 the de- crease in number of strikers is 52 per cent. Higher wages or fewer hours were the cause of strikes by 68 per cent, of the strikers in 1888, against 62 per cent, in 1887. Trades union questions were behind the strike of 17 per cent, of the men involved in 1888, against 22 per cent, of the year before. About 45 per cent, of striking was in Pennsylvania in 1888, against 32 per cent, in 1887. Only 38 per cent, of the strikers of 1888, involving 50 per cent, of the whole number who went out, re- sulted in favor of the employees, against 42 per cent, of the strikes and 38 per cent, of those involved in 1887. In 1888 there were 74,837 employees locked out, against 46,000 in 1887. The number of days' labor lost by striking and locked out employees in 1888 was 7,562,480, against 10,250, 92l"in 1887. If the labor be placed at $1 .50 per man, the estimated loss of wages to striking and locked out em- ployees in 1888 would be $11,343,720, against $ 15,580, 881 in 1887 a decline of 25 per cent. Watering Stock. The credit of having originated the process of watering the stock of railroad oompaaiM belongs unquestionably to THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. the late Commodore Vanderbilt. The plan of operation is simple, and consists only in esti- mating the stock of the road at a figure greatly above its real value. For instance, when Com- modore Vauderbilt secured control of the New York Central as well as the Hudson River Rail- road in 1868, the combined stock of the two roads was only about $36,000,000. Early in the following year he declared a tremendous dividend of new stock to the stockholders, and raised the estimated value of the two roads to $90,000,000. This action of Vanderbilt was for the purpose of evading a law of the State of New York which provided that when the divi- dends of any railroad corporation should reach 10 per cent, the state could declare how the surplus above the 10 per cent, should be ap- plied. This provision, it is plain, was ren- dered nugatory by Vanderbilt's scheme, as, if a railroad can at any time declare stock divi- dends with no reference whatever to the costs of construction and repair, a dividend of 10 per cent, may never be declared, though the road may be actually earning 30 or 40 per cent, upon its actual cost. India Rubber. This is mostly obtained from the Seringueros of the Amazon, who sell it for about 12 cents a pound to the mer- chants of Para, but its value on reaching England or the United States is over 50 cents a pound. The number of tons imported into Great Britain and the United States has been as follows : . United States 1,610 Great. Britain 2,150 1870. 1880. 1887. 4,316 7,529 12,900 7,606 8,479 11,800 The best rubber forests in Brazil will ulti- mately be exhausted, owing to the reckless mode followed by the Seringueros or tappers. The ordinary product of a tapper's work is from 10 to 16 pounds daily. There are 120 india rubber manufacturers in the United States, employing 15,000 operatives, who pro- duce 280,000 tons of goods, valued at $260,- 000,000, per annum. How the Price of Southern Con- federate Money Dropped. When the first issue of the Confederate money was scat- tered among the people, it commanded a slight premium. It then scaled down as follows : June, 1861, 90c. ; December 1, 1861, 80c. ; December 15, 1861, 75c. ; February 1, 1862, 60c. ; February 1, 1863, 20c. ; June, 1863, 8c. ; January, 1864, 2c. ; November, 1864, 4c. ; January, 1865, 2c. ; April 1, 1865, lc. After that date, it took from $800 to $1,000 in Confederate money to buy a one-dollar green- back. Facts About Gold and Silver. A ton of gold or silver contains 29,166.66 ounces. A ton of gold is worth $602,875; silver, $37,704.84. The United States money standard for gold and silver is 900 parts pure metal and 100 parts of alloy in 1,000 parts of coin. The value of an ounce of pure gold is $20.67 ; 23.22 grains of pure gold equals $1. The term carat when used to distinguish fineness of gold means one twenty-fourth , pure gold is 24-carat gold. A cubic foot of gold weighs 1,203 pounds, and is worth about $361,808. In round numbers the weight of $1,000,- 000 in standard gold coin is 1J tons (3,685 Ibs.) ; standard coin, 26| tons; subsidiary silver coin, 25 tons ; minor coin, 5-cent nickel, 100 tons. Glossary of Mining and Milling Terms. Battery Generally applied to a set of five stamps. Bullion Ingots of gold or silver ready for the mint. Dumping-table A concentrating table with a jolting motion. Cage A mine elevator. Chute A body of ore, usually elongated, extending downward withm a vein ; a slide for ore or waste rock. Cobbing Breaking ore for sorting. Concentrator Machine for removing waste matter from mineral. Copper plates Plates of copper coated with quicksilver, upon which the gold is caught as the ore flows from the stamps. Cord A cord weighs about eight tons. Country-rock The rock on each side of a vein. Crevice A fissure, split, or crack; the vein is called " the crevice." Cribbing The tim- bers used to confine wall rock. Cross-cut A level driven across the course of a vein. Deposit Ore bodies not confined to a lode. Drift A tunnel ; a horizontal pas- sage underground. Dump A place of deposit for ore or refuse. Feeder A small vein joining a larger one. Fissure-vein A crack or cleft in the earth's crust filled with mineral matter. Float Loose ore or rock de- tached from the original formation. Flume A pipe or trough to convey water. Foot-wall Layer of rock be- neath the vein. Free milling Ores containing min- eral that will separate from the gangue by simple meth- ods. Hanging-wall The layer, or rock, or wall, over a lode. Lafldcrmty That part of mine shaft containing the ladders. Lagging Timbers over and upon the sides of a drift. Ledge or Lead Mineral ores or gangue within fissure veins. Mill-rim A test of the value of a given quantity of ore. Ores Compound of metals with oxygen, sulphur, arsenic, etc. Paystreak The richest streak in the. vein. Pocket A. rich spot' in the vein or deposit. Refractory Resisting the action of heat and chemical re-agents. Shaft A well-like passage into a mine. Sluices Troughs in which ore is washed. Smelt- ing Reduction of ores in furnaces. Spur A branch of a vein. Stamps Weights for crushing ores. Slope The part of a vein above or below the drift from which the ore has been removed. Sloping Excavat- ing the ore from the roof or floor of a drift. Stratum A bed or layer. Stulls A framework to support the rubbish when sloping. Sump A well at the bottom of a shaft to collect water. Tailings The refuse left after washing ores containing metals not saved in the first treatment. Tunnel A level driven across a vein. Whim A machine used for raising ore or refuse. Winze An interior shaft sunk from one level to an- other. Harvest Months of the World. JANUARY The greater part of Chile, por- tions of the Argentine Republic, Australia, and New Guinea. FEBRUARY to MARCH. The East Indies. APRIL. Mexico, Egypt, Persia, and Syria. MAY. Japan, China, Northern Asia Minor, Tunis, Algiers, Morocco, and Texas. FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 463 JUNE. California, Spain, Portugal, Italy, Sicily, Greece, and some of the southern de- partments of France. JULY. The larger part of France, Austria, Southern Russia, and the larger part of the United States of America. AUGUST. Germany, England, Belgium, Netherlands, part of Russia, Denmark, part of Canada, and the Northeastern States of America. SEPTEMBER Scotland, the larger part of Canada, Sweden, Norway, and the north mid- lands of Russia. OCTOBER. The northern parts of Russia and the northern parts of the Scandinavian peninsula. Wine Production of the World. The average production of wine in. the princi- pal vine-growing countries of the world is as follows: France, 765,175,072 imperial gal- lons; Algeria, 722,000,000 imperial gallons; Italy, 605,000,000 imperial gallons ; Spain. 484,000,000 imperial gallons ; Austria-Hun- gary, 187,000,000 imperial gallons; Portugal 88,000.000 imperial gallons; Germany, 81,- 290,000 imperial gallons ; Russia,. 77,000,000 imperial gallons ; Cyprus, 35, 200, 000 imperial gallons ; Switzerland, 28,600,000 imperial gal- lons ; Greece, 28,600,000 imperial gallons ; United States, 18,000,000 imperial gallons; Turkey, 22,000,000 imperial gallons ; Cape of Good Hope, 15, 400, 000 imperial gallons ; Rou- mania, 15,400,000 imperial gallons ; Servia, 11, 000, 000 imperial gallons ; Australia, 1,933,- 800 imperial gallons; total, 2,485,599,772 imperial gallons. CENTRAL AND SOUTH AMERICAN TRADE. IMPORTS AND EXPORTS. COUNTRIES. Year. Imports. Exports. COUNTRIES. Year. Imports. Exports. Argentine Republic Bolivia 1897 1894 1893 1896 1895 1896 1893 1897 1895 $98,288.948 3,000,000 146,468,936 74,082,805 11,528,365 4,748,81-2 6,400,104 6,868,858 6,232,335 101,169,299 9,600,000 124.572,907 74,359,414 15,088,405 5,597,727 8,785,215 19.775,860 13,788,562 Honduras 1896 1897 1895 1897 1896 1895 18a7 1896 1896 $676,716 42,L'04,095 4,116,t-55 2,203,359 12,lKK),(iOO 1,650,424 1.824,375 25,530,185 13.989.342 $1,253,151 111,34(>,494 4,994,519 1,955,803 12,7:>.830 3,39.402 740,513,609 742,189,755 679,524,830 716,183,211 695,954,507 742,401,375 857,828,684 884,480,810 1,030,278.148 847,665.194 892,140,572 807.538,165 882.606,938 1,050,993,556 1,231,482,330 1,227,023,302 1,394,483,082 1,487,764,991 533,005,436 460,741,190 451,323.126 437,051,532 445,777,775 667,954,746 642,664,628 724,6:9.574 723,180,914 667,697,693 577,527,329 635,436,136 692,319,768 723,957,114 745.131,652 789,310,409 844.916,196 8'J7,402.402 866.400.922 654,994.622 731.909,965 779,724,674 764.730.412 616,050.654 697,148,489 849,941,184 823.172,165 1,046,448,147 1,001,125,861 1,053 798.346 1,131.917.298 1,156.217.216 1,503,593,404 1,645,041,974 1,475,181,831 1,547,020,316 1,408,211,302 1,319,717.084 1,314.960.966 1,408,502,979 1.419,911,6?! 1,4*7 ,533,027 1,647,139,093 1.729,397,006 1,857- 680.610 1,714.066.116 1,547- 135 1C4 1,539 508. l:!0 1.662.331 612 1,815,723,968 19,562,726 J876 79,643,481 151,152,094 257,814,234 264,661,666 167.683.912 259,712.718 25,902.683 100,658.488 72.815,916 164.662,426 44,088,694 23,863,443 1877 1878 1879 1880 1*81 1882 1883 1884 1886 1886 1887 1888 28,002.607 2,730,277 1889 . . 1890 68,518.275 39,5(4.614 202,875,686 1891 1892 1893 18,735,728 1894' 237.145.950 75,568.200 102,882 '-'64 286. 4 .'63,144 615,431.676 529,874,813 54l.Ml.89S 664,592,826 1895 1896 1897 .... 189$ .. 1899 - 1,924.171,791 2,244.424.266 2,310,937,156 1900 " 1901 .:..:::: The imports and exports of specie are not included in the above table. VALUE OF IMPORTS INTO AND EXPORTS FROM THE UNITED STATES OF MERCHANDISE, YEAR ENDED JUNE 30, 1901. COUNTRIES. EXPOBTS. Imports. COUHTRIES. EXPORTS. Imports. Domestic. Foreign. Domestic. Foreign. o $6,903,299 426,351 48,552,762 16.148.968 76,431,378 188,350.919 676.394 291,50(5 525 34.277,491 438.474 83,847.330 5,289.460 26.560 6,301,553 1,730,071 309 15,455,839 11,838.911 252.126 392.9(18 624.216.404 1,285,938 796,841 7,110,346 83.645.4M2 6,666,680 1,948,827 1,916.200 1,394,579 1,029,194 1,344.373 725.358 35,857.837 218,014 8,765,230 24,10'i,453 685,287 644.4C6 1,828,633 3,144,235 1,704,008 $259,351 1.083 836,497 26.267 2,283549 3,42?.508 2,420 32 195,698 508 508.988 4,780 * 43.740 8,864 '24,419 5,241 3,234 60 6,960,753 27069 16,976 731,225 6,990.281 345,250 8,478 30,526 30,235 85.815 137,821 13,364 617.513 2,706 115.822 1,864.348 6,863 3.132 23,001 280,432 96,677 $10,067,970 25,395 14,601.711 644,993 75,458,739 100,445,902 52.863 1,124.775 82,533 24,618,384 14,744 20.59*. 789 3,370,430 5,546,280 1,484,612 10,699 5,409,301 3,487,639 15,799.400 3.386,722 143,388.501 531.323 241,609 5,496.697 27.599.746 9,385,720 420,315 2,990,550 3,512,445 1,262,317 2,031, 636 1,037,715 28,851,635 32,814 12,851,326 43,423,088 478.262 240"19 13 .V2 1.199 240 3,553,776 8 065 318 Bolivia $152.286 11,576,461 5.282.405 3.095.165 2,012,698 797 1,689,159 606,481 197,701 12,695 3,122.180 1,613,822 3,224,317 990,213 220 10,287,312 6,248,408 2,060,958 59,3<'7 7,946.695 18,6T>6.8!i9 215.545 377.252 1,502,912 191 .'.'49 305413 30,577.*45 398,362 '129,931 4,014.180 21,613.995 253.275 839.299 25,476 28,134 1,426,536 13.585 1,216.445 1,469 78,831 15,982 46,672 34,223 1 JMI.JflBAM $30 87.113 12.321 46,887 2,387 45.245 4,506 2,306 "4,754 23.252 47,560 686 ns',52-2 3.396 3,747 '63.153 343,741 6 "2.930 2,913 176 149,342 12,857 '"l55 12,884 40.4C.3 1,645 4,115 19 9 '"328 ""468 $27,302 184 $70,643,347 8,683.279 3,230.652 1,424,840 4.805.395 1,272.731 64.018 1.745 3,616,180 1,883,994 6.645,848 1,520,629 81 lf>,303,706 43,882,493 19,026,481 1,416,412 29,229,543 768 "'3,529 3,897,854 306.115 4,767.(1 657,336 70.744 4,420912 813,440 32.901 417.223 4,867 647 1,643 6,387 7,212.279 183.743 281,431 1,472,117 5,381 1,044 $823,172 166 Azores & Madeira Isles. Belgium Brazil Chile Denmark Germany Falkland Islands . . . . Guianas : British Gibraltar Greenland, Iceland, etc. Italy Dutch French Malta, Gozo, etc Netherlands Portugal Peru Uruguay Roumania Russia, Baltic , etc Russia, Black Sea Venezuela Aden British China China Servia Spain East Indies : Sweden and Norway Dutch Turkey in Europe Gt. Britain and Ireland Fr'ch and P'guese Hong Kong Japan British Honduras British North America : Nova Scotia, N.Bruns- wick, etc Korea Russian China Russia, Asiatic Turkev in Asia All other Asia British Australasia. French Oceanica Hawaiian Islands. .. Tonga, Samoa, etc.. Philippine Islands.. British Africa Canary Islands French Africa Liberia Quebec, Ontario, etc.. British Columbia Newfoundland and Labrador Cent'l American States : Costa Rica Guatemala Honduras Nicaragua Mexico Miquelon. Langley, etc. West Indies : British Portuguese Africa.. Spanish Africa Egypt Cuba Danish All other Africa .... Auckland, Fiji, and Norfolk Islands... German Oceanica. .. , Guam '. Tntnl ...1 Dutch French. Haytl San Domingo 466 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. THE WHEAT CROP OF THE WORLD, IN BUSHELS, 19OO. COUNTRIES. Bushels. COUNTRIES. Bushels. COUNTRIES. Bushels. Russia 415,288,000 Chile 12,518,827 Holland 4303,466 United States 497,123,811 Argentine Republic 95,877,393 Belgium 17,635 182 Hunerarv. .. 134,818 133 16,627,725 France 30824'' 511 Rou mania 64,520 107 Algiers 16,250,400 Spain 108958 940 Bulgaria 31,718 373 Tunis 7,824,267 Portugal 5 164 016 Servia 11 977 147 12,9J4,021 ; Italy 114 358 380 Turkey in Europe 31,959,120 Cape Colony. 4,014,451 Switzerland 4 514 000 Turkey in Asia 39,963 947 Australia 55,624517 Germany 115877 390 Persia 22,365 365 51,611 496 42 251 040 British India 179,693 31 312 980 Greece 5 145 960 Canada 45 471 007 4583 018 Mexico 12,458.640 Denmark 4,213,1*3 The rye crop of principal countries in 1900 was: Austria, C6.936.171 bushels; Hungary, 37,401,714 bushels; France, 63,989,828 bushels; United States, 23,859,714; Germany, 305,081,914 bushels; Russia, 886,678,571 bushels. ANIMAL, VEGETABLE, AND MINERAL PRODUCTIONS. With the Names of the Countries Producing Them. Agates Africa and several parts of Europe, but chiefly Iceland, Saxony, and Tuscany. Alabaster Spain, ftaly, England, America. Alcanet (root) Imported from the Levant, or the neighborhood of Montpellier in France. Alligator North America, South America, and the northern parts of Africa. Almonds Spain, France, Italy, the Levant, Arabia, Asia, Africa. Indigenous to Greece. Aloes America, the West Indies. The medicinal Aloes are indigenous to India, Africa, and Italy. Amber In mines in Prussia, near the seacoast ; on the shores of Sicilv and the Adriatic ; on the south- ern shores of the Baltic and eastern shores of England ; Mexico. Amethyst Sweden, Bohemia, Saxony, and other parts of Europe : Siberia, India ( Ceylon), Mexico, Brazil. Anchovy The Mediterranean (chiefly off Gorgona), off the coast of Spain, France, and Italy; and occasion- ally oft those of England. Anise Seeds Egypt, to which they are indigenous ; Syria and other Eastern countries; Spain, Malta, America. Ant-BearSouth America (Brazil, Guiana), East Indies, and Cape of Good Hope. Antelope Europe, Asia, Africa, Arabia. Apes Asia (the East Indies), and Africa. Armadillo Mexico, South America. Amotto South America, East Indies, West Indies. Arrack (a spirituous liquor) Batavia, from rice; Goa, from the juice of the cocoa tree. Arrowroot East Indies, South America, West Indies. Arsenic Great Britain, Saxony, Bohemia, Hungary, Mexico. Asafostida (a kind of gum) Persia. Asbestos (an incombustible kind of earth) The Ural and some other European mountains; Swedish Lapland, Candia, China, North America. Asphaltnm (a friable kind of bitumen) The Dead Sea, many parts of Europe and America, the Island of Trinidad. Baboons Asia (Borneo and the Philippine Islands), and the hot parts of Africa. Bamboo Cane The East Indies, China, West Indies and America. Banana Egypt and the West Indies, and other tropical countries. Barilla (an alkaline salt, used in making glass) Spain and other parts of Europe, South America, West Indies. Bear The northern parts of Europe, Asia, Arabia. Egypt, Barbary, Japan, Ceylon, North America, Pern. Beaver The north part of Europe, Asia, and America. Bergamot (a perfume) Bergamo, in Italy. Beryl (a gem) .Siberia, Dauria, on the frontiers of China, Saxony, south of France, North America. Brazil. Betel (a shrub, whose leaf is chewed) The East In- dies. Bird of Paradise The islands of Papua and Droo. Bison Poland, Lithuania and North America. Black Bear India, Africa, America, Kamchatka. Black Eagle Abyssinia. Black Fox The north of Europe, Siberia, North America. Black Swan Botany Bay. Boa Constrictor Africa, South America, India. Box Wood Spain, Turkey, America. Brandy France, (chiefly in Cognac and Nantes); also in England, Spain, and the United States, butof in- ferior quality. Brazil- Wood Brazil (Pernambuco) and other parts of America ; the East Indies. Bread-Fmit Otaheite and other South Sea Islands. Buffalo Asia, Africa, America. Burgundy Wine France. Calabash Tree The East Indies, America, West Indies. Camel Tartary, Siberia, Thibet, China. Camnlopard Africa, Senaar, Abyssinia, Ethiopia, and the neighborhood of the Cape of Good Hope. Camphor (a vegetable product) China, Japan, and the East India Islands, Borneo, and: Ceylon. Canary Birds Africa, the Canary Islands, Italy, and Greece Cantharides (a kind of beetle used in making blis- ters) Spain, Italy, and south of France. Cape Madeira Wine The Cape of Good Hope. Capers (the buds of a plant) The south of France, Italy, and the Levant. Capsicum (a pepper plant) East Indies, Mexico, South America, West Indies. Caraway Seeds England, America. Cardamom Seeds East Indies (Malabar). Carmine (a color prepared from cochineal) East Indies, Mexico, South America. Cassada (an edible root) South America and the West Indies. Cassia(an aromatic bark) China, East Indies, South America, West Indies. Castor Oil (from the seeds of a species of palm) The East Indies, South America, West Indies. Cat's-Eye(a kindof gem) Ceylon, Siberia, America. Catechu (a vegetable extract) East Indies, Bombay, Bengal. Caviare (a food made from the roes of sturgeon) Russia. Cedar Syria, chiefly about Mt. Libanus ; America. Cayenne Peppers-East Indies, South America, West Indies. Chameleon Egypt and Barbary, India, Mexico, i Guiana. Chamois Goat The Alps and Pyrenees. Champagne Wine France, United States. Chestnut Italy, France, Spain, Portugal, America. Chigger (a species of flea that breeds under the skin) South America. Chinchilla (fur) Chile. Chocolate (Cacao) Mexico, South America West Indies. Cinnabar (a red paint) The palatinate of Germany, Bohemia, Almaden in Spain, and India. Cinnamon The East Indies, chiefly Ceylon; South i America (Guiana). Citron Europe (Italy), Asia, West Indies. Civet (an animal perfume) Africa (coast of Guinea), : India. Braz.iL FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 467 Claret Wine The neighborhood of Garonne on the western coast of France ; United States. Cloves The Molucca Islands (chiefly Amboyna) ; the isles of France and Bourbon ; South America (Cayenne). Cochineal (an insect used in dyeing and painting) The East Indies, Mexico, South America. Cockatoo East Indies, and the islands of the Indian Ocean; Banda, Ceram, the Philippines, and Sunda Isles. Cocoanut The East Indies, Arabia, Africa, South America, West Indies. Cockroach (a kind of beetle) Asia, America, West Indies. Coffee Arabia (Mocha), East Indies, West Indies, South America. Condor (a bird of prey) South America. ConRtantia Wine Constantia Farm, at the Cape of Good Hope. Copal (a kind of resin) Africa (Guinea), and America. Copper Anglesea and Cornwall, Sweden, Norway, Iceland, the Faroe Islands, and various parts of the con- tinent of Europe, China, and Japan; Southern Africa, United States, Peru, and Chili. Coral (a marine animal production) The Mediter- ranean (about Sicily, Majorca, and Minorca), the Red Sea ; off the coasts of Africa and America ; in the South Seas. Coriander Seed Sou in of Europe; England and America. Cork Portugal, Spain, and other parts in the south of Europe; Sicily (on Mt. Etna), the shores of the Medi- terranean, South America. Cornelian The East Indies, Arabia, Egypt, various parts of Europe, several of the British shores, America. Cotton The Levant, Egypt, the East Indies, South America, United States, West Indies. The finest now produced is the Sea Island Cotton of Georgia, South Carolina, and Florida. Crocodile Africa (the rivers Nile and Senegal, and all the rivers of Guinea); India(the Ganges). Crystal (a kind of gem) Madagascar, South Amer- ica(Brazil, Guiana), North America, Norway, the Alps, Scotland. Currants The islands of the Grecian Archipelago, England, and the United States. Cypress The east of Europe, the Levant, Asia, America. Dates Egypt, the African coast of the Mediterra- nean, Arabia, the East Indies, Persia, Spain, and Italy. Diamonds The East Indies (Golconda, Raolconda, Borneo), Mexico, Brazil, South Africa. Dolphin The Atlantic and Pacific seas. Dragon's-Blood(a kind of resin) Japan, Cochin- China, Java, and other parts of the East. Dromedary The deserts of Arabia and other parts of Asia, and of Africa. Ebony The East Indies (chiefly Ceylon), and West Indies. Kider Down (from the Eider Duck) The north of Europe (chiefly Iceland), Asia, America. Elephant Africa and the East Indies. The most esteemed are those of Ceylon. Elk or Moose Deer North America, some parts of Europe and Asia, as far south as Japan. Emerald Egypt and Ethiopia, Russia, the confines of Persia, Mexico", Peru. Emery (mineral used in polishing steel) The Le- vant. Naxos, and other Grecian Islands, Germany, Guern- sey, Spain, Italy, United States. Ermine (a species of ferret) Norway, Lapland, Fin- land, North America, Siberia, China. Fan Palm The south of Europe, the East Indies (Malabar and Ceylon), Japan, Cochin China. Figs Italy, the Levant, Turkey, the Grecian Islands, Portugal, Spain, and south of France. Fire-fly America, India, Japan. Fitchet(a species of weasel) India, New South Wales. Flamingo Africa, South America, West Indies. Flax Every quarter of the globe. Flying-fish Inhabits the European, Red, and Amer- ican seas, but is found chiefly between the tropics. Flying squirrel North America. Frankincense (a kind of gum) Arabia. French Plums Chiefly from Bordeaux. Frontignac wine Languedoc, France. Fuller's Earth Sweden, Saxony, Portugal, Eng- land ; the finest and most plentiful found at Warden, near Woburn. Galls (a vegetable excrescence) Asia Minor, and Syria, the best from Aleppo. Gamboge (a resinous gum) Tonquin, the East In- dies. Garnet Bohemia, and other parts of Europe, Mada- gascar, Ethiopia, India, Syria. Gazelle India, Persia, Egypt, Ethiopia. Gentian (a kind of bitter root) The Alps, and other mountainous parts of the continent of Europe. Gin Originally Schiedam, a village near Rotterdam in Holland, and hence sometimes called Holland Gin. Common gin, a deleterious mixture, made in great quan- tities in England and the United States. Ginger (an aromatic root) The East Indies, West Indies, Abyssinia, coasts of Guinea. Gold Asia (Arabia), India, Java, Sumatra, Peru, China, Japan, Siberia, Africa, Mexico, Brazil, Chile, United States. Golden Eagle Europe, Siberia, Abyssinia. Golden Pheasant China. Gourd America, south of Europe. Grapes France, Portugal, America, in great per- fection ; not so in England and other less genial cli- mates. Guava (a fruit) The West Indies. Guaiacum (the resin of the Lignum Vitae tree) South America and West Indies. Guinea Fowl Africa. Gum Arabic Egypt, Barbary, Turkey, Persian Gulf. Gypsum (or Plaster of Paris) America, Spain, Italy, England. Heliotrope (or blood-stone) Siberia, Persia, Buk- haria. Hemp Russia and other parts of Europe (the best from Riga), America, the East Indies, and some parts of England. Hickory Nut North America. Hippopotamus All the lakes and a number of rivers of Africa. Hock Wine Hockstedt in Suabia. Humming Bird South America (Guiana), West Indies, and United States. Hyena (a species of wild dog) India, Persia, Africa. Ichneumon (a species of weasel) Egypt, Barbary, the south of Asia, and the Indian Islands. Incense (a resiuous perfume) America. India Rubber (the inspissated resinous juioe of a tree) Guiana, and other parts of South America. Indigo (a deep b.'ue vegetable dye) East Indies, Africa, America, West Indies. Ipecacuanha (a kind of root used chiefly as an emetic) South America (Brazil), and the West Indies. Iron Sweden, Norway, Russia, England, Scotland, North America, Africa. Isinglass (fish glue) Russia. Ivory Asia (Achem and Ceylon), Africa (Guinea and the Cape of Good Hope). Jackal (a species of wild dog) Africa and the warm parts of Asia. Jalap (a purgative root) Chiefly from Xalapa in Mexico. Jasper Egypt, Siberia, Spain, Sicily, Hungary, Bohemia, Saxony, Silesia, Mexico. j e t Great Britain, Germany, France, and Spain. Juniper Berries (from which Holland gin is dis- tilled) Sweden, Holland, Germany, the south of Eu- rope, Asia, America. Kangaroo Australasia. Lac (a vegetable substance prepared by an insect) The East Indies, Bengal. Llama (a species of camel) Peru and Chile. Lantern Fly Surinam, and other parts of South America. Lapis Lazuli (a kind of siliceous earth) Siberia, China, Tartarv, America, and various parts of Europe. Lemons Portugal, Spain, France, Italy, the Levant. Arabia, Jamaica, Mexico, and Florida. Leopard Senegal, Guinea, and other parts of Lignum Vitse West Indies, chiefly Jamaica. Limes America, West Indies. 468 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Lion Africa, India, Persia, Japan. Lodestone Denmark, Sweden, Norway, Lapland. Locust Inhabits Tartary, and migrates in great swarms into various parts of Europe, Africa, and America. Logwood Honduras and the West Indies. Lory (a beautiful species of parrot) The Molucca Islands, Java, and New Guinea. Lotus (a species of water lily) The hot parts of Africa, East Indies, America. Lynx (a, species of cat) The north of Europe, Asia, and America. Macaroni Italy, Sicily, Germany. Mace Banda Isle and other East Indies. Madder (a root used in dyeing) The south of Europe, Holland, and England. Madeira Wine The Island of Madeira. MahogHny Jamaica (the best), Cuba, Hayti, the Bahama Islands, Honduras, Panama, South America. Maize or Indian Corn America. Malmsey Wine Mai vesia, one of the Grecian Islands. Manganese (a species of calcareous earth) Sweden, Germany, France, England. Mangrove Asia, Africa, and South America, be- tween the tropics. Manna (a vegetable product) The south of Europe, particularly Sicily and Calabria. Maple Sugar Europe and North America. Marble Spain, France, Italy, Sweden, Norway, the Island of Paros, England, Scotland, America. The Statuary Marble is from Paros and Carrara. Melons Asia, South of Europe, Egypt, Arabia, America, West Indies. Mica (a kind of argillaceous earth) Siberia, Ben- gal, Malabar, Russia, Finland, Sweden, Saxony. Millet Seed The south of Europe, Africa, East In- dies, and America. Mocho Stone East Indies, Iceland, the palatinate of the Rhine and other parts of Europe. Monkeys South America and the hottest regions of Asia and Africa. Molasses West Indies, United States (Louisiana). Morocco Leather The Levant, Barbary, Spain, France. Flanders, England, and America. Mosquito (a species of gnat) The hot parts of Europe, Asia, Africa, and America. Mother of Pearl (the lining of the pearl mussel's shell) The Red Sea, East Indies, America. Mulberry Italy (black), China, (white), United States (white and red), East Indies, Japan, Siberia, Russia. Muscatel Wine Languedoc in France. Musk (an animal odoriferous substance) Siberia, Persia. Thibet, Tonquin, Cochin China. Musk Ox North America. Myrrh (a gum resin) The coast of the Red Sea. Naphtha (a highly inflammable fluid bitumen) Baku, on the shore of the Caspian Sea, Persia, Media, Tartary, China, Italy, Peru. Natron (soda) Denmark, Hungary, Switzerland, Egypt, China, Bengal, Persia, Syria, South America. Nautilus Argonauta The Mediterranean, African, and Indian Seas. Nitre (a neutral salt, the chief ingredient in gun- powder) Spain, France, Naples, Egypt, East Indies, America. Nutmegs The East Indies, South America. Olives Portugal, Spain, France, Italy, Northern Africa, Mexico. Onyx East Indies, Siberia, Bohemia, Saxony, Portu- gal, Mexico. Opium (a concreted juice, obtained from a species of poppy) Arabia, Persia, and other warm regions of Asia, especially the East Indies. Opossum America. Orang-outang Africa. Oranges Spain, Majorca, Portugal, Italy, Genoa, Nice, the Azores, America, Weet Indies. Oranges for wine from Seville in Spain. Orplment (yellow arsenic) Hungary, Georgia, Tur- key, the Levant, England. Orris Boot Italy and other parts of the south of Europe. . Ostrich The torrid regions of Asia and Africa, South America. Attar of Roses Arabia, Persia, Turkey, East In- dies. Ounce The torrid parts of Africa and Asia. Palm Oil Tree South America. Panther Africa and the hot parts of Asia. Papyrus (a plant which formed the paper of the early times) Egypt, Abyssinia, Ethiopia, Syria, Sicily, Mau- agascar. Parrots Africa, East Indies, South America, West Indies. Pearl (a gem produced by a species of oyster or mus- sel) Arabia, Persia, the East Indies, America. Pearl Ashes America. Pelican South America, all the warm latitudes of the old and new continents, the lakes of Judea and Egypt, and the rivers Nile and Strymon. Penguin The South Islands, E'urope, America. Pepper The East Indies, America, West Indies, Cape of Good Hope. Peruvian Bark South America (Peru and Quito). Petroleum The East Indies, Persia, Media, Siberia, France, England, Germany, Spain, Italy, and the United States. Pimento The West Indies, particularly Jamaica. Pineapple Mexico, South America, the hot parts of Africa, India, the West Indies. Pitch United States, Sweden, Norway. Plantain (a fruit) Africa, South America, West In- dies. Platina South America (near Quito, Santa Fe\ and Choco). Plumbago England, and several countries on the continent of Europe, America. Pomegranate Spain, Italy, Africa, West Indies. Porcupine Spain, Italy, India, Persia, South Tar- tary, Africa, America. Porphyry Egypt, Italy, Germany, and other parts of the continent. Potash Russia and America. Prunes France (chiefly from the neighborhood of Marseilles). Ptarmigan (white grouse) The mountainous parts of Europe and Siberia. Pomace Stone The neighborhood of Vesuvius and other volcanoes. Pumpkin Germany and America. Qnagga (a quadruped of the horse species) South America. Quassia (the root, bark, and wood, of a tree) South America, and the West Indies. Quicksilver Ionia, Hungary, Spain, Italy, East Indies, South America. Raccoon (a species of badger) North America, Jamaica. Raisins Spain and Turkey, Asia Minor, California. Rattan Cane The East India Islands. Red Port Wine Oporto in Portugal. Reindeer Lapland, British America, Greenland. Ill-sin (the residuum from the distillation of the oil of turpentine) Sweden and Norway, United States. Rhenish Wine The banks of the Rhine. Rhinoceros Africa, East Indies (Bengal, Java, Sumatra, Ceylon). Rhubarb Asiatic Turkey, Russia, China, Persia, Tartary, East Indies, and America. Rice Asia (the East Indies and China), Egypt, north of Africa, America (the best from Carolina), Spain, Italy, Turkey. Rock Salt England, Italy, Poland, America. Rosewood Jamaica, the Canary Islands. Ruby The East Indies, Peru, Brazil. Rum Jamaica, and other West India Islands. Sable (a species of ferret) Siberia, Kamchatka, and the northern parts of Europe and America. Saffron (the flower of a plant) Egypt,- Europe, America. Sago (a fecula obtained from the pith of a species of palm) Africa, Malabar, and the East Indian Islands. Sal Ammoniac India, Persia. Isle of Bourbon, Eirypt, the neighborhood of .Etna. Vesuvius, Hecla.and other volcanoes, the Lapiri Islands. Sandal Wood The East Indies, and Sandwich Islands. Sapphire Brazil, East Indies, Persia, Bohemia- France. Sardonyx Iceland, the Faroe Islands, Bohemia, Sax- ony, Ceylon. Sarsaparilla (root of a plant) North America. FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 469 Sassafras (the root, bark, and wood of a tree) North America. Scorpion Africa, India, Persia, America. Seal The north of Europe, Greenland, and the Arc- tic Sea, the lower parts of South America, in both oceans. Senna (the leaves of a plant) Arabia, Persia, and Upper Egypt. Shaddock (a species of citron) East Indies, West Indies. Shagreen (a grained leather prepared from the skin of a species of shark > Constantinople.Tripoli, Algiers, and some parts of Poland. Sherry Wine Xeres in Spain. Silk Spain, the south of France, Italy, the Levant, Persia, China, East Indies, and United States. Silver Africa, Mexico, Peru, United. States, Spain, Germany, Siberia, Sweden, Norway, and England. Silver Bear Thecontines of Russia. Soy (a liquid condiment prepared from a kind of pulse) China and Japan. Spermaceti The produce of the Cachalot, a whale, inhabiting the European seas, the coasts of America, and Davis Straits. Sponge (a marine animal production) The Archi- pelago, the Mediterranean and Indian Seas. Spoonbill South America, Mexico, Jamaica. Stork Abyssinia, Arabia, Asia. Sturgeon European and American seas and rivers. Sugar East India Islands, China, West Indies, Louisiana. Sulphur Italy, Sicily, Naples, Spain, Norway, Siberia. Sumach (a plant used in dyeing and tanning) Spain, Portugal, the Levant, and United States. Swordfish The Mediterranean, Atlantic and East Indian Seas. Tamarinds Arabia, the East Indies, America, West Indies. Tapir (an animal of the class mammalia) South America. Tar Russia, Sweden, Norway, France, Switzerland, America. Tarantula Spider South of Europe, Barbary, East and West Indies. Tea China, Japan, India. Teak Wood East Indies, (Malabar, Pegu). Tiger Ease Indies, China, Japan, Africa. Tin England, the Seilly Islands, Bohemia, Saxony, Silesia, Banca, Molucca, Chile, Mexico. Timber Norway, Prussia, Russia, America. Tobacco United States, Peru, the West Indies, Asiatic Turkey, China, Philippine Islands. Tokay Wine Hungary. Tolu Balsam (a fragrant concreted juice) South America. Topaz Africa, East Indies, Siberia, Russia, Bohe- mia, Saxony, Mexico, Brazil. Tortoise Africa, Sardinia, America, and West In- dies. Treacle (a gross fluid, obtained in the manufacture of sugar) The West Indies and Louisiana. Turpentine (the resinous product of different species of pine, from which an essential oil is distilled) North America, Russia, Norway, France, Switzerland, the Pyr- enees, and Germany. Turquoise (a mineral of a pale sky blue color) Per- sia, Mount Caucasus, Egypt, Arabia,' Hungary, France. Vampire Bat East Indian Islands, South America, Guinea, Madagascar, New Holland, New Hebrides, Friendly Islands, New Caledonia. Van ilia (a plant whose aromatic pods are used in the manufacture of chocolate) South America, West In- dies. Vulture Egypt, Abyssinia, Arabia, Syria, Persia, South America, West Indies. "Walrus The coast of Spitzbergen, Nova Zembla, Hudson's Bay, Gulf of St. Lawrence, and the Icy Sea. Whale Greenland, Davis Straits, the Arctic and Antarctic Seas. Whisky (a spirit drawn from barley, rye, corn) United States, Scotland, and. Ireland. White Bear- Tartary. Wolf Europe, Asia, Africa, America. Yams (the edible roots of a creeping plant) Amer- ica, West Indies, East Indies, Africa. Zebra (a species of horse) The plains of Southern Africa. Zinc Germany, United States, and South America. RAILWAY MILEAGE IX THE UNITED STATES. BY STATES AND TERRITORIES. STATE OR TERRITORY. MILEAGE ON JUNE 30, 1900. STATE OR TERRITORY. MILEAGE ON JUNK 30, 19*0. Official. Unofficial. Total Mileage. Official. Unofficial. Total Mileage. Alabama 4,219.29 1,511.89 3,341.61 5,744.04 4,587.25 6.55 ' 18.25 7.00 4,225.84 .... 1,511.89 3,359.86 5,751.04 4,587.25 1,023.62 346.72 31.75 3,299.03 5,651.72 1,261.23 11,002.93 6,470.61 ; 1,322.75 9,185.18 8,719.36 j 3,059 99 2,824.08 1,915.24 1,376.16 2,118.58 8.195.18 6,942.57 2,919.90 6,875.04 3,010.32 6,684.85 909.35 1,239.20 New Jersev 2,237.39 1,762.52 8,121.03 3,808.16 2,731.22 8,774.97 827.88 1,723.80 10,277.37 211.79 2,79493 2,849.83 3,124.22 9,873.39 1,54742 1,012.11 3,729.05 2,890.57 2,198.27 6,496.52 1,228.63 19.30 '23.00 '32.30 63.13 '23! oo "l2.73 13.10 'sb'.lO 23.00 29.78 34.00 2,266.69 1,752.62 8,121.03 3,831 16 2,731.22 8,807.27 827.88 1,723.80 10,330.50 211.79 2,817.93 2,849.83 3,136.96 9,886.49 1,647.42 1,012.11 3,779.16 2,913.67 2,228.05 6,530.62 1,228.63 Alaska (see footnote) . . . Arizona New Mexico New York Arkansas North Dakota Ohio Colorado Connecticut Delaware 1,023.62 346.72 31.75 3,272.06 5,639.22 1,26123 10,997.33 6,469.61 1,322.75 9,180.65 8,719.36 3,059.99 2,824.08 1,915.24 1,376.16 2,118.58 8,193.18 6,942.57 2,919.90 6,867.80 3,010.32 5,684.85 909.35 1,239.20 27.00 12.50 ' ' 5.60 1.00 ' ' 4.53 "2.00 "7.24 Oklahoma Oregon District of Columbia. .. Florida Rhode Island Georgia Idaho South Dakota Illinois Indiana Texas Indian Territory Utah Kansas Kentucky Louisiana Virginia Washington Maine Maryland Wisconsin Michigan Grand total in U. S. 1900 Grand total in U. S. 1899 Grand total in U. S. 18i Grand total in U. S. 1897 Grand total in U. S. 1896 Grand total in U. S. 1895 Grand total in U. S. 1894 Grand total in U. S. 1893 192,940.67 188,277.49 185,370.77 182,919.82 181,153.77 179,175.51 176.60261 170,332.30 405.11 1,017.17 1,025.56 1,608.60 1 622.86 1,481.96 2.105.S14 6,128.77 193,345.78 189.2SM.66 186,396.32 184,428.47 182,776.(3 180,667.47 178,708.66 176,461.07 Minnesota Mississippi Missouri Montana Nebraska Nevada New Hampshire ' * Excludes 21.80 miles in Alaska. 470 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. RAILROAD TRAFFIC OF THE WORLD. COUNTRIES. Miles of Railroad. Cost of Roads and Equip- ments. Passengers Carried. Tons of Freight Carried. Receipts. Expenditures. 161,200 $18,335,000,000 2,460,000,000 1,043,000,000 $1,640,000.000 945,000,000 232,060 14,5 T 0,000,000 610 000,000 820,000,000 1,305,000,000 910,000,000 8,580 515,000,000 24,000,000 7,000,000 46,500,000 26,150 1,375,000,000 226,000,000 38,000,000 110,000,000 55,0 0,000 Australia 14,210 725,000,000 60,000.,000 12,000,000 53,500,000 31,500,000 Total 442,200 $35,520,000,000 3,380,000,000 1,920,000,000 $3,155,000,000 $1,865,000,000 This table of statistics of the railroads of the world is by Mulhall, and represents the business of the year 1897. Railroad Mileage by Countries. embourg) 1,966 Switzerland 2,303 Spain 8,103 Portugal 1,467 Denmark 1.618 Norway 1,230 Sweden 6,359 Servia 354 Roumania 1,895 Greece 591 European Turkey, Bulgaria, and Roumelia 1,595 Malta, Jersey, Man 68 Countries. Central America. Miles. 646 The following statement by Archiv fur Eisenbahnwesen represents beginning of 1899. Countries. Miles. All of Germany 30,777 Austro - Hungary (including Bosnia, etc.) 21,805 Great Britain and Ireland 21,529 France 25,898 Russia (including Finland) 26,414 Italy 9,759 Belgium 3,781 Netherlands (including Lux- Total, North America .212,848 United States of Colombia .... 346 Cuba 1,133 Venezuela 633 San Domingo 177 Brazil 8,718 Argentina 9,822 Paraguay 157 Uruguay 1,118 Chile 2,662 Peru 1,035 Bolivia 621 Ecuador 186 British Guiana .22 Jamaica, Barbadoes/Trinidad, Martinique, Porto Rico, Sal- vador 618 the world's railway mileage at the Countries. Miles. Japan 2,948 Portuguese India 51 Malay Archipelago 188 China 401 Siam 167 Cochin China, Pondicherry, Malacca, and Tonquin 238 Total, Asia 33,289 Total, S. America & W. Indies 27,188 Total Europe 167,510 British India 21,973 Ceylon 297 i Asia Minor and Syria 1,588 Russia (Transcaspian District) 1,568 Siberia 2,573 Persia 34 Dutchlndia 1,293 Egypt 2,085 Algiers and Tunis 2,704 Cape Colony 2,384 Natal 459 South African Republic 774 Orange Free State 832 Mauritius, Reunion, Congo, Senegal and other States . . . . 2,011 Total, Africa ..ll,2ll ' Australasia 14,490 United States 186,245 British North America 16,867 Newfoundland 592 Mexico 8,498 RECAPITULATION. Europe 167,510 North America .212.848 South America 27.188 Asia 33,289 Africa 11,214 Australasia 14,490 Total 466,539 INSURANCE. A Stock Insurance Company is one whose cap- ital is owned by stockholders, they alone shar- ing the profits, and they alone being liable for losses. The business of such a company, and also of a mixed company, is managed by directors chosen by the stockholders. Policy holders, un- less at the same time stockholders, have no voice in the management of the company's business or in the election of its officers. A Mutual Insurance Company is one in which the profits and losses are shared among the policy holders (the insured). Mixed Companies are a combination of the foregoing. In a mixed company all profits above a certain fixed dividend are usually di- vided among the policy holders. Some mutual and mixed companies issue what are called non-participating policies. The holders of these do not share in the profits or losses. Fire Insurance. Policies for fire insur- ance are generally issued for periods of one to five years. Ordinarily, in case of loss by fire, the insured will be paid the extent of his loss up to the amount of insurance, unless the insurance company prefer to replace or repair the damaged property, which privilege is usu- ally reserved. If the policy contains the " aver- age clause " the payment will cover only such portion of the loss as the amount of insurance bears to the value of the property insured. A Floating Policy is one which covers prop- erty stored in several buildings or places. The name is applied more particularly to policies which cover goods whose location may be changed in process of manufacture, or in the ordinary course of business. The < ' average clause " is a usual condition of policies of this class. Short Rates are rates for a term less than a year. If an insurance policy is terminated at the request of the policy holder, the company retains the customary "short rates'' for the FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 471 time the policy has been in force, as shown by the following table : Policy for 1 year. Policy for 2 years. Policy for 3 years. Policy for 4 years. Policy for' 5 years. Charge this proportion of whole Premium. 1 mo. 2 mo. 3 mo. 4 mo. 5 mo. 20 per cent. 2 4 6 8 " 10 30 3 6 9 12 " 15 40 4 8 12 16 ' 2(1 50 5 10 15 20 ' 25 60 6 12 18 24 ' 30 70 7 14 21 28 ' 35 75 8 16 24 32 ' 40 80 9 18 27 36 " 45 85 10 20 30 40 " 50 90 11 22 33 1 44 " 55 95 When a policy is terminated at the option of the company, a ratable portion of the premium is refunded for the unexpired term. Life Insurance. In ordinary life poli- cies a certain premium is to be paid every year until the death of the insured, when the policy becomes payable to the beneficiary. There are other kind of policies, however, and these are described below : Limited Payment Life Policy. Conditions: Premiums to be paid annually for a certain fixed number of years, or until the death of the insured, should that occur prior to the expira- tion of this period. Policy payable at death of the insured. Advantages : Payments on this kind of policy may all be made while the insured is best able to make them, and if he live to an old age, the policy will not be a con- tinual burden, but will rather be a source of income, as the yearly dividends may-be taken out in cash or added to the amount of insur- ance. Term Life Policy. In this method of insur- ance, the insurance company agrees to pay to the beneficiaries a certain sum on the death of the insured, should that event occur within a fixed term. Endowment Policy. A combination of a Term Policy and a Pure Endowment. These policies are issued for endowment periods of 10, 15, 20, 25, 30, or 35 years, and may be paid up by a single payment, by an annual premium during the endowment period, or by five or ten annual payments. Conditions: 1. Insurance during a stipulated period, payable at the death of the insured, should that event happen within said period. 2. An endow- ment of the same amount as the policy, paya- ble to the insured, if still living at the end of the period fixed. Advantages : Limited term of payments ; insurance during the time when the death of the insured would cause most em- barrassment to his family; provision for old age, as the amount of the policy will be paid to the insured if still living, at a time when advanced age may make it of great benefit. Annuity Policies are .secured by a single cash payment and insure the holder the yearly pay- ment of a certain sum of money during life. Joint Life Policy. An agreement to pay a certain sum on the death of any one of two or more persons thus insured. Non-forfeiting Policies do not become void for non-payment of premiums. In some com- panies all limited payment life policies, and all endowment policies, after premiums for three (or two) years have been paid, and the origi- nal policy is surrendered within a certain time, provide for paid-up assurance for as many parts of the original amount assured as there shall have been complete annual premiums received in cash by the company. Some companies voluntarily apply all credited dividends to the continuance of the insurance. Others apply the legal reserve to the purchase of term insur- ance at regular rates. Special Forms. The Reserve Endowment, Tontine Investment, and other special policies guarantee to the holder a definite surrender value at the termination of certain periods. The surrender value of a policy is the amount in cash which the company will pay the holder of a policy on its surrender the legal reserve less a certain per cent, for expenses. The Reserve of life insurance policies is the present value of the amount to be paid at death, less the present value of all the net premiums to be paid in the future. The Reserve Fund of a life insurance com- pany is that sum in hand which, invested at a given rate of interest, together with future premiums on existing policies, should be suf- ficient to meet all obligations as they become due. It is the sum of the separate reserves of the several policies outstanding. Marine and Transit Insurance. In- surance of vessels and their cargoes against the perils of navigation is termed Marine In- surance. Inland and Transit Insurance refer to insur- ance of merchandise while being transported from place to place either by rail or water routes, or both. Insurance Certificates, showing that certain property has been insured and stating the amount of the insurance and the name of the party abroad who is authorixed to make the settlement, are issued by marine companies. They are negotiable and are usually sent to the consignee of the merchandise to make the loss payable at the port of destination. The adjustment of marine policies in case of loss is on the same principle as the adjustment of fire policies containing the < ' average clause. ' ' THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Open Policies are such upon which additional Wages and Cost of Living. jisurances may be entered at ditterent times. PUBLIC DEBT OF THE UNITED STATES. OFFICIAL STATEMENT OF JUNE 30, 1901. INTEREST-BEARING DEBT. Consols of 1930 2 per cent $445,940,750.00 From the report of the Secretary of State on the state of labor in Europe, derived from facts reported by the United States Consuls corrected to 1892, the following tables are gleaned : COMPARATIVE RATES OF WEEKLY WAGES PAID IN EUROPE AND IN THE UNITED STATES. France. Germany. X 1 hH c 1 'E M 1 CJ U. S. New York. Chicago. Loan of 1908-1918 3 per cent 99,621,420.00 Funded loan of 1907 4 per cent 257,376,050.00 Loan of 1925 4 per cent 162,315,400.00 $ 5.55 5.45 4.85 4.00 C.OO 5.42 3.15 $ 3.50 3.55 3.82 3.60 3.97 4.00 2.87 2.92 3.92 3.80 3.60 4.80 3.12 3.58 3.65 $ 3.90 ?.94 3.90 r.45 3. 5 4.18 3.50 2.60 4.60 4.35 3.90 3.90 4.32 4.30 3.60 1 6.50- 6.60 7.04- 8 12 .50- 7.8,3 7.58- ".03 7.70-8.48 7.33-8.25 3.40- 4.25 4.50-5.00 7.25- 8.16 7.68-10.13 7.13- 8.46 7.52- 7.75 7.35 5.00- 7.30 6.00- 7.30 $ 5- 8 10-14 12-18 12-15 9-13 ,. 9 : 12 6- 9 10-16 10-15 12 18 8-18 12-18 10-18 10-14 $ 8- 12 9- 12 9- 20 9- 10i 7-15 7J-12 5$- 9 G- 12 9- 15 12- 20 12- 18 9- 18 6- 18 9- 12 Loan of 1904,' 5 per cent 21,854,100.00 Aggregate of Interest Bearing Debt $987,141,040.00 DEBT ON WHICH INTEREST HAS CEASED SINCE MA- TURITY. Aggregate of Debt on which interest has Blacksmiths Bookbinders Bricklavers Cabinetmakers Carpenters & Join- ers Farm Laborers Laborers, Porters, etc DEBT BEARING NO INTEREST. United States notes $346,681,016.00 Painters 4.90 Plasterers Plumbers 5.50 4.70 4.75 5.10 4.40 Old demand notes 53,847.50 National bank notes : Redemption account 29,404,309.50 Shoemakers Tailors Fractional currency 6,876,41 1 .63 Tinsmiths Aggregate of debt bearing no interest $383,015,584.63 CERTIFICATES AND NOTES ISSUED ON DEPOSITS OF COIN AND SILVER BULLION. Gold certificates $288,957,689.00 Night Signals on Ocean Steamship Lines. American Red light, roman candle throwing six red balls. Anchor Red and white lights alternately (lanterns). Silver certificates 433.014,000.00 Treasury notes of 189J ... . 47,783,000.00 Aggregate of certificates and Treasury notes, offset by cash in the Treasury $771,754,689.00 CLASSIFICATION OF DEBT JUNE 30, 1901. Interest-bearing debt $987,141,040.00 Debt on which interest has ceased since maturity 1,415,620.26 Debt bearing no interest 383,015,584.63 Aggregate of interest and non-interest bearing debt $1,371,572,244.89 Certificates and Treasury notes offset by an equal amount of cash in the Treasury 77 1,754,689.00 Aggregate of debt, including certificates and Treasury notes $2,143,326,933.89 CASH IN THE TREASURY. Gold certificates $288.957 ,689.00 Silver certificates 4:J5.0I4,000.00 Treasury notes of 1890 47,783,000.00 -$771,754,689.00 National bank 5 per cent, fund $13,267,236.27 Outstanding checks and drafts 5,207,095.08 Disbursing officers' balances. 51,797,014.43 Post office department ac- count 9,531,120.63 Miscellaneous items 3,478,630.77 83,281,097.18 $855,035,786.18 Reserve fund $150,000,000.00 Available cash balance 176,H33,124.92 326,833,124.92 Total $ 1,181 ,868,911.10 Cash balance in the Treasury June 30, 1901, exclusive of reserve and trust funds $176,833,124.92 Blue light and two roman candles, each throw- ing six blue l:alls. Frencfi ISlue light forward, white light amidships, red light aft simultaneously. Gulon Blue lights, forward, aft, and on bridge simul- taneously. Hamburg Two red, white, blue Coston lights at stern of vessel in succession. Inman Blue light forward and aft, and red light on bridge simultaneously. Monarch Green, white, green Coston light. National Blue light forward and aft, and red light on bridge forming a triangle. North German Lloyd Two blue, red Coston lights, one forward and one aft simultaneously. Bed Star Red light forward, amidships, and aft, to- gether. State Blue, red Coston lights. White Star Two green lights simultaneously. Designating Marks of Ocean Steamship Lines. LINES. FUNNEL MARKS. American Lower two thirds red, with white keystone, black top. Anchor Bin ck. Allan Red, with white ring under black top. Cunard Red, with black top. French Red, with black top. Guion Lower two thirds black, a red band and black top. Hamburg Black. Inman Lower two thirds black, white band and black top. Monarch French-grav and black top. National White, with black top. North German Lloyd Black. Red Star Cream color, with black top with red star. Royal Netherlands Black, with band having green border. State Lower two thirds buff, red band under black top. White Star Cream, black top. FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 473 PRODUCTION OF COAL. AREA OF THE WORLD'S COAL FIELDS, IN SQUARE MILES. China and Japan, 200,000; United States, 194,000; India, 35,000; Russia, 27,ooo: Great Britain 9,000; Ger- many, 3,600; France, 1,800; Belgium, Spain, and other countries, 1,400. Total, 471,800. The coal fields of China, Japan, Great Britain, Ger- many, Russia, and India contain apparently 303,000,000,- 000 tons, which is enough for 450 years at present rate of consumption. If to the above be added the coal fields in the United States, Canada, and other countries, the supply will be found ample for 1,000 years. Im- proved machinery has greatly increased the yield per miner, and thus produced a fall in price to the advan- tage of all industries. The production of the principal countries in 1899 in metric tons (2,204.6 Ibs.) was : United States, 228,717,579 ; United Kingdom, 223,616,279; Germany, 135,844.419; "72; France, 32,862",712; Belgium, 800,000; Japan, 6,721,798; Aus- tralasia (e\ 6,700,000; India, 5,016,055; Canada, 4,142,242; Spain, 2,600,279; Mexico, 409, 125; Sweden, 239,344; Italy, 388,534; all other countries (e), 2,500,000; total, partly Austria-Hungary, 38,738,372 ; Fra 22,072,068; Russia (e), 12.800,000; estimated, 723,617,836. (e) Estimated. COAL PRODUCTION IN THE UNITED STATES. Bituminous product of 1900. Weight expressed in short tons of 2,000 pounds. STATES. Tons. STATES. Tons. STATES. Tons. STATES. Tons. Alabama .... 8,504,327 2,600 1,250.000 177,515 5,43*3,490 243,000 25,153,9?9 6,357,976 Indian Ter. (a) . . Iowa 1,900.127 5,089,651 4,5-i7,20i: 4,991,204 3,923,808 843,476 2,995,022 1,705.957, Nebraska (d) New Mexico (a). North Carolina.. North Dakota (b) Ohio 900 (d) 1,145,739 17.744 162,929 20,671,254 51.050 79,318,362 3,904,048 1,022,827 1,233,978 2,504,974 2,418,034 21,163,340 4,129,265 Alaska (b) Texas (Cf Arkansas (a) California ,' Kansas Utah 1 Kentucky Colorado (e) Georgia Maryland , . Washington (d). West Virginia(a) i Wyoming i Michigan Missouri (a) Montana Oregon Pennsylvania . . . Illinois (a) . Indiana (a) Fiscal year, (b) All lignite, (c) One-third lignite, (d) One-half lignite, (e) One-seventh lignite. Total production: Bituminous, 210.821.727 tons; value, $219,4W,521. Anthracite (Colorado, 59,244 tons; New Mexico, 41,595 tons; Pennsylvania, 57,363,396 tons), total, 57,464,235 tons; value, 8102.972,526. Cannel (produced in Ken- tucky), 29,471 tons ; value, $88,413. Grand Total, 268,315,433 tons ; per ton, gl.20 at mine ; value, 322,521,530. PRODUCTION OF COPPER, TIN AND ZINC. The production of copper in the world in 1900, stated In long tons, was as follows: United States. 268,787; Spain and Portugal, 54.872; Chile, 25.700; Japan, 27,840; Germany, 20,410; Mexico, 22,050; Australasia, 23,000; South Africa, 6,490 ; other countries, 32,345 ; total, 486,084 tons. The copper production of the United States in 1900, in pounds, was distributed as follows: Arizona, 115,403,- 846; California, 29,639,987 ; Colorado, 7,826.949; Michigan, 144,227,340; Montana, 254,460,713; Utah, 18,504,726; East- ern and Southern States, 6,918,122; all others, 12,536,850 ; copper in sulphate (a), 11,313,962. (a) Including only the copper in sulphate obtained as a by-product. The production of tin in the world in 1900, in long tons, was as follows: England, 4,100; Straits Settlements, 46,070; Australasia. 3,178; Banka, Billiton.and Singkep, 17,640; Bolivia, 6,937; India and China, 877; United States, none ; total, 78,802. The production of zinc in the world in 1900, in metric tons, was as follows : Austria, 6,836 ; Belgium, Holland, 'and the Rhine district of Germany, 189,301; Upper Silesia, 102.316; France, 38.000; Spain, 6,200; United ! Kingdom, 30,307; Russia, 5,969; United States, 111,794; total, 490,973. THE FLEET OF TRANSATLANTIC PASSENGER STEAMERS. Includes only regular passenger lines from New York. Offices and piers are in Manhattan Borough, unless otherwise stated. BUILT. Tonnage. Horse Power. Dimensions in Feet. STEAMSHIPS. Builders. a i *C Commander. a fl i Place. i S J.1 la 00 S) is tL | ' o, * K o A (5 New York and Glasgow, Pier foot I West 21st St. I ALLAN-STATE LINE. (Office, 53 Broadway.) State Line Established 1872. State of Nebraska 1880 Glasgow Lomi. \- <,rn-,,\ v Co., L29 20000 .... Randle 535.863 42 m Paul 1*>94 Philadelphia . . Wm. Cramp & Sons. .. ..5874; 11629 20000 Jamison 535.863 4? 1 >-'.' Glasgow J & G Thomson .. 6289 10796 20000 2000 Watkins 680 '63.3 4? New York 1888 Glasgow J. & G. Thomson ..6318! 10803 200002000 Passow 580 63.3 42 New York and Glasgow, Pier foot ) West 24th St. ANCHOR LINE. (Office, 7 Bowling Green.) Established 1852. City of Rome Anchoria Bolivia 18*1 Barrow Barrow S. B. Co 3453J 8144! 27131 4168' 2626' *I50 2770; 4272 1500 Young 617 John Wilson.. 1120 Craig 561 408 400 400 402 446 63 40 40 42 42 46 37 34 26 25 2* 9 1874 Barrow Barrow S. B. Co 18781 Barrow Barrow S. B. Co 1873 Glasgow A Stephen & Son 600 Ethiopia Furnessia 2604 4005 2013 6495: 720 Wadworth ... 600 Harris 1880 Barrow...!.... Barrow S. B. Co 474 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. The Fleet of Transatlantic Passenger Steamers Continued. BUILT. _ i Horse Tonnage. i> ower . Dimensions in Feet. STEAMSHIPS. Builders. d Commander, a j 5 if Place. J i J.1H - -h is 1 3 - 4-1 c. fH fc c - - M *r [an > Q New York. Queenstown, and Liver- pool, Pier foot Clarkson St. Campania 1892 Fairfieid Lucania 1892 Fairfleld Etruria 1885 Fairfleld Umbria 1884 Fairfleld A nra nia 1883 Glasgow Servia 1881 Glasgow CUNARD LINE. (Office, 4 Bowling Green.) Established 1840. . Fairfleld Co 5000 12950 . Fairfleld Co iSOOO 12950: . John Elder & Co 3257 771* . John Elder & Co 3245 7718 . J. & G. Thomson 4029 7268 . J. & G. Thomson 3971 7391 30000 * Walker 620 65343 30000 H. McKay C20 65.343 14500 2500 Ferguson 501.6 57.2 38.2 14500 2500 Button 501.6 57.2 38 2 8500 15f-0 A. McKay 470 57.2 37.2 10000 1000 Watt 515 52.137 New York and Havre, Pier foot I Morton St. FRENCH LINE. (Office, 3 Bowling Green.) Established 1860. La Gascogne 1886 Toulon .. Soc. des Forges, etc 4158 7416 9000 Simon ..,..."... 508 52 38 La Champagne 1886 St. Nazaire La Bretagne 1886 St. Nazaire . La Not mandie 1882 Barrow, Eng ..iCie Gle Transatlantique. 3906 7110 9000.... ...Cie Gle Transatlantique. 3889 7>UO: 9000 Poirot 508 61 38 Run** 508 61 38 ...| 3475 6112 6500 .... Fajolle 459 50 34 New York, Cherbourg, Southamp- ton, Boulogne, and Hamburg,; Pier foot 1st St., Hoboken. HAMBURG-AMERICAN LINE. (Office, 37 Broadway.) Established 1847. Fiirst Bi-marck 1890 Stettin . . Vulcan S. B. Co 10000 16400 2800 Albers ! 5->Oi 58 40 Augusta Victoria 1 89 Stettin Vulcan S. B. Co 10000 135002500 Kaempff 620 56 38 Pennsylvania 1*97 Belfast .. Harland & Wolff 12500 6000...., . . ' Blohm & Voss 12500 6000 ' Spliedt 560 62 42 Kopff 560 6242 Karlowa 460 52 32 Pretoria . 1897 Hamburg... Palatia 1894 Stettin ..VulcanS.B.Co 8000 55 K) ...! Patria . 1894 Stettin ..VulcanS.B.Co 8000 5500 Bauer 460 52 32 Phoenicia 1894 Hamburg . Blohm & Voss 8000 5500 Leithauser 4<50 5232 Magin 400 5030 Armenia 1K96 Newcastle. . . . Palmers ' 70 K) 3000 Arcadia 1896 Belfast .. Harland & Wolff i 7000 3000 Martens 400 4930 Arabia . 1*96 Belfast . . Harland & Wolff 7000 3000 Pietsch 400 4930 \sturia 1896 Newcastle Palmers .. 7000 3000 Kuhn 390 53 29 \ndalusia il96 Newcastle. ..Palmers 70"0 3000 Schroeder 400 50 30 Reuter 400 5030 Adria 1896 Newcastle. . Ainbria 1896 Flensburg. . . . Palmers 7000 3000 ... Flensburg S. B. Co 5043 5000.... Flensburg S. B. Co 5060 50X) Froehlich 404 32 25 Krech 404 32 25 Alesia 1896 Flensbnrg Aragonia 189.; Flensburg. . Graf Waldersee . . 1897 Hamburg. . . ... Flensburg S. B. Co 5250 f.010 . . H.Schmidt.... 44 3225 565 6' 42 ... Blohm & Voss IttWO" 6000 Patricia 197 Stettin Bulgaria . . 1^98 Hamburg . . VulcanS.B.Co 130*1 coxi 565 6 42 .. Blohm & Voss K'236 4<>00 501 62 34i/i Brasilia '1893 Belfast Harland & Wolff. . ..; . lo^'l 400:i r.01 6 34 1 /. Deutschlandt 1 .. Stettin ... VulcanS.B.Co 16000 33000 .... i 685 6642 " New York, Boulogne, Amsterdam, and Rotterdam, Piers foot 5th and 6th Sts., Hoboken. HOLLAND-AMERICA LINE. NETHERLANDS-AMERICAN LINE. (Office, 39 Broadway.) Established 1874. Rotterdam 197 Belfast ... Harland & Wolff 5600 8000 5000 VanderZee... 4?5 53 34 Stenger 430 4 31 Spaarndam. . 1881 Belfast Harland & Wolff 3123 4539 3500 Maasdam 1872 Belfast ... Harland & Wolff 2702 3984 3500 Ald.Potjer.... 4.-0 41 31 Bruinsma 41 'i 39 29 W.Bakker 411 39 29 S. deVries 31*1 38 29 Bonjer 525 60 42 Werkendam 1881 Belfast Harland & Wolff 2654 3657 2500 Amsterdam 1879 Belfast . Harland & Wolff 2681 3627 2500 Edam 1878 Belfast ... Harland & Wolff 2361 3329 2100 Statendam 1898 Belfast . . . Harland & Wolff 7000 10500 6500 .... New York, Southampton, and Bre- 1 men. Pier 21 St., Hoboken. NORTH GERMAN LLOYD. (Office, 2 Bowling Green.) Established 1857. Kaiser Wilhelin DerGrosse 1897 Stettin Kaiser Friedrich.. 1898 Danzig Kaiserin Mana Th. 1898 Stettin Lahn 1887 Fairfleld Saale 1886 Glasgow Trave 1886 Glasgow Friedrich d.Grosse 1896 Stettin Konigin Luise 1896 Stettin Barbarossa 1896 Hamburg Bremen 1896 Danzig H. H. Meier, 1892 Newcastle . . . . New York a.-:d Genoa, Pier foot 2d \ St.. Hoboken. Vulcan Shipbuilding Co. . SchichauShipbuild'gCo. . Vulcan Shipbuilding Co. 3769 Fairfield E. & S. B. Co. . 2879 Elder & Co 2779 Elder& Co 2779 Vulcan Shipbuilding Co.l Vulcan Shipbuilding Co 10500 Blohm & Voss | ....| 10500 10500J 5306 SchichauShipbuild'gCo Mitt-hell. ArmstrongCo.l 27000 .... Englehart 649 66 43 25000 .... Stormer 600 64 41 17000 Meier 546 52 37 8800 ... Pohle 4C4 49 37 7500 Blank*- 4f5 48 36 7500 Christoffers 455 48 36 7000 Eichel 54> 60 35 7000 v. Schuckm'nn 544 60 35 7000 .... Richter 546 60 35 SOW .... Reimkasten... 544 60 35 3800 . . . . Steencken 4^1 48J 29 NORTH GERMAN LLOYD. (Office, 2 Bowling Green.) Established 1892. Kaiser Wilhelm II l>* Stettin Aller 1886 Glasgow Ems l*-4 i.l .-^'ow New York and Antwerp. Pier foot I Fulton St., N. R. Vul*-an Shipbuilding Co. 4776 6990 felder&Co 2779 5381 Elder&Co 2893 5192 6300 Hogemann ! 465 62 27 7500 Nierich 455 48 36 7000 Harrassowitz. . 445 47 35 RED STAR LINE. (Office, 6 Bowling Green.) Established 1873. Friesland ..18-9 Glasgow . . J. & G. Thomson .... 50231 6824 800 Nickels 4o"i 51 38 Westernland . . . . . . 1*83 Birkenhead . . Laird Bros 4320 700 Mills 456 47 36 Noonlland .. 1*83 Birkenhead . . . Laird Bros 4019] 5398 600 Loesewitz 419 47 35 Southwark .. 1893 Dumbarton . . W. Dennv * to O " ' ri a B F " ro pan S -tprn ' Western Union Telegraph Co. : Transatlantic System Sennen Cove, near Penzance, England, to Dover Bav, near Canso, N S Egyptian Svstem Egypto-Indian System Total 81 2 24 1 2 3 3 1 19 2 1 11 8 16 22 26,153 .1,053 6,982 850 14 145 1,527 32 4.720 2,048 i.r'sg 2,; 77 1,964 6,154 4,557 Dover Bav, N. S., to New York Europe and Azores Telegraph Co Gulf of Mexico System Total Great Northern Telegraph Co. : 12 1 1 2 7,342 2,282 828 Compagnie Fran?aise du Tetegraphe de Paris a New York : Brest (France) to St. Pierre-Mi q Halifax and Bermuda Cable Co Indo-European Telegraph Co India Rubber, Gutta Percha, and Tele- graph Works Co Rt Piprrp to Cape Cod Mass. Other branch lines Mexican Telegraph Co Total River Plate Telegraph Co 4 1 8 1 6 3,532 3,250 2,938 337 7,376 Soctete Franyaise des T61graphes Sous- Mariiis, ,,,,,., ,,,.,..,,,,,,..,,,,,,,,, Compagnie Franyaise des Cables Tele- graphiques : Brest (France) to Cape Cod, Mass South American Cable Co United States and Havti Telegraph and Cable Co African Direct Telegraph Co West African Telegraph Co Black Sea Telegraph Co West Coast of America Telegraph Co Western and Brazilian Telegraph Co West India & Panama Telegraph Co Total Brazilian Submarine Telegraph Co. : Carcavellos, near Lisbon (Portugal), to Madeira, to St. Vincent (Cape Verde Island), to Pernambuco (Brazil) 318 146,419 * Official figures not announced when this list was revised. Cables Owned by Nations. Austria 41 2 73 64 58 IK 47 24 39 325 4 9 15 14 2 23 214 55 235 6,0^5 2,225 1,989 55 62 1,061 324 115 231 1,744 96 10 344 49 31 1 1 111 2 2 70 1 1 7 1 119 345 213 200 1,919 113 774 1,508 2 - 1 891 3 Belgium Denmark France Germany British India (Indo-European Telegraph r>**part:m**n t) Great Britain and Ireland Greece i China Holland Italy Norwav Portug'al Russia Spain Senegal, Africa Dakar to Goree Sweden Switzerland Total Turkey 1,142 19,880 FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 477 OCCUPATIONS IN THE UNITED STATES. NUMBER OF PERSONS ENGAGED IN PRINCIPAL SPECIFIED OCCUPATIONS. OCCUPATIONS. Males. Females. OCCUPATIONS. Males. Females. All occupations 18,820,950 3,914,711 Telegraph and telephone oper- 43,740 10,465 9,817 4,064,144 67,908 205,'-'56 12.495 12,289 179,838 20-277 60,007 8,944 45,916 105,313 10,941 35.891 611,226 11.545 34.294 20,543 23,702 17,562 47,435 80,144 3,340 5,034 828 8,016 32,f60 2.760 16,890 9,065 42/>12 17,336 8,706 142,087 3'J, 6 63.6U 947 27,821 1,033 3,690 86,436 Agriculture, fisheries, mining.... 8,333,692 679,509 Telegraph and electric light Agricultural laborers Dairymen and dairy women Farmers, planters, overseers... Fishermen and oystermcn 2,556.930 16,072 6,065,130 59,887 70,186 65,829 208,330 140,906 37,028 70,047 33,605 632,641 5,779 447,085 1,734 226,4'->7 263 2,415 28 219 133 30 687 32 311,682 3,949 Undertakers Manufacturing and mechanical industries Bakers Bleachers, dyers, scourers Stock raisers, herders, drovers. Boot and shoe makers Brewers and maltsters Professional service Brick and tile makers Broom and brush makers Builders and contractors Architects Artists and teachers of art Authors and scientific persons Clergymen 8,048 11,676 3,989 8T.060 17,161 9,086 43,115 20,961 89,422 27,630 74,789 180,^48 4,697 96,581 17,421 2,692,820 22 10,810 2,725 1,235 337 306 127 888 208 34,519 4,875 4,555 735 245,230 634 1,667,686 Butchers Butter and cheese makers Cabinetmakers Carpenters and joiners Dentists Designers and inventors Carriage and wagon makers Engineers (civil, mechanical, electrical, and mining) Confectioners Lawvers Musicians, teachers of music. . . Coopers Cotton mill operatives Distillers and rectifiers Professors in colleges Door, sash, and blind makers.. . Dressmakers Teachers Theatrical managers, showmen, Glass workers Glove makers Domestic and personal service .... Barbers and hairdressers Gold and silver workers Gunsmiths, locksmiths, and bell 82,151 55,660 11,756 139,718 38,825 18,776 1,858,504 31,816 6,088 69.137 237,523 27,919 3,097,653 2,825 147 32,593 47 8,315 2,780 64.813 21fi.627 51,402 2,275 1,205,876 228,309 Harness and saddle makers and Boarding and lodging house keepers Hosiery and knitting mill Engineers and firemen (not loco- moti ve) Leather curriers and tanners. . . Manufacturers an.1 officials Marble and stone cutters 101,216 61.006 158,874 4.604 51,561 62,745 406 66.241 218.622 12.313 18.869 17,834 14.360 38,912 66,556 12,943 80.X99 6.207 9,886 133.216 3.988 22.929 14.192 21.272 121.586 64,427 83.601 11,256 83.529 47836 Launderers and laundresses .... Meat and fruit packers and can- Servants Soldiers, sailors, and marines. . Trade and transportation Mill and factory operatives Millers (flour and grist) Milliners Agents (claim, commission, real 169,704 29.516 131,602 492,852 58,089 35,117 368,265 54,005 56,824 26,719 79,459 638,609 27,334 48,446 6.216 39,719 34,002 55,875 205.931 381,312 12.148 87,428 4,875 504 27.772 64,048 612 983 237 24 2,259 48 4 25,451 198 2,909 72 237 325 29 58,449 1,438 21,185 12 Molders Painters, glaziers, varnishere. . . Bankers and brokers (money Paper mill operatives Bookkeepers and accountants. . Piano ana organ makers Foremen and overseers Plumbers and gas and steam nacKmen,ieamsie s,c Potters Printers and pressmen Li very -stable keepers Publishers of books and news- Locomotive engineers and fire- Rubber factory operatives Saw and planing mill em- Merchants (wholesale), import- Seam'stresses Messengers and office boys Newspaper carriers, newsboys.. Ship and boat builders. Tailors and tailoresses Tinners and tinware makers Tobacco factory operatives Salesmen and saleswomen Steam railroad employees Stenographers, typewriters Street railway employees , 478 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. THE WORLD'S PRODUCTION OF WOOL IN 1901. Of the world's wool production 2,118,884,704 pounds are of classes one and two, washed and unwashed, and 581,000,000 pounds of class three of the American tariff classification. COUNTRIES. Pounds. COUNTRIES. Pounds. COUNTRIES. Pounds. North America : United States* 302,502,328 12,000,000 5,000,000 Europe : Great Britain and Ire- land* 141,146,376 103,610,000 102,600,000 13,410,000 49,590,000 21,451,000 64.300,000 361,100,000 8,200,000 67,500,000 14,000,000 Asia Continued : British India 85,000,000 33,000,000 35,000,0(10 15,000,000 274 000 000 Asiatic Turkey Mexico . . ; France China Total All other Asia 319,502,328 Portugal Total Central America and West Indies 5,000,000 Italy* J. Austria-Hungary Africa : Algeria and Tunis 30,425,000 100,000,000 3,000,000 1,000,000 South America : Argentina Brazil Chile 370,000,000 1,500,000 7,500,000 96,000,000 15.000,000 20,000,000 Russia, inc. Poland S weden and Norway Turkey and Balkan Peninsula All other Europe Uape Colony, Natal, Or- ' ange Free State Egypt All other Africa Uruguav Venezuela All other South America Total Total Asia: 946,907,376 60,000,000 46,000,000 Total Australasia Oceanica 510,000,000 50,000 510,000,030 Central Asia . Grand total 2,699,884,704 * Fleece washed. Great Britain and Ireland, product of 1900. t Washed and unwashed. RAILROAD SPEED. NOTABLE FAST RUNS OF PASSENGER TRAINS FOR LONG DISTANCES. DATE. Railroad. Terminals. Dis- tance, Miles. INCLUSIVE. STOPS. Time. H. SI. Miles per Hour. Num- ber. May, 184S. July, 1885. Aug., 1888. Sept . I8J1. Mar., 1892 Nov., 1892. Nov., 1892. May, 18J3. May, 1893. Aug., 1894. Aug., 1894. April, 1895. April, 1895. Aug., 1895. Sept., 1895. Sept., 1895. Oct., 1895. Oct., 1895. Mar., 1896. Feb., 1897. Mar., 1897. April, 1897. May, 1897. July, 1897. Aug., 1897. Feb., 1898. May, 1898. July, 1898. Oct., 1899. May, 1901. Dec., 19 "0. Mar., 1901. Great Western (England) London Didcot 53.25 201.7 400 436.32 2L.37 51.67 116.16 8).38 964 661.6 760.9 58.3 iyr 540 436.50 148 510 104 92.5 1,025 231 43.96 79 149 291 204.4 168.1 177 74.3 205.8 130 149 0.47 4.00 738 7.195 0.17% 0.46 1.50 1.11 19.57 12.51 15.49 045% 3.05 832 6.47 2.10 8.1 1.46 1.28 18.52 4.8 0.33 .76 2.23 4.39 3.44 2.46 2.59 0.65 3.08y 2 2.5 2.10 68 504 52.4 59.56 72.69 6738 63.38 6845 48.20 51.48 4937 76.50 60.64 6328* 64.331 68.3 65.711 589 63 58.74 60 80 60 62.5 63.49 56.7 60.7 59.32 68.58 65.5 66 68.8 3 3 10 26 34 2 3 2 5 2 1 20 (a) 2t 1 '2 W West Shore East Buffalo Frankfort L. & N. W.,and Caledonian New York Central & H. R. . London Edinburgh New York East Buffalo New York Central & H. R.* Oneida DeWitt New York Central & H. R.* New York ( 'entral & H. R.* Syracuse Utica Chittenango Schenectady New York Central & H. R.* Syracuse Rochester New York Central & L. S Plant System, Atlantic Coast Line . Plant System, A. C. L., Pa. R. R.. . . Pennsylvania New York Chicago Jacksonville Richmond Jacksonville Washington Camden Atlantic Citv Delaware, Lackawanna & Hudson. London & Northwestern Binghamton East Buffalo London Aberdeen . . New York Central & H. R New Vork Buffalo N. Y. Central " World Flyer " Lake Shore & Michigan Southern . . Long Island Albany Syracuse Chicago Buffalo Long Island City Amagansett Baltimore Gray's Ferry Chicago Denver Phila., Wilmington & Baltimore .. Chicago, Burlington & Quincy .... Central R. R. of New Jersey Jersey City Washington Lehigh Valley, Black Diamond Ex. Chicago, Burlington & Quincy New York Central & H. R.* Alpine, N.Y. Geneva Junction, N.Y. Mendota Chicago Syracuse Buffalo Union Pacific North Platte Omaha A., T. & S. F.. " Santa Fe Route".. Chicago & Alton La Junta, Col. Dodge City, Kansas.. Willow Spring Springfield . ... Lehigh Valley, Black Diamond Ex. Burlington Route Sayre Buffalo Mendota Clyde Burlington Route Burlington Chicago Burlington & Mo. River Sav., Fla. & Wes. (Plant System). . . i Fleming Jacksonville * By " Empire State Express." t Six minutes. $ Including stops. Excluding stops, t Exclusive of stops, or 63.61 miles per hour including stops. Made the trip from Chicago to New York, 952 miles, in 17 hours, 45 min- utes, 23 seconds (or 54.20 miles per hour, including 10 stops), (a) Including " slow-ups" for taking water, chang- ing engines, etc. ( bi A delay of 7 minutes at Anselmo should be deducted from running time. In making a comparison between English and American trains, certain conditions must be taken into con- sideration. In the former instance the average weight of the train making the record between London and Aberdeen in August, 1895, was between 105 and 120 tons. The " Empire State Express" in the record of Sep- tember, 1895 New York to Buffalo was similar in make-up to the train that made the English record, but weighed 250 tons, a vast difference anil necessarily an important factor in speed. London to Paris On a special run over the L. C. & D. Ry. to Paris. 287^ miles (via Calais), for the Grand Prix, running time 6hours, 30 minutes, 12 seconds, or from 57.5 to 60.1 miles per hour. AVERAGE SPEED, INCLUDING STOPS, OF FOREIGN EXPRESS TRAINS PER HOUR IN MILES. England, 51.75; Germany, 61.25; France, 49.88 ; Belgium, 45.04; Holland, 44.73 ; Italy, 42.34; Austria-Hungary, 41.76. FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 479 Fastest Recorded Runs for Short Distances. DATE. Railroad. Terminals. Distance, Miles. Time, M. S. Miles perHour. July, 1890 Philadelphia & Reading Skillmane Belle Meade 4.1 2 30 9- .4 Aug 1891 Philadelphia & Reading. Somerton 1 39 8 90 5 Nov. ,1892 Central of New Jersey Fanwood Westfleld, N J 1 37 97 3 May 1893 N. Y Central & Hudson River 1 35 102 8 May, 1893 N. Y Central & Hudson River Crittenden " Empire State Express*' 1 32 112.5 Aug., 1895 Pennsylvania Landover Anacosta 5.1 3 00 102 Aug. 1898 Wabash Boody Blue Mound 6 4 7 87 46 Jan 1899 24 1 20 130 Mar 1901 . . 5 2 30 120 DISTRIBUTION OF HOG PRODUCTS EXPORTED FROM THE UNITED STATES. COUNTRIES. 1898-94*. Bacon. Pounds. Hams. Pounds. Pork. Pounds. Total Meats. Pounds- Lard. Pounds. Aggregate, 1898-99. Mrar Aggregate, United Kingdom France 395,474,204 12,366,110 36,151,678 29,519.843 10,014.623 1,843,326 28,363,412 147,006 12,435,593 11,353,301 616 1,138 421 358,427 184,482 6,040,051 27,325 30,667 10,551 5,740 9,729,041 25,354 50,318 7,381,491 177,702,854 1.145,490 9,813.1 \* 14.9S4.833 4,265.556 691.562 463,206 1,500 187,966 6,229,486 117,395 127,234 984,977 277,623 32,412 194,327 450,093 193,330 27,157 5,635,192 173,283 124,784 2,023,372 90,686,214 212,936 15,515,225 9,586,676 10,011,680 874,175 5,124,728 24,588 383,973 752,766 6,727,685 3,332,800 8,777,720 10,518 117,900 171,474 20,000 3,407,400 12,800 12,232,093 1,914,954 3,847,407 4,761,852 663,863,272 13,724,536 61,480,021 54,091,352 24,291,859 3,409063 33,951.346 173,094 13,007,532 18.335,553 6,845,596 4,598,455 10,121,124 472,623 6,190,363 393,126 500,160 3,611,281 45,697 27,596,326 2,113,591 4,022,509 14,166,715 204,645,770 32,312,597 229,230,175 37,307.555 74,865,099 10,536,795 13,157,399 5,100 7,483,483 27,291,504 1,532,484 4,741,704 2,473,287 2,270,339 17,839,650 1,766,263 5,536,080 420,578 422,963 6,568,568 189,101 263,190 29,400,167 868,599,042 46,037,133 290,710,196 91,398,907 99,156,958 13,945,858 47,108,745 178, 1S4 20,491,015 45,627.057 18,378,080 9,340,159 12,594,411 3,742,962 24,030,013 2,159,389 6,036,840 4,031,859 468,660 34,164.894 2 302,692 4.285,699 43,566,882 899,620,708 24,973,722 306,950,114 102,421,995 96,331,133 12,211,972 11,781,097 34552 8,719,038 31,676,437 10,922,596 8,264.637 12,772,738 3,924,008 23,285,009 2,386,385 7,260,904 3,771,077 525,539 42,785,483 1,770,306 3,277,416 41,429,276 731,256,560 23,362,350 197,917,382 69,408,128 76,541,487 5,437,494 11,912,596 128,008 2,510,936 40,534.401 14,474,343 9,530,146 11,788,213 7,562,331 29,463.167 3,253,714 7,258,C36 3,409,058 430,164 23 702,153 4,080,296 3,710,432 23,059,317 Germany Belgium Netherlands Denmark Sweden and Norway. Spain Italy Cuba Hayti Porto Rico British West Indies. . Brazil Colombia Venezuela British Guiana Peru Quebec, Ontario.etc.* Nova Scotia, etc Newfoundland, etc . . All other Year, to June 30.... Value 562,651,430 $41,557,067 225,846,750 $20,774,084 178,607,564 967,005,794 $10,639,7271 $7->,970,878 711,259,851 1,678.265,645 1.659,996,202 1,300,731.310 $42,208,465 $115,179,343 $110,801,161 $82,580,867 * Includes Manitoba, Northwest Territories, and British Columbia. The tables of statistics of hog products were compiled by the Cincinnati Price Current. The Department of Agriculture reported the following farm animals in the United States on January 1, 1900 : Horses, 13,537,534, value, $603,969,442 ; mules, 2.086.127, value, $111,717,092 ; milch cows, 16,292,360, value, $514,812,106 ; oxen and other cattle, 27,610,054, value, $689,486,260 ; sheep, 41,883,065, value, $122,665,916. Total value farm animals, $2,212,756,578. PRODUCTION OF TOBACCO. STATEMENT OF PRODUCTION IN THE UNITED STATES FROM THE LAST REPORT OF THE SECRETARY OF AGRICULTURE. STATKS. Acres. Pounds. Value. STATES. Acres. Pounds. Value. 1,932 6,731 2,980 5,369 236,927 11,822 2,323 11,581 5.530 1.195,908 10,176,908 1,790,980 3,841,952 183,618,425 7,010,380 3,449.665 8,296,749 6,934,620 $131.550 1,628,305 132,533 199,782 10,099,013 420,623 314 966 755,004 554,770 North Carolina 63,510 37,493 21,341 39,300 54.592 3,737 18,066 42,043,620 32,468,938 26,228,089 26,724,000 35,593,984 2,63i,586 14,669,592 $3,783,926 1,753,323 2,360,528 2,405,160 2,135,639 263,459 792,158 .\ . *~' Ohio Illinois Pennsylvania Tennessee [Virginia i West Virginia Massachusetts 'Wisconsin Missouri New York Total 523,103 406,678.385 $27,760,739 Careful estimate by the Department of Agriculture : Area, 595,000 acres ; product, 403,004,000 pounds; value, 824,258,000; yield per acre, 678 pounds. This is the last year that aii estimate has been made by the Department. The number of cigarettes manufactured in the United States in 1890-91 was, according to the Internal Revenue returns, 2,877,799,440. The value of domestic leaf tobacco exported from the United States, year ending June 30, 1895, was $25,622,776; value of leaf tobacco imported same period, 814, 745, 720. The product of tobacco in Europe is nearly equal in quantity to the average production of the United States. Neumann-Spallart has 480 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. usually made it about 500,000,000 pounds. Austria-Hungary produces about one third of it, Russia one tenth, Germany nearly as much, France about 35,000,000 pounds, and the other countries a small quantity. Europe can easily produce all the tobacco required, but two reasons are prominent for importation of tobacco from this country. It is very cheap, and it is very desirable for mixing with and fortifying European leaf. TEA AND COFFEE. Tea The production of tea in 1888, by countries, according to Mulhall, was, in pounds : China, 290,000,000 ; India, 90,- 000,000; Japan, 40,000,000 ; Ceylon, 19,000,- 000 ; Paraguay, 10,000,000 ; Java, 7,000,000. The consumption of tea is estimated by the same authority as follows, in pounds : Great Britain and 'Ireland, 184,500,000; United States, 80,000,000 ; Russia, 37,000,000 ; Can- ada, 22,000,000 ; Australia, 20,000,000 ; vari- ous other countries, 106,500,000. The importation of tea into the United States in the fiscal year of 1896 was 93,998.372 pounds, valued at $ 12,704,440. Coffee. The total production of coffee in the world in 1889 was 1,249,000,000 pounds, of which Brazil produced 812,000,000, other parts of America, 253,000,000, East Indies and Africa, 184,000,000. The consumption by countries, according to Mulhall, is in tons: United States, 215,- 000 ; Germany, 105,000 ; Brazil, etc., 78,000 ; France, 65,000; Netherlands, 40,000; Aus- tria, 36,000 ; Belgium, 25,000 ; Scandinavia, 25,000; Italy, 14,000; Great Britain, 15,000; Russia, 8,000; Spain and Portugal, 5,000. The importation of coffee into the United States in 1896 was 580,597,915 pounds, valued at 884,793,124. In 1897 the consumption of coffee in the United States was 636, 340, 000 pounds, or 9.95 pounds to each individual. In all Europe it was 610,300,000 pounds. The English are the greatest tea drinkers among western nations, the Americans the greatest coffee drinkers. CANAL.S. A Ship Channel, connecting the waters of the Great Lakes between Chicago, Duluth, and Buffalo, giving channel 300 feet wide, 20 to 21 feet depth, is under construction by en- gineers of the United States Army. The Harlem River Ship Canal, connecting the Hudson River and Long Island Sound, by way of Spuyten Duyvil Creek and Harlem River, was opened for traffic on June 17, 1895, and cost about $2,700,000. ] New York Canals. The whole number of i tons of freight carried upon the state canals during the season of 1896 was 3,714,894, of ! which the Erie Canal carried 2,742,438 ; ' Champlain, 802,510; Oswego, 57,245; Black River, 57,953 ; Cayuga and Seneca, 54,739. ; The tonnage was 214,580 tons in excess of that of 1895. The increase of tonnage on wheat over 1895 was 128,507 tons ; on rye, 77,050 tons ; on barley, 29,691 tons ; on oats, 103,434 tons; and on apples, 21,666 tons. Suez Canal. The Suez Canal is ninety-two miles long and cost $102,750,000. One thou- sand four hundred and fifty-eight ships, of 4,045,238 tons net, passed through the Suez I Canal during the first six months of 1897, yield- ing $7,437,975 in dues. As to the nationality of I the vessels, the British were 908, German 161, French 101, Dutch 106, Austro-Hungarian 37, I Italian 39, Norwegian 28, Turkish 4, Spanish 1 27, Russian 19, Egyptian 3, Japanese 18, > American 1, Chinese 2, Danish 2, Mexican 1. Manchester Canal. A statement of the traffic for the year 1896 shows a total tonnage of 1,509,658 944,558 of which were im- ported and 565,100 were exported. In 1895 the total was 1,087,443 tons, of which 592,581 tons were imported and 494, 862 tons exported. The chief articles of import in ] 896 were as follows, in tons : Timber, 179,859 ; paper and paper making materials, 95,478 ; dye- woods, 18,948 ; pig iron, 56,129 ; manufac- tured iron, 22,980; iron ores and pyrites, 44,427 ; American cotton, 44,409 ; Egyptian cotton, 22,419; grain, 75,265; flour, meal, etc., 31,968 ; food stuffs (not described), 14,- 334; fruit (dried), 5,091; fruit (green), 27,137 ; sugar, 23,131 ; tea, 2,267 ; oil in barrels (chiefly from New York), 17,449 tons. Baltic Canal. Also known as the "North Sea and Baltic " and " Kiel " Canal. During the year ending June 30, 1896, 16,834 vessels of 1,505,983 tons passed through from one sea to the other, the receipts and expenditures amounting to about $200,000. The canal is, of course, a waterway of great strategical im- portance for the Imperial fleets. It permits the. German naval forces to concentrate them- selves either in one sea or the other in a very few hours. Panama Canal. The canal has been re- organized under the corporate name of Coin- pagnie Nouvelle du Canal de Panama (the New Panama Canal Company). The new com- pany has not any governmental character, but is organized under the general laws of France by the representatives of financial institu- tions of alleged unquestioned strength and powerful influence, with a capital stock of 65,- 000,000 francs, and is not inviting any out- FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 481 side financial aid, but has conducted with its own resources the great undertaking, and dem- onstrating the success of the practical ques- tions involved before public aid is again invited. The work of constructing and re- building the canal has been carried on, and a large force of men has been engaged upon the work during the past two years, under the direction of eminent engineers. At present the chief work is being done on the cutting of the Culebra Hill. It is anticipated that the canal will be com- pleted. It is thought that $20,000,000 more may finish the work. The distance between the two oceans is 45 miles. Of this twelve miles on the Atlantic coast and three miles upon the Pacific coast are approaching comple- tion. Nicaragua Canal was projected to connect the Atlantic and Pacific oceans, using the waters of Lake Nicaragua. Total distance from ocean to ocean, 169.4 miles; depth of canal, 30 feet; least width at bottom, 100 feet ; time transit from ocean to ocean, 28 hours; length of Lake Nicaragua, 110 miles; average width, 40 miles ; surface area, about 2, 600 square miles ; area of watershed of lake, about 8,000 square miles. From New York to San Francisco by water, around Cape Horn, the distance at present is 15,660 miles ; by the Nicaragua Canal the dis- tance between the same points will be 4,907 miles, a saving of 10,753 miles. The distance in statute miles from New York to the Pacific Ocean by the principal land and water routes is as follows: By water to Cape Horn, 7,897 ; by Southern Pacific Railroad, 3,709 ; by Cana- dian Pacific Railroad, 3,619 ; by Central Pacific Railroad, 3,269 ; by Northern Pacific Railroad, 3,237; by Nicaragua Canal, 2,519. Estimated cost of construction of Nicaragua Canal by the Nicaragua Canal Commission was $133,472,893. DICTIONARY OF LAW AND BUS- INESS TERMS. Abandonment. The relinquishing to the underwrit- ers, under an insurance, of all the property saved from a wreck, in order to entitle the insured to claim for a total loss. Abate. To break down, destroy, or remove ; as, for instance, to abate (remove or pu* an end to) a nuisance. Abduction. The unlawful taking or detention of a woman (having property in possession or expectancy), against her will, with the intention of procuring her marriage or defilement. Also the unlawful taking of an unmarried girl under the age of sixteen years, out of the possession and against the will of the father, or other person having the lawful care of her, although done without force or corrupt motives. The former is a felony, and the latter a misdemeanor. Abettor. A person who encourages or excites an- other to commit an offense punishable by law. Abeyance. The fee simple of lands is in abeyance when there is no person in being in whom it can vest, 90 (hat it }s in a state of expectancy or waiting until a proper person shall appear, or the right thereto is deter- mined. The same applies to dignities or offices. Abortion. The offense of procuring the miscarriage of a woman quick with child. Abstract of Title. An epitome of the deeds and doc- uments constituting the evidence of title to an estate. Above Par. Stock which sell for more than their face value are said to be above par. Acceptance. The act by which a person on whom a bill of exchange is drawn, undertakes to pay it at ma- turity. The bill of exchange itselr is sometimes called, in common parlance, an acceptance. Accessory. A person concerned i n a felonious offense, although not the actual perpetrator, nor present at its performance. He may be accessory either before or after the fact. Accommodation Bill. A bill of exchange accepted without value, for the purpose of raising money thereon by discount. Action. The method of demanding the enforcement of a legal right, and procuring redress for a civil injury in the courts of common law. Accept. To acknowledge by signature ; to accept a draft is to acknowledge the obligation to pay it when due. Acceptance " supra-protest " or for honor. An ac- ceptance by some third party after protest for non-ac- ceptance by the drawee, with the view of saving the honor of the drawer or of some particular indorser. Acceptor. The party who accepts a draft so as to bind himself to pay the sum specified in it. Acknowledge. " To admit ; to certify by signature to the genuineness of a deed or mortgage; to give infor- mation of the arrival of a letter or remittance. Accrued. Interest or increase due and unpaid. Account. A statement ; an arrangement of debits and credits in relation to any person or thing; a record of business transactions. Account Sales. A statement of the product arising from the sale of goods received by a merchant from another party, and sold for his benefit, together with the costs and charges incurred in making such sale. Accountant. One who is skilled in accounts. Actuary. A clerk of certain courts and insurance offices; one skilled in annuities; an acting officer. Administrator. He that has the goods of a person dying without a will committed to his care, for the pur- pose of legal distribution. The nearest of kin is entitled to administration. Ad Valorem. Stamp duties, the amount of which is regulated according to the value of the property, etc., are so termed. Adjust. To put in order; to bring to a satisfactory state, so that parties can agree in the result. Advance. Additional price, stocks above par. Advances. Sums of money paid by a merchant upon foods lodged in his hands 'for sale' at a future time, his term also covers money loaned by bankers on bills of lading. Adventure. S' -perty ventured in a voyage ; a specu- lation. Advice. Counsel given, usually in regard to the pur- chase and sale of goods. Adulteration^ Mixing a spurious with a genuine article. Affidavit. A written statement upon oath. It must be sworn before a person authorized to administer oaths; who that is, depends upon what the affidavit relates to. The same officer is not usually empowered to administer oaths in all the courts. Affinity. Relation by marriage between the husband or wife and the blood relations of either; but not be- tween the husband and wife themselves. Affirmation. A solemn declaration in lieu of an oath. Agent. A person appointed to do an act for another. The act when performed is, in law, the act of the prin- cipal ; tb maxim being " qui facit per aliwn facit perse." Alibi. Elsewhere. A defense by which it is proved that the accused was not at the place where the offense was committed at the time of its commission. Alien. One born in a foreign country out of the alle- giance of the queen. Alimony. An allowance made by a husband to his wife when living apart from her. Allocatur. The certificate by which a taxing mas- ter certifies the amount at which" he has taxed a bill of costs. Allonge. A slip of paper attached to a note, draft, 482 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. or other negotiable paper, to receive indorsements when the back or the paper will hold no more. Allowance. Abatement, a deduction made for vari- ous reasons. Amount. The ' sum total ; the aggregate. Gross amount is the total without deduction. Net amount ia the total less deduction. Ambassador. An envoy of the highest rank sent to a foreign government. Ancestor. The law distinguishes between ancestor and predecessor ; the former is applied to individuals, the latter to corporations. Ancient Demesne. A tenure of lands partaking of the properties both of copyhold and freehold. Annuity. A periodical payment of money, amount- ing to a fixed sum in each year, the mone'ys so paid being either a gift or in consideration of a gross sum received. Anticipate. To take beforehand, or pay before due. Antedate. To date beforehand. Appeal. The removal of a cause from an inferior Into a superior court, for the purpose of impeaching the judgment of the inferior court. Appearance to Action. The first formal step bv a defendant in an action of suit. It is a notice that he'in- tends to defend. Appellant. Theperson appealing to a superior from the decision of an inferior court. Appraiser. A person who values personal chattels. Appropriation. The appropriation of a payment means the applying of it to the discharge of a particu- lar debt, where the creditor to whom it is made has more than one debt due from the same debtor. Appraisement. The act of setting a value upon goods or other property. Appurtenance. That which appertains or belongs to something else. Arbitration. An extrajudicial method of settling matters in difference by referring them to the arbitra- ment or determination of persons appointed by the dis- putants, and termed arbitrators. Arraignment. A term of criminal procedure. A Erisoner, after having had the indictment read over irp, is commanded to state whether or not he is guilty. This proceeding is termed the arraignment. Arrest. A legal seizure, capture, or taking of a man's person which is effected by corporeal touching, or something equivalent thereto. In civil cases a man can only be arrested under legal process. The officer cannot break open a man's outer door for the purpose of ar- resting him ; nor can arreston a civil process be effected on a Sunday, except after an escape. Arrest of Judgment. Where the court stays a judg- ment, alter a verdict on some question of law. Arson. Felonious house burning. Articles of Peace. A complaint against a person to compel him to find sureties to keep the peace. Arbitrating;. Operating in the same stock or prod- act in two different markets to make a profit out ef the difference in price or " spread " between them, as, tor instance, buying wheat in St. Paul, and selling it in Chicago. Arrear. That which is behind in payment. Assault and Battery. An attempt or offer, with force and violence, to do a corporal hurt to another is an assault ; an injury actually done to the person of an- other in an angry, revengeful, or insolent manner, be it ever so small, is a battery. Assets. Property, whether real or personal, in the hands of an executor, etc., for the purpose of satisfying debts. Assignee. A person to whom any real or personal property is transferred by the act of law, as an executor, an assignee of a bankrupt, etc., or by the act of party, as a purchaser of a lease. Assignment. A transfer of any kind of property from one person to another. Assumpsit. A verbal or parol promise expressed or implied, springing out of a simple contract. The law always implies a promise to do that which a party is legallv bound to perform. An action of assumpsit or promise is the remedy for breach of a parol as distin- guished from a "written contract. Assurance. The securing the payment of a sum of money or other benefit on the happening of a certain event, as, for instance, the death of a person. This is the term now usually applied to life contingencies, as contradistinguished from fires, losses at sea, etc., as to which the term insurance is still used. Assessment A call upon the holders of stock or policies to pay Into the treasury a certain sum In order to pay off debts or effect a reorganization. Assign. To transfer or make over to another, the right one has in any object, as in an estate, especially in trust for the security of creditors. Assay. To determine the amount of a particular metal in an ore or metallic compound. Assess. To tax, or value for the purpose of taxing. Assignor. One who makes a transfer to another. Association. A company of persons united for a par- ticular purpose. Assume. To take on one's self or become liable for the debts of another. Attachment. A process of the courts of law and equity fer compelling, by arrest, the performance of an act, which a party is already in contempt for not per- forming. Also an ancient remedy open to creditors in London, and some other cities, to attach the money or goods of their debtor in the hands of a third party within the city. Attorney. A person appointed by another by letter or power of attorney to do anything for him in his absence. Attorney-at-Law. An officer of the superior courts of law, legally authorized to transact the business of other persons termed his clients in those courts. Attach. To take by legal authority. Attest. To call to witness or give official testimony required in solemn instruments. Auditor. A person authorized to examine and adjust accounts. Average. A contribution to a general loss. When, for the safety of a ship in distress, any destruction of property is incurred, all persons haying goods on board contribute ratably to the loss ; this is called average. Award. The judgment or decision of an arbitrator. Backing a "Warrant. The indorsing by a justice of the peace of the county where a warrant (which has been granted by the justice of the peace of another county) is about to be executed, and is a necessary act to be done before a person can be apprehended in a county differ- ent to that in which the warrant was issued. Bail. The sureties for the reappearance of a person released from custody. Bail-bond. A document under seal, by which a per- son becomes bail. Bailee. An individual intrusted with the custody of goods ; for instance, a carrier. Bailiff. There are various kinds of bailiffs ; the most common being those appointed by the sheriff, com- monly called sheriff's officer. Bailment. A delivery of a thing in trust for some special object or purpose. Bailor. The person who makes a bailment, or de- livers goods to a bailee. Banker. A person who holds the money of another, and disposes of it as the other from time to time directs. Bank Note. A promise by a banker to pay a speci- fied sum to the holder. Barristers. A body of men qualified by admission in one of the Inns of Court, to plead as advocates; such admission is termed, being " called to the bar." Battel. A trial by combat, formerly allowed by the law, by which the innocence or guilt of a party was de- cided. Balance. The arithmetical difference between the two sides of an account ; the sum necessary to make the two sides of an account equal in amount, spoken of as a debitor credit balance; (verb) to bring into a state of equality; to settle by paying what remains due on an account. Balance of Trade. The difference in value between our exports and our imports. Bank. An establishment for the custody and issue of money; the office in which the transactions of a banking association are conducted. Bankable. Receivable as cash by a bank, such as checks, express orders, money orders, etc. Bank Bill. The note of a bank payable on demand, and used as currency ; a bank note. Bank Book. The" book kept by a depositor, in which the receiving teller writes the separate deposits, and the bookkeeper of the bank enters the paid checks. Bank Clearing. The aggregate amount of the checks and drafts exchanged between banks (members of clearing house association). In large cities less than ten per cent, of the commercial business is done with currency. While the clearings do not represent the sum total of the counter transactions of banks for any given. FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 483 time, they form a good basis for calculation as to the comparative .volume of trade from week to week. They really indicate the growth or shrinkage of trade. Bequest. A testamentary disposition of personal estate. Bear. A stock exchange phrase used to designate a man who, having sold more stock than he possesses, endeavors to depress its value, that he may buy at a low rate, and so make good his deficiency. Bigamy. The criminal offense of a married man or woman pretending to marry again, his wife or her hus- band (as the case may be) being still alive. Bill. The term applied to an intended statute when passing through Congress, prior to its becoming law. Bill of Exceptions. A mode of appealing from the decision of a judge on a point of law. Bill of Exchange. A written order for payment of money by one person (called the drawer), upon another (termed the drawee). When the drawee has undertaken to pay the bill,which he does by writing his name across it, he is termed the acceptor. Bills of exchange are negotiable, i. e., they confer on the holder the right of suing upon it, which he could not do in the case of a mere ordinary contract, for the want of that privity which the law in ordinary cases requires between the parties to a contract. The law as to bills of exchange is governed by the Law Merchant. (See Law Merchant.) Bill of Lading. A memorandum or receipt signed by the master of a ship, acknowledging the shipment of goods, which are usually made deliverable to the consignee by post. By indorsing the bill of lading the property in the goods is passed to the indorsee, and so from hand to hand. The bill of lading, properly in- dorsed, forms, in fact, the title to the goods, and with- out the production of which the captain would not deliver the goods. Bill of Sale. An assif. nment of goods and chattels, by writing ; generally, but not necessarily, under hand and seal. Bill of Lading. A negotiable receipt for goods de- livered to a transportation company for carriage. Bill of Parcels. A written statement given by the seller to the buyer, containing particulars of the goods bought and their prices. Bills Discounted. Promissory notes, acceptances, or bills of exchange discounted for the accommodation of an indorser by bankers. Bills Payable. Promissory notes or drafts held by a merchant against others for future payment. Bills Receivable. Promissory notes or drafts due to a merchant by others. Bill of Kights. A bill permitting an importer to ex- amine his goods at the custom house. Block. A number of shares, say 5,000 or 10,000, massed together and sold or bought in a lump. Bona Fide. With good faith. Bond. A written obligation, under seal. If for the payment of a sum of money upon or after the death of a person, it is then termed a post-obit bond. The per- son making a bond is called the obligor, and he to whom it is given, the obligee. Borough. A town having now, or having formerly had, corporate rights. Bottomry. The borrowing of money by the master on the bottom or hull of a ship ; to be paid with interest, if the ship return in safety, but otherwise to be lost or forfeited. Board of Trade. A voluntary association of busi- ness men for the regulation and advancement of com- mercial interests. Bond. An instrument under seal, by which the maker binds himself, and usually his heirs, executors, and administrators, to do or not to do a specified act. A certificate of ownership of a specified portion of a capital debt due by a government, a city, a railroad, or other corporation, to individual holders, and usually bearing a fixed rate of interest. Bonded Goods. Imported goods left in a bonded warehouse until the duties are paid. Bonded Warehouse. A government warehouse in which bonded goods are stored until the duties thereon are paid. Bonus. A premium on a loan ; something extra or in Addition. Boom. A rush of business. A quick inflation of values. Breach of Covenant. The doing of an act which a party has covenanted not to do, or neglecting to do that which he has covenanted to perform. Breach of the Peace,. An act by which we public. repose is disturbed, and the safety of the community more or less endangered. Breach, of Promise. The doing, or abstaining from doing, something, contrary to an understanding or contract. Breach of Trust. A neglect of duty by a trustee or person standing in a fiduciary relation," in violation of his trust. Bribery. The giving or receiving any reward for corrupt purposes. Brief. An abridgment of a client's case, for the in- struction of counsel on trial or hearing in court. Broker. An agent employed to buy or sell goods : a sort of middleman between vendor and purchaser. He is not, like a factor, intrusted with the possession of the articles he vends. Brokerage. The commission paid to a broker. Brand. A trade-mark ; a particular kind of goods. Break. A quick, small decline. Burglary. The offense of entering a dwelling- house, in the night, with the intent to commit felony. Bursar. The treasurer of a college. In Scotland it is nearly synonymous with sizar in the English uni- versities. Bucket Shop. A place where bets are made on quotations of prices, established on legitimate Ex- changes, and Boards of Trade. Pretended trading. Illegal in most States. Bulge. A quick, small advance. Bull. A person whose interest is to secure higher prices ; a buyer for an advance. Bulling. Raising the price of stocks, etc. BUSINESS CHARACTERS. ,, Ditto, the same. X By, as 9X12. 1 *, One and one fourth. 1 s , One and one half. 1 s , One and three fourths. 4- Addition. Subtraction. X Multiplication. -f Division. = Equal to. @ At. % Account. % Per cent. $. Number. $ Dollars. # Cents, v' Check mark. d. Pence. Pound sterling. s. Shillings. Buyer Three. A Wall street expression signifying that the buyer has three days in which to pay for his purchase. Bullion. Uncoined gold or silver, including gold dust, ingots, and bars. By-L.aw. A private law made by those duly author- ized by charter, custom, or prescription ; but such by- law must be consonant to the public laws and statutes, and for the common benefit. By-Bidder. One who bids at an auction in behalf of the owner for the purpose of running up the price of articles. Canon Law. A collection of ecclesiastical constitu- tions, definitions, and rules, derived from the ancient councils, the writings of the fathers, ordinances of popes, etc. At the Reformation it was enacted that a review should be had of the Canon Law ; but that, until such review, the existing law should continue in force, except as far as the same should be repugnant to the law of the land or the Royal Prerogatives this still re- mains the state of the law, such review never having been made. The canons of 1603 having been made by the clergy, and confirmed by the king, James I., alone, but not by Parliament, do not bind the laity. Capias. A writ authorizing the arrest of a defend- , ant ma suit. It is issued, either after judgment, or | when it is satisfactorily shown that the defendant is about to leave the realm before trial. Capias ad Satisfaciendnm.or CA-SA. The writ of capias when issued after judgment; so termed, because the defendant is taken to satisfy the plaintiff's de- mands. Carrier. A person whose business ii goods for the proper delivery and safety of which he is legally responsible. Caveat. A proceeding to prevent an act being done, such as the granting of administration, without notice to the party entering the caveat. Caveat Emptor. Let the purchaser beware. I signifies that a vendor is not bound to answer for the goodness of hia wares, unless he expressly warrants them. 484 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Call. A. privilege to buy at a certain time for an agreed price, called the ' call price," which is always a little above market price. Call Loans. Money loaned subject to the call or demand of lender. It must be returned the day it is called for before the close of banking hours. Capital. Money or other property invested In busi- ness. Cashier. The clerk who has charge of the cash ; the second executive officer in a bank. Carat. Weight showing the degree of fineness of gold. Cargo. A ship's lading or freight. Carte Blanche. Signature ot an individual or in- dividuals on blank paper with space above to write a note; full power. Certiorari. A writ for the removal of a cause from an inferior to a superior court. This writ always lies, unless where expressly taken away by statute, and here- in it differs from an appeal, which can never be had unless expressly given. Certl fl cate. A written voucher attesting a fact. Certified Check. A check to which the cashier of a bank certifies in writing as to the genuineness of the signature of the drawer, and that he has funds on de- posit sufficient to meet it, the bank reserving the amount certified and regarding it as having been al- ready paid, and therefore unavailable for other use. Challenge. An exception taken by a prisoner against one or more jurors, who, when challenged, are set aside, if the challenge be allowed, and new ones put in their places. Chancellor. An officer of the highest dignity and authority in various departments. Chancery. The highest court of judicature next to the Parliament, and of very ancient institution. The Court of Chancery is called a Court of Equity, because it was instituted for the purpose of proceeding by the rules of equity and conscience, and of moderating the rigor of the common law; equity beingthe correction of that wherein the law, by reason of its universality, is deficient. Yet the Court of Chancery is not intended to act in opposition to, but in assistance of, the common law, supplying its deficiencies, not contradicting its rules; no judgment of law being reversible by a decree in Chancery. Charter. A royal grant or privilege, granted to cor- porations, companies, etc. Charter-Party. An instrument between merchants and owners or masters of ships, containing the partic- ulars of the contract for the hire of the ship. It is in fact a mercantile lease of the ship. Chattels. There are two kinds, chattels real and chattels personal ; the former are leasehold property, and the latter personal goods or chattels, as furniture or money. Chose. Athing. Chose-en-action isathing of which a man has not the possession, and which he can only claim by action, as, for instance, a debt owing to him by another. Chattel Mortgage. A mortgage of personal prop- erty. Check. An order upon a bank, or banker, to pay on demand to the person named in the check, or to his order, the Bum of money specified in the body of the check in writing. Ch oses In Possession. Things of which one has the possession. Citation. The first step in an ecclesiastical cause, analogous to the writ of summons in an action. Civil law. The Roman law is comprised in the in- stitutes, code, and digest of the Emperor Justinian. Cipher Code. An arrangement of words to stand for phrases, numbers, or quotations, so that telegrams may be thus sent in a private and condensed form. Client. Anciently, a Roman citizen, taken under the protection of some great man, who was styled his patron. The term is now applied to a party who em- ploys a solicitor or counsel in any legal proceeding. Clear. To exchange checks and bills, and to settle balances as is done in a clearing house. Clearing House. An organization for the settle- ment of balances between members. Usually applied to banks. Clearing House Certificates. Certificates issued by a clearing house agiinst collateral approved by the loan committee, and used in flic settlement of the daily balances between its members. Clearance. Certificate from fehe custom authorities permitting a vessel to leave port Clearing. Act of leaving port. Clique. A combination of persons "to run a deal" or manipulate a market. Usually applied to stocks, grain, and provisions. Closed Policy. A policy in which the amount in- sured is definitely stated. Codicil. A supplement to a will. Commission. The warrant, or letters patent, author- izing any inquiry judicial or otherwise ; as the commis- sion of the judges, the commission of the peace, etc. Commitment. The sending a person who has been guilty of any crime, to prison, by warrant or order. Committee. Persons to whom the consideration of any matter is referred ; as a Committee of the House of Congress. Common (Rights of). These are of four sorts : viz., pasture, piscary, estovers, and turbary. Common of pasture is the right of feeding one's cattle on the land of another; piscary, that of fishing in waters belong- ing to another; estovers, the right of taking wood from another's estate, for household use and implements in husbandry; and turbary, the right of digging turf upon another's ground. Common L.aw. The law of England is compose*} of Acts of Parliament or statutes, and the custom of the realm, the latter consisting of those rules or maxims which have obtained by common consent an immemorial usage. The former are designated the lex scrtpta, or statute law ; the latter the lex non scripta, or common law. This term is also applied to the superior courts of Westminster, which are called Courts of Common Law, as distinguished from the Court of Chancery, which is the Court of Equity. Complainant. One who complains of the act of an- other in a court of justice, more commonly called plaintiff. Compounding' Offenses. Entering into an agree- ment not to prosecute an offender, for any considera- tion received or to be received, constitutes a crime, for which the offender may be indicted. Compounding with Creditors. An agreement by which creditors take a portion of their claims in dis- charge of the whole. Conditions of Sale The terms upon which a vendor undertakes to sell to a purchaser. . Confirmation. A deed by which a voidable estate in land is made perfect. Conjugal Rights. Those rights of husband and wife which spring out of their relationship. Consanguinity. Relationship by blood, in contradis- tinction to affinity, which is a relationship by marriage. Conservator. A standing arbitrator, ap_poirted to compose and adjust differences that may rise between parties, etc. Consideration. The price or motive of a contract, without which a simple contract is void. In technical language, it may be defined as " some detriment to the plaintiff sustained for the sake or at the instance of the defendant, or some benefit to the defendant moving from the plaintiff." Consignee. A person to whom goods are delivered either as purchaser, or more generally for sale on com- mission. Consignor. The person by whose act or direction goods are delivered to the consignee. Consignment. The act of making over, or deliver- ing, goods to another. Conspiracy. A combination of two or more persons to carry into effect an unlawful purpose. Consul. An olfi-oer appointed by government to re- side abroad and watch over the interests of our country- men who may happen to reside in or be passing through the place where the consul is located. Ccntempt. A disobedience to the rules, orders, or process of a court, which has power to punish such of- fense, which it does by imprisonment. Contract. A covenant or agreement between two or more persons with a lawful consideration. Contribution. Where one surety or joint contractor has been obliged to satisfy the whole demand, he may obtain contribution from his fellow surety or con- tractor. Contributory. One liable to contribute to the liquidation of the liabilities of a joint stock company, under the Windlng-up Acts. Conveyance. A deed which passes or conveys land from one person to another. Conveyancers. Persons who devote themselves to the preparation of formal documents concerning prop- erty. FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 485 Convict. He that Is found guilty of an offense by the verdict of a jury. Coroner. An officer whose duty it is to inquire into the cause by which any person came to a sudden or violent death, which must be done, before him and the jury assembled for the purpose, upon view of the body. Costs. The expenses incurred in the prosecution or defense of legal proceedings, of which there are two kinds, those between party and party, and those be- tween attorney and client. Count. In common law pleadings, is a section of a declaration. County Court. Local courts established throughout tha country. Covenant. An agreement under seal. Coverture. The state of a married woman as being under the protection and influence of her husband or baron. She i.* called a feme covert. Ctmlers. Coal roads. A term usually applied on stock exchanges to describe the Reading, Lackawanna, Delaware and Hudson, and Jersey Central Railroads. Cocket. A custom house warrant to show that goods have been entered. Collaterals. Stocks, bonds, notes, or other value, given in pledge as security when money isborrowed. Collateral Security. Security for "the payment of money or the performance of covenants in ad'dition to a principal promise or bond, e.g., a warehouse receipt or a paid-up insurance policy given as security for the payment of a promissory note would be collateral. Combine. A word expressing the same meaning as " trust " and supposed not to be quite so distasteful to the opponents of monopolies. Commercial Paper. Negotiable paper, such as drafts, bills of exchange, etc., given in the due course of business. Common Stock. The ordinary shares in a corpora- tion. Compromise. An agreement embracing mutual concessions. Concern. The business itself considered as a person independent of its ownership. Consign. To send goods or property to an agent or broker. The sender of the goods is a consignor; the receiver is a consignee, and the goods or things sent are a consignment. Consols. A contraction of " consolidated." It represents the consolidation of Great Britain's bonded debt, and is the leading English fundecl government security. Contango. (London Stock Exchange.) A rate paid for carrying shares over until next settlement day. When a broker desires to " continue shares" or to post- pone the day of payment or delivery, the premium paid is called in the seller's case " backwardation " and, in the buyer's case, " contango." Conversion. Bonds are frequently issued with a provision whereby they can at any moment be ex- changed for equivalent stock. Such securities are called " convertible," and the act of substitution is called " conversion." Corner. An artificial scarcity created by holding property off the market for the extortion of abnor- mally high prices. Where the purchases of any party or parties exceed the amount of contract grain in regular warehouses on the last delivery day of the month for which such purchases have been made, the grain so bought is said to be cornered. Corporation. A corporate body authorized by law to act as a single individual. Coupon Bonds. Bonds payable to bearer without any registration of the owner's name anywhere. The interest in these bonds is evidenced by coupons which, when they become due, are cut off the original bond and collected. Cover. The buying in of grain or stocks to fill short contracts is called' "covering." Covering Shorts. Buying in property to fill con- tracts (usually for future delivery) previously made. Coasting. "A sailing near land, or trade carried on between ports in the same country. C. O. D. Collect on delivery. Goods sent by express marked in this way mustbeaccompanjed by the bill for them. This bill is collected and receipted by the mes- senger of the express company, before delivering the goods. Commerce. Interchange of values or commodities. Common Carrier. One who makes it a business to transport goods : railroad companies are common car- riers. Compact. An agreement by which the parties are firmly bound together. Company. An association of persons for a common enterprise. Contraband. Prohibited; illegal. Condition Precedent. A condition which must be carried out before the obligation is performed. Copartnership. Joint concern in business. Correspondence. An interchange of letters, or in- tercourse. Counterfeit. A forgery ; spurious bank bills. Countersign. To sign, as secretary or subordinate officer, a writing which has been signed bv the superior. Coupon. An interest certificate attached to a bond ; when paid, it is cut off. Cross-Examiiiation. The interrogation of a witness by or on behalf of the party against whom the evidence is given. Credentials. Testimonials; that which gives credit or authority. Custom. A law, not written, established by long use, and the consent of our ancestors ; if it be universal, it is common law; if particular, it is then properly custom. Customs. Duties levied on commodities exported and imported. Curb. Prices made by private transactions not in trading hours are called curb markets. Curbstone Market. A hanger-on of Board of Trade or Stock Exchanges, who does business on the sidewalk. An irregular speculator, with the street for his place of business, and for his office his hat. Currency. Money in current use. Custom House. A government place where imported goods are entered and duties collected. Damages. The amount of money awarded by a jury, to be paid bv a defendant to a plaintiff, as a compensa- tion for the injury of which the latter complains. Days of Grace. Usually three days allowed for the payment of a note after maturity. Debenture Bonds. Concentration of floating capital- ization into convenient bonded form. Originally, notes in the form of bonds. Debenture. A written instrument of the nature of a bond or bill for a certain sum of monev. De P.oiiis Non. When an administrator dies, the rierht does not descend to his own representative, hut a fresh grant of administration must be obtained of the goods remain ing unadministered, and which is called an administration de bonis non. Declaration. In an action at law, signifies the plain- tiff's statement of his cause of action. Declaration of Trust. A written or verbal expres- sion or statement, bv which a person acknowledges him- self to be a trustee for another. If relating tolandp, it must be in writing. Deed. A writing sealed and delivered bv the parties to it. De Facto. A thing actually done or existing. Default (judgment by). If a defendant omits to ap- pear or plead to an action, within the time allowed, the plaintiff can sign judgment by default. Defaulter. A person who neglects to perform an act required to be done. Defeasance. A collateral deed made at the same time with some other deed, and containing certain con- ditions which may defeat or render null and void the provisions of such" other deed. Defendant. The party against whom an action or suit is brought. Demesne. Lands which formerly the lord kept in his own hands, being next to his mansion. Demise. A word used in conveyances of estates for terms of years. Demurrage. A compensation or allowance for de- taining a ship beyond the usual or si>ecified time. Demurrer. A mode of raising a point of law, upon the facts stated in the pleadings, assuming them to be true. Deposition. The testimony of a witness taken down in writing and signed by him. Devise. The giving away of lands or other real es- tate by will. Debtor. A party who owes a debt ; one who owes another money, goods, or services. Delivery Day. The first trading day of the month is usually called delivery day, but, as all transactions are at the option of the seller, he may select and deliver the grain on any day of the month, for which it hag been sold. 486 THE CENTURY BOOK OF PACTS. Deposit. To place funds in a bank ; a sum deposited at a certain time ; the amount on deposit at any given time. Defalcation. A deduction, abatement, or diminu- tion, as in a promissory note. Debt. What one owes to another. Delivery. To pass money or goods to another; a giv- ing. Demand. An asking by authority ; a claim by right. Depository. One to whom something is intrusted ; a guardian. Deputy. One appointed to act for another; a repre- sentative. Disability. A legal incapacity to do an act. Disclaimer. A renunciation by an executor or trus- tee of the office imposed upon hiin, also a mode of de- fense in equity, etc. Discovert. A term applied to a widow or unmarried woman. Disfranchise. To take away from certain places or persons any privilege, freedom, or liberty. Disseisin. A wrongful invasion of the possession of another, and turning him out from the occupation of his lands, either by force or surprise. Distress. The distraining or taking the effects of a tenant, in order to satisfy the rent due to his landlord. Dishonor. To refuse to accept a draft, or to pay a note of acceptance. Direct Evidence. Evidence which applies directly to the fact to be proved. Discount. In mercantile transactions, a discount means a deduction of a certain amount from the face of a bill for cash. In banking, a discount means the de- duction of a certain amount from the face value of a note or bill, as a payment for allowing the holder of the note the immediate use of the money ; the rate of dis- count varies. Dividend. A portion allotted to stockholders in di- viding the profits. Domicile. The domicile of a person is where he has his permanent home. There are three sorts of domiciles by birth, by choice, and by operation of law. Dower. A widow is entitled, at the death of her husband, to a life interest in a third part of the estates of inheritance of which her husband was seised, and did not dispose of by deed or will. Domicilfated. A negotiable instrument payable in a different place from that in which it is drawn is domiciliated where payable. Donee. One to whom a gift is made or a bequest is given. Donor. One who gives or bestows. Dormant. Not acting; a partner who takes no share in the active business of the concern, but shares in the gains or losses. Drop. In stocks or grain it is equivalent to a" break" except that it may be due to wholly natural causes. Draft. A bill of exchange used for domestic pur- poses. Drawback. Duty refunded on exported goods. Drawee. Oneon'whom a draft is drawn ; the payor. Drawer. One who draws a bill or draft. Duress. Anything done under compulsion and through unavoidable necessity. Dun. To press urgently the payment of a debt. Duty. A government tax paid on goods imported or exported. Duplicate. V copy or transcript of anything. Easement. A convenience which one has in or over the lands of Another, as a way or a water course. Earnest. A pledge, like money deposited, affords good grounds for reliance. JEffecls. Goods or property of any kind. Ejectment. An action at law to recover the posses- sion oi lands. Elegit. A writ of execution under which all the debtor's lands mav be seized or extended, and held by the judgment creditor until his judgment is satisfied. Embezzlement. The act of appropriating that which is received in trust for another, which is a criminal offense. Embargo. Prohibition of vessels from sailing. Embarrassment. Financial distress ; on the verge of bankruptcy. Embassy. A public message or commission ; the person by whom it is sent. Emporium. A commercial center. Enfeoff(To). The act of conveying an estate of free- bold by deed of feoffment. Enfranchisement. The admittance of a person into a society or body politic. Enfranchisement of copyholds is a conversion of copyholds into freehold tenure. Engrossing. A style of writing, not now generally used, for deeds, but still used for the probates of wills. Enrollment. The registering of deeds as required by certain statutes ; as, for instance, deeds conveying lands to charitable uses. Entail. That inheritance whereof a man is seized to him and the heirs of his body. Tail-general is where lands and tenements are given to one, and the heirs of his body generally. Tenant in Tail-special is where the gift is restrained to certain heirs of the donee's body, as male or female. Entry. A record of a business transaction; deposit- ing of a ship's papers at custom house to procure license to land goods. Endorse. To write one's name on the back of a check, note, or draft. Equitable Mortgage. The most familiar instance is the deposit (either with or without a memorandum, although it is better to have one) of the title deeds of an estate by way of security, which constitutes an equitable mortgage without the execution of any formal mortgage deed. Equity of Redemption. The right which equity gives to a mortgager of redeeming his estate after the appointed time for payment has passed, and which right can only be barred by a foreclosure. Equity. In law, qualifying or correcting the law in extreme cases. Error. A writ of error is a commission to judges of a superior court, by which they are authorized to ex- amine the record upon which a judgment was given in an inferior court, and to affirm, reverse, or vary the same, according to law. Errors Excepted. A phrase inserted as a proviso, that the person who renders a statement may have the power of correcting any mistake that he may have com- mitted. Escheat. Is where lands, for want of heirs, or from forfeiture, escheat or fall back to the sovereign or lord of the fee as the original grantor. Estate. The interest which a person has in lands, or other property. Estoppel. 'Where a man is precluded in law from alleging or denying a fact in consequence of his own previous act, allegation, or denial to the contrary. Estreat. Where a recognizance becomes forfeited by any of its conditions being broken, it is estreated ; that is, 'extracted from the record, and sent up to the Ex- chequer, whence a process will issue to recover the pen- alty. Evidence. Proof, either written or unwritten, of the facts in issue in any legal proceeding. Excise. A tax or impost charge by government on certain commodities. Execution. The act of putting the sentence of the law into force. Executor. One appointed by a person's last will to administer his personal estate. Exhibits. Documents, etc., produced in evidence, and marked for the purpose of identification. Ex Officio. Anything done by virtue of an office. An information filed by the attorney-general, by virtue of his office, is called an Ex Officio-Information. Ex Parte. A statement is called ex parte where only one of the parties gives an account of a transaction, in which two or more are concerned. Ex Post Facto. An ex post facto law is a law made purposely to restrain or punish an offense already com- mitted. Extrajudicial. Any act done by a judge beyond his authority, or any opinion expressed by him not strictly pertinent to the matter in issue before him. Exhaust Price. The point at which one's margins will be exhausted. If trades are not re-margined they are likely to be closed out by the broker at the exhaust price, ifit is reached by the market. Exchange. Act of bartering; a bill drawn for money ; a place where merchants meet ; a difference between the value of money in two places, or the premium and discount arising from the purchase and sale of funds. Executory. Yet to be performed. Exports. Goods or produce carried abroad in com- merce. Express. A special messenger ; a regular conveyance for packages, etc,. FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 487 factor. An agent intrusted with the possession of goods for sale belonging to his principal. A broker, on the other hand, lias not the custody of the goods of his principal. Faculty. A privilege or dispensation granted by an ecclesiastical court in certain cases. False Pretenses. The criminal offense of obtaining any chattel, money, or valuable security by means of a false pretense ; it is punishable by transportation, tine, or imprisonment. Face. The amount expressed on a note or draft. Failure. Act of becoming insolvent. Facsimile. An exact copy. Fancy Stocks. Term applied to stocks subject to sudden fluctuation in price. Favor. A note or draft is said to be in favor of the payee. Fee simple. That estate or interest in lands which a person holds to him and his heirs forever. During his life he possesses over it a perfectly free and unre- strained power of disposition, and on' his death, with- out having alienated it by deed or will, it descends to his heirs, both lineal and .collateral, male and female, according to an established order of descent. Felony. Formerly defined as comprising " all capi- tal crimes below treason." It may now more accurately be denned as comprising all crimes occasioning a for- feiture of lands or goods or both. Feme Covert. A married woman. Feme Sole. An unmarried woman. Feoffment. A mode of conveyance of lands in fee, accompanied by certain solemnities. It is rarely, if ever, now used. Fiat. An order or warrant for a thing to be done er executed. Fieri Facias. A writ of execution, bv which the sheriff is commanded to levy the debt and damages of the goods and chattels of the defendant. Finding. A finder of goods may appropriate them to his own use if he really believes when he takes them that the owner cannot be found ; but if a jury should say that the finder appropriated the goods, not having (or that lie could reasonably be supposed not to have had) such belief at the time of appropriation, it amounts to a theft, and can be punished criminally. Finding a Bill. The grand jury ei'ther find or ignore the bills against prisoners ; if they find a true bill, the case goes into court, and is tried. Fire Policy. An instrument by which an insurance company guarantees to a person, who has insured his property, the payment of a sum of money, if it is injured or destroyed by fire. Fixtures. This term is generally used to denote those personal chattels which, though annexed to the free- hold of demised premises, a tenant is nevertheless en- titled to remove. They consist of trade fixtures, and of those put up for the ornament or convenience of the premises. Finance. Revenue; income; pertaining to money. Financier. An officer of finance ; one having cha'rge of the revenue. Firm. A partnership, trading house, or its name. Fiscal. Pertaining to a treasury or revenue. Flat. A term signifying that stocks are sold without reference to accumulated interest ; low in price ; dull as to sales. Flotsam. Goods which float after being thrown over- board at sea or in case of shipwreck. The goods thus cast away are called jetsam or jettison, if they sink and remain under water. Foreclosure. The barring the equity of redemption on mortgages. Foreign Bill of Exchange. A bill drawn by a per- son abroad, and accepted in the United States, or vice versa. Forfeiting Recognizances. When a person who has entered into recognizances fails to comply with their conditions, the same are forfeited or estreated. Forfeiture." A punishment consequent upon the commission of certain criminal offenses or illegal acts. Forgery. The crime of counterfeiting a signature, seal, or mark ; or the fraudulent alteration of a writing to the prejudice of another. Foreclose. To cut off the power of redemption under a mortgage. Forestall. To buy goods before they reach the mar- ket. Folio. Page of a book, usually the two opposite pages. F. CK B. Fre on board ; the bill or invoice witb F. O. B. includes the transporting tc the shipping port and all the shipping expenses. Foreign Exchange. Drafts drawn on the financial centers of Europe; for instance, London, Berlin, or Paris. Drafts on London are called Sterling Ex- change, as they are drawn in pounds sterling. Franchise. A royal privilege to which a subject is entitled as a fair, a market, a free warren, a park. Fraud. A dishonest and illegal artifice, by which undue advantage is taken of another, or by wnich the interests of that other are unjustly prejudiced. Fraud strikes at the root of every transaction, and vitiates every contract, whether by record, deed, or otherwise. Freehold. Land held in fee simple, fee tail, or at least for life. Freight. The remuneration due to the owner of a ship for the convevance of goods or merchandise, on which he has a lien for the freight. Franc. A French silver coin, value about twenty cents. Frank. A free letter. Free Trade. The policy of conducting international commerce without duties. Fractional Orders. Orders for less than 5,000 bushels of grain or 100 shares of stock are called fractional orders, as the above amounts represent the units of speculation. Fractional orders are entirely regular, both on the Chicago Board of Trade and the Stock Exchanges. Orders are executed in 1,000 bushel lots of wheat, but not in corn or oats. Neither is there any market for small quantities of provisions or cotton. Frozen Out. Said of deals or trades closed out compulsorily because of inability to further protect contracts with re-margins. Funded Debt. The public debt of this country, consisting of an immense sum which, from time to time, has been lent to government by individuals, and which they or their assigns receive interest for, out of the taxes. Future Estates. Estates not in possession, but in expectancy, as a remainder. Funds. Stock or capital, a sum of money. Funded. Put into a permanent loan on which an annual interest is paid. Futures. Buyers of cash grain protect themselves against possible loss by selling an agreed amount for future delivery in some general market, usually Chicago. Such contracts are called futures because they do not terminate until some designated month in the future. These transactions pass from hand to hand and may be turned over hundreds and thousands of times in an active market before maturity, and this is called deal- ing in futures. Nearly all speculative operations are in futures. Gamishee. The party in whose hands money, due to a defendant, is attached. Gain. Profit; benefit; increase in wealth. Gauging. Measuring the contents of casks, etc. Gist. The main point of a case ; the turning point. Gift. A voluntary conveyance or gift of lands or goods. If of the former, it is liable to be defeated in the lifetime of the grantor, by his conveying the same lands to a purchaser, for a valuable consideration, even though with notice of the prior gift. Gold and Silver Certificates. Certificates issued by the United States government, circulating as money, on the security of gold deposited with the government for that purpose, or of silver coin belonging to itself. Grots Weight. Weight of goods including case, bag, tc. Grace, I>ays of. The name given to the days of in- dulgence allowed to the acceptor of a bill of exchange after it becomes due. The number of such days .varies indifferent countries. In some, as in France, they are abolished altogether. In England, three days are al- owed, so that a bill at a month drawn on the first of one month, will become due on the fourth of the next. Grand Jury. The jury to whom all bills of indict- ment are referred in the" first instance. It is the duty of this jury to interrogate the witnesses for the prosecu- tion, arid ascertain whether or not a prima facie case is made out against the prisoner ; if so, they find a true bill, and he takes his trial; if not, they ignore the bill, and he is discharged. Grant. A mode of conveyance, formerly applicable only to incorporeal hereditaments, reversions, etc. ; but its significance has been extended by a recent statute, and it is now the instrument most usually employed U the conveyance of tend. 488 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Granger Roads. Western railroads. This term was originally applied in Wall street to the Chicago and Northwestern, and the Chicago, Milwaukee, and St. Paul roads, but is now employed on Stock Exchanges to designate those railroads which handle principally farm produce. Gross. Whole ; entire ; total ; specifically without de- duction, as for damage or waste material; without al- lowance of tare, opposed to net, as gross sum or amount, gross profits, income or weight. Guaranty. An engagement to be responsible for the debts or duties of a third person. Guarantor. A warrantor. Guaranteed Stock. Stocks of leased or subsidiary company guaranteed by the principal company. Habeas Corpus. A writ of right for those who are grieved by illegal imprisonment. The Habeas Corpus Act is next in importance to Magna Charta, for, so long as this statute remains, no subject of England can long be detained in prison, except under legal process. Habetidum. One of the formal parts of a deed : its office is to limit or define the estate granted. It is so called because it begins with the words " to have." H arbor. A place of rest or safety for ships ; a port for loading and unloading. Heir. The legal representative of his ancestor, with respect to the real property of such ancestor. He takes all the real property not otherwise disposed of by the ancestor in his lifetime or by his will. Heir Apparent. Is one whose right of inheritance is certain, and which nothing can defeat, provided he outlives his ancestor; as the eldest son or issue. Heir presumptive is one who would inherit, provided his an- cestor were to die at that particular time, but whose right of inheritance might be defeated by some nearer heir being afterwards born ; as a brother or nephew, whose presumptive succession may be destroyed by the birth of a child. Heirlooms. Such personal chattels as go to the heir along with the inheritance, and not to the executor of the deceased. Hereditaments. All things which may be inherited, that is, which would descend to the heir, if not disposed of by deed or will. Hereditaments are of two kinds, corporeal and incorporeal. Hedge. The operation called hedging by speculators is practically the same as straddling, though the terms are not synonymous. Traders hedge to avert a loss and straddle for a profit. High Seas. Waters of the ocean outside of the jurisdiction of any country. Homicide. The crime of killing any human being; of which there are three kinds justifiable, excusable, and felonious. Honor. To accept and pay when due. Hue and Cry. The old common law process of pursuing felons "with horn and voice." Also, the name of a paper now circulated amongst the police containing the names and description of felons. Hypothec-ate. A term used for pawning a ship and goods, or either, for necessaries, which a master of a ship may do when in distress at sea. Ignore. When the grand jury reject a bill of indict- ment, they are said to ignore it, from the Latin word ignoramus. Illegal Condition. A condition annexed to any- thing which is illegal, immoral, impossible, or other- wise contrary to law. Immoral Contracts. Contracts infringing the rules of morality which, for reasons of public policy, are void at law. Impaneling. Writing in a parchment schedule the names of the jury by the sheriff. Import. To l/rinsr from another country. Importer. One who brings goods from abroad. Impost. Duty on goods paid by the importer. Incorporeal Hereditaments. Hereditaments of a non-tangible nature, and consisting of rights or bene- fits issuing out of corporal or tangible things, as a rent, an advowson, etc. Incumbent. The present possessor of an ecclesias- tical benefice. Incumbrance. A charge or lien upon property, as a mortgage. Indemnity. A written instrument whereby one un- dertakes to free another from responsibility. Indenture. A deed or writing, formerly cut or in- dented ; now the name usually given to deeds, although indenting is no longer essential. Indictment. A written accusation of one or more persons, of a crime or misdemeanor, preferred to. ami presented on oath, by a grand jury. Indorsement. Anything written on the back of a deed or other instrument ; such as a bill of exchange. Infant. Every person is by the law styled an infant till he has attained the age of" twenty-one years. Inheritance. An estate in lands or tenements to a man and his heirs. Injunction. A prohibitory writ granted by the Court of Chancery forbidding certain acts to be" done under pain of contempt. It may be granted in urgent cases ex parte, but notice is sometimes required to be given. Inquest. A meeting of jurors, who are summoned to take into consideration certain matters, which may ap- pear in evidence before them, and to bring in theii verdict accordingly. Inquiry (writ of). A writ directed to the sheriff, commanding him to summon a jury and assess the damages in an action ; as, for instance, when the de- fendant has suffered judgment by default. Insolvency. The state of a person who is unable to pay his debts. insurance. A security or indemnification against the risk of loss from the happening of certain events. The usual kinds are fire and marine. Interpleader. When two or more persons claim the same thing of a third, the latter may call upon them to interplead, i. e., to try the right to it between them- selves] he. the third person, retaining possession of the thing in the meantime, as a kind of stakeholder. Interrogatories. Written questions to which the parties interrogated are to give written answers on oath. Intestate. A person dying without a will, or, hav- ing made a will, without appointingan executor thereof. Innuendo. That part of the declaration, in actions of libel and slander, which explains the meaning, or points the application, of the libelous or slanderous matter Complained of. In Re. In the matter of. Installment. Part of a sum of money paid or to oe paid from time to time. Interest. The use of money ; premium paid for the use of money. Investment. The laying out of money in the pur- chase of property. Inventory. A list of goods. Invoice. A list of goods bought or sold, or consigned. In Sigbt. Said of stocks of grain, cotton, coffee, or other merchandise, available for immediate use. Grain stored in private warehouses, or held by producers, is not usually included in the supply " in sight." Inspection. Grain received at Chicago is inspected and graded by sworn inspectors under rules established by the Board" of Railroad and Warehouse Commission- ers, appointed by the state of Illinois. From this in- spection, if not satisfactory-, an appeal may be taken to the Inspection Committee of the Board of Trade. In other states similar laws exist. I. O. U. A written acknowledgment of a debt. This instrument is regarded in a court of law sis evidence of an account stated. It is not a promissory note and does not require a stamp. Issue. The disputed point or question to which the parties in an action have, by pleading, narrowed their several allegations, and are hence said to join issue. If it be an issue of fact, it is tried by a jury, if of law, by the court. Issue is also the legal "term for children or remoter descendants. Jeltison. A voluntary throwing of goods overboard at sea in a storm to lighten the ship. Joinder in Action. The coupling or joining two parties in one suit or action. Joint Tenants. Persons who hold lands, etc., jointly by one title. On the death of one the survivor takes the whole. Jointure. A settlement of lands or tenements on a woman, to take effect after her husband's death in lieu of dower. Journal. A book used to classify and arrange busi- ness transactions. Judgment. The sentence of the law pronounced by the court upon the matter contained in the record. Jury. A certain number of men sworn to deliver a verdict upon such evidence of facts as shall be delivered (o them, touching the matter In question. FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. Judgment Note. A note in the usual form, with the addition of the power to confess judgment if not paid. Jurisdiction. The authority by which judicial offi- cers take cognizance of and decide causes. Landlord. A proprietor of lands occupied by an- other, which latter party is termed the tenant. Lapse. A forfeiture of the right of presentation to a church by the neglect of the patron to present. The word is also applied where a testamentary gift falls by the death of its object in the lifetime of the testator. Larceny. The wrongful and unlawful taking and carrying away bv one person of the personal goods of another, with the felonious intention of converting them to his own use. Law. This word signifies generally an inflexible rule of action. The law of England is composed of written laws or statutes, and unwritten laws, or the customs of the realm. The latter is also termed the common law. Law of Nations. A system of rules or principles deduced from the law of nature, and intended for the regulation of the mutual intercourse of nations. Leading Question. A question put or framed in such a form as to suggest the answer sought to be obtained. Such a question is not allowed to be put to a witness, except on cross-examination. Lease. A conveyance or demise of lands of tene- ments for life, or years, or at will, but always for a less term than the party conveying has in the premises. Lease and Release. The i'orm of conveyance, until recently commonly used for conveying land; but a lease, commonly called a lease for a Y ear > is no longer necessary ; the release alone being now as effectual as a lease and release were formerly. Leasehold; Lands held o"n lease, which (however long the term) are considered as chattels real, and go to the next of kin, and not to the heir, on the death of the owner intestate. Legacy. A gift or bequest of money, goods, or other personal property by will. The person to whom it is given is styled the legatee; and, if the gift is of the residue, after ]-ayment of debts and legacies, he is then styled the residuary legatee. Lessor and Lessee. The person who grants a lease is called the lessor, the party to whom it is granted, the lessee, and the person to whom either of them assigns, the assignee. Letters of Administration. The instrument cranted by the Probate Court under which administrators de- rive their title to administer the goods and chattels of an estate. Letters (or Power) of Attorney. A writing, under seal, empowering another person to do any act instea.l of the person granting the letter. It may be either general or special ; the attorney represents iris principal in the matters prescribed by 'the letter until it be re- voked. X.etters of License. An instrument whereby credit- ors grant to their debtor time for the payment of his debts, and bind themselves not to molest him until that time has expired. Levy. The seizing of goods or chattels by a sheriff under an execution is called a levy. Ledger. Book of accounts. Letters of Credit. A letter authorizing the holder to receive money on account of the writer. Legal Debts." Debts that are recoverable in a court of common law. Legal Tender. That which the Law authorizes to be tendered in payment of debts. Strictly speaking, it is the exact amount of the debt in current funds. It is not a legal tender to demand change. Letter of Advice. A letter of information concern- ing a shipment of goods or of the drawing of a draft. Libel. A malicious defamation, expressed either in printing or writing, or by signs, pictures, etc., tending either to blacken the memory of one who is dead, or the reputation of one who is alive, and theieby exposing him to public hatred, contempt, or ridicule. Lien. A qualified right which a person has in or to a thing in his possession, arising from a claim upon the owner. Liens are of two kinds, particular or general. Limited Liability. The limitation of the liability of shareholders in a company to the amount unpaid upon their shares, introduced by recent Acts, and applicable to all companies registered thereunder; such compa- nies are bound to use the word " Limited " in their title after the word " Company." Jneal Descent. That which goes from father to dPP , fEom son to grandson, and so on. Liquidated Damages. Damages, the amount of which is fixed or ascertained. Liability. Debt or claim against a person. License. Legal permission to sell goods or to do certain things. Liquidate. To pay off, as debts ; to settle or adjust accounts. Lighterage. A charge for conveying goods to or from a vessel in a harbor. Limit. A set figure, at which one's trade is to be made or closed. Liquidation. When employed by speculators, this term signifies the selling out of property previously bought or contracted for. The expression ' liquidation by longs," is in contradistinction to "coveringby shorts." In a market where both processes are extensively car- ried on, it is called " evening up." Loan. To deliver to another for temporary use : the thing lent. Long. One who has property bought in anticipation of a rise in price. Hence, for a trader to be " long " of stocks or grain presupposes him to be a "bull." Also used adjectively. Long Market. A market that is overbought, the volume of open contracts to buy property for future delivery being in dangerous excess of the probable de- mand. Lunatic. One who has had understanding, but, by grief, disease, or other accident, has lost the use of his reason generally, though he may have lucid intervals. Magna Oh art a. The great charter of English lib- erties granted by, or rather extorted from, King John, at Runnymede, between Windsor and Staines, on the 15th of June, 1215, and afterwards confirmed bv Henrv III. Maihem or Mayhem. The violently depriving an- other of the use of such of his members as may render him less able, in fighting, either to defend himself or to annoy bis adversary. Malice Prepense. Malice aforethought ; f . e., delib- erate, predetermined malice. Mandamus. A writ commanding the completion or restitution of some right, or the performance of a duty. Manor. A territorial domain, held partly by the lord and partly by his tenants ; it must have continued from time immemorial, and have annexed to it a Court Baron, with at least two suitors. Manslaughter. The unlawful killing of another, but without malice. Manumission. The making a bondman free. Marque and Reprisal (Letters of). Commissions granted to individuals to fit out privateers in time of war; not used in the late war, ana abandoned by all the great powers at the Congress of Paris, 1856. Master of the Rolls. An assistant of the Lord Chancellor, who hears and decides the cases assigned to him, at his own court in the Rolls Yard. He holds his oftice by latent for life. Maturity. Bills, or notes, when due, are said to be at their maturity. Maxims in* Law. Certain proverbial axioms, which form part of the general custom or common law of the land. As, "No man is bound to criminate himself." " Conditions against law are void." " It is fraud to conceal fraud," etc., etc. Malfeasance. An act which one has no right to do. Mandatory. One to whom business is intrusted or charge Driven. Manifest. A list of articles comprising a vessel's cargo. Manufacture. The process of converting raw ma- terial into articles of use and sale. Margin. A sum of money deposited with a broker, in stock transactions, to protect him against loss by the depreciation of stocks held by him for another party. Also the difference between the value of securities de- posited as collateral and the amount loaned upon them. Marine. Relating to the sea. Maritime Law. Law relating to harbors, ships, and seamen. Mart. A place of public sale ; a market. Maximum. The highest figure. Merger. The sinking of a smaller estate into a greater, whereby the former is utterly extinguished and destroyed. It takes place when tw'o estates meet to- gether, without any intermediate estate between them, to both of which estates the same individual is en- titled in one and the same right as where a tenant for lite afterwards acquires the fee simple. 490 THE CENTURY BOOK Of FACTS. Mesne-Procesa. Commonly used to describe the first process in an action, as where a party used to be arrested on mesne-process, as distinguished from an arrest on a final judgment. Mercantile Law. Law relating to business trans- actions. Mercantile Agency. A concern which procures in- formation relating to the financial standing and credit of merchants for the use of others, to whom said mer- chant may apply for credit. Misdemeanor. Anindictable offense, which, though criminal, does not amount to felony. Misprision. A neglect, oversight, or contempt; as, for example, misprision of treason is a negligence in not revealing treason. Minimum. The lowest figure. Mint. The place where money is coined. Misfeasance. Doing in an improper manner, by which another receives an injury. Mitigation. Lessening the amount of a judgment, penalty, or punishment. Moot Point. An obscure point of law not definitely settled ; and therefore open for discussion. Mortgage. A conveyance of lands by way of secu- rity, for the repayment of a sum of money borrowed, or ow'ing. Mortmain. Lands held by corporations are said to be held in mortmain. Motion. An occasional application to the court, to obtain some rule or order in the progress of a cause. Money. Current coin and circulating medium. Money Broker. A broker who deals in money or exchanges. Monopoly. The sole power of vending goods. Mortgagee. The person to whom the conveyance is made. Mortgagor. One who makes the mortgage. Municipal Law. That which pertains solely to the citizens of a particular state, city, or province. Muniments. Deeds, evidences, and writings in gen- eral. Murder. Unlawfully killing any person, with malice aforethought, either ex'press or implied by law. Mutiny Act. An Act annually passed to punish mutiny and desertion, and for the better regulation of the army. Naturalization. The making a foreigner a lawful subject of the state. Negotiable Instruments. Those instruments which confer on the holders the legal right to sue for the money or property thereby secured, and which by delivery pass such money or property from man to man as bills of exchange, bills of lading. Next Friend. The party in whose name an infant or feme-covert brings an action or suit. Negotiable. That may be transferred by indorse- ment and delivery, or by delivery alone. Negotiate. To transact business or treat with an- other respecting trade or treaty. Net. Clear of all charges and deductions. Net Proceeds. The sum left after deducting com- mission or discount, etc. Negotiable Paper. Notes, drafts, or other written obligations, which may be bought and sold. Net Cash. A term applied to a bill of goods to be paid without any allowance or discount, and without reference to time, but by common custom understood to be thirty days, unless otherwise specified. Nisi Priua. A term applied to those courts in which civil causes are tried before a judge and jury. Nolle Prosequi. An acknowledgment by the plain- tiff that he will not further prosecute his suit, as to the whole or a part of the cause of action. Non Asanmnsit. He has not promised. A plea by which a defendant denies his liability in an action of assuni]it. Non Prog. When the plaintiff neglects to take any step within the prescribed time, the defendant may move fora judgment against him, which is called judg- ment of noh pros. Nonsuit. A renunciation of a suit by a plaintiff, after whi;."i he may still commence another action for the sar.ic cause, which he could not do if a verdict goes against him. Notary Public. A person whose business it is to note and protest bills of exchange, and who also attests deeds and writings, to make them authentic in another country. Non Feasance. The non-performance of an act that should be done. Note. An obligation without a seal ; a written prom- ise to pay. ' Nominal. Existing in name only. Nuisance. Anything which unlawfully annoys or does damage to another. Nuisances may be either pub- lic or private. Nuncupative Will. An oral will before a sufficient number of witnesses, and afterwards reduced to writ- ing now abolished, except as to soldiers and sailors. Nunc Pro Time. Literally, now for then; and is often so used in legal proceedings. Oath. An appeal to God as a witness of the truth of what is affirmed or denied in evidence, in the presence of a judge, magistrate, or other officer authorized to administer oaths. Obligation. That which legally binds a party to per- form a duty. Official Assignees. Officers of the Court of Bank- ruptcy, one of whom is allotted to each bankrupt's estate. He acts with the assignees appointed by the creditors in the administration of the estate ; but his especial duty is to keep the assets of the estate, and re- ceive and pay all money on account of it. Onus Probandi. The burden of proof. It is a legal principle that the issue in an action must be proved by the party who states an affirmative ; not by the party who states a negative. The burden of proof, therefore, is on the former party. On Call. When money is loaned " on call," it is un- derstood that it must be returned the day it is called for, before the close of banking hours, and without pre- vious notice. Open Policy. A policy upon which amounts yet to be ascertained and insured, may be entered at different times. Option. Property bought or sold at the call or de- mand of the buyer or seller as may be specified ; a con- ditional contract. Ostensible Partner. A person whose name appears to the world as a partner in a firm. Although such a Eerson may not have any interest in the partnership, he t liable for its debts and engagements. Outlawry. The act or process by which a person is excluded from, or deprived of, the benefit of the laws, attended with a forfeiture of hi.s goods to the Crown. Outlawed. Term applied to a debt or note which has run beyond the time when its payment can be enforced by law. Overt Act. An open act, capable of being manifested by legal proof. Overdraw. To issue a check for more than the con- cern's deposit. Overdue. Remaining unpaid after maturity. Overissue. An issuing as of stock, beyond or in ex- cess of the capital stock. Oversold. The reverse of overbought. Owe. To be indebted to, or bound to pay. Oyer and Terminer. A commission directed to the judges and others, by virtue whereof they have power to hear and determine treasons, felonies, etc. O Yes. A corruption of the French oyez, hear ye! The term is used by a public crier to enjoin silence and attention. Panel. A schedule or slip of parchment, containing the names of such jurors as have been returned by the sheriff to serve on trials. Paraphernalia. Things to which a wife is entitled over and above her dower, consisting of wearing ap- parel and ornaments suitable to her rank and station in life. The husband may (with the exception of his wife's wearing apparel) dispose of them in his lifetime, but not by will. On his death they belong to the wife absolutely. Parol. ' Word of mouth, verbal. Particeps Criininis. A participator in the crime. Partition. The dividing of lands held by joint ten- ant, coparceners, or tenants in common, into two dis- tinct portions. Pawn. A delivery- of goods and chattels, to be re- tained until a debt is discharged. Par. Equal value; when market value equals face value. Partnership. Company; union of two or more in business. Pawnbroker. One who lands money on a pledge or deposit of goods. FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 491 Payee. The party to whom payment is to be made. Payor. One who pays or is bound to pay. Paper Profits. Profits on contracts not yet closed, and consequently not yet in hand. Par of Exchange. Equivalent value of the cur- rency of a country in that of another. Partial Payment. Part payment of a debt. Partner. An associate in business. Passing 1 a Dividend. When the directors of a cor- poration vote against declaring a dividend it i.? said to be" passed." This is nearly always the cause of great weakness in the stock. Penance. An ecclesiastical punishment, varied ac- cording to the nature of the offense, in which the )>eni- tent is supposed to make satisfaction to the Church for the scandal he has given by his evil example. Perjury. The oifense committed by a person who, having been sworn to tell the truth in a'matter pending in a court of justice, willfully and deliberately takes a false oath. Perpetuity. A rule that land cannot be limited be- yond a life or lives in being and twenty-one years after- wards, and the period of gestation, if "it actually exists, is commonly called the rule against perpetuities. Personal Estate, or Personalty. Movable things, whether alive or dead, as distinguished from land, or immovables, which are termed real estate. Petitioning Creditor. A creditor who petitions the Court of Bankruptcy to make his debtor a bankrupt. .Pin Money. An allowance set apart by the husband for the personal expenses of a wife, i. e., for her dress and pocket money. Pit Trders. Brokers who are in the pit daily trad- ing for their own account. Plaintiff. The complainant in an action or suit. Plea. The defendant's answer to the plaintiff's dec- laration. Pleader. A lawyer, who draws the pleadings in actions. Pleadings. The mutual allegations or statements which are made by the plaintiff and defendant in an action. Pledge. A pawn ; a deposit as security. Posse Comitatus. The power of the county. This includes the aid and attendance of all men, except ecclesiastics and inferior persons, above the age of fif- teen, within the county; which force may be used in cases of riot or rebellion, or where any resistance is made to the execution of justice. Postea. The verdict of the jury drawn up in due form, and entered on the back of the record. Pound Breach. The indictable offense of breaking open a pound for the purpose of taking cattle therefrom. Policy of Insurance. Contract between the insurer and the insured. Portage. The price of carrying; cost paid by the captain for running his vessel. Point. On stock exchanges "a point" is understood to mean one dollar a share. A decline in Missouri Pacific from twenty-five to twenty-two would be a de- cline of three points. Pool. The stock and money contributed by a syndi- cate to control the price of a given surety or commodity. Also refers to the individuals composing the pool. Post Date. To date after the real day. Pre-emption. The right of first buying. Prescription. A title acquired by use and time, and allowed by law. Presentment. The notice taken by a grand jury or inquest of any offense, etc., from their own knowledge or observation. Primogeniture. The right of the eldest son to in- herit his ancestor's estate, to the exclusion of the younger son, where the ancestor has died intestate. Privilege. An exemption from the general rules of law. It is of two kinds rea., attaching to any place, or personal, attaching to persons, as ambassadors, etc. Probate. The copy of a will made out on parchment with a certificate of its having been proved. Process. A general term applied to formal judicial proceedings. Prohibition. A writ issuing out of the superior courts directing the judge of an inferior court not to proceed f urther'in a suit. Promissory Note. A written promise by which one person engages or promises to pay a certain sum of money to another. Pro Kata. In proportion. Protest. On bills of exchange. A protest means the solemn declaration of a public notary of the dis- honor of a bill. Proviso. A condition inserted in a deed, on the per- formance whereof the validity of the deed frequently depends. Premises. Things previously mentioned; houses, lands, etc. Premium. The sum paid for insurance ; the excess of value above par. Price. Value set or demanded ; current value, Price Current. A table of the current price of mer- chandise, stocks, bills of exchange, etc. Prima Facie. On the first view of the matter. Primage. A charge imposed in addition to the freight. Principal. An employer; the head of a commercial house ; the sum loaned, upon which interest is paid. Preferred Stock. Shares of a corporation having preference over ordinary shares, but not over bonded or mortgaged indebtedness. Preferred stock is usually issued for borrowed capital. Earnings, if any are left after paying interest on the bonded debt, go next to pay a dividend on the preferred stock, and only what then remains is applied to the common stock. Privileges. " Puts " and " Calls." A " put " is the privilege or option, which a person purchases, of " put- ting," i. e., delivering, property or contracts for prop- erty to the seller of such privilege, at a named price within a stipulated time one or more days, weeks, or months. " Puts " are good (from the buyer's stand- point) when the market declines below the " put " price within the time covered by the privilege contract. The buyer can then buy the property at the cheaper figure anil "put" it to the person who sold him the risk, his profit being the difference between the "put" price and the quotation at which the propertv is bought with which to make the delivery. A " call'" is the reverse of a " put,"the purchaser of a " call" acquiring the right to " call " upon the seller of the privilege for property, or contracts for propertv, at a named price within a stipulated time. " Calls are good when the market advances above the call price, and the buyer of such privilege is enabled to sell at a profit ttie property " called " from the seller of the privilege. The seller of privileges occupies, in a sense, the position of an in- surance or guaranty companv. He sells market risks as an insurance company sells fire, life, or accident risks. Trading in privileges is illegal in some states, notably in Illinois. Prices paid for privileges are usually $1.00 per thousand bushels for a single day, 81.25 for a week or ten days, and from $2.50 to $7.50 for a month or dur- ing the li'ie of a distant option. Promoters' Shares. Those issued by corporations in payment of the services of promoters in the organi- zation of companies. Pyramiding. Enlarging one's operations by the use of profits which one has made. For instance, if one buys 5,000 bushels and the market advances 2 cents, he sells, realizes 100 profit, and with this in addition to his additional margin he buys 10,000 bushels of wheat, which he closes on a f urther'advance and makes a stir- larger investment. On steadily advancing markets with moderate reactions this plan makes large profits, but must not be followed too far and liberal margins should be kept. Quarantine. Signifies 40 days. It is applied to the period which persons coming from infected countries are obliged to wait onboard snip before they are allowed to land. But in law it more strictly applies to the similar period during which a widow, entitled to dower, is permitted to remain in her husband's capital man- sion after his death, whilst she awaits the assignment of her dower. Quash. To annul or cancel. Onasi Contract. An implied contract. Quid Pro Quo. Giving one thing for another, being the mutual consideration in contracts. Quo Warranto. An ancient writ still in use, directed against any person or corporation, who usurps any office, franchise, or liberty, calling upon them to show by what authority they support their claim. omit :it inns. A statement of the prices of articles of merchandise, given for the information of correspond- ents. Rape. The carnal knowledge of a female who is above the age of ten years. Against her will; or of a girl under the age of ten years, although with her per- mission. The age of consent varies. Bate. The proportion or standard. 492 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Real Estate or Realty. The term applied to land, In contradistinction to personalty. Recital. The formal statement of gome matter of fact in any deed or writing. It usually commences with the formal word " Whereas." Recognizance. An obligation of record which a man enters into, with condition to do some particular act ; as, to appear at the assizes.to keep the peace, to pay a debt, or the like. Record. An authentic testimony, in writing, con- tained in rolls of parchment, and preserved in a court of record. Re-Entry, proviso for. A stipulation in a lease that, on non-payment of rent or non -performance of the covenants, the leaser may re-enter. Registrars. Officers having custody of a Registry, such as the registrars of births, marriages, and deaths. Rejoinder. The answer of a defendant in an action to the plaintiff's replication. Release. A form of conveyance. Also, an acquit- tance under seal of a debt or other obligation. Remainder. A vested or contingent estate or inter- est in land, limited to take effect and come into pos- session on the determination of a prior estate created at the same time. Rent. The annual return made by the tenant to his landlord, which may be either money, labor, or provi- sions. Replevin. An action to try the validity of a distress. The tilings distrained are re-delivered to the tenant on security or pledges given by him to try the right. Reprieve. A suspension of the execution of sentence of death on a criminal. Rescue. A resistance against lawful authority, as, for instance, the violently taking away a man who is un- der legal arrest. Residuary Devisee. The person to whom a testator devises the remainder of his lands, not otherwise dis- posed of. Residuary Legatee. A legatee to whom is be- queathed the residue or remainder of a testator's per- sonal estate, after payment of all legacies, claims, and demands. Residue or Residuary Estate. The portion of a testator's estate not specifically disposed of. Retainer. A fee given to counsel to secure his serv- ices. It may be either general or special. The former secures the services of the counsel to the party giving it in all matters ; the latter only in one cause or matter. The fee in the former cause is five guineas, in the latter one guinea. Return of a Writ. The certificate of the sheriff made to the court of what he has done towards the ex- ecution of any writ directed to him. Reversal. The making a judgment void, in con- sequence of some error in the same. Reversion. The residue of an estate left in the grantor, and returning to him or his heirs, after the grant is determined. Receipt. A writing acknowledging the taking of money or goods. Refund. To repay or pay back. Resources. Pecuniary means ; effects ; property. Respondential Bond. A pledge of a cargo at sea. Retail. To sell in small quantities. Revenue. Tax; income; rents; customs and duties. Revocation. The 'recall of power or authority con- ferred, as the revocation of an agency. Receiver's Certificates. Those issued by a receiver for the purpose of raising money fora company in the jurisdiction of a court. When approved by the court and issued, they are a first lien upon the net earnings and property of the company. Registered Bonds. That class of Government Bonds which are payable to the order of some individual or corporation, whose name is registered as the owner thereof in the government offices at Washington. Such bonds, if stolen or lost, cannot be realized upon. Remittance. Value, as bills or money transmitted to another. Renewal of a Note. Extending the time of its pay- ment by giving a new note in exchange for it. Rule. An order made bj the court at the instance of one of the parties in an action. It may either be a rule absolute, or merely a rule nisi, or to show cause. Rules of Court. The rules framed by the judges for regulating the practice of the different courts of law. Salvage. An allowance made for saving ships or goods from enemies, or wreck, or loss at sea. Scire Facias. A judicial writ founded on matter oi record, and used for various purposes, as, for in- stance, to enforce against a shareholder a judgment against a Joint Stock Company, which it is unable to satisfy. Scrivener. One intrusted with other men's moneys to put out for them, and for which he charges a com- mission, or bonus. Scrip. Dividends issued by a stock company payable in stock. Scrip dividends are simply an increase o'f the capital of the company , as the s tock issued to meet them is added to the capital, and in its turn is entitled to future dividends. Scalper. One who trades in options continually, and, by reading the temper of the market at the moment, tries to get a profit out of the minor fluctuations; also applied to irregular railroad ticket brokers. The term is coming into general use in other lines. Scalping. Buying and selling on small fluctuations of t e market. Taking a small profit or a small loss. Seizin. Possession of a freehold estate. Seizin in deed is when actual possession is obtained. Seizin in law i aright to lands of which actual possession has not been obtained. Separate Estate. Real or personal property settled upon a married woman, and which she may dispose of as if she were a single woman. Sequestratii n. Used in several cases ; but most fre- quently as signifying an execution for debt against a beneficed clergyman, in which case the debt is satis- fied out of the tithes and other profits of the benefice. In Scot^.nd a sequestration is nearly equivalent to our term " bankruptcy." Set-off. A mode of defense, whereby a defendant sets up a demand of his own to counterbalance the plaintiff's claim either whollv or in part. >. eaworthy. Fit for a voyage ; in a proper condition to venture ar sea. Secondarily. Applied to the indorser of a note or the drawer of a bill, signifying that he is only condi- tionally liable, or liable if the maker and drawee fail. Seigitiorage. The difference between the commer- cial value of bullion in coin and the face value of the coin itself. Shipment. Goods ; act of shipping. Short Market. A market that is oversold ; the vol- ume of open contracts to deliver property being in dan- gerous excess of available supply. Short Selling. The process of selling property for future delivery in the expectation of being able to obtain the property cheaper before the maturity of con- tract, or of being able to close out the contract at a profit without the actual delivery of the property. Simony. The corrupt presentation of anyone to an ecclesiastical benefice, for money, gift, or reward. Simple Contract. An agreement entered into ver- bally or by writing not under seal. Sight. The time of presenting a bill to the drawee. Signature. The peculiar style in which a person signs his name. Sinking Fund. A fund created by a government oi corporation for the extinction of its indebtedness, by the gradual purchase of its outstanding obligations, and the application of the interest saved on these obligations thus redeemed to further purchases. Silent Partner. One who invests his capital in a business house, but whose name does not appear in the firm. His liability is limited to the extent of his con tribution, except in cases where he fails to make th proper publication of his connection with the concern. Silver Certificates. Those issued against standard silver dollars deposited in the treasury, in denomina- tions of $1, $2, $5, and 10, and higher denominations. Not legal tender but receivable for public dues. Slander. The malicious defamation of a rian by word of mouth, analogous to libel, which is slander by writing. Solicitor. One who solicits ; a lawyer or advocate in a court of chancery. Solvency. Ability to pay all debts. Special Pleading. When the pleadings in an action are not in the ordinary form,but are of a more complex character, thev are termed special pleadings. Specific Performance. A remedy in equity, to com- pel the performance of a contract according to its terms, instead of proceeding at law to recover damages merely. Specialty. A writing sealed and delivered, contain- ing some agreement. FINANCE, INDUSTRY, TRANSPORTATION. 493 Speculation. B.uying commodities not needed for use, or selling commodities not owned, with the hope of making profits by fluctuations in the values of these commodities. A speculator buys wheat because he hopes to sell itat a better price, but not because he needs it for use. He sells sugar stock because he believes he can buy it at a cheaper price later, and make the differ- ence. Statutes. The written laws of the kingdom are of two kinds, public or private ; the former applies to all statutes which affect the public generally, and, of which the judges take cognizance without being specially pleaded. The latter relates to the private rights of in- dividual bodies, as, for instance, the various acts for the management of railway and other companies are private acts. Stoppage in Transit. Goods sold on credit to a person, since becoming insolvent or bankrupt, may be seized by the vendor at any time before their actual and complete delivery to the vendee. This seizure is called stoppage in transitu ; it is often a nice and difficult question to determine when the transit has ended and the purchaser's possession begun. Stipend. Settled pay for services; daily, monthly, or annual salary. Stipulation. An agreement or contract. Stocks. Shares in joint stock companies, and notes on the government. Stock Broker or Jobber. One who speculates in stocks. Statute of Limitations. An assigned period within which legal action must be commenced to enforce pay- ment. Statement. Usually a list of property, or resources and liabilities. Statistics. A collection of facts respecting any par- ticular thing. Sterling Exchange. A bill of exchange drawn on London. This is the most general current exchange, and is good for the payment of debts anywhere. Our shippers of cotton, grain, flour, and merchandise re- ceive bills of lading with draft attached, which they sell to foreign exchange houses here, who issue their bank- ers' bills against these commercial bills. Stock. Certificates issued by a corporation certifying that the person in whose name they are written and stand registered on the corporation books is entitled to share in the company's profits, to vote, etc. Stock, Assessable. That is liable to assessment. Stock, Cumulative. One on which a corporation agrees to pay past due dividends before declaring a dividend on stocks coming after it in the distribution of net earnings. Stock Ex vh ange. An incorporated body of brokers, who buy and sell stocks, bonds, and other values. Stock, N on- Assessable. Stock carrying with it no liabilities. Subornation of Perjury. The offense of procuring another to take a false oath. Subpoena. A writ used for the purpose of compel- ling witnesses to attend and give evidence. Sufferance. A tenant at, is a person who acquired the possession of lands by right, and holds over after his right is determined. Suit. Proceedings in equity are usually termed suits, as distinguished from the proceedings at common law, which are termed actions. Summons, Writ of. The process used for the com- mencemen t of all action in the courts of law. Supersedeas. A command to stay some ordinary pro- ceedings at law, on good cause shown. Sue. To prosecute in law. Surety. Security against loss; a person bound for the faithful performance of a contract by another. Suspend. To stop payment temporarily. Syndicate. A number of capitalists who unite to dis- pose of a loan, or to conduct a great financial enterprise. Tacit. That which is understood ; implied. Tare. An allowance for weight of box, case, bag, cask, etc., containing merchandise. Tariff. A list of prices ; duties on imports and ex- ports. Tax. A rate or sum of money imposed on persons or property for public use. Tenancy. The holding of property under tenure. Tenant. One who holds lands of another as a tenant for life, for years, in tail, etc. ; it is a word extensively used in legal phraseology. Tender. A legal tender is an unconditional offer to pay a debt, which, if refused, may be afterwards pleaded in bar to an action. Tenement. Property held by a tenant; it comprises lands, houses, and every species" of real property which may be holden. Tenure. The system of holding lands in subordina- tion to some superiors. Testamentary Guardian. A person appointed by a father in his will to be the guardian of his child. Testator or Testatrix. The maker of a will. Teste. The clause at the bottom of a writ beginning with the word " witness," is so called. Tenants in Common. Persons holding lands and tenements by several and distinct titles, and not by a joint title. Title. The evidence of the right which a person has to the possession of property. Time Draft. A draft maturing at a future specified time. Tonnage. Weight of a ship's load ; capacity of a ves- sel. Also a duty on ships estimated per ton. Traverse. A plea which denies the truth of some part of the plaintiff's declaration in an action. Treasure Trove. Any money, etc., found hidden under the earth the owner thereof being unknown. Trespass. Any wrong or damage which is done by one man to another, whether it relates to his person or property, but it usually signifies a wrongful entry on another's premises. Trial. The formal method of examining and adju- dicating upon a question of fact in a court of law. Tro_ver. The form of action used to try a disputed question of property in goods or chattels, in which the plaintiff can only recover their estimated value, and not the goods or chattels themselves. True Bill. The words indorsed upon an indictment by a grand jury, when satisfied that the charge against the offender is made out. Trust. A trust exists where a party, called the cestui que trust, has a right in equity to the beneficial enjoyment of property, the legal ownership of which is vested in another, who is hence called a trustee. Transact. To perform any act of business; to man- age. Transfer. To convey ; to sell or alienate title. Treasury. A place where public money is kept. Trustee. One to whom some special trust is as- signee!. Trade. A company of persons engaged in the same occupation ; business of baying and selling. Trade Discount. A deduction of a certain rate per cent, from the face of a bill made by wholesale houses and others in trade. Trade-Mark. A distinguishing mark used by a manufacturer on his goods or labels. Trunk Lines. Through lines of railroad from the Atlantic seaboard to Chicago or more western points. Trust. A combination of manufacturers or dealers for the purnose of limiting production and advancing prices for their own benefit. Umpire. A third person chosen to decide a matter in dispute left to arbitration, in case the arbitrators should not agree. Under-Lease. A lease granted bv one who is him- self only a lessee of the premises under-let. Under-I,essee. The person to whom an under-least! is granted. Unliquidated Damages. Damages not fixed or as- certained, and which require therefore to be estimated by a jury. Uncurrent. Not passing in common payment, as pounds, shillings, and pence in the United States. Underwriter. An insurer; so called because he un- derwrites his name to the conditions of the policy. Use. A right to the beneficial enjoyment of land nominally vested in another. Usury. The extortion of unlawful gain ; the taking more for the use of money than is allowed by law; but the usury laws in this country are now abolished, any rate of interest therefore may'now be lawfully taken. Usage of Trade. Custom, or the frequent repeti- tion of the same act in business transactions. Usance. A fixed time on bills of exchange ; business habit generally acted upon from force of custom. Value Received. The words usually, but unneces- sarily, appearing in bills of exchange and promissory notes. Valid. Of binding f oroe ; strong ; effectual. THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Value. The rate of worth or amount or price of a commodity. Venditioni Expoiias. A writ directed to the sheriff, commanding him to sell goods which he has taken pos- session of under a writ of fieri facias, and which re- main in his hands unsold. Vendor and Vendee. A vendor is the person who sells, and a vendee the person who buys, anything. Venue. The county at which an action at law is in- tended to be tried. Verdict. A verdict is the unanimous judgment or opinion of the jury on the issue of fact submitted to them. Vend. To sell ; to transfer for a pecuniary consider- ation. Versus. Against. Viva Voce. By word of mouth. Voluntary Conveyance, or Settlement. A con- veyance or settlement without any valuable considera- tion. Voucher. A receipt or discharge. Void. Having no binding force or effect. Voidable. That which has some force or effect, but which, in consequence of some inherent quality, may be annulled or avoided. Waifs. Stolen goods which the thief has thrown away or left behind him. Ward. An infant under the guidance and protec- tion of a guardian. Warrant. An authority or precept from a justice, commanding the apprehension of an offender, or a search to be made for stolen goods. Warrant of Attorney. An authority given by any- one to an attorney at law, to appear and plead for him ; or to suffer judgment to pass against hinv fey conf esslnc the action. Warranty. As applied to goods and chattels, mav be either expressed or implied ; the implied warrantv only extends to the title of the vendor. If that proves den cient, the purchaser may demand satisfaction from the seller. Watercourse, Right of. A right to an uninterrupted flow of water. Way, Right of. The right of going over another man's ground. Wages. Compensation for services. Waiver. The relinquishment or refusal to accept of a right. Wares. Goods; merchandise; commodities. Wash Trades. Pretended trading. Trades mad* on an open market by parties between whom there \A a tacit or private understanding that they shall be void. Done with a view to influence prices and considered a reprehensible practice. Watered Stock. An increase in capitalization with- out a corresponding increase in assets. Wharfinger. The owner or keeper of a wharf. Will. A will is the legal written declaration of a man's intentions of what he wills to be performed after his death with reference to the disposition of his prop- erty. It must be in writing, signed by the testator, and attested by two witnesses, who must not only be present and see the testator sign, butmust themselves subscribe the will as witnesses in the presence of the testator and of each other. Without these formalities the will is in- valid. A codicil is a .kind of addendum or supplement to a will. Its execution and attestation must be at- tended with the same formalities as the will itself. Book VII. Religion, Education, fine Arts. Religion, Education, Fine Arts. European Cathedrals. Among the most noted and magnificent cathedrals in Eu- rope are St. Peter's, in Rome ; the cathedral of Cologne, and that of Milan ; St. Mark's, in Venice ; Westminster and Salisbury, in Eng- land ; Rouen and Xotre Dame, in France ; Seville and Strasburg, in Spain and Germany, respectively. St. Paul's, in London, though architecturally much inferior to the others, is yet so noted as to deserve a brief description. It is built in the form of a cross, 514 feet long and 287 feet wide. The cost of the whole building, which is of Portland stone, was nearly $4,000,000, being the proceeds of a tax on the coal brought into the port of London during its erection. The edifice was built under the j direction of Sir Christopher Wren, was thirty- five years in course of erection, and was com- menced and finished under the same bishop, the same architect, and the same mason. The great bell of this cathedral is only tolled on the occasion of a death in the royal family. St. Peter's, at Rome, was commenced about the year 1503 by Julius II. under the direction of Bramante, but the present form of the basilica is due almost entirely to Michael Angelo. The interior is 613 feet in length, the height of the nave 152 1-2 feet; the length of the transepts is 446 1-2 feet ; the interior diameter of the dome is 139 fset ; the exterior 195 1-2 loci, I he colonnades around the piazza inclose a space 787 feet in diameter, and are connected with the facade by two galleries 296 feet in length. The facade is 379 feet long, and 148 1-2 feet high, and contains five doors, which admit to the grand entrance, which occupies the whole width of the church, 468 leet long, 66 feet high, and 50 feet wide. The height from the pavement to the top of the cross is 476 feet. The Cologne cathedral is one of the noblest specimens of Gothic architecture in Europe. It is said to have had its origin in an erection by Archbishop Hildebold, during the reign of Charlemagne, in 814. Frederic the Red- bearded bestowed upon it, in 1162, the bones of the three holy kings, which he took from Milan, and this gift contributed greatly to the increase of its importance. The bones are retained as precious relics to this day, but the j old structure was burned in 1248. According to some accounts the present cathedral was begun in the same year, but others fix the date of its commencement in 1270-'75. To whom the design of this noble building is to be as- cribed is uncertain. The work was carried on, sometimes more actively, sometimes more \ slowly, till the era of the Reformation, when it was suspended ; and during the subsequent centuries not only was nothing done to advance it, but what had been already executed, was not kept in repair. In the beginning of the present century, however, attention was di- rected to its unrivaled beauties, and the neces- sary funds to repair and complete it according to the original designs were raised. The body of the church measures 500 feet in length, and 230 feet in breadth ; the towers are above 500 feet high. Since 1823 $4,500,000 have been expended on the building ; the total cost of the whole is estimated at $10,000,000. The cathe- dral at Milan is also of Gothic architecture, but the facade is marred by classic doors and windows, and the altars within are in the same style. The edifice is nearly 500 feet long, and 250 feet wide through the transepts, and the height of the nave is about 150 feet. The cen- tral spire is more than 350 feet high. The throng of statues (some 4,500 in all) and the many pinnacles are marked features of the ex- terior. The celebrated church of St. Sophia, at Constantinople, was originally built by the Emperor Constantine in 325-326, and is so called as being dedicated, not; as commonly supposed, to a saint of that name, but to Hagia Sophia (Holy Wisdom) ; that is, to the Eternal Wisdom of God, or the Logos, the second person of the Trinity. The church was twice destroyed and rebuilt, the present edifice having been built by the Emperor Justinian about 532. It may be described as a square of 241 feet, forming interiorly a Greek cross, and surrounded in the interior by a woman's choir or gallery, supported by magnificent pillars, for the most part borrowed from ancient buildings. In the center rises a dome, which is supported by two great semi- domes, the whole presenting a series of unex- ampled beauty. The height of the dome is 175 feet. The building is approached by a double porch, which is about 100 feet in depth. The whole of the interior was richly decorated with sculptured marble and mosaics. The building occupied seven years in its erection, and the history of the work and of the details of its material and construction is full of marvels. Ten thousand workmen are said to have been employed upon it. The materials were supplied from every part of the empire, and comprised remains of almost every cele- brated temple of the ancient paganism. The sedilia of the priests and those of the patri- RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 497 archs were of silver gilt. The dome of the tabernacle was of pure gold, and was sur- mounted by a gold cross weighing 75 pounds and incrusted with precious stones. All the sacred vessels and other apparatus were of gold. The altar cloths were embroidered with gold and pearls ; and the altar itself was com- posed of a mass of molten gold, into which were thrown pearls, sapphires, diamonds, onyxes, and every other object which could raise its costliness to the highest imaginable degree. The total cost of the structure is stated by the ancient authorities at 320,000 pounds. Some regard this as pounds-weight of silver, others as of gold. Jf the latter, which is most generally adopted, the cost reaches the enormous sum of $65,000,000. On the capture of Constantinople by the Turks in 1453 St. Sophia was appropriated as a mosque, and has since been put to that use. Easter. The festival of the Resurrection of Christ probably derives its Teutonic name from the festival of the goddess Ostara in Anglo-Saxon, Eastre which the Saxons of old were wont to celebrate about the same season at which the Christian festival of Easter occurs. In the second century a dispute arose as to the proper time for celebrating Easter between the Eastern and Western Churches. The great mass of Eastern Christians celebrated Easter on the 14th day of the first month or moon, considering it to be equivalent to the Jewish Passover, when Christ was crucified. The Western Christians celebrated it on the Sun- day after the 14th, holding that it was the commemoration of the Resurrection of Jesus. The Council of Nice, A. D. 325, decided in favor of the Western usage. At the time of the introduction of the Gregorian Calendar it was debated whether Easter should continue a movable feast or whether a fixed Sunday after the 21st of March should not be adopted. In deference to the ancient custom, the eccle- siastical authorities decided to adhere to the method of determining the day by the moon. It must be understood, however, that it is not the actual moon in the heavens, nor even the mean moon of the astronomers, that regulates the time of Easter, but an altogether imaginary moon, whose periods are so contrived that the new (calendar) moon always follows the real new moon sometimes by two, or even thi-ee days. The effect of this is that the 14th of the calendar moon which had from the time of Moses been considered full moon for eccle- siastical purposes falls generally on the 15th or 16th of the renl moon, and thus after the real full moon, which is generally on the 14th or 15th day. With this explanation, then, of what is meant by " full moon " viz., that it is the 14th day of the calendar moon, the rule is that Easter day is always the first Sunday after the Paschal full moon, i. e., the full moon which happens upon or next after the 21st of March ; and if the full moon happens on a Sunday, Easter day is the Sunday after. Apostles, Deaths of. It is generally believed that only one of Christ's Apostles, John, escaped martyrdom. Matthew is sup- posed to have been slain with a sword in Ethiopia. James, son of Zebedee, was be- headed at Jerusalem. James, the brother of our Lord, was thrown from a pinnacle of the Temple and then beaten to death with a ful- ler's club. Philip was hanged up against a pillar at Hieropolis, a city of Phrygia. Bar- tholomew was flayed alive at Albanapolis, in Armenia-. Andrew suffered martyrdom on a cross at Patrse, in Achaia. Thomas was run through the body with a lance at Coromandel, in the East Indies. Thaddeus was shot to death with arrows. Simon Zelotes was cruci- fied in Persia. Peter was crucified , head down- ward it is said, during the Neronian perse- cution. Matthias was first stoned and then beheaded, and Paul was beheaded at Rome by the tyrant Nero. Judas Iscariot, after the betrayal of our Lord, hung himself. Bible, English Translations of. Between the eighth and tenth centuries por- tions of the Bible were translated into Anglo- Saxon by Aldhelin, Egbert. Bede, and others. In 1290 an English version of the Psalms was made. VyclLfe's version of the New Testa- ment was finished in 1380, and a little later he completed the Old. The seven penitential Psalms were apparently printed in 1505. Be- fore 1526 William Tyndale had completed an English translation of the New Testament. In the beginning of that year they were secretly conveyed to England from the Continent, where the translation had been made, where they were bought up and burned. The ex- cellence of his translation is evidenced by the fact that in our present version a very large portion of the New Testament is taken i-erba- tim from Tyndale's translation. In 1535 the first English version of the whole Bible was published by Miles Coverdale, a friend of Tyn- dale's, and was dedicated to Henry VIII. Be- tween that year and 1557 several versions of the Bible were printed, but they were in the greater part revisions of Tyndale's previous work. The Geneva Bible, or, as best known, the Breeches Bible, appeared in 1557. It was translated by several English divines who had fled to Geneva to escape from the persecutions of Bloody Mary, and received the name of Breeches Bible on account of the rendering of Genesis iii, 7 : " Then the eyes of both of 493 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. them were opened, and they knew that they were naked, and they sewed fig-tree leaves to- gether and made themselves breeches." The Bishops' Bible was published in London in 1568. The text of this was compared with the original by eight bishops and seven other scholars of reputation, who appended their initials to their respective tasks. In 1582 ap- peared, at Rheims, in France, an English ver- sion of the Xew Testament, prepared by sev- eral Roman Catholic exiles, and in 1609-'10 a similar version of the Old Testament at Douay. They form the standard English Scriptures of the Roman Catholics, being generally known as the Douay Bible. In July, 1604, King James appointed fifty-four scholars to prepare a new version of the Bible. Only forty-seven accepted the appointment, and the result of heir labors was the publication in 1610 of the /ersion known as " King James's Bible," which has been in common use from that time to this, slightly modified by the revision prepared by the most learned English and American scholars a few years ago. Benefit of Clergy. Until the reign of Henry VI. all members of the clerical order were almost totally exempted from the juris- diction and authority of the secular magistrate in respect of crimes and offenses. This was called " Benefit of the Clergy." If a priest or "clerk" happened to be imprisoned by the secular arm on a criminal charge, he was, on the demand of the bishop, instantly delivered up without any further inquisition not to be let loose upon the community, it is true, but to be detained by the ordinary till he had either purged himself from the offense, or, having failed to do so, had been degraded. In the reign mentioned this was so far altered that the prisoner had first to be arraigned, but could arrest judgment by ple'a, declining the jurisdiction either before or after conviction. At first the test of admission to this singular privilege was the clerical dress and tonsure ; but in course of time all who could read a mark of great learning in those days whether of the clergy or laity, were allowed the privi- lege. A layman, however, could only claim it once, and upon doing so was burned on the hand and discharged. He was then tried by the bishop, and usually acquitted, even though he had been previously convicted either by his country or his own confession. By this ac- quittal the offender was restored to his liberty, his credit, and his property in short, in the eye of the law he became a new and innocent person. The test of reading was applied as follows : On conviction, the felon demanded his clergy, whereupon a book (commonly a Psalter) was put into his hand, which he was required to read, when the judge demanded of the bishop's commissary, Legit ut clericus f If the answer was simply legit, the prisoner was burned on the hand and discharged ; but if it was non legit, he suffered the punishment due to his offense. During the reign of Queen Anne the benefit of clergy was extended to all persons convicted of clergyable offenses, whether they could read or not, but it was dis- cretionary with the judge whether a fine or imprisonment was inflicted. The benefit of clergy was totally abolished during the reign of George IV. Catacombs. Those in Paris were origi- nally quarries which had existed under the city from the earliest time. In 1774 the Council of State issued a decree for clearing the Cemetery of the Innocents, and for remov- ing its contents, as well as those of other grave- yards, into these quarries. These quarries or catacombs, as they were called were con- secrated with great solemnity on April 7, 1786, and the work of removal from the cemeteries was immediately begun. The bones were brought at night in funeral cars, covered with a pall, and followed by priests chanting the service of the dead. At first the bones were heaped up without any kind of order except that those from each cemetery were kept sepa- rate ; but in 1810, a regular system of arrang- ing them was commenced, and the skulls and bones were built up along the wall. From the main entrance to the catacombs, which is near the Barriers d'Enfer, a flight of ninety steps descends, at whose foot galleries are seen branching in various directions. Some yards distant is a vestibule of octagonal form, which opens into a long gallery lined with bones from floor to roof. The arm, leg, and thigh bones are in front, closely and regularly piled, and their uniformity is relieved by three rows of skulls at equal distances. This gallery con- ducts to several rooms resembling chapels, lined with bones, variously arranged. One is called the " Tomb of the Revolution," an- other the "Tomb of Victims" the latter containing the relics of those who perished in the early period of the Revolution and in the " massacre of September." It is estimated that the remains of fully 3,000,000 human beings lie in this receptacle. Owing to the unsafe condition of the roof, admission to the catacombs has been forbidden for years. Of the other catacombs in existence, the most celebrated are those on the Via Appia, at a short distance from Rome, where, it is believed, the early Christians were in the habit of retir- ing in order to celebrate their new worship in times of persecution. These catacombs con- sist of long, narrow galleries, usually about RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 499 eight feet high and five feet wide, which twist and turn in all directions, very much resem- bling mines, and at irregular intervals into wide and lofty vaulted chambers. The graves, where are buried many of the saints and mar- tyrs of the primitive church, were constructed by hollowing out a portion of the rock at the side of the gallery large enough to contain the body. The catacombs at Naples, cut into the Capo di Monte, resemble those at Rome, and evidently were used for the same purpose, being in many parts literally covered with Christian symbols. In one cf the large vaulted chambers there are paintings which have re- tained a freshness which is wonderful. Simi- lar catacombs have been found at Palermo and Syracuse, and in Greece, Asia Minor, Syria, Persia, Egypt, and in Peru and other parts of South America. Apocrypha, The. In the earliest churches the word Apocrypha was applied with very different significations to a variety of writ- ings ; sometimes it was given those whose authorship and original form were unknown ; sometimes to writings containing a hidden meaning ; sometimes to those whose public use was not thought advisable. In this last signification it has been customary, since the time of Jerome, to apply the term to a number of writings which the Septuagint had circulated among the Christians, and which were some- times considered as an appendage to the Old Testament, and sometimes as a portion of it. At the Council of Laodicea, 360 A. D., the Greek Church rejected all books except those in the present Protestant canon. In 474 Pope Gelasius convened a council of seventy bishops, which confirmed the opinion of Pope Innocent I., recognizing the Apocryphal books as sacred, and rejecting some of the doubtful books of the New Testament. The Council of Trent, 1545- '63, finally settled the question for the Roman Catholic Church, accepting the Apocry- pha as a part of the sacred canon. The Prot- testant churches reject their use in public worship. It was customary at onetime to bind up the Apocrypha between the authorized versions of the Old and New Testaments, though this has now ceased, and, as a conse- quence, this curious, interesting, and instruct- ive part of Jewish literature is now known only to scholars. Inquisition, The, was a tribunal in the Roman Catholic Church for the discovery, re- pression, and punishment of heresy, unbelief, and other offenses against religion. From the very first establishment of Christianity as the religion of the Roman empire, laws more or less severe existed, as in most of the ancient religions, for the repression and punishment of dissent from the national creed, and the Em- perors Theodosius and Justinian appointed of- ficials called "inquisitors," whose special duty it was to discover and to prosecute before the civil tribunals offenders of this class. For several centuries cases of heresy were tried be- fore the ordinary courts, but in course of time the examination of those accused of this crime was handed over to the bishops. Special ma- chinery for the trial and punishment of here- tics was first devised in the eleventh and twelfth centuries against the various sects who had separated from the Church, and who became known under the general term of Albigenses. Heresy was then regarded as a crime against the state as well as the Church, and the civil, no less than the ecclesiastical, authorities were arrayed against those sects. The murder of a papal legate in 1205 gave a pretext for declar- ing against the Albigenses a war in which thou- sands perished, and in 1299 the Council of Toulouse decreed the " Inquisition " for their extermination. The searching out of here- tics was first given to the bishops of the Church, but the Pope (Gregory IX.), fearing that these would not be active enough, trans- ferred their work to the Dominican friars. A guild was also formed called the " Militia of Jesus Christ," whose object was to aid in- quisitors in their work. The Church found the heretics, examined, and sentenced them, and then called in the civil authority to put its sentence into execution. The inquisitorial courts at first only held occasional sessions, but after 1248 they sat permanently. A person, if suspected of heresy or denounced as guilty, was liable to be arrested and detained in prison, only to be brought to trial when it might seem fit to his judges. The proceedings were conducted secretly. He was not confronted with his accusers, nor were their names, even, made known to him. The evidence of an ac- complice was admissible, and the accused him- self was liable to be put to torture, in order to extort a confession of guilt. The punish- ments to which, if found guilty, he was liable, ! were death by fire, as exemplified in the ter- rible auto-da-fe\ or on the scaffold, imprison- ment in the galleys for life or for a limited period, forfeiture of property, civil infamy, and in minor cases retraction and public pen- ance. Inquisition, Spanish. The Inquisition ' was introduced in Spain in 1232, by Pope Gregory's appointment of the Dominicans of Aragon as inquisitors, and it ultimately came 1 to be viewed by the people with most ab- ject terror. At first it passed no sentence more severe than the confiscation of property, . but toward the close of the fifteenth century, 500 THE CENTURY TOOK OF FACTS. the zeal of Mendoza, the archbishop of Seville, gave a new impulse to the institution. At that time there was a real or pretended alarm lest the Jews and Moors in Spain should unite against the Christians. Bishop Mendoza pro- posed to King Ferdinand, in 1477, that an inquisition should be established in Castile, with the primary object of searching out the Jews who had relapsed into Judaism after having professed Christianity, or who simply feigned conversion. The Inquisitorial Court of Seville was established in September. 1480, in the person of two Dominican friars. Tor- quemada, another Dominican, appointed in 1483, was Grand Inquisitor for fifteen years. Under him three new tribunals of the Holy Office were erected at Cordova, Jaen, and Villa Real ; afterwards a fifth was added to Toledo. These Tribunals were always popular with the lower orders and the clergy in Spain, but ter- rible in the eyes of the nobles and the rich middle class, who believed that tbay were often used by the Government as engines of political repression in order to diminish their influence. Ranke calls the Spanish Inquisi- tion " a royal tribunal furnished with spiritual weapons." In 1492 an edict ffas issued for the banishment of all Jews refusing to em- brace Christianity from -Spain, chiefly on account of their alleged incorrigible obstinacy in persisting in the attempt to convert Chris- tians to their own faith and instruct them in their rites. About a hundred thousand accord- ingly went into banishment. The history of the Spanish Inquisition was written by Llorente, who was secretary to the tribunal of Madrid from 1790 to 1792. Al- though he is supposed to have possessed great opportunities for obtaining exact information, his estimate of the persons condemned to death is now considered very much exaggerated. The figures of Llorente include not only those condemned for heresy, but besides persons charged with many other crimes, such as polygamy, seduction, unnatural crime, smug- gling, witchcraft, sorcery, imposture, etc., civil offenses within the jurisdiction of the Inquisition and punishable with death. The celebrated Autos-da-Fe (Acts of the con- fession of the faith"), says Mohler, " were as a rule bloodless. But few inquisitional processes terminated with the death of the accused." The Auto, speaking generally, was a form of reconciling culprits to the Church. Neverthe- less the severities practiced by the tribunals were such that Rome frequently interfered. By the beginning of the seventeenth century, the Inquisition, having largely obliterated heresy in Spain, became more lenient ; its efforts were then principally directed against heretical books, and occasionally decreed an execution. The jurisdiction of the Inquisition had been greatly restricted when Joseph Bonaparte abolished itin December, 1808. It was restored by Ferdinand VII. in 1814, but was again abolished by the Constitution of the Cortes in 1820. After the second restoration a tribunal was re-established at Valencia in 1826. It was finally abolished, however, in 1834, and in 1835 all its property was confiscated for the public debt. Celibacy in the Roman Catholic Church. Previous to the close of the fourth century there was no law nor uniformity of opinion regarding the celibacy of the Romish priests. About this time, however, Pope Siri- cius forbade priests to marry, and those who had married previous to ordination were com- manded to put away their wives. Children born to a clergyman after ordination were de- clared by the Emperor Justinian to be illegiti- mate and incapable of inheritance. This doctrine was opposed by the Eastern Church, and in 692 it 'was condemned as heretical by the Council of Constantinople, and the mar- riage of priests has, therefore, always been sanctioned by the Orthodox Greek Church. Notwithstanding the action taken by the Romish Church, it was several centuries be- fore celibacy was firmly established, and this I was not accomplished until Pope Gregory VII., in the face of violent opposition in all coun- tries, deposed all married priests and excom- municated all laymen who upheld them in the exercise of their spiritual functions. This decree was carried out with the utmost rigor, and brought about the result which the Church had been aiming at for centuries, and which still continues to be the canonical law. Indulgences. Originally, indulgences meant a release from the temporal penalties which remained due after the sin itself had been remitted by confession and absolution, and were granted during the first centuries of the Christian churches, not only by the pope, but by all bishops, to infirm persons or to those penitents who showed extraordinary con- trition. An indulgence cannot be granted for unforgiven sin. It is not the remission of sin nor of the eternal punishment due to mortal sin, still less is it a permission to commit sin in the future. Before an indulgence can be gained, sin must have been previously remitted by repent- i ance. Thus, instead of being an encouragement J to sin , it is a strong motive to repentance. Many indulgences have been abrogated, or declared apocryphal by the Roman Catholic Church. The Council of Trent prohibited the " disrepu- table gains" made at some places at the expense of those who desired to obtain indul- RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 501 gences. The same council prescribes that all indulgences must be granted " gratia." Cambridge, University of, is situated at the town of Cambridge, forty-eight miles northeast of London. The first regular society of students was that of Peter-House, founded j in 1257. The history of the University, how- ever, may be said to date from the opening of | the twelfth century, but until the year men- > tioned there were no public halls or hostels, each student living in his own hired lodging. About 1257 the students began to live together in hostels, under the rule of a principal. These hostels were named after the saints to whom they were dedicated, the churches which they adjoined, or the persons who formerly built or possessed them. In the year 1280 there were as many as thirty-four, and some of them contained from twenty to forty masters of arts, ! and a proportionate number of younger stu- | dents. These hostels were the beginning of j what may be called the college system, which distinguishes the sister universities of Oxford ' and Cambridge from those of Edinburgh, J London, and the Continent. All the royal j and religious foundations, with one exception, | which now constitute the University were en- dowed between the latter part of the thirteenth and the close of the sixteenth century. The governing body of the university is the senate ; but, before being submitted to it, all university I laws must be approved by the council, a body j elected by the resident members of the senate. After the chancellor and high steward, the chief executive power is vested in the vice- chancellor, who is elected annually from the heads of colleges. There are three terms in this university the Michaelmas, or October term; the Lent term, and the Easter term. To take an ordinary B.A. degree, a student must reside nine terms. The M.A. degree follows, without examination, about four years after. There are four classes of students Fellow Commoners andXoblemen, Pensioners, Sizars and Subsizars, and the more distin- guished, who are elected Scholars on the foun- dation of this college. The pensioners are the great body of students, are not on the founda- tion, and pay for their own commons, viz., dinners in halls, etc., and for their rooms. The sizars are poorer students, selected, how- ever, by examination, who receive free com- mons and certain money payments, and are admitted at lower charges than the pensioners, but wear the same dress and are no longer sub- ject to the performance of menial offices, as they once were. The scholars are elected, by examination, from the pensioners and sizars. They are on the foundation of the college, from which they receive certain emoluments. The fellows are subsequently elected from the schol- ars and the students who have distinguished themselves in the Tripos examinations. The University has forty professors, in addition to readers, demonstrators, and assistants. The tutor of the college is understood to be in loco parentis to his pupils, the dean has the over- sight of ' ' religion and morals, ' ' and instruction is given by college lecturers. The great prizes at the University are the Fellowships, of which there are about four hundred. The follow- ing is a list of the colleges and their founders : St. Peter's College or Peter-House, founded by Hugh de Balsham, Bishop of Ely, 1257 ; Clare College, founded under the name of University Hall by Richard Baden in 1326, was burned in 1338, and rebuilt and endowed by Elizabeth, Countess of Clare ; Pembroke College, founded by the Countess of Pembroke, 1347 ; Gonville and Caius College, founded by Edward Gon- ville in 1348 ; Trinity Hall, founded by William Bateman, Bishop of Norwich, 1350; Corpus Christi or Benedict College, founded by the guilds of Corpus Christi and the Blessed Virgin, 1351 ; King's College, founded by Henry VI., 1441 ; Queens' College, founded by Margaret of Anjou, wife of Henry VI., 1446 ; St. Catherine's College or Hall, founded by Robert Wodelarke, provost of King's College, 1473 ; Jesus College, founded by John Alcock, Bishop of Ely, 1496 ; Christ College, founded by the Countess of Richmond, 1505 ; St. John's College, founded by the Countess of Rich- mond, 1511 ; Magdalene College, founded by Thomas, Baron Audley, of AValden, 1519 ; Trinity College, founded by Henry VIII., ; 1546 ; Emmanuel College, founded by Sir Walter Mildmay, 1584; Sidney Sussex College, founded by Lady Frances Sidney, 1598 ; Down- ing College, founded by Sir George Downing, ! 1800. Oxford University is one of the two ! greatest seat-of learning in Great Britain. It ; is situated at Oxford, fifty-two miles from t London, and comprises twenty colleges and six j halls the latter for the residence of students. I The colleges, their founders, and the dates thereof, are as follows : University College, founded by William of Durham, 1249 ; Bal- liol, by John Balliol and Devorgilla, his wife, \ between 1263 and 1268 ; Merton, by Walter j de Merton, Bishop of Rochester, at Maiden, in 1264, and removed to Oxford before 1274 ; J Exeter, by Walter de Stapleton, Bishop of i Exeter, 1314; Oriel, by Edward II., 1326; Queen's, by Robert Eglesfield, chaplain to Philippa, queen of Edward III., 1340; New, by William of Wykeham, Bishop of Winches- ter, 1386 ; Lincoln, by Richard Fleming, Bishop of Lincoln, 1427 ; All Souls', by Hnry 502 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Chichele, Archbishop of Canterbury, 1437 ; Magdalen, by William of Waynflete, Lord Chancellor, 1456 ; Brasenose, by William Smith, Bishop of Lincoln, 1509 ; Corpus Christi, by Richard Fox, Bishop of Winches- ter, 1516; Christ Church, by Henry VIII., 1546-'47 ; Trinity, by Sir Thomas Pope, 1554 ; St. John's, by Sir Thomas White, 1555 ; Jesus, by Queen Elizabeth, 1571 ; Wadham, j by Nicholas Wadham, 1613 ; Pembroke, by James I., at the expense of Thomas Tisdale and Richard Wrightwick, 1620 ; Worcester, by Sir Thomas Cookes, 1714 ; Keble as a me- morial to the Rev. John Keble, by public sub- scription, in 1870. Adam and Eve. To the Scriptural account of the creation and fall of Adam and Eve, the later Jewish writers in the Talmud have made many additions. According to then), the stature of Adam, when first created, | reached to the heavens, while the splendor of i his countenance surpassed that of the sun. The very angels stood in awe of him, and all creatures hastened to worship him. Then the Lord, in order to show the angels his power, caused a sleep to fall upon Adam, and removed a portion of every limb. He thus loft his vast stature, but remained perfect and complete. His first wife was Lilith, the mother of demons ; but she fled from him, and after- ward Eve was created for him. At the mar- riage of Adam and Eve angels were present, some playing on musical instruments, others serving up delicious viands, while the sun, moon, and stars danced together. The happi- ness of the human pair excited envy among the angels, and the seraph Sammael tempted them, and succeeded in leading them to their fall from innocence. According to the Koran, all the angels paid homage to Adam excepting Eblis, who, on account of his refusal, was ex- pelled from Paradise. To gratify his revenge, Eblis seduced Adam and Eve, and they were trjparated. Adam was penitent, and lived in * tent on the site of the Temple of Mecca, ^here he was instructed in the divine com- mandments by the Archangel Gabriel. After two hundred years of separation, he again found Eve on Mount Arafat. Celebrated Paintings. It is generally Agreed by art critics that Michael Angelo and Raphael stand at the head of the line of mas- ter painters. Conspicuous among the great paintings of the former are "The Last Judg- ment," " The Conversion of St. Paul," and " The Crucifixion of St. Peter " ; and among those of the latter, " The Dispute Concerning the Sacrament," the " Madonna di Foligno," and the " Madonna del Pisce, or Virgin of the Fish." "The Last Judgment" is a large fresco-painting, sixty feet high by thirty feet wide, occupying the wall opposite the entrance of the Sistine Chapel, in the Vatican Palace at Rome. Over three hundred figures are repre- sented in "the most violent attitudes and most admired disorder." " The Conversion of St. Paul " is another large fresco-painting in the Vatican. " The Crucifixion of Peter," also in the Vatican, is one of the last from the hands of Angelo. " The Dispute Concerning the Sacrament" is a fresco, representing, above, a convocation of the saints around the Almighty, the Saviour, and the Virgin, envel- oped in heavenly glory, while beneath the ceremony of the Consecration of the Sacra- ment is depicted. This is found in the Camera della Segnatura of the Vatican. " The Ma- donna di Foligno," in the Vatican gallery, derives its name from the city of Foligno, which is represented in the background. The " Madonna del Pisce," now in the gallery at Madrid, Spain, represents the Virgin and Child enthroned, with St. Jerome on one side, and on the other an archangel with the young Tobit, who carries a fish, from which circum- stance the name is derived. " The Madonna di San Sisto " is considered by many critics the best of Raphael's works. It is located in the gallery of Dresden, Germany, and represents the Madonna standing upon the clouds surrounded with glory, holding in her arms the eternal son. Saint Sixtus and Saint Barbara kneel at the sides. It was originally painted on wood, but has been transferred to canvas. The paint- ing of "The Last Supper," by Leonardo da Vinci, is recognized as one of the master- pieces. It was originally painted, by order of the Duke of Milan, on the walls of the refec- tory in the Dominican convent of the Madonna della Grazie. Rubens' paintings of the " De- scent from the Cross " and " Elevation of the Cross," at Antwerp, rank high as master- pieces. The " Adoration of the Trinity, "-by Albert Durer, at Vienna, and his two pictures containing life-size figures of Peter and John, Mark and Paul, presented to the Council of Nuremberg, Germany, are also very famous. The two pictures of Mary Magdalen are also among the most famous in the world "La Bussendi Magdalina, "by Corregio, now in the Dresden Gallery, and one by Guido Reni. Venus, Statues of. The Roman god- dess of love and beauty, subsequently identi- fied with the Greek Aphrodite, was a favorite subject of ancient sculptors. The most fa- mous specimen still existing is the Venus de Medici, executed by Cleomenes, the Athenian, about 200 B. C., and generally admitted to be the finest relic of ancient art. It was dug up in several pieces, either at the villa of Hadrian, RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 503 near Tivoli, or at the Portico of Octavia, in Rome, in the seventeenth century. After re- maining for some time" in the Medici Palace in Rome (whence its name) it was carried to Florence by Cosmo III., about 1680, where it is now preserved in the Uffizi Gallery. From the exquisite grace and symmetry of the fig- ure it has become a sort of standard of excel- lence for the female form. The beautiful Venus de Milo is so called because it was found on the Island of Milo, or Melos, in the Grecian Archipelago. It is now in the Louvre, at Paris. Of modern statues, that by Canova is the most famous. Buddhism. The religion known as Bud- dhism is one of the oldest existing religions, and traces its origin back to Siddharthaor Buddha, a Hindoo prince. In Hindustan, the land of its birth, it has now little hold, except among the Nepaulese and some other northern tribes, but it bears full sway in Ceylon and over the whole eastern peninsula. It divides the ad- herence of the Chinese with the system of Con- fucius. It prevails also in Japan and north of the Himalayas. It is the religion of Thibet, and of the Mongolian population of Central Asia. Its adherents are estimated at 340,000,- 000. According to the Buddhist belief, when i man dies he is immediately born again, or ippears in a new shape ; and that shape may, iccording to his merit or demerit, be any of the innumerable orders of being composing the Buddhist universe, from a clod to a divinity. If his demerit would not be sufficiently pun- ished by a degraded earthly existence in the lorm, for instance, of a woman or a slave, of a persecuted or a disgusting animal, of a plant, or even of a piece of inorganic matter he will be born in some one of the one hundred and thirty-six Buddhist hells situated in the interior of the earth. These places of punishment have a regular gradation in the intensity of the suffering and in the length of time the sufferers live, the least term of life being 10,000,000 years, the longest term being almost beyond the powers of even Indian notation to express. A meritorious life, on the other hand, secures the next birth either in an exalted and happy posi- tion on earth or as a blessed spirit, or even divinity, in one of the many heavens in which the least duration of life is about 10,000,000,- 000 years. But however long the life, whether of misery or bliss, it has an end, and at its close the individual must be born again, and may again be either happy or miserable. The Buddha himself is said to have gone through every conceivable form of existence on the earth, in the air and in the water, in hell and in heaven, and to Lave filled every condition in human life ; and a great part of th Buddhist legendary literature is taken up in narrating his exploits when he lived as an elephant, as a bird, as a stag, and so on. A second Buddhist doc- trine is embodied in the " Four Sublime Ver- ities." The first asserts that pain exists ; the second that the cause of pain is desire or at- tachment ; the third that pain can be ended by Nirvana ; and the fourth shows the way that i leads to Nirvana, from simple faith to complete ! regeneration. Theoretically this religion has no priests, nor clergy, nor public religious rites. Every man is his own priest and confessor, and the monks are ascetics only for their own ad- vancement in holy living ; but in fact Buddhist countries swarm with priests or religious teach- ers, so reputed. The central object in a Buddhist temple, corresponding to the altar in a Roman Catholic church, is an image of the Buddha, or a dagoba or shrine containing his relics. Here flowers, fruit, and incense are daily offered, and processions are made, with singing of hymns. Of the relics of the Buddha, the most famous are the teeth, that are pre- served with intense veneration in various places. The quantities of flowers used as offerings are prodigious. A royal devotee in Ceylon, in the fifteenth century, offered on one occasion 6,480,320 flowers at the shrine of the tooth, and at one temple it was provided that there should be offered " every day 100,000 flowers, and each day a different flower." Eden, Garden of. The question of tht locality of the Garden of Eden, or of the exact sense in which the Mosaic narrative is to be understood, is involved in inexplicable myi- tery. Josephus and several of the Fathers conceived that Eden was a term denoting the entire region between the Ganges and the Nile. Calvin, Huet, Bochart, and Wells have, with slight differences of detail, concluded in favor of Kornah, in Babylonia, not far from the Persian Gulf ; while Armenia, near the sources of the Tigris and Euphrates, and the region near Damascus, have been selected by other celebrated scholars. The modern German school of Biblical critics, convinced that the Hebrew account is traditional, and, in its present form, of very late composition, and impressed, beside, with the vast antiquity of the far East, have, almost without exception, sought the cradle of the human race in Bactria or Cashmere, or the region lying to the north of it, a part of which is to this day called Audyana, the Garden. The Mohammedans, it may also be mentioned, balieve Eden to have been in one of the seven heavens some say the moon and that the expulsion from Para- dise consisted in Adam being cast down upon the earth after the fall. The endeavor to pos- itively identify the river system of Eden with 504 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. altered the physical character of the region de- noted by the term Eden. This was Luther's notion, to which, however, it has been objected that the narrative in Genesis is so worded as to convey the idea that the countries and rivers spoken of were existing in the time of the his- torian. Besides, the science of geology has that it is hazardous to argue on the hypothesis of any extensive physical changes having taken place since the first appearance of man on the planet at least if that be dated only some six thousand years back. In all the theories which have been advanced regarding the loca- tion of Eden two things have not been explained by anyone ; these are the statement that the four rivers flow from one river, and the river Pison ' ' compasseth the whole land of Havilah. ' ' Until these are solved the location of the Gar- den of Eden will continue to remain a mystery. Diet of Worms was an assembly con- voked by Emperor Charles V., for the purpose anything known at present is useless. There ! emblem is Tien, or the visible firmament ; but is no river on the face of the globe of which ; this Shang-te, in the opinion of the most en- the Euphrates and Tigris (Hiddekel) are sep- lightened Chinese scholars, is nothing more arate "heads," as they are said to be in the than a verbal personification of "the ever- second chapter of Genesis; for. although the present Law and Order and Intelligence which Euphrates and Tigris now unite for a short j seem to breathe amid the wonderful activities space on their way to the Persian Gulf, yet j of physical creation, in the measured circuit until the time of Alexander the Great they j of the seasons, in the alternation of light and kept entirely distinct courses, and therefore it j darkness, in the ebb and flow of tides, and in has been assumed that the Deluge completely the harmonious and majestic revolutions of the heavenly bodies." Confucius lived about 550 B. C. He strove to direct the attention of men to the duties of social and political life, and Confucianism is epitomized in the follow- ing words of the great teacher: "I teach you nothing but what you might learn your- selves, viz., the observance of the three funda- thrown so much doubt on the universality of a j mental laws of relation between sovereign and deluge so late as the period assigned to Noah j subject, father and child, husband and wife, and the five capital virtues universal char- ity, impartial justice, conformity to ceremonies and established usages, rectitude of heart and mind, and pure sincerity." Confucianism appeals to " practical " men. It lauds the present world ; rather doubts, than otherwise, the existence of a future one ; and calls upon all to cultivate such virtues as are seemly in citizens industry, modesty, sobriety, gravity, decorum, and thoughtfulness. Millennium. The idea of the millen- nium, literally a thousand years' time, origi- nated proximatelyin the Messianic expectation of the Jews ; but more remotely, it has been of considering state affairs, and principally , conjectured, in the Zoroastrian doctrine of the the course to be pursued toward the Reforma- final triumph of Ormuzd over Ahriman, and tion and Martin Luther. It was composed of \ was connected by the Christians with the see- the princes and other leading representatives j ond coming of Christ. The notion of a golden of the several states of the German Empire. | age, preserved by the converts from heathen- Luther appeared before this august body, and j ism to Christianity, as well as the oppression his defense of himself and his followers ' and persecution to which they were long sub- against the charge of heresy was dignified and jected by the state authorities, were naturally eloquent, and compelled the admiration of the calculated to develop and strengthen such assembly and many of his former foes. He hopes. The chief basis of the millennium was allowed to leave the city under escort, and idea in Judaism, as well as in Christianity, at the instigation of his friend, the Elector of however, is the ardent hope for a visible Divine Saxony, who feared that he might be assassi- rule upon earth, and the identification of the nated if he continued in active life, he was Church with that of which it is merely a sym- taken to the Castle of Wartburg, where he bol. In the Mosaic account of creation we remained, virtually a prisoner, for about one find the primitive ground for making the vic- year. When his ad he rents had become numer- torious era of the Church last a thousand ous enough and strong enough for him to years. By a strictly literal interpretation of advocate his principles without fear of moles- the 4th verse of the 90th Psalm it was sup- tation, he was restored to liberty. posed that a day of God was arithmetically Confucianism 'is termed a religion, but equal to a thousand years ; hence the six days ;t ought rather to be regarded as a system of of creation were understood to indicate that -icial and political life, built upon a slight the earth would pass through 6,000 years of Mindation of philosophy. It contains no labor and suffering, to be followed by a sev- ace of a personal God. There are, indeed, enth day that is, 1,000 years of rest and , number of allusions to a certain heavenly happiness. In the book of Revelation this agency or power Shang-te whose outward | riew is presented. Still, the rabbinical tradi- RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 605 Mons differ widely among themselves as to the duration of the happy period During the civil and religious wars in France and England the belief in millenniamsm was prominent. The Fifth-monarchy men of Cromwell's time were millenarians of the most exaggerated and dangerous sort, and marked by extreme arrogance Their peculiar tenet was that the millennium had come and they were the saints who were to inherit the earth. Great eager- ness and not a little ingenuity have been ex- hibited by many persons in fixing a date for the commencement of the millennium. The celebrated theologian Johann Albrecht Ben gel asserted, from a study of the prophecies, that the millennium would begin in 1836. This date was long popular. Swedenborg held that the last judgment took place in 1757, and that the new Church, or "Church of the New Jerusalem," as his followers designate them- selves in other words, the millennium era then began. In America considerable agita- tion was excited by the preaching of one AVil- liam Miller, who fixed the second advent of Christ about 1843. Of late years the most noted millenarian was Dr. John Cummings of England, who originally placed the end of the present dispensation in 1866 or 1867 ; but as the time drew near withoivt any millennial symptoms, he was understood to have modified his views considerably, and came to the belief that the beginning of the millennium will not differ so much, after all, from the years im- mediately preceding it as people commonly suppose. Ecole Polyteclmique, a celebrated mil- itary academy of France, established in 1794 through the instrumentality of M. Lamblardie, director of the Ponts et Chaussees. The acad- emy was first called the Ecole Centrale des Travaux Publics; but in the following year, 1795, the name was changed to Ecole Poly- technique, and numerous alterations were made in its organization. It was dissolved in 1816, again in 1830, and again in 1832, on account of the impetuous way in which the scholars mixed themselves up with the political disturbances of those years ; but it was re- established on each occasion, after the restora- tion of tranquillity. Candidates are admitted by competitive examination, which takes place yearly. To be eligible as a candidate the youth must be French, and nTust be more than sixteen and less than twenty years of age before the first of January following ; but soldiers are admissible up to twenty-five, provided they can give proof of service in the regular army. The course of instruction lasts for two years, when graduates harve the privilege of choosing, from the various public services supplied from this school, the particular branch they wish to enter. The school was last reorganized by a decree of the 15th of April, 1873. Benedictines, as the order of monks were called who followed the rule of St. Benedict, are regarded as the main agents in the spread of Christianity, civilization, and learning in the west. At one time the order is said to have had as many as 37,000 monasteries, and counted among their branches the great Order of Clugny, founded about 910 ; the still greater Order of the Cistercians, founded in the follow- ing century , the congregations of Monte Cas- sino in 1408, of St. Vanne in 1600, and of St. Maur on the Loire in 1627. All the Benedic- tine houses in France were affiliated to this last congregation. Among the monks of St. Maur were many noted scholars, and the services they rendered to literature it would be difficult to overestimate. At the Revolution in 1792 the Benedictines were suppressed in France and their splendid conventual buildings were destroyed, but the order was revived later. Most of the richest abbeys and all the cathe- dral priories (excepting Carlisle) in England belonged to the Benedictines, and they had numerous monasteries in Scotland. The Ben- edictines gained great distinction in both Italy and Germany in the former as literati, jurists, and physicians, and in the latter as promoters of education and as the founders of mediaeval scholasticism. As early as 1354 this order could boast of having numbered among its followers 24 popes, 200 cardinals, 7,000 arch- bishops, 15, 000 bishops, 1,560 canonized saints, and 5,000 holy persons judged worthy of canonization, besides 20 empresses, 47 kings, above 50 queens, 20 sons of emperors, 48 sons of kings, 100 princesses, and an immense number of the nobility. In the fifteenth century the order had 15,107 monasteries, of which only 5,000 were left after the Reformation, and there are now not more than 800. They were com- monly styled the "Black Monks" from their dress, a long black gown with a cowl or hood of the same, and a scapulary. The rule of JSt. Benedict was much less severe than that which the eastern ascetics followed. Besides implicit obedience to their superiors, the Benedictines were to shun laughter, to hold no private property, to live sparely, to exercise hospi- tality, and, above all, to be industrious. ARCHITECTURE. Architecture, or the art of planning ind raising edifices, appears to have been among the earliest inventions. The first habitations of men were such as nature afforded, with but little labor on the part of the occupant, and sufficient to supply hia simple wants grot- 60 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. toes, huts, and tents. In early times, the country of Judea, which is mountainous and rocky, offered cavernous retreats to the in- habitants, who accordingly used them instead of artificial places <^f shelter. From various passages in scripture, it appears that these caves were often of great extent, for, in the sides of the mountain of Engedi, David and six hundred men concealed themselves. In the course of time, art was employed to fashion the rude cavernous retreats, and to excavate blocks by which rude buildings were compiled in more convenient situations. The progress of architecture, however, from its first dawn, differed in almost every different locality. Whatever rude structure the climate and materials of any untry obliged its early inhabitants to adop for their temporary shelter, the same structure, with all its prom- inent features, wag afterward kept up by their refined and opulent posterity. From the cause no mentioned the Egyp- tian style of building had its origin in the cavern and mound ; the Chinese architecture, with its pavilion roofs and pointed minaret, is molded from the Tartar tent ; the Grecian is de/ived from the wooden cabin ; and the Gothic from the bower of trees. It is evident that necessity as much as choice or chance led to the adoption of the different kinds of edi- fices. After mankind had learned to build houses, they commenced the erection of temples to their gods, and these they made still more splendid than private dwellings. Thus archi- tecture became a fine art, which was first dis- played on the temples, afterward on the habi- tations of princes and public buildings, and at last became a universal want in society. Traces of these eras of advancement in the art of erecting buildings are found in various quarters of the globe, especially in East- ern countries, where the remains of edifices are discovered of which fable and poetry can alone give any account. The most remark- able of these vestiges of a primitive architec- ture are certain pieces of masonry in the island of Sicily, as well as in some other places, called the works of the Cyclops, an ancient and fab- ulous race of giants, mentioned by Homer in his Odyssey. By whom these walls were ac- tually erected is unknown. Of the progressive steps from comparative rudeness to elegance of design, history affords no certain account, and we are often left to gather facts from merely casual notices. The most ancient nations known to us among whom architecture had made some progress were the Babylonians, whose most celebrated buildings were the temple of Belus, the palace and the hanging gardens of Semiramis ; the Assyrians, whose capital, Nineveh, was rich in splendid buildings ; the Phoenicians, whose cities, Sidon, Tyre, Aradus, and Sarepta, were adorned with equal magnificence ; the Israel- ites, whose temple was considered as a won- der of architecture ; the Syrians and the Phi- listines. No architectural monument of these nations has, however, been transmitted to us ; but we find subterraneous temples of the Hin- doos, hewn out of the solid rock, upon the islands Elephanta and Salsette, and in the mountains of Elora. These temples may be reckoned among the most stupendous ever ex- ecuted by man. The circuit of the excava- tions is about six miles. The temples are 100 feet high, 145 feet long, and 62 feet wide. They contain thousands of figures, appearing, from the style of their sculpture, to be of an- cient Hindoo origin. Everything about them, in fact, indicates the most persevering indus- try in executing one of the boldest plans. Egyptian Architecture. All the ar- chitectural remains of ancient times sink into insignificance when compared with those of Egypt. The obelisks, pyramids, temples, palaces, and other structures of this coun- try, are on the grandest scale, and such as could only have been perfected by a people considerably advanced in refinement. The elementary features of Egyptian architecture were chiefly as follows : 1. Their walls were of great thickness, and sloping on the outside. This feature is supposed to have been derived from the mud walls, mounds, and caverns of their ancestors. 2. The roofs and covered ways were flat, or without pediments, and com- posed of blocks of stone, reaching from one wall or column to another. The principle of the arch, although known to the Egyptians, was seldom if ever employed. 3. Their col- umns were numerous, close, short, and very large, being sometimes ten or twelve feet in diameter. They were generally without bases, and had a great variety of capitals, from a simple square block, ornamented with hiero- glyphics, or faces, to an elaborate composition of palm leaves, not unlike the Corinthian cap- ital. 4. They used a sort of concave entab- lature or cornice, composed of vertical flutings or leaves, and a winged globe in the center. 5. Pyramids, well known for their prodigious size, and obelisks, composed of a single stone, often exceeding seventy feet in height, are structures peculiarly Egyptian. 6. Statues of enormous size, sphinxes carved in stone, and sculptures in outline of fabulous deities and animals, with innumerable hieroglyphics, are the decorative objects which belong to thil style of architecture. RELIGION, EDUCATION, PINE ARTS. 507 The main character of Egyptian architecture is that of great strength with irregularity of taste. This is observable in the pillars of the temples, the parts on which the greatest share of skill has been lavished. The temple of Karnak is an example. In these columns we may notice that sturdi- ness is the prevailing characteristic. The de- sign has been the support of a great weight, and that without any particular regard to proportion or elegance, either as a whole or in parts. When assembled in rows or groups, the columns had an imposing effect, because, from their height andthickness, they filled the eye and induced the idea of placid and easy endurance. Grecian Architecture. From Egypt, the architectural art spread to Greece, where it passed from the gigantic to the chaste and elegant. The period in which it flourished in the greatest perfection was that of Pericles, about 440 before Christ, when some of the finest temples at Athens were erected. After this, it declined with other arts, and was carried to Rome, where, however, it never attained the same high character. Aided doubtless by the examples of Egyp- tian art, the Greeks gradually improved the style of architecture, and originated those dis- tinctions which are now called the " Orders of Architecture." By this phrase is understood certain modes of proportioning and decorat- ing the column and its entablature. They were in use during the best days of Greece and Rome, for a period of six or seven cen- turies. They were lost sight of in the dark ages, and again revived by the Italians at the time of the restoration of letters. The Greeks had three orders, called the Doric, Tonic, and Corinthian. These were adopted and modified by the Romans, who also added two others called the Tuscan and Composite. The Doric Order. This is the earliest of the Greek orders, and we see in it a noble simplicity on which subsequent orders were founded. The shaft of the Doric column had no base, ornamental or otherwise, but rose directly from the smooth pavement or stylobate. It had twenty flutings, which were superficial, and separated by angular edges. The perpendicular outline was nearly straight. The Doric capital was plain, being formed of a few annulets or rings, a Large echinus, and a flat stone at top called the abacus. The archi- trave was plain ; the frieze was intersected by oblong projections called triglyphs, divided into three parts by vertical furrows, and orna- mented beneath by guttse, or drops. The spaces between the triglyphs were called met- opes and commonly contained sculptures. To ] have a just idea of the Doric, therefore, we ! must go back to the pure Grecian era. The I finest examples are those of the temple of | Theseus and the Parthenon at Athens. The Parthenon, which is now a complete ruin, has formed a model in modern architecture. It was built by the architect Ictinus, during the administration of Pericles, and its decorative sculptures are supposed to have been executed under direction of Phidias. The platform or stylobate consists of three steps, the upper- most of which is 227 feet in length and 101 in breadth. The number of columns is eight in the portico of each front, and seventeen in each flank, besides which there is an inner row of six columns, at each end of the cell. The Ionic Order. In this order the shaft begins to lengthen, and to possess a degree of ornament, but still preserving a great degree of simplicity of outline. In the best examples, as in the Parthenon, the column was eight or nine diameters in height. It had a base often composed of a torus, a scotia, and a second torus, with intervening fillets. This is called the Attic base. Others were used in different parts of Greece. The capital of this order consisted of two parallel double scrolls, called volutes, occupying opposite sides, and supporting an abacus, which was nearly square, but molded at its edges. These volutes have been considered as copied from ringlets of hair, or perhaps from the horns of Jupiter Ammon. The Ionic entablature consisted of an archi- trave and frieze, which were continuous or un- broken, and a cornice of various successive moldings, at the lower part of which was often a row of dentils, or square teeth. The ex- amples at Athens of the Ionic order were the temple of Erectheus, and the temple on the Ilissus, both now destroyed. Modern imita- tions are common in public edifices. The Corinthian Order. This was the light- est and most highly decorated of the Grecian orders. The base of the column resembled that of the Ionic, but was more complicated. The shaft was often ten diameters in height, and was fluted like the Ionic. The capital was shaped like an inverted bell, and covered on the outside with two rows of leaves of the plant acanthus, above which were eight pairs of small volutes. Its abacus was molded and concave on its sides, and truncated at the corners, with a flower on the center of each side. The entablature of the Corinthian order resembled that of the Ionic, but was more complicated and ornamented, and had, under the cornice, a row of large oblong pro- jections, bearing a leaf or scroll on their nn- der side, and called modillions. No vestiges of ibis order are now found in the remains 509 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. of Corinth, and the most legitimate example at Athens is in the choragic monument of Lysicrates. The Corinthian order was much employed in the subsequent structures of Rome and its colonies. The finest Roman ex- ample of this order is that of three columns in the Cainpo Vaccina, at Rome, which arc commonly considered as the remains of the temple of Jupiter Stator. Caryatides. The Greeks sometimes de- parted so far from the strict use of the orders as to introduce statues, in the place of col- umns, to support the entablature. Statues of slaves, heroes, and gods appear to have been employed occasionally for this purpose. The principal specimen of this kind of architecture which remains is in a portico called Pandro- seura, attached to the temple of Erectheus at Athens, in which statues of Carian females, called Caryatides, are substituted for columns. Roman Architecture. Roman archi- tecture possessed no originality of any value ; it was founded on copies of the Greek models, and these were modified to suit circumstances and tastes. The number of orders was aug- mented by the addition of the Tuscan and Composite. Tuscan Order. This order is not unlike the Doric, and is chaste and elegant. The shaft had a simple base, ornamented with one torus, and an astragal below the capital. The proportions were seven diameters in height. Its entablature, somewhat like the Ionic, con- sisted of plain running surfaces. The Composite Order. Of this there were various kinds, differing less or more either in the ornaments of the column or in the entablature. The simplest of this hybrid or- der was that which combines parts and pro- portions of the Doric, the Ionic, and the Tuscan. The temples of the Romans sometimes re- sembled those of the Greeks, but often differed from them. The Pantheon, which is the most perfectly preserved temple of the Augustan age, is a circular building, lighted only from an aperture in the dome, and having a Corin- thian portico in front. The amphitheater differed from the theater, in being a com- pletely circular or rather elliptical building, filled on all sides with ascending seats for spectators, and leaving only the central space, called the arena, for the combatants and pub- lic shows. The Coliseum is a stupendous structure of this kind. The aqueducts were stone canals, supported on massive arcades, and conveying large streams of water for the supply of cifies. The triumphal arches were com- monly solid oblong structures ornamented wi .h sculptures, and open with lofty arches for pas- sengers below. The edifice of this kind most entire in the present day is the triumphal arch of Constantine, at Rome. The basilica of the Romans was a hall of justice, used also as an exchange or place of meeting for merchants. It was lined on the inside with colonnades of two stories, or with two tiers of columns, one over the other. The earliest Christian churches at Rome were some- times called basilic*, from their possessing an internal colonnade. The monumental pillars were towers in the shape of a column on a pedestal, bearing a statue on the summit, which was approached by a spiral staircase within. Sometimes, however, the column was solid. The thermae, or baths, were vast struc- tures, in which multitudes of people could bathe at once. They were supplied with warm and cold water and fitted up with numerous rooms for purposes of exercise and recreation. Italian Architecture. After the dis- memberment of the Roman empire, the arts degenerated so far that a custom became prev- alent of erecting new buildings with the frag- ments of old ones, which were dilapidated and torn down for the purpose. This gave rise to an irregular stylo of building, which contin- ued to be imitated, especially in Italy, during the dark ages. It consisted of Grecian and Roman details, combined under new forms, and piled up into structures wholly unlike the j unique originals. Hence the names Graeco- Gothic and Romanesque architecture have been given to it. After this came the Italian style, which was professedly a revival of the classic styles of Greece and Rome, but adapted to new manners and wants a kind of transi- tion from ancient to modern times. Its great master was Andrea Palladio, a Venetian (born 1518, died 1580). There are considerable variety and beauty in the foliate and other enrichments of an archi- tectural character in many structures in Italy, but very little ornament enters into the co- I'.mnar composition of Italian architecture. Friezes, instead of being sculptured, are swol- len ; the shafts of columns are very seldom fluted, and their capitals are generally poor iu the extreme ; moldings are indeed sometimes carved, but not often ; rustic masonry, ill- formed festoons, and gouty balustrades for the most part supply the place of chaste and classic ornaments. The Chinese Style The ancient Tar- tars and wandering shepherds of Asia appear if have lived from time immemorial in tents, a Kind of habitation adapted to their erratic life. The Chinese have made the tent the elementary feature of their architecture ; and of the?r style anyone may form an idea by in- RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 509 specting the figures which are depicted upon common china ware. Chinese roofs ai - e con- cave on the upper side, as if made of canvas instead of wood. A Chinese portico is not un- like the awnings spread over shop windows in summer time. The veranda, sometimes copied in dwelling houses, is a structure of this sort. The Chinese towers and pagodas have concave roofs, like awnings, projecting over their sev- eral stories. Such structures are built with wood or brick ; stone is seldom employed. The Saracenic, Moorish, and By- zantine Styles. The Arabs, or Saracens, as they are more usually called, and the Moors, introduced into Spain certain forms of archi- tecture which differed considerably from the Grecian in appearance, though founded on its remains in Asia and Africa. The chief peculiarity of this architecture was the form of the arch ; the Saracens are understood to have made it of greater depth than width, thus constituting more than half a circle or ellipse, and therefore unphilosoph- ical and comparatively insecure ; while the Moorish style was principally distinguished by arches in the form of a horseshoe or a crescent. We associate with these styles another, which arose at Constantinople, called the By- zantine, likewise formed on the remains of Grecian art, and partaking of a slightly East- ern character. It became known in Western Europe along with the Lombard, another de- generate Grecian style, about the ninth and tenth centuries. Saxon Style. This style commenced at the establishment of Christianity among the Saxons in the sixth century, and is called Saxon from its having prevailed during the reigns of the Saxon and Norman kings in England. Gothic or Pointed Style The term Gothic is a modern error, which, being now impossible to correct, is suffered to remain as the generally distinguishing appellation of the kind of architecture possessing pointed arches. This style originated in Germany about the middle of the thirteenth century, and was zealously pursued as the leading fashion for ecclesiastical structures all over Europe. Ex- ecuted by a class of skilled artisans, who wan- dered from country to country, the finest specimens of the pointed style are the cathe- drals of Strasburg, Cologne, and Antwerp, and the splendid abbeys of Melrose and West- minster. In this fanciful and picturesque style of architecture, the slender columns, always united in groups, rise to a lofty height, re- sembling the giants of the grove, in whose dark shade the ancient Teuton used to build his altar. In the obscure depth of the dome, the mind is awakened to solemn devotional feelings. When the circular arch totally disappeared in 1220, the early English style commenced. The windows of this style were at first very narrow in comparison with their height ; they were called lancet shaped, and were considered very elegant ; two or three were frequently seen together, connected by dripstones. In a short time, however, the windows became wider, and divisions and ornaments were in- troduced. Sometimes the same window was divided into several lights, and frequently finished at the top by a light in the form of a lozenge, circle, trefoil, or other ornament. About the year 1300, the architecture be- came more ornamental, and from this circum- stance received the name of the decorated English style, which is considered the most beautiful for ecclesiastical buildings. The transition from the decorated to the florid, or perpendicular, style was very grad- ual. Ornament after ornament was added, till simplicity disappeared beneath the extravagant additions ; and about the year 1380 the archi- tecture became so overloaded and profuse that it obtained the title of florid, which by some persons is called the perpendicular, because the lines of division run in upright or perpen- dicular lines from top to bottom, which is not the case in any other style. Norman, Tudor, and Modern Gothic. Throughout England may be seen many aged castles, some still in a state of good preservation, but the greater number in ruins, and occupying, with their picturesque remains, the summit of a rising ground or rocky preci- pice. These castles are of a style which pre- vailed during the feudal ages in Europe, and was brought to England by the Normans, who erected them as fastnesses, into which they might retire and oppress the country at pleasure. The feudal castles in England, like those on the Rhine, consisted for the most part of a single strong tower, or keep, the walls of which were from six to ten feet thick, and the windows only holes of one or two feet square, placed at irregular intervals. The several floors were built on arches, and the roof was flat or battlemented, with notches in the para- pet, from which the inhabitants or retainers of the chieftain might defend themselves with instruments of war. The accommodations for living were generally mean, and what would now be called uncomfortable. Around or in front of the main tower there was usually a courtyard, protected by a high wall, and the 510 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. arched entrance was carefully secured by a falling gate or portcullis. Outside, there was in many cases a regular wet ditch or fosse. Castles of greater magnitude consisted of two or more towers and inner buildings, including a chapel and offices for domestics, and stables for horses and other animals. Some of them were on a great scale, and possessed considera- ble grandeur of design. As society advanced and civil tranquillity was established, these military strengths grad- ually assumed a character of greater elegance and less the appearance of defense. The wet ditch disappeared, and was superseded by a lawn or shrubbery. Instead of the drawbridge and portcullis, there was a regular approach and gate of ordinary construction. The win- dows became larger, and were fitted with glass frames, and stone was abandoned for the greater comfort of wooden floors. Instead, also, of a bare region around, in which no foe might lurk, gardens were established, and a long avenue of trees led to the front of the mod- ernized mansion. In some instances the pep- per-box turrets at the upper corners of the building remained. Of the class of structures that sprang up in this period of transition, which we may refer in England to the fifteenth and sixteenth and in Scotland to the seven- teeth centuries, there are several highly inter- esting remains. These edifices of the nobility and gentry were no longer called castles ; they took the name of halls, and as such had attained so great a' pitch of magnificence in the reigns of Henry VIII. and Elizabeth, as to have subsequently given a name to a new style the Tudor or Elizabethan. Latterly, and with no very distinct reference to any particular period, this remarkable fashion of building has been pretty generally called the old Eng- lish style of architecture. One of the best existing specimens of the Tudor era of archi- tecture is Haddon Hall, in Derbyshire, the property of the Duke of Rutland. Modern British Architecture. Dur- ing the sixteenth century, an extraordinary effort was made in Italy to restore the purity of Grecian architecture ; and in this attempt Palladio was followed by the not less eminent Michael Angelo Buonaroti, who, at an ad- vanced age, in 1546, undertook the continua- tion of the building of St. Peter's at Rome, a work on which the greatest splendors of the Italian style are lavished. Into England, this revived taste for the Grecian was introduced at the beginning of the seventeenth century by Inigo Jones, to whose contemptuous observa- tions on the German or pointed style the term Gothic has been traced ; and after his decease, the Grecian, or more properly the Italianized Grecian, was perpetuated on a scale still more extensive by Sir Christopher Wren. The edifices erected by this great master are char- acterized by the finest taste, and his spires in particular are models of elegance. The great- est work of Wren was St. Paul's Cathedral in London, in which the Italian is seen in all its glory. The eighteenth century was an era of de- cline in architectural taste. Every other style merged in that of a spiritless and often mean Grseco-Italian, out of which the architects of the nineteenth century have apparently had a difficulty to emerge. Latterly, there has been a revival in England of a purer kind of Gre- cian, and also, as we have already said, of old English, and the Gothic or pointed style, and in most instances with good effect. It is only to be lamented that, by the manner in which state patronage is distributed in this branch of the fine arts, some of the largest and most ex- pensive structures Buckingham Palace and the National Gallery, for example have been erected on the poorest conceptions of the Gre- cian style, and with a general effect far from pleasing. In Paris there now exist some mod- ern structures after correct Grecian models, which cannot be too highly praised ; we would, in particular, instance the building called the Madeleine, the Bourse, and the interior of the church of St. Genevieve, which are exceed- ingly worthy of being visited by young and as- piring architects from Britain. Of the superb buildings springing up on all sides of this vast continent, it is unnecessary to speak. While those already in existence, notably in Wash- ington, are admirable copies of the great Greek and Roman periods, the so-called Queen Anne is now the especial craze. For palatial and other secular edifices in England, the Renaissance for the most part was in favor in the earlier part of this century. The attempt of Stuart and others in favor of Greek art had but little influence upon archi- tecture, while the effort of Scott and others, es- pecially Ruskin, to bias the public mind in the direction of the Gothic has succeeded far beyond all efforts of the same kind in other countries. In churches and educational institutions, it found especial favor, and, in 1836, it was de- cided that the legislative halls of the Empire should be rebuilt in this style, according to the plans of Sir Charles Barry. These contem- plated a Gothic, rich but not ornate, with square supporting towers at certain points, flanked, like the walls, with massive buttresses. The New Palace of Westminster, as it is called, covers eight acres and contains upwards of five hundred apartments clustered around eleven open quadrangles or courts. The edifice is of RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 511 gray limestone, and is not only one of the noblest structures of this century, but a most successful attempt to secularize this truly northern style of architecture. Architecture in the United States. During the Colonial period of the United States there was neither time nor opportunity for the practice of the fine arts. When the Revolution was over, however, Congress in spite of heavy debt proceeded to lay out a Na- tional Capital and erect national buildings. These latter were the first to receive serious architectural treatment, and until recently were, together with the state capitols, in what may be called a classic style, because they had porticoes with columns and other features of the ancient orders. The Capitol at Washington, the inception of which belongs to the last century, is iinques- tionably the grandest pile in that city, and probably the most monumental of United States buildings. Notwithstanding its con- ventionally classic style it is an edifice of which a great nation may be proud, majestic both within and without, and gaining in effect from its position on a commanding site. The corner stone of the Capitol was laid in 1793. It is of the Renaissance, and consists of two stories rising from a lofty rustic basement. The ground plan is a central pavilion with north and south wings. The principal facade is on the east side, where a portico of Corin- thian columns thirty feet in height fronts the pavilion, while pilasters of the same order re continued along the wings. The eight middle columns project so as to admit of an- other inner row, and these sixteen columns support a noble pediment adorned with a bas- relief. The subject is allegorical, Liberty at- tended by Hope and Justice, and is said to have been designed by John Quincy Adams. The approach to this imposing portico is by a flight of broad marble steps. The central portion of the edifice is, for the most part, oc- cupied by a circular apartment, measuring about one hundredfeet in diameter and height, and known as the Rotunda. It is ornamented with paintings and bas-reliefs illustrative of our national history. The paintings are sepa- rated from one another by gilded pilasters, which rise to the dome forming the roof. The dome compares well with those that are famous in the world, and, taken as a whole, the Capitol is more stately than the Houses of Parliament, and is open to as little criticism as the buildings of its class in other lands. Treasury and Patent Office Among the older government buildings may be cited the United States Treasury, a structure with four fronts. The building commonly known as the Patent Office, which has recently been sub- jected to considerable alteration, is also a four fronted building with a portico in the center of each of its sides, the principal consisting of two rows of eight columns. As Grecian structures these monumental piles are not un- worthy, but the incongruity between their ap- pearance and their purpose is manifest. Pension Bureau. The newer government structures at Washington have followed neither the Grecian nor the vernacular Palladian. The Pension Bureau is a large and severely symmetrical structure in the style of Bramante, having three stories of rectangular windows, a bold cornice and an attic in the center. The decorations are of terra cotta. The Congressional Library is of the Italian Renaissance order of architecture ; it has three stories with a dome ; and is in area 470 by 340 feet, covering nearly three and one half acres of ground, with four inner courts. The building is surmounted on all sides by a carved balustrade. The dome is finished in black copper with panels gilded with a thick coating of gold leaf. The cresting of the dome above the lantern terminates in a gilded finial rep- resenting the torch of Science ever burning. The general plan of the structure consists of a great central rotunda, from which radiate book stacks and which is inclosed in a paral- lelogram of galleries and pavilions. The building material employed for the exterior walls is white granite from New Hampshire, and for the inner courts Maryland granite and white enameled bricks. The interior is rich in choice marbles from Europe, Africa, and America. The entrance to the building is by massive stairways of the central pavilion, and through bronze doors to the central stair hall. This magnificent apartment is pronounced to be unsurpassed by any other entrance hall in the world. It is lined throughout with fine Italian marble highly polished. On the sides rise lofty rounded columns, with elaborate carved capitals of Corinthian design ; while the arches are adorned with marble rosettes, palm leaves, and foliated designs of exquisite finish and delicacy. The newel posts of the stairway are enriched by beautiful festoons of leaves and flowers, and are surmounted by two bronze lamp bearers. The staircases are ornamented with miniature marble figures by Martiny, carved in relief, representing in em- blematic sculpture the various arts and sciences. This beautiful and spacious entrance hall has been described as a "vision in polished stone," and taken in connection with the grand cor- ridors and rich decorations may be pronounced the finest marble interior in America. The fivrequ of Printing and Engraving is in 512 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. red and brown brick, round arched, and with- out the orders, and may, perhaps, be called Romanesque. Other specimens of Washing- tpn architecture worthy of mention are the new Corcoran Art Gallery, the Smithsonian Institution, and the War, State, and Navy building. Besides the buildings of the Greek style erected in Washington, others, not only by tl;e government but by banking corporations, commercial houses, etc., have been erected in various parts of the country. The two best of these are probably the Sub-Treasury building at New York and Girard College at Philadel- phia. Both are of white marble, and the latter modeled, as to the exterior, after the Parthe- non, that is so far as possible, while employ- ing a different order of architecture. It is considered the Greek building par excellence of America, as the Madeleine is of France, and is a Corinthian peristyle resting upon a Grecian stylobate. Its monolithic colonnade is quite imposing, but as a whole it fails to excite in the beholder much of that emotion which is awakened by the Grecian edifice. Cold and unimpressive, it seems rather like some rare exotic a thing to be gazed and wondered at rather than enjoyed. This is no doubt attrib- utable in part to its position, for while the Greek temple always crowned some lofty height, or some jutting spur, this edifice is built in the middle of a broad, flat plain, with- out any relief from the blue sky or jagged mountain side. Several of the state capitols illustrate pleas- ing styles of architecture. The state house at Newport is a perfectly symmetrical brick and stone structure, commenced in 1738. It has rectangular windows with quoins, a balcony over the entrance, above the balcony a broken pedi- ment, and over this a truncated gable.. Over all rises a low octagonal turret. The old state house at Boston is of the same period ; it is a very plain structure, with a wide entrance and curious end gables. Independence Hall and the White House belong to the same period. The State Capitol at Albany, as originally de- signed, was an immense rectangular Renais- sance block, in which an order was given to each story, much after the style practiced at Venice by Sansovino and San Micheli, and was crowned by a domical tower of grand propor- tions. The design was improved by Richard- son, and the upper portions of the edifice were completed according to it. There is great beauty in the newer portion, but it cannot be said that there is congruity. The towers are Ro- manesque, while the cornice of the order below is changed to Gothic. Parts of the interior, as the Hall of Assembly, the work of Eidlitz, are Gothic of the most beautiful kind vaulted mediaeval halls enshrined in a classical exterior. The Capitol at- Hartford, Connecticut, al- though it has a dome like many other capitols, is far from being an ordinary structure, and may be reckoned one of the finest public build- ings in the United States. The style is Gothic, and the regular fagade is broken into a center, curtains, and wings. The center has two low towers in every way subordinate to the tall tambour and dome which rise behind them. This cupola crown tower is decidedly Gothic in the sentiment of its details. The City Hall, Philadelphia, is among the largest of modern buildings, slightly exceeding the Capitol at Washington in area Seldom has a better opportunity been afforded for ar- chitectonic display than is given by its posi- tion at the junction of two of the principal streets of the city. It occupies what was once Penn Square and thus stands free all around. This immense structure is conceived in the style of the Louvre at Paris with central and angle pavilions, the whole surmounted ly a mansard roof of great height. Each front is a symmetrical whole, and, with the exception of the slight difference in length, the fronts are alike. The central feature is a gigantic tower which rises upward of 537 feet above the pavement. This tower was designed to be the loftiest in the world, but in this respect has already been surpassed by the Washing- ton Monument at the National Capital. The magnificence of this edifice consists in its im- posing dimensions, the rich array of marble and polished granite, and the beautiful sculp- ture which adorns its facades and entrance halls. In our largest cities we find many church edifices both completed and in process of erection which are worthy of attention for their architecture as well as the solidity and beauty of material employed. Most of these are of the Gothic style. Trim'/ 1/ Church in New York, completed in 1 846, was the first stone edifice after the Gothic, in America. It is most nearly allied to the early English, and the architect deserves the gratitude of all lovers of the beautiful, for giv- ing his countrymen so elegant and chaste a model. Grace Church in the same city, built of gran- ite, is of a more ornate style and presents nearly all the peculiar features of the Gothic, although in small dimensions. St. Patrick's Cathedral, fronting on Central Park, affords us the best specimen of the Gothic as it prevailed in Europe in the fourteenth cen- tury. The style is commonly known asthe Dec- orated or Geometric Gothic. Trinity Church, RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS, 513 Boston, a Romanesque or Byzantine structure, is the work of Richardson. The original design was improved in 1886, and, as now completed, furnishes perhaps the noblest church edifice in the United States. The Cathedral of St. John the Divine, New York, which gives promise of great architec- tural beauty, is in the modified Romanesque style of architecture. The Temple Emmanuel in New York city has a most ornate and symmetrical exterior, with two towers and an arcade in the center, and although the effect is pretty and fanciful rather than grand, it ranks among the finest of the religious edifices of that city. The Rodef Shalom synagogue, Philadelphia, has an ef- fective facade, and is Gothic in sentiment notwithstanding its Moorish forms. The Syn- agogue Emmanuel in San Francisco is pecul- iar among synagogues from the fact that the windows are filled with Gothic tracery and its walls and towers set with Gothicized but- tresses. Memorial Hall of Harvard University is built of brick banded in the Lombard style with buff tiles bearing geometric designs in blue. The central tower rises above the Memorial Hall while smaller towers, all of the English Gothic, flank its walls. The Art Museum at Cincinnati, in the Ro- manesque style, has two ranges of rectangular twin windows, and the plain walls of the up- permost story are unrelieved save by blind arches. The central hall is the most striking feature of the interior. The walls are of lo- cal blue limestone, with cornices and arches of Missouri granite ; the roof is of red Akron pantiles. The eastern wing has a fine polyg- onal apse with nine pairs of windows and a tall tower on the line of the entrance front. The Museum of Fine Arts at Boston, com- menced in 1871, is one of the first buildings in the United States upon which terracotta made in England from the architect's drawing has been extensively used. This structure may be called Italian Gothic; upon the ground floor it has arched openings in groups sepa- rated by buttresses, while above these large panels, some of them filled with sculptures, mask the picture gallery. The entrance is through a pair of arches. The Masonic Temple of Philadelphia is a very imposing and massive building. It dominated Penn Square until the City Hall arose be- side it. It is built of gray granite, and the exterior is round arched and may be called Romanesque, but does not strictly conform to the Norman phase of that style. Harvard College, time honored in this country, though it would be young in the old world, marks in its various structures all the phases through which American architecture has passed. Its finest buildings are un- doubtedly its most modern ones. These are the Memorial Hall, the Gymnasium, the Law School andSeaver Hall, the last three of which are the work of Richardson. The University of Pennsylvania comprises a group of Gothic structures built of green ser- pentine, with dressings of Ohio stone. There is little ornament, but the grouping is effective and the general effect satisfactory. Recent buildings have been added of a very pleasing style and admirably express their purpose. Stone Hall, Wellesley College, is a fine struc- ture and what may be called Free Classic, but in its stepped gables and in the lines of its cen- tral pavilion approaches Flemish Renaissance. The entrance is well accentuated, contrasting admirably with the curtain-walls which inter- vene between it and the tower-like blocks which mark the intersection of the center with its wings. The Art School at Yale is a species of Gothic, but is of heavy outline, and its tower is without sufficient prominence. Most of the newer Yale buildings are in this style, including the Pea- body Museum, which is perhaps the best. Princeton has a good Gothic dormitory, and the Lecture Hall of the theological seminary, with its groups of cusped windows, is effective. The buildings of the Chicago University and Leland Stanford, Jr., University exhibit unique and pleasing styles. Some of the best specimens of architecture in America, in addition to those already no- ticed, are the City Hall of San Francisco, Alle- gheny Court House of Pittsburg, the Boston Public Library, Ridgway Library of Philadel- phia, the Libraries at Burlington, Vt., and Woburn, Massachusetts, the Metropolitan Opera House, New York city, the Casino of the same city, Memorial Hall in Fairmount Park, Ponce de Leon Hotel at St. Augustine, Auditorium Theater, Chicago, the Century and Metropolitan Clubs, New York, the Carne- gie Library at Pittsburg. the Pennsylvania Railroad Station at Philadelphia, South Termi- nal Station, Boston, and the National Academy of Design, New York city ; though many more might be mentioned of varying degrees of merit. Alexandrian Codex is an important manuscript of the Sacred Scriptures written in Greek. It is written on parchment, in finely- formed uncial letters, and is without accents, marks of aspiration, or spaces between the words. Its probable date is the latter half of the sixth century. With the exception of a few gaps, it contains the whole Bible in Greek, along with the Epistles of Clemens 514 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Romauus. This celebrated manuscript, which is now in the British Museum, belonged, as early as 1098, to the library of the Patriarch of Alexandria. In 1628 it was sent as a present to Charles I. of England, by Cyrillus Lucaris, Patriarch of Constantinople, who de- clared that he got it from Egypt ; and that it was written there appears from internal and external evidence. Alexandrian Library contained in the time of Cleopatra about 700,000 volumes or rolls, and was founded at the suggestion of Demetrius Phalereus, a fugitive from Athens in the reign of Ptolemy Soter. The greater portion of this remarkable collection was de- stroyed during the Alexandrine war. This loss, however, was repaired by Mark Antony, who presented to Cleopatra the library taken at the siege of Pergamos. From this time until about the year 391 A. D., the library in- creased in size and reputation, and contained treasures of learning in all known tongues. At the burning of the Temple of Jupiter Ser- apis by the Christians under Theodosius the Great, about that year a portion of the library was destroyed, and when the Arabs, under Caliph Omar, took the city in 640 A. D., the destruction of the remainder was completed. Egyptian Labyrinth was situated at Crocodilopolis, near Lake Moeris, in the vicin- ity of the present pyramid of Biakhmu. It was built of polished stone, with many cham- bers and passages, said to be vaulted, having a peristyle court with 3,000 chambers, half of which were under the earth and the others above ground, which formed another story. The upper chambers were decorated with re- liefs ; the lower were plain, and contained, according to tradition, the bodies of the twelve founders of the building and the mumnaies of the sacred crocodiles, conferring 011 the build- ing the character of a mausoleum, probably conjoined with a temple that of Sebak, the crocodile god. The Labyrinth stood in the midst of a great square. Part was constructed of Parian marble and of Syenitic granite ; it had a staircase of ninety steps, and columns of porphyry, and the opening of the doors echoed like the reverberation of thunder. There is great difference of opinion among authors as to the name of the king under whom this remarkable work was constructed and the pur- pose for which it was intended, and it is prob- able that it was not built in a single reign. According to some ancient authorities it was supposed to have been inhabited fay the Dodic- archy, or twelve kings, who conjointly ruled Egypt before Psammetichus I. ; while others claim it to have been the place of assembly of the governors of nomes, or districts twelve in number, according to Herodotus ; sixteen, according to Pliny ; and twenty-seven, accord- ing to Strabo. The Labyrinth was extant in the time of Pliny, A. D. 78, and was then, according to that author, 3,600 years old. The ruins of the foundations or lower cham- bers have been found at the modern village of Howara, in Fayoom. The next labyrinth in renown to the Egyptian was the Labyrinth of Crete, supposed to have been built by Daedalus for the Cretan monarch, Minos, in which the Minotaur was confined by his orders. The third of the labyrinths of antiquity was the Samian, constructed by Theodorus and artists of his school, in the age of Polycrates, 540 B. C., supposed to be a work of nature embel- lished by art, having 150 columns erected by a clever mechanical contrivance. Other infe- rior labyrinths existed at Nauplia,at Sipontum in Italy, at Val d'Ispica in Sicily, and else- where. Councils of Nice. The first Council of Nice was held in the Emperor Constantine's palace, June 19, A. D. 325, and was attended by 318 bishops of the Catholic Church, and resulted in the adoption of the Nicene Creed, expounding the faith of the Church. August 17, A. D., 786, the second Council of Nice was convened by order of the Empress Irene and her son Constantine, at which there were 376 bishops present. This council was held for the purpose of establishing the use of images in the churches, which had been interdicted by the Emperor Leo and his son Constantine, but was dissolved owing to the tumults raised by the party in opposition. It was reconvened Sep- tember 24, A. D. 787, when the use of images was restored. Islam, or, as it is called, Eslam, is the proper name of the Mohammedan religion. The word is Arabic, and means " Submission to God," or, according to some authorities, " Salvation." Islam, it is held, was once the religion of all men ; and every child, it is be- lieved, is born in Islam, or the true faith, and would continue in it till the end were it not for the wickedness of its parents, " who misguide it early and lead it astray toMagism, Judaism, or Christianity." Whether wickedness and idolatry came into the world after the murder of Abel, or at the time of Noah, or only after Amru Ibn Lohai, one of the first and greatest idolaters of Arabia, are moot-points among Moslem theologians. Albigenses. About the beginning of the thirteenth century various sects of heretics abounded in the south of France, and to these wag applied the name Albigenses. The name arose from the circumstance that the district of Albigeois in Languedoc now in the de- RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 515 partment of Tarn, of which Albi is the capi- tal- was the first point against which the crusade of Pope Innocent III., 1209, was directed. The immediate pretense of the cru- sade was the murder of the papal legate and inquisitor, Peter of Castelnau, who had been commissioned to extirpate heresy in the domin- ions of Count Raymond VI. of Toulouse ; but its real object was to deprive the count of his lands, as he had become an object of hatred from his toleration of the heretics. It was in vain that he had submitted to the most humil- iating penance and flagellation from the hands of the legate, Milo, and had purchased the papal absolution by great sacrifices. The ex- pedition took by storm Beziers, the capital of Raymond's nephew Roger, and massacred 20,000 of the inhabitants, Catholics as well as heretics. Simon, Count of Mont-fort, who con- ducted the crusade under the legates, proceeded in the same relentless way with other places in the territories of Raymond and his allies. The conquered lands were given to Simon de Mont- fort, and by him were eventually ceded to Louis VIII. Raymond VI. and Raymond VII. disputed the possession of the land by the king, and after thousands had perished on both sides, a peace was concluded in 1229, at which Raymond VII. purchased relief from the ban of the church by immense sums of money, gave up Narbonne and several lordships to Louis IX., and had to make his son-in-law, the brother of Louis, heir of his other possessions. The her- etics were handed over to the proselyting zeal of the Order of Dominicans and the bloody tribunals of the Inquisition, and both used their utmost power to bring the recusant Albi- genses to the stake. From the middle of the thirteenth century the name of the Albigenses gradually disappears. Juggernaut. The temple in the town of Juggernaut, one of the chief places of pilgrimage in India, contains an idol of the Hindoo god, called Jaggernaut or Juggernaut, a corruption of the Sanskritword Jagannatha,i. e.,lordofthe world. The legend regarding the building of the town, the erection of the temple, and the forma- tion of the idol is as follows : A king, desirous of founding a city, sent a learned Brahmin to pitch upon a proper spot. The Brahmin, after a long search, arrived upon the banks of the sea, and there saw a crow diving into the water, and, having washed its body, making obeisance to the sea. Understanding the lan- guage of birds, he learned from the crow that if he remained there a short time he would comprehend the wonders of this land. The king, apprised of this occurrence, built on the spot where the crow had appeared a large city and a place of worship. The Rajah one night heard in a dream a voice saying : " On a cer- tain day cast, thine eyes on the seashore, when there will arise out of the water a piece of wood 52 inches long and l cubits broad ; this is the true form of the Deity ; take it up and keep it hidden in thine house seven days ; and in whatever shape it shall then appear, place it in the temple and worship it." It happened just as the Rajah had dreamed, and the image, called by him Jagannatha, became the object of worship of all ranks of people, and per- formed many miracles. The car-festival, when Jagannatha is dragged in his car on a yearly visit to his country quarters, is currently believed to be the occasion of numerous cases of self-immolation, the frantic devotees com- mitting suicide by throwing themselves before the wheels of the heavy car. This has been proved, however, upon good authority, to be untrue. Children' s Crusade . In the summer of 1212 two immense armies of children were gathered at Cologne, in Germany, and at Ven- dome, in France, summoned thither by two boy prophets, Stephen of Cloys (France) and Nicholas of Cologne (Germany), both about twelve years of age. These boy prophets be- lieved or pretended to believe, that they were in- spired by heaven, and the crusade which they preached was not a crusade of blood against the Saracens, but a crusade of prayer. The children were to march to the sea, which would open, as it once did for the Israelites, to per- mit them to pass over into Palestine dry shod. There they were to convert the leaders of Is- lam and baptize the heathen. The excite- ment aroused by this preaching spread so among the children that within short intervals of each other two unarmed hosts of German children, drawn from all classes, and nearly all under twelve years of age, left Cologne to march over the sea to the Holy Land. The first was led by the famous Nicholas, and the second by a boy whose name is not known. Their combined numbers are believed to have been 40,000. At about the same time an army of French children to the number of about 30,000 left Vendome under Stephen. The mortality among the German children in their passage across the Alps was frightful. Nearly 30,000 succumbed to exposure, fatigue, and hunger. Of the French army, 10,000 died before it reached Marseilles. The army under Nicholas was broken up at Genoa when it was found that the sea did not open to let them pass, and some of the children were returned to their homes by the humane Genoese ; but others pressed on to Pisa and obtained pas- sage by ship to the Holy Land. A part of the children under the unknown leader wr 516 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. shipped to Palestine from Brindisi, and about 5, 000 of the French children were .shipped from Marseilles, and all who survived the voyages were sold as slaves to the Turks. Of the 70,- ( 000 children who joined this crusade, it is probable that less than 20,000 were ever heard of afterward by their parents. Latter-Day Saints, or Mormons, were founded by Joseph Smith, the son of a Ver- ! mont farmer, who claimed to have received from the hands of an angel of the Lord certain plates, on which were engraved God's revela- tion to the New World. This was the famous Book of Mormon, believed by the followers of Smith to be of equal authority with the Jewish and Christian scriptures, and to form an indis- pensable supplement to them . It was published in 1830, with the names of Oliver Cowdery, ! Martin Harris, and David Whitmer appended to a statement that an angel of God had come ] down from heaven and shown them the original | plates. Eight other witnesses testified that they had been shown the plates by Smith. I These, however, are the only persons who have been so privileged. The first Mormon \ settlement was at Manchester, N. Y., in 1830, but the following year Smith and his followers i moved to Kirtland, Ohio. Their missionaries were full of zeal, converts were made in great numbers, and churches were established in Ohio, Pennsylvania, Indiana, Illinois, and Missouri. Toward the close of 1838, the whole body of Saints, about 15,000, took refuge in Illinois at a place which they called Nauvoo, or the City of Beauty. Here, for a space of years, the Mormons lived in quietness, gather- ing to themselves many new converts; but, ultimately, the doctrine of "sealing wives" aroused the wrath of the neighborhood, and Smith and his brother Hiram were thrown into prison at Carthage, where, on June 27, 1844, they were shot by a mob who broke into the jail. Previous to this event, however, the main body of the Mormons had removed to Salt Lake City, Utah, and upon Smith's death Brigham Young was chosen to succeed him. The points of the belief of the Mormon Church have been somewhat altered since first received from Joseph Smith, that teacher having taught, for instance, the dogma of a Trinity, while modern Mormonism holds that there is a dual- ity of persons in the Godhead, the Holy Ghost being merely a spiritual soul. They also teach that God has parts resembling the body of man, and not materially differing from him in size. They deny the doctrine that "all men sinned in Adam," but accept the atone- ment through Christ for sins committed by men. They hold that the ordinances of the gospel are: (1) Faith in Christ; (2) Re- pentance ; (S') Baptism by immersion for remission of sins ; (4) Laying on of hands for the gift of the Holy Ghost. They believe that a man is called to preach by " prophecy and the laying on of hands," and claim to have the same organization in respect to teachers that the primitive church held. They further hold a twofold priesthood, which they call the Melchizedek and the Aaronic, and they believe in a "baptism for the dead " ; that is, that a living person may save a dead friend by being immersed for him, unless he has committed the unpardonable sin. They believe that the gift of tongues, revelations, visions, etc., is still granted to men, and that many things are still to be revealed concerning the kingdom of God. They further believe in the literal gather- ing of the tribes of Israel and in the restoration of the Ten Tribes ; that Zion will be built upon this continent ; that Christ will reign per- sonally upon this earth, and that the earth will be renewed and receive its paradisal glory. The doctrine of polygamy was not a part of the original revelation of Mormonism, but was introduced later, and came to be not simply tolerated, but enjoined as a positive duty, a man's rank in heaven being alleged to be largely dependent on the number of his chil- dren. Children are taken into the church at the age of eight years ; never before. Leaning Tower of Pisa. This cele- I brated and beautiful bell-tower is situated in ! the city of Pisa, Italy, and was built during the twelfth century by the German architect William of Innspruck. It is cylindrical in shape, 50 feet in diameter, 180 feet high, and leans about 14 feet out of the perpendicular. It is entirely of white marble, and consists of seven stories, divided by rows of columns. The top, which is surmounted by a flat roof and an open gallery, commanding a splendid view of the surrounding country, is reached by 300 steps. The tower was not originally in- tended to lean, but the foundation settled more on one side than on the other until it reached the present inclination, which it has maintained with scarcely any perceptible in- crease for hundreds of years. The upper part of the structure was built in a manner to counteract in part the inclination ; and the grand chime of bells, seven in number, of which the largest alone weighs 12,000 pounds, is mounted with reference to counteract this fault still further. Ark of the Covenant. Previous to the destruction of the Temple of Solomon by the Babylonians the Ark of the Covenant was contained therein, but what became of it after that time is unknown. It is believed by some to have been taken away or destroyed by RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 617 Nebuchadnezzar, while certain of the Jews be- lieve that it was concealed from the spoilers, and account it among the hidden things which will be revealed by the Messiah. That the old Ark was not contained in the second Temple all Jewish writers agree ; and the absence of the Ark is one of the important particulars in which this Temple was held to be inferior to that of Solomon. It is held by some writers, however, that the Jews could not properly carry on their worship without an Ark, hence that a new one must have been made and placed in the Temple if the original Ark was not recovered. The silence of Ezra, Nehemiah, the Maccabees, and Josephus, who repeatedly mention all the other sacred utensils but never name the Ark, would, nevertheless, seem con- clusive on this subject. Mount Ararat. The mountains of Ararat, referred to in the Scriptures, overlook the plain of Araxes in Armenia, and are divided into two peaks, Great Ararat and Lit- tle Ararat. The summit of the former is 17,- 323 feet above the level of the sea, and of the latter 13,000 feet. It is believed that the rest- ing place of the Ark was upon some lower portion of this range rather than upon the peaks, and in support of this view is the fact that at an elevation of 6,000 or 7,000 feet the climate is temperate, the harvests are quick to mature and abundant; while the peaks, for more than 3,000 feet below their summits, are continuously covered with ice and snow. Obelisks. The word is from the Greek, and signifies a prismatic monument of stone or other material terminating in a pyramidal or pointed top. They are found principally in Egypt, and date back to the most remote pe- riods of antiquity. They were placed before the gateways of the principal temples, and correspond in Egyptian art to the columns of . the Romans and stelae of the Greeks, and ap- pear to have been erected to record the honors or triumphs of the monarchs. They are also called " monoliths," being cut out of a sin- gle piece of stone, and have four faces, broader at the base than at the top, the width at the base being one tenth the height of the shaft to the beginning of the pyramidion, or cap, which is also one tenth of the same height. The i sides are generally sculptured with one verti- j calline of deeply cut hieroglyphs and repiesen- j tatious. Some of them were origin ally capped , with bronze or gold. Their height varied from a few inches to upward of one hundred feet, the tallest known being that of Karnuk, which rises to 105 feet 7 inches. A number of them were removed to Rome by Augustus and later emperors, and they were afterwards transported to various cities of Italy and France I and used to adorn squares and public parks. | Among the most notable of these relics of an- | cient art are the two known as Cleopatra's j Needles, which, from the inscriptions on them, j appear to have been set up at the entrance of ! the Temple of the Sun, in Heliopolis, Egypt, j by Thothmes III., about 1831 B. C. Twocen- ! turies after their erection the stones were nearly | covered with carvings, setting out the greatness and achievements of Rameses II. Twenty- three years before the Christian era they were moved from Heliopolis to Alexandria by Au- gustus Caesar and set up in the Caesarium, a palace which now stands, a mere mass of ruins, near the station of the railroad to Cairo. In 1819 the Egyptian Government presented one of them to England, but it was not taken to London until 1878. The other was trans- ported to New York in 1880, it having been presented to the United States, and was raised on its pedestal in Central Park, New York, January 22, 1881. The material of these, and indeed of most of the obelisks, is granite brought from Syene, near the first cataract of the Nile. They were cut at the quarry, and floated into and down the Nile during one of the an- nual overflows. Lake School. Toward the close of the last century the poets Wordsworth, Coleridge, and Southey took up their residence in the Lake district of Cumberland and AA r estmore- land, in England, for the purpose, as they said, of seeking the sources of poetical inspira- tion in the simplicity of nature, rather than in the works of their predecessors and the fash- ions of the time. On this account they were given the name of the Lake School by the Edinburgh Review Kissing the Book. The custom of swearing on the Bible comes from the ancient Jews, who at first touched their phylacteries small cases containing strips of parchment inscribed with texts from the Old Testament in taking oaths, and later laid their hands upon the Book of the Law ; and the various customs of taking oaths in different countries have all a similar origin. The early Anglo- Saxons regarded stones as sacred to their gods, therefore laid their hands on a pillar of stone. In mediaeval times it was customary to touch a relic, and this was regarded as giving the oath more sacredness than when sworn upon the missal, or prayer book. Another custom of the same times was swearing by churches. A certain number were mentioned, and the attestor was obliged to go to each one, take the ring of the church door in his hand* and repeat his oath. The custom of kissing the cross to attest an oath has been observed in Russia from very early times, and has extended 518 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. into other countries. According to the laws of the Order of the Garter in the time of Henry VIII., Knights Templars were required in taking oath to touch the book and kiss the cross. Since the Reformation the taking of oaths by kissing the Bible has not been per- mitted in Scotland. In other portions of Great Britain it is the common method. French Renaissance. " Renaissance " is the name given to the style of art, espe- cially architecture, in Europe which succeeded the Gothic and preceded the rigid copyism of the classic revival in the first half of the pres- ent century. It is also used to denote the time during which this style of art prevailed, and also to include the development of the Euro- pean races in other lines as well as art. The name signifies the " new birth." The date of the beginning of this period coincides with that of the fall of the Byzantine Empire, and the latter was no doubt the cause of the former ; for when the Turks took possession of Con- stantinople all the memorials, paintings, books, etc., that could be removed from the destroy- ing hand of the invaders were hastily conveyed to Italy. These inspired just admiration among the Italian people, and aroused not only a desire to emulate the construction of such worthy works, but also an interest in ancient works and models. In 1494 Charles VIII., King of France, made a warlike expedition into Italy, and on his return brought some Italian workmen to supervise the construction of the royal buildings. This was the first in- troduction of the renaissance into France. Communication between France and Italy was also stimulated by this expedition, and the growth of Italian ideas among the French was steady, though slow. In the reign of Louis XII., 1498-1515, the work was further stimu- lated by the founding of a school of architec- ture under an artist from Verona. But it was und^r Francis I., 1515-'47, that the new growth was most stimulated and aided. This prince was possessed both of learning and in- tellectual power. He had a sincere love for literature, science, and art, and a keen appre- ciation of the beautiful in these departments. He invited a number of Italian artists to his court. Among the most famous of these were Leonardo da Vinci and Benvenuto Cellini. These and others introduced Italian details in their designs, which native architects applied to old forms, with which they were familiar : so that the French renaissance was similar to that of Italy, but different from it in many important respects. All lines of art felt the ren aissance spirit ; and not merely architecture, painting, and sculpture, but also music, poetry, and literature were stimulated. The minor plastic and decorative arts, engraving, work- ing in wood and metals, pottery, tapestry, etc., were cultivated with eagerness and skill. The study of the classics also received a new im- pulse, and this era had, in France, some of the greatest scholars of the times. Historical writers usually consider the renaissance period as one of the most important influences in has- tening the growth of individuality and the work of the Reformation, and in ushering in the progress that has marked the modern his- tory of the world. In Germany, Russia, and every country in Europe, the renaissance pre- vailed in a manner similar to that above de- scribed. Lollards, or Liollhards, acquired their name from their practice of singing dirges at funerals the Low German word lullen, or lollen, signifying to sing softly or slowly. The Lollards were a semi-monastic society formed in Antwerp about the year 1300, the members of which devoted themselves to the care of the sick and the dead . They were also called , from their | frugal life and the poverty of their appearance, Matemans; also, from their patron saint, j Brethren of St. Alexius; and on account of their dwelling in cells, Fratres CeUitce. In the frequent pestilences of that period, the Lollards were useful and everywhere welcome, and the order spread through the Netherlands and Germany. Owing to the fact that they were persecuted and reproached with heresy by the clergy and begging-friars, their name was after- ward very commonly given to different classes of religionists ; and in England it became a designation of the followers of Wy cliff e. French Academy, The, had its origin in a literary coterie which held meetings in Paris during the time of Louis XIV., and its purpose and unity were given to it by Cardinal Richelieu. His object was to have a fixed standard of grammar and rhetoric given to the language, believing that this would tend to the unification and peace of France. The duties which were imposed upon the members of the Academy were " to purify and fix the national tongue, to throw light upon its oV>scurities, to maintain its character and principles, and at their private meetings to keep this object in view. Their discussions were to turn on grammar, rhetoric, and poetry ; their critical observations on the beauties and defects of classical French authors, in order to prepare editions of their works, and to compose a new dictionary of the French lan- guage." The original Academy was swept away in 1793, and the present Academy pre- serves but little of its original character of a mere coterie of grammarians. This present Academy came into existence with the restora- RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 519 4 on of the Bourbons. It meets at the Palace Mazarin, Paris. Its chief officer is its secre- tary, who has a life tenure of his position. He receives a salary of 12,000 francs a year, the society being allowed by the Government 85,000 francs a year for the payment of its officers and the care of its library. The Acad- emy is always to consist of forty members, all vacancies being filled by the votes of those already composing the body. To belong to it is regarded as a high honor, the members be- ing spoken of as "the forty immortals." Majolica Ware was first manufactured in the island of Majolica, and from thence the art was taken to Italy, where, during the four- teenth and fifteenth centuries, it was carried on to a considerable extent. A factory for manufacturing this ware was established in Fayence, France, in the latter century, and the name faience was substituted for that of majolica. About 1530, plates and other ware were manufactured in Italy, decorated with subjects derived from the compositions of Raphael and Marc Antonio, and painted iu gay and brilliant colors. The establishment was abandoned in 1574, but pieces of majolica continued to be fabricated in various cities of Italy till the eighteenth century. During the decadence of the art of making enameled pot- tery in Italy, it flourished greatly in France at the famous Palissy pottery works at Paris and the factories at Nevers and Rouen, where it was manufactured till the end of the seventeenth century. The Boxers are a Chinese secret society, partly religious and partly patriotic. The Chinese name of the society is YirHo-Chuan, meaning in English, "righteousness, harmony, and < fists ' " ; the derived name < ' boxers ' ' has evidently been applied because of the athletic aspect the society first assumed. It was first organized in groups which began gymnastic exercises in the Chinese villages, and drilling as a military organization was quickly developed, with broadswords for arms. On account of the swords the boxers have also been known as the "Big Knives." They first made themselves felt in Shan-Tung province, where the Ger- mans secured the lease of Kiao-Chou bay, and large railroad and mineral rights. Each band, it is said, is governed by a " demonized ' ' leader, who, by the selection of an epileptic patient, or, by the aid of hypnotism, causes a medium to display wild and unnatural symp- toms, or to utter wild and strange speech, this serving as a basis for the claim of the society to spiritual power. Every boxer is assured of immunity from death or physical injury. The assault upon Christianity by the boxers was particularly directed against native converts, but later developed into a general anti-foreign crusade. Though revolutionary in their meth- ods they profess fealty to the reigning dynasty, and devotion to the ancient religion, while attacking the foreign influences which they believe to be undermining the ancient institu- tions and nationality of China. Libraries, Foreigfn. First among the libraries of Great Britain, and second to few, if any, on the continent, is that of the Brit- ish Museum. It contains about 1,300,000 printed volumes, besides rare and extensive collections of manuscripts, maps, prints, and drawings. Next in rank is the Bodleyan or Bodleian Library at Oxford, which contains 300,000 volumes in addition to 20,000 to 30,000 in manuscript. The third and fourth places are occupied by the Public or University Library of Cambridge, and the Library of the Faculty of Advocates at Edinburgh, which are nearly on a par as regards extent and value, containing not less than 265,000 volumes each. The Library of Trinity College, Dublin, with about 192,000 volumes, is the largest and most valu- able in Ireland. These five libraries have long been, and still are, entitled by statute to a free copy of every book published in the empire. The great National Library of France La Bibliotheque du Roi, as it used to be called, La Bibliotheque Rationale, as it is called at present is one of the largest and most valuable col- lections of books and manuscripts in the world. The number of printed volumes contained in it is estimated at nearly 2,500,000, and of manuscripts at about 150,000. Among libra- ries of the second class in Paris, the Arsenal Library with 300,000 volumes, the Library of Ste. Genevieve with 200,000, and the Mazarine Library with 160,000, are the chief. In It- aly the Library of the Vatican at Rome stands pre-eminent. The number of printed vol- umes is only about 200,000, but the manu- script collection is the finest in the world. The Casanata Library, also at Rome, is said to contain 120,000 volumes ; the Ambrosian Li- brary at Milan, 140,000 volumes; the Mag- liabechi Library at Florence, 200,000 volumes ; the Royal Library at Naples, 200,000 volumes ; the Library of St. Mark's at Venice, 120,000 volumes and 10,000 manuscripts. The Lau- rentian Library at Florence consists almost en- tirely of manuscripts. The principal libraries of Spain are the Biblioteca Nacional at Mad- rid, numbering nearly 430,000 volumes, and the Library of the Escorial, which contains numerous manuscript volumes, treasures of Arabic literature. The Imperial Library at Vienna is a noble collection .of not fewer than 400,000 volumes, of which 15,000 are of the class called incunabula, or books printed before 520 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. the year 1500. The Royal Library at Munich contains 900,000 volumes, including 13,000 incunabula, and 22,000 manuscripts. The Royal Library at Dresden is a collection of 500,000 volumes, among which are included some of the scarcest specimens of early print- ing, among others the Mainz Psalter of 1457, the first book printed with a date. The Royal Library of Berlin contains about 700,000 vol- umes of printed books, and 15,000 volumes of manuscripts. Of the other libraries in Ger- many, that of the University of Gottingen con- tains upward of 500,000 volumes, the Ducal Library of Wolfenbuttel about 270,000 vol- umes, and the University Library at Stras : burg over 513,000 books and manuscripts. In Holland, the principal library is the Royal Library at the Hague, containing about 200,- 000 printed volumes. The Royal Library at Copenhagen contains nearly 550,000 volumes. The largest library in Sweden is that of the University of Upsala, consisting of nearly 200,- 000 volumes. One of its chief treasures is the famous manuscript of the Gothic Gospels of Ulfilas, commonly known as the Codex Ar- genteus. The number of volumes in the Impe- rial Library of St. Petersburg, Russia, is esti- mated to be at least 900,000, in addition to 35,000 manuscripts. Church of England. Up to the time of the Reformation, ecclesiastical affairs would be more properly described as the history of the Church in England, as from that period the Church of England dates her existence. From the eighth to the sixteenth century the English Church was subject to Rome ; but for the last two hundred years the seed sown by Wycliffe had been bearing fruit and preparing the people for a final separation, the immedi- ate occasion for which was found in the royal caprice of Henry VIII. From 1066 to 1356 there was a constant struggle between the civil and ecclesiastical powers. Then came Wyc- liffe 's translation of the Bible into English and his continued war against some of the leading doctrines of the Romish Church, which led to the formation of a new sect called Lol- lards (See LOLLARDS), holding views similar to those of the present Church. Despite per- secutions, the new doctrines spread and had many adherents. The Reformation is ordi- narily assigned to the reign of Henry VIII., the two most important acts being passed in 1532 and 1534 ; but the main feature of these acts was the declaration of the independence of the Church in England and the supremacy of the king over that Church. They had cast off the bondage of Rome, but in doctrine the churches were still in accord ; and it was not until thirty years afterward 1563, in the reign of Queen Elizabeth that the Thirty- Nine Articles of Faith were finally reviewed and adopted, and the Protestant Church of England finally and fully established. In 1801, by the " Act of Union," the Episcopal churches in England and Ireland were united ; but the latter church was disestablished and disendowed in 1869. The Episcopal Church in Scotland is not, politically speaking, in union with that of England ; but an Act of Parliament, passed in 1864, has taken away many restrictions imposed on Scottish Episco- palians after the battle of Culloden, and clergy ordained by Scotch bishops may now, under some slight restrictions, be presented to benefices in England. Christian Association, Young Men's. Associations of young men for Christian work have existed in Great Britain and Ire- land, for upward of two centuries, and also in Germany and Switzerland. In 1710 it is re- corded that Cotton Mather addressed kindred societies in New England, which were known as " Young Men Associated." In 1849, the societies which had been established in Ger- many, took a wider scope, and from these as- sociations grew the German associations of the present day. The English Young Men's Chris- tian Association commenced in a meeting of clerks organized by George Williams in a mer- cantile establishment in London in 1844. The example of the British metropolis was speedily followed by the various cities of Great Britain founding associations, and in December, 1851, America caught the enthusiasm of the move- ment, and formed an association in Montreal, modeled after the one in London. Then Bos- ton undertook the formation of one for itself, and their growth and influence since that time have been simply wonderful. They now flour- ish in every Protestant Christian country ; and in almost every place where a colony of Christians are gathered, these associations are to be found. Blind, Education of The. The main end to be sought in the education of the blind is to fit them to compete in as many ways as possible with the more fortunate who can see, and take them out of their despondency and give them a worthy object to accomplish in life. The first institution for the blind was founded in Memmingen by Weef VI. in 1178, the second in Paris by Louis IX. in 1260, and the first for the employment of the adult blind in Edinburgh by Dr. Johnston in 1793. The work in a school for the blind is about equal to the ordinary high school course. Pupils are classified as in other schools ; but persons who become blind at the age of twenty, for instance, must begin with the alphabet, as little children RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 521 do. Writing is taught by tracing with a pencil letters sunk into a stiff card. This manner of writing can be read by seeing persons only. The point systems Braille's and Waite's are generally used by blind persons to com- municate with each other. In the Illinois In- stitution for the Blind the use of the type- writer is being taught, and it is said that some excellent work has already been done by the pupils. In the study of music the notes are read to the pupil, who writes them down in the Braille or Waite systems, and then studies them at the instrument until they are memo- rized. In most schools books in raised print are used. The first book of this character was printed in Paris in 1784 by M. Valentine Haiiy. Gnostic, a word sometimes confounded with agnostic, and employed in a loose and gen- eral way to designate a freethinker. Correctly speaking, gnosticism is the term applied to various forms of philosophical speculation which sprang up in the early history of the Church. They were generally regarded as heretical, but the term itself means simply knowledge, and does not contain any idea of antagonism to Judaism or Christianity. There were three main schools, or centers, of gnostic speculation : the Syrian of Antioch ; the Alex-, andrian of Egypt, and that of Asia Minor, rep- resented by Marcion of Pontus. Gnosticism represents the first efforts to construe! a, philo- sophical system of faith, and the main ques- tions with which it concerned itself were the same which in all ages have agitated inquiry and baffled speculation the origin of life and origin of evil, how life sprang from an infinite source, how a world so Imperfect as this could proceed from a supremely perfect God. All of the schools agreed in the exist- ene of an infinitely Supreme Buing, their dif- fe^ences arising in their various speculations to account for the passage from the higher spiritual world to this lower material one. In the Alexandrian thought, evil is but degen- erated good. The Syrian school assumed the existence of two living, active, independent principles, good and evil. The former system embraced Judaism as a divine institution, although inferior and defective in its manifes- tation of the divine character ; the latter re- jected it as being wholly the work of the Spirit of Darkness. The anti-Judaical spirit was de- veloped to the extreme in Marcion and his followers. The gnostics accepted Christ, but in different and modified lights. According to the Alexandrian school, he is a higher Divine Being, proceeding from the Spiritual Kingdom for the redemption of this lower ma- terial kingdom ; but however superior, he is yet allied to the lower angels and the Demiur- gos, who is an inferior manifestation of Deity partaking of the Divine nature, the in- termediary between the Infinite Spirit and the material world, and the immediate creator and governor of this world. The Syrian school, on the other hand, regarded Christ as a being totally distinct from the Demiurgos, who was in their system not the representative and organ of the Supreme Spirit, but a rival Spirit of Darkness ; and hence, in coming into this lower world, he was invading the realms of the powers of darkness, in order to seek out and rescue any higher spiritual natures who were living here under the power of the Evil One. Gnosticism has been well termed an extraordi- nary conglomeration of Monotheism, Panthe- ism, Spiritualism, and Materialism. It was vague, confused, and irrational for the most part, and yet its influence in the world was not altogether bad. It compelled Christian teach- ers to face the great problems of which it at- tempted the solution in so many fantastic forms. It expanded the horizon of controversy within as without the Church, and made the early fathers feel that it was by the weapons of rea- son and not of authority that they must win the triumph of Catholic Christianity. It may be said t'o have laid the foundations of Chris- tian science ; and Antioch and Alexandria, the centers of half-pagan and half-Christian specu- lation, became the first centers of rational Christian theology. The several schools began to decline after the middle of the third cen- tury. Their doctrines were revived several times by certain sects in the middle ages, but have had no considerable body of adherents since the thirteenth century. Hades. The word " hades " is from the Greek. Its etymology is somewhat doubtful, but it is generally believed to have come from the verb eidein, meaning to see, and the nega- tive particle a. Hence it may mean what is out of sight, the invisible, or, where nothing can be seen, the place of darkness. In Homer the name is applied to Pluto, the lord of the lower regions, perhaps because he was the deity who had the power of making mortals invisible. The Greeks, however, gave up the latter application of the word, and when the Greek Scriptures were written the word was always used to designate the place of departed spirits. It was the common receptacle of departed spirits, the good as well as the bad, and was divided into two parts the one an Elysium of bliss for the good, the other a Tartarus of punishment and grief for the wicked, and its locality was supposed to be underground in the mud regions of the earth. In the very early stages of Grecian history no 522 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. complete theory of punishments or rewards in hades had found its way into the popular creed. The prevalent belief was merely that the souls of the departed with the exception of a few who had personally offended against the gods were occupied in the lower world in the un- real or shadowy performance of the same ac- tions that had employed them when in the region of day. The poets and dramatists introduced the accessories of tribunals, trials of the dead, a paradise for the good, and place i of torture for the bad. The modes of punish- ment imagined were ingenious, such as that of Ixion, who was bound to an ever-revolving wheel ; that of Sisyphus, who was set to roll a huge stone up a steep hill, a toil never ending and still beginning, for as soon as it reached the summit it rolled back again to the plain ; or that of Tantalus, who was placed up to his chin in the water, but was unable to quench his thirst, as the water constantly slipped away from him as he raised it to his lips. Over his head .also hung a branch loaded with fruit, but, as he stretched forth his hand to grasp it, it sprang from him toward the clouds. It is plain that these punishments had their origin in the imagination of poets rather than of priests or religious teachers. Illiteracy of Various Nations. In Russia, Servia, Roumania, and Bulgaria over 80 per cent, of the population are illiterate, Spain 63 per cent., Italy 48 per cent., Hun- gary 43 per cent., Austria 39 per cent., Ireland 21 per cent., France and Belgium 15 per cent., Holland 10 per cent., United States (whites) 8 per cent., Scotland 7 per cent., Switzerland 2.5 per cent., some parts of Germany 1 per cent. In Sweden, Denmark, and Bavaria, Wurtemberg and Saxony, only rarely a person cannot write. Hanging Gardens of Babylon. The Hanging Gardens of Babylon, so celebrated among the Greeks, contained a square of four plethra that is, 400 feet on every side and were carried up aloft into the air in the man- ner of several large terraces, one above an- other, till the height equaled that of the walls of the city. The ascent was from terrace to terrace by stairs ten feet wide. The whole pile was sustained by vast arches, raised upon other arches, one upon another, and strength- ened by a wall, surrounding it on every side, of twenty-two feet thickness. On the top of the arches were first laid large flat stones, sixteen feet long and four broad ; over these was a layer of reeds, mixed with a quantity of bitumen, upon which were two rows of bricks, closely cemented together with plaster. The whole was covered with thick sheets of lead, upon which lay the mold of the garden ; and all this flooring was -contrived to keep the moisture of the mold from running away through the arches. The mold, or earth, laid thereon was so deep that the greatest trees might take root in it ; and with such the ter- races were covered, as well as with all other plants and flowers that were proper for a gar- den of pleasure. In the upper terrace there was an engine or kind of pump by which water was drawn up out of the river, and from thence the whole garden was watered. In the spaces between the several arches, upon which the whole structure rested, were large amd magnif- icent apartments that were very light, and had the advantage of an exceedingly beautiful prospect. Pan, the chief Grecian god of pastures, forests, and flocks. He was, according to the most common belief, a son of Hermes by a daughter of Dryops, or by Penelope, the wife of Ulysses ; while other accounts make Penel- ope the mother, but Ulysses himself the father though the paternity of the god is also ascribed to the numerous wooers of Penelope in common. The original seat of his worship was the wild, hilly, and wooded solitudes of Arcadia, whence it gradually spread over the rest of Greece, but was not introduced into Athens until after the battle of Marathon. He is represented as having horns, a goat's beard, a crooked nose, pointed ears, a tail, and goat's feet. He had a terrible voice, which, bursting abruptly on the ear of the traveler in solitary places, inspired him with a sudden fear (whence the word panic). He is also rep- resented as fond of music and of dancing with the forest nymphs, and as the inventor of the syrinx or shepherd's flute, also called Pan's pipe. The fir tree was sacred to him, and he had sanctuaries and temples in various parts of Arcadia, at Troezene, at Sicyon, at Athens, etc. When, after the establishment of Chris- tianity, the heathen deities were degraded by the Church into fallen angels, the characteris- tics of Pan the horns, the goat's beard, the pointed ears, the crooked nose, the tail, and the goat's feet were transferred to the devil himself, and thus the " Auld Hornie " of popular superstition is simply Pan in dis- guise. ^Esthetics is a term invented about the middle of the last century by Baumgarten, a Professor of Philosophy in the University of Frankfort-on-the-Oder, to denote the science of the Beautiful, particularly of art, as the most perfect manifestation of the Beautiful. Notwithstanding the fact that the Beautiful was a favorite subject of contemplation among the ancients, Baumgarten is held to be the first who considered the subject from the true RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 528 scientific point of view, and therefore entitled to be called the founder of the philosophy of art. All sensuous apprehension, not in one form or manifestation only, but in every possi- ble form or manifestation, was included in his view of the subject, and this conception he expressed by the word ^Esthetics, from the Greek aisthanomai, I feel indicating not ab- solute or objective knowledge of things, but such as is conditioned subjectively by the play of our sensibilities. Beauty was, with Baum- garten, the result of the highest and purest aesthetic perception, to the realization of which the finer portion of our nature aspires ; and to trace which, through the whole sphere of art, was the work of aesthetic philosophy. COMPULSORY SCHOOL LAWS. United States. Twenty-nine States and two Territories have passed compulsory school laws defining the ages to which the law shall apply, the annual term of school attendance, and the penalty imposed upon parents or guardians for violation of the law. These requirements are summarized in the following table : Compulsory Education Requirements in the United States. STATE. AGE. ANNUAL PERIOD. PENALTY ON PARENTS OR GUARDIANS. Maine 8-15 16 weeks (2 terms of 8 weeks Fine, $25 (maximum). New Hampshire 6-16 each, if practicable). 12 weeks Each offense, $10 (maximum). Vermont 8-15 20 weeks. ... Fine, $10 to $50. Massachusetts 8-14 or 15 30 weeks Each offense, forfeit not exceeding $20. Rhode Island 7-15 12 weeks ; 6 consecutive Each offense, fine $20 (maximum). Connecticut a 8-14 or 15 8 to 13 vears of age, 24 weeks ; For each week's neglect, fine $5 (maximum-. New York a 8-14 13 to 14, 12 weeks. 8 to 12 vears of age and un- First offense, fine $5 (maximum) ; each sub- 67 12 employed youths 14 to 16, full term ;* for children 12 to 14, at least 80 days consecutive. sequent offense, 50 (maximum) or im- prisonment 30 days. Each offense, $10 to $25, or imprisonment 1 Pennsylvania a 8-13 70 per cent, of the entire term. to 3 months. First offense, $2 (maximum) ; each subse- District of Columbia. . C6-15 12 weeks ; 6 consecutive quent offense, $5 (maximum). Fine, $20 (maximum). West Virginia 8-14 16 weeks Fine, not exceeding $5. Kentucky 7-14 8 consecutive weeks Fine, $5 to $20 (first offense); $10 to $50 Ohio a 8-14 20 weeks, city district; 16 each subsequent offense. Fine, $5 to $20. Indiana 8-14 weeks, village and town- ' ship districts. 12 consecutive weeks $10 to $50; also, if court so orders, im- Illinois 7-14 16 weeks ; 8 consecutive prisonment 2 to 90 days. Fine, $3 to $20. Michigan d8-14 16 weeks 6 consecutive First offense, $5 to $10; each subsequent Wisconsin 7-13 12 weeks offense, $10 (minimum). Fine, $3 to $20. Minnesota 8-16 12 weeks ; 6 consecutive First offense, $10 to $25 ; each subsequent North Dakota 8-14 do offense, $25 to $50. First offense, $5 to $20; each subsequent South Dakota 8-14 ....do offense, $10 to $50. Fine, $10 to $20. 8-14 12 weeks Each offense, $10 to $50. Kansas 8-14 12 weeks ; 6 consecutive First offense, line $5 to $10 ; each subse- Montana 8-14 ....do quent offense, $10 to $20. Each offense, $5 to $20, or 30 days' imprison- Wyoming e6-21 12 weeks ment. Each offense, $25 (maximum). 8-14 12 weeks 8 consecutive Each offense, $5 to $25. New Mexico 8-16 Fine, $1 to $25, or imprisonment for not Utah 8-14 16 weeks ; 10 consecutive more than 10 days. First offense, $10 (maximum); each subse- C8-14 quent offense, $30. First offense, $50 to $100 ; each subsequent 8-14 ....do offense, $100 to $200. First, $5 to $20; subsequent offenses, $10 to 8-15 loo. Fine, $10 to $25. 8-14 First offense, $5 to $25 ; subsequent offense, California 8-14 Two thirds of school term ; 12 $25 to $50. First offense, $20; each subsequent offense, weeks consecutive. 990 to $50. a To 16 if unemployed in labor. b The law applies to youths 12 to 16 years of age if discharged from employment in order to receive instruction. o Law not enforced. d In cities, 7 to 16. Penalty Imposed only for children T to 16, 524 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Compulsory Education in Foreign Countries. COUNTRY. AGE. ATTENDANCE REQUIRED. PENALTY. Austria. Bavaria . Belgium. France .. 6-14 a 6-14 England. . Scotland., Holland . , Hungary , Italy.... Norway. Prussia . 5-13 5-13 Saxony . Sweden. Berne.. . 56-12 6-9 6-14 d7-15 7-14 6-15 Geneva Neufchatel. Zurich. Wurtemberg British Colui Cape Colony New Zealand Nova Scotia Ontario Prince Edward Island Quebec Queensland South Australia. Tasmania 7-16 zerland). . ,erland)... tzerland). 6-14 7-1C 7-15 6-16 r 6-14 i ul i ia 7-12 1 7-13 7-12 7-13 8-13 7-13 7-13 Until scholar has acquired prescribed subjects, relig- ion and reading, writing and arithmetic. ....Do No compulsory law For 4 absences of half a day in a month the parent is summoned before local school committee. Full school term unless by special arrangement. ....Do No compulsory law 8 months, country ; 10 months, town. No -rixed rule 12 weeks per annum . 8 years, or until elementary education is completed. Same as Austria 34% weeks Five sixths of possible attend- ances. 4 days a week, 6 hours a day. . After 13 years of age, 10 hours a week. 28 hours a week- for 6 to 9 months. 33 hours a week Every day; penalties for 10 absences. Every school day No compulsory law One half the period (luring which the school is open. 80 days a year 100 days a year 1 3 weeks a year No compulsory law 60 days in each half year, but law not yet enforced. 35 school days per quarter. . . . 3 davs a wee'k Fine, ?3.50 (maximum), or imprisonment up to 2 days. Fine, $11 (maximum), or 8 days' imprison- ment. First and second offenses, warning; sub- sequent fine, $3 (maximum) and im- prisonment 5 days. Determined by local by-laws. Fine, $5, or imprisonment 14 days. Fine, from 35 cents to 1.50. Each offense, 10 cents to $2. Fines. Each offense, 70 cents (maximum), or im- prisonment up to three days. Fine, $1.50 to $7.00, or imprisonment from 1 day to 6 weeks. Fines and imprisonment. Do. Fine, 38 cents (minimum), or imprisonment 30 days (maximum). Each offense 2 to 3 cents, and 4 hours' im- prisonment. Fines or imprisonment. Warnings ; subsequently fines, 60 cents to $3. Fine or imprisonment. Do. Fine, $10 (maximum). Fine, $2. $1 per month for each of the children not attending a school. Fine. Fine, $5 to $25, or imprisonment 7 to 30 days. Fine, $1.25 to $5. a 13 to 16 in secular Sunday Schools. 6 12 to 15 continuation. c From 8 until confirmation ; in town from 7 until confirmation. d Special dispensation after 7 years' attendance and 1 year's prolongation for ignorance. Halacha is the term for the Jewish oral law, and is supposed to be, like the written law contained in the Bible, of divine origin. It embraces the whole field of juridico-political, religious, and practical life down to its most minute and insignificant detaLs. It began to be written down when the sufferings to which the Jews were almost uninterruptedly sub- jected from thfe first exile downward had made many portions of it already very uncer- tain and fluctuating, and threatened finally to obliterate it altogether from memory. The first collection of laws was instituted by Hillel, Akiba, and Gamaliel ; but the final reduction of the general code, Mishna, is due to Jehudah Hanassi, A. D. 220. The Halacha was fur- ther developed in subsequent centuries by the Saboraim, Geonim, and the authorities of each generation. Oneida Community is a society of Per- fectionists, or Bible Communists, founded by John Humphrey Noyes, who was bom at Brattleborough, Vt., in 1811. He was origi- nally a lawyer, then studied theology at Andover and Yale, and became a Congregational min- ister, but soon lost his license to preach on account of the views which he adopted. The Community is situated on Oneida Creek, in Lenox township, Madison County, N. Y., where it owns a fine estate, several mills and manufactories, and is said to be in a prosperous condition. The cardinal principles of the Community are four in number : reconciliation to God, salvation from sin, recognition of the brotherhood and equality of man and woman, and the community of labor and its fruits. The last named principle embraces a scheme by which all the male and all the female member. RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 525 of the Community are held in a sense to be married to each other. This has led to the charge being made against them of being "free-lovers"; but, says one writer, "The system, as regulated by the ' principle of sym- pathy ' and controlled by that free public opinion which constitutes the supreme govern- ment of the society, is far from being ame- nable to the reproach of immorality in any sense of the word." The Community reject all rules of conduct except those which each believer formulates for himself, subject to the free criticism of his associates. They hold that the Mosaic law and ordinances were abro- gated by the second coming of Christ, which they place at A. D. 70, and at which time the reign of sin was concluded ; and true believers have since been free to follow the indications of the Holy Spirit in all things, nothing being good or bad in itself. While all the males and females are united by a "complex marriage," their intercourse which, in theory, is un- fettered by any law is, in practice, subject to a good deal of regulation. Like everything else, it is subject to the opinion of the society, and certain principles have been so steadily ap- plied to it that they have gained the force of laws. First, there is the principle of the as- cending fellowship. There should be contrast, the Perfectionists say, between those who be- come united in love. That there should be differences of temperament and of complexion has, they say, been well ascertained by phys- iologists. They hold that there should be a difference in age also, so that the young and passionate may be united to those who have, by experience, gained self-control. In virtue of this principle, the younger women fall to the older men. and the younger men to the older women. A second principle is that there should be no exclusive attachment between individuals ; a third, that persons should not be obliged to receive the attentions of those whom they do not like ; and, lastly, it is held indispensable that connections should be formed through the agency of a third party ; because, without this, the question of their propriety might be open to criticism, and also because this affords the lady an easy opportu- nity of declining. Pagodas are in most instances pyramidal- shaped temples consisting of various layers of stones piled one upon another in successive reces- sion, and covered all over with the richest orna- mentation. They are among the most remark- able monuments of Hindoo architecture. The pilasters and columns, which take a prominent rank in the ornamental portion of these tem- ples, show the greatest variety of forms ; some pagodas are also overlaid with strips of cop- ! per, having the appearance of gold. Though j the word pagoda is used to designate but the ' temple, it is in reality an aggregate of various j monuments, which in their totality constitute the holy place sacred to the god. Sanctuaries, porches, colonnades, gateways, walls, tanks, etc., are generally combined for this purpose according to a plan which is more or less uni- form. Several series of walls form an in clo- sure ; between them are alleys, habitations for the priests, etc. ; and the interior is occupied by the temple itself, with buildings for the pilgrims, tanks, porticoes, and open colon- nades. -The walls have, at their openings, large pyramidal gateways higher than themselves, and so constructed that the gateway of the outer wall is always higher than that of the succeeding inner wall. These gateways are pyramidal buildings of the most elaborate workmanship, and consist of several, some- times as many as fifteen, stories. The pagoda of Chalambron, in Tanjore, is one of the most celebrated and most sacred of these monu- ments in India. The buildings of which this pagoda is composed cover an oblong square 360 feet long and 210 wide. The pagodas of Juggernaut on the north end of the coast of Coromandel are three in number, and are sur- rounded by a wall of black stone, whence they are called by Europeans the Black Pagodas. The height of the principal one is said to be 344 feet ; according to some, however, it does not exceed 120-123 feet. The term pagoda is also applied, but not correctly, to those Chinese buildings of a tower form, as the Porcelain Tower of Nanking. These buildings differ materially from the Hindoo pagodas, not only as regards their style and exterior appearance, but inasmuch as they are buildings intended for other than religious purposes. The word pagoda is, according to some, a corruption of the Sanskrit word bk&ffttvata, from bhagavat, sacred ; but according to others, a corruption of put-gada, from the Persian put, idol, and gada, house. Hampshire Shakers. This community of Shakers settled in the New Forest, near Lymington, Hampshire, England, in 1872 or 1873, and consisted of eighty-three persons. Their leader, a Mrs. Girling, wife of an Ips- wich builder, declared herself to be the woman of the twelfth chapter of Revelations, who was " clothed with the sun, and the moon under her feet." These Girlingites, or Bible Chris- tians, as they called themselves, believed that the earth and the fullness thereof belonged to the elect, and that they were the elect. They professed to take the literal scriptures for their guide in all things, yet were so little inclined ! to earn their bread by the sweat of their brotf . 526 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. that they got into debt, mortgaged the cot- tages -which had been secured for them by a Miss Wood, a convert, and finally lost their property in 1878, when, as a community, they passed out of existence. Pantheon of Rome, a famous temple of circular form, built by M. Agrippa, son-in- law of Augustus, in his third consulship, about 27 B. C. The edifice was called the Pantheon, not, as is commonly supposed, from its having been sacred to all the gods, but from its ma- jestic dome, which represented, as it were, the "all-divine" firmament. It was dedicated to Jupiter Ultor. Beside the statue of this god, however, there were in six other niches as many colossal statues of other deities, among which were those of Mars and Venus, the founders of the Julian line, and that of Julius Caesar. The Pantheon is by far the largest structure of ancient times, the external diam- eter being 188 feet, and the height to the sum- mit of the upper cornice 102 feet, exclusive of the flat dome or calotte, which makes the entire height about 148 feet. It has a portico, in the style of the Corinthian architecture, 110 feet in length and 44 feet in depth, made up of 16 granite columns, with marble capitals and bases, placed in three rows, each column being 5 feet in diameter and 46 feet high. These columns supported a pediment with a roof of bronze. The Pantheon stands near the ancient Campus Martius, and, after the lapse of 1900 years, is still the best preserved of the old Roman buildings. It was given to Boniface IV. by the Emperor Phocas in 609, and was dedicated as a Christian church to the Virgin and the Holy Martyrs, a quantity of whose relics was placed under the great altar. In 830, Gregory IV. dedicated it to all the saints. It is now known as the Church of Santa Maria Rotunda. This consecration of the edifice, however, seems to have afforded it no defense against the subsequent spoliations, both of emperors and popes. The plates of gilded bronze that covered the roof, the bronze bassi- relievi of the pediment, and the silver that adorned the interior of the dome, were carried off by Constans II., A. D. 655, who destined them for his imperial palace at Constantinople ; but, being murdered at Syracuse when on his return with them, they were taken by their next pro- prietors to Alexandria. Urban VIII. carried off all that was left to purloin the bronze beams of the portico, which amounted in weight to more than 45,000,000 pounds. Dur- ing eight centuries it has suffered from the dilapidations of time and the cupidity of barbarians. The seven steps which elevated it above the level of ancient Rome are buried >eneath the modern pavement. Its rotunda of brick is blackened and decayed ; the marble statues, the bassi-relievi, the brazen columns, have disappeared ; its ornaments have van- ished, its granite columns have lost their luster, and its marble capitals their purity. Yet, under every disadvantage, it is still pre- eminently beautiful. No eye can rest on the noble simplicity of the matchless portico with- out admiration. Its beauty is of that sort which, while the fabric stands, time has no power to destroy. Oracles dated from the highest antiquity, and flourished in the most remote ages. The word signifies the response delivered by a deity or supernatural being to a worshiper or inquirer, and also the place where the response was delivered. These responses were sup- posed to be given by a certain divine afflatus, either through means of mankind, as in the orgasms of the Pythia, and the dreams of the worshiper in the temples ; or by its effect on certain objects, as the tinkling of the caldrons at Dodona, the rustling of the sacred oak, the murmuring of the streams ; or by the action of sacred animals, as exemplified in the Apis or sacred bull of Memphis, and the feeding of holy chickens of the Romans. These responses, however, had always to be interpreted to the inquirer by the priesthood. It is probable that all the Egyptian temples were oracular, although only a few are mentioned by Herodotus, as the oracles of Latona in the city of Buto ; those of Hercules, Mars, Thebes, and Meroe. Oracles were also used by the Hebrews. The Grecian oracles enjoyed the highest reputation for truthfulness, and the most renowned of all was the Delphic Oracle. Sacrifices were offered by the inquirers, who walked with laurel crowns on their heads, and delivered sealed questions ; the response was deemed infallible, and was usually dictated by justice, sound sense, and reason, till the growing po- litical importance of the shrine rendered the guardians of it fearful to offend, when they framed answers in ambiguous terms, or al- lowed the influence of gold and presents to corrupt the inspirations. There were numer- ous other oracles in Greece and in Asia Mi- nor, and written ones existed of the prophecies of celebrated seers. Those of the Sibyls or prophetic women enjoyed great popularity. Holy Grail. The Holy Grail was one of the leading themes of mediaeval romance, fabled to have been the cup or chalice used by Christ in the Last Supper, and in which he changed the wine into blood. This chalice, preserved by Joseph of Arimathea, had also received the blood which flowed from the side of Christ on the cross. This is what the apocryphal gospel of Nicodemus says, but no RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 527 early mention is made of it by either profane or ecclesiastical writers. In the twelfth cen- tury it reappears as the central subject of the prophecies of Merlin and the object of the ad- venturous quest of the Knights of the Round Table. It was also mixed up, by romance, with the struggles in Spain between Moors and Christians, and with the foundation of the Order of Templars in Palestine. Peter the Hermit was the apostle of the first crusade, and was born in the diocese of Amiens, France, about the middle of the eleventh century. After engaging in several pursuits he became a hermit, and in 1093 un- dertook a pilgrimage to Jerusalem, where the oppression he witnessed and experienced deter- mined him to arouse the people of Christendom to undertake a war for the liberation of the holy sepulcher. The first host of crusaders was led by Peter in person, and was unsuccessful. He was associated with the expedition under God- frey of Bouillon. While the crusaders were be- sieged in Antioch, he deserted, but was captured and brought back. On the conquest of Jeru- salem he preached a sermon to the crusaders on the Mount of Olives. After this he returned to Europe and founded the Abbey of Neuf- moustier, near Huy, where he died in 1115. UNIVERSITIES AND COLLEGES OF THE UNITED STATES. | Organized. Colleges. Location. Denomina- tional Control. President or Chairman of Faculty. Instruc- tors.* Students.* Volumes in Library. Productive Funds Amount of. 1873 1896 1859 1872 1861 1836 1815 1886 189:5 1891 1821 1872 1807 1853 1872 1893 1842 1SC,!I 1820 1869 1860 1858 1846 1889 1863 1845 1880 1847 1855 1881 1854 1867 1869 1794 1877 1764 1880 1872 1846 1848 1850 1870 18C6 1851 1870 1880 1851 1887 1894 1855 1855 1853 1874 1864 1891 Add-Ran Christ. Un.t Adelphi Colleget Adrian Colleget Waco, Tex Brooklyn, N.Y.... Adrian, Mich Auburn, Ala Albion, Mich Alfred.N.Y Meadville, Pa Alma, Mich Harriman, Tenn.. Washington, D. C. Amherst, Mass College Springs, la Andover, Mass Yellow Springs, O. Batesville, Ark Chicago, 111. ().... Asheville, N. C Atlanta, Ga Auburn, N. Y Minneapolis, Minn Rock Island, 111... Baldwin, Kan Berea, O Manh'n Boro, N.Y. Lewiston, Me Waco, Tex Bellevue, Neb Beloit, Wis Berea, Ky Lindsborg. Kan. .. Russellville, Ky. . . Charlotte, N. C.... Boston, Mass Brunswick, Me Logan, Utah Providence, R. I.. Bryn Mawr, Pa.. . . Akron, O Christian.... Non-Sect Meth. Prot.. Non-Sect Meth. Kpis.. Non-Sect Meth. Epis.. Presbyter'n .. Non-Sect Meth. Epis .. Non-Sect .... Non-Sect Congregat'l.. Non-Sect Presbyter'n.. Non-Sect Non-Sect.... Non-Sect Presbyter'n.. Lutheran Lutheran Meth. Epis.. Vleth. Epis.. Von-Sect Free Bapt. . . Baptist Presbyter'n.. *fon-Sect * on -Sect.... Lut Ill-ran .. . . Baptist ?resbyter'n.. Meth. Epis. Congregat'l.. Latter Day . . tf on -Sect ^on-Sect Jniv'rsalist.. Baptist Christian .... Non-Sect.... H. Catholic.. Dongregat'l.. Baptist Lutheran Son-Sect Reformed . . . il. Catholic.. Ref . Presb. . . E. C. Snow, A.M.(Act.Pres.) C. H.Levermore.Ph.D David Jones, D D * 16 25 .15 32 25 25 18 23 30 '36 11 8 12 10 38 17 15 8 8 33 32 22 50 23 47 20 28 33 30 7 14 144 40 28 7.-, 44 18 32 13 26 32 21 1! 14; 24 10 27 11 11 10 13 112 14 9 225 166 164 412 490 240 323 259 350 410 146 12 118 124 1,000 200 300 56 170 619 7"l5 372 400 330 936 125 355 825 700 104 234 1,350 360 510 899 417 246 630 252 396 285 366 331 176 350 162 160 :>.-, 271 100 236 1,28(1 236 246 4,000 8,500 4,000 15,579 15,000 13,700 15,000 17,500 2,500 8,000 75,000 4,000 52,000 7,000 4,200 15,000 2,500 11,000 27,140 2,000 18,000 10,000 7,000 1,500 25,000 11.000 4,000 30.000 18,500 5,000 6,000 13,000 70,666 2,700 115,000 36,123 6,000 22,000 4,350 7,000 23,000 15,400 4.000 5,000 2,000 2,600 35.000 1,200 6,500 5,330 6,000 18,000 6,500 1,600 $10,000 66,307 252,500 255.000 293,000 225,000 225,000 Alabama Poly. Inst.f.. Albion Colleget Alfred University t Allegheny College! Alma Colleget Am . U n . of Har r i mant American Univ.t(6). . . Amherst College W.LeRoy Broun,M.A .LL.D. Samuel Dickie, LL.D Rev. Boothe C. Davis.Ph.D. William H. Crawford, D.D. Rev. A. F. Bruske,M.S.,D.D. J. F. Spence, A.M.. LL.D... John F. Hurst, D.D., LL.D. George Harris, D.D., LL.D. Rev.J.C.Calhoun,A.B.,A.M. 1,700,000 Amity Colleget (a) Andover Theol. Sem.. Antioch Colleget Arkansas Colleget Armour Inst. Tech'yt. Asheville Colleget .". . . Atlanta University t.. Auburn Theol. Sem'y. Augsburg Seminary.. Augustana Colleget... Baker University! Baldwin Universityt.. Barnard Colleget(d). . . Bates Colleget Baylor Universityt Bellevue Colleget Beloit Colleget Berea Colleget Bethany Colleget (g).. Bethel College Chas. O. Day, D.D William A. Bell, M. A., LL.D. Eugene R. Long Ph.D 800,000 101,000 V. C. Alderson (Act. Pres.).. Archibald A. Jones .... 2,500,000 None 44,000 625,000 None 60,000 20,000 85.362 Horace Bumstead, D.D Rev. G. B. Stewart, D.D Georg Sverdrup Gustav Andreen, Ph.D Lemuel H. Murlin, A.M Rev. R. M.Freshwater,D.D. Laura D. (.111, A.B. (Dean).. George C.Chase,D.D.,LL.D. Oscar H. Cooper, LL.D Rev. D. R. Kerr,Ph.D.,D D. G.L.Collie, Ph.D.(Act.Pres.) Wm. G. Frost, Ph.D., D.D.. Rev. C. Swensson, Ph.D Rev. E. S. Alderman, D.D.. Rev. D. J. Sanders, D.D.... W. F. Warren, D.D., LL.D.. Wm. De Witt Hyde, D.D.. . . James H. Linford,B.S.,B.D. W. H. P. Faunce,A.M.,D.D. M. Carey Thomas, LL.D Rev.A.B. Church, A.M..B.A. John H. Harris, LL.D W. N. Billingslev, A. M Scot Butler, A.M., LL.D. . . 366,000 12,600 24,000 856,000 450,000 125,000 Biddle University Boston Universityt. . . Bowdoin College Brigham Young Col.t. Brown Universityt Bryn Mawr Colleget . . Buchtel Colleget Bucknell Universityt. Burritt Colleget Butler Colleget Canisiua College.. (S). Carle ton Colleget Carson & Newman C.t Carthage Colleget Case Sc. Appl. Science Catawba Colleget (q). . Catholic Univ. Am. (/) Cedarville Colleget Central Colleget Central Penn'a Coll.t.. Central Universityt... Central University.. . . Central Wesle van Col.t Charles City Colleget.. 752,000 788,000 100,000 1,874,207 100,000 Lewisburg, Pa Spencer, Tenn Indianapolis, Ind. Buffalo, N.Y Northfield, Minn.. Jeff. City, Tenn... Carthage. Ill Cleveland, O Newton, N. C Washington, D. C. Cedarville, O 430,000 300,000 Rev. John B. Theis, S. J Rev. James W. Strong.D.D. J. T. Henderson, A.M Rev.Fred. L. Sigmund.A.M. Cady Staler, Ph.D., LL.D.. C. H. Mebane, A.B Rt. Rev. T. J. Conatv.S.T.D. Rev. D. Mc-Kinnev.'D.D 1 200,000 60,000 60,000 890,000 20,000 60,000 69,300 44,000 650,000 Fayette, Mo New Berlin, Pa.... Pella, Iowa Danville, Ky Warrenton, Mo Charles City, Iowa Meth. Ep. S. Svangehcal.. Baptist J resbyteriau Meth. 'Epis.. Heth. Epis.. T. B. Smith, A.M.(Act.Pres) Rev.A.E.Gobble, A.M., D.D. L. A. Garrison, B. A Seenote "h" atipage 632 Geo. B. Addicks, D.D..A.M. J. F. Hirsch, M.A 1 26,000 628 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Universities and Colleges of the United States. Continued. a 1 be o Colleges. Location. Denomina- tional Control. President or Chairman of Faculty. Instruc- tors.* Students.* Volumes in Library. Productive Funds Amount of. 1875 1851 1869 1869 1887 1889 1881 1818 1819 1847 1874 1754 1821 1839 1890 1857 1868 1889 1878 1842 1885 1769 1837 1850 1833 1831 1864 1837 1865 1783 1872 1891 1806 1873 1847 1855 1890 1838 1836 1883 1855 1867 1895 1888 1886 1866 1881 1834 1825 1787 1854 1844 1817 1848 1829 1889 1848 1872 1867 1838 1794 1891 187G 1837 18T.2 1812 1854 1776 1868 1828 1834 1636 1830 1850 1884 1802 1857 1855 Charleston College Christian Univ.t (q). . . Clan in Universitytf. . . Clark University! Clark University! Clemson Agri. College Coe Colleget Charleston, S. C... Canton, Mo Orangeburg, S. C.. Atlanta, Ga Worcester, Mass.. Clemson Col., S. C. Cedar Rapids, la . . Waterville, Me Hamilton, N. Y.... Manh'n Boro. N. Y. Colorado Sp's, Col. Manh'n Boro, N.Y. Washington, D. C. Fort Wayne, Ind.. Spartanburg, S.C.. Mt. Vernon, Iowa. Ithaca, N. Y Bethany, Neb Omaha, Neb Non.Sect Disciples Meth. Epis . . Meth. Epis.. Non-Sect Non- Sect Presbyterian Baptist Baptist Non-Sect.... Non- Sect Non-Sect.... Baptist Lutheran Non- Sect Meth. Epis.. Non-Sect Christian R. Catholic.. Cumb. Pres.. Meth. Epis.. Non-Sect Presbyterian Christian Non -Sect Baptist Harrison Randolph, LL.D . . D. R. Dungan, A.M L. M. Dunton, A.M.. D.D... Chas.M.Melden 1 Ph.D.,D.D. G. Stanley Hall.Ph.D., LL.D. Henry S. Hartzog, LL.D Rev. S. B. McCormick, D.D. Rev. Chas. L. White, A.M. . Geo. E. Merrill, D. D., LL.D. Alex. Stewart Webb.LL.D... W. F.Slocum, LL.D., D.D. . N. M. Butler ,LL.D.(Act.Pr.) S. H. Greene, D. D..LL.D.. Jos Schmidt A M 7 20 30 21 '10 18 14 32 80 34 384 164 8 31 35 366 39 58 23 13 68 13 10 19 34 114 28 15 29 10 90 7 21 14 20 10 9 14 12 16 12 21 12 15 30 51 11 10 26 13 10 14 15 19 108 67 9 72 14 W>7 8 18 10 21 20 67 9 80 13 ?)17 483 19 22 10 19 7 14 58 280 750 550 5io 326 180 360 2,12C 515 4,''36 1,415 162 426 716 2,980 237 380 237 368 768 175 150 110 484 878 635 181 490 169 1,764 185 350 298 200 150 112 279 140 225 215 233 163 285 502 869 178 80 403 243 120 144 215 360 725 1,693 174 821 165 7 )106 230 662 200 351 183 448 109 1,061 175 (7)75 5,124 125 374 151 350 55 341 14,511 1,000 6,000 1,000 20,000 5.500 3,500 37,000 30,000 34.386 25.000 311,000 20,000 4,600 5,400 20,000 250,000 2,000 11,500 6,000 3,000 93,000 15,000 1,000 12,000 21,000 12,000 12,983 6,000 35,000 8,300 7,000 69,000 25,000 31,000 8,000 2,500 11,000 20,000 5,000 6,500 5,500 21.000 3,935 1,300 7,142 3,000 13,000 500 35,702 10,000 30,281 4,500 12,000 85,600 16,174 1,000 6.000 7,000 8,200 400 5,000 6,000 10,000 41,000 6,500 15,000 11,000 15,000 74,000 576,900 38,500 20,000 6,500 800 1,500 9,861 3299,000 5,000 None 61,000 417,507 1,500,000 Colby Colleget Colgate University College City of N. Y.. Colorado Colleget Columbia Univ. (c) Columbian Univ. (e). . . Concordia College Converse Colleget Cornell Colleget Cornell University t... Cotner University t Creighton University. Cumberland Univ.t Dakota Universityt. . . Dartmouth College (q) Davidson College 356,000 13,361,977 256,075 Benj. Wilson, B. A., M. A.. Wm. F. King, D.D., LL.D . . J. G. Schurman, LL.D W. P. Aylsworth, LL.D Rev. M. P. Dowling, S. J... N.Green, LL.D.(Ch. Kac.).. . Rev.W.I.Graham, D.D..A.M Wm. J. Tucker, D.D., LL.D. Henry L. Smith, A. B.,A.M. J. R. H. Latchaw,A.M.,D.D. Geo. A. Harter, M. A.,Ph.D. Rev. Emory W. Hunt, D.D. H. A. Buchtel, D.D., LL.D.. Rev. H. A. Gobin, D.D Geo. D. Adams, A. M., D.D. Geo. E. Reed, S. T. D..LL.D. David B. Perry, A. M., D.D. Wm. B. Craig, D.D., LL.D.. Henry A. Buttz, D.D..LL.D. Homer T. Fuller,Ph.D.,D.D. Joseph J. Mills, A.M..LL.D. Rev. A. C. MacKenzie. D.D. Rev.W. W.Staley, A.M.,D.D. R.G. Waterhouse, M.A..D.D. C. E. Dowman, A.M., D.D... Rev. J. C. Miller, A.M., D.D. R. E. Hieronymus, A.M J. A. Leavitt,F.R.,D.D.,G.S. N. J. Morrison, D.D., LL.D. Rev.J.H.Morley.A.M.,LL.D. Rev. C. Manchester, D.D... Rev. Jas. G. Merrill, D.D.. . . Rev. O.L.Fisher,A.M.,lXD. Rev. W. T. Stott,D.D.,A M. R.Barclay Spicer 320,000 188,813 6,891,627 200,000 105,000 Lebanon, Tenn Mitchell, S. Dak... Hanover, N. H Davidson, N. C Defiance, O Newark, Del Granville, O Univ. Park, Col.... Greencastle, Ind. . Des Moines, Iowa. Carlisle, Pa Crete, Neb Des Moines, Iowa. Madison, N. J Springfield, Mo Richmond, Ind Elmira N Y 2,500,000 125,000 20,000 83,000 650,000 214,000 Defiance Colleget Delaware College Denison Universityt Denver Universityt-. . . De Pauw Univ.t (q).... Des Moines Colleget.. Dickinson Colleget Doane Colleget Drake Universityt DrewTheol. Sem Drury Colleget Meth. Epis.. Meth. Epis.. Meth. Epis.. Congregat'l.. Christian Meth. Epis.. Non- Sect Or. Friends.. Presbyterian Christian Meth. Ep. S. Meth. Ep. S. Presbyterian Disciples Baptist Congregat'l.. Congregat'l.. Ch. of God.. Congregat'l.. Meth. Epis.. Baptist Non-Sect Ref. in U. S. Baptist Presbyterian Prot. Epis. . . Ref. Presb... Baptist. . . . 350,000 152,405 150.000 400,000 235,000 204,000 K; i r 1 ha m CoUeget Elmira Colleget (?) Elon Colleget Elon College, N. C. Emory, Va Emory & Henry Col. . . Emory College Emporia Colleget Eureka Colleget Ewing Colleget Fairmount Colleget... Fargo Colleget Findlay Colleget 20,000 145,431 Oxford, Ga Emporia, Kan Eureka, 111 Ewing, 111 Wichita, Kan.. .... 40,000 16,000 100,000 Fargo, N. Dak Findlay, O Nashville, Tenn , . . Fort Worth, Tex . . Franklin, Ind New Athens, O Lancaster, Pa Greenville, S. C.... Galesville, Wis.... Manh'n Boro, N.Y. Beaver Falls, Pa . . Georgetown, Ky.. Washington, D. C. Philadelphia, Pa.. Granbury, Tex Ch't'n'ga, Tenn.tt. Greensboro, N. C. . Xusculum, Tenn. . . Hoopeston, 111 Grove City, Pa.... Guilf ord Col., N.C. St. Peter, Minn.... Clinton, N.Y St. Paul, Minn, (x) Hamp.-Sidney, Va. Hampton, Va Hanover, Ind Hartford, Ct Cambridge, Mass . . Haverf ord, Pa Tiffin, O 49.571 48,600 Fisk Universityt (c). . . Fort Worth Univ.t .... Franklin Colleget Franklin Colleget Franklin & Marshall. . Furman Universityt . . Gale Colleget (q) 214,000 None 345,000 65,000 Rev. J. S. Stahr, Ph.D., D.D. A. P. Montague, LL.D Wm. D. Thomas,D.D.,Ph.D. E. A. Hoffman, D.D. (Dean) W. P. Johnston, A.M., D.D. . A. Yager, Ph.D. (Act. Pres.) Re v.Jerome Daughertv.S.J. A.H.Fetterolf, Ph.D., LL.D. H. A. Scomp, Ph.D., LL.D.. Rev.John H.Race,A.M.,D D Dred Peacock, A. B., A. M. General Theol. Sem Geneva Colleget 2,150,415 127,000 Georgetown Col.f (q). . Georgetown Univ Girard College .... R. Catholic.. Non- Sect Meth. Ep. S. Meth. Epis.. Meth. Ep. S. Presbyterian Non-Sect Non-Sect Friends Lutheran Non-Sect Meth. Epis.. Non-Sect Non-Sect Presbyterian Congregat'l.. Non-Sect Friends Ref. in U. S. Meth. Ep. S. Non-Sect Presbyterian Free Baptist 47,000 15,987,593 Granbury Colleget Grant Universityt Greensboro Colleget.. Gr'nville & Tusc. Col.t Greer Colleget 10,800 None Rev Jere. Moore, D D J. M. Clarv, A. B., LL. B. . . . Rev. I. C. Ketler,Ph.D.,D.D. Lewis L. Hobbs, A. B., A.M. M. Wahlstrom, A.M., Ph.D. M. W. Stryker, D.D., LL.D. Rev. G. H. Bridgman, D.D.. Richard Mcllwaine, D.D. . . Rev. H. B. Frissell, D.D .... D. W. Fisher, D.D., LL.D. . . Rev. C. D. Hartranft, D.D.. Charles Wm. Eliot, LL.D. . . Isaac Sharpless,Sc.D.,LL.D F. A. Sonnedecker, A.M Rev. A. C. Millar, A.M T. H. Bridges Amos A. Davis, A.B., A.M.. C. H. Gurney,A.M.(Act.P't). 40,000 Grove City Colleget. Guilf ord Colleget.. . . 53,000 10,400 505,000 100,000 150,000 927.000 200,000 13,119,538 1,000,000 125,000 30,000 18,000 40,000 170,323 Gustav. Adolphus Ct . . Hamilton College Hamline Univ.t Hampden-SidneyCol. . Hampton Inst.t (j) Hanover College} Hartford Theol. Sem.t Harvard University. . . Haverf ord College Heidelberg Univ.t Hendrix College Conwav. Ark Henry Colleget Campbell, Tex.(fc) Highland, Kan HiFlsdale, Mich.... Highland Universityt Hillsdale College RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. Universities and Colleges of the United States Continued. 529 Colleges. 5 Location. Denomina- tional Control. President or Chairman of Faculty. Instruc- tors.* Students.* Volumes in Library. Productive Funds Amount of. 1850 Hiram Colleget 1849 Hiwassee Colleget ... 1822 Hobart College 1843 Holy Cross College .... 1866 Hope Colleget Hiram, O Hiwassee, Tenn Geneva, N. Y Worcester, Mass.. Holland, Mich East Lake, Ala Washington, D. C. Brownwood, Tex. . Jacksonville, 111. . . Bloomington, 111.. Bloomington, Ind. Grinnell, Iowa Ames, Iowa Mt. Pleasant, Iowa Port Deposit, Md. De Land, Fla Disciples Non-Sect Prot. Epis. .. R. Catholic.. Ref. in Am.. Baptist Non-Sect Baptist Non-Sect Meth. Epis.. Non-Sect.... Congregat'l . Non-Sect Meth. Epis.. Non-Sect Baptist Ely V. Zollars, A.M., LL.D.. Rev. J. E. Lowry, A.M Rev. Robt. E. Jones, S. T. D. Rev. Jos. F.Hanselman.S.J. GerritJ.Kollen,A.M.,LL.D. F. M. Roof, A.M '.. J. E. Rankin, D.D..LL.D... J. H. Grove, M.S.D., A.M.. C. W. Barnes, M. A., B.D. . . . Edgar M. Smith, M. A., D.D. Joseph Swain, LL.l) J.H.T.Main, Ph.D. (Act. P't) W. M. Beardshear, LL.D.... J. W. Hancher, A.M., S.T.D. A.W.Harris, A.M.(Director) John F. Forbes.A.M., Ph.D. Ira Remsen, LL.D 25 450 t; 136 15 94 26 370 14 170 10 150 55 910 8 214 15 125 34 l,4-'l 70 1,137 30' 4.2 69 1,160 24 428 39 55(1 38 369 143 651 14 217 26 618 61 1.103 10,000 6,000 38,688 9*49,731 15.000 0,000 20,000 2.000 14.000 M (i.i 39.000 27.916 11 IM 7200 8000 12.100 in i 000 7.116 3,ooo 18,5' 10 240000 1,500 1841 Howard Colleget 1867 HowardUniversityt.. 1890 Howard PavneColl.t.. 1829 Illinois College I860 111. WeslevanUniv.t.. 1820 Indiana Lniversityt.. 1848 Iowa Colleget 100(00 I0".00l) 300.000 C82,K 58,255 1868 Iowa State Colleget... 1844 Iowa Wesleyan Univ.t 1894 Jacob Tome Inst.t 1883 John B. Stetson Un.. . 1876 Johns Hopkins U. (a) 1865 Kalamazoo Colleget.. 1886 Kansas Wesleyan U.t 1858 Kentucky Univt 208.000 2,?X)0 00:t 208,802 None Baltimore, Md Kalamazoo, Mich. Salina, Kan Lexington, Ky (y) Winchester, Ky... Gambler, O Keuka Park, N. Y. Galesburg, 111 Easton, Pa. Non-Sect Baptist Meth. Epis.. Christian Meth. Ep. S. Prot. Epis... Free Bapt. . . Non-Sect.... Presbyterian Baptist A. G. Slocum, LL.D . . M. E. Phillips, D.D. (Chan.) B A Jenkins A.M., B.D 1866 Ky. Wesleyan Col.t .. 1825 Ken von College Rev. John L Weber, Litt.D. Rev.W.F.Peirce,M.A.,LHD. Rev. Geo.H. Ball,A.M.,D.D. Thomas McClelland, D.D... E D Warfield LL D. 12 25 16 26 29 12 55 6 18 26 25 44 115 29 12 11 9 14 15 20 14 38 21 15 21 139 in 15 15 l"i 60 11 14 10 i> 12 12 .: 9 13 18 10 25 18 46 35 23 12 13 41 24 8 28 8 186 20 150 215 160 6t5 426 160 373 20 193 451 433 642 1,378 748' 165 233 286 174 350 215 168 501 300 378 1851 1.43D 105 206 120 260 144 602 116 153 208 19i 230 141 650 288 221 1 303 174: 440 612 135 612 215 632 151 215 6'0 392 166 613 60 1,824 200 6,50 25.000 3,000 9,000 21.200 7.000 17,000 19.000 9.500 18410 10.000 100,000 75,000 2,000 4,500 1,000 1.000 3,000 2.5i >0 7.000 7.500 10,290 60,0011 12,000 22,150 63,851 21,000 8,(00 3.000 15,000 18.000 22.000 24,895 5000 2,000 6.000 3 (MM) 0,342 9,000 3,000 7.000 15.000 5.000 4,000 1,500 4,000 21,000 .'5.110(1 6.191 10.800 S.fiSO 5.000 8,300 9,000 5,000 24,000 60.000 12,000 45,000 375000 200,0. X) 25 I 003 446,828 1892 Keuka Colleget 1837 Knox Colleget 1832 Lafavette College 1858 La Grange Colleget . . 1857 Lake Forest U&iv.t . . . 1829 Lane Theol. Seminary 1863 La Salle College La Grange, Mo Lake Forest, Ill.(p) Cincinnati, O Philadelphia, Pa.., Appleton, Wis Annville, Pa Jere. T. Muir, LL.D., A.M. . Richard D. Harlan, A.M. . . . Presbyterian Presbyterian R. Catholic.. Int'denom'l.. U. Brethren. Non-Sect Non-Sect.... Non-Sect Presbyterian Baptist Lutheran Cumb. Pres.. Afric. Meth.. Universalist. Presbvterian R. Catholic.. Non-Sect Presbyterian Non-Sect .... Non-Sect Presbyterian Meth. Epis.. 6*5,000 32--',837 None 2 .9,000 4>,00u Brother Wolfred 1847 Lawrence Univ t Samuel Plantz, Ph.D., D.D. Rev.H.U.Roop, A.M., Ph.D. Thomas M. Drown, LL.D. . . David Starr Jordan, LL.D.. R. W. Perkins, M.A., Ph.D. Andrew G. Wilson, A.M Rev. J. H. Burnett, A.M. .. Rev. S. P. Long, A.M J. L. Goodknight, A.M., D.D Win. H. Goler, D.D Charles E. Nash, A.M., D.D, 1866 Lebanon Valley Col.t. 1866 Lehigh University 1891 Leland Stanford, Jr.t. 1870 Leland University t.. 1856 Lenox Colleget S. Bethlehem, Pa.. Palo Alto, Cal New Orleans, La.. Hopkinton, Iowa.. Glasgow, Ky Lima, O Lincoln, 111 Salisbury, N. C.... Galesburg, 111 St. Paul, Minn.... Manh'nBoro.N.Y. Marietta, O Maryville, Tenn. . . Amherst, Mass Boston, Mass 16,000,000 1875 Liberty Colleget None 1893 Lima Collepet 1865 Lincoln College.t 1882 Livingstone College^ 1851 Lombard Colleget 1884 Macalester Colleget . 1853 Manhattan College.... 1835 Marietta Colleget 1819 Maryville Collecet ... 1863 Mass. Agric. Colleget. 1865 Mass. Inst. Techn'lgyt 1830 McCormick Th. Sem. . 1828 McKendree Colleget . . 1858 McMinnville Colleget. 1837 Mercer University 1824 Miami Universityt 1857 Mich. Agric. Colleget. 1800 Muldlebury Colleget . . 1887 Midland Colleget 1882 Milligan Colleget 115.000 l.'l.OOO 17o,000 Rev. Bro. Charles, F.S.C .... Alfred T. Perry, A.M., D.D. Samuel F. Wilson, D.D Henry H. Goodell, LL.D. . . . Henry S. Pritchett, LL.D . . J. R. Stevenson, D.D.(Chm.) McK.H". Chamberlin, LL.D. H L. Boardman, A.M None 260,000 Jfill.ullO 3J5.075 l,7H4.'-'34 540,000 4J.728 SC.'XO 207.000 43,OX) 97.621 38<,000 20,097 Lebanon, 111 McMinnville, Ore. Macon, Ga Oxford, O Lansing, Mich Middlebury, Vt. . . Atchison, Kan Milligan, Tenn.... Seminary Park,Cal Jackson, Miss Milton, Wis Starkville. Miss. .. Clinton, Miss Marshall, Mo Monmouth, 111 Moore's Hill, Ind.. Sioux City, Iowa. . Baptist Non-Sect Non-Sect Non-Sect Lutheran Christian ... Non-Sect Meth. Epis.. 7th Day Bai- . Non-Sect Baptist Cumb. Pres.. United Pres. Meth. Epis.. Methodist . . . Methodist... R. Catholic.. Non-Sect .... R. Catholic.. Meth. Epis.. Lutheran United Pres. Meth. Epis.. Non-Sect .... Lutheran Meth. Epis.. Baptist Non-Sect .... R. Catholic.. P. D. Pollock, A.M., LL.D. . Rev. David S. Tappan, D.D. J. L. Snyder, M.A., Ph. D.. Ezra Brainerd, D.D., LL.D. Rev. Jacob A. Clutz, D.D. . . Josephus Hopwood, A.M. . . Mrs. C. T. Mills. Litt. D Wm. B. Murrah, D.D..LL.D W. C. Whitford, A.M., D.D. J. C. Hardv, A.M., LL.B .... Rev.W.T.towrev, D.D..A.M William H. Black, D.D John H. McMillan, Litt. D.. Chas. W. Lewis, D.D W. S. Lewis, D.D., A.M Rev. J. M. Henderson, A.M. F. Dominic, O.S.B ' MaryE.Woollev.M.A. Litt.D Very Rev.W.L'.O'Hara.A.M. Albert B. Riker.D.D., A.M. Rev. Theo. L. Seip, D.D . . . . Rev. Jesse Johnson, D.D....I D. W. C. Huntington, D.D.. Joseph E.Stubbs,D.I).,LL.I) Geo. B. Croiner, LL.D Frederic H. Knight, A.B. . . ; Rev. Nathan E. Wood, D.D. H.M.MacCracken,DD.,LLD Very Rev. W. F. Likly, C.M. 1892 Millsaps College 110,01 >0 83,2*4 1867 Milton Colleget 1878 Mississippi A.& M.C.t 1826 Mississippi College 1889 Missouri Vallev Col.t. 1856 Monmouth Colleget... 1853 Moore's Hill Colleget . 1890 Morningside Colleget. 1880 Morris Brown College! 1887 Mount Angel College.. 1837 Mt. Holyoke Colleget . 1808 Mt. St. Mary's College 1846 Mt. Union Colleget... . 1867 Muhlenberg College. . . 1837 Muskingum Colleget.. 1887 Neb. Wesleyan Uuiv.t 1886 Nevada State Univ.t.. 1&58 Newberry Colleget.... 1874 New Orleans Univ.t.. . 1825 Newton Theol. Inst. . . 1831 New York Univ. (w) .. 1856 Niagara University... 40000 135.000 185.000 20.COO Mount Angel, Ore. S. Hadloy, Mass... Emmitsburg, Md.. Alliance, O Allentown.Pa New Concord, O. . . University PL.Neb. Reno, Nev Newberry, S. C. ... New Orleans, La. . NewtonC'tre.Mass. New York Citv (w) Niagara Falls.N.Y. 56.,ooo None 75000 161,000 37,000 10,000 30.000 25,000 S.Mi.i'iO 991,470 IfoM 630 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Universities and Colleges of the United States. Continued. Colleges. Location. Denomina- tional Control. President or Chairman of Faculty. i 1889 Nor.C.Ag.& Mb. Arts.. [West Raleigh. N.C. Non-Sect .... Geo. T. Winston, LL.D.... 1862 North Carolina Col.... Mt.Pleasant, N.C. . Lutheran. . . . Rev. W. A. Lutz, A.M 186; Northern 111. Col.t I Fulton, 111 Non-Sect .... J. E. Bittinger, A.M l6 Northwestern Col.t... Naperville, 111. ... Evangelical.. H.J.Kiekhoefer,A.M.,Ph.D. 1851 Northwestern Univ.f.. Evanston, 111 Meth. Epis.. D. Bonbright (Act. Pres.).. 186". Northwestern Univ.t. .;Watertown, Wis.. Lutheran 186-i Norwegian Luth. Col.. Decorah, Iowa Lutheran Notre Dame Univ fSee "University of Notre Dame. Oberlin Colleget jOberlin, O Non-Sect.... A. F. Ernst, Ph.D Rev. Laur. Larsen. John H. Barrows, D.D 187: Ogden College lBowlingGreen,ky. Non-Sect ! Wm. A. Obenchain, A.M.. . . 1872 Ohio State Univ.t 'Columbus, O iNon-Sect .... i W.O.Thompson, D.D.,LL.D. 1801 Ohio Universitvt lAthens.O INon-Sect .... Alston Ellis, Ph.D., LL.D .. 1844 Ohio Wesleyan'Univ.t Delaware, O... 187 j Oregon Agric. Col.t... Corvallis, Ore.. 'Meth. Epis.. James W.Bashford, D.D. .. Non-Sect .... Thos. M. Gatch. M.A., Ph.D Ottawa, Kan Baptist ' J.D.S. Riggs, Ph.D., L.H.D. Westerville, O U. Brethren. George Scott.Litt.D., Ph.D. Arkadelphia, Ark. Baptist John W. Conger, A.B..A.M. Oxford, O INon-Sect.... John H. Thomas, D.D Newberg, Ore 'Friends Edwin McGrew, B.S., M.S.. Forest Grove, Ore.|Congregat'l..'Wm. N. Ferrin, A.M.(Dean) \Sir, Park Colleget ! Parkville, Mo 'Presbyterian L. M. McAfee (Act. Pres. ).. k 875 Parsons Colleget iFairfleld, Iowa.... I Presbyterian Rev. F. W.Hinitt, Ph.D. ... 1RT- T>oaHrwlj T?r.T fnl + lTMoaV,xr!lla T.,, , '~ ' " " ~ 1805 Ottawa Universityt... 184. Otterbem Univ.t 18 6 Ouachi ta Colleget. . . 1849 Oxford Colleget (ff).. 1891 Pacific Colleget 1854 Pacific TJuiversityt... Peaborty Nor. Col.t.... , Teno. .. 1873 Penn Colleget ......... Oskaloosa, Iowa. . . n 18 Non-Sect.... j James D. Porter, LL.D I 35 27 330 3.900 6 102 4,500 10 120 2,500 22 360 5,690 244 2,629 45,764 9 ia5 4.r,23 10 185 10,248 84 1,357 62.400 6 80 3.600 130 1,465 36,000 26 405 16,000 11$ 1,368 37,000 2s 5' >2 2,900 23 603 4,000 30 316 10,000 26 486 4,000 19 150 3,000 8 150 600 141 211 10,800 Friends I A. Rosenberger, A.B., LL.D Presbyterian Rev. C. Martin, A.M., D.D.. 18TC Pennsylvania Colleget Pittsburg, Pa ., , , 1832 Pennsylvania Colleget Gettysburg, Pa.... I Lutheran.... H.W.McKnight,D.D.,LL.D 1862 Penna. Military Col... Chester, Pa iNon-Sect Col. Chas. E. Hyatt, C.E. .. 18"9 Penna. State Colleget. State College, Pa.. 'Non-Sect 'Geo. W. Atherton, LL.D 1877 Philander Smith Col.t Little Rock, Ark.. Meth. Epis.. Rev. James M. Cox, D.D.... 1881 Pike Colleget IBowlingGreen.Mo Non-Sect Chas. R. Wakeland, B.S 1854 Polytechnic Institute Brooklyn, N. Y... Non-Sect ....Henry S. Snow, A.B., LL.D. 1888 ! 'omona Colleget Clarembnt, Cal Congregat'l.. ' I 1887 Pratt Institutet Brooklyn, N. Y... ; Non-Sect.... Charles M. Pratt ! 1J80 Presbyterian Col.S.C.t Clinton, S. C ' Presbyterian Almon E.Spencer,B.A.,M. A. ^0*2 Princeton Theol.Sem.. Princeton.N.J IPresbyterian W. M. Paxton, D.D., LL.D.. 174G Princeton University Princeton,N.J ! Non-Sect iF.L. Patton, D.D., LL.D....J 355 12,000 277 5,000| 607 15,000 383 4,000 254 276 24,000 133 1,600 456 17,800! fl&MM 900 104,000 2,950,000 'ib',588 1,066,787 130,000 638,031 37,500 736.000 131,556 85,000 70,000 None 200,000 160,000 sb'.ooo *2ib',666 141 467 1,500 _ .<> iioH-aecu .. .. ir . AJ. ta 1868 Pritchett Colleget .... Glasgow, Mo Non-Sect .... C. S. Hemenway.A.B., Ph.D. 187lProseminar College.. Elmhurst.Ill.. 1874 Purdue Universityt . . iaf ayette, Ind. .Evangelical.. Rev. D. Irion . Non-Sect.... W. E. Stone, A.M., Ph.D.... 1852 Racine College ....".... Racine, Wis Prot. Epis... Henry D. Robinson, M. A. ... 1879 Radcliffe Colleget.... Cambridge.Mass.. ! Non-Sect .... Mrs.E. CaryAgassiz 18T^ Randolph-Macon Col. Ashland, Va Meth. Ep. S.. W. G. Starr, A.M., D.D 183:? Randolph-Macon Col.t Lvnchburg, Va.. . 'Methodist. .. Wm. W.Smith, A.M., LL.D. 1824 Rensselaer Polv. Inst. Trov, N. Y..... 18 M Richmond Coileget.. Richmond, Va.. 176 Rio Grande Colleget .iRio Grande, O .. IS'.l Ripon Colleget Ripon, Wis 1853 Roanoke College Isalem, Va Lutheran.. 18.T6 Rock Hill College.... Ellicott City.Md.. R. Catholic Non-Sect.... Palmer C. Ricketts, C E.... ! Baptist F. W. Boatwright, M.A Free Bap Rev. J. M. Davis, D.D Non-Sect.... R. C. Hughes, A.M., D.D.... J. D. Dreher, A.M., Ph.D... Rev. Bro. Abraham. 138 in-.' 1863 Roger Williams U. t Nashville, Tenn.. Baptist Rev. P. B. Guernsey, A.M.. 14 1885 Rollins Colleget (Winter Park, Fla.. Non-Sect ....Rev. G.M.Ward,D.D.,LL.B. ~ 1874 Rose Poly. Inst Terre Haute, Ind.. Non-Sect C. Leo Mees, Ph.D 1766 Rutgers College N.Brunswick, N.J. Non-Sect.... Austin Scott, Ph.D., LL.D.. 1871 San Fran. Theol. Sem. San Anselmo, Cat. Presbvterian Rev. Thos. F. Day, D.D 1866 Scio Colleget Scio, O Meth." Epis.. 1 1870 Scotia Seminaryi Concord, N. C Presbyterian Rev. D.J. Sattertield, D.D. . 1856 Set n Hall College South Orange,N.J. R. Catholic.. Rev.John A.Stafford, S.T.L. 18ns Shaw Universityt Raleigh.N.C {Baptist Charles F.Meserve, LL.D... 1801 South Carolina Col.t . . Columbia. S. C Non-Sect . . . . 'F. O. Woodward, Litt.D. . . . 18Si S'th'nBap.Theo. Sem. Louisville, Ky Baptist |E. Y. Mullins, D.D., LL.D.. 1850 Southern Universityt, Greensboro', Ala.. Meth. Ep. S.. Rev. S. M. Hosmer, D.D 1843 Southwe'n Bap. U.t.. Jackson, Tenn Baptist ,G.M. Savage, A.M., LL.D.. 1873 Southwe'n Pres. Univ. Clarksville, Tenn.. Presbyterian George Summey, D.D 1873 Southwestern Univ.t Georgetown, Tex. Meth .'Ep.'S.J Robert S. Hyer, A.M 1883 Southwest Kansas C.t Winheld, Kan. ... Meth. Epis.. Fred. C. Demorest, D.D 183.) Spring Hill College.. Mobile, Ala R. Catholic.. Rev. Wm.J. Tyrrell. S.J.... 1863 State College of Ky.t . . Lexington, Ky . . . .Non-Sect . . . . ' J. K. Patten=on,Pb.D.,LL.D. 1847 State Univ. of lowat. Iowa City, Iowa.. . Non-Sect George E. MacLean, LL.D. . 1879 State Univ. of Ky.t(g) Louisville, Ky . . . . Baptist. . . . 1870 Stevens Inst. of Tech. Hoboken, N. j Non-Sect.. 1889 St Anselm's College.. ' Manchester, N. H. R. Catholic 185S St. Benedict's College Atchison, Kan R. Catholic 1847 St. Francis Xavier C. Manh'n Boro.N. Y R. Catholic 1848 St. Charles College.... Ellicott City.Md.. R. Catholic. 17S9 St. John's College.... Annapolis, Md .... Non-Sect . . 126 600 700 12,000 212 4,600 3,121 74,979 65 1,900 132 70,000 1,340 171,256 90 750 108 3,930 1.05C 11,020 115 11.000 435J 17000 132 10,000 517,000 None 117,000 None 1,367,747 "TT'.OOO 4,000 34),000 300.000 276 4.000 1 109,000 240 6,500 138 175 14,000, 3,200! 8,000' 195 22,000 150 8,000 250 6,000 179 3,000 165 10,000 222J 42,656 20 16,000 341 2,000 287| 2,000 150 40.030 578 1,500 183 8,500 629; 3,050 83 1,013 7,000 16l 227 33,000 250, 25,(KX)] 11 162 7,000; 23 376, 111 85 8,500j 23 483 3,500 14 270 2,449 Rev. Wm.J. Tyrrell, S.J....I 20 154 25,000 38 620 4,000 130 1,542 58,000 Rev. Chas. L. Puree, D.I). . . . Henry Morton, Ph.D., LL.D. . Rt. Rev. Abbot Hilary, D.D. . Ut. Rev. I. Wolf, D.D . Rev.iD. W.Hearn, 8. J . Rev.C.B.Schrantz.S.S.,A.M.' . Thomas Fell, Ph.D., LL.D.. I 11 200 600 22 270 10,000 26 104 2,400 15,000 50,000 15,000 31 240 275,o 71,000 209,104 65,000 None None 240,821 None 5,300 "32,666 136,828 65,798 868,366 None o'HHWi 40,000 80,000 276,000 None 100,000 235,000 '556,666 None 13 156' 8,000 30,000 RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 531 Universities and Colleges of the United States Continued. Colleges. Location. Denomina- tional Control. President or Chairman of Faculty. - s s a in 1865 St. John's College Washington, D. C. 1841 St. John's College. . . . Fordham, N. Y. C. 1857 St. John's UniversityiCollegeville, Minn. 1858 St. Lawrence Univ.f.. 1829 St. Louis University. 1869 St. Mary's College . . . Canton, N. Y.. St. Louis, Mo. .. St. Mary's, Kan.. 1821 St. Mary's College .... St. Mary's, Kv 18T4 St. Olaf Colleget 'Northfield, Minn. . R. Catholic R. Catholic.. , Lutheran 1860 St. Stephen's College Annandale, N. Y.iProt. Epis... 1842 St. Thomas College. . Villanova, Pa Rev. A. V.V Raymond.D.D. 1836 Union Theol. Sem.t. J Manh'n Boro, N.Y. I Presbyterian Rev. Chas. Cutlibert Hall... 1831 Univ. of Alabamat Tuscaloosa, Ala. U Non-Sect i Wm S. Wyman, LL.D Tucson, Ariz Non-Sect . . . . F. Y. Adams (Act. Pres ). . . . Fay'teville,Ark.(of) Non-Sect .... J. L. Buchanan. A.M..LL.D. Berkeley, Cal Non-Sect . . Benj. Ide Wheeler, LL.D. . . 1891 Univ. of Arizonat.. 1872 Univ. of Arkansast 1868 Univ. of Californiat 1891 Univ. of Chicagot . . 1819 Univ. of Cincinnati 1877 Univ. of Coloradot . . .... lUniv. of Denvert . . . 1801 Univ. of Georgia. . . . 1889 Univ. of Idahot .... 1868 Univ. of Illinoist .. 18C6 Univ. of Kansast 18H5 Univ. of Mainet 1837 Univ. of Michigant 1868 Univ. of Miunesotat Non-Sect . Non-Sect. Non-Sect . Non-Sect. Chicago, 111 Non-Sect (t). Wm. R. Harper/Ph.D. , D.D Cincinnati , O Non-Sect ' Howard Ayers, LL . D ! Boulder, Col Non-Sect .... Jas. H. Baker, M.A., LL.D.. See ' Denver University" I . . ! Walter B. Hill, LL.D . . James A. MacLean, Ph D. . . .. ! Andrew S. Draper, LL.D... . . I W. C. Spangler (Act. Chan.) ..'Abram W. Harris, Sc.D.... . . I James B. Angell, LL.D . . Cyrus Northrop, LL.D .. RobertB. Fulton, LL.D . . Richard Henry Jesse, LL.D .. Oscar J. Craig, A.M., Ph.D. .. W. H. Payne, LL.D., Ph.D.. E. Beni. Andrews, LL.D. .. 80 1,145 25 000 88 1,253 12,000 15 238 3,680 8 184> 1,200 231 286 3,000 20 1921 36,139 18 125 75.000 46 413 25,000 18 225 16,000 :: 642: 8,239 230 2,932! 90,000 296 3,520 3"0.000 150 1,287 150.000 92j 900 23,000 Athens, Ga Moscow, Idaho. Urbana, Ill.(r). Lawrence, Kan. Orono, Me ! Non-Sect Ann Arbor, Mich. .[Non-Sect .. ; Minneapolis, Minn'Non-Sect .. 1848 Univ. of Mississippi . Near Oxford, Miss Non-Sect .. 1810 Univ. of Missourit .... Columbia, Mo. (u) Non-Sect .. 1895 Univ. of Montana! . . . Missoula, Mont. . . 'Non-Sect . . 1785 TJniv. of Nashvillet(tf). Nashville. Tenn.. . Non-Sect . . 1869 Univ. of Nebraskat . . Lincoln, Neb Non-Sect . . 1892 Univ. of N. Mexicot(7) Albuquerque, N.M Non-Sect . . |Univ. of New York See "New York University 1795 Univ. of N. Carolinat . Chapel Hill, N. C. Non-Sect.. 1883 Univ. of N. Dakotat . . GrandForks.N.Dk Non-Sect . . 1842 Univ. of Notre Dame .Notre Dame, Ind.. R. Catholic 1892 Univ. of Okla.t (?)....! Norman, Okla Non-Sect .... David R Boyd, A.M 1880 Univ. of Omahat (7) ..Omaha, Neb Presbyterian David R. Kerr, D.D., Ph.D. 1872 Univ. of Oregont iEugene, Ore Non-Sect Frank Strong, A.M., Ph.D.. 152 Univ. of the Paciflct .. San Jose, Cal Meth. Epis.. Eli McClish, D.D 1740 Univ. of Pennsyl'niat. Philadelphia, Pa... Non-Sect C. C. Harrison, LL.D (Prov.) 1850 Univ. of Rochester) .. Rochester, N. Y... Baptist Rush Rhees, D.D. , LL.D.... 1880 Univ. of S. Cal.t (7). ..'Los Angeles, Cal. .Meth. Epis.. Geo. F. Bonard, A.M., D.D. 1882 Univ. of S. Dakotat ..IVermilion, S.Dak. Non-Sect .... Garrett Droppers 1868 Univ. of the South [Sewanee, Tenn. . . . 'Prot. Epis. 1794 Univ. of Tennessee^cYKnoxville, Tenn. .JNon-Sect . . 1883 Univ. of Texast I Austin, Tex. () Non-Sect .. 1850 Univ. of Utaht 'Salt Lake City, U. Non-Sect.. 1791 Univ. of Vermontt.... (Burlington, Vt. ..Non-Sect.. 1825 Univ. of Virginia 'Charlottesville.Va Non-Sect . . 1862 Univ. of Washingtont Seattle, Wash Non-Sect .. 1848 Univ. of Wisconsint . . Madison, Wis Non-Sect Charles K. Adams, LL.D. . . ! 1869 Univ. of Woostert 'Wooster, O Presbyterian Rev. Louis E. Holden, D.D.; Laramie, Wyo [Non-Sect ...J Rev. Elmer E. Smiley, D D. Fayette, Iowa iMeth. Epis.. Rev. Guy P. Benton, A M... 131 1,994 21 j 329 334 3,000 80 1,150 53 399 30,000 7,200 53,792 35,800 19,833 C. L. Herrick, Ph.D. Francis P. Venable, Ph.D.. Webster Merritteld, M.A.... Rev. A. Morrissey, C.S.C.... B. L. Wiggins, M.A., LL.D. 1 C. W. Dabnev, Ph.D., LL.D.j Win. L. Prather, LL.D 'j.T.Kingsburv, Ph.D..D.Sc.' Mat. H. Bucknam, D.D I iP.B Barringer,M.D.(Ch.Fc.)i IF. P. Graves, Ph.D., LL D.. '.'33 3.800 155,524 250 3,5">0; 84,000 21 260 18,000 109 1.0J1 1 40,000 13 235 ! 6,300 67 1,370, 15,000 220 2.256 51,000 10 105 6,000 546 375 800 272 325 33,000 7,000 r,:>.iHMi 7,000 4,000 15,000 6,000 40 SB U n SI I 62 12 247 268 2,475 200,000 19 263| 37,202 12 150 4500 28 426 7,000 62 518< 43,789 85 721 17,100 97 1,121; 35.000 28 643 20,000 62 660 62.300 55 GOOi 48,000 63 614' 13,000 171 2.019 70.000 1887 Univ. of Wyomingt 1857 , Upper Iowa Uni v.f . . . 1869 Ursinus Colleget 1803 U. S. Military Acad... Collegeville, Pa. . . [German Ref . Rev. H. T. Spangler, D.D. . . I West Point, N. Y. Non-Sect . . . . ! Col. A.L.Mills.U.S. A. Sunt . . 800 177 3:11 189 464 JJ.II'Ni 11,000 7,000 9,000 45,000 None None 500,000 50,000 None None 425,000 1,399,506 155,000 137,500 98,271 15,000 8,866 21379 850,000 ' 333^56 32,000 1,300,000 1,231,000 252,971 80.000 4,840 '554^99 300^666 130,000 3,035.027 7.372,559 3,357,308 382,500 ' 56l',895 140,000 1,041,901 515946 1,307,219 696,000 1,235,849 'ibbiooo 127,000 None None iebiooo 200,000 16.000 3,384.705 760.741 None None 204.430 425.000 170,750 244,000 420.000 378,850 None 500,000 250,000 None 100,000 185,000 532 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Universities and Colleges of the United States Continued. 1 Colleges. Location. Denomina- tional Control. President or Chairman of Faculty. Instruc- tors.* Students.* Volumes in Library. Productive Funds Amount of. 1845 1888 1872 18lil 18)6 1859 171 1831 1833 1867 1865 1892 1802 1749 1783 1795 1853 1851 1870 1868 1831 1856 1867 182G 1787 18G5 1853 1852 1867 1860 1859 1856 1873 1844 1693 1849 1793 1870 1870 1845 1851 18^8 1805 1701 1881 1800 U. S. Naval Academy. Utah Agri. Colleget .. Vain.erbiltUniv.t Vastar Colleget Annapolis, Md Logan, Utah Non-Sect Non-Sect Co'n. R. Wainwright,U.S.N. Win. J. Kerr, B.S., D.Sc.... 69 35 100 72 10 19 35 15 16 32 23 45 23 22 9 8 190 18 80 22 36 14 22 175 115 1777 1596 1411 1727 1808 1422 1556 1671 Montreal, Canada 1.082 1,075 1,075 1,066 1,033 1,013 1,010 1,009 1,000 957 908 902 862 837 816 814 813 789 758 756 748 732 727 726 726 726 683 676 668 667 665 634 601 695 681 553 540 538 524 514 510 484 465 454 452 4-J2 412 400 390 358 348 320 298 257 250 237 222 207 206 169 166 109 99 93 Berlin, Prussia, Germany Erlangen, Bavaria, Germany Vienna, Austria Urbana Madrid, Spain Pisa, Italy Naples, Italy Rome, Italy (University Pont ) Moscow, Russia Nancy, France Budapest, Hungary Genoa, Italv Munich, Bavaria, Germany Innsbruck, Tyrol, Austria. . St. Petersburg, Kussia Santiago (Chile)... Oxford, England Poitiers, France Athens, Greece .... Leipzig, Saxonv, Germany Catania7Sicily ." Manchester, England (about) Geneva, Switzerland Cambridge, England Kasan, Russia Edinburgh, Scotland Ley den, Holland Prague, Austria ( Bohemian) Kijew, Kieff, Russia Zurich, Switzerland Greifswald, Prussia, Germany Turin, Italy Lyons, France Jena, Thuringia, Germany Bordeaux, France Berne, Switzerland. Helsingfors, Finland, Russia Aix-en-Provence, France Copenhagen, Denmark Utrecht, Holland Glasgow, Scotland Kiel, Prussia, Germany . Rome, Italy (Royal University) Caen, France Barcelona, Spain Klausenburg, Hungary Toulouse, France Valencia, Spain Graz, Stvria, Austria Bonn, Prussia, Germany Ghent, Belgium. . Louvain, Belgium Giessen, Hessia, Germany Halle, Prussia, Germany Lund, Sweden Bologna, Italy Dijon, France Tokyo, Japan Kingston.. Padua, Italy Florence, Italy Charkow, Russia Odessa, Russia Upsala, Sweden Messina, Italy ... Rennes, France Grenoble, France Wurzburg, Bavaria, Germany Lausanne, Switzerland Coimbra, Portugal Parma, Italy Rostock, Mecklenburg, Germany Basel, Switzerland Prague (German) Lemberg Galicia, Austria Agram, Croatia, Hungary Belgrade Sydney, Australia Palermo, Sicilv, Italy Groningen, Holland Jassv, Roumania Modena, Italv Durham, England (about) Tubingen, Wurtemberg, Germany . . . Czernowitz, Bukowina, Austria Macerata, Italy Freiburg, Switzerland Adelaide, Australia Perugia, Italy Havana, Cuba Siena, Italy Cagliari, Italy St. Andrew's, Scotland Camerino, Italy Clermont, France Besanyon, France Amsterdam \free university) Manchester. En irland (Owens College) Warsaw. Poland, Russia Urbino, Italv Humanities are those branches of educa- tion or study which are included in what are called polite or elegant learning, as languages, grammar, philosophy, and poetry, with that pertaining to what is called polite literature, including the ancient classics. The name im- plies that the study of these branches, in op- position to the physical sciences, which espe- cially develop the intellectual faculties, has a tendency to humanize man, to cultivate par- ticularly those faculties which distinguish him as man in all his relations, social and moral ; that is, which make him a truly cultured man. Animal Worship. Among primitive peoples, all animals are supposed to be en- dowed with souls which in many cases have formerly animated human beings. Hence a I likeness is often recognized between an animal i and some deceased friend, and the animal is | addressed as the person would have been, and honored with a kind of worship. Many tribes call themselves by the name of, and even de- ; rive their pedigree from, some animal. Ite cries become the omens of the tribe ; and thus ; originate the divination and augury of more civilized nations. lu the modern world the 534 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. most civilized people among whom animal- worship vigorously survives lie within the range of Brahmanism. Here the sacred cow is not merely to be spared ; she is as a deity worshiped and bowed to daily by the pious Hindoo. Siva is incarnate in Hanuman, the monkey god. The divine king of birds, Gar- uda, is Vishnu's vehicle, and the forms of fish and boar and tortoise assumed in the avatar legends of Vishnu. Perhaps no worship has prevailed more widely than that of the serpent. It had its place in Egypt and among the He- brews ; in Greece and Rome ; among the Celts and Scandinavians in Europe ; in Persia and In- , dia ; in China and Thibet ; in Mexico and Peru ; in Africa, where it still nourishes as the state religion in Dahomey ; in Java and Ceylon ; among the Fijians and elsewhere in Oceanica ; and even within the limits of Christianity we find the sect of the Ophites, who continued or renewed snake-worship, blended curiously with purer rites. Pyramids. The weight of authority among modern Egyptologists inclines to the view that the Pyramids were a new and bold architectural type, invented in its entirety be- tween the fifth and twelfth dynasties, in Mid- dle Egypt, and not the development from earlier forms of tomb-mounds. "Pyramid," in its strict geometrical sense, denotes a build- ing having a polygonal base, and plain triangu- lar sides which meet in an apex. There are various forms of ancient tomb-mounds of earth and stone and stepped structures, as the mastaba in Egypt, and early temples and mau- solea in Mexico and Assyria, and there are also some inferior imitations of later date ; but the true pyramidal construction is seen only in Egypt, and comprises about seventy structures on the banks of the Nile, none of which are later than the twelfth dynasty (about 2000 B. C.). They are all built upon a square base, with the four sides facing the four cardi- nal points of the compass, and- in the earlier forms are composed of horizontal layers of rough-hewn blocks with a small amount of mortar degenerating in the buildings of the sixth and succeeding dynasties to a cellular system of retaining walls filled with loose chips, and finally, in the twelfth dynasty, to a mass of mud bricks. But there was, in all cases, on the outside, a casing of fine stone, beautifully polished and jointed, the inner chambers having a similar finish. These casing stones were not a mere veneer or film, but were massive blocks, usually greater in thickness than in height. Inside of each pyramid, al- ways low down, and usually beneath the level of the ground, was built a sepulchral chamber, and this was reached by a downward passage from the north side. This passage had a lesser chamber in its course, and was blocked once or of tener with a massive stone portcullis. The interior was probably in every case acces- sible to the priests for the purpose of making offerings, the passageway being closed by a stone door turning on a horizontal pivot, the location of which was known to them. The chambers were always roofed by great sloping cantalevers of stone projecting from the north and south sides, on which they rested without pressing on each other along the central ridge, so that there was no thrust, nor indeed any force to disturb the buildings ; and now, after a lapse of four thousand years, in spite of the brutal treatment of enemies and the greed of later builders (who have removed almost all of the casing stones), they still stand as colossal monuments of the work of man. Owing to the loss of the casing stones, their present ap- pearance presents a series of huge, rough steps, and their height has been considerably dimin- ished by the encroachment of the sand of the desert around their bases. Many archaeolo- gists believe these vast piles, especially the I great Pyramid of Cheops at Gizeh, to have been constructed under divine inspiration, and to embody in the living rock great astronom- , ical facts and mathematical principles, and I memorials of a system of weights and meas- ures for universal use. It is also maintained that Masonic emblems and symbols have been found within them. Whatever the builders embodied in the details of their construction, their immediate object and use was undoubt- edly to serve as royal mausolea. As for these theories, future investigations will probably develop or explode them ; but that there is great mathematical knowledge and wonderful accuracy of measurement displayed in them is well established. In the great Pyramid at Gizeh, the four sides have a mean error of only six tenths of an inch, and twelve seconds in angle from a perfect square. This pyramid is the largest of all, and by far the most re- markable in its construction. It is somewhat different from the others in its internal ar- rangement, having the subterranean chamber, which is but half finished, and having also an upward passage leading to two large upper chambers, highly finished with great slabs of polished red granite. Probably both of these chambers contained originally a polished sar- cophagus of the same Syenitic granite ; and the larger one the " King's " although in the very heart of this huge pile, is perfectly ventilated by two air passages about nine inches square, which run to the north and south faces of the Pyramid. It was built by , Cheops or Khufu of the fifth dynasty, an4 its RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 635 construction is thought to have employed 100,000 men for thirty years or more prob- ably half a century. The masonry consisted originally of 89,028,000 cubic feet, and still amounts to 82,111,000. The height is at present 450 feet (originally 479), and the length of the sides 746 feet (originally 764^). The King's Chamber is 19 feet 1 inch in height, and in area 34 feet 3 inches by 17 feet 1 inch ; the Queen's Chamber is 20 feet 3 inches in height, and in area 17 feet by 18 feet 9 inches. It is now generally agreed that there were no inscriptions on the external sur- face of any of the pyramids, the casing-stones bearing a smooth polish. The mechanical means employed by the builders have been partly ascertained. The hard stones, granite, diorite, and basalt, were, in all fine work, sawn into shape by bronze saws set with jewels (either corundum or diamonds) ; hollows were made (as in sarcophagi) by tubular drilling with tools like our modern diamond rock-drills, and small articles were turned in lathes fitted with mechanical tool rests and jewel pointed tools. The questions of the transport and management of such huge stones, weighing oftentimes more than thirty tons apiece, re- main still to be answered. Septuagint. The most ancient Greek translation of the Old Testament that iias come down to us, and the one commonly in use at the time of Christ, was the Septuagint. Its origin is shrouded in deep obscurity. There are a number of myths concerning it, but the principal one is that it was made during the reign of Ptolemy Philadelphus, 284-247 B. C. This king, it is stated, anxious to embody in a collection of laws of all nations, on which he was engaged, also those of the Jews, invited 72 men of learning and eminence from Pales- tine, who performed the task of translation in 72 days. The facts upon which this legend, now rejected as a piece of history, rests, can- not well be ascertained. It seems clear, how- ever, that Ptolemy, aided by his librarian, Demetrius Phalereus, did cause a Greek ver- sion of the Pentateuch to be executed, proba- | bly during the time of his being co-regent of Ptolemy Lagi ; but the translators were not j Palestinian but Egyptian Jews. This is evi- j denced from the state of the text from which | the translation must have been made, and from the intimate acquaintance with Egyptian man- ners and customs which it evinces. The Sep- tuagint was held in the very highest repute among the Alexandrine Jews, while the Pal- estinians looked upon it as a dangerous inno- vation, and even instituted the day of its com- pletion as a day of mourning. Gradually, j however, it also found its way into Palestine, j It was read and interpreted in the synagogues for some centuries after Christ, until the in- creasing knowledge of the original, fostered by the many academies and schools, and the frequent disputations with the early Christians, brought other and more faithful and literal translations. Holy Coat, a garment which is alleged to be the seamless coat of our Saviour, and to have been discovered in the fourth century by the Empress Helena on her visit to Palestine. It was deposited by her at Treves, where it is preserved in the cathedral of that city with the greatest reverence. The Treves relics were con- cealed from the Normans in the ninth century in crypts ; but the Holy Coat was rediscov- ered in 1196, and then solemnly exhibited to the public gaze, which did not take place again till 1512, when Leo X. appointed it to be exhibited every seven years. In 1810 the ex- hibition was attended by 227,000 people, and in 1844 by still greater multitudes. The ex- hibition of the Holy Coat in this latter year led to the secession of the German Catholics from the Church of Rome. Portland Vase. The celebrated Port- land Vase, which is one of the most valued relics of antiquity in the British Museum, was made, it is believed, to hold the ashes of the Roman Emperor Alexander Servius, and was discovered during the sixteenth century in a rich sar-. cophagus on Monte del Grano, where it had been for about thirteen hundred years. It is an urn, ten inches high. The groundwork is of blue glass, enameled with white glass cut in cameo, to represent the wedding of Thetis and Peleus. It was placed in the museum by the Duke of Portland in 1810, and in 1845 was maliciously broken by a man named Lloyd. The pieces, however, were collected and ce- mented together, but the vase has not been on exhibition since that date. It was at one time known as the Barberina Vase, and was owned by Sir William Hamilton, who found it in the Barberina Palace, and purchased it in 1770. In time it passed into the possession of the Duchess of Portland, and was disposed of as related. Shakers is the popular name given to a religious sect who call themselves the " United Society of Believers in Christ's Second Appear- ing." They were founded in England about the year 1770 by an Englishwoman named Ann Lee, in whose person they believed that Christ has appeared a second time. Shortly before the outbreak of the Revolutionary War a small band of them, with Ann Lee at their head, emigrated to America, and penetrated far into the wilderness to Niskenna, nd there founded the settlement, which still exists 536 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. at Watervliet, N. Y. In the spring of 1780, when they had been three years and a half at Niskenna, a religious revival took place at Albany, and spread through the surround- ing districts ; and from Hancock and New Lebanon a deputation was sent to Niskenna, to see what light its inhabitants enjoyed as to the way of salvation. The deputation consisted of Joseph Meacham and Lucy Wright, subsequently the heads of the Shaker Society. These persons became believers in Ann Lee, and through their agency other converts were won, and a Shaker Society established at New Lebanon. Toward the close of 1780, the Revolutionary War being then in progress, notoriety was given to Ann Lee through an incident seemingly unfavorable. On suspi- cion of being a British spy she was imprisoned for some time at Poughkeepsie, and before she obtained her liberty, in December, 1780, all the colonies had heard of the "female Christ," and in the following year she started on a mis- sionary tour through New England and the adjacent colonies, and made not a few converts. She died in 1784, and was succeeded in the headship of the society by Joseph Meacham and Lucy Wright. Her death was a surprise to many of her followers, who believed that she was to live with them forever. Their doc- trine has been, to some extent, developed as well as systematized since the death of " Mother Ann." They believe that the Kingdom of Heaven has come ; that Christ has come upon earth a second time in the form of " Mother Ann," and that the personal rule of God has been restored. Then they hold that the old law has been abolished and a new dispensation begun ; that Adarn 's sin has been atoned ; that man has been made free of all errors except his own ; that the curse has been taken away from labor ; that the earth and all that is on it will be redeemed. Believers, on going "into union," die to the world and enter upon a new life, which is not a mere change of life but a new order of being. For them there is neither death nor marriage ; what seems death is only a change of form, a transfiguration, which does not hide them from the purified eyes of the saints; and in union, as in Heaven, there is i:o marrying nor giving in marriage. They Wieve that the earth, now freed from the curse of Adam, is Heaven; they look for no resur- rection besides that involved in living with t h^ 11 1 in " resurrection order." The believer, upon entering into union, leaves behind all his earthly relationships and interests, just as if he had been severed from them by death. And since lo be in union is heaven, the Shakers hold that no attempt should be made by them to draw men into union. They believe that they live in daily communion with the spirits of the departed believers. The Shaker settle- ments are composed of from two to eight " families, " or households. A large house, divided through the middle by wide walls, and capable of accommodating from 30 to 150 in- mates, is erected by each family, the male members occupying one end and the female the other. Their meals are taken in a com- mon room, and in silence. They possess an average of seven acres of land to the member, and are very industrious. The settlements are at New Lebanon and Watervliet, N. Y. ; Han- cock. Tyringham, Harvard, and Shirley, Mass. ; Enfield, Conn. ; Canterbury and Enfield, N. H. ; Alfred and Gloucester, Me. ; Union Vil- lage, White Water, and North Union, Ohio; and at Pleasant Hill and South Union, Ky., and number, in all, 2,400 members. Roman Baths, The, were among the most magnificent and extensive architectural ornaments of the city in the time of the Empire. They were erected by different em- perors for the use of the populace, and the vast ruins still existing testify to their great size and the unparalleled luxury of their ar- rangements. In these great thermce, as they were called, the primitive object of bathing was largely lost sight of, and they became favorite places of general resort for pleasure. The most famous were those erected by the Emperors Titus, Caracalla, and Diocletian. Caracalla's baths were 1 ,500 feet long by 1 ,250 feet broad, and the swimming bath or natato- rittm in those of Diocletian was 200 feet long by 100 feet wide ; and it is calculated that in this entire establishment 18,000 people could bathe at one time. There were separate struc- i tures for the exclusive use of women, and in some cases separate apartments in the same building, but these were generally inferior to those for the men. They were built entirely of stone and polished marble, and all the I apartments were beautifully ornamented with ': mosaic, and profusely adorned with painting, stuccowork, and statuary. The public baths ' of Pompeii were uncovered in 1824 and the j complete internal arrangement disclosed, which is probably similar to, though on a smaller scale than, those in Rome. The process of bathing was this: After undressing in the apodyterivm, or "room for undressing," the bather was rubbed and anointed with some of the fragrant oils and ointments used by the ancients, and then proceeded to a spacious ' apartment devoted to exercises of various kinds, among which games at ball held a < prominent place. After exercise, he went into the caldarium, either merely to sweat or to take the hot bath ; and during this part of the RELIGION, EDUCATION, PINE ARTS. 537 process the body was scraped with strigiles (small curved instruments usually made of bronze). Being now dried with cloths, and slightly anointed all over with perfumed oils, he resumed his dress, and then passed a short time, successively, in the tepidarium and the frigidarium, or temperate and cold rooms, which softened the transition from the great heat of the caldarium into the open air. The artificial bath has been used from the most ancient times of which we have any record. It is mentioned in Homer, the vessel for bath- ing being described as of polished marble and the warm baths referred to as effeminate. Pub- lic baths were common in Greece during the historic period, and they were in use at Rome from early times ; but during the Republic they continued small, dark, and inconvenient, and it was not until the time of the Empire that they reached their great size and splendor. Russia, Religion of. The Established Church of Russia, to which the great majority of the inhabitants belong, is identical in doc- trine with, and is a branch of, the Greek Church. The liturgy used is the same as that originally used by the Church at Constantino- ple, but it is read, not in Greek, but in the Sclavonic tongue. Previous to the time of Alexander II., dissent in all its forms was not only discouraged but often rigorously repressed and it has only been during very late years that general toleration has been permitted. The Roman Catholic Church has been the object of especial severity in the past, particularly during the reign of the Czar Nicholas. Under the laws of Alexander II., all Catholics and Protestants enjoy civil rights with members of the Established Church, and are equally ad- missible to the highest offices of the empire. Christianity was introduced into Russia in the ninth century. Taj Mahal was built by the Shah Jihan of India as a mausoleum for the remains of his wife Nourmahal, and is situated at Agra. It is of white marble, 100 feet in diameter and 200 feet in height, built in the form of an irregular oc- tagon, and rising from a marble terrace, under j which is a second terrace of red sandstone. At the corners of the marble terrace are lofty minarets, and in the center of the main build- ing rises a dome, flanked by cupolas of similar form. Every part, even the basement, the dome, and the upper galleries of the minarets, is inlaid with ornamental designs in marble of different colors, principally of pale brown and i bluish violet. Here and there, also, the exte- | rior and interior are decorated with mosaics of precious stones. The whole Koran is said to be written in mosaics of precious stones on the ! interior walls. In the construction of this magnificent building, which, as Bayard Taylor says, alone repays a visit to India. 20,000 men were employed twenty years. Although the labor cost nothing, over $20,000,000 were ex- pended in its construction. The doors are of solid silver, and an enormous diamond was placed upon the tomb itself. SUNDAY-SCHOOL STATISTICS OF ALL COUNTRIES. COUNTRIES. Sunday Schools. Teachers. Scholars. COUNTRIES. Sunday Schools. Teachers. Scholars. Europe : 37,201 585,457 5,976,537 Asia Continued. Siam 16 64 809 6.275 62,994 694,860 China 105 1,053 5,264 3,54 27,740 308,516 Japan 1KO 390 7,019 89 310 4,112 Central Turkey 516 2,450 26,833 Austria 212 513 7,195 506 3,043 55.316 Africa 4,246 8,455 161,394 Finland 6.853 11,534 147,134 France 1,450 3,800 60,000 North America : 5,'JOO 34,983 749,7X6 United States 123.173 1,305.039 9,718,432 4 7 180 Canada 8,386 69,521 576,064 Italv 403 651 10.9U9 Newf oundl'nd and Labrador 859 2.-J75 22,976 1 560 4,600 163,000 West Indies 2,185 9,673 110.233 550 4,390 (xi,980 Central America and Mexico 550 1,300 15,000 11 56 1,066 83 7T7 15,524 South America 360 3,000 150,000 88 180 3,230 Sweden 5,750 17,200 242,150 Oceanica : j 1,637 6.916 113,382 Australasia 4,766 64,211 686,029 35 175 1,564 Fiii Islands 1,474 2,700 42,909 230 1,413 15,840 Asia* Other Islands 210 800 10,000 107 440 4,876 The World 224,562 2,239,728 20,..<33 The total number of teachers and scholars in the world, according to this report, was 22,508,661. The table does not include the schools of the Roman Catholic and Non-Evangelical Protestant churches. The number of scholars in Roman Catholic Sunday schools in the United States is estimated by clerics at 800,000. 538 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. RELIGIOUS STATISTICS. NUMBERS IN THE WORLD ACCORDING TO CREED. The following estimates, by M. Fournier de Flaix, are the latest that have been made by a competent authority. CREEDS. No. of Followers. CBEEDS. No. of Followers. 1 Christianity. 477,080,158 5 Buddhism 147.900,000 6 Taoism 43.000,000 256,000,000 7 Shintoism 14,000,000 190,000,000 8 Judaism 7,186.000 4 Mohammedanism 176,834,372 I 9 Polytheism 117,681,669 CHRISTIANITY. CHUKCHES. Total Followers. CHURCHES. Total Followers. Catholic Church 230,866,533 ! Armenian Church 1,690,000 143,237,625 Nestorians 80,000 98 016 000 Jacobites 70,000 3 000 000 Coptic Church 120,000 i Total 477,080,158 DISTRIBUTION OF SEMITIC ARYAN RACES. CHRISTIANITY. GEOGRAPHICAL DIVISIONS. Catholic Church. Protestant Churches. Orthodox Churches. Mohamme- danism. Judaism. Europe 160,165,000 80,812,000 8, 196,000 6,629,000 6,456,000 America 58,393,882 57,294,014 130,000 Oceanica 6,574,481 2,724.781 24,699,787 Africa 2,655,920 1,744.080 3fi,000,000 400,000 Asia 3,007,250 662.750 8,820,000 109,5*3.585 200,000 Total Followers 230,866,533 143,237,625 98,016,000 176,834,372 7,186,000 RELIGIOUS DIVISIONS OF EUROPE. COUNTRIES. Catholic Church. Protestant Churches. Orthodox Churches. Jews. Mohamme- dans. Unclassified. Russia 9,600,000 3,400,000 73,310,000 3,400,000 3,000000 290,000 Germany 17 100,000 29,478,000 590,000 32,000 Austria-Hungary 31,100,000 3,900,000 3,100,000 1,700.000 100,000 France 35,387,000 580,000 49,000 84,000 United Kingdom 6 500,000 30,100 000 100,000 500,000 Italy 298^0 000 62,000 38,000 50,000 Spain 16,850,000 29,000 5,OtX> Belgium 5 880 000 15 000 3,000 2,000 Roumania 100 000 15 000 4,800,000 400,000 30000 56,000 Ottoman Empire 320 000 11 000 1 700 000 60 000 2,708 000 70,000 Netherlands 1 545 000 2 756 000 83,000 16,000 Portugal 4 300 000 1,000 Sweden 1 000 4 698,000 2,000 1,000 Switzerland 1 172 000 1 710 000 8 000 10,000 Denmark 3 000 2 089 000 4 000 4,000 Greece 10 000 10 000 1 930 000 5 000 45 000 Ser via 6 000 1 000 1 973 000 5 000 15 000 Bulgaria 29 000 1 393 000 671 000 Norway 1 000 1 958 000 1,000 Roumelia 30*000 700 000 4000 240000 2,000 Montenegro 5 000 290 000 1,000 Luxembourg 200 000 Malta 160 (100 .... Gibraltar ... Total Followers 160,165,000 80,812,000 89,196,00 6,456,000 6,629,000 1,219,000 The distinction between followers and actual communicants should be observed. ENGLISH-SPEAKING RELIGIOUS COMMUNITIES OF THE WORLD. Methodists of all descriptions 18,650,000 15,500,000 12,250,000 9,230,000 6,150,000 6,260,000 Unitarians 2,600,000 5.500,000 17,000,000 Roman Catholics Minor religious sects Of no particular religion English-speaking population 124,130,000 Free Thinkers A very large numbers-more than 18,000,000 of Hindoos, Mohammedans, Buddhists, and others in the East also speak ana read English. The estimates in the last table are from Whitaker's (London) Almanack, 1896. The Encyclopedia Britannica, last edition, makes a rough estimate of numbers of Protestants in the world speaking all civilized languages, and places the Lutherans at the head, with over 42,000,000 members (mostly in Germany and Scandinavia), and the Anglican Church second, with about 20,000,000 members. United States census of 1890. RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 539 RELIGIOUS DENOMINATIONS IN THE UNITED STATES. Statistics of Ministers, Churches, and Communicants or Members, compiled by The Independent and published in 1901. DENOMINATIONS. Ministers. Churches. Communi- cants. DENOMINATIONS. Ministers. Churches. Communi- cants. Adventists : Evangelical 34 30 1 147 Communistic Societies : Shakers . . 16 1728 Advent Christian 883 580 25816 Amana 1 1,600 Seventh-Day 372 1,470 55,316 Harmony 1 250 Church of God 19 29 647 Separatists 1 200 Life and Advent Union .... 60 33 3,000 Altruists 1 25 Church of God in Jesus Christ 94 95 2,872 Church Triumphant (Kore- shan Ecclesia) 5 205 Adonai Shomo 1 20 New I curia 1 21 Armenians 15 21 8,500 Congregationalists 6,614 5,604 629,874 Disciples of Christ 6,628 10528 1,149,982 Regular, North 7,415 9,374 973,820 Regular, South 1:4 058 18,963 1,608,413 Dunkards : Regular, Colored 14,351 15,654 1,864,600 German Baptists (Conserva- Six Principle 14 18 937 tives) 2,612 860 95,000 Seventh-Day 119 115 8,991 German Baptists (Old Or- 1 619 1 486 85,109 der) '. 150 100 3,500 Original Freewill 118 167 11,864 German Baptists (Progres- 450 550 28 000 sive) 231 173 12,787 Separate 113 103 6,479 Seventh-Day Baptists (Ger- United 25 204 13 209 man) 5 6 194 Church of Christ 80 162 8,254 Primitive 2,040 3,222 121,347 Episcopalians : Old Two Seed in the Spirit Protestant Episcopal 4,961 6,686 716,431 300 473 12,851 Reformed Episcopal 103 104 9,743 Brethren (River) : Brethren in Christ 152 78 4,000 Evangelical Bodies: Evangelical Association United Evangelical Church. 1,052 478 1.806 985 118,865 60,993 Old Order, or Yorker 7 8 214 United Zion's Children 20 25 525 Friends : Friends (Orthodox) 1,279 820 91,868 Friends (Hicksite) 115 201 21,992 . ,_. . . Friends ( Wilburite) 38 62 4,329 Brethren (1 ) 109 2,289 Friends (Primitive; 11 9 232 Brethren (IIJ 88 2,419 Brethren (III ) 86 1,'235 Friends of the Temple 4 4 340 Brethren (IV.) 31 718 German Evangelical Protes- tants 44 52 36,156 Catholics : Roman Catholics 11,636 12,062 8,610,226 German Evangelical Synod . . 909 1,129 203,574 Polish Branch 19 18 15,000 Old Catholics 6 5 10,000 Greek Church : 4 9n rmn Reformed Catholics 6 Russian Orthodox 41 68 46,000 Catholic Apostolic 96 10 1,394 Tours 201 570 1 058 135 47 63 1,277 Latter-Day Saintsf : 1,248 1,520 112,835 Church of Jesus Christ of Latter-Day Saints 1,700 796 300,000 Christian Catholic (Dowie). .. 55 50 40,000 Reorganized Church of Jesus Christ of Latter-Day Saints! 2,200 600 45,600 Christian Missionary Ass'n... 10 12,000 13 600 764 1,000,000 Lutherans (General Bodies) : G i ' i IB r;i 1 Synod 1,226 1,668 194,442 183 294 18,214 United Synod in the South. 215 390 38,639 1,166 2,019 370,409 Church of God (Winnebren- 460 580 38,000 S\ nodical Conference (Independent Synods) : 2,029 2,650 581,029 United Norwegian 364 1,083 126,872 _ , . Joint Synod of Ohio 457 604 77,362 furth) 12 384 Buffalo 25 39 4,600 Hauge's, Norwegian 97 11 206 14 11,483 1,700 143 173 7,679 German of Iowa 402 824 74,068 540 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Religious Denominations in the United States Continued. DENOMINATIONS. Ministers. Churches. Communi- cants. DENOMINATIONS. Ministers. Churches. Communi- cants. Lutherans Continued : Norwegian Lutheran 272 725 67,208 Presbyterians : Presbvterian in U S of A Michigan .... 56 86 7 860 (North) 7 315 7 469 973433 Danish in America 47 66 10 000 Cumberland Presbvterian 1 734 '> 957 180 192 Icelandic 8 26 3 350 Cumberland Presbvterian 45 50 c, i is 400 150 39 000 11 50 5 '23 Welsh Calvinistic 105 185 12 000 125 375 37 5i'0 United Prcsbvterian 918 911 115 901 Danish United 84 151 8 506 Presbvtpriau in 1'. 8.01 A. Independent Congregations 85 200 25 000 (Soi't'i) 1 461 2 959 225 800 Associate Church of North America 12 31 1 053 "Waldenstromians 140 150 20,000 Associate Reform Synod of the South 104 131 11,344 Mennonites : Mennonite 418 28S 22443 Reform Presbvterian in the U. S.(Synod') Reform Presbvterian in N. 124 113 9,790 Bruederhoef 9 5 352 A. (General Svnod) 33 36 5,000 Amish 365 124 13,051 Reform Presbvterian (Cov- Old Amish 71 22 2 038 enanted) 1 1 40 Apostolic 2 2 209 Reform Presbvterian in U. Reformed 43 31 1 680 S. and Canada 1 1 608 General Conference 138 79 10 395 Church of God in Christ Old(Wisler) 18 17 18 15 471 610 Reformed : 41 16 3 050 Defenseless 20 11 1 ( 176 (Dutch) 698 619 107 594 Brethren in Christ 45 82 2 953 1 082 1 660 ^4;{ .-,45 Christian Reformed 96 145 18,096 Methodists : Methodist Episcopal 17 521 26,021 2 716 437 Salvation Army 2 689 753 40,000 Union American M. E African Methodist Episco- 63 61 2,675 Sch wenkf eldians 3 4 306 pal 5,659 5 775 673,504 African Union Methodist Social Brethren 17 20 913 Protestant 80 70 2,003 African Methodist Episco- pal Zion 3 155 2 906 536 271 Society for Ethical Culture. . . 4 1,064 Methodist Protestant 1,647 2 400 181 316 Spiritualists 334 45,030 Wesleyan Methodist 5*7 506 17 ''01 Methodist Episcopal South 6,041 14 244 1 457'fl64 Theosophical Society 40 695 Congregational Methodist ... Congregational Methodist (Colored) 210 5 240 5 20,000 319 United Brethren : New Congregational Meth- odist. 20 17 1 059 United Brethren in Christ.. United Brethren (Old Con- 1,897 4,229 243,841 Zion Union Apostolic 30 27 2 346 stitution) 670 817 226,643 2 187 1 300 199 206 65 92 6 470 Unitarians 550 459 71 000 914 1 123 28 588 Independent Methodist 8 14 2 569 Universalists 735 764 48.42C Evangelist Missionary 87 13 4600 Volunteers of America 500 200 Moravians 118 111 14,817 I i Independent Congregations.. 54 156 14,126 * Swedenborgians. t Mormons. t Seceding Mormons. The aggregate of about 28,000,000 represents actual church membership, and includes all Catholics, but not all persons affiliated by family ties to Protestant bodies. The larger of the Protestant bodies may claim twice the number of their communicants as nominal adherents. A census of religious bodies was taken by the United States Census Office in 1900, but has not yet been pub- lished. It is expected to appear in 1902. Scriptural Measures of Capacity. The measures of capacity referred to in the Scriptures, with their English equivalents, are as follows : The Chomer or Homer in King James's translation was 75,625 gals, liquid, and 32,125 pecks dry. The Ephah or Bath was 7 gals. 4 pts., 15 ins. sol. The Seah =1-3 of Ephah, 2 gals. 4 pts., 3 ins. sol. The Hin = 1-6 of Ephah, 1 gal., 2 pts., 1 in. sol. The Omer=l-10 of Ephah, 5 pts., 0.5 in. sol. The Cab=l-18 of Ephah, 3 pts., 10 ins. sol. The Log=7 1-72 of Ephah, pt., 10 ins. sol. The Metretes of Syria (John ii, 6)= Cong. Rom. 7 pts. The Cotyla E aster n=l- RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 541 100 of Ephah, pt., 3 ins. sol. This Cotyla contains just 10 ozs. avoirdupois of rain water ; Omer, 100 ; Ephah, 1,000; Chomer or Homer, 10,000. Scriptural Measures of Length. The measures of length used in the Scriptures, with their English equivalents, are as follows : The great Cubit was 21.888 ins.=1.824 ft., and the less 18 ins. A span, the longer= a cubit=10.944 ins.=.912 ft. A span, the less =1-3 of a cubit=7.296 ins.= .60S ft. A hand's breadth=l-6 of a cubit=3.684 ins.= .304 ft. A finger's breadth=l-2J of a cubit j = .912 ins.= .076 ft. A fathom=4 cubits= 7.296 ft. Ezekiel's Keed--=6 cubits=10.944 feet. Themile=4,000cubits=7,296ft. The Stadium, 1-10 of their mile=400 cubits= 729.6 ft. The Parasang, 3 of their miles= 12,000 cubits, or 4 English miles and 580 ft. 3-3.164 miles was a day's journey some say 24 miles; and 3,500 ft. a Sabbath day's jour- ney ; some authorities say 3,648 ft. Tlieosophy. The name " theosophy " is from the Greek word theoxnphia, divine wisdom. The object of theosophical study is professedly to understand the nature of divine things. It differs from both philosophy and theology in that all reasoning processes are excluded as im- perfect, and claims to derive its knowledge from direct communication with God. It does not accept the truths of recorded revelation as im- mutable, but as subject to modification by later direct and personal revelations. It is really but another name for mysticism, although the latter name implies much more ; and the direct and immediate knowledge or intuition of God to which the Mystics laid claim was, in fact, the foundation of that intimate union with God, and consequent abstraction from outer things, which they make the b.isis of their moral and ascetical system. The theosophic system dates from a very high antiquity. Since the Christian era we may class among theoso- phists such sects as Neoplatonists, the Hesy- chasts of the Greek Church, and in later times the disciples of Paracelsus, Thalhauser, Bohme, and Swedenborg. Bayeux Tapestry, The, is a web of can- vas or linen cloth upon which is embroidered, in woolen threads of various colors, a represen- tation of the invasion and conquest of England by the Normans. The canvas is 214 feet long by 20 inches broad, and is preserved in the public library at Bayeux. Tradition asserts that it is the work of Matilda, wife of William the Conqueror, and it is believed that if she did not actually stitch the whole of it with her own hands, she at least took part in it, and directed the execution of it by her maids, and , afterwards presented it to the Cathedral of ] Bayeux as a token of her appreciation of the effective assistance which its bishop, Odo, rendered her husband at the battle of Hast- ings. Some antiquarians contend that it was not the work of Queen Matilda (the wife of the Conqueror), who died in 1083, but of the Empress Matilda (the daughter of Henry I.), who died in 1167. The tapestry contains, be- side the figures of 505 quadrupeds, birds, sphinxes, etc., the figures of 623 men, 202 horses, 55 dogs, 37 buildings, 41 ships and boats, and 49 trees in all, 1,512 figures. It is divided into 72 distinct compartments, each representing one particular historical occur- rence, and bearing an explanatory Latin in- scription. A tree is usually chosen to divide the principal events from each other. This pictorial history for so it maybe called gives an exact and minute portraiture of the manners arid customs of the times ; and it has been remarked that the arms and habits of the Normans are identical with those of the Danes as they appear in the earlier formative periods of the English people. Amen is a Hebrew word signifying " Yes," " Truly." In Jewish synagogues the arnen is pronounced by the congregation at the con- clusion of the benediction. Among the early Christians the prayer offered by the presbyter was concluded by the word amen, uttered by the congregation. Justin Martyr is the earliest of the fathers who alludes to the use of the re- sponse. According to Tertullian, none but the faithful were permitted to join in the resj>onse. A somewhat noisy and irreverent practice pre- vailed in the celebration of the Lord's Supper until the sixth century, after which it was dis- continued. " Upon the reception both of the bread and of the wine, each person uttered a loud 'amen,' and at the close of the conse- cration by the priest, all joined in shouting a loud 'amen.'' The same custom was ob- served at baptism, when the sponsors and wit- nesses responded vehemently. In the Greek Church the amen was pronounced after the name of -each person of the Trinity; and at the close of the baptismal formula the people responded. At the conclusion of prayer it signifies (according to the English Church Cat- echism) no be it; after the repetition of the creed, so it is. Shintuism is the prevailing religion of Japan. Its characteristics are the absence of an ethical and doctrinal code, of idol worship, of priestcraft, and of any teachings concerning a future state. It requires pre-eminently pu- rity of heart and general temperance. The principal divinity is the sun-goddess Amate- rasu, whose descendant and vice-regent on earth is the Mikado, who ia therefore wor- 642 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. shiped as a demigod. Their temples are singularly devoid of ecclesiastical parapherna- lia. A metal mirror generally stands on the altar as a symbol of purity. The spirit of the enshrined deity is supposed to be in a case, which is exposed to view only on the day of the deity's annual festival. The worship con- sists merely in washing the face in a font, striking a bell, throwing a few cash into the money box, and praying silently for a few sec- onds. In addition to the chief deity, there are a legion of canonized heroes and benefac- tors who are worshiped. Many Japanese temples are magnificent specimens of archi- tecture in wood, and are remarkable for their vast tent-like roofs and their exquisite wood- carving. Arundel Marbles are a collection of an- cient sculptures consisting of 37 statues, 128 busts, and 250 inscribed stones, which were found on the island of Paros about 1610. They were collected by Mr. W. Pefty, pur- chased by Lord Arundel, and given by his grandson, Henry Howard afterward Duke of Norfolk to the University of Oxford in 1GG7. These sculptures contain inscriptions in the Greek tongue. In their perfect state they evidently contained a chronological table of the principal events of Grecian history from the time of Cecrops, 1582 B. C., to the archon- ship of Diognetus, 264 B. C. The chronicle of the last ninety years of this period, however, is lost, and the portion still extant is much corroded and defaced. Babel, Tower of. The distinction of being a remnant of the Tower of Babel has been claimed for three different masses, but the majority of opinions are in favor of the Birs Nimrud in Babylonia, the ruins of this temple appearing to more nearly correspond with the conceived notion of that structure. It is of an oblong form, the total circumfer- ence being 762 yards. At the eastern side it is cloven by a deep furrow, and it is not more than 50 or 60 feet high ; but on the western side it rises in a conical figure to the elevation of 198 feet ; arid on its summit is a solid pile of brick 37 feet high by 28 in breadth, dimin- ishing in thickness to the top, which is broken and irregular, and rent by a large fissure ex- tending through a third of its height. The fire-burnt bricks of which it is built have in- scriptions on them ; and so excellent is the ce- ment, which appears to be lime-mortar, that it is nearly impossible to extract a whole brick. The other parts of the summit of the hill are occupied by immense fragments of brickwork of no determinate figure, tumbled together, and converted into solid, vitrified masses, as if they had undergone the action of the fiercest fire or had been blown up with gunpowder. These ruins stand on a prodigious mound, the whole of which is itself in ruins, channeled by the weather, and strewed with fragments of black stone, sandstone, and marble. Taken in connection with the ancient tradition that the Tower of Babel was rent and overthrown by fire from heaven, this is a curious circum- stance. Sunday. The name of the first day of the week is derived from the Saxon Sunnan daeg, or day of the sun ; in the Roman calen- dar, dies Soils. We have no definite informa- tion as to when the observance of the first day of the week was substituted by the Christians for that of the seventh day, the ancient Jewish Sabbath. It undoubtedly arose among the earliest practices of the Christian Church, and was regarded as the fittest day to be held as sacred, because, in the words of one of the Fathers, "It is the first day in which God changed darkness and matter, and made the world ; and on the same day, also, Jesus Christ, our Saviour, rose from the dead." Various additional reasons, taken from the Old Testament, were advanced by others of the early Fathers in support of the observance of this day. The first law, either ecclesiastical or civil, by which the sabbatical observance of Sunday is known to have been ordained, is an edict of Constantine, A. D. 321, forbidding all work but necessary husbandry on the " vener- able Sunday." In the Theodosian Code it is en joined that " on the Sunday, rightfully desig- nated by our ancestors as the Lord's Day, all lawsuits and public business shall cease." Since the ninth century, Sunday has been a thor- oughly established institution of the Christian Church as a day of rest and religious exer- cises, and one exempt from any occupations of a purely secular character, except such as were absolutely necessary. Peri. According to the mythical lore of the East, a Peri is a being begotten by fallen spirits, which spends its life in all imaginary delights ; it is immortal, but is forever excluded from the joys of Paradise. They take an in- termediate place between angels and demons, and are either male or female ; when the latter, they are of surpassing beauty. One of the finest compliments to be paid to a Persian lady is to speak of her as Perizadeh (born of a Peri ; Greek, Parisatis). They belong to the great family of genii, or jin, a belief in whom is en- joined in the Koran, and for whose conversion, as well as for that of man, Mohammed was sent. Peter-Pence, the name given to a tribute offered to the Roman pontiff in reverence to the memory of St. Peter, whose successor the RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 543 pope is believed by Roman Catholics to be. The first idea of an annual tribute appears to have come from England. It is ascribed by some to Ina (A. D. 721), King of the West Saxons, who went as a pilgrim to Rome, and there founded a hospice for Anglo-Saxon pil- grims, to be maintained by an annual contri- bution from England ; by others, to Offa and Ethelwulf , at least in the sense of their having extended it to the entire Saxon territory. The tribute consisted in the payment of a silver penny by every family possessing land or cattle of the yearly value of thirty pence, and it was collected during the five weeks between St. Peter's and St. Paul's day, and August 1. Since the total annexation of the Papal states to the kingdom of Italy the tribute has been largely increased in France, Belgium, England, and Ireland. Public Schools. The origin of the pub- lic school system of America dates back to the time of the settlement of Massachusetts and Connecticut. In the very beginning of their history these colonists made provision for the establishment of schools in every town, and parents were required to send their children to them or educate them otherwise. At first these schools were not entirely free ; that is, those who could pay were required to do so ; but the evil of separating the children into paupers and rate-payers in time became appar- ent, and shortly after the colonies became states the school taxes were increased and the sshools were made free. The example of these colonists was quickly followed by other New England colonies; but in other seel ions of the country schools were either private or parochial for many years, except in cases where a free school was established and sup- ported by private beneficence. When the vast territories west of the Allegheny mountains came into the possession of the United States, every sixteenth section in each Congressional township was set aside by the government as a nucleus of a public school fund ; later, this was increased to two sections for the benefit of the newer states. The Southern states were the last to embrace the free school system in its entirety, having done so only since the close of the civil war. Maine, Vermont, Massachusetts, Connecticut, New Hampshire, New York, New Jersey, Kansas, Nevada, Wis- consin, Ohio, Michigan, California, Arizona, Wyoming, and Washington Territory have compulsory educational laws. The average age up to which school attendance is reqiiired is, in the United States, fourteen and one half years, which is older than that in any other country. Colossus of Memnon. The celebrated vocal statue of Memnon, on the plain of Thebes, was originally sixty feet high, and is of a coarse, hard gritstone or breccia. The peculiar characteristic of this statue was its giving out at various times a sound resembling the break- ing of a harp string or a metallic ring. Con- siderable difference of opinion has prevailed as to the reason of this sound, which has been heard in modern times, it being ascribed to the artifice of the priests, who struck the sonorous stone of which the statue is com- posed, the passage of light draughts of air through the cracks, or the sudden expansion of aqueous particles under the influence of the sun's rays. This remarkable quality of the statue is first mentioned by Strabo, who visited it in company with ^Elius Gallus, about 18 B. C. ; and upwards of 100 inscriptions of Greek and Roman visitors, incised upon its legs, record the visits of ancient travelers to witness the phenomenon, from the ninth year of Nero, A. 1). 63, to the reign of the Emperor Severus, when it became silent. Colossus of Rhodes. The gigantic Colossus of Rhodes was a statue of Apollo, so placed as to bestride the entrance to the har- bor. It is said to have been commenced by Chares of Lindus, a famous pupil of Lysippus, and was completed by Laches. It was formed of metal which was cast in separate pieces, a process which lasted for twelve years, and was finished in 280 B. C. The Colossus was over 100 feet high, and its thumb was so large that a man could not clasp it with his arms. It cost 300 talents, and sixty years after its erec- tion it was thrown down by an earthquake. When, after lying on the ground for centuries, it was removed, the metal that composed it loaded 900 camels. The Colossus of Rhodes ranks as one of the Seven Wonders of the World. Sanhedrim, as the supreme national tri- bunal of the Jews was called, was established at the time of the Maccabees, and was the court before which Christ was tried for high treason against the Roman Emperor. It was presided over by the Nasi (Prince), at whose side was the Ab-Beth-Din (Father of the Tribunal). Its members, of which there were seventy-one, belonged to the different classes of society ; there were priests, elders that is, men of age and experience scribes, or doc- tors of law, and others exalted by eminent learning, which was the pole condition for admission. The limits of its jurisdiction are not clearly known, but it is believed that the supreme decision over life or death was ex- clusively in its hai:ds. The regulation of the sacred times and seasons was vested in it. Ik fixed the beginnings of the new mooni ; in- 544 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. tercalated the years when necessary ; watched over the purity of the priestly families by care- fully examining the pedigrees of those priests born out of Palestine, so that none born from a suspicious or ill-famed mother should be admitted to the sacred service. The mode of procedure was extremely complicated ; and J such was the caution of the court, especially in matters of life and death, that capital punishment was pronounced in the rarest in- stances only. The Xasi had the supreme direction of the court, and convoked it when necessary. He sat at the head, and at his right hand was the seat of the Ab-Beth-Din; the rest of the seventy-one took their places, according to their dignity, in front of them, in the form of a semicircle, so that they could be seen by both the chief officers. The meet- ing place of the court was, on ordinary oc- casions, in a hall at the southeast corner of the Temple, but on extraordinary occasions it met in the house of the high priest. It met daily, with the exception of Sabbaths and feast days. After the destruction of the Temple and Jerusalem, the Sanhedrim, after many emigrations, was finally established at Babylon. Host. In conformity with the doctrines of the Roman Catholic Church, the consecrated bread of Eucharist is called the Host. In the Latin Church it is a thin circular disk of un- leavened bread, made of the finest flour, and generally bearing some emblematic device. In the Greek and other Oriental churches, as well as in the various Protestant communities, the Eucharist is celebrated in leavened bread, only differing from ordinary bread in being of finer quality. Schoolmen and Scholastics are the terms applied to the class of learned theolo- gians and philosophers who flourished in Europe, mainly in France and England, during the middle ages. They were largely given to hair- splitting logic and endless argumentations and i speculations on points of the most unimpor- \ tant and often silly nature. Still, in their number were included men of great learning and ability, as Duns Scotus, Thomas Aquinas, and Albert ns Magnus, with whom this system of philosophical theological scholasticism cul- minated in the fourteenth century. Johannes Erigeua Scotus was not strictly a scholastic ; he lived in the ninth century, in the prepara- j tory period of scholasticism. Colosseum, The. The Flavian amphi- theater at Rome, known as the Colosseum, was begun by the Emperor Vespasian, and was fin- ished by the Emperor Titus, A. D. 80. Itcov- : ere about five acres of ground, and contained seats for 87,000 persons and standing room for 15,000 more. It was in the form of an oval, the longer diameter being 612 feet and the shorter diameter 515 feet, and the height of the walls from 100 to 180 feet. The arena where the gladiators fought and the deadly conflicts with wild beasts took place was 281 by 178 feet. The exterior consists of three rows of columns, Doric, Ionic, and Corinthian, and above, a row of Corinthian pilasters. Between the col- umns there are arches which form open galler- ies throughout the whole building, and be- tween each alternate pilaster of the upper tier there is a window. There were four tiers or stories of seats, corresponding to the four ex- ternal stories. The first of these is supposed to have contained twenty-four rows of seats, and the second sixteen. These were separated by a lofty wall from the third story, which is supposed to have contained the populace. Statues, sculptures, figures of chariots, metal shields, and other embellishments adorned the niches and salient points. On the occasion of the dedication of the Colosseum by Titus, 5,000 wild beasts were slain in the arena, the games having lasted for nearly 100 days. There were means by which, when the com- bats were ended, the immense arena could be filled with water for the exhibition of sea- fights. During the various persecutions of the early Christians many of these were thrown to the wild beasts in this amphitheater. One of the first of these was St. Ignatius, who was torn to pieces by lions. In the sixth century, when Christianity gained the ascendancy, the Church put an end to the use of the Colosseum. It still stood entire in the eighth century, but subsequently large quantities of the marble was used in the construction of public and pri- vate buildings. It was consecrated as a mon- ument to the martyrs who had suffered within its walls by Pope Benedict XIV., who erected crosses and oratorios within it, and so put an end to the process of destruction. Parsees, the followers of the ancient Per- sian religion as reformed by Zerdusht, or Zo- roaster, as he is commonly called. According to Zerdusht there are two intellects, as there are two lives one mental and one bodily; and, again, there must be distinguished an earthly and a future life. There are two abodes for the departed Heaven and Hell. Between the two there is the Bridge of the Gatherer, or Judge, which the souls of the pious alone can pass. There will be a general resurrection, which is to precede the last judg- ment, to foretell which Sosiosh, the son of Zer- dusht, spiritually begotten, will be gent by Ahu- ramazdao. The world, which by that time will be utterly steeped in wretchedness, dark- ness, and sin will then be renewed, Death, RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 545 the aroh fiend of Creation, will be slain, and life will be everlasting and holy. The Par- sees do not eat anything cooked by a person of another religion. Marriages can only be con- tracted with persons of their own caste and creed. Their dead are not buried, but exposed on an iron grating in the Dokhma, or Tower of Silence, to the fowls of the air, to the dew and to the sun, until the flesh has disappeared, and the bleaching bones fall through into a pit beneath, from which they are afterward removed to a subterranean cavern. The tem- ples and altars must forever be fed with the holy fire, brought down, according to tradi- tion, from heaven, and the sullying of whose flame is punishable with death. The priests themselves approach it only with a half-mask over their faces, lest their breath should defile it, and never touch it with their hands, but with holy instruments. The fires are of five kinds ; but, however great the awe felt by Parsees with respect to fire and light, they never consider these as anything but emblems of Divinity. There are also five kinds of ' ' sac- rifice," which term, however, is rather to be understood in the sense of a sacred action. Koran, the sacred book of the Mohamme- dan religion. According to that belief a copy of it, in a book bound in white silk, jewels, and gold, was brought down to the lowest heaven by the angel Gabriel, in the blissful and mys- terious night of Al-Khadr, in the month of Ramadan. Portions of it were, during a space of twenty-three years, communicated to Mo- hammed, both at Mecca and Medina, either by Gabriel in human shape, " with the sound of bells," or through inspirations from the Holy ! Ghost "in the Prophet's breast," or by God himself, " veiled and unveiled, in waking or in the dreams of night." Mohammed dic- tated his inspirations to a scribe, not, indeed, in broken verses, but in finished chapters, and from this copy the followers of the Prophet procured other copies. The chief doctrine laid down in the Koran is the unity of God and the existence of one true religion with changeable ceremonies. When mankind turned from it at different times, God sent prophets to lead them back to truth ; Moses, Christ, and Mohammed being the most distinguished. Both punishments for the sinner and rewards for the pious are depicted with great diffuse- ness, and exemplified chiefly by stories taken from the Bible, the Apocryphal writings, and the Midrash. Special laws and directions, ad- monitions to moral and divine virtues, more particularly to a complete and unconditional resignation to God's will, legends principally relating to the patriarchs, and almost without exception borrowed from the Jewish writings, form the bulk of the book, which throughout bears the most palpable traces of Jewish in- fluence. The outward reverence in which the Koran is held throughout Mohammedanism is exceedingly great. It is never held below the girdle, never touched without previous purifi- cation ; and an injunction to that effect is gen- erally found on the cover. It is consulted on weighty matters ; sentences from it are in- scribed on banners, doors, etc. Great lavish- ness is also displayed upon the material and the binding of the sacred volume. The copies for the wealthy are sometimes written in gold, and the- covers blaze with gold and precious stones. Nothing, also, is more hateful in the eyes of a Moslem than to see the book in the hands of. an unbeliever. Palace of the Caesars. The palace of Augustus, built upon the site of the houses of Cicero and Catiline, was the beginning of the magnificent pile of buildings known as the Palace of the Csesars, and each succeeding Emperor altered and improved it. Tiberius enlarged it, and Caligula brought it down to the verge of the Forum, connecting it with the Temple of Castor and Pollux, which he converted into a vestibule for the imperial abode. Nero added to ithis "Golden House," which extended from the Palatine to the Caelian Hill, and even reached as far as the Esquiline. This latter portion was afterward used by Titus for his famous baths. The ruins of the palace extend over the three hills of Rome, and cover an area of 1 ,500 feet in length and 1,300 feet in width. The Golden House, as can be imagined from its name, was a build- ing of extraordinary magnificence. It was surrounded by a triple portico a mile in length, and supported by a thousand columns ; and within this lay an immense lake, whose banks were bordered by great buildings, each repre- senting a little city, about which lay green pastures and groves, where sported " all ani- mals, both tame and wild." The ceilings of the banqueting rooms were fretted into ivory coffers made to turn, that flowers might be showered down upon the guests, and also furnished with pipes for discharging perfumes. The principal banqueting room was round, and by a perpetual motion, day and night, was made to revolve after the manner of the uni verse. The interior walls of the palace were covered with gold and precious stones, and adorned with the finest paintings that the world afforded. In the vestibule stood a statue of Nero, 120 feet in height. Chinese Burial Customs. Immedi- ately upon the decease of a person in China a priest is called, whose prayers are supposed to free the departed spirit from the necessity of 546 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS, going to hell, and to secure his admittance to Paradise. The body is arrayed in the most splendid garments that the family can afford. In one hand is placed a fan, and in the other a prayer written on a piece of paper, Vhich is a letter of recommendation to open the gates of Heaven. The coffin is a very solid, sub- stantial case. The corpse when put in it, is laid in a bed of lime or cotton, or covered with quicklime, and the edges of the lid are closed with mortar in the groove, so that no smell escapes. The nature of the site for burial is regarded as having an important influence on the prosperity of the living, the people fearing ill luck, disease, and accident if the dead are not satisfied with the site of their graves. The selection of propitious sites is made by geoman- cers, a class of quacks who pretend to super- natural wisdom. When the day of burial arrives, which is if a satisfactory place for the tomb has been found the nearest lucky day to the third seventh day after death, the j friends assemble at the house. An offering of cooked provisions is laid out near the coffin. This is intended to occupy the attention of the spirit of the dead, which is supposed to linger near the body, or any other vagrant spirits that may be hovering around, and keep them from doing any mischief or harm to the living. All mourners are dressed entirely in white, and they assemble about the coffin and in turn prostrate themselves before it, a band of music playing meanwhile. The procession is then formed, the coffin going first, borne on an un- wieldy bier carried by sixty-four men, or even more. A man goes before the procession and scatters paper money, to buy the good will of any stray, tricky spirits that may be prowling about. Immediately after the coffin, in a sep- arate sedan, is borne the ancestral tablet of the deceased with the offering of food. Different figures, banners, and tablets are also carried, according to the means and rank of the family. When the grave is reached the coffin is let down, and lime is abundantly mixed with the earth thrown in upon it. Crackers are then fired, libations are poured out, prayers are re- cited, and finally paper molds of houses, clothes, horses, money, and everything that the dead man can possibly want in the land of shadows, are burned. The origin of this latter custom is unquestionably the idea that everything that had been enjoyed or used in this life would be desired in the other. The ancient custom was to burn a man's household belongings, to kill upon his grave his favorite horse, hound, or bird, and sometimes his chosen servant, that their shadows might go with him into the life beyond. After the funeral the elaborate dishes that have been borne to the grave are carried back, and the mourners feast upon them. Bodies are in some instances kept in or about the house for many years, and incense is burned before them morning and evening. Delphi, Temple at. The edifice known to have existed at Delphi, Greece, at the be- ginning of the historic period, is said to have been the work of two architects named Tropho- nius and Agamedes. In 548 B. C., this temple having been destroyed, the Amphictyons un- dertook to build another for the sum of three hundred talents, of which the Delphians were to pay one fourth, and the remainder was to be contributed by other cities of Greece. The temple is said to have been of the Doric order without, and the Ionic within. The front was built of Parian marble, and the sculptured decorations were rich and beautiful. The arches above the entrances were adorned with representations of legends of mythology, and similar adornments were carved on the panels of the walls. Images and statues in brass and marble enriched the interior, and the golden shields taken at Marathon, and also in battles with the Gauls, adorned the architraves. The attempts of the Persians, in 480 B. C., and of the Gauls, in 279 B. C.,to rob the tem- ple, were both, it was said, prevented by the miraculous interference of Apollo, and the sacred character of the place long protected it from other would-be plunderers. It was, how- ever, eventually plundered by Sulla, and again by Nero, who silenced the oracle. It was re- stored by Hadrian, and then despoiled of many of its most beautiful works of art by Constantino the Great, and finally destroyed in the latter part of the fourth century. Sinai. The exact position of Sinai, the mount on which God gave to Moses the Ten Commandments and the other laws by which the Israelites were bound, is a matter of somo dispute, but it is probably to be found in the mountains occupying the greater part of the Arabian peninsula, lying between the Gulf of Suez and Akabah. This mountain mass is divis- ible into three groups a northwestern, reach- ing, in Mount Serbel, an elevation of 6,340 feet ; an eastern and central, attaining in Jebel Katherin a height of 8,160 feet, and a south- eastern, whose highest peak, Um Shaumer, is the culminating point of the whole Sinaitic range. Serbal, with its five peaks, looks the most magnificent mountain in the peninsula and is identified with Sinai by the early Church Fathers, Eusebius, Jerome, Cosmas, etc. ; but the requirements of the Hebrew narrative are not met by it, and even as early as the time of Justinian, the opinion that the Serbal was the Sinai of Moses had been abandoned, and to a ridge of the second or eastern range that honor RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 547 had been transferred, the northern summit of which is termed Horeb ; and the southern, Jebul-Musa, or Mount of Moses, continues to be regarded by a majority of scholars- a'4 the true Sinai. The famous monastery of Mount Sinai stands at the eastern base of Jebul-Musa, in solitary peace. There were numerous other convents, chapels, and hermitages around the mountain in earlier times. Jesuits, Society of, was founded by Ignatius of Loyola, assisted by Peter Le Fevre, a Savoyard ; James Lainez, Francis Xavier, Nicholas Bobadilla, Spaniards, and a Portu- guese named Rodriguez, in the year 1534. The society, when first conceived, had for its ob- ject a pilgrimage to the Holy Land and the conversion of the infidels. This purpose, however, was abandoned owing to the warfare existing at that time between the Turks and the Western powers, and Loyola and his as- sociates turned their attention to an organiza- tion designed to labor zealously in resisting the spread of the Reformation. In 1539 the rule of the proposed order " To the greater glory of God " and the vow by which they bound themselves to go as missionaries to any country which the Pope might indicate was submitted to Paul III., and Loyola was made the first general of the order. The Society of Jesuits is one of the most celebrated religious orders of the Roman Catholic Church, and its history has been closely identified at times with that of several of the leading countries of Europe. By reason of legislative influences *he Jesuits were obliged to suspend operations in France, Italy, Spain, and several other countries. Notwithstanding that many good Roman Catholics are not in sympathy with the Jesuit order, yet it can be said that in their pioneer missionary operations they undoubt- edly accomplished a great deal of good. Mosaics. The origin of the art of pro- ducing artistic designs by setting small square pieces of stone or glass of different colors, so as to give the effect of painting, is obscure, but it was much practiced by the Romans, espe- cially for ornamental pavements, specimens of which are almost always found wherever the remains of an old Roman villa are discovered. Under the Byzantine empire it was also much used for the ornamentation of churches, in which it formed a large portion of the wall decoration. Christian mosaics admit, says one writer, of two general divisions, the later Roman and the Byzantine styles, the material in use being, in general, cubes of colored glass, inlaid, in the Roman school, on a ground of blue and white, although in the latter the tes- serae are frequently irregular in size and the workmanship coarse. The former style flour- ished in Italy chiefly in the fifth and sixth cen- turies, the most splendid specimens being found in the churches of Rome and Ravenna. The Florentine mosaic dates from the time of the Medici, and is made entirely of precious or semi-precious stones, such as amethyst, agate, jasper, onyx, and others, cut and inlaid in forms or thin veneers best suited to produce the effects desired. The objects represented are most frequently birds, flowers, fruits, vases, sometimes buildings, and, more rarely, por- traits and landscapes. In reference to the pres- ent Roman mosaics, it may be said that the smalti or small cubes of colored glass which I compose the pictures are stuck into the cement- I ing paste, or mastic, in the same manner as I were the colored glass, stone, and marble sec- tilia and tesserae of the ancients. Within quite recent years mosaics of surpassing beauty, I both in design and material, have been pro- ! duced by Russian artists in the Imperial Glass Manufactory of Russia. Trajan's Column, a celebrated column ' at Rome, which was reared A. D. 114, by the I Roman Senate and people, in honor of the Em- | peror Trajan. It is considered not only the greatest work of its architect, Apollodorus, but , one of the noblest structures of its kind ever ! erected. The pedestal is covered with bas- reliefs of warlike instruments, shields, and helmets ; and a very remarkable series of bas- reliefs, forming a spiral around the shaft, exhibits a continuous history of the military achievements of Trajan. These are in excel- lent preservation, and, independently of their beauty as works of art, they are invaluable as records of ancient costumes. A spiral staircase in the interior of the column leads to its sum- mit. The height of the entire column is 132 feet. It stands erect in all its ancient beauty amid the ruins of Trajan's Forum. The sum- mit was originally crowned by a colossal statue j of the emperor, which has been incongruously replaced by one of St. Peter. Vulgate, The, the Latin translation of the Bible, which is the received version in the Roman Catholic Church. The original Vul- gate was completed in A. D. 405 by Jerome, and between that date and 1546, when it was i first declared the authorized version of the Roman Church, it underwent several revisions which completely changed the character of the work. In the latter year the Tridentine Coun- cil decreed the preparation of an authentic edition, and the task was andertaken by the Papal Chair; but it was not until 1590 that Sixtus V. produced the work. This, however, turned out to be so utterly incorrect and faulty throughout that the copies were speedily sup- pressed, and another edition, which appeared 548 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. in 1592, was prepared under Clement VIII., to which, in the next year (1593), that other edition succeeded, which has since remained the normal edition of the Church of Rome, and has been reprinted, unchanged, ever since. The Smithsonian Institution is sit- uated in Washington, D. C., and was organ- ized by act of Congress in August, 1846, to carry into effect the provisions of the will of James Smithson. That celebrated English physician bequeathed to his nephew 120,000, the whole of his property, which, in the event of the death of the latter without heirs, was to revert to the United States, to found at Wash- ington an establishment for " the increase and diffusion of knowledge among men," and which was to be named the Smithsonian Insti- tution. The conditions on which the bequest was to take effect in the United States occurred in 1835 by the death of the nephew without issue, and the Hon. Richard Rush was sent to London to prosecute the claim. On Septem- ber 1, 1838, he deposited in the United States Mint $515,169, being the proceeds of the es- tate. The Institute is governed by regents appointed by the federal government, and con- tains a museum, library, cabinets of natural history, and lecture rooms. It receives copies of all copyrighted books, and exchanges with other countries, and its museum is enriched with the gatherings of national exploring ex- peditions. A portion of its funds is devoted to scientific researches and the publication of works too expensive for private enterprise. There are departments of astronomy, ethnol- ogy, meteorology, and terrestrial magnetism. The courses of public lectures by eminent sci- entific men are among the attractions of the capital. REQUIREMENTS FOR THE PRAC- TICE OF LAW. Qualifications as to citizenship, personal zharacter, education, and professional attain- ments required by the several states, from those who are admitted to the practice of law. From reports to the United States Bureau of Education. Alabama. Actual, bona, fide citizenship. High ttoral character as testified to by a member of the pro- fession. Education judged from examination. If the study period is passed in a law office, then the judges of the supreme court must make written examination, ex- cept in the case of those graduating from Alabama Uni- versity. Arkansas. Must be a citizen of the state and of good moral character. The liberal education feature is left to court which examines. The circuit and supreme courts are the only bodies authorized to'grant license to practice law. Applicant must stand satisfactory ex- amination in open court, by the supreme court. anl !>y a committee of three lawyers appointed by circuit court when applicant is examined by that court. Arizona. A declaration of citizenship and prooj of good moral character are required, but there is no dis- tinction between liberal and professional education. The only thing necessary for admission to practice here, if not armed either with a diploma or license from an- other jurisdiction, is to stand the examination in open court, and by that show such familiarity with the law as will satisfy the court that the applicant is qualified to take care of a practice. California. A declaration of citizenship and certif- icate from two attorneys of court to which applicant has applied for admission that he possesses the charac- ter and attainments that entitle him to admission. Ex- amination in open court after filing certificate from two attorneys. Colorado". Must declare intention to become a citizen three months before applying ; must have certificate of good moral character ; but no special attention paid to liberal education feature. If not a member of the bar of another state, must pass an examination before su- preme court or a committee appointed by it in each judicial district. Connecticut. Must be a citizen of the United States, 21 years old, and be of good moral character, and must have graduated from a college or secondary school or have been admitted to a college or preparatory school, or passed an examination before committee, for which last he must pay a fee of 5.00. Must have studied law after arriving at the age of 18 for two years, if a college or law school graduate ; otherwise, for three years in a law school or under competent professional instruction in the office of a practicing attorney or with the judge of the superior court or both, of which period one year, at least, must be spent in this state. Applicants shall be required to pass a satisfactory examination, before a standing committee of fifteen, upon the law of pleading, practice, and evidence, constitutional law, the law of real and personal property, contracts, torts, equity, criminal law, wills, and administration, corpora- tions, partnership, negotiable paper, agency, bailments, domestic relations, and such additional subjects as committee shall deem advisable. Delaware. Must be a resident of the state and of " fair " character, and must have a general knowledge of English and American history, mathematics, English grammar, and Latin. A legal course in a law office is not necessary. All applicants for admission except practicing la'wyers of other states are required to study three years under direction of a lawyer or a judge o'f the state. Examination is made by a committee of the bar. Florida. Must satisfy judge that he is 21 years of age, and of good moral character. Shall be examined by the judge to whom application is made or a commit- tee of two appointed by judge. Georgia. Must be a' citizen of the circuit wherein he makes application and of good moral character, as shown by a certificate of two attorneys known to court. Must undergo examination before committee appointed by court on common law, pleading, and evidence, equity, and equity pleading and practice, Code of Georgia, United States and State Constitutions, and the rules of court. Diplomas of certain law schools in Georgia will obviate necessity of examining candi- date. Idaho. Must be a citizen of the United States ; noth- ing required in the wav of liberal education. He must have a knowledge of the law; it is immaterial how he gets it. A committee appointed by court ascertains fitness. Illinois. Must make affidavit that he is of age, a citizen of the state, and a certified transcript from a court of record in this state showing that he is a man of good moral character. Nothing required as to liberal education. Every applicant to practice law, ex- cept those who apply for admission upon a license granted in another state, or upon a diploma issued by a law school in the state, shall present to one of the ap- pellate courts proof that he has studied law three year.<, the same studies prescribed by the regularly established law schools in the state, or a course equivalent thereto, naming the books studied, under the direction and supervision of one or more licensed lawyers or firms of lawyers, and that the applicant; has submitted to satis- factory examinations by such lawyer or lawvers at con- venient intervals during such period of sturfy, covering progressively the entire course studied, such proof to consist of the affidavit of the applicant and also of the certificate or certificates of the lawyer. Examination is held in open court. Indiana. Everv person of good moral character, being a voter, shall be entitled to admission to practice RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 549 law in all courts of justice. (Constitution, Art. VII., sec. 21.) From the letter of the attorney-general, Hon- orable William A. Ketchum: The words, "being a vo- ter" has been held by the courts to have no limitation in excluding those who are not voters, and women are admitted to practice. The only substantial requirement is that the applicant shall be of good moral character, and at times this may not be very rigidly insisted upon. It seems to be the theory that it is not very important who is admitted to practice law, as after he has been ad- mitted to practice if he does not know enough to justify his admission, he will not get any practice anyhow. Iowa. Must be a citizen (of the state) and of good moral character. There is no provision regarding a lib- eral education, but the want of it is considered in deter- mining the applicant's qualifications. Must pursue a regular course in the study of law for at least two years in the office of a practicing attorney of this state, or a course of two years of thirty-six weeks each in some reputable law school in the United States. Examina- tion is conducted by three members of the bar, one of whom must be attorney-general. The written questions are prepared by the supreme court ; the oral examina- tion is conducted in open court. Kansas. Any person being a citizen of the United States, who has read law for two years, the last of which must be in the office of a regularly practicing attorney, who shall certify as to the good character and domicil of the applicant, after passing a satisfactory examina- tion before anv district court of the state, and taking the prescribed oath, shall be admitted to practice. Graduates of the School of Law of the University of Kansas are admitted to practice in the district and inferior courts without further examination. Louisiana. Must be citizen of state; present cer- tificate of good moral character. Must present certifl- ' cate that two years have been spent in study of law. The ' court will not be satisfied with the qualifications of a can- didate in point of legal learning unless it shall appear : that he is well read in the following course of studies at i least : Constitution (Story), Law of Nations (Vattel or ! Wheaton), History of the Civil Law in Louisiana, Louis- 1 iana Civil Code, Code of Practice, General Statutes, In- stitutes of Justinian, Domat's Civil Law, Pothier on Ob- 1 ligations, Blackstone's Commentaries (fourth book),) Kent's Commentaries, Mercantile Law (Smith), Insur- ance (Wood), Negotiable Paper (Story, or Parsons and Daniel), Evidence (Greenleaf, Starkie or Phillips), Crimes (Russell), criminal procedure (Bishop), and the Jurispru- dence of Louisiana. Maine. Nothing in the way of citizenship or liberal education, but character must be satisfactory to justice presiding at time of examination. Must have studied law two years in a lawyer's office or law school, and must be vouched for by the member of bar with whom the student has read. The examining committee is com- posed of three members of the bar in each county. Maryland. Must have been a citizen two years (of state), and be of good moral character. No liberal edu- cation required by law. Must have been a student of law for the two years immediately preceding his appli- cation, and must be examined by court, if not a gradu- ate of a law school iu state. The court selects the ex- amining committee. Massachusetts. Must be a citizen of the state, or have declared his intention to become such, and must be of good moral character. Undoubtedly, applicant's command of English, as shown in examination papers, is of weight. Must pass a thorough examination. Michigan. Must be a resident in the state, a citizen of the United States, and of good moral character (affi- davit of at least two members of the bar of the state in good standing). The board of examiners will regard applicants who have received bachelors' degrees from any reputable college or university as having prima facie the requisite general educational qualifications for admission to the bar. So also as to graduates of Michigan normal or high schools, or other reputable in- stitutionsof similar character. Recent first grade teach- ers' certificate will also be accepted. Otherwise ap- plicant must pass examination, especially in arithmetic, grammar, elementary algebra, general American and English historv, civil government, composition and rhetoric, and English literature. If the professional examination papers of a college or other graduate show deficiencies in education, the writer will be subject to examination. Graduates from law department of Mich- igan University or Detroit College of Law, both having a three years' course, are admitted to bar on their di- ploma. Others must have studied law for three years previous to applying for admission, which shall be con- ditioned on the applicant's answering correctly seventy per cent, of the questions asked him in a written and oral examination. Minnesota. Applicant must present hisaffidavit that he is of age and is a citizen of the United States, or has declared his intention to become such. Also affidavits from two practicing attorneys that he is a person of good moral character. Board'shall examine applicants in such branches of general education as it may deem expedient. Must be examined by state board "of ex- aminers in law of real property, conveyances and trusts, equity jurisprudence, plea'ding and practice, common law, statute law, code pleading and practice, constitutional law, international law, criminal law, contracts, sales, bailments and negotiable instruments, landlord and tenant, insurance, partnership, agency, suretyship, frauds, damages and liens, torts, domestic relations, executors, administrators, and wills. Attor- neys of five years' standing from any other state or territory of the United States or District of Columbia may, in the discretion of the board, be admitted with- out examination. Missouri. Must be an actual resident and of good character. No particular qualification as to liberal edu- cation. Graduates of the St. Louis, Kansas City, and Columbia law schools are exempted from examination. Others are required to pass an examination in open court. Montana. Must be a resident of the United States, or have made a bonafide declaration of his intention to become such, and that he is of age ; must have testimo- nials of good moral character, and have studied law for two years, as certified to by two reputable counselors at law. The examination is conducted in open court. Nebraska. Must be a resident, of age, of good re- pute, and have studied law for two years. Must at least have a good common school education, which is judged from his composition and spelling at examination. Graduates of the College of Law of the University of Nebraska shall be admitted, as far as professional learn- ing is concerned, without examination. Others are ex- amined by court. Nevada. Resident of the state and of good moral character. A general education only required. Famil- iarity with the various branches and general practice of the law required, and to this end study in law office is desirable, although not required. The examination is by court or committee. New Jersey. Must take the oath of allegiance, be of age, and of good moral character. Must have served a clerkship of four years with some practicing attorney of the state unless he is a graduate of some college or university in the United States, when his clerkship may be acquitted in three years. During the clerkship he must not have been engaged in any other business incompatible with the full and fair botin fide service of his clerkship. No person shall be recommended for license as a counselor at law in this state, unless ho first submit himself to examination and give satisfactory evidence of his knowledge of the principles and doc- trines of the law, and of his abilities as a pleader, nor shall any be admitted to such examination until he shall have practiced as an attorney for three years at least. The examination for attorneys and counselors shall be both written and oral. The examining commit- tee is composed of six counselors, two going out each year. New Mexico. Must be a citizen of the United States or have declared intention to become such, of good moral character, and bonafide resident of New Mexico. Must undergo an examination in open court. New York. Must be a citi/en and present certificate of good moral character. Liberal education is required. For college graduates two years' study of law is re- quired (for others, three years) either in law school or in office. There is a state board of law examiners. North Carolina. One year residence in the state re- quired, as also a certificate of good moral character, signed bv two members of the bar. All must undergo an examination and must have read law in a law office or in a law school for twelve months at least. Supreme court conducts examination. North Dakota. Must be a resident, of good moral character. All are examined, but applicants must have read law in an office or studied in some reputable law school for two years (thirty-six weeks of session being taken as a vear). Supreme court examines applicants. Ohio. Must be a citizen of the United States or have declared intention, have resided one year in state, and 550 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. be a person of rood moral character. Nothing in the way of liberal education. All must pass an examina- tion, to which those only are admitted who have studied law three years either" in an office or in a law school. | Supreme court appoints a committee of nine members to examine applicants. Oklahoma. Must possess a good moral character. Most have acquired the requisite learning. This fact is ascertained through examination by the court. Appli- cant is examined in open court by committee. Pennsylvania, He must be a citizen of the United States and of a good moral character as certified to by two persons. He must have a good English education and a knowledge of the elements of Latin as evidenced by examination. In most counties the rules of courtre- quire a two or three years' course of study (prior to final examination, by a committee) in the office of a member of the local bar and require at least one year's actual work in an office, even for students of" regular law schools. South Carolina. Citizenship required. Must be of age and of a good moral character. Graduates at the law school of the State University are admitted without examination; others must undergo the examination upon the course of study prescribed by supreme court. South Dakota. Must be a resident of the state, of age, and of good moral character. All are required to pass an examination in open court. Tennessee. Must be of age and of good moral char- acter. No other requirement. The professional attain- ments of the applicant are ascertained by any two judges. Texas. Six months' residence in the state required. Applicant must be of age, and have a good reputation. Graduates from the University of Texas are admitted without examination. Others are examined by a com- mittee on Blackstone's Commentaries, Kent's Com- mentaries, Stephens on Pleading, Story's Equity Plead- ing, first volume of Greenleaf , Story on Notes, Story on Partnership, Story's_ Equity Jurisprudence, or books of like character. He is expected to have some knowledge of the Constitution and statutes of Texas and the practice of her courts. Utah. Citizen of United States or one having de- clared intention to become a citizen. Must be of age and of good moral character. All applicants are strictly examined in open court. Vermont. Must have resided in Vermont six months, be of age, and of good moral character. All are examined in open court by a committee of the bar; but applicant must have studied three years in the office of a practicing attorney, though not more than two of these years may be spent in attendance at a law school charte'red by any state of the United States. Virginia. Must have resided in state six months, be of age, and a person of honest demeanor. It appears that all are subject to examination by the supreme court of appeals on common law, equity, commercial law, and practice, and the Code of Virginia, but the diploma of a law school duly incorporated by one of the United States " is considered." Washington. Must be a citizen of the United States, have resided in state one year, have a good moral char- acter, and be 21 years of "ase. The supreme court, by two of its judges, satisfies itself that the applicant has sufficient general learning, but an attorney of the state must certify that applicant has studied law for two years previous to his application and that he believes him to be a person of sufficient legal knowledge and ability to discharge the duties of an attorney and coun- selor at law. West Virginia. Must be a citizen, one year a resi- dent of the county, and have a good moral character. All applicants are now (1S97) examined bv the law faculty of the University of West Virginia for the su- preme court. Wisconsin. Must be a resident of the state and be of good moral character. Graduates of the law depart- ment of the University of Wisconsin are admitted on, their diplomas; others are examined by state board of examiners, if they have studied law at "least two years prior to the examination. Wyoming. Must be a citizen, of age, of good moral ! character, and learned in the law, all of which must be I passed upon by the standing committee on admission of ' each court. An examination is made into the private character and unprofessional literary attainments of applicant. CHRISTIAN SCIENCE. The following are the claims of Christian Science, as stated by Mrs. Laura Lathrop, C. S. D., New York: The revelation of Christian Science came to Rev. Mary Baker G. Eddy in the year 1866, and its truth and power were immediately demonstrated by signs following. For thirty- two years sinners have been reclaimed, de- praved appetites for opium and intoxicating drinks have been destroyed, the sick have been healed of every disease, including insanity ; the blind have received their sight, the deaf their hearing, shortened limbs have been elongated, crooked spines have been straight- ened, and law after law of the human mind has been broken. The one great text-book of this science is" Science and Health," with key to the Scriptures, by Mary Baker G. Eddy, supplemented by another book by the same author called "Miscellaneous Writings." " Science and Health " is now in its one hun- dred and sixtieth edition, and the demand for it is increasing daily. The Christian Science Publishing House is at 95 Falmouth street, Boston, Mass., and here are published,' besides the two books above mentioned, other works by the same author, also The Chris- tian Science Monthly Journal, The Christian Science Weekly, and the "Christian Science Bible Lessons." In the October Journal for 1898 there were mentioned 1,916 prac- titioners, 289 regularly organized churches, 113 services where no church has as yet been organized, and 81 institutes. One hundred and twenty of these practitioners are in Greater New York, and sixty-seven in Manhattan Borough. There are six regularly organized churches of this denomination in New York city, three of which own church buildings. A beautiful building is now being erected at the corner of Central Park West and Sixty-eighth street by the Second Church of Christ Scientist, New York city. Flourishing churches have been organized in London, England ; Paris, France ; Dresden and Hanover, Germany, and in Canada, Bra- zil, and Scotland. Many handsome church edifices have been built in different cities, and many others are in process of erection. The mother church is located in Boston, Mass., and those all over the country are its branches. Their services are uniform, consisting of two meetings on Sunday and one on Wednesday evening. No sermons are preached by a per- sonal pastor, but a sermon made up of selec- tions from the Bible and "Science and Health," with key to the Scriptures, is read by two readers, called the first and second read- ers. This church is emphatically a healing RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 551 ohurob, and many cases of restoration to health have been testified to during the past few years, brought about by attendance on one of these meetings. Christian Science is demonstrable Christian- ity. Through the spiritual understanding of the teachings of Christ Jesus, its followers are enabled to obey his command to " heal the sick " and do the works he and his disciples did. The omnipotence, omnipresence, and omniscience of God are proved to be true. Christian Science is not mind cure, as that is popularly understood, because it recognizes but one mind, God. It is not faith cure, because it does not perform its wonderful works through blind faith in a personal God, but through the understanding of man's relation to God. It is not mesmerism nor hypnotism, because it de- nies absolutely the power of the human mind and human will, and claims no will but God's. Through recognizing the one mind and man as the reflection of that mind, it forever estab- lishes the brotherhood of man. It is the per- fect salvation from sin, disease, and death Christ Jesus came to bring. In " Rudimental Divine Science," Mrs. Eddy defines Christian Science "as the law of God, the law of good, interpreting and demonstrating the principle and rule, of eternal harmony." REQUIREMENTS FOR PRACTICE OF MEDICINE. Qualifications as to citizenship, personal character, education, and professional attain- ments required by the several states from those who are licensed to practice medicine. From reports to the United States Bureau of Educa- tion. California. No qualifications are specified except that the individual must be a graduate of a " recog- nized " college ; that is, one recognized by the Associa- tion of American Medical Colleges. Colorado. Diploma of recognized reputable school, or ten years' practice of medicine as a business. Anat- omy, chemistry, physiology, pathology, surgery, prac- tice of medicine, ami obstetrics and diseases of women. Connecticut. He may be a common drunkard, a no- torious libertine, or a criminal abortionist as far as the letter of the law disqualifies him. Anatomy, physiol- ogy, medical chemistry, obstetrics, surgery, pathology, diagnosis, and therapeutics, including practice and materia medica. No attention paid to college diplomas. Delaware. Must furnish proof of good moral char- acter and good common school education. Must have studied medicine at least four years, including three regular courses of lectures in different years in some legally incorporated college or colleges, prior to his hav- ing received a diploma. Florida. Diploma of a college recognized (by the American Medical Association); but any holder of a diploma of a medical college may demand an examina- tion, which all must pass. Georgia. Three courses in a regular medical college and successful passage of examination before board. Idaho. Citizen of United States or has declared in- tention of becoming such, and evidence of good moral character. But said board may also refuse a license for unprofessional conduct, etc. The words " unprofes- sional conduct, etc.." is declared to mean First. The procuring or aiding or abetting in procuring a crim- inal abortion. Second. The employment of wht are popularly known as "cappers" or "steerers" in pro- curing practice. Third. The obtaining a fee on the assurance that a manifestly incurable disease can be permanently cured. Fourth. The willful betrayal of a professional secret to the detriment of a patient. Fifth. All advertisements of medical business in which un- truthful and improbable statements are made. Sixth. All advertisements of any medicine or means whereby the monthly periods of women can be regulated or the menses can be re-established if repressed. Seventh. Conviction of any offense involving moral turpitude. Eighth. Habitual intemperance in the use of ardent spirits, narcotics, or stimulants. Diploma of a reputa- ble medical college and an examination. Illinois. Good moral character. A diploma or certifi- cation of graduation from a high school or evidence of having passed the matriculation examination to a recog- nized literary or scientific college, or a certificate of suc- cessful examination "by the faculty of any reputable uni- versity or college, or by the state superintendent of public instruction in the following branches: English grammar, arithmetic, elementary physics, United States history, geography, Latin (equivalent to one year in a high school). One year is allowed in which to cure de- fects in Latin, but the student must be provided with a certificate of proficiency in this branch of learning from the designated authorities before he can be accented as a second course student. (Medical Practice Act.)" Diplo- mas of colleges recognized by the state board of health as being in "good standing"." Diplomas from condi- tional colleges are recognized, but must be supplemented by an examination in medicine, surgery, gynecology, and obstetrics, a percentage of 80 being required. Graduates of colleges in the United States that are not recognized by the board are required to pass an exami- nation in all the branches of medicine. Graduates of Canadian colleges and foreign colleges and universities are required to supplement their diplomas with an ex- amination in practice, surgery, gynecology, and ob- stetrics, unless they present evidence of their right to practice medicine and surgery in the province and country in which the college is located from which they receive their diplomas. Indiana. Must reside within the state and possess a good moral character, attested by two freeholders un- der oath. After" July 1, 1899, no medical college will be recognized as in good standing which does not require the entrance qualifications prescribed by the Associa- tion of American Medical Colleges as a prerequisite for matriculation. (Same as Illinois.) Since 1899, July 1, no diploma will be recognized if given by a college pos- sessing an inadequate equipment fortea'ching medicine, which has not clinical and hospital facilities, and which does not have an active and competent faculty, embrac- ing the departments of anatomy, phvsiology. chemistry, materia medica, therapeutics, medicine, surgery, ob- stetrics, histology, pathology, bacteriology, ophthalmol- ogy, otologv, gynecology, laryngology, dermatology, hygiene, and state medicine, a'nd which does not en- join attendance upon 80 per cent, of four regular courses of instruction of not less than twenty-six weeks each in four different years, and which does not exact an aver- age grade of 75 per cent, on an examination as a condi- tion of graduation. Iowa. Certificate refused to one who is incompetent, convicted of felony, grossly immoral, or is an habitual drunkard. Good character must be certified to by two physicians of the state. Literary qualifications same as those of Illinois. Diploma of recognized medical col- lege teaching in a four or more years' course anatomy, physiology and hygiene, chemistry, materia medica and therapeutics, theory and practice of medicine, pathol- ogy and pathological anatomy, surgery, obstetrics and gynecology, bacteriology and microscopy, and medical jurisprudence. Each course shall continue for twenty- six weeks. Kansas. Good moral character is required. A di- ploma of a recognized medical school. Louisiana. A good moral character, average edwn- tion, as shown by technical examination before board. Must have diploma from medical college in good repute, having three courses of six months each in different vears. An examination before the board on all the branches of medicine. Maine. Certificate of good moral character, only so far as the board may take it upon itself to decide. All must pass an examination on anatomy, physiology, pa- thology, materi^ medica, therapeutics, surgery, the prin- ciples 'and practice of medicine, obstetrics, or such 552 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS, branches thereof as the board may deem necessary that tnie applicant should possess. Maryland. Testimonials to moral character. The candidate should at least possess a high school educa- tion. Must be a graduate of some reputable medical school having a three years' course, but an effort is be- ing made to extend the course to four years. Noii- graduates of a college of medicine are e'xamined in practice, surgery, anatomy, materia meilica, therapeu- tics, physiology, chemistry, jurisprudence, obstetrics, gynecology, hygiene, and pathology. Massachusetts. Good moral character and twenty- one years old. All applicants are required to pass a satisfactory examination in surgery, physiology, pa- thology, obstetrics, and practice of medicine. College diplomas not a factor in testing an applicant's qualifi- cations for practice. Michigan. Every graduate of any legally author- ized medical college in the state, or in any one of the United States, or in any other country, shall be deemed qualified to practice medicine and surgery in all its de- partments after having registered. Minnesota. Good moral character. Evidence of igno- rance in ordinary spelling and writing count against a candidate, at option of examiner. The applicant for license must present evidence of having attended upon three separate courses of medical study at a college having not less than six months' duration each. Study with physician not necessary. [Other] applicants are required'to pass an examination in anatomy, physiology, histology, pathology, chemistry, medical jurisprudence, preventive medicine, obstetrics, practice, surgery, dis- eases of women and children, materia medica, eye and ear diseases, toxicology. Missouri. The law prescribes no qualifications ; but in regard to personal character and citizenship the board has made a rule, which has not been questioned, accord- ing to which an applicant must present two letters of recommendation from physicians as to his moral and professional character, aiid he must be a resident of the state unless he makes affidavit that he resides in a county of another state, which county lies upon the border of Missouri. Under a recent decision of the supreme court it is necessary only to be the possessor of a diploma from a legally chartered medical school in good standing to be admitted to registration. The good standing of the school to be determined, like the repu- tation of an individual, by testimony. The court de- cided that the law did not authorize the board to set up a standard. Montana. None; but board may refuse to grant li- cense on moral grounds. Applicants must possess a diploma from a reputable school of medicine, whose professors and teachers are graduates of a school of that kind, and which, after July 1, 1898, requires attendance upon four courses of lectures of at least six months each, no two terms in one year. No credit for practice of or study with a physician is given. Nevada. A medical education and a diploma from some regularly chartered medical school, said school to have a bonafide existence at the time when said diploma was granted. New Hampshire. Good moral character and twenty- one years of a ge. Must have graduated from a registered college or satisfactorily completed a full course in a reg- istered academy or high school, or had a preliminary education considered snn\ accepted by the regent (state superintendent of education) as fully equivalent. Our state pays now (1899) no attention to medical college di- plomas except from Dartmouth. Since 1893 Dartmouth graduates have been obliged to stand examination. Ap- plicant must have studied medicine not less than four full school years of at least nine months each, including four satisfactory courses of at least six months each, In four different calendar years, in a medical college reg- istered as maintaining at the time a satisfactory stand- ard. The regent shall accept as the equivalent for any part of these requirement* or those concerning a liter- ary education, evidence of five or more years or reputa- ble practice provided that such substitution be specified in the license, or has either received the degree of bach- elor or doctor of medicine from some registered medi- cal school, or a diploma or license conferring full right to practice medicine in some foreign country. (Recent law.) New Jersey. Nothing as to citizenship, but at least two physicians, one of New Jersey, must vouch for personal character. Candidates must be graduates from an accredited literary or scientific college, or have com- pleted satisfactorily not less than a three years' course in an accredited high school or academy, or have re- ceived a preparatory education covering'the following branches, viz., orthography, arithmetic, English gram- mar and composition, geography, history of the United States, algebra, and physics, or what this board of ex- aminers may consider their equivalent. Candidates must have received a diploma conferring the degree of doctor of medicine from some legally incorporated med- ical college (which in the opinion of the board was in good standing at the time of issuing said diploma) in the United States or a diploma or license conferring the full right to practice all the branches of medicine and surgery in some foreign country, anil have also studied medicine four years, including three courses of lectures in different years in some legally incorporated Ameri- can or foreign medical college or colleges prior to the granting of said diploma or foreign license; provided, however, that two courses of medical lectures, both of which shall be either begun or completed within the same calendar year, shall not be considered as satisfy- ing the above requirements. All examinations shall be written in the English language and the questions shall be, except in materia medica and therapeutics, such as can be answered in common by all schools of practice. New Mexico. Two certificates well accredited as to personal character and professional standing. Our board disproves of medical schools doing their own ex- amination of candidates for matriculation. It requires that each candidate for admission to a medical school shall furnish as a minimum a high school certificate preferably a college degree. No study with a physician required. As to professional study our board has not specified at length its requirements except as to time (four years), and terms of lectures [courses] (four) and conditions for matriculation. [A diploma of a legally chartered medical institution in good standing will admit to practice law.] New York. Certificate of good moral character from not fewer than two physicians in good standing; also evidence that applicant has the general educa- tion required preliminary to receiving the degree of bachelor or doctor of medicine in this state (medical student certificate), or graduation from a registered college, or satisfactory completion of a full course in a registered academy or high school, or had a preliminary education considered andaccepted by the regents of the University of the State of New York as equivalent to such high school course. Evidence that applicant has studied medicine not less than four full years of at least nine months each, including satisfactory courses of at least six months each, in four different calendar years in a medical school registered as maintaining at the time a satisfactory standard. The applicant for license to practice medicine in New York state [not a grad- uate] must pass examinations in anatomy, physiology, hygiene, chemistry, surgery, obstetrics, pathology, and diagnosis, therapeutics, practice, and materia medica. North Carolina. Certificate of good moral charac- ter from some one known to the board. Education decided by character of papers handed in on examina- tion. No attention paid to diplomas. Satisfactory ex- amination in all branches of medicine. No study with physician required. Examinations are comprehensive but are liberal ; 80 per cent, is necessary to pass how- ever. Ohio. Good moral character from two registered physicians of the state. All medical colleges of the United States requiring a minimum of three years of study of medicine and two courses of lectures for graduation prior to 1886, and possessing proper facili- ties for teaching and a faculty embracing the chairs of anatomy, physiology, chemistry, materia medica, ther- apeutics, medicine, surgery, and obstetrics, shall be recognized as in good standing, and diplomas issued by the same and properly verified shall entitle the holders thereof to register as graduates in medicine. For the ten years ending in B'ebruary, 1896, all medical colleges exacting the foregoing requirements and possessing facilities and a faculty as specified above shall, by virtue of such facts, be recognized as in good standing to and including the year 1892, but that no medical college shall be recognized as in good standing which has not since 1892 possessed the foregoing facilities and faculty, and in addition has not exacted an entrance qualifica- tion and attendance upon three regular courses of lec- tures as a condition 01 graduation. On and after July 1,1899, no medical college will be recognized as in good standing which does not require the entrance qualifica- tion prescribed by the Association of American Medical RELIGION, EDUCATION. FINE ARTS. 553 Colleges as a prerequisite for matriculation, which does not possess an adequate equipment for teaching medi- cine, which has not clinical and hospital facilities based upon a minimum municipal population of 50,000, and which does not have an active faculty embracing the departments of anatomy, physiology, chemistry, ma- teria inedica and therapeutics, medicine, surgery, ob- stetrics, histology, pathology, bacteriology, ophthalmol- ogy and otology, gynecology, laryngology", hygiene, and state medicine, and which does not enjoin attendance upon 80 per cent, of four regular courses of instruction of not less than twenty-six weeks each, in four different years, and which does not exact an average grade of 75 j per cent, on an examination as a condition of gradua- tion, providing that the rule relative to population as a basis for clinical and hospital facilities shall not apply to institutions under state control and which by virtue of such control receives gratuitously patients from all parts of the state in which such colleges are located. Oklahoma. Certificate of good moral character, and that holder is not an habitual drunkard. None, if a graduate from a medical college in good standing ; if not a graduate, applicant must have been a practicing physician for five years, and pass an examination before the board on the several branches of medicine. Oregon. Good moral character required. No atten- tion paid to college diplomas. All must stand an exami- nation- before state medical board on anatomy, phys- iology, etc. Pennsylvania. Applicant must be twenty-one years of age, of good moral character, and have a competent common school education. Four years'study of medicine, including three years in some legally incorporated medi- cal college of the United States, or a diploma or license conferring the full right to practice all the branches of medicine and surgery in some foreign country. Others must stand an examination before board. Rhode Island. Citizenship is a new question, and has never occurred to us before, but will now receive attention. Personal character has not been required. It is difficult to establish [true] character of applicant, but we do not issue certificate until applicant has been in practice for three months in this state, and if he turn out an advertising, charlatanic person we refuse to grant certificate. A high school or academic education is re- quired of all colleges in " good standing." Examina- tion on eleven branches of medicine required. Appli- cant [for examination] must have obtained diploma from a school having a four years' course in medicine during the year of graduation. One year at a veterinary or dental school will not pass for a year of study in medv- cine. School must have a course of twenty-six weeks, teach all main and supplementary branches. Study with physician not required, nor is it accepted as a part of the four years. Diplomas of schools located in cities of fewer than fifty thousand people not accepted. South Carolina. None but graduates of a medical school entitled to an examination ; and the state board examines on all the branches of medicine. South Dakota. Good moral character, and must not l>e an habitual drunkard. Anyore who is a graduate of a lawful medical college, who has attended three full courses of medical lectures of six months each. No two full courses to be taken within the same year. Tennessee. Must be abonafide resident of the state, and located at some designated place. We have no law allowing us to examine into personal character. Ap- plicant must have a fair education, of which the board may be the judge. Law pays no attention to diplomas, but requires all applicants to stand an examination on anatomy, physiology, etc. Texas. Must have an education equal to that given in a high school. A diploma from any college or univer- sity is held by the higher courts as equal to a certificate from one of the district examining boards. Utah. No specia 1 requirements other than a diploma from a reputable medical college ; and passing an exam- ination in all the branches of medicine and surgery. Vermont. Diploma from a reputable and recognized school and passing examination before a state board of examiners on anatomy, physiology, surgery, chemistry, materia medica, practice, obstetrics, and pathology. AVashineton. Board has large powers of discretion as to estimating moral character. The state medical examining board does not regard a diploma [of a school] of any state as sufficient to entitle holder of same to practice in this state, but will consider such diploma in connection with the examination of the holder of the same for a license. All applicants are examined in nervous diseases, obstetric diseases of women and chil- dren, anatomy, practice, histology, surgery, physiology, medical jurisprudence, materia medica, chemistry, dis- eases of the eye and ear, preventive medicine. West Virginia. Good moral character and English education. Diplomas are not recognized. All must pass examination by state board. Wisconsin. Must not have been convicted of crime in course of professional business. All are examined save those who possess a diploma from a medical col- lege having three or more courses of lectures of six months each, and after the year 1904 at least four courses of not less than six months each, no two courses to be taken during the same year. Wyoming. None. "No person shall be allowed to practice m'edicine, surgery, or obstetrics who has not received a medical education and a diploma from some regularly chartered medical school, said school to have a bona fide existence at the time when said diploma was granted. Windsor Castle is situated on the right bank of the Thames, twenty-three miles west of London, near the town of Windsor. The royal residence and the buildings connected with it cover twelve acres of ground, and stand in the midst of a park known as " Little Park," which is four miles in circumference, and is connected by a long avenue of trees, south of the castle, with the "Great Park," which is eighteen miles in circuit. The castle was founded by William the Conqueror. The original plans were enlarged upon and com- pleted by Henry I., and the castle was first used as a royal residence about 1110. The history of the existing edifice, however, begins in the reign of Henry III., but it was not until the time of Edward III. that all its portions were completed. The buildings may be said to be grouped in three portions the middle ward containing the Round Tower, which was built by Edward III., in the eighteenth year of his reign, to receive the Round Table of the Knights of the newly formed Order of the Garter ; the lower ward, on the west, contain- ing St. George's chapel, which was begun by Henry III., completed by Edward III., rebuilt by Henry VII., and added to by Cardinal Wolsey, and the houses of the military knights, cloisters, etc. ; and the upper ward, on the east, containing the sovereign's private apartments. Some additions were made to the buildings by Henry VIII., and Queen Elizabeth formed the terraces and built the gate now called by her name. The Star build- ing was erected by Charles II. In 1824-'2S, the castle was repaired and enlarged ; but little alteration has since been made. The park and forest immediately adjoining contain many historical trees such as Elizabeth's Oak; Shakespeare's Oak ; the Long Walk, made in the reign of Charles II. ; and Queen Anne's Ride of Elms, three miles long. Herne's Oak, rendered so famous by Shakespeare, was blown down in September, 1863, and a stone and u young tree now mark the spot. The oldest planted timber in England that of the reign of Elizabeth is also in Windsor Park ; and 554 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. there ar many oak* of which it is well estab- lished the age must be one thousand years. In the royal vaults connected with St. George's chapel a number of kings and queens are buried. Vedas and Puranas, as the great body of -the sacred literature of the Hindoos is called, are written in poetry in the most ancient form of the Sanskrit language. The Vedas, which were believed to be inspired, treat of the thirty-three gods of the heavens, of the air, and of the earth ; of the creation of all things, of the relation of the gods to each other, and the relations and duties of men to each other and to the gods ; of surgery, medicine, music, dancing, war, architecture, mechanical arts, astronomy, astrology, grammar, poetry, etc. The Puranas are eighteen in number, and are regarded with great reverence as the produc- tion of holy men. They treat of law, theology, including histories of their gods, logic, and metaphysics in general, but are filled in the main with superstitions and silly and disgust- ing narratives. Unitarians. The Unitarians of the pres- ent day, like almost all Christian sects, must be divided into two classes a conservative and a progressive class or, as they are often called, an old and new school. The former adopt the old rule of the sufficiency of Scrip- ture, though with such qualifications as the scientific criticism of the Bible has rendered indispensable. The most conservative Unita- rian, for example, would not contend for the literal truth of the first chapter of Genesis, nor for the doctrine of verbal inspiration in any shape. " The Bible is not, but it contains, the Word of God, ' ' is the form which best expresses their position on this subject. They generally hold the simple humanity of Christ, and even reject the supernatural birth, thinking the part of the gospels which record that event to be less authentic than the parts referring to the ministry, the death, and resurrection of Christ. What, however, chiefly distinguishes the Unita- rians of this school from those of the new or progressive school is the place which they give to the miracles as supernatural sanctions of the truth of Christianity. Denying that man has any immediate knowledge of the intuition of spiritual things, they regard Christianity as a system of moral and religious truth external to man's nature, and requiring, in proof of its divine origin, certain evidences beyond its in- herent credibility and adaptation to human wants. This evidence they find in the mira- cles, which they accept as well-attested facts, oca the same ground on which all historical facts are accepted. The Unitarians of the progressive school, so far from regarding man as entirely dependent upon his reasoning po *- ers for his knowledge of religion, rather look upon him as standing in a living relationship with the one infinite source of all truth, and as having within his own nature the germs of the highest religious faith. To this view of Christianity the miracles are not felt to be essential as proofs. Generally speaking, the Unitarians of this school are disposed to regard with favor the freest criticism of the Bible. Unitarians of all shades of opinion are agreed in rejecting the entire orthodox scheme in- cluding the doctrines of the Trinity, the vica- rious atonement, the deity of Christ, original sin, and everlasting punishment as both unscriptural and irrational. They celebrate the Lord's Supper in their churches, not as a sacrament, but as a service commemorative of Christ's death and expressive of spiritual communion with him. St. Nicholas and Christmas The origin of the idea that presents are presented at Christmas time by St. Nicholas, or Santa Claus, probably originated from the following circumstance : St. Nicholas is said to have been Bishop of Myra, and to have died in the year 326. He was noted for his fondness for children, and became their patron saint, and the young were universally taught to revere him. He is said to have supplied three desti- tute widows with marriage portions by secretly leaving money at their windows, and as this occurred just before Christmas, he thus became the purveyor of the gifts of the season to all children in Flanders and Holland, who hung up their shoes and stockings in the confidence that Knecht Globes, as they called him, would put in a prize for good conduct. Formerly, and still, in some parts of Germany, the prac- tice is made of all the parents in a small village sending the presents to some one person, who, in high buskins, a white robe, a mask, and an enormous flax wig, goes from house to house on Christmas eve, and, being received with great pomp and reverence by the parents, calls for the children and bestows the intended gifts upon them, after first severely question- ing the father and mother as to the character and conduct of the child. As this custom be- came less frequent, the custom of children hanging up their stockings was substituted ; and, as the purveyor no longer visited the houses, it was necessary to explain it by tell- ing the children that he came into the house at night, coming down the chimney and leav- ing their presents and departing. The custom of decking the houses and churches at Christ- mas with evergreens is derived from ancient Druidical practices. It was an old belief that sylvan spirits flock to the evergreens and re- RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 555 main unnipped by frost until a milder season, and it was probably on account of the good omen attached to the evergreen that Christmas trees came into use. Valentiiiians, a Gnostic sect or school [see GNOSTIC] founded by Valentinus, who went from Alexandria to Rome about A. D. 140. The distinguishing feature of his system lies, iu the first place, in his recognizing hea- thenism as a preparatory stage of Christianity, and then his dividing the higher spiritual world into fifteen pairs of aeons, each consist- ing of a male and a female. The first pair, or syzygy, is made up of Bythos, or God in himself, and Ennoia, or God as existing in his own thoughts. From these emanated, next, Nous (Intelligence) and Aletheia (Truth), and so on. As the last aeon, Sophia, trans- gressed the bounds that had been laid down by the aeon Heros, and a part of her being became lost in Chaos, there was formed a crude being called Achanroth, which, through the Demiur- gos that emanated from it, ci-eated the cor- poreal world. Heros now imparted to the souls of msn (for all the bodies composing the corporeal world are possessed of souls) a pneu- matic, or spiritual, element ; but this only attained to full activity when Christ, a col- lective emanation from all the aeons, appeared as a Saviour and united himself with the man Jesus. In the end, all that is pneumatic, and even the originally psychic, or soul element, in as far as it has assimilated itself to the psychic, will return into the Pleroma. UniversalistS. The distinctive peculiar- ity of the Universalist faith consists in the belief that "evil" will ultimately be erad- icated from the world, and that all erring creatures will be brought back to God through the irresistible efficacy of Christ's divine love. They argue that when an infinite, wise, holy, and benevolent God resolved to create man, it could only be with a view to his everlast- ing good ; that if he did allow him to be tempted and to fall, it must have been because he foresaw that through sorrow and suffering man could rise to higher degrees of perfection ; that, therefore, all punishment is of necessity designed as a remedial agent, and not intended to satisfy God's indignation as a sovereign at the disobedience of his subjects ; that no other view of the subject is compatible with the scriptural, and especially the New Testament, representation of God as a " Father," or with the oft-repeated declaration (in various terms) that Jesus Christ was a propitiation for the sins of the whole world. Universalism, as a mode of belief, is of very ancient origin, and its modern adherents, beside urging its congruity with the divine plan of redemption as revealed in Scripture, point to the earliest Christian writings, e.g., the Sibylline oracles of Rome, and cite passages in favor of the doctrine from many of the Church fathers. Universalism was preached in the United States as early as 1741, but the first separate Universalist church was not established until 1780, when the Rev. John Murray started one at Glouces- ter, Mass. Since his time an important body has sprung up which contains many able, learned, and pious divines. Roman Catholic Church, the name gen- erally given to that very numerous body of Chris- tians who acknowledge the Pope, or Bishop of Rome, as head of their church. This name also signifies that the Roman Catholic Church is " Roman in its center and Catholic in its cir- cumference." The foundation of this church is uncertain. St. Peter is said to have been the first Bishop of Rome, and tradition says | that he was martyred there. The mighty im- portance of the city of Rome naturally gave its bishop a great position, but the fact that it became for a while the arbiter and ruler of all Christendom is the most remarkable fact in the history of Christianity. The controversy between Rome and Protestantism involves two main questions : In the first place, Protes- tants deny the authority of a pope over them at all ; and, secondly, a large portion of the doctrine of the Roman Catholic Church is re- jected, as being a corruption of Apostolic Christianity. The Roman church recognize seven sacraments, viz. : Baptism, Confirma- tion, the Holy Eucharist, Penance, Extreme Unction, Holy Orders, Matrimony. One of the chief characteristics of this religion is that of invoking help of the Virgin and Saints. With regard to all matters relating to faith, Roman Catholics draw a sharp line between what is of doctrine and what of discipline. Doctrine is what was taught by Christ and his, apostles ; discipline, the different rules laid down by the various councils of the church, and liable to change at any time. There are various religious orders, both for men and women, who are obliged to take the three vows of poverty, chastity, and obedience. Their work consists in superintending charita- ble institutions, such as asylums, orphanages, and hospitals, and some of the orders have large schools attached to them. The number of Roman Catholics all over the world is about two hundred and twenty million. The growth of the Roman church in the United States in recent years has been rapid, owing to immigra- tion. The church has over eight million ad- herents in this country. Since the Vatican Council of 1870, when Pius IX. put forth the doctrine of the infallibility of the pope, the 566 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. utterances of the pontiff have been taken as the groundwork of the faith and practice of the church. His pronouncements are regarded as infallible when he defines a doctrine regarding faith and morals to be held by the whole church. The work of the church in the world is directed immediately by the bishops, who receive their jurisdiction from the pope. The power in- herent in the Episcopal character and order is received from God directly and immediately. When established in a diocese by the pope, the bishop, by virtue of his title, receives the power of governing and of taking cognizance of all spiritual causes which regard hisflock, whether laymen or ecclesiastics, with the exception of what is specially reserved to the head of the church, and he possesses and exercises these prerogatives under the jurisdiction of and in dependence on the pope. The Reformation, term universally ap- plied by Protestants denoting change from Ro- man Catholic to the Protestant religion, which was originated in Germany by Luther, A.D.15 17, but had been begun in England by Wyclifte, and was afterwards completed by Henry VIII., who assumed the title of " Head of the Church. " Luther's conflict with the Church of Rome began when he boldly attacked the doctrine of indulgences. The proclamation of indul- gences was not new in Germany, nor was oppo- sition to it on the part of the people and of both civil and ecclesiastical authorities new. The struggle was precipitated, however, when Albert of Brandenburg appointed John Tetzel, of Leipsic, a learned and eloquent Dominican, to preach the indulgences among the people. New opposition at once broke out, and Luther took the lead. He drew up his objections in the shape of ninety-five propositions, which he fastened to the door of the Castle church at Wittenberg, on All Saints' Eve (Oct. 31, 1517). In these he attacked the abuse, not the doc- trine, of indulgences, pronouncing anathema on whosoever spoke against the truth of papal indulgences. Nevertheless the propositions contained the germs of his future heresy and gave rise to the movement known as the Prot- estant Reformation. He at once gained a number of adherents, among them men of influence both in church and state. A vigor- ous and oftentimes exceedingly discourteous controversy followed which led to Luther's being summoned to Rome to defend himself. At the request of the Elector Frederick, the Diet of Augsburg was substituted for Rome as the place of the trial, and Cardinal Cajetan, papal legate, was appointed to represent the pope at the Diet. Luther claimed that he had said naught against the Scriptures, the doctrine of the church, the decrees of popes, or reason. In short, made a complete retraction, and fled from Augsburg angry at heart. In 1520 he launched out pamphlet after pamphlet assail- ing in virulent terms the whole office and dig- nity of the papacy, setting out that the Bible was the only source of faith. These doctrines caught the hearts of the multitudes. Luther appealed strongly to the spirit of nationality and aggrandizement. He addressed the em- peror, the^ nobles, and the people. He urged the emperor to overthrow the power of the pope, confiscate the wealth of the church, abolish feasts and holidays and masses for the dead. On June 15, 1520, the pope issued a bull specifically condemning Luther's teach- ings, and excommunicating him if he refused to retract within sixty days. Luther appealed from the authority of the pope to a general council, and publicly burned the pope's bull at Wittenberg, consigning the pope himself to " fire eternal." The Diet of Worms placed him under the ban of the empire as a heretic, but the circumstances of the lime and the oppo- sition of the German States rendered the edict ineffective. From these beginnings the Refor- mation spread throughout the German Em- pire and thence to various other countries. Christianity is based upon a new and specific revelation in the person of Jesus Christ. Its aim is to restore to mankind the lost fel- lowship with God in an eternal kingdom, set up here on earth, and called the Church, to be brought to its full and perfect consummation in the world to come. The foundation of a Christian's faith and practice is ultimate, and, in truth, the only appeal must be to the facts, the doctrines, and the precepts of the Scriptures, especially those of the New Testament. The history of Christianity, then, is the record of the facts pertaining to the nature and growth of the Kingdom of God upon earth, in their external and internal relations. This history falls into three main divisions : Ancient, Mediaeval, and Modern. The Ancient history of Christianity is the narrative of the suprem- acy won by the church over Greek culture and the Roman Empire. It closes and the Mediaeval history begins, with the epoch of the Carlovingian dynasty. The Medieval com- prises the victories of the church over the Celtic, Teutonic, Slavonian, and Scandinavian tribes in the center and north of Europe, the conflicts and rupture of the eastern and western branches of the church, and the contest be- tween the imperial and papal powers for suprem- acy. This period closes with the Reformation. The Modern history recites the struggles between Catholicism and Protestantism, be- tween Christianity and philosophy, and the growth of Protestant civilization. RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 557 The history of the world presents no phe- nomenon so striking as the rise and early . progress of Christianity. Originating in a j country not remarkable for any political, com- mercial, or literary influence, emanating from One who occupied an humble sphere in the community amidst which he appeared, and announced in the first instance by men of mean extraction, of no literary culture, and j not endowed with any surpassing gifts of in- j tellect, it nevertheless spread so rapidly that j in an incredibly short time it had been diffused | throughout the whole civilized world, and in ! the fourth century of its existence became recognized as the established religion of the Roman Empire. When it is remembered that | this result was achieved not only without the : aid of any worldly influence, but in the face of i the keenest opposition on the part of all the learning, wealth, and power of the most en- lightened and mightiest nations, the conclu- sion is strongly forced upon us that a power beyond that of man was concerned in its suc- cess, and that its early and unexampled tri- umphs afford an incontestible proof of its inherent truth and its divine origin. The continual and steady growth of Christianity, its vigorous life in spite of various seasons of unavoidable ebb, and notwithstanding the presence of many forms of corruption, and its continual rejuvenescence, are no ordinary proof of its supreme fitness for the position in the world which it claims to occupy. Harvard University, the oldest school in America, was founded in 1636, six years after the first settlement of Boston. The Commonwealth of Massachusetts, through its | General Court, in that year made a grant of 400 pounds "to advance learning and perpet- uate it to posterity," and in the following year appointed twelve of the principal men in the colony "to take order for a college at New- town." Two years afterward the Rev. John Harvard, a Non-Conformist clergyman of Charlestown, who the year before had gradu- ated at Emmanuel College, Cambridge Uni- versity, England, gave by his will the sum of 779 pounds, and 300 books, more than half of his estate. Nine students entered the first j class. All of these distinguished themselves in after life, one of them, Sir George Down- j ing, achieving the unenviable distinction of serving both the Commonwealth and the king in the English Revolution. John Harvard's j bequest was followed by other gifts, such as a 5 font of letters, books, silver spoons, cooking utensils, garden tools, and others, varying in ' value from 3 shillings to 200. The first gift of real estate was two and one half acres of land given by the town of Cambridge, thereby changing the nominal location from Newtown to Cambridge. The General Court, in lieu of the money it had promised, granted to Har- vard College the right of ferry between Charles- town and Boston. In 1642, the board of overseers, consisting of the governor and dep- uty governor of the colony, the magistrates then in jurisdiction, the president of the col- lege, and the teaching elders, was constituted. In 1643 the present seal of the University and its motto, " Christoet Ecclesire," was adopted. The college charter was granted in 1650, and the college corporation created. In 1653 Rev. Henry Dunster, the first president, fell under suspicion of favoring the Anti-pa>do Baptists and as a consequence was indicted by the grand jury for disturbing the ordinance of in- fant baptism in the Cambridge church. He was tried, convicted, and besides being com- pelled to resign, and being laid under bonds for good behavior, was sentenced to receive an admonition once a year. Previous to this, Nathaniel Eaton, the first person in charge of the institution, was dismissed for beating his usher. The presidents in succession, with their terms of office, have been as follows : Henry Dunster, 1640-1654; Charles Chauncy, 1654-1672; Leonard Hoar, 1672-1675 ; Urian Oakes, acting president, 1675-1679 ; president, 1679-1681; John Rogers, 1682-1 684 ; Increase Mather, acting president, 1685-1686 ; rector, 1686-1692 ; president, 1692-1701 ; Charles Morton, vice-president, 1697-1698; Samuel Willard, vice-president, 1700-1707 ; John Leverett, 1707-1724 ; Benjamin Wadsworth, 1725-1737; Edward Holyoke, 1737-1769; Samuel Locke, 1770-1773 ; Samuel Langdon, 1774-1780; Joseph Willard, 1781-1804 ; Sam- uel Webber, 1806-1810 ; John Thornton Kirk- land, 1810-1828; Josiah Quincy, 1829-1845; Edward Everett, 1846-1849; .fared Sparks, 1849-1853; James Walker, 1853-1860; Cor- nelius Conway Felton, 1860-1862: Thomas Hill, 1862-1868 ; Charles William Eliot, 1869 to the present time. During the term of the second president, a hall, costing 350, was erected, for the pur- pose of giving instruction to Indians, but one Indian only applied for admittance and was graduated by the college. Before this, a single building had served all the purposes of the col- lege. All the college halls that were erected after this during the seventeenth century were sub- sequently razed or destroyed, so that the oldest building now standing on the Harvard yard is Massachusetts Hall, erected in 1720. Harvard College, from that time on, prospered, and now has property and endowment aggregating almost fifteen million dollars. The University is divided into the following departments, with 558 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. sepai te faculties or board of administration : Harvard College, Lawrence Scientific School, Graduate School, Divinity School, Law School, Medical School, Dental School, School of Veter- inary Medicine, Bussey Institution (a school of agriculture), Arnold Arboretum, University Library, Museum of Comparative Zoology, University Museum, Botanic Garden, Herba- rium, Astronomical Observatory, Peabody Mu- seum of American Archeology and Ethnology. Radcliffe College, formerly known as the Har- vard Annex for women, though intimately con- nected with the University, is still a separate institution. The degrees granted by the Uni- versity are : Bachelor of arts, of agricultural science, of divinity, of laws, of science, mas- ter of arts, and doctor of philosophy, science, laws, medicine, veterinary medicine, and den- tistry. Since the foundation of Harvard Col- lege, nearly twenty thousand students, in all, have been graduated, of whom some eleven thousand are alive. Yale University was founded in 1701 by the Revs. John Pierrepont, Andrew, and Russel; of Branford and Milford, three grad- uate* of Harvard, assisted by Cotton and Icevease Mather, Eleazor Kimberly, John Dliot, and the judges of the General Court ;hen in session at New Haven. The first gift to the projected school consisted of books from the libraries of each of the three founders, and of 637 acres of wild land given by Major James Fitch, who also agreed to furnish, without 3ost, the glass and nails for the college house. The trustees first placed the school at Saybrook, provided for a baccalaureate course of three years, with three further years for the mas- ter's degree, and fixed the price of tuition at thirty shillings for undergraduates and ten shillings for graduates. The first degree was given to Nathaniel Chauncy, who passed all examinations, after mere private study. In 1717 the college was removed to the town of New Haven, which had offered 2,000 and eight acres, but, owing to the division between the trustees concerning the best site, some of the students went to Saybrook, others to East Guilford, others to Wethersfield and Hartford, and others again to New Haven, accord- ing to their preferences and those of their tutors. As -a. consequence, two commence- ments were held in 1717, one at Wethersfield and one at New Haven. The controversy was ended by the gift of Elihu Yale, the former ' governor of Madras, whose official conduct and rapid acquisition of wealth had led to his recall to England. Cotton Mather wrote to him for help, promising the adoption of his name by the new college, and Governor STale accordingly sent to New Haven three bales of goods, a portrait of George I., the royal coat of arms, and a box of books. In 1721 Elihu Yale died, leaving 500 to the school that bore his name ; but for certain rea- sons the will could not be probated, and the money was lost to the college. In 1722, Rec- tor Cutler and several of the tutors changed their faith from the Congregational church to the Episcopal church, which led to their enforced resignation. As a consequence there ensued an interregnum of three years, during which the college was without rector or proper instruction. At the end of this period the charter was amended. In 1729 the college received valuable gifts from Bishop Berkeley, the philosopher, and in 1752 Benjamin Frank- lin added a collection of books. By a new charter of 1744, the Collegiate School became Yale College. During the War of the Revo- lution, the college was twice suspended. When Washington came to New Haven the students formed a company, and, with Noah Webster as their cornet, gave Washington the first mil- itary escort in New England . Commencements were not resumed until 1781. Professional schools were added during the presidency of Day. Advanced instruction for graduates was begun in 1847. The first degrees in philos- ophy were given three years later. The Shef- field Scientific School was organized in 1859. The Art School, succeeding the Trumbull Art Gallery, was erected in 1864, with the Peabody Museum and Conservatory of Music following shortly afterward. The rectors and presidents all clergymen, the first six of whom were Harvard graduates, all the rest graduating from Yale have been ; Abraham Pierson, 1701-1707 ; Samuel An- drew, 1707-1719 ; Timothy Cutler, 1719-1722 ; Samuel Andres, 1724-1725 ; Elisha Williams, 1725-1739 ; Thomas Clapp, 1739-1766 ; Naph- tali Daggett, 1766-1777 ; Ezra Styles, 1777- 1795 ; Timothy Dwight, 1795-1817 ; Jeremiah Day, 1817-1846 ; Theodore D. Woolsey, 1846- 1871; Noah Porter, 1871-1886; timothy Dwight, 1886-1899 ; Arthur T. Hadley, LL.D., 1899-. The University comprises four depart- ments, each under a distinct faculty, to wit : Philosophy and art, theology, medicine, and law. The first embraces the academical de- partment of Yale College, with the Sheffield Scientific School, Graduate School, and the School of Fine Arts and Music, each with its own organization and corps of instructors. The library, Peabody Museum, and observatory have independent organizations. The degrees are: B.A.. B.S., M.A.. B.D., LL.B., Ph.B., C.E., M.E., M.D., Ph.D., LL.D., D.C.L. with further degrees in fine arts and music. In all departments, nearly seventeen thousand RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 559 alumni have been graduated, of whom more than ten thousand are living. Princeton University. The first char- ter was granted in 1746, and the second, mak- ing the trustees a self-perpetuating body, in 1748. The college was opened at Elizabeth- town, near New York, with Rev. Jonathan Dick- inson as president, and was removed to New- ark, and soon afterward, in 1753, to Princeton. During the next two years Nassau Hall was erected. Though this hall has twice been dam- aged by fires, in 1802 and 1855, it still stands. The presidents have been : Jonathan Dickin- son, 1747 ; Aaron Burr, 1748-1757 ; Jonathan Edwards, 1757-1758; Samuel Davies, 1759- 1761 ; Samuel Finley, 1761-1766 ; John With- erspoon, 1768-1794; Samuel Stanhope Smith, 1795-1812 ; Ashbel Green, 1812-1822 ; James Carnahan, 1823-1854; John MacLean, 1854- 1868 ; James McCosh, 1868-1888 ; Francis Lan- dey Patton, S.T.D., LL.D., 1888, to the pres- ent. The Green School of Science was added in 1873, and a department of engineering in 1875. The sesqui centennial of the college was celebrated in 1896, which marked a mate- rial increase of the endowment ; the trustees transformed the college into a university, changing its name from the College of New Jersey to Princeton University. The degrees conferred are: A.B., A.M., Ph.D., L.H.D., Litt.D., and LL.D. University of Pennsylvania. Through the efforts of Benjamin Franklin a fund was raised in 1 749 to change Penn's Charity School, begun in 1720, into an academy. It was opened in 1751 , and four years later received a college charter. The first commencement was held in 1757. The school languished for several years so that Provost Smith had to be sent to Eng- land to raise funds. He there met the com- missioner of King's College, now Columbia University, and they both agreed to share the proceeds of their joint efforts, some six thou- sand pounds. After his return Provost Smith sided with the "War Party," and was cast into prison for publishing an alleged libelous pamphlet against the Assembly. While in jail he continued to give lectures to his classes, but in 1759 was compelled to flee to England, where he was received with great honor, and made a doctor by Oxford University. He re- turned after a peaceful settlement of his dif- ferences with the Assembly with twenty thousand pounds funds for the college. In 1791 the college was amalgamated with the new school, which was the first to be called a uni- versity in this country. The Medical School dates from 1765. A German school was added in 1785, and a law school in 1790. The col- lege continued 9$ an old fashioned classical college until 1868, when the elective system was introduced. In 1872 the Department of Arts was reorganized, and the Department of Science, known as the Towne Scientific School, was established. In 1877 a department of music, and in 1878 one of dentistry were added. The provosts and presidents have been : Benjamin Franklin, 1749-1756 ; Rich- ard Peters, 1756-1764; James Hamilton, 1764; John Penn, 1764-1771 ; James Hamilton, 1771-1773 ; Richard Penn, 1773-1774 ; John Penn, 1774-1779 ; Benjamin Franklin, 1789- 1790 ; William White, 1790-1791 ; John Ewing, 1791-1802; John McDowell, 1802- 1810; Dr. Andrews, 1810-1813; Frederick Beaseley, 1813-1828; William H. DeLancey, 1828-1833 ; John Ludlow, 1833-1853 ; Henry Vethake, 1853-1860; Daniel R. Goodwin, 1860-1868; Charles J. Stille, 1868-1880; Charles C. Harrison, LL.D., the present in- cumbent. The University buildings, twenty-two in number, are situated on forty-eight acres of ground in West Philadelphia. The General Library, containing more than 150,000 vol- umes and 50,000 pamphlets, contains a num- ber of private collections. The most notable of these are the Colwell collection, one of tlie most complete finance libraries in the world, and the Bechstein Library containing 15,000 books on German philology and literature. The Museum of Archaeology and Paleontology contains collections of American, Asiatic, and Egyptian antiquities of great value. Its Babylonia collection is declared to rank equal with those of the British Museum and the Louvre. Houston Hall, a clubhouse for stu- dents, was finished in 1896, and has proved a valuable aid to college discipline. The usual academic and technical degrees are conferred. Cornell University was incorporated by the Legislature of the State of New York, April 27, 1865, and opened October 7. 1868. The existence of the University is due to the combined bounty of the United States, the state of New York, and Ezra Cornell. Ezra Cornell's wish was to found an institution where any person could find instruction in anj study ; while the state stipulated that the colj lege should be strictly non-sectarian, and that it should annually receive from each Assem- bly district of the state, one student free of charge. The first gift of Ezra Cornell was $500,000 with 200 acres of land. The first college buildings were built by the students; women were admitted, and a large dormitory known as Sage College was erected for them in 1872. There are no other dormitory build- ings on the campus proper, the situation of which, on a plateau between two waterfalls 560 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. overlooking Cayuga Lake, and the settled val- ley at its head, is unique. In 1890, after a long lawsuit, the large property left to the Uni- versity by Mrs. Jennie McGraw Fiske, was withheld from it by a ruling of the supreme court of the United States. To make up for this, Henry W. Sage, a previous benefactor of Cornell, gave $560,000 for the cost and en- dowment of the new University Library. In addition to this the University has received other large benefactions. The presidents have been: Andrew D. White, 1865-1885; Charles K. Adams, 1885-1890; Jacob Gould Schur- man, 1890 to the present. Columbia University. King's College, as Columbia University was formerly called, was founded in 1754, under royal charter. The college was established on a grant of land known as the King's Farm, the property of Trinity Church overlooking the Hudson river. It was then declared by travelers to have the finest site of any college in the world. In 1857 it was removed to a block between 49th and 50th streets, New York city, overlooking the East river. From the beginning this loca- tion was regarded as temporary. The present site on Morningside Heights, between 116th and 120th streets, was the field of the battle of Harlem. It overlooks the Hudson river on one side, and north New York on the other, and is once more declared to be one of the finest sites in the world. The original charter made the college non-sectarian. The first class was graduated in 1760 with eight stu- dents. During the Revolutionary war instruc- tion had to be suspended, the president of the college, a royalist, having been forced to flee to England. Names and terms of the presidents are as follows: Samuel Johnson, 1754-1763; Myles Cooper, 1763-1775 ; Benjamin Moore, 1775-1776; William Samuel Johnson, 1787- 1800; Charles H. Wharton, 1801; Benjamin Moore, 1801-1811 ; William Harris, 1811- 1829 ; William Alexander Duer, 1829-1842 ; Nathaniel F. Moore, 1842-1849; Charles King, 1849-1864; Frederick A. P. Barnard, 1864-1889; Seth Low, LL.D., 1890-. A medical faculty was established in King's College in 1767 and consisted at first of six professors. In 1860 the College of Physicians and Surgeons became the medical department of Columbia University. Instruction in law was given in 1793. The School of Mines, now the School of Applied Science, through the efforts of Thomas Eggleston, was founded in 1863. In 1880 a School of Political Science was opened. Barnard College, where instruc- tion is given to women, was founded in 1889. The School of Philosophy was established in 1890. and that of Pure Science in 1892, The degrees conferred in the various schools are. B.A., B.S., LL.B., M.D., M.A., Ph.D., L.H.D., and LL.D. Catholic University of America was lounded in 1884 after a gift by Miss Caldweli of 8300,000 to the American Episcopate. From 1889 to 1895 its educational activity was confined to the School of Divinity. In 1895, after the pope had expressed a hope that the University might be able to adapt its work to modern educational needs in a wider sense, schools of philosophy and the social sciences were opened, with departments of philosophy, letters, mathematics, physics, chemistry, biol- ogy, technology, sociology, economics, polit- ical science, and law. During the last few years twelve chairs for the teaching of the arts and sciences have been endowed by individuals. The University is governed by seventeen di- rectors and a chancellor, who is at present Cardinal Gibbons of Baltimore. With the directors, who are for the most part prom- inent members of the Catholic clergy, are as- sociated by virtue of their office all the Catholic archbishops in the country. The School of Divinity grants baccalaureate, licen- tiate, and the doctor's degrees ; the School of Philosophy confers degrees in letters and philosophy ; the School of Social Science, de- grees of B.A. and M.A. ; the Law School, degrees of LL.B., LL.M., D.C.L., J.C.D., J.U.D., and LL.D. ; while in the Institute of Technology, degrees in civil, electrical, and mechanical engineering, with corresponding master's degrees are conferred. The present rector is Very Reverend Thos. J. Conaty, D.D., J.C.D. University of California was instituted by a law which received the approval of the governor, March 23, 1868. Instruction was begun in Oakland in the autumn of 1869. The commencement exercises of 1873 were held at Berkeley, July 16, when the University was formally transferred to its permanent home. Instruction began at Berkeley in the autumn of 1873. The new constitution of 1879 made the existing organization of the University perpetual. The College of Califor- nia, which had been organized several years before the University, transferred its property and students upon terms which were mutually agreed upon, and closed its work of instruction in 1869. It had been incorporated in 1855, and through its agency a part of the Oakland property of the University, and the Berkeley site now owned and occupied by the latter, were secured ; a domain of about two hundred and fifty acres, situated on the slope of the Contra Costa hills, about five miles from Oak- land, facing the Golden Gate The under ftELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS graduate colleges were the only ones actually included in the original organization. The professional colleges in San Francisco have been added from time to time. The Lick Ob- servatory was formally transferred to the Uni- versity in June, 1888. The Mark Hopkins Institute of Art, in 1893. The University com- prises the following departments : College of Letters, College of Social Sciences, College of Natural Sciences, College of Agriculture, Col- lege of Mechanics, College of Mining, College of Civil Engineering, College of Chemistry, Lick Astronomical Department, Mark Hop- kins Institute of Art, Hastings College of Law, Medical Department, Post Graduate Medical Department, College of Dentistry, and Cali- fornia College of Pharmacy. The curricula of the various departments lead to degrees of B.A., B.L., B.S., M.A., C.E., D.D.S., D.V.S., LL.B., M.S., M.E., M.D., Ph.G., Ph.B., and Ph.D. The president is Benjamin Ide Wheeler, Ph.D., LL.D. University of Chicago. The first Uni- versity of Chicago was founded in 1857, by tlae Baptist Society of Chicago, and was presided over for many years by the Rev. Dr. Bur- roughs. In 1886 its doors were closed, owing to lack of funds. Its successor, the present University of Chicago, was founded by John D. Rockefeller, who subscribed $600,000 of its original endowment fund of one million dol- lars, to which he afterward added three and a half million dollars in bonds. The original site, valued at $125,000, was given by Mar- shall Field, who also gave $100,000 in money. More than one million dollars for new schools and buildings have since been donated or be- queathed to the University. A president for the University, William R. Harper, Ph.D., LL.D., was elected in the spring of 1891. Work on the new buildings began in the au- tumn of the same year. On October 1, 1892, the new school opened its doors to some six hundred students. Cobb Lecture Hall and two dormitories for graduates were the only buildings then ready for use. Since that time fifteen of the projected forty-two buildings have been erected, while the number of stu- dents has risen to over two thousand. The University includes five divisions : the uni- versity proper ; the university extension ; the university libraries, laboratories, and museums ; the university press ; the university affiliations. The university proper includes : the Gradu- ate School of Arts and Literature, the Ogden School of Science, the Divinity School, the School of Law, School of Medicine, the School of Technology, the School of Fine Arts, and the School of Musie ; the colleges of arts, lit- erature, and science. Leland Stanford, Jr., University was founded in 1884, by Leland Stanford and Jane Lathrop Stanford, who determined to found a university for both sexes, and with all colleges, schools, seminaries, institutes, museums, and collections appropriate thereto. In the follow- ing year the Legislature of California passed an authorizing act, and in 1885 the grant was made. The corner stone was laid in 1887, at Palo Alto, some three miles from the sea, near the Monte Diable Mountain, thirty-three miles from San Francisco. David Starr Jordan, the present president, was installed in 1891. The suit for fifteen million dollars or the original endowment, between the University and the federal Government, was decided in the Uni- versity's favor, in 1895. An additional en- dowment was made by deed of Jane Lathrop Stanford, amounting to more than ten million dollars, in 1899. In the same year the num- ber of women to be admitted to the University in any one year was restricted to five hundred. The University is governed by twenty-four trus- tees chosen for life. The various courses of instruction lead to the degrees : B. A., B.S., and C.E., while the degrees M.A., M.E., and Ph.D. are conferred after resident post gradu- ate work. No honorary degrees are conferred. University of Virginia was the firgt State University established in this country. Thomas Jefferson, after great opposition from all other Virginia colleges, founded the Uni- versity in 1819. It was then united with Cen- tral College, and, after full acceptance of Jeffer- son's original plans, opened its doors to students in 1825. The University buildings were fin- ished by Italian sculptors, whom Jefferson had imported. Dr. Thomas Cooper, the first pro- fessor of the new university, by reason of his heterodox views, was forced to resign immedi- ately after his election, to Jefferson's great chagrin. The founder thereupon turned to Europe for new -material, calling no less than four professors from England. In 1824 the new school was visited by George Ticknor of Harvard College, who is believed to have there assimilated the reforms in regard to discipline and elective study, which were afterward intro- duced by him at Harvard. Two years later, Thomas Jefferson died, after having had sole charge of the University for one year as its first rector. He was buried on the roadside of the highway leading from his house to the Univer- sity, and his grave is marked by a monument, erected by Congress, bearing the inscription : " Here was buried Thomas Jefferson, author of the declaration of American independence, of the statute of Virginia for religious free- dom, and father of the Uniyersity of Virginia, Bore Apnl 2. 1743, o. . Died July 4. 1826 ' 562 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. After Jefferson's death, the University be- came heavily indebted, until the state legisla- lature freed its annual appropriation from all incumbrances. A medical school was added in 1827, which has since been enlarged by schools of medical jurisprudence, of surgery, and anatomy. In 1851 the Law School was created, followed in 1856, by the two schools of language and of history, the last of which was endowed with $50,000 by W. W. Corcoran. A school of technology was added in 1867, followed in 1870 by the establishment of a school of agriculture, on Samuel Miller's en- dowment of $100,000. An astronomical ob- servatory was given by Leander J. McCormick in 1882. Connected with it was Professor Sylvester, the famous mathematician. During the war, instruction in the University was sus- pended. In October, 1895, the Rotunda and Annex built by Jefferson were destroyed by fire, including many books and works of art. Since that time sufficient funds have been raised among the alumni to restore these buildings, and to erect a public hall, physical and chemi- cal laboratories, costing in all, $250,000. The Rotunda, henceforth, is to be used for library purposes only. Westminster Palace was erected in 1840 on the site of the old houses of Parliament, which were destroyed by fire in 1834. it is 900 feet long by 300 feet wide, is built of limestone from the Yorkshire quarries, and cost about $8,000,000. The palace contains the House of Lords and the House of Com- mons, which are separated by an octagonal hall with a diameter of 70 feet. The House of Lords is 100 feet long, 45 feet wide, and 45 feet high. The room is profusely decorated, and in niches between the windows are statues of barons who signed the Magna Charta eighteen in number. The gorgeous gilt and canopied throne which is occupied by the Queen when she opens Parliament is in this room, as is also the wool-sack a large, square bag of wool covered with red cloth of the Chancellor of Great Britain. The House of Commons is not as handsome as the House of Lords in the matter of decorations, and is not so long, but is the same height and width. The palace also contains a number of other rooms, among which are the Queen's robing room, the guard room, the libraries, commit- tee rooms etc. In the center of the edifice, above what is known as the Octagon Hall, is a tower 300 feet high. At the southwest corner is the Victoria tower, 346 feet high. At the northwest corner is the clock tower, which is surmounted by a belfry spire 320 feet high. In this tower is a clock with four faces, each 30 feet in diameter, and the hours are struck on a bell called "Big Ben," which weighs nine tons. At the southwestern extremity of the building is the state entrance of the Queen, which communicates directly with what are known as the royal apartments. The entrance to the Octagon Hall is by a passage known as Saint Stephen's Hall, which communicates also with Westminster Hall, a much older building, on the north. West Point Academy. Each Congres- sional District and Territory, also the District of Columbia, is entitled to have one cadet at the United States Military Academy at West Point, the cadet to be named by the represent- ative in Congress. There are also ten ap- pointments at large, specially conferred by the President of the United States. The number of students is thus limited to 344. The course of instruction, which is quite thorough, re- quires four years, and is largely mathematical and professional. The discipline is very strict even more so than in the army and the enforcement of penalties for offenses is inflexi- ble rather than severe. Academic duties be- gin September 1st and continue until June 1st. From the middle of June to the end of August cadets live in camps, engaged only in military duties, and receiving practical military instruc- tion. Cadets are allowed but one leave of absence during the four years' course, and this is granted at the expiration of the second year. The pay of a cadet is $540 a year. Upon graduation, cadets are commissioned as second lieutenants in the United States Army. Music. The cradle of music was Egypt. The Hebrews took with them to Palestine the songs they had learned there, and many of the hymns of the early Christian Church were necessarily old Temple melodies. Ambrose, Archbishop of Milan (374), and after him Pope Gregory the Great (590), were the fathers of music in the Western Church. Harmonies were introduced in the ninth century ; the present musical notation was invented by Guido Aretino (th St. 1866. Weir, John F., New Haven, Ct. fUNHOKbJUWf IT . oLaiiicv. ,ua. By. Dales, or Dal. In a soft, quiet manner. Damascened. Metal ornamente 1 by inlaying an- other metal. Delicato. With delicacy. Decorated. The second of the pointed or Gothic styles of architecture in England RELIGION, EDUCATION, FINE ARTS. 575 Dentils. Ornaments in the form of small cubes or teeth. Diaper. A mode of decoration by a repeated pattern. Doloroso. In a melancholy, sad style. Doric. The oldest and simplest of the Greek orders of architecture. Dormer. A gable window in the sloping side of a roof. Dry-Point. Direct engraving upon copper with the etching needle. Echinus. The ovolo molding of a capital. Elevation. The vertical plan of a building. Entablature. The horizontal superstructure which lies upon the columns in classic architecture. Entasis. The swelling of the shaft of a column. Epiiiaos. The portico situated at the back of a tem- ple. Espressivo, or Con Espressione. With expression. Etching-. Engraving by the action of acid on a cop- perplate covered with a wax ground on which lines have been scratched by the etching needle. Facade. The face or front of a building. Fan Tracery. Elaborate carved work spread over an arched surface. Fine. The end. Fillet. A plain band used in architecture to separate ornaments and moldings. Finial. An ornament of carved work representing foliage on a pinnacle or spire. Flamboyant. The style of French architecture pe- culiar to the fifteenth century, contemporary with per- pendicular in England. Flutes. Small semicircular grooves or channels cut in the shafts of columns or pilasters. Forte, or For. Strong, loud. Fresco. Painting executed on a freshly laid ground of stucco. Fret. An angular, interlaced architectural orna- ment. Frieze. (1) The middle division of an entablature which lies between the architrave and cornice. (2) Any horizontal sculptured band. Furioso. With great animation. Gable. The triangular end of a house from the eaves to the top. Genre. Scenes from domestic life. Giustc, In perfect time. Grave. The slowest time or movement. Grisaille. A style of painting in gray by which solid bodies are represented as if in relief. Groin. The angular curve formed at the intersec- tions of a vaulted roof. Gusto, Con Gusto. With style ; taste. Gymnasium. A large building used by the Greeks in which gymnastics were taught and practiced. Helix. A small volute like the tendril of a vine placed under the Corinthian abacus. Hypostyle. A roof supported by columns. II, The. Impetuoso. Impetuously. Impasto. The thickness of the body of pigment laid en to a painting. In. In ; as in tempo. Intrado, or lutroduzione. An introduction to a piece of music. Intaglio. A stcne in which the design is sunk be- neath the surface, and gives impression of a bas relief. Ionic. The second order in Greek architecture. Dis- tinguished by the voluted ornaments of its capital. Jamb. The side of any opening in a wall. Keystone. The top stone of an arch. Klaft. A royal Egyptian headdress forming :\ kind of hood and terminating in two flaps, which form over the breast. Largo. A slow and solemn degree of time. Lancet. A pointed arch, obtuse at the point, resem- bling a surgeon's lancet. Lantern. A small turret above the roof of a building having windows all round it. Legato. In a smooth, even manner. Leggiando. Lightly. Lintel. The stone or beam placed across the top of a door or window, Loggia. The gallery or corridor of a palace. Lotus. A water lily. In Egypt and India held sa- cred. Marcato. In a marked manner. Mansard. A roof with two sets of rafters of which the upper part is less steep than the lower. Named af- i tera French architect. Marquetry. Inlaid work of ornamental woods and I stones of various colors. Mausoleum. (1) The tomb of Mausolus, king of Cana. (2) Any tomb of imposing size and magnificence. Meme. The same. Mezzo. In a medium degree ; as mezzo forte. Medallion. A circular or oval tablet on the face of a building. Metope. A kind of panel between the triglvphs in the Doric frieze. Mezzo KH ii>vo. Sculpture in relief in which half of the figure projects. Mezzo Tint i). A method of engraving by smoothing away the lights from a ground mechanically roughened. Moderate. Moderately. Molto. Very ; as molto forte. Movimento. Movement ; time. Monolith. An object formed of a single block of stone. Mosaic. Animitation of painting by joining together minute pieces of hard substances of different colors. Mullion. The slender pieces which separate a win- dow into compartments. Mutule. An architectural ornament of the Doric order, consisting of a square block placed at equal in tervals in a Doric cornice. Naos. The interior apartment of a Greek temple. Nave. The middle part or body of a church from the choir to principal entrance between the aisles. Nimbus. A halo or circular disk around the head of sacred personages. After the eighth century, living persons were in Italy distinguished by a square" nimbus, which sometimes assumes the form" of a scroll partly unrolled. The heads of statues of gods and of Roman emperors were decorated with a crown of ravs. The same is found in the Oriental representation of Buddha. Obbligato. An essential portion of a composition. Ogee. An arch described with four centers so as to be concave in lower and convex in upper part. Ogive. A pointed arch. Order, An, in architecture consists of two parts: the one, vertical, consisting of a column and its base and capital j the other, a horizontal entablature, consisting of architrave, frieze, and cornice. The word is only used when the order is one of the five whose dimensions and details were fixed and defined by I'alladio and other ar- chitects of the sixteenth century; these are the Doric, Ionic, Corinthian, Tuscan (supposed to be a simpler form of Doric), and Composite (a Roman modification of Cor- inthian). Oriel. A projecting angular window, generally tri- angular or pentagonal in shape. Ottava, or 8va. An octave. Ovolo. A convex molding much used in classical architecture. Pagoda. A religious building of the Hindoos. Palaestra. A place for wrestling, formerly part of the gymnasium. Pedale, or Ped. Signifies that perf ormer must press down pedal. Pen. A little. Pediment. A triangular crowning of a portico usu- ally supported by a rpw of columns. Pendentive. The part of a vault between two arches supporting a dome. Peripteral. A name given to a temple which had a portico of six columns on each front and a detached colonnade of 11 on each side of the cella. Peristyle. A building, the interior of which is sur- rounded with columns. Perspective. The art of representing on a flat sur- face the appearance of objects from one given point of view. Piano, or P. Soft. Pianissimo, or PP. Very soft. Pier. Perpendicular supports from which arches spring. Pilaster. Square pillar on a wall partly imbedded in it. less than one fourth of its thickness projecting 676 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Pinnacle. A small spire. Piscina. A stone basin usually placed in a niche in the wall of the chancel at which the priest might wash his hands. Plus. More. Plinth. The lower projecting base of a column. Poco a Poco. Gradually ; by a regular gradation. Pomposo. Pompously. Precipitate. Very quickly ; hurriedly. Premiere. First; as premiere fois ; first time. Presto. Very quick. Primo. First, as violino primo, first violin. Pronaos. The portico situated in front of a temple. Propylaea. Gateway or entrance to an Egyptian temple. Quasi. In the manner of ; like. Quieto. With repose, quietly. Quatrefoil. An ornament in pointed architecture, consisting of four foils. Rapido. Rapidly. Rinforzando. Rinf. or Rf., with increase. Kitenente, Ritenato. Decreasing in speed. Rococo. A style of decoration distinguished by a superfluity of confused and discordant detail. Romanesque. The debased style of architecture and ornament adopted in the later Roman empire, and the styles founded upon it. Rose Window. A large, circular window divided into compartments by curved mullions. Rubble. Rough stones and broken bricks, used to fill up between walls. Rustication. Hewn stone masonry, the joints of which are rendered conspicuous by grooves or channels. Sarcophagus. A stone coffin. Scumbling. The process of going over a painting with a brush, nearly dry, to soften and blend the tints. Segno. Sign, as at segno, go back to sign. Sempre. Always, as sempre piano. Serioso. Seriously. Shaft. The body of a column. Solo, Sola. Alone. A composition rendered by one person. Sostenuto or Sost. Prolonged, sustained. Spirito. With spirit. Sphinx. A human head on a lion's body, typifying the union of intellectual and physical power. An Egyp- tian emblem, signifying the religious mystery. Staccato. Each note to be distinctly marked. Stesso. The same. Stylobate. The common base of a row of columns. Syncopation. Connecting the last note of a bar with the first note of the following, thus forming one pro- longed note with a duration equal to the tw". Syncopate. In a syncopated style. Tanto or Ton. Not so much. Tardo. Slowly. Taenia. A band which separates the Doric frieze from the architrave. Tempo Comodo. Conveniently. Tempera. Painting with pigments mixed with chalk or clay, and diluted with size. Theme. A subject. Thalamus. The nuptial chamber in a Rome house. Torso. The trunk of the statue of a human figure. Tranquillo. Tranquilly. Tremendi. With terrific expression. Tremando, Tremolo. The rapid striking of a note so as to produce a tremulous effect. Trille, or Trillo. A trill or shake. Trio. A composition for three performers. Triplet. A group of three notes equal iu duration of time to two notes of the same value. Tracery. Geometrical ornament. Transept. A transverse nave, passing in front of the choir, and crossing the longitudmalnave of a chursh. Transom. The horizontal cross bar in a window. Trefoil. An ornament of three foils. Triforium. The second or middle story of the nave wall of a Gothic church, consisting of a gallery over the ceiling of the side aisle and below its roof. Triglyph. An ornament, consisting of three flutings or upright groupings, separating the metopes in a Doric frieze. Triptych. A form of pictures in three panels. Tympanum. The triangular space between the horizontal and sloping cornices. The name is also given to the space included between the lintel of a door and the arch over it. Un. A, as un poco, a little. Vault. An arched ceiling or roof of stone. Veloce. Rapidly. Velocissimo. With great rapidity. Vigoroso. With vigor. Vivace. Vivamented; briskly. Volti Subito. Turn over quickly. Volute. A spiral scroll. Voussoirs. The wedge-shaped stones used in con- structing an arch. (Lit. bearing animals.) A continuous frieze, decorated with figures of ani- mals, conventional and real. Zooph< Zophorus orus, f rus. j Book VIII. Miscellaneous Facts *** Figures. Miscellaneous Facts and Figures. Signers of the Declaration of Independence. NAME. | Colony. Occupation. Born. Birthplace. Died. > Massachusetts Bay.. 2 Massachusetts Bay.. 1 New Hampshire. 1 Virginia- Lawyer Merchant... Physician . . Pla'nter Lawyer Lawyer Lawyer Merchant. . . Lawyer Farmer Printer Merchant. . . Merchant... Merchant. . . Physician . . Farmer. Oct. 19, 1735 Braintree Mass. July 4, 1826 Sep. 22, 1722 Boston Mass. Oct". 3. 1803 Bartlett, Josiah ! Nov., 1729 Amesbury Mass. May 19,1795 Sep. 10, 1736 Newington VaJOct. 10, 1797 Carroll, Charles 31 Maryland Chas6, Samuel 44 Maryland Sep. 20, 1737 Annapolis. Md Nov. 14, l&y> Apr.17, 1741 Somerset Co Md. June 19, 1811 Clark, Abraham 1 L New" Jersey 8 Pennsylvania 2 R. I. and Prov. Plan. 5 New York Feb. 15, 1726 Elizabethtown . . .N. J. Sep., 1794 Jan. 24, 1739 Philadelphia Pa. Jan. 23,1813 Clvmer, George . . . 3 Ellerv William 2 Dec. 22, 1727 Newport R I Feb. 15, 1820 Flovd, William Dec. 17,1734 Setauket N.Y. Aug. 1, 1821 Jan. 17, 1706 Boston Mass. Apr. 17, 1790 July 17, 1744 Marblehead Mass. Nov. 23, 1814 1732| England May 27. 1777 Jan. 12,1737 Braintree Mass. Oct. 8,1793 Franklin. Benjamin 4 > Pennsylvania 3 Massachusetts Bay. 9 Georgia Gerrv, Elbridge i Gwiiinett, Button 4 T Massachusetts Bay.. 7 Georgia Hall, Lvman 4 1731 Conn 1784 1740 Berkeley . .. Va April, 1791 Hart, John . 13 New Jersey Farmer 1715 Hopewell N J 1780 Hewes, Joseph 35 North Carolina Lawyer 1730 Kingston X. J Nov. 10, 1779 Hey ward, Jr., Tbxu 56 South Carolina Hooper, Wm 23 North Carolina .. Lawyer 1746 St. Luke's S. C. March, 1809 Lawyer Farmer Lawyer June 17, 1742 Boston Mass 'Oct., 1790 Hopkins, Steph L I R. I. and Prov. Plan. J New Jersey Mar 7, 1707 Scituate Mass. July 13, 1785 Hopkinson, Francis 2 1737 Philadelphia Pa. Mav 9,1791 Huntingdon, Sam'l 1 L Connecticut 2 Virginia Lawyer Lawyer Soldier Farmer July 3, 1732 Windham... Conn 'Jan. 5,1796 Jefferson, Thos 3 Apr. 13, 1743 Shadwell Va. July 4,1826 Lee, Richard Henrv . 4 * Virginia Jan 20 1 <"32 Stratford Va June 19, 1794 Lee, Francis Lightfoot. .. 5 > Virginia Oct. 14, 1734 Stratford Va. April, 1797 1 New York Merchant... Merchant... Lawyer Lawyer March, 1713 Llandaff Wales Dec. 30, 1803 Livingston, Philip Lvnch,Jr.,Thos. . 4 3 New York 3 South Carolina 9 Delaware Jan. 15, 171C Albany N.Y. June 12, 1778 Aug. 5,1749 Pr. George's Co.. S. C 1779 Mar. 19, 1734 New London Pa. June 24, 1817 M~'K can, Thos 3 Middleton, Arthur 50 South Carolina Morris, Lewis. .. 15 New York Lawyer Farmer 1743 Middleton PI S. C. Jan. 1, 1788 1726 Morrisania.. N Y Jan. 22, 1798 Morris, Robert 24 Pennsylvania Merchant. . . Surveyor . . . Jan. 20, 1734 Lancashire Eng. Mav 8, 1806 1724 Ridley Pa. April, 1777 Morton, John 16 Pennsylvania Nelson. Jr., Thos .4 J Virginia States'man.. Lawyer Lawyer Lawyer. Dec. 26 1738 York Va Jan. 4, 1789 Paca, William 2 Paine, Robert Treat 3 Maryland I Massachusetts Bay.. i Xorth Carolina. . Oct. 31, 1740 WveHall Md.i 1799 1731 Boston Mass 'May 11 1814 P^ptijjnhn , 1 May 17, 1741 Caroline Co Va Sep., 1788 Read, George 41 Delaware Lawyer. . . . 1734 Cecil Co Md 1798 Rodnev, Ca?sar... . . 5 2 Delaware. General. 1730 Dover . Del 1783 Ross, George 3 Rush, Benjamin * Rutledge, Edward 3- 'i Pennsylvania 5 Pennsylvania 1 South'Carolina Connecticut 5 Pennsylvania ) New Jersey. Lawyer Physician . . Lawyer Shoemaker. Lawyer 1730 Newcastle Del. July, 1779 Dec 24 1745 Berberry Pa Apr 19 1813 Xov 1749 Charleston S C Jan 23 1800 Sherman, Roger 1 Smith , James 3 Stockton, Richard 1 Apr. 19, 1721 Newton Mass. July 23, 1793 1710 Ireland Julv 11, 1806 Lawyer Lawyer Physician . . Physician . . Lawyer Oct 1 1730 Princeton N J Feb 28 1781 Stone, Thomas 3( Taylor, Geo a Thornton. Matthew l ) Maryland j Pennsylvania ' New Hampshire i Georgia l Connecticut 5 Connecticut .'. 1742 Pointoin Manor . . . Md. Oct. 5! 1787 1716 Ireland Feb. 23,1781 1714 Ireland June 24, 1803 1740 Frederick Co Va Feb 2 1804 Walton, George 5. Whipple, William a Sailor Statesman.. Lawyer 1730 Kitterv Me. Nov 28, 1785 Williams, William a Apr. 8, 1731 Lebanon . Conn. Aug 2. 1811 Wilson, James 1 New j"ersev Minister.... Physician . . Lawyer Feb. 5, 1722 Yester Scot. Nov. 15, 1794 Xov 26 1726 Windsor Conn Dec 1 1797 Wolcott, Oliver 21 > Connecticut 5 Virginia Wythe, George 4. 1726 Elizabeth Co Va. June 8, 1806 Order in which they signed. t Age at death. Position of the Center of Population. YEABS. North Latitude. West Longitude. Approximate Location by Important Towns. Westward Movement During Preceding Decade. 1790 39 16. S 7 76 11.2' 23 miles east of Baltimore, Md . 1800 39 16.1 75 66.5 18 miles west of Baltimore Md 41 miles 1810 39 11.5 77 37.2 40 miles northwest by west of Washington, D C 36 " 1820 30 5.7 78 33 16 miles north of Woodstock Va " 50 " 1830 38 67.9 79 16.9 19 miles west-southwest of Moorefleld W Va 39 " 1840 39 2.0 80 18.0 16 miles south of Clarksburg, W. Va 55 " 1850 38 59.0 81 19 23 miles southeast of Parkersburg W Va 55 " I860 39 0.4 82 48.8 20 miles south of Chillicothe, Ohio 81 " 1870 3t 12.0 83 35.7 48 miles east bv north of Cincinnati, Ohio 42 " 1886. 39 4.1 84 39.7 8 miles wet bv south of Cincinnati, Ohio . 58 " .1890 39 11.9 85 32.9 20 miles east of Columbus, Ind 48 " 1900 39 9.5 86 48.9 6 miles southeast of Columbus, Ind 14 " MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 579 THE ARMY DURING THE CIVIL WAR. The following table shows the dates of the President's proclamations for men, the num- ber of men called for, and the number secured. The number of casualties in the volunteer and regular armies of the United States, dur- ing the war of 1861-'65, according to a state- ment prepared by the Adjutant-General 'a office, was as follows : Killed in battle, 67,058 ; died of wounds, 43,012 ; died of disease, 199,720; other causes, such as accidents, murder, Confederate prisons, etc., 40,154; total died, 349,944; total deserted, 199,105. Number of soldiers in the Confederate service who died of wounds or disease (partial state- ment'), 133,821. Deserted (partial statement), 104,428. Number of United States troops captured during the war, 212,608 ; Confed- erate troops captured, 476,169. Number of United States troops paroled on the field, 16,431 ; Confederate troops paroled on the field, 248,599. Number of United States troops who died while prisoners, 30,156 ; Con. federate troops who died while prisoners, 30,152. The Strength of the Federal Army. DATE OF PRESI- DENT'S PROCLAMA- TION. Number Period Number Called for. Ser v j ce- Obtained. April 15, 1861 75,000 '3 months 93,320 SwioOO } 3 >' ear3 714 ' 231 3 months 15,007 300,000 Svears 431,958 300,000 9 months 87,588 100,000 6 months 16,361 ioolooo} 2 y ears 374 ' 807 200,000 3 years 284,021 85,000 100 days 83,65i 500,000 1,2, 3 years 384,^82 300,000 1, 2, 3 years 204,68 May 3, 1861 July 22 and 25, 1861.. May and June, 1862. July 2, 1862 August 4, 1862 June 15, 1863 October IT, 1863 February 1,1864 March 14, 1864 April 23,1804 July 18, 1864 December 19, 1864. .. Total 2,942,748 2,690,401 NUMBER OF MEN IN THE UNION ARMY FUR- NISHED BY EACH STATE AND TERRITORY, FROM APRIL 15, 1861, TO CLOSE OF WAR. STATES AXD TERRI- TORIES. Number of Men Furnished. Aggregate Reduced to a Three Years' Standing. DATE. On Duty. Absent. Total. ir,.::.,7 186,751 575,917 918,181 880,187 959,460 1,000,516 Alabama 2,556 8,289 15,725 4,903 55,864 12,284 1,290 259,092 196,363 76,242 20,149 75,760 5,224 70,107 46,638 146,730 87,364 24,020 645 109,111 3,157 1,080 33,937 76,814 448,850 3,156 313,180 1,810 337,936 _>3,236 3l',092 1,986 33,288 32'.068 91,327 206 16,534 3,530 6,561 964 93,441 1,611 7,836 15,725 3,697 50,623 10,322 1,290 214,133 153,576 68,630 18,706 70,832 4,654 56,776 41,275 124,104 80,111 19,693 545 86,530 2,175 1,080 30,849 57,908 392,270 3,156 240,514 1,773 265.517 17,866 26,394 1,632 29,068 27,714 79,260 206 1,506 3,530 4,432 '964 9l',789 Janunrr 1. 1861 14,063 1,704 July 1 1861 183 688 3 K : 3 Arkansas Tami'iry 1 1862 527*204 48 714 California January 1 1*>63 698 802 19 38'' Colorado Connecticut Famrirv ]' 1865 fi"0 9 4 338 536 Delaware Mav 1,1865 797,807 202,709 Florida Georgia The Union losses at Bull Run (first Ma- nassas), July 21, 1861, were: Killed, 470. wounded, 1,071 ; captured and missing, 1,793 : aggregate, 3,334. The Confederate losses in particular engage- ments were as follows: Bull Run (first Ma- nassas), July 21, 1861, killed, 387; wounded, 1,582; captured and missing, 13 ; aggregate. 1,982. Fort Donelson, Tenn., February 14- 16, 1862, killed, 466 ; wounded, 1,534 ; cap- tured and missing, 13,829 ; aggregate, 15,- 829. Shiloh, Tenn., April 6-7, 1862, killed, 1,723; wounded, 8,012; captured and miss- ing, 959; aggregate, 10,694. Seven Days' Battle, Virginia, June 25-July 1, 1862, killed, 3,478; wounded, 16,261; captured and miss- ing, 875; aggregate, 20,614. Second Ma- nassas, August 21-September 2, 1862, killed, 1,481; wounded and missing, 7,627; cap- tured and missing, 89; aggregate, 9,197. Antietam campaign, September 12-20, 1882, killed, 1,886; wounded, 9,318; captured and missing, 1,367; aggregate, 12,601. Fred- ericksburg, December 13, 1862, killed, 596; wounded, 4,068 ; captured and missing, 651 : aggregate, 5,315. Stone River, Tenn., De- cember 31, 1862, killed, 1,294; wounded, 7.945; captured and missing, 1,027 ; aggre- Illinois Indiana Iowa Kansas Kentucky Louisiana Maine Maryland Massachusetts... Michigan Minnesota Mississippi Nebraska Nevada New Hampshire. ... New Jersey North Carolina Ohio Sou th Carolina Tennessee Texas Dakota District of Columbia New Mexico Utah U S Army U S Volunteers .... U. S. Colored Troops Total 2,778,304 2,326,168 580 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. gat*, 10,266. Chancellorsville, May 1-4, 1863, killed. 1,665 ; wounded, 9,081 ; cap- tured and missing, 2,018 ; aggregate, 12,764. Gettysburg, July 1-3, 1863, killed, 2,592; wounded, 12,706 ; captured and missing, 5,- 150 ; aggregate, 20,448. Chickamauga, Sep- tember 19-20, 1863 ; killed, 2,268 ; wounded, 13,613; captured and missing, 1,090; aggre- gate, 16,971. ' ' Gettysburg was the greatest battle of the war ; Antietam the bloodiest. The largest army was assembled by the Confederates at the seven days' fight ; by the Unionists at the Wilderness." THE GREAT BATTLES OF THE CIVIL. WAR. As to the loss in the Union armies, the greatest battles in the war -were : - DATE. BATTLE. Killed. Wounded.* Missing. Aggregate. July 1-3, 1863 May 8-18,1864 Gettysburg Spottsy 1 vania 3,070 2,725 14,497 13,413 5,434 2,258 23,001 18,396 May 5-7, 1864 Wilderness 2,246 12,037 3 383 17 666 September 17, 1862 Antietam t 2,108 9,549 753 12 410 Mayl-3, 1863 Chancellorsville 1,606 9,762 5,919 17 287 September 19,20, 18G3 . . . Chickamauga .-:.... 1,656 9,749 4 774 16 179 June 1-4, 1864 . . Cold Harbor 1,844 9,077 1,816 12 737 December 11-14 1862 Fredericksburg .. .... 1,284 9 600 1 769 12 653 August 28-30, 1862 April 6-7, 1862 December 31, 1862 Manassast Shiloh Stone Ri ver ; 1,747 1,754 1,730 8,452 8,408 7,802 4,263 2,885 3,717 14,462 13,047 13 249 June 15-19, 1864 Petersburg (assault) 1,688 8,513 1,185 11,386 * Wounded in these and the following returns includes mortally wounded, t Not including South Mountain or Crampton's Gap. i Including Chantilly, Rappahannock, Bristol Station, and Bull Run Bridge. Including Knob Gap and losses on January 1 and 2, 1863. Secession and Readmission of Con- federate States. Seceded. Readmitted. South Carolina Dec. 20, I860.... June 11,1868 Mississippi Jan. 9, 1861 . . . .Feb. 3, 1870 Alabama Jan. 11,1861 June 11,1868 Florida Jan. 11, 1861. ...June 11, 1868 Georgia Jan. 19, 1861 April 20, 1870 Louisiana Jan, 26, 1861 June 11, 1868 Texas Feb. 1, 1861.... Mar. 15,1870 Virginia Aprill6, 1861. ...Jan. 15, 1870 Arkansas May 6, 1861.. ..June 20, 1868 North Carolina May 21, 1861....June 11, 1868 Tennessee June 24, 1861 July, 1866 The whole number of men obtained by draft was 168,649. The whole number of colored troops obtained was 186,097. The greatest number in active service in the army at any one time was 797,807. The Diplomatic Service. The diplo- matic service of the United States, all of which is in charge of the Secretary of State, consists of Envoys Extraordinary and Ministers Pleni- potentiary, Ministers Resident, Charges d'Af- faires, Consuls-General, Consuls and Commer- cial Agents. The highest class of ministers are those sent to France, Germany, Great Britain, and Russia ; they are paid $17,500 per year. The second class ($12,000 a year) are sent to Aus- tria, Hungary, Brazil, China, Italy, Japan, Mexico, and Spain. The third class ($10,000 a year) go to Chile, Peru, and the Central American States. Ministers Resident receive $7,500 (with the exception of the one in Bolivia, $5,000, and the one in Liberia, $4,000), and are in the Argentine Republic, Belgium, Colombia, Hawaiian Islands, Hayti, the Netherlands, Sweden and Norway, Turkey and Venezuela. Charges d' Affaires have $5,000 a year, and are in Denmark, Portugal, Swit- zerland, Uruguay, and Paraguay. There are five Consuls-General in British dominions, at Calcutta, Melbourne, London, Halifax, and Montreal ; two in Germany, at Berlin and Frankfort ; two in Turkey, at Cairo and Constantinople ; and one each in Paris, Vi- enna, Rome, St. Petersburg, Bucharest, Bangkok, Shanghai, Kanagawa, and Mex- ico. Their salaries range from $2,000 to $6,000. There are the following ranks of consulates : Five at $6,000 a year ; two at $5,000 ; one at $4,500 ; six at $4,000; eight at $3,500; twenty-one at $3,000; sixteen at $2,500; thirty-seven at $2,000; forty-seven at $1,500; and twenty at $1,000. All con- suls receiving a fixed salary pay into the treasury all fees received by virtue of their office. But there are many consuls and agents whose only compensation comes from fees. Such officers are usually allowed to go into business. Mason and IMxon's Line. A name given to the southern boundary line of the free state of Pennsylvania which formerly MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 581 separated it from the slave states of Maryland and Virginia. It was run with the excep- tion of about twenty-two miles by Charles Mason and Jeremiah Dixon, two English mathematicians and surveyors, between Nov. 15, 1763, and Dec. 26, 1767. During the ex- cited debate in Congress, in 1820, on the ques- tion of excluding slavery from Missouri, the eccentric John Randolph of Roanoke made great use of this phrase, which was caught up and re-echoed by every newspaper in the land, and thus gained a celebrity which it still re- tains. Famous Giants and Dwarfs. The most noted giants of ancient and modern times are as follows : Height, Name. Place. Feet. Period. Goliath Palestine.. 11.0 B. C. 1063. Galbara Rome 9.9 Claudius Caesar. John Middleton England. . 9.3 A. D. 1578. Frederick's Swede Sweden... 8.4 Cujanus Finland... 7.9 .... Gilly Tyrol 8.1 Patrick Cotter Cork 8.7 1806. Chang Gow Pekin 7.8 1880. Many of the great men of history have been rather small in stature. Napoleon was only about 5 ft. 4 in., while Grant was 5 ft. 7 in. One of the greatest of American statesmen, Alexander H. Stephens, never excelled 115 pounds in weight, and in his old age his weight was less than 100 pounds. The more notable human mites are named below : Height, Date o'f Place of Name. Inches. Birth. Birth. Count Borowlaski 39 1739 Warsaw. Tom Thumb (Chas. S. Stratton) 31 1837 New York. Mrs. Tom Thumb 32 1842 New York. Che-Man 25 1838 China. Lucia Zarate 20 1863 Mexico. GeneralMite 21 1864 New York. Summer Heat in Various Countries. The following figures show the extreme summer heat in the various countries of the world : Bengal and the African desert, 150 Fahrenheit ; Senegal and Guadaloupe, 130 ; Persia, 125 ; Calcutta and Central America, 120 ; Afghanistan and the Arabian desert, 110 ; Cape of Good Hope and Utah, 105 ; Greece, 104 ; Arabia, 103 ; Montreal, 103 ; New York, 102 ; Spain, India, China, Jamaica, 100 ; Sierra Leone, 94 ; France, Denmark, St. Petersburg, Shanghai, the Bur- man Empire, Buenos Ayres, and the Sand- wich Islands, 90 ; Great Britain, Siam, and Peru, 85; Portugal, Pekin, and Natal, 80; Siberia, 77 ; Australia and Scotland, 75 ; Italy, Venezuela, and Madeira, 73 ; Prussia and New Zealand, 70 ; Switzerland and Hun- gary, 66 ; Bavaria, Sweden, Tasmania, and Moscow, 65 ; Patagonia and the Falkland Isles, 55 ; Iceland, 45 ; Nova Zembla, 34. Curious Misnomers. Arabic figures were not invented by the Arabs, but the early scholars of India. Cleopatra's needles were not erected by that queen, neither do they commemorate any event in her history. They were set up by Rameses the Great. The Jerusalem artichoke has no connection whatever with the holy city of the Jews. It is a species of sunflower, and gets its name from girasole, one of the scientific names of that genus of plants. The word "pen " means a feather, and is from the Latin penna, a wing. Surely the ex- pression "a steel pen" could be improved upon. Galvanized iron is not galvanized at all, but is coated with zinc by being plunged into a bath of that metal and muriatic acid. Pompey's pillar at Alexandria was neither erected by Pompey nor to his memory. Common salt is not a salt and has long since been excluded from the class of bodies denom- inated " salts." Rice paper is not made from either rice or straw, but from a pithy plant called tungtsua, fouu/1 in China, Corea, and Japan. Brazil grass neither comes from nor grows in Brazil. It is strips from a species of Cuban palm. Rare United States Coins and their Value. The rarest of the Half-cents are as follows : 1793 valued at $1 : 1796 valued at $10 ; 1831, 1836, 1840 to 1849, and 1852, val- ued at $4. The rarest of the Cents are as follows : 1793 with wreath is valued at $2.50; 1793 with chain valued at $3.50 ; 1793 with liberty cap, valued at $4 ; 1799 valued at $25 ; 1804 valued at $200; 1809 valued at $1. The rarest of the Silver Dollars are as fol- ows : 1794 valued at $35; 1798, with small sagle, valued at $2 ; 1799, with five stars fac- ng, valued at $2 ; 1804 valued at $800 ; 1836 valued at $5 ; 1838 valued at $25 ; 1839 val- led at $15 ; 1851 valued at $20 ; 1852 valued 525 ; 1854 valued at $6 ; 1855 valued at $5 ; 1856 valued at $2 ; 1858 valued at $20. The rarest of the Silver Half Dollars are as fol- ows : 1794 valued at $5 ; 1796 valued at $40 ; 1797 valued at $30 ; 1801 valued at $2; 1802 alued at $2 ; 1815 valued at $4 ; 1836 reeded, alued at $3 ; 1 838 Orleans, valued at $5 ; 852 valued at $3 ; 1853, no arrows, valued at $15. The rarest of the Silver Quarter Dollars are as follows : 1796 valued at $3 ; 1804 valued at 3 ; 1823 valued at $50 ; 1853, no arrows, val- ued at $4. The rarest of the Silver Twenty-cent pieces 582 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. are as follows : 1874 proof, valued at $10 ; 1877 proof, valued at $2 ; 1878 proof, valued at $2. The rarest of the Silver Dimes, or Ten-cent pieces, are as follows : 1796 valued at $3 ; 1797, 16 gtars, valued at $4 ; 1797, 13 stars, valued^ at $4. 50; 1798 valued at $2; 1800 valued at" $4 ; 1801 to 1804, each valued at $3 ; 1804 valued at $5 ; 1805 to 1811, each valued at 50 cents ; 1811 valued at 75 cents ; 1822 valued at $3; 1846 valued at $1. The rarest of the Silver Half-Dimes, or Five- cent pieces, are as follows : 1794 valued at $3 ; 1795 valued at 75 cents ; 1796 and 1797 val- ued at $2 each ; 1800 valued at 75 cents ; 1801 valued at $1.50; 1802 valued at $50; 1803 valued at $1.50 ; 1805 valued at $3 ; 1846 val- ued at $1 . The rarest of the Silver Three-cent pieces are as follows : 1851 to 1855 valued at 15 cents each; 1855 valued at 25 cents; 1856 to 1862 valued at 15 cents each; 1863 to 1873 valued at 50 cents each . Feminine Height and Weight. It is often asked how heavy a woman ought to be in proportion to her height. A very young girl may becomingly be thinner than a matron, but the following table gives a fair indication of proper proportions : Pounds. Five ft. seven in., about 150 Pounds. Five ft. in height.about 100 Five ft. one inch Five ft. two inches Five ft. three in. Five ft. four in. Five ft. five inches Five ft. six inches 106 113 119 130 138 144 Five ft. eight in. Five ft. nine in. Five ft. ten inches Five ft. eleven in. Six feet Six feet one inch 155 163 169 176 180 186 Great Financial Panics. The most remarkable crises since the beginning of the present century have been as follows : 1814, England, two hundred and forty banks sus- pended ; 1825, Manchester, failures two mil- lions ; 1831, Calcutta, failures fifteen millions ; 1837, United States, "Wild-cat" crisis, all banks closed ; 1839, Bank of England saved by Bank of France ; severe also in France, where ninety-three companies failed for six millions ; 1844, England, state loans to merchants, Bank of England reformed ; 1847, England, failures twenty millions, discount thirteen per cent.; 1857, United States, 7,200 houses failed for one hundred and eleven millions; 1866, London, Overend-Gurney crisis, failures ex- ceeded one hundred millions; 1869, Black Friday in New York (Wall street), Septem- ber 24. Yankee-Doodle. The air known as " Yankee- Doodle " was originally " Naukee- Doodle," and is as old as the time of Crom- well. It was known in New England before the Revolution, and is said to have been played by the English troops in derisive allu- sion to the then popular nickname of the New Englanders ; and afterwards the New England- ers, saying that the British troops had been made to dance to "Yankee-Doodle," adopted the air. Yankee, Origin of the Name. The theories which have been advanced as to the origin of this name are numerous. According to Thierny it was a corruption of Jankin, a dimin utive of John, which was a nickname given by the Dutch colonists of New York to their neighbors in the Connecticut settlements. In a history of the American war, written by Dr. William Gordon, and published in 1789, was another theory. Dr. Gordon said that it was a cant word in Cambridge, Mass., as early as 1713, used to denote especial excellence as a Yankee good horse, Yankee good cider, etc. He supposed that it was originally a byword in the college, and, being taken by the students into parts of the country, gradually obtained general currency in New England, and at length came to be taken up in other parts of the country, and applied to New Englanders as a term of slight reproach. Aubury, an English writer, says that it is derived from a Cherokee word eankke which signifies cow- ard and slave. This epithet was bestowed on the inhabitants of New England by the Vir- ginians for not assisting them in a war with the Cherokees. The most probable theory, however, is that advanced by Mr. Heckewelder. that the Indians, in endeavoring to pronounce the word English, or Anglais, made it Yen- gees, or Yangees, and this originated the term. The World's Fairs. WHERE HELD. London. Paris London Paris Vienna Philadelphia Paris Sydney Melbourne . . Fisheries Ex- hibit ion, London Health Exhi- bition, Lon- don Inventions Exhibition, London Colonial and Indian, London Glasgow Paris Chicago . . . Paris 1851 1855 1862 1867 1873 1876 1878 1879 Area Cov- ered.* Acres. 21 24% 23% 37 40 60 60 26 1885 1886 13 1888 .... 1889 75% 1893 633 1900 549 13,937 20,839 28,653 50,226 50,000 30,864 40,366 9,345 3,000 55,000 6,039,195 5,162,330 6,211,103 8,805,969 6,740,500 10,164,489 16,032,725 1,117,536 1,330,279 2,703,051 4,153,390 3,760,581 r. - t 141 $1,780,000 2001 644,100 171 1,614,260 217 2,103,675 186| 1,032,385 3,813,724 5,550,745 164 5,748,379 161 2,531,650 260,000 585,000 892,545 750,000 1,025,000 566,330 28,149,353 185 8,300,000 I .... 127,539,521 184 14,000,000 75,531 50,000,000 212 * Buildings and covered structures, t The largest number of visitors in any ene day waa 400.000 in Paris, and 716,881 in Chicago. ' t Receipts for admission. MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 588 The Average Velocities of Various Bodies. A man walks 3 miles per hour or 4 feet per second. A horse trots 7 miles per hour or 10 feet per second. A horse runs 20 miles per hour or 29 feet per second. Steam- boat runs 20 miles per hour or 26 feet per second. Sailing vessel runs 10 miles per hour or 14 feet per second. Rapid rivers flow 3 miles per hour or 4 feet per second. A mod- erate wind blows 7 miles per hour or 10 feet per second. A storm moves 36 miles per hour or 52 feet per second. A hurricane moves 80 miles per hour or 117 feet per second. A rifle ball moves 1,000 miles per hour or 1,466 feet per second. Sound, 743 miles per hour or 1,142 feet per second. Light, 192,000 miles per second. Electricity, 288,000 miles per second. Table of the Principal Alloys. A combination of copper and tin makes bath metal. A combination of copper and zinc makes bell metal. A combination of tin and copper makes bronze metal. - A combination of tin, antimony, copper, and bismuth makes britannia metal. A combination of tin and copper makes cannon metal. A combination of copper and zinc makes Dutch gold. A combination of copper, nickel, and zinc, with sometimes a little iron and tin, makes German silver. A combination of gold and copper makes standard gold. A combination of gold, copper, and silver makes old standard gold. A combination of tin and copper makes gun metal. A combination of copper and zinc makes mosaic gold. A combination of tin and lead makes pewter. A combination of lead and a little arsenic makes sheet metal. A combination of silver and copper makes standard silver. A combination of tin and lead makes solder. A combination of lead and antimony makes type metal. A combination of copper and arsenic makes white copper. How to Mix Printing Inks and Paints in the Preparation of Tints. The first named color always predominates. Mixing dark green and purple makes bottle green. Mixing white and medium yellow makes buff tint. Mixing red, black, and blue makes dark j be perfectly sound after an immersion of nearly brown. I 2,000 years. Mixing bronze, blue, lemon yellow, and black makes dark green. Mixing, white, medium yellow, and black makes drab tint. Mixing white, lake, and lemon yellow makes flesh tint. Mixing lemon yellow and bronze blue makes grass green. Mixing white and black makes gray tint. Mixing white and purple makes lavender tint. Mixing red, black, and medium yellow makes maroon. Mixing lake and purple makes magenta. Mixing medium yellow and purple makes olive green. Mixing medium yellow and red makes orange. Mixing white, ultramarine blue, and black makes pearl tint. Mixing white and lake makes pink. Mixing ultramarine blue and lake makes purple. Mixing orange, lake, and purple makes russet. Mixing medium yellow, red, and white makes sienna. Mixing white and ultramarine blue makes sky blue. Mixing ultramarine blue, black, and white makes slate. Mixing vermilion and black makes Turkey red. Mixing white, yellow, red, and black makes umber. Durability of Different Woods Experiments have been lately made by driving sticks, made of different woods, each two feet long and one and one half inches square, into the ground, only one half an inch projecting outward, ft was found that in five years all those made of oak, elm, ash, fir, soft mahogany, and nearly every variety of pine, were totally rotten. Larch, hard pine, and teak wood were decayed on the outside only, while acacia, with the exception of being also slightly at- tacked on the exterior, was otherwise sound. Hard mahogany and cedar of Lebanon were in tolerably good condition ; but only Virginia cedar was found as good as when put in the ground. This is of some importance to build- ers, showing what woods should be avoided, and what others used by preference in under- ground work. The durability of wood when kept dry is very great, as beams still exist which are known to be nearly 1,100 years old. Piles driven by the Romans prior to the Christian era have been examined of late, and found to 584 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. The wood of some tools will last longer than the metals, as in spades, hoes, and plows. In other tools the wood is first gone, as in wagons, wheelbarrows, and machines. Such wood should be painted or oiled ; the paint not only looks well, but preserves the wood ; petroleum oil is as good as any other. Hard wood stumps decay in five or six years ; spruce stumps decay in about the same time ; hemlock stumps in eight to nine years ; cedar, eight to nine years ; pine stumps, never. Cedar, oak, yellow pine, and chestnut are the most durable woods in dry places. Timber intended for posts is rendered almost proof against rot by thorough seasoning, char- ring, and immersion in hot coal tar. Time in Which Money Doubles. SIMPLE INTEREST. COMP. IXTEREST. ,S 2 60 years 35 years 2% 40 years 28 yrs 26 da 3 33 yrsj4 mo 23 yrs 164 da I 3%28yrs208da20yrs 54 da 4 |25 years !l7yrs246dal 4/4 22 yrs 81 da 15 yrs273da SIMPLE INTEREST. 20 years COMP. INTEREST. 14 yrs 75 da 16 yrs 8 mo 11 yrs 327 da 14 yrs 104da 10 yrs 89 da 8 j 12^4 years |9yrs2days 9 11 yrs 40 da 8 yrs 16 da 10 1 10 years 1 7 yrs 100 da "A Dollar Saved, a Dollar Earned." The way to accumulate money is to save small sums with regularity. A small sum saved daily for fifty years will grow at the following rate : Daily Savings. Result. | Daily Savings. Result. One cent 8950 Sixty cents $57,024 Ten cents 9,504 Seventy cents 66,528 Twenty cents 19,006 j Eighty cents 76,032 Thirtycents 28.512 ! Ninetv cents 85,537 Fortycents 38,015 j One dollar 95,208 Fifty cents 47,520 | Pecuniary Value of Metals. Few people have any idea of the value of precious metals other than gold, silver, and copper, which are commonly supposed to be the most precious of all. There are many metals more valuable and infinitely rarer. The following table gives the names and prices of all the known metals of pecuniary worth : Price, Av. Pound Gallium $68,600.00 Vanadium 10 780.00 Rubidium 9300.00 Thorium 8,330.00 Glucinium 5,800.00 Calcium 4,900.00 Lanthanum 4,900.00 Lithium 4,900.00 Indium 4,410.00 Tantalum 4,410.00 Yttrium 4,410.00 Didymium 4,410.00 Strontium 4,200.00 Arium 3,6 T 5.00 Erbium 3,6 T 5.00 Ruthenium 2,695.00 Niobium 2,x60.00 Rhodium 2,i50.00 Barium 1,96000 Titanium 1,102.00 Zirconium 1,040.00 Osmium 1,040.00 Uranium 980.00 Palladium. 040.00 Price. Av. Pound Tellurium ...fttfcOl Chromium . . . . 490.00 Gold ... 300.00 Molybdenum . . . ... 245.00 Platinum ... 144.00 Thallium ... 122.50 I rid i inn ... 112.00 Tungsten ... 36.00 Potassium . . . 28.00 Selenium Cobalt ... 18.80 . . . 8.00 Magnesium ... 4.50 Bismuth . . . 2.75 Sodium ... 2.50 Cadmium ... 1.30 Manganese . . . 1.10 Arsenic .40 Aluminium .34 Tin .25 Copper .25 Antimony .16 Zinc .11 Lead .08 VALUE OF METALS AS CONDUCTORS. Heat. Electricity. Heat. Electricity. Gold 100 94 Iron 37 16 Platinum... 98 16 Zinc 36 29 Silver 97 Copper 90 74 100 Tin. Lead. M U TENACITY OF METALS. A wire, 0.84 of a line in diameter, will sustain weights as follows : Lead 28 Ibs. Tin 35 " .. 110 " Zinc Gold 150 Silver 187 Ibs. Platinum 274 " Copper 302 " Iron. 549 FLUID DENSITY OF METALS. Zinc , Iron. Tin.. 6.48 6.88 7.03 Copper 8.22 Silver 9.51 Lead 10.37 Mode of Execution in Every Country. Country. Mode. Publicity. Austria Gallows Public. Bavaria Guillotine Private. Belgium Guillotine Public. Brunswick Ax Private. China Sword or cord Public. Denmark Guillotine Public. Ecuador Musket Public. France Guillotine Public. Great Britain Gallows Private. Hanover Guillotine Private. Italy Sword or gallows* Public. Netherlands Gallows Public. Oldenberg Musket Public. Portugal Gallows Public. Prussia Sword Private. Russia Musket, gallows, or sword . . . Public. Saxony Guillotine Private. Spain Garrote Public. Switzerland Fifteen cantons.. Sword Public. Two cantons Guillotine Public. Two cantons Guillotine Private. United States (other than N. Y., Ohio I Mostly and Massachusetts)Gallows ( Private. N.Y.,Ohio,andMass. Electricity Private. * Capital punishment abolished in 1S76. Great Fires and Conflagrations. London, September 2-6, 1666 Eighty-nine churches, many public buildings, and 13,200 houses destroyed ; 400 streets laid waste, 200,- 000 persons homeless. The ruins covered 436 acres. New York, Dec. 16, 1835 600 buildings; loss, $20,000,000. Sep. 6, 1839. $10,000,- 000 worth of property. Pittsburg, April 10, 1845 1,000 build- ings ; loss, 86,000,000. Philadelphia, July 9,1850. 350 buildings ; loss, 81 ,500,000 ; 25 persons killed ; 9 drowned ; 120 wounded. St. Louis, May 4, 1851. Large portion of the city burned ; loss, $15,000,000. San Francisco, May 3-5, 1851. 2,500 buildings; loss, $3,500,000; many lives lost. June 22, 1851. 500 buildings; loss, $3,000,- 000. Santiago (Spain), Dec. 8, 1863. A fire in the church of the Campania, beginning amid combustible ornaments ; 2,000 persons killed, mostly women. Charleston, S. C., Feb. 17, 1865. Almost MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 585 totally destroyed, with large quantities of before it. The effect of this terrific water naval and military stores. storm was felt for miles into the interior Richmond, Va., April 2 and 3, 1865. In great A Woman's Chance of Marrying part destroyed by fire at time of Confederate Every woman has some chance to marry ; it may evacuation. I be one to fifty, or it may be ten to one that she .Portland, Me., July 4, 1866 Almost en- ' will. Representing her entire chance at one tirely destroyed ; loss, $15,000,000. hundred at certain points of her progress in Chicago, Oct. 8 and 9, 1871 Three and time it is found to be in the following ratio : one half square miles laid waste; 17,450 Between the ages of 15 and 20 years 144 per cent buildings destroyed ; 200 persons killed 98 500 g e * ween th e ages of 20 and 25 years 52 per cent. made LmeleJ Llj fl JsTl _AnoU,er EKSSSS^SSJSJSS::: "^ffSS- great fire ; loss, $4,000,000. Great forest fires in Michigan and Wiscon- Between thlafesof 45 and 50 ylare.' .'.'.'.'.% of 'Iplr cent' sin, Oct. 8-14, 1871 2,000 lives lost. Between the ages of 50 and 56 years y 4 of l per cent. Boston, Nov. 9-11, 1872 800 buildings ; After sixty it is one tenth of one per cent., loss, $73,000,000 ; 15 killed. or one chance in a thousand. Fall River, Mass., Sept. 19, 1874 Great The Great Waterfalls. According to factory fires ; 60 persons killed. a recent calculation, the highest waterfalls in St. John, N. B., June 20, 1877 Loss, the world are the Yosemite Falls, California, $12,500,000. 1,500 feet. Krimbs Falls have a total height Brooklyn Theater burned, Dec. 5, 1876 of 1,148 feet. The three falls next in height 300 lives lost. are found in Scandinavia the Verme Fuss, Seattle and Spokane, Wash., 1889 About in Romsdal, 984 feet; the Vettis Foss, on the $10,000,000 each. Sogne Fiord, 853 feet ; the Rjuken Foss, in Jacksonville, Fla., May 3, 1901 Property Thelemarken, 804 feet. With a decrease in loss $10,000,000. height of 213 feet, the three Velino Falls, 591 Great Floods and Inundations. An feet, near Zerni (the birthplace of Tacitus), inundation in Cheshire, England, A. D. 353. follow next in order, and they are succeeded by 3,000 persons perished. the three Tessa Falls, in the Val Formazza, Glasgow, A. D. 758 More than 400 fami- 541 feet. The Gastein Falls, in the Gastein lies drowned. Valley, 469 feet, rank between the Skjaggedal Dort, April 17, 1421 72 villages sub- Foss, in the Hardanger Fiord, 424 feet, and merged ; 100,000 people drowned. the Boring Foss, in the same fiord. If the Overflow of the Severn, A. D. 1483, lasting ' width of the falls is taken into consideration, ten days. Men, women, and children carried the most imposing are those of the Victoria away in their beds, and the waters covered the ! Falls of the Zambesi, which are 391 feet high, tops of many mountains. ! with a width of 3,200 feet. A long way behind General inundation in Holland, A. D. these falls come the Niagara Falls, 177 feet 1530 By failure of dikes ; 400,000 said to have been drowned. high and 1,968 feet wide. Weight of Eggs. The following table At Calalonia, A. D. 1617. 50,000 drowned. f the weight of eggs per pound of various Johnstown, Pa., May 31, 1889 By the breeds of fowls and the number of eggs laid bursting of a huge reservoir on the mountains Jin a 7 ear is approximately fair, though it may the town was almost entirely destroyed, and varv under exceptionally adverse or favorable about 6,000 persons perished. The water in conditions: its passage to Johnstown descended about 250 feet, with a velocity of nearly fifty miles an hour, and as it swept through the valley it cut trees away as if they were stalks of mullen. Galveston, Tex., Sept. 8, 1900 Greatest in the history of the country. Six thousand or more lives lost and $30, 000, 000 worth of prop- erty destroyed. The strong wind from the sea drove the great waves with such tremen- dous force that almost everything was swept Games. Varieties. Light Brahmas 7 Dark Brak mas 8 Partridge Cochins 7 Black, Wkite, Buff Cochins 7 Plymouth Rocks 8 Houdans 8 LaFleche 7 Creve Coeure 8 Black Spanish 8 Leghorns 8 HamburgB 9 Dominiques 8 Eggs per No. Eggs pound, per vear. "130 130 130 120 150 156 Iff Bantams. . . Life Insurance. :> M 145 155 160 150 135 140 90 COUNTRIES. Insurance in Force. Year's Premiums. Year's Losses. COUNTRIES. Insurance In Force. Y-.ir> Premiums. Year'* Losses. United States $14 125 648 072 $339 280 913 $165 718 804 Austria $370 621 530 $14 613 420 $4 098 025 Great Britain Germany 3,290,521,720 1 320 163 685 126,458,455 60 313 925 78,496,735 16 767 830 1 Scandinavia... Russia UM13.755 47,926,979 4,366,360 1 767 681 1,147,996 684 707 France 695,231,550 40,351,080 10,647,060 1 Switzerland... 70,390,260 3,026,100 1,170,226 586 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Wars of the United States. STATEMENT OF THE NUMBER OF UNITED STATES TROOPS ENGAGED. W.VKS. From To Regulars. Militia and Volunteers. Total.* War of the Revolution April 19, 1775 April 11, 1783 130,711 164,080 309,781 Northwestern Indian Wars.. . Sept. 19, 1790 Aug. 3, 1795 8,983 War with France July 9, 1798 Sept. 30, 1800 t4,593 War with Tripoli June 10, 1801 June 4, 1805 t3,330 Greek Indian War July 27,1813 Aug. 9, 1814 600 13,181 13 781 War of 1812 with Great Britain June 18, 1812 Feb. 17,1815 85,000 471,622 576,622 Seiuinole Indian War Nov. 20, 1817 Oct. 21, 1818 1,000 6,911 7,911 Black Hawk Indian War April 21, 1831 Sept. 31, 1832 1,339 5,126 6 466 Cherokee disturbance or removal ()reek Indian War or disturbance 1836 May 5, 1836 1837 Sept. 30, 1837 935 9,494 12,483 9,494 13,418 JTlorida Indian War Dec. 23, 1835 Aug. 14, 1843 11,169 29,953 41 122 Aroostook disturbance 1836 1839 1,500 1 500 War with Mexico April 24, 1846 July 4 1848 30,954 73 776 112 230 Apache, Navajo, and Utah War 1849 1855 1,500 1,061 2 561 Seminoie Indian War 1856 1858 3,687 3 687 Civil Wart 1861 1865 2,772,408 Spanish- American War April 21, 1898 Aug. 12, 1898 274,717 * Including nil branches of the service, t Naval forces engaged, side was about 600,000. Troops actually engaged about 60,000. t The number of troops on the Confederate Percentage of Al Liqi Scotch Whisky 54.53 Irish Whisky 53.9 Rum 53.68 cohol in Various iors. Currant Wine 20.60 Port 22.90 Madeira . . wn Common Sizes of Flat Papers. NAME. SIZE. NAME. SIZE. Flat Letter 10x16 Medium 18x23 Small Cap 13x16 Double Small Cap.. .16x20 Flat Cap 14 x 17 Royal 19x24 Gin 51.6 Brandy 53.39 Burgundy 14.57 Teneriffe Sherry Claret ... . 19.79 19.17 15 1 Demy 16x21 Double Cap 17x28 Folio 17x22 Sizes of Newspapers. TERM. SIZE. Five-column Folio. 20 x 26 inches Cape Muscat 18.25 Elder 8 79 Champagne (still) 13.80 Champagne (sp'rkl'ng 12.61 Cider 5.2 to 9.8 Ale Porter 6.87 4.02 Malaga 17.26 Constantia 19 75 Rhenish 12 8 Six-column Folio, extra margin 22 x 32 inches Gooseberry Wine ..11.48 Small Beer .. 1 98 Quantity of Seeds 1 Wheat H/ 2 to2bu. Rve iy a " Required per Acre. Beets 3 Ibs- Carrots 2 " Seven-column Folio, extra margin 24 x 36 inches Eight-column Folio 26 x 40 inches Nine-column Folio 28 x 44 inches Four-column Quarto 22 x 31 inches Five-column Quarto 26 x 40 inches Barley 2 " Peas 2 to 3 " White beans.... iy 2 " Buckwheat y a " Corn, bro'dc'st.4 " Corn, in drills.. 2 to 3 " Corn, in hills. . .4 to 8 qts. Broom corn y, bu. Potatoes 10'to 15 " Ruta-baga % Millet y s Clover, white.. 4 Clover, red 8 Timothy 6 bu. qts. bu. to 2 pks. bu. to 2 " oz. Six-column Quarto 30x44 inches Seven-column Quarto 35 x 48 inches The Language of Flowers. SINGLE FLOWERS. Arbor Vitae Unchanging friendship. Orchard grass. 2 Red top 1 Blue grass 2 Mix'd lawn gr.l Tobacco . . . Wood for Fuel. In regard to the rela- tive values of woods as heat producers, different woods vary some by different methods of exper- imenting. The most accurate would be their value as steam producers. The following test was made from a fire tubular horizontal boiler : Shellbark Hickory 100 Pignut Hickory . .* 95 White Oak 84 White Ash 77 Dogwood 75 Scrub Oak 73 White Hazel 72 Apple Tree 70 Red Oak 67 White Beech . 66 Yellow Oak 60 Hard Maple. . ........... 59 White Elm 58 Red Cedar 56 Wild Cherry 55 Yellow Pine 54 Chestnut 62 Yellow Poplar 61 Butternut 43 White Birch 43 White Pine 30 These figures are from air-dried wood. No accurate result could be obtained from green wood, as it is not in a proper condition, and would vary considerably from any figures that might be made. Candytuft Indifference. Carnation, White Disdain. China Aster Variety. Clover, Four- Leaf Be mine. Clover, White Think of me. Clover, Red Industry. Columbine Folly. Daisy Innocence. Daisy, Colored Beauty. Dead Leaves Sadness. Deadly Nightshade Falsehood. Fern Fascination. Forget-me-not. Fuchsia, Scarlet Taste. Geranium, Horseshoe Stupidity. Geranium, Scarlet Consolation. Geranium, Rose Preference. Golden-rod Be cautious. Heliotrope Devotion. Hyacinth, White Loveliness. MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 587 Hyacinth, Purple -Sorrow. Ivy Friendship. Lily, Day Coquetry. Lily, White Sweetness. Lily, Yellow Gayety. Lily, Water Purity of heart ; elegance. Lily of the Valley Unconscious sweetness. Mignonette Your qualities surpass your charms. Monkshead Danger is near. Myrtle Love. Oak Hospitality. Orange Blossoms Chastity. Pansy Thoughts. Passion Flower Faith. Primrose Inconstancy. Rose Love. Rose, Damask Beauty ever new. Rose, Yellow Jealousy. Rose, White I am worthy of you. Rosebud, Moss Confession of love. Smilax Constancy. Straw Agreement. Straw, Broken Broken agreement. Sweet Pea Depart. Tuberose Dangerous pleasures. Thistle Sternness. Verbena Pray for me. White Jasmine Amiability. Witch Hazel A spell. IN COMBINATIONS. Moss Rosebud, Myrtle. Mignonette, Colored Daisy. Lily of the Valley, Ferns. Yellow Rose, Broken Straw, Ivy. Scarlet Geranium, Passion Flower, Purple Hyacinth, Arbor Vitae. Columbine, Day Lily, Broken Straw, Witch Hazel, Colored Daisy. White Pink, Canary Grass, Laurel. Golden-rod, Monkshead, Sweet Pea, Forget-me-not. ( A confession | of love. (Your qualities surpass I your charms of beauty. Your unconscious sweet- ness has fascinated me. ( Your jealousy -] has broken ( our friendship. CI trust you will find con- solation, through faith, in J your sorrow ; be assured of my unchang- (^ing friendship. TYour folly and coquetry have J broken the spell of your (^beauty. ( Your talent -| and perseverance ( will win you glory C Be cautious ; J danger is near ; j I depart soon ; ^forget me not. Weights and Measures. MEASURES OF LENGTH. APalm AHand Foot Yard Rod, pole, or perch 198 Chain 792 Furlong 7,920 Mile 63,360 In. 3 4 12 36 Ft. 66 660 5,280 Ys. Pis. Ch. Fs. 22 4 220 40 1,760 320 PARTICULAR MEASURES OF LENGTH. A fathom 6 feet. A cable's length 240 yards. A degree 69 l / 8 miles = 60 nautical knots or geo- graphical miles. A league 3 miles. 12 lines 1 inch. 3 inches 1 palm. 4 inches 1 hand. A cubit 18 inches. A pace, military, 2 feet 6 inches. A pace, geometrical, 5 feet. SQUARE OR SURFACE MEASURE. In. Ft. Yds. Pis. Ch. &. Square foot 144 1 Square yard 1,296 9 1 Rod, pole, or perch. 39,204 272Vi 30*/4 1 Square chain 627,264 4,356 484 16 1 Rood 1,568,160 10,890 1,210 40 2% 1 Acre 6,272,640 43,560 4.P40 160 10 4 A square mile contains 640 acres, 2,560 roods, 6,400 chains, 102,400 rods, poles, or perches, or 3,097,600 square yards. APOTHECARIES' WEIGHTS AND MEASURES BY WHICH MEDICINES ARE COMPOUNDED. 20 Grains =1 Scruple 3 = 20grs. 3 Scruples =1 Drachm 3 = 60 " 8 Drachms =1 Ounce 3 = 480 " 12 Ounces =1 Pound tt> =5750 ' ' Drugs are purchased by Avoirdupois Weight. FLUID MEASURE. Marked. 60 Minims TT\, =1 Fluid Drachm f 3 Drachms =1 Ounce f 3 20 Ounces =1 Pint O Pints =1 Gallon gal. PARTICULAR WEIGHTS. A Stone, Horseman's weight = 14 Ibs. A Firkin of Butter = 66 " A Firkin of Soft Soap = 64 " A Barrel of Raisins =112 " A Barrel (or pack) of Soft Soap =256 " A Fodder of Lead, London and Hull = 10% cwt. " " Derby = 22J " " Newcastle = 21 \ A Sack Potatoes, 168 Ibs.; Coals, 224 Ibs.; 280 Ibs. MEASURE OF TIME. 60 Seconds = 1 Minute. 60 Minutes =1 Hour. 24 Hours =1 Day. 7 Days = 1 Week. 28 Days =1 Lunar Month. 28, 29, 30, or 31 Days = 1 Calendar Month. 12 Calendar Months =1 Year. 365 Days =1 Common Year. 366 Days = 1 Leap Year. ANGULAR MEASURE. lour, 4 Quadrants, or 360.... =1 Circumference, or Great Circle. 60 Seconds. . = 1 Minute. 60 Minutes. . . = 1 Degree. 30 Degrees. . . = 1 Sign. 90 Degrees. . . = 1 Quadrant. CUBIC OR SOLID MEASURE. 1728 Cubic Inches = 1 Cubic Foot. 27 Cubic Feet = 1 Cubic Yard. 40 Do. of Rough, or I _ . Ton or Load 60 Do. of Hewn Timber } ~ 42 Cubic Feet of Timber =1 Shipping Ton. 108 Cubic Feet = 1 Stack ofwood. 128 Cubic Feet =1 Cord of Wood. 40 Cubic Feet = 1 Ton Shipping. 588 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. LIQUID MEASURES. Gals. Qts. Pts. Four Gills, one Pint ... 1 Quart 1 2 Gallon 148 Firkin or Quarter Barrel 9 36 72 Kilderkin or Half Barrel 18 72 144 Barrel 36 144 288 Hogshead of Ale (iy 2 barrel) 54 216 432 Puncheon 72 288 576 Butt of Ale (3 barrels) 108 432 864 Practically, the only measures in use are gallons and quarts, the others are merely nom- inal; e. g., the hogshead of 54 gallons, old measure, contains but 52 gallons, 1 quart, 1 pint, and 3.55 gills imperial measure, and of wine six nominal quart bottles go to the gal- lon. Of imported wines the following are the usual measurements : Pipe of Port or Masdeu = 115 Gallons. " Teneriffe =109 " Marsala = 93 " Madeira and Cape = 92 Butt of Lisbon and Bucellas = 1 17 " Sherry and Tent =108 Aum of Hock and Rhenish = 30 Hogshead of Claret = 46 DRY OR CORN MEASURE. 4 Quarts = 1 Gallon. 2 Gallons =1 Peck. 4 Pecks = 1 Bushel. 3 Bushels (four of corn) =1 Sack. 12 Sacks =1 Chaldron. 8 Bushels, or two sacks =1 Quarter. 5 Quarters =1 Load. MEASURES OF WEIGHT. Avoirdupois. 27% Grains = 1 Drachm = 27%) 16 Drachms = 1 Ounce = 437y 2 > Grains. 16 Ounces =1 Pound = 7000 ) 8 Pounds =1 Stone of Butcher's Meat. Pounds =1 Ordinary Stone. Pounds =1 Quarter (qr.). Quarters =1 Hundredweight (cwt.). Cwt =lTon. This weight is used in almost all commer- cial transactions, and common dealings. TROY WEIGHT. 3J Grains =1 Carat. 24 Grains = 1 Pennyweight. 20 Pennyweights =1 Ounce 480 grs. 12 Ounces =1 Pound. . . .5770 " HAY AND STRAW. Truss of Straw, 36 Ib. Truss of Old Hay, 56 Ib. Truss of New Hay, 60 Ib. Load, 36 Trusses = Straw, 11 cwt. 2 qrs. 8 Ib. ; Old Hay, 18 cwt. ; New Hay, 19 cwt. 1 qr. 4 Ib. WOOL. Cwl. Qr. Lb. = 1 Clove 7 = 1 Stone 0* 14 = 1 Tod 010 = lWey 7 Pounds 2 Cloves 2 Stones 6% Tods. 12 Sacks =!Last ....39 Boxes of Different Measure. A box 24 inches long by 16 inches wide, and 28 inches deep, will contain a barrel (3 bushels). A box 24 inches long by 16 inches wide, and 14 inches deep, will contain half a barrel. A box 16 inches square, and 8 2-5 inches deep, will contain one bushel. A box 16 inches by 8 2-5 inches wide, and t inches deep, will contain half a bushel. A box 8 inches by 8 2-5 inches square, and 8 inches deep, will contain one peck. A box 8 inches by 8 inches square, and 4 1-5 inches deep, will contain one gallon. A box 7 inches by 4 inches square, and 4 4-5 inches deep, will contain half a gallon. A box 4 inches by 4 inches square, and 4 1-5 inches deep, will contain one quart. In purchasing anthracite coal, 20 bushels are generally allowed for a ton. The Longest Tunnels. The Mount St. Gothard Tunnel, Italy, is 48,840 feet long, or nearly 10 miles long, and the longest in the world. Mount Cenis Tunnel, Italy, is 39,840 feet long, or about seven and one-half miles long. Hoosac Tunnel, Mass., is 25,080 feet long, or about 4| miles. TheNochistongo Tunnel, is 21,659 feet long, or about four miles. The Sutro Tunnel is 21,120 feet long, or four miles. Thames and Medway, Eng., is 11,880 feet long, or about two miles. Variations in Time. Washington, D. C., 12.00 m. Athens, Greece, 6.43 p. m. Auckland, New Zealand, 4.51 a. m. Augusta, Me., 12.29 p. m. Austin, Texas, 10.37 a. m. Batavia, Java, 12.15 a. m. Bombay, India, 10.00 p. m. Boston, Mass., 12.24 p. m. Berlin, Germany, 6.01 p. m. Calcutta, India, 11.01 p. m. Canton, China, 12.41 a. m. Charleston, S. C., 11.49 a. m. Chicago, 111., 11.18 a. m. Constantinople, Turkey, Copenhagen, Denmark, Denver, Col., Dublin, Ireland, 4.43 p. m. Gibraltar, Spain, 4.51 p. m. Glasgow, Scot., 4.51 p. m. Halifax ,N.S., 12.54p.m. Harrisburg, Pa., 12.01 p.m. Lima, Peru, 12.00 m. London, Eng., 5.07 p. m. 7.04 p. m. 5.58 p. m. 10.07 a. m. Madrid, Spain, 4.63 p. m. Mecca, Arabia, 7.49 p. m. Mexico, Mexico, 10.27 a. m. New Orleans, La., 11.08 a. m. New York, N. Y. , 12.12 p.m. Olyinpia, Wash- ington, 8.57a.m. Omaha, Neb., 10.44 a. m. Paris, France, 5.42 p. m. Pekin, China, Philadelphia, Pa., Pittsburg, Pa., Rio Janeiro, Bra., 2.16 p. m. Rome, Italy, 5.58 p. m. St. Louis, Mo., St. Petersburg, Russia, Salt Lake City, Utah, San Francisco, Gal., Tallahassee, Fla., 11.30 a. m. Toronto, Can., 11.51 a. m. Valparaiso,Chile,12.21 p. m. Yeddo, Japan, 2.27 a. m. 12.54 a. m. 12.13 p. m. 11.48 a. m. 11.07 a. m. 7.09 p. m. 9.40 a. m. 8.58 a. m. Wine. Beer. Liters. Liters. Alcoholic Liquors. A table of the comparative consumption of alcoholic liquors was compiled by the London Times recently, with some interesting results. The average yearly consumption per head is given in liters (a liter is a little less than a quart) : Spirits. Liters. Canada 3.08 Norway 3.90 United States 4.79 Great Britain and Ireland 5.37 Austria-Hungary 5.76 France 7.28 Russia 8.08 Sweden 8.14 German Zollverein 8.60 Belgium 9.20 Switzerland 15.30 Netherlands 9.87 Denmark 18.90 0.29 1.00 2.64 2.09 22.40 119.20 Unknown. 0.36 6.00 8.51 15.30 31.30 143.92 28.42 21.10 4.65 11.00 65.00 3.70 168.2* 55.00 37.50 2.57 27.00 1.00 33.33 MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 589 Belgium, it seems, contains the greatest num- ber of beer drinkers, with Great Britain sec- ond in this list, and Germany, contrary to common opinion, only third. France drinks the most wine, and Switzerland comes next, while the amount accredited to the United States, though comparatively small, yet ex- ceeds that of Great Britain. Canada is the most moderate drinker of all. Cost of the British Royal Family. The annuities paid by the British people to the royal family for its support are as follows : The Queen, 11,925,000; Prince of Wales, $200,000 ; Princess of Wales, $50,000 ; Dowager Empress Frederick of Germany, $40,000 ; Duke of Edinbxirgh, $50,000 ; Princess Christian, $30,000; Princess Louise, $30,000; Duke of Connaught, $125,000 ; Princess Beatrice, $30,- 000 ; Duke of Cambridge (the Queen's cousin), $60,000 ; Duchess of Albany, $30,000 ; Duchess of Mecklenburg-Strelitz (the Queen's cousin), $15,000 ; children of the Prince of Wales, $180,- 000. Total, $2,765,000. The Queen also re- ceives the revenues of the Duchy of Lancaster. During recent years these have amounted to about $250,000 per annum. When the royal children marry, dowries are usually provided for them. The last of the Queen's children to marry, Princess Beatrice, received $150,000 as dowry from the British people by Parliamen- tary grant. The Duchess of Teck, the Queen's cousin, who died in 1897, enjoyed an annuity of $25,000. Library of Congress. The new build- ing for the Library of Congress was provided for by an act of Congress, approved April 15, 1886. The library was opened to the pub- lic in the new building in November, eleven years later. The actual cost of the building was $6,032,124.54, or $213,443.40 less than the limit fixed by law. The book shelving is 231,680 running feet, or about 44 miles, which will accommodate 2,000,000 volumes. When completely filled, the library, without en- croaching on pavilions, reading rooms, or ex- hibition halls, will accommodate 4,500,000 volumes, occupying a little less than 100 miles of shelving. The library embraces 800,000 printed books, in which is included the law library of 100,000 volumes. There are also 240,000 pamphlets, 25,000 original manu- scripts, 60,000 graphic arts, 210,000 pieces of music, 45,000 bound volumes of newspapers and periodicals. There is also a pavilion for the blind, open daily, with a special library of books in raised letters. Most Notable Bridges. Brooklyn bridge was commenced, under the direction of W.A. Roebling, in 1870, and completed in about thirteen years. It is 3,475 feet long and 135 feet high. The cost of building was nearly $15,000,000. The cantalever bridge, over the Niagara, is built almost entirely of steel. Its length is 910 feet ; the total weight is 3,000 tons, and the cost was $900,000. The Niagara suspension bridge was built by Roebling, in 1852-55, at a cost of $400,000. It is 245 feet above water, 821 feet long, and the strength is estimated at 1,200 tons. The bridge at Havre de Grace, over the Sus- quehanna, is 3,271 feet long, and is divided into twelve wooden spans, resting on granite piers. The Britannia bridge crosses the Menai strait, Wales, at an elevation of 103 feet above high water. It is of wrought iron, 1,511 feet long, and was finished in 1850. Cost, $3,008,000. The new London bridge is constructed of granite, from the designs of L. Rennier. It was commenced in 1824, and completed in about seven years, at a cost of $7,291,000. The old London bridge was the first stone bridge. It was commenced in 1176, and com- pleted in 1209. Its founder, Peter of Cole- church, was buried in the crypt of the chapel erected on the center pier. Coalbrookdale bridge, England, is the first cast iron bridge.. It was built over the Severn in 1779. The bridge at Burton, over the Trent, was formerly the longest bridge in England, being 1,545 feet. It is now partly removed. Built in the twelfth century. The Rialto, at Venice, is said to have been built from the designs of Michael Angelo. It is a single marble arch, 98 1-2 feet long, and was completed in 1591. The Bridge of Sighs, at Venice, over which condemned prisoners were transported from the hall of judgment to the place of execution, was built in 1589. The Bridge of the Holy Trinity, at Flor- ence, was built in 1569. It is 322 feet long, constructed of white marble, and stands un- rivaled as a work of art. The covered bridge at Pavia, over the Ti- cino, was built in the fourteenth century. The roof is held by 100 granite columns. The St. Louis bridge, over the Mississippi, is 1,524 feet long, exclusive of approaches. There are three arched spans of cast steel, the center arch being 520 feet, with a rise of 47 1-2 feet ; and the side spans 502 feet each, with a rise of 46 feet. The width on top, between rails, is 50 feet. The piers rest on the bed- rock of the river, 136 feet below high water mark. Captain James B. Bads was the engineer. 590 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Rush street bridge, Chicago, 111., erected in 1884, at a cost of 8132,000, is the largest general itraffic drawbridge in the world. Its roadway will accommodate four teams abreast, and its ifootways are seven feet wide. The Victoria bridge, Montreal, one of the most famous in the world, is nearly two miles in length. The Cleveland (O.) viaduct is 3,211 feet in .length, 64 feet wide, 42 feet of which is road- -way ; the drawbridge is 332 feet in length, 46 :feet wide, and is 68 feet above ordinary stage ;of water. Politics of the Presidents. The sub- joined table will be found interesting, as a reference, to many of our readers. Of course the name of Washington heading the list does not mean that he was the candidate of any party or faction, but is placed there to com- plete the roll : NAME. George Washington, John Adams, Thomas Jefferson, James Madison, James Monroe, John Quincy Adams, Andrew Jackson, Martin Van Buren, Win. Henry Harrison, John Tvler, James K. Polk, Zachary Tavlor, Millard Fillmore, Franklin Pierce, James Buchanan, Abraham Lincoln, Andrew Johnson, U. S. Grant, R. B. Hayes, James A. Garfield, Chester A. Arthur, Grover Cleveland, Benj. Harrison, Grover Cleveland, William McKinley, Theodore Roosevelt, IXAUGCBATIOX. April 30, 1769, March 4, 1797, March 4, 1801, March 4, 1809, March 4, 1817, March 4, 1825, March 4, 1829, March 4, 1837, March 4, 1841, April 6, 1841, March 4, 1845, March 5. 1849, July 9, 1850, March 4, 1853, March 4, 1857, March 4, 1861, April 16, 1865, March 4, 1869, March 5, 1877, March 4, 1881, Sept. 20, 1881, March 4, 1885, March 4, 1889, March 4, 1893, March 4, 1K%, Sept. 14, 1901, POLITICS. Unanimous. Federal. Democrat. Democrat. Democrat. Federal. Democrat. Democrat. Whig. Whig. Democrat. Whig. Whig. Democrat, Democrat. Republican. Republican. Republican. Republican. Republican. Republican. Democrat. Republican. Democrat. Republican. Republican. The President's Salary. Most people believe that the 850,000 a year which the president gets as his salary is the sum total. This is a mistake. $36,064 is given him, in addition to his salary of $ 50,000, to pay the salaries of his subordinates and clerks. His private secretary is paid 83,250, his assistant private secretary, $2,250 ; his stenographer, 81,800 ; five messengers, each, $1,200 ; a stew- ard, $1,800; two doorkeepers, each, $1,200; four other clerks, at good salaries ; one tele- graph operator, two ushers, $1,200 and $1,400 ; a night usher, $1,200; a watchman, $900; and a man who takes care of the fires, who receives $864 a year. In addition to this, there is given him $8,000 for incidental expenses, such as stationery, carpets, and the care of the presidential stables. And under another heading there is given him nearly $40,000 more. Of this, $12,500 is for repairs and re- furnishing the White House ; $2,500 is for fuel ; 14,000 is for the greenhouse, $15.000 is for gas. matches, and the stable. The White House, afi told, costs the country, in connection with the president, considerably over $125,000 a year. Insanity. It is estimated that the number of insane persons in the United States is 168,- 900 ; in Germany, 108,100 ; in France, 93,900 ; in England, 81,600 ; in Russia, 80,000 ; Italy, 44,100; Austria, 35,000; Ireland, 19,500; Scandinavia, 18,100 ; Spain and Portugal, 13,- 000 ; Scotland, 11,600 ; Belgium and Holland, 10,400; Canada, 7,300; Australia, 4,900; Switzerland, 3,100. Causes of Insanity. Hereditary, 24 per cent. ; drink, 14 per cent. ; business, 12 per cent.; loss of friends, 11. per cent.; sickness, 10 per cent. ; various, 29 per cent. The above result is the medium average ar- rived at on comparing the returns for the United States, England, France, and Denmark. Height of noted cathedrals, monuments, buildings, etc. : Eiffel Tower.Paris ................... .... ............ 990 Washington Monument .............................. 665 Pyramid, Cheops, Egypt. ............................ 643 Cathedral, Cologne .................................. 611 " Antwerp ................................. 476 " Strasburg ................................ 474 Tower, Utrecht ....................................... 464 Steeple, St. Stephen's, Vienna ....................... 4*0 Pyramid, Khaf ras, Egypt ............................ 456 St. Martin's Church, Bavaria ........................ 456 Chimney, Port Dundas, Glasgow .................... 464 St. Peter's, Rome ..................................... 448 Notre Dame, Amiens ................................ 428 Salisbury Spire, England ............................ 406 Cathedral, Florence .................................. 380 " Cremona .................................. 372 " Freiburg .................................. 367 St. Paul's, London .................................... 865 Cathedral, Seville .................................... 360 Pyramid, Sakkarah , Egypt .......... ................ 856 Cathedral, Milan ..................................... 356 Notre Dame, Munich ................................. 348 Invalides, Paris ............................ > .......... 347 Parliament House, London ........................... 340 Cathedral, Magdeburg ................................ 337 St. Patrick's, New York .............................. 328 St.Mark's, Venice ................................... 328 Cathedral, Bologna .................................. 321 " Norwich, England ....................... 309 " World " Building, New York ...................... 309 Statue of Liberty, New York ........................ 305 Cathedral, Chichester, England ..................... 300 " Lincoln, England ........................ 300 Capitol, Washington ................................. 300 St. James' Cathedral, Toronto ....................... 316 Trinity Church, New York ........................... 283 Cathedral, Mexico ................................... 280 " Montreal ................................. 280 Brooklyn Bridge ...................................... 278 Campanile Tower, Florence .......................... 27S Masonic Temple, Chicago ............................ 266 Column, Delhi ........................................ 260 Cathedral, Dantzic ................................... 250 Porcelain Tower, Nankin ............................. 248 Custom House, St. Louis ............................. 240 Canterbury Tower, England ......................... 235 Notre Dame, Paris ................................... 232 fhioago Board of Trade .............................. 230 St. Patrick's, Dublin ................................. 226 Cathedral, Glasgow .................................. 22* Bunker Hill Monument .............................. 220 Notre Dame. Montreal ............................... 220 Cathedral, Lima ..................................... 22 Reims .............................. _____ 22 Garden City, L. 1 ........................ 219 Sts. Peter and Paul, Philadelphia ................... 210 Washington Monument, Baltimore .................. 210 MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. Largest Cities of the Earth. POPULATION ACCORDING TO THE LATEST OFFICIAL CENSUSES. 591 CITIES. Cen- sus Year. Popu- lation. CITIES. Cen- sus Year. Popu- lation. CITIES. Cen- sus Year. Popu- lation. London 1901 1900 1896 1900 1900 1901 est. 189S 1900 1897 est. 191)1 est. 1897 1898 1901 1901 1900 1901 1895 1897 1900 1899 1897 1900 1899 1901 1899 1890 1901 1899 1897 1897 1901 1900 1891 1900 1899 1891 1896 1900 1901 1896 1901 1900 1897 1900 1900 1891 1900 1901 est. 1901 1900 1899 1898 1900 1901 1900 1901 1900 1900 1895 1899 1897 1901 1897 1890 1899 1890 1899 1900 1900 1900 1900 4,536,063 3,437.202 2,536.834 1,884.151 1,698,575 1.635,647 1,6)0,000 l,440,l-.'l 1,293,697 1,267.023 1,125.000 1,121,664 1,000.000 988,614 821,235 770,843 760,423 705,738 685,276 663,854 638,209 575,238 570,844 570,062 560,892 544,057 543.969 523,557 522,651 522,182 612,423 512,150 509,589 509,397 508,957 505,763 499,959 492,162 490,900 466,028 455,089 446,291 442,239 428,953 422,738 405,041 402,000 395,349 383,390 381,768 380,717 380,000 373,179 372,229 359,295 353,139 352.387 348,965 342,782 328,842 325,902 321,626 320,628 319,866 319.766 316,479 315.209 312,859 302,462 301,206 292,799 288,489 287,104 285,704 2s.-,.;u.-, Bucharest 1899 1899 1901 1900 1901 1901 est. 1901 1900 1896 1897 est. est. 1897 1900 1901 1898 1901 1901 1899 1899 1900 1901 1900 1900 1891 1901 1896 1899 1898 1901 1900 1901 1900 1901 1901 1900 1900 1899 1897 1900 1901 1900 est. est. 1901 1898 1900 1901 1901 1900 1891 1901 1881 1900 1901 1900 1897 1890 1899 1900 1901 1901 1900 1900 1900 1899 1900 1901 1900 1901 1897 1901 1901 282,071 282,018 279,809 278,718 267,308 266,826 266.000 263,951 261,022 256,906 256,197 250.000 250,000 247,432 246,070 244,732 244,145 24(1,618 239,753 237,486 235,981 235,666 232.326 L'_".i.r,r,:; 225,686 221,441 220,956 216,276 216,051 215,780 214,803 213,767 211,674 JlO.r.so 208,385 207,971 206,584 206,433 205,328 1 204,768 ! 204,737 203,095 202,718 1 201,000 201,000' 197,000 193,762 189,290 189,160 188,300 187.897 1 184.109 ! 182,498 180,000 176,318 175,748 175,597 j 174,846 174,412 171,031 169,164 168,205 164,420 . 163,752 163,418 163,065 163,030 162,608 162.548 161,507 160,871 159.568 159.650 169,030 ls:t!> 1891 1901 189.1 1900 1900 1899 est. 1900 1900 1896 1899 1891 1901 1897 est. 1901 1900 1900 1900 1900 est. 1900 est. 1890 1901 1897 1896 1900 1901 1899 1901 1900 1900 1897 1900 1891 1900 1891 1901 est. 1899 1897 1900 1896 1901 1896 1901 1901 1898 1897 1901 1881 1897 1896 1900 est. 1900 1901 1901 1900 1901 1901 1901 1901 1891 1- ii 1897 1901 1900 1901 1890 1896 1901 1901 158,975 15X.344 157.847 157,785 r. .-.< ..' 1.56,611 156.552 153.000 150.268 150.239 149.963 148,644 148,412 146.565 146.205 145,000 143,722 143,022 142,418 141.947 140.539 140,500 140,384 140.000 188,860 137,238 137,109 136,030 135,235 115,172 134,680 133,875 133,859 131,822 131,508 129,896 128,419 128,177 127,836 127,527 127,150 I. 1,840 125,579 125.5tX) 124,661 l'J4,v.i:i 123,902 123.478 122 ..-.36 122,306 121,216 120,058 120,000 119,889 119.470 118,863 118,800 118,421 lit* .364 117,433 117,014 116642 115.407 114.815 113,735 113.540 113,219 113.001 112,962 112,842 111,728 ill.;-.'. 111,486 111.385 ,110,926 New York Antwerp Trieste Paris Bradford . Berlin Washington Chicago West Ham, England. . Montreal Elberfeld Vienna 1 Halle-on-Salle Canton Tokio, Japan Montevideo Lncknow Messina Tunis Philadelphia Nuremberg Strasburg St. Petersburg * Bordeaux Zurich Constantinople Riga Calcutta Bangkok I Adelaide * Peking Moscow Kiev Sunderland ' Osaka I Seville Bombay Manila . ... Bagdad Aberdeen Glasgow Nagoya Hamburg Hull .... Liverpool Nottingham Dortmund Buenos Avres Genoa Barmen Warsaw Havana Dantzig St. Louis Brussels* Rangoon ! Manheim .. Cairo, Egypt Fez, Morocco Oporto Boston Kristiania . Naples Hong Kong Oldham, England Saratov Manchester, England. Amsterdam Salf ord Lille St. Etienne . - Rio de Janeiro Florence | Aachen Birmingham, England Rome Kobe, Japan I Patna Newcastle Catania , ... , Madrid Dusseldorf Croydon, England Denver Barcelona Mad ras Stettin Toledo Baltimore Delhi Kazan Buda-Pesth Toronto Allegheny Munich .. Lemberg Milan Brunswick Melbourne The Hague Colombo, Ceylon Lyons Blackburn Leipzig Louisville Aleppo . . . . Haidarabad* (joteborg Marseilles Minneapolis Alalaga Leeds Columbus ; Breslau Seoul, Korea Roubaix Nagpur Mexico City Nantes Charlottenburg, Brighton Sydney Srinagar Portsmouth, England. Agra Sheffield Yekaterinoslav Lahore Dublin * Bogota . .. Rostov-on-Don Turin . Tabriz Havre Kioto Stuttgart Essen, Germany Buffalo Beirut Belfast Worcester Surat Bahia Bareilly Posen Meerut Santiago, Chile Karachi Willesden Kansas City, Mo Rhondda Edinburgh Gratz Rouen Astrakhan '. Lodz St Paul Ghent Preston Basle Altona, Germany Norwich Frankf ort-on-Main i Pernambuco Vilna Atfeens iPoona* Milwaukee Bangalore Birkenhead * With suburbs. NOTE. The population of Chinese cities other than Canton, Peking, and Shanghai is omitted, beeUM repor 592 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Arizona The American Indian. (Population in 1890, as Reported by the Census.) .16,740 Kansas 1.437 New Mexico 20.B21 Tpxaa 9K* California 15283 Louisiana 132 Pueblos . . 8,278 Utah 2,489 10,837 8,898 1,806 384 184 1 034 Maine. . . 140 New York 28 Washington Connecticut 24 Massachusetts... 145 Six Nations .. 5,304 Wisconsin 215 | Michigan 6,991 North Carolina. . . . 231 2 | Minnesota 7,065 Cherokees .. 2,885 War Department Apaches, Mt. Ver- . 3,909 i Misaissiimi .... 1,404 North Dakota . . 7,952 Illinois Missouri Montana 14 10,573 Oklahoma . . 5,689 71 Oregon . . 4,282 Indians in prison Ind ian Territory .... 8.708 Five Civilized Tribes 66,289 Iowa . . . 397 Nebraska 3.864 South Dakota .. 19,845 Nevada 4,956 Tennessee 10 Total. . 5 49,273 INDIAN POPULATION IN DETAIL. The total Indian population of the United States, exclusive of Alaska, but including 32,567 counted in the general census, being the taxed or taxable Indians, numbers 249,273. The following table gives the division of the Indians in detail : Indians on reservations or at school, under control of the Indian office (not taxed or taxable) 133,382 Indians incidentally under the Indian office, and self-supporting : The five civilized tribes, Indians and colored Cherokees, 29,599 ; Chickasaws, 7,182 ; Choctaws, 14,397 ; Creeks, 14,632; Seminoles, 2,561 ; total, 68,371. Total Indians, 52,065 ; total colored Indian citizens and claimants, 14,224 ; grand total Pueblos of New Mexico 8J278 Six Nations, Saint Regis, and other Indiana of New York 5,304 Eastern Cherokees of North Carolina 2,886 Indians taxed or taxable, and self -sustaining citizens, counted in the general census (98 per cent, not on reservations) 32,567 Indians under control of the War Department, prisoners of war (Apaches at Mount Vernon Barracks) 384 Indians in State or Territorial prisons 184 Total 249,273 "Uncle Sam." The practice of calling the United States Government " Uncle Sam " is believed to have originated in the following manner : During the Revolutionary war a man named Samuel Wilson was a beef inspector at Troy, N. Y., and was very popular with the men in his employ, who always called him Uncle Sam. After the inspection of the beef, it was shipped by him to a contractor named Elbert Anderson, and was always marked "E. A. U. S." A joking workman, being asked what those letters were the abbreviations of, replied that he did not know, unless they were for Elbert Anderson and " Uncle Sam." The joke was kept up and spread, until it became common to refer to all packages marked " U. S." as belonging to " Uncle Sam." Expectation of Life. i:\]>.vl;i- tionin years. & So* US *-" I fl . 0^2 g a a !=.: | it! fll* 5 l*i 1 81 && 28.15 M .4 ir-' in 26.04 H 15.45 M 5.85 3678 21 33.84 41 25.61 r.i 14.86 M 6.50 38.74 23 33.46 4- 25.19 14.26 -2 5.16 40.01 a 33.08 4:; 24.77 <3 13.66 *3 4.87 40.73 21 32.70 44 24.35 f>4 13.05 M 4.66 40.88 9D 32.33 4-, 23.92 68 12.43 4.57 40.69 M 31.93 -}: 23.37 11.96 M 4.21 40.47 27 31.50 47 22.83 67 11.48 87 3.90 40.14 88 31.08 4^ 22.27 H 11.01 M 3.67 39.72 30.66 4:- 21.72 10.50 M 3.56 39.23 30 30.25 M 21.17 70 10.06 N 3.43 38.64 31 29.83 .-,1 20.61 71 9.60 ;0 29,055 ,30 36,819.200 51,198,080 29,685,120 43,795,840 93,593,600 49,137,280 51,028 52,412 156,203 103,669 54,801 56,004 35,860 55,697 83,271 81,848 45,399 57,530 79,997 46,383 68,431 146,240 76,777 32,657,920 33,543,680 76,721,643 61,946,310 30,835,559 35,842,560 22,950,400 35,646,080 19,182,221 52,382,720 27,176,212 36,819,200 47,483,366 29,685,120 43,795,840 33,939,743 49,087,856 Nevada 70,336,640 44,910,080 26,062,720 61,277,440 49,206,400 52,541,440 35,274,880 42,746,880 62,433,280 368,103.680 72,792,320 19,658.880 78,428,800 24,774,400 109,901 70,172 40,723 95,746 76,885 82,096 65,117 66,792 97,552 575,162 113,738 1 30,717 ; 122,545 38,710 I 36,793,765 38,222,690 26,062,720 46,058,414 44,114.973 19,080,408 35,274,880 27,4*5,664 64,373,346 2,236 18,179,451 19,658.880 50,934,429 24,695,192 33,542,875 6,687,390 N. Dakota... Ohio 23,448,277 4,401,850 4,237,081 Oregon 15,219,026 6,091,427 33,461,032 S.Dakota Utah Wisconsin... Washington. Wyoming. .. Alaska Arizona Indiana Iowa 15,251,216 8,0*9,934 368,101,444 54,612,869 Idaho 34,111,219 I,880,i48 Kansas Louisiana . . . Michigan . . . Minnesota. . . Mississippi.. Missouri Montana .... Nebraska Indian Ter. . . N. Mexico. . . Oklahoma . . . Total 3,714,714 27,494,371 79,208 59,653,857 49,424 1,809,539,840 2,827,406 1,110,642,478*698,897,382 i>ew .Mexico; uie sixieciiiu aim nurty-siAm si ici veu niiu .....,., ....,,...., ^,, ,.,,,,,.,,,,,,,,.,,,-,, in railroad, swamp land, and other grants ; the great mountain areas ; the areas of unsurveyed rivers and lakes, and large areas wholly unproductive and unavailable for ordinary purposes. Present Population of the States and Territories. CENSUS OF 1900.* STATES AND TEBBITOBIKS. Population. STATES AND TERRITORIES. Population. STATES AND TEBBITOBIES. Population. 1,828,697 Maryland 1,188,044 Rhode Island 428,566 63 592 Massachusetts 2,805,346 South Carolina 1 340,316 122 931 Michigan 2,420,982 South Dakota 401,570 1 311 '664 Minnesota 1,751,394 Tennessee 2020,616 California 1 485 053 Mississippi 1,551,270 Texas... . 3048 710 539. 700 Missouri 3,106,665 Utah 276,749 90S 40 243,329 Vininnt 343 641 184,'"35 Neb raska 1,066,300 Virginia 1 v'-I 1M 278,718 42,335 Washington 518 103 5L'.H,542 New Hampshire 411,588 West Virginia 'I.-.S MKI 2,216,331 New Jersey 1,883,669 Wisconsin 2069,042 161,772 195,310 Wyoming 92,531 Illinois . - 4821,550 New York 7,268,894 Hawaii 164,001 2,516,462 North Carolina 1,893,810 Indian Territory 392 060 2,231,853 North Dakota 319,146 Indian Reservations .... 134 476 1,470,495 Ohio 4,157,645 In Mil. & Nav. service.. 91 ''19 2.147,174 Oklahoma 398,3;!! 1 381,626 413,536 Grand Total 694 466 6,302,116 * The United States census of 1890 is tabulated on page 633. The Language of Gems. Amethyst. Peace of mind. Regarded by the ancients as having the power to dispel drunkenness. Bloodstone. I mourn your absence. Worn by the ancients as an amulet or charm, on ac- count of the medicinal and magical virtues it was supposed to possess. Diamond Pride. Awarded supernatural qualities from the most remote period down to the middle ages. Has the power of making men courageous and magnanimous. Protects from evil spirits. Influences the gods to take pity upon mortals. Maintains concord be- tween husband and wife, and for this reason was held as the most appropriate stone for th* espousal ring. 5,Q8 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS, Emerald. Success in love. Mentioned in the Bible as worn in the breastplate of the High Priest as an emblem of chastity. Ruby A cheerful mind. An amulet against poison, sadness, evil thoughts. A preserva- tive of health. Admonishes the wearer of im- pending danger by changing color. Sapphire. Chastity. Procures favor with princes. Frees from enchantment. Prevents impure thoughts. Topaz. Fidelity. Calms the passions. Turquoise Success and happiness. Pre- serves from contagion. Garnet. Fidelity iu every engagement. Onyx. Reciprocal love. Opal. Pure thoughts. Pearl Purity and innocence. Public Lands Vacant July 1, 19O1. Indebtedness of the States and Ter- ritories . GEOGRAPHICAL DIVISIONS. Total Com- bined Debt* Less Sinking Fund. Per Capita of Com- bined Debt. 1890. 1890 1880. North Atlantic $467,968,615 $26.89 $37.28 Maine New Hampshire.. Vermont $15,609,777 8,148,362 3,785,373 81,550,027 13,042,117 23,703,478 201,763,217 49,333,589 71,041,675 165,107,113 $23.60 21.64 11.39 36.42 37.75 31.76 33.64 34.14 13.51 18.64 ia&) 31.10 13.54 51.55 46.91 3533 43.06 4366 25.03 22.10 Massachusetts Rhode Island Connecticut New York .... New Jersey. . . Pennsylvania South Atlantic STATES AXIJ TERRITORIES. Surveyed Land. Unsur- veyed Land. Total Area, Acres. Maryland 42,175,408 19,781,050 50.837,315 2,532,460 11,117.445 13,295^637 20,272,095 2,176,619 320,238,281 $71 065 386 40.46 85.86 30.70 3.32 6.87 11.55 11.03 5.56 14.32 *19 35 44.31 126.66 30.09 2.65 12.83 14.25 12.74 9.89 14.17 -1' 59 Dist. of Columbia. Virginia West Virginia North Carolina South Carolina Alabama. . . 312,630 * 11,615,248 3,224,128 34,052,596 34,719,759 1,299,704 11,680,089 1,085.315 254,317 462,157 1,967,285 195.980 281,727 19,138,446 9,926,670 29,667,377 41,108.508 11,973.738 4,653,605 23,642.364 11,471,138 10,830,242 5,613,943 230,813 42,769,587 367,983,50r> 37,155,806 7,996,412 4,396,055 160,070 30,795,087 ' 65,018 2,172,908 46,664,861 31,654,848 14,480,616 4,982,753 10,141,659 397,866 31,685,613 6,299,221 4.887,309 312,630 367,983,506 48,771,054 3,224,128 42,049,008 39,115,814 1,459,774 42,475,176 1,085,315 319,335 462,157 4,140,193 195,980 281,727 65,803,307 9.926,670 61,322,225 55,589,124 16,956,491 4,653,605 33,784,023 11,869,004 42,515,855 11,913,164 230,813 47,656,896 Alaska Arizona Florida Arkansas North Central California Colorado Florida. ..; Idaho Kansas Louisiana Michigan Indiana Illinois Michigan "Wisconsin 24,442.631 41,841,649 16.941,928 10,440.580 26,050,929 11.275,319 51,557,568 3,842,790 6,613.707 15.536.772 40,629,022 138.255,311 11.15 10.94 8.09 6.19 2001 5.90 19.24 21.03 20.11 1467 .28.47 12.CO 9.28 15.07 736 9.19 14.51 5.01 27.79 357 88-2 1656 15.97 16.14 Minnesota Mississippi Mi-~oun Montana Iowa : Missouri North Dakota South Dakota Nebraska Nebraska Nevada . . New Mexico North Dakota, Oklahoma Kansas South Central Oregon South Dakota Kentucky Tennessee $19.432,885 29,543.843 18,930,867 6,011,347 33,335,497 20.172,063 10,828,809 43 641 122 $10.46 16.71 12.51 4.66 29.80 9.02 9.60 14 41 $9.09 '26.42 14.26 4.38 45.60 7.34 13.37 13 85 Utah Alabama Mississippi Wisconsin Louisiana Texas Total Arkansas 312,177,366 .601,919,608 t914,096.!)74 * The unreserved lands in Alaska are mostly unsur- veved and unappropriated, t This aggregate is exclusive of Ohio, Indiana, Illinois, and Iowa, in which, if any public land remains, it con- sists of a few small isolated tracts. It is also exclusive of military and Indian reservations, reservoir sites, and timber reservations, and tracts covered by selections filings, railroad grants, and claims as yet unadjudi- cated, a part of which may in the future be added to the public domain. -Railroad selections made during the fiscal year ended June 30, 1897, were, .in acres: Arizona, 91,518.95 ; Arkansas, 7,024.14 ; Cali- fornia, 42,579.52; Colorado, 108,877.71; Florida, 281.29; Idaho, 86,526.60 ; Kansas, 55,770.65; Louisiana, 465.84; Minnesota, 52,698.93; Mississippi, 42,371.55 ; Montana, 46,318.85; Nebraska, 639.92; Nevada, 647,- 898.54; North Dakota, 1,313.81; Oregon, 13,766.86; Utah, 46,657.62; Washington, 114,868.55; Wisconsin, 29,552.21 ; Wyoming, 149,632.69; Total, 1,538,464.23. Montana $2,918,893 1,647,381 8,411.027 2.X31.538 2,937,971 7 j.\, t j.u- Dema vend, Persia 18,500 length is 1,500 miles. For the most of this Tolima, Columbia 18,069 distance it runs through a mountainous coun- Kenia, East Africa 18,045 , . Mt. St. Elias, Alaska 18,010 try, keeping on the ridges, and winding over Popocatepetl, Mexico 17,784 many of the highest peaks. In some places it Orizaba Mexico is only a formidable rampart, but most of the Mt^Brown^ Canada . !!!!!!.!!! '!!!'.'.!!!!!"!.' le.ooo way ii is composed of lofty walla of masonry ijjt. Blanc, France J 6 ' 8 ,!? J . . , i . , i < Mt. Hooker, Canada 15,700 and concrete, or impacted lime and clay, from Monte Rosa, Italy 15,208 twelve to sixteen feet in thickness, and from Mt. Whitney California ,. , . . ., . , j. , i_ i_, Mt. Ranter, Washington 14,444 fifteen to tnirty or thirty-five feet in height. Mt. Shasta, California.. 14,440 The top of this wall is paved for hundreds of o. n g' s ea *> Colorado 14,271 ., , ?., 1.11 ii.1 Pike's Peak, Colorado 14,147 miles, and crowned with crenelated battle- Mauna Loa, Hawaii 13,600 ments and towers thirty to forty feet high. In M ^ em ^ n ^ n 8 e? a Aiaska ming 12066 numerous places the wall climbs such steep Teneriffe, Canaries................................ 12^000 declivities that its top ascends from height to j*j^H>od, Oregon II'MO height in flights of granite steps. An army JMt. Miltseen, Morocco!'" could march on the top of the wall for weeks JJ 6 - Hermon, Palestine. Mt. Lebanon. Syria and even months, moving in some places ten Olympus, Turkey 9,745 Tnpn ahrpast Etna, Sicily 9,652 . , - St. Gothard, Alps 9,080 Most Northern Point Reached hy Mt. Sinai, Turkey 8,593 Arctic Explorers.- The following table BsSNSsa^-;::::::v: IJS shows the furthest points of north latitude i Mt. Kosciusko, Australia 7.176 i*oo/Vir*1 Vt\r A vf*fi c* fi YT*lrtT^i"ft iiTi"r TTifl 1 111"*! llH- * 63JC Oi i ICO. AZOrCS ..-. .013 Mt. Mitchell, North Carolina 6,711 ing the Nansen expedition : Mt. Washington, New Hampshire 6.288 Year. Explorers. North Latitude. Jtacolumi, Brazil 1773. Philips (Lord Musgrove). .is"?' Parry 8by ' 82d' 45m 30s". Ben N . evls '- Scotland 4.368 1874! Meyer (on land). 82d! 09m OOs. Vesuvius, Italy Is76! M a^kh.am(Nare's expedition). 83d. 20,n 26s. He j ght of Lo ftieSt Volcanoes of the 1SS4! Lockwood (Greely's party). 83d. 24m OOs. World. 1893-96. Nansen. 86d. 13m 36.3. Height The distance from the farthest point of polar Name of Volcano. in feet. Where Located. discovery to the pole itself is 3 deg. 46 mi 11. 2 4 l^j}^^ i!ii! "'c'hne' sec., or in round numbers, 260 miles, which is Arequipa........ "."....20,500 !!!'...'.'.'. Peru! only about thirty miles greater than the distance Cayambi. . . .... Boudoir. * __ -* --, , . , ,. T e Cotopaxi ij,oii i em. from New York to Washington, by the line or Antisana 19.200 Ecuador. the Pennsylvania railroad, over which the gj|^ij;;; ;.'!n!900.'!! .'.'.Atealn! traveler rides in about five hours. But this i> pocatepeti ............ 17',884 Mexico. polar radius, though only 260 miles in extent, Orizaba .'""nlSl!".'" !.'!.'! !!JBcaa dor! is covered by ice gorges and precipices of j Sangai.................!!.i7,i20 ....Ecuador. incredible difficulty ; and frost is so severe that {^J,^!"^ 1 * IRJOO!!! V.'.'.^^MexteS! no instrument of human invention can meas- Toiuco !.!... i5/>oo Mexico. ure its intensity, and it blisters the skin like ^fj*^ .'."iu'.ooo!!.!!!!!'.'.'.'.'. 1 !" "'/.Japan! extreme heat. Manna Kea' .'.'!!!!'.!!..... is',953 Sandwich islands. Tho trrpsitpst nrntrrpss thit has ever been Mauna Loa 13,760 Sandwich Islands. Ihe greatest progie, n Teueriffe j._> >2:!6 Canary Islands. made across these wildernesses of storm, of fury Mt. St. Helen's 12.000 United states. and desolation, was at the rate of five or six j p^^^Yti i"v'o IV/jiiiod^Itiaiids! miles in a day, the explorers often necessarily I Mt. Etna U'.!!!!'.!!loi74.. !!!!!!'. Sicily. 600 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Three of the best known volcanoes of the world, Vesuvius, 3,978 feet; Hecla, 3,970 feet, and Stromboli, 3,000 feet, are of much less elevation than many others altogether unfamiliar. Capacity of the. Largest Churches and Halls. St. Peter's Cathedral Rome 54,000 Cathedral of Milan Milan 37,000 St. Paul's Church Rome 32,000 St. Paul's Cathedral London 25,000 Church of St. Petronio Bologna 24,000 Cathedral of Florence Florence 24,000 Cathedral of Antwerp Antwerp 24,000 Mosque of St. Sophia Constantinople 23,000 St. John's Laterau Rome 22,000 Cathedral of Notre Dame. . .Paris 21,000 Cathedral of Pisa Pisa 13,000 Church of St. Stephen Vienna 12,000 Church of St. Dominic Bologna 12,000 Church of St. Peter Bologna 11,400 Cathedral of Vienna Vienna 11,000 St. Peter's Cathedral Montreal 10,000 Madison Square Garden New York 8,433 Auditorium Chicago 8,000 Academy of Music Philadelphia 2,862 Theater Carlo Felice Genoa 2,560 Boston Theater Boston 2,972 Covent Garden London 2,684 Academy of Music New York 2,526 Music Hall Boston 2,585 Alexander Theater St. Petersburg 2,332 Opera House Munich 2,307 San Carlos Theater Naples 2,240 Imperial Theater St. Petersburg 2,160 Grand Opera Paris 2,090 La Scala Milan 2,113 St. Charles Theater New Orleans 2,178 Opera House New Orleans 2,052 Grand Opera House New York 1,883 Booth's Theater New York 1,807 McVickar's Theater Chicago 1,790 Ford's Opera House Baltimore 1,720 Opera House Berlin 1,636 Foreign-horn Population. The fol- lowing table shows the origin of the foreign- born population. England* 909,092 Wales 100,079 Scotland 242,231 Ireland 1,871,509 Total United Kingdom 3,122,911 Germany 2,784,894 Canada and New- foundland., 980,938 Sweden 478,041 Norway 322,665 Russia 182,644 Italy. Poland Denmark. Austria... Bohemia. 182,580 147,440 132,543 123,271 118,106 France China Switzerland Holland Mexico Cuba and West Indies Hungary Belgium Portugal Spain South America.... Other Foreign Countries 113,174 106,688 104.069 81.828 77,853 23.256 62,4.35 22,639 15,996 0,185 5,006 54,385 Total Includes Great Britain, not specified. 9,249,547 The Five Wits. An old and curious standard of mentality is that which credits mankind with having " five wits": common wit, imagination, fantasy, estimation, and memory. 1 . Common wit is that inward sense which judges what the five senses simply discern: thus the eye sees, the nose smells, the ear hears, and so on, but it is "common wit" that in- forms the brain and passes judgment on the goodness or badness of these external matters. 2. Imagination works on the mind, causing it to realize what has been presented to it. 3. Fantasy energizes the mind to act in ac- cordance with the judgment thus pronounced. 4. Estimation decides on all matters per- taining to time, space, locality, relation, and so on. 5. Memory enables the mind to retain the recollection of what has been imparted. Bell Time on Shipboard. Time, A.M. 1 Bell, 2 Bells, 3 " 4 " 5 " Time, A. M. 12.30,1 Bell, 1.00 2 Bells, 1.303 2.004 2.305 3.006 3.307 4.008 Time, A. M. Time, p. M. 1 Bell, 2 Bells, 3 " 4 " 5 " 6 " 7 " 4.30 1 Bell, 5.00 2 Bells, 6.30:3 6.004 6.305 7.006 7.307 8.008 Time, P. M. 12.30 1 Bell, 1.00 2 Bells, 1.30 3 " 2.00 4 " 2.30 1 Bell, 3.00 2 Bells, 3.30 3 " 4.00 4 " 8.30 9.00 9.30 10.00 10.30 11.00 11.30 Noon Time, P.M. 4.30 1 Bell, 5.00 2 Bells, 6.303 6.004 6.305 7.00 6 7.307 8.008 8.30 9.00 9.30 10.00 10.30 11.00 11.30 Midnight On shipboard, for purpose of discipline and to divide the watch fairly, the crew is mus- tered in two divisions ; the Starboard (right side, looking toward the head) and the Port (left). The day commences at noon, and is thus divided : Afternoon Watch, noon to 4 p. M. ; First Dog Watch, 4 p. M. to 6 P. M. ; Second Dog Watch, 6 p. M. to 8 p. M.; First Watch, 8 P. M. to Midnight ; Middle Watch, Midnight to 4 A. M. ; Morning Watch, 4 A. M. to 8 A. M. ; Forenoon Watch, 8 A. M. to noon. This makes seven Watches, which enables the crew to keep them alternately, as the Watch which comes on duty at noon one day has the afternoon next day, and the men who have only four hours' rest one night have eight hours the next. This is the reason for having Dog Watches, which are made by dividing the hours between 4 p. M. and 8 p. M. into two Watches. Time is kept by means of " Bells " although sometimes there is but one Bell on the ship. Pawnbroker's Sign, Origin of. It is generally held that the three golden balls used by pawnbrokers as a sign were adopted from the armorial bearings of the Medici fam- ily of Italy by the Lombard merchants, among whom were several representatives of that fam- ily. This sign was used in London in very early times by some of those merchants who had emigrated from Italy and established the first money-lending establishments in England. Indian Folklore. As a specimen of the folklore of our own aborigines none can sur- pass in interest the story of Hiawatha, the MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. prophet-teacher, son of Mudjekeewis (the west wind) and Wenonah, daughter of Nokomis. He represents the progress of civilization among the North American Indians. Hiawa- tha first wrestled with Mondamin (maize), and, having subdued it, gave it to man for food. He then taught man navigation; then he sub- dued Mishe Nahma (the sturgeon), and taught the Indians how to make oil therefrom for winter. His next exploit was against the ma- gician Megissognon, the author of disease and death; having slain this monster, he taught men the science of medicine. He then mar- ried Minnehaha (laughing water), and taught man to be the husband of one wife, and the comforts of domestic peace. Lastly, he taught man picture-writing. When the white man came with the gospel, Hiawatha ascended to the kingdom of Ponemah, the land of the hereafter. Among many other accomplish- ments, when Hiawatha put on his moccasins, he could measure a mile at a single stride. He had moccasins enchanted, Magic moccasins of deer-skin; When he bound them round his ankles At each stride a mile he measured ! LONGFELLOW, Hiawatha, Iv. Barber's Pole. The spiral red stripe on a barber's pole is said to symbolize the winding of a ribbon or bandage around the arm of a patient upon whom the barber had operated in the capacity of surgeon. In former times, when the operation of bleeding was extensively practiced, blood-letting formed a part of the duties of a barber. Caste Among the Hindoos. Caste is a term applied to the division into social classes in India. To each of these classes certain pur- suits are limited by the Laws of Manu, B. C. 960. 1. The Brahmans or sacerdotal class, which " issued from the mouth of Brahma." 2. The Chuttree or military class, which " sprang from the arm of Brahma." 3. The Ba'is or mercantile class, which " sprang from the thigh of Brahma." 4. The Sudras or servile class, which " sprang from the foot of Brahma." The Pariahx and Chandalas are nobodies, or worse, for it is pollution to be touched by such " scum of the earth." American Flags. It is related that the flag which was raised at Cambridge, January 2, 1776, by Washington, was composed of thir- teen red and white stripes, with the crosses of St. George and St. Andrew emblazoned on the blue canton in place of the stars. This flag was also carried by the fleet under command of Commander Esek Hopkins, when it sailed from the Delaware Capes, Jbehruary 17, 1776. In the following year, June 14, 1777, the Conti- nental Congress passed a resolution " That the flag of the United States be thirteen stripes, alternate red and white ; that the Union be thirteen stars, white on a blue field, represent- ing anew constellation." How or by whom the idea of the star was first suggested is un- certain, although there are some who ascribe it to John Adams, while others claim the en- tire flag was borrowed from the coat of arms of the Washington family. In this flag the stars were arranged in a circle, although no form was officially prescribed. It is supposed that the first display of the National flag at a mili- tary post was at Fort Schuyler, on the site of the village of Rome, Oneida county, N. Y. The fort was besieged early in the month of August, 1777, and the garrison were without a flag. So they made one according to the pre- scription of Congress, by cutting up sheets to form the white stripes, bits of scarlet cloth for the red stripes, and the blue ground for the stars was composed of portions of a cloth cloak belonging to Capt. Abraham Swarthout, of Dutchess county, N. Y., and the flag was un- furled August 3, 1777. Paul Jones, as com- mander of the "Ranger," to which he was appointed, June 14, 1777, claimed that he was the first to display the stars and stripes on a naval vessel. It is probable that the flag was first unfurled in battle on the banks of the Brandywine, September 11, 1777, the first bat- tle after its adoption. It first appeared over a foreign stronghold, June 28, 1778, when Cap- tain Rathbone, of the American sloop of war "Providence," captured Fort Nassau, New Providence, Bahama Islands. John Singleton Copley, the American painter, claimed to be the first to display the flag in Great Britain. On the day when George III. acknowledged the independence of the United States (De- cember 5, 1782), he painted the flag in the background of a portrait of Elkanah Watson. To Captain Mooers, of the whaling ship " Bed- ford," of Nantucket, is doubtless due the honor of first displaying the stars and stripes in a port of Great Britain. He arrived in the Downs with it flying at the fore, February 3, 1783. When Vermont and Kentucky were added to the Union of States, the flag was altered, the number of stripes and stars being increased from thirteen to fifteen. In 1818 a new flag, having thirteen stripes and a star for every state, twenty at that time, was devised by Capt. Samuel C. Reed, and this has remained the form of the United States flag. Harbors. San Francisco may fairly claim to have the most capacious natural harbor of any of the world's great trading marts. It is also one of the very safest. It is entered through the Golden Gate, a passage a mile wide> 602 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. and thirty-five feet deep at low tide admit- ting the largest ships afloat without danger of grounding. The landlocked bay, of which this harbor is part, is fifty miles long, and averages five miles in width. There all the shipping of the entire globe could anchor in perfect safety. Port Philip Bay, the chief harbor of Victoria, Australia, is larger than the bay of San Fran- cisco, being about thirty-eight miles long by thirty-three broad, but its very breadth, with its surroundings, leaves it exposed to storms from certain quarters. Port Jackson, on which Sydney, New South Wales, Australia, is lo- cated, is a magnificent harbor, completely land- locked, extending inland in some places fully twenty miles, and having ample depth of water for vessels of the heaviest burden. The har- bors of New York city, Rio Janeiro, Brazil, and Havana, Cuba, are capacious and secure. Next come those of Boston, Norfolk, Va., Port- land, Me., Halifax, N. S., Copenhagen, Con- stantinople, Hong Kong, Yokohama, and Na- gasaki. The great ports situated on the banks of rivers, such as London, Liverpool, Glasgow, Lisbon, Philadelphia, New Orleans, Quebec, Shanghai, Canton, Calcutta, etc., are not in- cluded in the definition of harbors as here con- sidered. Bunker Hill Monument. The corner stone of this monument was laid on the fiftieth anniversary of the battle of Bunker Hill, June 17, 1825, by Lafayette, and the oration was pronounced by Daniel Webster. It is a squar* shaft of Quincy granite, 221 feet high, 31 feet square at the base, and 15 feet at the top. Inside the shaft is a round, hollow cone, 7 feet wide at the bottom, and 4 feet 2 inches at the top, encircled by a winding staircase containing 224 stone steps, which leads to a chamber 11 feet in diameter immediately under the apex. The chamber has four windows, and contains two cannons, named Hancock and Adams, re- spectively, which were used in the war. The monument was completed and was dedicated June 17, 1843. Commune, Paris, was an organized band of Socialists, who attempted to establish a rev- olutionary government in Paris in 1871. Be- fore they were suppressed by the army of the republic, they became absolute masters of Paris, and committed astrocious acts of cruelty and vandalism. They arrested the Bishop of Paris and other prominent citizens, and imprisoned them. They set fire to the public buildings, and endeavored to destroy the ancient monu- ments and treasures of art. Among the build- ings which were destroyed were the Tuileries, the Palais de Justice, the Palais Royal, and the Hotel de Ville, and the Louvre Gallery was j trtly burned. The Column Vendome, erected in honor of Napoleon, was one of the first mon- uments to fall. Darboy, the Archbishop of Paris, Bonjean, President of the Court of Cas- sation, and others whom they held as hostages, were shot. In short, they seemed to be pos- sessed with a very frenzy of hatred against all government and all order, and wantonly de- stroyed property and human life. The revo- lution was finally suppressed on May 27, and 25,000 of the Communists were taken prisoners, some of whom were put to death, while a large number were banished. In justice it must be said that the more intelligent and honest lead- ers of the Commune were discarded before the most astrocious acts were committed. Alien Holders of Our Lands. The following is a table of the leading alien hold- ers of lands in the United States, with amount of holdings in acres : An English syndicate, No. 3, in Texas 3,000,000 The Holland Land Company, New Mexico 4,500,000 SirEdw. Reid and a syndicate, Florida 2,000,000 English syndicate in Mississippi 1,800.000 Marquis of Tweedale 1,750,000 Phillips, Marshall & Co., London 1,300,000 German-American syndicate, London 750,000 Bryan H. Evans, of London 700,000 Duke of Sutherland 425,000 British Land Company in Kansas 320,000 Wm. Wharley, M.P., Peterboro, England 310,000 Missouri Land Company, Edinburgh, Scotland 300,000 Robert Tennent, of London 230,000 Dundee Land Company, Scotland 247,000 Lord Dunmore 120,000 Benjamin Neugas, Liverpool 100,000 Lord Honghton in Florida- 60,000 Lord Dunraven in Colorado 60,000 English Land Company in Florida ; 50,0110 English Land Company in Arkansas 50,000 Albert Peel, M.P., Leicestershire, England 10,000 Sir J. L. Kay, Yorkshire, England 5,000 Alexander Grant, of London, in Kansas 35,000 English syndicate, Wisconsin 110,000 M. Ellerhauser, of Halifax, in West Virginia. . 600,000 A Scotch syndicate in Florida 500,000 A. Boysen,"Danish consul in Milwaukee 50,000 Missouri Land Company, of Edinburgh 165,000 Total 20,647,000 To these syndicate holdings, should be added the following : The Arkansas Valley Com- pany in Colorado, a foreign corporation, whose inclosures embrace upwards of 1,000,000 acres ; the Prairie Cattle Company (Scotch) in Col- orado, upwards of 1,000,000; H. H. Metcalf, River Bend, Colorado, 200,000; John W. Powers, Colorado, 200,000 ; McDaniel & Davis, Colorado, 75,000 ; Routchler & Lamb, Colo- rado, 40,000 ; J. W. Frank, Colorado, 40,000 ; Garnett & Langford, Colorado, 30,000; E. C. Tane, Colorado, 50,000 ; Leivesy Brothers, Col- orado, 150,000 ; Vrooman & McFife, Colorado, 50,000; Beatty Brothers, Colorado, 40,000; Chick, Brown & Company, Colorado, 30,000; Reynolds Cattle Company, Colorado, 50,000 ; several other cases in Colorado, embracing from 10,000 to 30,000; Coe & Carter, Ne- braska, fifty miles of fence ; J. W. Wilson, Nebraska, forty miles ; J. W. Boster, twenty MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 603 miles ; William Humphrey, Nevada, thirty j miles ; Nelson & Son, Nevada, twenty-two miles ; Kennebec Ranch, Nebraska, from 20,- ; 000 to 50,000 acres. Largest Islands in the World. Area. Popula- Sq. miles. tion. | NewGuinea 325.000 690,000 Borneo 290,000 1,816,000 Madagascar 228.570 3,000,000 Sumatra 168,000 5,00X000 Great Britain 83,826 29,710,000 Celebes 66,750 4 000,000 Java 50,260 17,500,000 Saghalien (used as a penal settlement only) 47,500 13,500 New Zealand, North Island 44,750) K - n nnn " " South Island 55.224 J otO,WO Cuba 45,700 2,000,000; Niphon (Japan) 42,000 27,250,000 Newfoundland 40,200 180.000 Luzon (Philippines) 40,000 4,500,000 Iceland 40,000 72,438 Jesso 35,000 163,355 Ireland 31,874 5,174,836 Hayti or San Domingo 29.830 393,200 Tasmania 26,215 130,541; Ceylon 25,635 3,000,000 Tier ra del Fuego 21,260 2,000 Government Salary List The salary of the president of the United States is $50,000 ' a year ; the vice-president, 8,000 ; cabinet offi- : cers, $8,000. Senators receive $5,000 and i mileage. Congressmen, $5,000 and mileage. ' The Chief Justice of the Supreme Court re- ceives $10,500; Associate Justices, $10,000. The diplomats get good pay : Ministers to Germany, Great Britain, France, and Russia, $17,500 ; Ministers to Brazil, China, Austro- Hungary, Italy, Mexico, Japan, and Spain, $12,000 ; Ministers to Chile, Peru, and Central | America, $10,000 ; Ministers to the Argen- tine Confederation, Belgium, Hayti, Colom- j bia, Netherlands, Sweden, Turkey, and Venezuela, $7,500 ; Ministers to Switzerland, Denmark, Paraguay, Bolivia, and Portugal, $.">,000 ; Ministers to Liberia, $4,000. The j heads of the government departments receive : ' Superintendent of Bureau of Engraving and j Printing, $1,500 ; Public Printer, $4,500; Su- perintendent of Census, $5,000 ; Superinten- ! dent of Naval Observatory, $5,000 ; Superin- tendent of the Signal Service, $4,000 ; Director : of Geological Surveys, $6,000 ; Director of the Mint, $4,500 ; Commissioner of General Land Office, $t,000 ; Commissioner of Pensions, $3,- 600; Commissioner of Agriculture, $'5,000; Commissioner of Indian Affairs, $3,000 ; Com- , missioner of Education, $3,000; Commander of Marine Corps, $3,500 ; Superintendent of Coast and Geodetic Survey, $6,000. In 1893 the Ministers to Great Britain, Ger- many, and France, were made Ambassadors without increase of pay. The pay of army officers is fixed as follows : General, $13,500 ; lieutenant general, $11,000 ; major general, $7,500 ; brigadier general, $5,- 500 ; colonel, $3,500 ; lieutenant colonel, $3,000; major, $2,500; captain, mounted, $2,000; captain, not mounted, $1,800; regi- mental adjutant, $1,800; regimental quarter- master, $1,800; first lieutenant, mounted, $1,600 ; first lieutenant, not mounted, $1,500 ; second lieutenant, mounted, $1,500; second lieutenant, not mounted, $1,400; chaplain, $1 ,500. The navy salaries are : Admiral, $13,- 000 ; vice-admiraf, $9,000 ; rear admiral, $6,- 000; commodore, $5,000; captain, $4,500; commander, $3,500 ; lieutenant commander, $2,800 ;lieutenant, $2,400; master, $1,800; ensign, $1,200; midshipman, $1,000; cadet midshipman, $500; mate, $900; medical and pay director, and medical and pay inspector, and chief engineer, $4,400 ; fleet surgeon, fleet paymaster, and fleet engineer, $4,400 ; sur- geon and paymaster, $2,800 ; chaplain, $2,500. The White House. The residence of the president of the United States is officially known as the Executive Mansion, which means that it is the residence of the head of the executive branch of the government ; but it is seldom called, in ordinary talk, either by those who live in it, or by the American people in general, anything but the White House. This is a very unpretentious title, and it is interest- ing to note how the residence of the president, in a country which is full of white houses, came to bear this simple name as its special property. The explanation is easily found. The first Executive Mansion at Washington was occu- pied in 1800. It was built of freestone, and was unpainted ; but in 1814 the Britisli army occupied Washington, and burned, with other public buildings, the president's house, leav- ing it a blackened ruin. The house was rebuilt on the same site, and the same walls were used in its construction ; but they were so discolored by smoke that, on the suggestion of General Jackson, they were painted white, not only to improve their ap- pearance, but in token of the successful defiance of British fire by the American Republic. The mansion soon became the " White House" in the mouths of the people, on ac- count of its dazzling color, and from that day to this it has been repainted white every ten years. Its name com meniorates a patriotic feel- ing, therefore, as well as serves to descril>e the appearance of the mansion, for the original coat of white paint was a sort of protest against the vandalism of the British, and every subse- quent coat has served to perpetuate the protest. Eagle as an Emblem. In ancient my- thology the eagle was believed to carry the souls of the dying to their abode on Mount Olympus, and was called the Bird of Jove. 604 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. The eagle was first taken as a symbol of royal power by the ancient Etruscans, who bore its image upon their standards. In the year 87 B. C. a silver eagle, with expanded wings, poised on the top of a spear, with a thunder- bolt held in its claws, was adopted as the mili- tary standard to be borne at the head of their legions by the Romans. At the time of Ha- drian a golden eagle was substituted for the sil- ver one. A two-headed eagle was adopted by the Byzantine emperors as a symbol of their control of both the East and the West. The double-headed eagle of Russia was adapted on the marriage of Ivan I. with a Grecian princess of the Eastern empire ; that of Austria was first used when the Emperor of Germany took the title of the Roman Emperor. The national standard of Prussia bears a black eagle, that of Poland a white one. Napoleon I. took a golden eagle for his standard, modeled of pure gold, and bearing a thunderbolt, after the pat- tern of the eagle of the Romans. This stand- ard was disused under the Bourbons, but was restored by a decree of Louis Napoleon in 1852. The eagle was first used on American coins in 1788, on cents and half-cents issued from the Massachusetts mint. It was adopted in the plan of a national coinage as a design upon all gold coins, and on the silver dollar, half dollar, and quarter dollar. The design of an eagle was at one time suggested for the national flag, but was abandoned. Knighthood, originally a military dis- tinction, came, in the sixteenth century, to be occasionally conferred on civilians, as a re- ward for valuable services rendered to the crown or community. The first civil knight in England was Sir William Wai worth, Lord Mayor of London, who won that distinction by slaying the rebel, Wat Tyler, in the presence of the king. The ceremonies practiced in con- ferring knighthood have varied at different periods. In general, fasting and bathing were in early times necessary preparatives. In the eleventh century, the creation of a knight was preceded by solemn confession and a midnight vigil in the church and followed by the recep- tion of the Eucharist. The new knight offered his sword on the altar, to signify his devotion to the Church and determination to lead a holy life. The sword was redeemed in a sum of money, had a benediction pronounced over it, and was girded on by the highest ecclesias- tic present. The title was conferred by bind- ing the sword and spurs on the candidate, after which a blow was dealt him on the cheek or shoulder, as the last affront which he was to receive unrequited. He then took an oath to ttrotect the distressed, maintain right against mitj 1 *, and never by word or deed to stain his character as a knight or a Christian. Upon the infringement of any part of his oath a knight could be degraded, in which case his spurs were chopped off with a hatchet, his sword broken, his escutcheon reversed, and some religious observances were added during which each piece of armor was taken off in succession and cast from the recreant knight. Knighthood is now generally bestowed by a verbal declaration of the sovereign, accom- ; panied with a simple ceremony of imposition of the sword. Latin Union was formed in 1865 and orig- inally embraced France, Italy, Belgium, and Switzerland, but was joined by Greece in 1868, Spain in 1871, and subsequently Servia and Roumania. The object of this combination was to regulate the amount of silver to be coined yearly in each country, and to secure a uniform coinage which would be received with- out discount throughout the Union. The unit of coinage in the Latin Union is the franc, and although it is known in other countries under different names the value is always the same. The perfect decimal system of France is also used. The convenience of this coinage system has led to its adoption by about 148,000,000 people. In 1874 the States, by mutual con- sent, practically suspended the coinage of sil- ver. Blue Stockings. The term "blue stock- ing" originated in England about a century ago. Its invention is traced to the days of Doctor Johnson and was applied then as now to ladies who cultivated learned conversation, and found enjoyment in the discussion of ques- tions which had been monopolized by men. It is said by Dr. John Doran, who, in his work "A Lady of the Last Century, " gave an ac- count of Mrs. Montagu and the " blue stock- ings " of her time, that in 1757 it was quite | the thing for ladies to form evening assem- I blies, when they might participate in talk with literary and ingenious men. One of the best known and most popular members of one of these societies was said to have been a Mr. Stillingfleet, who always wore blue stockings, and when at any time he happened to be ab- sent from these gatherings it was usually re- marked that "we can do nothing without blue stockings"; and by degrees the term "blue stockings " was applied to all clubs of the kind described, and eventually to the ladies who at- tended their meetings. Mound Builders It is generally be- lieved that the Mississippi valley and the Atlantic coast were once populated by an agri- cultural and partially civilized race quite dif- ferent from the nomadic Indians, though possibly the progenitors of some of the Indian MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 605 tribes, and that, after centuries of occupation, they disappeared at least a thousand, and perhaps many thousand, years before the ad- vent of Europeans. The theory has been advanced that these people migrated from Asia ; that they passed over Asia to Siberia, across Behring Straits, down the Pacific coast of America from Alaska, and to the Mississippi valley, and down to Mexico, Central America, and Peru. The remains of the Mound Build- ers, as this vanished people are called, are scattered over most of the states of the central and lower Mississippi valley, along the banks of the Missouri, and on the sources of the Alle- gheny. They are most numerous in Ohio, Indiana, Illinois, Wisconsin, Missouri, Arkan- sas, Kentucky, Tennessee, Mississippi, Ala- bama, Georgia, Florida, Texas, and are found in the western part of New York, and in Mich- igan and Iowa. These mounds vary greatly in size, and in some instances are very extensive and exceedingly intricate, notably those of the Licking valley, near Newark, Ohio, which cover an area of two square miles ; in other localities there are some which reach a height of ninety feet. It is not believed that these people had any written language, as no in- scriptions or tablets yet discovered indicate this. Many of these mounds have been found to contain skeletons, numerous implements and ornaments, usually composed of stone, sometimes of copper in its native state and occasionally shell and bone ; also coarse and rude pottery of curious design. In sub- stantiation of the belief that these people came from Asia, is the fact that in Siberia mounds have been found similar to those in the Missis- sippi valley. Vegetable Origins. Spinach is a Per- sian plant. Horse-radish is a native of England. Melons were found originally in Asia. Filberts originally came from Greece. Quinces originally came from Corinth. The turnip originally came from Rome. The peach originally came from Persia. Sage is a native of the south of Europe. Sweet marjoram is a native of Portugal. The bean is said to be a native of Egypt. Damsons originally came from Damascus. The nasturtium came originally from Pem. The pea is a native of the south of Europe. Ginger is a native of the East and West Indies. The gooseberry is indigenous to Great Brit- ain. Coriander seed came originally from the East. Apricots are indigenous to the plains of America, The cucumber was originally a tropical vege- table. The walnut is a native of Persia, the Cau- casus, and China. Capers originally grew wild in Greece and northern Africa. Pears were originally brought from the East by the Romans. The clove is a native of the Malacca Islands, as is also the nutmeg. Cherries were known in Asia as far back as the seventeenth century. Garlic came to us first from Sicily and the shores of the Mediterranean. Asparagus was originally a wild seacoast plant, and is a native of Great Britain. The tomato is a native of South America, and it takes its name from a Portuguese word. Parsley is said to have come from Egypt, and mythology tells us it was used to adorn the head of Hercules. Apples were originally brought from the East by the Romans. The crab apple is in- digenous to Great Britain. The onion was almost an object of worship with the Egyptians 2,000 years before the Christian era. It first came from India. Cloves came to us from the Indies, and take their name from the Latin ciauvis, meaning a nail, to which they have a resemblance. The cantaloupe is a native of America, and so called from the name of a place near Rome, where it was first cultivated in Europe. Lemons were used by the Romans to keep moths from their garments, and in the time of Plinythey were considered an excellent poison. They are a native of Asia. Slavery in the North. The first state to abolish slavery within her borders was Ver- mont, which adopted a plan for gradual eman- cipation in 1777, before she had joined the Union, and in 1800 slavery in that state had entirely ceased. The new Massachusetts con- stitution, adopted in 1780, contained a clause declaring that "all men are born free and equal, and have certain natural, essential, and inalienable rights, among which may be reck- oned the right of enjoying and defending their lives and liberties," which had the effect of freeing all the slaves, a very small number, then held within the borders of that state. In 1780 there were 4,000 slaves in Pennsylva- nia, and in that year their gradual emancipa- tion was provided for by legislative enactment. Sixty-four of these were still living in bond- age, however, in 1840. Rhode Island and Connecticut followed the example of Pennsyl- vania, and the former had but five slaves left in 1840, and the latter seventeen. New York passed a gradual emancipation act in 1799, at 606 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. which time she had upward of 20,000 slaves, and slavery was totally abolished in the state from July 4, 1827. In 1850 there were still 236 persons living in bondage in New Jersey, although the state had adopted the gradual emancipation plan in 1804. The census of 1810 showed that there were no slaves held in Massachusetts, Xew Hampshire, or Vermont, New Hampshire having emancipated the few i slaves held in the state between 1800 and 1810. In Pennslyvania, New York, and New Jersey, large numbers of slaves who could not be held in those states were nefariously sold to Southern slave-dealers by unprincipled owners, notwithstanding the fact that each state had adopted, at the time of emancipation, the most stringent laws regarding the exportation of slaves. By the census of 1860 it was shown that slavery was entirely abolished north of ! Mason and Dixon's line. Mardi-Gras. The Mardi-Gras is the fes- tival preceding the first day of Lent, or Ash Wednesday. Most of the distinctive ceremo- nies now annually performed in New Orleans were originally introduced by the French pop- ulation as early as 1827. The day is a legal holiday, and the entire city is for the time ostensibly placed under the control of a king of the carnival, the great " Rex." There are two principal pageants. The first, in the day- time, is the escort of the " beloved Rex," through his favorite city ; the other, or night pageant, is known as the " My stick Krewe of Comus." This has a character altogether unique. The first display was in 1857. On Twelfth night (January 6), the "Knights of Momus " have a display analogous to the Mardi-Gras, but more exclusively burlesque, and in which they satirize the follies of the age. The arrangements for these celebrations j come within the control of quite an elaborate organization. The Mardi-Gras is held on Shrove Tuesday, a day of pleasure in most Roman Catholic countries. It is the carnival of the Italians, the Mardi-Gras of the French, and the Pancake Tuesday of former times in England. Suicides. In European cities the number of suicides per 100,000 inhabitants is as fol- lows : Paris, 42 ; Lyons, 29 ; St. Petersburg, 7 ; Moscow, 11 ; Berlin, 36 ; Vienna, 28 ; Lon- don, 23; Rome, 8: Milan, 6; Madrid, 3; Genoa, 31; Brussels, 15; Amsterdam, 14; Lisbon, 2 ; Christiania, 25; Stockholm, 27 : Constantinople, 12 ; Geneva, 11 ; Dresden, 51. Madrid and Lisbon show the lowest, Dresden the highest, figure. The average annual suicide rate in countries of the world per 100,000 persons living is given by Barker as follows: Saxony, 31.1 ; Denmark, 25.8; Schleswig-Holstern, 24.0; Austria, 21.2; Switzerland, 20.2; France, 15.7; German Empire, 14.3; Hanover, 14.0; Queensland, 13.5 ; Prussia, 13.3 ; Victoria, 11.5; New South Wales, 9.3; Bavaria, 9.1 ; New Zealand, 9.0 ; South Australia, 8.9 ; Swe- den, 8.1; Norway, 7.5; Belgium, 6.9 ; Eng- land and Wales, 6.9; Tasmania, 5.3; Hun- gary, 5.2 ; Scotland, 4.0 ; Italy, 3.7 ; Nether- lands, 3.6 ; United States, 3.5 ; Russia, 2.9 ; Ireland, 1.7; Spain, 1.4. The causes of suicide in European countries are reported as follows : Of 100 suicides : Mad- ness, delirium, 18 per cent.; alcoholism, 11; vice, crime, 19; different diseases, 2; moral sufferings, 6 ; family matters, 4 ; poverty, want, 4 ; loss of intellect, 14; consequence of crimes, 3; unknown reasons, 19. The number of suicides in the United States, six years, 1882-87, was 8,226. Insanity was the principal cause, shooting the favorite method ; 5,386 acts of suicide were committed in the day, and 2,419 in the night. Summer was the favorite season, June the favorite month, and the llth the favorite day of the month. The month in which the largest num- bor of suicides occur is July. The number of suicides in twenty American cities in 1897 was as follows : New York, 436 ; Chicago, 384 ; Brooklyn, 194 ; St. Louis, 162 ; Philadelphia, 146 ; Boston, 92 ; Cincinnati, 09; Baltimore, 60 ; Providence, 16 ; Cleveland, ">1: Washington, 52; Milwaukee, 62; Min- neapolis, 34 ; New Orleans, 40 ; Buffalo, 23 ; Pittsburg, 33; Jersey City, 24. Total, with ten smaller cities, 2,014. The same cities in 1896, 1,999; increase 15, or .75 of one per cent. These figures are by Frederick L. Hoff- man, in the New York Spectator for July 1, 1898. Facts About the Earth. According to Clark, the equatorial semi-diameter is 20,- 926,202 feet^=3,963.296. miles, and the polar semi-diameter is 20,854,895 feet=3,950.738 miles. One degree of latitude at the pole= 69.407 miles. One degree of latitude at the equator=68.704 miles. POPULATION OF THE EARTH BY CONTINENTS. INHABITANTS. Area in VISIONS. Square Miles. Number. Per Sq. Mile. ' Africa 11,514,000 127,000,000 11.0 America, North .. 6,446.000 89.250.000 13.8 America, South 6,837.000 36.420,000 5.3 Asia 14.710.000 850,000,000 57.7 Australasia 3.288, 4.730,000 1.4 Euro|e 3,565,000 380,200.000 106.9 Polar Region 4,888,800 300,000 0.7 Total 51,238,8001,487,900,000 29.9 MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES, 607 The above estimate was made by Ernest Seorge Ravenstein, F.R.G.S., the geographer and statistician, and is for 1890. An estimate of population of the earth, made by Drs. Wagner and Supan, editors of Bevolkerung der Erde (Perthes, Gotha, 1891), is as follows: Europe, 357,379,000; Asia, 825,954,000; Africa, 163,953,000; America, 121,713,000; Australia, 3,230,000; Oceanic Islands, 7,420,000 ; polar regions, 80,400. Total, 1,479,729,400. The estimate of area of the continents and islands by the same authorities is 52,821,684. Ravenstein's estimate of the earth's fertile region, in square miles, is 28,269,200 ; steppe, 13,901,000; desert, 4,180,000; polar regions, 4,888,800. The population of the earth at the death of the Emperor Augustus, estimated by Bodio, was 54,000,000. The population of Europe hardly exceeded 50,000,000 before the fifteenth century. The area and cubic contents of the earth, according to the data of Clark, given above, are: Surface, 196,971,984 square miles; cubic contents, 259,944,035,515 cubic miles. Murray (Challenger expedition) states the greatest depth of the Atlantic Ocean at 27,- 366 feet ; Pacific Ocean, 30,000 feet ; Indian Ocean, 18,582 feet; Southern Ocean, 25,200 feet ; Arctic Ocean, 9,000 feet. The Atlantic Ocean has an area, in square miles, of 24,- 536,000 ; Pacific Ocean, 50,309,000 ; Indian Ocean, 17,084,000; Arctic Ocean, 4,781,000; Southern Ocean, 30,592,000. The highest mountain is believed to be Deodhunga, one of the Himalayas, 29,002 feet. Lord Kelvin estimates the age of the solid earth to be be- tween 20,000,000 and 30,000,000 years, and of the human race the same. POPULATION OF THE EARTH ACCORDING TO RACE. (Estimated by John Bartholomew, F. R. G. S., Edin- burgh). RACE. Indo - Germanic or Aryan Mongolian or Tu- ranian Semitic or Hamitic. Negro and Bantu . . . Hottentot and Bush Malay and Polyne- sian American Indian Total LOCATION. Europe, Persia, etc. Greater Part of Asia North Africa, Arabia Central Africa South Africa Australasia and Polynesia North and South America NUMBER. 546,500,000 630,000,000 65,000,000 150,000,000 150,000 35,000,000 15,000,000 1,440,655,000 The human family is subject to forty-five principal governments. As to their form, they be classified as follows : Absolute mon- archies, China, Korea, Morocco, Persia, Russia, Siam, Turkey ; limited monarchies, Austria- Hungary, Belgium, British Empire, Denmark, Germany, Greece, Italy, Japan, Netherlands, Portugal, Roumania, Servia, Sweden and Norway, Spain ; republics, Argentine Repub- lic, Bolivia, Brazil, Chile, Colombia, Costa Rica, Ecuador, France, Guatemala, Hayti, Honduras, Mexico, Nicaragua, Orange Free State, Paraguay, Peru, Salvador, San Do- mingo, Switzerland, Transvaal, United States of America, Uruguay, Venezuela. Besides these, are the undefined despotisms of Central and South Africa, and a few insignificant in- dependent States. The average duration of human life is about 33 years. One quarter of the people on the earth die before age 6, one half before age 16, and only about 1 person of each 100 born, lives to age 65. The deaths are calculated at 67 per minute, 97,790 per day, and 35,639,835 per year ; the births, at 70 per minute, 100,800 per day, and 36,792,000 per year. Statistics of the Press. Rowell's American Newspaper Directory for 1901 re- ports the number of newspapers published in the United States aud Canada as 21,827. Of these, 938 were Canadian publications. The following was the frequency of issue : Weekly, 15,475; monthly, 2,902; daily, 2,271 ; semi-monthly, 285 ; semi-weekly, 511; quarterly, 176; bi-weekly, 71; bi- monthly, 69; tri-weekly, 55; total, 21,827. The following table exhibits the number of papers printed in the several states and Can- ada in 1901 : Alabama 239 Alaska 8 Arizona 50 Arkansas 270 California 681 Canada 938 Colorado 3-29 Connecticut 190 Delaware 41 District of Columbia. 84 Florida 159 Georgia 359 Hawaii 23 Idaho 72 Illinois l,7-'6 Indian Territory 94 Indiana 62 Iowa 1.082 Kansas 707 Kentucky 320 Louisiana 193 Maine 156 Maryland! 208 Massachusetts 619 Michigan 811 Minnesota 083 Montana 96 Nebraska 608 Nevada 30 New Hampshire 98 New Jersey 374 New Mexico 53 New York 1,936 North Carolina 253 North Dakota 158 Ohio 1,218 Oklahoma 152 Oregon 193 Pennsylvania 1,393 Philippine Islands 4 Porto Rico 8 Rhode Island 68 South Carolina 131 South Dakota 273 Tennessee 288 Texas 815 Utah 73 Vermont 77 Virginia 244 Washington 226 West Virginia 191 Wisconsin 667 Wyoming 39 Total 21.8J7 Mississippi 4 Missouri 1,045 The total number of newspapers published in the world at present is estimated at about f,0, 000. distributed as follows : United States and Canada, 21,827 ; Germany, 7,000 ; Great Britain, 9,f>00 ; France, 4,500; Japan, 2,000. 608 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Italy 1,500; Austria- Hungary, 1,200 ; Asia, exclusive of Japan, 1,000 ; Spain 850 ; Russia, 800; Australia, 800; Greece, 600; Switzer- land, 450 ; Holland, 300 ; Belgium, 300 ; all others, 1,000. Of these more than half are printed in the English language. The Sacred Number. Seven was fre- quently used as a mystical aiid symbolical number in the Bible, as well as among the principal nations of antiquity, the Persians, Indians, Egyptians, Greeks, and Romans. The origin is doubtless astronomical, or rather astrological, viz., the observation of the seven planets and the phases of the moon, changing every seventh day. As instances of this num- ber in the Old Testament, we find the Creation completed within seven days, -whereof the seventh was a day of rest kept sacred. Every seventh year was sabbatical, and the seven times seventh year ushered in the jubilee year. The three Regalim, or Pilgrim festivals (Pass- over, Festival of Weeks, and Tabernacles), lasted seven days, and between the first and second of these feasts were counted seven weeks. The first day of the seventh month was a "Holy Convocation." The Levitical purifications lasted seven days, and the same space of time was allotted to the celebration of weddings and the mourning for the dead. In innumerable instances in the Old Testament and later Jewish writings the number is used as a kind of round number. In the Apocalypse we have the churches, candlesticks, seals, stars, trumpets, spirits, all to the number of seven, and the seven horns and seven eyes of the Lamb. The same number appears again, either divided into half (3 years, Rev. xiii. 5 ; xi. 3 ; xii. 6, etc.), or multiplied by ten seventy Israelites go to Egypt, the exile lasts seventy years, there are seventy elders, and at a later period there are supposed to be seventy languages and seventy nations upon earth. To go back to the earlier documents, we find in a similar way the dove sent out the second time seven days after her first mission, Pha- raoh's dream shows him twice seven kine, twice seven ears of corn, etc. The Seven Churches of Rev. i.-iii. are Ephesus, Smyrna, Pergamos, Thyatira, Sardis, Philadelphia,and Laodicea. The Seven Deadly Sins are pride, covetousness, lust, anger, glut- tony, envy, and sloth. The Seven Principal Virtues are faith, hope, charity, prudence, temperance, chastity, and fortitude The Seven Gifta of the Holy Ghost are wisdom, understanding, counsel, ghostly strength or fortitude, knowledge, godliness, and the fear of the Lord. Among the Greeks the seven was sacred to Apollo and to Dionysus, who, according to Orphic legends, was torn into seven pieces ; and it was particularly sacred in Euboea, where the number was found to pervade, as it were, almost every sacred, private, or domestic rela- tion. On the many ancient speculations which connected the number seven with the human body and the phases of its gradual develop- ment and formation, its critical periods of sicknesses, partly still extant as supersti- tious notions we cannot here dwell. The Pythagoreans made much of this number, giving it the name of Athene, Hermes, Hephaistos, Heracles, the Virgin unbegotten and unbegetting (i. e., not to be obtained by multiplication), Dionysus, Rex, etc. Many usages show the importance attached to this number in the eyes not only of ancient but even of our own times, and it is hardly neces- sary to add that the same recurrence is found in the folklore of every race. Hippocrates (B. C. 460-357) divided the life of man into seven ages, a division adopted by Shakespeare. The Egyptian priests enjoined rest on the seventh day, because it was held to be a dies infaustus. In Egyptian astronomy there were seven planets, and hence seven days in the week, each day ruled by its own special planet. The people of Peru had also a seven-day week. The Persians and Mexicans have a tradition of a flood from which seven persons saved themselves in a cave, and by whom the world was subsequently repeopled. The seven Champions of Christendom are St. George for England, St. Andrew for Scot- land, St. Patrick for Ireland, St. David for Wales, St. Denis for France, St. James for Spain, St. Anthony for Italy. Maelstrom, The, which means, literally, "grinding stream," is situated on the Nor- wegian coast, southwest of the Loffoden Isles, and is the most remarkable whirlpool in the world. It runs between the island of Mos- kenes and a large solitary rock in the middle of the straits. The strong currents, rushing be- tween the Great West Fjord and the outer ocean, through the channels of the Loffoden Isles, produce a number of whirlpools, of which the maelstrom is by far the most dan- gerous. During severe storms from the west, for instance, the current runs continually to the east at the rate of six knots an hour, with- out changing its direction for rising or falling tide, and the stream will boil and eddy in such mighty whirls that the largest steamer could hardly contend successfully with the waters. The depth of the whirlpool is only 20 fathoms, but just outside the straits sound- ings reach from 100 to 200 fathoms. The great danger to vessels is of course not of MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 609 suction into the heart of the whirlpool, as leg- ends have supposed, but of being dashed to pieces against the rocks. Lucky Horseshoe Most of the houses in the West End of London were protected against witches and evil spirits in the seven- teenth century, says- John Aubrey, the English antiquary, by having horseshoes fastened to them in various ways. It was the belief that then no witch or evil genius could cross the threshold which was protected by the shoe. The custom of nailing horseshoes, for luck, to all kinds of sailing craft is still, to a certain extent, in vogue, and we all know how fortunate it is considered for anyone to find a horse- shoe, the good luck being increased by the num- ber of nails that are attached to the shoe when it is picked up. This superstition can be traced back to about the middle of the seventeenth century, and then we find it lost in the ob- scurity of the ages. Godiva, Lady, the wife of Leofric, Earl of Mercia and Lord of Coventry. About 1040 the earl imposed certain onerous services and heavy exactions upon the inhabitants of Cov- entry, who, in consequence, loudly complained. Lady Godiva, having the welfare of the town at heart, eagerly besought her husband to give them relief ; and he, in order to escape from her importunities, said he would grant the favor, but only on condition that she would ride naked through the town. Greatly to her husband's surprise she agreed to the conditions ; and on a certain day, after having ordered all the inhabitants to remain within doors and be- hind closed blinds, she rode through the town clothed only by her long hair. This circum- stance was commemorated by a stained glass window, mentioned in 1690, in St. Michael's Church, Coventry ; and the legend that an un- fortunate tailor, the only man who looked out of a window, was struck blind, has also found commemoration in an ancient effigy of " Peep- ing Tom of Coventry," still to be seen in a niche of one of the buildings. For many years occasional representations were given of the ride of Lady Godiva, the character being taken by some beautiful woman, clothed, however, in considerable more than her hair, and attended by other historical and emblematic personages. The ceremony has now fallen into disrepute. Molly Mag'uires. The first organiza- tion of this name was formed in Ireland, with the object, it is believed, of generally misusing process-servers and others engaged in the prose- cution and eviction of tenants, and was com- posed of young men who, in some localities,' assumed women's clothing, blackened their faces, and otherwise disguised themselves. It remained, however, for the American "Mol- lies" to terrorize whole counties, and leave a blood-red trail behind them in the coal regions of Pennsylvania. To give even a record of the murders and outrages they committed would require an entire volume ; but they were num- bered by hundreds, and the unfortunate vic- tims were, in most cases, well known and re- spected men. The American organization was composed of the restless and reckless element drawn to the coal regions through the opening of the coal fields. There is no recorded in- stance where the disguise of women's clothes was assumed in the United States. Through the efforts of James McParlan, a detective, the secrets of the order were finally revealed, and many of its members were brought to justice. Natural Storm Signals. A continuous south wind in most localities will in a few days cause rain, because being warm, dense, and charged with moisture, it is rarefied and cooled by the atmosphere of more northern or elevated sections, and thus its capability of sus- taining moisture is lessened. On the other hand, a continuous north wind dispels all rain signs for the time being. Flaky clouds, or low-running ones, from any direction but the north, denote rain or snow. Salmon, leaden, or silvery colored clouds denote falling weather ; bright red, clear. When the sunset is followed by bright lances or streaks of light of various hues radiating from the point where the sun disappeared, continuing across the heavens and converging to a common point in the opposite horizon, there exists a storm-cloud in line with the sun, though it may be so distant as to be for a while entirely hidden from view by the rotundity of the earth. If the rays of light are evenly divided north and south of the line between the observer and the radiat- ing point, and continue so until they have faded out, the cloud is approaching. When " heat-lightning " is visible there is a storm- cloud in the same direction, though it may not be seen nor thunder be heard. When the lightning is continuous and very brilliant the storm is a violent one, though the track of the destructive elements may be from 100 to 200 miles away. Great Bells. In the manufacture of great bells Russia has always taken the lead. The " Giant," which was cast in Moscow in the sixteenth century, weighed 288,000 pounds, and it required twenty-four men to ring it. It was broken by falling from its support, but was recast in 1054. On June 10, 1706, it again fell, and in 1732 the fragments were used, with new materials, in easling the " King of Bells," still to be seen in Moscow. This bell is nineteen feet, three inches high, meas- ures around the margin sixty feet, nine inches, 610 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. weighs about 443,732 pounds, and its esti- mated value in metal alone is at least $300,000. St. Ivan's bell, also in Moscow, is forty feet, nine inches in circumference, sixteen and one half inches thick, and weighs 127,830 pounds. The bells of China rank next to those of Rus- sia in size. In Pekin there are seven bells, each of which is said to weigh 120,000 pounds. The weight of the leading great bells of the world are as follows : ' ' Great Bell of Mos- cow," 443,732 pounds; St. Ivan's, Moscow, | 127,830 pounds; Pekin, 120,000 pounds; Vienna, 40,200 pounds ; Olmutz, Bohemia, I 40, 000 pounds ; Rouen, France, 40, 000 pounds ; St. Paul's, London, 38,470 pounds; "Big Ben," Westminster, 30, 350 pounds ; Montreal, 28,560 pounds; St. Peter's, Rome, 18,600 pounds. Population of Great Britain and Ireland. CENSUS OF 1901. ENGLAND. COUNTIES. Popula- tion. COUNTIES. Popula- tion. COUNTIES. Popula- tion. COUNTIES. Popula- tion. Bedford 171,249 254,931 195,534 190,687; 814,555 322,957 266,921 620,196 660,444 202,962 1,187,324 Essex 1,085,576 634,666 798,756 114,401: 250,530, 57,773 1,351,849 4,406,787 433,991 498,781 3,585,139 M<>nuiouth 292,327 460,040 338,064 602,859 514,537 182,768 19,708 239,321 508,104 1,234,382 384,198 Surrey 2,008,923 605,052 897,678 64,305 273,845 488,401 3,585,122 Berks Gloucester Norfolk Sussex Bucks Hampshire Northampton . . . Northumberland Nottingham Oxford Warwick Cambridge Hereford Westmoreland . . Wiltshire Chester .... r^. . Hertford Cornwall Cumberland Derby Huntingdon Kent Worcester . . . Rutland York Total Devon Leicester Somerset 30,805,466 Stafford Durham Middlesex Suffolk SCOTLAND. 303,889 73,166 254,133 61,439 30,785 18,659 33,619 31.991 113.660 72,562, Edinburgh 437,553 44,757 218,350 283,729 38,653 89,901 40,891 6,980 39,359 I,a37,848 64,787 ' 9,291 i 27,723 15,066 123,255 268,418, 76,149 48,793 Selkirk 23,339 27,755 141.894 21,389 32,591 9,583 Arervll . Elgin Shetland Ayr Fife . .. Orkney Stirling Banff Forf ar Peebles Sutherland Berwick Haddington Perth Wigtown Bute Shipping popu- lation Caithness Ross and Cro- Clackmannan Dumbarton Total Kirkcudbright.. Lanark 4,471,957 Dumfries WALES. Anglesey 50,590 59,906 60,237 135,325 Carnarvon 126,385 129,935 81,727 860,022 Merioneth 49,130 54,892 88,749 Radnor 23,263 Montgomery Pembroke Total Cardigan Flint 1,720,609 Carmarthen Glamorgan IRELAND. LEINSTKR. Carlow 37,723 447,266 63,469 78,821 60,129 46.581 65,741 67,463 57,226 Westmeath. Wexf ord 61, 527 i 103,860 60,679 112,129 404,813 165,331 146,018 159,754 87,030 ULSTER. Antrim 1 461,240 125,238 97,368 173,625 289,836 65,243 144,329 74,506 150.468 CONNAUGHT. Galway 192,146 69,201 202,627 101,639 84,022 Dublin Wicklow Kildare MUNSTEK. Clare Kilkenny Donegal Roscommon Slitro King's." Cork Down. Longford Fermanagh Londonderry Total Lou tli Limerick 4,456,546 Meatb Queen's Waterford Tyrone United States Army Recruiting Re- quirements. Applicants for enlistment in the regular army must be between the ages of twenty-one and thirty years, unmarried, of good' character and habits, able-bodied, free from disease, and must be able to speak, read, and write the English language. Age for en- listment of citizen soldiery, eighteen to forty- five years, married or unmarried. Minors are not enlisted, except boys between the ages of sixteen and eighteen who may be needed as musicians and who have the written consent of father, only surviving parent, or legally appointed guardian. Original enlistments are confined to persons who are citizens of the United States, or who have made legal declaration of their intention to become citizens thereof. For infantry and artillery the height must be not less than five feet four inches, and weight not less than 120 pounds and not more than 190 pounds. For cavaNy the height must be not less than five feet four inches and not more than five , feet ten inches, and weight not to exceed 165 pounds. All soldiers receive from the Government (in , addition to their pay) rations, clothing, bedding, | medicines, and medical attendance. The follow- ing is the rate of pay as now established : MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 611 _-_. _ GRADE. ivates Cavalry, artillery, and infantry Pay per Month. Pav per Year. $166 156 168 180 180 216 300 264 9B4 Pay par 3 Years. $468 468 504 540 540 648 900 792 ~.w> I< ield Musicians Cavalry, artillery, and infantry 13 Wagoners Cavalry , artillery , and infantry 14 Artificers Artillery and inlantry, saddlers and farriers, cavalry 15 Corporals Cavalrv, artillerv, and infantry.. 15 Sergeants Cavalrv, artillery, and infantry jg First Sergeant of a company Cavalry, artillery, and infantry .... 25 Chief Trumpeter of cavalry 2 Principal Musician Artillerv and mfantry . . . 22 ARMY PAY TABLE. GRADE. PAY OF OFFICERS IN ACTIVE SERVICE. PAY OF RETIRED OFFICERS. Yearly Pay. Yearly Pay. 10. aj +3 U ill **& After 5 Years' Service. After 10 Years' Service. After 15 Years' Service. After 20 Years' Service. First 5 Years' Service. Alters Years' Service. After 10 Years' Service. After 15 Years' Service. After 'JO Years' Service. Major-General $7,500 10 p. C. 20 p. c. 30 p. c. 40 p. c. Iff^an Colonel Lieutenant-Colonel 3,500 3,000 2,500 2,000 1.800 1,600 1,500 1,500 1,400 $3,850 3,300 2,750 2,200 1,980 1,760 1,650 1,650 1,540 $4,200 3,600 3,000 2,400 2,160 1,920 1,800 1,800 1,680 "84,500 3,900 3,250 2,600 2,340 2,080 1,950 1,950 1,820 *$4,500 *4,000 3,500 2,800 2,520 2,240 2,100 2,100 1,960 2,625 2,250 1,875 1,500 1,350 1,200 1,125 1,125 1,050 $2,887 2,475 2,062 1,650 1,485 1,320 1,237 1,237 1,115 $3,150 2,700 2,250 1,800 1,620 1,440 1,350 1,350 1,260 $3,375 2,925 2,437 1,950 1,755 1,560 1,462 1,462 1,365 $3,375 3,000 2,625 2,100 1,890 1,680 1,575 1,675 1,470 Major Captain, mounted Captain , not mounted 1st Lieutenant, mounted 1st Lieutenant, not mounted 2d Lieutenant, mounted 2d Lieutenant, not mounted * The maximum pay of Colonels is limited to $4,500, and of Lieutenant-Colonels to $4,000. The pay of non-commissioned officers is from $18 to ,?31 per month, and of privates $13 per month. United States National and Inter- national Salutes, with Cannon. Salute to the Union. This is one gun for each state, and is commemorative of the Declaration of In- dependence. It is fired at noon of the Fourth of July, at every military post, and on board commissioned naval vessels belonging to the United States. The National Salute, 21 guns. This is the salute for the national flag, the President of the United States, presidents of foreign repub- lics, or sovereigns of foreign states, visiting the United States. Vice-President of the United States, Amer- ican and foreign ambassadors, J 9 guns. The President of the Senate, Speaker of the House of Representatives, Members of the Cabinet, the Chief Justice, a Congressional Committee, Governors within their respective states or territories, Viceroy or Governor Gen- eral of provinces belonging to foreign states, General of the Army, Admiral of the Navy, and same ranks in foreign armies and navies, 17 guns. American or foreign Envoys, or Ministers Plenipotentiary, Assistant Secretaries of the Navy or War, Lieutenant General, or a Major General commanding the army, and correspond- ing ranks in the navy, and foreign armies and navies, 15 guns. Ministers-Resident accredited to the United States, Major General, Rear Admiral, and cor- responding ranks of foreign armies and navies, 13 guns. Charges d'Affaires, Brigadier General, Com- modore, and corresponding ranks in foreign armies and navies, 11 guns. Consul Generals accredited to the United ! States, 9 guns. Salutes are only fired between sunrise and ' sunset, and not on Sundays, except in interna- tional courtesies. The national colors are al- ! ways displayed at the time of saluting. The salute of the flag is the only salute which is returned, and this must be done within twenty- four hours. United States vessels do not return salute to the flag in United States waters if there is any fort or battery there to do it, nor do United States vessels salute United States forts or posts. If there are several batteries or forts within sight or six miles of each other, one of them is designated as the saluting fort, and returns all salutes of foreign men-of-war. In New York, Castle William, on Governor's Island, is the saluting fort. Washington Monument. Notwith- standing the fact that the plan of a monument to General Washington was approved by Con- gress in the latter part of December, 1799, nothing was done in the matter until 1833, when an association of prominent persons un- dertook the raising of the needed funds by sub- scription, and on July 4, 1848, had so far sue- 612 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. " match-maker," who thereupon runs through a list of her visiting acquaintances, and selects one whom she considers a fitting bride for the young man ; and then she calls upon the young woman's parents, armed with the bride- groom's card, on which are inscribed his an- cestral name and the eight symbols which de- note the day of his birth. If the answer is an acceptance of the suit, the bride's card is sent in return ; and should the oracles prophesy good concerning the union, the particulars of the engagement are written on two large cards, tied together with the red cords. Average Annual Temperature in United States. Place of Observation. Average Temperature. Tucson, Arizona, 69 Jacksonville, Florida, 69 New Orleans, La., in their undertaking that the corner stone of a monument was laid, and during the succeeding eight years the shaft was carried to a height of 156 feet. The work was then sus- pended, at first for lack of funds, then because of the Civil War, and finally because the foundations were believed to be insecure. In 1876 Congress undertook the completion of the monument. The base was first strengthened, and the work of rebuilding the shaft was re- sumed in August, 1880, and was finished Au- gust 9, 1884. The shaft is 555 feet high, and the entire height of the monument, including the foundations, is 592 feet. The base is 55 feet 1 inch square. At 500 feet above the ground the monument has four sides, each of which is 35 feet wide. Its area at this point is that of a comfortable six-room house, each room of which might be 12x16 feet. This square forms the base of the pyramidal top which runs from it 55 feet until it terminates in a metallic point. This point is constructed of the largest piece of aluminium ever made. The stones of which the monument is con- structed are great blocks of crystal marble from Maryland, and in some cases are 9 feet long, 2 feet thick, and 3 or more feet wide. There are more than 18,000 of them. The foundation is built of Potomac gneiss, and is 81 feet square at the base. One hundred and eighty-one ' ' memorial stones " have from first to last been contributed for use in the monu- ment ; but many were considered unworthy of a place, and one sent by Pope Pius IX., in 1855, was stolen during the Know-Xothing agitation, and was broken into pieces and thrown into j January, the jacinth or hyacinth, symbolizing the Potomac river. The monument was ded- constancy and fidelity, icated with imposing ceremonies on February ! February, the amethyst, symbolizing peace Austin, Texas, r Mobile, Alabama, 66 Jackson, Mississippi, 64 Little Rock, Arkansas, a Columbia, S. Carolina, 62 Ft. Gibson, Indian Ter., c,o Raleigh, N. Carolina, n Atlanta, Georgia, Nashville, Tennessee, M Richmond, Virginia, m Louisville, Kentucky, M San Francisco, Cal., n Washington, D. C., 55 St. Louis, Missouri, 55 Baltimore, Maryland, 54 Harrisburg, Pa., 54 Wilmington, Delaware, n Trenton, New Jersey, 68 Columbus, Ohio, n Portland, Oregon, N Ft. Boise, Idaho, 02 Place of Average Observation. Temperature. Salt Lake City, Utah, 52 Romney, West Virginia, 52 Indianapolis, Indiana, 51 Leavenworth, Kansas, 51 Santa Fe, New Mex.Ter., 51 Steilacoom, Wash., 51 Hartford, Connecticut, 50 Springfield, Illinois, 50 Camp 'Scott, Nevada, 50 Des Moines, Iowa, 49 Omaha, Nebraska, 49 Denver, Colorado, 48 Boston, Massachusetts, 48 Albany, New York, 48 Providence, R. I., 48 Detroit, Michigan, 47 Ft. Randall, Dakota, 47 Sitka, Alaska, 46 Concord, N. H., 46 Augusta, Maine, 45 Madison, Wisconsin, 45 Helena, Montana, 43 Montpelier, Vermont, 43 St. Paul, Minnesota, 42 the Months. 22, 1885. Its cost was about $1,500,000, which was raised partially by an appropriation by Congress and partially by private subscrip- tion. It is 30 feet higher than any other work of man except the lofty iron Eiffel Tower erected in Paris for the great Exposition of 1889. Origin of Visiting Cards. As is the case in many other instances, we owe the in- vention of visiting cards to the Chinese. So long ago as the period of the Tong dynasty of mind and sobriety. March, the bloodstone or jasper, symboliz- ing courage and success in dangerous enter- prise. April, the sapphire and diamond, symbol- izing repentance and innocence. May, the emerald, symbolizing success in love. June, the agate, symbolizing long life and health. July, the carnelian, symbolizing cure of (618-907), visiting cards were in common use \ evils resulting from forgetful ness. in China, and that is also the date of the in- ! August, the sardonyx or onyx, symbolizing troduction of the " red silken cords " which ' conjugal felicity. figure so conspicuously on the engagement cards ' September, the chrysolite, symbolizing pres- of that country. From very ancient times to ervation from folly, or its cure, the present day the Chinese have observed the ! October, the aquamarine, opal, or beryl, strictest ceremony with regard to the paying symbolizing hope. of visits. The cards which they use for this November, the topaz, symbolizing fidelity purpose are very large, and usually of a bright and friendship. red color. When a Chinaman desires to marry, ! December, the turquoise or ruby, symboliz- his parents intimate that fact to a professional j ing brilliant success. MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 613 Some doubt exists between May and June, July and August. Thus some give the agate to May and the emerald to June ; the carnelian to August, and the onyx to July. Flying Dutchman, The, is the name given by sailors to a phantom ship, supposed to cruise in storms off the Cape of Good Hope. According to tradition, a Dutch captain, bound home f om the Indies, met with long-continued head winds and heavy weather off this cape, and refused to put back, as he was advised to do, swearing a very profane oath that he would beat round the cape if he had to beat there till the Day of Judgment. He was taken at his word, and doomed to beat against winds all his days. His sails are believed to have be- come threadbare, and his ship's sides white with age, and himself and crew reduced almost to shadows. He cannot heave to nor lower a boat, but sometimes hails vessels through his trumpet, and requests them to take letters home for him. The superstition had its origin, probably, in the looming or apparent suspen- sion in air of some ships out of sight a phenomenon sometimes witnessed at sea, and caused by unequal refraction in the lower strata of the atmosphere. Age of Animals. The exact age at- tained by animals other than those domesti- cated it is, of course, impossible to ascertain. It is believed, however, among East Indiana, that the elephant lives about 800 years, and instances are on record of the animals having been kept in captivity as long as 130 years, their ages being unknown v/hen they were first taken from the forest. Camels live from 40 to 50 years ; horses average from 20 to 30, oxen about 20, sheep 8 or 9, and dogs from 12 to 14 years. The age of a whale is ascertained by the size and number of the laminae of cer- tain organs in the mouth, formed of a horny substance commonly called whalebone. These laminae increase yearly, and, if the mode of computation be correct, it is known that whales have attained to the age of 400 years. Some species of birds attain a great age. The swan has been known to live 100 years, and it is re- corded that the raven has exceeded that age. Parrots have been known to live 80 years. Pheasants and domestic poultry rarely exceed 12 or 15 years. Among fishes and animals that live in the water great age is often at- tained. The carp has been known to live 200 years. Common river trout have been con- fined in a well 30 and even 50* years, and a pike was caught in 1497 in a lake near Heil- bronn, in Swabia, with a brass ring attached to it recording that it was placed in the lake in the year 1230. Xavies. CLASS OF VESSELS. Great Britain. France. j >, --_ a >> 1 M Russia. Austria- Hungary. a 1 P. co $ Q s Nether- laii'ls. fr | & Sweden. Norway. t L "2 3 Battle Ships, First Class 56 25 10 14 26 27 71 72 56 49 28 218 9 32 128 108 49 118 4,968 108,913 1,112 9,842 20 26 4 23 21 24 17 24 15 47 43 74 9 22 90 55 56 186 1,965 42,316 758 4,298 14 26 " 8 6 9 20 21 9 9 11 67 10 16 64 22 86 60 1,194 23,914 354 1,746 13 2 " 5 8 3 18 19 16 6 9 69 13 12 81 14 24 152 836 21,645 lf>0 2,180 22 19 "l7 12 16 19 9 11 16 18 82 . 9 34 60 37 98 98 2,412 38,140 660 I.:::',' 2 "ll 4 5 " 5 15 16 24 3 "l9 32 46 641 12,65!> 260 1,087 1 2 1 9 17 28 1 6 4 11 23 8 8 13 6 712 8,250 184 354 " 2 7 " 6 20 1 1 5 o 26 " 1 5 Battle Ships, Second Class Battle Ships, Third Class Coast-Defense Ships Armored Cruisers Cruisers, First Class " 6 10 "ll 16 8 \ " 22 220 1,652 -- 412 "l2 39 37 > 21 6 16 "l7 27 47 36 730 9,712 370 1,186 " 4 4 5 7 16 3 " 7 7 16 46 650 22,000 1C8 975 1 4 8 10 & 4 10 9 34 38 192 4,426 122 396 " 6 o 14 "13 3 9 " 24 148 9 2,640 :> 294 1 8 1 47 1 16 9 3 "2 30 12 is: 2,100 86 348 Cruisers, Second Class Cruisers Third Class Gunboats, Sea-Going Gunboats, River Transports and Dispatch Vessels Tugs, Repair, Water, Coal, Hos- pital, Depot, and Special Ser- vice School and Training Ships Subsidized and Auxiliary Ships. Hulks and Obsoletes Torpedo Boat Destroyers Torpedo Boats, First Class Torpedo Boats, Second and Third Classes Officers, Naval and Marine Enlisted Men Secondary and Mantua Guns. . . AUSTRIA-HUNGARY. The year 1900 saw 339,783 young men attain the age of militarv service liability. Out of this number but 193,346 were drawn for service, the rest being excused for physical, n jral, or mental disability, or for being sole supports of families, heads of financial or manufacturing establishments, or for other good reasons. Of the number drawn only 143,000 were required in the active army, while the remainder were either credited with their first period of service or placed directly in the reserve. Obligatory service begins X 9,150 12000 Second reserves 235,000 150,000 55,000 50,000 50,000 200,000 150,000 Total war strength. 453,703 MMM 207,904 105,110 99,635 100.756 401,570 171,150 Including native and white troops. The Torpedo Fleets. TABLE SHOWING TORPEDO BOATS AND TORPEDO-BOAT DESTROYERS OF NAVIES OF THE WORLD. COUNTRIES. Torpedo- Boa tDe- stoyers. TORPEDO BOATS. i p COUNTRIES. Torpedo- Boat De- stroyers. TORPEDO BOATS. 1 First Class. Second Third Class. Class. First Class. Second Second Class. Class. United States Great Britain 16 103 18 10 18 18 2 6 16 2 36 49 47 98 98 80 36 6 6 7 3 4 38 163 20 7 9 7 4 14 12 10 2 105 46 16 71 116 35 19 42 32 18 9 53 295 263 144 191 223 80 35 48 69 35 23 Portugal 1 3 3 1 5 9 5 1 4 7 2 10 4 4 5 8 10 10 6 6 9 22 7 2 3 29 27 6 27 7 3 4 15 18 18 17 22 1 i? 12 9 5 31 37 33 56 62 27 Turkey France Spain Germany Roumania Italy Mexico Russia Chile Austria-Hungary . . Denmark Brazil Arg. Republic Costa Rica Netherlands China Japan Norway British Colonies... The New Navy of Japan. BATTLE SHIPS. NAME. | Tonnage. Guns. Built. NAMK. Tonnage. Guns. Built. Fuji, steel 1 12,649 38 1896 Chinyen, steel 7,365 20 1881 Yashima, steel j 12,517 38 1*96 Shikishima, steel... 15,037 60 Building. COAST-DEFENSE VESSELS. Itsukushima, steel. Matsushima, steel. . 4,278 4,278 M 1889 1890 j Hashidate, steel. 4,278 1891 STEEL CRUISERS. Takasago 4,227 30 1897 Suma 2,700 24 1896 Yoshino 4 216 36 1892 Chivoda 2 439 27 1890 Puso 3,777 26 1877 Saiyen 2300 13 1883 Naniwa 3 709 24 1886 4 978 30 1898 Takachiho 3,709 24 1885 Chitose 4 836 30 1898 Akitsusu 3,150 23 1892 Akashi 2 800 24 Building Izumi 2,967 22 1883 GUNBOATS. Iwaki, wood 667 6 1877 Chinto, steel 440 7 1879 Oshima, steel 640 10 1891 440 1883 Mayo, iron 622 6 1886 Chinhoku, steel 440 7 1879 Atago, steel 622 4 1887 Chinchu, steel 440 1881 Akagi, wood 622 i 10 1888 321 5 1871 Chokai, iron ! 622 ! 4 1887 Kaikvo, wood 1,460 26 OTHER VESSELS. Miyako, dispatch boat, steel, 1.800 tons, 12 guns, building; Congo, corvette ; Hiyei, corvette: Heiyen, cor- vette; Tsukuba, cruiser: Katsnragi, sloop; Yamato, sloop; Musasni, sloop; Kaimon, sloop; Amaiki, sloop. These vessels are from 2.884 tons to 926 tons displacement, and carry from 19 to 13 guns each. They are built mostly of iron and wood, and their dates are from 1871 to 1889. The Chinyen, Saiyen, Heiyen, Soko, Chinto, Chinsei, Chinhoku, Chinpen, Chinchu, and Kaikyo, were captured from the Chinese in the war of 1895-'96. The number of torpedo boats and destroyers is given in the torpedo-boat table. There are, in addition to the above vessels and torpedo boats, 26 vessels used as receiving ships, bulks, etc. MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 615 New York Elevated Railways. In 1868 an elevated railroad extending a half- mile was constructed on Greenwich street, New York, as an experiment. Three years later the West Side Elevated Railroad Company ob- tained a charter, but shortly afterward sold its right to the New York Elevated Railroad Company. The new organization proceeded rapidly to erect its roads, and in December, 1879, its rolling stock consisted of 131 loco- motives, 292 passenger cars, and 8 service cars. In May, 1879, the road was leased to the Man- hattan Railway Company. The Metropolitan Elevated Railroad was first called the Gilbert Elevated Railroad, in honor of its projector, Dr. Rufus H. Gilbert. Although the com- pany obtained its charter in 1872, work was not commenced until March, 1876. In two years it expended 110,300,000 in constructing its lines. In 1879 the road with its rolling stock, consisted of 56 locomotives, 180 passen- ger cars, and 2 freight cars, was leased to the Manhattan Elevated Railroad Company, which now controls and manages the entire elevated railroad system of New York. The Famous Connecticut Blue Laws. These laws, enacted .by the people of the " Dominion of New Haven," became known as the blue laws because they were printed on blue paper. They were as fol- lows : The governor and magistrates convened in general assembly are the supreme power, un- der God, of the independent dominion. From the determination of the assembly no appeal shall be made. No one shall be a freeman or have a vote unless he is converted and a member of one of the churches allowed in the dominion. Each freeman shall swear by the blessed God to bear true allegiance to this dominion and that Jesus is the only king. No dissenter from the essential worship of this dominion shall be allowed to give a vote for electing of magistrates or any officer. No food or lodging shall be offered to a heretic. No one shall cross a river on the Sabbath but authorized clergymen. No one shall travel, cook victuals, make beds, sweep houses, cut hair, or shave on the Sabbath Day. No one shall kiss his or her children on the Sabbath or feasting days. The Sabbath Day shall begin at sunset Sat- urday. Whoever wears clothes trimmed with gold, silver, or bone lace above one shilling per yard shall be presented by the grand jurors and the selectmen shall tax the estate 300. Whoever brings cards or dice into the domin- ion shall pay a fine of 5. No one shall eat mince pies, dance, play cards, or play any instrument of music except the drum, trumpet, or jewsharp. No gospel minister shall join people in mar- riage. The magistrate may join them, as he may do it with less scandal to Christ's church. When parents refuse their children con- venient marriages, the magistrate shall deter- mine the point. A man who strikes his wife shall be fined 10. A woman who strikes her husband shall be punished as the law directs. No man shall court a maid in person or by letter without obtaining the consent of her parents ; 5 penalty for the first offense ; 10 for the second, and for the third imprisonment during the pleasure of the court. Perpetual Motion, Perpetual motion is a movement which is not only self- active but also self -creative. A machine which when set in motion would continue to move without the aid of external force and without tho loss of momentum until its parts were all worn out, might be said to have solved the perpetual motion problem. But even more is expected of this invention should it ever become practi- cable, that it shall go on doing work without drawing on any external source of energy, or shall by its movement continually create power. The impossibility of constructing such a machine has long been demonstrated, but still ignorant and ambitious inventors continue to try for it. As early as the year 1775, the Parisian Academy of Sciences refused to re- ceive any further schemes for perpetual motion, regarding it as an impossibility. There was a time when the perpetual motion problem was worthy the attention of a philosopher, just as there was a time when a man might have been justified in doubting whether the earth was a globe. Grangers, or Patrons of Husbandry, as they are properly called; were organized De- cember 4, 1867, by Mr. O. H. Kelley and Mr. William M. Saunders, both of the Department of Agriculture at Washington. Mr. Kelley was commissioned by President Johnson, in 1866, to travel through the Southern States, and report upon their agricultural and mineral resources. He discovered agriculture in a state of great depression, consequent upon the changes made by the Civil War. There was also at the time serious dissatisfaction among the farmers of the West and Northwest in re- gard to the alleged heavy rate and unjust dis- criminations made by railroad companies in their transportation of farmers' products. It 616 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. was also claimed that middle men exacted ex- orbitant prices for agricultural implements, etc. Mr. Kelley concluded that an association made up of those who were dissatisfied might be organized on some such plan as the Order of Odd Fellows or Masons. He and Mr. Saun- ders devised a plan for an organization to be known as the " Patrons of Husbandry," and its branches to be called "Granges," and on December 4, 1867, the National Grange was organized at Washington. In the spring of 1868 granges were founded at Harrisburg, Pa. ; at Fredonia, N. Y. ; at Columbus, Ohio ; at Chicago, 111., and six in Minnesota. The movement became very popular, and they were, in a few years, organized in nearly every state and territory in the Union. The order has its greatest strength, however, in the Northwest- ern and Western States. Facts "Worth Knowing. Proper ages of reproduction 1, length of power of repro- duction 2, and periods of gestation 3, in domestic animals : Horse Mare Cow Bull Sow Boar Ewe Ram Jackass Ass Goat Slut Dog Cat Cat, female. Shortest.] Mean. Longest. Days, Days. Days. 287 283 347 321 41< 34 146 1T4 12 to 15 10 to 12 10 5 6 6 6 7 12 to 15 10 to 12 365 380 6 to 6 150' 156 8 to 9 55] 60 8 to 9 9tolO 5 to 6 48 50 161 391 163 63 66 The Longest Rivers in the World. NAMK. MILKS. AFRICA. Nile 3,895 Niger 2,990 Congo 2,700 Zambezi 2,300 Orange 1,152 AMERICA (NORTH). Mississippi and Mis- souri 4,194 St. Lawrence 2,120 Mackenzie 2,120 Saskatchewan l ,918 RioGrande 1,800 Arkansas ] ,514 Columbia 1,383 Ohio and Allegheny... 1,265 Red River 1,200 Colorado 1,000 AMERICA (SOUTH). Amazon .3,596 Rio Madeira ... . 2,300 Parana 2,211 Rio d la Plata ....,., 1,800 AMERICA (So.) Cont. San Francisco 1,613 Rio Negro 1,650 Orinoco 1,500 ASIA. Yenisei .3,688 HoangHo 2,812 Lena 2,766 Obi 2,674 Amur 2,673 Euphrates 2,005 Ganges 1,844 Indus 1,613 AUSTRALASIA. Murray 3,000 EUROPE. Volga 2,351 Danube 1,992 Ural 1,099 Don 1,088 Dnieper.. 1,020 Rhine 876 Field of the Cloth of Gold was so jailed from the extravagance and display at- tendant upon a meeting of Henry VLTI. of England and Francis I. of France, in June, 1530. The kings met in the field near the small town of Ardres, in France, which was owned by England, and the meeting was held by the request of Francis I., who desired to gain the friendship of Henry to aid him in his projects for curbing the power of his great rival, Charles V., of Germany. The cere- monial was under the direction of Cardinal Wolsey, and the nobility of France and Eng- land vied with each other in the gorgeous deco- ration of themselves, their banners and tents, and their retinues of followers. Historic Minor Political Parties The minor American parties which have ap- peared and disappeared during the 19th century of our national life are the following: Anti- Renters, a New York party which flourished about 1841. They resisted the collection of back rents on the Van Rensselaer manor near Albany. They had strength enough to defeat Wright, the regular Democratic candidate for governor of New York. Barn-burners, New York, 1846, seceders from the Democratic party. They were opposed to slavery exten- sion. JBucktails, New York, about 1815 ; they supported Madison. Conservatives, New York and some other states, 1837 ; paper money Democrats. Doughfaces, 1820, Northern mem- bers of Congress, who voted in favor of the Mis- souri compromise. Hunkers, New York, a fac- tion of the Democrats favoring the South, the Barn-burners being the other factor. Know- Nothings, New York, 1854, opposed to natural- ization of foreigners unless they had been twenty-one years in the country. Loco-Focos, New York, 1835 ; a branch of the Democratic party. Liberal Republicans, 1872 ; Republicans who joined with the Democrats in support of Greeley for president. Temperance, or Pro- hibition, from 1830 down, in many states ; in favor of preventing or restricting the sale of liquors. Woman's Rights, from 1860 down ; those who favored granting to women the right of suffrage. Tax on Commercial Travelers. The following is a list of places and amount of tax- ation on commercial travelers : Alabama, $15.50 per year; Arizona, $200 per year; Beaufort, S. C., $10 per visit; Bennettsville, S. C., $1 per visit ; Batesburg, S. C., 75 cents per day ; Charleston, S. C., $10 per month -, Cumberland, Md., $1 per day; Delaware, $25 per year ; Deadwood, S. D., $5 per week ; Dar- lington, S. C., $1 ; East St. Louis, $2 per day ; Elkton, Md., per cent, on stock carried ; Florida, $25 per year ; Hartwell, Ga., $5 per trip ; Johnston, S. C., 50 cents per day ; Lewis- town, Idaho, $5 per trip; Montana, $100 per year for each county; Memphis, Tenn., $10 MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 617 per week or $25 per month ; Mobile, Ala., $3 ! per day or $7 a week ; Natchez, Miss., 25 cents per day ; New Orleans, La. , f 50 per year ; j Newport, Ky., f 1 per month ; North Carolina, | |100 per year ; Nevada, $100 per year ; Orange- i burg, S. C., <$2 per day; St. Matthews, S. C., I fl per day; San Francisco, Cal., $25 per quarter; Texas, $35 a year; Tucson, Arizona, | $50 per quarter ; Tombstone, Arizona, $10 per day ; Virginia, $75 per year; Wilmington, N. C., $3 per day; Washington, D. C., $200 per year ; W'alhalla, S. C., $1 per day. for Stock. One hu hay for stock are equal Articles. Pounds. Beets, white silesia 669 Turnips 469 ndred pounds to : Articles. Lucerne of good Pounds. 89 Clover, red, dry. 88 Rye straw . 429 Buckwheat 78V2 Clover, red, green 373 Carrots 371 Corn ....62V 2 Oats 59 Mangolds 368y 2 Barley 58 Potatoes, kept in pit. .350 Rye 53 1 /* Wheat 44^ Potatoes 360 Oil-cake, linseed Pease, dry 43 Carrot leaves (tops) ... 135 Hav, English 100 37V 2 Beans . . 28 Colored Troops in U. S. Army the War. Arkansas C,526 Maine during' 104 Alabama 4,969 New Hampshire. New York 125 4,125 Colorado Territory.. 95 Delaware 954 New Jersey 1,185 North Carolina. Ohio . . . 5,035 5,092 Dist. of Columbia.. 3,269 Florida 1,044 Georgia . 3,486 Pennsylvania. . . Rhode Island... ... 8,612 . . . 1,837 Iowa 440 South Carolina. Texas . . . 5,462 47 Illinois 1,811 Kansas 2,080 Kentucky 23703 Tennessee Vermont Virginia . . . 20,133 120 . . . 5,723 Louisiana 24,052 West Virginia.. Wisconsin 196 155 Maryland 8,718 Massachusetts 3,966 Michigan 1,387 At large 733 Not accounted for . . 5,083 Officers 7.122 Mississippi 17 869 Missouri 8,344 Total . 186.017 Amount of < Kinds of Seed. Per cent. Oil. Ml in Seeds. Kinds of Seed. Per cent. Oil. Oats 6i/i Sweet almond 47 Clover hay Wheat bran 5 4 Oat straw 4 Bitter almond 37 Meadow hay Wheat straw .... 3V 2 3 Wheat flour 3 Indian corn... .. 7 Barley 2V, Acetylene. A substance composed of car- bon and hydrogen and of remarkable powers. It is produced in large quantities from carbide of calcium, a product of the electric furnace. When water is thrown on this substance it gives off acetylene gas. It was found about 1895, that this gas, when burned in a suit- able burner, would give the brightest light of any known gas. When placed under strong pressure acetylene becomes a liquid. About Ships. SPEED AND DISTANCE. The rapidity with which a rapid sailing propelling steamer travels is ascertained by the number of revolutions or movements made per minute in certain portions of the machinery. It is also learned by the dropping of an object attached to a line into the water at the side of the stern of the vessel, which, remaining nearly stationary, allows the operator to know the speed by the number of knots which the line runs out in a certain number of seconds. The drop line, called the log line, contains a small string tied into a knot at a distance of every 47 feet and 3 inches ; hence the name "knot." STEAMSHIP NAMES. The bow is the ex- treme forward part of the ship. The stern is the after part. Forward is the forepart of the vessel. Aft is the rear part. Amidships is the central part of the vessel. Starboard is the right side of the ship, looking forward. Port, the left side. The Index Guide gives the following description of sails, namely : The masts are the fore mast, main mast, and mizzen mast. The parts of the masts are the fore mast, fore-top mast, fore-topgallant mast, fore-royal mast, and similarly for the other masts ; thus, main mast, main-top mast, mizzen-top mast, etc. Booms are round, heavy wooden spars to which the sails are at- tached the jib-boom extending from the bowsprit, the flying jib-boom being attached to, but extending beyond, the jib-boom. The main and mizzen booms are attached to the main and mizzen masts, the spanker boom ex- tends aft from the mizzen mast. Yards are strong, horizontal, wooden spars, extending crosswise the ship, to which the sails are at- tached along up the masts. The principal sails are the jib and flying jib, long triangular sails extending from the fore-mast to the jib- booms, and along the masts upward from the deck to the try-sail, the fore-course or fore- sail, or fore-top sail, fore-topgallant sail, fore- royal sail, fore-sky sail, Mid similarly for each of the other masts; thus, main try-sail, main sail, main top-sail, mizzen top-sail, etc., and spanker, the stern most sail, extending from the spanker boom to the gaff. The ensign or ship's colors are attached to the gaff. Shrouds are the ropes used to sustain the masts and extend from the fore-top to the sides of the ship (the rope ladders). The other ropes used as sup- ports to the masts are designated stays, and are named from that part of the mast to which they are attached, as fore-stay, mi/zen-stay, fore royal-stay, mizzen-topgallant-stay, etc. The jib-boorn, flying jib-boom, and several of the sails here mentioned, are not required and are not used on the large modern steamers. Hero and Leander. Hero \rasa priest ess of Venus. Leander was a youth of Abydos, a famous city on the Asiatic side of the strait 618 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. of the Hellespont, nearly opposite the city Sestos, on the European coast. At a festival of Venus and Adouis, held at Sestos, Hero and Leander first saw each other, and were immedi- ately inspired with a mutual passion ; but Hero's office as a priestess and the opposition of her parents stood in the way of their union. Undaunted by these obstacles, Leander every night swam across the Hellespont to visit his beloved, who directed his course by holding a burning torch from the top of a tower on the seashore. After many meetings Leander was drowned on a tempestuous night, and his body Hero stood expecting him. Heartbroken at the sight, she flung herself from the tower into the sea, and passed with her lover into the immortality of art and song. Popular jtfames of Cities. The nick- names given to the various prominent cities in the United States are as follows : Brooklyn, N. Y., City of Churches; Boston, Hub of the Universe; Baltimore, Monumental City ; Buf- falo, Queen City of the Lakes ; Chicago, Gar- den City; Cincinnati, Queen City; Cleveland, ECUADOR AND COLOMBIA Coffee, cotton, indigo, cocoa, fruits, sugar. FRANCE. Silks, woolens, linens, cotton, wine, brandy, porcelain, toys. GERMANY Linen, grain, various manu- factures of silver, copper, etc. GREAT BRITAIN. Woolens, cottons, linens, hardware, porcelain, etc. GREENLAND. Whale oil, whalebone, seal skins. HINDOOSTAN. Cotton, silks, rice, sugar, coffee, opium, indigo. HOLLAND. Fine linens, woolens, butter, cheese, various manufactures. ITALY. Silks, wine, oil, grain, fruits. IRELAND. Linens, beef, butter, tallow, hides, potatoes, barley. JAPAN. Silk and cotton goods, japanware, porcelain. MEXICO. Gold, silver, logwood, cochineal, fruits. PERSIA. Carpets, shawls, wine, silk, cot- ton, rice, rhubarb, guns, swords, etc. PERU. Silver, gold, Peruvian bark, mer- cury, sugar, cotton, fruits. RUSSIA. Hemp, iron, linen, grain, timber. Forest City ; Detroit, City of the Straits ; Hannibal, Bluff City ; Indianapolis, Railroad j furs, tallow, platina. City ; Keokuk, Gate City ; Louisville, Falls j SPAIN AND PORTUGAL Silks, wool, wine, City; Lowell, City of Spindles ; New York, 'oil, fruits, salt. Gotham, Empire City ; New Orleans, Crescent SWEDEN AND NORWAY Iron, steel, cop- City ; Nashville, City of Rocks ; New Haven, per, timber, fish. City of- Elms ; Philadelphia, Quaker City, ! SWITZERLAND. Watches, jewelry, paper, City of Brotherly Love ; Pittsburg, Iron City ; laces, linen, cotton, and silk goods', etc. Portland, Me., Forest City; Rochester, Flour | TURKEY. Grain, fruits, cotton, oil, wines, City ; St. Louis, Mound City ; Springfield, 111., carpets, muslin, swords. Flower City; Washington, D. C., City of UNITED STATES : Magnificent Distances. Principal Exports of Various Coun- tries. ARABIA. Coffee, aloes, myrrh, frankincense, gum arable. BELGIUM Grain, flax, hops, woolens, lin- ens, laces, various manufactures. BRAZIL Cotton, sugar, coffee, tobacco, gold, diamonds, wheat, and dye-goods. CANADA, NOVA SCOTIA, AND NEW BRUNS- WICK. Flour, furs, lumber, fish. CAPE COLONY Brandy, wine, ostrich feathers, hides, tallow. CENTRAL AMERICA. Logwood, mahogany, indigo, cocoa. CHILE. Silver, gold, copper, wheat, hemp, hides, sugar, cotton, fruits. CHINA. Tea, silks, nankeens, porcelain, opium, articles of ivory and pearl. DENMARK. Grain, horses, cattle, beef, pork, butter, cheese. EASTERN, WESTERN, AND SOUTHERN AFRICA. Gold, ivory, ostrich feathers. EGYPT. Rice, grain digo, cotton, sugar. EASTERN STATES. Lumber, beef, pork, fish, cottons, woolens, etc. MIDDLE STATES. Flour, wheat, salt, coal, cottons, woolens. SOUTHERN STATES. Cotton, rice, to- bacco, corn, lumber, pitch, fruits. WESTERN STATES. Corn, wheat, lead, coal, iron, salt, lime, beef, pork. VENEZUELA Sugar, coffee, cocoa, cotton, indigo, fruits. WEST INDIES. Sugar, rum, molasses, cof- fee, spice, cotton, indigo, fruits. What Dynamite is and How it is Made. Few people know what dynamite is, though the word is in common use. It is a giant gunpowder ; that is, an explosive mate- rial, varying in strength and safety of han- dling according to the percentage of nitro-glyc- erine it contains. Nitro-glycerine, whence it derives its strength, is composed of ordinary glycerine and nitric acid, compounded together in certain proportions and at a certain temper- linseed, fruits, in- ature. Nitro-glycerine, though not the strong- est explosive known, being exceeded in powei MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 619 by nitrogen and other products of chemistry, is thus far the most terrible explosive manu- factured to any extent. Nitro-glycerine by itself is not safe to handle, hence dynamite is preferred. It is extensively made and consumed in the United States under the various names of Giant, Hercules, Jupiter, and Atlas powders, all of which contain anywhere from thirty to eighty per cent, of nitro-glycerine, the residue of the compound being made up of rotten stone, non-explosive earth, sawdust, charcoal, plaster of paris, black powder, or some other substance that takes up the glycerine and makes a porous, spongy mass. Nitro-glycerine was discovered by Salvero, an Italian chemist, in 1845. Dynamite is pre- pared by simply kneading with the naked hands twenty-five per cent, of infusorial earth and seventy-five per cent, of nitro-glycerine until the mixture assumes a putty condition, not unlike moist brown sugar. Before mix- ing, the infusorial earth is calcined in a fur- nace, in order to burn out all organic matter, and it is also sifted to free it of large grains. While still moist it is squeezed into cartridges, which are prepared of parchment paper, and the firing is done by fulminate of silver in cop- per capsules provided with patent exploders. Nitro-glycerine is made of nitric acid one part and sulphuric acid two parts, to which is added ordinary glycerine, and the mixture is well washed with pure water. The infusion is composed of small microscopic silicious shells which have lost their living creatures. The cellular parts receive the nitro-glycerine and hold it by capillary attraction, both in- side and out. The earth is very light. Water is expelled from it by means of a furnace, and then, in the form of a powder, it is mixed with nitro-glycerine. Nitro-glycerine has a sweet, aromatic, pungent taste, and the pecul- iar property of causing a violent headache when placed in a small quantity on the tongue or wrist. It freezes at 40 degrees Fahrenheit, becoming a white, half crystallized mass, which must be melted by the application of water at a temperature about 100 degrees Fahrenheit. Confederate Soldiers Surrendered at end of War. Army of Northern Virginia, 27,805; army of Tennessee, 31,243 ; army of Missouri, 7,978 ; army of Alabama, 42,293 ; army of Trans-Mississippi, 17,686; at Nash- ville and Chattanooga, 5,029 ; paroled in De- partments of Virginia, Cumberland, Maryland, Alabama, Florida, Tennessee, Texas, etc., 42,- 189; Confederate prisoners in Northern pris- ons at the close of the war, 98,802 ; total Con- federate army at close, 273,025. A large and unknown number of Confederate soldiers were not present at surrender. Costly Mansion The largest and cost- liest private mansion in the world is that be- longing to Lord Bute, called Montstuart, and situated near Rothesay, England. It covers nearly two acres ; is built in Gothic style ; the walls, turrets, and balconies are built of stone. The immense tower in the center of the build- ing is 120 feet high, with a balcony around the top. The halls are constructed entirely of marble and alabaster, and the rooms are fin- ished in mahogany, rosewood, and walnut. The fireplaces are all carved marbles of antique designs. The exact cost of this fairy palace is not known, but it has never been estimated at less than $8,000,000. Age and Growth of Trees An oak tree in three years grows 2 feet 10 inches. A larch 3 feet 7 inches ; at seventy years it is full grown, and a tree of seventy-nine years was 102 feet high and 12 feet girth, contain- ing 253 cubic feet. Another of eighty years was 90 feet and 17 feet, and 300 cubic feet. An elm tree in three years grows 8 feet 3 inches. A beech, 1 foot 8 inches. A poplar, 6 feet. A willow, 9 feet 3 inches. An elm is fully grown in 150 years, and it lives 500 or 600. Ash is full grown in 100, and oak in 200. The mahogany is full grown in 200 years to a vast size. A Polish oak 40 feet round had 600 circles. An oak in Dorsetshire in 1755 was 68 feet round, two near Cranborne Lodge are 38 feet and 36 feet. There are yews from 10 to 20 feet in diameter, whose age is from 1,000 to 2,000 years. A lime in the Crisons is 51 feet round and about 600 years old. An elm in the Pays de Vaud is 18 feet in diam- eter and 360 years old. The African baobab is the patriarch of living organizations ; one specimen, by its circles, is estimated at 5,700 years old by Adamson and Humboldt. The trunk is but 12 or 15 feet to the branches, and often 75 feet round. A cypress in Mexico is 120 feet round, and is estimated by De Can- dolle to be older than Adamson 's baobab. The cypress of Montezuma is 41 feet round. Strabo wrote of a cypress in Persia as being 2,500 years old. The largest tree in Mexico is 127 feet round and 120 high, with branches of 30 feet. A chestnut tree on Mount Etna is 106 feet round close to the ground, and five of its branches resemble great trees. De Candolle says there are oaks in France 1,500 years old. The Wallace oak near Paisley is nearly 800 years old. The yew trees at Fountain's Abbey arr about 1,200 years old. That at Crowhurst 1,500. That at Fortingal, above2,000. That at Braburn, 2,500 to 3,000. Ivies reach 500 or 600 years. The larch the same. The lime 600 or 700 years. The trunk of a walnut tree 12 feet in diameter, hollowed out, and furnished 620 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. as a sitting room, was imported from America and exhibited in London. The trunk was 80 feet high without a branch, and the entire height 150 feet, the bark 12 inches thick, and the branches from 3 to 4 feet in diameter. The California pine is from 150 to 200 feet high, and from 20 to 60 feet in diameter. The forests in watered, tropical countries are formed of trees from 100 to 200 feet high, which grow to the water's edge of rivers, presenting a solid and impenetrable barrier of trunks 10 or 12 feet in diameter. The dragon tree is in girth from 40 to 100 feet, and 50 or 60 feet high, and a mimosa in South America is described whose head is 600 feet round. Mount Etna and Its Eruptions. Mount Etna is a volcano of Sicily, and has been active from the earliest times. The an- cients had a fable that beneath the mountain was buried a mighty giant, Enceladus, whom Jove had hurled from heaven for rebellion, and pinned to earth by tossing a mountain upon him. The flames were the breath of the im- prisoned monster, the loud noises his groans, and earthquakes were caused by his efforts to turn over his enormous body. The first, re- corded eruption of Etna occurred before the supposed date of the Trojan war, but its ex- act time is not known. Thucydides, the his- torian, next records three eruptions one in the year 475 B. C., one in 425, and the third at an earlier date not specified. Since those there have been, down to the present time, seventy-eight outbreaks, many of them harm- less. Among the most remarkable of the great eruptions were that of 1169 A. D., when Catania and 15,000 of its inhabitants were destroyed ; that of 1527, in which two villages were destroyed and many human beings per- ished ; and two eruptions of 1669, in which 15 villages were destroyed. Many fissures in the earth were made at this time one twelve miles long, which emitted a most vivid light. After- ward five other fissures opened, from which came smoke and loud noises. The city of Catania, at the foot of the mountain, had built a wall sixty feet high on that side to pro- tect it, but the lava rose until it overflowed the wall and poured a current of liquid fire into the houses. This current flowed onward until it reached the sea, 15 rniles distant. It was 600 yards wide and 40 feet deep. Entering the sea, the water was thrown into violent commotion, the noise of its agitation was as loud as thunder, and clouds of steam darkened the air for many hours. The eruption of 1755 was remarkable for an inundation caused l>y the flow r of the hot lava over the snow that covered the mountain. It was imagined at the time that the water was thrown out of the \ crater. A great eruption took place in 1852, immense clouds of ashes being ejected. From two new openings on the east vast torrents of lava poured out, one of which was two miles broad, and in part of its course 170 feet deep. The outbreak of May, 1879, was violent, the clouds of smoke and showers of ashes being followed by the ejection of a stream of lava 200 feet wide, which desolated large tracts of cultivated land. There were also eruptions in 1883 and 1886, but both subsided before any great damage had been caused. Mount Etna is now 10,868 feet high. It is known that frequent eruptions have broken off large parts of the upper portion of the mountain. Its surface is divided into three distinct regions. The lowest is that of fertile land, producing fruit and grain, which extends 2,000 feet from the base up the mountain side, with a circum- ference of 92 miles. Above this is a strip nearly 4,300 feet wide, covered with large forests, above which to the mountain top there | is only a dreary waste of ashes and hardened lava. In spite of its tragic history, the sides ; of the mountain have a population of over 300,000 people in 63 small villages and 2 large cities. Postage Stamps, Language of. Of late years the postage stamp has been in- vested with a language of its own. When a stamp is inverted on the right-hand upper cor- ner, it means the person written to is to write no more. If the stamp be placed on the left- hand upper corner, inverted, then the writer declares his affection for the receiver of the letter. When the stamp is in the center at the top it signifies an affirmative answer to a ques- tion or the questions, as the case may be ; and when it is at the bottom, it is a negative. Should the stamp be on the right-hand corner, at a right angle, it asks the question if the re- ceiver of the letter loves the sender : while in the left-hand corner means that the writer hates the other. There is a shade of difference between desiring one's acquaintance and friend- ship. For example : the stamp at the upper | corner at the right expresses the former, and on the lower left-hand corner means the latter. The stamp on a line with the surname is an offer of love ; in the same place, only reversed, i signifies that the writer is engaged. To say farewell, the stamp is placed straight up and down in the left-hand corner. Fabian Policy. The policy of wearing out the enemy in war by delays, misleading movements, feints of attack, etc., while avoid- ing open battle, is called the " Fabian policy " from the following circumstance : Fabius Max- im us was a Roman General in the second Pu- nic War, Having been appointed just after MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 621 the Roman army had suffered severe defeat at Lake Thrasymene, he perceived that his dis- heartened troops and bands of raw recruits could not oppose successfully a trained army flushed with victory and led by their great commander Hannibal. He therefore avoided pitched battles, moved his camp from highland to highland, and tired out the enemy with marches and counter-marches. This he con- tinued until thwarted in his calculations by the impatience of the Roman Senate. Character by the Month. Here is an old astrological prediction, said to indicate, with tolerable certainty, the character of the girl according to the month she happens to be born in. If a girl is born in January, she will be a prudent housewife, given to melancholy, but good-tempered. If in February, a humane and affectionate wife and tender mother. If in March, a frivolous chatterbox, some- what given to quarreling. If in April, inconstant, not intelligent, but likely to be good-looking. If in May, handsome and likely to be happy. If in June, impetuous, will marry early, and be frivolous. If in July, passably handsome, but with a sulky temper. If in August, amiable and practical, and likely to marry rich. If in September, discreet, affable, and much liked. If in October, pretty and coquettish, and likely to be unhappy. If in November, liberal, kind, of a mild dis- position. If in December, well proportioned, fond of novelty, and extravagant. The World's Principal Tin Mines. Pure tin is an elementary metal, as mucli so as lead, iron, silver, or gold. The principal tin-producing country is England. The Phoeni- cians traded with England for tin 1,100 years before the Christian era. There is reason to believe that they got tin from Spain also ; but England was depended on for nearly all the tin used in Europe until this ore was discovered in Germany in 1240. It was discovered in Northern Africa in the Barbary States in 1640, in India in 1740, in New Spain in 1782. Tin was mined in Mexico before the Spanish conquest, and used in T shaped pieces for money, and in a bronze composition for sharp tools, the principal mines being at Tasco. Peru has valuable mines of this metal, so have New South Wales, Australia, and Banca, and Malacca in the Malay peninsula. Tin has been discovered in Pennsylvania, Missouri, Califor- i nia, Dakota, and other states of the Union, but ! not in quantities to tempt capital to engage in j mining it, with the exception of Dakota, where i the Illinois Steel Mill Company has large in- | terests. The chief tin-producing countries are the following, arranged in the order of im- portance : England, about 10,000 tons a year ; | Malacca, about 8,500 tons ; Australia, about 6,000 tons; Banca, about 4,000 tons; and Billiton, about 3,000 tons. Both of these last named places are islands of the Dutch East Indies. St. Valentine's Day. The custom of sending valentines can, without doubt, be traced, in origin, to a practice among the an- cient Romans. At the feast of the Lupercalia, which was held on the loth of February, in honor of the great god Pan, the names of all the virgin daughters of Rome were put in a box and drawn therefrom by the young men, and each youth was bound to offer a gift to the maiden who fell to his lot, and to make her his partner during the time of the feast. This custom became allied to the name of St. Val- entine, probably, only through a coincidence in dates. St. Valentine was a bishop of Rome during the third century. He was of most amiable nature, and possessed remarkable gifts of eloquence, and was so very successful in con- verting the pagan Romans to Christianity that he incurred the displeasure of the Emperor, and was martyred by his order February 14, A. D. 270. When the saint came to be placed in the calendar, his name was given to the day of his death, and this was made a festival, to offset that of the Lupercalia, and an effort was made to substitute the names of saints for those of girls in the lottery, but naturally without success. Many other customs of mediaeval and later times, which have become allied in name to a holy saint of the church, are unquestion- ably of purely secular, even pagan, origin. Royal Household. In all mediaeval monarchies of western Europe the general system of government sprang from, and cen- tered in, the royal household. The sovereign's domestics were his officers of state, and the leading dignitaries of the palace were the principal administrators of the kingdom. The royal household itself had, in its turn, grown out of an earlier and more primitive institu- tion . It took its rise in the comitatus, described by Tacitus, the chosen band of comites or com- panions who, when the Roman historian wrote, constituted the personal following, in peace as well as in war, of the Teutonic princcp* or chieftain. In England before the conquest the coniiteK were called thegns. After the conquest the most powerful of the king's thegns became officers of the royal household by heredity. 0-'-' THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. The Stage. BIRTHPLACES AND BIRTH YEARS OF DRAMATIC AND MUSICAL PEOPLE. NAME. BlBTHPLACE. Born. NAME. BlBTHPLACE. Born. Adams, Maude Salt Lake City, Utah .... Chamblv, Canada 1872 1851 1843 1858 1859 1860 1822 1869 1841 1840 1839 1836 1833 1846 1841 1847 1854 1842 1802 1851 1845 Holland, E. M New York city 1848 1862 1860 1870 1838 1862 1842 1830 1829 1871 1849 1849 1806 1855 1842 1845 1871 1852 1835 1865 1862 1857 1854 1865 1857 1866 1832 1844 1841 1871 1846 1841 1839 1857 1843 1858 1862 1849 1860 1838 1837 1848 1850 1825 1862 1844 1852 1860 1855 1832 1836 1846 1864 1860 1848 1867 1830 1869 1860 1858 1857 1855 1865 1864 1858 1860 1842 1827 1832 1842 1852 1848 1833 1838 1857 1833 1846 1861 1829 1873 1861 186C 1853 1841 Albani, Emma Hopper, De Wolf. . . New York city Aldrich, Louis Mid-ocean Hoy t, Charles H Concord N H Alexander, G eorge Reading, England Sacramento. Pal Irving, Isabel Irving, Sir Henry Anilrrson, TVTnrv Keinton, England Toronto, Canada Archer, Belle.." iEaston. Pa Arditi, Luigi Piedmont, Italy Canada . . . James, Louis Janauschek, Francesca. Tremont 111 Arthur, Julia Bancroft, Sir S. B England. .. Phil.ideliihin. Pn Bancroft, Ladv England Jones, Walter Snrintrfwlrl. O Bandmann, Daniel E Cassel, Germany Bangs, Frank C Alexandria Va Karl, Tom Dublin. Ireland... iKendal, Mrs. W. H (Lincolnshire, England. . : Keeley, Mrs. Robert Ipswich, England Kelcey, Herbert H. L. . . ;London, England Kellogg, Clara Louise. .. Sumpterville, S. C Knowles, Edwin H.. Rhode Island Barnabee, II. C Portsmouth N Y Barrett, Wilson Essex, England Barron, Charles Rost.nn. Mass... Barrymore, Maurice Bate man, Isabel India Cincinnati, O Baltimore, Md. Kopacsy, Julie iHunjrarv Langtrv, Lily.. |St. Helens, Jersey (Eng.) Belasco, David Le Mov'ne w J Bell, Digby Milwaukee Wis .Maddern, Minnie New Orleans, La Mande, Cyril London Kellew, Kyrle London ... . Bernhardt, Sarah Bispham, David Paris Philadelphia, Pa 1844 1857 1832 1843 1846 1846 1866 1847 1864 1868 1864 1852 1858 1837 1840 1835 1848 1845 1853 1841 1847 1845 1838 1863 1862 1860 1863 1853 1874 1855 1850 1865 1842 1859 1853 1861 1868 1873 1858 . 1837 1838 1846 1871 1858 1850 1845 1857 1820 1853 1857 1869 1861 1847 1808 1845 1858 1853 1856 1873 1800 1863 1828 I860 'Mansfield, Richard Heligoland, Germany. . . Mantell Robert B Ayrshire. Scotland Boniface, George C Booth, Agnes New York city Australia i Marlowe, J ulia Martinot, Sadie C'aldbeck, England lYonkers. N.Y... Buchanan, Virginia Burgess, Neil Cincinnati, O Boston, Mass Melba, Nellie . . [Melbourne New York citv Burroughs, Marie San Francisco Modjeska, Helena Mordaunt, Frank Morgan, Edward J* Cracow, Poland Burlington, Vt Barnes, Surrey, Eng Cleveland, O Byron, Oliver Doud Calve, Emma Cameron, Beatrice Campbell, Mrs. Patrick. Carev, Eleanor Baltimore, Md Aveyron, France Troy, N.Y London Mounet-Sully. . . France Chile S A iMurphv, Joseph . Brooklyn. N. Y.. . Cayvan, Georgia Bath Me 'Nevada, Emma San Francisco, Cal Nilsson, Christine Wederslof , Sweden Chanf rau, Mrs. F. S Clarke, George Philadelpia.Pa Rrr>r>VU TVT V iNordica, Lillian : Farmington, Me Olcott, Chauncey .. Providence, R. I Clarke, John S Baltimore Md Claxton, Kate TV^W Vnrt tv jO'Neil, James .. 'Ireland Cody, William F Coghlan, Rose Paderewski, Ignace J. . . Palmer A M Poland Peterboro, England North Stonington, Ct.. . New York city Madrid.. Coquelin, Benoit C j Pastor, Tony Patti Adelina Crabtree, Lotta Crane, William H Leicester, Mass Plympton, Ebeu Ponisi, Madame Daly, Augustin Huddersfleld, England.. New York citv .... Daly, Dan Boston, Mass. Damrosch , Walter J . . . ; Daniels, Frank Breslau, Prussia Rankin, A. McKee Reed, Roland Sandwich, Canada. . . Philadelphia, Pa Limerick, Ireland D'Arville, Camille Holland De Belleville, Frederic.. De Merode, Cleo Belgium Rhea, Madame. . . . Brussels Paris Warsaw, Poland Robinson, Frederick Robson, Stuart.. De Reszke, Edouard De Reszke, Jean Annapolis, Md Warsaw, Poland Roze, Marie Paris Dickinson, Anna New York city Philadelphia, Pa Boston, Mass Philadelphia, Pa Russell, Annie Russell, Lillian Russell, Sol. Smith Saleza, Albert New York -city Dixey , Henry E Drew, .John Brunswick, Mo Bruges, France Duse, Eleanora Eames, Emma Hayden. . Earle, Virginia Vigevano, Italv Shanghai, China Salvini, Tommaso Sanderson, Sibyl .... Milan, Italy Sacramento. Cal. . . New York citv Seabrooke Thomas Q Mt. Vernon, N. Y.... Ellsler.Effie Philadelphia 'Pa Ey tinge, Rose Philadelphia Pa Cambridgeport, Mass... Mobile, Ala Fawcett, Owen London, England Smith Mark Florence, Mrs. W. J. . . . Fox, Delia Frohman, Charles New York citv Sorma, Agnes Sothern, Edward H Stanhope, Adelaide Stanley, Alma Stuart. .. Stevenson, Charles A Stoddart J 'H Germany England St. Louis, Mo." Sandusky O Frohman, Daniel Sanduskv O Jersey, England Germon, Erne Gerster, Etelka Yorkshire, England Boston, Mass Gilbert, Mrs. G. H Rochdale, England TTartfnrrl rt Studlev John B Gillette, William Sullivan, Sir Arthur London Goodwin, Nat C jRnston Ma Plymouth, England Coventy , England 1 . . Girard Pa Hackett, James K Hading, Jane Canada Marseilles, France Berlin, Germany Boston. Mnsa Terry, Ellen Hammerstein, Oscar Harned, Virginia Thompson, Lydia Thursbv, Emma. . London, England Brooklyn, N. Y Harrigan, Edward New York city. . . Harrison, Maud England Toole, John L London, England Tree, Beerbohm England Hauk, Minnie iNVvw nripnna \.,, Haworth, Joseph S Held, Anna Herbert, Victor Providence, R. I. . . Vezin, Hermann Philadelnhia. Pa... Paris Dublin. Trolanrl Walsh, Blanche. New York city Warde, Frederick Wadington, England Heren, Bi iou New York citv Hill, Charles Barton .... Billiard. Robert S Dover, England Willard, E. S Brighton, England England. . , | Brooklyn Wyndham. Charles , MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. tftS Vaudeville. The name Vaudeville is a corruption of Vaux de Vire, the name of two picturesque valleys in the Bocageof Normandy, and was originally applied to a song with words relating to some story of the day. These songs were first composed by one Oliver Basselin, a fuller in Vire ; they were very popular, and spread all over France, and were called by the name of their native place (Les Vaux de Vire). As the origin of the term was soon lost sight of, it at last took its present form. The word is now used to signify a play in which dialogue is interspersed with songs incidentally intro- duced, but forming an important part of the drama. The Single Tax. This idea was first formulated by Mr. Henry George, in his book, "Progress and Poverty," in 1879, and has grown steadily in favor. Single tax men assert, as a fundamental principle, that all men are equally entitled to the use of the earth ; there- fore, no one should be allowed to hold valuable land without paying to the community the value of the privilege. They hold that this is the only rightful source. of public revenue, and they w.ould, therefore, abolish all taxation, local, state, and national, except a tax upon the .rental value of land, exclusive of its improve- ments, the revenue thus raised to be divided among local, state, and general governments, as the revenue from certain direct taxes is now divided between local and state governments. The single tax would not fall on all land, but only on valuable land, and on that in propor- tion to its value. It would thus be a tax, not on use or improvements, but on ownership of land, taking what would otherwise go to the landlord as owner. In accordance with the principle that all men are equally entitled to the use of the earth, they would solve the transportation problem by public ownership, and control of all high- ways, including the roadbeds of railroads, leav- ing their use equally free to all. The single tax system would : 1. Dispense with a horde of taxgatherers, simplify government, and greatly reduce its cost. 2. Give us with all the world that absolute free trade which now exists between the states of the Union. 3. Give us free trade in finance by abolish- ing all taxes on private issues of money. 4. Take the weight of taxation from agri- cultural districts, where land has little or no value apart from improvements, and put it upon valuable land, such as city lots and min- eral deposits. 5. Call upon men to contribute for public expenses in proportion to the natural opportu- nities they monopolize, and compel them to pay just as much for holding the land idle as for putting it to its fullest use. 6. Make it unprofitable for speculators to hold land unused or only partly used, and, by thus opening to labor unlimited fields of em- ployment, solve the labor problem, raise wages in all occupations, and abolish involuntary poverty. Printer's Devil. The origin of this term is ascribed to the fact that in the early days of printing the apprentice's duties in- cluded the inking of the forms with bags con- taining ink or besmeared with it. In the performance of this work his face and hands became so daubed with the ink that in appear- ance he suggested the devil. Hence the name. Bastille. The famoiis French prison known by this name was originally the Castle of Paris, and was built by order of Charles V., between 1370 and 1383, as a defense againgt the English. When it came to be used as a state prison it was provided with vast bulwarks and ditches. The Bastille had four towers, of five stories each, on each of its larger sides, and it was partly in these towers and partly in underground cellars that the prisons were sit- uated. It was capable of containing seventy to eighty prisoners, a number frequently reached during the reigns of Louis XIV. and Louis XV., the majority of them being per- sons of the higher ranks. The Bastille was destroyed by a mob on the 15th of July, 1789, and the governor and a number of his officers were killed. On its site now stands the Column of July, erected in memory of the patriots of 1789 and 1830. White House Weddings. The firgt wedding to occur in the White House was that of Miss Todd, a relative by marriage of Presi dent Madison. Then, in their order, came tha weddings of Elizabeth Tyler, a daughter of President Tyler ; John Quincy Adams, Jr. ; Miss Easten and Miss Lewis, both during Gen- eral Jackson's administration; Martha Mon- roe; Nellie Grant; Emily Platt, a niece of President Hayes; and last, President Cleve- land. Addison. "See how a Christian dies!" or"Soin what peace a Christian can die ! " AiiaxHgoras. " Give the boys a holiday. ArHa. " Mv PaHus, it is not painful." Augustus. '" Vos Plaudite." (After askint how hf had acted his part in life.) Beaufort (Cardinal Henry). " I pray you all, pray Berry (Mme. de). " Is not this dying with courj rmi the authoress). " White U*r ii life there is will." (He died standing.) Bvrou. " I nnist sleep now." cisar (Julius). " Et tu. Brute I" (To Brutus, when he stabbed him.) 24 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. Charlemagne. Lord, into Thy hands I commend my spirit!" Charles I. (of England). " Remember." (To "William Juxon, Archbishop of Canterbury.) Charles II. (of England). ""Don't let poor Nelly starve." (Nell Gwynne.) Charles V. " Ah, Jesus ! " Charles IX. (of France). "Nurse, nurse, what murder ! what blood ! Oh, I have done wrong. God pardon me." Charlotte (the princess). " You make me drink. Pray, leave me quiet. I find it affects my head." Chesterfield. " Give Day Holies a chair." Columbus. "Lord, into" Thy hands I commend my spirit !" Crome (John). " Oh, Hobbima, Hobbima, how I do love thee ! " Cromwell. " My desire is to make what haste I may to be gone." Demonax (the philosopher). " You may go home, the show is over." Lucian. Elden (Lord). " It matters not, where I am going, whether the weather be cold or hot." Fonteiielle. "I suffer nothing, but feel a sort of difficulty in living longer." Franklin. " A dying man can do nothing easy." Gainsborough. " We are all going to neaven, and Vandyke is of the company." George IV. " Whatty, what is this? It is death, my boy. They have deceived me." (Said to his page, Sir Walthen Waller.) Gibbon. " Mon Dieu ! Mon Dieu ! " Goethe. ' ' More 1 ight ! " Gregory VII. "I have loved justice and hated iniquity, therefore I die in exile." Grey (Lady Jane). " Lord, into Thy hands I commend my spirit!" < rot ins. " Be serious." Haydn. " God preserve the emperor." Haller. " The artery ceases to beat." If axlit t. " I have led a happy life." Hobbes. " Now I am about to take my last voyage a great leap in the dark." Hunter (Dr. William). " If I had strength to hold a pen, I would write down how easy and pleasant a thing it is to die." Irving. "If I die I die unto the Lord. Amen." James V. (of Scotland). " It came with a lass and will go with a lass" (i. e., the Scotch crown). Jefferson (of America). " I resign my spirit to God, my daughter to my country." Jesus Christ. " It is finished." Johnson (Dr.). " God bless you, my dear ! " (To Miss Morris.) Knox. " Now it is come." Louis I. " Huz ! huz ! " (Bouquet says, " He turned his face to the wall, and twice cried 'huz! huz!' (out, out) and then died.") Louis LX. " I will enter now into the house of the Lord." Louis XIV. "Why weep ye? Did you think I should li-re forever ?" Then, after a pause, " I thought dying had been harder." Louis XVTII. " A king should die standing." Mahomet. " Oh, Allah, be it so ! Henceforth among the glorious host of paradise." Marie Antoinette. " Farewell, my children, forever. I go to your father." Mirabeau. " Let me die to the sounds of delicious music." Moody (the actor). " Reason thus with life, If I do lose thee, I do lose a thing That none but fools would keep. Shakespeare. Moore (Sir John). " I hope my country will do me justice." Napoleon III. "Were you at Sedan?" (To Dr. Conneau.) Nelson. " I thank God I have done my duty." Pitt (William). " Oh, my country, how I love thee ! " Plzarro. " Jesu ! " Pope. " Friendship itself is but a part of virtue." Rabelais. " Let down the curtain, the farce is over." nmil (George). " Laissez la verdure." (Leave the tomb green.) Schiller. " Many things are growing plain and clear to my understanding." Scott (Sir Walter). "God bless you all." (To his family.) Socrates. " Crito, we owe a cock to /Esculapius." Stael (Mme. de). libertv. - " I have leved God, my father, and " I'll be shot if I don't believe I'm Thurlow (Lord), dying." William III. (of England). "Can this last long?" (To his physician.) Wolfe (General). " What ! do they run already? Then I die happy." State Flowers. The following are " State Flowers " as adopted in most instances by the A-otes of the public school scholars of the respective states : California Colif ornia Poppy Colorado Columbine Delaware Peach Blossom Idaho Syringa Indiana Corn Iowa Wild Rose Maine Pine Cone and Tassel Michigan * Apple Blossom Minnesota Cypripedium or Moccasin Flower Montana Bitter Root Nebraska Golden-rod Nevada Sunflower New York, Rose ; State tree Maple North Dakota Golden-rod Oklahoma Territory Mistletoe Oregon Golden-rod Rhode Island Violet Utah Sego Lily Vermont Red Clover Washington Rhododendron Adopted by State Legislature, not by public school scholars. In other states the scholars or State Legisla- tures have not yet taken action. In Illinois in the vote on the leading State Flower by the pupils of the schools the Rose, Violet, and Golden-rod received the largest number of votes, in the order named, although no state flower was adopted. In Massachusetts the Columbine was strongly urged, but no flower was adopted. In Ohio and Tennessee the Golden-rod is advocated. Strength of Modern Powders and High Explosives. NAME OF EXPLOSIVE. Perunite B Perunite C Perunite D Explosive gelatine.. Rack-a-rock Hellonte Nitro-glycerine, best quality Nobel's smokeless powder Explosive gelatine made from No. 5 nitro- glycerine United States Navy gun-cotton Fulgurite Emmensite French nitro-glycerine Dynamite No. 1." Cannonite Amide powder Progressite Tonite Bellite Oxouite Atlas powder, No. 1 Melinite Silver fulminate Mercury fulminate Rifle powder Mortar powder Rossel's mixture Americanite Schnebelite Pecentage of Strength. 100.0 91.0 83.0 81.0 79.0 78.0 73.0 70.0 68.0 67.5 67.0 66.0 630 62.6 62.0 59.0 58.5 57.0 56.0 54.4 54.0 49.0 48.2 if .5 35.0 30.0 89.5 82.0 80.0 MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 625 Absinthe is a spirit flavored with the pounded leaves and flowering tops of worm- wood, together with angelica-root, sweet-flag root, star-anise, and other aromatics. The aromatics are macerated for about eight days in alcohol and then distilled, the result being an emerald-colored liquor. The best absinthe is made in Switzerland, the chief seat of the manufacture being in the canton of Neufcha- tel. It is chiefly used in France and the United States. The evil effects of drinking this liquor are very apparent ; frequent intox- ication, or moderate but steady tippling, ut- terly deranges the digestive system, weakens the frame, induces horrible dreams and hallu- cinations, and may end in paralysis or in idiocy. United States Navy Pay Table. RANK. At Sea Admiral $13,500 For life. Rear-Admirals Commodores Captains Commanders ". Lieutenant-Commanders : First four years* After four yearst. . , Lieutenants : First five years* After live yearst Lieutenants (Junior Grade): First five years* After live yearst Ensigns : First five years* After five yearst Naval Cadets Mates Medical and Pay Directors and Inspectors and Chief Engineers having the same rank at sea Fleet Surgeons, Fleet-Paymasters, and Fleet-Engineers. . ." Surgepns, Paymasters, and Chief Engineers, , , 6,000 S.XOOO Chaplains. On Shore Duty. On Ijeave or Waiting Orders. 5,000 4,500 3,500 2,800 3,000 2,400 2,600 1,800 2,000 1,200 1,400 4,400 4,400 2,800 to 2.500 to 2.800 4,000 3,500 3,000 2,400 2,000 2,000 2,600 1,500 1,700 1,000 1,200 500 700 2,400 to 4.000 2,000 to 2,300 $4,000 3,000 2,800 2,300 2,000 2,200 1,600 1,800 1,200 1,400 800 1,000 500 500 2,000 to 3,000 1,600 to 1,900 Warrant officers are paid from $700 to $1,800, and sea- men, $228 to 288 per annum. After date of commission. jFrom date of commission. United States Naval Enlistment. All applicants for enlistment in the naval serv- ice must be of robust frame, intelligent, of perfectly sound and healthy constitution and free from any of the following physical defects : Greatly retarded development, feeble constitu- tion, inherited or acquired ; permanently im- paired general health, decided cachexia, diath- esis or predisposition, weak or disordered intellect, epilepsy or other convulsions within five years, impaired vision or chronic disease of the organs of vision, great dullness of hear- ing or chronic disease of the ears, chronic nasal catarrh, ozena, polypi or great enlargement of the tonsils, marked impediment of speech, decided indications of liability to pulmonary disease, chronic cardiac affections, large vari- cose veins of lower limbs, chronic ulcers, un- natural curvature of the spine, permanent disability of either of the extremities or artic- ulations from any cause, defective teeth. Following are the requirements for the vari- ous classes of the service, and monthly wages paid : Class. Age. Wages. Landsmen. 18 to 26 ! Ordinary Seamen 18 to 30 19 Seamen 21to35 24 Painter 21to35 30 Bugler 21to35 30 Shipwright 21 to 36 26 Carpenter's mate 21to35 40to50 Chief yeoman 60 Yeoman 30to40 Musicians..... 21to35 32 Cooks 21to36 40 Mess attendants 21 to 30 16 Sailmakers 21 to 35 26 Machinist .- 40 to 70 Boilermaker 21 to 35 60 Blacksmith 21 to 35 50 Firemen 21to35 30to35 Coal passers 21 to 35 22 Slavery and Serfdom. Some of the wealthy Romans had as many as 10,000 slaves. The minimum price fixed by the law of Rome was $80, but after great victories they could sometimes be bought for a few shillings on the field of battle. The day's wages of a Roman gardener were about sixteen cents, and his value about 300, while a blacksmith was val- ued at about $700, a cook at $2,000, an actress at $4,000, and a physician at $11,000. The number of slaves emancipated in the British Colonies in 1834 was 780,993, the in- demnity aggregating, in round figures, $100,- 000,000. In Brazil, in 1876, there were 1,- 510,800 slaves, 15 per cent, of the entire pop- ulation. These were held by 41,000 owners, averaging 37 to each owner. In 1882 the number of slaves was 1,300,000. Owing to the gradual abolition of slavery in Brazil by law, it is expected that it will be entirely ob- solete in 1900. SLAVERY IN THE UNITED STATES. Year. Number. 1790 (.97,900 1800 893,040 1810 1,191,400 Year. dumber. 1830 2,009.030 1840 2,487,500 1850 3.204.300 1820 1,538,100 1860 3,979,700 Serfdom in Russia. There were 47,- 932,000 serfs in Russia in 1861, as follows: Crown serfs, 22,851 ,000 ; appanage, 3,320,000 ; held by nobles, 21,755,000. The cost of re- demption was, in round numbers, about $325,- 000,000, as follows : Mortgages remit- ted $152,000,000 Gov'ment scrip . . 101,000,000 The indemnity to the nobles was f!5 per serf. The lands are mortgaged to the state till 1912. The lands ceded to crown serfs are mortgaged only till 1901 . The item of ' ' niort- Paid by serfs . . . .$52.000,000 Balance due 20,ooo,ooo 626 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. gages remitted" is the amount due by nobles to the Imperial Bank and canceled. AUSTRIAN SERVITUDE (1840). Value. Labor (two days per week) $175,000.000 Tithe of crops, etc 60,000,000 Male tribute, timber 7,000,000 Female tribute, spun wool 9,000 ,000 Fowl, eggs, butter 6,000,OCO Total .'$256,000,000 There were 7,000,000 serfs, whose tribute averaged more than $35 per head, which was, in fact, the rent of their farms. Some Bohe- mian nobles had as many as 10,000 serfs. The redemption was effected by giving the nobles 5 per cent. Government scrip, and land then rose 50 per cent, in value. Average Annual Rainfall in United States. PlacS. Inches. Neah Bay, Wash 123 Sitka, Alaska -3 Ft. Haskins, Oregon 66 Mt. Vernon, Alabama... 66 Baton Rouge, Louisiana 60 Meadow Valley, Cal 57 Ft. Tonson, Indian Ter.. 57 Ft. Myers, Florida 56 Washington, Arkansas.. 54. Huntsville, Alabama 54 Natchez, Mississippi 63 New Orleans, Louisiana 51 Savannah, Georgia 4S Springdale, Kentucky. . 48 Fortress Monroe, Va 47 Memphis, Tennessee 45 Newark, New Jersey 44 Boston, Massachusetts.. 44 Brunswick, Maine 44 Cincinnati, Ohio 44 New Haven, Conn 44 Philadelphia, Pa 44 Charleston, S. Carolina. 43 Ne w York City, N.Y.... 43 Gaston, N. Carolina 43 Richmond, Indiana 43 Marietta, Ohio 43 St. Louis, Missouri 43 Muscatine, Iowa 42 Baltimore, Maryland ... 41 New Bedford, Mass 41 Providence, R.I 41 Ft. Smith, Arkansas 40 Place. Inches. Hanover, N. H 40 Ft. Vancouver, Wash 38 Cleveland, Ohio 37 Pittsburg, Pa 37 Washington, D. C 37 W. Sulphur Springs, Va.37 Ft. Gibson, Indian Ter... 36 Key West, Florida 36 I'eoria, Illinois 35 Burlington, Vermont 34 Buffalo, New York 33 Ft. Brown, Texas 33 Ft. Leavenworth, Kan... 31 Detroit, Michigan 30 Milwaukee, Wisconsin. . .30 Penn Yan, New York 28 Ft. Kearney, Neb... , 25 Ft. Snelling, Minnesota.. 25 Salt Lake City, Utah ... .23 Mackinac, Michigan 23 San Francisco, Cal 21 Dallas, Oregon 21 Sacramento, California. .21 Ft. Massachusetts, Col.. .17 Ft.Marcy, NewMex.Ter.16 Ft. Randall, Dakota 16 Ft. Defiance, Arizona 14 Ft. Craig, NewMex. Ter..ll San Diego, California 9 Ft. Colville, Wash 9 Ft. Bliss, Texas 9 Ft. Bridger, Utah 6 Ft. Garland, Colorado. . . 6 powers. The negroes believe that to carry a rabbit's foot in the pocket is not only a talisman for good luck, but is a specific for diseases. The left hind foot of the rabbit is believed to have the most efficacy, and if it be taken from a rabbit that runs in a graveyard, its super- natural properties are believed to be quite irresistible. Number of Years Seeds retain their Vitality. Vegetables. Years. Tariff. Import duties, general aver- age : Ratio to Imports. Per cent. United Kingdom 6*4 France 6% (Germany 6 Russia 18 Austria 5 Italy 11 Spain 24 Portugal 26 Holland 1 Ratio of Imports. 1'er cent. Belgium 1% Denmark 9 Sweden and Norway . 12 Europe 7 J 4 United States 33Vi Canada 15 Australia 13 Brazil 44 Argentine Republic. 37 Rabbit's Foot. The legends of " Br'er Rabbit " among the negroes, his clever devices in outwitting his natural enemies the dog, fox, and wolf and thwarting every scheme designed for his own punishment, are almost without number. From these legends of the preternatural sagacity of the living rabbit came the idea that the dead rabbit had certain magic Cucumber 8 to 10 Melon 8 to 10 Pumpkin 8 to 10 Squash 8 to 10 Broccoli 5 to 6 Cauliflower 5 to 6 Artichoke 5 to 6 Endive 5 to 6 Pea 5 to 6 Radish 4 to 5 Beets 3 to 4 Cress 3to 4 Lettuce 3 to 4 Mustard 3 to 4 Okra 3 to 4 Rhubarb 3 to 4 Spinach 3 to 4 Turnip 3 to 6 Vegetables Years. Asparagus 2to3 Beans 2 to 3 Carrots 2to3 Celery 2 to 3 Corn *(on cob) 2 to 3 Leek 2to3 Onion 2 to 3 Parsley 2 to 3 1'arsnip 2to3 Pepper 2 to 3 Tomato 2 to 3 Egg plant 1 to 2 HERBS. Anise 3 to 4 Caraway 2 Summer Savory 1 to 2 Sage 2 to 3 Acquisition of Territory. The in- crease in area of the United States, by war and treaty, is shown in the annexed table : When. How. Whence. What. Sq.Miles. 1776) 1783| ' 1803.... 1819.... 1845.... 1846.... 1846) 1848) ' 1853.... 1867.... 1898.... 1898.... 1898.... War . . . Treatv. Treaty. Union.. Treaty. War . . . Treaty. Treaty. Treaty. War . . . War . . . England . France . . Spain Mexico . . England . Mexico.. Mexico . . Russia... Hawaii . . Spain Spain ( Thirteen origi- ) \ nal States a. . } Louisiana b 820,680 899.570 66.900 318,000 308,052 522,955 45,535 580,107 6,740 3,600 120,000 Florida c Texas d Oregon ( California and ) | New Mexico e ( Gadsden Purchase/ Alaska g Porto Rico Philippines 3,092,148 a Estimated cost of War of Independence, $168,000,000. b Purchased for $15,000,000. c Cost $3,000,000. d Debt of Texas on admission into the Un.on, $7,500,- 000. e Estimated cost of the Mexican War, $15,000,000. / Cost $10,000,000. g Cost $7,200,000. The Capital of the United States has been located at different times at the fol- lowing places : At Philadelphia from Septem- ber 5, 1774, to December, 1776; at Balti- more from December 20, 1776, to March, 1777 ; at Philadelphia from March 4, 1777, to September, 1777 ; at Lancaster, Pa., from September 27, 1777, to September 30, 1777 ; at York, Pa., from September 30, 1777, to July, 1778 ; at Philadelphia from July 2, 1778, to June 30, 1783 ; at Princeton, N. J., June 30, 1783, to November 20, 1783 ; Annapolis, Md., November 26, 1783, to November 30, 1784 ; Trenton from November, 1784, to Janu- ary, 1780 ; New York from January 11, 1785, to 1790 ; then the seat of government was re- MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 627 moved to Philadelphia, where it remained until 1800, since which time it has been in Wash- ington. Wireless Telegraphy. Of the several systems for telegraphing without wires, that devised by Signer Marconi has been most before the public. Early in 1899 messages were successfully sent by this system from South Foreland, England, across the English channel to Boulogne, France, a distance of 32 miles. A full description of the apparatus used and of the experiments themselves was published in a paper by Signor Marconi, read before the Institute of Electrical Engineers of London. In September, 1899, Signor Marconi and several assistants came to America to report the international yacht races off Sandy Hook by wireless telegraphy. Sending appa- ratus were placed on two steamers which fol- lowed the yachts, and receiving apparatus were placed, one on the cable ship Mackay- Bennett, anchored near the Sandy Hook light- ship, and the other on shore at the Highlands of Navesink. Bulletins of the progress of the races were sent from the following steamers to the receiving stations, and from them by wire to the office of the New York Herald. After the yacht races, tests were made by Signor Marconi in conjunction with the Signal Corps of the United States Army and with the Navy Department. The report of the inspecting board in the Navy Department tests was quite favorable to the utility of the system for communicating between vessels at sea. The system is well adapted for use in squadron signaling under conditions of rain, fog, darkness, and motion of ship. Marconi's system has been the means of stimulating a number of investigators. Capacity of Cisterns. FOR EACH 10 INCHES IN DEPTH. Twenty-five feet in diameter holds 3059 gallons Twenty feet in diameter holds 1958 gallons Fifteen feet in diameter holds 1101 gallons JTourteen feet in diameter holds 059 gallons Thirteen feet in diameter holds 827 gallons Twelve feet in diameter holds 705 gallons Eleven feet in diameter holds 592 gallons Ten feet in diameter holds 439 gallons Nine feet in diameter holds 306 gallons Eight feet in diameter holds 313 gallons Seven feet in diameter holds 239 gallons Six and one half feet in diameter holds 206 gallons Six feet in diameter holds 176 gallons Five feet in diameter holds 122 gallons Four and one half feet in diameter holds. . . 99 gallons Four feet in diameter holds 78 gallons Three feet in diameter holds 44 gallons Two and one half feet in diameter holds 30 gallons Two feet in diameter holds 19 gallons The Roman Month was divided into Calends, Nones, &ndldes. The Calends always fell upon the first of the month ; in March, May, July, and October, the Nones on the 7th and j the Ides on the 15th, and in the remaining 1 months, the Nones on the 5th and the Ides on the 13th. The Roman year began with March, and the months corresponded with ours ex- cept that their fifth and sixth months were I called Quintilis and Sextilis. Afterwards they were changed to July and August in honor of the emperors Julius and Augustus.- The Limits of Vision vary with eleva- tion, conditions of the atmosphere, intensity of illumination, and other modifying elements in different cases. On a clear day an object one foot above a level plain may be seen at a distance of 1.31 miles; one 10 feet high, 4.15 miles ; one 20 feet high, 5.86 miles ; one 100 feet high, 13.1 miles; one a mile high, as the top of a mountain, 95.23 miles. This allows | 7 inches ; or, to be exact, 6.99 inches, for the ! curvature of the earth, and assumes that the j size and illumination of the object are suffi- cient to produce an image. Mottoes of the States. Arkansas. Regnant populi : The people rule. California. Eureka: I have found it. Colorado. Nil sine numine : Nothing without the Divinity. Connecticut. Qui transtulit sustinet : He who has transferred, sustains. Delaware. Liberty and Independence, Florida. In God is our trust. Georgia. Wisdom, Justice, Modera- tion. Illinois. State Sovereignty and Na- tional Union. Iowa. Our liberties we prize, and our rights we will maintain. Kansas. Ad astro per aspera : To the stars through rug- ged ways. Kentucky. United we stand, di- vided we fall. Louisiana. Union and Con- fidence. Maine. Dirigo: I direct. Mary- land. Crescite et multiplicamini : Increase and multiply. Massachusetts. Ense petit placidam sub libertate quietem : By her sword she seeks under liberty a calm repose. Michigan. Si quceris peninsulam amcenam circumspice : If thou seekest a beautiful peninsula, look around. Minnesota. L'Etoile du Word: The Star; of the North. Missouri. Salus populi supremo lex esto : Let the welfare of the people be the supreme law. Nebraska. Popular Sovereignty. Nevada. Volens et polens : Willing and able. New Jersey. Liberty and Independence. New York. Excelsior : Higher. Ohio. Imperium in imperio: An empire within an empire. Oregon. Alis rolat propriis : She flies with her own wings. Pennsylvania. Virtue, Liberty, Independence. Rhode Island. Hope. North Carolina. Esse quam videri : To be, rather than to seem. South Carolina. Animis opibus- que parati : Ready with our lives and property. Tennessee. Agriculture, Commerce. Ver- mont. Freedom and Unity. Virginia. Sic semper tyrannis : So be it ever to tyrants. West Virginia. Montani semper liberi : The nioun- 6V* THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. taineers are always free. Wisconsin. For- ward. United Stales. E pluribus unuin : From many, one. Annuit cceplis : God has favored the undertaking. Noi-us ordo seculorum : A new order of ages. The first named on one side of the great seal, the other two on the reverse Barrenness. One woman in 20, one man in 30 about 4 per cent. It is found that one marriage in 20 is barren 5 per cent. Among the nobility of Great Britain, 21 per cent, have no children, owing partly to intermarriage of cousins, no less than 4 per cent, being mar- ried to cousins. Meteoric Stones. A^ meteoric stone, which is described by Pliny as being as large as a wagon, fell near ^Egospotami, in Asia Minor, in 467 B. C. About A. D. 1500 a stone weighing 1,400 pounds fell in Mexico, and is now in the Smithsonian Institution at Wash- ington. The largest meteoric masses on record were heard of first by Captain Ross, the Arctic explorer, through some Esquimaux. These lay on the west coast of Greenland, and were subsequently found by the Swedish Exploring Expedition of 1870. One of them, now in the Royal Museum of Stockholm, weighs over 50,000 pounds, and is the largest specimen known. Two remarkable meteorites have fallen in Iowa within the past thirteen years. On February 12, 1875, an exceedingly bril- liant meteor, in the form of an elongated horseshoe, was seen throughout a region of at least 400 miles in length and 250 in breadth, lying in Missouri and Iowa. It is described as "without a tail, but having a sort of flow- ing jacket of flame. Detonations were heard, so violent as to shake the earth and to jar the windows like the shock of an earthquake," as it fell, at about 10.30 o'clock P. M., a few miles east of Marengo, Iowa. The ground for the space of some seven miles in length by two to four miles in breadth was strewn with fragments of this meteor, varying in weight from a few ounces to seventy-four pounds. On May 10, 1879, a large and extraordinarily lumi- nous meteor exploded with terrific noise, fol- lowed at slight intervals with less violent detonations, and struck the earth in the edge of a ravine near Estherville, Emmet County, Iowa, penetrating to a depth of fourteen feet. Within two miles other fragments were found, one of which weighed 170 pounds and another thirty-two pounds. The principal mass weighed 431 pounds. All the discovered parts aggregated about 640 pounds. The one of 170 pounds is now in the cabinet of the State Uni- versity of Minnesota. The composition of this aerolite is peculiar in many respects ; but, as in nearly all aerolites, there is a considerable proportion of iron and nickel. "Woman Suffrage. The constitution of the Colony of New Jersey granted suffrage to all inhabitants, under certain qualifications, irrespective of sex. This act was repealed, however, in 1807. The first Woman's Rights convention was held July 19, 1848, at Seneca Falls, N. Y., and its claims for women were based upon the Declaration of Independence. On October 23, 1850, a National Woman's Rights Convention was held at Worcester, Mass. From that time until 1863 the subject was agitated in America and England, but no decisive action was taken. In the latter year the American Equal Rights Association pre- sented the first petition for woman suffrage to Congress. Two years later (1868) the New England Woman Suffrage Association was formed, and the work of memorializing Legis- latures and Congress, holding conventions and circulating documents, began in earnest. By 1870 the agitation had assumed such propor- tions that the Republican Convention in Mas- sachusetts, held October 5th of that year, ad- mitted Lucy Stone and Mary A. Livermore as regularly accredited delegates. Since then sev- eral State conventions have indorsed woman suffrage. December 10, 1869, the Legislature of the territory of Wyoming granted the right of suffrage to women. The same right was granted in 1883 in the territory of Washington but has since been declared unconstitutional. Woman suffrage, limited to school elections or school meetings, has been conferred in the states of Kansas, Washington, Nebraska, New Hampshire, Texas, Vermont, Arizona, the Da- kotas. Montana, Colorado, Minnesota, Wis- consin, Massachusetts, New Jersey, Michigan, and New lork. In the two latter states the law requires that they be tax -payers. Widows and unmarried women may vote as to special district taxes in state of Idaho if they hold taxable property. In Kentucky any white widow having a child of school age is a quali- fied school voter ; if she has no child, but is a tax-payer, she may vote on the question of taxes. In Oregon widows having children an) Switzer- land. ji m 02 jjq DAXCBIAX STATES. = 1 ^l Bul- garia. Ser- via. Infantry 59,600 9,800 15,300 6,512 31,690 6,213 8,740 2,600 43,400 4,290 12,960 1,896 24,470 2,400 9,616 1,200 12,000 1,200 2,800 4,100 120,300 3,100 9,812 6,214 22,100 2,492 4,820 1,950 52,300 7,800 3,100 2,100 33,112 2,300 2,000 1,620 Cavalry Artillery Engineers and Train Total Active Armv East Indian Troops 90,212 49,273 62,546 46,000 37,686 20,100 129,426 38,840 31,362 65,300 39,032 Sanitary and Administrative Troops 17,600 *52,000 17,600 5,100 4,600 1,900 3,200 1,400 1,200 4,200 1,600 2,000 2,400 2,700 West Indian Troops Philippine Troops First Reserves 180,000 65,600 1,000,000 50,000 53,000 78,000 42,000 48,000 90,000 120,000 81,000 270,000 90,000 83,000 125,000 110,000 41,000 165,000 84,000 132,000 Second Reserves Total Peace Strength 177,412 54,343 115,046 42,286 21,300 133,626 40,440 33,362 67,700 41,732 Total War Strength 1,357,412 169,943 246,046 132,286 231,300 484,626 225,440 226,362 173,700 257,732 * Remaining in Cuba November 30, 1898. CONDITIONS OF SERVICE AND AVAILABLE STRENGTH OF POWERS. Every year the young, men who attain the age in which they are available for military service are enrolled, in advance, in every European country. These ages run generally from 21 to 45, and this time is divided up by serv- ice; first, in the active army, which answers to our regular establishment; second, in the reserve to the active army; third, in the Landwehr ; fourth, in the Landstunn, in which they are never called out, except in time of war, and then for defense of the fatherland only. Liberty Bell was cast in London in 1752 by order of the Pennsylvania Assembly, for use in their State House. The bell reached Philadelphia the follow ing year, but it cracked without any apparent reason when it was rung to test the sound, and it was necessary to have | it recast. This was done by Philadelphia workmen, and in June, 1753, it was again hung in the belfry of the State House. On July 4, 1776, when the Continental Congress declared the colonies independent of Great Britain, the bell was rung for two hours, & MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 633 the story goes, by the old bellman, who was so filled with enthusiasm and excitement that he could not stop. It was taken down when the British threatened Philadelphia in 1777, and removed to Bethlehem, Pa., but was returned to the State House in 1778, and a new steeple was built for it. A few years afterward it cracked under a stroke of the hammer, and although an attempt has been made to restore its tone by sawing the crack wider, it has been unsuccessful. During the World's Fair in New Orleans in 1885, the bell was sent there for exhibition. It left Philadelphia, January 24th, in the charge of three custodians ap- pointed by the mayor of the city, who did not leave it day or night until it was returned in June of the same year. The train carrying the bell was preceded over the entire route by a pilot engine. The following w r ords are in- scribed around it : " By order of the Assembly of the Province of Pennsylvania, for the State House, in the City of Philadelphia, 1752," and underneath, "Proclaim liberty through all the land unto all the inhabitants thereof Levit. xxv. 10." Its weight is about 2,000 pounds. Sizes of Books. The name indicates the number of pages in the sheet, thus : in a folio book, 4 pages or 2 leaves= 1 sheet; a quarto, or 4to, has 8 pages or 4 leaves to a sheet ; an octavo, or 8vo, 16 pages or 8 leaves to a sheet. In a 12mo, 24 pages or 12 leaves = one sheet, and the 18mo, 36 pages, or 18 leave's = 1 sheet, and so on. The following are the approximate sizes of books : Royal Folio 19 inches Demy 18 Super Imp. Quarto (4io) 15% Royal 4to 12V 2 Demy 4to 11V 2 Crown 4to 11 Royal Octavo 10% Me'dium 8vo 9V 2 Demy 8vo 9 Crow'n 8vo 7 1 / 2 Foolscap 8vo 7 12mo 7 16mo G l / 2 Square 16mo 4*/ 2 Royal 24mo 5V 3 Demy 24mo 5 Royal 32mo 5 Post 32mo 4 Demy 48mo 3% Boomerang is an instrument of war or of the chase used by the aborigines of Australia. It is of hard wood, of a bent form ; the shape is parabolic. It is about two and a half inches broad, a third of an inch thick, and two feet long, the extremities being rounded. The method of using this remarkable weapon is very peculiar. It is taken by one end, with the bulged side downward, and thrown for- ward as if to hit some object twenty-five yards in advance. Instead of continuing to go di- X 12 X 11 X 13 X 10 X 8V 2 X 8 X Gi/ 2 X 6 X 5'/ 2 X 4V 2 X 4 X 4 X 4 X 3V 2 X 34 X 2*i X 3 X 2V 2 X 2V 4 rectly forward, as would naturally be expected, it slowly ascends in the air, whirling round and round, and describing a curved line till it reaches a considerable height, when it begins to retrograde, and finally sweeps ovor the head of the projector and falls behind him. This surprising motion is produced by the reaction of the air upon a missile of this peculiar shape. The boomerang is one of the ancient instru- ments of war of the natives of Australia. They are said to be very dexterous in hitting birds with it the birds, being, of course, behind them, and perhaps not aware that they are ob- jects of attack. United States Census of 189O. (For Census of 1900 see page 597.) Square Popula- STATES. tion. Alabama 1,513.017 Arkansas 1,128,179 California. . . .' 1,208,130 Colorado 412,198 Connecticut 746,258 Delaware 168,493 Florida 391,422 Georgia 1,837,353 Idaho 84.385 Illinois 3,826,351 Indiana 2,192.404 Iowa 1 ,911 ,896 Kansas 1,427,096 Kentucky 1,858,635 Louisiana 1,118,587 Maine 661 ,086 Maryland 1 ,042,390 Massachusetts 2,238,943 Michigan 2,093,889 Minnesota 1,301 ,826 Mississippi 1,289,600 Missouri 2,679,184 Montana 132,159 Nebraska 1,058,910 Nevada 45,761 New Hampshire 376,530 New Jersey 1.444.933 New York" 5,997.853 North Carolina 1,617,947 North Dakota 182,719 Ohio 3,672,.''16 Oregon 313,767 Pennsylvania 5,258,014 Rhode" Island 345.S06 South Carolina 1.151 .149 South Dakota 328.808 Tennessee 1 ,7K6,fil8 Texas 2,235,523 Utah 207,905 Vermont 32.42-2 Virginia 1,655.980 Washington 34!.:>o West Virginia 762,794 Wisconsin 1,086,880 Wvoming 00.705 Delaware, Raritan, and New York Fays, TOTAL, STATES, 6I,908 ; 906 2,634,530 386 TERRITORIES. Arizona 59,620 District of Columbia 2,'Mi.:2 New Mexico 153,593 Oklahoma 61 .834 Utah 207,906 .Miles. 1904. 52,250 9 53,850 7 168,560 8 ia3.!f.'5 3 4,990 5 2.060 3 59.475 SI. Ml) 1 66,050 25 ::.;.:;.> 13 56,025 VJ.MS'I 8 40,400 48.7--0 7 33,040 4 12.210 C 8,315 68,915 12 K:..T;, 9 46,810 69.415 16 146,080 77.510 g 110.700 1 9,306 2 7,815 10 49,170 37 52,250 10 r.S i 4'. o 4 l.i HO 21 6,030 2 45.215 32 1,250 2 30,570 7 79.800 2 42.050 10 265,780 16 82,096 1 9,505 o 42,450 10 69,180 3 24,780 5 56,040 11 97,890 1 720 113,020 70 122,080 39.-I60 84,970 360,090 TOTAL, TEURITOHIES, 713,344 Excluding Alaska, Indian Ter. -- and Indians. .Grand Total, 62,622,260 Straslmrg' Clock. The celebrated as- tronomical clock of Strasburg is in the minster, or cathedral, and was originally designed by an astronomer named Isaac Habrecht, in the 634 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. early part of the sixteenth century. Previous to this time, in fact as early as 1354, Stras- burg had an astronomical clock. It was in three parts. The lower part had a universal calendar, the central part an astrolabe, and in the upper division were figures of the three Magi and the Virgin. At every hour the Magi came forward and bowed to the Virgin ; at the same time a chime was played, and a mechanical cock crew. This Clock of the Magi, as it was called, stopped in the early part of the sixteenth century, and was replaced by the clock made by Habrecht, which ran un- til 1789, when it stopped, and all attempts to put its works in order failed. In 1838 a clock- maker named Schwilgue undertook to remodel the internal machinery, and finished it in 1842. The case of the clock made by Habrecht was retained. A perpetual calendar, forming a ring around a dial thirty feet in circumference, occupies the central part of the lower division oi the clock. At midnight, December 31st, *he clock regulates itself (for the new year) ior 065 or 366 days, as the case may be even tho omission of the bissextile day every 400 years being provided for. The disk within the calendar shows the eclipses of the sun and moon, calculated for all time to come. On one side Apollo points with an arrow to the date and name of the saint for the day. On the opposite side stands Diana, the goddess of night. Above the calendar is a niche in which, on each day, the mythological deity of the day appears Apollo on Sunday, Diana on Monday, Mars on Tuesday, Mercury on Wednesday, Jupiter on Thursday, Venus on Friday, and Saturn on Saturday. Above this is a dial marking the mean time in hours and quarters, with two genii, one on each side, the one | striking the first stroke of every quarter, the other turning over the hourglass at the last stroke \ of the last quarter. Then follows an orrery, : showing the revolution of the seven visible plan- j ets around the sun, and, above, a globe givingthe j phases of the moon. Still above this, in a niche, four figures revolve around the skeleton image of Death, in the center. Childhood strikes the | first quarter, Youth the second, Manhood the third, and old Age the last Death strikes the hour. In a higher niche stands the image of our Saviour. At twelve o'clock the Twelve Apostles pass before Him in line, and He raises His hands to bless them. St. Peter closes the procession, and, as he passes, the mechanical cock on top of the case flaps his wings and crows three times. The left turret of this wonderful clock contains the weights and machinery, and has in its lower part the portrait of Schwilgue, above this the figure of Copernicus, and yet above, the muse Urania. At the foot of the case is a celestial globe, calculated for observa- tion at the latitude of Strasburg. The clock is wound up every eight days. The mythical story of the city fathers of Strasburg putting out the eyes of the clockmaker to prevent his build- ing a similar clock refers to Isaac Habrecht. Age. A man's working life is divided into four decades : 20 to 30, bronze ; 30 to 40, silver ; 40 to 50, gold; 50 to 60, iron. Intellect and judgment are strongest between 40 and 50. The percentages of population to age in various countries are shown thus : COrNTRT. PERCENTAGE OF POPULATION. Average age of all living, Years. Under 20 Years. From 20 to 80 Over 80. United States... England 50 46 46 46 36 43 44 43 48 42 46 40 43 42 43 43 a 47 45 43 52 49 49 50 47 52 45 50 49 50 49 48 5 7 9 11 12 8 7 7 5 ' 6 9 10 8 8 8 9 24.9 27.1 27.4 28.6 32.2 28.0 27.6 27.7 25.5 27.2 27.a 29.7 28.3 28.4 28.0 28.0 Scotland Ireland France . . Germany Italy . . . .* Austria Greece Spain Brazil Belgium . .... Holland Denmark Sweden ... Norway The Americans are the youngest, the French the oldest. Garter, Order of The, was founded in 1344, some writers say 1350, by Edward III. The original number of knights was twenty- five, his majesty himself making the twenty- sixth. It was founded in honor of the Holy Trinity, the Virgin Mary, St. Edward the Confessor, and St. George. The last, who had become the tutelary saint of England, was considered its special patron, and for this rea- son it has alway borne the title of ' ' The Order of St. George," as well as that of " The Gar- ter." The emblem of the order is a dark blue ribbon, edged with gold, bearing the motto, Honisoit qui mal ypense, in golden letters, with a buckle and pendant of gold richly chased. It is worn on the left leg below the knee. Regarding the adoption of this emblem and motto, the story is that the Countess of Salis- bury let fall her garter when dancing with the king, and that he picked it up and tied it round his own leg, but that, observing the jealous glances of the queen, he restored it to its fair owner, with the exclamation, Honi soil qui mal y pense. The Order of the Garter, though not the most ancient, is one of the most famous military orders of Europe. It is said to have been devised for the purpose of attracting to the king's party such soldiers of fortune as might be likely to aid in asserting the claim which he was then making to the crown of France, and intended as an imitation of King MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 635 Arthur's Round Table. The officers of the order are the Prelate, the Chancellor, the Reg- ister, the Garter King of Arms, and the Usher of the Black Rod. Number of Miles from New York to Adrian, Mich 775 Akron.Ohio 610 Albany, N.Y 143 Alexandria, Va 238 Algiers, La 1,651 Allegheny, Pa 434 Allentown.Pa 92 Alton, 111 1,060 Annapolis, Md 222 Ann Arbor, Mich 716 Atchison, Kan 1,368 Atlanta, Ga 1,018 Auburn, N. Y 328 Augusta, Me 407 Augusta, Ga 887 Aurora.Ill 951 Baltimore, Md 188 Bangor, Me 482 Bath, Me 382 Baton Rouge, La 1,320 Belfast, Me 424 Belief ontaine, Ohio.. 658 Binghamton, N. Y... 215 Blackstone, Mass 272 Bloomington, 111 1,037 Boston, Mass 236 Bristol, R.I 215 Bucyrus, Ohio 632 Buffalo, N.Y 433 Burlington, N. J 74 Burlington, Iowa 1,122 Burlington, Vt 280 Cambridge, Mass 239 Camden.N. J 91 Canandaigua, N. Y... 377 Carson City, Nevada. 2,800 Chambersburg, Pa... 246 Charleston, S. C 874 Charlestown, Mass. . . 235 Chattanooga, Tenn... 980 Chicago, 111 911 Chillicothe, Ohio 645 Cincinnati, Ohio 744 Circleville, Ohio 640 Cleveland, Ohio 581 Columbia, S. C 744 Columbus, Ohio 624 Concord, N. H 308 Covington, Ky 745 Cumberland, Md 364 Davenport, Iowa 1,093 Dayton, Ohio 804 Denver, Col 1,980 Des Moines, Iowa 1,251 Detroit, Mich 679 Dover, N. H 304 Dubuque, Iowa 1,100 Dunkirk, N. Y 460 Elmira, N.Y 274 Erie, Pa. 508 Evansville, Ind 1,021 Fall River, Mass 180 Fitchburg, Mass 218 Fort Kearney, Neb... 1,598 Fort Wavne, Ind 763 Fredericksburg, Va. . 296 Galena, 111 1,083 Galesburg, 111 1,076 Galveston.Tex 1,900 Georgetown, D. C 228 Hamilton, Ohio 766 Harrisburg, Pa 182 Hartford, Conn 112 Hudson, N.Y 115 Indianapolis, Ind 838 Jackson, Miss 1,498 Jefferson City, Mo... 1,210 Kalamazoo, Midi 822 Kansas City, Mo 1,361 Kingston, N.Y 88 Lafayette, Ind Lansing, Mich Lawrence, Mass Leaven worth, Kan. . . Lexington, Ky Lexington, Mo Little Rock, Ark Lockport, N. Y Louisville, Ky Lowell, Mass Lynchburg, Va Macon, Ga Madison, Wis Memphis, Tenn Milledgeville, Ga Milwaukee, "Wis Mobile, Ala Montgomery, Ala Montpelier, Vt Nashua, N. H Nashville, Tenn New Albany, Ind New Bedford, Mass.. New Brunswick, N. J.. Newburgh, N. Y New Haven, Conn New Orleans. La Newport, Ky Newport, R. I Norwalk, Conn Omaha, Neb Oswego, N. Y Paterson.N. J Peoria.Ill Petersburg, Va Philadelphia, Pa Pittsburg, Pa Portland, Me Providence, R. I Quincy, 111 Racine, Wis Raleigh, N. C Reading, Pa Richmond, Va Rochester, N. Y Rock Island, 111 Rome,N. Y Roxbury , Mass Sacramento, Cal St. Joseph, Mo St. Louis, Mo St. Paul, Minn Salem, Mass Salt Lake City, Utah. San Francisco, Cal Sandusky , Ohio Saratoga, N.Y Savannah, Ga Scranton, Pa Springfield, 111 Springfield, Mass Springfield, Ohio Staunton, Va Stonington, Conn .... Syracuse, N. Y Taunton, Mass Tallahassee, Fla Terre Haute, Ind Toledo, Ohio Tonawanda, N. Y Trenton, N. J Troy, N. Y Utica.N. Y Vicksburg, Miss Washington, D. C.... Wheeling, W. Va Wilmington, Del Wilmington, N. <' Worcester, Mass 903 785 262 1,385 840 1,354 1,430 507 900 261 404 1,121 1,049 1.289 1,100 996 1.370 1,193 454 275 1,085 903 181 32 53 76 1,550 744 162 45 1,455 237 17 1,072 378 88 431 3W 193 1.176 076 G69 128 .556 386 1,093 264 238 2,900 1,384 1,084 1,441 252 2,410 3,038 642 182 974 142 1,062 138 828 486 143 :f02 210 1,190 !>12 742 463 58 148 237 1,542 230 522 116 004 Number of Miles by Water from New York to Amsterdam 3,510 Bermuda 060 Bombay 11,574 Boston 310 Buenos Ayres 7,110 Calcutta 12,425 Canton 13,900 Cape Horn 8,116 Cape of Good Hope. 6,830 Kingston 1,640 Lima 11,310 Liverpool 3,210 London 3,375 Madras 11,850 Naples 4,330 New Orleans 2,045 Panama 2,358 Pekin 15,325 Philadelphia 240 Charleston 750 Columbia River 15,965 i Quebec ."........ ."."."." 1,466 Constantinople 5,140 I Rio Janeiro 3,840 Dublin 3,225 Round the Globe.... 25,000 Gibraltar 3,300 j Sandwich Islands. . . 15,300 San Francisco 15,858 Halifax Hamburg . 612 3,775 Havana 1,420 Havre 3,210 | Washington St. Petersburg 4,420 Valparaiso 9,750 400 Patents Issued Since 1852. Year PATENTS ASK CERTIFICATES OF REGISTRATION ISSUED Patents Designs Reis- sues Total Patents Trade- marks Labels Total Certifi- cate* 1852 890 109 20 1,019 1860 4,363 183 232 4,778 ___ 1870 12,157 737 439 13,333 121 1'21 1880 12,926 515 506 13,947 349 203 562 1890 25,322 886 84 26,292 1,416 304 1,719 1891 22,328 836 80 23,244 1,762 137 1,899 1892 22,661 817 81 23,559 1,737 6 1,743 1893 22,768 902 99 23,769 1,677 1,677 1894 19,875 928 64 28,867 1,806 1.806 1895 20,883 1.115 59 22,057 1,829 3 1,832 1896 21.867 1,445 61 23,273 1,813 1 1 1,846 1897 2-J.098 1,631 66 23,794 1,671 14 i 1,701 1898 20,404 1,803 60 22,267 1.238 ^00 1.47:< 1899 f 3,296 2,139 92 25,527 1,649 511 2,260 1900 14,660 1,758 81 26,499 1,721 737 2,061 NOTF. The number of patents granted prior to the commencement of this series of numbering (July 28, 1836) W!VS 9957. Tho whole number of original patents, in- cluding designs, issued up to Jan. 1, 1901, was 698,638. Scales of Different Thermometers. IIi-Miiiiinr. Onticrade. Fahrenheit. Water Boils. 80 100- 212 (Bar. at 30 Inch.) 76 95 203 72 90 194 68 85 185 63 '/ 3 79% 174 Alcohol Boils. 60 75 167 56 70 158 52 66 149 48 60 140 44 65 131 43 63 127 Tallow Melts. 40 50 1**2 36 45 113 34 42 ''i 108 32 40 104 Fever Heat. 29 37 98 Blood Heat. 28 36 96 25% 321 i 90 24 30 86 21 -i 26'.i 80 36 77 19 24 76 Summer Heat. 16 20 68 13'i 17*4 63 12 16 69 10 8 18 10 66 60 Temperate. Temp, of Spring n 45 Water. 1 p 40 35 636 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. 4 -5V 2 8 10 12 14 16 19 20 23 26 28 30 32 -103 5 7 -10 -12i/ 2 15 18 20 24 25 29 32 35 37 40 -130 32 "Water Freezes, 23 20 Wine Freezes. 14 10 5 Zero, Fahr. 4 10 13 20 25 31 35 40 Mercury Freezes. -200 Pure Alcohol Freezes. K"o. Brick Required to Construct Building. (Reckoning 7 Brick to each superficial foot.) any Superficial Feet of Wall. Number of Bricks to Thickness of 4 inch. 8 inch. 12 inch. 16 inch. 20 inch. 24 inch 1 7 15 23 30 38 45 53 60 68 75 150 225 300 375 450 525 600 675 760 1,500 2,250 3,000 3,750 4,500 5,250 6,000 6,750 7,500 15 30 45 60 75 90 105 120 135 150 300 450 600 750 900 1,050 1,200 1.350 1,500 3,000 4,500 6,000 7,500 9,000 10,500 12,000 13,500 15,000 23 45 68 90 113 135 158 180 203 225 450 675 900 1,125 1,350 1,575 1,800 2,025 2,250 4,500 6,750 9,000 11,250 13,500 15,750 18.000 20,250 22,500 30 60 90 120 150 180 210 240 270 300 600 900 1,200 1,500 1,800 2,100 2,400 2,700 3,000 6,000 9,000 12,000 15,000 18,000 21,000 24,000 27,000 30,000 38 75 113 150 188 225 263 300 338 375 750 1,125 1,500 1,875 2,250 2,625 3,000 3,375 3,750 7.500 11,250 15,000 18,750 22,500 26,250 30,000 33,750 37,500 45 90 135 180 225 i 270 ! 315 360 405 450 900 1,350 ' 1,800 ; 2,250 2,700 ! 3.150 : 3,600 i 4,050 4,500 ; 9,000 13.500 18,000 i 22,500 27,000 31.500 36,000 40,500 45,000 2 3 4 6 6 7 8 9 10 20 30 40 60 60 . . 70 80 90 100 200 300 400 SCO 600 7l0 800 900 1000 Comparative Yield of Various Grains, Vegetables, and Fruits. Lbs. per acre.] Lbs. per acre. Hops... 44'2 Grass 7.000 Wheat... 1,260 Carrots Potatoe Apples Turnip Cinque Vetcbe "'abbas Parsnir Mangel . 6,800 Barley. . . 1,600 8 . . 7,500 Oats 1,840 . 8,000 Pease . . . 1,920 . 8 420 Beans. . . . 2,000 foil gra j, greer ss . 9,600 . 9,800 Plums ... 2,000 Cherries. 2,000 10 900 Onions . . 2,800 s -Wurze 1 .11,200 >2 000 Hav... 4,000 Pears . . . ...5.000 Yellowstone Park is situated, the greater part, in Wyoming, the remainder partly in Montana and partly in Idaho, and comprises 3,575 square miles. The adaptability of this section of the country to the purposes of a national park was first brought prominently before the public by a company of surveyors who visited the region in the year 1809. In 1870 and 1871 the territory was again ex- plored by scientific expeditions, and the re- ports of the first visitors were confirmed. The expedition of 1871 was headed by Profes- sor Hayden, and upon his representations an act was passed by Congress, and approved March 1, 1872, by which what is now known as the Yellowstone National Park was "re- served and withdrawn from settlement, occu- pancy, or sale, and dedicated and set apart as a public park or pleasure-ground for the benefit and enjoyment of the people. ' ' This great park contains the most striking of all the mountains, gorges, falls, rivers, and lakes in the whole Yellowstone region. The mountain ranges rise to the height of from 10,000 to 12,000 feet, and are always covered with snow. The banks of the Yellowstone river abound with ravines and canyons, which are carved out of the heart of the mountains through the hardest rocks. The most remarkable of these is the canyon of Tower Creek and Column Mountain, which is about ten miles in length, and is so deep and gloomy that it is called " The Devil's Den." The Grand Canyon, which begins where Tower Creek ends, is twenty miles in length, is im- passable throughout, and is inaccessible at the water's edge except at a few points, and its depth is so profound that no sound ever reaches the ear from the bottom. The Park contains a great multitude of hot springs of sulphur, sulphate of copper, alum, etc. There are at least 50 geysers that throw columns of water to the height of from 50 to 200 feet, and the falls of this wonderland are considered marvelous. The altitude of the entire Park is 6,000 feet or more above the sea level. Aqueducts, Among modern works the most famous are : Length. Million gal's Miles. daily. Croton (New York) 41 88 Madrid 47 40 Marseilles 51 60 Glasgow 34 50 Washington 16 90 Rome, in the time of the Caesars, had nine aqueducts, measuring 249 miles in the aggre- gate, and with a daily capacity of 320,000,000 gallons, or 200 gallons per inhabitant. The great aqueduct of Peru, built by the Incas, was 360 miles long. Watches of the Night. The Jews, like the Greeks and Romans, says the Rev. Dr. William Smith in his " Bible Dictionary," divided the night into watches instead of hours, each watch representing the period for which sentinels or pickets remained on duty. The proper Jewish reckoning recogni/ed only three such watches, entitled the first or "beginning of the watches " (Lamentations ii, 19), the middle watch (Judges vii, 19), and the morn- ing watch (Exodus xiv, 24 ; T Samuel xi, 11). These would last, respectively, from sunset to ten o'clock r. M.. from ten o'clock p, M. to Cost. $9,000,000 11,500,000 2,250,000 7,775,000 MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 837 two o'clock A. M., and from two o'clock A. M. to sunrise. After the establishment of the Roman supremacy the number of the watches was increased to four, which were described either according to their numerical order, as in the case of the " fourth watch " (Matthew xiv, 25), or by the terms "even," "midnight," " cockcrowing, " and " morning " (Mark xiii, 35). These terminated, respectively, at nine o'clock P. M., midnight, three o'clock A. M., and six o'clock A. M. Walkyries. The name " Walkyries " is derived from the old Norse val, which signifies a heap of slaughtered men, and kjora, to choose. In the Scandinavian mythology the Walkyries, also called battle-maidens, shield- maidens, and wish-maidens, are beautiful young women, who, adorned with golden orna- ments, ride through the air in brilliant armor, order battles and distribute the death-lots ac- cording to Odin's command. Fertilizing dew- drops on the ground from the manes of their horses, light streams from the points of their lances, and a nickering brightness announce their arrival in the battle. They rejoice the glazing eye of the hero with their charming glances, and lead him to Walhalla, where they act as his cup-bearers. Some of the Walky- ries spring from elves and other superhuman beings ; some, also, are the daughters of princes. They ride generally in companies of three, or of three times three, or four times three, and have the gift of changing them- selves into swans. Whoever deprives a Walky- rie of her swan-robe gets her into his power. Mourning 1 Customs. From the earliest times the manner of expressing grief at death has differed in different countries. The He- brew period of mourning was usually seven days ; but in some instances, as at the death of Moses and Aaron, it was extended to thirty days. The mourners tore their clothing, cut off the hair and beard, strewed ashes on their heads, and cast themselves on the ground, weeping and smiting their breasts. The Greeks mourned thirty days, except in Sparta, where the mourning period was limited to ten days, and wore coarse black garments, cut off their hair, and secluded themselves from the public gaze. In the event of the death of a great general, the whole army cut off their hair, and also the manes of their horses. The Roman mourning period lasted only a few days ; but if the death was that of some great ruler or general, all business was stopped, and the forum and the schools were closed. Among the Fiji Island- ers the women are required to burn their bodies on the death of a chief, and in the Sandwich Islands the people go into mourning by knocking out the front teeth and by paint- ing the lower part of the face black. The mourning color among the Romans under the republic was black or dark blue for both sexes, but during the empire the women wore white. In Europe and America the color is black ; in Turkey, it is violet ; in China, white ; in Egypt, yellow ; in Ethiopia, brown. It is customary for the courts in all European countries to go into mourning on the occasion of the death of a member of a royal family. The custom of draping buildings on the death of a great man or a hero of national reputation has always prevailed in the United States. Natural Gas. The earliest use of natu- ral gas of which there is any record is in China, where for centuries it has been con- veyed from fissures in salt-mines to the surface through hollow bamboos and used for burning purposes. There are also places in Asia, near the Caspian Sea, where it is seen to issue from the earth, and a similar phenomenon is to be seen in the Szalatna salt-mine in Hungary. The first discovery of natural gas made in America was in the neighborhood of Fredonia, Chautauqua County, New York, early in this century. In 1821 a small well was bored in the village and the gas was conducted through pipes to the houses and used for illuminating purposes, and, on the occasion of Lafayette's visit in 1824, it is said that the village was illuminated with this gas. Although this dis- covery was widely known it did not lead to any further experiments, either in the neighbor- hood or in other places, till fully twenty years after. In the early part of the present century it was found that the wells which were bored for' salt in the Kanawha Valley yielded large quantities of gas, but it was not utilized as fuel until 1841. In 1865, a well which was sunk for petroleum at West Bloomfield, New York, struck a flow of natural gas. An effort was made to utilize this, and it was carried in a wooden main to the city of Rochester, a dis- tance of twenty-four miles, in 1870, for the purpose of illuminating the city, but the ex- periment was a failure. In 1873, a well in Armstrong County, Pennsylvania, was so ar- ranged that the gas could be separated from the water with which it was discharged, and conveyed through pipes to several mills in that vicinity, where it was extensively used for manufacturing purposes for the first time. From that date to the present day the use of natural gas, both for fuel and illuminating, has increased very rapidly, it having been discov- ered in other parts of "Pennsylvania, Ohio, and Indiana. Associated Press was organized about thirty years ago by the following New York city papers ; Herald, Tribune, World, Times. 638 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS, Sun, Evening Express, and Journal of Com- merce, for the purpose of facilitating the col- lection of news. The general agent of the Association is located in New York, and asso- ciate agents in Chicago, Washington, Cincin- nati, and other news centers. There is also a complete reportorial staff, and the news col- lected is used not only by the syndicate of pa- pers, but is transmitted by telegraph to others in almost every city in the country who have secured the privilege by purchase. All Fools' Day. The origin of the cus- tom of April fooling cannot be traced with any degree of certainty. In the literature of the last century there are found many references to it, and yet beyond that it is scarcely possible to go. One suggestion is that the custom of playing tricks on the first day of April was derived from some ancient pagan custom, such as the Huli festival among the Hindoos, or the Roman Feast of the Fools. One fact, how- ever, we do know, and that is that the practice prevails in many countries, under various names, which would seem to indicate that it dates away back to the early history of the race. Palmistry. The art of studying the lines in the palm, to discover the character and fortunes of a person, was practiced in ancient India and Greece. The subject was noticed by Aristotle, Pliny, Paracelsus, Albertus Magnus, and Cardan. A work by Johann llartlieb was published in Augsburg, in 1475. M. le capitaine d'Arpentigny and M. Adrien Desbarrolles are chief modern authorities. L. Cotton's " Palmistry " was published in 1890, and Dr. Francis Galton published his study of " Finger Prints " in 1893. Pavements. The Carthaginians are said to have been the fir.it who paved their towns with stones. The Romans, in the time of Augustus, had pavement in many of their streets ; the Appian way. a paved road, was constructed 312 B. C. In England there were few paved streets before the time of Henry VII. London was first paved about 1533. It was paved with flagstones between 1815 and 1825. Among modern paving materials are brick, stone, wood, asphaltum, and many kinds of concrete. Bookkeeping. The system by double entry, called originally Italian bookkeeping, was taken from the course of algebra pub- lished by Burgo, in the fifteenth century, at Venice. John (iowghe, a printer, published a treatise on ''Debitor and Creditor," in London, 1543. This waa the earliest English work on bookkeeping, and the forerunner of many improved efforts. Democrats, advocates of government by the people themselves, is a term first adopted by the French republicans in 1790 ; they termed their opponents aristocrats. The name Democrats was also adopted by the pro- slavery party in the United States, and the abolitionists were called Republicans. Into these two parties a number of smaller ones were absorbed at the presidential election in 1856. The Twentieth Century began at mid- night of December 31, 1900 ; the year 1901 is therefore the first year of the century. It will contain 25 leap years, and will have 36,525 days, which are equal to 5,218 weeks, lacking one day. It began on Tuesday, and will end on Sunday. February will have five Sundays in 1920, 1948, and 1976. Sizes of Paper. FOLDED. Billet Note 6 Octavo Note 7 Commercial Note. 8 Packet Note. 8 L Letter 10 x 16 9 [Com'rcial Letter. 11 x 17 x 10 | Packet Post Iiy 2 x 18 x 11 | Foolscap 12 l / 2 x 16 Bath Note 8V 2 x 14 Hills in an Acre of Ground. 40 feet apart 27 hills 35 . 48 . 69 .108 .193 .302 .435 8 feet apart O 5 680 hills 1.210 1,732 3,566 4,840 6,969 10.890 43,560 The Wedding Anniversary. At end of First Year comes the Cotton Wedding Second Year. Paper Wedding Third Year Leather Wedding Fifth Year Wooden Wedding Seventh Year Woolen Wedding Tenth Year Tin Wedding Twelfth Year Silk and Fine Linen Wedding Fifteenth Year Crystal Wedding Twentieth Year China Wedding Twenty-fifth Year Silver Wedding Thirtieth Year Pearl Wedding Fortieth Year Ruby Wedding Fiftieth Year Golden Wedding Seventy-fifth Year Diamond Wedding Pensions. The total number of pension- ers classified and compared for the years 1898 and 1897 are as follow : 1898 1897 Widows, Revolutionary soldiers Daughters, Revolutionary soldiers 7 9 Survivors of War of 1812 3 7 Widows, War of 1812 2,407 2,810 Survivors, Indian wars, 1832-'42 2,019 2,373 Widows, Indian wars, 1832- '42 4,067 4,2?8 Survivors, Mexican War | 10,012 10,922 Widows, Mexican War 8,143 8,072 Under general laws : Armvinvalids 327,080 336,299 Widows, army 92.54B **,602 Navv invalids 4 ' 833 4 - 188 Widows, navy 2,300 2,375 Actof.T une 27, 1890: MO w r-a ana Army invalids 399.366 3,8.609 Armywidows Navy invalids Navy widows 'iT3 '~ Army nurses _ Total 993,714 976,014 MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 639 Paper Table for Printers' and Pub- lishers' TJse. Showing the quantity of paper required for' printing 1,000 copies (in- cluding 56 extra copies to allow for wastage), of any usual size book, from 8vo down to 32mo. If the quantity required is not found in the table, double or treble some suitable number of pages or quantity of paper. er of Parliament, and in 1791 a bill forbidding the further importation of slaves was offered by Wilberforce in Parliament, but was not passed. The conquest of the Dutch colonies in America by the British led to such an in- crease in the British slave-trade that in 1805 the traffic was forbidden in the conquered colo- ; and in 1806 the friends of emancipation gained still another step by the passage of an act forbidding British subjects to engage in the trade, and the following year a general aboli- tion bill making all slave-trade illegal afte.' January 1, 1808, was adopted by Parliament. This, however, did not have the desired effect, as British subjects still continued the trade under the flags of other nations. So, in 1811, it was made a felony, punishable with im- prisonment at hard labor or transportation ; and subsequent laws made it piracy, to be. 649 punished with transportation far life. From this time until the passage of the Emancipa- tion bin the subject was continually pressed upon the attention of Parliament. Slavery -rtirtml in Great Britain in Saxon and Norman times, when the peasantry were sold in the Art like cattle for exportation, and were looted upon as mere chattels, to be bought and old with the land upon which they toiled. In Scotland, even as late as 1780, a law existed which compelled colliers, on entering a mine, to perpetual service there, the right to their labor passing with the mine to an inheritor or purchaser, and their children being in like j manner attached to the mine, and forbidden under severe penalty to seek other employment. Trojan War. The legend regarding the Trojan war has, undoubtedly, a historical ori- gin, in the fact of the actual destruction Troy by a Grecian military expedition. About ; 1194- '4 B. C., according to the traditions, Paris, one of the sons of Priam, enticed Helen, .. the beautiful wife of Menelans, King of Sparta. away from her husband, and, at the call of Menelans all the heroes of Greece flew to arms to avenge this wrong. The Grecian host num- bered 100,000 warriors, among whom were Ulysses, Achilles, Ajax, Diomed, and Aga- ' memnon, who, as brother of Menelans, was chosen to lead the expedition. The siege of , the city of Priam lasted ten years. Finally the Greeks, by the device of Ulysses, built an im- , mense wooden horse, in which they concealed a number of their warriors, and left it on the plain in sight of the city, and then retired to their ships as though abandoning the siege. The i Trojans, believing that the statue was left as a propitiatory offering to their gods, carried it within their walls, and at night the concealed warriors issued from the horse and opened the gates of the city to their returned comrade?. and Troy was sacked and burned. The king and all his sons were killed ; in fact, according , to the legend, JEneas, and his father, Anchises, and a few devoted followers, were the only ones to escape, and these, after long wanderings by sea and land, finally settled on the shores of Etruria, in Italy. The battles which were fought before the walls of Troy have been immortalized ' by Homer in the ' * Iliad. ' ' Bride, Throwing Shoe after. The custom of throwing a shoe after a departing bride and groom originated so far back in the dim and mystical past that the memory of man stretcheth not back to its beginning. It is by j some thought to typify an assault, and is a lingering trace of the custom among savage nations of carrying away the bride by violence. Others claim that it has a likeness to a Jewish custom mentioned in the Bible, Thus, in Ruth, when the kinsman of Boaz gave up his claim to the inheritance of Ruth, and to Ruth also, he indicated his assent by plucking off his shoe and giving it to Boaz. Also, we read in Deuteronomy that when the brother of a dead man refused to marry his widow she as- serted her independence of him by " loosing his shoe." Captain fiidd was born in Scotland, and took to the sea when a mere boy. In 1695 a company composed of leading gentlemen in Great Britain and in the Colonies was formed to make a business of privateering and reap the profits, which were known to be immense. The "Adventure," a galley of 287 tons, quite a large vessel for those days, was purchased, and the command given to Kidd, who sailed with two commissions, one of which empow- ered him to act against the French, and the other to cruise against pirates. Besides these commissions under the Great Seal, he had the ordinary letters of marque from the Commis- sioners of the Admiralty. The king was to have one tenth of all the booty, and the rest was to be divided between the shareholders and Kidd in certain specified proportions. A por- tion was to be appropriated to the crew, who were to receive no regular pay. Eidd left Plym- outh April 23, 1696, captured a French fish- ing vessel off Newfoundland, and in July reached New York, where he remained until September, when he sailed for Madagascar, then one of the strongholds of the buccaneers. In January of the following year he arrived at the island, and in 1698 reports were abroad in England that he had raised the black flag, and orders were dispatched to the effect that he be apprehended should he come within reach. April, 1699, found him in the West Indies, whither he had gone in a vessel called the " Quidah Merchant." This he secured in a lagoon in the island of Saona, near Hayti. and re-embarked in a small sloop named the ' San Antonio," for the Colonies of America. He sailed up Long Island Sound to Oyster Bay, after making a landing in Delaware Bay, and there took aboard a New York lawyer named James Emott, whom he afterward sent to Boston to the Earl of Bellamont, who had be- come governor of the Colonies. Emott was Kidd's advance agent, sent forward to ascer- tain how the privateersman would be received. While the lawyer was absent on this mission, Kidd buried some bales of goods and treasure on Gardiner's Island. To the inquiries of the New York lawyer Bellamont made evasive answers, and then later induced Kidd to pro- ceed to Boston, whre he landed July 1, 1699. Five days later, Kidd, who was examined by the Council, was sent to England, whre h MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. 841 was given something of the form of a trial. He was permitted to have no counsel, was not allowed to send for papers or witnesses, and was, of course, found guilty of piracy and of the murder of one of his crew, and was hanged at Execution Dock, with nine of his associates. Bellamont fitted out another vessel to go in search of the " Quidah Merchant," but news came before the search began that the latter had been stripped and burned by the men left with it by Kidd. The treasure which was secured on Gardiner's Island, with what was found with Kidd on the " San Antonio," amounted to $70,000. Bridge of Sighs is the bridge connect- ing the palace of the Doge with the state prison in Venice. It was so called because prisoners once having crossed it from the , Judgment Hall were never seen again, and it was supposed that many of them were dropped through a trap-door into the dark and deep waters of the canal flowing beneath. Scarabaeus, a peculiar beetle held sacred by the Egyptians. Several mystical ideas were attributed to it ; the number of its toes, 30, symbolized the days of the month ; the time it deposited its ball, which contained its eggs, j was supposed to refer to the lunar month ; the movement of the clay-ball referred to the action of the sun on the earth, and personified that luminary. It was supposed to be only of I the male sex, hence it signified the self-exist- ent, self-begotten generation, or metamorphosis, and the male or paternal principle of nature. In this sense it appears on the head of the Pygmaean deity Ptah-Socharis Osiris, the Demiurgos, and in astronomical scenes and sepulchral formulas. In connection with the Egyptian notions, the Gnostics and some of the Fathers called Christ the scarabaeus. The j insect during its life was worshiped and after death embalmed. Tammany, Society of, or Columbian Order, was formed in 1789, being the effect of a popular movement in New York, having pri- marily in view a counterweight to the so-called "aristocratic" Society of the Cincinnati. It was essentially anti-Federalist or Democratic in its character, and its chief founder was Wil- liam Mooney, an upholsterer, and a native-born American of Irish extraction. It took its title from a noted, ancient, wise, and friendly chief of the Delaware tribe of Indians, named Tam- many, who had, for the want of a better subject, been canonized by the soldiers of the Revolu- tion as the American patron saint. The first meeting was held May 12, 1789. The act of incorporation was passed in 1805. The Grand Sachem and thirteen Sachems were designed to typify the President and the Governors of the thirteen original States. The society is nominally a charitable and social organization, and is distinct from the general committee of the Tammany Democracy, which is a political organization. Salutation, Forms of The custom of shaking hands, which is the most common among civilized nations, conies undoubtedly from remote barbarism, when two men, meet- ing, gave each other their weapon hands as a security against treachery or sudden attack. In the East and among the Slavic nations the character of salutations is quite different. Among the Persians, the custom of throwing one's self upon the ground and kissing the feet of the monarch prevails. In China, an inferior upon horseback meeting a superior dismounts and waits until the latter has passed. In Japan the inferior removes his sandals when meeting his superior, crosses his hands by placing the right hand in the left sleeve, and, with a slow, rocking motion of his body, cries out, " Augh ! Augh ! " (Do not hurt me.) In Siam, the inferior throws himself upon the ground before his superior ; the latter sends forward one of his slaves to see whether the former has been eating anything, or car- ries with him any smell at all offensive. If he does, he is immediately kicked out without ceremony ; but if not, the attendant raises him up. In Ceylon, the inferior, on meeting a superior, throws himself upon the ground, re- peating the name and dignity of the latter. Among some tribes of the American Indians the custom is to salute by rubbing noses together. This form is also common in the Friendly and Society Islands, where it is re- turned by each taking the hand of the other and rubbing it upon his own nose and mouth. The Moors of Morocco ride at full speed toward a stranger, as if they intended to run him down, and, on arriving near, suddenly stop and fire a pistol over his head. The Arabians shake hands six or eight times ; but if persons of distinction they embrace and kiss several times, also kissing their own hands. In Tur- key, it is the custom to place the hand upon the breast and bow to the person saluted. In Burmah, when a gentleman meets a lady or another gentleman he applies his mouth and nose closely to their cheek and draws in a long breath, as* if smelling a delightful perfume with both mouth and nose. In the greater portion of Germany it is an act of politeness to kiss the hand of a lady ; but this privilege is allowed in Italy only to near relatives, while in Russia it is extended to kissing the fore- head. On the European continent, it is usual for men who are intimate friends to kiss one another. The Pelew Island inhabitant* grasp 642 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. either the hand or foot of the one they wish to salute and rub their faces against it ; -while Yemen persons of rank permit their fingers to be kissed, after long refusal. Nihilism. The term "Nihilist" was prob- ably first used by the Russian novelist Tur- j geneff, and was given to the party now known as Nihilists ,in derision, because its members sought the destruction of all existing order and government without proposing and appar- ently without intending to substitute any de- fined scheme or organization in its place. The earliest advocate of this doctrine was Michael Bakunin, who, as early as 1847, advocated a Russian republic, and in 1868 founded the "International Alliance of Revolution," a secret society having for its object a popular uprising against all monarchical governments. This society was undoubtedly the parent of the many secret organizations that have since sprung into existence throughout Europe. Though Alexander II. introduced a much more liberal policy than any of his predecessors, it came so far short of the desires of the party of progress that the spirit of discontent seemed stimulated, and the existence of a revolution- ary conspiracy was proved in 1877, when, after a great trial lasting eighteen months, 135 per- sons out of 183 arrested were found to belong to such an organization. In 1878, when Vera Sassulitch shot General Trepoff, chief of the secret police, the Nihilists began to attract at- tention as a really formidable society. Her ac- quittal was followed by a aeries of outbreaks and assassinations which were only checked after the Czar himself had fallen at the hands of a Nihilist assassin. The doctrines and objects of the Nihilists must be taken from the decla- rations of their leaders. Bakunin, in a speech at Geneva in 1868, announced that he was the bearer of a new gospel, whose mission was to destroy the lie at the beginning of which was God. Having got rid of this belief, the next lie to be destroyed was riijltt, a fiction invented by might to strengthen her power. " Our first work," he said, " must be destruction of every- thing as it now exists, the good and the bad ; for, if but an atom of this old world remains, the new will never be created." Bacteria is the name given to certain forms found in animal and vegetable fluids be- cause of their shape, and is derived from a Greek word meaning a club. They are mere points of organized matter, and constitute the lowest form of organic life. They are found in the sap of plants, in the blood of man and of the lower animals, and are abundant in eggs. They bear an important part in healthy as well as morbid processes, in the ripening of fruit as well as decay. They also exist in sus- pension in the air, and the festering of an open sore is occasioned by the entrance of bacteria from the surrounding air. They also act as powerful organic ferments in the transforma- tion of starch into sugar, of sugar-cane into glucose, etc. Temperature and Rainfall of Foreign Cities. CITIES. Mean Annual Temper- ature. Annual Average Rainfall, Inches. CITIES. Mean Annual Temper- ature. Annual Average Rainfall, Inches. CITIES. Mean Annual Temper- ature. Annual Average Rainfall, Inches. Alexandria Algiers 69.0 64.3 49.9 33.0 60.1 63.0 74.0 63.0 48.2 72.0 46.0 48.2 81.3 67.0 50.0 51.9 62.8 72.2 82.4 71.0 62.0 10 27 " - 6 "2*4 65 46 75 30 29 17 ' 76 39 23 116 610 ' 19 24 29 38 Florence 59.2 50.0 52.7 61.1 49.8 52.0 47.0 79.1 73.0 75.0 39.0 62.6 73.3 61.4 60.8 53.0 66.0 58.2 060 48.8 78.4 58.3 57.0 60.9 55.1 62.0 44.6 40.0 41 "32 47 44 "gi 101 "SO 16 '27 26 28 25 9 20 36 '277 23 29 "38 44 Munich 48.4 60.3 58.0 48.0 81.0 51.3 63.0 "36 29 'ii 22 27 2 14 "29 31 23 108 "24 17 20 49 43 106 180 19 Frankfort (Naples Amsterdam Geneva Nice Genoa Glasgow . Odessa Astrakhan Para Paris Bagdad Hamburg Pekin Port Said.. . Berlin Hong Kong 'Honolulu Prague 60.2 403 60.9 77.2 60.5 51.0 81.3 59.0 60.0 39.6 423 65.8 32.0 65.0 52.0 64.0 55.4 77.0 51 66.2 Bermuda Queuec Berne Quito Birmingham Bombay Jerusalem Rio de Janeiio.. Rome Lima Bordeaux Lisbon Rotterdam San Domingo Shanghai Brussels London Budapest 'Lyons. Buenos Ay res.... Cairo Madrid St. Petersburg . . Stockholm Calcutta Malta Canton Manchester Manila Sydney Cape Town Cayenne Tobolsk Maranham Trieste Cherrapongee*. . Christiania Constantinople.. Copenhagen Delhi Dublin 41.5 6.5 46.6 77.0 50.1 47.1 Valdivia Melbourne Valparaiso Venice Mexico . . Milan Vera Cruz Montevideo Montreal Vienna Warsaw Edinburgh iMoscow In Southwestern Assam. It is the wettest place in the world. In 1861 the rainfall there reached 905 inches. . The meap annual temperatiue oC i*e globe ig 50 FatecMiheit. Th.e average rajnfa.U is 36 in.ch.es. MISCELLANEOUS FACTS AND FIGURES. List of Ships of the United States Navy. [Abbreviations Propulsion: S., screw; T. S., twin screw; Tr. S., triple screw; P., paddle; cated horse power.] FIRST RATE. I. H. P.. indi- NAME AND DATE OF LAUNCHING. Displace- ment (tons). TYPE. Hull. I. H. P. !l 5*-- g5 W Guns(Main Battery). Guns (Sec- ondary Battery). [owa 1896 11,340 Steel 12 105 To 17 08 18 i Steel 111 403 To 16 21 Oregon 1893 10.288 Tr S 23 07 || 17 Texas 1892 6,315 2d class battleship Steel 8 610 T S 17 08 g 26 Puritan 1882 6,060 Double-turret monitor 3 700 T S 12 04 10 11 Olympia 1892 5,870 Protected cruiser Steel 17.313 T. S. 21.68 14 24 SECOND RATE. Chicago 1885 4,503 Protected cruiser Steel 9 000 'T S 18 18 12 Baltimore 1888 4,413 Steel 10,064 T S 2(1 09 10 16 Philadelphia 1889 4,324 >< ii Steel 8 815 T S 19 67 12 15 Monterey 1891 4,084 Barbette turret, low free- Newark 1890 4,098 board monitor Protected cruiser Steel Steel 5.244 8 869 T. S. T S 13.6 19 4 12 13 16 San Francisco 1889 4,098 Steel 9 913 T S 1952 12 19 Charleston 1888 3,730 ii Steel 6 66 T S 18 20 g 19 Miantonomoh 1876 3,990 Double-turret monitor Iron 1,426 T S 105 4 13 Amphitrite 1883 3,990 Iron 1,600 T. S. 10 5 6 14 Monadnock 1883 3,990 ii ii Iron 3,000 T. S. 12. 6 11 Terror 1883 3,990 it 11 Iron 1,600 T. S. 105 4 H New Orleans 18D6 3,437 Protected cruiser Steel 7.500 T. S. 20. 10 20 Albany 3.437 Steel 7,500 T. S. 20. 10 20 3,250 Cruiser Wood 1,000 S. 9.6 12 13 3,213 Protected cruiser Steel 10,000 T. S. 19. 11 13 Raleigh 1892 3,213 Steel 10000 T. S. 19. 11 16 Atlanta 1884 3,000 ii ii Steel 4,030 S. 16.60 8 13 Boston 1884 3.1100 H H Steel 4,030 S. 16,60 8 ia THIRD RATE. Hartford . 2,790 Cruiser Wood 2 000 S. 12. 13 Mayflower 2,690 4.700 T. S. 16.8 2 14 Katahdin 1893 2,155 Harbor-defense ram Steel 5,068 T. S. 16.11 4 Ajax 2,100 Single-turret monitor Iron 340 S. 5 to 6 2 Canonicus 2,100 Iron 340 S. 6. 2 2 2,100 11 ii Iron 340 s. 6. 2 2 Manhattan 2,100 ii it Iron 340 s. 6. 2 2 Detroit 1891 2,089 Unprotected cruiser Steel 5,227 T. S. 18.71 10 11 Montgomery 1891 2.C89 Steel 5.580 T. S. 19.05 10 11 Marblehead" 1892 2,089 ii ii Steel 5,451 T. S. 18.44 10 11 1,900 Cruiser Wood 1,10:) 8. 10.65 8 9 1,875 Single-turret monitor Iron 340 S. 5 to 6 2 1,875 Iron 310 S. 6. 2 1.875 11 it Iron 340 8. 5 to 6 2 2 Lehigh 1,875 ii ii Iron 310 S. 2 2 1,875 ii ii Iron 310 S. i 2 Nahant 1,875 11 it Iron 340 S. i 2 2 1,875 ii ii Iron 340 S. ' 2 2 Passaic Bennington 1890 1,875 1,710 Gunboat Iron Steel 340 3,436 S. T. S. 17.5 '2 6 2 9 Concord 1890 1,710 Steel 3,405 T. S. 168 6 9 Yorktown 1888 1,710 ii Steel 3,392 T. S. 16.4 6 11 Topeka 1881 1,700 it Iron 2,000 S. 16. 6 9 Dolphin 1884 1.486 Despatch boat Steel 2,253 S. 15.50 3 8 Wilmington 1895 1,392 Light-draft gunboat Steel 1,894 T. S. 12.88 8 IS Helena 1896 1.392 Steel 1,988 T. S. 15.50 8 11 1,375 Cruiser Wood 800 S. 9.8 6 6 Alliance 1.375 Wood 800 S. 6 6 1,375 ii Wood 800 s. 10.4 6 9 Enterprise 1,375 it Wood 800 s. 11.4 4 1 Nashville 18&5 1,371 Light-draft gunboat Steel 2,5:16 T. S. 16.30 8 > Monocacy 1,370 Iron 850 P. 11.2 6 10 Castiue 1892 1,177 Gunboat Steel 2.199 T. S. 16.03 8 8 Machias 1891 1 177 Steel 2,046 T. S. 15.46 8 8 Ale-t 1,020 Cruiser Iron 500 8. 10. 3 6 1 020 Iron 500 S. 10. 6 Annapolis 1896 1.000 Composite gunboat Comp 1,227 s. 13.17 6 7 Vicksburg 1896 1,000 Comp 1,118 8. 12.71 6 7 Wheeling 1897 1,000 ii Comp 1,081 T. S. 12.88 6 8 Marietta 1897 1,000 ii Comp 1,064 T. S. 13.03 6 8 Newport 1896 1,000 ii Comp 1,008 S. 12.29 6 7 Princeton 1897 1,000 " Comp 800 S. 12. 6 T 844 THE CENTURY BOOK OF FACTS. List of Ships of the United States Navy Continued. FOURTH RATE. NAME AND DATE OF LAUNCHING. TYPE. Hull. I. H. P. -s Vesuvius . Petrel .... Fern Bancroft . Michigan. Pinta .5588 .1888 .1892 929 892 840 839 685 550 Dynamite-gun vessel Gunboat Training ship Gunboat Cruiser Gunboat Steel Steel Wood Steel Iron Iron 3,795 1,095 i',213 365 310 T. S. S. S. T. S. P. S. 21.42 11.79 9. 14.37 10.6 8.5 TORPEDO BOATS. Gushing (No. 1) 1890 105 Ericsson (No. 2) 1894 120 Foote(No.3) 1896 142 Rodgers (No. 4) 1896 142 Winslow(No. 5) 1897 142 Porter(No.6) 1896 165 Dupont(No.7) 1*97 165 Morris (No. 14) 1F97 105 Talbot(No.l5) 1897 46J Gwin(No. 16) 1897 46 Mackenzie (No. 17) 1898 65 McKee(No. 18) 1898 65 Manly(No.22) Somers (No. 23) 145 Stiletto 31 Fortune 450 Iwana 1892 192 Leyden 450 Narkeeta 1892 192 Nina 357 Rocket 187 Standish 450 Traffic 280 Triton 212 Wahneta 192 Unadilla 1895 345 Samoset 1807| 225 Monongaheia 77! 2 100 Constellation 1,186 Jamestown 1,150 Portsmouth 1,125 Saratoga 1.025 St. Mary's 1,025 Franklin... 5,170 Wabash 4,650 Vermont 4,150 Independence 3,270 Pensacola 3,000 Richmond 2.700 New Hampshire ' 4.150 Omaha 2,400 Constitution 2,200 Iroquois 1,575 Nipsic 1,375 St. Louis 830 Dale 675 Minnesota 4,700 Marion 1,900 Thetis 1,250 Yantic 900 Torpedo boat Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Wood 1,720 1,800 2,000 2,000 2,000 1,750 850 850 850 850 1,900 359 T. S. T. S. T. S. T. S. T. S. T. S. T. S. T. S. S. S. S. S. 22.5 24. 24.53 24.5 24.5 28.63 28.58 24. 21.15 20.88 20. 19.82 23. 18.22 a3 it 3 a3 a3 03 3 03 a3 a2 a2 a2 a2 al a2 a In ordinary. TUGS. Tug. Iron Steel Iron Steel Iron Wood Iron Wood Steel Steel Steel Steel 340 300 340 300 388 147 340 '300 300 500 450 10. 11.5 10. 11.5 11.12 8.5 10. 10. 13. 11.5 12. 12. SAILING SHIPS. Wood Wood Wood Wood Wood Wood Sails RECEIVING SHIPS. Wood Wood Wood Wood Wood Wood 1,050 950 980 692 S. S. Sails S. S. 9. 9.15 9. 9.5 UNSERVICEABLE. Sailing ship Cruiser Cruiser Sailing ship Cruiser Wood Wood Wood Wood Wood Wood Wood Wood Wood Wood Wood 1,202 839 1,000 1,100 530 310 Sails S. Sails S. S. Sails S. S. S. 10.7 10.7 9.25 11.25 7.65 8.30 UNDER CONSTRUCTION. Kearsarge. Kentucky . Illinois.... Alabama . . Wisconsin. Maine Missouri... Ohio Plunger... Panacook . .1897 11,625 11,525 11 ,525 11,525 11,525 12.500 12.500 12,600 168 225 1st class battleship Submarine torpedo boat Tug Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel Steel 10,000 10,000 10,000 10.000 10,000 16,000 16.000 16,000 1,200 460 T. S. T. S. T. S. T. S. T. S. T. S. T S. T. S. T. S. S. 16. 16. 16. 16. 16. 18. 18. 18. 8. 22 22 IX 18 IK 20 H 20 2 MISCELLANEOUS PACTS AND FIGURES. 645 List of Ships of the United States Navy. Continued. UNDER CONSTRUCTION. NAME AND DATE OF LAUNCHING. Displace- ment (tons). TYPE. Hull. I. H. P. II fi" Speed in Knots per Hour. <. 1111- M. llll Battery). 4 o i?j *1 3* Pawtucket 225 Tug Steel 450 s. Chesapeake Gunboat (No. 16) 1,175 Sailing ship Gunboat Comp Steel Sails 6 6 Arkansas Connecticut 2,700 2 700 Monitor Steel Steel 2,400 2 400 T. 8. 12. 6 7 Flori da 2 700 2 400 TO 12 Wyoming 2 700 Bainbridge 420 Stfcl 8 000 TO 9Q Barry 420 Chauncey 420 To Dale 420 8 000 T S 28 Decatur 420 8 000 To I Hopkins... 408 Steel 7 200 TO 29 Hull 408 Lawrence 435 Steel T S 30 Macdonough 435 Steel 8 400 T S 30 CL 2 I Paul Jones 420 Steel TQ 29 2 Perry 420 Preb'le 420 T S 29 Stewart 420 Steel 8 000 T S 29 Truxtun 433 Steel TQ Whipple 433 8 300 T S 30 2 Worden 433 TQ Rowan (No. 8) 1898 182 T S 26 2 Dahlgren (No. 9) 146 To T. A. M. Craven (No. 10) Farragut (No. 11) 1898 146 273 Steel Steel 4,200 5600 T. S. T S. 30.5 30